summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes3
-rw-r--r--9393-0.txt8915
-rw-r--r--9393-0.zipbin0 -> 202702 bytes
-rw-r--r--9393-8.txt8915
-rw-r--r--9393-8.zipbin0 -> 202228 bytes
-rw-r--r--9393-h.zipbin0 -> 210679 bytes
-rw-r--r--9393-h/9393-h.htm9569
-rw-r--r--9393.txt8915
-rw-r--r--9393.zipbin0 -> 202183 bytes
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/8orts10.zipbin0 -> 201654 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/9393-h.htm.2021-01-269568
13 files changed, 45898 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6833f05
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,3 @@
+* text=auto
+*.txt text
+*.md text
diff --git a/9393-0.txt b/9393-0.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..9c11f1e
--- /dev/null
+++ b/9393-0.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,8915 @@
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of A Dish Of Orts, by George MacDonald
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: A Dish Of Orts
+
+Author: George MacDonald
+
+
+Release Date: November, 2005 [EBook #9393]
+This file was first posted on September 29, 2003
+Last Updated: October 10, 2016
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: UTF-8
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A DISH OF ORTS ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Jonathan Ingram, Sandra Brown, and Project
+Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+A DISH OF ORTS
+
+BY GEORGE MACDONALD
+
+
+
+
+PREFACE.
+
+
+Since printing throughout the title _Orts_, a doubt has arisen in my
+mind as to its fitting the nature of the volume. It could hardly,
+however, be imagined that I associate the idea of _worthlessness_ with
+the work contained in it. No one would insult his readers by offering
+them what he counted valueless scraps, and telling them they were such.
+These papers, those two even which were caught in the net of the
+ready-writer from extempore utterance, whatever their merits in
+themselves; are the results of by no means trifling labour. So much a
+man _ought_ to be able to say for his work. And hence I might defend, if
+not quite justify my title--for they are but fragmentary presentments of
+larger meditation. My friends at least will accept them as such, whether
+they like their collective title or not.
+
+The title of the last is not quite suitable. It is that of the religious
+newspaper which reported the sermon. I noted the fact too late for
+correction. It ought to be _True Greatness_.
+
+The paper on _The Fantastic Imagination_ had its origin in the repeated
+request of readers for an explanation of things in certain shorter
+stories I had written. It forms the preface to an American edition of my
+so-called Fairy Tales.
+
+GEORGE MACDONALD.
+
+EDENBRIDGE, KENT. _August 5, 1893._
+
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS.
+
+THE IMAGINATION: ITS FUNCTIONS AND ITS CULTURE
+
+A SKETCH OF INDIVIDUAL DEVELOPMENT
+
+ST. GEORGE’S DAY, 1564
+
+THE ART OF SHAKSPERE, AS REVEALED BY HIMSELF
+
+THE ELDER HAMLET
+
+ON POLISH
+
+BROWNING’S “CHRISTMAS EVE”
+
+“ESSAYS ON SOME OF THE FORMS OF LITERATURE”
+
+“THE HISTORY AND HEROES OF MEDICINE”
+
+WORDSWORTH’S POETRY
+
+SHELLEY
+
+A SERMON
+
+TRUE CHRISTIAN MINISTERING
+
+THE FANTASTIC IMAGINATION
+
+
+
+
+THE IMAGINATION: ITS FUNCTIONS AND ITS CULTURE.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1867.]
+
+There are in whose notion education would seem to consist in the
+production of a certain repose through the development of this and that
+faculty, and the depression, if not eradication, of this and that other
+faculty. But if mere repose were the end in view, an unsparing
+depression of all the faculties would be the surest means of approaching
+it, provided always the animal instincts could be depressed likewise,
+or, better still, kept in a state of constant repletion. Happily,
+however, for the human race, it possesses in the passion of hunger even,
+a more immediate saviour than in the wisest selection and treatment of
+its faculties. For repose is not the end of education; its end is a
+noble unrest, an ever renewed awaking from the dead, a ceaseless
+questioning of the past for the interpretation of the future, an urging
+on of the motions of life, which had better far be accelerated into
+fever, than retarded into lethargy.
+
+By those who consider a balanced repose the end of culture, the
+imagination must necessarily be regarded as the one faculty before all
+others to be suppressed. “Are there not facts?” say they. “Why forsake
+them for fancies? Is there not that which, may be _known_? Why forsake
+it for inventions? What God hath made, into that let man inquire.”
+
+We answer: To inquire into what God has made is the main function of the
+imagination. It is aroused by facts, is nourished by facts; seeks for
+higher and yet higher laws in those facts; but refuses to regard science
+as the sole interpreter of nature, or the laws of science as the only
+region of discovery.
+
+We must begin with a definition of the word _imagination_, or rather
+some description of the faculty to which we give the name.
+
+The word itself means an _imaging_ or a making of likenesses. The
+imagination is that faculty which gives form to thought--not necessarily
+uttered form, but form capable of being uttered in shape or in sound, or
+in any mode upon which the senses can lay hold. It is, therefore, that
+faculty in man which is likest to the prime operation of the power of
+God, and has, therefore, been called the _creative_ faculty, and its
+exercise _creation_. _Poet_ means _maker_. We must not forget, however,
+that between creator and poet lies the one unpassable gulf which
+distinguishes--far be it from us to say _divides_--all that is God’s
+from all that is man’s; a gulf teeming with infinite revelations, but a
+gulf over which no man can pass to find out God, although God needs not
+to pass over it to find man; the gulf between that which calls, and that
+which is thus called into being; between that which makes in its own
+image and that which is made in that image. It is better to keep the
+word _creation_ for that calling out of nothing which is the imagination
+of God; except it be as an occasional symbolic expression, whose daring
+is fully recognized, of the likeness of man’s work to the work of his
+maker. The necessary unlikeness between the creator and the created
+holds within it the equally necessary likeness of the thing made to him
+who makes it, and so of the work of the made to the work of the maker.
+When therefore, refusing to employ the word _creation_ of the work of
+man, we yet use the word _imagination_ of the work of God, we cannot be
+said to dare at all. It is only to give the name of man’s faculty to
+that power after which and by which it was fashioned. The imagination of
+man is made in the image of the imagination of God. Everything of man
+must have been of God first; and it will help much towards our
+understanding of the imagination and its functions in man if we first
+succeed in regarding aright the imagination of God, in which the
+imagination of man lives and moves and has its being.
+
+As to _what_ thought is in the mind of God ere it takes form, or what
+the form is to him ere he utters it; in a word, what the consciousness
+of God is in either case, all we can say is, that our consciousness in
+the resembling conditions must, afar off, resemble his. But when we come
+to consider the acts embodying the Divine thought (if indeed thought and
+act be not with him one and the same), then we enter a region of large
+difference. We discover at once, for instance, that where a man would
+make a machine, or a picture, or a book, God makes the man that makes
+the book, or the picture, or the machine. Would God give us a drama? He
+makes a Shakespere. Or would he construct a drama more immediately his
+own? He begins with the building of the stage itself, and that stage is
+a world--a universe of worlds. He makes the actors, and they do not
+act,--they _are_ their part. He utters them into the visible to work out
+their life--his drama. When he would have an epic, he sends a thinking
+hero into his drama, and the epic is the soliloquy of his Hamlet.
+Instead of writing his lyrics, he sets his birds and his maidens
+a-singing. All the processes of the ages are God’s science; all the flow
+of history is his poetry. His sculpture is not in marble, but in living
+and speech-giving forms, which pass away, not to yield place to those
+that come after, but to be perfected in a nobler studio. What he has
+done remains, although it vanishes; and he never either forgets what he
+has once done, or does it even once again. As the thoughts move in the
+mind of a man, so move the worlds of men and women in the mind of God,
+and make no confusion there, for there they had their birth, the
+offspring of his imagination. Man is but a thought of God.
+
+If we now consider the so-called creative faculty in man, we shall find
+that in no _primary_ sense is this faculty creative. Indeed, a man is
+rather _being thought_ than _thinking_, when a new thought arises in his
+mind. He knew it not till he found it there, therefore he could not even
+have sent for it. He did not create it, else how could it be the
+surprise that it was when it arose? He may, indeed, in rare instances
+foresee that something is coming, and make ready the place for its
+birth; but that is the utmost relation of consciousness and will he can
+bear to the dawning idea. Leaving this aside, however, and turning to
+the _embodiment_ or revelation of thought, we shall find that a man no
+more _creates_ the forms by which he would reveal his thoughts, than he
+creates those thoughts themselves.
+
+For what are the forms by means of which a man may reveal his thoughts?
+Are they not those of nature? But although he is created in the closest
+sympathy with these forms, yet even these forms are not born in his
+mind. What springs there is the perception that this or that form is
+already an expression of this or that phase of thought or of feeling.
+For the world around him is an outward figuration of the condition of
+his mind; an inexhaustible storehouse of forms whence he may choose
+exponents--the crystal pitchers that shall protect his thought and not
+need to be broken that the light may break forth. The meanings are in
+those forms already, else they could be no garment of unveiling. God has
+made the world that it should thus serve his creature, developing in the
+service that imagination whose necessity it meets. The man has but to
+light the lamp within the form: his imagination is the light, it is not
+the form. Straightway the shining thought makes the form visible, and
+becomes itself visible through the form. [Footnote: We would not be
+understood to say that the man works consciously even in this.
+Oftentimes, if not always, the vision arises in the mind, thought and
+form together.]
+
+In illustration of what we mean, take a passage from the poet Shelley.
+
+In his poem _Adonais_, written upon the death of Keats, representing
+death as the revealer of secrets, he says:--
+
+ “The one remains; the many change and pass;
+ Heaven’s light for ever shines; earth’s shadows fly;
+ Life, like a dome of many coloured glass,
+ Stains the white radiance of eternity,
+ Until death tramples it to fragments.”
+
+This is a new embodiment, certainly, whence he who gains not, for the
+moment at least, a loftier feeling of death, must be dull either of
+heart or of understanding. But has Shelley created this figure, or only
+put together its parts according to the harmony of truths already
+embodied in each of the parts? For first he takes the inventions of his
+fellow-men, in glass, in colour, in dome: with these he represents life
+as finite though elevated, and as an analysis although a lovely one.
+Next he presents eternity as the dome of the sky above this dome of
+coloured glass--the sky having ever been regarded as the true symbol of
+eternity. This portion of the figure he enriches by the attribution of
+whiteness, or unity and radiance. And last, he shows us Death as the
+destroying revealer, walking aloft through, the upper region, treading
+out this life-bubble of colours, that the man may look beyond it and
+behold the true, the uncoloured, the all-coloured.
+
+But although the human imagination has no choice but to make use of the
+forms already prepared for it, its operation is the same as that of the
+divine inasmuch as it does put thought into form. And if it be to man
+what creation is to God, we must expect to find it operative in every
+sphere of human activity. Such is, indeed, the fact, and that to a far
+greater extent than is commonly supposed.
+
+The sovereignty of the imagination, for instance, over the region of
+poetry will hardly, in the present day at least, be questioned; but not
+every one is prepared to be told that the imagination has had nearly as
+much to do with the making of our language as with “Macbeth” or the
+“Paradise Lost.” The half of our language is the work of the
+imagination.
+
+For how shall two agree together what name they shall give to a thought
+or a feeling. How shall the one show the other that which is invisible?
+True, he can unveil the mind’s construction in the face--that living
+eternally changeful symbol which God has hung in front of the unseen
+spirit--but that without words reaches only to the expression of present
+feeling. To attempt to employ it alone for the conveyance of the
+intellectual or the historical would constantly mislead; while the
+expression of feeling itself would be misinterpreted, especially with
+regard to cause and object: the dumb show would be worse than dumb.
+
+But let a man become aware of some new movement within him. Loneliness
+comes with it, for he would share his mind with his friend, and he
+cannot; he is shut up in speechlessness. Thus
+
+ He _may_ live a man forbid
+ Weary seven nights nine times nine,
+
+or the first moment of his perplexity may be that of his release. Gazing
+about him in pain, he suddenly beholds the material form of his
+immaterial condition. There stands his thought! God thought it before
+him, and put its picture there ready for him when he wanted it. Or, to
+express the thing more prosaically, the man cannot look around him long
+without perceiving some form, aspect, or movement of nature, some
+relation between its forms, or between such and himself which resembles
+the state or motion within him. This he seizes as the symbol, as the
+garment or body of his invisible thought, presents it to his friend, and
+his friend understands him. Every word so employed with a new meaning is
+henceforth, in its new character, born of the spirit and not of the
+flesh, born of the imagination and not of the understanding, and is
+henceforth submitted to new laws of growth and modification.
+
+“Thinkest thou,” says Carlyle in “Past and Present,” “there were no
+poets till Dan Chaucer? No heart burning with a thought which it could
+not hold, and had no word for; and needed to shape and coin a word
+for--what thou callest a metaphor, trope, or the like? For every word we
+have there was such a man and poet. The coldest word was once a glowing
+new metaphor and bold questionable originality. Thy very ATTENTION, does
+it not mean an _attentio_, a STRETCHING-TO? Fancy that act of the mind,
+which all were conscious of, which none had yet named,--when this new
+poet first felt bound and driven to name it. His questionable
+originality and new glowing metaphor was found adoptable, intelligible,
+and remains our name for it to this day.”
+
+All words, then, belonging to the inner world of the mind, are of the
+imagination, are originally poetic words. The better, however, any such
+word is fitted for the needs of humanity, the sooner it loses its poetic
+aspect by commonness of use. It ceases to be heard as a symbol, and
+appears only as a sign. Thus thousands of words which were originally
+poetic words owing their existence to the imagination, lose their
+vitality, and harden into mummies of prose. Not merely in literature
+does poetry come first, and prose afterwards, but poetry is the source
+of all the language that belongs to the inner world, whether it be of
+passion or of metaphysics, of psychology or of aspiration. No poetry
+comes by the elevation of prose; but the half of prose comes by the
+“massing into the common clay” of thousands of winged words, whence,
+like the lovely shells of by-gone ages, one is occasionally disinterred
+by some lover of speech, and held up to the light to show the play of
+colour in its manifold laminations.
+
+For the world is--allow us the homely figure--the human being turned
+inside out. All that moves in the mind is symbolized in Nature. Or, to
+use another more philosophical, and certainly not less poetic figure,
+the world is a sensuous analysis of humanity, and hence an inexhaustible
+wardrobe for the clothing of human thought. Take any word expressive of
+emotion--take the word _emotion_ itself--and you will find that its
+primary meaning is of the outer world. In the swaying of the woods, in
+the unrest of the “wavy plain,” the imagination saw the picture of a
+well-known condition of the human mind; and hence the word _emotion_.
+[Footnote: This passage contains only a repetition of what is far better
+said in the preceding extract from Carlyle, but it was written before we
+had read (if reviewers may be allowed to confess such ignorance) the
+book from which that extract is taken.]
+
+But while the imagination of man has thus the divine function of putting
+thought into form, it has a duty altogether human, which is paramount to
+that function--the duty, namely, which springs from his immediate
+relation to the Father, that of following and finding out the divine
+imagination in whose image it was made. To do this, the man must watch
+its signs, its manifestations. He must contemplate what the Hebrew poets
+call the works of His hands.
+
+“But to follow those is the province of the intellect, not of the
+imagination.”--We will leave out of the question at present that poetic
+interpretation of the works of Nature with which the intellect has
+almost nothing, and the imagination almost everything, to do. It is
+unnecessary to insist that the higher being of a flower even is
+dependent for its reception upon the human imagination; that science may
+pull the snowdrop to shreds, but cannot find out the idea of suffering
+hope and pale confident submission, for the sake of which that darling
+of the spring looks out of heaven, namely, God’s heart, upon us his
+wiser and more sinful children; for if there be any truth in this region
+of things acknowledged at all, it will be at the same time acknowledged
+that that region belongs to the imagination. We confine ourselves to
+that questioning of the works of God which is called the province of
+science.
+
+“Shall, then, the human intellect,” we ask, “come into readier contact
+with the divine imagination than that human imagination?” The work of
+the Higher must be discovered by the search of the Lower in degree which
+is yet similar in kind. Let us not be supposed to exclude the intellect
+from a share in every highest office. Man is not divided when the
+manifestations of his life are distinguished. The intellect “is all in
+every part.” There were no imagination without intellect, however much
+it may appear that intellect can exist without imagination. What we mean
+to insist upon is, that in finding out the works of God, the Intellect
+must labour, workman-like, under the direction of the architect,
+Imagination. Herein, too, we proceed in the hope to show how much more
+than is commonly supposed the imagination has to do with human
+endeavour; how large a share it has in the work that is done under the
+sun.
+
+“But how can the imagination have anything to do with science? That
+region, at least, is governed by fixed laws.”
+
+“True,” we answer. “But how much do we know of these laws? How much of
+science already belongs to the region of the ascertained--in other
+words, has been conquered by the intellect? We will not now dispute,
+your vindication of the _ascertained_ from the intrusion of the
+imagination; but we do claim for it all the undiscovered, all the
+unexplored.” “Ah, well! There it can do little harm. There let it run
+riot if you will.” “No,” we reply. “Licence is not what we claim when we
+assert the duty of the imagination to be that of following and finding
+out the work that God maketh. Her part is to understand God ere she
+attempts to utter man. Where is the room for being fanciful or riotous
+here? It is only the ill-bred, that is, the uncultivated imagination
+that will amuse itself where it ought to worship and work.”
+
+“But the facts of Nature are to be discovered only by observation and
+experiment.” True. But how does the man of science come to think of his
+experiments? Does observation reach to the non-present, the possible,
+the yet unconceived? Even if it showed you the experiments which _ought_
+to be made, will observation reveal to you the experiments which _might_
+be made? And who can tell of which kind is the one that carries in its
+bosom the secret of the law you seek? We yield you your facts. The laws
+we claim for the prophetic imagination. “He hath set the world _in_
+man’s heart,” not in his understanding. And the heart must open the door
+to the understanding. It is the far-seeing imagination which beholds
+what might be a form of things, and says to the intellect: “Try whether
+that may not be the form of these things;” which beholds or invents _a_
+harmonious relation of parts and operations, and sends the intellect to
+find out whether that be not _the_ harmonious relation of them--that is,
+the law of the phenomenon it contemplates. Nay, the poetic relations
+themselves in the phenomenon may suggest to the imagination the law that
+rules its scientific life. Yea, more than this: we dare to claim for the
+true, childlike, humble imagination, such an inward oneness with the
+laws of the universe that it possesses in itself an insight into the
+very nature of things.
+
+Lord Bacon tells us that a prudent question is the half of knowledge.
+Whence comes this prudent question? we repeat. And we answer, From the
+imagination. It is the imagination that suggests in what direction to
+make the new inquiry--which, should it cast no immediate light on the
+answer sought, can yet hardly fail to be a step towards final discovery.
+Every experiment has its origin in hypothesis; without the scaffolding
+of hypothesis, the house of science could never arise. And the
+construction of any hypothesis whatever is the work of the imagination.
+The man who cannot invent will never discover. The imagination often
+gets a glimpse of the law itself long before it is or can be
+_ascertained_ to be a law. [Footnote: This paper was already written
+when, happening to mention the present subject to a mathematical friend,
+a lecturer at one of the universities, he gave us a corroborative
+instance. He had lately _guessed_ that a certain algebraic process could
+be shortened exceedingly if the method which his imagination suggested
+should prove to be a true one--that is, an algebraic law. He put it to
+the test of experiment--committed the verification, that is, into the
+hands of his intellect--and found the method true. It has since been
+accepted by the Royal Society.
+
+Noteworthy illustration we have lately found in the record of the
+experiences of an Edinburgh detective, an Irishman of the name of
+McLevy. That the service of the imagination in the solution of the
+problems peculiar to his calling is well known to him, we could adduce
+many proofs. He recognizes its function in the construction of the
+theory which shall unite this and that hint into an organic whole, and
+he expressly sets forth the need of a theory before facts can be
+serviceable:--
+
+“I would wait for my ‘idea’.... I never did any good without mine....
+Chance never smiled on me unless I poked her some way; so that my
+‘notion,’ after all, has been in the getting of it my own work only
+perfected by a higher hand.”
+
+“On leaving the shop I went direct to Prince’s Street,--of course with
+an idea in my mind; and somehow I have always been contented with one
+idea when I could not get another; and the advantage of sticking by one
+is, that the other don’t jostle it and turn you about in a circle when
+you should go in a straight line.” (Footnote: Since quoting the above I
+have learned that the book referred to is unworthy of confidence. But
+let it stand as illustration where it cannot be proof.)]
+
+The region belonging to the pure intellect is straitened: the
+imagination labours to extend its territories, to give it room. She
+sweeps across the borders, searching out new lands into which she may
+guide her plodding brother. The imagination is the light which redeems
+from the darkness for the eyes of the understanding. Novalis says, “The
+imagination is the stuff of the intellect”--affords, that is, the
+material upon which the intellect works. And Bacon, in his “Advancement
+of Learning,” fully recognizes this its office, corresponding to the
+foresight of God in this, that it beholds afar off. And he says:
+“Imagination is much akin to miracle-working faith.” [Footnote: We are
+sorry we cannot verify this quotation, for which we are indebted to Mr.
+Oldbuck the Antiquary, in the novel of that ilk. There is, however,
+little room for doubt that it is sufficiently correct.]
+
+In the scientific region of her duty of which we speak, the Imagination
+cannot have her perfect work; this belongs to another and higher sphere
+than that of intellectual truth--that, namely, of full-globed humanity,
+operating in which she gives birth to poetry--truth in beauty. But her
+function in the complete sphere of our nature, will, at the same time,
+influence her more limited operation in the sections that belong to
+science. Coleridge says that no one but a poet will make any further
+_great_ discoveries in mathematics; and Bacon says that “wonder,” that
+faculty of the mind especially attendant on the child-like imagination,
+“is the seed of knowledge.” The influence of the poetic upon the
+scientific imagination is, for instance, especially present in the
+construction of an invisible whole from the hints afforded by a visible
+part; where the needs of the part, its uselessness, its broken
+relations, are the only guides to a multiplex harmony, completeness, and
+end, which is the whole. From a little bone, worn with ages of death,
+older than the man can think, his scientific imagination dashed with the
+poetic, calls up the form, size, habits, periods, belonging to an animal
+never beheld by human eyes, even to the mingling contrasts of scales and
+wings, of feathers and hair. Through the combined lenses of science and
+imagination, we look back into ancient times, so dreadful in their
+incompleteness, that it may well have been the task of seraphic faith,
+as well as of cherubic imagination, to behold in the wallowing
+monstrosities of the terror-teeming earth, the prospective, quiet,
+age-long labour of God preparing the world with all its humble, graceful
+service for his unborn Man. The imagination of the poet, on the other
+hand, dashed with the imagination of the man of science, revealed to
+Goethe the prophecy of the flower in the leaf. No other than an artistic
+imagination, however, fulfilled of science, could have attained to the
+discovery of the fact that the leaf is the imperfect flower.
+
+When we turn to history, however, we find probably the greatest
+operative sphere of the intellectuo-constructive imagination. To
+discover its laws; the cycles in which events return, with the reasons
+of their return, recognizing them notwithstanding metamorphosis; to
+perceive the vital motions of this spiritual body of mankind; to learn
+from its facts the rule of God; to construct from a succession of broken
+indications a whole accordant with human nature; to approach a scheme of
+the forces at work, the passions overwhelming or upheaving, the
+aspirations securely upraising, the selfishnesses debasing and
+crumbling, with the vital interworking of the whole; to illuminate all
+from the analogy with individual life, and from the predominant phases
+of individual character which are taken as the mind of the people--this
+is the province of the imagination. Without her influence no process of
+recording events can develop into a history. As truly might that be
+called the description of a volcano which occupied itself with a
+delineation of the shapes assumed by the smoke expelled from the
+mountain’s burning bosom. What history becomes under the full sway of
+the imagination may be seen in the “History of the French Revolution,”
+ by Thomas Carlyle, at once a true picture, a philosophical revelation, a
+noble poem.
+
+There is a wonderful passage about _Time_ in Shakespere’s “Rape of
+Lucrece,” which shows how he understood history. The passage is really
+about history, and not about time; for time itself does nothing--not
+even “blot old books and alter their contents.” It is the forces at work
+in time that produce all the changes; and they are history. We quote for
+the sake of one line chiefly, but the whole stanza is pertinent.
+
+ “Time’s glory is to calm contending kings,
+ To unmask falsehood, and bring truth to light,
+ To stamp the seal of time in aged things,
+ To wake the morn and sentinel the night,
+ _To wrong the wronger till he render right;_
+ To ruinate proud buildings with thy hours,
+ And smear with dust their glittering golden towers.”
+
+_To wrong the wronger till he render right._ Here is a historical cycle
+worthy of the imagination of Shakespere, yea, worthy of the creative
+imagination of our God--the God who made the Shakespere with the
+imagination, as well as evolved the history from the laws which that
+imagination followed and found out.
+
+In full instance we would refer our readers to Shakespere’s historical
+plays; and, as a side-illustration, to the fact that he repeatedly
+represents his greatest characters, when at the point of death, as
+relieving their overcharged minds by prophecy. Such prophecy is the
+result of the light of imagination, cleared of all distorting dimness by
+the vanishing of earthly hopes and desires, cast upon the facts of
+experience. Such prophecy is the perfect working of the historical
+imagination.
+
+In the interpretation of individual life, the same principles hold; and
+nowhere can the imagination be more healthily and rewardingly occupied
+than in endeavouring to construct the life of an individual out of the
+fragments which are all that can reach us of the history of even the
+noblest of our race. How this will apply to the reading of the gospel
+story we leave to the earnest thought of our readers.
+
+We now pass to one more sphere in which the student imagination works in
+glad freedom--the sphere which is understood to belong more immediately
+to the poet.
+
+We have already said that the forms of Nature (by which word _forms_ we
+mean any of those conditions of Nature which affect the senses of man)
+are so many approximate representations of the mental conditions of
+humanity. The outward, commonly called the material, is _informed_ by,
+or has form in virtue of, the inward or immaterial--in a word, the
+thought. The forms of Nature are the representations of human thought in
+virtue of their being the embodiment of God’s thought. As such,
+therefore, they can be read and used to any depth, shallow or profound.
+Men of all ages and all developments have discovered in them the means
+of expression; and the men of ages to come, before us in every path
+along which we are now striving, must likewise find such means in those
+forms, unfolding with their unfolding necessities. The man, then, who,
+in harmony with nature, attempts the discovery of more of her meanings,
+is just searching out the things of God. The deepest of these are far
+too simple for us to understand as yet. But let our imagination
+interpretive reveal to us one severed significance of one of her parts,
+and such is the harmony of the whole, that all the realm of Nature is
+open to us henceforth--not without labour--and in time. Upon the man who
+can understand the human meaning of the snowdrop, of the primrose, or of
+the daisy, the life of the earth blossoming into the cosmical flower of
+a perfect moment will one day seize, possessing him with its prophetic
+hope, arousing his conscience with the vision of the “rest that
+remaineth,” and stirring up the aspiration to enter into that rest:
+
+ “Thine is the tranquil hour, purpureal Eve!
+ But long as godlike wish, or hope divine,
+ Informs my spirit, ne’er can I believe
+ That this magnificence is wholly thine!
+ --From worlds not quickened by the sun
+ A portion of the gift is won;
+ An intermingling of Heaven’s pomp is spread
+ On ground which British shepherds tread!”
+
+Even the careless curve of a frozen cloud across the blue will calm some
+troubled thoughts, may slay some selfish thoughts. And what shall be
+said of such gorgeous shows as the scarlet poppies in the green corn,
+the likest we have to those lilies of the field which spoke to the
+Saviour himself of the care of God, and rejoiced His eyes with the glory
+of their God-devised array? From such visions as these the imagination
+reaps the best fruits of the earth, for the sake of which all the
+science involved in its construction, is the inferior, yet willing and
+beautiful support.
+
+From what we have now advanced, will it not then appear that, on the
+whole, the name given by our Norman ancestors is more fitting for the
+man who moves in these regions than the name given by the Greeks? Is not
+the _Poet_, the _Maker_, a less suitable name for him than the
+_Trouvère_, the _Finder_? At least, must not the faculty that finds
+precede the faculty that utters?
+
+But is there nothing to be said of the function of the imagination from
+the Greek side of the question? Does it possess no creative faculty? Has
+it no originating power?
+
+Certainly it would be a poor description of the Imagination which
+omitted the one element especially present to the mind that invented the
+word _Poet_.--It can present us with new thought-forms--new, that is, as
+revelations of thought. It has created none of the material that goes to
+make these forms. Nor does it work upon raw material. But it takes forms
+already existing, and gathers them about a thought so much higher than
+they, that it can group and subordinate and harmonize them into a whole
+which shall represent, unveil that thought. [Footnote: Just so Spenser
+describes the process of the embodiment of a human soul in his Platonic
+“Hymn in Honour of Beauty.”
+
+ “She frames her house in which she will be placed
+ Fit for herself....
+ And the gross matter by a sovereign might
+ Tempers so trim....
+ For of the soul the body form doth take;
+ For soul is form, and doth the body make.”]
+
+The nature of this process we will illustrate by an examination of the
+well-known _Bugle Song_ in Tennyson’s “Princess.”
+
+First of all, there is the new music of the song, which does not even
+remind one of the music of any other. The rhythm, rhyme, melody, harmony
+are all an embodiment in sound, as distinguished from word, of what can
+be so embodied--the _feeling_ of the poem, which goes before, and
+prepares the way for the following thought--tunes the heart into a
+receptive harmony. Then comes the new arrangement of thought and figure
+whereby the meaning contained is presented as it never was before. We
+give a sort of paraphrastical synopsis of the poem, which, partly in
+virtue of its disagreeableness, will enable the lovers of the song to
+return to it with an increase of pleasure.
+
+The glory of midsummer mid-day upon mountain, lake, and ruin. Give
+nature a voice for her gladness. Blow, bugle.
+
+Nature answers with dying echoes, sinking in the midst of her splendour
+into a sad silence.
+
+Not so with human nature. The echoes of the word of truth gather volume
+and richness from every soul that re-echoes it to brother and sister
+souls.
+
+With poets the _fashion_ has been to contrast the stability and
+rejuvenescence of nature with the evanescence and unreturning decay of
+humanity:--
+
+ “Yet soon reviving plants and flowers, anew shall deck the plain;
+ The woods shall hear the voice of Spring, and flourish green again.
+ But man forsakes this earthly scene, ah! never to return:
+ Shall any following Spring revive the ashes of the urn?”
+
+But our poet vindicates the eternal in humanity:--
+
+ “O Love, they die in yon rich sky,
+ They faint on hill or field or river:
+ Our echoes roll from soul to soul,
+ And grow for ever and for ever.
+ Blow, bugle, blow, set the wild echoes flying;
+ And answer, echoes, answer, Dying, dying, dying.”
+
+Is not this a new form to the thought--a form which makes us feel the
+truth of it afresh? And every new embodiment of a known truth must be a
+new and wider revelation. No man is capable of seeing for himself the
+whole of any truth: he needs it echoed back to him from every soul in
+the universe; and still its centre is hid in the Father of Lights. In so
+far, then, as either form or thought is new, we may grant the use of the
+word Creation, modified according to our previous definitions.
+
+This operation of the imagination in choosing, gathering, and vitally
+combining the material of a new revelation, may be well illustrated from
+a certain employment of the poetic faculty in which our greatest poets
+have delighted. Perceiving truth half hidden and half revealed in the
+slow speech and stammering tongue of men who have gone before them, they
+have taken up the unfinished form and completed it; they have, as it
+were, rescued the soul of meaning from its prison of uninformed crudity,
+where it sat like the Prince in the “Arabian Nights,” half man, half
+marble; they have set it free in its own form, in a shape, namely, which
+it could “through every part impress.” Shakespere’s keen eye suggested
+many such a rescue from the tomb--of a tale drearily told--a tale which
+no one now would read save for the glorified form in which he has
+re-embodied its true contents. And from Tennyson we can produce one
+specimen small enough for our use, which, a mere chip from the great
+marble re-embodying the old legend of Arthur’s death, may, like the hand
+of Achilles holding his spear in the crowded picture,
+
+ “Stand for the whole to be imagined.”
+
+In the “History of Prince Arthur,” when Sir Bedivere returns after
+hiding Excalibur the first time, the king asks him what he has seen, and
+he answers--
+
+ “Sir, I saw nothing but waves and wind.”
+
+The second time, to the same question, he answers--
+
+ “Sir, I saw nothing but the water[1] wap, and the waves wan.”
+
+[Footnote 1: The word _wap_ is plain enough; the word _wan_ we cannot
+satisfy ourselves about. Had it been used with regard to the water, it
+might have been worth remarking that _wan_, meaning dark, gloomy,
+turbid, is a common adjective to a river in the old Scotch ballad. And
+it might be an adjective here; but that is not likely, seeing it is
+conjoined with the verb _wap_. The Anglo-Saxon _wanian_, to decrease,
+might be the root-word, perhaps, (in the sense of _to ebb_,) if this
+water had been the sea and not a lake. But possibly the meaning is, “I
+heard the water _whoop_ or _wail aloud_” (from _Wópan_); and “the waves
+_whine_ or _bewail_” (from _Wánian_ to lament). But even then the two
+verbs would seem to predicate of transposed subjects.]
+
+This answer Tennyson has expanded into the well-known lines--
+
+ “I heard the ripple washing in the reeds,
+ And the wild water lapping on the crag;”
+
+slightly varied, for the other occasion, into--
+
+ “I heard the water lapping on the crag,
+ And the long ripple washing in the reeds.”
+
+But, as to this matter of _creation_, is there, after all, I ask yet,
+any genuine sense in which a man may be said to create his own
+thought-forms? Allowing that a new combination of forms already existing
+might be called creation, is the man, after all, the author of this new
+combination? Did he, with his will and his knowledge, proceed wittingly,
+consciously, to construct a form which should embody his thought? Or did
+this form arise within him without will or effort of his--vivid if not
+clear--certain if not outlined? Ruskin (and better authority we do not
+know) will assert the latter, and we think he is right: though perhaps
+he would insist more upon the absolute perfection of the vision than we
+are quite prepared to do. Such embodiments are not the result of the
+man’s intention, or of the operation of his conscious nature. His
+feeling is that they are given to him; that from the vast unknown, where
+time and space are not, they suddenly appear in luminous writing upon
+the wall of his consciousness. Can it be correct, then, to say that he
+created them? Nothing less so, as it seems to us. But can we not say
+that they are the creation of the unconscious portion of his nature?
+Yes, provided we can understand that that which is the individual, the
+man, can know, and not know that it knows, can create and yet be
+ignorant that virtue has gone out of it. From that unknown region we
+grant they come, but not by its own blind working. Nor, even were it so,
+could any amount of such production, where no will was concerned, be
+dignified with the name of creation. But God sits in that chamber of our
+being in which the candle of our consciousness goes out in darkness, and
+sends forth from thence wonderful gifts into the light of that
+understanding which is His candle. Our hope lies in no most perfect
+mechanism even of the spirit, but in the wisdom wherein we live and move
+and have our being. Thence we hope for endless forms of beauty informed
+of truth. If the dark portion of our own being were the origin of our
+imaginations, we might well fear the apparition of such monsters as
+would be generated in the sickness of a decay which could never
+feel--only declare--a slow return towards primeval chaos. But the Maker
+is our Light.
+
+One word more, ere we turn to consider the culture of this noblest
+faculty, which we might well call the creative, did we not see a
+something in God for which we would humbly keep our mighty word:--the
+fact that there is always more in a work of art--which is the highest
+human result of the embodying imagination--than the producer himself
+perceived while he produced it, seems to us a strong reason for
+attributing to it a larger origin than the man alone--for saying at the
+last, that the inspiration of the Almighty shaped its ends.
+
+We return now to the class which, from the first, we supposed hostile to
+the imagination and its functions generally. Those belonging to it will
+now say: “It was to no imagination such as you have been setting forth
+that we were opposed, but to those wild fancies and vague reveries in
+which young people indulge, to the damage and loss of the real in the
+world around them.”
+
+“And,” we insist, “you would rectify the matter by smothering the young
+monster at once--because he has wings, and, young to their use, flutters
+them about in a way discomposing to your nerves, and destructive to
+those notions of propriety of which this creature--you stop not to
+inquire whether angel or pterodactyle--has not yet learned even the
+existence. Or, if it is only the creature’s vagaries of which you
+disapprove, why speak of them as _the_ exercise of the imagination? As
+well speak of religion as the mother of cruelty because religion has
+given more occasion of cruelty, as of all dishonesty and devilry, than
+any other object of human interest. Are we not to worship, because our
+forefathers burned and stabbed for religion? It is more religion we
+want. It is more imagination we need. Be assured that these are but the
+first vital motions of that whose results, at least in the region of
+science, you are more than willing to accept.” That evil may spring from
+the imagination, as from everything except the perfect love of God,
+cannot be denied. But infinitely worse evils would be the result of its
+absence. Selfishness, avarice, sensuality, cruelty, would flourish
+tenfold; and the power of Satan would be well established ere some
+children had begun to choose. Those who would quell the apparently
+lawless tossing of the spirit, called the youthful imagination, would
+suppress all that is to grow out of it. They fear the enthusiasm they
+never felt; and instead of cherishing this divine thing, instead of
+giving it room and air for healthful growth, they would crush
+and confine it--with but one result of their victorious
+endeavours--imposthume, fever, and corruption. And the disastrous
+consequences would soon appear in the intellect likewise which they
+worship. Kill that whence spring the crude fancies and wild day-dreams
+of the young, and you will never lead them beyond dull facts--dull
+because their relations to each other, and the one life that works in
+them all, must remain undiscovered. Whoever would have his children
+avoid this arid region will do well to allow no teacher to approach
+them--not even of mathematics--who has no imagination.
+
+“But although good results may appear in a few from the indulgence of
+the imagination, how will it be with the many?”
+
+We answer that the antidote to indulgence is development, not restraint,
+and that such is the duty of the wise servant of Him who made the
+imagination.
+
+“But will most girls, for instance, rise to those useful uses of the
+imagination? Are they not more likely to exercise it in building castles
+in the air to the neglect of houses on the earth? And as the world
+affords such poor scope for the ideal, will not this habit breed vain
+desires and vain regrets? Is it not better, therefore, to keep to that
+which is known, and leave the rest?”
+
+“Is the world so poor?” we ask in return. The less reason, then, to be
+satisfied with it; the more reason to rise above it, into the region of
+the true, of the eternal, of things as God thinks them. This outward
+world is but a passing vision of the persistent true. We shall not live
+in it always. We are dwellers in a divine universe where no desires are
+in vain, if only they be large enough. Not even in this world do all
+disappointments breed only vain regrets. [Footnote:
+ “We will grieve not, rather find
+ Strength in what remains behind;
+ In the primal sympathy
+ Which, having been, must ever be;
+ In the soothing thoughts that spring
+ Out of human suffering;
+ In the faith that looks through death,
+ In years that bring the philosophic mind.”]
+
+And as to keeping to that which is known and leaving the rest--how many
+affairs of this world are so well-defined, so capable of being clearly
+understood, as not to leave large spaces of uncertainty, whose very
+correlate faculty is the imagination? Indeed it must, in most things,
+work after some fashion, filling the gaps after some possible plan,
+before action can even begin. In very truth, a wise imagination, which
+is the presence of the spirit of God, is the best guide that man or
+woman can have; for it is not the things we see the most clearly that
+influence us the most powerfully; undefined, yet vivid visions of
+something beyond, something which eye has not seen nor ear heard, have
+far more influence than any logical sequences whereby the same things
+may be demonstrated to the intellect. It is the nature of the thing, not
+the clearness of its outline, that determines its operation. We live by
+faith, and not by sight. Put the question to our mathematicians--only be
+sure the question reaches them--whether they would part with the
+well-defined perfection of their diagrams, or the dim, strange, possibly
+half-obliterated characters woven in the web of their being; their
+science, in short, or their poetry; their certainties, or their hopes;
+their consciousness of knowledge, or their vague sense of that which
+cannot be known absolutely: will they hold by their craft or by their
+inspirations, by their intellects or their imaginations? If they say the
+former in each alternative, I shall yet doubt whether the objects of the
+choice are actually before them, and with equal presentation.
+
+What can be known must be known severely; but is there, therefore, no
+faculty for those infinite lands of uncertainty lying all about the
+sphere hollowed out of the dark by the glimmering lamp of our knowledge?
+Are they not the natural property of the imagination? there, _for_ it,
+that it may have room to grow? there, that the man may learn to imagine
+greatly like God who made him, himself discovering their mysteries, in
+virtue of his following and worshipping imagination?
+
+All that has been said, then, tends to enforce the culture of the
+imagination. But the strongest argument of all remains behind. For, if
+the whole power of pedantry should rise against her, the imagination
+will yet work; and if not for good, then for evil; if not for truth,
+then for falsehood; if not for life, then for death; the evil
+alternative becoming the more likely from the unnatural treatment she
+has experienced from those who ought to have fostered her. The power
+that might have gone forth in conceiving the noblest forms of action, in
+realizing the lives of the true-hearted, the self-forgetting, will go
+forth in building airy castles of vain ambition, of boundless riches, of
+unearned admiration. The imagination that might be devising how to make
+home blessed or to help the poor neighbour, will be absorbed in the
+invention of the new dress, or worse, in devising the means of procuring
+it. For, if she be not occupied with the beautiful, she will be occupied
+by the pleasant; that which goes not out to worship, will remain at home
+to be sensual. Cultivate the mere intellect as you may, it will never
+reduce the passions: the imagination, seeking the ideal in everything,
+will elevate them to their true and noble service. Seek not that your
+sons and your daughters should not see visions, should not dream dreams;
+seek that they should see true visions, that they should dream noble
+dreams. Such out-going of the imagination is one with aspiration, and
+will do more to elevate above what is low and vile than all possible
+inculcations of morality. Nor can religion herself ever rise up into her
+own calm home, her crystal shrine, when one of her wings, one of the
+twain with which she flies, is thus broken or paralyzed.
+
+ “The universe is infinitely wide,
+ And conquering Reason, if self-glorified,
+ Can nowhere move uncrossed by some new wall
+ Or gulf of mystery, which thou alone,
+ Imaginative Faith! canst overleap,
+ In progress towards the fount of love.”
+
+The danger that lies in the repression of the imagination may be well
+illustrated from the play of “Macbeth.” The imagination of the hero (in
+him a powerful faculty), representing how the deed would appear to
+others, and so representing its true nature to himself, was his great
+impediment on the path to crime. Nor would he have succeeded in reaching
+it, had he not gone to his wife for help--sought refuge from his
+troublesome imagination with her. She, possessing far less of the
+faculty, and having dealt more destructively with what she had, took his
+hand, and led him to the deed. From her imagination, again, she for her
+part takes refuge in unbelief and denial, declaring to herself and her
+husband that there is no reality in its representations; that there is
+no reality in anything beyond the present effect it produces on the mind
+upon which it operates; that intellect and courage are equal to any,
+even an evil emergency; and that no harm will come to those who can rule
+themselves according to their own will. Still, however, finding her
+imagination, and yet more that of her husband, troublesome, she effects
+a marvellous combination of materialism and idealism, and asserts that
+things are not, cannot be, and shall not be more or other than people
+choose to think them. She says,--
+
+ “These deeds must not be thought
+ After these ways; so, it will make us mad.”
+
+ “The sleeping and the dead
+ Are but as pictures.”
+
+But she had over-estimated the power of her will, and under-estimated
+that of her imagination. Her will was the one thing in her that was bad,
+without root or support in the universe, while her imagination was the
+voice of God himself out of her own unknown being. The choice of no man
+or woman can long determine how or what he or she shall think of things.
+Lady Macbeth’s imagination would not be repressed beyond its appointed
+period--a time determined by laws of her being over which she had no
+control. It arose, at length, as from the dead, overshadowing her with
+all the blackness of her crime. The woman who drank strong drink that
+she might murder, dared not sleep without a light by her bed; rose and
+walked in the night, a sleepless spirit in a sleeping body, rubbing the
+spotted hand of her dreams, which, often as water had cleared it of the
+deed, yet smelt so in her sleeping nostrils, that all the perfumes of
+Arabia would not sweeten it. Thus her long down-trodden imagination rose
+and took vengeance, even through those senses which she had thought to
+subordinate to her wicked will.
+
+But all this is of the imagination itself, and fitter, therefore, for
+illustration than for argument. Let us come to facts.--Dr. Pritchard,
+lately executed for murder, had no lack of that invention, which is, as
+it were, the intellect of the imagination--its lowest form. One of the
+clergymen who, at his own request, attended the prisoner, went through
+indescribable horrors in the vain endeavour to induce the man simply to
+cease from lying: one invention after another followed the most earnest
+asseverations of truth. The effect produced upon us by this clergyman’s
+report of his experience was a moral dismay, such as we had never felt
+with regard to human being, and drew from us the exclamation, “The man
+could have had no imagination.” The reply was, “None whatever.” Never
+seeking true or high things, caring only for appearances, and,
+therefore, for inventions, he had left his imagination all undeveloped,
+and when it represented his own inner condition to him, had repressed it
+until it was nearly destroyed, and what remained of it was set on fire
+of hell. [Footnote: One of the best weekly papers in London, evidently
+as much in ignorance of the man as of the facts of the case, spoke of
+Dr. MacLeod as having been engaged in “white-washing the murderer for
+heaven.” So far is this from a true representation, that Dr. MacLeod
+actually refused to pray with him, telling him that if there was a hell
+to go to, he must go to it.]
+
+Man is “the roof and crown of things.” He is the world, and more.
+Therefore the chief scope of his imagination, next to God who made him,
+will he the world in relation to his own life therein. Will he do better
+or worse in it if this imagination, touched to fine issues and having
+free scope, present him with noble pictures of relationship and duty, of
+possible elevation of character and attainable justice of behaviour, of
+friendship and of love; and, above all, of all these in that life to
+understand which as a whole, must ever be the loftiest aspiration of
+this noblest power of humanity? Will a woman lead a more or a less
+troubled life that the sights and sounds of nature break through the
+crust of gathering anxiety, and remind her of the peace of the lilies
+and the well-being of the birds of the air? Or will life be less
+interesting to her, that the lives of her neighbours, instead of passing
+like shadows upon a wall, assume a consistent wholeness, forming
+themselves into stories and phases of life? Will she not hereby love
+more and talk less? Or will she be more unlikely to make a good
+match----? But here we arrest ourselves in bewilderment over the word
+_good_, and seek to re-arrange our thoughts. If what mothers mean by a
+_good_ match, is the alliance of a man of position and means--or let
+them throw intellect, manners, and personal advantages into the same
+scale--if this be all, then we grant the daughter of cultivated
+imagination may not be manageable, will probably be obstinate. “We hope
+she will be obstinate enough. [Footnote: Let women who feel the wrongs
+of their kind teach women to be high-minded in their relation to men,
+and they will do more for the social elevation of women, and the
+establishment of their rights, whatever those rights may be, than by any
+amount of intellectual development or assertion of equality. Nor, if
+they are other than mere partisans, will they refuse the attempt because
+in its success men will, after all, be equal, if not greater gainers, if
+only thereby they should be “feelingly persuaded” what they are.] But
+will the girl be less likely to marry a _gentleman_, in the grand old
+meaning of the sixteenth century? when it was no irreverence to call our
+Lord
+
+ “The first true gentleman that ever breathed;”
+
+or in that of the fourteenth?--when Chaucer teaching “whom is worthy to
+be called gentill,” writes thus:--
+
+ “The first stocke was full of rightwisnes,
+ Trewe of his worde, sober, pitous and free,
+ Clene of his goste, and loved besinesse,
+ Against the vice of slouth in honeste;
+ And but his heire love vertue as did he,
+ He is not gentill though he rich seme,
+ All weare he miter, crowne, or diademe.”
+
+Will she be less likely to marry one who honours women, and for their
+sakes, as well as his own, honours himself? Or to speak from what many
+would regard as the mother’s side of the question--will the girl be more
+likely, because of such a culture of her imagination, to refuse the
+wise, true-hearted, generous rich man, and fall in love with the
+talking, verse-making fool, _because_ he is poor, as if that were a
+virtue for which he had striven? The highest imagination and the
+lowliest common sense are always on one side.
+
+For the end of imagination is _harmony_. A right imagination, being the
+reflex of the creation, will fall in with the divine order of things as
+the highest form of its own operation; “will tune its instrument here at
+the door” to the divine harmonies within; will be content alone with
+growth towards the divine idea, which includes all that is beautiful in
+the imperfect imaginations of men; will know that every deviation from
+that growth is downward; and will therefore send the man forth from its
+loftiest representations to do the commonest duty of the most wearisome
+calling in a hearty and hopeful spirit. This is the work of the right
+imagination; and towards this work every imagination, in proportion to
+the rightness that is in it, will tend. The reveries even of the wise
+man will make him stronger for his work; his dreaming as well as his
+thinking will render him sorry for past failure, and hopeful of future
+success.
+
+To come now to the culture of the imagination. Its development is one of
+the main ends of the divine education of life with all its efforts and
+experiences. Therefore the first and essential means for its culture
+must be an ordering of our life towards harmony with its ideal in the
+mind of God. As he that is willing to do the will of the Father, shall
+know of the doctrine, so, we doubt not, he that will do the will of THE
+POET, shall behold the Beautiful. For all is God’s; and the man who is
+growing into harmony with His will, is growing into harmony with
+himself; all the hidden glories of his being are coming out into the
+light of humble consciousness; so that at the last he shall be a pure
+microcosm, faithfully reflecting, after his manner, the mighty
+macrocosm. We believe, therefore, that nothing will do so much for the
+intellect or the imagination as _being good_--we do not mean after any
+formula or any creed, but simply after the faith of Him who did the will
+of his Father in heaven.
+
+But if we speak of direct means for the culture of the imagination, the
+whole is comprised in two words--food and exercise. If you want strong
+arms, take animal food, and row. Feed your imagination with food
+convenient for it, and exercise it, not in the contortions of the
+acrobat, but in the movements of the gymnast. And first for the food.
+
+Goethe has told us that the way to develop the aesthetic faculty is to
+have constantly before our eyes, that is, in the room we most frequent,
+some work of the best attainable art. This will teach us to refuse the
+evil and choose the good. It will plant itself in our minds and become
+our counsellor. Involuntarily, unconsciously, we shall compare with its
+perfection everything that comes before us for judgment. Now, although
+no better advice could be given, it involves one danger, that of
+narrowness. And not easily, in dread of this danger, would one change
+his tutor, and so procure variety of instruction. But in the culture of
+the imagination, books, although not the only, are the readiest means of
+supplying the food convenient for it, and a hundred books may be had
+where even one work of art of the right sort is unattainable, seeing
+such must be of some size as well as of thorough excellence. And in
+variety alone is safety from the danger of the convenient food becoming
+the inconvenient model.
+
+Let us suppose, then, that one who himself justly estimates the
+imagination is anxious to develop its operation in his child. No doubt
+the best beginning, especially if the child be young, is an acquaintance
+with nature, in which let him be encouraged to observe vital phenomena,
+to put things together, to speculate from what he sees to what he does
+not see. But let earnest care be taken that upon no matter shall he go
+on talking foolishly. Let him be as fanciful as he may, but let him not,
+even in his fancy, sin against fancy’s sense; for fancy has its laws as
+certainly as the most ordinary business of life. When he is silly, let
+him know it and be ashamed.
+
+But where this association with nature is but occasionally possible,
+recourse must be had to literature. In books, we not only have store of
+all results of the imagination, but in them, as in her workshop, we may
+behold her embodying before our very eyes, in music of speech, in wonder
+of words, till her work, like a golden dish set with shining jewels, and
+adorned by the hands of the cunning workmen, stands finished before us.
+In this kind, then, the best must be set before the learner, that he may
+eat and not be satisfied; for the finest products of the imagination are
+of the best nourishment for the beginnings of that imagination. And the
+mind of the teacher must mediate between the work of art and the mind of
+the pupil, bringing them together in the vital contact of intelligence;
+directing the observation to the lines of expression, the points of
+force; and helping the mind to repose upon the whole, so that no
+separable beauties shall lead to a neglect of the scope--that is the
+shape or form complete. And ever he must seek to _show_ excellence
+rather than talk about it, giving the thing itself, that it may grow
+into the mind, and not a eulogy of his own upon the thing; isolating the
+point worthy of remark rather than making many remarks upon the point.
+
+Especially must he endeavour to show the spiritual scaffolding or
+skeleton of any work of art; those main ideas upon which the shape is
+constructed, and around which the rest group as ministering
+dependencies.
+
+But he will not, therefore, pass over that intellectual structure
+without which the other could not be manifested. He will not forget the
+builder while he admires the architect. While he dwells with delight on
+the relation of the peculiar arch to the meaning of the whole cathedral,
+he will not think it needless to explain the principles on which it is
+constructed, or even how those principles are carried out in actual
+process. Neither yet will the tracery of its windows, the foliage of its
+crockets, or the fretting of its mouldings be forgotten. Every beauty
+will have its word, only all beauties will be subordinated to the final
+beauty--that is, the unity of the whole.
+
+Thus doing, he shall perform the true office of friendship. He will
+introduce his pupil into the society which he himself prizes most,
+surrounding him with the genial presence of the high-minded, that this
+good company may work its own kind in him who frequents it.
+
+But he will likewise seek to turn him aside from such company, whether
+of books or of men, as might tend to lower his reverence, his choice, or
+his standard. He will, therefore, discourage indiscriminate reading, and
+that worse than waste which consists in skimming the books of a
+circulating library. He knows that if a book is worth reading at all, it
+is worth reading well; and that, if it is not worth reading, it is only
+to the most accomplished reader that it _can_ be worth skimming. He will
+seek to make him discern, not merely between the good and the evil, but
+between the good and the not so good. And this not for the sake of
+sharpening the intellect, still less of generating that
+self-satisfaction which is the closest attendant upon criticism, but for
+the sake of choosing the best path and the best companions upon it. A
+spirit of criticism for the sake of distinguishing only, or, far worse,
+for the sake of having one’s opinion ready upon demand, is not merely
+repulsive to all true thinkers, but is, in itself, destructive of all
+thinking. A spirit of criticism for the sake of the truth--a spirit that
+does not start from its chamber at every noise, but waits till its
+presence is desired--cannot, indeed, garnish the house, but can sweep it
+clean. Were there enough of such wise criticism, there would be ten
+times the study of the best writers of the past, and perhaps one-tenth
+of the admiration for the ephemeral productions of the day. A gathered
+mountain of misplaced worships would be swept into the sea by the study
+of one good book; and while what was good in an inferior book would
+still be admired, the relative position of the book would be altered and
+its influence lessened.
+
+Speaking of true learning, Lord Bacon says: “It taketh away vain
+admiration of anything, _which is the root of all weakness_.”
+
+The right teacher would have his pupil easy to please, but ill to
+satisfy; ready to enjoy, unready to embrace; keen to discover beauty,
+slow to say, “Here I will dwell.”
+
+But he will not confine his instructions to the region of art. He will
+encourage him to read history with an eye eager for the dawning figure
+of the past. He will especially show him that a great part of the Bible
+is only thus to be understood; and that the constant and consistent way
+of God, to be discovered in it, is in fact the key to all history.
+
+In the history of individuals, as well, he will try to show him how to
+put sign and token together, constructing not indeed a whole, but a
+probable suggestion of the whole.
+
+And, again, while showing him the reflex of nature in the poets, he will
+not be satisfied without sending him to Nature herself; urging him in
+country rambles to keep open eyes for the sweet fashionings and
+blendings of her operation around him; and in city walks to watch the
+“human face divine.”
+
+Once more: he will point out to him the essential difference between
+reverie and thought; between dreaming and imagining. He will teach him
+not to mistake fancy, either in himself or in others for imagination,
+and to beware of hunting after resemblances that carry with them no
+interpretation.
+
+Such training is not solely fitted for the possible development of
+artistic faculty. Few, in this world, will ever be able to utter what
+they feel. Fewer still will be able to utter it in forms of their own.
+Nor is it necessary that there should be many such. But it is necessary
+that all should feel. It is necessary that all should understand and
+imagine the good; that all should begin, at least, to follow and find
+out God.
+
+“The glory of God is to conceal a thing, but the glory of the king is to
+find it out,” says Solomon. “As if,” remarks Bacon on the passage,
+“according to the innocent play of children, the Divine Majesty took
+delight to hide his works, to the end to have them found out; and as if
+kings could not obtain a greater honour than to be God’s playfellows in
+that game.”
+
+One more quotation from the book of Ecclesiastes, setting forth both the
+necessity we are under to imagine, and the comfort that our imagining
+cannot outstrip God’s making.
+
+“I have seen the travail which God hath given to the sons of men to be
+exercised in it. He hath made everything beautiful in his time; also he
+hath set the world in their heart, so that no man can find out the work
+that God maketh from the beginning to the end.”
+
+Thus to be playfellows with God in this game, the little ones may gather
+their daisies and follow their painted moths; the child of the kingdom
+may pore upon the lilies of the field, and gather faith as the birds of
+the air their food from the leafless hawthorn, ruddy with the stores God
+has laid up for them; and the man of science
+
+ “May sit and rightly spell
+ Of every star that heaven doth shew,
+ And every herb that sips the dew;
+ Till old experience do attain
+ To something like prophetic strain.”
+
+
+
+
+A SKETCH OF INDIVIDUAL DEVELOPMENT.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1880.]
+
+“I wish I had thought to watch when God was making me!” said a child
+once to his mother. “Only,” he added, “I was not made till I was
+finished, so I couldn’t.” We cannot recall whence we came, nor tell how
+we began to be. We know approximately how far back we can remember, but
+have no idea how far back we may not have forgotten. Certainly we knew
+once much that we have forgotten now. My own earliest definable memory
+is of a great funeral of one of the Dukes of Gordon, when I was between
+two and three years of age. Surely my first knowledge was not of death.
+I must have known much and many things before, although that seems my
+earliest memory. As in what we foolishly call maturity, so in the dawn
+of consciousness, both before and after it has begun to be buttressed
+with _self_-consciousness, each succeeding consciousness dims--often
+obliterates--that which went before, and with regard to our past as well
+as our future, imagination and faith must step into the place vacated of
+knowledge. We are aware, and we know that we are aware, but when or how
+we began to be aware, is wrapt in a mist that deepens on the one side
+into deepest night, and on the other brightens into the full assurance
+of existence. Looking back we can but dream, looking forward we lose
+ourselves in speculation; but we may both speculate and dream, for all
+speculation is not false, and all dreaming is not of the unreal. What
+may we fairly imagine as to the inward condition of the child before the
+first moment of which his memory affords him testimony?
+
+It is one, I venture to say, of absolute, though, no doubt, largely
+negative faith. Neither memory of pain that is past, nor apprehension of
+pain to come, once arises to give him the smallest concern. In some way,
+doubtless very vague, for his being itself is a border-land of awful
+mystery, he is aware of being surrounded, enfolded with an atmosphere of
+love; the sky over him is his mother’s face; the earth that nourishes
+him is his mother’s bosom. The source, the sustentation, the defence of
+his being, the endless mediation betwixt his needs and the things that
+supply them, are all one. There is no type so near the highest idea of
+relation to a God, as that of the child to his mother. Her face is God,
+her bosom Nature, her arms are Providence--all love--one love--to him an
+undivided bliss.
+
+The region beyond him he regards from this vantage-ground of
+unquestioned security. There things may come and go, rise and vanish--he
+neither desires nor bemoans them. Change may grow swift, its swiftness
+grow fierce, and pass into storm: to him storm is calm; his haven is
+secure; his rest cannot be broken: he is accountable for nothing, knows
+no responsibility. Conscience is not yet awake, and there is no
+conflict. His waking is full of sleep, yet his very being is enough for
+him.
+
+But all the time his mother lives in the hope of his growth. In the
+present babe, her heart broods over the coming boy--the unknown marvel
+closed in the visible germ. Let mothers lament as they will over the
+change from childhood to maturity, which of them would not grow weary of
+nursing for ever a child in whom no live law of growth kept unfolding an
+infinite change! The child knows nothing of growth--desires none--but
+grows. Within him is the force of a power he can no more resist than the
+peach can refuse to swell and grow ruddy in the sun. By slow,
+inappreciable, indivisible accretion and outfolding, he is lifted,
+floated, drifted on towards the face of the awful mirror in which he
+must encounter his first foe--must front himself.
+
+By degrees he has learned that the world is around, and not within
+him--that he is apart, and that is apart; from consciousness he passes
+to self-consciousness. This is a second birth, for now a higher life
+begins. When a man not only lives, but knows that he lives, then first
+the possibility of a real life commences. By _real life_, I mean life
+which has a share in its own existence.
+
+For now, towards the world around him--the world that is not his mother,
+and, actively at least, neither loves him nor ministers to him, reveal
+themselves certain relations, initiated by fancies, desires,
+preferences, that arise within himself--reasonable or not matters
+little:--founded in reason, they can in no case be _devoid_ of reason.
+Every object concerned in these relations presents itself to the man as
+lovely, desirable, good, or ugly, hateful, bad; and through these
+relations, obscure and imperfect, and to a being weighted with a strong
+faculty for mistake, begins to be revealed the existence and force of
+Being other and higher than his own, recognized as _Will_, and first of
+all in its opposition to his desires. Thereupon begins the strife
+without which there never was, and, I presume, never can be, any growth,
+any progress; and the first result is what I may call the third birth of
+the human being.
+
+The first opposing glance of the mother wakes in the child not only
+answering opposition, which is as the rudimentary sac of his own coming
+will, but a new something, to which for long he needs no name, so
+natural does it seem, so entirely a portion of his being, even when most
+he refuses to listen to and obey it. This new something--we call it
+_Conscience_--sides with his mother, and causes its presence and
+judgment to be felt not only before but after the event, so that he soon
+comes to know that it is well with him or ill with him as he obeys or
+disobeys it. And now he not only knows, not only knows that he knows,
+but knows he knows that he knows--knows that he is self-conscious--that
+he has a conscience. With the first sense of resistance to it, the power
+above him has drawn nearer, and the deepest within him has declared
+itself on the side of the highest without him. At one and the same
+moment, the heaven of his childhood has, as it were, receded and come
+nigher. He has run from under it, but it claims him. It is farther, yet
+closer--immeasurably closer: he feels on his being the grasp and hold of
+his mother’s. Through the higher individuality he becomes aware of his
+own. Through the assertion of his mother’s will, his own begins to
+awake. He becomes conscious of himself as capable of action--of doing or
+of not doing; his responsibility has begun.
+
+He slips from her lap; he travels from chair to chair; he puts his
+circle round the room; he dares to cross the threshold; he braves the
+precipice of the stair; he takes the greatest step that, according to
+George Herbert, is possible to man--that out of doors, changing the
+house for the universe; he runs from flower to flower in the garden;
+crosses the road; wanders, is lost, is found again. His powers expand,
+his activity increases; he goes to school, and meets other boys like
+himself; new objects of strife are discovered, new elements of strife
+developed; new desires are born, fresh impulses urge. The old heaven,
+the face and will of his mother, recede farther and farther; a world of
+men, which he foolishly thinks a nobler as it is a larger world, draws
+him, claims him. More or less he yields. The example and influence of
+such as seem to him more than his mother like himself, grow strong upon
+him. His conscience speaks louder. And here, even at this early point in
+his history, what I might call his fourth birth _may_ begin to take
+place: I mean the birth in him of the Will--the real Will--not the
+pseudo-will, which is the mere Desire, swayed of impulse, selfishness,
+or one of many a miserable motive. When the man, listening to his
+conscience, wills and does the right, irrespective of inclination as of
+consequence, then is the man free, the universe open before him. He is
+born from above. To him conscience needs never speak aloud, needs never
+speak twice; to him her voice never grows less powerful, for he never
+neglects what she commands. And when he becomes aware that he can will
+his will, that God has given him a share in essential life, in the
+causation of his own being, then is he a man indeed. I say, even here
+this birth may begin; but with most it takes years not a few to complete
+it. For, the power of the mother having waned, the power of the
+neighbour is waxing. If the boy be of common clay, that is, of clay
+willing to accept dishonour, this power of the neighbour over him will
+increase and increase, till individuality shall have vanished from him,
+and what his friends, what society, what the trade or the profession
+say, will be to him the rule of life. With such, however, I have to do
+no more than with the deaf dead, who sleep too deep for words to reach
+them.
+
+My typical child of man is not of such. He is capable not of being
+influenced merely, but of influencing--and first of all of influencing
+himself; of taking a share in his own making; of determining actively,
+not by mere passivity, what he shall be and become; for he never ceases
+to pay at least a little heed, however poor and intermittent, to the
+voice of his conscience, and to-day he pays more heed than he did
+yesterday.
+
+Long ere now the joy of space, of room, has laid hold upon him--the more
+powerfully if he inhabit a wild and broken region. The human animal
+delights in motion and change, motions of his members even violent, and
+swiftest changes of place. It is as if he would lay hold of the infinite
+by ceaseless abandonment and choice of a never-abiding stand-point, as
+if he would lay hold of strength by the consciousness of the strength he
+has. He is full of unrest. He must know what lies on the farther shore
+of every river, see how the world looks from every hill: _What is
+behind? What is beyond?_ is his constant cry. To learn, to gather into
+himself, is his longing. Nor do many years pass thus, it may be not many
+months, ere the world begins to come alive around him. He begins to feel
+that the stars are strange, that the moon is sad, that the sunrise is
+mighty. He begins to see in them all the something men call beauty. He
+will lie on the sunny bank and gaze into the blue heaven till his soul
+seems to float abroad and mingle with the infinite made visible, with
+the boundless condensed into colour and shape. The rush of the water
+through the still twilight, under the faint gleam of the exhausted west,
+makes in his ears a melody he is almost aware he cannot understand.
+Dissatisfied with his emotions he desires a deeper waking, longs for a
+greater beauty, is troubled with the stirring in his bosom of an unknown
+ideal of Nature. Nor is it an ideal of Nature alone that is forming
+within him. A far more precious thing, a human ideal namely, is in his
+soul, gathering to itself shape and consistency. The wind that at night
+fills him with sadness--he cannot tell why, in the daytime haunts him
+like a wild consciousness of strength which has neither difficulty nor
+danger enough to spend itself upon. He would be a champion of the weak,
+a friend to the great; for both he would fight--a merciless foe to every
+oppressor of his kind. He would be rich that he might help, strong that
+he might rescue, brave--that he counts himself already, for he has not
+proved his own weakness. In the first encounter he fails, and the bitter
+cup of shame and confusion of face, wholesome and saving, is handed him
+from the well of life. He is not yet capable of understanding that one
+such as he, filled with the glory and not the duty of victory, could not
+but fail, and therefore ought to fail; but his dismay and chagrin are
+soothed by the forgetfulness the days and nights bring, gently wiping
+out the sins that are past, that the young life may have a fresh chance,
+as we say, and begin again unburdened by the weight of a too much
+present failure.
+
+And now, probably at school, or in the first months of his college-life,
+a new phase of experience begins. He has wandered over the border of
+what is commonly called science, and the marvel of facts multitudinous,
+strung upon the golden threads of law, has laid hold upon him. His
+intellect is seized and possessed by a new spirit. For a time knowledge
+is pride; the mere consciousness of knowing is the reward of its labour;
+the ever recurring, ever passing contact of mind with a new fact is a
+joy full of excitement, and promises an endless delight. But ever the
+thing that is known sinks into insignificance, save as a step of the
+endless stair on which he is climbing--whither he knows not; the unknown
+draws him; the new fact touches his mind, flames up in the contact, and
+drops dark, a mere fact, on the heap below. Even the grandeur of law as
+law, so far from adding fresh consciousness to his life, causes it no
+small suffering and loss. For at the entrance of Science, nobly and
+gracefully as she bears herself, young Poetry shrinks back startled,
+dismayed. Poetry is true as Science, and Science is holy as Poetry; but
+young Poetry is timid and Science is fearless, and bears with her a
+colder atmosphere than the other has yet learned to brave. It is not
+that Madam Science shows any antagonism to Lady Poetry; but the
+atmosphere and plane on which alone they can meet as friends who
+understand each other, is the mind and heart of the sage, not of the
+boy. The youth gazes on the face of Science, cold, clear, beautiful;
+then, turning, looks for his friend--but, alas! Poetry has fled. With a
+great pang at the heart he rushes abroad to find her, but descries only
+the rainbow glimmer of her skirt on the far horizon. At night, in his
+dreams, she returns, but never for a season may he look on her face of
+loveliness. What, alas! have evaporation, caloric, atmosphere,
+refraction, the prism, and the second planet of our system, to do with
+“sad Hesper o’er the buried sun?” From quantitative analysis how shall
+he turn again to “the rime of the ancient mariner,” and “the moving
+moon” that “went up the sky, and nowhere did abide”? From his window he
+gazes across the sands to the mightily troubled ocean: “What is the
+storm to me any more!” he cries; “it is but the clashing of countless
+water-drops!” He finds relief in the discovery that, the moment you
+place man in the midst of it, the clashing of water-drops becomes a
+storm, terrible to heart and brain: human thought and feeling, hope,
+fear, love, sacrifice, make the motions of nature alive with mystery and
+the shadows of destiny. The relief, however, is but partial, and may be
+but temporary; for what if this mingling of man and Nature in the mind
+of man be but the casting of a coloured shadow over her cold
+indifference? What if she means nothing--never was meant to mean
+anything! What if in truth “we receive but what we give, and in our life
+alone doth Nature live!” What if the language of metaphysics as well as
+of poetry be drawn, not from Nature at all, but from human fancy
+concerning her!
+
+At length, from the unknown, whence himself he came, appears an angel to
+deliver him from this horror--this stony look--ah, God! of soulless law.
+The woman is on her way whose part it is to meet him with a life other
+than his own, at once the complement of his, and the visible presentment
+of that in it which is beyond his own understanding. The enchantment of
+what we specially call _love_ is upon him--a deceiving glamour, say
+some, showing what is not, an opening of the eyes, say others, revealing
+that of which a man had not been aware: men will still be divided into
+those who believe that the horses of fire and the chariots of fire are
+ever present at their need of them, and those who class the prophet and
+the drunkard in the same category as the fools of their own fancies. But
+what this love is, he who thinks he knows least understands. Let foolish
+maidens and vulgar youths simper and jest over it as they please, it is
+one of the most potent mysteries of the living God. The man who can love
+a woman and remain a lover of his wretched self, is fit only to be cast
+out with the broken potsherds of the city, as one in whom the very salt
+has lost its savour. With this love in his heart, a man puts on at least
+the vision robes of the seer, if not the singing robes of the poet. Be
+he the paltriest human animal that ever breathed, for the time, and in
+his degree, he rises above himself. His nature so far clarifies itself,
+that here and there a truth of the great world will penetrate, sorely
+dimmed, through the fog-laden, self-shadowed atmosphere of his
+microcosm. For the time, I repeat, he is not a lover only, but something
+of a friend, with a reflex touch of his own far-off childhood. To the
+youth of my history, in the light of his love--a light that passes
+outward from the eyes of the lover--the world grows alive again, yea
+radiant as an infinite face. He sees the flowers as he saw them in
+boyhood, recovering from an illness of all the winter, only they have a
+yet deeper glow, a yet fresher delight, a yet more unspeakable soul. He
+becomes pitiful over them, and not willingly breaks their stems, to hurt
+the life he more than half believes they share with him. He cannot think
+anything created only for him, any more than only for itself. Nature is
+no longer a mere contention of forces, whose heaven and whose hell in
+one is the dull peace of an equilibrium; but a struggle, through
+splendour of colour, graciousness of form, and evasive vitality of
+motion and sound, after an utterance hard to find, and never found but
+marred by the imperfection of the small and weak that would embody and
+set forth the great and mighty. The waving of the tree-tops is the
+billowy movement of a hidden delight. The sun lifts his head with intent
+to be glorious. No day lasts too long, no night comes too soon: the
+twilight is woven of shadowy arms that draw the loving to the bosom of
+the Night. In the woman, the infinite after which he thirsts is given
+him for his own.
+
+Man’s occupation with himself turns his eyes from the great life beyond
+his threshold: when love awakes, he forgets himself for a time, and many
+a glimpse of strange truth finds its way through his windows, blocked no
+longer by the shadow of himself. He may now catch even a glimpse of the
+possibilities of his own being--may dimly perceive for a moment the
+image after which he was made. But alas! too soon, self, radiant of
+darkness, awakes; every window becomes opaque with shadow, and the man
+is again a prisoner. For it is not the highest word alone that the cares
+of this world, the deceitfulness of riches, and the lust of other things
+entering in, choke, and render unfruitful. Waking from the divine
+vision, if that can be called waking which is indeed dying into the
+common day, the common man regards it straightway as a foolish dream;
+the wise man believes in it still, holds fast by the memory of the
+vanished glory, and looks to have it one day again a present portion of
+the light of his life. He knows that, because of the imperfection and
+dulness and weakness of his nature, after every vision follow the
+inclosing clouds, with the threat of an ever during dark; knows that,
+even if the vision could tarry, it were not well, for the sake of that
+which must yet be done with him, yet be made of him, that it should
+tarry. But the youth whose history I am following is not like the
+former, nor as yet like the latter.
+
+From whatever cause, then, whether of fault, of natural law, or of
+supernal will, the flush that seemed to promise the dawn of an eternal
+day, shrinks and fades, though, with him, like the lagging skirt of the
+sunset in the northern west, it does not vanish, but travels on, a
+withered pilgrim, all the night, at the long last to rise the aureole of
+the eternal Aurora. And now new paths entice him--or old paths opening
+fresh horizons. With stronger thews and keener nerves he turns again to
+the visible around him. The changelessness amid change, the law amid
+seeming disorder, the unity amid units, draws him again. He begins to
+descry the indwelling poetry of science. The untiring forces at work in
+measurable yet inconceivable spaces of time and room, fill his soul with
+an awe that threatens to uncreate him with a sense of littleness; while,
+on the other side, the grandeur of their operations fills him with such
+an informing glory, the mere presence of the mighty facts, that he no
+more thinks of himself, but in humility is great, and knows it not. Rapt
+spectator, seer entranced under the magic wand of Science, he beholds
+the billions of billions of miles of incandescent vapour begin a slow,
+scarce perceptible revolution, gradually grow swift, and gather an awful
+speed. He sees the vapour, as it whirls, condensing through slow
+eternities to a plastic fluidity. He notes ring after ring part from the
+circumference of the mass, break, rush together into a globe, and the
+glowing ball keep on through space with the speed of its parent bulk. It
+cools and still cools and condenses, but still fiercely glows.
+Presently--after tens of thousands of years is the creative
+_presently_--arises fierce contention betwixt the glowing heart and its
+accompanying atmosphere. The latter invades the former with antagonistic
+element. He listens in his soul, and hears the rush of ever descending
+torrent rains, with the continuous roaring shock of their evanishment in
+vapour--to turn again to water in the higher regions, and again rush to
+the attack upon the citadel of fire. He beholds the slow victory of the
+water at last, and the great globe, now glooming in a cloak of darkness,
+covered with a wildly boiling sea--not boiling by figure of speech,
+under contending forces of wind and tide, but boiling high as the hills
+to come, with veritable heat. He sees the rise of the wrinkles we call
+hills and mountains, and from their sides the avalanches of water to the
+lower levels. He sees race after race of living things appear, as the
+earth becomes, for each new and higher kind, a passing home; and he
+watches the succession of terrible convulsions dividing kind from kind,
+until at length the kind he calls his own arrives. Endless are the
+visions of material grandeur unfathomable, awaked in his soul by the
+bare facts of external existence.
+
+But soon comes a change. So far as he can see or learn, all the motion,
+all the seeming dance, is but a rush for death, a panic flight into the
+moveless silence. The summer wind, the tropic tornado, the softest tide,
+the fiercest storm, are alike the tumultuous conflict of forces,
+rushing, and fighting as they rush, into the arms of eternal negation.
+On and on they hurry--down and down, to a cold stirless solidity, where
+wind blows not, water flows not, where the seas are not merely tideless
+and beat no shores, but frozen cleave with frozen roots to their gulfy
+basin. All things are on the steep-sloping path to final evanishment,
+uncreation, non-existence. He is filled with horror--not so much of the
+dreary end, as at the weary hopelessness of the path thitherward. Then a
+dim light breaks upon him, and with it a faint hope revives, for he
+seems to see in all the forms of life, innumerably varied, a spirit
+rushing upward from death--a something in escape from the terror of the
+downward cataract, of the rest that knows not peace. “Is it not,” he
+asks, “the soaring of the silver dove of life from its potsherd-bed--the
+heavenward flight of some higher and incorruptible thing? Is not
+vitality, revealed in growth, itself an unending resurrection?”
+
+The vision also of the oneness of the universe, ever reappearing through
+the vapours of question, helps to keep hope alive in him. To find, for
+instance, the law of the relation of the arrangements of the leaves on
+differing plants, correspond to the law of the relative distances of the
+planets in approach to their central sun, wakes in him that hope of a
+central Will, which alone can justify one ecstatic throb at any seeming
+loveliness of the universe. For without the hope of such a centre,
+delight is unreason--a mockery not such as the skeleton at the Egyptian
+feast, but such rather as a crowned corpse at a feast of skeletons. Life
+without the higher glory of the unspeakable, the atmosphere of a God, is
+not life, is not worth living. He would rather cease to be, than walk
+the dull level of the commonplace--than live the unideal of men in whose
+company he can take no pleasure--men who are as of a lower race, whom he
+fain would lift, who will not rise, but for whom as for himself he would
+cherish the hope they do their best to kill. Those who seem to him
+great, recognize the unseen--believe the roots of science to be therein
+hid--regard the bringing forth into sight of the things that are
+invisible as the end of all Art and every art--judge the true leader of
+men to be him who leads them closer to the essential facts of their
+being. Alas for his love and his hope, alas for himself, if the visible
+should exist for its own sake only!--if the face of a flower means
+nothing--appeals to no region beyond the scope of the science that would
+unveil its growth. He cannot believe that its structure exists for the
+sake of its laws; that would be to build for the sake of its joints a
+scaffold where no house was to stand. Those who put their faith in
+Science are trying to live in the scaffold of the house invisible.
+
+He finds harbour and comfort at times in the written poetry of his
+fellows. He delights in analyzing and grasping the thought that informs
+the utterance. For a moment, the fine figure, the delicate phrase, make
+him jubilant and strong; but the jubilation and the strength soon pass,
+for it is not any of the _forms_, even of the thought-forms of truth
+that can give rest to his soul.
+
+History attracts him little, for he is not able to discover by its
+records the operation of principles yielding hope for his race. Such
+there may be, but he does not find them. What hope for the rising wave
+that knows in its rise only its doom to sink, and at length be dashed on
+the low shore of annihilation?
+
+But the time would fail me to follow the doubling of the soul coursed by
+the hounds of Death, or to set down the forms innumerable in which the
+golden Haemony springs in its path,
+
+ Of sovran use
+ ‘Gainst all enchantments, mildew blast, or damp.
+
+And now the shadows are beginning to lengthen towards the night, which,
+whether there be a following morn or no, is the night, and spreads out
+the wings of darkness. And still as it approaches the more aware grows
+the man of a want that differs from any feeling I have already sought to
+describe--a sense of insecurity, in no wise the same as the doubt of
+life beyond the grave--a need more profound even than that which cries
+for a living Nature. And now he plainly knows, that, all his life, like
+a conscious duty unfulfilled, this sense has haunted his path, ever and
+anon descending and clinging, a cold mist, about his heart. What if this
+lack was indeed the root of every other anxiety! Now freshly revived,
+this sense of not having, of something, he knows not what, for lack of
+which his being is in pain at its own incompleteness, never leaves him
+more. And with it the terror has returned and grows, lest there should
+be no Unseen Power, as his fathers believed, and his mother taught him,
+filling all things and _meaning_ all things,--no Power with whom, in his
+last extremity, awaits him a final refuge. With the quickening doubt
+falls a tenfold blight on the world of poetry, both that in Nature and
+that in books. Far worse than that early chill which the assertions of
+science concerning what it knows, cast upon his inexperienced soul, is
+now the shivering death which its pretended denials concerning what it
+knows not, send through all his vital frame. The soul departs from the
+face of beauty, when the eye begins to doubt if there be any soul behind
+it; and now the man feels like one I knew, affected with a strange
+disease, who saw in the living face always the face of a corpse. What
+can the world be to him who lives for thought, if there be no supreme
+and perfect Thought,--none but such poor struggles after thought as he
+finds in himself? Take the eternal thought from the heart of things, no
+longer can any beauty be real, no more can shape, motion, aspect of
+nature have significance in itself, or sympathy with human soul. At best
+and most the beauty he thought he saw was but the projected perfection
+of his own being, and from himself as the crown and summit of things,
+the soul of the man shrinks with horror: it is the more imperfect being
+who knows the least his incompleteness, and for whom, seeing so little
+beyond himself, it is easiest to imagine himself the heart and apex of
+things, and rejoice in the fancy. The killing power of a godless science
+returns upon him with tenfold force. The ocean-tempest is once more a
+mere clashing of innumerable water-drops; the green and amber sadness of
+the evening sky is a mockery of sorrow; his own soul and its sadness is
+a mockery of himself. There is nothing in the sadness, nothing in the
+mockery. To tell him as comfort, that in his own thought lives the
+meaning if nowhere else, is mockery worst of all; for if there be no
+truth in them, if these things be no embodiment, to make them serve as
+such is to put a candle in a death’s-head to light the dying through the
+place of tombs. To his former foolish fancy a primrose might preach a
+childlike trust; the untoiling lilies might from their field cast seeds
+of a higher growth into his troubled heart; now they are no better than
+the colour the painter leaves behind him on the doorpost of his
+workshop, when, the day’s labour over, he wipes his brush on it ere he
+depart for the night. The look in the eyes of his dog, happy in that he
+is short-lived, is one of infinite sadness. All graciousness must
+henceforth be a sorrow: it has to go with the sunsets. That a thing must
+cease takes from it the joy of even an aeonian endurance--for its _kind_
+is mortal; it belongs to the nature of things that cannot live. The
+sorrow is not so much that it shall perish as that it could not
+live--that it is not in its nature a real, that is, an eternal thing.
+His children are shadows--their life a dance, a sickness, a corruption.
+The very element of unselfishness, which, however feeble and beclouded
+it may be, yet exists in all love, in giving life its only dignity adds
+to its sorrow. Nowhere at the root of things is love--it is only a
+something that came after, some sort of fungous excrescence in the
+hearts of men grown helplessly superior to their origin. Law, nothing
+but cold, impassive, material law, is the root of things--lifeless
+happily, so not knowing itself, else were it a demon instead of a
+creative nothing. Endeavour is paralyzed in him. “Work for posterity,”
+ says he of the skyless philosophy; answers the man, “How can I work
+without hope? Little heart have I to labour, where labour is so little
+help. What can I do for my children that would render their life less
+hopeless than my own! Give me all you would secure for them, and my life
+would be to me but the worse mockery. The true end of labour would be,
+to lessen the number doomed to breathe the breath of this despair.”
+
+Straightway he developes another and a deeper mood. He turns and regards
+himself. Suspicion or sudden insight has directed the look. And there,
+in himself, he discovers such imperfection, such wrong, such shame, such
+weakness, as cause him to cry out, “It were well I should cease! Why
+should I mourn after life? Where were the good of prolonging it in a
+being like me? ‘What should such fellows as I do crawling between heaven
+and earth!’” Such insights, when they come, the seers do their best, in
+general, to obscure; suspicion of themselves they regard as a monster,
+and would stifle. They resent the waking of such doubt. Any attempt at
+the raising in them of their buried best they regard as an offence
+against intercourse. A man takes his social life in his hand who dares
+it. Few therefore understand the judgment of Hamlet upon himself; the
+common reader is so incapable of imagining he could mean it of his own
+general character as a man, that he attributes the utterance to shame
+for the postponement of a vengeance, which indeed he must have been such
+as his critic to be capable of performing upon no better proof than he
+had yet had. When the man whose unfolding I would now represent, regards
+even his dearest love, he finds it such a poor, selfish, low-lived
+thing, that in his heart he shames himself before his children and his
+friends. How little labour, how little watching, how little pain has he
+endured for their sakes! He reads of great things in this kind, but in
+himself he does not find them. How often has he not been wrongfully
+displeased--wrathful with the innocent! How often has he not hurt a
+heart more tender than his own! Has he ever once been faithful to the
+height of his ideal? Is his life on the whole a thing to regard with
+complacency, or to be troubled exceedingly concerning? Beyond him rise
+and spread infinite seeming possibilities--height beyond height, glory
+beyond glory, each rooted in and rising from his conscious being, but
+alas! where is any hope of ascending them? These hills of peace, “in a
+season of calm weather,” seem to surround and infold him, as a land in
+which he could dwell at ease and at home: surely among them lies the
+place of his birth!--while against their purity and grandeur the being
+of his consciousness shows miserable--dark, weak, and undefined--a
+shadow that would fain be substance--a dream that would gladly be born
+into the light of reality. But alas if the whole thing be only in
+himself--if the vision be a dream of nothing, a revelation of lies, the
+outcome of that which, helplessly existent, is yet not created,
+therefore cannot create--if not the whole thing only be a dream of the
+impotent, but the impotent be himself but a dream--a dream of his own--a
+self-dreamed dream--with no master of dreams to whom to cry! Where then
+the cherished hope of one day atoning for his wrongs to those who loved
+him!--they are nowhere--vanished for ever, upmingled and dissolved in
+the primeval darkness! If truth be but the hollow of a sphere, ah, never
+shall he cast himself before them, to tell them that now at last, after
+long years of revealing separation, he knows himself and them, and that
+now the love of them is a part of his very being--to implore their
+forgiveness on the ground that he hates, despises, contemns, and scorns
+the self that showed them less than absolute love and devotion! Never
+thus shall he lay his being bare to their eyes of love! They do not even
+rest, for they do not and will not know it. There is no voice nor
+hearing in them, and how can there be in him any heart to live! The one
+comfort left him is, that, unable to follow them, he shall yet die and
+cease, and fare as they--go also nowhither!
+
+To a man under the dismay of existence dissociated from power, unrooted
+in, unshadowed by a creating Will, who is Love, the Father of Man--to
+him who knows not being and God together, the idea of death--a death
+that knows no reviving, must be, and ought to be the blessedest thought
+left him. “O land of shadows!” well may such a one cry! “land where the
+shadows love to ecstatic self-loss, yet forget, and love no more! land
+of sorrows and despairs, that sink the soul into a deeper Tophet than
+death has ever sounded! broken kaleidoscope! shaken camera! promiser,
+speaking truth to the ear, but lying to the sense! land where the heart
+of my friend is sorrowful as my heart--the more sorrowful that I have
+been but a poor and far-off friend! land where sin is strong and
+righteousness faint! where love dreams mightily and walks abroad so
+feeble! land where the face of my father is dust, and the hand of my
+mother will never more caress! where my children will spend a few years
+of like trouble to mine, and then drop from the dream into the no-dream!
+gladly, O land of sickliest shadows--gladly, that is, with what power of
+gladness is in me, I take my leave of thee! Welcome the cold,
+pain-soothing embrace of immortal Death! Hideous are his looks, but I
+love him better than Life: he is true, and will not deceive us. Nay, he
+only is our saviour, setting us free from the tyranny of the false that
+ought to be true, and sets us longing in vain.”
+
+But through all the man’s doubts, fears, and perplexities, a certain
+whisper, say rather, an uncertain rumour, a vague legendary murmur, has
+been at the same time about, rather than in, his ears--never ceasing to
+haunt his air, although hitherto he has hardly heeded it. He knows it
+has come down the ages, and that some in every age have been more or
+less influenced by a varied acceptance of it. Upon those, however, with
+whom he has chiefly associated, it has made no impression beyond that of
+a remarkable legend. It is the story of a man, represented as at least
+greater, stronger, and better than any other man. With the hero of this
+tale he has had a constantly recurring, though altogether undefined
+suspicion that he has something to do. It is strongest, though not even
+then strong, at such times when he is most aware of evil and
+imperfection in himself. Betwixt the two, the idea of this man and his
+knowledge of himself, seems to lie, dim-shadowy, some imperative duty.
+He knows that the whole matter concerning the man is commemorated in
+many of the oldest institutions of his country, but up to this time he
+has shrunk from the demands which, by a kind of spiritual insight, he
+foresaw would follow, were he once to admit certain things to be true.
+He has, however, known some and read of more who by their faith in the
+man conquered all anxiety, doubt, and fear, lived pure, and died in
+gladsome hope. On the other hand, it seems to him that the faith which
+was once easy has now become almost an impossibility. And what is it he
+is called upon to believe? One says one thing, another another. Much
+that is asserted is simply unworthy of belief, and the foundation of the
+whole has in his eyes something of the look of a cunningly devised
+fable. Even should it be true, it cannot help him, he thinks, for it
+does not even touch the things that make his woe: the God the tale
+presents is not the being whose very existence can alone be his cure.
+
+But he meets one who says to him, “Have you then come to your time of
+life, and not yet ceased to accept hearsay as ground of action--for
+there is action in abstaining as well as in doing? Suppose the man in
+question to have taken all possible pains to be understood, does it
+follow of necessity that he is now or ever was fairly represented by the
+bulk of his followers? With such a moral distance between him and them,
+is it possible?”
+
+“But the whole thing has from first to last a strange aspect!” our
+thinker replies.
+
+“As to the _last_ that is not yet come. And as to its _aspect_, its
+reality must be such as human eye could never convey to reading heart.
+Every human idea of it _must_ be more or less wrong. And yet perhaps the
+truer the aspect the stranger it would be. But is it not just with
+ordinary things you are dissatisfied? And should not therefore the very
+strangeness of these to you little better than rumours incline you to
+examine the object of them? Will you assert that nothing strange can
+have to do with human affairs? Much that was once scarce credible is now
+so ordinary that men have grown stupid to the wonder inherent in it.
+Nothing around you serves your need: try what is at least of another
+class of phenomena. What if the things rumoured belong to a _more_
+natural order than these, lie nearer the roots of your dissatisfied
+existence, and look strange only because you have hitherto been living
+in the outer court, not in the _penetralia_ of life? The rumour has been
+vital enough to float down the ages, emerging from every storm: why not
+see for yourself what may be in it? So powerful an influence on human
+history, surely there will be found in it signs by which to determine
+whether the man understood himself and his message, or owed his apparent
+greatness to the deluded worship of his followers! That he has always
+had foolish followers none will deny, and none but a fool would judge
+any leader from such a fact. Wisdom as well as folly will serve a fool’s
+purpose; he turns all into folly. I say nothing now of my own
+conclusions, because what you imagine my opinions are as hateful to me
+as to you disagreeable and foolish.”
+
+So says the friend; the man hears, takes up the old story, and says to
+himself, “Let me see then what I can see!”
+
+I will not follow him through the many shadows and slow dawns by which
+at length he arrives at this much: A man claiming to be the Son of God
+says he has come to be the light of men; says, “Come to me, and I will
+give you rest;” says, “Follow me, and you shall find my Father; to know
+him is the one thing you cannot do without, for it is eternal life.” He
+has learned from the reported words of the man, and from the man himself
+as in the tale presented, that the bliss of his conscious being is his
+Father; that his one delight is to do the will of that Father--the only
+thing in his eyes worthy of being done, or worth having done; that he
+would make men blessed with his own blessedness; that the cry of
+creation, the cry of humanity shall be answered into the deepest soul of
+desire; that less than the divine mode of existence, the godlike way of
+being, can satisfy no man, that is, make him content with his
+consciousness; that not this world only, but the whole universe is the
+inheritance of those who consent to be the children of their Father in
+heaven, who put forth the power of their will to be of the same sort as
+he; that to as many as receive him he gives power to become the sons of
+God; that they shall be partakers of the divine nature, of the divine
+joy, of the divine power--shall have whatever they desire, shall know no
+fear, shall love perfectly, and shall never die; that these things are
+beyond the grasp of the knowing ones of the world, and to them the
+message will be a scorn; but that the time will come when its truth
+shall be apparent, to some in confusion of face, to others in joy
+unspeakable; only that we must beware of judging, for many that are
+first shall be last, and there are last that shall be first.
+
+To find himself in such conscious as well as vital relation with the
+source of his being, with a Will by which his own will exists, with a
+Consciousness by and through which he is conscious, would indeed be the
+end of all the man’s ills! nor can he imagine any other, not to say
+better way, in which his sorrows could be met, understood and
+annihilated. For the ills that oppress him are both within him and
+without, and over each kind he is powerless. If the message were but a
+true one! If indeed this man knew what he talked of! But if there should
+be help for man from anywhere beyond him, some _one_ might know it
+first, and may not this be the one? And if the message be so great, so
+perfect as this man asserts, then only a perfect, an eternal man, at
+home in the bosom of the Father, could know, or bring, or tell it.
+According to the tale, it had been from the first the intent of the
+Father to reveal himself to man as man, for without the knowledge of the
+Father after man’s own modes of being, he could not grow to real
+manhood. The grander the whole idea, the more likely is it to be what it
+claims to be! and if not high as the heavens above the earth, beyond us
+yet within our reach, it is not for us, it cannot be true. Fact or not,
+the existence of a God such as Christ, a God who is a good man
+infinitely, is the only idea containing hope enough for man! If such a
+God has come to be known, marvel must surround the first news at least
+of the revelation of him. Because of its marvel, shall men find it in
+reason to turn from the gracious rumour of what, if it be true, must be
+the event of all events? And could marvel be lovelier than the marvel
+reported? But the humble men of heart alone can believe in the
+high--they alone can perceive, they alone can embrace grandeur. Humility
+is essential greatness, the inside of grandeur.
+
+Something of such truths the man glimmeringly sees. But in his mind
+awake, thereupon, endless doubts and questions. What if the whole idea
+of his mission was a deception born of the very goodness of the man?
+What if the whole matter was the invention of men pretending themselves
+the followers of such a man? What if it was a little truth greatly
+exaggerated? Only, be it what it may, less than its full idea would not
+be enough for the wants and sorrows that weaken and weigh him down!
+
+He passes through many a thorny thicket of inquiry; gathers evidence
+upon evidence; reasons upon the goodness of the men who wrote: they
+might be deceived, but they dared not invent; holds with himself a
+thousand arguments, historical, psychical, metaphysical--which for their
+setting-forth would require volumes; hears many an opposing, many a
+scoffing word from men “who surely know, else would they speak?” and
+finds himself much where he was before. But at least he is haunting the
+possible borders of discovery, while those who turn their backs upon the
+idea are divided from him by a great gulf--it may be of moral
+difference. To him there is still a grand auroral hope about the idea,
+and it still draws him; the others, taking the thing from merest report
+of opinion, look anywhere but thitherward. He who would not trust his
+best friend to set forth his views of life, accepts the random
+judgements of unknown others for a sufficing disposal of what the
+highest of the race have regarded as a veritable revelation from the
+Father of men. He sees in it therefore nothing but folly; for what he
+takes for the thing nowhere meets his nature. Our searcher at least
+holds open the door for the hearing of what voice may come to him from
+the region invisible: if there be truth there, he is where it will find
+him.
+
+As he continues to read and reflect, the perception gradually grows
+clear in him, that, if there be truth in the matter, he must, first of
+all, and beyond all things else, give his best heed to the reported
+words of the man himself--to what he says, not what is said about him,
+valuable as that may afterwards prove to be. And he finds that
+concerning these words of his, the man says, or at least plainly
+implies, that only the obedient, childlike soul can understand them. It
+follows that the judgement of no man who does not obey can be received
+concerning them or the speaker of them--that, for instance, a man who
+hates his enemy, who tells lies, who thinks to serve God and Mammon,
+whether he call himself a Christian or no, has not the right of an
+opinion concerning the Master or his words--at least in the eyes of the
+Master, however it may be in his own. This is in the very nature of
+things: obedience alone places a man in the position in which he can see
+so as to judge that which is above him. In respect of great truths
+investigation goes for little, speculation for nothing; if a man would
+know them, he must obey them. Their nature is such that the only door
+into them is obedience. And the truth-seeker perceives--which allows
+him no loophole of escape from life--that what things the Son of Man
+requires of him, are either such as his conscience backs for just, or
+such as seem too great, too high for any man. But if there be help for
+him, it must be a help that recognizes the highest in him, and urges him
+to its use. Help cannot come to one made in the image of God, save in
+the obedient effort of what life and power are in him, for God is
+action. In such effort alone is it possible for need to encounter help.
+It is the upstretched that meets the downstretched hand. He alone who
+obeys can with confidence pray--to him alone does an answer seem a thing
+that may come. And should anything spoken by the Son of Man seem to the
+seeker unreasonable, he feels in the rest such a majesty of duty as
+compels him to judge with regard to the other, that he has not yet
+perceived its true nature, or its true relation to life.
+
+And now comes the crisis: if here the man sets himself honestly to do
+the thing the Son of Man tells him, he so, and so first, sets out
+positively upon the path which, if there be truth in these things, will
+conduct him to a knowledge of the whole matter; not until then is he a
+disciple. If the message be a true one, the condition of the knowledge
+of its truth is not only reasonable but an unavoidable necessity. If
+there be help for him, how otherways should it draw nigh? He has to be
+assured of the highest truth of his being: there can be no other
+assurance than that to be gained thus, and thus alone; for not only by
+obedience does a man come into such contact with truth as to know what
+it is, and in regard to truth knowledge and belief are one. That things
+which cannot appear save to the eye capable of seeing them, that things
+which cannot be recognized save by the mind of a certain development,
+should be examined by eye incapable, and pronounced upon by mind
+undeveloped, is absurd. The deliverance the message offers is a change
+such that the man shall _be_ the rightness of which he talked: while his
+soul is not a hungered, athirst, aglow, a groaning after
+righteousness--that is, longing to be himself honest and upright, it is
+an absurdity that he should judge concerning the way to this rightness,
+seeing that, while he walks not in it, he is and shall be a dishonest
+man: he knows not whither it leads and how can he know the way! What he
+_can_ judge of is, his duty at a given moment--and that not in the
+abstract, but as something to be by him _done_, neither more, nor less,
+nor other than _done_. Thus judging and doing, he makes the only
+possible step nearer to righteousness and righteous judgement; doing
+otherwise, he becomes the more unrighteous, the more blind. For the man
+who knows not God, whether he believes there is a God or not, there can
+be, I repeat, no judgement of things pertaining to God. To our supposed
+searcher, then, the crowning word of the Son of Man is this, “If any man
+is willing to do the will of the Father, he shall know of the doctrine,
+whether it be of God, or whether I speak of myself.”
+
+Having thus accompanied my type to the borders of liberty, my task for
+the present is over. The rest let him who reads prove for himself.
+Obedience alone can convince. To convince without obedience I would take
+no bootless labour; it would be but a gain for hell. If any man call
+these things foolishness, his judgement is to me insignificant. If any
+man say he is open to conviction, I answer him he can have none but on
+the condition, by the means of obedience. If a man say, “The thing is
+not interesting to me,” I ask him, “Are you following your conscience?
+By that, and not by the interest you take or do not take in a thing,
+shall you be judged. Nor will anything be said to you, or of you, in
+that day, whatever _that day_ mean, of which your conscience will not
+echo every syllable.”
+
+Oneness with God is the sole truth of humanity. Life parted from its
+causative life would be no life; it would at best be but a barrack of
+corruption, an outpost of annihilation. In proportion as the union is
+incomplete, the derived life is imperfect. And no man can be one with
+neighbour, child, dearest, except as he is one with his origin; and he
+fails of his perfection so long as there is one being in the universe he
+could not love.
+
+Of all men he is bound to hold his face like a flint in witness of this
+truth who owes everything that makes for eternal good, to the belief
+that at the heart of things and causing them to be, at the centre of
+monad, of world, of protoplastic mass, of loving dog, and of man most
+cruel, is an absolute, perfect love; and that in the man Christ Jesus
+this love is with us men to take us home. To nothing else do I for one
+owe any grasp upon life. In this I see the setting right of all things.
+To the man who believes in the Son of God, poetry returns in a mighty
+wave; history unrolls itself in harmony; science shows crowned with its
+own aureole of holiness. There is no enlivener of the imagination, no
+enabler of the judgment, no strengthener of the intellect, to compare
+with the belief in a live Ideal, at the heart of all personality, as of
+every law. If there be no such live Ideal, then a falsehood can do more
+for the race than the facts of its being; then an unreality is needful
+for the development of the man in all that is real, in all that is in
+the highest sense true; then falsehood is greater than fact, and an idol
+necessary for lack of a God. They who deny cannot, in the nature of
+things, know what they deny. When one sees a chaos begin to put on the
+shape of an ordered world, he will hardly be persuaded it is by the
+power of a foolish notion bred in a diseased fancy.
+
+Let the man then who would rise to the height of his being, be persuaded
+to test the Truth by the deed--the highest and only test that can be
+applied to the loftiest of all assertions. To every man I say, “Do the
+truth you know, and you shall learn the truth you need to know.”
+
+
+
+
+ST. GEORGE’S DAY, 1564.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1864.]
+
+All England knows that this year (1864) is the three hundredth since
+Shakspere was born. The strong probability is likewise that this month
+of April is that in which he first saw the earthly light. On the
+twenty-sixth of April he was baptized. Whether he was born on the
+twenty-third, to which effect there may once have been a tradition, we
+do not know; but though there is nothing to corroborate that statement,
+there are two facts which would incline us to believe it if we could:
+the one that he _died_ on the twenty-third of April, thus, as it were,
+completing a cycle; and the other that the twenty-third of April is St.
+George’s Day. If there is no harm in indulging in a little fanciful
+sentiment about such a grand fact, we should say that certainly it was
+_St. George for merry England_ when Shakspere was born. But had St.
+George been the best saint in the calendar--which we have little enough
+ground for supposing he was--it would better suit our subject to say
+that the Highest was thinking of his England when he sent Shakspere into
+it, to be a strength, a wonder, and a gladness to the nations of his
+earth.
+
+But if we write thus about Shakspere, influenced only by the fashion of
+the day, we shall be much in the condition of those _fashionable_
+architects who with their vain praises built the tombs of the prophets,
+while they had no regard to the lessons they taught. We hope to be able
+to show that we have good grounds for our rejoicing in the birth of that
+child whom after-years placed highest on the rocky steep of Art, up
+which so many of those who combine feeling and thought are always
+striving.
+
+First, however, let us look at some of the more powerful of the
+influences into the midst of which he was born. For a child is born into
+the womb of the time, which indeed enclosed and fed him before he was
+born. Not the least subtle and potent of those influences which tend to
+the education of the child (in the true sense of the word _education_)
+are those which are brought to bear upon him _through_ the mind, heart,
+judgement of his parents. We mean that those powers which have operated
+strongly upon them, have a certain concentrated operation, both
+antenatal and psychological, as well as educational and spiritual, upon
+the child. Now Shakspere was born in the sixth year of Queen Elizabeth.
+He was the eldest son, but the third child. His father and mother must
+have been married not later than the year 1557, two years after Cranmer
+was burned at the stake, one of the two hundred who thus perished in
+that time of pain, resulting in the firm establishment of a reformation
+which, like all other changes for the better, could not be verified and
+secured without some form or other of the _trial by fire_. Events such
+as then took place in every part of the country could not fail to make a
+strong impression upon all thinking people, especially as it was not
+those of high position only who were thus called upon to bear witness to
+their beliefs. John Shakspere and Mary Arden were in all likelihood
+themselves of the Protestant party; and although, as far as we know,
+they were never in any especial danger of being denounced, the whole of
+the circumstances must have tended to produce in them individually, what
+seems to have been characteristic of the age in which they lived,
+earnestness. In times such as those, people are compelled to think.
+
+And here an interesting question occurs: Was it in part to his mother
+that Shakspere was indebted for that profound knowledge of the Bible
+which is so evident in his writings? A good many copies of the
+Scriptures must have been by this time, in one translation or another,
+scattered over the country. [Footnote: And it seems to us probable that
+this diffusion of the Bible, did more to rouse the slumbering literary
+power of England, than any influences of foreign literature whatever.]
+No doubt the word was precious in those days, and hard to buy; but there
+might have been a copy, notwithstanding, in the house of John Shakspere,
+and it is possible that it was from his mother’s lips that the boy first
+heard the Scripture tales. We have called his acquaintance with
+Scripture _profound_, and one peculiar way in which it manifests itself
+will bear out the assertion; for frequently it is the very spirit and
+essential aroma of the passage that he reproduces, without making any
+use of the words themselves. There are passages in his writings which we
+could not have understood but for some acquaintance with the New
+Testament. We will produce a few specimens of the kind we mean,
+confining ourselves to one play, “Macbeth.”
+
+Just mentioning the phrase, “temple-haunting martlet” (act i. scene 6),
+as including in it a reference to the verse, “Yea, the sparrow hath
+found an house, and the swallow a nest for herself, where she may lay
+her young, even thine altars, O Lord of hosts,” we pass to the following
+passage, for which we do not believe there is any explanation but that
+suggested to us by the passage of Scripture to be cited.
+
+Macbeth, on his way to murder Duncan, says,--
+
+ “Thou sure and firm-set earth,
+ Hear not my steps, which way they walk, for fear
+ Thy very stones prate of my whereabout,
+ And take the present horror from the time
+ Which now suits with it.”
+
+What is meant by the last two lines? It seems to us to be just another
+form of the words, “For there is nothing covered, that shall not be
+revealed; neither hid, that shall not be known. Therefore whatsoever ye
+have spoken in darkness shall be heard in the light; and that which ye
+have spoken in the ear in closets shall be proclaimed upon the
+house-tops.” Of course we do not mean that Macbeth is represented as
+having this passage in his mind, but that Shakspere had the feeling of
+it when he wrote thus. What Macbeth means is, “Earth, do not hear me in
+the dark, which is suitable to the present horror, lest the very stones
+prate about it in the daylight, which is not suitable to such things;
+thus taking ‘the present horror _from_ the time which now suits with
+it.’”
+
+Again, in the only piece of humour in the play--if that should be called
+humour which, taken in its relation to the consciousness of the
+principal characters, is as terrible as anything in the piece--the
+porter ends off his fantastic soliloquy, in which he personates the
+porter of hell-gate, with the words, “But this place is too cold for
+hell: I’ll devil-porter it no further. I had thought to have let in some
+of all professions, that go the primrose way to the everlasting
+bonfire.” Now what else had the writer in his mind but the verse from
+the Sermon on the Mount, “For wide is the gate, and broad is the way,
+that leadeth to destruction, and many there be which go in thereat”?
+
+It may be objected that such passages as these, being of the most
+commonly quoted, imply no profound acquaintance with Scripture, such as
+we have said Shakspere possessed. But no amount of knowledge of the
+_words_ of the Bible would be sufficient to justify the use of the word
+_profound_. What is remarkable in the employment of these passages, is
+not merely that they are so present to his mind that they come up for
+use in the most exciting moments of composition, but that he embodies
+the spirit of them in such a new form as reveals to minds saturated and
+deadened with the _sound_ of the words, the very visual image and
+spiritual meaning involved in them. “_The primrose way!_” And to what?
+
+We will confine ourselves to one passage more:--
+
+ “Macbeth
+ Is ripe for shaking, and the powers above
+ Put on their instruments.”
+
+In the end of the 14th chapter of the Revelation we have the words,
+“Thrust in thy sickle, and reap: for the time is come for thee to reap;
+for the harvest of the earth is ripe.” We suspect that Shakspere wrote,
+ripe _to_ shaking.
+
+The instances to which we have confined ourselves do not by any means
+belong to the most evident kind of proof that might be adduced of
+Shakspere’s acquaintance with Scripture. The subject, in its ordinary
+aspect, has been elsewhere treated with far more fulness than our design
+would permit us to indulge in, even if it had not been done already. Our
+object has been to bring forward a few passages which seem to us to
+breathe the very spirit of individual passages in sacred writ, without
+direct use of the words themselves; and, of course, in such a case we
+can only appeal to the (no doubt) very various degrees of conviction
+which they may rouse in the minds of our readers.
+
+But there is one singular correspondence in another _almost_ literal
+quotation from the Gospel, which is to us wonderfully interesting. We
+are told that the words “eye of a needle,” in the passage about a rich
+man entering the kingdom of heaven, mean the small side entrance in a
+city gate. Now, in “Richard II,” act v. scene 5, _Richard_ quotes the
+passage thus:--
+
+ “It is as hard to come as for a camel
+ To thread the postern of a needle’s eye;”
+
+showing that either the imagination of Shakspere suggested the real
+explanation, or he had taken pains to acquaint himself with the
+significance of the simile. We can hardly say that the correspondence
+might be _merely_ fortuitous; because, at the least, Shakspere looked
+for and found a suitable figure to associate with the words _eye of a
+needle_, and so fell upon the real explanation; except, indeed, he had
+no particular significance in using the word that meant a _little_ gate,
+instead of a word meaning any kind of entrance, which, with him, seems
+unlikely.
+
+We have not by any means proven that Shakspere’s acquaintance with the
+Scriptures had an early date in his history; but certainly the Bible
+must have had a great influence upon him who was the highest
+representative mind of the time, its influence on the general
+development of the nation being unquestionable. This, therefore, seeing
+the Bible itself was just dawning full upon the country while Shakspere
+was becoming capable of understanding it, seems the suitable sequence in
+which to take notice of that influence, and of some of those passages in
+his works which testify to it.
+
+But, besides _the_ Bible, every nation has _a_ Bible, or at least _an_
+Old Testament, in its own history; and that Shakspere paid especial
+attention to this, is no matter of conjecture. We suspect his mode of
+writing historical plays is more after the fashion of the Bible
+histories than that of most writers of history. Indeed, the development
+and consequences of character and conduct are clear to those that read
+his histories with open eyes. Now, in his childhood Shakspere may have
+had some special incentive to the study of history springing out of the
+fact that his mother’s grandfather had been “groom of the chamber to
+Henry VII.,” while there is sufficient testimony that a further removed
+ancestor of his father, as well, had stood high in the favour of the
+same monarch. Therefore the history of the troublous times of the
+preceding century, which were brought to a close by the usurpation of
+Henry VII., would naturally be a subject of talk in the quiet household,
+where books and amusements such as now occupy our boys, were scarce or
+wanting altogether. The proximity of such a past of strife and
+commotion, crowded with eventful change, must have formed a background
+full of the material of excitement to an age which lived in the midst of
+a peculiarly exciting history of its own.
+
+Perhaps the chief intellectual characteristic of the age of Elizabeth
+was _activity_; this activity accounting even for much that is
+objectionable in its literature. Now this activity must have been
+growing in the people throughout the fifteenth century; the wars of the
+Roses, although they stifled literature, so that it had, as it were, to
+be born again in the beginning of the following century, being, after
+all, but as the “eager strife” of the shadow-leaves above the “genuine
+life” of the grass,--
+
+ “And the mute repose
+ Of sweetly breathing flowers.”
+
+But when peace had fallen on the land, it would seem as if the impulse
+to action springing from strife still operated, as the waves will go on
+raving upon the shore after the wind has ceased, and found one outlet,
+amongst others, in literature, and peculiarly in dramatic literature.
+Peace, rendered yet more intense by the cessation of the cries of the
+tormentors, and the groans of the noble army of suffering martyrs, made,
+as it were, a kind of vacuum; and into that vacuum burst up the
+torrent-springs of a thousand souls--the thoughts that were no longer
+repressed--in the history of the past and the Utopian speculation on the
+future; in noble theology, capable statesmanship, and science at once
+brilliant and profound; in the voyage of discovery, and the change of
+the swan-like merchantman into a very fire-drake of war for the defence
+of the threatened shores; in the first brave speech of the Puritan in
+Elizabeth’s Parliament, the first murmurs of the voice of liberty, soon
+to thunder throughout the land; in the naturalizing of foreign genius by
+translation, and the invention, or at least adoption, of a new and
+transcendent rhythm; in the song, in the epic, in the drama.
+
+So much for the general. Let us now, following the course of his life,
+recall, in a few sentences, some of the chief events which must have
+impressed the all-open mind of Shakspere in the earlier portion of his
+history.
+
+Perhaps it would not be going back too far to begin with the Massacre of
+Paris, which took place when he was eight years old. It caused so much
+horror in England, that it is not absurd to suppose that some black rays
+from the deed of darkness may have fallen on the mind of such a child as
+Shakspere.
+
+In strong contrast with the foregoing is the next event to which we
+shall refer.
+
+When he was eleven years old, Leicester gave the Queen that magnificent
+reception at Kenilworth which is so well known from its memorials in our
+literature. It has been suggested as probable, with quite enough of
+likelihood to justify a conjecture, that Shakspere may have been present
+at the dramatic representations then so gorgeously accumulated before
+her Majesty. If such was the fact, it is easy to imagine what an
+influence the shows must have had on the mind of the young dramatic
+genius, at a time when, happily, the critical faculty is not by any
+means so fully awake as are the receptive and exultant faculties, and
+when what the nature chiefly needs is excitement to growth, without
+which all pruning, the most artistic, is useless, as having nothing to
+operate upon.
+
+When he was fifteen years old, Sir Thomas North’s translation of
+Plutarch (through the French) was first published. Any reader who has
+compared one of Shakspere’s Roman plays with the corresponding life in
+Plutarch, will not be surprised that we should mention this as one of
+those events which must have been of paramount influence upon Shakspere.
+It is not likely that he became acquainted with the large folio with its
+medallion portraits first placed singly, and then repeated side by side
+for comparison, as soon as it made its appearance, but as we cannot tell
+when he began to read it, it seems as well to place it in the order its
+publication would assign to it. Besides, it evidently took such a hold
+of the man, that it is most probable his acquaintance with it began at a
+very early period of his history. Indeed, it seems to us to have been
+one of the most powerful aids to the development of that perception and
+discrimination of character with which he was gifted to such a
+remarkable degree. Nor would it be any derogation from the originality
+of his genius to say, that in a very pregnant sense he must have been a
+disciple of Plutarch. In those plays founded on Plutarch’s stories he
+picked out every dramatic point, and occasionally employed the very
+phrases of North’s nervous, graphic, and characteristic English. He
+seems to have felt that it was an honour to his work to embody in it the
+words of Plutarch himself, as he knew them first. From him he seems
+especially to have learned how to bring out the points of a character,
+by putting one man over against another, and remarking wherein they
+resembled each other and wherein they differed; after which fashion, in
+other plays as well as those, he partly arranged his dramatic
+characters.
+
+Not long after he went to London, when he was twenty-two, the death of
+Sir Philip Sidney at the age of thirty-two, must have had its
+unavoidable influence on him, seeing all Europe was in mourning for the
+death of its model, almost ideal man. In England the general mourning,
+both in the court and the city, which lasted for months, is supposed by
+Dr. Zouch to have been the first instance of the kind; that is, for the
+death of a private person. Renowned over the civilized world for
+everything for which a man could be renowned, his literary fame must
+have had a considerable share in the impression his death would make on
+such a man as Shakspere. For although none of his works were published
+till after his death, the first within a few months of that event, his
+fame as a writer was widely spread in private, and report of the same
+could hardly fail to reach one who, although he had probably no friends
+of rank as yet, kept such keen open ears for all that was going on
+around him. But whether or not he had heard of the literary greatness of
+Sir Philip before his death, the “Arcadia,” which was first published
+four years after his death (1590), and which in eight years had reached
+the third edition--with another still in Scotland the following
+year--must have been full of interest to Shakspere. This book is very
+different indeed from the ordinary impression of it which most minds
+have received through the confident incapacity of the critics of last
+century. Few books have been published more fruitful in the results and
+causes of thought, more sparkling with fancy, more evidently the outcome
+of rich and noble habit, than this “Arcadia” of Philip Sidney. That
+Shakspere read it, is sufficiently evident from the fact that from it he
+has taken the secondary but still important plots in two of his plays.
+
+Although we are anticipating, it is better to mention here another book,
+published in the same year, namely, 1590, when Shakspere was
+six-and-twenty: the first three books of Spenser’s “Faery Queen.” Of its
+reception and character it is needless here to say anything further
+than, of the latter, that nowadays the depths of its teaching, heartily
+prized as that was by no less a man than Milton, are seldom explored.
+But it would be a labour of months to set out the known and imagined
+sources of the knowledge and spiritual pabulum of the man who laid every
+mental region so under contribution, that he has been claimed by almost
+every profession as having been at one time or another a student of its
+peculiar science, so marvellously in him was the power of assimilation
+combined with that of reproduction.
+
+To go back a little: in 1587, when he was three-and-twenty, Mary Queen
+of Scots was executed. In the following year came that mighty victory of
+England, and her allies the winds and the waters, over the towering
+pride of the Spanish Armada. Out from the coasts, like the birds from
+their cliffs to defend their young, flew the little navy, many of the
+vessels only able to carry a few guns; and fighting, fire-ships and
+tempest left this island,--
+
+ “This precious stone set in the silver sea,”
+
+still a “blessed plot,” with an accumulated obligation to liberty which
+can only be paid by helping others to be free; and when she utterly
+forgets which, her doom is sealed, as surely as that of the old empires
+which passed away in their self-indulgence and wickedness.
+
+When Shakspere was about thirty-two, Sir Walter Raleigh published his
+glowing account of Guiana, which instantly provided the English mind
+with an earthly paradise or fairy-land. Raleigh himself seems to have
+been too full of his own reports for us to be able to suppose that he
+either invented or disbelieved them; especially when he represents the
+heavenly country to which, in expectation of his execution, he is
+looking forward, after the fashion of those regions of the wonderful
+West:--
+
+ “Then the blessed Paths wee’l travel,
+ Strow’d with Rubies thick as gravel;
+ Sealings of Diamonds, Saphire floors,
+ High walls of Coral, and Pearly Bowers.”
+
+Such were some of the influences which widened the region of thought,
+and excited the productive power, in the minds of the time. After this
+period there were fewer of such in Shakspere’s life; and if there had
+been more of them they would have been of less import as to their
+operation on a mind more fully formed and more capable of choosing its
+own influences. Let us now give a backward glance at the history of the
+art which Shakspere chose as the means of easing his own mind of that
+wealth which, like the gold and the silver, has a moth and rust of its
+own, except it be kept in use by being sent out for the good of our
+neighbours.
+
+It was a mighty gain for the language and the people when, in the middle
+of the fourteenth century, by permission of the Pope, the miracle-plays,
+most probably hitherto represented in Norman-French, as Mr. Collier
+supposes, began to be represented in English. Most likely there had been
+dramatic representations of a sort from the very earliest period of the
+nation’s history; for, to begin with the lowest form, at what time would
+there not, for the delight of listeners, have been the imitation of
+animal sounds, such as the drama of the conversation between an
+attacking poodle and a fiercely repellent puss? Through innumerable
+gradations of childhood would the art grow before it attained the first
+formal embodiment in such plays as those, so-called, of miracles,
+consisting just of Scripture stories, both canonical and apocryphal,
+dramatized after the rudest fashion. Regarded from the height which the
+art had reached two hundred and fifty years after, “how dwarfed a growth
+of cold and night” do these miracle-plays show themselves! But at a time
+when there was no printing, little preaching, and Latin prayers, we
+cannot help thinking that, grotesque and ill-imagined as they are, they
+must have been of unspeakable value for the instruction of a people
+whose spiritual digestion was not of a sort to be injured by the
+presence of a quite abnormal quantity of husk and saw-dust in their
+food. And occasionally we find verses of true poetic feeling, such as
+the following, in “The Fall of Man:”--
+
+ _Deus._ Adam, that with myn handys I made,
+ Where art thou now? What hast thou wrought?
+
+ _Adam._ A! lord, for synne oure floures do ffade,
+ I here thi voys, but I se the nought;
+
+implying that the separation between God and man, although it had
+destroyed the beatific vision, was not yet so complete as to make the
+creature deaf to the voice of his Maker. Nor are the words of Eve, with
+which she begs her husband, in her shame and remorse, to strangle her,
+odd and quaint as they are, without an almost overpowering pathos:--
+
+ “Now stomble we on stalk and ston;
+ My wyt awey is fro me gon:
+ Wrythe on to my necke bon
+ With, hardnesse of thin honde.”
+
+To this Adam commences his reply with the verses,--
+
+ “Wyff, thi wytt is not wurthe a rosche.
+ Leve woman, turn thi thought.”
+
+And this portion of the general representation ends with these verses,
+spoken by Eve:--
+
+ “Alas! that ever we wrought this synne.
+ Oure bodely sustenauns for to wynne,
+ Ye must delve and I xal spynne,
+ In care to ledyn oure lyff.”
+
+In connexion with these plays, one of the contemplations most
+interesting to us is, the contrast between them and the places in which
+they were occasionally represented. For though the scaffolds on which
+they were shown were usually erected in market-places or churchyards,
+sometimes they rose in the great churches, and the plays were
+represented with the aid of ecclesiastics. Here, then, we have the rude
+beginnings of the dramatic art, in which the devil is the unfortunate
+buffoon, giving occasion to the most exuberant laughter of the
+people--here is this rude boyhood, if we may so say, of the one art,
+roofed in with the perfection of another, of architecture; a perfection
+which now we can only imitate at our best: below, the clumsy contrivance
+and the vulgar jest; above, the solemn heaven of uplifted arches, their
+mysterious glooms ringing with the delight of the multitude: the play of
+children enclosed in the heart of prayer aspiring in stone. But it was
+not by any means all laughter; and so much, nearer than architecture is
+the drama to the ordinary human heart, that we cannot help thinking
+these grotesque representations did far more to arouse the inward life
+and conscience of the people than all the glory into which the
+out-working spirit of the monks had compelled the stubborn stone to
+bourgeon and blossom.
+
+But although, no doubt, there was some kind of growth going on in the
+drama even during the dreary fifteenth century, we must not suppose that
+it was by any regular and steady progression that it arrived at the
+grandeur of the Elizabethan perfection. It was rather as if a dry,
+knotty, uncouth, but vigorous plant suddenly opened out its inward life
+in a flower of surpassing splendour and loveliness. When the
+representation of real historical persons in the miracle-plays gave way
+before the introduction of unreal allegorical personages, and the
+miracle-play was almost driven from the stage by the “play of morals” as
+it was called, there was certainly no great advance made in dramatic
+representation. The chief advantage gained was room for more variety;
+while in some important respects these plays fell off from the merits of
+the preceding kind. Indeed, any attempt to teach morals allegorically
+must lack that vivifying fire of faith working in the poorest
+representations of a history which the people heartily believed and
+loved. Nor when we come to examine the favourite amusement of later
+royalty, do we find that the interludes brought forward in the pauses of
+the banquets of Henry VIII. have a claim to any refinement upon those
+old miracle-plays. They have gained in facility and wit; they have lost
+in poetry. They have lost pathos too, and have gathered grossness. In
+the comedies which soon appear, there is far more of fun than of art;
+and although the historical play had existed for some time, and the
+streams of learning from the inns of court had flowed in to swell that
+of the drama, it is not before the appearance of Shakspere that we find
+any _whole_ of artistic or poetic value. And this brings us to another
+branch of the subject, of which it seems to us that the importance has
+never been duly acknowledged. We refer to the use, if not invention, of
+_blank verse_ in England, and its application to the purposes of the
+drama. It seems to us that in any contemplation of Shakspere and his
+times, the consideration of these points ought not to be omitted.
+
+We have in the present day one grand master of blank verse, the Poet
+Laureate. But where would he have been if Milton had not gone before
+him; or if the verse amidst which he works like an informing spirit had
+not existed at all? No doubt he might have invented it himself; but how
+different would the result have been from the verse which he will now
+leave behind him to lie side by side for comparison with that of the
+master of the epic! All thanks then to Henry Howard, Earl of Surrey!
+who, if, dying on the scaffold at the early age of thirty, he has left
+no poetry in itself of much value, yet so wrote that he refined the
+poetic usages of the language, and, above all, was the first who ever
+made blank verse in English. He used it in translating the second and
+fourth books of Virgil’s “Aeneid.” This translation he probably wrote
+not long before his execution, which took place in 1547, seventeen years
+before the birth of Shakspere. There are passages of excellence in the
+work, and very rarely does a verse quite fail. But, as might be
+expected, it is somewhat stiff, and, as it were, stunted in sound;
+partly from the fact that the lines are too much divided, where
+_distinction_ would have been sufficient. It would have been strange,
+indeed, if he had at once made a free use of a rhythm which every
+boy-poet now thinks he can do what he pleases with, but of which only a
+few ever learn the real scope and capabilities. Besides, the difficulty
+was increased by the fact that the nearest approach to it in measure was
+the heroic couplet, so well known in our language, although scarce one
+who has used it has come up to the variousness of its modelling in the
+hands of Chaucer, with whose writings Surrey was of course familiar. But
+various as is its melody in Chaucer, the fact of there being always an
+anticipation of the perfecting of a rhyme at the end of the couplet
+would make one accustomed to heroic verse ready to introduce a
+rhythmical fall and kind of close at the end of every blank verse in
+trying to write that measure for the first time. Still, as we say, there
+is good verse in Surrey’s translation. Take the following lines for a
+specimen, in which the fault just mentioned is scarcely perceptible.
+Mercury is the subject of them.
+
+ “His golden wings he knits, which him transport,
+ With a light wind above the earth and seas;
+ And then with him his wand he took, whereby
+ He calls from hell pale ghosts.
+ * * * * *
+ “By power whereof he drives the winds away,
+ And passeth eke amid the troubled clouds,
+ Till in his flight he ‘gan descry the top
+ And the steep flanks of rocky Atlas’ hill
+ That with his crown sustains the welkin up;
+ Whose head, forgrown with pine, circled alway
+ With misty clouds, is beaten with wind and storm;
+ His shoulders spread with snow; and from his chin
+ The springs descend; his beard frozen with ice.
+ Here Mercury with equal shining wings
+ First touched.”
+
+In all comparative criticism justice demands that he who began any mode
+should not be compared with those who follow only on the ground of
+absolute merit in the productions themselves; for while he may be
+inferior in regard to quality, he stands on a height, as the inventor,
+to which they, as imitators, can never ascend, although they may climb
+other and loftier heights, through the example he has set them. It is
+doubtful, however, whether Surrey himself invented this verse, or only
+followed the lead of some poet of Italy or Spain; in both which
+countries it is said that blank verse had been used before Surrey wrote
+English in that measure.
+
+Here then we have the low beginnings of blank verse. It was nearly a
+hundred and twenty years before Milton took it up, and, while it served
+him well, glorified it; nor are we aware of any poem of worth written in
+that measure between. Here, of course, we speak of the epic form of the
+verse, which, as being uttered _ore rotundo_, is necessarily of
+considerable difference from the form it assumes in the drama.
+
+Let us now glance for a moment at the forms of composition in use for
+dramatic purposes before blank verse came into favour with play-writers.
+The nature of the verse employed in the miracle-plays will be
+sufficiently seen from the short specimens already given. These plays
+were made up of carefully measured and varied lines, with correct and
+superabundant rhymes, and no marked lack of melody or rhythm. But as far
+as we have made acquaintance with the moral and other rhymed plays which
+followed, there was a great falling off in these respects. They are in
+great measure composed of long, irregular lines, with a kind of
+rhythmical progress rather than rhythm in them. They are exceedingly
+difficult to read musically, at least to one of our day. Here are a few
+verses of the sort, from the dramatic poem, rather than drama, called
+somewhat improperly “The Moral Play of God’s Promises,” by John Bale,
+who died the year before Shakspere was born. It is the first in
+Dodsley’s collection. The verses have some poetic merit. The rhythm will
+be allowed to be difficult at least. The verses are arranged in stanzas,
+of which we give two. In most plays the verses are arranged in rhyming
+couplets only.
+
+ _Pater Coelestis._
+
+ I have with fearcenesse mankynde oft tymes corrected,
+ And agayne, I have allured hym by swete promes.
+ I have sent sore plages, when he hath me neglected,
+ And then by and by, most comfortable swetnes.
+ To wynne hym to grace, bothe mercye and ryghteousnes
+ I have exercysed, yet wyll he not amende.
+ Shall I now lose hym, or shall I him defende?
+
+ In hys most myschefe, most hygh grace will I sende,
+ To overcome hym by favoure, if it may be.
+ With hys abusyons no longar wyll I contende,
+ But now accomplysh my first wyll and decre.
+ My worde beynge flesh, from hens shall set hym fre,
+ Hym teachynge a waye of perfyght ryhteousnesse,
+ That he shall not nede to perysh in hys weaknesse.
+
+To our ears, at least, the older miracle-plays were greatly superior. It
+is interesting to find, however, in this apparently popular mode of
+“building the rhyme”--certainly not the _lofty_ rhyme, for no such
+crumbling foundation could carry any height of superstructure--the
+elements of the most popular rhythm of the present day; a rhythm
+admitting of any number of syllables in the line, from four up to
+twelve, or even more, and demanding only that there shall be not more
+than four accented syllables in the line. A song written with any spirit
+in this measure has, other things _not_ being quite equal, yet almost a
+certainty of becoming more popular than one written in any other
+measure. Most of Barry Cornwall’s and Mrs. Heman’s songs are written in
+it. Scott’s “Lay of the Last Minstrel,” Coleridge’s “Christabel,”
+ Byron’s “Siege of Corinth,” Shelley’s “Sensitive Plant,” are examples of
+the rhythm. Spenser is the first who has made good use of it. One of the
+months in the “Shepherd’s Calendar” is composed in it. We quote a few
+lines from this poem, to show at once the kind we mean:--
+
+ “No marvel, Thenot, if thou can bear
+ Cheerfully the winter’s wrathful cheer;
+ For age and winter accord full nigh;
+ This chill, that cold; this crooked, that wry;
+ And as the lowering weather looks down,
+ So seemest thou like Good Friday to frown:
+ But my flowering youth is foe to frost;
+ My ship unwont in storms to be tost.”
+
+We can trace it slightly in Sir Thomas Wyatt, and we think in others who
+preceded Spenser. There is no sign of it in Chaucer. But we judge it to
+be the essential rhythm of Anglo-Saxon poetry, which will quite
+harmonize with, if it cannot explain, the fact of its being the most
+popular measure still. Shakspere makes a little use of it in one, if not
+in more, of his plays, though it there partakes of the irregular
+character of that of the older plays which he is imitating. But we
+suspect the clowns of the authorship of some of the rhymes, “speaking
+more than was set down for them,” evidently no uncommon offence.
+
+Prose was likewise in use for the drama at an early period.
+
+But we must now regard the application of blank verse to the use of the
+drama. And in this part of our subject we owe most to the investigations
+of Mr. Collier, than whom no one has done more to merit our gratitude
+for such aids. It is universally acknowledged that “Ferrex and Porrex”
+ was the first drama in blank verse. But it was never represented on the
+public stage. It was the joint production of Thomas Sackville,
+afterwards Lord Buckhurst and Earl of Dorset, and Thomas Norton, both
+gentlemen of the Inner Temple, by the members of which it was played
+before the Queen at Whitehall in 1561, three years before Shakspere was
+born. As to its merits, the impression left by it upon our minds is such
+that, although the verse is decent, and in some respects irreproachable,
+we think the time spent in reading it must be all but lost to any but
+those who must verify to themselves their literary profession; a
+profession which, like all other professions, involves a good deal of
+disagreeable duty. We spare our readers all quotation, there being no
+occasion to show what blank verse of the commonest description is. But
+we beg to be allowed to state that this drama by no means represents the
+poetic powers of Thomas Sackville. For although we cannot agree with
+Hallam’s general criticism, either for or against Sackville, and
+although we admire Spenser, we hope, as much as that writer could have
+admired him, we yet venture to say that not only may some of Sackville’s
+personifications “fairly be compared with some of the most poetical
+passages in Spenser,” but that there is in this kind in Sackville a
+strength and simplicity of representation which surpasses that of
+Spenser in passages in which the latter probably imitated the former. We
+refer to the allegorical personages in Sackville’s “Induction to the
+Mirrour of Magistrates,” and in Spenser’s description of the “House of
+Pride.”
+
+Mr. Collier judges that the play in blank verse first represented on the
+public stage was the “Tamburlaine” of Christopher Marlowe, and that it
+was acted before 1587, at which date Shakspere would be twenty-three.
+This was followed by other and better plays by the same author. Although
+we cannot say much for the dramatic art of Marlowe, he has far surpassed
+every one that went before him in dramatic _poetry_. The passages that
+might worthily be quoted from Marlowe’s writings for the sake of their
+poetry are innumerable, notwithstanding that there are many others which
+occupy a border land between poetry and bombast, and are such that it is
+to us impossible to say to which class they rather belong. Of course it
+is easy for a critic to gain the credit of common-sense at the same time
+that he saves himself the trouble of doing what he too frequently shows
+himself incapable of doing to any good purpose--we mean _thinking_--by
+classing all such passages together as bombastical nonsense; but even in
+the matter of poetry and bombast, a wise reader will recognize that
+extremes so entirely meet, without being in the least identical, that
+they are capable of a sort of chemico-literary admixture, if not of
+combination. Goethe himself need not have been ashamed to have written
+one or two of the scenes in Marlowe’s “Faust;” not that we mean to imply
+that they in the least resemble Goethe’s handiwork. His verse is, for
+dramatic purposes, far inferior to Shakspere’s; but it was a great
+matter for Shakspere that Marlowe preceded him, and helped to prepare to
+his hand the tools and fashions he needed. The provision of blank verse
+for Shakspere’s use seems to us worthy of being called providential,
+even in a system in which we cannot believe that there is any chance.
+For as the stage itself is elevated a few feet above the ordinary level,
+because it is the scene of a _representation_, just so the speech of the
+drama, dealing not with unreal but with ideal persons, the fool being a
+worthy fool, and the villain a worthy villain, needs to be elevated some
+tones above that of ordinary life, which is generally flavoured with so
+much of the _commonplace_. Now the commonplace has no place at all in
+the drama of Shakspere, which fact at once elevates it above the tone of
+ordinary life. And so the mode of the speech must be elevated as well;
+therefore from prose into blank verse. If we go beyond this, we cease to
+be natural for the stage as well as life; and the result is that kind of
+composition well enough known in Shakspere’s time, which he ridicules in
+the recitations of the player in “Hamlet,” about _Priam_ and _Hecuba_.
+We could show the very passages of the play-writer Nash which Shakspere
+imitates in these. To use another figure, Shakspere, in the same play,
+instructs the players “to hold, as ‘twere, the mirror up to nature.” Now
+every one must have felt that somehow there is a difference between the
+appearance of any object or group of objects immediately presented to
+the eye, and the appearance of the same object or objects in a mirror.
+Nature herself is not the same in the mirror held up to her. Everything
+changes sides in this representation; and the room which is an ordinary,
+well-known, homely room, gains something of the strange and poetic when
+regarded in the mirror over the fire. Now for this representation, for
+this mirror-reflection on the stage, blank verse is just the suitable
+glass to receive the silvering of the genius-mind behind it.
+
+But if Shakspere had had to sit down and make his tools first, and then
+quarry his stone and fell his timber for the building of his house,
+instead of finding everything ready to his hand for dressing his stone
+already hewn, for sawing and carving the timber already in logs and
+planks beside him, no doubt his house would have been built; but can we
+with any reason suppose that it would have proved such “a lordly
+pleasure-house”? Not even Shakspere could do without his poor little
+brothers who preceded him, and, like the goblins and gnomes of the
+drama, got everything out of the bowels of the dark earth, ready for the
+master, whom it would have been a shame to see working in the gloom and
+the dust instead of in the open eye of the day. Nor is anything so
+helpful to the true development of power as the possibility of free
+action for as much of the power as is already operative. This room for
+free action was provided by blank verse.
+
+Yet when Shakspere came first upon the scene of dramatic labour, he had
+to serve his private apprenticeship, to which the apprenticeship of the
+age in the drama, had led up. He had to act first of all. Driven to
+London and the drama by an irresistible impulse, when the choice of some
+profession was necessary to make him independent of his father, seeing
+he was himself, though very young, a married man, the first form in
+which the impulse to the drama would naturally show itself in him would
+be the desire to act; for the outside relations would first operate. As
+to the degree of merit he possessed as an actor we have but scanty means
+of judging; for afterwards, in his own plays, he never took the best
+characters, having written them for his friend Richard Burbage. Possibly
+the dramatic impulse was sufficiently appeased by the writing of the
+play, and he desired no further satisfaction from personal
+representation; although the amount of study spent upon the higher
+department of the art might have been more than sufficient to render him
+unrivalled as well in the presentation of his own conceptions. But the
+dramatic spring, having once broken the upper surface, would scoop out a
+deeper and deeper well for itself to play in, and the actor would soon
+begin to work upon the parts he had himself to study for presentation.
+It being found that he greatly bettered his own parts, those of others
+would be submitted to him, and at length whole plays committed to his
+revision, of which kind there may be several in the collection of his
+works. If the feather-end of his pen is just traceable in “Titus
+Andronicus,” the point of it is much more evident, and to as good
+purpose as Beaumont or Fletcher could have used his to, at the best, in
+“Pericles, Prince of Tyre.” Nor would it be long before he would submit
+one of his own plays for approbation; and then the whole of his dramatic
+career lies open before him, with every possible advantage for
+perfecting the work, for the undertaking of which he was better
+qualified by nature than probably any other man whosoever; for he knew
+everything about acting, practically--about the play-house and its
+capabilities, about stage necessities, about the personal endowments and
+individual qualifications of each of the company--so that, when he was
+writing a play, he could distribute the parts before they even appeared
+upon paper, and write for each actor with the very living form of the
+ideal person present “in his mind’s eye,” and often to his bodily sight;
+so that the actual came in aid of the ideal, as it always does if the
+ideal be genuine, and the loftiest conceptions proved the truest to
+visible nature.
+
+This close relation of Shakspere to the actual leads us to a general and
+remarkable fact, which again will lead us back to Shakspere. All the
+great writers of Queen Elizabeth’s time were men of affairs; they were
+not literary men merely, in the general acceptation of the word at
+present. Hooker was a hard-working, sheep-keeping, cradle-rocking pastor
+of a country parish. Bacon’s legal duties were innumerable before he
+became Lord Keeper and Lord Chancellor. Raleigh was soldier, sailor,
+adventurer, courtier, politician, discoverer: indeed, it is to his
+imprisonment that we are indebted for much the most ambitious of his
+literary undertakings, “The History of the World,” a work which for
+simple majesty of subject and style is hardly to be surpassed in prose.
+Sidney, at the age of three-and-twenty, received the highest praise for
+the management of a secret embassy to the Emperor of Germany; took the
+deepest and most active interest in the political affairs of his
+country; would have sailed with Sir Francis Drake for South American
+discovery; and might probably have been king of poor Poland, if the
+queen had not been too selfish or wise to spare him. The whole of his
+literary productions was the work of his spare hours. Spenser himself,
+who was, except Shakspere, the most purely a literary man of them all,
+was at one time Secretary to the Lord Deputy of Ireland, and, later in
+life, Sheriff of Cork. Nor is the remark true only of the writers of
+Elizabeth’s period, or of the country of England.
+
+It seems to us one of the greatest advantages that can befall a poet, to
+be drawn out of his study, and still more out of the chamber of imagery
+in his own thoughts, to behold and speculate upon the embodiment of
+Divine thoughts and purposes in men and their affairs around him. Now
+Shakspere had no public appointment, but he reaped all the advantage
+which such could have given him, and more, from the perfection of his
+dramatic position. It was not with making plays alone that he had to do;
+but, himself an actor, himself in a great measure the owner of more than
+one theatre, with a little realm far more difficult to rule than many a
+kingdom--a company, namely, of actors--although possibly less difficult
+from the fact that they were only men and boys; with the pecuniary
+affairs of the management likewise under his supervision--he must have
+found, in the relations and necessities of his own profession, not
+merely enough of the actual to keep him real in his representations, but
+almost sufficient opportunity for his one great study, that of mankind,
+independently of social and friendly relations, which in his case were
+of the widest and deepest.
+
+But Shakspere had not business relations merely: he was a man of
+business. There is a common blunder manifested, both in theory on the
+one side, and in practice on the other, which the life of Shakspere sets
+full in the light. The theory is, that genius is a sort of abnormal
+development of the imagination, to the detriment and loss of the
+practical powers, and that a genius is therefore a kind of incapable,
+incompetent being, as far as worldly matters are concerned. The most
+complete refutation of this notion lies in the fact that the greatest
+genius the world has known was a successful man in common affairs. While
+his genius grew in strength, fervour, and executive power, his worldly
+condition rose as well; he became a man of importance in the eyes of his
+townspeople, by whom he would not have been honoured if he had not made
+money; and he purchased landed property in his native place with the
+results of his management of his theatres.
+
+The practical blunder lies in the notion cherished occasionally by young
+people ambitious of literary distinction, that in the pursuit of such
+things they must be content with the poverty to which the world dooms
+its greatest men; accepting their very poverty as an additional proof of
+their own genius. If this means that the poet is not to make money his
+object, it means well: no man should. But if it means either that the
+world is unkind, or that the poet is not to “gather up the fragments,
+that nothing be lost,” it means ill. Shakspere did not make haste to be
+rich. He neither blamed, courted, nor neglected the world: he was
+friendly with it. He _could_ not have pinched and scraped; but neither
+did he waste or neglect his worldly substance, which is God’s gift too.
+Many immense fortunes have been made, not by absolute dishonesty, but in
+ways to which a man of genius ought to be yet more ashamed than another
+to condescend; but it does not therefore follow that if a man of genius
+will do honest work he will not make a fair livelihood by it, which for
+all good results of intellect and heart is better than a great fortune.
+But then Shakspere began with doing what he could. He did not consent to
+starve until the world should recognize his genius, or grumble against
+the blindness of the nation in not seeing what it was impossible it
+should see before it was fairly set forth. He began at once to supply
+something which the world wanted; for it wants many an honest thing. He
+went on the stage and acted, and so gained power to reveal the genius
+which he possessed; and the world, in its possible measure, was not slow
+to recognize it. Many a young fellow who has entered life with the one
+ambition of being a poet, has failed because he did not perceive that it
+is better to be a man than to be a poet, that it is his first duty to
+get an honest living by doing some honest work that he can do, and for
+which there is a demand, although it may not be the most pleasant
+employment. Time would have shown whether he was meant to be a poet or
+not; and if he had been no poet he would have been no beggar; and if he
+had turned out a poet, it would have been partly in virtue of that
+experience of life and truth, gained in his case in the struggle for
+bread, without which, gained somehow, a man may be a sweet dreamer, but
+can be no strong maker, no poet. In a word, here is _the_ Englishman of
+genius, beginning life with nothing, and dying, not rich, but easy and
+honoured; and this by doing what no one else could do, writing dramas in
+which the outward grandeur or beauty is but an exponent of the inward
+worth; hiding pearls for the wise even within the jewelled play of the
+variegated bubbles of fancy, which he blew while he wrought, for the
+innocent delight of his thoughtless brothers and sisters. Wherever the
+rainbow of Shakspere’s genius stands, there lies, indeed, at the foot of
+its glorious arch, a golden key, which will open the secret doors of
+truth, and admit the humble seeker into the presence of Wisdom, who,
+having cried in the streets in vain, sits at home and waits for him who
+will come to find her. And Shakspere had cakes and ale, although he was
+virtuous.
+
+But what do we know about the character of Shakspere? How can we tell
+the inner life of a man who has uttered himself in dramas, in which of
+course it is impossible that he should ever speak in his own person? No
+doubt he may speak his own sentiments through the mouths of many of his
+persons; but how are we to know in what cases he does so?--At least we
+may assert, as a self-evident negative, that a passage treating of a
+wide question put into the mouth of a person despised and rebuked by the
+best characters in the play, is not likely to contain any cautiously
+formed and cherished opinion of the dramatist. At first sight this may
+seem almost a truism; but we have only to remind our readers that one of
+the passages oftenest quoted with admiration, and indeed separately
+printed and illuminated, is “The Seven Ages of Man,” a passage full of
+inhuman contempt for humanity and unbelief in its destiny, in which not
+one of the seven ages is allowed to pass over its poor sad stage without
+a sneer; and that this passage is given by Shakspere to the _blasé_
+sensualist _Jaques_ in “As You Like it,” a man who, the good and wise
+_Duke_ says, has been as vile as it is possible for man to be, so vile
+that it would be an additional sin in him to rebuke sin; a man who never
+was capable of seeing what is good in any man, and hates men’s vices
+_because_ he hates themselves, seeing in them only the reflex of his own
+disgust. Shakspere knew better than to say that all the world is a
+stage, and all the men and women merely players. He had been a player
+himself, but only on the stage: _Jaques_ had been a player where he
+ought to have been a true man. The whole of his account of human life is
+contradicted and exposed at once by the entrance, the very moment when
+he has finished his wicked burlesque, of _Orlando_, the young master,
+carrying _Adam_, the old servant, upon his back. The song that
+immediately follows, sings true: “Most friendship is feigning, most
+loving mere folly.” But between the _all_ of _Jaques_ and the _most_ of
+the song, there is just the difference between earth and hell.--Of
+course, both from a literary and dramatic point of view, “The Seven
+Ages” is perfect.
+
+Now let us make one positive statement to balance the other: that
+wherever we find, in the mouth of a noble character, not stock
+sentiments of stage virtue, but appreciation of a truth which it needs
+deep thought and experience united with love of truth, to discover or
+verify for one’s self, especially if the truth be of a sort which most
+men will fail not merely to recognize as a truth, but to understand at
+all, because the understanding of it depends on the foregoing spiritual
+perception--then we think we may receive the passage as an expression of
+the inner soul of the writer. He must have seen it before he could have
+said it; and to see such a truth is to love it; or rather, love of truth
+in the general must have preceded and enabled to the discovery of it.
+Such a passage is the speech of the _Duke_, opening the second act of
+the play just referred to, “As You Like it.” The lesson it contains is,
+that the well-being of a man cannot be secured except he partakes of the
+ills of life, “the penalty of Adam.” And it seems to us strange that the
+excellent editors of the Cambridge edition, now in the course of
+publication--a great boon to all students of Shakspere--should not have
+perceived that the original reading, that of the folios, is the right
+one,--
+
+ “Here feel we _not_ the penalty of Adam?”
+
+which, with the point of interrogation supplied, furnishes the true
+meaning of the whole passage; namely, that the penalty of Adam is just
+what makes the “wood more free from peril than the envious court,”
+ teaching each “not to think of himself more highly than he ought to
+think.”
+
+But Shakspere, although everywhere felt, is nowhere seen in his plays.
+He is too true an artist to show his own face from behind the play of
+life with which he fills his stage. What we can find of him there we
+must find by regarding the whole, and allowing the spiritual essence of
+the whole to find its way to our brain, and thence to our heart. The
+student of Shakspere becomes imbued with the idea of his character. It
+exhales from his writings. And when we have found the main drift of any
+play--the grand rounding of the whole--then by that we may interpret
+individual passages. It is alone in their relation to the whole that we
+can do them full justice, and in their relation to the whole that we
+discover the mind of the master.
+
+But we have another source of more direct enlightenment as to Shakspere
+himself. We only say more _direct_, not more certain or extended
+enlightenment. We have one collection of poems in which he speaks in his
+own person and of himself. Of course we refer to his sonnets. Though
+these occupy, with their presentation of himself, such a small relative
+space, they yet admirably round and complete, to our eyes, the circle of
+his individuality. In them and the plays the common saying--one of the
+truest--that extremes meet, is verified. No man is complete in whom
+there are no extremes, or in whom those extremes do not meet. Now the
+very individuality of Shakspere, judged by his dramas alone, has been
+declared nonexistent; while in the sonnets he manifests some of the
+deepest phases of a healthy self-consciousness. We do not intend to
+enter into the still unsettled question as to whether these sonnets were
+addressed to a man or a woman. We have scarcely a doubt left on the
+question ourselves, as will be seen from the argument we found on our
+conviction. We cannot say we feel much interest in the other question,
+_If a man, what man?_ A few placed at the end, arranged as they have
+come down to us, are beyond doubt addressed to a woman. But the
+difference in tone between these and the others we think very
+remarkable. Possibly at the time they were written--most of them early
+in his life, as it appears to us, although they were not published till
+the year 1609, when he was forty-five years of age, Meres referring to
+them in the year 1598, eleven years before, as known “among his private
+friends”--he had not known such women as he knew afterwards, and hence
+the true devotion of his soul is given to a friend of his own sex.
+Gervinus, whose lectures on Shakspere, profound and lofty to a degree
+unattempted by any other interpreter, we are glad to find have been done
+into a suitable English translation, under the superintendence of the
+author himself--Gervinus says somewhere in them that, as Shakspere lived
+and wrote, his ideal of womanhood grew nobler and purer. Certainly the
+woman to whom the last few of these sonnets are addressed was neither
+noble nor pure. We think, in this matter at least, they record one of
+his early experiences.
+
+We shall briefly indicate what we find in these sonnets about the man
+himself, and shall commence with what is least pleasing and of least
+value.
+
+We must confess, then, that, probably soon after he came first to
+London, he, then a married man, had an intrigue with a married woman, of
+which there are indications that he was afterwards deeply ashamed. One
+little incident seems curiously traceable: that he had given her a set
+of tablets which his friend had given him; and the sonnet in which he
+excuses himself to his friend for having done so, seems to us the only
+piece of special pleading, and therefore ungenuine expression, in the
+whole. This friend, to whom the rest of the sonnets are addressed, made
+the acquaintance of this woman, and both were false to Shakspere. Even
+Shakspere could not keep the love of a worthless woman. So much the
+better for him; but it is a sad story at best. Yet even in this
+environment of evil we see the nobility of the man, and his real self.
+The sonnets in which he mourns his friend’s falsehood, forgives him, and
+even finds excuses for him, that he may not lose his own love of him,
+are, to our minds, amongst the most beautiful, as they are the most
+profound. Of these are the 33rd and 34th. Nor does he stop here, but
+proceeds in the following, the 35th, to comfort his friend in his grief
+for his offence, even accusing himself of offence in having made more
+excuse for his fault than the fault needed! But to leave this part of
+his history, which, as far as we know, stands alone, and yet cannot with
+truth be passed by, any more than the story of the crime of David,
+though in this case there is no comparison to be made between the two
+further than the primary fact, let us look at the one reality which,
+from a spiritual point of view, independently of the literary beauties
+of these poems, causes them to stand all but alone in literature. We
+mean what has been unavoidably touched upon already, the devotion of his
+friendship. We have said this makes the poems stand _all but alone_; for
+we ought to be better able to understand these poems of Shakspere, from
+the fact that in our day has appeared the only other poem which is like
+these, and which casts back a light upon them.
+
+ “Yet turn thee to the doubtful shore,
+ Where thy first form was made a man:
+ I loved thee, spirit, and love; nor can
+ The soul of Shakspeare love thee more.”
+
+So sings the Poet of our day, in the loftiest of his poems--“In
+Memoriam”--addressing the spirit of his vanished friend. In the midst of
+his song arises the thought of _the Poet_ of all time, who loved his
+friend too, and would have lost him in a way far worse than death, had
+not his love been too strong even for that death, alone ghastly, which
+threatened to cut the golden chain that bound them, and part them by the
+gulf impassable. Tennyson’s friend had never wronged him; and to the
+divineness of Shakspere’s love is added that of forgiveness. Such love
+as this between man and man is rare, and therefore to the mind which is
+in itself no way rare, incredible, because unintelligible. But though
+all the commonest things are very divine, yet divine individuality is
+and will be a rare thing at any given period on the earth. Faith, in its
+ideal sense, will always be hard to find on the earth. But perhaps this
+kind of affection between man and man may, as Coleridge indicates in his
+“Table Talk,” have been more common in the reigns of Elizabeth and James
+than it is now. There is a certain dread of the demonstrative in the
+present day, which may, perhaps, be carried into regions where it is out
+of place, and hinder the development of a devotion which must be real,
+and grand, and divine, if one man such as Shakspere or Tennyson has ever
+felt it. If one has felt it, humanity may claim it. And surely He who is
+_the_ Son of man has verified the claim. We believe there are indeed few
+of us who know what _to love our neighbour as ourselves_ means; but when
+we find a man here and there in the course of centuries who does, we may
+take this man as the prophet of coming good for his race, his prophecy
+being himself.
+
+But next to the interest of knowing that a man could love so well, comes
+the association of this fact with his art. He who could look abroad upon
+men, and understand them all--who stood, as it were, in the wide-open
+gates of his palace, and admitted with welcome every one who came in
+sight--had in the inner places of that palace one chamber in which he
+met his friend, and in which his whole soul went forth to understand the
+soul of his friend. The man to whom nothing in humanity was common or
+unclean; in whom the most remarkable of his artistic morals is
+fair-play; who fills our hearts with a saintly love for _Cordelia_ and
+an admiration of _Sir John Falstaff_ the lost gentleman, mournful even
+in the height of our laughter; who could make an _Autolycus_ and a
+_Macbeth_ both human, and an _Ariel_ and a _Puck_ neither human--this is
+the man who loved best. And we believe that this depth of capacity for
+loving lay at the root of all his knowledge of men and women, and all
+his dramatic pre-eminence. The heart is more intelligent than the
+intellect. Well says the poet Matthew Raydon, who has hardly left
+anything behind him but the lamentation over Sir Philip Sidney in which
+the lines occur,--
+
+ “He that hath love and judgment too
+ Sees more than any other do.”
+
+Simply, we believe that this, not this only, but this more than any
+other endowment, made Shakspere the artist he was, in providing him all
+the material of humanity to work upon, and keeping him to the true
+spirit of its use. Love looking forth upon strife, understood it all.
+Love is the true revealer of secrets, because it makes one with the
+object regarded.
+
+“But,” say some impatient readers, “when shall we have done with
+Shakspere? There is no end to this writing about him.” It will be a bad
+day for England when we have done with Shakspere; for that will imply,
+along with the loss of him, that we are no longer capable of
+understanding him. Should that time ever come, Heaven grant the
+generation which does not understand him at least the grace to keep its
+pens off him, which will by no means follow as a necessary consequence
+of the non-intelligence! But the writing about Shakspere which has been
+hitherto so plentiful must do good just in proportion as it directs
+attention to him and gives aid to the understanding of him. And while
+the utterances of to-day pass away, the children of to-morrow are born,
+and require a new utterance for their fresh need from those who, having
+gone before, have already tasted life and Shakspere, and can give some
+little help to further progress than their own, by telling the following
+generation what they have found. Suppose that this cry had been raised
+last century, after good Dr. Johnson had ceased to produce to the eyes
+of men the facts about his own incapacity which he presumed to be
+criticisms of Shakspere, where would our aids be now to the
+understanding of the dramatist? Our own conviction is, when we reflect
+with how much labour we have deepened our knowledge of him, and thereby
+found in him _the best_--for the best lies not on the surface for the
+careless reader--our own conviction is, that not half has been done that
+ought to be done to help young people at least to understand the master
+mind of their country. Few among them can ever give the attention or
+work to it that we have given; but much may be done with judicious aid.
+And a profound knowledge of their greatest writer would do more than
+almost anything else to bind together as Englishmen, in a true and
+unselfish way, the hearts of the coming generations; for his works are
+our country in a convex magic mirror.
+
+When a man finds that every time he reads a book not only does some
+obscurity melt away, but deeper depths, which he had not before seen,
+dawn upon him, he is not likely to think that the time for ceasing to
+write about the book has come. And certainly in Shakspere, as in all
+true artistic work, as in nature herself, the depths are not to be
+revealed utterly; while every new generation needs a new aid towards
+discovering itself and its own thoughts in these forms of the past. And
+of all that read about Shakspere there are few whom more than one or two
+utterances have reached. The speech or the writing must go forth to find
+the soil for the growth of its kernel of truth. We shall, therefore,
+with the full consciousness that perhaps more has been already said and
+written about Shakspere than about any other writer, yet venture to add
+to the mass by a few general remarks.
+
+And first we would remind our readers of the marvel of the combination
+in Shakspere of such a high degree of two faculties, one of which is
+generally altogether inferior to the other: the faculties of reception
+and production. Rarely do we find that great receptive power, brought
+into operation either by reading or by observation, is combined with
+originality of thought. Some hungers are quite satisfied by taking in
+what others have thought and felt and done. By the assimilation of this
+food many minds grow and prosper; but other minds feed far more upon
+what rises from their own depths; in the answers they are compelled to
+provide to the questions that come unsought; in the theories they cannot
+help constructing for the inclusion in one whole of the various facts
+around them, which seem at first sight to strive with each other like
+the atoms of a chaos; in the examination of those impulses of hidden
+origin which at one time indicate a height of being far above the
+thinker’s present condition, at another a gulf of evil into which he may
+possibly fall. But in Shakspere the two powers of beholding and
+originating meet like the rejoining halves of a sphere. A man who thinks
+his own thoughts much, will often walk through London streets and see
+nothing. In the man who observes only, every passing object mirrors
+itself in its prominent peculiarities, having a kind of harmony with all
+the rest, but arouses no magician from the inner chamber to charm and
+chain its image to his purpose. In Shakspere, on the contrary, every
+outer form of humanity and nature spoke to that ever-moving,
+self-vindicating--we had almost said, and in a sense it would be true,
+self-generating--humanity within him. The sound of any action without
+him, struck in him just the chord which, in motion in him, would have
+produced a similar action. When anything was done, he felt as if he were
+doing it--perception and origination conjoining in one consciousness.
+
+But to this gift was united the gift of utterance, or representation.
+Many a man both receives and generates who, somehow, cannot represent.
+Nothing is more disappointing sometimes than our first experience of the
+artistic attempts of a man who has roused our expectations by a social
+display of familiarity with, and command over, the subjects of
+conversation. Have we not sometimes found that when such a one sought to
+give vital or artistic form to these thoughts, so that they might not be
+born and die in the same moment upon his lips, but might _exist_, a
+poor, weak, faded _simulacrum_ alone was the result? Now Shakspere was a
+great talker, who enraptured the listeners, and was himself so rapt in
+his speech that he could scarcely come to a close; but when he was alone
+with his art, then and then only did he rise to the height of his great
+argument, and all the talk was but as the fallen mortar and stony chips
+lying about the walls of the great temple of his drama.
+
+But, along with all this wealth of artistic speech, an artistic virtue
+of an opposite nature becomes remarkable: his reticence. How often might
+he not say fine things, particularly poetic things, when he does not,
+because it would not suit the character or the time! How many delicate
+points are there not in his plays which we only discover after many
+readings, because he will not put a single tone of success into the flow
+of natural utterance, to draw our attention to the triumph of the
+author, and jar with the all-important reality of his production!
+Wherever an author obtrudes his own self-importance, an unreality is the
+consequence, of a nature similar to that which we feel in the old moral
+plays, when historical and allegorical personages, such as _Julius
+Caesar_ and _Charity_, for instance, are introduced at the same time on
+the same stage, acting in the same story. Shakspere never points to any
+stroke of his own wit or art. We may find it or not: there it is, and no
+matter if no one see it!
+
+Much has been disputed about the degree of consciousness of his own art
+possessed by Shakspere: whether he did it by a grand yet blind impulse,
+or whether he knew what he wanted to do, and knowingly used the means to
+arrive at that end. Now we cannot here enter upon the question; but we
+would recommend any of our readers who are interested in it not to
+attempt to make up their minds upon it before considering a passage in
+another of his poems, which may throw some light on the subject for
+them. It is the description of a painting, contained in “The Rape of
+Lucrece,” towards the end of the poem. Its very minuteness involves the
+expression of principles, and reveals that, in relation to an art not
+his own, he could hold principles of execution, and indicate perfection
+of finish, which, to say the least, must proceed from a general capacity
+for art, and therefore might find an equally conscious operation in his
+own peculiar province of it. For our own part, we think that his results
+are a perfect combination of the results of consciousness and
+unconsciousness; consciousness where the arrangements of the play,
+outside the region of inspiration, required the care of the wakeful
+intellect; unconsciousness where the subject itself bore him aloft on
+the wings of its own creative delight.
+
+There is another manifestation of his power which will astonish those
+who consider it. It is this: that, while he was able to go down to the
+simple and grand realities of human nature, which are all tragic; and
+while, therefore, he must rejoice most in such contemplations of human
+nature as find fit outlet in a “Hamlet,” a “Lear,” a “Timon,” or an
+“Othello,” the tragedies of Doubt, Ingratitude, and Love, he can yet,
+when he chooses, float on the very surface of human nature, as in
+“Love’s Labour’s Lost,” “The Merry Wives of Windsor,” “The Comedy of
+Errors,” “The Taming of the Shrew;” or he can descend half way as it
+were, and there remain suspended in the characters and feelings of
+ordinary nice people, who, interesting enough to meet in society, have
+neither received that development, nor are placed in those
+circumstances, which admit of the highest and simplest poetic treatment.
+In these he will bring out the ordinary noble or the ordinary vicious.
+Of this nature are most of his comedies, in which he gives an ideal
+representation of common social life, and steers perfectly clear of what
+in such relations and surroundings would be _heroics_. Look how steadily
+he keeps the noble-minded youth _Orlando_ in this middle region; and
+look how the best comes out at last in the wayward and _recalcitrant_
+and _bizarre_, but honest and true natures of _Beatrice_ and _Benedick_;
+and this without any untruth to the nature of comedy, although the
+circumstances border on the tragic. When he wants to give the deeper
+affairs of the heart, he throws the whole at once out of the social
+circle with its multiform restraints. As in “Hamlet” the stage on which
+the whole is acted is really the heart of _Hamlet_, so he makes his
+visible stage as it were, slope off into the misty infinite, with a
+grey, starless heaven overhead, and Hades open beneath his feet. Hence
+young people brought up in the country understand the tragedies far
+sooner than they can comprehend the comedies. It needs acquaintance with
+society and social ways to clear up the latter.
+
+The remarks we have made on “Hamlet” by way of illustration, lead us to
+point out how Shakspere prepares, in some of his plays, a stage suitable
+for all the representation. In “A Midsummer Night’s Dream” the place
+which gives tone to the whole is a midnight wood in the first flush and
+youthful delight of summer. In “As You Like it” it is a daylight wood in
+spring, full of morning freshness, with a cold wind now and then blowing
+through the half-clothed boughs. In “The Tempest” it is a solitary
+island, circled by the mysterious sea-horizon, over which what may come
+who can tell?--a place where the magician may work his will, and have
+all nature at the beck of his superior knowledge.
+
+The only writer who would have had a chance of rivalling Shakspere in
+his own walk, if he had been born in the same period of English history,
+is Chaucer. He has the same gift of individualizing the general, and
+idealizing the portrait. But the best of the dramatic writers of
+Shakspere’s time, in their desire of dramatic individualization, forget
+the modifying multiformity belonging to individual humanity. In their
+anxiety to present a _character_, they take, as it were, a human mould,
+label it with a certain peculiarity, and then fill in speeches and forms
+according to the label. Thus the indications of character, of
+peculiarity, so predominate, the whole is so much of one colour, that
+the result resembles one of those allegorical personifications in which,
+as much as possible, everything human is eliminated except what belongs
+to the peculiarity, the personification. How different is it with
+Shakspere’s representations! He knows that no human being ever was like
+that. He makes his most peculiar characters speak very much like other
+people; and it is only over the whole that their peculiarities manifest
+themselves with indubitable plainness. The one apparent exception is
+_Jaques_, in “As You Like it.” But there we must remember that Shakspere
+is representing a man who so chooses to represent himself. He is a man
+_in his humour_, or his own peculiar and chosen affectation. _Jaques_ is
+the writer of his own part; for with him “all the world’s a stage, and
+all the men and women,” himself first, “merely players.” We have his
+own presentation of himself, not, first of all, as he is, but as he
+chooses to be taken. Of course his real self does come out in it, for no
+man can seem altogether other than he is; and besides, the _Duke_, who
+sees quite through him, rebukes him in the manner already referred to;
+but it is his affectation that gives him the unnatural peculiarity of
+his modes and speeches. He wishes them to be such.
+
+There is, then, for every one of Shakspere’s characters the firm ground
+of humanity, upon which the weeds, as well as the flowers, glorious or
+fantastic, as the case may be, show themselves. His more heroic persons
+are the most profoundly human. Nor are his villains unhuman, although
+inhuman enough. Compared with Marlowe’s Jew, _Shylock_ is a terrible
+_man_ beside a dreary _monster_, and, as far as logic and the _lex
+talionis_ go, has the best of the argument. It is the strength of human
+nature itself that makes crime strong. Wickedness could have no power of
+itself: it lives by the perverted powers of good. And so great is
+Shakspere’s sympathy with _Shylock_ even, in the hard and unjust doom
+that overtakes him, that he dismisses him with some of the spare
+sympathies of the more tender-hearted of his spectators. Nowhere is the
+justice of genius more plain than in Shakspere’s utter freedom from
+party-spirit, even with regard to his own creations. Each character
+shall set itself forth from its own point of view, and only in the
+choice and scope of the whole shall the judgment of the poet be beheld.
+He never allows his opinion to come out to the damaging of the
+individual’s own self-presentation. He knows well that for the worst
+something can be said, and that a feeling of justice and his own right
+will be strong in the mind of a man who is yet swayed by perfect
+selfishness. Therefore the false man is not discoverable in his speech,
+not merely because the villain will talk as like a true man as he may,
+but because seldom is the villainy clear to the villain’s own mind. It
+is impossible for us to determine whether, in their fierce bandying of
+the lie, _Bolingbroke_ or _Norfolk_ spoke the truth. Doubtless each
+believed the other to be the villain that he called him. And Shakspere
+has no desire or need to act the historian in the decision of that
+question. He leaves his reader in full sympathy with the perplexity of
+_Richard_; as puzzled, in fact, as if he had been present at the
+interrupted combat.
+
+If every writer could write up to his own best, we should have far less
+to marvel at in Shakspere. It is in great measure the wealth of
+Shakspere’s suggestions, giving him abundance of the best to choose
+from, that lifts him so high above those who, having felt the
+inspiration of a good idea, are forced to go on writing, constructing,
+carpentering, with dreary handicraft, before the exhausted faculty has
+recovered sufficiently to generate another. And then comes in the
+unerring choice of the best of those suggestions. Yet if any one wishes
+to see what variety of the same kind of thoughts he could produce, let
+him examine the treatment of the same business in different plays; as,
+for instance, the way in which instigation to a crime is managed in
+“Macbeth,” where _Macbeth_ tempts the two murderers to kill _Banquo_; in
+“King John,” when _the King_ tempts _Hubert_ to kill _Arthur_; in “The
+Tempest,” when _Antonio_ tempts _Sebastian_ to kill _Alonzo_; in “As You
+Like it,” when _Oliver_ instigates _Charles_ to kill _Orlando_; and in
+“Hamlet,” where _Claudius_ urges _Laertes_ to the murder of _Hamlet_.
+
+He shows no anxiety about being original. When a man is full of his work
+he forgets himself. In his desire to produce a good play he lays hold
+upon any material that offers itself. He will even take a bad play and
+make a good one of it. One of the most remarkable discoveries to the
+student of Shakspere is the hide-bound poverty of some of the stories,
+which, informed by his life-power; become forms of strength, richness,
+and grace. He does what the _Spirit_ in “Comus” says the music he heard
+might do,--
+
+ “create a soul
+ Under the ribs of death;”
+
+and then death is straightway “clothed upon.” And nowhere is the
+refining operation of his genius more evident than in the purification
+of these stories. Characters and incidents which would have been honey
+and nuts to Beaumont and Fletcher are, notwithstanding their dramatic
+recommendations, entirely remodelled by him. The fair _Ophelia_ is, in
+the old tale, a common woman, and _Hamlet’s_ mistress; while the policy
+of the _Lady of Belmont_, who in the old story occupies the place for
+which he invented the lovely _Portia_, upon which policy the whole story
+turns, is such that it is as unfit to set forth in our pages as it was
+unfit for Shakspere’s purposes of art. His noble art refuses to work
+upon base matter. He sees at once the capabilities of a tale, but he
+will not use it except he may do with it what he pleases.
+
+If we might here offer some assistance to the young student who wants to
+help himself, we would suggest that to follow, in a measure, Plutarch’s
+fashion of comparison, will be the most helpful guide to the
+understanding of the poet. Let the reader take any two characters, and
+putting them side by side, look first for differences, and then for
+resemblances between them, with the causes of each; or let him make a
+wider attempt, and setting two plays one over against the other, compare
+or contrast them, and see what will be the result. Let him, for
+instance, take the two characters _Hamlet_ and _Brutus_, and compare
+their beginnings and endings, the resemblances in their characters, the
+differences in their conduct, the likeness and unlikeness of what was
+required of them, the circumstances in which action was demanded of
+each, the helps or hindrances each had to the working out of the problem
+of his life, the way in which each encounters the supernatural, or any
+other question that may suggest itself in reading either of the plays,
+ending off with the main lesson taught in each; and he will be
+astonished to find, if he has not already discovered it, what a rich
+mine of intellectual and spiritual wealth is laid open to his delighted
+eyes. Perhaps not the least valuable end to be so gained is, that the
+young Englishman, who wants to be delivered from any temptation to think
+himself the centre around which the universe revolves, will be aided in
+his endeavours after honourable humility by looking up to the man who
+towers, like Saul, head and shoulders above his brethren, and seeing
+that he is humble, may learn to leave it to the pismire to be angry, to
+the earwig to be conceited, and to the spider to insist on his own
+importance.
+
+But to return to the main course of our observations. The dramas of
+Shakspere are so natural, that this, the greatest praise that can be
+given them, is the ground of one of the difficulties felt by the young
+student in estimating them. The very simplicity of Shakspere’s art seems
+to throw him out of any known groove of judgment. When he hears one say,
+“_Look at this, and admire_,” he feels inclined to rejoin, “Why, he only
+says in the simplest way what the thing must have been. It is as plain
+as daylight.” Yes, to the reader; and because Shakspere wrote it. But
+there were a thousand wrong ways of doing it: Shakspere took the one
+right way. It is he who has made it plain in art, whatever it was before
+in nature; and most likely the very simplicity of it in nature was
+scarcely observed before he saw it and represented it. And is it not the
+glory of art to attain this simplicity? for simplicity is the end of all
+things--all manners, all morals, all religion. To say that the thing
+could not have been done otherwise, is just to say that you forget the
+art in beholding its object, that you forget the mirror because you see
+nature reflected in the mirror. Any one can see the moon in Lord Rosse’s
+telescope; but who made the reflector? And let the student try to
+express anything in prose or in verse, in painting or in modelling, just
+as it is. No man knows till he has made many attempts, how hard to reach
+is this simplicity of art. And the greater the success, the fewer are
+the signs of the labour expended. Simplicity is art’s perfection.
+
+But so natural are all his plays, and the great tragedies to which we
+would now refer in particular, amongst the rest, that it may appear to
+some, at first sight, that Shakspere could not have constructed them
+after any moral plan, could have had no lesson of his own to teach in
+them, seeing they bear no marks of individual intent, in that they
+depart nowhere from, nature, the construction of the play itself going
+straight on like a history. The directness of his plays springs in part
+from the fact that it is humanity and not circumstance that Shakspere
+respects. Circumstance he uses only for the setting forth of humanity;
+and for the plot of circumstance, so much in favour with Ben Jonson, and
+others of his contemporaries, he cares nothing. As to their looking too
+natural to have any design in them, we are not of those who believe that
+it is unlike nature to have a design and a result. If the proof of a
+high aim is to be what the critics used to call _poetic justice_, a kind
+of justice that one would gladly find more of in grocers’ and
+linen-drapers’ shops, but can as well spare from a poem, then we must
+say that he has not always a high end: the wicked man is not tortured,
+nor is the good man smothered in bank-notes and rose-leaves. Even when
+he shows the outward ruin and death that comes upon Macbeth at last, it
+is only as an unavoidable little consequence, following in the wake of
+the mighty vengeance of nature, even of God, that Macbeth cannot say
+_Amen_; that Macbeth can sleep no more; that Macbeth is “cabined
+cribbed, confined, bound in to saucy doubts and fears;” that his very
+brain is a charnel-house, whence arise the ghosts of his own murders,
+till he envies the very dead the rest to which his hand has sent them.
+That immediate and eternal vengeance upon crime, and that inner reward
+of well-doing, never fail in nature or in Shakspere, appear as such a
+matter of course that they hardly look like design either in nature or
+in the mirror which he holds up to her. The secret is that, in the
+ideal, habit and design are one.
+
+Most authors seem anxious to round off and finish everything in full
+sight. Most of Shakspere’s tragedies compel our thoughts to follow their
+_persons_ across the bourn. They need, as Jean Paul says, a piece of the
+next world painted in to complete the picture, And this is surely
+nature: but it need not therefore be no design. What could be done with
+Hamlet, but send him into a region where he has some chance of finding
+his difficulties solved; where he will know that his reverence for God,
+which was the sole stay left him in the flood of human worthlessness,
+has not been in vain; that the skies are not “a foul and pestilent
+congregation of vapours;” that there are noble women, though his mother
+was false and Ophelia weak; and that there are noble men, although his
+uncle and Laertes were villains and his old companions traitors? If
+Hamlet is not to die, the whole of the play must perish under the
+accusation that the hero of it is left at last with only a superadded
+misery, a fresh demand for action, namely, to rule a worthless people,
+as they seem to him, when action has for him become impossible; that he
+has to live on, forsaken even of death, which will not come though the
+cup of misery is at the brim.
+
+But a high end may be gained in this world, and the vision into the
+world beyond so justified, as in King Lear. The passionate, impulsive,
+unreasoning old king certainly must have given his wicked daughters
+occasion enough of making the charges to which their avarice urged them.
+He had learned very little by his life of kingship. He was but a boy
+with grey hair. He had had no inner experiences. And so all the
+development of manhood and age has to be crowded into the few remaining
+weeks of his life. His own folly and blindness supply the occasion. And
+before the few weeks are gone, he has passed through all the stages of a
+fever of indignation and wrath, ending in a madness from which love
+redeems him; he has learned that a king is nothing if the man is
+nothing; that a king ought to care for those who cannot help themselves;
+that love has not its origin or grounds in favours flowing from royal
+resource and munificence, and yet that love is the one thing worth
+living for, which gained, it is time to die. And now that he has the
+experience that life can give, has become a child in simplicity of heart
+and judgment, he cannot lose his daughter again; who, likewise, has
+learned the one thing she needed, as far as her father was concerned, a
+little more excusing tenderness. In the same play it cannot be by chance
+that at its commencement Gloucester speaks with the utmost carelessness
+and _off-hand_ wit about the parentage of his natural son Edmund, but
+finds at last that this son is his ruin.
+
+Edgar, the true son, says to Edmund, after having righteously dealt him
+his death-wound,--
+
+ “The gods are just, and of our pleasant vices
+ Make instruments to scourge us:
+ The dark and vicious place where thee he got
+ Cost him his eyes.”
+
+To which the dying and convicted villain replies,--
+
+ “Thou hast spoken right; ‘tis true:
+ The wheel is come full circle; I am here.”
+
+Could anything be put more plainly than the moral lesson in this?
+
+It would be easy to produce examples of fine design from his comedies as
+well; as for instance, from “Much Ado about Nothing:” the two who are
+made to fall in love with each other, by being each severally assured of
+possessing the love of the other, Beatrice and Benedick, are shown
+beforehand to have a strong inclination towards each other, manifested
+in their continual squabbling after a good-humoured fashion; but not all
+this is sufficient to make them heartily in love, until they find out
+the nobility of each other’s character in their behaviour about the
+calumniated Hero; and the author takes care they shall not be married
+without a previous acquaintance with the trick that has been played upon
+them. Indeed we think the remark, that Shakspere never leaves any of his
+characters the same at the end of a play as he took them up at the
+beginning, will be found to be true. They are better or worse, wiser or
+more irretrievably foolish. The historical plays would illustrate the
+remark as well as any.
+
+But of all the terrible plays we are inclined to think “Timon” the most
+terrible, and to doubt whether justice has been done to the finish and
+completeness of it. At the same time we are inclined to think that it
+was printed (first in the first folio, 1623, seven years after
+Shakspere’s death) from a copy, corrected by the author, but not
+_written fair_, and containing consequent mistakes. The same account
+might belong to others of the plays, but more evidently perhaps belongs
+to the “Timon.” The idea of making the generous spendthrift, whose old
+idolaters had forsaken him because the idol had no more to give, into
+the high-priest of the Temple of Mammon, dispensing the gold which he
+hated and despised, that it might be a curse to the race which he had
+learned to hate and despise as well; and the way in which Shakspere
+discloses the depths of Timon’s wound, by bringing him into comparison
+with one who hates men by profession and humour--are as powerful as
+anything to be found even in Shakspere.
+
+We are very willing to believe that “Julius Caesar” was one of his
+latest plays; for certainly it is the play in which he has represented a
+hero in the high and true sense. _Brutus_ is this hero, of course; a
+hero because he will do what he sees to be right, independently of
+personal feeling or personal advantage. Nor does his attempt fail from
+any overweening or blindness, in himself. Had he known that the various
+papers thrown in his way, were the concoctions of _Cassius_, he would
+not have made the mistake of supposing that the Romans longed for
+freedom, and therefore would be ready to defend it. As it was, he
+attempted to liberate a people which did not feel its slavery. He failed
+for others, but not for himself; for his truth was such that everybody
+was true to him. Unlike Jaques with his seven acts of the burlesque of
+human life, Brutus says at the last,--
+
+ “Countrymen,
+ My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life,
+ I found no man but he was true to me.”
+
+Of course all this is in Plutarch. But it is easy to see with what
+relish Shakspere takes it up, setting forth all the aids in himself and
+in others which Brutus had to being a hero, and thus making the
+representation as credible as possible.
+
+We must heartily confess that no amount of genius alone will make a man
+a good man; that genius only shows the right way--drives no man to walk
+in it. But there is surely some moral scent in us to let us know whether
+a man only cares for good from an artistic point of view, or whether he
+admires and loves good. This admiration and love cannot be _prominently_
+set forth by any dramatist true to his art; but it must come out over
+the whole. His predilections must show themselves in the scope of his
+artistic life, in the things and subjects he chooses, and the way in
+which he represents them. Notwithstanding Uncle Toby and Maria, who will
+venture to say that Sterne was noble or virtuous, when he looks over the
+whole that he has written? But in Shakspere there is no suspicion of a
+cloven foot. Everywhere he is on the side of virtue and of truth. Many
+small arguments, with great cumulative force, might be adduced to this
+effect.
+
+For ourselves we cannot easily believe that the calmness of his art
+could be so unvarying except he exercised it with a good conscience;
+that he could have kept looking out upon the world around him with the
+untroubled regard necessary for seeing all things as they are, except
+there had been peace in his house at home; that he could have known all
+men as he did, and failed to know himself. We can understand the
+co-existence of any degree of partial or excited genius with evil ways,
+but we cannot understand the existence of such calm and universal
+genius, wrought out in his works, except in association with all that is
+noblest in human nature. Nor is it other than on the side of the
+argument for his rectitude that he never forces rectitude upon the
+attention of others. The strong impression left upon our minds is, that
+however Shakspere may have strayed in the early portion of his life in
+London, he was not only an upright and noble man for the main part, but
+a repentant man, and a man whose life was influenced by the truths of
+Christianity.
+
+Much is now said about a memorial to Shakspere. The best and only true
+memorial is no doubt that described in Milton’s poem on this very
+subject: the living and ever-changing monument of human admiration,
+expressed in the faces and forms of those absorbed in the reading of his
+works. But if the external monument might be such as to foster the
+constant reproduction of the inward monument of love and admiration,
+then, indeed, it might be well to raise one; and with this object in
+view let us venture to propose one mode which we think would favour the
+attainment of it.
+
+Let a Gothic hall of the fourteenth century be built; such a hall as
+would be more in the imagination of Shakspere than any of the
+architecture of his own time. Let all the copies that can be procured of
+every early edition of his works, singly or collectively, be stored in
+this hall. Let a copy of every other edition ever printed be procured
+and deposited. Let every book or treatise that can be found, good, bad,
+or indifferent, written about Shakspere or any of his works, be likewise
+collected for the Shakspere library. Let a special place be allotted to
+the shameless corruptions of his plays that have been produced as
+improvements upon them, some of which, to the disgrace of England, still
+partially occupy the stage instead of what Shakspere wrote. Let one
+department contain every work of whatever sort that tends to direct
+elucidation of his meaning, chiefly those of the dramatic writers who
+preceded him and closely followed him. Let the windows be filled with
+stained glass, representing the popular sports of his own time and the
+times of his English histories. Let a small museum be attached,
+containing all procurable antiquities that are referred to in his plays,
+along with first editions, if possible, of the best books that came out
+in his time, and were probably read by him. Let the whole thus as much
+as possible represent his time. Let a marble statue in the midst do the
+best that English art can accomplish for the representation of the
+vanished man; and let copies, if not the originals, of the several
+portraits be safely shrined for the occasional beholding of the
+multitude. Let the perpetuity of care necessary for this monument be
+secured by endowment; and let it be for the use of the public, by means
+of a reading-room fitted for the comfort of all who choose to avail
+themselves of these facilities for a true acquaintance with our greatest
+artist. Let there likewise be a simple and moderately-sized theatre
+attached, not for regular, but occasional use; to be employed for the
+representation of Shakspere’s plays _only_, and allowed free of expense
+for amateur or other representations of them for charitable purposes.
+But within a certain cycle of years--if, indeed, it would be too much to
+expect that out of the London play-goers a sufficient number would be
+found to justify the representation of all the plays of Shakspere once
+in the season--let the whole of Shakspere’s plays be acted in the best
+manner possible to the managers for the time being.
+
+The very existence of such a theatre would be a noble protest of the
+highest kind against the sort of play, chiefly translated and adapted
+from the French, which infests our boards, the low tone of which, even
+where it is not decidedly immoral, does more harm than any amount of the
+rough, honest plain-spokenness of Shakspere, as judged by our more
+fastidious, if not always purer manners. The representation of such
+plays forms the real ground of objection to theatre-going. We believe
+that other objections, which may be equally urged against large
+assemblies of any sort, are not really grounded upon such an amount of
+objectionable fact as good people often suppose. At all events it is not
+against the drama itself, but its concomitants, its avoidable
+concomitants, that such objections are, or ought to be, felt and
+directed. The dramatic impulse, as well as all other impulses of our
+nature, are from the Maker.
+
+A monument like this would help to change a blind enthusiasm and a
+_dilettante_-talk into knowledge, reverence, and study; and surely this
+would be the true way to honour the memory of the man who appeals to
+posterity by no mighty deeds of worldly prowess, but has left behind him
+food for heart, brain, and conscience, on which the generations will
+feed till the end of time. It would be the one true and natural mode of
+perpetuating his fame in kind; helping him to do more of that for which
+he was born, and because of which we humbly desire to do him honour, as
+the years flow farther away from the time when, at the age of fifty-two,
+he left the world a richer legacy of the results of intellectual labour
+than any other labourer in literature has ever done. It would be to
+raise a monument to his mind more than to his person.
+
+But to honour Shakspere in the best way we must not gaze upon some grand
+memorial of his fame, we must not talk largely of his wonderful doings,
+we must not even behold the representation of his works on the stage,
+invaluable aid as that is to the right understanding of what he has
+written; but we must, by close, silent, patient study, enter into an
+understanding with the spirit of the departed poet-sage, and thus let
+his own words be the necromantic spell that raises the dead, and brings
+us into communion with that man who knew what was in men more than any
+other mere man ever did. Well was it for Shakspere that he was humble;
+else on what a desolate pinnacle of companionless solitude must he have
+stood! Where was he to find his peers? To most thoughtful minds it is a
+terrible fancy to suppose that there were no greater human being than
+themselves. From the terror of such a _truth_ Shakspere’s love for men
+preserved him. He did not think about himself so much as he thought
+about them. Had he been a self-student alone, or chiefly, could he ever
+have written those dramas? We close with the repetition of this truth:
+that the love of our kind is the one key to the knowledge of humanity
+and of ourselves. And have we not sacred authority for concluding that
+he who loves his brother is the more able and the more likely to love
+Him who made him and his brother also, and then told them that love is
+the fulfilling of the law?
+
+
+
+
+THE ART OF SHAKSPERE, AS REVEALED BY HIMSELF.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1863.]
+
+
+ Who taught you this?
+ I learn’d it out of women’s faces.
+
+_Winter’s Tale_, Act ii. scene 1.
+
+
+One occasionally hears the remark, that the commentators upon Shakspere
+find far more in Shakspere than Shakspere ever intended to express.
+Taking this assertion as it stands, it may be freely granted, not only
+of Shakspere, but of every writer of genius. But if it be intended by
+it, that nothing can _exist_ in any work of art beyond what the writer
+was conscious of while in the act of producing it, so much of its scope
+is false.
+
+No artist can have such a claim to the high title of _creator_, as that
+he invents for himself the forms, by means of which he produces his new
+result; and all the forms of man and nature which he modifies and
+combines to make a new region in his world of art, have their own
+original life and meaning. The laws likewise of their various
+combinations are natural laws, harmonious with each other. While,
+therefore, the artist employs many or few of their original aspects for
+his immediate purpose, he does not and cannot thereby deprive them of
+the many more which are essential to their vitality, and the vitality
+likewise of his presentation of them, although they form only the
+background from which his peculiar use of them stands out. The objects
+presented must therefore fall, to the eye of the observant reader, into
+many different combinations and harmonies of operation and result, which
+are indubitably there, whether the writer saw them or not. These latent
+combinations and relations will be numerous and true, in proportion to
+the scope and the truth of the representation; and the greater the
+number of meanings, harmonious with each other, which any work of art
+presents, the greater claim it has to be considered a work of genius. It
+must, therefore, be granted, and that joyfully, that there may be
+meanings in Shakspere’s writings which Shakspere himself did not see,
+and to which therefore his art, as art, does not point.
+
+But the probability, notwithstanding, must surely be allowed as well,
+that, in great artists, the amount of conscious art will bear some
+proportion to the amount of unconscious truth: the visible volcanic
+light will bear a true relation to the hidden fire of the globe; so that
+it will not seem likely that, in such a writer as Shakspere, we should
+find many indications of present and operative _art_, of which he was
+himself unaware. Some truths may be revealed through him, which he
+himself knew only potentially; but it is not likely that marks of work,
+bearing upon the results of the play, should be fortuitous, or that the
+work thus indicated should be unconscious work. A stroke of the mallet
+may be more effective than the sculptor had hoped; but it was intended.
+In the drama it is easier to discover individual marks of the chisel,
+than in the marble whence all signs of such are removed: in the drama
+the lines themselves fall into the general finish, without necessary
+obliteration as lines: Still, the reader cannot help being fearful,
+lest, not as regards truth only, but as regards art as well, he be
+sometimes clothing the idol of his intellect with the weavings of his
+fancy. My conviction is, that it is the very consummateness of
+Shakspere’s art, that exposes his work to the doubt that springs from
+loving anxiety for his honour; the dramatist, like the sculptor,
+avoiding every avoidable hint of the process, in order to render the
+result a vital whole. But, fortunately, we are not left to argue
+entirely from probabilities. He has himself given us a peep into his
+studio--let me call it _workshop_, as more comprehensive.
+
+It is not, of course, in the shape of _literary_ criticism, that we
+should expect to meet such a revelation; for to use art even
+consciously, and to regard it as an object of contemplation, or to
+theorize about it, are two very different mental operations. The
+productive and critical faculties are rarely found in equal combination;
+and even where they are, they cannot operate equally in regard to the
+same object. There is a perfect satisfaction in producing, which does
+not demand a re-presentation to the critical faculty. In other words,
+the criticism which a great writer brings to bear upon his own work, is
+from within, regarding it upon the hidden side, namely, in relation to
+his own idea; whereas criticism, commonly understood, has reference to
+the side turned to the public gaze. Neither could we expect one so
+prolific as Shakspere to find time for the criticism of the works of
+other men, except in such moments of relaxation as those in which the
+friends at the Mermaid Tavern sat silent beneath the flow of his wisdom
+and humour, or made the street ring with the overflow of their own
+enjoyment.
+
+But if the artist proceed to speculate upon the nature or productions of
+another art than his own, we may then expect the principles upon which
+he operates in his own, to take outward and visible form--a form
+modified by the difference of the art to which he now applies them. In
+one of Shakspere’s poems, we have the description of an imagined
+production of a sister-art--that of Painting--a description so brilliant
+that the light reflected from the poet-picture illumines the art of the
+Poet himself, revealing the principles which he held with regard to
+representative art generally, and suggesting many thoughts with regard
+to detail and harmony, finish, pregnancy, and scope. This description is
+found in “The Rape of Lucrece.” Apology will hardly be necessary for
+making a long quotation, seeing that, besides the convenience it will
+afford of easy reference to the ground of my argument, one of the
+greatest helps which even the artist can give to us, is to isolate
+peculiar beauties, and so compel us to perceive them.
+
+Lucrece has sent a messenger to beg the immediate presence of her
+husband. Awaiting his return, and worn out with weeping, she looks about
+for some variation of her misery.
+
+ 1.
+
+ At last she calls to mind where hangs a piece
+ Of skilful painting, made for Priam’s Troy;
+ Before the which is drawn the power of Greece,
+ For Helen’s rape the city to destroy,
+ Threatening cloud-kissing Ilion with annoy;
+ Which the conceited painter drew so proud,
+ As heaven, it seemed, to kiss the turrets, bowed.
+
+ 2.
+
+ A thousand lamentable objects there,
+ In scorn of Nature, Art gave lifeless life:
+ Many a dry drop seemed a weeping tear,
+ Shed for the slaughtered husband by the wife;
+ The red blood reeked, to show the painter’s strife.
+ And dying eyes gleamed forth their ashy lights,
+ Like dying coals burnt out in tedious nights.
+
+ 3.
+
+ There might you see the labouring pioneer
+ Begrimed with sweat, and smeared all with dust;
+ And, from the towers of Troy there would appear
+ The very eyes of men through loopholes thrust,
+ Gazing upon the Greeks with little lust:
+ Such sweet observance in this work was had,
+ That one might see those far-off eyes look sad.
+
+ 4.
+
+ In great commanders, grace and majesty
+ You might behold, triumphing in their faces;
+ In youth, quick bearing and dexterity;
+ And here and there the painter interlaces
+ Pale cowards, marching on with trembling paces,
+ Which heartless peasants did so well resemble,
+ That one would swear he saw them quake and tremble.
+
+ 5.
+
+ In Ajax and Ulysses, O what art
+ Of physiognomy might one behold!
+ The face of either ciphered either’s heart;
+ Their face their manners most expressly told:
+ In Ajax’ eyes blunt rage and rigour rolled;
+ But the mild glance that sly Ulysses lent
+ Showed deep regard, and smiling government.
+
+ 6.
+
+ There pleading might you see grave Nestor stand,
+ As ‘twere encouraging the Greeks to fight;
+ Making such sober action with his hand,
+ That it beguiled attention, charmed the sight;
+ In speech, it seemed his beard, all silver-white,
+ Wagged up and down, and from his lips did fly
+ Thin winding breath, which purled up to the sky.
+
+ 7.
+
+ About him were a press of gaping faces,
+ Which seemed to swallow up his sound advice;
+ All jointly listening, but with several graces,
+ As if some mermaid did their ears entice;
+ Some high, some low, the painter was so nice.
+ The scalps of many, almost hid behind,
+ To jump up higher seemed, to mock the mind.
+
+ 8.
+
+ Here one man’s hand leaned on another’s head,
+ His nose being shadowed by his neighbour’s ear;
+ Here one, being thronged, bears back, all bollen and red;
+ Another, smothered, seems to pelt and swear;
+ And in their rage such signs of rage they bear,
+ As, but for loss of Nestor’s golden words,
+ It seemed they would debate with angry swords.
+
+ 9.
+
+ For much imaginary work was there;
+ Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind,
+ That for Achilles’ image stood his spear,
+ Griped in an armed hand; himself behind
+ Was left unseen, save to the eye of mind:
+ A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head,
+ Stood for the whole to be imagined.
+
+ 10.
+
+ And, from the walls of strong-besieged Troy,
+ When their brave hope, bold Hector, marched to field,
+ Stood many Trojan mothers, sharing joy
+ To see their youthful sons bright weapons wield,
+ And to their hope they such odd action yield;
+ That through their light joy seemed to appear,
+ Like bright things stained, a kind of heavy fear.
+
+ 11.
+
+ And from the strond of Dardan, where they fought,
+ To Simois’ reedy banks, the red blood ran;
+ Whose waves to imitate the battle sought,
+ With swelling ridges; and their ranks began
+ To break upon the galled shore, and then
+ Retire again, till, meeting greater ranks,
+ They join, and shoot their foam at Simois’ banks.
+
+The oftener I read these verses, amongst the very earliest compositions
+of Shakspere, I am the more impressed with the carefulness with which he
+represents the _work_ of the picture--“shows the strife of the painter.”
+ The most natural thought to follow in sequence is: How like his own art!
+
+The scope and variety of the whole picture, in which mass is effected by
+the accumulation of individuality; in which, on the one hand, Troy
+stands as the impersonation of the aim and object of the whole; and on
+the other, the Simois flows in foaming rivalry of the strife of
+men,--the pictorial form of that sympathy of nature with human effort
+and passion, which he so often introduces in his plays,--is like nothing
+else so much as one of the works of his own art. But to take a portion
+as a more condensed representation of his art in combining all varieties
+into one harmonious whole: his genius is like the oratory of Nestor as
+described by its effects in the seventh and eighth stanzas. Every
+variety of attitude and countenance and action is harmonized by the
+influence which is at once the occasion of debate, and the charm which
+restrains by the fear of its own loss: the eloquence and the listening
+form the one bond of the unruly mass. So the dramatic genius that
+harmonizes his play, is visible only in its effects; so ethereal in its
+own essence that it refuses to be submitted to the analysis of the ruder
+intellect, it is like the words of Nestor, for which in the picture
+there stands but “thin winding breath which purled up to the sky.” Take,
+for an instance of this, the reconciling power by which, in the
+mysterious midnight of the summer-wood, he brings together in one
+harmony the graceful passions of childish elves, and the fierce passions
+of men and women, with the ludicrous reflection of those passions in the
+little convex mirror of the artisan’s drama; while the mischievous Puck
+revels in things that fall out preposterously, and the Elf-Queen is in
+love with ass-headed Bottom, from the hollows of whose long hairy
+ears--strange bouquet-holders--bloom and breathe the musk-roses, the
+characteristic odour-founts of the play; and the philosophy of the
+unbelieving Theseus, with the candour of Hippolyta, lifts the whole into
+relation with the realities of human life. Or take, as another instance,
+the pretended madman Edgar, the court-fool, and the rugged old king
+going grandly mad, sheltered in one hut, and lapped in the roar of a
+thunderstorm.
+
+My object, then, in respect to this poem, is to produce, from many
+instances, a few examples of the metamorphosis of such excellences as he
+describes in the picture, into the corresponding forms of the drama; in
+the hope that it will not then be necessary to urge the probability that
+the presence of those artistic virtues in his own practice, upon which
+he expatiates in his representation of another man’s art, were
+accompanied by the corresponding consciousness--that, namely, of the
+artist as differing from that of the critic, its objects being regarded
+from the concave side of the hammered relief. If this probability be
+granted, I would, from it, advance to a higher and far more important
+conclusion--how unlikely it is that if the writer was conscious of such
+fitnesses, he should be unconscious of those grand embodiments of truth,
+which are indubitably present in his plays, whether he knew it or not.
+This portion of my argument will be strengthened by an instance to show
+that Shakspere was himself quite at home in the contemplation of such
+truths.
+
+Let me adduce, then, some of those corresponding embodiments in words
+instead of in forms; in which colours yield to tones, lines to phrases.
+I will begin with the lowest kind, in which the art has to do with
+matters so small, that it is difficult to believe that _unconscious_ art
+could have any relation to them. They can hardly have proceeded directly
+from the great inspiration of the whole. Their very minuteness is an
+argument for their presence to the poet’s consciousness; while
+belonging, as they do, only to the _construction_ of the play, no such
+independent existence can be accorded to them, as to _truths_, which,
+being in themselves realities, _are_ there, whether Shakspere saw them
+or not. If he did not intend them, the most that can be said for them
+is, that such is the naturalness of Shakspere’s representations, that
+there is room in his plays, as in life, for those wonderful coincidences
+which are reducible to no law.
+
+Perhaps every one of the examples I adduce will be found open to
+dispute. This is a kind in which direct proof can have no share; nor
+should I have dared thus to combine them in argument, but for the ninth
+stanza of those quoted above, to which I beg my readers to revert. Its
+_imaginary work_ means--work hinted at, and then left to the imagination
+of the reader. Of course, in dramatic representation, such work must
+exist on a great scale; but the minute particularization of the “conceit
+deceitful” in the rest of the stanza, will surely justify us in thinking
+it possible that Shakspere intended many, if not all, of the _little_
+fitnesses which a careful reader discovers in his plays. That such are
+not oftener discovered comes from this: that, like life itself, he so
+blends into vital beauty, that there are no salient points. To use a
+homely simile: he is not like the barn-door fowl, that always runs out
+cackling when she has laid an egg; and often when she has not. In the
+tone of an ordinary drama, you may know when something is coming; and
+the tone itself declares--_I have done it_. But Shakspere will not spoil
+his art to show his art. It is there, and does its part: that is enough.
+If you can discover it, good and well; if not, pass on, and take what
+you can find. He can afford not to be fathomed for every little pearl
+that lies at the bottom of his ocean. If I succeed in showing that such
+art may exist where it is not readily discovered, this may give some
+additional probability to its existence in places where it is harder to
+isolate and define.
+
+To produce a few instances, then:
+
+In “Much Ado about Nothing,” seeing the very nature of the play is
+expressed in its name, is it not likely that Shakspere named the two
+constables, Dogberry (_a poisonous berry_) and Verjuice (_the juice of
+crab-apples_); those names having absolutely nothing to do with the
+stupid innocuousness of their characters, and so corresponding to their
+way of turning things upside down, and saying the very opposite of what
+they mean?
+
+In the same play we find Margaret objecting to her mistress’s wearing a
+certain rebato (_a large plaited ruff_), on the morning of her wedding:
+may not this be intended to relate to the fact that Margaret had dressed
+in her mistress’s clothes the night before? She might have rumpled or
+soiled it, and so feared discovery.
+
+In “King Henry IV.,” Part I., we find, in the last scene, that the
+Prince kills Hotspur. This is not recorded in history: the conqueror of
+Percy is unknown. Had it been a fact, history would certainly have
+recorded it; and the silence of history in regard to a deed of such
+mark, is equivalent to its contradiction. But Shakspere requires, for
+his play’s sake, to identify the slayer of Hotspur with his rival the
+Prince. Yet Shakspere will not contradict history, even in its silence.
+What is he to do? He will account for history _not knowing_ the
+fact.--Falstaff claiming the honour, the Prince says to him:
+
+ “For my part, if a lie may do thee grace,
+ I’ll gild it with the happiest terms I have;”
+
+revealing thus the magnificence of his own character, in his readiness,
+for the sake of his friend, to part with his chief renown. But the
+Historic Muse could not believe that fat Jack Falstaff had killed
+Hotspur, and therefore she would not record the claim.
+
+In the second part of the same play, act i. scene 2, we find Falstaff
+toweringly indignant with Mr. Dombledon, the silk mercer, that he will
+stand upon security with a gentleman for a short cloak and slops of
+satin. In the first scene of the second act, the hostess mentions that
+Sir John is going to dine with Master Smooth, the silkman. Foiled with
+Mr. Dombledon, he has already made himself so agreeable to Master
+Smooth, that he is “indited to dinner” with him. This is, by the bye, as
+to the action of the play; but as to the character of Sir John, is it
+not
+
+ “Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind”--_kinned--natural_?
+
+The _conceit deceitful_ in the painting, is the imagination that means
+more than its says. So the words of the speakers in the play, stand for
+more than the speakers mean. They are _Shakspere’s_ in their relation to
+his whole. To Achilles, his spear is but his spear: to the painter and
+his company, the spear of Achilles stands for Achilles himself.
+
+Coleridge remarks upon _James Gurney_, in “King John:” “How individual
+and comical he is with the four words allowed to his dramatic life!”
+ These words are those with which he answers the Bastard’s request to
+leave the room. He has been lingering with all the inquisitiveness and
+privilege of an old servant; when Faulconbridge says: “James Gurney,
+wilt thou give us leave a while?” with strained politeness. With marked
+condescension to the request of the second son, whom he has known and
+served from infancy, James Gurney replies: “Good leave, good Philip;”
+ giving occasion to Faulconbridge to show his ambition, and scorn of his
+present standing, in the contempt with which he treats even the
+Christian name he is so soon to exchange with his surname for _Sir
+Richard_ and _Plantagenet; Philip_ being the name for a sparrow in those
+days, when ladies made pets of them. Surely in these words of the
+serving-man, we have an outcome of the same art by which
+
+ “A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head,
+ Stood for the whole to be imagined.”
+
+In the “Winter’s Tale,” act iv. scene 3, Perdita, dressed with unwonted
+gaiety at the festival of the sheep-shearing, is astonished at finding
+herself talking in full strains of poetic verse. She says, half-ashamed:
+
+ “Methinks I play as I have seen them do
+ In Whitsun pastorals: sure, this robe of mine
+ Does change my disposition!”
+
+She does not mean this seriously. But the robe has more to do with it
+than she thinks. Her passion for Florizel is the warmth that sets the
+springs of her thoughts free, and they flow with the grace belonging to
+a princess-nature; but it is the robe that opens the door of her speech,
+and, by elevating her consciousness of herself, betrays her into what is
+only natural to her, but seems to her, on reflection, inconsistent with
+her low birth and poor education. This instance, however, involves far
+higher elements than any of the examples I have given before, and
+naturally leads to a much more important class of illustrations.
+
+In “Macbeth,” act ii. scene 4, why is the old man, who has nothing to do
+with the conduct of the play, introduced?--That, in conversation with
+Rosse, he may, as an old man, bear testimony to the exceptionally
+terrific nature of that storm, which, we find--from the words of Banquo:
+
+ “There’s husbandry in heaven:
+ Their candles are all out,”--
+
+had begun to gather, before supper was over in the castle. This storm is
+the sympathetic horror of Nature at the breaking open of the Lord’s
+anointed temple--horror in which the animal creation partakes, for the
+horses of Duncan, “the minions of their race,” and therefore the most
+sensitive of their sensitive race, tear each other to pieces in the
+wildness of their horror. Consider along with this a foregoing portion
+of the second scene in the same act. Macbeth, having joined his wife
+after the murder, says:
+
+ “Who lies i’ the second chamber?
+
+ “_Lady M._ Donalbain.
+ * * * * *
+ “There are two lodged together.”
+
+These two, Macbeth says, woke each other--the one laughing, the other
+crying _murder_. Then they said their prayers and went to sleep
+again.--I used to think that the natural companion of Donalbain would be
+Malcolm, his brother; and that the two brothers woke in horror from the
+proximity of their father’s murderer who was just passing the door. A
+friend objected to this, that, had they been together, Malcolm, being
+the elder, would have been mentioned rather than Donalbain. Accept this
+objection, and we find a yet more delicate significance: the _presence_
+operated differently on the two, one bursting out in a laugh, the other
+crying _murder_; but both were in terror when they awoke, and dared not
+sleep till they had said their prayers. His sons, his horses, the
+elements themselves, are shaken by one unconscious sympathy with the
+murdered king.
+
+Associate with this the end of the third scene of the fourth act of
+“Julius Caesar;” where we find that the attendants of Brutus all cry out
+in their sleep, as the ghost of Caesar leaves their master’s tent. This
+outcry is not given in Plutarch.
+
+To return to “Macbeth:” Why is the doctor of medicine introduced in the
+scene at the English court? He has nothing to do with the progress of
+the play itself, any more than the old man already alluded to.--He is
+introduced for a precisely similar reason.--As a doctor, he is the best
+testimony that could be adduced to the fact, that the English King
+Edward the Confessor, is a fountain of health to his people, gifted for
+his goodness with the sacred privilege of curing _The King’s Evil_, by
+the touch of his holy hands. The English King himself is thus
+introduced, for the sake of contrast with the Scotch King, who is a
+raging bear amongst his subjects.
+
+In the “Winter’s Tale,” to which he gives the name because of the
+altogether extraordinary character of the occurrences (referring to it
+in the play itself, in the words: “_a sad tale’s best for winter: I have
+one of sprites and goblins_”) Antigonus has a remarkable dream or
+vision, in which Hermione appears to him, and commands the exposure of
+her child in a place to all appearance the most unsuitable and
+dangerous. Convinced of the reality of the vision, Antigonus obeys; and
+the whole marvellous result depends upon this obedience. Therefore the
+vision must be intended for a genuine one. But how could it be such, if
+Hermione was not dead, as, from her appearance to him, Antigonus firmly
+believed she was? I should feel this to be an objection to the art of
+the play, but for the following answer:--At the time she appeared to
+him, she was still lying in that deathlike swoon, into which she fell
+when the news of the loss of her son reached her as she stood before the
+judgment-seat of her husband, at a time when she ought not to have been
+out of her chamber.
+
+Note likewise, in the first scene of the second act of the same play,
+the changefulness of Hermione’s mood with regard to her boy, as
+indicative of her condition at the time. If we do not regard this fact,
+we shall think the words introduced only for the sake of filling up the
+business of the play.
+
+In “Twelfth Night,” both ladies make the first advances in love. Is it
+not worthy of notice that one of them has lost her brother, and that the
+other believes she has lost hers? In this respect, they may be placed
+with Phoebe, in “As You Like It,” who, having suddenly lost her love by
+the discovery that its object was a woman, immediately and heartily
+accepts the devotion of her rejected lover, Silvius. Along with these
+may be classed Romeo, who, rejected and, as he believes, inconsolable,
+falls in love with Juliet the moment he sees her. That his love for
+Rosaline, however, was but a kind of _calf-love_ compared with his love
+for Juliet, may be found indicated in the differing tones of his speech
+under the differing conditions. Compare what he says in his conversation
+with Benvolio, in the first scene of the first act, with any of his many
+speeches afterwards, and, while _conceit_ will be found prominent enough
+in both, the one will be found to be ruled by the fancy, the other by
+the imagination.
+
+In this same play, there is another similar point which I should like to
+notice. In Arthur Brook’s story, from which Shakspere took his, there is
+no mention of any communication from Lady Capulet to Juliet of their
+intention of marrying her to Count Paris. Why does Shakspere insert
+this?--to explain her falling in love with Romeo so suddenly. Her mother
+has set her mind moving in that direction. She has never seen Paris. She
+is looking about her, wondering which may be he, and whether she shall
+be able to like him, when she meets the love-filled eyes of Romeo fixed
+upon her, and is at once overcome. What a significant speech is that
+given to Paulina in the “Winter’s Tale,” act v. scene 1: “How? Not
+women?” Paulina is a thorough partisan, siding with women against men,
+and strengthened in this by the treatment her mistress has received from
+her husband. One has just said to her, that, if Perdita would begin a
+sect, she might “make proselytes of who she bid but follow.” “How? Not
+women?” Paulina rejoins. Having received assurance that “women will love
+her,” she has no more to say.
+
+I had the following explanation of a line in “Twelfth Night” from a
+stranger I met in an old book-shop:--Malvolio, having built his castle
+in the air, proceeds to inhabit it. Describing his own behaviour in a
+supposed case, he says (act ii. scene 5): “I frown the while; and
+perchance, wind up my watch, or play with my some rich jewel”--A dash
+ought to come after _my_. Malvolio was about to say _chain_; but
+remembering that his chain was the badge of his office of steward, and
+therefore of his servitude, he alters the word to “_some rich jewel_”
+ uttered with pretended carelessness.
+
+In “Hamlet,” act iii. scene 1, did not Shakspere intend the passionate
+soliloquy of Ophelia--a soliloquy which no maiden knowing that she was
+overheard would have uttered,--coupled with the words of her father:
+
+ “How now, Ophelia?
+ You need not tell us what lord Hamlet said,
+ We heard it all;”--
+
+to indicate that, weak as Ophelia was, she was not false enough to be
+accomplice in any plot for betraying Hamlet to her father and the King?
+They had remained behind the arras, and had not gone out as she must
+have supposed.
+
+Next, let me request my reader to refer once more to the poem; and
+having considered the physiognomy of Ajax and Ulysses, as described in
+the fifth stanza, to turn then to the play of “Troilus and Cressida,”
+ and there contemplate that description as metamorphosed into the higher
+form of revelation in speech. Then, if he will associate the general
+principles in that stanza with the third, especially the last two lines,
+I will apply this to the character of Lady Macbeth.
+
+Of course, Shakspere does not mean that one regarding that portion of
+the picture alone, could see the eyes looking sad; but that the _sweet
+observance_ of the whole so roused the imagination that it supplied what
+distance had concealed, keeping the far-off likewise in sweet observance
+with the whole: the rest pointed that way.--In a manner something like
+this are we conducted to a right understanding of the character of Lady
+Macbeth. First put together these her utterances:
+
+ “You do unbend your noble strength, to think
+ So brainsickly of things.”
+
+ “Get some water,
+ And wash this filthy witness from your hands.”
+
+ “The sleeping and the dead
+ Are but as pictures.”
+
+ “A little water clears us of this deed.”
+
+ “When all’s done,
+ You look but on a stool.”
+
+ “You lack the season of all natures, sleep.”--
+
+Had these passages stood in the play unmodified by others, we might have
+judged from them that Shakspere intended to represent Lady Macbeth as an
+utter materialist, believing in nothing beyond the immediate
+communications of the senses. But when we find them associated with such
+passages as these--
+
+ “Memory, the warder of the brain,
+ Shall be a fume, and the receipt of reason
+ A limbeck only;”
+
+ “Had he not resembled
+ My father as he slept, I had done’t;
+
+ “These deeds must not be thought
+ After these ways; so, it will make us mad;”--
+
+then we find that our former theory will not do, for here are deeper and
+broader foundations to build upon. We discover that Lady Macbeth was an
+unbeliever _morally_, and so found it necessary to keep down all
+imagination, which is the upheaving of that inward world whose very
+being she would have annihilated. Yet out of this world arose at last
+the phantom of her slain self, and possessing her sleeping frame, sent
+it out to wander in the night, and rub its distressed and blood-stained
+hands in vain. For, as in this same “Rape of Lucrece,”
+
+ “the soul’s fair temple is defaced;
+ To whose weak ruins muster troops of cares,
+ To ask the spotted princess how she fares.”
+
+But when so many lines of delineation meet, and run into, and correct
+one another, assuming such a natural and vital form, that there is no
+_making of a point_ anywhere; and the woman is shown after no theory,
+but according to the natural laws of human declension, we feel that the
+only way to account for the perfection of the representation is to say
+that, given a shadow, Shakspere had the power to place himself so, that
+that shadow became his own--was the correct representation as shadow, of
+his form coming between it and the sunlight. And this is the highest
+dramatic gift that a man can possess. But we feel at the same time, that
+this is, in the main, not so much art as inspiration. There would be, in
+all probability, a great mingling of conscious art with the inspiration;
+but the lines of the former being lost in the general glow of the
+latter, we may be left where we were as to any certainty about the
+artistic consciousness of Shakspere. I will now therefore attempt to
+give a few plainer instances of such _sweet observance_ in his own work
+as he would have admired in a painting.
+
+First, then, I would request my reader to think how comparatively seldom
+Shakspere uses poetry in his plays. The whole play is a poem in the
+highest sense; but truth forbids him to make it the rule for his
+characters to speak poetically. Their speech is poetic in relation to
+the whole and the end, not in relation to the speaker, or in the
+immediate utterance. And even although their speech is immediately
+poetic, in this sense, that every character is idealized; yet it is
+idealized _after its kind_; and poetry certainly would not be the ideal
+speech of most of the characters. This granted, let us look at the
+exceptions: we shall find that such passages not only glow with poetic
+loveliness and fervour, but are very jewels of _sweet observance_, whose
+setting allows them their force as lawful, and their prominence as
+natural. I will mention a few of such.
+
+In “Julius Caesar,” act i. scene 3, we are inclined to think the way
+_Casca_ speaks, quite inconsistent with the “sour fashion” which
+_Cassius_ very justly attributes to him; till we remember that he is
+speaking in the midst of an almost supernatural thunder-storm: the
+hidden electricity of the man’s nature comes out in poetic forms and
+words, in response to the wild outburst of the overcharged heavens and
+earth.
+
+Shakspere invariably makes the dying speak poetically, and generally
+prophetically, recognizing the identity of the poetic and prophetic
+moods, in their highest development, and the justice that gives them the
+same name. Even _Sir John_, poor ruined gentleman, _babbles of green
+fields_. Every one knows that the passage is disputed: I believe that if
+this be not the restoration of the original reading, Shakspere himself
+would justify it, and wish that he had so written it.
+
+_Romeo_ and _Juliet_ talk poetry as a matter of course.
+
+In “King John,” act v. scenes 4 and 5, see how differently the dying
+_Melun_ and the living and victorious _Lewis_ regard the same sunset:
+
+ _Melun_.
+
+ . . . . . this night, whose black contagious breath
+ Already smokes about the burning crest
+ Of the old, feeble, and day-wearied sun.
+
+ _Lewis_.
+
+ The sun in heaven, methought, was loath to set;
+ But stayed, and made the western welkin blush,
+ When the English measured backward their own ground.
+
+The exquisite duet between _Lorenzo_ and _Jessica_, in the opening of
+the fifth act of “The Merchant of Venice,” finds for its subject the
+circumstances that produce the mood--the lovely night and the crescent
+moon--which first make them talk poetry, then call for music, and next
+speculate upon its nature.
+
+Let us turn now to some instances of sweet observance in other kinds.
+
+There is observance, more true than sweet, in the character of
+_Jacques_, in “As You Like It:” the fault-finder in age was the
+fault-doer in youth and manhood. _Jacques_ patronizing the fool, is one
+of the rarest shows of self-ignorance.
+
+In the same play, when _Rosalind_ hears that _Orlando_ is in the wood,
+she cries out, “Alas the day! what shall I do with my doublet and hose?”
+ And when _Orlando_ asks her, “Where dwell you, pretty youth?” she
+answers, tripping in her rôle, “Here in the skirts of the forest, like
+fringe upon a petticoat.”
+
+In the second part of “King Henry IV.,” act iv. scene 3, _Falstaff_ says
+of _Prince John_: “Good faith, this same young sober-blooded boy doth
+not love me; nor a man cannot make him laugh;--but that’s no marvel: he
+drinks no wine.” This is the _Prince John_ who betrays the insurgents
+afterwards by the falsest of quibbles, and gains his revenge through
+their good faith.
+
+In “King Henry IV,” act i. scene 2, _Poins_ does not say _Falstaff_ is a
+coward like the other two; but only--“If he fight longer than he sees
+reason, I’ll forswear arms.” Associate this with _Falstaff’s_ soliloquy
+about _honour_ in the same play, act v. scene 1, and the true character
+of his courage or cowardice--for it may bear either name--comes out.
+
+Is there not conscious art in representing the hospitable face of the
+castle of _Macbeth_, bearing on it a homely welcome in the multitude of
+the nests of _the temple-haunting martlet_ (Psalm lxxxiv. 3), just as
+_Lady Macbeth_, the fiend-soul of the house, steps from the door, like
+the speech of the building, with her falsely smiled welcome? Is there
+not _observance_ in it?
+
+But the production of such instances might be endless, as the work of
+Shakspere is infinite. I confine myself to two more, taken from “The
+Merchant of Venice.”
+
+Shakspere requires a character capable of the magnificent devotion of
+friendship which the old story attributes to _Antonio_. He therefore
+introduces us to a man sober even to sadness, thoughtful even to
+melancholy. The first words of the play unveil this characteristic. He
+holds “the world but as the world,”--
+
+ “A stage where every man must play a part,
+ And mine a sad one.”
+
+The cause of this sadness we are left to conjecture. _Antonio_ himself
+professes not to know. But such a disposition, even if it be not
+occasioned by any definite event or object, will generally associate
+itself with one; and when _Antonio_ is accused of being in love, he
+repels the accusation with only a sad “Fie! fie!” This, and his whole
+character, seem to me to point to an old but ever cherished grief.
+
+Into the original story upon which this play is founded, Shakspere has,
+among other variations, introduced the story of _Jessica_ and _Lorenzo_,
+apparently altogether of his own invention. What was his object in doing
+so? Surely there were characters and interests enough already!--It seems
+to me that Shakspere doubted whether the Jew would have actually
+proceeded to carry out his fell design against _Antonio_, upon the
+original ground of his hatred, without the further incitement to revenge
+afforded by another passion, second only to his love of gold--his
+affection for his daughter; for in the Jew having reference to his own
+property, it had risen to a passion. Shakspere therefore invents her,
+that he may send a dog of a Christian to steal her, and, yet worse, to
+tempt her to steal her father’s stones and ducats. I suspect Shakspere
+sends the old villain off the stage at the last with more of the pity of
+the audience than any of the other dramatists of the time would have
+ventured to rouse, had they been capable of doing so. I suspect he is
+the only human Jew of the English drama up to that time.
+
+I have now arrived at the last and most important stage of my argument.
+It is this: If Shakspere was so well aware of the artistic relations of
+the parts of his drama, is it likely that the grand meanings involved in
+the whole were unperceived by him, and conveyed to us without any
+intention on his part--had their origin only in the fact that he dealt
+with human nature so truly, that his representations must involve
+whatever lessons human life itself involves?
+
+Is there no intention, for instance, in placing _Prospero_, who forsook
+the duties of his dukedom for the study of magic, in a desert island,
+with just three subjects; one, a monster below humanity; the second, a
+creature etherealized beyond it; and the third a complete embodiment of
+human perfection? Is it not that he may learn how to rule, and, having
+learned, return, by the aid of his magic wisely directed, to the home
+and duties from which exclusive devotion to that magic had driven him?
+
+In “Julius Caesar,” the death of _Brutus_, while following as the
+consequence of his murder of _Caesar_, is yet as much distinguished in
+character from that death, as the character of _Brutus_ is different
+from that of _Caesar_. _Caesar’s_ last words were _Et tu Brute? Brutus_,
+when resolved to lay violent hands on himself, takes leave of his
+friends with these words:
+
+ “Countrymen,
+ My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life,
+ I found no man, but he was true to me.”
+
+Here Shakspere did not invent. He found both speeches in Plutarch. But
+how unerring his choice!
+
+Is the final catastrophe in “Hamlet” such, because Shakspere could do no
+better?--It is: he could do no better than the best. Where but in the
+regions beyond could such questionings as _Hamlet’s_ be put to rest? It
+would have been a fine thing indeed for the most nobly perplexed of
+thinkers to be left--his love in the grave; the memory of his father a
+torment, of his mother a blot; with innocent blood on his innocent
+hands, and but half understood by his best friend--to ascend in desolate
+dreariness the contemptible height of the degraded throne, and shine the
+first in a drunken court!
+
+Before bringing forward my last instance, I will direct the attention of
+my readers to a passage, in another play, in which the lesson of the
+play I am about to speak of, is _directly_ taught: the first speech in
+the second act of “As You Like It,” might be made a text for the
+exposition of the whole play of “King Lear.”
+
+The banished duke is seeking to bring his courtiers to regard their
+exile as a part of their moral training. I am aware that I point the
+passage differently, while I revert to the old text.
+
+ “Are not these woods
+ More free from peril than the envious court?
+ Here feel we not the penalty of Adam--
+ The season’s difference, as the icy fang,
+ And churlish chiding of the winter’s wind?
+ Which, when it bites and blows upon my body,
+ Even till I shrink with cold, I smile and say--
+ This is no flattery; these are counsellors
+ That feelingly persuade me what I am.
+ Sweet are the uses of adversity.”
+
+The line _Here feel we not the penalty of Adam?_ has given rise to much
+perplexity. The expounders of Shakspere do not believe he can mean that
+the uses of adversity are really sweet. But the duke sees that _the
+penalty_ of Adam is what makes the _woods more free from peril than the
+envious court;_ that this penalty is in fact the best blessing, for it
+_feelingly persuades_ man _what_ he is; and to know what we are, to have
+no false judgments of ourselves, he considers so sweet, that to be thus
+taught, the _churlish chiding of the winter’s wind_ is well endured.
+
+Now let us turn to _Lear_. We find in him an old man with a large
+heart, hungry for love, and yet not knowing what love is; an old man as
+ignorant as a child in all matters of high import; with a temper so
+unsubdued, and therefore so unkingly, that he storms because his dinner
+is not ready by the clock of his hunger; a child, in short, in
+everything but his grey hairs and wrinkled face, but his failing,
+instead of growing, strength. If a life end so, let the success of that
+life be otherwise what it may, it is a wretched and unworthy end. But
+let _Lear_ be blown by the winds and beaten by the rains of heaven, till
+he pities “poor naked wretches;” till he feels that he has “ta’en too
+little care of” such; till pomp no longer conceals from him what “a
+poor, bare, forked animal” he is; and the old king has risen higher in
+the real social scale--the scale of that country to which he is
+bound--far higher than he stood while he still held his kingdom
+undivided to his thankless daughters. Then let him learn at last that
+“love is the only good in the world;” let him find his _Cordelia_, and
+plot with her how they will in their dungeon _singing like birds i’ the
+cage_, and, dwelling in the secret place of peace, look abroad on the
+world like _God’s spies_; and then let the generous great old heart
+swell till it breaks at last--not with rage and hate and vengeance, but
+with love; and all is well: it is time the man should go to overtake his
+daughter; henceforth to dwell with her in the home of the true, the
+eternal, the unchangeable. All his suffering came from his own fault;
+but from the suffering has sprung another crop, not of evil but of good;
+the seeds of which had lain unfruitful in the soil, but were brought
+within the blessed influences of the air of heaven by the sharp tortures
+of the ploughshare of ill.
+
+
+
+
+THE ELDER HAMLET.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1875]
+
+ ‘Tis bitter cold,
+ And I am sick at heart.
+
+The ghost in “Hamlet” is as faithfully treated as any character in the
+play. Next to Hamlet himself, he is to me the most interesting person of
+the drama. The rumour of his appearance is wrapped in the larger rumour
+of war. Loud preparations for uncertain attack fill the ears of “the
+subject of the land.” The state is troubled. The new king has hardly
+compassed his election before his marriage with his brother’s widow
+swathes the court in the dust-cloud of shame, which the merriment of its
+forced revelry can do little to dispel. A feeling is in the moral air to
+which the words of Francisco, the only words of significance he utters,
+give the key: “‘Tis bitter cold, and I am sick at heart.” Into the
+frosty air, the pallid moonlight, the drunken shouts of Claudius and his
+court, the bellowing of the cannon from the rampart for the enlargement
+of the insane clamour that it may beat the drum of its own disgrace at
+the portals of heaven, glides the silent prisoner of hell, no longer a
+king of the day walking about his halls, “the observed of all
+observers,” but a thrall of the night, wandering between the bell and
+the cock, like a jailer on each side of him. A poet tells the tale of
+the king who lost his garments and ceased to be a king: here is the king
+who has lost his body, and in the eyes of his court has ceased to be a
+man. Is the cold of the earth’s night pleasant to him after the purging
+fire? What crimes had the honest ghost committed in his days of nature?
+He calls them foul crimes! Could such be his? Only who can tell how a
+ghost, with his doubled experience, may think of this thing or that? The
+ghost and the fire may between them distinctly recognize that as a foul
+crime which the man and the court regarded as a weakness at worst, and
+indeed in a king laudable.
+
+Alas, poor ghost! Around the house he flits, shifting and shadowy, over
+the ground he once paced in ringing armour--armed still, but his very
+armour a shadow! It cannot keep out the arrow of the cock’s cry, and the
+heart that pierces is no shadow. Where now is the loaded axe with which,
+in angry dispute, he smote the ice at his feet that cracked to the blow?
+Where is the arm that heaved the axe? Wasting in the marble maw of the
+sepulchre, and the arm he carries now--I know not what it can do, but it
+cannot slay his murderer. For that he seeks his son’s. Doubtless his new
+ethereal form has its capacities and privileges. It can shift its garb
+at will; can appear in mail or night-gown, unaided of armourer or
+tailor; can pass through Hades-gates or chamber-door with equal ease;
+can work in the ground like mole or pioneer, and let its voice be heard
+from the cellarage. But there is one to whom it cannot appear, one whom
+the ghost can see, but to whom he cannot show himself. She has built a
+doorless, windowless wall between them, and sees the husband of her
+youth no more. Outside her heart--that is the night in which he wanders,
+while the palace-windows are flaring, and the low wind throbs to the
+wassail shouts: within, his murderer sits by the wife of his bosom, and
+in the orchard the spilt poison is yet gnawing at the roots of the
+daisies.
+
+Twice has the ghost grown out of the night upon the eyes of the
+sentinels. With solemn march, slow and stately, three times each night,
+has he walked by them; they, jellied with fear, have uttered no
+challenge. They seek Horatio, who the third night speaks to him as a
+scholar can. To the first challenge he makes no answer, but stalks away;
+to the second,
+
+ It lifted up its head, and did address
+ Itself to motion, like as it would speak;
+
+but the gaoler cock calls him, and the kingly shape
+
+ started like a guilty thing
+ Upon a fearful summons;
+
+and then
+
+ shrunk in haste away,
+ And vanished from our sight.
+
+Ah, that summons! at which majesty welks and shrivels, the king and
+soldier starts and cowers, and, armour and all, withers from the air!
+
+But why has he not spoken before? why not now ere the cock could claim
+him? He cannot trust the men. His court has forsaken his memory--crowds
+with as eager discontent about the mildewed ear as ever about his
+wholesome brother, and how should he trust mere sentinels? There is but
+one who will heed his tale. A word to any other would but defeat his
+intent. Out of the multitude of courtiers and subjects, in all the land
+of Denmark, there is but one whom he can trust--his student-son. Him he
+has not yet found--the condition of a ghost involving strange
+difficulties.
+
+Or did the horror of the men at the sight of him wound and repel him?
+Does the sense of regal dignity, not yet exhausted for all the fasting
+in fires, unite with that of grievous humiliation to make him shun their
+speech?
+
+But Horatio--why does the ghost not answer him ere the time of the cock
+is come? Does he fold the cloak of indignation around him because his
+son’s friend has addressed him as an intruder on the night, an usurper
+of the form that is his own? The companions of the speaker take note
+that he is offended and stalks away.
+
+Much has the kingly ghost to endure in his attempt to re-open relations
+with the world he has left: when he has overcome his wrath and returns,
+that moment Horatio again insults him, calling him an illusion. But this
+time he will bear it, and opens his mouth to speak. It is too late; the
+cock is awake, and he must go. Then alas for the buried majesty of
+Denmark! with upheaved halberts they strike at the shadow, and would
+stop it if they might--usage so grossly unfitting that they are
+instantly ashamed of it themselves, recognizing the offence in the
+majesty of the offended. But he is already gone. The proud, angry king
+has found himself but a thing of nothing to his body-guard--for he has
+lost the body which was their guard. Still, not even yet has he learned
+how little it lies in the power of an honest ghost to gain credit for
+himself or his tale! His very privileges are against him.
+
+All this time his son is consuming his heart in the knowledge of a
+mother capable of so soon and so utterly forgetting such a husband, and
+in pity and sorrow for the dead father who has had such a wife. He is
+thirty years of age, an obedient, honourable son--a man of thought, of
+faith, of aspiration. Him now the ghost seeks, his heart burning like a
+coal with the sense of unendurable wrong. He is seeking the one drop
+that can fall cooling on that heart--the sympathy, the answering rage
+and grief of his boy. But when at length he finds him, the generous,
+loving father has to see that son tremble like an aspen-leaf in his
+doubtful presence. He has exposed himself to the shame of eyes and the
+indignities of dullness, that he may pour the pent torrent of his wrongs
+into his ears, but his disfranchisement from the flesh tells against him
+even with his son: the young Hamlet is doubtful of the identity of the
+apparition with his father. After all the burning words of the phantom,
+the spirit he has seen may yet be a devil; the devil has power to assume
+a pleasing shape, and is perhaps taking advantage of his melancholy to
+damn him.
+
+Armed in the complete steel of a suit well known to the eyes of the
+sentinels, visionary none the less, with useless truncheon in hand,
+resuming the memory of old martial habits, but with quiet countenance,
+more in sorrow than in anger, troubled--not now with the thought of the
+hell-day to which he must sleepless return, but with that unceasing ache
+at the heart, which ever, as often as he is released into the cooling
+air of the upper world, draws him back to the region of his
+wrongs--where having fallen asleep in his orchard, in sacred security
+and old custom, suddenly, by cruel assault, he was flung into Hades,
+where horror upon horror awaited him--worst horror of all, the knowledge
+of his wife!--armed he comes, in shadowy armour but how real sorrow!
+Still it is not pity he seeks from his son: he needs it not--he can
+endure. There is no weakness in the ghost. It is but to the imperfect
+human sense that he is shadowy. To himself he knows his doom his
+deliverance; that the hell in which he finds himself shall endure but
+until it has burnt up the hell he has found within him--until the evil
+he was and is capable of shall have dropped from him into the lake of
+fire; he nerves himself to bear. And the cry of revenge that comes from
+the sorrowful lips is the cry of a king and a Dane rather than of a
+wronged man. It is for public justice and not individual vengeance he
+calls. He cannot endure that the royal bed of Denmark should be a couch
+for luxury and damned incest. To stay this he would bring the murderer
+to justice. There is a worse wrong, for which he seeks no revenge: it
+involves his wife; and there comes in love, and love knows no amends but
+amendment, seeks only the repentance tenfold more needful to the wronger
+than the wronged. It is not alone the father’s care for the human nature
+of his son that warns him to take no measures against his mother; it is
+the husband’s tenderness also for her who once lay in his bosom. The
+murdered brother, the dethroned king, the dishonoured husband, the
+tormented sinner, is yet a gentle ghost. Has suffering already begun to
+make him, like Prometheus, wise?
+
+But to measure the gentleness, the forgiveness, the tenderness of the
+ghost, we must well understand his wrongs. The murder is plain; but
+there is that which went before and is worse, yet is not so plain to
+every eye that reads the story. There is that without which the murder
+had never been, and which, therefore, is a cause of all the wrong. For
+listen to what the ghost reveals when at length he has withdrawn his son
+that he may speak with him alone, and Hamlet has forestalled the
+disclosure of the murderer:
+
+ “Ay, that incestuous, that adulterate beast,
+ With witchcraft of his wit, with traitorous gifts,
+ (O wicked wit and gifts that have the power
+ So to seduce!) won to his shameful lust
+ The will of my most seeming virtuous queen:
+ Oh, Hamlet, what a falling off was there!
+ From me, whose love was of that dignity
+ That it went hand in hand even with the vow
+ I made to her in marriage, and to decline
+ Upon a wretch, whose natural gifts were poor
+ To those of mine!
+ But virtue--as it never will be moved
+ Though lewdness court it in a shape of heaven,
+ So lust, though to a radiant angel linked,
+ Will sate itself in a celestial bed,
+ And prey on garbage.”
+
+Reading this passage, can any one doubt that the ghost charges his late
+wife with adultery, as the root of all his woes? It is true that,
+obedient to the ghost’s injunctions, as well as his own filial
+instincts, Hamlet accuses his mother of no more than was patent to all
+the world; but unless we suppose the ghost misinformed or mistaken, we
+must accept this charge. And had Gertrude not yielded to the witchcraft
+of Claudius’ wit, Claudius would never have murdered Hamlet. Through her
+his life was dishonoured, and his death violent and premature: unhuzled,
+disappointed, unaneled, he woke to the air--not of his orchard-blossoms,
+but of a prison-house, the lightest word of whose terrors would freeze
+the blood of the listener. What few men can say, he could--that his love
+to his wife had kept even step with the vow he made to her in marriage;
+and his son says of him--
+
+ “so loving to my mother
+ That he might not beteem the winds of heaven
+ Visit her face too roughly;”
+
+and this was her return! Yet is it thus he charges his son concerning
+her:
+
+ “But howsoever thou pursu’st this act,
+ Taint not thy mind, nor let thy soul contrive
+ Against thy mother aught; leave her to heaven,
+ And to those thorns that in her bosom lodge,
+ To prick and sting her.”
+
+And may we not suppose it to be for her sake in part that the ghost
+insists, with fourfold repetition, upon a sword-sworn oath to silence
+from Horatio and Marcellus?
+
+Only once again does he show himself--not now in armour upon the walls,
+but in his gown and in his wife’s closet.
+
+Ever since his first appearance, that is, all the time filling the
+interval between the first and second acts, we may presume him to have
+haunted the palace unseen, waiting what his son would do. But the task
+has been more difficult than either had supposed. The ambassadors have
+gone to Norway and returned; but Hamlet has done nothing. Probably he
+has had no opportunity; certainly he has had no clear vision of duty.
+But now all through the second and third acts, together occupying, it
+must be remembered, only one day, something seems imminent. The play has
+been acted, and Hamlet has gained some assurance, yet the one chance
+presented of killing the king--at his prayers--he has refused. He is now
+in his mother’s closet, whose eyes he has turned into her very soul.
+There, and then, the ghost once more appears--come, he says, to whet his
+son’s almost blunted purpose. But, as I have said, he does not know all
+the disadvantages of one who, having forsaken the world, has yet
+business therein to which he would persuade; he does not know how hard
+it is for a man to give credence to a ghost; how thoroughly he is
+justified in delay, and the demand for more perfect proof. He does not
+know what good reasons his son has had for uncertainty, or how much
+natural and righteous doubt has had to do with what he takes for the
+blunting of his purpose. Neither does he know how much more tender his
+son’s conscience is than his own, or how necessary it is to him to be
+sure before he acts. As little perhaps does he understand how hateful to
+Hamlet is the task laid upon him--the killing of one wretched villain in
+the midst of a corrupt and contemptible court, one of a world of whose
+women his mother may be the type!
+
+Whatever the main object of the ghost’s appearance, he has spoken but a
+few words concerning the matter between him and Hamlet, when he turns
+abruptly from it to plead with his son for his wife. The ghost sees and
+mistakes the terror of her looks; imagines that, either from some
+feeling of his presence, or from the power of Hamlet’s words, her
+conscience is thoroughly roused, and that her vision, her conception of
+the facts, is now more than she can bear. She and her fighting soul are
+at odds. She is a kingdom divided against itself. He fears the
+consequences. He would not have her go mad. He would not have her die
+yet. Even while ready to start at the summons of that hell to which she
+has sold him, he forgets his vengeance on her seducer in his desire to
+comfort her. He dares not, if he could, manifest himself to her: what
+word of consolation could she hear from his lips? Is not the thought of
+him her one despair? He turns to his son for help: he cannot console his
+wife; his son must take his place. Alas! even now he thinks better of
+her than she deserves; for it is only the fancy of her son’s madness
+that is terrifying her: he gazes on the apparition of which she sees
+nothing, and from his looks she anticipates an ungovernable outbreak.
+
+ “But look; amazement on thy mother sits!
+ Oh; step between her and her fighting soul
+ Conceit in weakest bodies strongest works.
+ Speak to her, Hamlet.”
+
+The call to his son to soothe his wicked mother is the ghost’s last
+utterance. For a few moments, sadly regardful of the two, he
+stands--while his son seeks in vain to reveal to his mother the presence
+of his father--a few moments of piteous action, all but ruining the
+remnant of his son’s sorely-harassed self-possession--his whole concern
+his wife’s distress, and neither his own doom nor his son’s duty; then,
+as if lost in despair at the impassable gulf betwixt them, revealed by
+her utter incapacity for even the imagination of his proximity, he turns
+away, and steals out at the portal. Or perhaps he has heard the black
+cock crow, and is wanted beneath: his turn has come.
+
+Will the fires ever cleanse _her_? Will his love ever lift him above the
+pain of its loss? Will eternity ever be bliss, ever be endurable to poor
+_King Hamlet?_
+
+Alas! even the memory of the poor ghost is insulted. Night after night
+on the stage his effigy appears--cadaverous, sepulchral--no longer as
+Shakspere must have represented him, aerial, shadowy, gracious, the thin
+corporeal husk of an eternal--shall I say ineffaceable?--sorrow! It is
+no hollow monotone that can rightly upbear such words as his, but a
+sound mingled of distance and wind in the pine-tops, of agony and love,
+of horror and hope and loss and judgment--a voice of endless and
+sweetest inflection, yet with a shuddering echo in it as from the caves
+of memory, on whose walls, are written the eternal blazon that must not
+be to ears of flesh and blood. The spirit that can assume form at will
+must surely be able to bend that form to completest and most delicate
+expression, and the part of the ghost in the play offers work worthy of
+the highest artist. The would-be actor takes from it vitality and
+motion, endowing it instead with the rigidity of death, as if the soul
+had resumed its cast-off garment, the stiffened and mouldy corpse--whose
+frozen deadness it could ill model to the utterance of its lively will!
+
+
+
+
+ON POLISH.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1865]
+
+By Polish I mean a certain well-known and immediately recognizable
+condition of surface. But I must request my reader to consider well what
+this condition really is. For the definition of it appears to us to be,
+that condition of surface which allows the inner structure of the
+material to manifest itself. Polish is, as it were, a translucent skin,
+in which the life of the inorganic comes to the surface, as in the
+animal skin the animal life. Once clothed in this, the inner glories of
+the marble rock, of the jasper, of the porphyry, leave the darkness
+behind, and glow into the day. From the heart of the agate the mossy
+landscape comes dreaming out. From the depth of the green chrysolite
+looks up the eye of its gold. The “goings on of life” hidden for ages
+under the rough bark of the patient forest-trees, are brought to light;
+the rings of lovely shadow which the creature went on making in the
+dark, as the oyster its opaline laminations, and its tree-pearls of
+beautiful knots, where a beneficent disease has broken the geometrical
+perfection of its structure, gloom out in their infinite variousness.
+
+Nor are the revelations of polish confined to things having variety in
+their internal construction; they operate equally in things of
+homogeneous structure. It is the polished ebony or jet which gives the
+true blank, the material darkness. It is the polished steel that shines
+keen and remorseless and cold, like that human justice whose symbol it
+is. And in the polished diamond the distinctive purity is most evident;
+while from it, I presume, will the light absorbed from the sun gleam
+forth on the dark most plentifully.
+
+But the mere fact that the end of polish is revelation, can hardly be
+worth setting forth except for some ulterior object, some further
+revelation in the fact itself.--I wish to show that in the symbolic use
+of the word the same truth is involved, or, if not involved, at least
+suggested. But let me first make another remark on the preceding
+definition of the word.
+
+There is no denying that the first notion suggested by the word polish
+is that of smoothness, which will indeed be the sole idea associated
+with it before we begin to contemplate the matter. But when we consider
+what things are chosen to be “clothed upon” with this smoothness, then
+we find that the smoothness is scarcely desired for its own sake, and
+remember besides that in many materials and situations it is elaborately
+avoided. We find that here it is sought because of its faculty of
+enabling other things to show themselves--to come to the surface.
+
+I proceed then to examine how far my pregnant interpretation of the word
+will apply to its figurative use in two cases--_Polish of Style_, and
+_Polish of Manners_. The two might be treated together, seeing that
+_Style_ may be called the manners of intellectual utterance, and
+_Manners_ the style of social utterance; but it is more convenient to
+treat them separately.
+
+I will begin with the Polish of Style.
+
+It will be seen at once that if the notion of polish be limited to that
+of smoothness, there can be little to say on the matter, and nothing
+worthy of being said. For mere smoothness is no more a desirable quality
+in a style than it is in a country or a countenance; and its pursuit
+will result at length in the gain of the monotonous and the loss of the
+melodious and harmonious. But it is only upon worthless material that
+polish can be _mere_ smoothness; and where the material is not valuable,
+polish can be nothing but smoothness. No amount of polish in a style can
+render the production of value, except there be in it embodied thought
+thereby revealed; and the labour of the polish is lost. Let us then take
+the fuller meaning of polish, and see how it will apply to style.
+
+If it applies, then Polish of Style will imply the approximately
+complete revelation of the thought. It will be the removal of everything
+that can interfere between the thought of the speaker and the mind of
+the hearer. True polish in marble or in speech reveals inlying
+realities, and, in the latter at least, mere smoothness, either of sound
+or of meaning, is not worthy of the name. The most polished style will
+be that which most immediately and most truly flashes the meaning
+embodied in the utterance upon the mind of the listener or reader.
+
+“Will you then,” I imagine a reader objecting, “admit of no ornament in
+style?”
+
+“Assuredly,” I answer, “I would admit of no ornament whatever.”
+
+But let me explain what I mean by ornament. I mean anything stuck in or
+on, like a spangle, because it is pretty in itself, although it reveals
+nothing. Not one such ornament can belong to a polished style. It is
+paint, not polish. And if this is not what my questioner means by
+_ornament_, my answer must then be read according to the differences in
+his definition of the word. What I have said has not the least
+application to the natural forms of beauty which thought assumes in
+speech. Between such beauty and such ornament there lies the same
+difference as between the overflow of life in the hair, and the dressing
+of that loveliest of utterances in grease and gold.
+
+For, when I say that polish is the removal of everything that comes
+between thought and thinking, it must not be supposed that in my idea
+thought is only of the intellect, and therefore that all forms but bare
+intellectual forms are of the nature of ornament. As well might one say
+that the only essential portion of the human form is the bones. And
+every human thought is in a sense a human being, has as necessarily its
+muscles of motion, its skin of beauty, its blood of feeling, as its
+skeleton of logic. For complete utterance, music itself in its right
+proportions, sometimes clear and strong, as in rhymed harmonies,
+sometimes veiled and dim, as in the prose compositions of the masters of
+speech, is as necessary as correctness of logic, and common sense in
+construction. I should have said _conveyance_ rather than utterance; for
+there may be utterance such as to relieve the mind of the speaker with
+more or less of fancied communication, while the conveyance of thought
+may be little or none; as in the speaking with tongues of the infant
+Church, to which the lovely babblement of our children has probably more
+than a figurative resemblance, relieving their own minds, but, the
+interpreter not yet at his post, neither instructing nor misleading any
+one. But as the object of grown-up speech must in the main be the
+conveyance of thought, and not the mere utterance, everything in the
+style of that speech which interposes between the mental eyes and the
+thought embodied in the speech, must be polished away, that the
+indwelling life may manifest itself.
+
+What, then (for now we must come to the practical), is the kind of thing
+to be polished away in order that the hidden may be revealed?
+
+All words that can be dismissed without loss; for all such more or less
+obscure the meaning upon which they gather. The first step towards the
+polishing of most styles is to strike out--polish off--the useless words
+and phrases. It is wonderful with how many fewer words most things could
+be said that are said; while the degree of certainty and rapidity with
+which an idea is conveyed would generally be found to be in an inverse
+ratio to the number of words employed.
+
+All ornaments so called--the nose and lip jewels of style--the tattooing
+of the speech; all similes that, although true, give no additional
+insight into the meaning; everything that is only pretty and not
+beautiful; all mere sparkle as of jewels that lose their own beauty by
+being set in the grandeur of statues or the dignity of monumental stone,
+must be ruthlessly polished away.
+
+All utterances which, however they may add to the amount of thought,
+distract the mind, and confuse its observation of the main idea, the
+essence or life of the book or paper, must be diligently refused. In the
+manuscript of _Comus_ there exists, cancelled but legible, a passage of
+which I have the best authority for saying that it would have made the
+poetic fame of any writer. But the grand old self-denier struck it out
+of the opening speech because that would be more polished without
+it--because the _Attendant Spirit_ would say more immediately and
+exclusively, and therefore more completely, what he had to say, without
+it.--All this applies much more widely and deeply in the region of art;
+but I am at present dealing with the surface of style, not with the
+round of result.
+
+I have one instance at hand, however, belonging to this region, than
+which I could scarcely produce a more apt illustration of my thesis. One
+of the greatest of living painters, walking with a friend through the
+late Exhibition of Art-Treasures at Manchester, came upon Albert Dürer’s
+_Melancholia_. After looking at it for a moment, he told his friend that
+now for the first time he understood it, and proceeded to set forth what
+he saw in it. It was a very early impression, and the delicacy of the
+lines was so much the greater. He had never seen such a perfect
+impression before, and had never perceived the intent and scope of the
+engraving. The mere removal of accidental thickness and furriness in the
+lines of the drawing enabled him to see into the meaning of that
+wonderful production. The polish brought it to the surface. Or, what
+amounts to the same thing for my argument, the dulling of the surface
+had concealed it even from his experienced eyes.
+
+In fine, and more generally, all cause whatever of obscurity must be
+polished away. There may lie in the matter itself a darkness of colour
+and texture which no amount of polishing can render clear or even vivid;
+the thoughts themselves may be hard to think, and difficulty must not be
+confounded with obscurity. The former belongs to the thoughts
+themselves; the latter to the mode of their embodiment. All cause of
+obscurity in this must, I say, be removed. Such may lie even in the
+region of grammar, or in the mere arrangement of a sentence. And while,
+as I have said, no ornament is to be allowed, so all roughnesses, which
+irritate the mental ear, and so far incapacitate it for receiving a true
+impression of the meaning from the words, must be carefully reduced. For
+the true music of a sentence, belonging as it does to the essence of the
+thought itself, is the herald which goes before to prepare the mind for
+the following thought, calming the surface of the intellect to a
+mirror-like reflection of the image about to fall upon it. But syllables
+that hang heavy on the tongue and grate harsh upon the ear are the
+trumpet of discord rousing to unconscious opposition and conscious
+rejection.
+
+And now the consideration of the Polish of Manners will lead us to some
+yet more important reflections. Here again I must admit that the
+ordinary use of the phrase is analogous to that of the preceding; but
+its relations lead us deep into realities. For as diamond alone can
+polish diamond, so men alone can polish men; and hence it is that it was
+first by living in a city ([Greek: polis], _polis_) that men--
+
+ “rubbed each other’s angles down,”
+
+and became _polished_. And while a certain amount of ease with regard to
+ourselves and of consideration with regard to others is everywhere
+necessary to a man’s passing as a gentleman--all unevenness of behaviour
+resulting either from shyness or self-consciousness (in the shape of
+awkwardness), or from overweening or selfishness (in the shape of
+rudeness), having to be polished away--true human polish must go further
+than this. Its respects are not confined to the manners of the ball-room
+or the dinner-table, of the club or the exchange, but wherever a man may
+rejoice with them that rejoice or weep with them that weep, he must
+remain one and the same, as polished to the tiller of the soil as to the
+leader of the fashion.
+
+But how will the figure of material polish aid us any further? How can
+it be said that Polish of Manners is a revelation of that which is
+within, a calling up to the surface of the hidden loveliness of the
+material? For do we not know that courtesy may cover contempt; that
+smiles themselves may hide hate; that one who will place you at his
+right hand when in want of your inferior aid, may scarce acknowledge
+your presence when his necessity has gone by? And how then can polished
+manners be a revelation of what is within? Are they not the result of
+putting on rather than of taking off? Are they not paint and varnish
+rather than polish?
+
+I must yield the answer to each of these questions; protesting, however,
+that with such polish I have nothing to do; for these manners are
+confessedly false. But even where least able to mislead, they are, with
+corresponding courtesy, accepted as outward signs of an inward grace.
+Hence even such, by the nature of their falsehood, support my position.
+For in what forms are the colours of the paint laid upon the surface of
+the material? Is it not in as near imitations of the real right human
+feelings about oneself and others as the necessarily imperfect knowledge
+of such an artist can produce? He will not encounter the labour of
+polishing, for he does not believe in the divine depths of his own
+nature: he paints, and calls the varnish polish.
+
+“But why talk of polish with reference to such a character, seeing that
+no amount of polishing can bring to the surface what is not there? No
+polishing of sandstone will reveal the mottling of marble. For it is
+sandstone, crumbling and gritty--not noble in any way.”
+
+Is it so then? Can such be the real nature of the man? And can polish
+reach nothing deeper in him than such? May not this selfishness be
+polished away, revealing true colour and harmony beneath? Was not the
+man made in the image of God? Or, if you say that man lost that image,
+did not a new process of creation begin from the point of that loss, a
+process of re-creation in him in whom all shall be made alive, which,
+although so far from being completed yet, can never be checked? If we
+cut away deep enough at the rough block of our nature, shall we not
+arrive at some likeness of that true man who, the apostle says, dwells
+in us--the hope of glory? He informs us--that is, forms us from within.
+
+Dr. Donne (who knew less than any other writer in the English language
+what Polish of Style means) recognizes this divine polishing to the
+full. He says in a poem called “The Cross:”--
+
+ As perchance carvers do not faces make,
+ But that away, which hid them there, do take,
+ Let Crosses so take what hid Christ in thee,
+ And be his Image, or not his, but He.
+
+This is no doubt a higher figure than that of _polish_, but it is of the
+same kind, revealing the same truth. It recognizes the fact that the
+divine nature lies at the root of the human nature, and that the polish
+which lets that spiritual nature shine out in the simplicity of heavenly
+childhood, is the true Polish of Manners of which all merely social
+refinements are a poor imitation.--Whence Coleridge says that nothing
+but religion can make a man a gentleman.--And when these harmonies of
+our nature come to the surface, we shall be indeed “lively stones,” fit
+for building into the great temple of the universe, and echoing the
+music of creation. Dr. Donne recognizes, besides, the notable fact that
+_crosses_ or afflictions are the polishing powers by means of which the
+beautiful realities of human nature are brought to the surface. One can
+tell at once by the peculiar loveliness of certain persons that they
+have suffered.
+
+But, to look for a moment less profoundly into the matter, have we not
+known those whose best never could get to the surface just from the lack
+of polish?--persons who, if they could only reveal the kindness of
+their nature, would make men believe in human nature, but in whom some
+roughness of awkwardness or of shyness prevents the true self from
+appearing? Even the dread of seeming to claim a good deed or to
+patronize a fellow-man will sometimes spoil the last touch of tenderness
+which would have been the final polish of the act of giving, and would
+have revealed infinite depths of human devotion. For let the truth out,
+and it will be seen to be true.
+
+Simplicity is the end of all Polish, as of all Art, Culture, Morals,
+Religion, and Life. The Lord our God is one Lord, and we and our
+brothers and sisters are one Humanity, one Body of the Head.
+
+Now to the practical: what are we to do for the polish of our manners?
+
+Just what I have said we must do for the polish of our style. Take off;
+do not put on. Polish away this rudeness, that awkwardness. Correct
+everything self-assertive, which includes nine tenths of all vulgarity.
+Imitate no one’s behaviour; that is to paint. Do not think about
+yourself; that is to varnish. Put what is wrong right, and what is in
+you will show itself in harmonious behaviour.
+
+But no one can go far in this track without discovering that true polish
+reaches much deeper; that the outward exists but for the sake of the
+inward; and that the manners, as they depend on the morals, must be
+forgotten in the morals of which they are but the revelation. Look at
+the high-shouldered, ungainly child in the corner: his mother tells him
+to go to his book, and he wants to go to his play. Regard the swollen
+lips, the skin tightened over the nose, the distortion of his shape, the
+angularity of his whole appearance. Yet he is not an awkward child by
+nature. Look at him again the moment after he has given in and kissed
+his mother. His shoulders have dropped to their place; his limbs are
+free from the fetters that bound them; his motions are graceful, and the
+one blends harmoniously with the other. He is no longer thinking of
+himself. He has given up his own way. The true childhood comes to the
+surface, and you see what the boy is meant to be always. Look at the
+jerkiness of the conceited man. Look at the quiet _fluency_ of motion in
+the modest man. Look how anger itself which forgets self, which is
+unhating and righteous, will elevate the carriage and ennoble the
+movements.
+
+But how far can the same rule of _omission_ or _rejection_ be applied
+with safety to this deeper character--the manners of the spirit?
+
+It seems to me that in morals too the main thing is to avoid doing
+wrong; for then the active spirit of life in us will drive us on to the
+right. But on such a momentous question I would not be dogmatic. Only as
+far as regards the feelings I would say: it is of no use to try to make
+ourselves feel thus or thus. Let us fight with our wrong feelings; let
+us polish away the rough ugly distortions of feeling. Then the real and
+the good will come of themselves. Or rather, to keep to my figure, they
+will then show themselves of themselves as the natural home-produce, the
+indwelling facts of our deepest--that is, our divine nature.
+
+Here I find that I am sinking through my subject into another and
+deeper--a truth, namely, which should, however, be the foundation of all
+our building, the background of all our representations: that Life is at
+work in us--the sacred Spirit of God travailing in us. That Spirit has
+gained one end of his labour--at which he can begin to do yet more for
+us--when he has brought us to beg for the help which he has been giving
+us all the time.
+
+I have been regarding infinite things through the medium of one limited
+figure, knowing that figures with all their suggestions and relations
+could not reveal them utterly. But so far as they go, these thoughts
+raised by the word Polish and its figurative uses appear to me to be
+most true.
+
+
+
+
+BROWNING’S “CHRISTMAS EVE”
+
+
+[Footnote: 1853.]
+
+
+Goethe says:--
+
+ “Poems are painted window panes.
+ If one looks from the square into the church,
+ Dusk and dimness are his gains--
+ Sir Philistine is left in the lurch!
+ The sight, so seen, may well enrage him,
+ Nor anything henceforth assuage him.
+
+ “But come just inside what conceals;
+ Cross the holy threshold quite--
+ All at once ‘tis rainbow-bright,
+ Device and story flash to light,
+ A gracious splendour truth reveals.
+ This to God’s children is full measure,
+ It edifies and gives you pleasure!”
+
+This is true concerning every form in which truth is embodied, whether
+it be sight or sound, geometric diagram or scientific formula.
+Unintelligible, it may be dismal enough, regarded from the outside;
+prismatic in its revelation of truth from within. Such is the world
+itself, as beheld by the speculative eye; a thing of disorder,
+obscurity, and sadness: only the child-like heart, to which the door
+into the divine idea is thrown open, can understand somewhat the secret
+of the Almighty. In human things it is particularly true of art, in
+which the fundamental idea seems to be the revelation of the true
+through the beautiful. But of all the arts it is most applicable to
+poetry; for the others have more that is beautiful on the outside; can
+give pleasure to the senses by the form of the marble, the hues of the
+painting, or the sweet sounds of the music, although the heart may never
+perceive the meaning that lies within. But poetry, except its rhythmic
+melody, and its scattered gleams of material imagery, for which few care
+that love it not for its own sake, has no attraction on the outside to
+entice the passer to enter and partake of its truth. It is inwards that
+its colours shine, within that its forms move, and the sound of its holy
+organ cannot be heard from without.
+
+Now, if one has been able to reach the heart of a poem, answering to
+Goethe’s parabolic description; or even to discover a loop-hole, through
+which, from an opposite point, the glories of its stained windows are
+visible; it is well that he should seek to make others partakers in his
+pleasure and profit. Some who might not find out for themselves, would
+yet be evermore grateful to him who led them to the point of vision.
+Surely if a man would help his fellow-men, he can do so far more
+effectually by exhibiting truth than exposing error, by unveiling beauty
+than by a critical dissection of deformity. From the very nature of the
+things it must be so. Let the true and good destroy their opposites. It
+is only by the good and beautiful that the evil and ugly are known. It
+is the light that makes manifest.
+
+The poem “Christmas Eve,” by Robert Browning, with the accompanying poem
+“Easter Day,” seems not to have attracted much notice from the readers
+of poetry, although highly prized by a few. This is, perhaps, to be
+attributed, in a great measure, to what many would call a considerable
+degree of obscurity. But obscurity is the appearance which to a first
+glance may be presented either by profundity or carelessness of thought.
+To some, obscurity itself is attractive, from the hope that worthiness
+is the cause of it. To apply a test similar to that by which Pascal
+tries the Koran and the Scriptures: what is the character of those
+portions, the meaning of which is plain? Are they wise or foolish? If
+the former, the presumption is that the obscurity of other parts is
+caused not by opacity, but profundity. But some will object,
+notwithstanding, that a writer ought to make himself plain to his
+readers; nay, that if he has a clear idea himself, he must be able to
+express that idea clearly. But for communion of thought, two minds, not
+one, are necessary. The fault may lie in him that receives or in him
+that gives, or it may be in neither. For how can the result of much
+thought, the idea which for mouths has been shaping itself in the mind
+of one man, be at once received by another mind to which it comes a
+stranger and unexpected? The reader has no right to complain of so
+caused obscurity. Nor is that form of expression, which is most easily
+understood at first sight, necessarily the best. It will not, therefore,
+continue to move; nor will it gather force and influence with more
+intimate acquaintance. Here Goethe’s little parable, as he calls it, is
+peculiarly applicable. But, indeed, if after all a writer is obscure,
+the man who has spent most labour in seeking to enter into his thoughts,
+will be the least likely to complain of his obscurity; and they who have
+the least difficulty in understanding a writer, are frequently those who
+understand him the least.
+
+To those to whom the religion of Christ has been the law of liberty; who
+by that door have entered into the universe of God, and have begun to
+feel a growing delight in all the manifestations of God, it is cause of
+much joy to find that, whatever may be the position taken by men of
+science, or by those in whom the intellect predominates, with regard to
+the Christian religion, men of genius, at least, in virtue of what is
+child-like in their nature, are, in the present time, plainly
+manifesting deep devotion to Christ. There are exceptions, certainly;
+but even in those, there are symptoms of feelings which, one can hardly
+help thinking, tend towards him, and will one day flame forth in
+conscious worship. A mind that recognizes any of the multitudinous
+meanings of the revelation of God, in the world of sounds, and forms,
+and colours, cannot be blind to the higher manifestation of God in
+common humanity; nor to him in whom is hid the key to the whole, the
+First-born of the creation of God, in whose heart lies, as yet but
+partially developed, the kingdom of heaven, which is the redemption of
+the earth. The mind that delights in that which is lofty and great,
+which feels there is something higher than self, will undoubtedly be
+drawn towards Christ; and they, who at first looked on him as a great
+prophet, came at length to perceive that he was the radiation of the
+Father’s glory, the likeness of his unseen being.
+
+A description of the poem may, perhaps, both induce to the reading of
+it, and contribute to its easier comprehension while being perused. On a
+stormy Christmas Eve, the poet, or rather the seer (for the whole must
+be regarded as a poetic vision), is compelled to take refuge in the
+“lath and plaster entry” of a little chapel, belonging to a congregation
+of Calvinistic Methodists, who are at the time assembling for worship.
+Wonderful in its reality is the description of various of the flock that
+pass him as they enter the chapel, from
+
+ “the many-tattered
+ Little old-faced, peaking sister-turned-mother
+ Of the sickly babe she tried to smother
+ Somehow up, with its spotted face,
+ From the cold, on her breast, the one warm place:”
+
+to the “shoemaker’s lad;” whom he follows, determined not to endure the
+inquisition of their looks any longer, into the chapel. The humour of
+the whole scene within is excellent. The stifling closeness, both of the
+atmosphere and of the sermon, the wonderful content of the audience, the
+“old fat woman,” who
+
+ “purred with pleasure,
+ And thumb round thumb went twirling faster,
+ While she, to his periods keeping measure,
+ Maternally devoured the pastor;”
+
+are represented by a few rapid touches that bring certain points of the
+reality almost unpleasantly near. At length, unable to endure it longer,
+he rushes out into the air. Objection may, probably, be made to the
+mingling of the humorous, even the ridiculous, with the serious; at
+least, in a work of art like this, where they must be brought into such
+close proximity. But are not these things as closely connected in the
+world as they can be in any representation of it? Surely there are few
+who have never had occasion to attempt to reconcile the thought of the
+two in their own minds. Nor can there be anything human that is not, in
+some connexion or other, admissible into art. The widest idea of art
+must comprehend all things. A work of this kind must, like God’s world,
+in which he sends rain on the just and on the unjust, be taken as a
+whole and in regard to its design. The requisition is, that everything
+introduced have a relation to the adjacent parts and to the whole
+suitable to the design. Here the thing is real, is true, is human; a
+thing to be thought about. It has its place amongst other phenomena,
+with which, however apparently incongruous, it is yet vitally connected
+within.
+
+A coolness and delight visit us, on turning over the page and commencing
+to read the description of sky, and moon, and clouds, which greet him
+outside the chapel. It is as a vision of the vision-bearing world
+itself, in one of its fine, though not, at first, one of its rarest
+moods. And here a short digression to notice like feelings in unlike
+dresses, one thought differently expressed will, perhaps, be pardoned.
+The moon is prevented from shining out by the “blocks” of cloud “built
+up in the west:”--
+
+ “And the empty other half of the sky
+ Seemed in its silence as if it knew
+ What, any moment, might look through
+ A chance-gap in that fortress massy.”
+
+Old Henry Vaughan says of the “Dawning:”--
+
+ “The whole Creation shakes off night,
+ And for thy shadow looks the Light;
+ Stars now vanish without number,
+ Sleepie Planets set and slumber,
+ The pursie Clouds disband and scatter,
+ _All expect some sudden matter_.”
+
+Calmness settles down on his mind. He walks on, thinking of the scene he
+had left, and the sermon he had heard. In the latter he sees the good
+and the bad intimately mingled; and is convinced that the chief benefit
+derived from it is a reproducing of former impressions. The thought
+crosses him, in how many places and how many different forms the same
+thing takes place, “a convincing” of the “convinced;” and he rejoices in
+the contrast which his church presents to these; for in the church of
+Nature his love to God, assurance of God’s love to him, and confidence
+in the design of God regarding him, commenced. While exulting in God and
+the knowledge of Him to be attained hereafter, he is favoured with a
+sight of a glorious moon-rainbow, which elevates his worship to ecstasy.
+During which--
+
+ “All at once I looked up with terror--
+ He was there.
+ He himself with His human air,
+ On the narrow pathway, just before:
+ I saw the back of Him, no more--
+ He had left the chapel, then, as I.
+ I forgot all about the sky.
+ No face: only the sight
+ Of a sweepy garment, vast and white,
+ With a hem that I could recognize.
+ I felt terror, no surprise:
+ My mind filled with the cataract,
+ At one bound, of the mighty fact.
+ I remembered, He did say
+ Doubtless, that, to this world’s end,
+ Where two or three should meet and pray,
+ He would be in the midst, their friend:
+ Certainly He was there with them.
+ And my pulses leaped for joy
+ Of the golden thought without alloy,
+ That I saw His very vesture’s hem.
+ Then rushed the blood back, cold and clear,
+ With a fresh enhancing shiver of fear.”
+
+Praying for forgiveness wherein he has sinned, and prostrate in
+adoration before the form of Christ, he is “caught up in the whirl and
+drift” of his vesture, and carried along with him over the earth.
+
+Stopping at length at the entrance of St. Peter’s in Rome, he remains
+outside, while the form disappears within. He is able, however, to see
+all that goes on, in the crowded, hushed interior. It is high mass. He
+has been carried at once from the little chapel to the opposite
+aesthetic pole. From the entry, where--
+
+ “The flame of the single tallow candle
+ In the cracked square lanthorn I stood under
+ Shot its blue lip at me,”
+
+to--
+ “This miraculous dome of God--
+ This colonnade
+ With arms wide open to embrace
+ The entry of the human race
+ To the breast of.... what is it, yon building,
+ Ablaze in front, all paint and gilding,
+ With marble for brick, and stones of price
+ For garniture of the edifice?”
+
+to “those fountains”--
+
+ “Growing up eternally
+ Each to a musical water-tree,
+ Whose blossoms drop, a glittering boon,
+ Before my eyes, in the light of the moon,
+ To the granite lavers underneath;”
+
+from the singing of the chapel to the organ self-restrained, that “holds
+his breath and grovels latent,” while expecting the elevation of the
+Host. Christ is within; he is left without. Reflecting on the matter, he
+thinks his Lord would not require him to go in, though he himself
+entered, because there was a way to reach him there. By-and-by, however,
+his heart awakes and declares that Love goes beyond error with them, and
+if the Intellect be kept down, yet Love is the oppressor; so next time
+he resolves to enter and praise along with them. The passage commencing,
+“Oh, love of those first Christian days!” describing Love’s victory over
+Intellect, is very fine.
+
+Again he is caught up and carried along as before. This time halt is
+made at the door of a college in a German town, in which the class-room
+of one of the professors is open for lecture this Christmas Eve. It is,
+intellectually considered, the opposite pole to both the Methodist
+chapel and the Roman Basilica. The poet enters, fearful of losing the
+society of “any that call themselves his friends.” He describes the
+assembled company, and the entrance of “the hawk-nosed, high-cheek-boned
+professor,” of part of whose Christmas Eve’s discourse he proceeds to
+give the substance. The professor takes it for granted that “plainly no
+such life was liveable,” and goes on to inquire what explanation of the
+phenomena of the life of Christ it were best to adopt. Not that it
+mattered much, “so the idea be left the same.” Taking the popular story,
+for convenience sake, and separating all extraneous matter from it, he
+found that Christ was simply a good man, with an honest, true heart;
+whose disciples thought him divine; and whose doctrine, though quite
+mistaken by those who received and published it, “had yet a meaning
+quite as respectable.” Here the poet takes advantage of a pause to leave
+him; reflecting that though the air may be poisoned by the sects, yet
+here “the critic leaves no air to poison.” His meditations and arguments
+following, are among the most valuable passages in the book. The
+professor, notwithstanding the idea of Christ has by him been exhausted
+of all that is peculiar to it, yet recommends him to the veneration and
+worship of his hearers, “rather than all who went before him, and all
+who ever followed after.” But why? says the poet. For his intellect,
+
+ “Which tells me simply what was told
+ (If mere morality, bereft
+ Of the God in Christ, be all that’s left)
+ Elsewhere by voices manifold?”
+
+with which must be combined the fact that this intellect of his did not
+save him from making the “important stumble,” of saying that he and God
+were one. “But his followers misunderstood him,” says the objector.
+Perhaps so; but “the stumbling-block, his speech, who laid it?” Well
+then, is it on the score of his goodness that he should rule his race?
+
+ “You pledge
+ Your fealty to such rule? What, all--
+ From Heavenly John and Attic Paul,
+ And that brave weather-battered Peter,
+ Whose stout faith only stood completer
+ For buffets, sinning to be pardoned,
+ As the more his hands hauled nets, they hardened--
+ All, down to you, the man of men,
+ Professing here at Göttingen,
+ Compose Christ’s flock! So, you and I
+ Are sheep of a good man! And why?”
+
+Did Christ _invent_ goodness? or did he only demonstrate that of which
+the common conscience was judge?
+
+ “I would decree
+ Worship for such mere demonstration
+ And simple work of nomenclature,
+ Only the day I praised, not Nature,
+ But Harvey, for the circulation.”
+
+The worst man, says the poet, _knows_ more than the best man _does_. God
+in Christ appeared to men to help them to _do_, to awaken the life
+within them.
+
+ “Morality to the uttermost,
+ Supreme in Christ as we all confess,
+ Why need _we_ prove would avail no jot
+ To make Him God, if God he were not?
+ What is the point where Himself lays stress?
+ Does the precept run, ‘Believe in good,
+ In justice, truth, now understood
+ For the first time?’--or, ‘Believe in ME,
+ Who lived and died, yet essentially
+ Am Lord of life’? Whoever can take
+ The same to his heart, and for mere love’s sake
+ Conceive of the love,--that man obtains
+ A new truth; no conviction gains
+ Of an old one only, made intense
+ By a fresh appeal to his faded sense.”
+
+In this lies the most direct practical argument with regard to what is
+commonly called the Divinity of Christ. Here is a man whom those that
+magnify him the least confess to be a good man, the best of men. He
+_says_, “I and the Father are one.” Will an earnest heart, knowing this,
+be likely to draw back, or will it draw nearer to behold the great
+sight? Will not such a heart feel: “A good man like this would not have
+said so, were it not so. In all probability the great truth of God lies
+behind this veil.” The reality of Christ’s nature is not to be proved by
+argument. He must be beheld. The manifestation of Him must “gravitate
+inwards” on the soul. It is by looking that one can know. As a
+mathematical theorem is to be proved only by the demonstration of that
+theorem itself, not by talking _about_ it; so Christ must prove himself
+to the human soul through being beheld. The only proof of Christ’s
+divinity is his humanity. Because his humanity is not comprehended, his
+divinity is doubted; and while the former is uncomprehended, an assent
+to the latter is of little avail. For a man to theorize theologically in
+any form, while he has not so apprehended Christ, or to neglect the
+gazing on him for the attempt to substantiate to himself any form of
+belief respecting him, is to bring on himself, in a matter of divine
+import, such errors as the expounders of nature in old time brought on
+themselves, when they speculated on what a thing must be, instead of
+observing what it was; this _must be_ having for its foundation not
+self-evident truth, but notions whose chief strength lay in their
+preconception. There are thoughts and feelings that cannot be called up
+in the mind by any power of will or force of imagination; which, being
+spiritual, must arise in the soul when in its highest spiritual
+condition; when the mind, indeed, like a smooth lake, reflects only
+heavenly images. A steadfast regarding of Him will produce this calm,
+and His will be the heavenly form reflected from the mental depth.
+
+But to return to the poem. The fact that Christ remains inside, leads
+the poet to reflect, in the spirit of Him who found all the good in men
+he could, neglecting no point of contact which presented itself, whether
+there was anything at this lecture with which he could sympathize; and
+he finds that the heart of the professor does something to rescue him
+from the error of his brain. In his brain, even, “if Love’s dead there,
+it has left a ghost.” For when the natural deduction from his argument
+would be that our faith
+
+ “Be swept forthwith to its natural dust-hole,--
+ He bids us, when we least expect it,
+ Take back our faith--if it be not just whole,
+ Yet a pearl indeed, as his tests affect it,
+ Which fact pays the damage done rewardingly,
+ So, prize we our dust and ashes accordingly!”
+
+Love as well as learning being necessary to the understanding of the New
+Testament, it is to the poet matter of regret that “loveless learning”
+ should leave its proper work, and make such havoc in that which belongs
+not to it. But while he sits “talking with his mind,” his mood begins to
+degenerate from sympathy with that which is good to indifference towards
+all forms, and he feels inclined to rest quietly in the enjoyment of his
+own religious confidence, and trouble himself in no wise about the faith
+of his neighbours; for doubtless all are partakers of the central light,
+though variously refracted by the varied translucency of the mental
+prism....
+
+ “‘Twas the horrible storm began afresh!
+ The black night caught me in his mesh,
+ Whirled me up, and flung me prone!
+ I was left on the college-step alone.
+ I looked, and far there, ever fleeting
+ Far, far away, the receding gesture,
+ And looming of the lessening vesture,
+ Swept forward from my stupid hand,
+ While I watched my foolish heart expand
+ In the lazy glow of benevolence
+ O’er the various modes of man’s belief.
+ I sprang up with fear’s vehemence.
+ --Needs must there be one way, our chief
+ Best way of worship: let me strive
+ To find it, and when found, contrive
+ My fellows also take their share.
+ This constitutes my earthly care:
+ God’s is above it and distinct!”
+
+The symbolism in the former part of this extract is grand. As soon as he
+ceases to look practically on the phenomena with which he is surrounded,
+he is enveloped in storm and darkness, and sees only in the far distance
+the disappearing skirt of his Lord’s garment. God’s care is over all, he
+goes on to say; I must do _my part_. If I look speculatively on the
+world, there is nothing but dimness and mystery. If I look practically
+on it,
+
+ “No mere mote’s-breadth, but teems immense
+ With witnessings of Providence.”
+
+And whether the world which I seek to help censures or praises me--that
+is nothing to me. My life--how is it with me?
+
+ “Soul of mine, hadst thou caught and held
+ By the hem of the vesture....
+ And I caught
+ At the flying robe, and, unrepelled,
+ Was lapped again in its folds full-fraught
+ With warmth and wonder and delight,
+ God’s mercy being infinite.
+ And scarce had the words escaped my tongue,
+ When, at a passionate bound, I sprung
+ Out of the wandering world of rain,
+ Into the little chapel again.”
+
+Had he dreamed? how then could he report of the sermon and the preacher?
+of which and of whom he proceeds to give a very external account. But
+correcting himself--
+
+ “Ha! Is God mocked, as He asks?
+ Shall I take on me to change his tasks,
+ And dare, despatched to a river-head
+ For a simple draught of the element,
+ Neglect the thing for which He sent,
+ And return with another thing instead!
+ Saying .... ‘Because the water found
+ Welling up from underground,
+ Is mingled with the taints of earth,
+ While Thou, I know, dost laugh at dearth,
+ And couldest, at a word, convulse
+ The world with the leap of its river-pulse,--
+ Therefore I turned from the oozings muddy,
+ And bring thee a chalice I found, instead.
+ See the brave veins in the breccia ruddy!
+ One would suppose that the marble bled.
+ What matters the water? A hope I have nursed,
+ That the waterless cup will quench my thirst.’
+ --Better have knelt at the poorest stream
+ That trickles in pain from the straitest rift!
+ For the less or the more is all God’s gift,
+ Who blocks up or breaks wide the granite seam.
+ And here, is there water or not, to drink?”
+
+He comes to the conclusion, that the best for him is that mode of
+worship which partakes the least of human forms, and brings him nearest
+to the spiritual; and, while expressing good wishes for the Pope and the
+professor--
+
+ “Meantime, in the still recurring fear
+ Lest myself, at unawares, be found,
+ While attacking the choice of my neighbours round,
+ Without my own made--I choose here!”
+
+He therefore joins heartily in the hymn which is sung by the
+congregation of the little chapel at the close of their worship. And
+this concludes the poem.
+
+What is the central point from which this poem can be regarded? It does
+not seem to be very hard to find. Novalis has said: “Die Philosophie ist
+eigentlich Heimweh, ein Trieb überall zu Hause zu sein.” (Philosophy is
+really home-sickness, an impulse to be at home everywhere.) The life of
+a man here, if life it be, and not the vain image of what might be a
+life, is a continual attempt to find his place, his centre of
+recipiency, and active agency. He wants to know where he is, and where
+he ought to be and can be; for, rightly considered, the position a man
+ought to occupy is the only one he truly _can_ occupy. It is a climbing
+and striving to reach that point of vision where the multiplex crossings
+and apparent intertwistings of the lines of fact and feeling and duty
+shall manifest themselves as a regular and symmetrical design. A
+contradiction, or a thing unrelated, is foreign and painful to him, even
+as the rocky particle in the gelatinous substance of the oyster; and,
+like the latter, he can only rid himself of it by encasing it in the
+pearl-like enclosure of faith; believing that hidden there lies the
+necessity for a higher theory of the universe than has yet been
+generated in his soul. The quest for this home-centre, in the man who
+has faith, is calm and ceaseless; in the man whose faith is weak, it is
+stormy and intermittent. Unhappy is that man, of necessity, whose
+perceptions are keener than his faith is strong. Everywhere Nature
+herself is putting strange questions to him; the human world is full of
+dismay and confusion; his own conscience is bewildered by contradictory
+appearances; all which may well happen to the man whose eye is not yet
+single, whose heart is not yet pure. He is not at home; his soul is
+astray amid people of a strange speech and a stammering tongue. But the
+faithful man is led onward; in the stillness that his confidence
+produces arise the bright images of truth; and visions of God, which are
+only beheld in solitary places, are granted to his soul.
+
+ “O struggling with the darkness all the night,
+ And visited all night by troops of stars!”
+
+What is true of the whole, is true of its parts. In all the relations of
+life, in all the parts of the great whole of existence, the true man is
+ever seeking his home. This poem seems to show us such a quest. “Here I
+am in the midst of many who belong to the same family. They differ in
+education, in habits, in forms of thought; but they are called by the
+same name. What position with regard to them am I to assume? I am a
+Christian; how am I to live in relation to Christians?” Such seems to be
+something like the poet’s thought. What central position can he gain,
+which, while it answers best the necessities of his own soul with regard
+to God, will enable him to feel himself connected with the whole
+Christian world, and to sympathize with all; so that he may not be
+alone, but one of the whole. Certainly the position necessary for both
+requirements is one and the same. He that is isolated from his brethren,
+loses one of the greatest helps to draw near to God. Now, in this time,
+which is so peculiarly transitional, this is a question of no little
+import for all who, while they gladly forsake old, or rather _modern_,
+theories, for what is to them a more full development of Christianity as
+well as a return to the fountain-head, yet seek to be saved from the
+danger of losing sympathy with those who are content with what they are
+compelled to abandon. Seeing much in the common modes of thought and
+belief that is inconsistent with Christianity, and even opposed to it,
+they yet cannot but see likewise in many of them a power of spiritual
+good; which, though not dependent on the peculiar mode, is yet
+enveloped, if not embodied, in that mode.
+
+ “Ask, else, these ruins of humanity,
+ This flesh worn out to rags and tatters,
+ This soul at struggle with insanity,
+ Who thence take comfort, can I doubt,
+ Which an empire gained, were a loss without.”
+
+The love of God is the soul of Christianity. Christ is the body of that
+truth. The love of God is the creating and redeeming, the forming and
+satisfying power of the universe. The love of God is that which kills
+evil and glorifies goodness. It is the safety of the great whole. It is
+the home-atmosphere of all life. Well does the poet of the “Christmas
+Eve” say:--
+
+ “The loving worm within its clod,
+ Were diviner than a loveless God
+ Amid his worlds, I will dare to say.”
+
+Surely then, inasmuch as man is made in the image of God nothing less
+than a love in the image of God’s love, all-embracing, quietly excusing,
+heartily commending, can constitute the blessedness of man; a love not
+insensible to that which is foreign to it, but overcoming it with good.
+Where man loves in his kind, even as God loves in His kind, then man is
+saved, then he has reached the unseen and eternal. But if, besides the
+necessity to love that lies in a man, there be likewise in the man whom
+he ought to love something in common with him, then the law of love has
+increased force. If that point of sympathy lies at the centre of the
+being of each, and if these centres are brought into contact, then the
+circles of their being will be, if not coincident, yet concentric. We
+must wait patiently for the completion of God’s great harmony, and
+meantime love everywhere and as we can.
+
+But the great lesson which this poem teaches, and which is taught more
+directly in the “Easter Day” (forming part of the same volume), is that
+the business of a man’s life is to be a Christian. A man has to do with
+God first; in Him only can he find the unity and harmony he seeks. To be
+one with Him is to be at the centre of things. If one acknowledges that
+God has revealed himself in Christ; that God has recognized man as his
+family, by appearing among them in their form; surely that very
+acknowledgment carries with it the admission that man’s chief concern is
+with this revelation. What does God say and mean, teach and manifest,
+herein? If this world is God’s making, and he is present in all nature;
+if he rules all things and is present in all history; if the soul of man
+is in his image, with all its circles of thought and multiplicity of
+forms; and if for man it be not enough to be rooted in God, but he must
+likewise lay hold on God; then surely no question, in whatever
+direction, can be truly answered, save by him who stands at the side of
+Christ. The doings of God cannot be understood, save by him who has the
+mind of Christ, which is the mind of God. All things must be strange to
+one who sympathizes not with the thought of the Maker, who understands
+not the design of the Artist. Where is he to begin? What light has he by
+which to classify? How will he bring order out of this apparent
+confusion, when the order is higher than his thought; when the confusion
+to him is _caused_ by the order’s being greater than he can comprehend?
+Because he stands outside and not within, he sees an entangled maze of
+forces, where there is in truth an intertwining dance of harmony. There
+is for no one any solution of the world’s mystery, or of any part of its
+mystery, except he be able to say with our poet:--
+
+ “I have looked to Thee from the beginning,
+ Straight up to Thee through all the world,
+ Which, like an idle scroll, lay furled
+ To nothingness on either side:
+ And since the time Thou wast descried,
+ Spite of the weak heart, so have I
+ Lived ever, and so fain would die,
+ Living and dying, Thee before!”
+
+Christianity is not the ornament, or even complement, of life; it is its
+necessity; it is life itself glorified into God’s ideal.
+
+Dr. Chalmers, from considering the minuteness of the directions given to
+Moses for the making of the tabernacle, was led to think that he himself
+was wrong in attending too little to the “_petite morale_” of dress.
+Will this be excuse enough for occupying a few sentences with the
+rhyming of this poem? Certainly the rhymes of a poem form no small part
+of its artistic existence. Probably there is a deeper meaning in this
+part of the poetic art than has yet been made clear to poet’s mind. In
+this poem the rhymes have their share in its humorous charm. The
+writer’s power of using double and triple rhymes is remarkable, and the
+effect is often pleasing, even where they are used in the more solemn
+parts of the poem. Take the lines:--
+
+ “No! love which, on earth, amid all the shows of it,
+ Has ever been seen the sole good of life in it,
+ The love, ever growing there, spite of the strife in it,
+ Shall arise, made perfect, from death’s repose of it.”
+
+A poem is a thing not for the understanding or heart only, but likewise
+for the ear; or, rather, for the understanding and heart through the
+ear. The best poem is best set forth when best read. If, then, there be
+rhymes which, when read aloud, do, by their composition of words,
+prevent the understanding from laying hold on the separate words, while
+the ear lays hold on the rhymes, the perfection of the art must here be
+lost sight of, notwithstanding the completeness which the rhyming
+manifests on close examination. For instance, in “_equipt yours,”
+ “Scriptures;” “Manchester,” “haunches stir_;” or “_affirm any,”
+ “Germany_;” where two words rhyme with one word. But there are very few
+of them that are objectionable on account of this difficulty and
+necessity of rapid analysis.
+
+One of the most wonderful things in the poem is, that so much of
+argument is expressed in a species of verse, which one might be
+inclined, at first sight, to think the least fitted for embodying it.
+But, in fact, the same amount of argument in any other kind of verse
+would, in all likelihood, have been intolerably dull as a work of art.
+Here the verse is full of life and vigour, flagging never. Where, in
+several parts, the exact meaning is difficult to reach, this results
+chiefly from the dramatic rapidity and condensation of the thoughts. The
+argumentative power is indeed wonderful; the arguments themselves
+powerful in their simplicity, and embodied in words of admirable force.
+The poem is full of pathos and humour; full of beauty and grandeur,
+earnestness and truth.
+
+
+
+
+ESSAYS ON SOME OF THE FORMS OF LITERATURE
+
+
+[Footnote: “Essays on some of
+the Forms of Literature.” By T.T. Lynch, Author of “Theophilus Trinal.”
+ Longmans.]
+
+
+Schoppe, the satiric chorus of Jean Paul’s romance of Titan, makes his
+appearance at a certain masked ball, carrying in front of him a glass
+case, in which the ball is remasked, repeated, and again reflected in a
+mirror behind, by a set of puppets, ludicrously aping the apery of the
+courtiers, whose whole life and outward manifestation was but a
+body-mask mechanically moved with the semblance of real life and action.
+The court simulates reality. The masks are a multiform mockery at their
+own unreality, and as such are regarded by Schoppe, who takes them off
+with the utmost ridicule in his masked puppet-show, which, with its
+reflection in the mirror, is again indefinitely multiplied in the
+many-sided reflector of Schoppe’s, or of Richter’s, or of the reader’s
+own imagination. The successive retreating and beholding in this scene
+is suggested to the reviewer by the fact that the last of these essays
+by Mr. Lynch is devoted in part to reviews. So that the reviews review
+books,--Mr. Lynch reviews the reviews, and the present Reviewer finds
+himself (somewhat presumptuously, it may be) attempting to review Mr.
+Lynch. In this, however, his office must be very different from that of
+Schoppe (for there is a deeper and more real correspondence between the
+position of the showman and the reviewer than that outward resemblance
+which first caused the one to suggest the other). The latter’s office,
+in the present instance, was, by mockery, to destroy the false, the very
+involution of the satire adding to the strength of the ridicule. His
+glass case was simply a review uttered by shapes and wires instead of
+words and handwriting. And the work of the true critic must sometimes be
+to condemn, and, as far as his strength can reach, utterly to destroy
+the false,--scorching and withering its seeming beauty, till it is
+reduced to its essence and original groundwork of dust and ashes. It is
+only, however, when it wears the form of beauty which is the garment of
+truth, and so, like the Erl-maidens, has power to bewitch, that it is
+worth the notice and attack of the critic. Many forms of error, perhaps
+most, are better left alone to die of their own weakness, for the
+galvanic battery of criticism only helps to perpetuate their ghastly
+life. The highest work of the critic, however, must surely be to direct
+attention to the true, in whatever form it may have found utterance. But
+on this let us hear Mr. Lynch himself in the last of these four lectures
+which were delivered by him at the Royal Institution, Manchester, and
+are now before us in the form of a book:--
+
+“The kritikos, the discerner, if he is ever saying to us, This is not
+gold; and never, This is; is either very humbly useful, or very
+perverse, or very unfortunate. This is not gold, he says. Thank you, we
+reply, we perceived as much. And this is not, he adds. True, we answer,
+but we see gold grains glittering out of its rude, dark mass. Well, at
+least, this is not, he proceeds. Perverse man! we retort, are you
+seeking what is not gold? We are inquiring for what is, and unfortunate
+indeed are we if, born into a world of Nature, and of Spirit once so
+rich, we are born but to find that it has spent or has lost all its
+wealth. Unhappy man would he be, who, walking his garden, should scent
+only the earthy savour of leaves dead or dying, never perceiving, and
+that afar off, the heavenly odour of roses fresh to-day from the Maker’s
+hands. The discerning by spiritual aroma may lead to discernment by the
+eye, and to that careful scrutiny, and thence greater knowledge, of
+which the eye is instrument and minister.”
+
+And again:--
+
+“The critic criticized, if dealt with in the worst fashion of his own
+class, must be pronounced a mere monster, ‘seeking whom he may devour;’
+and, therefore, to be hunted and slain as speedily as possible, and
+stuffed for the museum, where he may be regarded with due horror, but in
+safety. But if dealt with after the best fashion of his class, a very
+honourable and beneficent office is assigned him, and he is warned
+only--though zealously--against its perversions. A judicial chair in the
+kingdom of human thought, filled by a man of true integrity,
+comprehensiveness, and delicacy of spirit, is a seat of terror and
+praise, whose powers are at once most fostering to whatever is good,
+most repressive of whatever is evil.... The critic, in his office of
+censurer, has need so much to controvert, expose, and punish, because of
+the abundance of literary faults; and as there is a right and a wrong
+side in warfare, so there will be in criticism. And as when soldiers are
+numerous, there will be not a few who are only tolerable, if even that,
+so of critics. But then the critic is more than the censurer; and in his
+higher and happier aspect appears before us and serves us, as the
+discoverer, the vindicator, and the eulogist of excellence.”
+
+But resisting the temptation to quote further from Mr. Lynch’s book on
+this matter of Criticism, which seemed the natural point of contact by
+which the Reviewer could lay hold on the book, he would pass on with the
+remark that his duty in the present instance is of the nobler and better
+sort--nobler and better, that is, with regard to the object, for duty in
+the man remains ever the same--namely, the exposition of excellence, and
+not of its opposite. Mr. Lynch is a man of true insight and large heart,
+who has already done good in the world, and will do more; although,
+possibly, he belongs rather to the last class of writers described by
+himself, in the extract I am about to give from this same essay, than to
+any of the preceding:--
+
+“Some of the best books are written avowedly, or with evident
+consciousness of the fact, for the select public that is constituted by
+minds of the deeper class, or minds the more advanced of their time.
+Such books may have but a restricted circulation and limited esteem in
+their own day, and may afterwards extend both their fame and the circle
+of their readers. Others of the best books, written with a pathos and a
+power that may be universally felt, appeal at once to the common
+humanity of the world, and get a response marvellously strong and
+immediate. An ordinary human eye and heart, whose glances are true,
+whose pulses healthy, will fit us to say of much that we read--This is
+good, that is poor. But only the educated eye and the experienced heart
+will fit us to judge of what relates to matters veiled from ordinary
+observation, and belonging to the profounder region of human thought and
+emotion. Powers, however, that the few only possess, may be required to
+paint what everybody can see, so that everybody shall say, How
+beautiful! how like! And powers adequate to do this in the finest manner
+will be often adequate to do much more--may produce, indeed, books or
+pictures, whose singular merit only the few shall perceive, and the many
+for awhile deny, and books or pictures which, while they give an
+immediate and pure pleasure to the common eye, shall give a far fuller
+and finer pleasure to that eye that is the organ of a deeper and more
+cultivated soul. There are, too, men of _peculiar_ powers, rare and
+fine, who can never hope to please the large public, at least of their
+own age, but whose writings are a heart’s ease and heart’s joy to the
+select few, and serve such as a cup of heavenly comfort for the earth’s
+journey, and a lamp of heavenly light for the shadows of the way.”
+
+One other extract from the general remarks on Books in this essay, and
+we will turn to another:--
+
+“In all our estimation of the various qualities of books, if it be true
+that our reading assists our life, it is true also that our life assists
+our reading. If we let our spirit talk to us in undistracted moments--if
+we commune with friendly, serious Nature, face to face, often--if we
+pursue honourable aims in a steady progress--if we learn how a man’s
+best work falls below his thought, yet how still his failure prompts a
+tenderer love of his thought--if we live in sincere, frank relations
+with some few friends, joying in their joy, hearing the tale and sharing
+the pain of their grief, and in frequent interchange of honest,
+household sensibility--if we look about us on character, marking
+distinctly what we can see, and feeling the prompting of a hundred
+questions concerning what is out of our ken:--if we live thus, we shall
+be good readers and critics of books, and improving ones.”
+
+The second and third of these essays are on Biography and Fiction
+respectively and principally; treating, however, of collateral subjects
+as well. Deep is the relation between the life shadowed forth in a
+biography, and the life in a man’s brain which he shadows forth in a
+fiction--when that fiction is of the highest order, and written in love,
+is beheld even by the writer himself with reverence. Delightful, surely,
+it must be; yes, awful too, to read to-day the embodiment of a man’s
+noblest thought, to follow the hero of his creation through his
+temptations, contests, and victories, in a world which likewise is--
+
+ “All made out of the carver’s brain;”
+
+and to-morrow to read the biography of this same writer. What of his own
+ideal has he realized? Where can the life-fountain be detected within
+him which found issue to the world’s light and air, in this ideal self?
+Shall God’s fiction, which is man’s reality, fall short of man’s
+fiction? Shall a man be less than what he can conceive and utter? Surely
+it will not, cannot end thus. If a man live at all in harmony with the
+great laws of being--if he will permit the working out of God’s idea in
+him, he must one day arrive at something greater than what now he can
+project and behold. Yet, in biography, we do not so often find traces of
+those struggles depicted in the loftier fiction. One reason may be that
+the contest is often entirely within, and so a man may have won his
+spiritual freedom without any outward token directly significant of the
+victory; except, if he be an artist, such expression as it finds in
+fiction, whether the fiction be in marble, or in sweet harmonies, or in
+ink. Nor can we determine the true significance of any living act; for
+being ourselves within the compass of the life-mystery, we cannot hold
+it at arm’s length from us and look at its lines of configuration. Nor
+of a life can we in any measure determine the success by what we behold
+of it. It is to us at best but a truncated spire, whose want of
+completion may be the greater because of the breadth of its base, and
+its slow taper, indicating the lofty height to which it is intended to
+aspire. The idea of our own life is more than we can embrace. It is not
+ours, but God’s, and fades away into the infinite. Our comprehension is
+finite; we ourselves infinite. We can only trust in God and do the
+truth; then, and then only, is our life safe, and sure both of
+continuance and development.
+
+But the reviewer perhaps too often merely steals his author’s text and
+writes upon it; or, like a man who lies in bed thinking about a dream
+till its folds enwrap him and he sinks into the midst of its visions, he
+forgets his position of beholding, and passes from observation into
+spontaneous utterance. What says our author about “biography,
+autobiography, and history?” This lecture has pleased the reviewer most
+of the four. Reading it in a lonely place, under a tree, with wide
+fields and slopes around, it produced on his mind the two effects which
+perhaps Mr. Lynch would most wish it should produce--namely, first, a
+longing to lead a more true and noble life; and, secondly, a desire to
+read more biography. Nor can he but hope that it must produce the same
+effect on every earnest reader, on every one whose own biography would
+not be altogether a blank in what regards the individual will and
+spiritual aim.
+
+“In meditative hours, when we blend despair of ourself with complaint of
+the world, the biography of a man successful in this great business of
+living is as the visit of an angel sent to strengthen us. Give the
+soldier his sword, the farmer his plough, the carpenter his hammer and
+nails, the manufacturer his machines, the merchant his stores, and the
+scholar his books; these are but implements; the man is more than his
+work or tools. How far has he fulfilled the law of his being, and
+attained its desire? Is his life a whole; the days as threads and as
+touches; the life, the well-woven garment, the well-painted picture?
+Which of two sacrifices has he offered--the one so acceptable to the
+powers of dark worlds, the other so acceptable to powers of bright
+ones--that of soul to body, or that of body to soul? Has he slain what
+was holiest in him to obtain gifts from Fashion or Mammon? Or has he, in
+days so arduous, so assiduous, that they are like a noble army of
+martyrs, made burnt-offering of what was secondary, throwing into the
+flames the salt of true moral energy and the incense of cordial
+affections? We want the work to show us by its parts, its mass, its
+form, the qualities of the man, and to see that the man is perfected
+through his work as well as the work finished by his effort.”
+
+Perhaps the highest moral height which a man can reach, and at the same
+time the most difficult of attainment, is the willingness to be
+_nothing_ relatively, so that he attain that positive excellence which
+the original conditions of his being render not merely possible, but
+imperative. It is nothing to a man to be greater or less than
+another--to be esteemed or otherwise by the public or private world in
+which he moves. Does he, or does he not, behold, and love, and live, the
+unchangeable, the essential, the divine? This he can only do according
+as God hath made him. He can behold and understand God in the least
+degree, as well as in the greatest, only by the godlike within him; and
+he that loves thus the good and great, has no room, no thought, no
+necessity for comparison and difference. The truth satisfies him. He
+lives in its absoluteness. God makes the glow-worm as well as the star;
+the light in both is divine. If mine be an earth-star to gladden the
+wayside, I must cultivate humbly and rejoicingly its green earth-glow,
+and not seek to blanch it to the whiteness of the stars that lie in the
+fields of blue. For to deny God in my own being is to cease to behold
+him in any. God and man can meet only by the man’s becoming that which
+God meant him to be. Then he enters into the house of life, which is
+greater than the house of fame. It is better to be a child in a green
+field than a knight of many orders in a state ceremonial.
+
+“One biography may help conjecture or satisfy reason concerning the
+story of a thousand unrecorded lives. And how few even of the deserving
+among the multitude can deserve, as ‘dear sons of memory,’ to be shrined
+in the public heart. Few of us die unwept, but most of us unwritten. We
+shall find a grave--less certainly a tombstone--and with much less
+likelihood a biographer. Those ‘bright particular’ stars that at evening
+look towards us from afar, yet still are individual in the distance, are
+at clearest times but about a thousand; but the milky lustre that runs
+through mid heaven is composed of a million million lights, which are
+not the less separate because seen undistinguishably. Absorbed, not
+lost, in the multitude of the unrecorded, our private dear ones make
+part in this mild, blissful shining of the ‘general assembly,’ the great
+congregation of the skies. Thus the past is aglow with the unwritten,
+the nameless. The leaders, sons of fame, conspicuous in lustre, eminent
+in place; these are the few, whose great individuality burns with
+distinct, starry light through the dark of ages. Such stars, without the
+starry way, would not teach us the vastness of heaven; and the ‘way,’
+without these, were not sufficient to gladden and glorify the night with
+pomp of Hierarchical Ascents of Domination.”
+
+There are many passages in this essay with which the reviewer would be
+glad to enrich his notice of the book, but limitation of space, and
+perhaps justice to the essay itself, which ought to be read in its own
+completeness, forbid. Mr. Lynch looks to the heart of the matter, and
+makes one put the question--“Would not a biography written by Mr. Lynch
+himself be a valuable addition to this kind of literature?” His would
+not be an interesting account of outward events and relationships and
+progress, nor even a succession of revelations of inward conditions, but
+we should expect to find ourselves elevated by him to a point of view
+from which the life of the man would assume an artistic individuality,
+as it were an isolation of existence; for the supposed author could not
+choose for his regard any biography for which this would be impossible;
+or in which the reticulated nerves of purpose did not combine the whole,
+with more or less of success, into a true and remarkable unity. One
+passage more from this essay,--
+
+“Biography, then, makes life known to us as more wealthy in character,
+and much more remarkable in its every-day stories, than we had deemed
+it. Another good it does us is this. It introduces us to some of our
+most agreeable and stimulative friendships. People may be more
+beneficially intimate with one they never saw than even with a neighbour
+or brother. Many a solitary, puzzled, incommunicative person, has found
+society provided, his riddle read, and his heart’s secret, that longed
+and strove for utterance, outspoken for him in a biography. And both a
+love purer than any yet entertained may be originated, and a pure but
+ungratified love already existing, find an object, by the visit of a
+biography. In actual life you see your friend to-day, and will see him
+again to-morrow or next year; but in the dear book, you have your friend
+and all his experiences at once and ever. He is with you wholly, and may
+be with you at any time. He lives for you, and has already died for you,
+to give finish to the meaning, fulness, and sanctity, to the comfort of
+his days. He is mysteriously above as well as before you, by this fact,
+that he has died. Thus your intimate is your superior, your solace, but
+your support, too, and an example of the victory to which he calls you.
+His end, or her end, is our own in view, and the flagging spirit
+revives. We see the goal, and gird our loins anew for the race. Or,
+speaking of things minor, there is fresh prospect of the game, there is
+companionship in the hunt, and spirit for the winning. Such biography,
+too, is a mirror in which we see ourselves; and we see that we may trim
+or adorn, or that the plain signs of our deficient health or ill-ruled
+temper may set us to look for, and to use the means of improvement. But
+such a mirror is as a water one; in which first you may see your face,
+and which then becomes for you a bath to wash away the stains you see,
+and to offer its pure, cool stream as a restorative and cosmetic for
+your wrinkles and pallors. And what a pleasure there will be sometimes
+as we peruse a biography, in finding another who is so like
+ourself--saying the same things, feeling the same dreads, and shames, and
+flutterings; hampered and harassed much as poor self is. Then, the
+escapes of such a friend give us hope of deliverance for ourself; and
+his better, or if not better, yet rewarded, patience, freshens our eye
+and sinews, and puts a staff into our hand. And certain seals of
+impossibility that we had put on this stone, and on that, beneath which
+our hopes lay buried, are by this biography, as by a visiting angel,
+effectually broken, and our hopes arise again. Our view of life becomes
+more complete because we see the whole of his, or of hers. We view life,
+too, in a more composed, tender way. Wavering faith, in its chosen
+determining principles, is confirmed. In quiet comparison of ourselves
+with one of our own class, or one who has made the mark for which we are
+striving, we are shamed to have done no better, and stirred to attempt
+former things again, or fresh ones in a stronger and more patient
+spirit.”
+
+It is, indeed, well with him who has found a friend whose spirit touches
+his own and illuminates it.
+
+ “I missed him when the sun began to bend;
+ I found him not when I had lost his rim;
+ With many tears I went in search of him,
+ Climbing high mountains which did still ascend,
+ And gave me echoes when I called my friend;
+ Through cities vast and charnel-houses grim,
+ And high cathedrals where the light was dim;
+ Through books, and arts, and works without an end--
+ But found him not, the friend whom I had lost.
+ And yet I found him, as I found the lark,
+ A sound in fields I heard but could not mark;
+ I found him nearest when I missed him most,
+ I found him in my heart, a life in frost,
+ A light I knew not till my soul was dark.”
+
+Next to possessing a true, wise, and victorious friend seated by your
+fireside, it is blessed to have the spirit of such a friend
+embodied--for spirit can assume any embodiment--on your bookshelves. But
+in the latter case the friendship is all on one side. For full
+friendship your friend must love you, and know that you love him. Surely
+these biographies are not merely spiritual links connecting us in the
+truest manner with past times and vanished minds, and thus producing
+strong half friendships. Are they not likewise links connecting us with
+a future, wherein these souls shall dawn upon ours, rising again from
+the death of the past into the life of our knowledge and love? Are not
+these biographies letters of introduction, forwarded, but not yet
+followed by him whom they introduce, for whose step we listen, and whose
+voice we long to hear; and whom we shall yet meet somewhere in the
+Infinite? Shall I not one day, “somewhere, somehow,” clasp the large
+hand of Novalis, and, gazing on his face, compare his features with
+those of Saint John?
+
+The essay on light literature must be left to the spontaneous
+appreciation of those who are already acquainted with this book, or who
+may be induced, by the representations here made, to become acquainted
+with it. Before proceeding to notice the first essay in the little
+volume, namely, that on Poetry, its subject suggests the fact of the
+publication of a second edition of the Memorials of Theophilus Trinal,
+by the same author, a portion of which consists of interspersed poems.
+These are of true poetic worth; and although in some cases wanting in
+rhythmic melody, yet in most of these cases they possess a wild and
+peculiar rhythm of their own. The reviewer knows of some whose hearts
+this book has made glad, and doubtless there are many such.
+
+The essay on Poetry is itself poetic throughout in its expression. And
+how else shall Poetry be described than by Poetry? What form shall
+embrace and define the highest? Must it not be self-descriptive as
+self-existent? For what man is to this planet, what the eye is to man
+himself, Poetry is to Literature. Yet one can hardly help wishing that
+the poetic forms in this Essay were fewer and less minute, and the whole
+a little more scientific; though it is a question how far we have a
+right to ask for this. As you open it, however, the pages seem
+absolutely to sparkle, as if strewn with diamond sparks. It is no dull,
+metallic, surface lustre, but a shining from within, as well as from the
+superficies. Still one cannot deny that fancy is too prominent in Mr.
+Lynch’s writings. It is true that his Fancy is the fairy attendant on
+his Imagination, which latter uses the former for her own higher ends;
+and that there is little or no _mere_ fancy to be found in his books;
+for if you look below the surface-form you find a truth. But it were to
+be desired that the Truth clothed herself always in the living forms of
+Imagination, and thus walked forth amongst her worshippers, looking on
+them from living eyes, rather than that she should show herself through
+the windows of fancy. Sometimes there may be an offence against taste,
+as in page 20; sometimes an image may be expanded too much, and
+sometimes the very exuberance of imaginative fancy (if the combination
+be correct) may lead to an association of images that suggests
+incongruity. Still the essay is abundantly beautiful and true. The
+poetical quotations are not isolated, or exposed to view as specimens,
+but are worked into the web of the prose like the flowers in the damask,
+and do their part in the evolution of the continuous thought.
+
+“If poetry, as light from the heart of God, is for our heart, that we
+may brighten and distinguish individual things; if it is to transfigure
+for us the round, dusk world as by an inner radiance; if it is to
+present human life and history as Rembrandt pictures, in which darkness
+serves and glorifies light; if, like light, formless in its essence, all
+things shapen towards the perfection of their forms under its influence;
+if, entering as through crevices in single beams, it makes dimmest
+places cheerful and sacred with its golden touch: then must the heart of
+the Poet in which this true light shineth be as a hospice on the
+mountain pathways of the world, and his verse must be the lamp seen from
+far that burns to tell us where bread and shelter, drink, fire, and
+companionship, may be found; and he himself should have the
+mountaineer’s hardiness and resolution. From the heart as source, to the
+heart in influence, Poetry comes. The inward, the upward, and the
+onward, whether we speak of an individual or a nation, may not be
+separated in our consideration. Deep and sacred imaginative meditations
+are needed for the true earthward as well as for the heavenward progress
+of men and peoples. And Poetry, whether old or new, streaming from the
+heart moved by the powerful spirit of love, has influence on the heart
+public and individual, and thence on the manners, laws, and institutions
+of nations. If Poesy visit the length and breadth of a country after
+years unfruitfully dull, coming like a showery fertilizing wind after
+drought, the corners and the valley-hidings are visited too, and these
+perhaps she now visits first, as these sometimes she has visited only.
+For miles and for miles, the public corn, the bread of the nation’s
+life, is bettered; and in our own endeared spot, the roses, delight of
+our individual eye and sense, yield us more prosperingly their colour
+and their fragrance. For the universal sunshine which brightens a
+thousand cities, beautifies ten thousand homesteads, and rejoices ten
+times ten thousand hearts. And as rains in the mid season renew for
+awhile the faded greenness of spring; and trees in fervent summers, when
+their foliage has deepened or fully fixed its hue, bedeck themselves
+through the fervency with bright midsummer shoots; so, by Poetry are the
+youthful hues of the soul renewed, and truths that have long stood
+full-foliaged in our minds, are by its fine influences empowered to put
+forth fresh shoots. Thus age, which is a necessity for the body, may be
+warded off as a disease from the soul, and we may be like the old man in
+Chaucer, who had nothing hoary about him but his hairs--
+
+ “‘Though I be hoor I fare as doth a tree
+ That blosmeth er the fruit ywoxen be,
+ The blosmy tree n’ is neither drie ne ded:
+ I feel me nowhere hoor, but on my head.
+ Min herte and all my limmes ben as grene
+ As laurel through the yere is for to sene.’”
+
+Hear our author again as to the calling of the poet:--
+
+“To unite earthly love and celestial--‘true to the kindred points of
+heaven and home;’ to reconcile time and eternity; to draw presage of
+joy’s victory from the delight of the secret honey dropping from the
+clefts of rocky sorrow; _to harmonize our instinctive longings for the
+definite and the infinite, in the ideal Perfect_; to read creation as a
+human book of the heart, both plain and mystical, and divinely written:
+such is the office fulfilled by best-loved poets. Their ladder of
+celestial ascent must be fixed on its base, earth, if its top is to
+securely rest on heaven.”
+
+Beautifully, too, does he describe the birth of Poetry; though one may
+doubt its correctness, at least if attributed to the highest kind of
+poetry.
+
+“When words of felt truth were first spoken by the first pair, in love
+of their garden, their God, and one another, and these words were with
+joyful surprise felt to be in their form and glow answerable to the
+happy thought uttered; then Poetry sprang. And when the first Father and
+first Mother, settling their soul upon its thought, found that thought
+brighten; and when from it, as thus they mused, like branchlets from a
+branch, or flowerets from their bud, other thoughts came, ranging
+themselves by the exerted, yet painlessly exerted, power of the soul, in
+an order felt to be beautiful, and of a sound pleasant in utterance to
+ear and soul; being withal, through the sweetness of their impression on
+the heart, fixed for memory’s frequentest recurrence; then was the
+world’s first poem composed, and in the joyful flutter of a heart that
+had thus become a maker, the maker of a ‘thing of beauty,’ like in
+beauty even unto God’s heaven, and trees, and flowers, the secret of
+Poesy shone tremulously forth.”
+
+Whether this be so or not, the highest poetic feeling of which we are
+now conscious springs not from the beholding of perfected beauty, but
+from the mute sympathy which the creation with all its children
+manifests with us in the groaning and travailing which looketh for the
+sonship. Because of our need and aspiration, the snowdrop gives birth in
+our hearts to a loftier spiritual and poetic feeling, than the rose most
+complete in form, colour, and odour. The rose is of Paradise--the
+snowdrop is of the striving, hoping, longing Earth. Perhaps our highest
+poetry is the expression of our aspirations in the sympathetic forms of
+visible nature. Nor is this merely a longing for a restored Paradise;
+for even in the ordinary history of men, no man or woman that has fallen
+can be restored to the position formerly occupied. Such must rise to a
+yet higher place, whence they can behold their former standing far
+beneath their feet. They must be restored by attaining something better
+than they ever possessed before, or not at all. If the law be a
+weariness, we must escape it by being filled with the spirit, for not
+otherwise can we fulfil the law than by being above the law. There is
+for us no escape, save as the Poet counsels us:--
+
+ “Is thy strait horizon dreary?
+ Is thy foolish fancy chill?
+ Change the feet that have grown weary,
+ For the wings that never will.
+ Burst the flesh and live the spirit;
+ Haunt the beautiful and far;
+ Thou hast all things to inherit,
+ And a soul for every star.”
+
+But the Reviewer must hasten to take leave, though unwillingly, of this
+pleasing, earnest, and profitable book. Perhaps it could be wished that
+the writer helped his readers a little more into the channel of his
+thought; made it easier for them to see the direction in which he is
+leading them; called out to them, “Come up hither,” before he said, “I
+will show you a thing.” But the Reviewer says this with deference; and
+takes his leave with the hope that Mr. Lynch will be listened to for two
+good reasons: first, that he speaks the truth; last, that he has already
+suffered for the Truth’s sake.
+
+
+
+
+THE HISTORY AND HEROES OF MEDICINE.
+
+
+[Footnote: By J. Rutherfurd Russell, M.D.]
+
+In this volume, Dr. Russell has not merely aimed at the production of a
+book that might be serviceable to the Faculty, by which the history of
+its own art is not at all sufficiently studied, but has aspired to the
+far more difficult success of writing a history of medicine which shall
+be readable to all who care for true history--that history, namely, in
+which not merely growth and change are represented, but the secret
+supplies and influences as well, which minister to the one and occasion
+the other. If the difficulty has been greater (although with his
+evidently wide sympathies and keen insight into humanity we doubt if it
+has), the success is the more honourable; for a success it certainly is.
+The partially biographical plan on which he has constructed his work has
+no doubt aided in the accomplishment of this purpose; for it is much
+easier to present the subject in its human relations, when its history
+is given in connexion with the lives of those who were most immediately
+associated with it. But it would be a great mistake to conclude from
+this, that it is the less a history of the art itself; for no art or
+science has life in itself, apart from the minds which foresee,
+discover, and verify it. Whatever point in its progress it may have
+reached, it will there remain until a new man appears, whose new
+questions shall illicit new replies from nature--replies which are the
+essential food of the science, by which it lives, grows, and makes
+itself a history.
+
+Nor must our readers suppose that because the book is readable, it is
+therefore slight, either in material or construction. Much reading and
+research have provided the material, while real thought and argument
+have superintended the construction. Nor is it by any means without the
+adornment that a poetic temperament and a keen sense of humour can
+supply.
+
+Naturally, the central life in the book is that of Lord Bacon, the man
+who brought out of his treasures things both new and old. Up to him the
+story gradually leads from the prehistoric times of Aesculapius, the
+pathway first becoming plainly visible in the life and labours of
+Hippocrates. His fine intellect and powers of acute observation afforded
+the material necessary for the making of a true physician. The Greek
+mind, partly, perhaps, from its artistic tendencies, seems to have been
+peculiarly impatient of incomplete forms, and therefore, to have much
+preferred the construction of a theory from the most shadowy material,
+to the patient experiment and investigation necessary for the procuring
+of the real substance; and Hippocrates, not knowing how to advance to a
+theory by rational experiment, and too honest to invent one, assumes the
+traditional theories, founded on the vaguest and most obtrusive
+generalizations. Those which his experience taught him to reject, were
+adopted and maintained by Galen and all who followed him for centuries,
+the chief instance of progress being only the substitution by the
+Arabians of some of the milder medicines now in use, for the terrible
+and often fatal drugs employed by the Greek and Roman physicians. The
+fanciful classification of diseases into four kinds--hot, cold, moist
+and dry, with the corresponding arbitrary classification of remedies to
+be administered by contraries, continued to be the only recognized
+theory of medicine for many centuries after the Christian era.
+
+But Lord Bacon, amongst other branches of knowledge which he considers
+ill-followed, makes especial mention of medicine, which he would submit
+to the same rules of observation and experiment laid down by him for the
+advancement of learning in general. With regard to it, as with regard to
+the discovery of all the higher laws of nature, he considers “that men
+have made too untimely a departure, and too remote a recess from
+particulars.” Men have hurried to conclusions, and then argued from them
+as from facts. Therefore let us have no traditional theories, and make
+none for ourselves but such as are revealed in the form of laws to the
+patient investigator, who has “straightened and held fast Proteus, that
+he might be compelled to change his shapes,” and so reveal his nature.
+Hence one of the aspects in which Lord Bacon was compelled to appear was
+that of a destroyer of what preceded. In this he resembled Cardan and
+Paracelsus who went before him, and who like him pulled down, but could
+not, like him, build up. He resembled them, however, in the possession
+of another element of character, namely, that poetic imagination which
+looks abroad into the regions of possibilities, and foresees or invents.
+But in the case of the charlatan, the vaguest suggestions of his mind in
+its favourite mood, is adopted as a theory all but proved, if not as a
+direct revelation to the favoured individual; while the true thinker
+seeks but an hypothesis corresponding in some measure to facts already
+discovered, in order that he may have the suggestion of new experiments
+and investigations in the course of his attempts to verify or disprove
+the hypothesis. Lord Bacon considered hypothesis invaluable in the
+discovery of truth, but he only used it as a board upon which to write
+his questions to nature; or, to use another figure, hypothesis with him
+is as the next stepping-stone in the swollen river, which he supposes to
+be here or there, and so feels for with his staff. But it must be proved
+before it be regarded as a law, and greatly corroborated before it be
+even adopted as a theory. Cardan and Paracelsus were destroyers and
+mystics only; they destroyed on the earth that they might build in the
+air: Lord Bacon united both characters in the philosopher. He looked
+abroad into the regions of the unknown, whence all knowledge comes; he
+called wonder the seed of knowledge; but he would build nowhere but on
+the earth--on the firm land of ascertained truth. That which kept him
+right was his practical humanity. It was for the sake of delivering men
+from the ills of life, by discovering the laws of the elements amidst
+which that life must be led, that he laboured and thought. This object
+kept him true, made him able to discover the very laws of discovery;
+brought him so far into _rapport_ with the heart of nature herself,
+that, like a physical prophet, his seeing could outspeed his knowing,
+and behold a law--dimly, it is true, but yet behold it--long before his
+intellect, which had to build bridges and find straw to make the bricks,
+could dare to affirm its approach to the same conclusion. Truth to
+humanity made him true to fact; and truth to fact made him true in
+theory.
+
+It was in this spirit of devotion to his kind that he said, “Therefore
+here is the deficience which I find, that physicians have not ... set
+down and delivered over certain experimental medicines for the cure of
+particular diseases.”
+
+Dr. Russell’s true insight into the relation of Lord Bacon to the
+medical as well as to all science, has suggested the above remarks. What
+our author chiefly desires is, that the same principles which made
+medicine what it is, should be allowed to carry it yet further, and make
+it what it ought to be, and must become. As he goes on to show, through
+succeeding lives and theories, that just in proportion as these
+principles have been followed--the principles of careful observation,
+hypothesis, and experiment--have men made discoveries that have been
+helpful to their fellow-men; while, on the other hand, the most
+elaborate theories of the most popular physicians, which have owed their
+birth to premature generalization and invention, have passed away, like
+the crackling of thorns under a pot. Belonging to the latter class of
+men, we have Stahl, Hoffman, Boerhaave, Cullen, and Brown; while to the
+former belong Harvey, Sydenham, Jenner, and Hahnemann.
+
+After the last name, there is no need to say that our author is a
+homoeopath. Whatever may be our private opinion of the system, justice
+requires that we should say at least that books such as these are quite
+as open to refutation as to ridicule; for it is only a good argument
+that is worth refuting by a better. But we fear there are few books on
+this subject that treat of it with the calmness and fairness which would
+incline an honest homoeopath to put them into the hands of one of the
+opposite party as an exposition of his opinions. There is no excitement
+in these pages. They are the work of a man of liberal education, of
+refinement, and of truthfulness, with power to understand, and facility
+to express; one of whose main objects is to vindicate for homoeopathy,
+on the most rightful of all grounds--those on which alone science can
+stand--on the ground, that is, of laws discovered by observation and
+experiment--the place not only of a fact in the history of medicine, but
+the right to be considered as one of the greatest advances towards the
+establishment of a science of curing. Certainly if he and the rest of
+its advocates should fail utterly in this, the heresy will yet have
+established for itself a memorial in history, as one of the most
+powerful illusions that have ever deceived both priests and people. But
+the chief advantage which the system will derive from Dr. Russell’s book
+will spring, it seems to us, from his attempt--a successful one it must
+be confessed--to prove _that homoeopathy is a development, and not a
+mere reaction_; that it has its roots far down in the history of
+science. The first mention of it in the book, however, is made for the
+purpose of disavowing the claim, advanced by many homoeopathists, to
+Hippocrates as one of their order. Not to mention the curious story
+about Galen and the patient ill from an overdose of theriacum, who was
+cured by another dose of the same substance, nor the ridicule of the
+doctrine of contraries by Paracelsus and Van Helmont, nor the fact that
+the _contraries_ of Boerhaave, by his own explanation, merely signify
+whatever substances prove their contrariety to the disease by curing
+it--to pass by these, we find one of the main objects of homoeopathy,
+the discovery of specifics, insisted upon by Lord Bacon in his words
+already quoted. Not that homoeopaths, while they depend upon specifics,
+believe that there is any such thing as a specific for a disease--a
+disease being as various as the individuality of the human beings whom
+it may attack; but that an approximate specific may be found for every
+well-defined stage in every individual disease; a disease having its
+process of change, development, and decline, like a vegetable or animal
+life. Besides an equally strong desire for specifics, and a determined
+opposition to compound medicines, Boyle, who was born the year of
+Bacon’s death, and inherited the mantle of the great philosopher,
+manifests a strong belief in the power of the infinitesimal dose.
+Neither Bacon nor Boyle, however, were medical men by profession. But
+Sydenham followed them, according to Dr. Russell, in their tendency
+towards specifics. It is almost needless to mention Jenner’s victory
+over the small-pox as, in the eyes of the homoeopaths, a grand step in
+the development of their system. It gives Dr. Russell an opportunity of
+showing in a strong instance that the best discoveries for delivering
+mankind from those ills even of which they are most sensible have been
+received with derision, with more than bare unbelief. This is one of his
+objects in the book, and while it is no proof whatever of the truth of
+homoepathy, it shows at least that the opposition manifested to it is no
+proof of its falsehood. This is enough; for it seeks to be tried on its
+own merits; and its foes are bound to accord it this when it is
+advocated in such an honest and dignified manner as in the book before
+us.
+
+The need of man, in physics as well as in higher things, is the guide to
+truth. With evils of any sort we need no further acquaintance than may
+be gained in the endeavour to combat them. The discovery of what will
+cure diseases seems the only natural mode of rising by generalization to
+the discovery of the laws of cure and the nature of disease.
+
+Those portions of the volume which discuss the influence of Christianity
+on the healing art, likewise those relating to the different feelings
+with which at different times in different countries physicians have
+been regarded, are especially interesting.
+
+The only portion of the book we should be inclined to find fault with,
+as to the quality of the thought expended upon it, is the dissertation
+in the second chapter on the [Greek: psuchae] and [Greek: pneuma]. We
+doubt likewise whether the author gives the Archaeus of Van Helmont
+quite fair play; but these are questions so purely theoretical that they
+scarcely admit of discussion here. We rise from the perusal of the
+book, whatever may be our feelings with regard to the truth or falsehood
+of the system it advocates, with increased respect for the profession of
+medicine, with enlarged hope for its future, and with a strong feeling
+of the nobility conferred by the art upon every one of its practitioners
+who is aware of the dignity of his calling.
+
+
+
+
+WORDSWORTH’S POETRY
+
+
+[Footnote: Delivered extempore at Manchester.]
+
+The history of the poetry of Wordsworth is a true reflex of the man
+himself. The life of Wordsworth was not outwardly eventful, but his
+inner life was full of conflict, discovery, and progress. His outward
+life seems to have been so ordered by Providence as to favour the
+development of the poetic life within. Educated in the country, and
+spending most of his life in the society of nature, he was not subjected
+to those violent external changes which have been the lot of some poets.
+Perfectly fitted as he was to cope with the world, and to fight his way
+to any desired position, he chose to retire from it, and in solitude to
+work out what appeared to him to be the true destiny of his life.
+
+The very element in which the mind of Wordsworth lived and moved was a
+Christian pantheism. Allow me to explain the word. The poets of the Old
+Testament speak of everything as being the work of God’s hand:--We are
+the “work of his hand;” “The world was made by him.” But in the New
+Testament there is a higher form used to express the relation in which
+we stand to him--“We are his offspring;” not the work of his hand, but
+the children that came forth from his heart. Our own poet Goldsmith,
+with the high instinct of genius, speaks of God as having “loved us into
+being.” Now I think this is not only true with regard to man, but true
+likewise with regard to the world in which we live. This world is not
+merely a thing which God hath made, subjecting it to laws; but it is an
+expression of the thought, the feeling, the heart of God himself. And so
+it must be; because, if man be the child of God, would he not feel to be
+out of his element if he lived in a world which came, not from the heart
+of God, but only from his hand? This Christian pantheism, this belief
+that God is in everything, and showing himself in everything, has been
+much brought to the light by the poets of the past generation, and has
+its influence still, I hope, upon the poets of the present. We are not
+satisfied that the world should be a proof and varying indication of the
+intellect of God. That was how Paley viewed it. He taught us to believe
+there is a God from the mechanism of the world. But, allowing all the
+argument to be quite correct, what does it prove? A mechanical God, and
+nothing more.
+
+Let us go further; and, looking at beauty, believe that God is the first
+of artists; that he has put beauty into nature, knowing how it will
+affect us, and intending that it should so affect us; that he has
+embodied his own grand thoughts thus that we might see them and be glad.
+Then, let us go further still, and believe that whatever we feel in the
+highest moments of truth shining through beauty, whatever comes to our
+souls as a power of life, is meant to be seen and felt by us, and to be
+regarded not as the work of his hand, but as the flowing forth of his
+heart, the flowing forth of his love of us, making us blessed in the
+union of his heart and ours.
+
+Now, Wordsworth is the high priest of nature thus regarded. He saw God
+present everywhere; not always immediately, in his own form, it is true;
+but whether he looked upon the awful mountain-peak, sky-encompassed with
+loveliness, or upon the face of a little child, which is as it were eyes
+in the face of nature--in all things he felt the solemn presence of the
+Divine Spirit. By Keats this presence was recognized only as the spirit
+of beauty; to Wordsworth, God, as the Spirit of Truth, was manifested
+through the forms of the external world.
+
+I have said that the life of Wordsworth was so ordered as to bring this
+out of him, in the forms of _his_ art, to the ears of men. In childhood
+even his conscience was partly developed through the influences of
+nature upon him. He thus retrospectively describes this special
+influence of nature:--
+
+ One summer evening (led by her) I found
+ A little boat, tied to a willow tree,
+ Within a rocky cave, its usual home.
+ Straight I unloosed her chain, and stepping in,
+ Pushed from the shore. It was an act of stealth,
+ And troubled pleasure, nor without the voice
+ Of mountain echoes did my boat move on,
+ Leaving behind her still, on either side,
+ Small circles glittering idly in the moon,
+ Until they melted all into one track
+ Of sparkling light. But now, like one who rows
+ Proud of his skill, to reach a chosen point
+ With an unswerving line, I fixed my view
+ Upon the summit of a craggy ridge,
+ The horizon’s utmost boundary; far above
+ Was nothing but the stars and the grey sky.
+ She was an elfin pinnace; lustily
+ I dipped my oars into the silent lake,
+ And, as I rose upon the stroke, my boat
+ Went heaving through the water like a swan;
+ When, from behind that craggy steep, till then
+ The horizon’s bound, a huge peak, black and huge,
+ As if with voluntary power instinct,
+ Upreared its head. I struck and struck again,
+ And, growing still in stature, the grim shape
+ Towered up between me and the stars, and still
+ For so it seemed, with purpose of its own,
+ And measured motion like a living thing,
+ Strode after me. With trembling oars I turned,
+ And through the silent water stole my way
+ Back to the covert of the willow tree;
+ There in her mooring place I left my bark,
+ And through the meadows homeward went, in grave
+ And serious mood; but after I had seen
+ That spectacle, for many days, my brain
+ Worked with a dim and undetermined sense
+ Of unknown modes of being; o’er my thoughts
+ There hung a darkness, call it solitude,
+ Or blank desertion. No familiar shapes
+ Remained, no pleasant images of trees,
+ Of sea, or sky, no colours of green fields;
+ But huge and mighty forms, that do not live
+ Like living men, moved slowly through the mind
+ By day, and were a trouble to my dreams.
+
+Here we see that a fresh impulse was given to his life even in boyhood,
+by the influence of nature. If we have had any similar experience, we
+shall be able to enter into this feeling of Wordsworth’s; if not, the
+tale will be almost incredible.
+
+One passage more I would refer to, as showing what Wordsworth felt with
+regard to nature, in his youth; and the growth that took place in him in
+consequence. Nature laid up in the storehouse of his mind and heart her
+most beautiful and grand forms, whence they might be brought,
+afterwards, to be put to the highest human service. I quote only a few
+lines from that poem, deservedly a favourite with all the lovers of
+Wordsworth, “Lines written above Tintern Abbey:”--
+
+ I cannot paint
+ What then I was. The sounding cataract
+ Haunted me like a passion; the tall rock,
+ The mountain, and the deep and gloomy wood,
+ Their colours and their forms, were then to me
+ An appetite; a feeling and a love,
+ That had no need of a remoter charm
+ By thought supplied, nor any interest
+ Unborrowed from the eye.--That time is past,
+ And all its aching joys are now no more,
+ And all its dizzy raptures. Not for this
+ Faint I, nor mourn nor murmur; other gifts
+ Have followed; for such loss, I would believe,
+ Abundant recompense. For I have learned
+ To look on nature, not as in the hour
+ Of thoughtless youth; but hearing oftentimes
+ The still, sad music of humanity,
+ Nor harsh, nor grating, though of ample power
+ To chasten and subdue. And I have felt
+ A presence that disturbs me with the joy
+ Of elevated thoughts; a sense sublime
+ Of something far more deeply interfused,
+ Whose dwelling is the light of setting suns,
+ And the round ocean, and the living air
+ And the blue sky, and in the mind of man;
+ A motion and a spirit, that impels
+ All thinking things, all objects of all thought,
+ And rolls through all things.
+
+In this little passage you see the growth of the influence of nature on
+the mind of the poet. You observe, too, that nature passes into poetry;
+that form is sublimed into speech. You see the result of the conjunction
+of the mind of man, and the mind of God manifested in His works; spirit
+coming to know the speech of spirit. The outflowing of spirit in nature
+is received by the poet, and he utters again, in his form, what God has
+already uttered in His. Wordsworth wished to give to man what he found
+in nature. It was to him a power of good, a world of teaching, a
+strength of life. He knew that nature was not his, and that his
+enjoyment of nature was given to him that he might give it to man. It
+was the birthright of man.
+
+But what did Wordsworth find in nature? To begin with the lowest; he
+found amusement in nature. Right amusement is a part of teaching; it is
+the childish form of teaching, and if we can get this in nature, we get
+something that lies near the root of good. In proof that Wordsworth
+found this, I refer to a poem which you probably know well, “The Daisy.”
+ The poet sits playing with the flower, and listening to the suggestions
+that come to him of odd resemblances that this flower bears to other
+things. He likens the daisy to--
+
+ A little cyclops, with one eye
+ Staring to threaten and defy,
+ That thought comes next--and instantly
+ The freak is over,
+ The shape will vanish--and behold
+ A silver shield with boss of gold,
+ That spreads itself, some faëry bold
+ In fight to cover!
+
+Look at the last stanza, too, and you will see how close amusement may
+lie to deep and earnest thought:--
+
+ Bright _Flower_! for by that name at last
+ When all my reveries are past,
+ I call thee, and to that cleave fast,
+ Sweet silent creature!
+ That breath’st with me in sun and air,
+ Do thou, as thou art wont, repair
+ My heart with gladness, and a share
+ Of thy meek nature!
+
+But Wordsworth found also joy in nature, which is a better thing than
+amusement, and consequently easier to be found. We can often have joy
+where we can have no amusement,--
+
+ I wandered lonely as a cloud
+ That floats on high o’er vales and hills
+ When all at once I saw a crowd,
+ A host, of golden daffodils;
+ Beside the lake, beneath the trees,
+ Fluttering and dancing in the breeze.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ The waves beside them danced; but they
+ Out-did the sparkling waves in glee:
+ A poet could not but be gay,
+ In such a jocund company:
+ I gazed--and gazed--but little thought
+ What Health the show to me had brought.
+
+ “For oft, when on my couch I lie
+ In vacant or in pensive mood,
+ They flash upon that inward eye
+ Which is the bliss of solitude;
+ And then my heart with pleasure fills,
+ And dances with the daffodils.”
+
+This is the joy of the eye, as far as that can be separated from the joy
+of the whole nature; for his whole nature rejoiced in the joy of the
+eye; but it was simply joy; there was no further teaching, no attempt to
+go through this beauty and find the truth below it. We are not always to
+be in that hungry, restless condition, even after truth itself. If we
+keep our minds quiet and ready to receive truth, and _sometimes_ are
+hungry for it, that is enough.
+
+Going a step higher, you will find that he sometimes _draws_ a lesson
+from nature, seeming almost to force a meaning from her. I do not object
+to this, if he does not make too much of it as _existing_ in nature. It
+is rather finding a meaning in nature that he brought to it. The meaning
+exists, if not _there_. For illustration I refer to another poem.
+Observe that Wordsworth found the lesson because he looked for it, and
+_would_ find it.
+
+ This Lawn, a carpet all alive
+ With shadows flung from leaves--to strive
+ In dance, amid a press
+ Of sunshine, an apt emblem yields
+ Of Worldlings revelling in the fields
+ Of strenuous idleness.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ Yet, spite of all this eager strife,
+ This ceaseless play, the genuine life
+ That serves the steadfast hours,
+ Is in the grass beneath, that grows
+ Unheeded, and the mute repose
+ Of sweetly-breathing flowers.
+
+Whether he forced this lesson from nature, or not, it is a good lesson,
+teaching a great many things with regard to life and work.
+
+Again, nature sometimes flashes a lesson on his mind; _gives_ it to
+him--and when nature gives, we cannot but receive. As in this sonnet
+composed during a storm,--
+
+ One who was suffering tumult in his soul
+ Yet failed to seek the sure relief of prayer,
+ Went forth; his course surrendering to the care
+ Of the fierce wind, while mid-day lightnings prowl
+ Insiduously, untimely thunders growl;
+ While trees, dim-seen, in frenzied numbers tear
+ The lingering remnant of their yellow hair,
+ And shivering wolves, surprised with darkness, howl
+ As if the sun were not. He raised his eye
+ Soul-smitten; for, that instant, did appear
+ Large space (mid dreadful clouds) of purest sky,
+ An azure disc--shield of Tranquillity;
+ Invisible, unlooked-for, minister
+ Of providential goodness ever nigh!
+
+Observe that he was not looking for this; he had not thought of praying;
+he was in such distress that it had benumbed the out-goings of his
+spirit towards the source whence alone sure comfort comes. He went out
+into the storm; and the uproar in the outer world was in harmony with
+the tumult within his soul. Suddenly a clear space in the sky makes him
+feel--he has no time to think about it--that there is a shield of
+tranquillity spread over him. For was it not as it were an opening up
+into that region where there are no storms; the regions of peace,
+because the regions of love, and truth, and purity,--the home of God
+himself?
+
+There is yet a higher and more sustained influence exercised by nature,
+and that takes effect when she puts a man into that mood or condition in
+which thoughts come of themselves. That is perhaps the best thing that
+can be done for us, the best at least that nature can do. It is
+certainly higher than mere intellectual teaching. That nature did this
+for Wordsworth is very clear; and it is easily intelligible. If the
+world proceeded from the imagination of God, and man proceeded from the
+love of God, it is easy to believe that that which proceeded from the
+imagination of God should rouse the best thoughts in the mind of a being
+who proceeded from the love of God. This I think is the relation between
+man and the world. As an instance of what I mean, I refer to one of
+Wordsworth’s finest poems, which he classes under the head of “Evening
+Voluntaries.” It was composed upon an evening of extraordinary splendour
+and beauty:--
+
+ “Had this effulgence disappeared
+ With flying haste, I might have sent,
+ Among the speechless clouds, a look
+ Of blank astonishment;
+ But ‘tis endued with power to stay,
+ And sanctify one closing day,
+ That frail Mortality may see--
+ What is?--ah no, but what _can_, be!
+ Time was when field and watery cove
+ With modulated echoes rang,
+ While choirs of fervent Angels sang
+ Their vespers in the grove;
+ Or, crowning, star-like, each some sovereign height,
+ Warbled, for heaven above and earth below,
+ Strains suitable to both. Such holy rite,
+ Methinks, if audibly repeated now
+ From hill or valley, could not move
+ Sublimer transport, purer love,
+ Than doth this silent spectacle--the gleam--
+ The shadow--and the peace supreme!
+
+ “No sound is uttered,--but a deep
+ And solemn harmony pervades
+ The hollow vale from steep to steep,
+ And penetrates the glades.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ “Wings at my shoulders seem to play;
+ But, rooted here, I stand and gaze
+ On those bright steps that heaven-ward raise
+ Their practicable way.
+ Come forth, ye drooping old men, look abroad,
+ And see to what fair countries ye are bound!
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ “Dread Power! whom peace and calmness serve
+ No less than Nature’s threatening voice,
+ From THEE, if I would swerve,
+ Oh, let Thy grace remind me of the light
+ Full early lost, and fruitlessly deplored;
+ Which, at this moment, on my waking sight
+ Appears to shine, by miracle restored;
+ My soul, though yet confined to earth,
+ Rejoices in a second birth!”
+
+Picture the scene for yourselves; and observe how it moves in him the
+sense of responsibility, and the prayer, that if he has in any matter
+wandered from the right road, if he has forgotten the simplicity of
+childhood in the toil of life, he may, from this time, remember the vow
+that he now records--from this time to press on towards the things that
+are unseen, but which are manifested through the things that are seen. I
+refer you likewise to the poem “Resolution and Independence,” commonly
+called “The Leech Gatherer;” also to that grandest ode that has ever
+been written, the “Ode on Immortality.” You will find there, whatever
+you may think of his theory, in the latter, sufficient proof that nature
+was to him a divine teaching power. Do not suppose that I mean that man
+can do without more teaching than nature’s, or that a man with only
+nature’s teaching would have seen these things in nature. No, the soul
+must be tuned to such things. Wordsworth could not have found such
+things, had he not known something that was more definite and helpful to
+him; but this known, then nature was full of teaching. When we
+understand the Word of God, then we understand the works of God; when we
+know the nature of an artist, we know his pictures; when we have known
+and talked with the poet, we understand his poetry far better. To the
+man of God, all nature will be but changeful reflections of the face of
+God.
+
+Loving man as Wordsworth did, he was most anxious to give him this
+teaching. How was he to do it? By poetry. Nature put into the crucible
+of a loving heart becomes poetry. We cannot explain poetry
+scientifically; because poetry is something beyond science. The poet may
+be man of science, and the man of science may be a poet; but poetry
+includes science, and the man who will advance science most, is the man
+who, other qualifications being equal, has most of the poetic faculty in
+him. Wordsworth defines poetry to be “the impassioned expression which
+is on the face of science.” Science has to do with the construction of
+things. The casting of the granite ribs of the mighty earth, and all the
+thousand operations that result in the manifestations on its surface,
+this is the domain of science. But when there come the grass-bearing
+meadows, the heaven-reared hills, the great streams that go ever
+downward, the bubbling fountains that ever arise, the wind that wanders
+amongst the leaves, and the odours that are wafted upon its wings; when
+we have colour, and shape, and sound, then we have the material with
+which poetry has to do. Science has to do with the underwork. For what
+does this great central world exist, with its hidden winds and waters,
+its upheavings and its downsinkings, its strong frame of rock, and its
+heart of fire? What do they all exist for? Not for themselves surely,
+but for the sake of this out-spreading world of beauty, that floats up,
+as it were, to the surface of the shapeless region of force. Science has
+to do with the one, and poetry with the other: poetry is “the
+impassioned expression that is on the face of science.” To illustrate it
+still further. You are walking in the woods, and you find the first
+primrose of the year. You feel almost as if you had found a child. You
+know in yourself that you have found a new beauty and a new joy, though
+you have seen it a thousand times before. It is a primrose. A little
+flower that looks at me, thinks itself into my heart, and gives me a
+pleasure distinct in itself, and which I feel as if I could not do
+without. The impassioned expression on the face of this little outspread
+flower is its childhood; it means trust, consciousness of protection,
+faith, and hope. Science, in the person of the botanist, comes after
+you, and pulls it to pieces to see its construction, and delights the
+intellect; but the science itself is dead, and kills what it touches.
+The flower exists not for it, but for the expression on its face, which
+is its poetry,--that expression which you feel to mean a living thing;
+that expression which makes you feel that this flower is, as it were,
+just growing out of the heart of God. The intellect itself is but the
+scaffolding for the uprearing of the spiritual nature.
+
+It will make all this yet plainer, if you can suppose a human form to be
+created without a soul in it. Divine science _has_ put it together, but
+only for the sake of the outshining soul that shall cause it to live,
+and move, and have a being of its own in God. When you see the face
+lighted up with soul, when you recognize in it thought and feeling, joy
+and love, then you know that here is the end for which it was made. Thus
+you see the relation that poetry has to science; and you find that, to
+speak in an apparent paradox, the surface is the deepest after all; for,
+through the surface, for the sake of which all this building went on, we
+have, as it were, a window into the depths of truth. There is not a form
+that lives in the world, but is a window cloven through the blank
+darkness of nothingness, to let us look into the heart, and feeling, and
+nature of God. So the surface of things is the best and the deepest,
+provided it is not mere surface, but the impassioned expression, for the
+sake of which the science of God has thought and laboured.
+
+Satisfied that this was the nature of poetry, and wanting to convey this
+to the minds of his fellow-men, “What vehicle,” Wordsworth may be
+supposed to have asked himself, “shall I use? How shall I decide what
+form of words to employ? Where am I to find the right language for
+speaking such great things to men?” He saw that the poetry of the
+eighteenth century (he was born in 1770) was not like nature at all, but
+was an artificial thing, with no more originality in it than there would
+be in a picture a hundred times copied, the copyists never reverting to
+the original. You cannot look into this eighteenth century poetry,
+excepting, of course, a great proportion of the poetry of Cowper and
+Thompson, without being struck with the sort of agreement that nothing
+should be said naturally. A certain set form and mode was employed for
+saying things that ought never to have been said twice in the same way.
+Wordsworth resolved to go back to the root of the thing, to the natural
+simplicity of speech; he would have none of these stereotyped forms of
+expression. “Where shall I find,” said he, “the language that will be
+simple and powerful?” And he came to the conclusion that the language of
+the common people was the only language suitable for his purpose. Your
+experience of the everyday language of the common people may be that it
+is not poetical. True, but not even a poet can speak poetically in his
+stupid moments. Wordsworth’s idea was to take the language of the common
+people in their uncommon moods, in their high and, consequently, simple
+moods, when their minds are influenced by grief, hope, reverence,
+worship, love; for then he believed he could get just the language
+suitable for the poet. As far as that language will go, I think he was
+right, if I may venture to give an opinion in support of Wordsworth. Of
+course, there will occur necessities to the poet which would not be
+comprehended in the language of a man whose thoughts had never moved in
+the same directions, but the kind of language will be the right thing,
+and I have heard such amongst the common people myself--language which
+they did not know to be poetic, but which fell upon my ear and heart as
+profoundly poetic both in its feeling and its form.
+
+In attempting to carry out this theory, I am not prepared to say that
+Wordsworth never transgressed his own self-imposed laws. But he adhered
+to his theory to the last. A friend of the poet’s told me that
+Wordsworth had to him expressed his belief that he would be remembered
+longest, not by his sonnets, as his friend thought, but by his lyrical
+ballads, those for which he had been reviled and laughed at; the most by
+critics who could not understand him, and who were unworthy to read what
+he had written. As a proof of this let me read to you three verses,
+composing a poem that was especially marked for derision:--
+
+ She dwelt among the untrodden ways,
+ Beside the springs of Dove;
+ A maid whom there were none to praise,
+ And very few to love.
+
+ A violet by a mossy stone.
+ Half hidden from the eye;
+ Fair as a star, when only one
+ Is shining in the sky.
+
+ She lived unknown, and few could know
+ When Lucy ceased to be;
+ But she is in her grave, and Oh!
+ The difference to me.
+
+The last line was especially chosen as the object of ridicule; but I
+think with most of us the feeling will be, that its very simplicity of
+expression is overflowing in suggestion, it throws us back upon our own
+experience; for, instead of trying to utter what he felt, he says in
+those simple and common words, “You who have known anything of the kind,
+will know what the difference to me is, and only you can know.” “My
+intention and desire,” he says in one of his essays, “are that the
+interest of the poem shall owe nothing to the circumstances; but that
+the circumstances shall be made interesting by the thing itself.” In
+most novels, for instance, the attempt is made to interest us in
+worthless, commonplace people, whom, if we had our choice, we would far
+rather not meet at all, by surrounding them with peculiar and
+extraordinary circumstances; but this is a low source of interest.
+Wordsworth was determined to owe nothing to such an adventitious cause.
+For illustration allow me to read that well-known little ballad, “The
+Reverie of Poor Susan,” and you will see how entirely it bears out what
+he lays down as his theory. The scene is in London:--
+
+ At the corner of Wood-street, when daylight appears,
+ Hangs a Thrush that sings loud, it has sung for three years;
+ Poor Susan has passed by the spot, and has heard,
+ In the silence of morning, the song of the Bird.
+
+ ‘Tis a note of enchantment: what ails her? She sees
+ A mountain ascending, a vision of trees;
+ Bright volumes of vapour through Lothbury glide,
+ And a river flows on through the vale of Cheapside.
+
+ Green pastures she views in the midst of the dale,
+ Down which she so often has tripped with her pail;
+ And a single small cottage, a nest like a dove’s,
+ The one only dwelling on earth that she loves.
+
+ She looks, and her heart is in heaven: but they fade,
+ The mist and the river, the hill and the shade:
+ The stream will not flow, and the hill will not rise,
+ And the colours have all passed away from her eyes!
+
+Is any of the interest here owing to the circumstances? Is it not a very
+common incident? But has he not treated it so that it is not
+_commonplace_ in the least? We recognize in this girl just the feelings
+we discover in ourselves, and acknowledge almost with tears her
+sisterhood to us all.
+
+I have tried to make you feel something of what Wordsworth attempts to
+do, but I have not given you the best of his poems. Allow me to finish
+by reading the closing portion of the _Prelude_, the poem that was
+published after his death. It is addressed to Coleridge:--
+
+ Oh! yet a few short years of useful life,
+ And all will be complete, thy race be run,
+ Thy monument of glory will be raised;
+ Then, though (too weak to head the ways of truth)
+ This age fall back to old idolatry,
+ Though men return to servitude as fast
+ As the tide ebbs, to ignominy and shame
+ By nations sink together, we shall still
+ Find solace--knowing what we have learnt to know--
+ Rich in true happiness, if allowed to be
+ Faithful alike in forwarding a day
+ Of firmer trust, joint labourers in the work
+ (Should Providence such grace to us vouchsafe)
+ Of their deliverance, surely yet to come.
+ Prophets of Nature, we to them will speak
+ A lasting inspiration, sanctified
+ By reason, blest by faith: what we have loved,
+ Others will love, and we will teach them how;
+ Instruct them how the mind of man becomes
+ A thousand times more beautiful than the earth
+ On which he dwells, above this frame of things
+ (Which, ‘mid all revolution in the hopes
+ And fears of men, doth still remain unchanged)
+ In beauty exalted, as it is itself
+ Of quality and fabric more divine.
+
+
+
+
+SHELLEY.
+
+
+Whatever opinion may be held with regard to the relative position
+occupied by Shelley as a poet, it will be granted by most of those who
+have studied his writings, that they are of such an individual and
+original kind, that he can neither be hidden in the shade, nor lost in
+the brightness, of any other poet. No idea of his works could be
+conveyed by instituting a comparison, for he does not sufficiently
+resemble any other among English writers to make such a comparison
+possible.
+
+Percy Bysshe Shelley was born at Field Place, near Horsham, in the
+county of Sussex, on the 4th of August, 1792. He was the son of Timothy
+Shelley, Esq., and grandson of Sir Bysshe Shelley, the first baronet.
+His ancestors had long been large landed proprietors in Sussex.
+
+As a child his habits were noticeable. He was especially fond of
+rambling by moonlight, of inventing wonderful tales, of occupying
+himself with strange, and sometimes dangerous, amusements. At the age of
+thirteen he went to Eton. In this little world, that determined
+opposition to whatever appeared to him an invasion of human rights and
+liberty, which was afterwards the animating principle of most of his
+writings, was first roused in the mind of Shelley. Were we not aware of
+far keener distress which he afterwards endured from yet greater
+injustice, we might suppose that the sufferings he had to bear from
+placing himself in opposition to the custom of the school, by refusing
+to fag, had made him morbidly sensitive on the point of liberty. At a
+time, however, when freedom of speech, as indicating freedom of thought,
+was especially obnoxious to established authorities; when no allowance
+could be made on the score of youth, still less on that of individual
+peculiarity, Shelley became a student at Oxford. He was then eighteen.
+Devoted to metaphysical speculation, and especially fond of logical
+discussion, he, in his first year, printed and distributed among the
+authorities and members of his college a pamphlet, if that can be called
+a pamphlet which consisted only of two pages, in which he opposed the
+usual arguments for the existence of a Deity; arguments which, perhaps,
+the most ardent believers have equally considered inconclusive. Whether
+Shelley wrote this pamphlet as an embodiment of his own opinions, or
+merely as a logical confutation of certain arguments, the mode of
+procedure adopted with him was certainly not one which necessarily
+resulted from the position of those to whose care the education of his
+opinions was entrusted. Without waiting to be assured that he was the
+author, and satisfying themselves with his refusal to answer when
+questioned as to the authorship, they handed him his sentence of
+expulsion, which had been already drawn up in due form.
+
+About this time Shelley wrote, or commenced writing, _Queen Mab_, a poem
+which he never published, although he distributed copies among his
+friends. In after years he had such a low opinion of it in every
+respect, that he regretted having printed it at all; and when an edition
+of it was published without his consent, he applied to the Court of
+Chancery for an injunction to suppress it.
+
+Shelley’s opinions in politics and theology, which he appears to have
+been far more anxious to maintain than was consistent with the peace of
+the household, were peculiarly obnoxious to his father, a man as
+different from his son as it is possible to conceive; and his expulsion
+from Oxford was soon followed by exile from his home. He went to London,
+where, through his sisters, who were at school in the neighbourhood, he
+made the acquaintence of Harriet West brook, whom he eloped with and
+married, when he was nineteen and she sixteen years of age. It seems
+doubtful whether the attachment between them was more than the result of
+the reception accorded by the enthusiasm of the girl to the enthusiasm
+of the youth, manifesting itself in wild talk about human rights, and
+equally wild plans for their recovery and security. However this may be,
+the result was unfortunate. They wandered about England, Scotland, and
+Ireland, with frequent and sudden change of residence, for rather more
+than two years. During this time Shelley gained the friendship of some
+of the most eminent men of the age, of whom the one who exercised the
+most influence upon his character and future history was William Godwin,
+whose instructions and expostulations tended to reduce to solidity and
+form the vague and extravagant opinions and projects of the youthful
+reformer. Shortly after the commencement of the third year of their
+married life, an estrangement of feeling, which had been gradually
+widening between them, resulted in the final separation of the poet and
+his wife. We are not informed as to the causes of this estrangement,
+further than that it seems to have been owing, in a considerable degree,
+to the influence of an elder sister of Mrs. Shelley, who domineered over
+her, and whose presence became at last absolutely hateful to Shelley.
+His wife returned to her father’s house; where, apparently about three
+years after, she committed suicide. There seems to have been no
+immediate connection between this act and any conduct of Shelley. One of
+his biographers informs us, that while they were living happily
+together, suicide was with Mrs. Shelley a favourite subject of
+speculation and conversation.
+
+Shortly after his first wife’s death, Shelley married the daughter of
+William Godwin. He had lived with her almost from the date of the
+separation, during which time they had twice visited Switzerland. In the
+following year (1817), it was decreed in Chancery that Shelley was not a
+proper person to take charge of his two children by his first wife, who
+had lived with her till her death. The bill was filed in Chancery by
+their grandfather, Mr. Westbrook. The effects of this proceeding upon
+Shelley may be easily imagined. Perhaps he never recovered from them,
+for they were not of a nature to pass away. During this year he resided
+at Marlow, and wrote _The Revolt of Islam_, besides portions of other
+poems; and the next year he left England, not to return. The state of
+his health, for he had appeared to be in a consumption for some time,
+and the fear lest his son, by his second wife, should be taken from him,
+combined to induce him to take refuge in Italy from both impending
+evils. At Lucca he began his _Prometheus_, and wrote _Julian and
+Maddalo_. He moved from place to place in Italy, as he had done in his
+own country. Their two children dying, they were for a time left
+childless; but the loss of these grieved Shelley less than that of his
+eldest two, who were taken from him by the hand of man. In 1819, Shelley
+finished his _Prometheus Unbound_, writing the greater part at Rome, and
+completing it at Florence. In this year also he wrote his tragedy, _The
+Cenci_, which attracted more attention during his lifetime than any
+other of his works. The _Ode to a Skylark_ was written at Leghorn in the
+spring of 1820; and in August of the same year, the _Witch of Atlas_ was
+written, near Pisa. In the following year Shelley and Byron met at Pisa.
+They were a good deal together; but their friendship, although real,
+does not appear to have been of a very profound nature; for though
+unlikeness be one of the necessary elements of friendship, there are
+kinds of unlikeness which will not harmonize. During all this time, he
+was not only maligned by unknown enemies, and abused by anonymous
+writers, but attempts of other kinds are said to have been made to
+render his life as uncomfortable as possible. There are grounds,
+however, for doubting whether Shelley was not subject to a kind of
+monomania upon this and similar points. In 1821, he wrote his _Adonais_,
+a monody on the death of Keats. Part of this poem had its origin in the
+mistaken notion, that the illness and death of Keats were caused by a
+brutal criticism of his _Endymion_, which appeared in the _Quarterly
+Review_. The last verse of the _Adonais_ seems almost prophetic of his
+own end. Passionately fond of boating, he and a friend of his, Mr.
+Williams, united in constructing a boat of a peculiar build, a very fast
+sailer, but difficult to manage. On the 8th of July, 1822, Shelley and
+his friend Williams sailed from Leghorn for Lerici, on the Bay of
+Spezia, near which lay his home for the time. A sudden squall came on,
+and their boat disappeared. The bodies of the two friends were cast on
+shore; and, according to quarantine regulations, were burned to ashes.
+Lord Byron, Leigh Hunt, and Mr. Trelawney were present when the body of
+Shelley was burned; so that his ashes were saved, and buried in the
+Protestant burial-ground at Rome, near the grave of Keats, whose body
+had been laid there in the spring of the preceding year. _Cor Cordium_
+were the words inscribed by his widow on the tomb of the poet.
+
+The character of Shelley has been sadly maligned. Whatever faults he may
+have committed against society, they were not the result of sensuality.
+One of his biographers, who was his companion at Oxford, and who does
+not seem inclined to do him _more_ than justice, asserts that while
+there his conduct was immaculate. The whole picture he gives of the
+youth, makes it easy to believe this. To discuss the moral question
+involved in one part of his history would be out of place here; but even
+on the supposition that a man’s conduct is altogether inexcusable in
+individual instances, there is the more need that nothing but the truth
+should be said concerning that, and other portions thereof. And whatever
+society may have thought itself justified in making subject of
+reprobation, it must be remembered that Shelley was under less
+obligation to society than most men. Yet his heart seemed full of love
+to his kind; and the distress which the oppression of others caused him,
+was the source of much of that wild denunciation which exposed him to
+the contempt and hatred of those who were rendered uncomfortable by his
+unsparing and indiscriminate anathemas. In private, he was beloved by
+all who knew him; a steady, generous, self-denying friend, not only to
+those who moved in his own circle, but to all who were brought within
+the reach of any aid he could bestow. To the poor he was a true and
+laborious benefactor. That man must have been good to whom the heart of
+his widow returns with such earnest devotion and thankfulness in the
+recollection of the past, and such fond hope for the future, as are
+manifested by Mrs. Shelley in those extracts from her private journal
+given us by Lady Shelley.
+
+As regards his religious opinions, one of the thoughts which most
+strongly suggest themselves is,--how ill he must have been instructed in
+the principles of Christianity! He says himself in a letter to Godwin,
+“I have known no tutor or adviser (_not excepting my father_) from whose
+lessons and suggestions I have not recoiled with disgust.” So far is he
+from being an opponent of Christianity properly so called, that one can
+hardly help feeling what a Christian he would have been, could he but
+have seen Christianity in any other way than through the traditional and
+practical misrepresentations of it which surrounded him. All his attacks
+on Christianity are, in reality, directed against evils to which the
+true doctrines of Christianity are more opposed than those of Shelley
+could possibly be. How far he was excusable in giving the name of
+Christianity to what he might have seen to be only a miserable
+perversion of it, is another question, and one which hardly admits of
+discussion here. It was in the _name_ of Christianity, however, that the
+worst injuries of which he had to complain were inflicted upon him.
+Coming out of the cathedral at Pisa one day, [Footnote: From _Shelley
+Memorials_, edited by Lady Shelley, which the writer of this paper has
+principally followed in regard to the external facts of Shelley’s
+history.] Shelley warmly assented to a remark of Leigh Hunt, “that a
+divine religion might be found out, if charity were really made the
+principle of it instead of faith.” Surely the founders of Christianity,
+even when they magnified faith, intended thereby a spiritual condition,
+of which the central principle is coincident with charity. Shelley’s own
+feelings towards others, as judged from his poetry, seem to be tinctured
+with the very essence of Christianity. [Footnote: His _Essay on
+Christianity_ is full of noble views, some of which are held at the
+present day by some of the most earnest believers. At what time of his
+life it was written we are not informed; but it seems such as would
+insure his acceptance with any company of intelligent and devout
+Unitarians.] He did not, at one time at least, believe that we could
+know the source of our being; and seemed to take it as a self-evident
+truth, that the Creator could not be like the creature. But it is unjust
+to fix upon any utterance of opinion, and regard it as the religion of a
+man who died in his thirtieth year, and whose habits of thinking were
+such, that his opinions must have been in a state of constant change.
+Coleridge says in a letter: “His (Shelley’s) discussions, tending
+towards atheism of a certain sort, would not have scared _me;_ for _me_
+it would have been a semitransparent larva, soon to be sloughed, and
+through which I should have seen the true _image_--the final
+metamorphosis. Besides, I have ever thought that sort of atheism the
+next best religion to Christianity; nor does the better faith I have
+learned from Paul and John interfere with the cordial reverence I feel
+for Benedict Spinoza.”
+
+Shelley’s favourite study was metaphysics. The more impulse there is in
+any direction, the more education and experience are necessary to
+balance that impulse: one cannot help thinking that Shelley’s _taste_
+for exercises of this kind was developed more rapidly than the
+corresponding _power_. His favourite physical studies were chemistry and
+electricity. With these he occupied himself from his childhood;
+apparently, however, with more delight in the experiments themselves,
+than interest in the general conclusions to be arrived at by means of
+them. In the embodiment of his metaphysical ideas in poetry, the
+influence of these studies seems to show itself; for he uses forms which
+appeal more to the outer senses than to the inward eye; and his similes
+belong to the realm of the fancy, rather than the imagination: they lack
+_vital_ resemblance. Logic had considerable attractions for him. To
+geometry and mathematics he was quite indifferent. One of his
+biographers states that “he was neglectful of flowers,” because he had
+no interest in botany; but one who derived such full delight from the
+contemplation of their external forms, could hardly be expected to feel
+very strongly the impulse to dissect them. He derived exceeding pleasure
+from Greek literature, especially from the works of Plato.
+
+Several little peculiarities in Shelley’s tastes are worth mentioning,
+because, although in themselves insignificant, they seem to correspond
+with the nature of his poetry. Perhaps the most prominent of these was
+his passion for boat-sailing. He could not pass any piece of water
+without launching upon it a number of boats, constructed from what paper
+he could find in his pockets. The fly-leaves of the books he was in the
+way of carrying with him, for he was constantly reading, often went to
+this end. He would watch the fate of these boats with the utmost
+interest, till they sank or reached the opposite side. He was just as
+fond of real boating, and that frequently of a dangerous kind; but it is
+characteristic of him, that all the boats he describes in his poems are
+of a fairy, fantastic sort, barely related to the boats which battle
+with earthly winds and waves. Pistol-shooting was also a favourite
+amusement. Fireworks, too, gave him great delight. Some of his habits
+were likewise peculiar. He was remarkably abstemious, preferring bread
+and raisins to anything else in the way of eating, and very seldom
+drinking anything stronger than water. Honey was a favourite luxury with
+him. While at college, his biographer Hogg says he was in the habit,
+during the evening, of going to sleep on the rug, close to a blazing
+fire, heat seeming never to have other than a beneficial effect upon
+him. After sleeping some hours, he would awake perfectly restored, and
+continue actively occupied till far into the morning. His whole
+movements are represented as rapid, hurried, and uncertain. He would
+appear and disappear suddenly and unexpectedly; forget appointments;
+burst into wild laughter, heedless of his situation, whenever anything
+struck him as peculiarly ludicrous. His changes of residence were most
+numerous, and frequently made with so much haste that whole little
+libraries were left behind, and often lost. He was very fond of
+children, and used to make humorous efforts to induce them to disclose
+to him the still-remembered secrets of their pre-existence. He seemed to
+have a peculiar attraction towards mystery, and was ready to believe in
+a hidden secret, where no one else would have thought of one. His room,
+while he was at college, was in a state of indescribable confusion. Not
+only were all sorts of personal necessaries mingled with books and
+philosophical instruments, but things belonging to one department of
+service were not unfrequently pressed into the slavery of another. He
+dressed well but carelessly. In person he was tall, slender, and
+stooping; awkward in gait, but in manners a thorough gentleman. His
+complexion was delicate; his head, face, and features, remarkably small;
+the last not very regular, but in expression, both intellectual and
+moral, wonderfully beautiful. His eyes were deep blue, “of a wild,
+strange beauty;” his forehead high and white; his hair dark brown,
+curling, long, and bushy. His appearance in later life is described as
+singularly combining the appearances of premature age and prolonged
+youth.
+
+The only art in which his taste appears to have been developed was
+poetry. Even in his poetry, taken as a whole, the artistic element is
+not generally very manifest. His earliest verses (none of which are
+included in his collected works) can hardly be said to be good in any
+sense. He seems in these to have chosen poetry as a fitting material for
+the embodiment of his ardent, hopeful, indignant thoughts and feelings,
+but, provided he can say what he wants to say, does not seem to
+care much about _how_ he says it. Indeed, there is too much of
+this throughout his works; for if the _utterance_, instead of
+the _conveyance_ of thought, were the object pursued in art, of
+course not merely imperfection of language, but absolute external
+unintelligibility, would be admissible. But his art constantly increases
+with his sense of its necessity; so that the _Cenci_, which is the last
+work of any pretension that he wrote, is decidedly the most artistic of
+all. There are beautiful passages in _Queen Mab_, but it is the work of
+a boy-poet; and as it was all but repudiated by himself, it is not
+necessary to remark further upon it. _The Revolt of Islam_ is a poem of
+twelve cantos, in the Spenserian stanza; but in all respects except the
+arrangement of lines and rimes, his stanza, in common with all other
+imitations of the Spenserian, has little or nothing of the spirit or
+individuality of the original. The poem is dedicated to the cause of
+freedom, and records the efforts, successes, defeats, and final
+triumphant death of two inspired champions of liberty--a youth and
+maiden. The adventures are marvellous, not intended to be within the
+bounds of probability, scarcely of possibility. There are very noble
+sentiments and fine passages throughout the poem. Now and then there is
+grandeur. But the absence of art is too evident in the fact that the
+meaning is often obscure; an obscurity not unfrequently occasioned by
+the difficulty of the stanza, which is the most difficult mode of
+composition in English, except the rigid sonnet. The words and forms he
+employs to express thought seem sometimes mechanical devices for that
+purpose, rather than an utterance which suggested itself naturally to a
+mind where the thought was vitally present. The words are more a
+_clothing_ for the thought than an _embodiment_ of it. They do not lie
+near enough to the thing which is intended to be represented by them. It
+is, however, but just to remark, that some of the obscurity is owing to
+the fact, that, even with Mrs. Shelley’s superintendence, the works have
+not yet been satisfactorily edited, or at least not conducted through
+the press with sufficient care. [Footnote: This statement is no longer
+true.]
+
+_The Cenci_ is a very powerful tragedy, but unfitted for public
+representation by the horrible nature of the historical facts upon which
+it is founded. In the execution of it, however, Shelley has kept very
+much nearer to nature than in any other of his works. He has rigidly
+adhered to his perception of artistic propriety in respect to the
+dramatic utterance. It may be doubted whether there is sufficient
+difference between the modes of speech of the different actors in the
+tragedy, but it is quite possible to individualize speech far too
+minutely for probable nature; and in this respect, at least, Shelley has
+not erred. Perhaps the action of the whole is a little hurried, and a
+central moment of awful repose and fearful anticipation might add to the
+force of the tragedy. The scenes also might, perhaps, have been
+constructed so as to suggest more of evolution; but the central point of
+horror is most powerfully and delicately handled. You see a possible
+spiritual horror yet behind, more frightful than all that has gone
+before. The whole drama, indeed, is constructed around, not a prominent
+point, but a dim, infinitely-withdrawn, underground perspective of
+dismay and agony. Perhaps it detracts a little from our interest in the
+Lady Beatrice, that after all she should wish to live, and should seek
+to preserve her life by a denial of her crime. She, however, evidently
+justifies the denial to herself on the ground that, the deed being
+absolutely right, although regarded as most criminal by her judges, the
+only way to get true justice is to deny the fact, which, there being no
+guilt, she might consider as only a verbal lie. Her very purity of
+conscience enables her to utter this with the most absolute innocence of
+look, and word, and tone. This is probably a historical fact, and
+Shelley had to make the best of it. In the drama there is great
+tenderness, as well as terror; but for a full effect, one feels it
+desirable to be brought better acquainted with the individuals than the
+drama, from its want of graduation, permits. Shelley, however, was only
+six-and-twenty when he wrote it. He must have been attracted to the
+subject by its embodying the concentration of tyranny, lawlessness, and
+brutality in old Cenci, as opposed to, and exercised upon, an ideal
+loveliness and nobleness in the person of Beatrice.
+
+But of all Shelley’s works, the _Prometheus Unbound_ is that which
+combines the greatest amount of individual power and peculiarity. There
+is an airy grandeur about it, reminding one of the vast masses of cloud
+scattered about in broken, yet magnificently suggestive forms, all over
+the summer sky, after a thunderstorm. The fundamental ideas are grand;
+the superstructure, in many parts, so ethereal, that one hardly knows
+whether he is gazing on towers of solid masonry rendered dim and
+unsubstantial by intervening vapour, or upon the golden turrets of
+cloudland, themselves born of the mist which surrounds them with a halo
+of glory. The beings of Greek, mythology are idealized and etherealized
+by the new souls which he puts into them, making them think his thoughts
+and say his words. In reading this, as in reading most of his poetry, we
+feel that, unable to cope with the evils and wrongs of the world as it
+and they are, he constructs a new universe, wherein he may rule
+according to his will; and a good will in the main it is--good always in
+intent, good generally in form and utterance. Of the wrongs which
+Shelley endured from the collision and resulting conflict between his
+lawless goodness and the lawful wickedness of those in authority, this
+is one of the greatest,--that during the right period of pupillage, he
+was driven from the place of learning, cast on his own mental resources
+long before those resources were sufficient for his support, and
+irritated against the purest embodiment of good by the harsh treatment
+he received under its name. If that reverence which was far from wanting
+to his nature, had been but presented, in the person of some guide to
+his spiritual being, with an object worthy of its homage and trust, it
+is probable that the yet free and noble result of Shelley’s
+individuality would have been presented to the world in a form which,
+while it attracted still only the few, would not have repelled the many;
+at least, not by such things as were merely accidental in their
+association with his earnest desires and efforts for the well-being of
+humanity.
+
+That which chiefly distinguishes Shelley from other writers is the
+unequalled exuberance of his fancy. The reader, say for instance of that
+fantastically brilliant poem, _The Witch of Atlas_, the work of three
+days, is overwhelmed in a storm, as it were, of rainbow snow-flakes and
+many-coloured lightnings, accompanied ever by “a low melodious thunder.”
+ The evidences of pure imagination in his writings are unfrequent as
+compared with those of fancy: there are not half the instances of the
+direct embodiment of idea in form, that there are of the presentation of
+strange resemblances between external things.
+
+One of the finest short specimens of Shelley’s peculiar mode is his _Ode
+to the West Wind_, full of mysterious melody of thought and sound. But
+of all his poems, the most popular, and deservedly so, is the _Skylark_.
+Perhaps the _Cloud_ may contest it with the _Skylark_ in regard to
+popular favour; but the _Cloud_, although full of beautiful words and
+fantastic cloud-like images, is, after all, principally a work of the
+fancy; while the _Skylark_, though even in it fancy predominates over
+imagination in the visual images, forms, as a whole, a lovely, true,
+individual work of art; a _lyric_ not unworthy of the _lark_, which
+Mason apostrophizes as “sweet feathered lyric.” The strain of sadness
+which pervades it is only enough to make the song of the lark human.
+
+In _The Sensitive Plant_, a poem full of the peculiarities of his
+genius, tending through a wilderness of fanciful beauties to a thicket
+of mystical speculation, one curious idiosyncrasy is more prominent than
+in any other--curious, as belonging to the poet of beauty and
+loveliness: it is the tendency to be fascinated by what is ugly and
+revolting, so that he cannot withdraw his thoughts from it till he has
+described it in language, powerful, it is true, and poetic, when
+considered as to its fitness for the desired end, but, in force of these
+very excellences in the means, nearly as revolting as the objects
+themselves. Associated with this is the tendency to discover strangely
+unpleasant likenesses between things; which likenesses he is not content
+with seeing, but seems compelled, perhaps in order to get rid of them
+himself, to force upon the observation of his reader. But the admirer of
+Shelley is not pleased to find that one or two passages of this nature
+have been omitted in some editions of his works.
+
+Few men have been more misunderstood or misrepresented than Shelley.
+Doubtless this has in part been his own fault, as Coleridge implies when
+he writes to this effect of him: that his horror of hypocrisy made him
+speak in such a wild way, that Southey (who was so much a man of forms
+and proprieties) was quite misled, not merely in his estimate of his
+worth, but in his judgment of his character. But setting aside this
+consideration altogether, and regarding him merely as a poet, Shelley
+has written verse which will last as long as English literature lasts;
+valuable not only from its excellence, but from the peculiarity of its
+excellence. To say nothing of his noble aims and hopes, Shelley will
+always be admired for his sweet melodies, lovely pictures, and wild
+prophetic imaginings. His indignant remonstrances, intermingled with
+grand imprecations, burst in thunder from a heart overcharged with the
+love of his kind, and roused to a keener sense of all oppression by the
+wrongs which sought to overwhelm himself. But as he recedes further in
+time, and men are able to see more truly the proportions of the man,
+they will judge, that without having gained the rank of a great
+reformer, Shelley had in him that element of wide sympathy and lofty
+hope for his kind which is essential both to the _birth_ and the
+subsequent _making_ of the greatest of poets.
+
+
+
+
+A SERMON.
+
+
+[Footnote: Read in the Unitarian chapel, Essex-street, London, 1879.]
+
+PHILIPPIANS iii. 15, 16.--Let us therefore, as many as be perfect, be
+thus minded; and if in anything ye be otherwise minded, God shall reveal
+even this unto you. Nevertheless, whereto we have already attained, let
+us walk by that same.
+
+
+This is the reading of the oldest manuscripts. The rest of the verse is
+pretty clearly a not overwise marginal gloss that has crept into the
+text.
+
+In its origin, opinion is the intellectual body, taken for utterance and
+presentation by something necessarily larger than any intellect can
+afford stuff sufficient for the embodiment of. To the man himself,
+therefore, in whose mind it arose, an opinion will always represent and
+recall the spirit whose form it is,--so long, at least, as the man
+remains true to his better self. Hence, a man’s opinion may be for him
+invaluable, the needle of his moral compass, always pointing to the
+truth whence it issued, and whose form it is. Nor is the man’s opinion
+of the less value to him that it may change. Nay, to be of true value,
+it must have in it not only the possibility, but the necessity of
+change: it must change in every man who is alive with that life which,
+in the New Testament, is alone treated as life at all. For, if a man’s
+opinion be in no process of change whatever, it must be dead, valueless,
+hurtful Opinion is the offspring of that which is itself born to grow;
+which, being imperfect, must grow or die. Where opinion is growing, its
+imperfections, however many and serious, will do but little hurt; where
+it is not growing, these imperfections will further the decay and
+corruption which must already have laid hold of the very heart of the
+man. But it is plain in the world’s history that what, at some given
+stage of the same, was the embodiment in intellectual form of the
+highest and deepest of which it was then spiritually capable, has often
+and speedily become the source of the most frightful outrages upon
+humanity. How is this? Because it has passed from the mind in which it
+grew into another in which it did not grow, and has of necessity altered
+its nature. Itself sprung from that which was deepest in the man, it
+casts seeds which take root only in the intellectual understanding of
+his neighbour; and these, springing up, produce flowers indeed which
+look much the same to the eye, but fruit which is poison and
+bitterness,--worst of it all, the false and arrogant notion that it is
+duty to force the opinion upon the acceptance of others. But it is
+because such men themselves hold with so poor a grasp the truth
+underlying their forms that they are, in their self-sufficiency, so
+ambitious of propagating the forms, making of themselves the worst
+enemies of the truth of which they fancy themselves the champions. How
+truly, in the case of all genuine teachers of men, shall a man’s foes be
+they of his own household! For of all the destroyers of the truth which
+any man has preached, none have done it so effectually or so grievously
+as his own followers. So many of them have received but the forms, and
+know nothing of the truth which gave him those forms! They lay hold but
+of the non-essential, the specially perishing in those forms; and these
+aspects, doubly false and misleading in their crumbling disjunction,
+they proceed to force upon the attention and reception of men, calling
+that the truth which is at best but the draggled and useless fringe of
+its earth-made garment. Opinions so held belong to the theology of
+hell,--not necessarily altogether false in form, but false utterly in
+heart and spirit. The opinion then that is hurtful is not that which is
+formed in the depths, and from the honest necessities of a man’s own
+nature, but that which he has taken up at second hand, the study of
+which has pleased his intellect; has perhaps subdued fears and mollified
+distresses which ought rather to have grown and increased until they had
+driven the man to the true physician; has puffed him up with a sense of
+superiority as false as foolish, and placed in his hand a club with
+which to subjugate his neighbour to his spiritual dictation. The true
+man even, who aims at the perpetuation of his opinion, is rather
+obstructing than aiding the course of that truth for the love of which
+he holds his opinion; for truth is a living thing, opinion is a dead
+thing, and transmitted opinion a deadening thing.
+
+Let us look at St. Paul’s feeling in this regard. And, in order that we
+may deprive it of none of its force, let us note first the nature of the
+truth which he had just been presenting to his disciples, when he
+follows it with the words of my text:--
+
+
+But what things were gain to me, those I counted loss for Christ.
+
+Yea doubtless, and I count all things but loss for the excellency of the
+knowledge of Christ Jesus my Lord: for whom I have suffered the loss of
+all things, and do count them but dung, that I may win Christ,
+
+And be found in him, not having mine own righteousness, which is of the
+law, but that which is through the faith of Christ, the righteousness
+which is of God by faith:
+
+That I may know him, and the power of his resurrection, and the
+fellowship of his sufferings, being made conformable unto his death;
+
+If by any means I might attain unto the resurrection of the dead.
+
+Not as though I had already attained, either were already perfect: but I
+follow after, if that I may apprehend that for which also I am
+apprehended of Christ Jesus.
+
+Brethren, I count not myself to have apprehended: but this one thing I
+do, forgetting those things which are behind, and reaching forth unto
+those things which are before, I press toward the mark for the prize of
+the high calling of God in Christ Jesus.
+
+
+St. Paul, then, had been declaring to the Philippians the idea upon
+which, so far as it lay with him, his life was constructed, the thing
+for which he lived, to which the whole conscious effort of his being was
+directed,--namely, to be in his very nature one with Christ, to become
+righteous as he is righteous; to die into his death, so that he should
+no more hold the slightest personal relation to evil, but be alive in
+every fibre to all that is pure, lovely, loving, beautiful, perfect. He
+had been telling them that he spent himself in continuous effort to lay
+hold upon that for the sake of which Christ had laid hold on him. This
+he declares the sole thing worth living for: the hope of this, the hope
+of becoming one with the living God, is that which keeps a glorious
+consciousness awake in him, amidst all the unrest of a being not yet at
+harmony with itself, and a laborious and persecuted life. It cannot
+therefore be any shadow of indifference to the truth to which he has
+borne this witness, that causes him to add, “If in anything ye be
+otherwise minded.” It is to him even the test of perfection, whether
+they be thus minded or not; for, although a moment before, he has
+declared himself short of the desired perfection, he now says, “Let as
+many of us as are perfect be thus minded.” There is here no room for
+that unprofitable thing, bare logic: we must look through the shifting
+rainbow of his words,--rather, we must gather all their tints together,
+then turn our backs upon the rainbow, that we may see the glorious light
+which is the soul of it. St. Paul is not that which he would be, which
+he must be; but he, and all they who with him believe that the
+perfection of Christ is the sole worthy effort of a man’s life, are in
+the region, though not yet at the centre, of perfection. They are, even
+now, not indeed grasping, but in the grasp of, that perfection. He tells
+them this is the one thing to mind, the one thing to go on desiring and
+labouring for, with all the earnestness of a God-born existence; but, if
+any one be at all otherwise minded,--that is, of a different
+opinion,--what then? That it is of little or no consequence? No, verily;
+but of such endless consequence that God will himself unveil to them the
+truth of the matter. This is Paul’s faith, not his opinion. Faith is
+that by which a man lives inwardly, and orders his way outwardly. Faith
+is the root, belief the tree, and opinion the foliage that falls and is
+renewed with the seasons. Opinion is, at best, even the opinion of a
+true man, but the cloak of his belief, which he may indeed cast to his
+neighbour, but not with the truth inside it: that remains in his own
+bosom, the oneness between him and his God. St. Paul knows well--who
+better?--that by no argument, the best that logic itself can afford, can
+a man be set right with the truth; that the spiritual perception which
+comes of hungering contact with the living truth--a perception which is
+in itself a being born again--can alone be the mediator between a man
+and the truth. He knows that, even if he could pass his opinion over
+bodily into the understanding of his neighbour, there would be little or
+nothing gained thereby, for the man’s spiritual condition would be just
+what it was before. God must reveal, or nothing is known. And this,
+through thousands of difficulties occasioned by the man himself, God is
+ever and always doing his mighty best to effect.
+
+See the grandeur of redeeming liberality in the Apostle. In his heart of
+hearts he knows that salvation consists in nothing else than being one
+with Christ; that the only life of every man is hid with Christ in God,
+and to be found by no search anywhere else. He believes that for this
+cause was he born into the world,--that he should give himself, heart
+and soul, body and spirit, to him who came into the world that he might
+bear witness to the truth. He believes that for the sake of this, and
+nothing less,--anything more there cannot be,--was the world, with its
+endless glories, created. Nay, more than all, he believes that for this
+did the Lord, in whose cross, type and triumph of his self-abnegation,
+he glories, come into the world, and live and die there. And yet, and
+yet, he says, and says plainly, that a man thinking differently from all
+this or at least, quite unprepared to make this whole-hearted profession
+of faith, is yet his brother in Christ, in whom the knowledge of Christ
+that he has will work and work, the new leaven casting out the old
+leaven until he, too, in the revelation of the Father, shall come to the
+perfect stature of the fulness of Christ. Meantime, Paul, the Apostle,
+must show due reverence to the halting and dull disciple. He must and
+will make no demand upon him on the grounds of what he, Paul, believes.
+He is where he is, and God is his teacher. To his own Master,--that is,
+Paul’s Master, and not Paul,--he stands. He leaves him to the company of
+his Master. “Leaves him?” No: that he does not; that he will never do,
+any more than God will leave him. Still and ever will he hold him and
+help him. But how help him, if he is not to press upon him his own
+larger and deeper and wiser insights? The answer is ready: he will
+press, not his opinion, not even the man’s opinion, but the man’s own
+faith upon him. “O brother, beloved of the Father, walk in the
+light,--in the light, that is, which is thine, not which is mine; in the
+light which is given to thee, not to me: thou canst not walk by my
+light, I cannot walk by thine: how should either walk except by the
+light which is in him? O brother, what thou seest, that do; and what
+thou seest not, that thou shalt see: God himself, the Father of Lights,
+will show it to you.” This, this is the condition of all growth,--that
+whereto we have attained, we mind that same; for such, following the
+manuscripts, at least the oldest, seems to me the Apostle’s meaning.
+Obedience is the one condition of progress, and he entreats them to
+obey. If a man will but work that which is in him, will but make the
+power of God his own, then is it well with him for evermore. Like his
+Master, Paul urges to action, to the highest operation, therefore to the
+highest condition of humanity. As Christ was the Son of his Father
+because he did the will of the Father, so the Apostle would have them
+the sons of the Father by doing the will of the Father. Whereto ye have
+attained, walk by _that_.
+
+But there is more involved in this utterance than the words themselves
+will expressly carry. Next to his love to the Father and the Elder
+Brother, the passion of Paul’s life--I cannot call it less--is love to
+all his brothers and sisters. Everything human is dear to him: he can
+part with none of it. Division, separation, the breaking of the body of
+Christ, is that which he cannot endure. The body of his flesh had once
+been broken, that a grander body might be prepared for him: was it for
+that body itself to tear itself asunder? With the whole energy of his
+great heart, Paul clung to unity. He could clasp together with might and
+main the body of his Master--the body that Master loved because it was a
+spiritual body, with the life of his Father in it. And he knew well that
+only by walking in the truth to which they had attained, could they ever
+draw near to each other. Whereto we have attained, let us walk by that.
+
+My honoured friends, if we are not practical, we are nothing. Now, the
+one main fault in the Christian Church is separation, repulsion, recoil
+between the component particles of the Lord’s body. I will not, I do not
+care to inquire who is more to blame than another in the evil fact. I
+only care to insist that it is the duty of every individual man to be
+innocent of the same. One main cause, perhaps I should say _the one_
+cause of this deathly condition, is that whereto we had, we did not,
+whereto we have attained, we do not walk by that. Ah, friend! do not now
+think of thy neighbour. Do not applaud my opinion as just from what thou
+hast seen around thee, but answer it from thy own being, thy own
+behaviour. Dost thou ever feel thus toward thy neighbour,--“Yes, of
+course, every man is my brother; but how can I be a brother to him so
+long as he thinks me wrong in what I believe, and so long as I think he
+wrongs in his opinions the dignity of the truth?” What, I return, has
+the man no hand to grasp, no eyes into which yours may gaze far deeper
+than your vaunted intellect can follow? Is there not, I ask, anything in
+him to love? Who asks you to be of one opinion? It is the Lord who asks
+you to be of one heart. Does the Lord love the man? Can the Lord love,
+where there is nothing to love? Are you wiser than he, inasmuch as you
+perceive impossibility where he has failed to discover it? Or will you
+say, “Let the Lord love where he pleases: I will love where I please”?
+or say, and imagine you yield, “Well, I suppose I must, and therefore I
+will,--but with certain reservations, politely quiet in my own heart”?
+Or wilt thou say none of all these things, but do them all, one after
+the other, in the secret chambers of thy proud spirit? If you delight to
+condemn, you are a wounder, a divider of the oneness of Christ. If you
+pride yourself on your loftier vision, and are haughty to your
+neighbour, you are yourself a division and have reason to ask: “Am I a
+particle of the body at all?” The Master will deal with thee upon the
+score. Let it humble thee to know that thy dearest opinion, the one thou
+dost worship as if it, and not God, were thy Saviour, this very opinion
+thou art doomed to change, for it cannot possibly be right, if it work
+in thee for death and not for life.
+
+Friends, you have done me the honour and the kindness to ask me to speak
+to you. I will speak plainly. I come before you neither hiding anything
+of my belief, nor foolishly imagining I can transfer my opinions into
+your bosoms. If there is one rôle I hate, it is that of the
+proselytizer. But shall I not come to you as a brother to brethren?
+Shall I not use the privilege of your invitation and of the place in
+which I stand, nay, must I not myself be obedient to the heavenly
+vision, in urging you with all the power of my persuasion to set
+yourselves afresh to _walk_ according to that to which you have
+attained. So doing, whatever yet there is to learn, you shall learn it.
+Thus doing, and thus only, can you draw nigh to the centre truth; thus
+doing, and thus only, shall we draw nigh to each other, and become
+brothers and sisters in Christ, caring for each other’s honour and
+righteousness and true well-being. It is to them that keep his
+commandments that he and his Father will come to take up their abode
+with them. Whether you or I have the larger share of the truth in that
+which we hold, of this I am sure, that it is to them that keep his
+commandments that it shall be given to eat of the Tree of Life. I
+believe that Jesus is the eternal son of the eternal Father; that in him
+the ideal humanity sat enthroned from all eternity; that as he is the
+divine man, so is he the human God; that there was no taking of our
+nature upon himself, but the showing of himself as he really was, and
+that from evermore: these things, friends, I believe, though never would
+I be guilty of what in me would be the irreverence of opening my mouth
+in dispute upon them. Not for a moment would I endeavour by argument to
+convince another of this, my opinion. If it be true, it is God’s work to
+show it, for logic cannot. But the more, and not the less, do I believe
+that he, who is no respecter of persons, will, least of all, respect the
+person of him who thinks to please him by respecting his person, calling
+him, “Lord, Lord,” and not doing the things that he tells him. Even if I
+be right, friend, and thou wrong, to thee who doest his commandments
+more faithfully than I, will the more abundant entrance be administered.
+God grant that, when thou art admitted first, I may not be cast out, but
+admitted to learn of thee that it is truth in the inward parts that he
+requireth, and they that have that truth, and they alone, shall ever
+know wisdom. Bear with me, friends, for I love and honour you. I seek
+but to stir up your hearts, as I would daily stir up my own, to be true
+to that which is deepest in us,--the voice and the will of the Father of
+our spirits.
+
+Friends, I have not said we are not to utter our opinions. I have only
+said we are not to make those opinions the point of a fresh start, the
+foundation of a new building, the groundwork of anything. They are not
+to occupy us in our dealings with our brethren. Opinion is often the
+very death of love. Love aright, and you will come to think aright; and
+those who think aright must think the same. In the meantime, it matters
+nothing. The thing that does matter is, that whereto we have attained,
+by that we should walk. But, while we are not to insist upon our
+opinions, which is only one way of insisting upon ourselves, however we
+may cloak the fact from ourselves in the vain imagination of thereby
+spreading the truth, we are bound by loftiest duty to spread the truth;
+for that is the saving of men. Do you ask, How spread it, if we are not
+to talk about it? Friends, I never said, Do not talk about the truth,
+although I insist upon a better and the only indispensable way: let your
+light shine. What I said before, and say again, is, Do not talk about
+the lantern that holds the lamp, but make haste, uncover the light, and
+let it shine. Let your light so shine before men that they may see your
+good works,--I incline to the Vatican reading of _good things_,--and
+glorify your Father who is in heaven. It is not, Let your good works
+shine, but, Let your light shine. Let it be the genuine love of your
+hearts, taking form in true deeds; not the doing of good deeds to prove
+that your opinions are right. If ye are thus true, your very talk about
+the truth will be a good work, a shining of the light that is in you. A
+true smile is a good work, and may do much to reveal the Father who is
+in heaven; but the smile that is put on for the sake of looking right,
+or even for the sake of being right, will hardly reveal him, not being
+like him. Men say that you are cold: if you fear it may be so, do not
+think to make yourselves warm by putting on the cloak of this or that
+fresh opinion; draw nearer to the central heat, the living humanity of
+the Son of Man, that ye may have life in yourselves, so heat in
+yourselves, so light in yourselves; understand him, obey him, then your
+light will shine, and your warmth will warm. There is an infection, as
+in evil, so in good. The better we are, the more will men glorify God.
+If we trim our lamps so that we have light in our house, that light will
+shine through our windows, and give light to those that are not in the
+house. But remember, love of the light alone can trim the lamp. Had Love
+trimmed Psyche’s lamp, it had never dropped the scalding oil that scared
+him from her.
+
+The man who holds his opinion the most honestly ought to see the most
+plainly that his opinion must change. It is impossible a man should hold
+anything aright. How shall the created embrace the self-existent
+Creator? That Creator, and he alone, is _the truth_: how, then, shall a
+man embrace the truth? But to him who will live it,--to him, that is,
+who walks by that to which he has attained,--the truth will reach down a
+thousand true hands for his to grasp. We would not wish to enclose that
+which we can do more than enclose,--live in, namely, as our home,
+inherit, exult in,--the presence of the infinitely higher and better,
+the heart of the living one. And, if we know that God himself is our
+inheritance, why should we tremble even with hatred at the suggestion
+that we may, that we must, change our opinions? If we held them aright,
+we should know that nothing in them that is good can ever be lost; for
+that is the true, whatever in them may be the false. It is only as they
+help us toward God, that our opinions are worth a straw; and every
+necessary change in them must be to more truth, to greater uplifting
+power. Lord, change me as thou wilt, only do not send me away. That in
+my opinions for which I really hold them, if I be a true man, will never
+pass away; that which my evils and imperfections have, in the process of
+embodying it, associated with the truth, must, thank God, perish and
+fall. My opinions, as my life, as my love, I leave in the hands of him
+who is my being. I commend my spirit to him of whom it came. Why, then,
+that dislike to the very idea of such change, that dread of having to
+accept the thing offered by those whom we count our opponents, which is
+such a stumbling-block in the way in which we have to walk, such an
+obstruction to our yet inevitable growth? It may be objected that no man
+will hold his opinions with the needful earnestness, who can entertain
+the idea of having to change them. But the very objection speaks
+powerfully against such an overvaluing of opinion. For what is it but to
+say that, in order to be wise, a man must consent to be a fool. Whatever
+must be, a man must be able to look in the face. It is because we cleave
+to our opinions rather than to the living God, because self and pride
+interest themselves for their own vile sakes with that which belongs
+only to the truth, that we become such fools of logic and temper that we
+lie in the prison-houses of our own fancies, ideas, and experiences,
+shut the doors and windows against the entrance of the free spirit, and
+will not inherit the love of the Father.
+
+Yet, for the help and comfort of even such a refuser as this, I would
+say: Nothing which you reject can be such as it seems to you. For a
+thing is either true or untrue: if it be untrue, it looks, so far like
+itself that you reject it, and with it we have nothing more to do; but,
+if it be true, the very fact that you reject it shows that to you it has
+not appeared true,--has not appeared itself. The truth can never be even
+beheld but by the man who accepts it: the thing, therefore, which you
+reject, is not that which it seems to you, but a thing good, and
+altogether beautiful, altogether fit for your gladsome embrace,--a thing
+from which you would not turn away, did you see it as it is, but rush to
+it, as Dante says, like the wild beast to his den,--so eager for the
+refuge of home. No honest man holds a truth for the sake of that because
+of which another honest man rejects it: how it may be with the
+dishonest, I have no confidence in my judgment, and hope I am not bound
+to understand.
+
+Let us then, my friends, beware lest our opinions come between us and
+our God, between us and our neighbour, between us and our better selves.
+Let us be jealous that the human shall not obscure the divine. For we
+are not _mere_ human: we, too, are divine; and there is no such
+obliterator of the divine as the human that acts undivinely. The one
+security against our opinions is to walk according to the truth which
+they contain.
+
+And if men seem to us unreasonable, opposers of that which to us is
+plainly true, let us remember that we are not here to convince men, but
+to let our light shine. Knowledge is not necessarily light; and it is
+light, not knowledge, that we have to diffuse. The best thing we can do,
+infinitely the best, indeed the only thing, that men may receive the
+truth, is to be ourselves true. Beyond all doing of good is the being
+good; for he that is good not only does good things, but all that he
+does is good. Above all, let us be humble before the God of truth,
+faithfully desiring of him that truth in the inward parts which alone
+can enable us to walk according to that which we have attained. May the
+God of peace give you his peace; may the love of Christ constrain you;
+may the gift of the Holy Spirit be yours. Amen.
+
+
+
+
+TRUE CHRISTIAN MINISTERING.
+
+
+[Footnote: A spoken sermon.]
+
+MATT. xx. 25--28--But Jesus called them unto him and said, Ye know that
+the princes of the Gentiles exercise dominion over them, and they that
+are great exercise authority upon them. But it should not be so among
+you: but whosoever will be great among you, let him be your minister;
+and whosoever will be chief among you, let him be your servant: even as
+the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister, and to
+give his life a ransom for many.
+
+
+How little this is believed! People think, if they think about it at
+all, that this is very well in the church, but, as things go in the
+world, it won’t do. At least, their actions imply this, for every man is
+struggling to get above the other. Every man would make his neighbour
+his footstool that he may climb upon him to some throne of glory which
+he has in his own mind. There is a continual jostling, and crowding, and
+buzzing, and striving to get promotion. Of course there are known and
+noble exceptions; but still, there it is. And yet we call ourselves
+“Christians,” and we are Christians, all of us, thus far, that the truth
+is within reach of us all, that it has come nigh to us, talking to us at
+our door, and even speaking in our hearts, and yet this is the way in
+which we go on! The Lord said, “It shall not be so among you.” Did he
+mean only his twelve disciples? This was all that he had to say to them,
+but--thanks be to him!--he says the same to every one of us now. “It
+shall not be so among you: that is not the way in my kingdom.” The
+people of the world--the people who live in the world--will always think
+it best to get up, to have less and less of service to do, more and more
+of service done to them. The notion of rank in the world is like a
+pyramid; the higher you go up, the fewer are there who have to serve
+those above them, and who are served more than those underneath them.
+All who are under serve those who are above, until you come to the apex,
+and there stands some one who has to do no service, but whom all the
+others have to serve. Something like that is the notion of position--of
+social standing and rank. And if it be so in an intellectual way
+even--to say nothing of mere bodily service--if any man works to a
+position that others shall all look up to him and that he may have to
+look up to nobody, he has just put himself precisely into the same
+condition as the people of whom our Lord speaks--as those who exercise
+dominion and authority, and really he thinks it a fine thing to be
+served.
+
+But it is not so in the kingdom of heaven. The figure there is entirely
+reversed. As you may see a pyramid reflected in the water, just so, in a
+reversed way altogether, is the thing to be found in the kingdom of God.
+It is in this way: the Son of Man lies at the inverted apex of the
+pyramid; he upholds, and serves, and ministers unto all, and they who
+would be high in his kingdom must go near to him at the bottom, to
+uphold and minister to all that they may or can uphold and minister
+unto. There is no other law of precedence, no other law of rank and
+position in God’s kingdom. And mind, that is _the_ kingdom. The other
+kingdom passes away--it is a transitory, ephemeral, passing, bad thing,
+and away it must go. It is only there on sufferance, because in the mind
+of God even that which is bad ministers to that which is good; and when
+the new kingdom is built the old kingdom shall pass away.
+
+But the man who seeks this rank of which I have spoken, must be honest
+to follow it. It will not do to say, “I want to be great, and therefore
+I will serve.” A man will not get at it so. He may begin so, but he will
+soon find that that will not do. He must seek it for the truth’s sake,
+for the love of his fellows, for the worship of God, for the delight in
+what is good. In the kingdom of heaven people do not think whether I am
+promoted, or whether you are promoted. They are so absorbed in the
+delight and glory of the goodness that is round about them, that they
+learn not to think much about themselves. It is the bad that is in us
+that makes us think about ourselves. It is necessary for us, because
+there is bad in us, to think about ourselves, but as we go on we think
+less and less about ourselves, until at last we are possessed with the
+spirit of the truth, the spirit of the kingdom, and live in gladness and
+in peace. We are prouder of our brothers and sisters than of ourselves;
+we delight to look at them. God looks at us, and makes us what he
+pleases, and this is what we must come to; there is no escape from it.
+
+But the Lord says, that “the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto.”
+ Was he not ministered unto then? Ah! he was ministered unto as never man
+was, but he did not come for that. Even now we bring to him the
+burnt-offerings of our very spirits, but he did not come for that. It
+was to help us that he came. We are told, likewise, that he is the
+express image of the Father. Then what he does, the Father must do; and
+he says himself, when he is accused of breaking the Sabbath by doing
+work on it, “My Father worketh hitherto, and I work.” Then this must be
+God’s way too, or else it could not have been Jesus’s way. It is God’s
+way. Oh! do not think that God made us with his hands, and then turned
+us out to find out our own way. Do not think of him as being always over
+our heads, merely throwing over us a wide-spread benevolence. You can
+imagine the tenderness of a mother’s heart who takes her child even from
+its beloved nurse to soothe and to minister to it, and that is like God;
+that is God. His hand is not only over us, but recollect what David
+said--“His hand was upon me.” I wish we were all as good Christians as
+David was. “Wherever I go,” he said, “God is there--beneath me, before
+me, his hand is upon me; if I go to sleep he is there; when I go down to
+the dead he is there.” Everywhere is God. The earth underneath us is his
+hand upholding us. [Footnote: The waters are in the hollow of it.] Every
+spring-fountain of gladness about us is his making and his delight. He
+tends us and cares for us; he is close to us, breathing into our
+nostrils the breath of life, and breathing into our spirit this thought
+and that thought to make us look up and recognize the love and the care
+around us. What a poor thing for the little baby would it be if it were
+to be constantly tended thus tenderly and preciously by its mother, but
+if it were never to open its eyes to look up and see her mother’s face
+bending over it. A poor thing all its tending would be without that. It
+is for that that the other exists; it is by that that the other comes.
+To recognize and know this loving-kindness, and to stand up in it strong
+and glad; this is the ministration of God unto us. Do you ever think “I
+could worship God if he was so-and-so?” Do you imagine that God is not
+as good, as perfect, as absolutely all-in-all as your thoughts can
+imagine? Aye, you cannot come up to it; do what you will you never will
+come up to it. Use all the symbols that we have in nature, in human
+relations, in the family--all our symbols of grace and tenderness, and
+loving-kindness between man and man, and between man and woman, and
+between woman and woman, but you can never come up to the thought of
+what God’s ministration is. When our Lord came he just let us see how
+his Father was doing this always, he “came to give his life a ransom for
+many.” It was in giving his life a ransom for us that he died; that was
+the consummation and crown of it all, but it was his life that he gave
+for us--his whole being, his whole strength, his whole energy--not alone
+his days of trouble and of toil, but deeper than that, he gave his whole
+being for us; yea, he even went down to death for us.
+
+But how are we to learn this ministration? I will tell you where it
+begins. The most of us are forced to work; if you do not see that the
+commonest things in life belong to the Christian scheme, the plan of
+God, you have got to learn it. I say this is at the beginning. Most of
+us have to work, and infinitely better is that for us than if we were
+not forced to work, but not a very fine thing unless it goes to
+something farther. We are forced to work; and what is our work? It is
+doing something for other people always. It is doing; it is ministration
+in some shape or other. All kind of work is a serving, but it may not be
+always Christian service. No. Some of us only work for our wages; we
+must have them. We starve, and deserve to starve, if we do not work to
+get them. But we must go a little beyond that; yes, a very great way
+beyond that. There is no honest work that one man does for another which
+he may not do as unto the Lord and not unto men; in which he cannot do
+right as he ought to do right. Thus, I say that the man who sees the
+commonest thing in the world, recognizing it as part of the divine order
+of things, the law by which the world goes, being the intention of God
+that one man should be serviceable and useful to another--the man, I
+say, who does a thing well because of this, and who tries to do it
+better, is doing God service.
+
+We talk of “divine service.” It is a miserable name for a great thing.
+It is not service, properly speaking, at all. When a boy comes to his
+father and says, “May I do so and so for you?” or, rather, comes and
+breaks out in some way, showing his love to his father--says, “May I
+come and sit beside you? May I have some of your books? May I come and
+be quiet a little in your room?” what would you think of that boy if he
+went and said, “I have been doing my father a service.” So with praying
+to and thanking God, do you call that serving God? If it is not serving
+yourselves it is worth nothing; if it is not the best condition you can
+find yourselves in, you have to learn what it is yet. Not so; the work
+you have to do to-morrow in the counting-house, in the shop, or wherever
+you may be, is that by which you are to serve God. Do it with a high
+regard, and then there is nothing mean in it; but there is everything
+mean in it if you are pretending to please people when you only look for
+your wages. It is mean then; but if you have regard to doing a thing
+nobly, greatly, and truly, because it is the work that God has given you
+to do, then you are doing the divine service.
+
+Of course, this goes a great deal farther. We have endless opportunities
+of showing ourselves neighbours to the man who comes near us. That is
+the divine service; that is the reality of serving God. The others ought
+to be your reward, if “reward” is a word that can be used in such a
+relation at all. Go home and speak to God; nay, hold your tongue, and
+quietly go to him in the secret recesses of your own heart, and know
+that God is there. Say, “God has given me this work to do, and I am
+doing it;” and that is your joy, that is your refuge, that is your going
+to heaven. It is not service. The words “divine service,” as they are
+used, always move me to something of indignation. It is perfect
+paganism; it is looking to please God by gathering together your
+services,--something that is supposed to be service to him. He is
+serving us for ever, and our Lord says, “If I have washed your feet, so
+you ought to wash one another’s feet.” This will be the way in which to
+minister for some.
+
+But still, when we are beginning to learn this, some of us are looking
+about us in a blind kind of way, thinking, “I wish I could serve God; I
+do not know what to do! How is it to be begun? What is it at the root of
+it? What shall I find out to do? Where is there something to do?”
+
+Now, first of all, service is obedience, or it is nothing. This is what
+I would gladly impress upon you; upon every young man who has come to
+the point to be able to receive it. There is a tendency in us to think
+that there is something degrading in obedience, something degrading in
+service. According to the social judgment there is; according to the
+judgment of the earth there is. Not so according to the judgment of
+heaven, for God would only have us do the very thing he is doing
+himself. You may see the tendency of this nowadays. There is scarcely a
+young man who will speak of his “master.” He feels as if there is
+something that hurts his dignity in doing so. He does just what so many
+theologians have done about God, who, instead of taking what our Lord
+has given us, talk about God as “the Governor of the Universe.” So a
+young man talks about his master as “the governor;” nay, he even talks
+of his own father in that way, and then you come in another region
+altogether, and a worse one. I take these things as symptoms, mind. I
+know habits may be picked up, when they get common, without any great
+corresponding feeling; but a wrong habit tends always to a wrong
+feeling, and if a man cannot learn to honour his father, so as to be
+able to call him “father,” I think one or the other of them is greatly
+to blame, whether the father or the son I cannot say. I know there are
+such parents that to tell their children that God is their “Father” is
+no help to them, but the contrary. I heard of a lady just the other day
+to whom, in trying to comfort her, some one said, “Remember God is your
+Father.” “Do not mention the name ‘father’ to me,” she said. Ah! that
+kind of fault does not lie in God, but in those who, not being like him,
+cannot use the names aright which belong to him.
+
+But now, as to this service, this obedience. Our Lord came to give his
+life a ransom for the many, and to minister unto all in obedience to his
+Father’s will. We call him equal with God--at least, most of us here, I
+suppose, do; of course we do not pretend to explain; we know that God is
+greater than he, because he said so; but somehow, we can worship him
+with our God, and we need not try to distinguish more than is necessary
+about it. But do you think that he was less divine than the Father when
+he was obedient? Observe his obedience to the will of his Father. He was
+not the ruler there. He did not give the commands; he obeyed them. And
+yet we say He is God! Ah, that is no difficulty to me. Obedience is as
+divine in its essence as command; nay, it may be more divine in the
+human being far; it cannot be more divine in God, but obedience is far
+more divine in its essence with regard to humanity than command is. It
+is not the ruling being who is most like God; it is the man who
+ministers to his fellow, who is like God; and the man who will just
+sternly and rigidly do what his master tells him--be that master what he
+may--who is likest Christ in that one particular matter. Obedience is
+the grandest thing in the world to begin with. Yes, and we shall end
+with it too. I do not think the time will ever come when we shall not
+have something to do, because we are told to do it without knowing why.
+Those parents act most foolishly who wish to explain everything to their
+children--most foolishly. No; teach your child to obey, and you give him
+the most precious lesson that can be given to a child. Let him come to
+that before you have had him long, to do what he is told, and you have
+given him the plainest, first, and best lesson that you can give him. If
+he never goes to school at all he had better have that lesson than all
+the schooling in the world. Hence, when some people are accustomed to
+glorify this age of ours as being so much better in everything than
+those which went before, I look back to the times of chivalry, which we
+regard now, almost, as a thing to laugh at, or a merry thing to make
+jokes about; but I find that the one essential of chivalry was
+obedience. It is recognized in our army still, but in those times it was
+carried much farther. When a boy was seven years old he was sent into
+another family, and put with another boy there to do what? To wait with
+him upon the master and the mistress of the house, and to be taught, as
+well, what few things they knew in those times in the way of
+intellectual cultivation. But he also learned stern, strict obedience,
+such as it was impossible for him to forget. Then, when he had been
+there seven years, hard at work, standing behind the chair, and
+ministering, he was advanced a step; and what was that step? He was made
+an esquire. He had his armour given him; he had to watch his armour in
+the chapel all night, laying it on the altar in silent devotion to God.
+I do not say that all these things were carried out afterwards, but this
+was the idea of them. He was an esquire, and what was the duty of an
+esquire? More service; more important service. He still had to attend to
+his master, the knight. He had to watch him; he had to groom his horse
+for him; he had to see that his horse was sound; he had to clean his
+armour for him; to see that every bolt, every rivet, every strap, every
+buckle was sound, for the life of his master was in his hands. The
+master, having to fight, must not be troubled with these things, and
+therefore the squire had to attend to them. Then seven years after that
+a more solemn ceremony is gone through, and the squire is made a knight;
+but is he free of service then? No; he makes a solemn oath to help
+everybody who needs help, especially women and children, and so he rides
+out into the world to do the work of a true man. There was a grand and
+essential idea of Christianity in that--no doubt wonderfully broken and
+shattered, but not more so than the Christian church has been;
+wonderfully broken and shattered, but still the essence of obedience;
+and I say it is recognized in our army still, and in every army; and
+where it is lost it is a terrible loss, and an army is worth nothing
+without it. You remember that terrible story from the East, that fearful
+death-charge, one of the grandest things in our history, although one of
+the most blundering:--
+
+ “Theirs not to make reply,
+ Theirs not to reason why,
+ Theirs but to do and die;
+ Into the valley of death
+ Rode the Six Hundred.”
+
+So with the Christian man; whatever meets him, obedience is the thing.
+If he is told by his conscience, which is the candle of God within him,
+that he must do a thing, why he must do it. He may tremble from head to
+foot at having to do it, but he will tremble more if he turns his back.
+You recollect how our old poet Spenser shows us the Knight of the Red
+Cross, who is the knight of holiness, ill in body, diseased in mind,
+without any of his armour on, attacked by a fearful giant. What does he
+do? Run away? No, he has but time to catch up his sword, and, trembling
+in every limb, he goes on to meet the giant; and that is the thing that
+every Christian man must do. I cannot put it too strongly; it is
+impossible. There is no escape from it. If death itself lies before us,
+and we know it, there is nothing to be said; it is all to be done, and
+then there is no loss; everything else is all lost unto God. Look at our
+Lord. He gave his life to do the will of his Father, and on he went and
+did it. Do you think it was easy for him--easier for him than it would
+have been for us? Ah! the greater the man the more delicate and tender
+his nature, and the more he shrinks from the opposition even of his
+fellowmen, because he loves them. It was a terrible thing for Christ.
+Even now and then, even in the little touches that come to us in the
+scanty story (though enough) this breaks out. “We are told by John that
+at the Last Supper He was troubled in spirit, and testified.” And then
+how he tries to comfort himself as soon as Judas has gone out to do the
+thing which was to finish his great work: “Now is the Son of Man
+glorified, and God is glorified in him. If God be glorified in him, God
+shall also glorify him in himself.” Then he adds,--just gathering up his
+strength,--“I shall straightway glorify him.” This was said to his
+disciples, but I seem to see in it that some of it was said for himself.
+This is the grand obedience! Oh, friends, this is a hard lesson to
+learn. We find every day that it is a hard thing to teach. We are
+continually grumbling because we cannot get the people about us, our
+servants, our tradespeople, or whoever they may be, to do just what we
+tell them. It makes half the misery in the world because they will have
+something of their own in it against what they are told. But are we not
+always doing the same thing? and ought we not to learn something of
+forgiveness for them, and very much from the fact that we are just in
+the same position? We only recognize in part that we are put here in
+this world precisely to learn to be obedient. He who is our Lord and our
+God went on being obedient all the time, and was obedient always; and I
+say it is as divine for us to obey as it is for God to rule. As I have
+said already, God is ministering the whole time. Now, do you want to
+know how to minister? Begin by obeying. Obey every one who has a right
+to command you; but above all, look to what our Lord has said, and find
+out what he wants you to do out of what he left behind, and try whether
+obedience to that will not give a consciousness of use, of ministering,
+of being a part of the grand scheme and way of God in this world. In
+fact, take your place in it as a vital portion of the divine kingdom,
+or--to use a better figure than that--a vital portion of the Godhead.
+Try it, and see whether obedience is not salvation; whether service is
+not dignity; whether you will not feel in yourselves that you have begun
+to be cleansed from your plague when you begin to say, “I will seek no
+more to be above my fellows, but I will seek to minister to them, doing
+my work in God’s name for them.”
+
+ “Who sweeps a room as for Thy law,
+ Makes that and the action fine.”
+
+Both the room and the action are good when done for God’s sake. That is
+dear old George Herbert’s way of saying the same truth, for every man
+has his own way of saying it. The gift of the Spirit of God to make you
+think as God thinks, feel as God feels, judge as God judges, is just the
+one thing that is promised. I do not know anything else that is promised
+positively but that, and who dares pray for anything else with perfect
+confidence? God will not give us what we pray for except it be good for
+us, but that is one thing that we must have or perish. Therefore, let us
+pray for that, and with the name of God dwelling in us--if this is not
+true, the whole world is a heap of ruins--let us go forth and do this
+service of God in ministering to our fellows, and so helping him in his
+work of upholding, and glorifying and saving all.
+
+
+
+
+THE FANTASTIC IMAGINATION
+
+
+That we have in English no word corresponding to the German _Mährchen_,
+drives us to use the word _Fairytale_, regardless of the fact that the
+tale may have nothing to do with any sort of fairy. The old use of the
+word _Fairy_, by Spenser at least, might, however, well be adduced, were
+justification or excuse necessary where _need must_.
+
+Were I asked, what is a fairytale? I should reply, _Read Undine: that
+is a fairytale; then read this and that as well, and you will see what
+is a fairytale_. Were I further begged to describe the _fairytale_, or
+define what it is, I would make answer, that I should as soon think of
+describing the abstract human face, or stating what must go to
+constitute a human being. A fairytale is just a fairytale, as a face is
+just a face; and of all fairytales I know, I think _Undine_ the most
+beautiful.
+
+Many a man, however, who would not attempt to define _a man_, might
+venture to say something as to what a man ought to be: even so much I
+will not in this place venture with regard to the fairytale, for my long
+past work in that kind might but poorly instance or illustrate my now
+more matured judgment. I will but say some things helpful to the
+reading, in right-minded fashion, of such fairytales as I would wish to
+write, or care to read.
+
+Some thinkers would feel sorely hampered if at liberty to use no forms
+but such as existed in nature, or to invent nothing save in accordance
+with the laws of the world of the senses; but it must not therefore be
+imagined that they desire escape from the region of law. Nothing lawless
+can show the least reason why it should exist, or could at best have
+more than an appearance of life.
+
+The natural world has its laws, and no man must interfere with them in
+the way of presentment any more than in the way of use; but they
+themselves may suggest laws of other kinds, and man may, if he pleases,
+invent a little world of his own, with its own laws; for there is that
+in him which delights in calling up new forms--which is the nearest,
+perhaps, he can come to creation. When such forms are new embodiments of
+old truths, we call them products of the Imagination; when they are mere
+inventions, however lovely, I should call them the work of the Fancy: in
+either case, Law has been diligently at work.
+
+His world once invented, the highest law that comes next into play is,
+that there shall be harmony between the laws by which the new world has
+begun to exist; and in the process of his creation, the inventor must
+hold by those laws. The moment he forgets one of them, he makes the
+story, by its own postulates, incredible. To be able to live a moment in
+an imagined world, we must see the laws of its existence obeyed. Those
+broken, we fall out of it. The imagination in us, whose exercise is
+essential to the most temporary submission to the imagination of
+another, immediately, with the disappearance, of Law, ceases to act.
+Suppose the gracious creatures of some childlike region of Fairyland
+talking either cockney or Gascon! Would not the tale, however lovelily
+begun, sink at once to the level of the Burlesque--of all forms of
+literature the least worthy? A man’s inventions may be stupid or clever,
+but if he do not hold by the laws of them, or if he make one law jar
+with another, he contradicts himself as an inventor, he is no artist. He
+does not rightly consort his instruments, or he tunes them in different
+keys. The mind of man is the product of live Law; it thinks by law, it
+dwells in the midst of law, it gathers from law its growth; with law,
+therefore, can it alone work to any result. Inharmonious, unconsorting
+ideas will come to a man, but if he try to use one of such, his work
+will grow dull, and he will drop it from mere lack of interest. Law is
+the soil in which alone beauty will grow; beauty is the only stuff in
+which Truth can be clothed; and you may, if you will, call Imagination
+the tailor that cuts her garments to fit her, and Fancy his journeyman
+that puts the pieces of them together, or perhaps at most embroiders
+their button-holes. Obeying law, the maker works like his creator; not
+obeying law, he is such a fool as heaps a pile of stones and calls it a
+church.
+
+In the moral world it is different: there a man may clothe in new forms,
+and for this employ his imagination freely, but he must invent nothing.
+He may not, for any purpose, turn its laws upside down. He must not
+meddle with the relations of live souls. The laws of the spirit of man
+must hold, alike in this world and in any world he may invent. It were
+no offence to suppose a world in which everything repelled instead of
+attracted the things around it; it would be wicked to write a tale
+representing a man it called good as always doing bad things, or a man
+it called bad as always doing good things: the notion itself is
+absolutely lawless. In physical things a man may invent; in moral things
+he must obey--and take their laws with him into his invented world as
+well.
+
+“You write as if a fairytale were a thing of importance: must it have a
+meaning?”
+
+It cannot help having some meaning; if it have proportion and harmony it
+has vitality, and vitality is truth. The beauty may be plainer in it
+than the truth, but without the truth the beauty could not be, and the
+fairytale would give no delight. Everyone, however, who feels the story,
+will read its meaning after his own nature and development: one man will
+read one meaning in it, another will read another.
+
+“If so, how am I to assure myself that I am not reading my own meaning
+into it, but yours out of it?”
+
+Why should you be so assured? It may be better that you should read your
+meaning into it. That may be a higher operation of your intellect than
+the mere reading of mine out of it: your meaning may be superior to
+mine.
+
+“Suppose my child ask me what the fairytale means, what am I to say?”
+
+If you do not know what it means, what is easier than to say so? If you
+do see a meaning in it, there it is for you to give him. A genuine work
+of art must mean many things; the truer its art, the more things it will
+mean. If my drawing, on the other hand, is so far from being a work of
+art that it needs THIS IS A HORSE written under it, what can it matter
+that neither you nor your child should know what it means? It is there
+not so much to convey a meaning as to wake a meaning. If it do not even
+wake an interest, throw it aside. A meaning may be there, but it is not
+for you. If, again, you do not know a horse when you see it, the name
+written under it will not serve you much. At all events, the business of
+the painter is not to teach zoology.
+
+But indeed your children are not likely to trouble you about the
+meaning. They find what they are capable of finding, and more would be
+too much. For my part, I do not write for children, but for the
+childlike, whether of five, or fifty, or seventy-five.
+
+A fairytale is not an allegory. There may be allegory in it, but it is
+not an allegory. He must be an artist indeed who can, in any mode,
+produce a strict allegory that is not a weariness to the spirit. An
+allegory must be Mastery or Moorditch.
+
+A fairytale, like a butterfly or a bee, helps itself on all sides, sips
+at every wholesome flower, and spoils not one. The true fairytale is, to
+my mind, very like the sonata. We all know that a sonata means
+something; and where there is the faculty of talking with suitable
+vagueness, and choosing metaphor sufficiently loose, mind may approach
+mind, in the interpretation of a sonata, with the result of a more or
+less contenting consciousness of sympathy. But if two or three men sat
+down to write each what the sonata meant to him, what approximation to
+definite idea would be the result? Little enough--and that little more
+than needful. We should find it had roused related, if not identical,
+feelings, but probably not one common thought. Has the sonata therefore
+failed? Had it undertaken to convey, or ought it to be expected to
+impart anything defined, anything notionally recognizable?
+
+“But words are not music; words at least are meant and fitted to carry a
+precise meaning!”
+
+It is very seldom indeed that they carry the exact meaning of any user
+of them! And if they can be so used as to convey definite meaning, it
+does not follow that they ought never to carry anything else. Words are
+live things that may be variously employed to various ends. They can
+convey a scientific fact, or throw a shadow of her child’s dream on the
+heart of a mother. They are things to put together like the pieces of a
+dissected map, or to arrange like the notes on a stave. Is the music in
+them to go for nothing? It can hardly help the definiteness of a
+meaning: is it therefore to be disregarded? They have length, and
+breadth, and outline: have they nothing to do with depth? Have they only
+to describe, never to impress? Has nothing any claim to their use but
+the definite? The cause of a child’s tears may be altogether
+undefinable: has the mother therefore no antidote for his vague misery?
+That may be strong in colour which has no evident outline. A fairytale,
+a sonata, a gathering storm, a limitless night, seizes you and sweeps
+you away: do you begin at once to wrestle with it and ask whence its
+power over you, whither it is carrying you? The law of each is in the
+mind of its composer; that law makes one man feel this way, another man
+feel that way. To one the sonata is a world of odour and beauty, to
+another of soothing only and sweetness. To one, the cloudy rendezvous is
+a wild dance, with a terror at its heart; to another, a majestic march
+of heavenly hosts, with Truth in their centre pointing their course, but
+as yet restraining her voice. The greatest forces lie in the region of
+the uncomprehended.
+
+I will go farther.--The best thing you can do for your fellow, next to
+rousing his conscience, is--not to give him things to think about, but
+to wake things up that are in him; or say, to make him think things for
+himself. The best Nature does for us is to work in us such moods in
+which thoughts of high import arise. Does any aspect of Nature wake but
+one thought? Does she ever suggest only one definite thing? Does she
+make any two men in the same place at the same moment think the same
+thing? Is she therefore a failure, because she is not definite? Is it
+nothing that she rouses the something deeper than the understanding--the
+power that underlies thoughts? Does she not set feeling, and so thinking
+at work? Would it be better that she did this after one fashion and not
+after many fashions? Nature is mood-engendering, thought-provoking: such
+ought the sonata, such ought the fairytale to be.
+
+“But a man may then imagine in your work what he pleases, what you never
+meant!”
+
+Not what he pleases, but what he can. If he be not a true man, he will
+draw evil out of the best; we need not mind how he treats any work of
+art! If he be a true man, he will imagine true things; what matter
+whether I meant them or not? They are there none the less that I cannot
+claim putting them there! One difference between God’s work and man’s
+is, that, while God’s work cannot mean more than he meant, man’s must
+mean more than he meant. For in everything that God has made, there is
+layer upon layer of ascending significance; also he expresses the same
+thought in higher and higher kinds of that thought: it is God’s things,
+his embodied thoughts, which alone a man has to use, modified and
+adapted to his own purposes, for the expression of his thoughts;
+therefore he cannot help his words and figures falling into such
+combinations in the mind of another as he had himself not foreseen, so
+many are the thoughts allied to every other thought, so many are the
+relations involved in every figure, so many the facts hinted in every
+symbol. A man may well himself discover truth in what he wrote; for he
+was dealing all the time with things that came from thoughts beyond his
+own.
+
+“But surely you would explain your idea to one who asked you?”
+
+I say again, if I cannot draw a horse, I will not write THIS IS A HORSE
+under what I foolishly meant for one. Any key to a work of imagination
+would be nearly, if not quite, as absurd. The tale is there, not to
+hide, but to show: if it show nothing at your window, do not open your
+door to it; leave it out in the cold. To ask me to explain, is to say,
+“Roses! Boil them, or we won’t have them!” My tales may not be roses,
+but I will not boil them.
+
+So long as I think my dog can bark, I will not sit up to bark for him.
+
+If a writer’s aim be logical conviction, he must spare no logical pains,
+not merely to be understood, but to escape being misunderstood; where
+his object is to move by suggestion, to cause to imagine, then let him
+assail the soul of his reader as the wind assails an aeolian harp. If
+there be music in my reader, I would gladly wake it. Let fairytale of
+mine go for a firefly that now flashes, now is dark, but may flash
+again. Caught in a hand which does not love its kind, it will turn to an
+insignificant, ugly thing, that can neither flash nor fly.
+
+The best way with music, I imagine, is not to bring the forces of our
+intellect to bear upon it, but to be still and let it work on that part
+of us for whose sake it exists. We spoil countless precious things by
+intellectual greed. He who will be a man, and will not be a child,
+must--he cannot help himself--become a little man, that is, a dwarf. He
+will, however, need no consolation, for he is sure to think himself a
+very large creature indeed.
+
+If any strain of my “broken music” make a child’s eyes flash, or his
+mother’s grow for a moment dim, my labour will not have been in vain.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Dish Of Orts, by George MacDonald
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A DISH OF ORTS ***
+
+***** This file should be named 9393-0.txt or 9393-0.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/9/3/9/9393/
+
+Produced by Jonathan Ingram, Sandra Brown, and Project
+Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
+Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
+ www.gutenberg.org/license.
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the Foundation”
+ or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project
+Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+“Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+“Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
+of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm’s
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.
+
+The Foundation’s principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
+North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
+contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
+Foundation’s web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
diff --git a/9393-0.zip b/9393-0.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..46282f8
--- /dev/null
+++ b/9393-0.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/9393-8.txt b/9393-8.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..2901927
--- /dev/null
+++ b/9393-8.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,8915 @@
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of A Dish Of Orts, by George MacDonald
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: A Dish Of Orts
+
+Author: George MacDonald
+
+
+Release Date: November, 2005 [EBook #9393]
+This file was first posted on September 29, 2003
+Last Updated: April 17, 2013
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A DISH OF ORTS ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Jonathan Ingram, Sandra Brown, and Project
+Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+A DISH OF ORTS
+
+BY GEORGE MACDONALD
+
+
+
+
+PREFACE.
+
+
+Since printing throughout the title _Orts_, a doubt has arisen in my
+mind as to its fitting the nature of the volume. It could hardly,
+however, be imagined that I associate the idea of _worthlessness_ with
+the work contained in it. No one would insult his readers by offering
+them what he counted valueless scraps, and telling them they were such.
+These papers, those two even which were caught in the net of the
+ready-writer from extempore utterance, whatever their merits in
+themselves; are the results of by no means trifling labour. So much a
+man _ought_ to be able to say for his work. And hence I might defend, if
+not quite justify my title--for they are but fragmentary presentments of
+larger meditation. My friends at least will accept them as such, whether
+they like their collective title or not.
+
+The title of the last is not quite suitable. It is that of the religious
+newspaper which reported the sermon. I noted the fact too late for
+correction. It ought to be _True Greatness_.
+
+The paper on _The Fantastic Imagination_ had its origin in the repeated
+request of readers for an explanation of things in certain shorter
+stories I had written. It forms the preface to an American edition of my
+so-called Fairy Tales.
+
+GEORGE MACDONALD.
+
+EDENBRIDGE, KENT. _August 5, 1893._
+
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS.
+
+THE IMAGINATION: ITS FUNCTIONS AND ITS CULTURE
+
+A SKETCH OF INDIVIDUAL DEVELOPMENT
+
+ST. GEORGE'S DAY, 1564
+
+THE ART OF SHAKSPERE, AS REVEALED BY HIMSELF
+
+THE ELDER HAMLET
+
+ON POLISH
+
+BROWNING'S "CHRISTMAS EVE"
+
+"ESSAYS ON SOME OF THE FORMS OF LITERATURE"
+
+"THE HISTORY AND HEROES OF MEDICINE"
+
+WORDSWORTH'S POETRY
+
+SHELLEY
+
+A SERMON
+
+TRUE CHRISTIAN MINISTERING
+
+THE FANTASTIC IMAGINATION
+
+
+
+
+THE IMAGINATION: ITS FUNCTIONS AND ITS CULTURE.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1867.]
+
+There are in whose notion education would seem to consist in the
+production of a certain repose through the development of this and that
+faculty, and the depression, if not eradication, of this and that other
+faculty. But if mere repose were the end in view, an unsparing
+depression of all the faculties would be the surest means of approaching
+it, provided always the animal instincts could be depressed likewise,
+or, better still, kept in a state of constant repletion. Happily,
+however, for the human race, it possesses in the passion of hunger even,
+a more immediate saviour than in the wisest selection and treatment of
+its faculties. For repose is not the end of education; its end is a
+noble unrest, an ever renewed awaking from the dead, a ceaseless
+questioning of the past for the interpretation of the future, an urging
+on of the motions of life, which had better far be accelerated into
+fever, than retarded into lethargy.
+
+By those who consider a balanced repose the end of culture, the
+imagination must necessarily be regarded as the one faculty before all
+others to be suppressed. "Are there not facts?" say they. "Why forsake
+them for fancies? Is there not that which, may be _known_? Why forsake
+it for inventions? What God hath made, into that let man inquire."
+
+We answer: To inquire into what God has made is the main function of the
+imagination. It is aroused by facts, is nourished by facts; seeks for
+higher and yet higher laws in those facts; but refuses to regard science
+as the sole interpreter of nature, or the laws of science as the only
+region of discovery.
+
+We must begin with a definition of the word _imagination_, or rather
+some description of the faculty to which we give the name.
+
+The word itself means an _imaging_ or a making of likenesses. The
+imagination is that faculty which gives form to thought--not necessarily
+uttered form, but form capable of being uttered in shape or in sound, or
+in any mode upon which the senses can lay hold. It is, therefore, that
+faculty in man which is likest to the prime operation of the power of
+God, and has, therefore, been called the _creative_ faculty, and its
+exercise _creation_. _Poet_ means _maker_. We must not forget, however,
+that between creator and poet lies the one unpassable gulf which
+distinguishes--far be it from us to say _divides_--all that is God's
+from all that is man's; a gulf teeming with infinite revelations, but a
+gulf over which no man can pass to find out God, although God needs not
+to pass over it to find man; the gulf between that which calls, and that
+which is thus called into being; between that which makes in its own
+image and that which is made in that image. It is better to keep the
+word _creation_ for that calling out of nothing which is the imagination
+of God; except it be as an occasional symbolic expression, whose daring
+is fully recognized, of the likeness of man's work to the work of his
+maker. The necessary unlikeness between the creator and the created
+holds within it the equally necessary likeness of the thing made to him
+who makes it, and so of the work of the made to the work of the maker.
+When therefore, refusing to employ the word _creation_ of the work of
+man, we yet use the word _imagination_ of the work of God, we cannot be
+said to dare at all. It is only to give the name of man's faculty to
+that power after which and by which it was fashioned. The imagination of
+man is made in the image of the imagination of God. Everything of man
+must have been of God first; and it will help much towards our
+understanding of the imagination and its functions in man if we first
+succeed in regarding aright the imagination of God, in which the
+imagination of man lives and moves and has its being.
+
+As to _what_ thought is in the mind of God ere it takes form, or what
+the form is to him ere he utters it; in a word, what the consciousness
+of God is in either case, all we can say is, that our consciousness in
+the resembling conditions must, afar off, resemble his. But when we come
+to consider the acts embodying the Divine thought (if indeed thought and
+act be not with him one and the same), then we enter a region of large
+difference. We discover at once, for instance, that where a man would
+make a machine, or a picture, or a book, God makes the man that makes
+the book, or the picture, or the machine. Would God give us a drama? He
+makes a Shakespere. Or would he construct a drama more immediately his
+own? He begins with the building of the stage itself, and that stage is
+a world--a universe of worlds. He makes the actors, and they do not
+act,--they _are_ their part. He utters them into the visible to work out
+their life--his drama. When he would have an epic, he sends a thinking
+hero into his drama, and the epic is the soliloquy of his Hamlet.
+Instead of writing his lyrics, he sets his birds and his maidens
+a-singing. All the processes of the ages are God's science; all the flow
+of history is his poetry. His sculpture is not in marble, but in living
+and speech-giving forms, which pass away, not to yield place to those
+that come after, but to be perfected in a nobler studio. What he has
+done remains, although it vanishes; and he never either forgets what he
+has once done, or does it even once again. As the thoughts move in the
+mind of a man, so move the worlds of men and women in the mind of God,
+and make no confusion there, for there they had their birth, the
+offspring of his imagination. Man is but a thought of God.
+
+If we now consider the so-called creative faculty in man, we shall find
+that in no _primary_ sense is this faculty creative. Indeed, a man is
+rather _being thought_ than _thinking_, when a new thought arises in his
+mind. He knew it not till he found it there, therefore he could not even
+have sent for it. He did not create it, else how could it be the
+surprise that it was when it arose? He may, indeed, in rare instances
+foresee that something is coming, and make ready the place for its
+birth; but that is the utmost relation of consciousness and will he can
+bear to the dawning idea. Leaving this aside, however, and turning to
+the _embodiment_ or revelation of thought, we shall find that a man no
+more _creates_ the forms by which he would reveal his thoughts, than he
+creates those thoughts themselves.
+
+For what are the forms by means of which a man may reveal his thoughts?
+Are they not those of nature? But although he is created in the closest
+sympathy with these forms, yet even these forms are not born in his
+mind. What springs there is the perception that this or that form is
+already an expression of this or that phase of thought or of feeling.
+For the world around him is an outward figuration of the condition of
+his mind; an inexhaustible storehouse of forms whence he may choose
+exponents--the crystal pitchers that shall protect his thought and not
+need to be broken that the light may break forth. The meanings are in
+those forms already, else they could be no garment of unveiling. God has
+made the world that it should thus serve his creature, developing in the
+service that imagination whose necessity it meets. The man has but to
+light the lamp within the form: his imagination is the light, it is not
+the form. Straightway the shining thought makes the form visible, and
+becomes itself visible through the form. [Footnote: We would not be
+understood to say that the man works consciously even in this.
+Oftentimes, if not always, the vision arises in the mind, thought and
+form together.]
+
+In illustration of what we mean, take a passage from the poet Shelley.
+
+In his poem _Adonais_, written upon the death of Keats, representing
+death as the revealer of secrets, he says:--
+
+ "The one remains; the many change and pass;
+ Heaven's light for ever shines; earth's shadows fly;
+ Life, like a dome of many coloured glass,
+ Stains the white radiance of eternity,
+ Until death tramples it to fragments."
+
+This is a new embodiment, certainly, whence he who gains not, for the
+moment at least, a loftier feeling of death, must be dull either of
+heart or of understanding. But has Shelley created this figure, or only
+put together its parts according to the harmony of truths already
+embodied in each of the parts? For first he takes the inventions of his
+fellow-men, in glass, in colour, in dome: with these he represents life
+as finite though elevated, and as an analysis although a lovely one.
+Next he presents eternity as the dome of the sky above this dome of
+coloured glass--the sky having ever been regarded as the true symbol of
+eternity. This portion of the figure he enriches by the attribution of
+whiteness, or unity and radiance. And last, he shows us Death as the
+destroying revealer, walking aloft through, the upper region, treading
+out this life-bubble of colours, that the man may look beyond it and
+behold the true, the uncoloured, the all-coloured.
+
+But although the human imagination has no choice but to make use of the
+forms already prepared for it, its operation is the same as that of the
+divine inasmuch as it does put thought into form. And if it be to man
+what creation is to God, we must expect to find it operative in every
+sphere of human activity. Such is, indeed, the fact, and that to a far
+greater extent than is commonly supposed.
+
+The sovereignty of the imagination, for instance, over the region of
+poetry will hardly, in the present day at least, be questioned; but not
+every one is prepared to be told that the imagination has had nearly as
+much to do with the making of our language as with "Macbeth" or the
+"Paradise Lost." The half of our language is the work of the
+imagination.
+
+For how shall two agree together what name they shall give to a thought
+or a feeling. How shall the one show the other that which is invisible?
+True, he can unveil the mind's construction in the face--that living
+eternally changeful symbol which God has hung in front of the unseen
+spirit--but that without words reaches only to the expression of present
+feeling. To attempt to employ it alone for the conveyance of the
+intellectual or the historical would constantly mislead; while the
+expression of feeling itself would be misinterpreted, especially with
+regard to cause and object: the dumb show would be worse than dumb.
+
+But let a man become aware of some new movement within him. Loneliness
+comes with it, for he would share his mind with his friend, and he
+cannot; he is shut up in speechlessness. Thus
+
+ He _may_ live a man forbid
+ Weary seven nights nine times nine,
+
+or the first moment of his perplexity may be that of his release. Gazing
+about him in pain, he suddenly beholds the material form of his
+immaterial condition. There stands his thought! God thought it before
+him, and put its picture there ready for him when he wanted it. Or, to
+express the thing more prosaically, the man cannot look around him long
+without perceiving some form, aspect, or movement of nature, some
+relation between its forms, or between such and himself which resembles
+the state or motion within him. This he seizes as the symbol, as the
+garment or body of his invisible thought, presents it to his friend, and
+his friend understands him. Every word so employed with a new meaning is
+henceforth, in its new character, born of the spirit and not of the
+flesh, born of the imagination and not of the understanding, and is
+henceforth submitted to new laws of growth and modification.
+
+"Thinkest thou," says Carlyle in "Past and Present," "there were no
+poets till Dan Chaucer? No heart burning with a thought which it could
+not hold, and had no word for; and needed to shape and coin a word
+for--what thou callest a metaphor, trope, or the like? For every word we
+have there was such a man and poet. The coldest word was once a glowing
+new metaphor and bold questionable originality. Thy very ATTENTION, does
+it not mean an _attentio_, a STRETCHING-TO? Fancy that act of the mind,
+which all were conscious of, which none had yet named,--when this new
+poet first felt bound and driven to name it. His questionable
+originality and new glowing metaphor was found adoptable, intelligible,
+and remains our name for it to this day."
+
+All words, then, belonging to the inner world of the mind, are of the
+imagination, are originally poetic words. The better, however, any such
+word is fitted for the needs of humanity, the sooner it loses its poetic
+aspect by commonness of use. It ceases to be heard as a symbol, and
+appears only as a sign. Thus thousands of words which were originally
+poetic words owing their existence to the imagination, lose their
+vitality, and harden into mummies of prose. Not merely in literature
+does poetry come first, and prose afterwards, but poetry is the source
+of all the language that belongs to the inner world, whether it be of
+passion or of metaphysics, of psychology or of aspiration. No poetry
+comes by the elevation of prose; but the half of prose comes by the
+"massing into the common clay" of thousands of winged words, whence,
+like the lovely shells of by-gone ages, one is occasionally disinterred
+by some lover of speech, and held up to the light to show the play of
+colour in its manifold laminations.
+
+For the world is--allow us the homely figure--the human being turned
+inside out. All that moves in the mind is symbolized in Nature. Or, to
+use another more philosophical, and certainly not less poetic figure,
+the world is a sensuous analysis of humanity, and hence an inexhaustible
+wardrobe for the clothing of human thought. Take any word expressive of
+emotion--take the word _emotion_ itself--and you will find that its
+primary meaning is of the outer world. In the swaying of the woods, in
+the unrest of the "wavy plain," the imagination saw the picture of a
+well-known condition of the human mind; and hence the word _emotion_.
+[Footnote: This passage contains only a repetition of what is far better
+said in the preceding extract from Carlyle, but it was written before we
+had read (if reviewers may be allowed to confess such ignorance) the
+book from which that extract is taken.]
+
+But while the imagination of man has thus the divine function of putting
+thought into form, it has a duty altogether human, which is paramount to
+that function--the duty, namely, which springs from his immediate
+relation to the Father, that of following and finding out the divine
+imagination in whose image it was made. To do this, the man must watch
+its signs, its manifestations. He must contemplate what the Hebrew poets
+call the works of His hands.
+
+"But to follow those is the province of the intellect, not of the
+imagination."--We will leave out of the question at present that poetic
+interpretation of the works of Nature with which the intellect has
+almost nothing, and the imagination almost everything, to do. It is
+unnecessary to insist that the higher being of a flower even is
+dependent for its reception upon the human imagination; that science may
+pull the snowdrop to shreds, but cannot find out the idea of suffering
+hope and pale confident submission, for the sake of which that darling
+of the spring looks out of heaven, namely, God's heart, upon us his
+wiser and more sinful children; for if there be any truth in this region
+of things acknowledged at all, it will be at the same time acknowledged
+that that region belongs to the imagination. We confine ourselves to
+that questioning of the works of God which is called the province of
+science.
+
+"Shall, then, the human intellect," we ask, "come into readier contact
+with the divine imagination than that human imagination?" The work of
+the Higher must be discovered by the search of the Lower in degree which
+is yet similar in kind. Let us not be supposed to exclude the intellect
+from a share in every highest office. Man is not divided when the
+manifestations of his life are distinguished. The intellect "is all in
+every part." There were no imagination without intellect, however much
+it may appear that intellect can exist without imagination. What we mean
+to insist upon is, that in finding out the works of God, the Intellect
+must labour, workman-like, under the direction of the architect,
+Imagination. Herein, too, we proceed in the hope to show how much more
+than is commonly supposed the imagination has to do with human
+endeavour; how large a share it has in the work that is done under the
+sun.
+
+"But how can the imagination have anything to do with science? That
+region, at least, is governed by fixed laws."
+
+"True," we answer. "But how much do we know of these laws? How much of
+science already belongs to the region of the ascertained--in other
+words, has been conquered by the intellect? We will not now dispute,
+your vindication of the _ascertained_ from the intrusion of the
+imagination; but we do claim for it all the undiscovered, all the
+unexplored." "Ah, well! There it can do little harm. There let it run
+riot if you will." "No," we reply. "Licence is not what we claim when we
+assert the duty of the imagination to be that of following and finding
+out the work that God maketh. Her part is to understand God ere she
+attempts to utter man. Where is the room for being fanciful or riotous
+here? It is only the ill-bred, that is, the uncultivated imagination
+that will amuse itself where it ought to worship and work."
+
+"But the facts of Nature are to be discovered only by observation and
+experiment." True. But how does the man of science come to think of his
+experiments? Does observation reach to the non-present, the possible,
+the yet unconceived? Even if it showed you the experiments which _ought_
+to be made, will observation reveal to you the experiments which _might_
+be made? And who can tell of which kind is the one that carries in its
+bosom the secret of the law you seek? We yield you your facts. The laws
+we claim for the prophetic imagination. "He hath set the world _in_
+man's heart," not in his understanding. And the heart must open the door
+to the understanding. It is the far-seeing imagination which beholds
+what might be a form of things, and says to the intellect: "Try whether
+that may not be the form of these things;" which beholds or invents _a_
+harmonious relation of parts and operations, and sends the intellect to
+find out whether that be not _the_ harmonious relation of them--that is,
+the law of the phenomenon it contemplates. Nay, the poetic relations
+themselves in the phenomenon may suggest to the imagination the law that
+rules its scientific life. Yea, more than this: we dare to claim for the
+true, childlike, humble imagination, such an inward oneness with the
+laws of the universe that it possesses in itself an insight into the
+very nature of things.
+
+Lord Bacon tells us that a prudent question is the half of knowledge.
+Whence comes this prudent question? we repeat. And we answer, From the
+imagination. It is the imagination that suggests in what direction to
+make the new inquiry--which, should it cast no immediate light on the
+answer sought, can yet hardly fail to be a step towards final discovery.
+Every experiment has its origin in hypothesis; without the scaffolding
+of hypothesis, the house of science could never arise. And the
+construction of any hypothesis whatever is the work of the imagination.
+The man who cannot invent will never discover. The imagination often
+gets a glimpse of the law itself long before it is or can be
+_ascertained_ to be a law. [Footnote: This paper was already written
+when, happening to mention the present subject to a mathematical friend,
+a lecturer at one of the universities, he gave us a corroborative
+instance. He had lately _guessed_ that a certain algebraic process could
+be shortened exceedingly if the method which his imagination suggested
+should prove to be a true one--that is, an algebraic law. He put it to
+the test of experiment--committed the verification, that is, into the
+hands of his intellect--and found the method true. It has since been
+accepted by the Royal Society.
+
+Noteworthy illustration we have lately found in the record of the
+experiences of an Edinburgh detective, an Irishman of the name of
+McLevy. That the service of the imagination in the solution of the
+problems peculiar to his calling is well known to him, we could adduce
+many proofs. He recognizes its function in the construction of the
+theory which shall unite this and that hint into an organic whole, and
+he expressly sets forth the need of a theory before facts can be
+serviceable:--
+
+"I would wait for my 'idea'.... I never did any good without mine....
+Chance never smiled on me unless I poked her some way; so that my
+'notion,' after all, has been in the getting of it my own work only
+perfected by a higher hand."
+
+"On leaving the shop I went direct to Prince's Street,--of course with
+an idea in my mind; and somehow I have always been contented with one
+idea when I could not get another; and the advantage of sticking by one
+is, that the other don't jostle it and turn you about in a circle when
+you should go in a straight line." (Footnote: Since quoting the above I
+have learned that the book referred to is unworthy of confidence. But
+let it stand as illustration where it cannot be proof.)]
+
+The region belonging to the pure intellect is straitened: the
+imagination labours to extend its territories, to give it room. She
+sweeps across the borders, searching out new lands into which she may
+guide her plodding brother. The imagination is the light which redeems
+from the darkness for the eyes of the understanding. Novalis says, "The
+imagination is the stuff of the intellect"--affords, that is, the
+material upon which the intellect works. And Bacon, in his "Advancement
+of Learning," fully recognizes this its office, corresponding to the
+foresight of God in this, that it beholds afar off. And he says:
+"Imagination is much akin to miracle-working faith." [Footnote: We are
+sorry we cannot verify this quotation, for which we are indebted to Mr.
+Oldbuck the Antiquary, in the novel of that ilk. There is, however,
+little room for doubt that it is sufficiently correct.]
+
+In the scientific region of her duty of which we speak, the Imagination
+cannot have her perfect work; this belongs to another and higher sphere
+than that of intellectual truth--that, namely, of full-globed humanity,
+operating in which she gives birth to poetry--truth in beauty. But her
+function in the complete sphere of our nature, will, at the same time,
+influence her more limited operation in the sections that belong to
+science. Coleridge says that no one but a poet will make any further
+_great_ discoveries in mathematics; and Bacon says that "wonder," that
+faculty of the mind especially attendant on the child-like imagination,
+"is the seed of knowledge." The influence of the poetic upon the
+scientific imagination is, for instance, especially present in the
+construction of an invisible whole from the hints afforded by a visible
+part; where the needs of the part, its uselessness, its broken
+relations, are the only guides to a multiplex harmony, completeness, and
+end, which is the whole. From a little bone, worn with ages of death,
+older than the man can think, his scientific imagination dashed with the
+poetic, calls up the form, size, habits, periods, belonging to an animal
+never beheld by human eyes, even to the mingling contrasts of scales and
+wings, of feathers and hair. Through the combined lenses of science and
+imagination, we look back into ancient times, so dreadful in their
+incompleteness, that it may well have been the task of seraphic faith,
+as well as of cherubic imagination, to behold in the wallowing
+monstrosities of the terror-teeming earth, the prospective, quiet,
+age-long labour of God preparing the world with all its humble, graceful
+service for his unborn Man. The imagination of the poet, on the other
+hand, dashed with the imagination of the man of science, revealed to
+Goethe the prophecy of the flower in the leaf. No other than an artistic
+imagination, however, fulfilled of science, could have attained to the
+discovery of the fact that the leaf is the imperfect flower.
+
+When we turn to history, however, we find probably the greatest
+operative sphere of the intellectuo-constructive imagination. To
+discover its laws; the cycles in which events return, with the reasons
+of their return, recognizing them notwithstanding metamorphosis; to
+perceive the vital motions of this spiritual body of mankind; to learn
+from its facts the rule of God; to construct from a succession of broken
+indications a whole accordant with human nature; to approach a scheme of
+the forces at work, the passions overwhelming or upheaving, the
+aspirations securely upraising, the selfishnesses debasing and
+crumbling, with the vital interworking of the whole; to illuminate all
+from the analogy with individual life, and from the predominant phases
+of individual character which are taken as the mind of the people--this
+is the province of the imagination. Without her influence no process of
+recording events can develop into a history. As truly might that be
+called the description of a volcano which occupied itself with a
+delineation of the shapes assumed by the smoke expelled from the
+mountain's burning bosom. What history becomes under the full sway of
+the imagination may be seen in the "History of the French Revolution,"
+by Thomas Carlyle, at once a true picture, a philosophical revelation, a
+noble poem.
+
+There is a wonderful passage about _Time_ in Shakespere's "Rape of
+Lucrece," which shows how he understood history. The passage is really
+about history, and not about time; for time itself does nothing--not
+even "blot old books and alter their contents." It is the forces at work
+in time that produce all the changes; and they are history. We quote for
+the sake of one line chiefly, but the whole stanza is pertinent.
+
+ "Time's glory is to calm contending kings,
+ To unmask falsehood, and bring truth to light,
+ To stamp the seal of time in aged things,
+ To wake the morn and sentinel the night,
+ _To wrong the wronger till he render right;_
+ To ruinate proud buildings with thy hours,
+ And smear with dust their glittering golden towers."
+
+_To wrong the wronger till he render right._ Here is a historical cycle
+worthy of the imagination of Shakespere, yea, worthy of the creative
+imagination of our God--the God who made the Shakespere with the
+imagination, as well as evolved the history from the laws which that
+imagination followed and found out.
+
+In full instance we would refer our readers to Shakespere's historical
+plays; and, as a side-illustration, to the fact that he repeatedly
+represents his greatest characters, when at the point of death, as
+relieving their overcharged minds by prophecy. Such prophecy is the
+result of the light of imagination, cleared of all distorting dimness by
+the vanishing of earthly hopes and desires, cast upon the facts of
+experience. Such prophecy is the perfect working of the historical
+imagination.
+
+In the interpretation of individual life, the same principles hold; and
+nowhere can the imagination be more healthily and rewardingly occupied
+than in endeavouring to construct the life of an individual out of the
+fragments which are all that can reach us of the history of even the
+noblest of our race. How this will apply to the reading of the gospel
+story we leave to the earnest thought of our readers.
+
+We now pass to one more sphere in which the student imagination works in
+glad freedom--the sphere which is understood to belong more immediately
+to the poet.
+
+We have already said that the forms of Nature (by which word _forms_ we
+mean any of those conditions of Nature which affect the senses of man)
+are so many approximate representations of the mental conditions of
+humanity. The outward, commonly called the material, is _informed_ by,
+or has form in virtue of, the inward or immaterial--in a word, the
+thought. The forms of Nature are the representations of human thought in
+virtue of their being the embodiment of God's thought. As such,
+therefore, they can be read and used to any depth, shallow or profound.
+Men of all ages and all developments have discovered in them the means
+of expression; and the men of ages to come, before us in every path
+along which we are now striving, must likewise find such means in those
+forms, unfolding with their unfolding necessities. The man, then, who,
+in harmony with nature, attempts the discovery of more of her meanings,
+is just searching out the things of God. The deepest of these are far
+too simple for us to understand as yet. But let our imagination
+interpretive reveal to us one severed significance of one of her parts,
+and such is the harmony of the whole, that all the realm of Nature is
+open to us henceforth--not without labour--and in time. Upon the man who
+can understand the human meaning of the snowdrop, of the primrose, or of
+the daisy, the life of the earth blossoming into the cosmical flower of
+a perfect moment will one day seize, possessing him with its prophetic
+hope, arousing his conscience with the vision of the "rest that
+remaineth," and stirring up the aspiration to enter into that rest:
+
+ "Thine is the tranquil hour, purpureal Eve!
+ But long as godlike wish, or hope divine,
+ Informs my spirit, ne'er can I believe
+ That this magnificence is wholly thine!
+ --From worlds not quickened by the sun
+ A portion of the gift is won;
+ An intermingling of Heaven's pomp is spread
+ On ground which British shepherds tread!"
+
+Even the careless curve of a frozen cloud across the blue will calm some
+troubled thoughts, may slay some selfish thoughts. And what shall be
+said of such gorgeous shows as the scarlet poppies in the green corn,
+the likest we have to those lilies of the field which spoke to the
+Saviour himself of the care of God, and rejoiced His eyes with the glory
+of their God-devised array? From such visions as these the imagination
+reaps the best fruits of the earth, for the sake of which all the
+science involved in its construction, is the inferior, yet willing and
+beautiful support.
+
+From what we have now advanced, will it not then appear that, on the
+whole, the name given by our Norman ancestors is more fitting for the
+man who moves in these regions than the name given by the Greeks? Is not
+the _Poet_, the _Maker_, a less suitable name for him than the
+_Trouvre_, the _Finder_? At least, must not the faculty that finds
+precede the faculty that utters?
+
+But is there nothing to be said of the function of the imagination from
+the Greek side of the question? Does it possess no creative faculty? Has
+it no originating power?
+
+Certainly it would be a poor description of the Imagination which
+omitted the one element especially present to the mind that invented the
+word _Poet_.--It can present us with new thought-forms--new, that is, as
+revelations of thought. It has created none of the material that goes to
+make these forms. Nor does it work upon raw material. But it takes forms
+already existing, and gathers them about a thought so much higher than
+they, that it can group and subordinate and harmonize them into a whole
+which shall represent, unveil that thought. [Footnote: Just so Spenser
+describes the process of the embodiment of a human soul in his Platonic
+"Hymn in Honour of Beauty."
+
+ "She frames her house in which she will be placed
+ Fit for herself....
+ And the gross matter by a sovereign might
+ Tempers so trim....
+ For of the soul the body form doth take;
+ For soul is form, and doth the body make."]
+
+The nature of this process we will illustrate by an examination of the
+well-known _Bugle Song_ in Tennyson's "Princess."
+
+First of all, there is the new music of the song, which does not even
+remind one of the music of any other. The rhythm, rhyme, melody, harmony
+are all an embodiment in sound, as distinguished from word, of what can
+be so embodied--the _feeling_ of the poem, which goes before, and
+prepares the way for the following thought--tunes the heart into a
+receptive harmony. Then comes the new arrangement of thought and figure
+whereby the meaning contained is presented as it never was before. We
+give a sort of paraphrastical synopsis of the poem, which, partly in
+virtue of its disagreeableness, will enable the lovers of the song to
+return to it with an increase of pleasure.
+
+The glory of midsummer mid-day upon mountain, lake, and ruin. Give
+nature a voice for her gladness. Blow, bugle.
+
+Nature answers with dying echoes, sinking in the midst of her splendour
+into a sad silence.
+
+Not so with human nature. The echoes of the word of truth gather volume
+and richness from every soul that re-echoes it to brother and sister
+souls.
+
+With poets the _fashion_ has been to contrast the stability and
+rejuvenescence of nature with the evanescence and unreturning decay of
+humanity:--
+
+ "Yet soon reviving plants and flowers, anew shall deck the plain;
+ The woods shall hear the voice of Spring, and flourish green again.
+ But man forsakes this earthly scene, ah! never to return:
+ Shall any following Spring revive the ashes of the urn?"
+
+But our poet vindicates the eternal in humanity:--
+
+ "O Love, they die in yon rich sky,
+ They faint on hill or field or river:
+ Our echoes roll from soul to soul,
+ And grow for ever and for ever.
+ Blow, bugle, blow, set the wild echoes flying;
+ And answer, echoes, answer, Dying, dying, dying."
+
+Is not this a new form to the thought--a form which makes us feel the
+truth of it afresh? And every new embodiment of a known truth must be a
+new and wider revelation. No man is capable of seeing for himself the
+whole of any truth: he needs it echoed back to him from every soul in
+the universe; and still its centre is hid in the Father of Lights. In so
+far, then, as either form or thought is new, we may grant the use of the
+word Creation, modified according to our previous definitions.
+
+This operation of the imagination in choosing, gathering, and vitally
+combining the material of a new revelation, may be well illustrated from
+a certain employment of the poetic faculty in which our greatest poets
+have delighted. Perceiving truth half hidden and half revealed in the
+slow speech and stammering tongue of men who have gone before them, they
+have taken up the unfinished form and completed it; they have, as it
+were, rescued the soul of meaning from its prison of uninformed crudity,
+where it sat like the Prince in the "Arabian Nights," half man, half
+marble; they have set it free in its own form, in a shape, namely, which
+it could "through every part impress." Shakespere's keen eye suggested
+many such a rescue from the tomb--of a tale drearily told--a tale which
+no one now would read save for the glorified form in which he has
+re-embodied its true contents. And from Tennyson we can produce one
+specimen small enough for our use, which, a mere chip from the great
+marble re-embodying the old legend of Arthur's death, may, like the hand
+of Achilles holding his spear in the crowded picture,
+
+ "Stand for the whole to be imagined."
+
+In the "History of Prince Arthur," when Sir Bedivere returns after
+hiding Excalibur the first time, the king asks him what he has seen, and
+he answers--
+
+ "Sir, I saw nothing but waves and wind."
+
+The second time, to the same question, he answers--
+
+ "Sir, I saw nothing but the water[1] wap, and the waves wan."
+
+[Footnote 1: The word _wap_ is plain enough; the word _wan_ we cannot
+satisfy ourselves about. Had it been used with regard to the water, it
+might have been worth remarking that _wan_, meaning dark, gloomy,
+turbid, is a common adjective to a river in the old Scotch ballad. And
+it might be an adjective here; but that is not likely, seeing it is
+conjoined with the verb _wap_. The Anglo-Saxon _wanian_, to decrease,
+might be the root-word, perhaps, (in the sense of _to ebb_,) if this
+water had been the sea and not a lake. But possibly the meaning is, "I
+heard the water _whoop_ or _wail aloud_" (from _Wpan_); and "the waves
+_whine_ or _bewail_" (from _Wnian_ to lament). But even then the two
+verbs would seem to predicate of transposed subjects.]
+
+This answer Tennyson has expanded into the well-known lines--
+
+ "I heard the ripple washing in the reeds,
+ And the wild water lapping on the crag;"
+
+slightly varied, for the other occasion, into--
+
+ "I heard the water lapping on the crag,
+ And the long ripple washing in the reeds."
+
+But, as to this matter of _creation_, is there, after all, I ask yet,
+any genuine sense in which a man may be said to create his own
+thought-forms? Allowing that a new combination of forms already existing
+might be called creation, is the man, after all, the author of this new
+combination? Did he, with his will and his knowledge, proceed wittingly,
+consciously, to construct a form which should embody his thought? Or did
+this form arise within him without will or effort of his--vivid if not
+clear--certain if not outlined? Ruskin (and better authority we do not
+know) will assert the latter, and we think he is right: though perhaps
+he would insist more upon the absolute perfection of the vision than we
+are quite prepared to do. Such embodiments are not the result of the
+man's intention, or of the operation of his conscious nature. His
+feeling is that they are given to him; that from the vast unknown, where
+time and space are not, they suddenly appear in luminous writing upon
+the wall of his consciousness. Can it be correct, then, to say that he
+created them? Nothing less so, as it seems to us. But can we not say
+that they are the creation of the unconscious portion of his nature?
+Yes, provided we can understand that that which is the individual, the
+man, can know, and not know that it knows, can create and yet be
+ignorant that virtue has gone out of it. From that unknown region we
+grant they come, but not by its own blind working. Nor, even were it so,
+could any amount of such production, where no will was concerned, be
+dignified with the name of creation. But God sits in that chamber of our
+being in which the candle of our consciousness goes out in darkness, and
+sends forth from thence wonderful gifts into the light of that
+understanding which is His candle. Our hope lies in no most perfect
+mechanism even of the spirit, but in the wisdom wherein we live and move
+and have our being. Thence we hope for endless forms of beauty informed
+of truth. If the dark portion of our own being were the origin of our
+imaginations, we might well fear the apparition of such monsters as
+would be generated in the sickness of a decay which could never
+feel--only declare--a slow return towards primeval chaos. But the Maker
+is our Light.
+
+One word more, ere we turn to consider the culture of this noblest
+faculty, which we might well call the creative, did we not see a
+something in God for which we would humbly keep our mighty word:--the
+fact that there is always more in a work of art--which is the highest
+human result of the embodying imagination--than the producer himself
+perceived while he produced it, seems to us a strong reason for
+attributing to it a larger origin than the man alone--for saying at the
+last, that the inspiration of the Almighty shaped its ends.
+
+We return now to the class which, from the first, we supposed hostile to
+the imagination and its functions generally. Those belonging to it will
+now say: "It was to no imagination such as you have been setting forth
+that we were opposed, but to those wild fancies and vague reveries in
+which young people indulge, to the damage and loss of the real in the
+world around them."
+
+"And," we insist, "you would rectify the matter by smothering the young
+monster at once--because he has wings, and, young to their use, flutters
+them about in a way discomposing to your nerves, and destructive to
+those notions of propriety of which this creature--you stop not to
+inquire whether angel or pterodactyle--has not yet learned even the
+existence. Or, if it is only the creature's vagaries of which you
+disapprove, why speak of them as _the_ exercise of the imagination? As
+well speak of religion as the mother of cruelty because religion has
+given more occasion of cruelty, as of all dishonesty and devilry, than
+any other object of human interest. Are we not to worship, because our
+forefathers burned and stabbed for religion? It is more religion we
+want. It is more imagination we need. Be assured that these are but the
+first vital motions of that whose results, at least in the region of
+science, you are more than willing to accept." That evil may spring from
+the imagination, as from everything except the perfect love of God,
+cannot be denied. But infinitely worse evils would be the result of its
+absence. Selfishness, avarice, sensuality, cruelty, would flourish
+tenfold; and the power of Satan would be well established ere some
+children had begun to choose. Those who would quell the apparently
+lawless tossing of the spirit, called the youthful imagination, would
+suppress all that is to grow out of it. They fear the enthusiasm they
+never felt; and instead of cherishing this divine thing, instead of
+giving it room and air for healthful growth, they would crush
+and confine it--with but one result of their victorious
+endeavours--imposthume, fever, and corruption. And the disastrous
+consequences would soon appear in the intellect likewise which they
+worship. Kill that whence spring the crude fancies and wild day-dreams
+of the young, and you will never lead them beyond dull facts--dull
+because their relations to each other, and the one life that works in
+them all, must remain undiscovered. Whoever would have his children
+avoid this arid region will do well to allow no teacher to approach
+them--not even of mathematics--who has no imagination.
+
+"But although good results may appear in a few from the indulgence of
+the imagination, how will it be with the many?"
+
+We answer that the antidote to indulgence is development, not restraint,
+and that such is the duty of the wise servant of Him who made the
+imagination.
+
+"But will most girls, for instance, rise to those useful uses of the
+imagination? Are they not more likely to exercise it in building castles
+in the air to the neglect of houses on the earth? And as the world
+affords such poor scope for the ideal, will not this habit breed vain
+desires and vain regrets? Is it not better, therefore, to keep to that
+which is known, and leave the rest?"
+
+"Is the world so poor?" we ask in return. The less reason, then, to be
+satisfied with it; the more reason to rise above it, into the region of
+the true, of the eternal, of things as God thinks them. This outward
+world is but a passing vision of the persistent true. We shall not live
+in it always. We are dwellers in a divine universe where no desires are
+in vain, if only they be large enough. Not even in this world do all
+disappointments breed only vain regrets. [Footnote:
+ "We will grieve not, rather find
+ Strength in what remains behind;
+ In the primal sympathy
+ Which, having been, must ever be;
+ In the soothing thoughts that spring
+ Out of human suffering;
+ In the faith that looks through death,
+ In years that bring the philosophic mind."]
+
+And as to keeping to that which is known and leaving the rest--how many
+affairs of this world are so well-defined, so capable of being clearly
+understood, as not to leave large spaces of uncertainty, whose very
+correlate faculty is the imagination? Indeed it must, in most things,
+work after some fashion, filling the gaps after some possible plan,
+before action can even begin. In very truth, a wise imagination, which
+is the presence of the spirit of God, is the best guide that man or
+woman can have; for it is not the things we see the most clearly that
+influence us the most powerfully; undefined, yet vivid visions of
+something beyond, something which eye has not seen nor ear heard, have
+far more influence than any logical sequences whereby the same things
+may be demonstrated to the intellect. It is the nature of the thing, not
+the clearness of its outline, that determines its operation. We live by
+faith, and not by sight. Put the question to our mathematicians--only be
+sure the question reaches them--whether they would part with the
+well-defined perfection of their diagrams, or the dim, strange, possibly
+half-obliterated characters woven in the web of their being; their
+science, in short, or their poetry; their certainties, or their hopes;
+their consciousness of knowledge, or their vague sense of that which
+cannot be known absolutely: will they hold by their craft or by their
+inspirations, by their intellects or their imaginations? If they say the
+former in each alternative, I shall yet doubt whether the objects of the
+choice are actually before them, and with equal presentation.
+
+What can be known must be known severely; but is there, therefore, no
+faculty for those infinite lands of uncertainty lying all about the
+sphere hollowed out of the dark by the glimmering lamp of our knowledge?
+Are they not the natural property of the imagination? there, _for_ it,
+that it may have room to grow? there, that the man may learn to imagine
+greatly like God who made him, himself discovering their mysteries, in
+virtue of his following and worshipping imagination?
+
+All that has been said, then, tends to enforce the culture of the
+imagination. But the strongest argument of all remains behind. For, if
+the whole power of pedantry should rise against her, the imagination
+will yet work; and if not for good, then for evil; if not for truth,
+then for falsehood; if not for life, then for death; the evil
+alternative becoming the more likely from the unnatural treatment she
+has experienced from those who ought to have fostered her. The power
+that might have gone forth in conceiving the noblest forms of action, in
+realizing the lives of the true-hearted, the self-forgetting, will go
+forth in building airy castles of vain ambition, of boundless riches, of
+unearned admiration. The imagination that might be devising how to make
+home blessed or to help the poor neighbour, will be absorbed in the
+invention of the new dress, or worse, in devising the means of procuring
+it. For, if she be not occupied with the beautiful, she will be occupied
+by the pleasant; that which goes not out to worship, will remain at home
+to be sensual. Cultivate the mere intellect as you may, it will never
+reduce the passions: the imagination, seeking the ideal in everything,
+will elevate them to their true and noble service. Seek not that your
+sons and your daughters should not see visions, should not dream dreams;
+seek that they should see true visions, that they should dream noble
+dreams. Such out-going of the imagination is one with aspiration, and
+will do more to elevate above what is low and vile than all possible
+inculcations of morality. Nor can religion herself ever rise up into her
+own calm home, her crystal shrine, when one of her wings, one of the
+twain with which she flies, is thus broken or paralyzed.
+
+ "The universe is infinitely wide,
+ And conquering Reason, if self-glorified,
+ Can nowhere move uncrossed by some new wall
+ Or gulf of mystery, which thou alone,
+ Imaginative Faith! canst overleap,
+ In progress towards the fount of love."
+
+The danger that lies in the repression of the imagination may be well
+illustrated from the play of "Macbeth." The imagination of the hero (in
+him a powerful faculty), representing how the deed would appear to
+others, and so representing its true nature to himself, was his great
+impediment on the path to crime. Nor would he have succeeded in reaching
+it, had he not gone to his wife for help--sought refuge from his
+troublesome imagination with her. She, possessing far less of the
+faculty, and having dealt more destructively with what she had, took his
+hand, and led him to the deed. From her imagination, again, she for her
+part takes refuge in unbelief and denial, declaring to herself and her
+husband that there is no reality in its representations; that there is
+no reality in anything beyond the present effect it produces on the mind
+upon which it operates; that intellect and courage are equal to any,
+even an evil emergency; and that no harm will come to those who can rule
+themselves according to their own will. Still, however, finding her
+imagination, and yet more that of her husband, troublesome, she effects
+a marvellous combination of materialism and idealism, and asserts that
+things are not, cannot be, and shall not be more or other than people
+choose to think them. She says,--
+
+ "These deeds must not be thought
+ After these ways; so, it will make us mad."
+
+ "The sleeping and the dead
+ Are but as pictures."
+
+But she had over-estimated the power of her will, and under-estimated
+that of her imagination. Her will was the one thing in her that was bad,
+without root or support in the universe, while her imagination was the
+voice of God himself out of her own unknown being. The choice of no man
+or woman can long determine how or what he or she shall think of things.
+Lady Macbeth's imagination would not be repressed beyond its appointed
+period--a time determined by laws of her being over which she had no
+control. It arose, at length, as from the dead, overshadowing her with
+all the blackness of her crime. The woman who drank strong drink that
+she might murder, dared not sleep without a light by her bed; rose and
+walked in the night, a sleepless spirit in a sleeping body, rubbing the
+spotted hand of her dreams, which, often as water had cleared it of the
+deed, yet smelt so in her sleeping nostrils, that all the perfumes of
+Arabia would not sweeten it. Thus her long down-trodden imagination rose
+and took vengeance, even through those senses which she had thought to
+subordinate to her wicked will.
+
+But all this is of the imagination itself, and fitter, therefore, for
+illustration than for argument. Let us come to facts.--Dr. Pritchard,
+lately executed for murder, had no lack of that invention, which is, as
+it were, the intellect of the imagination--its lowest form. One of the
+clergymen who, at his own request, attended the prisoner, went through
+indescribable horrors in the vain endeavour to induce the man simply to
+cease from lying: one invention after another followed the most earnest
+asseverations of truth. The effect produced upon us by this clergyman's
+report of his experience was a moral dismay, such as we had never felt
+with regard to human being, and drew from us the exclamation, "The man
+could have had no imagination." The reply was, "None whatever." Never
+seeking true or high things, caring only for appearances, and,
+therefore, for inventions, he had left his imagination all undeveloped,
+and when it represented his own inner condition to him, had repressed it
+until it was nearly destroyed, and what remained of it was set on fire
+of hell. [Footnote: One of the best weekly papers in London, evidently
+as much in ignorance of the man as of the facts of the case, spoke of
+Dr. MacLeod as having been engaged in "white-washing the murderer for
+heaven." So far is this from a true representation, that Dr. MacLeod
+actually refused to pray with him, telling him that if there was a hell
+to go to, he must go to it.]
+
+Man is "the roof and crown of things." He is the world, and more.
+Therefore the chief scope of his imagination, next to God who made him,
+will he the world in relation to his own life therein. Will he do better
+or worse in it if this imagination, touched to fine issues and having
+free scope, present him with noble pictures of relationship and duty, of
+possible elevation of character and attainable justice of behaviour, of
+friendship and of love; and, above all, of all these in that life to
+understand which as a whole, must ever be the loftiest aspiration of
+this noblest power of humanity? Will a woman lead a more or a less
+troubled life that the sights and sounds of nature break through the
+crust of gathering anxiety, and remind her of the peace of the lilies
+and the well-being of the birds of the air? Or will life be less
+interesting to her, that the lives of her neighbours, instead of passing
+like shadows upon a wall, assume a consistent wholeness, forming
+themselves into stories and phases of life? Will she not hereby love
+more and talk less? Or will she be more unlikely to make a good
+match----? But here we arrest ourselves in bewilderment over the word
+_good_, and seek to re-arrange our thoughts. If what mothers mean by a
+_good_ match, is the alliance of a man of position and means--or let
+them throw intellect, manners, and personal advantages into the same
+scale--if this be all, then we grant the daughter of cultivated
+imagination may not be manageable, will probably be obstinate. "We hope
+she will be obstinate enough. [Footnote: Let women who feel the wrongs
+of their kind teach women to be high-minded in their relation to men,
+and they will do more for the social elevation of women, and the
+establishment of their rights, whatever those rights may be, than by any
+amount of intellectual development or assertion of equality. Nor, if
+they are other than mere partisans, will they refuse the attempt because
+in its success men will, after all, be equal, if not greater gainers, if
+only thereby they should be "feelingly persuaded" what they are.] But
+will the girl be less likely to marry a _gentleman_, in the grand old
+meaning of the sixteenth century? when it was no irreverence to call our
+Lord
+
+ "The first true gentleman that ever breathed;"
+
+or in that of the fourteenth?--when Chaucer teaching "whom is worthy to
+be called gentill," writes thus:--
+
+ "The first stocke was full of rightwisnes,
+ Trewe of his worde, sober, pitous and free,
+ Clene of his goste, and loved besinesse,
+ Against the vice of slouth in honeste;
+ And but his heire love vertue as did he,
+ He is not gentill though he rich seme,
+ All weare he miter, crowne, or diademe."
+
+Will she be less likely to marry one who honours women, and for their
+sakes, as well as his own, honours himself? Or to speak from what many
+would regard as the mother's side of the question--will the girl be more
+likely, because of such a culture of her imagination, to refuse the
+wise, true-hearted, generous rich man, and fall in love with the
+talking, verse-making fool, _because_ he is poor, as if that were a
+virtue for which he had striven? The highest imagination and the
+lowliest common sense are always on one side.
+
+For the end of imagination is _harmony_. A right imagination, being the
+reflex of the creation, will fall in with the divine order of things as
+the highest form of its own operation; "will tune its instrument here at
+the door" to the divine harmonies within; will be content alone with
+growth towards the divine idea, which includes all that is beautiful in
+the imperfect imaginations of men; will know that every deviation from
+that growth is downward; and will therefore send the man forth from its
+loftiest representations to do the commonest duty of the most wearisome
+calling in a hearty and hopeful spirit. This is the work of the right
+imagination; and towards this work every imagination, in proportion to
+the rightness that is in it, will tend. The reveries even of the wise
+man will make him stronger for his work; his dreaming as well as his
+thinking will render him sorry for past failure, and hopeful of future
+success.
+
+To come now to the culture of the imagination. Its development is one of
+the main ends of the divine education of life with all its efforts and
+experiences. Therefore the first and essential means for its culture
+must be an ordering of our life towards harmony with its ideal in the
+mind of God. As he that is willing to do the will of the Father, shall
+know of the doctrine, so, we doubt not, he that will do the will of THE
+POET, shall behold the Beautiful. For all is God's; and the man who is
+growing into harmony with His will, is growing into harmony with
+himself; all the hidden glories of his being are coming out into the
+light of humble consciousness; so that at the last he shall be a pure
+microcosm, faithfully reflecting, after his manner, the mighty
+macrocosm. We believe, therefore, that nothing will do so much for the
+intellect or the imagination as _being good_--we do not mean after any
+formula or any creed, but simply after the faith of Him who did the will
+of his Father in heaven.
+
+But if we speak of direct means for the culture of the imagination, the
+whole is comprised in two words--food and exercise. If you want strong
+arms, take animal food, and row. Feed your imagination with food
+convenient for it, and exercise it, not in the contortions of the
+acrobat, but in the movements of the gymnast. And first for the food.
+
+Goethe has told us that the way to develop the aesthetic faculty is to
+have constantly before our eyes, that is, in the room we most frequent,
+some work of the best attainable art. This will teach us to refuse the
+evil and choose the good. It will plant itself in our minds and become
+our counsellor. Involuntarily, unconsciously, we shall compare with its
+perfection everything that comes before us for judgment. Now, although
+no better advice could be given, it involves one danger, that of
+narrowness. And not easily, in dread of this danger, would one change
+his tutor, and so procure variety of instruction. But in the culture of
+the imagination, books, although not the only, are the readiest means of
+supplying the food convenient for it, and a hundred books may be had
+where even one work of art of the right sort is unattainable, seeing
+such must be of some size as well as of thorough excellence. And in
+variety alone is safety from the danger of the convenient food becoming
+the inconvenient model.
+
+Let us suppose, then, that one who himself justly estimates the
+imagination is anxious to develop its operation in his child. No doubt
+the best beginning, especially if the child be young, is an acquaintance
+with nature, in which let him be encouraged to observe vital phenomena,
+to put things together, to speculate from what he sees to what he does
+not see. But let earnest care be taken that upon no matter shall he go
+on talking foolishly. Let him be as fanciful as he may, but let him not,
+even in his fancy, sin against fancy's sense; for fancy has its laws as
+certainly as the most ordinary business of life. When he is silly, let
+him know it and be ashamed.
+
+But where this association with nature is but occasionally possible,
+recourse must be had to literature. In books, we not only have store of
+all results of the imagination, but in them, as in her workshop, we may
+behold her embodying before our very eyes, in music of speech, in wonder
+of words, till her work, like a golden dish set with shining jewels, and
+adorned by the hands of the cunning workmen, stands finished before us.
+In this kind, then, the best must be set before the learner, that he may
+eat and not be satisfied; for the finest products of the imagination are
+of the best nourishment for the beginnings of that imagination. And the
+mind of the teacher must mediate between the work of art and the mind of
+the pupil, bringing them together in the vital contact of intelligence;
+directing the observation to the lines of expression, the points of
+force; and helping the mind to repose upon the whole, so that no
+separable beauties shall lead to a neglect of the scope--that is the
+shape or form complete. And ever he must seek to _show_ excellence
+rather than talk about it, giving the thing itself, that it may grow
+into the mind, and not a eulogy of his own upon the thing; isolating the
+point worthy of remark rather than making many remarks upon the point.
+
+Especially must he endeavour to show the spiritual scaffolding or
+skeleton of any work of art; those main ideas upon which the shape is
+constructed, and around which the rest group as ministering
+dependencies.
+
+But he will not, therefore, pass over that intellectual structure
+without which the other could not be manifested. He will not forget the
+builder while he admires the architect. While he dwells with delight on
+the relation of the peculiar arch to the meaning of the whole cathedral,
+he will not think it needless to explain the principles on which it is
+constructed, or even how those principles are carried out in actual
+process. Neither yet will the tracery of its windows, the foliage of its
+crockets, or the fretting of its mouldings be forgotten. Every beauty
+will have its word, only all beauties will be subordinated to the final
+beauty--that is, the unity of the whole.
+
+Thus doing, he shall perform the true office of friendship. He will
+introduce his pupil into the society which he himself prizes most,
+surrounding him with the genial presence of the high-minded, that this
+good company may work its own kind in him who frequents it.
+
+But he will likewise seek to turn him aside from such company, whether
+of books or of men, as might tend to lower his reverence, his choice, or
+his standard. He will, therefore, discourage indiscriminate reading, and
+that worse than waste which consists in skimming the books of a
+circulating library. He knows that if a book is worth reading at all, it
+is worth reading well; and that, if it is not worth reading, it is only
+to the most accomplished reader that it _can_ be worth skimming. He will
+seek to make him discern, not merely between the good and the evil, but
+between the good and the not so good. And this not for the sake of
+sharpening the intellect, still less of generating that
+self-satisfaction which is the closest attendant upon criticism, but for
+the sake of choosing the best path and the best companions upon it. A
+spirit of criticism for the sake of distinguishing only, or, far worse,
+for the sake of having one's opinion ready upon demand, is not merely
+repulsive to all true thinkers, but is, in itself, destructive of all
+thinking. A spirit of criticism for the sake of the truth--a spirit that
+does not start from its chamber at every noise, but waits till its
+presence is desired--cannot, indeed, garnish the house, but can sweep it
+clean. Were there enough of such wise criticism, there would be ten
+times the study of the best writers of the past, and perhaps one-tenth
+of the admiration for the ephemeral productions of the day. A gathered
+mountain of misplaced worships would be swept into the sea by the study
+of one good book; and while what was good in an inferior book would
+still be admired, the relative position of the book would be altered and
+its influence lessened.
+
+Speaking of true learning, Lord Bacon says: "It taketh away vain
+admiration of anything, _which is the root of all weakness_."
+
+The right teacher would have his pupil easy to please, but ill to
+satisfy; ready to enjoy, unready to embrace; keen to discover beauty,
+slow to say, "Here I will dwell."
+
+But he will not confine his instructions to the region of art. He will
+encourage him to read history with an eye eager for the dawning figure
+of the past. He will especially show him that a great part of the Bible
+is only thus to be understood; and that the constant and consistent way
+of God, to be discovered in it, is in fact the key to all history.
+
+In the history of individuals, as well, he will try to show him how to
+put sign and token together, constructing not indeed a whole, but a
+probable suggestion of the whole.
+
+And, again, while showing him the reflex of nature in the poets, he will
+not be satisfied without sending him to Nature herself; urging him in
+country rambles to keep open eyes for the sweet fashionings and
+blendings of her operation around him; and in city walks to watch the
+"human face divine."
+
+Once more: he will point out to him the essential difference between
+reverie and thought; between dreaming and imagining. He will teach him
+not to mistake fancy, either in himself or in others for imagination,
+and to beware of hunting after resemblances that carry with them no
+interpretation.
+
+Such training is not solely fitted for the possible development of
+artistic faculty. Few, in this world, will ever be able to utter what
+they feel. Fewer still will be able to utter it in forms of their own.
+Nor is it necessary that there should be many such. But it is necessary
+that all should feel. It is necessary that all should understand and
+imagine the good; that all should begin, at least, to follow and find
+out God.
+
+"The glory of God is to conceal a thing, but the glory of the king is to
+find it out," says Solomon. "As if," remarks Bacon on the passage,
+"according to the innocent play of children, the Divine Majesty took
+delight to hide his works, to the end to have them found out; and as if
+kings could not obtain a greater honour than to be God's playfellows in
+that game."
+
+One more quotation from the book of Ecclesiastes, setting forth both the
+necessity we are under to imagine, and the comfort that our imagining
+cannot outstrip God's making.
+
+"I have seen the travail which God hath given to the sons of men to be
+exercised in it. He hath made everything beautiful in his time; also he
+hath set the world in their heart, so that no man can find out the work
+that God maketh from the beginning to the end."
+
+Thus to be playfellows with God in this game, the little ones may gather
+their daisies and follow their painted moths; the child of the kingdom
+may pore upon the lilies of the field, and gather faith as the birds of
+the air their food from the leafless hawthorn, ruddy with the stores God
+has laid up for them; and the man of science
+
+ "May sit and rightly spell
+ Of every star that heaven doth shew,
+ And every herb that sips the dew;
+ Till old experience do attain
+ To something like prophetic strain."
+
+
+
+
+A SKETCH OF INDIVIDUAL DEVELOPMENT.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1880.]
+
+"I wish I had thought to watch when God was making me!" said a child
+once to his mother. "Only," he added, "I was not made till I was
+finished, so I couldn't." We cannot recall whence we came, nor tell how
+we began to be. We know approximately how far back we can remember, but
+have no idea how far back we may not have forgotten. Certainly we knew
+once much that we have forgotten now. My own earliest definable memory
+is of a great funeral of one of the Dukes of Gordon, when I was between
+two and three years of age. Surely my first knowledge was not of death.
+I must have known much and many things before, although that seems my
+earliest memory. As in what we foolishly call maturity, so in the dawn
+of consciousness, both before and after it has begun to be buttressed
+with _self_-consciousness, each succeeding consciousness dims--often
+obliterates--that which went before, and with regard to our past as well
+as our future, imagination and faith must step into the place vacated of
+knowledge. We are aware, and we know that we are aware, but when or how
+we began to be aware, is wrapt in a mist that deepens on the one side
+into deepest night, and on the other brightens into the full assurance
+of existence. Looking back we can but dream, looking forward we lose
+ourselves in speculation; but we may both speculate and dream, for all
+speculation is not false, and all dreaming is not of the unreal. What
+may we fairly imagine as to the inward condition of the child before the
+first moment of which his memory affords him testimony?
+
+It is one, I venture to say, of absolute, though, no doubt, largely
+negative faith. Neither memory of pain that is past, nor apprehension of
+pain to come, once arises to give him the smallest concern. In some way,
+doubtless very vague, for his being itself is a border-land of awful
+mystery, he is aware of being surrounded, enfolded with an atmosphere of
+love; the sky over him is his mother's face; the earth that nourishes
+him is his mother's bosom. The source, the sustentation, the defence of
+his being, the endless mediation betwixt his needs and the things that
+supply them, are all one. There is no type so near the highest idea of
+relation to a God, as that of the child to his mother. Her face is God,
+her bosom Nature, her arms are Providence--all love--one love--to him an
+undivided bliss.
+
+The region beyond him he regards from this vantage-ground of
+unquestioned security. There things may come and go, rise and vanish--he
+neither desires nor bemoans them. Change may grow swift, its swiftness
+grow fierce, and pass into storm: to him storm is calm; his haven is
+secure; his rest cannot be broken: he is accountable for nothing, knows
+no responsibility. Conscience is not yet awake, and there is no
+conflict. His waking is full of sleep, yet his very being is enough for
+him.
+
+But all the time his mother lives in the hope of his growth. In the
+present babe, her heart broods over the coming boy--the unknown marvel
+closed in the visible germ. Let mothers lament as they will over the
+change from childhood to maturity, which of them would not grow weary of
+nursing for ever a child in whom no live law of growth kept unfolding an
+infinite change! The child knows nothing of growth--desires none--but
+grows. Within him is the force of a power he can no more resist than the
+peach can refuse to swell and grow ruddy in the sun. By slow,
+inappreciable, indivisible accretion and outfolding, he is lifted,
+floated, drifted on towards the face of the awful mirror in which he
+must encounter his first foe--must front himself.
+
+By degrees he has learned that the world is around, and not within
+him--that he is apart, and that is apart; from consciousness he passes
+to self-consciousness. This is a second birth, for now a higher life
+begins. When a man not only lives, but knows that he lives, then first
+the possibility of a real life commences. By _real life_, I mean life
+which has a share in its own existence.
+
+For now, towards the world around him--the world that is not his mother,
+and, actively at least, neither loves him nor ministers to him, reveal
+themselves certain relations, initiated by fancies, desires,
+preferences, that arise within himself--reasonable or not matters
+little:--founded in reason, they can in no case be _devoid_ of reason.
+Every object concerned in these relations presents itself to the man as
+lovely, desirable, good, or ugly, hateful, bad; and through these
+relations, obscure and imperfect, and to a being weighted with a strong
+faculty for mistake, begins to be revealed the existence and force of
+Being other and higher than his own, recognized as _Will_, and first of
+all in its opposition to his desires. Thereupon begins the strife
+without which there never was, and, I presume, never can be, any growth,
+any progress; and the first result is what I may call the third birth of
+the human being.
+
+The first opposing glance of the mother wakes in the child not only
+answering opposition, which is as the rudimentary sac of his own coming
+will, but a new something, to which for long he needs no name, so
+natural does it seem, so entirely a portion of his being, even when most
+he refuses to listen to and obey it. This new something--we call it
+_Conscience_--sides with his mother, and causes its presence and
+judgment to be felt not only before but after the event, so that he soon
+comes to know that it is well with him or ill with him as he obeys or
+disobeys it. And now he not only knows, not only knows that he knows,
+but knows he knows that he knows--knows that he is self-conscious--that
+he has a conscience. With the first sense of resistance to it, the power
+above him has drawn nearer, and the deepest within him has declared
+itself on the side of the highest without him. At one and the same
+moment, the heaven of his childhood has, as it were, receded and come
+nigher. He has run from under it, but it claims him. It is farther, yet
+closer--immeasurably closer: he feels on his being the grasp and hold of
+his mother's. Through the higher individuality he becomes aware of his
+own. Through the assertion of his mother's will, his own begins to
+awake. He becomes conscious of himself as capable of action--of doing or
+of not doing; his responsibility has begun.
+
+He slips from her lap; he travels from chair to chair; he puts his
+circle round the room; he dares to cross the threshold; he braves the
+precipice of the stair; he takes the greatest step that, according to
+George Herbert, is possible to man--that out of doors, changing the
+house for the universe; he runs from flower to flower in the garden;
+crosses the road; wanders, is lost, is found again. His powers expand,
+his activity increases; he goes to school, and meets other boys like
+himself; new objects of strife are discovered, new elements of strife
+developed; new desires are born, fresh impulses urge. The old heaven,
+the face and will of his mother, recede farther and farther; a world of
+men, which he foolishly thinks a nobler as it is a larger world, draws
+him, claims him. More or less he yields. The example and influence of
+such as seem to him more than his mother like himself, grow strong upon
+him. His conscience speaks louder. And here, even at this early point in
+his history, what I might call his fourth birth _may_ begin to take
+place: I mean the birth in him of the Will--the real Will--not the
+pseudo-will, which is the mere Desire, swayed of impulse, selfishness,
+or one of many a miserable motive. When the man, listening to his
+conscience, wills and does the right, irrespective of inclination as of
+consequence, then is the man free, the universe open before him. He is
+born from above. To him conscience needs never speak aloud, needs never
+speak twice; to him her voice never grows less powerful, for he never
+neglects what she commands. And when he becomes aware that he can will
+his will, that God has given him a share in essential life, in the
+causation of his own being, then is he a man indeed. I say, even here
+this birth may begin; but with most it takes years not a few to complete
+it. For, the power of the mother having waned, the power of the
+neighbour is waxing. If the boy be of common clay, that is, of clay
+willing to accept dishonour, this power of the neighbour over him will
+increase and increase, till individuality shall have vanished from him,
+and what his friends, what society, what the trade or the profession
+say, will be to him the rule of life. With such, however, I have to do
+no more than with the deaf dead, who sleep too deep for words to reach
+them.
+
+My typical child of man is not of such. He is capable not of being
+influenced merely, but of influencing--and first of all of influencing
+himself; of taking a share in his own making; of determining actively,
+not by mere passivity, what he shall be and become; for he never ceases
+to pay at least a little heed, however poor and intermittent, to the
+voice of his conscience, and to-day he pays more heed than he did
+yesterday.
+
+Long ere now the joy of space, of room, has laid hold upon him--the more
+powerfully if he inhabit a wild and broken region. The human animal
+delights in motion and change, motions of his members even violent, and
+swiftest changes of place. It is as if he would lay hold of the infinite
+by ceaseless abandonment and choice of a never-abiding stand-point, as
+if he would lay hold of strength by the consciousness of the strength he
+has. He is full of unrest. He must know what lies on the farther shore
+of every river, see how the world looks from every hill: _What is
+behind? What is beyond?_ is his constant cry. To learn, to gather into
+himself, is his longing. Nor do many years pass thus, it may be not many
+months, ere the world begins to come alive around him. He begins to feel
+that the stars are strange, that the moon is sad, that the sunrise is
+mighty. He begins to see in them all the something men call beauty. He
+will lie on the sunny bank and gaze into the blue heaven till his soul
+seems to float abroad and mingle with the infinite made visible, with
+the boundless condensed into colour and shape. The rush of the water
+through the still twilight, under the faint gleam of the exhausted west,
+makes in his ears a melody he is almost aware he cannot understand.
+Dissatisfied with his emotions he desires a deeper waking, longs for a
+greater beauty, is troubled with the stirring in his bosom of an unknown
+ideal of Nature. Nor is it an ideal of Nature alone that is forming
+within him. A far more precious thing, a human ideal namely, is in his
+soul, gathering to itself shape and consistency. The wind that at night
+fills him with sadness--he cannot tell why, in the daytime haunts him
+like a wild consciousness of strength which has neither difficulty nor
+danger enough to spend itself upon. He would be a champion of the weak,
+a friend to the great; for both he would fight--a merciless foe to every
+oppressor of his kind. He would be rich that he might help, strong that
+he might rescue, brave--that he counts himself already, for he has not
+proved his own weakness. In the first encounter he fails, and the bitter
+cup of shame and confusion of face, wholesome and saving, is handed him
+from the well of life. He is not yet capable of understanding that one
+such as he, filled with the glory and not the duty of victory, could not
+but fail, and therefore ought to fail; but his dismay and chagrin are
+soothed by the forgetfulness the days and nights bring, gently wiping
+out the sins that are past, that the young life may have a fresh chance,
+as we say, and begin again unburdened by the weight of a too much
+present failure.
+
+And now, probably at school, or in the first months of his college-life,
+a new phase of experience begins. He has wandered over the border of
+what is commonly called science, and the marvel of facts multitudinous,
+strung upon the golden threads of law, has laid hold upon him. His
+intellect is seized and possessed by a new spirit. For a time knowledge
+is pride; the mere consciousness of knowing is the reward of its labour;
+the ever recurring, ever passing contact of mind with a new fact is a
+joy full of excitement, and promises an endless delight. But ever the
+thing that is known sinks into insignificance, save as a step of the
+endless stair on which he is climbing--whither he knows not; the unknown
+draws him; the new fact touches his mind, flames up in the contact, and
+drops dark, a mere fact, on the heap below. Even the grandeur of law as
+law, so far from adding fresh consciousness to his life, causes it no
+small suffering and loss. For at the entrance of Science, nobly and
+gracefully as she bears herself, young Poetry shrinks back startled,
+dismayed. Poetry is true as Science, and Science is holy as Poetry; but
+young Poetry is timid and Science is fearless, and bears with her a
+colder atmosphere than the other has yet learned to brave. It is not
+that Madam Science shows any antagonism to Lady Poetry; but the
+atmosphere and plane on which alone they can meet as friends who
+understand each other, is the mind and heart of the sage, not of the
+boy. The youth gazes on the face of Science, cold, clear, beautiful;
+then, turning, looks for his friend--but, alas! Poetry has fled. With a
+great pang at the heart he rushes abroad to find her, but descries only
+the rainbow glimmer of her skirt on the far horizon. At night, in his
+dreams, she returns, but never for a season may he look on her face of
+loveliness. What, alas! have evaporation, caloric, atmosphere,
+refraction, the prism, and the second planet of our system, to do with
+"sad Hesper o'er the buried sun?" From quantitative analysis how shall
+he turn again to "the rime of the ancient mariner," and "the moving
+moon" that "went up the sky, and nowhere did abide"? From his window he
+gazes across the sands to the mightily troubled ocean: "What is the
+storm to me any more!" he cries; "it is but the clashing of countless
+water-drops!" He finds relief in the discovery that, the moment you
+place man in the midst of it, the clashing of water-drops becomes a
+storm, terrible to heart and brain: human thought and feeling, hope,
+fear, love, sacrifice, make the motions of nature alive with mystery and
+the shadows of destiny. The relief, however, is but partial, and may be
+but temporary; for what if this mingling of man and Nature in the mind
+of man be but the casting of a coloured shadow over her cold
+indifference? What if she means nothing--never was meant to mean
+anything! What if in truth "we receive but what we give, and in our life
+alone doth Nature live!" What if the language of metaphysics as well as
+of poetry be drawn, not from Nature at all, but from human fancy
+concerning her!
+
+At length, from the unknown, whence himself he came, appears an angel to
+deliver him from this horror--this stony look--ah, God! of soulless law.
+The woman is on her way whose part it is to meet him with a life other
+than his own, at once the complement of his, and the visible presentment
+of that in it which is beyond his own understanding. The enchantment of
+what we specially call _love_ is upon him--a deceiving glamour, say
+some, showing what is not, an opening of the eyes, say others, revealing
+that of which a man had not been aware: men will still be divided into
+those who believe that the horses of fire and the chariots of fire are
+ever present at their need of them, and those who class the prophet and
+the drunkard in the same category as the fools of their own fancies. But
+what this love is, he who thinks he knows least understands. Let foolish
+maidens and vulgar youths simper and jest over it as they please, it is
+one of the most potent mysteries of the living God. The man who can love
+a woman and remain a lover of his wretched self, is fit only to be cast
+out with the broken potsherds of the city, as one in whom the very salt
+has lost its savour. With this love in his heart, a man puts on at least
+the vision robes of the seer, if not the singing robes of the poet. Be
+he the paltriest human animal that ever breathed, for the time, and in
+his degree, he rises above himself. His nature so far clarifies itself,
+that here and there a truth of the great world will penetrate, sorely
+dimmed, through the fog-laden, self-shadowed atmosphere of his
+microcosm. For the time, I repeat, he is not a lover only, but something
+of a friend, with a reflex touch of his own far-off childhood. To the
+youth of my history, in the light of his love--a light that passes
+outward from the eyes of the lover--the world grows alive again, yea
+radiant as an infinite face. He sees the flowers as he saw them in
+boyhood, recovering from an illness of all the winter, only they have a
+yet deeper glow, a yet fresher delight, a yet more unspeakable soul. He
+becomes pitiful over them, and not willingly breaks their stems, to hurt
+the life he more than half believes they share with him. He cannot think
+anything created only for him, any more than only for itself. Nature is
+no longer a mere contention of forces, whose heaven and whose hell in
+one is the dull peace of an equilibrium; but a struggle, through
+splendour of colour, graciousness of form, and evasive vitality of
+motion and sound, after an utterance hard to find, and never found but
+marred by the imperfection of the small and weak that would embody and
+set forth the great and mighty. The waving of the tree-tops is the
+billowy movement of a hidden delight. The sun lifts his head with intent
+to be glorious. No day lasts too long, no night comes too soon: the
+twilight is woven of shadowy arms that draw the loving to the bosom of
+the Night. In the woman, the infinite after which he thirsts is given
+him for his own.
+
+Man's occupation with himself turns his eyes from the great life beyond
+his threshold: when love awakes, he forgets himself for a time, and many
+a glimpse of strange truth finds its way through his windows, blocked no
+longer by the shadow of himself. He may now catch even a glimpse of the
+possibilities of his own being--may dimly perceive for a moment the
+image after which he was made. But alas! too soon, self, radiant of
+darkness, awakes; every window becomes opaque with shadow, and the man
+is again a prisoner. For it is not the highest word alone that the cares
+of this world, the deceitfulness of riches, and the lust of other things
+entering in, choke, and render unfruitful. Waking from the divine
+vision, if that can be called waking which is indeed dying into the
+common day, the common man regards it straightway as a foolish dream;
+the wise man believes in it still, holds fast by the memory of the
+vanished glory, and looks to have it one day again a present portion of
+the light of his life. He knows that, because of the imperfection and
+dulness and weakness of his nature, after every vision follow the
+inclosing clouds, with the threat of an ever during dark; knows that,
+even if the vision could tarry, it were not well, for the sake of that
+which must yet be done with him, yet be made of him, that it should
+tarry. But the youth whose history I am following is not like the
+former, nor as yet like the latter.
+
+From whatever cause, then, whether of fault, of natural law, or of
+supernal will, the flush that seemed to promise the dawn of an eternal
+day, shrinks and fades, though, with him, like the lagging skirt of the
+sunset in the northern west, it does not vanish, but travels on, a
+withered pilgrim, all the night, at the long last to rise the aureole of
+the eternal Aurora. And now new paths entice him--or old paths opening
+fresh horizons. With stronger thews and keener nerves he turns again to
+the visible around him. The changelessness amid change, the law amid
+seeming disorder, the unity amid units, draws him again. He begins to
+descry the indwelling poetry of science. The untiring forces at work in
+measurable yet inconceivable spaces of time and room, fill his soul with
+an awe that threatens to uncreate him with a sense of littleness; while,
+on the other side, the grandeur of their operations fills him with such
+an informing glory, the mere presence of the mighty facts, that he no
+more thinks of himself, but in humility is great, and knows it not. Rapt
+spectator, seer entranced under the magic wand of Science, he beholds
+the billions of billions of miles of incandescent vapour begin a slow,
+scarce perceptible revolution, gradually grow swift, and gather an awful
+speed. He sees the vapour, as it whirls, condensing through slow
+eternities to a plastic fluidity. He notes ring after ring part from the
+circumference of the mass, break, rush together into a globe, and the
+glowing ball keep on through space with the speed of its parent bulk. It
+cools and still cools and condenses, but still fiercely glows.
+Presently--after tens of thousands of years is the creative
+_presently_--arises fierce contention betwixt the glowing heart and its
+accompanying atmosphere. The latter invades the former with antagonistic
+element. He listens in his soul, and hears the rush of ever descending
+torrent rains, with the continuous roaring shock of their evanishment in
+vapour--to turn again to water in the higher regions, and again rush to
+the attack upon the citadel of fire. He beholds the slow victory of the
+water at last, and the great globe, now glooming in a cloak of darkness,
+covered with a wildly boiling sea--not boiling by figure of speech,
+under contending forces of wind and tide, but boiling high as the hills
+to come, with veritable heat. He sees the rise of the wrinkles we call
+hills and mountains, and from their sides the avalanches of water to the
+lower levels. He sees race after race of living things appear, as the
+earth becomes, for each new and higher kind, a passing home; and he
+watches the succession of terrible convulsions dividing kind from kind,
+until at length the kind he calls his own arrives. Endless are the
+visions of material grandeur unfathomable, awaked in his soul by the
+bare facts of external existence.
+
+But soon comes a change. So far as he can see or learn, all the motion,
+all the seeming dance, is but a rush for death, a panic flight into the
+moveless silence. The summer wind, the tropic tornado, the softest tide,
+the fiercest storm, are alike the tumultuous conflict of forces,
+rushing, and fighting as they rush, into the arms of eternal negation.
+On and on they hurry--down and down, to a cold stirless solidity, where
+wind blows not, water flows not, where the seas are not merely tideless
+and beat no shores, but frozen cleave with frozen roots to their gulfy
+basin. All things are on the steep-sloping path to final evanishment,
+uncreation, non-existence. He is filled with horror--not so much of the
+dreary end, as at the weary hopelessness of the path thitherward. Then a
+dim light breaks upon him, and with it a faint hope revives, for he
+seems to see in all the forms of life, innumerably varied, a spirit
+rushing upward from death--a something in escape from the terror of the
+downward cataract, of the rest that knows not peace. "Is it not," he
+asks, "the soaring of the silver dove of life from its potsherd-bed--the
+heavenward flight of some higher and incorruptible thing? Is not
+vitality, revealed in growth, itself an unending resurrection?"
+
+The vision also of the oneness of the universe, ever reappearing through
+the vapours of question, helps to keep hope alive in him. To find, for
+instance, the law of the relation of the arrangements of the leaves on
+differing plants, correspond to the law of the relative distances of the
+planets in approach to their central sun, wakes in him that hope of a
+central Will, which alone can justify one ecstatic throb at any seeming
+loveliness of the universe. For without the hope of such a centre,
+delight is unreason--a mockery not such as the skeleton at the Egyptian
+feast, but such rather as a crowned corpse at a feast of skeletons. Life
+without the higher glory of the unspeakable, the atmosphere of a God, is
+not life, is not worth living. He would rather cease to be, than walk
+the dull level of the commonplace--than live the unideal of men in whose
+company he can take no pleasure--men who are as of a lower race, whom he
+fain would lift, who will not rise, but for whom as for himself he would
+cherish the hope they do their best to kill. Those who seem to him
+great, recognize the unseen--believe the roots of science to be therein
+hid--regard the bringing forth into sight of the things that are
+invisible as the end of all Art and every art--judge the true leader of
+men to be him who leads them closer to the essential facts of their
+being. Alas for his love and his hope, alas for himself, if the visible
+should exist for its own sake only!--if the face of a flower means
+nothing--appeals to no region beyond the scope of the science that would
+unveil its growth. He cannot believe that its structure exists for the
+sake of its laws; that would be to build for the sake of its joints a
+scaffold where no house was to stand. Those who put their faith in
+Science are trying to live in the scaffold of the house invisible.
+
+He finds harbour and comfort at times in the written poetry of his
+fellows. He delights in analyzing and grasping the thought that informs
+the utterance. For a moment, the fine figure, the delicate phrase, make
+him jubilant and strong; but the jubilation and the strength soon pass,
+for it is not any of the _forms_, even of the thought-forms of truth
+that can give rest to his soul.
+
+History attracts him little, for he is not able to discover by its
+records the operation of principles yielding hope for his race. Such
+there may be, but he does not find them. What hope for the rising wave
+that knows in its rise only its doom to sink, and at length be dashed on
+the low shore of annihilation?
+
+But the time would fail me to follow the doubling of the soul coursed by
+the hounds of Death, or to set down the forms innumerable in which the
+golden Haemony springs in its path,
+
+ Of sovran use
+ 'Gainst all enchantments, mildew blast, or damp.
+
+And now the shadows are beginning to lengthen towards the night, which,
+whether there be a following morn or no, is the night, and spreads out
+the wings of darkness. And still as it approaches the more aware grows
+the man of a want that differs from any feeling I have already sought to
+describe--a sense of insecurity, in no wise the same as the doubt of
+life beyond the grave--a need more profound even than that which cries
+for a living Nature. And now he plainly knows, that, all his life, like
+a conscious duty unfulfilled, this sense has haunted his path, ever and
+anon descending and clinging, a cold mist, about his heart. What if this
+lack was indeed the root of every other anxiety! Now freshly revived,
+this sense of not having, of something, he knows not what, for lack of
+which his being is in pain at its own incompleteness, never leaves him
+more. And with it the terror has returned and grows, lest there should
+be no Unseen Power, as his fathers believed, and his mother taught him,
+filling all things and _meaning_ all things,--no Power with whom, in his
+last extremity, awaits him a final refuge. With the quickening doubt
+falls a tenfold blight on the world of poetry, both that in Nature and
+that in books. Far worse than that early chill which the assertions of
+science concerning what it knows, cast upon his inexperienced soul, is
+now the shivering death which its pretended denials concerning what it
+knows not, send through all his vital frame. The soul departs from the
+face of beauty, when the eye begins to doubt if there be any soul behind
+it; and now the man feels like one I knew, affected with a strange
+disease, who saw in the living face always the face of a corpse. What
+can the world be to him who lives for thought, if there be no supreme
+and perfect Thought,--none but such poor struggles after thought as he
+finds in himself? Take the eternal thought from the heart of things, no
+longer can any beauty be real, no more can shape, motion, aspect of
+nature have significance in itself, or sympathy with human soul. At best
+and most the beauty he thought he saw was but the projected perfection
+of his own being, and from himself as the crown and summit of things,
+the soul of the man shrinks with horror: it is the more imperfect being
+who knows the least his incompleteness, and for whom, seeing so little
+beyond himself, it is easiest to imagine himself the heart and apex of
+things, and rejoice in the fancy. The killing power of a godless science
+returns upon him with tenfold force. The ocean-tempest is once more a
+mere clashing of innumerable water-drops; the green and amber sadness of
+the evening sky is a mockery of sorrow; his own soul and its sadness is
+a mockery of himself. There is nothing in the sadness, nothing in the
+mockery. To tell him as comfort, that in his own thought lives the
+meaning if nowhere else, is mockery worst of all; for if there be no
+truth in them, if these things be no embodiment, to make them serve as
+such is to put a candle in a death's-head to light the dying through the
+place of tombs. To his former foolish fancy a primrose might preach a
+childlike trust; the untoiling lilies might from their field cast seeds
+of a higher growth into his troubled heart; now they are no better than
+the colour the painter leaves behind him on the doorpost of his
+workshop, when, the day's labour over, he wipes his brush on it ere he
+depart for the night. The look in the eyes of his dog, happy in that he
+is short-lived, is one of infinite sadness. All graciousness must
+henceforth be a sorrow: it has to go with the sunsets. That a thing must
+cease takes from it the joy of even an aeonian endurance--for its _kind_
+is mortal; it belongs to the nature of things that cannot live. The
+sorrow is not so much that it shall perish as that it could not
+live--that it is not in its nature a real, that is, an eternal thing.
+His children are shadows--their life a dance, a sickness, a corruption.
+The very element of unselfishness, which, however feeble and beclouded
+it may be, yet exists in all love, in giving life its only dignity adds
+to its sorrow. Nowhere at the root of things is love--it is only a
+something that came after, some sort of fungous excrescence in the
+hearts of men grown helplessly superior to their origin. Law, nothing
+but cold, impassive, material law, is the root of things--lifeless
+happily, so not knowing itself, else were it a demon instead of a
+creative nothing. Endeavour is paralyzed in him. "Work for posterity,"
+says he of the skyless philosophy; answers the man, "How can I work
+without hope? Little heart have I to labour, where labour is so little
+help. What can I do for my children that would render their life less
+hopeless than my own! Give me all you would secure for them, and my life
+would be to me but the worse mockery. The true end of labour would be,
+to lessen the number doomed to breathe the breath of this despair."
+
+Straightway he developes another and a deeper mood. He turns and regards
+himself. Suspicion or sudden insight has directed the look. And there,
+in himself, he discovers such imperfection, such wrong, such shame, such
+weakness, as cause him to cry out, "It were well I should cease! Why
+should I mourn after life? Where were the good of prolonging it in a
+being like me? 'What should such fellows as I do crawling between heaven
+and earth!'" Such insights, when they come, the seers do their best, in
+general, to obscure; suspicion of themselves they regard as a monster,
+and would stifle. They resent the waking of such doubt. Any attempt at
+the raising in them of their buried best they regard as an offence
+against intercourse. A man takes his social life in his hand who dares
+it. Few therefore understand the judgment of Hamlet upon himself; the
+common reader is so incapable of imagining he could mean it of his own
+general character as a man, that he attributes the utterance to shame
+for the postponement of a vengeance, which indeed he must have been such
+as his critic to be capable of performing upon no better proof than he
+had yet had. When the man whose unfolding I would now represent, regards
+even his dearest love, he finds it such a poor, selfish, low-lived
+thing, that in his heart he shames himself before his children and his
+friends. How little labour, how little watching, how little pain has he
+endured for their sakes! He reads of great things in this kind, but in
+himself he does not find them. How often has he not been wrongfully
+displeased--wrathful with the innocent! How often has he not hurt a
+heart more tender than his own! Has he ever once been faithful to the
+height of his ideal? Is his life on the whole a thing to regard with
+complacency, or to be troubled exceedingly concerning? Beyond him rise
+and spread infinite seeming possibilities--height beyond height, glory
+beyond glory, each rooted in and rising from his conscious being, but
+alas! where is any hope of ascending them? These hills of peace, "in a
+season of calm weather," seem to surround and infold him, as a land in
+which he could dwell at ease and at home: surely among them lies the
+place of his birth!--while against their purity and grandeur the being
+of his consciousness shows miserable--dark, weak, and undefined--a
+shadow that would fain be substance--a dream that would gladly be born
+into the light of reality. But alas if the whole thing be only in
+himself--if the vision be a dream of nothing, a revelation of lies, the
+outcome of that which, helplessly existent, is yet not created,
+therefore cannot create--if not the whole thing only be a dream of the
+impotent, but the impotent be himself but a dream--a dream of his own--a
+self-dreamed dream--with no master of dreams to whom to cry! Where then
+the cherished hope of one day atoning for his wrongs to those who loved
+him!--they are nowhere--vanished for ever, upmingled and dissolved in
+the primeval darkness! If truth be but the hollow of a sphere, ah, never
+shall he cast himself before them, to tell them that now at last, after
+long years of revealing separation, he knows himself and them, and that
+now the love of them is a part of his very being--to implore their
+forgiveness on the ground that he hates, despises, contemns, and scorns
+the self that showed them less than absolute love and devotion! Never
+thus shall he lay his being bare to their eyes of love! They do not even
+rest, for they do not and will not know it. There is no voice nor
+hearing in them, and how can there be in him any heart to live! The one
+comfort left him is, that, unable to follow them, he shall yet die and
+cease, and fare as they--go also nowhither!
+
+To a man under the dismay of existence dissociated from power, unrooted
+in, unshadowed by a creating Will, who is Love, the Father of Man--to
+him who knows not being and God together, the idea of death--a death
+that knows no reviving, must be, and ought to be the blessedest thought
+left him. "O land of shadows!" well may such a one cry! "land where the
+shadows love to ecstatic self-loss, yet forget, and love no more! land
+of sorrows and despairs, that sink the soul into a deeper Tophet than
+death has ever sounded! broken kaleidoscope! shaken camera! promiser,
+speaking truth to the ear, but lying to the sense! land where the heart
+of my friend is sorrowful as my heart--the more sorrowful that I have
+been but a poor and far-off friend! land where sin is strong and
+righteousness faint! where love dreams mightily and walks abroad so
+feeble! land where the face of my father is dust, and the hand of my
+mother will never more caress! where my children will spend a few years
+of like trouble to mine, and then drop from the dream into the no-dream!
+gladly, O land of sickliest shadows--gladly, that is, with what power of
+gladness is in me, I take my leave of thee! Welcome the cold,
+pain-soothing embrace of immortal Death! Hideous are his looks, but I
+love him better than Life: he is true, and will not deceive us. Nay, he
+only is our saviour, setting us free from the tyranny of the false that
+ought to be true, and sets us longing in vain."
+
+But through all the man's doubts, fears, and perplexities, a certain
+whisper, say rather, an uncertain rumour, a vague legendary murmur, has
+been at the same time about, rather than in, his ears--never ceasing to
+haunt his air, although hitherto he has hardly heeded it. He knows it
+has come down the ages, and that some in every age have been more or
+less influenced by a varied acceptance of it. Upon those, however, with
+whom he has chiefly associated, it has made no impression beyond that of
+a remarkable legend. It is the story of a man, represented as at least
+greater, stronger, and better than any other man. With the hero of this
+tale he has had a constantly recurring, though altogether undefined
+suspicion that he has something to do. It is strongest, though not even
+then strong, at such times when he is most aware of evil and
+imperfection in himself. Betwixt the two, the idea of this man and his
+knowledge of himself, seems to lie, dim-shadowy, some imperative duty.
+He knows that the whole matter concerning the man is commemorated in
+many of the oldest institutions of his country, but up to this time he
+has shrunk from the demands which, by a kind of spiritual insight, he
+foresaw would follow, were he once to admit certain things to be true.
+He has, however, known some and read of more who by their faith in the
+man conquered all anxiety, doubt, and fear, lived pure, and died in
+gladsome hope. On the other hand, it seems to him that the faith which
+was once easy has now become almost an impossibility. And what is it he
+is called upon to believe? One says one thing, another another. Much
+that is asserted is simply unworthy of belief, and the foundation of the
+whole has in his eyes something of the look of a cunningly devised
+fable. Even should it be true, it cannot help him, he thinks, for it
+does not even touch the things that make his woe: the God the tale
+presents is not the being whose very existence can alone be his cure.
+
+But he meets one who says to him, "Have you then come to your time of
+life, and not yet ceased to accept hearsay as ground of action--for
+there is action in abstaining as well as in doing? Suppose the man in
+question to have taken all possible pains to be understood, does it
+follow of necessity that he is now or ever was fairly represented by the
+bulk of his followers? With such a moral distance between him and them,
+is it possible?"
+
+"But the whole thing has from first to last a strange aspect!" our
+thinker replies.
+
+"As to the _last_ that is not yet come. And as to its _aspect_, its
+reality must be such as human eye could never convey to reading heart.
+Every human idea of it _must_ be more or less wrong. And yet perhaps the
+truer the aspect the stranger it would be. But is it not just with
+ordinary things you are dissatisfied? And should not therefore the very
+strangeness of these to you little better than rumours incline you to
+examine the object of them? Will you assert that nothing strange can
+have to do with human affairs? Much that was once scarce credible is now
+so ordinary that men have grown stupid to the wonder inherent in it.
+Nothing around you serves your need: try what is at least of another
+class of phenomena. What if the things rumoured belong to a _more_
+natural order than these, lie nearer the roots of your dissatisfied
+existence, and look strange only because you have hitherto been living
+in the outer court, not in the _penetralia_ of life? The rumour has been
+vital enough to float down the ages, emerging from every storm: why not
+see for yourself what may be in it? So powerful an influence on human
+history, surely there will be found in it signs by which to determine
+whether the man understood himself and his message, or owed his apparent
+greatness to the deluded worship of his followers! That he has always
+had foolish followers none will deny, and none but a fool would judge
+any leader from such a fact. Wisdom as well as folly will serve a fool's
+purpose; he turns all into folly. I say nothing now of my own
+conclusions, because what you imagine my opinions are as hateful to me
+as to you disagreeable and foolish."
+
+So says the friend; the man hears, takes up the old story, and says to
+himself, "Let me see then what I can see!"
+
+I will not follow him through the many shadows and slow dawns by which
+at length he arrives at this much: A man claiming to be the Son of God
+says he has come to be the light of men; says, "Come to me, and I will
+give you rest;" says, "Follow me, and you shall find my Father; to know
+him is the one thing you cannot do without, for it is eternal life." He
+has learned from the reported words of the man, and from the man himself
+as in the tale presented, that the bliss of his conscious being is his
+Father; that his one delight is to do the will of that Father--the only
+thing in his eyes worthy of being done, or worth having done; that he
+would make men blessed with his own blessedness; that the cry of
+creation, the cry of humanity shall be answered into the deepest soul of
+desire; that less than the divine mode of existence, the godlike way of
+being, can satisfy no man, that is, make him content with his
+consciousness; that not this world only, but the whole universe is the
+inheritance of those who consent to be the children of their Father in
+heaven, who put forth the power of their will to be of the same sort as
+he; that to as many as receive him he gives power to become the sons of
+God; that they shall be partakers of the divine nature, of the divine
+joy, of the divine power--shall have whatever they desire, shall know no
+fear, shall love perfectly, and shall never die; that these things are
+beyond the grasp of the knowing ones of the world, and to them the
+message will be a scorn; but that the time will come when its truth
+shall be apparent, to some in confusion of face, to others in joy
+unspeakable; only that we must beware of judging, for many that are
+first shall be last, and there are last that shall be first.
+
+To find himself in such conscious as well as vital relation with the
+source of his being, with a Will by which his own will exists, with a
+Consciousness by and through which he is conscious, would indeed be the
+end of all the man's ills! nor can he imagine any other, not to say
+better way, in which his sorrows could be met, understood and
+annihilated. For the ills that oppress him are both within him and
+without, and over each kind he is powerless. If the message were but a
+true one! If indeed this man knew what he talked of! But if there should
+be help for man from anywhere beyond him, some _one_ might know it
+first, and may not this be the one? And if the message be so great, so
+perfect as this man asserts, then only a perfect, an eternal man, at
+home in the bosom of the Father, could know, or bring, or tell it.
+According to the tale, it had been from the first the intent of the
+Father to reveal himself to man as man, for without the knowledge of the
+Father after man's own modes of being, he could not grow to real
+manhood. The grander the whole idea, the more likely is it to be what it
+claims to be! and if not high as the heavens above the earth, beyond us
+yet within our reach, it is not for us, it cannot be true. Fact or not,
+the existence of a God such as Christ, a God who is a good man
+infinitely, is the only idea containing hope enough for man! If such a
+God has come to be known, marvel must surround the first news at least
+of the revelation of him. Because of its marvel, shall men find it in
+reason to turn from the gracious rumour of what, if it be true, must be
+the event of all events? And could marvel be lovelier than the marvel
+reported? But the humble men of heart alone can believe in the
+high--they alone can perceive, they alone can embrace grandeur. Humility
+is essential greatness, the inside of grandeur.
+
+Something of such truths the man glimmeringly sees. But in his mind
+awake, thereupon, endless doubts and questions. What if the whole idea
+of his mission was a deception born of the very goodness of the man?
+What if the whole matter was the invention of men pretending themselves
+the followers of such a man? What if it was a little truth greatly
+exaggerated? Only, be it what it may, less than its full idea would not
+be enough for the wants and sorrows that weaken and weigh him down!
+
+He passes through many a thorny thicket of inquiry; gathers evidence
+upon evidence; reasons upon the goodness of the men who wrote: they
+might be deceived, but they dared not invent; holds with himself a
+thousand arguments, historical, psychical, metaphysical--which for their
+setting-forth would require volumes; hears many an opposing, many a
+scoffing word from men "who surely know, else would they speak?" and
+finds himself much where he was before. But at least he is haunting the
+possible borders of discovery, while those who turn their backs upon the
+idea are divided from him by a great gulf--it may be of moral
+difference. To him there is still a grand auroral hope about the idea,
+and it still draws him; the others, taking the thing from merest report
+of opinion, look anywhere but thitherward. He who would not trust his
+best friend to set forth his views of life, accepts the random
+judgements of unknown others for a sufficing disposal of what the
+highest of the race have regarded as a veritable revelation from the
+Father of men. He sees in it therefore nothing but folly; for what he
+takes for the thing nowhere meets his nature. Our searcher at least
+holds open the door for the hearing of what voice may come to him from
+the region invisible: if there be truth there, he is where it will find
+him.
+
+As he continues to read and reflect, the perception gradually grows
+clear in him, that, if there be truth in the matter, he must, first of
+all, and beyond all things else, give his best heed to the reported
+words of the man himself--to what he says, not what is said about him,
+valuable as that may afterwards prove to be. And he finds that
+concerning these words of his, the man says, or at least plainly
+implies, that only the obedient, childlike soul can understand them. It
+follows that the judgement of no man who does not obey can be received
+concerning them or the speaker of them--that, for instance, a man who
+hates his enemy, who tells lies, who thinks to serve God and Mammon,
+whether he call himself a Christian or no, has not the right of an
+opinion concerning the Master or his words--at least in the eyes of the
+Master, however it may be in his own. This is in the very nature of
+things: obedience alone places a man in the position in which he can see
+so as to judge that which is above him. In respect of great truths
+investigation goes for little, speculation for nothing; if a man would
+know them, he must obey them. Their nature is such that the only door
+into them is obedience. And the truth-seeker perceives--which allows
+him no loophole of escape from life--that what things the Son of Man
+requires of him, are either such as his conscience backs for just, or
+such as seem too great, too high for any man. But if there be help for
+him, it must be a help that recognizes the highest in him, and urges him
+to its use. Help cannot come to one made in the image of God, save in
+the obedient effort of what life and power are in him, for God is
+action. In such effort alone is it possible for need to encounter help.
+It is the upstretched that meets the downstretched hand. He alone who
+obeys can with confidence pray--to him alone does an answer seem a thing
+that may come. And should anything spoken by the Son of Man seem to the
+seeker unreasonable, he feels in the rest such a majesty of duty as
+compels him to judge with regard to the other, that he has not yet
+perceived its true nature, or its true relation to life.
+
+And now comes the crisis: if here the man sets himself honestly to do
+the thing the Son of Man tells him, he so, and so first, sets out
+positively upon the path which, if there be truth in these things, will
+conduct him to a knowledge of the whole matter; not until then is he a
+disciple. If the message be a true one, the condition of the knowledge
+of its truth is not only reasonable but an unavoidable necessity. If
+there be help for him, how otherways should it draw nigh? He has to be
+assured of the highest truth of his being: there can be no other
+assurance than that to be gained thus, and thus alone; for not only by
+obedience does a man come into such contact with truth as to know what
+it is, and in regard to truth knowledge and belief are one. That things
+which cannot appear save to the eye capable of seeing them, that things
+which cannot be recognized save by the mind of a certain development,
+should be examined by eye incapable, and pronounced upon by mind
+undeveloped, is absurd. The deliverance the message offers is a change
+such that the man shall _be_ the rightness of which he talked: while his
+soul is not a hungered, athirst, aglow, a groaning after
+righteousness--that is, longing to be himself honest and upright, it is
+an absurdity that he should judge concerning the way to this rightness,
+seeing that, while he walks not in it, he is and shall be a dishonest
+man: he knows not whither it leads and how can he know the way! What he
+_can_ judge of is, his duty at a given moment--and that not in the
+abstract, but as something to be by him _done_, neither more, nor less,
+nor other than _done_. Thus judging and doing, he makes the only
+possible step nearer to righteousness and righteous judgement; doing
+otherwise, he becomes the more unrighteous, the more blind. For the man
+who knows not God, whether he believes there is a God or not, there can
+be, I repeat, no judgement of things pertaining to God. To our supposed
+searcher, then, the crowning word of the Son of Man is this, "If any man
+is willing to do the will of the Father, he shall know of the doctrine,
+whether it be of God, or whether I speak of myself."
+
+Having thus accompanied my type to the borders of liberty, my task for
+the present is over. The rest let him who reads prove for himself.
+Obedience alone can convince. To convince without obedience I would take
+no bootless labour; it would be but a gain for hell. If any man call
+these things foolishness, his judgement is to me insignificant. If any
+man say he is open to conviction, I answer him he can have none but on
+the condition, by the means of obedience. If a man say, "The thing is
+not interesting to me," I ask him, "Are you following your conscience?
+By that, and not by the interest you take or do not take in a thing,
+shall you be judged. Nor will anything be said to you, or of you, in
+that day, whatever _that day_ mean, of which your conscience will not
+echo every syllable."
+
+Oneness with God is the sole truth of humanity. Life parted from its
+causative life would be no life; it would at best be but a barrack of
+corruption, an outpost of annihilation. In proportion as the union is
+incomplete, the derived life is imperfect. And no man can be one with
+neighbour, child, dearest, except as he is one with his origin; and he
+fails of his perfection so long as there is one being in the universe he
+could not love.
+
+Of all men he is bound to hold his face like a flint in witness of this
+truth who owes everything that makes for eternal good, to the belief
+that at the heart of things and causing them to be, at the centre of
+monad, of world, of protoplastic mass, of loving dog, and of man most
+cruel, is an absolute, perfect love; and that in the man Christ Jesus
+this love is with us men to take us home. To nothing else do I for one
+owe any grasp upon life. In this I see the setting right of all things.
+To the man who believes in the Son of God, poetry returns in a mighty
+wave; history unrolls itself in harmony; science shows crowned with its
+own aureole of holiness. There is no enlivener of the imagination, no
+enabler of the judgment, no strengthener of the intellect, to compare
+with the belief in a live Ideal, at the heart of all personality, as of
+every law. If there be no such live Ideal, then a falsehood can do more
+for the race than the facts of its being; then an unreality is needful
+for the development of the man in all that is real, in all that is in
+the highest sense true; then falsehood is greater than fact, and an idol
+necessary for lack of a God. They who deny cannot, in the nature of
+things, know what they deny. When one sees a chaos begin to put on the
+shape of an ordered world, he will hardly be persuaded it is by the
+power of a foolish notion bred in a diseased fancy.
+
+Let the man then who would rise to the height of his being, be persuaded
+to test the Truth by the deed--the highest and only test that can be
+applied to the loftiest of all assertions. To every man I say, "Do the
+truth you know, and you shall learn the truth you need to know."
+
+
+
+
+ST. GEORGE'S DAY, 1564.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1864.]
+
+All England knows that this year (1864) is the three hundredth since
+Shakspere was born. The strong probability is likewise that this month
+of April is that in which he first saw the earthly light. On the
+twenty-sixth of April he was baptized. Whether he was born on the
+twenty-third, to which effect there may once have been a tradition, we
+do not know; but though there is nothing to corroborate that statement,
+there are two facts which would incline us to believe it if we could:
+the one that he _died_ on the twenty-third of April, thus, as it were,
+completing a cycle; and the other that the twenty-third of April is St.
+George's Day. If there is no harm in indulging in a little fanciful
+sentiment about such a grand fact, we should say that certainly it was
+_St. George for merry England_ when Shakspere was born. But had St.
+George been the best saint in the calendar--which we have little enough
+ground for supposing he was--it would better suit our subject to say
+that the Highest was thinking of his England when he sent Shakspere into
+it, to be a strength, a wonder, and a gladness to the nations of his
+earth.
+
+But if we write thus about Shakspere, influenced only by the fashion of
+the day, we shall be much in the condition of those _fashionable_
+architects who with their vain praises built the tombs of the prophets,
+while they had no regard to the lessons they taught. We hope to be able
+to show that we have good grounds for our rejoicing in the birth of that
+child whom after-years placed highest on the rocky steep of Art, up
+which so many of those who combine feeling and thought are always
+striving.
+
+First, however, let us look at some of the more powerful of the
+influences into the midst of which he was born. For a child is born into
+the womb of the time, which indeed enclosed and fed him before he was
+born. Not the least subtle and potent of those influences which tend to
+the education of the child (in the true sense of the word _education_)
+are those which are brought to bear upon him _through_ the mind, heart,
+judgement of his parents. We mean that those powers which have operated
+strongly upon them, have a certain concentrated operation, both
+antenatal and psychological, as well as educational and spiritual, upon
+the child. Now Shakspere was born in the sixth year of Queen Elizabeth.
+He was the eldest son, but the third child. His father and mother must
+have been married not later than the year 1557, two years after Cranmer
+was burned at the stake, one of the two hundred who thus perished in
+that time of pain, resulting in the firm establishment of a reformation
+which, like all other changes for the better, could not be verified and
+secured without some form or other of the _trial by fire_. Events such
+as then took place in every part of the country could not fail to make a
+strong impression upon all thinking people, especially as it was not
+those of high position only who were thus called upon to bear witness to
+their beliefs. John Shakspere and Mary Arden were in all likelihood
+themselves of the Protestant party; and although, as far as we know,
+they were never in any especial danger of being denounced, the whole of
+the circumstances must have tended to produce in them individually, what
+seems to have been characteristic of the age in which they lived,
+earnestness. In times such as those, people are compelled to think.
+
+And here an interesting question occurs: Was it in part to his mother
+that Shakspere was indebted for that profound knowledge of the Bible
+which is so evident in his writings? A good many copies of the
+Scriptures must have been by this time, in one translation or another,
+scattered over the country. [Footnote: And it seems to us probable that
+this diffusion of the Bible, did more to rouse the slumbering literary
+power of England, than any influences of foreign literature whatever.]
+No doubt the word was precious in those days, and hard to buy; but there
+might have been a copy, notwithstanding, in the house of John Shakspere,
+and it is possible that it was from his mother's lips that the boy first
+heard the Scripture tales. We have called his acquaintance with
+Scripture _profound_, and one peculiar way in which it manifests itself
+will bear out the assertion; for frequently it is the very spirit and
+essential aroma of the passage that he reproduces, without making any
+use of the words themselves. There are passages in his writings which we
+could not have understood but for some acquaintance with the New
+Testament. We will produce a few specimens of the kind we mean,
+confining ourselves to one play, "Macbeth."
+
+Just mentioning the phrase, "temple-haunting martlet" (act i. scene 6),
+as including in it a reference to the verse, "Yea, the sparrow hath
+found an house, and the swallow a nest for herself, where she may lay
+her young, even thine altars, O Lord of hosts," we pass to the following
+passage, for which we do not believe there is any explanation but that
+suggested to us by the passage of Scripture to be cited.
+
+Macbeth, on his way to murder Duncan, says,--
+
+ "Thou sure and firm-set earth,
+ Hear not my steps, which way they walk, for fear
+ Thy very stones prate of my whereabout,
+ And take the present horror from the time
+ Which now suits with it."
+
+What is meant by the last two lines? It seems to us to be just another
+form of the words, "For there is nothing covered, that shall not be
+revealed; neither hid, that shall not be known. Therefore whatsoever ye
+have spoken in darkness shall be heard in the light; and that which ye
+have spoken in the ear in closets shall be proclaimed upon the
+house-tops." Of course we do not mean that Macbeth is represented as
+having this passage in his mind, but that Shakspere had the feeling of
+it when he wrote thus. What Macbeth means is, "Earth, do not hear me in
+the dark, which is suitable to the present horror, lest the very stones
+prate about it in the daylight, which is not suitable to such things;
+thus taking 'the present horror _from_ the time which now suits with
+it.'"
+
+Again, in the only piece of humour in the play--if that should be called
+humour which, taken in its relation to the consciousness of the
+principal characters, is as terrible as anything in the piece--the
+porter ends off his fantastic soliloquy, in which he personates the
+porter of hell-gate, with the words, "But this place is too cold for
+hell: I'll devil-porter it no further. I had thought to have let in some
+of all professions, that go the primrose way to the everlasting
+bonfire." Now what else had the writer in his mind but the verse from
+the Sermon on the Mount, "For wide is the gate, and broad is the way,
+that leadeth to destruction, and many there be which go in thereat"?
+
+It may be objected that such passages as these, being of the most
+commonly quoted, imply no profound acquaintance with Scripture, such as
+we have said Shakspere possessed. But no amount of knowledge of the
+_words_ of the Bible would be sufficient to justify the use of the word
+_profound_. What is remarkable in the employment of these passages, is
+not merely that they are so present to his mind that they come up for
+use in the most exciting moments of composition, but that he embodies
+the spirit of them in such a new form as reveals to minds saturated and
+deadened with the _sound_ of the words, the very visual image and
+spiritual meaning involved in them. "_The primrose way!_" And to what?
+
+We will confine ourselves to one passage more:--
+
+ "Macbeth
+ Is ripe for shaking, and the powers above
+ Put on their instruments."
+
+In the end of the 14th chapter of the Revelation we have the words,
+"Thrust in thy sickle, and reap: for the time is come for thee to reap;
+for the harvest of the earth is ripe." We suspect that Shakspere wrote,
+ripe _to_ shaking.
+
+The instances to which we have confined ourselves do not by any means
+belong to the most evident kind of proof that might be adduced of
+Shakspere's acquaintance with Scripture. The subject, in its ordinary
+aspect, has been elsewhere treated with far more fulness than our design
+would permit us to indulge in, even if it had not been done already. Our
+object has been to bring forward a few passages which seem to us to
+breathe the very spirit of individual passages in sacred writ, without
+direct use of the words themselves; and, of course, in such a case we
+can only appeal to the (no doubt) very various degrees of conviction
+which they may rouse in the minds of our readers.
+
+But there is one singular correspondence in another _almost_ literal
+quotation from the Gospel, which is to us wonderfully interesting. We
+are told that the words "eye of a needle," in the passage about a rich
+man entering the kingdom of heaven, mean the small side entrance in a
+city gate. Now, in "Richard II," act v. scene 5, _Richard_ quotes the
+passage thus:--
+
+ "It is as hard to come as for a camel
+ To thread the postern of a needle's eye;"
+
+showing that either the imagination of Shakspere suggested the real
+explanation, or he had taken pains to acquaint himself with the
+significance of the simile. We can hardly say that the correspondence
+might be _merely_ fortuitous; because, at the least, Shakspere looked
+for and found a suitable figure to associate with the words _eye of a
+needle_, and so fell upon the real explanation; except, indeed, he had
+no particular significance in using the word that meant a _little_ gate,
+instead of a word meaning any kind of entrance, which, with him, seems
+unlikely.
+
+We have not by any means proven that Shakspere's acquaintance with the
+Scriptures had an early date in his history; but certainly the Bible
+must have had a great influence upon him who was the highest
+representative mind of the time, its influence on the general
+development of the nation being unquestionable. This, therefore, seeing
+the Bible itself was just dawning full upon the country while Shakspere
+was becoming capable of understanding it, seems the suitable sequence in
+which to take notice of that influence, and of some of those passages in
+his works which testify to it.
+
+But, besides _the_ Bible, every nation has _a_ Bible, or at least _an_
+Old Testament, in its own history; and that Shakspere paid especial
+attention to this, is no matter of conjecture. We suspect his mode of
+writing historical plays is more after the fashion of the Bible
+histories than that of most writers of history. Indeed, the development
+and consequences of character and conduct are clear to those that read
+his histories with open eyes. Now, in his childhood Shakspere may have
+had some special incentive to the study of history springing out of the
+fact that his mother's grandfather had been "groom of the chamber to
+Henry VII.," while there is sufficient testimony that a further removed
+ancestor of his father, as well, had stood high in the favour of the
+same monarch. Therefore the history of the troublous times of the
+preceding century, which were brought to a close by the usurpation of
+Henry VII., would naturally be a subject of talk in the quiet household,
+where books and amusements such as now occupy our boys, were scarce or
+wanting altogether. The proximity of such a past of strife and
+commotion, crowded with eventful change, must have formed a background
+full of the material of excitement to an age which lived in the midst of
+a peculiarly exciting history of its own.
+
+Perhaps the chief intellectual characteristic of the age of Elizabeth
+was _activity_; this activity accounting even for much that is
+objectionable in its literature. Now this activity must have been
+growing in the people throughout the fifteenth century; the wars of the
+Roses, although they stifled literature, so that it had, as it were, to
+be born again in the beginning of the following century, being, after
+all, but as the "eager strife" of the shadow-leaves above the "genuine
+life" of the grass,--
+
+ "And the mute repose
+ Of sweetly breathing flowers."
+
+But when peace had fallen on the land, it would seem as if the impulse
+to action springing from strife still operated, as the waves will go on
+raving upon the shore after the wind has ceased, and found one outlet,
+amongst others, in literature, and peculiarly in dramatic literature.
+Peace, rendered yet more intense by the cessation of the cries of the
+tormentors, and the groans of the noble army of suffering martyrs, made,
+as it were, a kind of vacuum; and into that vacuum burst up the
+torrent-springs of a thousand souls--the thoughts that were no longer
+repressed--in the history of the past and the Utopian speculation on the
+future; in noble theology, capable statesmanship, and science at once
+brilliant and profound; in the voyage of discovery, and the change of
+the swan-like merchantman into a very fire-drake of war for the defence
+of the threatened shores; in the first brave speech of the Puritan in
+Elizabeth's Parliament, the first murmurs of the voice of liberty, soon
+to thunder throughout the land; in the naturalizing of foreign genius by
+translation, and the invention, or at least adoption, of a new and
+transcendent rhythm; in the song, in the epic, in the drama.
+
+So much for the general. Let us now, following the course of his life,
+recall, in a few sentences, some of the chief events which must have
+impressed the all-open mind of Shakspere in the earlier portion of his
+history.
+
+Perhaps it would not be going back too far to begin with the Massacre of
+Paris, which took place when he was eight years old. It caused so much
+horror in England, that it is not absurd to suppose that some black rays
+from the deed of darkness may have fallen on the mind of such a child as
+Shakspere.
+
+In strong contrast with the foregoing is the next event to which we
+shall refer.
+
+When he was eleven years old, Leicester gave the Queen that magnificent
+reception at Kenilworth which is so well known from its memorials in our
+literature. It has been suggested as probable, with quite enough of
+likelihood to justify a conjecture, that Shakspere may have been present
+at the dramatic representations then so gorgeously accumulated before
+her Majesty. If such was the fact, it is easy to imagine what an
+influence the shows must have had on the mind of the young dramatic
+genius, at a time when, happily, the critical faculty is not by any
+means so fully awake as are the receptive and exultant faculties, and
+when what the nature chiefly needs is excitement to growth, without
+which all pruning, the most artistic, is useless, as having nothing to
+operate upon.
+
+When he was fifteen years old, Sir Thomas North's translation of
+Plutarch (through the French) was first published. Any reader who has
+compared one of Shakspere's Roman plays with the corresponding life in
+Plutarch, will not be surprised that we should mention this as one of
+those events which must have been of paramount influence upon Shakspere.
+It is not likely that he became acquainted with the large folio with its
+medallion portraits first placed singly, and then repeated side by side
+for comparison, as soon as it made its appearance, but as we cannot tell
+when he began to read it, it seems as well to place it in the order its
+publication would assign to it. Besides, it evidently took such a hold
+of the man, that it is most probable his acquaintance with it began at a
+very early period of his history. Indeed, it seems to us to have been
+one of the most powerful aids to the development of that perception and
+discrimination of character with which he was gifted to such a
+remarkable degree. Nor would it be any derogation from the originality
+of his genius to say, that in a very pregnant sense he must have been a
+disciple of Plutarch. In those plays founded on Plutarch's stories he
+picked out every dramatic point, and occasionally employed the very
+phrases of North's nervous, graphic, and characteristic English. He
+seems to have felt that it was an honour to his work to embody in it the
+words of Plutarch himself, as he knew them first. From him he seems
+especially to have learned how to bring out the points of a character,
+by putting one man over against another, and remarking wherein they
+resembled each other and wherein they differed; after which fashion, in
+other plays as well as those, he partly arranged his dramatic
+characters.
+
+Not long after he went to London, when he was twenty-two, the death of
+Sir Philip Sidney at the age of thirty-two, must have had its
+unavoidable influence on him, seeing all Europe was in mourning for the
+death of its model, almost ideal man. In England the general mourning,
+both in the court and the city, which lasted for months, is supposed by
+Dr. Zouch to have been the first instance of the kind; that is, for the
+death of a private person. Renowned over the civilized world for
+everything for which a man could be renowned, his literary fame must
+have had a considerable share in the impression his death would make on
+such a man as Shakspere. For although none of his works were published
+till after his death, the first within a few months of that event, his
+fame as a writer was widely spread in private, and report of the same
+could hardly fail to reach one who, although he had probably no friends
+of rank as yet, kept such keen open ears for all that was going on
+around him. But whether or not he had heard of the literary greatness of
+Sir Philip before his death, the "Arcadia," which was first published
+four years after his death (1590), and which in eight years had reached
+the third edition--with another still in Scotland the following
+year--must have been full of interest to Shakspere. This book is very
+different indeed from the ordinary impression of it which most minds
+have received through the confident incapacity of the critics of last
+century. Few books have been published more fruitful in the results and
+causes of thought, more sparkling with fancy, more evidently the outcome
+of rich and noble habit, than this "Arcadia" of Philip Sidney. That
+Shakspere read it, is sufficiently evident from the fact that from it he
+has taken the secondary but still important plots in two of his plays.
+
+Although we are anticipating, it is better to mention here another book,
+published in the same year, namely, 1590, when Shakspere was
+six-and-twenty: the first three books of Spenser's "Faery Queen." Of its
+reception and character it is needless here to say anything further
+than, of the latter, that nowadays the depths of its teaching, heartily
+prized as that was by no less a man than Milton, are seldom explored.
+But it would be a labour of months to set out the known and imagined
+sources of the knowledge and spiritual pabulum of the man who laid every
+mental region so under contribution, that he has been claimed by almost
+every profession as having been at one time or another a student of its
+peculiar science, so marvellously in him was the power of assimilation
+combined with that of reproduction.
+
+To go back a little: in 1587, when he was three-and-twenty, Mary Queen
+of Scots was executed. In the following year came that mighty victory of
+England, and her allies the winds and the waters, over the towering
+pride of the Spanish Armada. Out from the coasts, like the birds from
+their cliffs to defend their young, flew the little navy, many of the
+vessels only able to carry a few guns; and fighting, fire-ships and
+tempest left this island,--
+
+ "This precious stone set in the silver sea,"
+
+still a "blessed plot," with an accumulated obligation to liberty which
+can only be paid by helping others to be free; and when she utterly
+forgets which, her doom is sealed, as surely as that of the old empires
+which passed away in their self-indulgence and wickedness.
+
+When Shakspere was about thirty-two, Sir Walter Raleigh published his
+glowing account of Guiana, which instantly provided the English mind
+with an earthly paradise or fairy-land. Raleigh himself seems to have
+been too full of his own reports for us to be able to suppose that he
+either invented or disbelieved them; especially when he represents the
+heavenly country to which, in expectation of his execution, he is
+looking forward, after the fashion of those regions of the wonderful
+West:--
+
+ "Then the blessed Paths wee'l travel,
+ Strow'd with Rubies thick as gravel;
+ Sealings of Diamonds, Saphire floors,
+ High walls of Coral, and Pearly Bowers."
+
+Such were some of the influences which widened the region of thought,
+and excited the productive power, in the minds of the time. After this
+period there were fewer of such in Shakspere's life; and if there had
+been more of them they would have been of less import as to their
+operation on a mind more fully formed and more capable of choosing its
+own influences. Let us now give a backward glance at the history of the
+art which Shakspere chose as the means of easing his own mind of that
+wealth which, like the gold and the silver, has a moth and rust of its
+own, except it be kept in use by being sent out for the good of our
+neighbours.
+
+It was a mighty gain for the language and the people when, in the middle
+of the fourteenth century, by permission of the Pope, the miracle-plays,
+most probably hitherto represented in Norman-French, as Mr. Collier
+supposes, began to be represented in English. Most likely there had been
+dramatic representations of a sort from the very earliest period of the
+nation's history; for, to begin with the lowest form, at what time would
+there not, for the delight of listeners, have been the imitation of
+animal sounds, such as the drama of the conversation between an
+attacking poodle and a fiercely repellent puss? Through innumerable
+gradations of childhood would the art grow before it attained the first
+formal embodiment in such plays as those, so-called, of miracles,
+consisting just of Scripture stories, both canonical and apocryphal,
+dramatized after the rudest fashion. Regarded from the height which the
+art had reached two hundred and fifty years after, "how dwarfed a growth
+of cold and night" do these miracle-plays show themselves! But at a time
+when there was no printing, little preaching, and Latin prayers, we
+cannot help thinking that, grotesque and ill-imagined as they are, they
+must have been of unspeakable value for the instruction of a people
+whose spiritual digestion was not of a sort to be injured by the
+presence of a quite abnormal quantity of husk and saw-dust in their
+food. And occasionally we find verses of true poetic feeling, such as
+the following, in "The Fall of Man:"--
+
+ _Deus._ Adam, that with myn handys I made,
+ Where art thou now? What hast thou wrought?
+
+ _Adam._ A! lord, for synne oure floures do ffade,
+ I here thi voys, but I se the nought;
+
+implying that the separation between God and man, although it had
+destroyed the beatific vision, was not yet so complete as to make the
+creature deaf to the voice of his Maker. Nor are the words of Eve, with
+which she begs her husband, in her shame and remorse, to strangle her,
+odd and quaint as they are, without an almost overpowering pathos:--
+
+ "Now stomble we on stalk and ston;
+ My wyt awey is fro me gon:
+ Wrythe on to my necke bon
+ With, hardnesse of thin honde."
+
+To this Adam commences his reply with the verses,--
+
+ "Wyff, thi wytt is not wurthe a rosche.
+ Leve woman, turn thi thought."
+
+And this portion of the general representation ends with these verses,
+spoken by Eve:--
+
+ "Alas! that ever we wrought this synne.
+ Oure bodely sustenauns for to wynne,
+ Ye must delve and I xal spynne,
+ In care to ledyn oure lyff."
+
+In connexion with these plays, one of the contemplations most
+interesting to us is, the contrast between them and the places in which
+they were occasionally represented. For though the scaffolds on which
+they were shown were usually erected in market-places or churchyards,
+sometimes they rose in the great churches, and the plays were
+represented with the aid of ecclesiastics. Here, then, we have the rude
+beginnings of the dramatic art, in which the devil is the unfortunate
+buffoon, giving occasion to the most exuberant laughter of the
+people--here is this rude boyhood, if we may so say, of the one art,
+roofed in with the perfection of another, of architecture; a perfection
+which now we can only imitate at our best: below, the clumsy contrivance
+and the vulgar jest; above, the solemn heaven of uplifted arches, their
+mysterious glooms ringing with the delight of the multitude: the play of
+children enclosed in the heart of prayer aspiring in stone. But it was
+not by any means all laughter; and so much, nearer than architecture is
+the drama to the ordinary human heart, that we cannot help thinking
+these grotesque representations did far more to arouse the inward life
+and conscience of the people than all the glory into which the
+out-working spirit of the monks had compelled the stubborn stone to
+bourgeon and blossom.
+
+But although, no doubt, there was some kind of growth going on in the
+drama even during the dreary fifteenth century, we must not suppose that
+it was by any regular and steady progression that it arrived at the
+grandeur of the Elizabethan perfection. It was rather as if a dry,
+knotty, uncouth, but vigorous plant suddenly opened out its inward life
+in a flower of surpassing splendour and loveliness. When the
+representation of real historical persons in the miracle-plays gave way
+before the introduction of unreal allegorical personages, and the
+miracle-play was almost driven from the stage by the "play of morals" as
+it was called, there was certainly no great advance made in dramatic
+representation. The chief advantage gained was room for more variety;
+while in some important respects these plays fell off from the merits of
+the preceding kind. Indeed, any attempt to teach morals allegorically
+must lack that vivifying fire of faith working in the poorest
+representations of a history which the people heartily believed and
+loved. Nor when we come to examine the favourite amusement of later
+royalty, do we find that the interludes brought forward in the pauses of
+the banquets of Henry VIII. have a claim to any refinement upon those
+old miracle-plays. They have gained in facility and wit; they have lost
+in poetry. They have lost pathos too, and have gathered grossness. In
+the comedies which soon appear, there is far more of fun than of art;
+and although the historical play had existed for some time, and the
+streams of learning from the inns of court had flowed in to swell that
+of the drama, it is not before the appearance of Shakspere that we find
+any _whole_ of artistic or poetic value. And this brings us to another
+branch of the subject, of which it seems to us that the importance has
+never been duly acknowledged. We refer to the use, if not invention, of
+_blank verse_ in England, and its application to the purposes of the
+drama. It seems to us that in any contemplation of Shakspere and his
+times, the consideration of these points ought not to be omitted.
+
+We have in the present day one grand master of blank verse, the Poet
+Laureate. But where would he have been if Milton had not gone before
+him; or if the verse amidst which he works like an informing spirit had
+not existed at all? No doubt he might have invented it himself; but how
+different would the result have been from the verse which he will now
+leave behind him to lie side by side for comparison with that of the
+master of the epic! All thanks then to Henry Howard, Earl of Surrey!
+who, if, dying on the scaffold at the early age of thirty, he has left
+no poetry in itself of much value, yet so wrote that he refined the
+poetic usages of the language, and, above all, was the first who ever
+made blank verse in English. He used it in translating the second and
+fourth books of Virgil's "Aeneid." This translation he probably wrote
+not long before his execution, which took place in 1547, seventeen years
+before the birth of Shakspere. There are passages of excellence in the
+work, and very rarely does a verse quite fail. But, as might be
+expected, it is somewhat stiff, and, as it were, stunted in sound;
+partly from the fact that the lines are too much divided, where
+_distinction_ would have been sufficient. It would have been strange,
+indeed, if he had at once made a free use of a rhythm which every
+boy-poet now thinks he can do what he pleases with, but of which only a
+few ever learn the real scope and capabilities. Besides, the difficulty
+was increased by the fact that the nearest approach to it in measure was
+the heroic couplet, so well known in our language, although scarce one
+who has used it has come up to the variousness of its modelling in the
+hands of Chaucer, with whose writings Surrey was of course familiar. But
+various as is its melody in Chaucer, the fact of there being always an
+anticipation of the perfecting of a rhyme at the end of the couplet
+would make one accustomed to heroic verse ready to introduce a
+rhythmical fall and kind of close at the end of every blank verse in
+trying to write that measure for the first time. Still, as we say, there
+is good verse in Surrey's translation. Take the following lines for a
+specimen, in which the fault just mentioned is scarcely perceptible.
+Mercury is the subject of them.
+
+ "His golden wings he knits, which him transport,
+ With a light wind above the earth and seas;
+ And then with him his wand he took, whereby
+ He calls from hell pale ghosts.
+ * * * * *
+ "By power whereof he drives the winds away,
+ And passeth eke amid the troubled clouds,
+ Till in his flight he 'gan descry the top
+ And the steep flanks of rocky Atlas' hill
+ That with his crown sustains the welkin up;
+ Whose head, forgrown with pine, circled alway
+ With misty clouds, is beaten with wind and storm;
+ His shoulders spread with snow; and from his chin
+ The springs descend; his beard frozen with ice.
+ Here Mercury with equal shining wings
+ First touched."
+
+In all comparative criticism justice demands that he who began any mode
+should not be compared with those who follow only on the ground of
+absolute merit in the productions themselves; for while he may be
+inferior in regard to quality, he stands on a height, as the inventor,
+to which they, as imitators, can never ascend, although they may climb
+other and loftier heights, through the example he has set them. It is
+doubtful, however, whether Surrey himself invented this verse, or only
+followed the lead of some poet of Italy or Spain; in both which
+countries it is said that blank verse had been used before Surrey wrote
+English in that measure.
+
+Here then we have the low beginnings of blank verse. It was nearly a
+hundred and twenty years before Milton took it up, and, while it served
+him well, glorified it; nor are we aware of any poem of worth written in
+that measure between. Here, of course, we speak of the epic form of the
+verse, which, as being uttered _ore rotundo_, is necessarily of
+considerable difference from the form it assumes in the drama.
+
+Let us now glance for a moment at the forms of composition in use for
+dramatic purposes before blank verse came into favour with play-writers.
+The nature of the verse employed in the miracle-plays will be
+sufficiently seen from the short specimens already given. These plays
+were made up of carefully measured and varied lines, with correct and
+superabundant rhymes, and no marked lack of melody or rhythm. But as far
+as we have made acquaintance with the moral and other rhymed plays which
+followed, there was a great falling off in these respects. They are in
+great measure composed of long, irregular lines, with a kind of
+rhythmical progress rather than rhythm in them. They are exceedingly
+difficult to read musically, at least to one of our day. Here are a few
+verses of the sort, from the dramatic poem, rather than drama, called
+somewhat improperly "The Moral Play of God's Promises," by John Bale,
+who died the year before Shakspere was born. It is the first in
+Dodsley's collection. The verses have some poetic merit. The rhythm will
+be allowed to be difficult at least. The verses are arranged in stanzas,
+of which we give two. In most plays the verses are arranged in rhyming
+couplets only.
+
+ _Pater Coelestis._
+
+ I have with fearcenesse mankynde oft tymes corrected,
+ And agayne, I have allured hym by swete promes.
+ I have sent sore plages, when he hath me neglected,
+ And then by and by, most comfortable swetnes.
+ To wynne hym to grace, bothe mercye and ryghteousnes
+ I have exercysed, yet wyll he not amende.
+ Shall I now lose hym, or shall I him defende?
+
+ In hys most myschefe, most hygh grace will I sende,
+ To overcome hym by favoure, if it may be.
+ With hys abusyons no longar wyll I contende,
+ But now accomplysh my first wyll and decre.
+ My worde beynge flesh, from hens shall set hym fre,
+ Hym teachynge a waye of perfyght ryhteousnesse,
+ That he shall not nede to perysh in hys weaknesse.
+
+To our ears, at least, the older miracle-plays were greatly superior. It
+is interesting to find, however, in this apparently popular mode of
+"building the rhyme"--certainly not the _lofty_ rhyme, for no such
+crumbling foundation could carry any height of superstructure--the
+elements of the most popular rhythm of the present day; a rhythm
+admitting of any number of syllables in the line, from four up to
+twelve, or even more, and demanding only that there shall be not more
+than four accented syllables in the line. A song written with any spirit
+in this measure has, other things _not_ being quite equal, yet almost a
+certainty of becoming more popular than one written in any other
+measure. Most of Barry Cornwall's and Mrs. Heman's songs are written in
+it. Scott's "Lay of the Last Minstrel," Coleridge's "Christabel,"
+Byron's "Siege of Corinth," Shelley's "Sensitive Plant," are examples of
+the rhythm. Spenser is the first who has made good use of it. One of the
+months in the "Shepherd's Calendar" is composed in it. We quote a few
+lines from this poem, to show at once the kind we mean:--
+
+ "No marvel, Thenot, if thou can bear
+ Cheerfully the winter's wrathful cheer;
+ For age and winter accord full nigh;
+ This chill, that cold; this crooked, that wry;
+ And as the lowering weather looks down,
+ So seemest thou like Good Friday to frown:
+ But my flowering youth is foe to frost;
+ My ship unwont in storms to be tost."
+
+We can trace it slightly in Sir Thomas Wyatt, and we think in others who
+preceded Spenser. There is no sign of it in Chaucer. But we judge it to
+be the essential rhythm of Anglo-Saxon poetry, which will quite
+harmonize with, if it cannot explain, the fact of its being the most
+popular measure still. Shakspere makes a little use of it in one, if not
+in more, of his plays, though it there partakes of the irregular
+character of that of the older plays which he is imitating. But we
+suspect the clowns of the authorship of some of the rhymes, "speaking
+more than was set down for them," evidently no uncommon offence.
+
+Prose was likewise in use for the drama at an early period.
+
+But we must now regard the application of blank verse to the use of the
+drama. And in this part of our subject we owe most to the investigations
+of Mr. Collier, than whom no one has done more to merit our gratitude
+for such aids. It is universally acknowledged that "Ferrex and Porrex"
+was the first drama in blank verse. But it was never represented on the
+public stage. It was the joint production of Thomas Sackville,
+afterwards Lord Buckhurst and Earl of Dorset, and Thomas Norton, both
+gentlemen of the Inner Temple, by the members of which it was played
+before the Queen at Whitehall in 1561, three years before Shakspere was
+born. As to its merits, the impression left by it upon our minds is such
+that, although the verse is decent, and in some respects irreproachable,
+we think the time spent in reading it must be all but lost to any but
+those who must verify to themselves their literary profession; a
+profession which, like all other professions, involves a good deal of
+disagreeable duty. We spare our readers all quotation, there being no
+occasion to show what blank verse of the commonest description is. But
+we beg to be allowed to state that this drama by no means represents the
+poetic powers of Thomas Sackville. For although we cannot agree with
+Hallam's general criticism, either for or against Sackville, and
+although we admire Spenser, we hope, as much as that writer could have
+admired him, we yet venture to say that not only may some of Sackville's
+personifications "fairly be compared with some of the most poetical
+passages in Spenser," but that there is in this kind in Sackville a
+strength and simplicity of representation which surpasses that of
+Spenser in passages in which the latter probably imitated the former. We
+refer to the allegorical personages in Sackville's "Induction to the
+Mirrour of Magistrates," and in Spenser's description of the "House of
+Pride."
+
+Mr. Collier judges that the play in blank verse first represented on the
+public stage was the "Tamburlaine" of Christopher Marlowe, and that it
+was acted before 1587, at which date Shakspere would be twenty-three.
+This was followed by other and better plays by the same author. Although
+we cannot say much for the dramatic art of Marlowe, he has far surpassed
+every one that went before him in dramatic _poetry_. The passages that
+might worthily be quoted from Marlowe's writings for the sake of their
+poetry are innumerable, notwithstanding that there are many others which
+occupy a border land between poetry and bombast, and are such that it is
+to us impossible to say to which class they rather belong. Of course it
+is easy for a critic to gain the credit of common-sense at the same time
+that he saves himself the trouble of doing what he too frequently shows
+himself incapable of doing to any good purpose--we mean _thinking_--by
+classing all such passages together as bombastical nonsense; but even in
+the matter of poetry and bombast, a wise reader will recognize that
+extremes so entirely meet, without being in the least identical, that
+they are capable of a sort of chemico-literary admixture, if not of
+combination. Goethe himself need not have been ashamed to have written
+one or two of the scenes in Marlowe's "Faust;" not that we mean to imply
+that they in the least resemble Goethe's handiwork. His verse is, for
+dramatic purposes, far inferior to Shakspere's; but it was a great
+matter for Shakspere that Marlowe preceded him, and helped to prepare to
+his hand the tools and fashions he needed. The provision of blank verse
+for Shakspere's use seems to us worthy of being called providential,
+even in a system in which we cannot believe that there is any chance.
+For as the stage itself is elevated a few feet above the ordinary level,
+because it is the scene of a _representation_, just so the speech of the
+drama, dealing not with unreal but with ideal persons, the fool being a
+worthy fool, and the villain a worthy villain, needs to be elevated some
+tones above that of ordinary life, which is generally flavoured with so
+much of the _commonplace_. Now the commonplace has no place at all in
+the drama of Shakspere, which fact at once elevates it above the tone of
+ordinary life. And so the mode of the speech must be elevated as well;
+therefore from prose into blank verse. If we go beyond this, we cease to
+be natural for the stage as well as life; and the result is that kind of
+composition well enough known in Shakspere's time, which he ridicules in
+the recitations of the player in "Hamlet," about _Priam_ and _Hecuba_.
+We could show the very passages of the play-writer Nash which Shakspere
+imitates in these. To use another figure, Shakspere, in the same play,
+instructs the players "to hold, as 'twere, the mirror up to nature." Now
+every one must have felt that somehow there is a difference between the
+appearance of any object or group of objects immediately presented to
+the eye, and the appearance of the same object or objects in a mirror.
+Nature herself is not the same in the mirror held up to her. Everything
+changes sides in this representation; and the room which is an ordinary,
+well-known, homely room, gains something of the strange and poetic when
+regarded in the mirror over the fire. Now for this representation, for
+this mirror-reflection on the stage, blank verse is just the suitable
+glass to receive the silvering of the genius-mind behind it.
+
+But if Shakspere had had to sit down and make his tools first, and then
+quarry his stone and fell his timber for the building of his house,
+instead of finding everything ready to his hand for dressing his stone
+already hewn, for sawing and carving the timber already in logs and
+planks beside him, no doubt his house would have been built; but can we
+with any reason suppose that it would have proved such "a lordly
+pleasure-house"? Not even Shakspere could do without his poor little
+brothers who preceded him, and, like the goblins and gnomes of the
+drama, got everything out of the bowels of the dark earth, ready for the
+master, whom it would have been a shame to see working in the gloom and
+the dust instead of in the open eye of the day. Nor is anything so
+helpful to the true development of power as the possibility of free
+action for as much of the power as is already operative. This room for
+free action was provided by blank verse.
+
+Yet when Shakspere came first upon the scene of dramatic labour, he had
+to serve his private apprenticeship, to which the apprenticeship of the
+age in the drama, had led up. He had to act first of all. Driven to
+London and the drama by an irresistible impulse, when the choice of some
+profession was necessary to make him independent of his father, seeing
+he was himself, though very young, a married man, the first form in
+which the impulse to the drama would naturally show itself in him would
+be the desire to act; for the outside relations would first operate. As
+to the degree of merit he possessed as an actor we have but scanty means
+of judging; for afterwards, in his own plays, he never took the best
+characters, having written them for his friend Richard Burbage. Possibly
+the dramatic impulse was sufficiently appeased by the writing of the
+play, and he desired no further satisfaction from personal
+representation; although the amount of study spent upon the higher
+department of the art might have been more than sufficient to render him
+unrivalled as well in the presentation of his own conceptions. But the
+dramatic spring, having once broken the upper surface, would scoop out a
+deeper and deeper well for itself to play in, and the actor would soon
+begin to work upon the parts he had himself to study for presentation.
+It being found that he greatly bettered his own parts, those of others
+would be submitted to him, and at length whole plays committed to his
+revision, of which kind there may be several in the collection of his
+works. If the feather-end of his pen is just traceable in "Titus
+Andronicus," the point of it is much more evident, and to as good
+purpose as Beaumont or Fletcher could have used his to, at the best, in
+"Pericles, Prince of Tyre." Nor would it be long before he would submit
+one of his own plays for approbation; and then the whole of his dramatic
+career lies open before him, with every possible advantage for
+perfecting the work, for the undertaking of which he was better
+qualified by nature than probably any other man whosoever; for he knew
+everything about acting, practically--about the play-house and its
+capabilities, about stage necessities, about the personal endowments and
+individual qualifications of each of the company--so that, when he was
+writing a play, he could distribute the parts before they even appeared
+upon paper, and write for each actor with the very living form of the
+ideal person present "in his mind's eye," and often to his bodily sight;
+so that the actual came in aid of the ideal, as it always does if the
+ideal be genuine, and the loftiest conceptions proved the truest to
+visible nature.
+
+This close relation of Shakspere to the actual leads us to a general and
+remarkable fact, which again will lead us back to Shakspere. All the
+great writers of Queen Elizabeth's time were men of affairs; they were
+not literary men merely, in the general acceptation of the word at
+present. Hooker was a hard-working, sheep-keeping, cradle-rocking pastor
+of a country parish. Bacon's legal duties were innumerable before he
+became Lord Keeper and Lord Chancellor. Raleigh was soldier, sailor,
+adventurer, courtier, politician, discoverer: indeed, it is to his
+imprisonment that we are indebted for much the most ambitious of his
+literary undertakings, "The History of the World," a work which for
+simple majesty of subject and style is hardly to be surpassed in prose.
+Sidney, at the age of three-and-twenty, received the highest praise for
+the management of a secret embassy to the Emperor of Germany; took the
+deepest and most active interest in the political affairs of his
+country; would have sailed with Sir Francis Drake for South American
+discovery; and might probably have been king of poor Poland, if the
+queen had not been too selfish or wise to spare him. The whole of his
+literary productions was the work of his spare hours. Spenser himself,
+who was, except Shakspere, the most purely a literary man of them all,
+was at one time Secretary to the Lord Deputy of Ireland, and, later in
+life, Sheriff of Cork. Nor is the remark true only of the writers of
+Elizabeth's period, or of the country of England.
+
+It seems to us one of the greatest advantages that can befall a poet, to
+be drawn out of his study, and still more out of the chamber of imagery
+in his own thoughts, to behold and speculate upon the embodiment of
+Divine thoughts and purposes in men and their affairs around him. Now
+Shakspere had no public appointment, but he reaped all the advantage
+which such could have given him, and more, from the perfection of his
+dramatic position. It was not with making plays alone that he had to do;
+but, himself an actor, himself in a great measure the owner of more than
+one theatre, with a little realm far more difficult to rule than many a
+kingdom--a company, namely, of actors--although possibly less difficult
+from the fact that they were only men and boys; with the pecuniary
+affairs of the management likewise under his supervision--he must have
+found, in the relations and necessities of his own profession, not
+merely enough of the actual to keep him real in his representations, but
+almost sufficient opportunity for his one great study, that of mankind,
+independently of social and friendly relations, which in his case were
+of the widest and deepest.
+
+But Shakspere had not business relations merely: he was a man of
+business. There is a common blunder manifested, both in theory on the
+one side, and in practice on the other, which the life of Shakspere sets
+full in the light. The theory is, that genius is a sort of abnormal
+development of the imagination, to the detriment and loss of the
+practical powers, and that a genius is therefore a kind of incapable,
+incompetent being, as far as worldly matters are concerned. The most
+complete refutation of this notion lies in the fact that the greatest
+genius the world has known was a successful man in common affairs. While
+his genius grew in strength, fervour, and executive power, his worldly
+condition rose as well; he became a man of importance in the eyes of his
+townspeople, by whom he would not have been honoured if he had not made
+money; and he purchased landed property in his native place with the
+results of his management of his theatres.
+
+The practical blunder lies in the notion cherished occasionally by young
+people ambitious of literary distinction, that in the pursuit of such
+things they must be content with the poverty to which the world dooms
+its greatest men; accepting their very poverty as an additional proof of
+their own genius. If this means that the poet is not to make money his
+object, it means well: no man should. But if it means either that the
+world is unkind, or that the poet is not to "gather up the fragments,
+that nothing be lost," it means ill. Shakspere did not make haste to be
+rich. He neither blamed, courted, nor neglected the world: he was
+friendly with it. He _could_ not have pinched and scraped; but neither
+did he waste or neglect his worldly substance, which is God's gift too.
+Many immense fortunes have been made, not by absolute dishonesty, but in
+ways to which a man of genius ought to be yet more ashamed than another
+to condescend; but it does not therefore follow that if a man of genius
+will do honest work he will not make a fair livelihood by it, which for
+all good results of intellect and heart is better than a great fortune.
+But then Shakspere began with doing what he could. He did not consent to
+starve until the world should recognize his genius, or grumble against
+the blindness of the nation in not seeing what it was impossible it
+should see before it was fairly set forth. He began at once to supply
+something which the world wanted; for it wants many an honest thing. He
+went on the stage and acted, and so gained power to reveal the genius
+which he possessed; and the world, in its possible measure, was not slow
+to recognize it. Many a young fellow who has entered life with the one
+ambition of being a poet, has failed because he did not perceive that it
+is better to be a man than to be a poet, that it is his first duty to
+get an honest living by doing some honest work that he can do, and for
+which there is a demand, although it may not be the most pleasant
+employment. Time would have shown whether he was meant to be a poet or
+not; and if he had been no poet he would have been no beggar; and if he
+had turned out a poet, it would have been partly in virtue of that
+experience of life and truth, gained in his case in the struggle for
+bread, without which, gained somehow, a man may be a sweet dreamer, but
+can be no strong maker, no poet. In a word, here is _the_ Englishman of
+genius, beginning life with nothing, and dying, not rich, but easy and
+honoured; and this by doing what no one else could do, writing dramas in
+which the outward grandeur or beauty is but an exponent of the inward
+worth; hiding pearls for the wise even within the jewelled play of the
+variegated bubbles of fancy, which he blew while he wrought, for the
+innocent delight of his thoughtless brothers and sisters. Wherever the
+rainbow of Shakspere's genius stands, there lies, indeed, at the foot of
+its glorious arch, a golden key, which will open the secret doors of
+truth, and admit the humble seeker into the presence of Wisdom, who,
+having cried in the streets in vain, sits at home and waits for him who
+will come to find her. And Shakspere had cakes and ale, although he was
+virtuous.
+
+But what do we know about the character of Shakspere? How can we tell
+the inner life of a man who has uttered himself in dramas, in which of
+course it is impossible that he should ever speak in his own person? No
+doubt he may speak his own sentiments through the mouths of many of his
+persons; but how are we to know in what cases he does so?--At least we
+may assert, as a self-evident negative, that a passage treating of a
+wide question put into the mouth of a person despised and rebuked by the
+best characters in the play, is not likely to contain any cautiously
+formed and cherished opinion of the dramatist. At first sight this may
+seem almost a truism; but we have only to remind our readers that one of
+the passages oftenest quoted with admiration, and indeed separately
+printed and illuminated, is "The Seven Ages of Man," a passage full of
+inhuman contempt for humanity and unbelief in its destiny, in which not
+one of the seven ages is allowed to pass over its poor sad stage without
+a sneer; and that this passage is given by Shakspere to the _blas_
+sensualist _Jaques_ in "As You Like it," a man who, the good and wise
+_Duke_ says, has been as vile as it is possible for man to be, so vile
+that it would be an additional sin in him to rebuke sin; a man who never
+was capable of seeing what is good in any man, and hates men's vices
+_because_ he hates themselves, seeing in them only the reflex of his own
+disgust. Shakspere knew better than to say that all the world is a
+stage, and all the men and women merely players. He had been a player
+himself, but only on the stage: _Jaques_ had been a player where he
+ought to have been a true man. The whole of his account of human life is
+contradicted and exposed at once by the entrance, the very moment when
+he has finished his wicked burlesque, of _Orlando_, the young master,
+carrying _Adam_, the old servant, upon his back. The song that
+immediately follows, sings true: "Most friendship is feigning, most
+loving mere folly." But between the _all_ of _Jaques_ and the _most_ of
+the song, there is just the difference between earth and hell.--Of
+course, both from a literary and dramatic point of view, "The Seven
+Ages" is perfect.
+
+Now let us make one positive statement to balance the other: that
+wherever we find, in the mouth of a noble character, not stock
+sentiments of stage virtue, but appreciation of a truth which it needs
+deep thought and experience united with love of truth, to discover or
+verify for one's self, especially if the truth be of a sort which most
+men will fail not merely to recognize as a truth, but to understand at
+all, because the understanding of it depends on the foregoing spiritual
+perception--then we think we may receive the passage as an expression of
+the inner soul of the writer. He must have seen it before he could have
+said it; and to see such a truth is to love it; or rather, love of truth
+in the general must have preceded and enabled to the discovery of it.
+Such a passage is the speech of the _Duke_, opening the second act of
+the play just referred to, "As You Like it." The lesson it contains is,
+that the well-being of a man cannot be secured except he partakes of the
+ills of life, "the penalty of Adam." And it seems to us strange that the
+excellent editors of the Cambridge edition, now in the course of
+publication--a great boon to all students of Shakspere--should not have
+perceived that the original reading, that of the folios, is the right
+one,--
+
+ "Here feel we _not_ the penalty of Adam?"
+
+which, with the point of interrogation supplied, furnishes the true
+meaning of the whole passage; namely, that the penalty of Adam is just
+what makes the "wood more free from peril than the envious court,"
+teaching each "not to think of himself more highly than he ought to
+think."
+
+But Shakspere, although everywhere felt, is nowhere seen in his plays.
+He is too true an artist to show his own face from behind the play of
+life with which he fills his stage. What we can find of him there we
+must find by regarding the whole, and allowing the spiritual essence of
+the whole to find its way to our brain, and thence to our heart. The
+student of Shakspere becomes imbued with the idea of his character. It
+exhales from his writings. And when we have found the main drift of any
+play--the grand rounding of the whole--then by that we may interpret
+individual passages. It is alone in their relation to the whole that we
+can do them full justice, and in their relation to the whole that we
+discover the mind of the master.
+
+But we have another source of more direct enlightenment as to Shakspere
+himself. We only say more _direct_, not more certain or extended
+enlightenment. We have one collection of poems in which he speaks in his
+own person and of himself. Of course we refer to his sonnets. Though
+these occupy, with their presentation of himself, such a small relative
+space, they yet admirably round and complete, to our eyes, the circle of
+his individuality. In them and the plays the common saying--one of the
+truest--that extremes meet, is verified. No man is complete in whom
+there are no extremes, or in whom those extremes do not meet. Now the
+very individuality of Shakspere, judged by his dramas alone, has been
+declared nonexistent; while in the sonnets he manifests some of the
+deepest phases of a healthy self-consciousness. We do not intend to
+enter into the still unsettled question as to whether these sonnets were
+addressed to a man or a woman. We have scarcely a doubt left on the
+question ourselves, as will be seen from the argument we found on our
+conviction. We cannot say we feel much interest in the other question,
+_If a man, what man?_ A few placed at the end, arranged as they have
+come down to us, are beyond doubt addressed to a woman. But the
+difference in tone between these and the others we think very
+remarkable. Possibly at the time they were written--most of them early
+in his life, as it appears to us, although they were not published till
+the year 1609, when he was forty-five years of age, Meres referring to
+them in the year 1598, eleven years before, as known "among his private
+friends"--he had not known such women as he knew afterwards, and hence
+the true devotion of his soul is given to a friend of his own sex.
+Gervinus, whose lectures on Shakspere, profound and lofty to a degree
+unattempted by any other interpreter, we are glad to find have been done
+into a suitable English translation, under the superintendence of the
+author himself--Gervinus says somewhere in them that, as Shakspere lived
+and wrote, his ideal of womanhood grew nobler and purer. Certainly the
+woman to whom the last few of these sonnets are addressed was neither
+noble nor pure. We think, in this matter at least, they record one of
+his early experiences.
+
+We shall briefly indicate what we find in these sonnets about the man
+himself, and shall commence with what is least pleasing and of least
+value.
+
+We must confess, then, that, probably soon after he came first to
+London, he, then a married man, had an intrigue with a married woman, of
+which there are indications that he was afterwards deeply ashamed. One
+little incident seems curiously traceable: that he had given her a set
+of tablets which his friend had given him; and the sonnet in which he
+excuses himself to his friend for having done so, seems to us the only
+piece of special pleading, and therefore ungenuine expression, in the
+whole. This friend, to whom the rest of the sonnets are addressed, made
+the acquaintance of this woman, and both were false to Shakspere. Even
+Shakspere could not keep the love of a worthless woman. So much the
+better for him; but it is a sad story at best. Yet even in this
+environment of evil we see the nobility of the man, and his real self.
+The sonnets in which he mourns his friend's falsehood, forgives him, and
+even finds excuses for him, that he may not lose his own love of him,
+are, to our minds, amongst the most beautiful, as they are the most
+profound. Of these are the 33rd and 34th. Nor does he stop here, but
+proceeds in the following, the 35th, to comfort his friend in his grief
+for his offence, even accusing himself of offence in having made more
+excuse for his fault than the fault needed! But to leave this part of
+his history, which, as far as we know, stands alone, and yet cannot with
+truth be passed by, any more than the story of the crime of David,
+though in this case there is no comparison to be made between the two
+further than the primary fact, let us look at the one reality which,
+from a spiritual point of view, independently of the literary beauties
+of these poems, causes them to stand all but alone in literature. We
+mean what has been unavoidably touched upon already, the devotion of his
+friendship. We have said this makes the poems stand _all but alone_; for
+we ought to be better able to understand these poems of Shakspere, from
+the fact that in our day has appeared the only other poem which is like
+these, and which casts back a light upon them.
+
+ "Yet turn thee to the doubtful shore,
+ Where thy first form was made a man:
+ I loved thee, spirit, and love; nor can
+ The soul of Shakspeare love thee more."
+
+So sings the Poet of our day, in the loftiest of his poems--"In
+Memoriam"--addressing the spirit of his vanished friend. In the midst of
+his song arises the thought of _the Poet_ of all time, who loved his
+friend too, and would have lost him in a way far worse than death, had
+not his love been too strong even for that death, alone ghastly, which
+threatened to cut the golden chain that bound them, and part them by the
+gulf impassable. Tennyson's friend had never wronged him; and to the
+divineness of Shakspere's love is added that of forgiveness. Such love
+as this between man and man is rare, and therefore to the mind which is
+in itself no way rare, incredible, because unintelligible. But though
+all the commonest things are very divine, yet divine individuality is
+and will be a rare thing at any given period on the earth. Faith, in its
+ideal sense, will always be hard to find on the earth. But perhaps this
+kind of affection between man and man may, as Coleridge indicates in his
+"Table Talk," have been more common in the reigns of Elizabeth and James
+than it is now. There is a certain dread of the demonstrative in the
+present day, which may, perhaps, be carried into regions where it is out
+of place, and hinder the development of a devotion which must be real,
+and grand, and divine, if one man such as Shakspere or Tennyson has ever
+felt it. If one has felt it, humanity may claim it. And surely He who is
+_the_ Son of man has verified the claim. We believe there are indeed few
+of us who know what _to love our neighbour as ourselves_ means; but when
+we find a man here and there in the course of centuries who does, we may
+take this man as the prophet of coming good for his race, his prophecy
+being himself.
+
+But next to the interest of knowing that a man could love so well, comes
+the association of this fact with his art. He who could look abroad upon
+men, and understand them all--who stood, as it were, in the wide-open
+gates of his palace, and admitted with welcome every one who came in
+sight--had in the inner places of that palace one chamber in which he
+met his friend, and in which his whole soul went forth to understand the
+soul of his friend. The man to whom nothing in humanity was common or
+unclean; in whom the most remarkable of his artistic morals is
+fair-play; who fills our hearts with a saintly love for _Cordelia_ and
+an admiration of _Sir John Falstaff_ the lost gentleman, mournful even
+in the height of our laughter; who could make an _Autolycus_ and a
+_Macbeth_ both human, and an _Ariel_ and a _Puck_ neither human--this is
+the man who loved best. And we believe that this depth of capacity for
+loving lay at the root of all his knowledge of men and women, and all
+his dramatic pre-eminence. The heart is more intelligent than the
+intellect. Well says the poet Matthew Raydon, who has hardly left
+anything behind him but the lamentation over Sir Philip Sidney in which
+the lines occur,--
+
+ "He that hath love and judgment too
+ Sees more than any other do."
+
+Simply, we believe that this, not this only, but this more than any
+other endowment, made Shakspere the artist he was, in providing him all
+the material of humanity to work upon, and keeping him to the true
+spirit of its use. Love looking forth upon strife, understood it all.
+Love is the true revealer of secrets, because it makes one with the
+object regarded.
+
+"But," say some impatient readers, "when shall we have done with
+Shakspere? There is no end to this writing about him." It will be a bad
+day for England when we have done with Shakspere; for that will imply,
+along with the loss of him, that we are no longer capable of
+understanding him. Should that time ever come, Heaven grant the
+generation which does not understand him at least the grace to keep its
+pens off him, which will by no means follow as a necessary consequence
+of the non-intelligence! But the writing about Shakspere which has been
+hitherto so plentiful must do good just in proportion as it directs
+attention to him and gives aid to the understanding of him. And while
+the utterances of to-day pass away, the children of to-morrow are born,
+and require a new utterance for their fresh need from those who, having
+gone before, have already tasted life and Shakspere, and can give some
+little help to further progress than their own, by telling the following
+generation what they have found. Suppose that this cry had been raised
+last century, after good Dr. Johnson had ceased to produce to the eyes
+of men the facts about his own incapacity which he presumed to be
+criticisms of Shakspere, where would our aids be now to the
+understanding of the dramatist? Our own conviction is, when we reflect
+with how much labour we have deepened our knowledge of him, and thereby
+found in him _the best_--for the best lies not on the surface for the
+careless reader--our own conviction is, that not half has been done that
+ought to be done to help young people at least to understand the master
+mind of their country. Few among them can ever give the attention or
+work to it that we have given; but much may be done with judicious aid.
+And a profound knowledge of their greatest writer would do more than
+almost anything else to bind together as Englishmen, in a true and
+unselfish way, the hearts of the coming generations; for his works are
+our country in a convex magic mirror.
+
+When a man finds that every time he reads a book not only does some
+obscurity melt away, but deeper depths, which he had not before seen,
+dawn upon him, he is not likely to think that the time for ceasing to
+write about the book has come. And certainly in Shakspere, as in all
+true artistic work, as in nature herself, the depths are not to be
+revealed utterly; while every new generation needs a new aid towards
+discovering itself and its own thoughts in these forms of the past. And
+of all that read about Shakspere there are few whom more than one or two
+utterances have reached. The speech or the writing must go forth to find
+the soil for the growth of its kernel of truth. We shall, therefore,
+with the full consciousness that perhaps more has been already said and
+written about Shakspere than about any other writer, yet venture to add
+to the mass by a few general remarks.
+
+And first we would remind our readers of the marvel of the combination
+in Shakspere of such a high degree of two faculties, one of which is
+generally altogether inferior to the other: the faculties of reception
+and production. Rarely do we find that great receptive power, brought
+into operation either by reading or by observation, is combined with
+originality of thought. Some hungers are quite satisfied by taking in
+what others have thought and felt and done. By the assimilation of this
+food many minds grow and prosper; but other minds feed far more upon
+what rises from their own depths; in the answers they are compelled to
+provide to the questions that come unsought; in the theories they cannot
+help constructing for the inclusion in one whole of the various facts
+around them, which seem at first sight to strive with each other like
+the atoms of a chaos; in the examination of those impulses of hidden
+origin which at one time indicate a height of being far above the
+thinker's present condition, at another a gulf of evil into which he may
+possibly fall. But in Shakspere the two powers of beholding and
+originating meet like the rejoining halves of a sphere. A man who thinks
+his own thoughts much, will often walk through London streets and see
+nothing. In the man who observes only, every passing object mirrors
+itself in its prominent peculiarities, having a kind of harmony with all
+the rest, but arouses no magician from the inner chamber to charm and
+chain its image to his purpose. In Shakspere, on the contrary, every
+outer form of humanity and nature spoke to that ever-moving,
+self-vindicating--we had almost said, and in a sense it would be true,
+self-generating--humanity within him. The sound of any action without
+him, struck in him just the chord which, in motion in him, would have
+produced a similar action. When anything was done, he felt as if he were
+doing it--perception and origination conjoining in one consciousness.
+
+But to this gift was united the gift of utterance, or representation.
+Many a man both receives and generates who, somehow, cannot represent.
+Nothing is more disappointing sometimes than our first experience of the
+artistic attempts of a man who has roused our expectations by a social
+display of familiarity with, and command over, the subjects of
+conversation. Have we not sometimes found that when such a one sought to
+give vital or artistic form to these thoughts, so that they might not be
+born and die in the same moment upon his lips, but might _exist_, a
+poor, weak, faded _simulacrum_ alone was the result? Now Shakspere was a
+great talker, who enraptured the listeners, and was himself so rapt in
+his speech that he could scarcely come to a close; but when he was alone
+with his art, then and then only did he rise to the height of his great
+argument, and all the talk was but as the fallen mortar and stony chips
+lying about the walls of the great temple of his drama.
+
+But, along with all this wealth of artistic speech, an artistic virtue
+of an opposite nature becomes remarkable: his reticence. How often might
+he not say fine things, particularly poetic things, when he does not,
+because it would not suit the character or the time! How many delicate
+points are there not in his plays which we only discover after many
+readings, because he will not put a single tone of success into the flow
+of natural utterance, to draw our attention to the triumph of the
+author, and jar with the all-important reality of his production!
+Wherever an author obtrudes his own self-importance, an unreality is the
+consequence, of a nature similar to that which we feel in the old moral
+plays, when historical and allegorical personages, such as _Julius
+Caesar_ and _Charity_, for instance, are introduced at the same time on
+the same stage, acting in the same story. Shakspere never points to any
+stroke of his own wit or art. We may find it or not: there it is, and no
+matter if no one see it!
+
+Much has been disputed about the degree of consciousness of his own art
+possessed by Shakspere: whether he did it by a grand yet blind impulse,
+or whether he knew what he wanted to do, and knowingly used the means to
+arrive at that end. Now we cannot here enter upon the question; but we
+would recommend any of our readers who are interested in it not to
+attempt to make up their minds upon it before considering a passage in
+another of his poems, which may throw some light on the subject for
+them. It is the description of a painting, contained in "The Rape of
+Lucrece," towards the end of the poem. Its very minuteness involves the
+expression of principles, and reveals that, in relation to an art not
+his own, he could hold principles of execution, and indicate perfection
+of finish, which, to say the least, must proceed from a general capacity
+for art, and therefore might find an equally conscious operation in his
+own peculiar province of it. For our own part, we think that his results
+are a perfect combination of the results of consciousness and
+unconsciousness; consciousness where the arrangements of the play,
+outside the region of inspiration, required the care of the wakeful
+intellect; unconsciousness where the subject itself bore him aloft on
+the wings of its own creative delight.
+
+There is another manifestation of his power which will astonish those
+who consider it. It is this: that, while he was able to go down to the
+simple and grand realities of human nature, which are all tragic; and
+while, therefore, he must rejoice most in such contemplations of human
+nature as find fit outlet in a "Hamlet," a "Lear," a "Timon," or an
+"Othello," the tragedies of Doubt, Ingratitude, and Love, he can yet,
+when he chooses, float on the very surface of human nature, as in
+"Love's Labour's Lost," "The Merry Wives of Windsor," "The Comedy of
+Errors," "The Taming of the Shrew;" or he can descend half way as it
+were, and there remain suspended in the characters and feelings of
+ordinary nice people, who, interesting enough to meet in society, have
+neither received that development, nor are placed in those
+circumstances, which admit of the highest and simplest poetic treatment.
+In these he will bring out the ordinary noble or the ordinary vicious.
+Of this nature are most of his comedies, in which he gives an ideal
+representation of common social life, and steers perfectly clear of what
+in such relations and surroundings would be _heroics_. Look how steadily
+he keeps the noble-minded youth _Orlando_ in this middle region; and
+look how the best comes out at last in the wayward and _recalcitrant_
+and _bizarre_, but honest and true natures of _Beatrice_ and _Benedick_;
+and this without any untruth to the nature of comedy, although the
+circumstances border on the tragic. When he wants to give the deeper
+affairs of the heart, he throws the whole at once out of the social
+circle with its multiform restraints. As in "Hamlet" the stage on which
+the whole is acted is really the heart of _Hamlet_, so he makes his
+visible stage as it were, slope off into the misty infinite, with a
+grey, starless heaven overhead, and Hades open beneath his feet. Hence
+young people brought up in the country understand the tragedies far
+sooner than they can comprehend the comedies. It needs acquaintance with
+society and social ways to clear up the latter.
+
+The remarks we have made on "Hamlet" by way of illustration, lead us to
+point out how Shakspere prepares, in some of his plays, a stage suitable
+for all the representation. In "A Midsummer Night's Dream" the place
+which gives tone to the whole is a midnight wood in the first flush and
+youthful delight of summer. In "As You Like it" it is a daylight wood in
+spring, full of morning freshness, with a cold wind now and then blowing
+through the half-clothed boughs. In "The Tempest" it is a solitary
+island, circled by the mysterious sea-horizon, over which what may come
+who can tell?--a place where the magician may work his will, and have
+all nature at the beck of his superior knowledge.
+
+The only writer who would have had a chance of rivalling Shakspere in
+his own walk, if he had been born in the same period of English history,
+is Chaucer. He has the same gift of individualizing the general, and
+idealizing the portrait. But the best of the dramatic writers of
+Shakspere's time, in their desire of dramatic individualization, forget
+the modifying multiformity belonging to individual humanity. In their
+anxiety to present a _character_, they take, as it were, a human mould,
+label it with a certain peculiarity, and then fill in speeches and forms
+according to the label. Thus the indications of character, of
+peculiarity, so predominate, the whole is so much of one colour, that
+the result resembles one of those allegorical personifications in which,
+as much as possible, everything human is eliminated except what belongs
+to the peculiarity, the personification. How different is it with
+Shakspere's representations! He knows that no human being ever was like
+that. He makes his most peculiar characters speak very much like other
+people; and it is only over the whole that their peculiarities manifest
+themselves with indubitable plainness. The one apparent exception is
+_Jaques_, in "As You Like it." But there we must remember that Shakspere
+is representing a man who so chooses to represent himself. He is a man
+_in his humour_, or his own peculiar and chosen affectation. _Jaques_ is
+the writer of his own part; for with him "all the world's a stage, and
+all the men and women," himself first, "merely players." We have his
+own presentation of himself, not, first of all, as he is, but as he
+chooses to be taken. Of course his real self does come out in it, for no
+man can seem altogether other than he is; and besides, the _Duke_, who
+sees quite through him, rebukes him in the manner already referred to;
+but it is his affectation that gives him the unnatural peculiarity of
+his modes and speeches. He wishes them to be such.
+
+There is, then, for every one of Shakspere's characters the firm ground
+of humanity, upon which the weeds, as well as the flowers, glorious or
+fantastic, as the case may be, show themselves. His more heroic persons
+are the most profoundly human. Nor are his villains unhuman, although
+inhuman enough. Compared with Marlowe's Jew, _Shylock_ is a terrible
+_man_ beside a dreary _monster_, and, as far as logic and the _lex
+talionis_ go, has the best of the argument. It is the strength of human
+nature itself that makes crime strong. Wickedness could have no power of
+itself: it lives by the perverted powers of good. And so great is
+Shakspere's sympathy with _Shylock_ even, in the hard and unjust doom
+that overtakes him, that he dismisses him with some of the spare
+sympathies of the more tender-hearted of his spectators. Nowhere is the
+justice of genius more plain than in Shakspere's utter freedom from
+party-spirit, even with regard to his own creations. Each character
+shall set itself forth from its own point of view, and only in the
+choice and scope of the whole shall the judgment of the poet be beheld.
+He never allows his opinion to come out to the damaging of the
+individual's own self-presentation. He knows well that for the worst
+something can be said, and that a feeling of justice and his own right
+will be strong in the mind of a man who is yet swayed by perfect
+selfishness. Therefore the false man is not discoverable in his speech,
+not merely because the villain will talk as like a true man as he may,
+but because seldom is the villainy clear to the villain's own mind. It
+is impossible for us to determine whether, in their fierce bandying of
+the lie, _Bolingbroke_ or _Norfolk_ spoke the truth. Doubtless each
+believed the other to be the villain that he called him. And Shakspere
+has no desire or need to act the historian in the decision of that
+question. He leaves his reader in full sympathy with the perplexity of
+_Richard_; as puzzled, in fact, as if he had been present at the
+interrupted combat.
+
+If every writer could write up to his own best, we should have far less
+to marvel at in Shakspere. It is in great measure the wealth of
+Shakspere's suggestions, giving him abundance of the best to choose
+from, that lifts him so high above those who, having felt the
+inspiration of a good idea, are forced to go on writing, constructing,
+carpentering, with dreary handicraft, before the exhausted faculty has
+recovered sufficiently to generate another. And then comes in the
+unerring choice of the best of those suggestions. Yet if any one wishes
+to see what variety of the same kind of thoughts he could produce, let
+him examine the treatment of the same business in different plays; as,
+for instance, the way in which instigation to a crime is managed in
+"Macbeth," where _Macbeth_ tempts the two murderers to kill _Banquo_; in
+"King John," when _the King_ tempts _Hubert_ to kill _Arthur_; in "The
+Tempest," when _Antonio_ tempts _Sebastian_ to kill _Alonzo_; in "As You
+Like it," when _Oliver_ instigates _Charles_ to kill _Orlando_; and in
+"Hamlet," where _Claudius_ urges _Laertes_ to the murder of _Hamlet_.
+
+He shows no anxiety about being original. When a man is full of his work
+he forgets himself. In his desire to produce a good play he lays hold
+upon any material that offers itself. He will even take a bad play and
+make a good one of it. One of the most remarkable discoveries to the
+student of Shakspere is the hide-bound poverty of some of the stories,
+which, informed by his life-power; become forms of strength, richness,
+and grace. He does what the _Spirit_ in "Comus" says the music he heard
+might do,--
+
+ "create a soul
+ Under the ribs of death;"
+
+and then death is straightway "clothed upon." And nowhere is the
+refining operation of his genius more evident than in the purification
+of these stories. Characters and incidents which would have been honey
+and nuts to Beaumont and Fletcher are, notwithstanding their dramatic
+recommendations, entirely remodelled by him. The fair _Ophelia_ is, in
+the old tale, a common woman, and _Hamlet's_ mistress; while the policy
+of the _Lady of Belmont_, who in the old story occupies the place for
+which he invented the lovely _Portia_, upon which policy the whole story
+turns, is such that it is as unfit to set forth in our pages as it was
+unfit for Shakspere's purposes of art. His noble art refuses to work
+upon base matter. He sees at once the capabilities of a tale, but he
+will not use it except he may do with it what he pleases.
+
+If we might here offer some assistance to the young student who wants to
+help himself, we would suggest that to follow, in a measure, Plutarch's
+fashion of comparison, will be the most helpful guide to the
+understanding of the poet. Let the reader take any two characters, and
+putting them side by side, look first for differences, and then for
+resemblances between them, with the causes of each; or let him make a
+wider attempt, and setting two plays one over against the other, compare
+or contrast them, and see what will be the result. Let him, for
+instance, take the two characters _Hamlet_ and _Brutus_, and compare
+their beginnings and endings, the resemblances in their characters, the
+differences in their conduct, the likeness and unlikeness of what was
+required of them, the circumstances in which action was demanded of
+each, the helps or hindrances each had to the working out of the problem
+of his life, the way in which each encounters the supernatural, or any
+other question that may suggest itself in reading either of the plays,
+ending off with the main lesson taught in each; and he will be
+astonished to find, if he has not already discovered it, what a rich
+mine of intellectual and spiritual wealth is laid open to his delighted
+eyes. Perhaps not the least valuable end to be so gained is, that the
+young Englishman, who wants to be delivered from any temptation to think
+himself the centre around which the universe revolves, will be aided in
+his endeavours after honourable humility by looking up to the man who
+towers, like Saul, head and shoulders above his brethren, and seeing
+that he is humble, may learn to leave it to the pismire to be angry, to
+the earwig to be conceited, and to the spider to insist on his own
+importance.
+
+But to return to the main course of our observations. The dramas of
+Shakspere are so natural, that this, the greatest praise that can be
+given them, is the ground of one of the difficulties felt by the young
+student in estimating them. The very simplicity of Shakspere's art seems
+to throw him out of any known groove of judgment. When he hears one say,
+"_Look at this, and admire_," he feels inclined to rejoin, "Why, he only
+says in the simplest way what the thing must have been. It is as plain
+as daylight." Yes, to the reader; and because Shakspere wrote it. But
+there were a thousand wrong ways of doing it: Shakspere took the one
+right way. It is he who has made it plain in art, whatever it was before
+in nature; and most likely the very simplicity of it in nature was
+scarcely observed before he saw it and represented it. And is it not the
+glory of art to attain this simplicity? for simplicity is the end of all
+things--all manners, all morals, all religion. To say that the thing
+could not have been done otherwise, is just to say that you forget the
+art in beholding its object, that you forget the mirror because you see
+nature reflected in the mirror. Any one can see the moon in Lord Rosse's
+telescope; but who made the reflector? And let the student try to
+express anything in prose or in verse, in painting or in modelling, just
+as it is. No man knows till he has made many attempts, how hard to reach
+is this simplicity of art. And the greater the success, the fewer are
+the signs of the labour expended. Simplicity is art's perfection.
+
+But so natural are all his plays, and the great tragedies to which we
+would now refer in particular, amongst the rest, that it may appear to
+some, at first sight, that Shakspere could not have constructed them
+after any moral plan, could have had no lesson of his own to teach in
+them, seeing they bear no marks of individual intent, in that they
+depart nowhere from, nature, the construction of the play itself going
+straight on like a history. The directness of his plays springs in part
+from the fact that it is humanity and not circumstance that Shakspere
+respects. Circumstance he uses only for the setting forth of humanity;
+and for the plot of circumstance, so much in favour with Ben Jonson, and
+others of his contemporaries, he cares nothing. As to their looking too
+natural to have any design in them, we are not of those who believe that
+it is unlike nature to have a design and a result. If the proof of a
+high aim is to be what the critics used to call _poetic justice_, a kind
+of justice that one would gladly find more of in grocers' and
+linen-drapers' shops, but can as well spare from a poem, then we must
+say that he has not always a high end: the wicked man is not tortured,
+nor is the good man smothered in bank-notes and rose-leaves. Even when
+he shows the outward ruin and death that comes upon Macbeth at last, it
+is only as an unavoidable little consequence, following in the wake of
+the mighty vengeance of nature, even of God, that Macbeth cannot say
+_Amen_; that Macbeth can sleep no more; that Macbeth is "cabined
+cribbed, confined, bound in to saucy doubts and fears;" that his very
+brain is a charnel-house, whence arise the ghosts of his own murders,
+till he envies the very dead the rest to which his hand has sent them.
+That immediate and eternal vengeance upon crime, and that inner reward
+of well-doing, never fail in nature or in Shakspere, appear as such a
+matter of course that they hardly look like design either in nature or
+in the mirror which he holds up to her. The secret is that, in the
+ideal, habit and design are one.
+
+Most authors seem anxious to round off and finish everything in full
+sight. Most of Shakspere's tragedies compel our thoughts to follow their
+_persons_ across the bourn. They need, as Jean Paul says, a piece of the
+next world painted in to complete the picture, And this is surely
+nature: but it need not therefore be no design. What could be done with
+Hamlet, but send him into a region where he has some chance of finding
+his difficulties solved; where he will know that his reverence for God,
+which was the sole stay left him in the flood of human worthlessness,
+has not been in vain; that the skies are not "a foul and pestilent
+congregation of vapours;" that there are noble women, though his mother
+was false and Ophelia weak; and that there are noble men, although his
+uncle and Laertes were villains and his old companions traitors? If
+Hamlet is not to die, the whole of the play must perish under the
+accusation that the hero of it is left at last with only a superadded
+misery, a fresh demand for action, namely, to rule a worthless people,
+as they seem to him, when action has for him become impossible; that he
+has to live on, forsaken even of death, which will not come though the
+cup of misery is at the brim.
+
+But a high end may be gained in this world, and the vision into the
+world beyond so justified, as in King Lear. The passionate, impulsive,
+unreasoning old king certainly must have given his wicked daughters
+occasion enough of making the charges to which their avarice urged them.
+He had learned very little by his life of kingship. He was but a boy
+with grey hair. He had had no inner experiences. And so all the
+development of manhood and age has to be crowded into the few remaining
+weeks of his life. His own folly and blindness supply the occasion. And
+before the few weeks are gone, he has passed through all the stages of a
+fever of indignation and wrath, ending in a madness from which love
+redeems him; he has learned that a king is nothing if the man is
+nothing; that a king ought to care for those who cannot help themselves;
+that love has not its origin or grounds in favours flowing from royal
+resource and munificence, and yet that love is the one thing worth
+living for, which gained, it is time to die. And now that he has the
+experience that life can give, has become a child in simplicity of heart
+and judgment, he cannot lose his daughter again; who, likewise, has
+learned the one thing she needed, as far as her father was concerned, a
+little more excusing tenderness. In the same play it cannot be by chance
+that at its commencement Gloucester speaks with the utmost carelessness
+and _off-hand_ wit about the parentage of his natural son Edmund, but
+finds at last that this son is his ruin.
+
+Edgar, the true son, says to Edmund, after having righteously dealt him
+his death-wound,--
+
+ "The gods are just, and of our pleasant vices
+ Make instruments to scourge us:
+ The dark and vicious place where thee he got
+ Cost him his eyes."
+
+To which the dying and convicted villain replies,--
+
+ "Thou hast spoken right; 'tis true:
+ The wheel is come full circle; I am here."
+
+Could anything be put more plainly than the moral lesson in this?
+
+It would be easy to produce examples of fine design from his comedies as
+well; as for instance, from "Much Ado about Nothing:" the two who are
+made to fall in love with each other, by being each severally assured of
+possessing the love of the other, Beatrice and Benedick, are shown
+beforehand to have a strong inclination towards each other, manifested
+in their continual squabbling after a good-humoured fashion; but not all
+this is sufficient to make them heartily in love, until they find out
+the nobility of each other's character in their behaviour about the
+calumniated Hero; and the author takes care they shall not be married
+without a previous acquaintance with the trick that has been played upon
+them. Indeed we think the remark, that Shakspere never leaves any of his
+characters the same at the end of a play as he took them up at the
+beginning, will be found to be true. They are better or worse, wiser or
+more irretrievably foolish. The historical plays would illustrate the
+remark as well as any.
+
+But of all the terrible plays we are inclined to think "Timon" the most
+terrible, and to doubt whether justice has been done to the finish and
+completeness of it. At the same time we are inclined to think that it
+was printed (first in the first folio, 1623, seven years after
+Shakspere's death) from a copy, corrected by the author, but not
+_written fair_, and containing consequent mistakes. The same account
+might belong to others of the plays, but more evidently perhaps belongs
+to the "Timon." The idea of making the generous spendthrift, whose old
+idolaters had forsaken him because the idol had no more to give, into
+the high-priest of the Temple of Mammon, dispensing the gold which he
+hated and despised, that it might be a curse to the race which he had
+learned to hate and despise as well; and the way in which Shakspere
+discloses the depths of Timon's wound, by bringing him into comparison
+with one who hates men by profession and humour--are as powerful as
+anything to be found even in Shakspere.
+
+We are very willing to believe that "Julius Caesar" was one of his
+latest plays; for certainly it is the play in which he has represented a
+hero in the high and true sense. _Brutus_ is this hero, of course; a
+hero because he will do what he sees to be right, independently of
+personal feeling or personal advantage. Nor does his attempt fail from
+any overweening or blindness, in himself. Had he known that the various
+papers thrown in his way, were the concoctions of _Cassius_, he would
+not have made the mistake of supposing that the Romans longed for
+freedom, and therefore would be ready to defend it. As it was, he
+attempted to liberate a people which did not feel its slavery. He failed
+for others, but not for himself; for his truth was such that everybody
+was true to him. Unlike Jaques with his seven acts of the burlesque of
+human life, Brutus says at the last,--
+
+ "Countrymen,
+ My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life,
+ I found no man but he was true to me."
+
+Of course all this is in Plutarch. But it is easy to see with what
+relish Shakspere takes it up, setting forth all the aids in himself and
+in others which Brutus had to being a hero, and thus making the
+representation as credible as possible.
+
+We must heartily confess that no amount of genius alone will make a man
+a good man; that genius only shows the right way--drives no man to walk
+in it. But there is surely some moral scent in us to let us know whether
+a man only cares for good from an artistic point of view, or whether he
+admires and loves good. This admiration and love cannot be _prominently_
+set forth by any dramatist true to his art; but it must come out over
+the whole. His predilections must show themselves in the scope of his
+artistic life, in the things and subjects he chooses, and the way in
+which he represents them. Notwithstanding Uncle Toby and Maria, who will
+venture to say that Sterne was noble or virtuous, when he looks over the
+whole that he has written? But in Shakspere there is no suspicion of a
+cloven foot. Everywhere he is on the side of virtue and of truth. Many
+small arguments, with great cumulative force, might be adduced to this
+effect.
+
+For ourselves we cannot easily believe that the calmness of his art
+could be so unvarying except he exercised it with a good conscience;
+that he could have kept looking out upon the world around him with the
+untroubled regard necessary for seeing all things as they are, except
+there had been peace in his house at home; that he could have known all
+men as he did, and failed to know himself. We can understand the
+co-existence of any degree of partial or excited genius with evil ways,
+but we cannot understand the existence of such calm and universal
+genius, wrought out in his works, except in association with all that is
+noblest in human nature. Nor is it other than on the side of the
+argument for his rectitude that he never forces rectitude upon the
+attention of others. The strong impression left upon our minds is, that
+however Shakspere may have strayed in the early portion of his life in
+London, he was not only an upright and noble man for the main part, but
+a repentant man, and a man whose life was influenced by the truths of
+Christianity.
+
+Much is now said about a memorial to Shakspere. The best and only true
+memorial is no doubt that described in Milton's poem on this very
+subject: the living and ever-changing monument of human admiration,
+expressed in the faces and forms of those absorbed in the reading of his
+works. But if the external monument might be such as to foster the
+constant reproduction of the inward monument of love and admiration,
+then, indeed, it might be well to raise one; and with this object in
+view let us venture to propose one mode which we think would favour the
+attainment of it.
+
+Let a Gothic hall of the fourteenth century be built; such a hall as
+would be more in the imagination of Shakspere than any of the
+architecture of his own time. Let all the copies that can be procured of
+every early edition of his works, singly or collectively, be stored in
+this hall. Let a copy of every other edition ever printed be procured
+and deposited. Let every book or treatise that can be found, good, bad,
+or indifferent, written about Shakspere or any of his works, be likewise
+collected for the Shakspere library. Let a special place be allotted to
+the shameless corruptions of his plays that have been produced as
+improvements upon them, some of which, to the disgrace of England, still
+partially occupy the stage instead of what Shakspere wrote. Let one
+department contain every work of whatever sort that tends to direct
+elucidation of his meaning, chiefly those of the dramatic writers who
+preceded him and closely followed him. Let the windows be filled with
+stained glass, representing the popular sports of his own time and the
+times of his English histories. Let a small museum be attached,
+containing all procurable antiquities that are referred to in his plays,
+along with first editions, if possible, of the best books that came out
+in his time, and were probably read by him. Let the whole thus as much
+as possible represent his time. Let a marble statue in the midst do the
+best that English art can accomplish for the representation of the
+vanished man; and let copies, if not the originals, of the several
+portraits be safely shrined for the occasional beholding of the
+multitude. Let the perpetuity of care necessary for this monument be
+secured by endowment; and let it be for the use of the public, by means
+of a reading-room fitted for the comfort of all who choose to avail
+themselves of these facilities for a true acquaintance with our greatest
+artist. Let there likewise be a simple and moderately-sized theatre
+attached, not for regular, but occasional use; to be employed for the
+representation of Shakspere's plays _only_, and allowed free of expense
+for amateur or other representations of them for charitable purposes.
+But within a certain cycle of years--if, indeed, it would be too much to
+expect that out of the London play-goers a sufficient number would be
+found to justify the representation of all the plays of Shakspere once
+in the season--let the whole of Shakspere's plays be acted in the best
+manner possible to the managers for the time being.
+
+The very existence of such a theatre would be a noble protest of the
+highest kind against the sort of play, chiefly translated and adapted
+from the French, which infests our boards, the low tone of which, even
+where it is not decidedly immoral, does more harm than any amount of the
+rough, honest plain-spokenness of Shakspere, as judged by our more
+fastidious, if not always purer manners. The representation of such
+plays forms the real ground of objection to theatre-going. We believe
+that other objections, which may be equally urged against large
+assemblies of any sort, are not really grounded upon such an amount of
+objectionable fact as good people often suppose. At all events it is not
+against the drama itself, but its concomitants, its avoidable
+concomitants, that such objections are, or ought to be, felt and
+directed. The dramatic impulse, as well as all other impulses of our
+nature, are from the Maker.
+
+A monument like this would help to change a blind enthusiasm and a
+_dilettante_-talk into knowledge, reverence, and study; and surely this
+would be the true way to honour the memory of the man who appeals to
+posterity by no mighty deeds of worldly prowess, but has left behind him
+food for heart, brain, and conscience, on which the generations will
+feed till the end of time. It would be the one true and natural mode of
+perpetuating his fame in kind; helping him to do more of that for which
+he was born, and because of which we humbly desire to do him honour, as
+the years flow farther away from the time when, at the age of fifty-two,
+he left the world a richer legacy of the results of intellectual labour
+than any other labourer in literature has ever done. It would be to
+raise a monument to his mind more than to his person.
+
+But to honour Shakspere in the best way we must not gaze upon some grand
+memorial of his fame, we must not talk largely of his wonderful doings,
+we must not even behold the representation of his works on the stage,
+invaluable aid as that is to the right understanding of what he has
+written; but we must, by close, silent, patient study, enter into an
+understanding with the spirit of the departed poet-sage, and thus let
+his own words be the necromantic spell that raises the dead, and brings
+us into communion with that man who knew what was in men more than any
+other mere man ever did. Well was it for Shakspere that he was humble;
+else on what a desolate pinnacle of companionless solitude must he have
+stood! Where was he to find his peers? To most thoughtful minds it is a
+terrible fancy to suppose that there were no greater human being than
+themselves. From the terror of such a _truth_ Shakspere's love for men
+preserved him. He did not think about himself so much as he thought
+about them. Had he been a self-student alone, or chiefly, could he ever
+have written those dramas? We close with the repetition of this truth:
+that the love of our kind is the one key to the knowledge of humanity
+and of ourselves. And have we not sacred authority for concluding that
+he who loves his brother is the more able and the more likely to love
+Him who made him and his brother also, and then told them that love is
+the fulfilling of the law?
+
+
+
+
+THE ART OF SHAKSPERE, AS REVEALED BY HIMSELF.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1863.]
+
+
+ Who taught you this?
+ I learn'd it out of women's faces.
+
+_Winter's Tale_, Act ii. scene 1.
+
+
+One occasionally hears the remark, that the commentators upon Shakspere
+find far more in Shakspere than Shakspere ever intended to express.
+Taking this assertion as it stands, it may be freely granted, not only
+of Shakspere, but of every writer of genius. But if it be intended by
+it, that nothing can _exist_ in any work of art beyond what the writer
+was conscious of while in the act of producing it, so much of its scope
+is false.
+
+No artist can have such a claim to the high title of _creator_, as that
+he invents for himself the forms, by means of which he produces his new
+result; and all the forms of man and nature which he modifies and
+combines to make a new region in his world of art, have their own
+original life and meaning. The laws likewise of their various
+combinations are natural laws, harmonious with each other. While,
+therefore, the artist employs many or few of their original aspects for
+his immediate purpose, he does not and cannot thereby deprive them of
+the many more which are essential to their vitality, and the vitality
+likewise of his presentation of them, although they form only the
+background from which his peculiar use of them stands out. The objects
+presented must therefore fall, to the eye of the observant reader, into
+many different combinations and harmonies of operation and result, which
+are indubitably there, whether the writer saw them or not. These latent
+combinations and relations will be numerous and true, in proportion to
+the scope and the truth of the representation; and the greater the
+number of meanings, harmonious with each other, which any work of art
+presents, the greater claim it has to be considered a work of genius. It
+must, therefore, be granted, and that joyfully, that there may be
+meanings in Shakspere's writings which Shakspere himself did not see,
+and to which therefore his art, as art, does not point.
+
+But the probability, notwithstanding, must surely be allowed as well,
+that, in great artists, the amount of conscious art will bear some
+proportion to the amount of unconscious truth: the visible volcanic
+light will bear a true relation to the hidden fire of the globe; so that
+it will not seem likely that, in such a writer as Shakspere, we should
+find many indications of present and operative _art_, of which he was
+himself unaware. Some truths may be revealed through him, which he
+himself knew only potentially; but it is not likely that marks of work,
+bearing upon the results of the play, should be fortuitous, or that the
+work thus indicated should be unconscious work. A stroke of the mallet
+may be more effective than the sculptor had hoped; but it was intended.
+In the drama it is easier to discover individual marks of the chisel,
+than in the marble whence all signs of such are removed: in the drama
+the lines themselves fall into the general finish, without necessary
+obliteration as lines: Still, the reader cannot help being fearful,
+lest, not as regards truth only, but as regards art as well, he be
+sometimes clothing the idol of his intellect with the weavings of his
+fancy. My conviction is, that it is the very consummateness of
+Shakspere's art, that exposes his work to the doubt that springs from
+loving anxiety for his honour; the dramatist, like the sculptor,
+avoiding every avoidable hint of the process, in order to render the
+result a vital whole. But, fortunately, we are not left to argue
+entirely from probabilities. He has himself given us a peep into his
+studio--let me call it _workshop_, as more comprehensive.
+
+It is not, of course, in the shape of _literary_ criticism, that we
+should expect to meet such a revelation; for to use art even
+consciously, and to regard it as an object of contemplation, or to
+theorize about it, are two very different mental operations. The
+productive and critical faculties are rarely found in equal combination;
+and even where they are, they cannot operate equally in regard to the
+same object. There is a perfect satisfaction in producing, which does
+not demand a re-presentation to the critical faculty. In other words,
+the criticism which a great writer brings to bear upon his own work, is
+from within, regarding it upon the hidden side, namely, in relation to
+his own idea; whereas criticism, commonly understood, has reference to
+the side turned to the public gaze. Neither could we expect one so
+prolific as Shakspere to find time for the criticism of the works of
+other men, except in such moments of relaxation as those in which the
+friends at the Mermaid Tavern sat silent beneath the flow of his wisdom
+and humour, or made the street ring with the overflow of their own
+enjoyment.
+
+But if the artist proceed to speculate upon the nature or productions of
+another art than his own, we may then expect the principles upon which
+he operates in his own, to take outward and visible form--a form
+modified by the difference of the art to which he now applies them. In
+one of Shakspere's poems, we have the description of an imagined
+production of a sister-art--that of Painting--a description so brilliant
+that the light reflected from the poet-picture illumines the art of the
+Poet himself, revealing the principles which he held with regard to
+representative art generally, and suggesting many thoughts with regard
+to detail and harmony, finish, pregnancy, and scope. This description is
+found in "The Rape of Lucrece." Apology will hardly be necessary for
+making a long quotation, seeing that, besides the convenience it will
+afford of easy reference to the ground of my argument, one of the
+greatest helps which even the artist can give to us, is to isolate
+peculiar beauties, and so compel us to perceive them.
+
+Lucrece has sent a messenger to beg the immediate presence of her
+husband. Awaiting his return, and worn out with weeping, she looks about
+for some variation of her misery.
+
+ 1.
+
+ At last she calls to mind where hangs a piece
+ Of skilful painting, made for Priam's Troy;
+ Before the which is drawn the power of Greece,
+ For Helen's rape the city to destroy,
+ Threatening cloud-kissing Ilion with annoy;
+ Which the conceited painter drew so proud,
+ As heaven, it seemed, to kiss the turrets, bowed.
+
+ 2.
+
+ A thousand lamentable objects there,
+ In scorn of Nature, Art gave lifeless life:
+ Many a dry drop seemed a weeping tear,
+ Shed for the slaughtered husband by the wife;
+ The red blood reeked, to show the painter's strife.
+ And dying eyes gleamed forth their ashy lights,
+ Like dying coals burnt out in tedious nights.
+
+ 3.
+
+ There might you see the labouring pioneer
+ Begrimed with sweat, and smeared all with dust;
+ And, from the towers of Troy there would appear
+ The very eyes of men through loopholes thrust,
+ Gazing upon the Greeks with little lust:
+ Such sweet observance in this work was had,
+ That one might see those far-off eyes look sad.
+
+ 4.
+
+ In great commanders, grace and majesty
+ You might behold, triumphing in their faces;
+ In youth, quick bearing and dexterity;
+ And here and there the painter interlaces
+ Pale cowards, marching on with trembling paces,
+ Which heartless peasants did so well resemble,
+ That one would swear he saw them quake and tremble.
+
+ 5.
+
+ In Ajax and Ulysses, O what art
+ Of physiognomy might one behold!
+ The face of either ciphered either's heart;
+ Their face their manners most expressly told:
+ In Ajax' eyes blunt rage and rigour rolled;
+ But the mild glance that sly Ulysses lent
+ Showed deep regard, and smiling government.
+
+ 6.
+
+ There pleading might you see grave Nestor stand,
+ As 'twere encouraging the Greeks to fight;
+ Making such sober action with his hand,
+ That it beguiled attention, charmed the sight;
+ In speech, it seemed his beard, all silver-white,
+ Wagged up and down, and from his lips did fly
+ Thin winding breath, which purled up to the sky.
+
+ 7.
+
+ About him were a press of gaping faces,
+ Which seemed to swallow up his sound advice;
+ All jointly listening, but with several graces,
+ As if some mermaid did their ears entice;
+ Some high, some low, the painter was so nice.
+ The scalps of many, almost hid behind,
+ To jump up higher seemed, to mock the mind.
+
+ 8.
+
+ Here one man's hand leaned on another's head,
+ His nose being shadowed by his neighbour's ear;
+ Here one, being thronged, bears back, all bollen and red;
+ Another, smothered, seems to pelt and swear;
+ And in their rage such signs of rage they bear,
+ As, but for loss of Nestor's golden words,
+ It seemed they would debate with angry swords.
+
+ 9.
+
+ For much imaginary work was there;
+ Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind,
+ That for Achilles' image stood his spear,
+ Griped in an armed hand; himself behind
+ Was left unseen, save to the eye of mind:
+ A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head,
+ Stood for the whole to be imagined.
+
+ 10.
+
+ And, from the walls of strong-besieged Troy,
+ When their brave hope, bold Hector, marched to field,
+ Stood many Trojan mothers, sharing joy
+ To see their youthful sons bright weapons wield,
+ And to their hope they such odd action yield;
+ That through their light joy seemed to appear,
+ Like bright things stained, a kind of heavy fear.
+
+ 11.
+
+ And from the strond of Dardan, where they fought,
+ To Simois' reedy banks, the red blood ran;
+ Whose waves to imitate the battle sought,
+ With swelling ridges; and their ranks began
+ To break upon the galled shore, and then
+ Retire again, till, meeting greater ranks,
+ They join, and shoot their foam at Simois' banks.
+
+The oftener I read these verses, amongst the very earliest compositions
+of Shakspere, I am the more impressed with the carefulness with which he
+represents the _work_ of the picture--"shows the strife of the painter."
+The most natural thought to follow in sequence is: How like his own art!
+
+The scope and variety of the whole picture, in which mass is effected by
+the accumulation of individuality; in which, on the one hand, Troy
+stands as the impersonation of the aim and object of the whole; and on
+the other, the Simois flows in foaming rivalry of the strife of
+men,--the pictorial form of that sympathy of nature with human effort
+and passion, which he so often introduces in his plays,--is like nothing
+else so much as one of the works of his own art. But to take a portion
+as a more condensed representation of his art in combining all varieties
+into one harmonious whole: his genius is like the oratory of Nestor as
+described by its effects in the seventh and eighth stanzas. Every
+variety of attitude and countenance and action is harmonized by the
+influence which is at once the occasion of debate, and the charm which
+restrains by the fear of its own loss: the eloquence and the listening
+form the one bond of the unruly mass. So the dramatic genius that
+harmonizes his play, is visible only in its effects; so ethereal in its
+own essence that it refuses to be submitted to the analysis of the ruder
+intellect, it is like the words of Nestor, for which in the picture
+there stands but "thin winding breath which purled up to the sky." Take,
+for an instance of this, the reconciling power by which, in the
+mysterious midnight of the summer-wood, he brings together in one
+harmony the graceful passions of childish elves, and the fierce passions
+of men and women, with the ludicrous reflection of those passions in the
+little convex mirror of the artisan's drama; while the mischievous Puck
+revels in things that fall out preposterously, and the Elf-Queen is in
+love with ass-headed Bottom, from the hollows of whose long hairy
+ears--strange bouquet-holders--bloom and breathe the musk-roses, the
+characteristic odour-founts of the play; and the philosophy of the
+unbelieving Theseus, with the candour of Hippolyta, lifts the whole into
+relation with the realities of human life. Or take, as another instance,
+the pretended madman Edgar, the court-fool, and the rugged old king
+going grandly mad, sheltered in one hut, and lapped in the roar of a
+thunderstorm.
+
+My object, then, in respect to this poem, is to produce, from many
+instances, a few examples of the metamorphosis of such excellences as he
+describes in the picture, into the corresponding forms of the drama; in
+the hope that it will not then be necessary to urge the probability that
+the presence of those artistic virtues in his own practice, upon which
+he expatiates in his representation of another man's art, were
+accompanied by the corresponding consciousness--that, namely, of the
+artist as differing from that of the critic, its objects being regarded
+from the concave side of the hammered relief. If this probability be
+granted, I would, from it, advance to a higher and far more important
+conclusion--how unlikely it is that if the writer was conscious of such
+fitnesses, he should be unconscious of those grand embodiments of truth,
+which are indubitably present in his plays, whether he knew it or not.
+This portion of my argument will be strengthened by an instance to show
+that Shakspere was himself quite at home in the contemplation of such
+truths.
+
+Let me adduce, then, some of those corresponding embodiments in words
+instead of in forms; in which colours yield to tones, lines to phrases.
+I will begin with the lowest kind, in which the art has to do with
+matters so small, that it is difficult to believe that _unconscious_ art
+could have any relation to them. They can hardly have proceeded directly
+from the great inspiration of the whole. Their very minuteness is an
+argument for their presence to the poet's consciousness; while
+belonging, as they do, only to the _construction_ of the play, no such
+independent existence can be accorded to them, as to _truths_, which,
+being in themselves realities, _are_ there, whether Shakspere saw them
+or not. If he did not intend them, the most that can be said for them
+is, that such is the naturalness of Shakspere's representations, that
+there is room in his plays, as in life, for those wonderful coincidences
+which are reducible to no law.
+
+Perhaps every one of the examples I adduce will be found open to
+dispute. This is a kind in which direct proof can have no share; nor
+should I have dared thus to combine them in argument, but for the ninth
+stanza of those quoted above, to which I beg my readers to revert. Its
+_imaginary work_ means--work hinted at, and then left to the imagination
+of the reader. Of course, in dramatic representation, such work must
+exist on a great scale; but the minute particularization of the "conceit
+deceitful" in the rest of the stanza, will surely justify us in thinking
+it possible that Shakspere intended many, if not all, of the _little_
+fitnesses which a careful reader discovers in his plays. That such are
+not oftener discovered comes from this: that, like life itself, he so
+blends into vital beauty, that there are no salient points. To use a
+homely simile: he is not like the barn-door fowl, that always runs out
+cackling when she has laid an egg; and often when she has not. In the
+tone of an ordinary drama, you may know when something is coming; and
+the tone itself declares--_I have done it_. But Shakspere will not spoil
+his art to show his art. It is there, and does its part: that is enough.
+If you can discover it, good and well; if not, pass on, and take what
+you can find. He can afford not to be fathomed for every little pearl
+that lies at the bottom of his ocean. If I succeed in showing that such
+art may exist where it is not readily discovered, this may give some
+additional probability to its existence in places where it is harder to
+isolate and define.
+
+To produce a few instances, then:
+
+In "Much Ado about Nothing," seeing the very nature of the play is
+expressed in its name, is it not likely that Shakspere named the two
+constables, Dogberry (_a poisonous berry_) and Verjuice (_the juice of
+crab-apples_); those names having absolutely nothing to do with the
+stupid innocuousness of their characters, and so corresponding to their
+way of turning things upside down, and saying the very opposite of what
+they mean?
+
+In the same play we find Margaret objecting to her mistress's wearing a
+certain rebato (_a large plaited ruff_), on the morning of her wedding:
+may not this be intended to relate to the fact that Margaret had dressed
+in her mistress's clothes the night before? She might have rumpled or
+soiled it, and so feared discovery.
+
+In "King Henry IV.," Part I., we find, in the last scene, that the
+Prince kills Hotspur. This is not recorded in history: the conqueror of
+Percy is unknown. Had it been a fact, history would certainly have
+recorded it; and the silence of history in regard to a deed of such
+mark, is equivalent to its contradiction. But Shakspere requires, for
+his play's sake, to identify the slayer of Hotspur with his rival the
+Prince. Yet Shakspere will not contradict history, even in its silence.
+What is he to do? He will account for history _not knowing_ the
+fact.--Falstaff claiming the honour, the Prince says to him:
+
+ "For my part, if a lie may do thee grace,
+ I'll gild it with the happiest terms I have;"
+
+revealing thus the magnificence of his own character, in his readiness,
+for the sake of his friend, to part with his chief renown. But the
+Historic Muse could not believe that fat Jack Falstaff had killed
+Hotspur, and therefore she would not record the claim.
+
+In the second part of the same play, act i. scene 2, we find Falstaff
+toweringly indignant with Mr. Dombledon, the silk mercer, that he will
+stand upon security with a gentleman for a short cloak and slops of
+satin. In the first scene of the second act, the hostess mentions that
+Sir John is going to dine with Master Smooth, the silkman. Foiled with
+Mr. Dombledon, he has already made himself so agreeable to Master
+Smooth, that he is "indited to dinner" with him. This is, by the bye, as
+to the action of the play; but as to the character of Sir John, is it
+not
+
+ "Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind"--_kinned--natural_?
+
+The _conceit deceitful_ in the painting, is the imagination that means
+more than its says. So the words of the speakers in the play, stand for
+more than the speakers mean. They are _Shakspere's_ in their relation to
+his whole. To Achilles, his spear is but his spear: to the painter and
+his company, the spear of Achilles stands for Achilles himself.
+
+Coleridge remarks upon _James Gurney_, in "King John:" "How individual
+and comical he is with the four words allowed to his dramatic life!"
+These words are those with which he answers the Bastard's request to
+leave the room. He has been lingering with all the inquisitiveness and
+privilege of an old servant; when Faulconbridge says: "James Gurney,
+wilt thou give us leave a while?" with strained politeness. With marked
+condescension to the request of the second son, whom he has known and
+served from infancy, James Gurney replies: "Good leave, good Philip;"
+giving occasion to Faulconbridge to show his ambition, and scorn of his
+present standing, in the contempt with which he treats even the
+Christian name he is so soon to exchange with his surname for _Sir
+Richard_ and _Plantagenet; Philip_ being the name for a sparrow in those
+days, when ladies made pets of them. Surely in these words of the
+serving-man, we have an outcome of the same art by which
+
+ "A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head,
+ Stood for the whole to be imagined."
+
+In the "Winter's Tale," act iv. scene 3, Perdita, dressed with unwonted
+gaiety at the festival of the sheep-shearing, is astonished at finding
+herself talking in full strains of poetic verse. She says, half-ashamed:
+
+ "Methinks I play as I have seen them do
+ In Whitsun pastorals: sure, this robe of mine
+ Does change my disposition!"
+
+She does not mean this seriously. But the robe has more to do with it
+than she thinks. Her passion for Florizel is the warmth that sets the
+springs of her thoughts free, and they flow with the grace belonging to
+a princess-nature; but it is the robe that opens the door of her speech,
+and, by elevating her consciousness of herself, betrays her into what is
+only natural to her, but seems to her, on reflection, inconsistent with
+her low birth and poor education. This instance, however, involves far
+higher elements than any of the examples I have given before, and
+naturally leads to a much more important class of illustrations.
+
+In "Macbeth," act ii. scene 4, why is the old man, who has nothing to do
+with the conduct of the play, introduced?--That, in conversation with
+Rosse, he may, as an old man, bear testimony to the exceptionally
+terrific nature of that storm, which, we find--from the words of Banquo:
+
+ "There's husbandry in heaven:
+ Their candles are all out,"--
+
+had begun to gather, before supper was over in the castle. This storm is
+the sympathetic horror of Nature at the breaking open of the Lord's
+anointed temple--horror in which the animal creation partakes, for the
+horses of Duncan, "the minions of their race," and therefore the most
+sensitive of their sensitive race, tear each other to pieces in the
+wildness of their horror. Consider along with this a foregoing portion
+of the second scene in the same act. Macbeth, having joined his wife
+after the murder, says:
+
+ "Who lies i' the second chamber?
+
+ "_Lady M._ Donalbain.
+ * * * * *
+ "There are two lodged together."
+
+These two, Macbeth says, woke each other--the one laughing, the other
+crying _murder_. Then they said their prayers and went to sleep
+again.--I used to think that the natural companion of Donalbain would be
+Malcolm, his brother; and that the two brothers woke in horror from the
+proximity of their father's murderer who was just passing the door. A
+friend objected to this, that, had they been together, Malcolm, being
+the elder, would have been mentioned rather than Donalbain. Accept this
+objection, and we find a yet more delicate significance: the _presence_
+operated differently on the two, one bursting out in a laugh, the other
+crying _murder_; but both were in terror when they awoke, and dared not
+sleep till they had said their prayers. His sons, his horses, the
+elements themselves, are shaken by one unconscious sympathy with the
+murdered king.
+
+Associate with this the end of the third scene of the fourth act of
+"Julius Caesar;" where we find that the attendants of Brutus all cry out
+in their sleep, as the ghost of Caesar leaves their master's tent. This
+outcry is not given in Plutarch.
+
+To return to "Macbeth:" Why is the doctor of medicine introduced in the
+scene at the English court? He has nothing to do with the progress of
+the play itself, any more than the old man already alluded to.--He is
+introduced for a precisely similar reason.--As a doctor, he is the best
+testimony that could be adduced to the fact, that the English King
+Edward the Confessor, is a fountain of health to his people, gifted for
+his goodness with the sacred privilege of curing _The King's Evil_, by
+the touch of his holy hands. The English King himself is thus
+introduced, for the sake of contrast with the Scotch King, who is a
+raging bear amongst his subjects.
+
+In the "Winter's Tale," to which he gives the name because of the
+altogether extraordinary character of the occurrences (referring to it
+in the play itself, in the words: "_a sad tale's best for winter: I have
+one of sprites and goblins_") Antigonus has a remarkable dream or
+vision, in which Hermione appears to him, and commands the exposure of
+her child in a place to all appearance the most unsuitable and
+dangerous. Convinced of the reality of the vision, Antigonus obeys; and
+the whole marvellous result depends upon this obedience. Therefore the
+vision must be intended for a genuine one. But how could it be such, if
+Hermione was not dead, as, from her appearance to him, Antigonus firmly
+believed she was? I should feel this to be an objection to the art of
+the play, but for the following answer:--At the time she appeared to
+him, she was still lying in that deathlike swoon, into which she fell
+when the news of the loss of her son reached her as she stood before the
+judgment-seat of her husband, at a time when she ought not to have been
+out of her chamber.
+
+Note likewise, in the first scene of the second act of the same play,
+the changefulness of Hermione's mood with regard to her boy, as
+indicative of her condition at the time. If we do not regard this fact,
+we shall think the words introduced only for the sake of filling up the
+business of the play.
+
+In "Twelfth Night," both ladies make the first advances in love. Is it
+not worthy of notice that one of them has lost her brother, and that the
+other believes she has lost hers? In this respect, they may be placed
+with Phoebe, in "As You Like It," who, having suddenly lost her love by
+the discovery that its object was a woman, immediately and heartily
+accepts the devotion of her rejected lover, Silvius. Along with these
+may be classed Romeo, who, rejected and, as he believes, inconsolable,
+falls in love with Juliet the moment he sees her. That his love for
+Rosaline, however, was but a kind of _calf-love_ compared with his love
+for Juliet, may be found indicated in the differing tones of his speech
+under the differing conditions. Compare what he says in his conversation
+with Benvolio, in the first scene of the first act, with any of his many
+speeches afterwards, and, while _conceit_ will be found prominent enough
+in both, the one will be found to be ruled by the fancy, the other by
+the imagination.
+
+In this same play, there is another similar point which I should like to
+notice. In Arthur Brook's story, from which Shakspere took his, there is
+no mention of any communication from Lady Capulet to Juliet of their
+intention of marrying her to Count Paris. Why does Shakspere insert
+this?--to explain her falling in love with Romeo so suddenly. Her mother
+has set her mind moving in that direction. She has never seen Paris. She
+is looking about her, wondering which may be he, and whether she shall
+be able to like him, when she meets the love-filled eyes of Romeo fixed
+upon her, and is at once overcome. What a significant speech is that
+given to Paulina in the "Winter's Tale," act v. scene 1: "How? Not
+women?" Paulina is a thorough partisan, siding with women against men,
+and strengthened in this by the treatment her mistress has received from
+her husband. One has just said to her, that, if Perdita would begin a
+sect, she might "make proselytes of who she bid but follow." "How? Not
+women?" Paulina rejoins. Having received assurance that "women will love
+her," she has no more to say.
+
+I had the following explanation of a line in "Twelfth Night" from a
+stranger I met in an old book-shop:--Malvolio, having built his castle
+in the air, proceeds to inhabit it. Describing his own behaviour in a
+supposed case, he says (act ii. scene 5): "I frown the while; and
+perchance, wind up my watch, or play with my some rich jewel"--A dash
+ought to come after _my_. Malvolio was about to say _chain_; but
+remembering that his chain was the badge of his office of steward, and
+therefore of his servitude, he alters the word to "_some rich jewel_"
+uttered with pretended carelessness.
+
+In "Hamlet," act iii. scene 1, did not Shakspere intend the passionate
+soliloquy of Ophelia--a soliloquy which no maiden knowing that she was
+overheard would have uttered,--coupled with the words of her father:
+
+ "How now, Ophelia?
+ You need not tell us what lord Hamlet said,
+ We heard it all;"--
+
+to indicate that, weak as Ophelia was, she was not false enough to be
+accomplice in any plot for betraying Hamlet to her father and the King?
+They had remained behind the arras, and had not gone out as she must
+have supposed.
+
+Next, let me request my reader to refer once more to the poem; and
+having considered the physiognomy of Ajax and Ulysses, as described in
+the fifth stanza, to turn then to the play of "Troilus and Cressida,"
+and there contemplate that description as metamorphosed into the higher
+form of revelation in speech. Then, if he will associate the general
+principles in that stanza with the third, especially the last two lines,
+I will apply this to the character of Lady Macbeth.
+
+Of course, Shakspere does not mean that one regarding that portion of
+the picture alone, could see the eyes looking sad; but that the _sweet
+observance_ of the whole so roused the imagination that it supplied what
+distance had concealed, keeping the far-off likewise in sweet observance
+with the whole: the rest pointed that way.--In a manner something like
+this are we conducted to a right understanding of the character of Lady
+Macbeth. First put together these her utterances:
+
+ "You do unbend your noble strength, to think
+ So brainsickly of things."
+
+ "Get some water,
+ And wash this filthy witness from your hands."
+
+ "The sleeping and the dead
+ Are but as pictures."
+
+ "A little water clears us of this deed."
+
+ "When all's done,
+ You look but on a stool."
+
+ "You lack the season of all natures, sleep."--
+
+Had these passages stood in the play unmodified by others, we might have
+judged from them that Shakspere intended to represent Lady Macbeth as an
+utter materialist, believing in nothing beyond the immediate
+communications of the senses. But when we find them associated with such
+passages as these--
+
+ "Memory, the warder of the brain,
+ Shall be a fume, and the receipt of reason
+ A limbeck only;"
+
+ "Had he not resembled
+ My father as he slept, I had done't;
+
+ "These deeds must not be thought
+ After these ways; so, it will make us mad;"--
+
+then we find that our former theory will not do, for here are deeper and
+broader foundations to build upon. We discover that Lady Macbeth was an
+unbeliever _morally_, and so found it necessary to keep down all
+imagination, which is the upheaving of that inward world whose very
+being she would have annihilated. Yet out of this world arose at last
+the phantom of her slain self, and possessing her sleeping frame, sent
+it out to wander in the night, and rub its distressed and blood-stained
+hands in vain. For, as in this same "Rape of Lucrece,"
+
+ "the soul's fair temple is defaced;
+ To whose weak ruins muster troops of cares,
+ To ask the spotted princess how she fares."
+
+But when so many lines of delineation meet, and run into, and correct
+one another, assuming such a natural and vital form, that there is no
+_making of a point_ anywhere; and the woman is shown after no theory,
+but according to the natural laws of human declension, we feel that the
+only way to account for the perfection of the representation is to say
+that, given a shadow, Shakspere had the power to place himself so, that
+that shadow became his own--was the correct representation as shadow, of
+his form coming between it and the sunlight. And this is the highest
+dramatic gift that a man can possess. But we feel at the same time, that
+this is, in the main, not so much art as inspiration. There would be, in
+all probability, a great mingling of conscious art with the inspiration;
+but the lines of the former being lost in the general glow of the
+latter, we may be left where we were as to any certainty about the
+artistic consciousness of Shakspere. I will now therefore attempt to
+give a few plainer instances of such _sweet observance_ in his own work
+as he would have admired in a painting.
+
+First, then, I would request my reader to think how comparatively seldom
+Shakspere uses poetry in his plays. The whole play is a poem in the
+highest sense; but truth forbids him to make it the rule for his
+characters to speak poetically. Their speech is poetic in relation to
+the whole and the end, not in relation to the speaker, or in the
+immediate utterance. And even although their speech is immediately
+poetic, in this sense, that every character is idealized; yet it is
+idealized _after its kind_; and poetry certainly would not be the ideal
+speech of most of the characters. This granted, let us look at the
+exceptions: we shall find that such passages not only glow with poetic
+loveliness and fervour, but are very jewels of _sweet observance_, whose
+setting allows them their force as lawful, and their prominence as
+natural. I will mention a few of such.
+
+In "Julius Caesar," act i. scene 3, we are inclined to think the way
+_Casca_ speaks, quite inconsistent with the "sour fashion" which
+_Cassius_ very justly attributes to him; till we remember that he is
+speaking in the midst of an almost supernatural thunder-storm: the
+hidden electricity of the man's nature comes out in poetic forms and
+words, in response to the wild outburst of the overcharged heavens and
+earth.
+
+Shakspere invariably makes the dying speak poetically, and generally
+prophetically, recognizing the identity of the poetic and prophetic
+moods, in their highest development, and the justice that gives them the
+same name. Even _Sir John_, poor ruined gentleman, _babbles of green
+fields_. Every one knows that the passage is disputed: I believe that if
+this be not the restoration of the original reading, Shakspere himself
+would justify it, and wish that he had so written it.
+
+_Romeo_ and _Juliet_ talk poetry as a matter of course.
+
+In "King John," act v. scenes 4 and 5, see how differently the dying
+_Melun_ and the living and victorious _Lewis_ regard the same sunset:
+
+ _Melun_.
+
+ . . . . . this night, whose black contagious breath
+ Already smokes about the burning crest
+ Of the old, feeble, and day-wearied sun.
+
+ _Lewis_.
+
+ The sun in heaven, methought, was loath to set;
+ But stayed, and made the western welkin blush,
+ When the English measured backward their own ground.
+
+The exquisite duet between _Lorenzo_ and _Jessica_, in the opening of
+the fifth act of "The Merchant of Venice," finds for its subject the
+circumstances that produce the mood--the lovely night and the crescent
+moon--which first make them talk poetry, then call for music, and next
+speculate upon its nature.
+
+Let us turn now to some instances of sweet observance in other kinds.
+
+There is observance, more true than sweet, in the character of
+_Jacques_, in "As You Like It:" the fault-finder in age was the
+fault-doer in youth and manhood. _Jacques_ patronizing the fool, is one
+of the rarest shows of self-ignorance.
+
+In the same play, when _Rosalind_ hears that _Orlando_ is in the wood,
+she cries out, "Alas the day! what shall I do with my doublet and hose?"
+And when _Orlando_ asks her, "Where dwell you, pretty youth?" she
+answers, tripping in her rle, "Here in the skirts of the forest, like
+fringe upon a petticoat."
+
+In the second part of "King Henry IV.," act iv. scene 3, _Falstaff_ says
+of _Prince John_: "Good faith, this same young sober-blooded boy doth
+not love me; nor a man cannot make him laugh;--but that's no marvel: he
+drinks no wine." This is the _Prince John_ who betrays the insurgents
+afterwards by the falsest of quibbles, and gains his revenge through
+their good faith.
+
+In "King Henry IV," act i. scene 2, _Poins_ does not say _Falstaff_ is a
+coward like the other two; but only--"If he fight longer than he sees
+reason, I'll forswear arms." Associate this with _Falstaff's_ soliloquy
+about _honour_ in the same play, act v. scene 1, and the true character
+of his courage or cowardice--for it may bear either name--comes out.
+
+Is there not conscious art in representing the hospitable face of the
+castle of _Macbeth_, bearing on it a homely welcome in the multitude of
+the nests of _the temple-haunting martlet_ (Psalm lxxxiv. 3), just as
+_Lady Macbeth_, the fiend-soul of the house, steps from the door, like
+the speech of the building, with her falsely smiled welcome? Is there
+not _observance_ in it?
+
+But the production of such instances might be endless, as the work of
+Shakspere is infinite. I confine myself to two more, taken from "The
+Merchant of Venice."
+
+Shakspere requires a character capable of the magnificent devotion of
+friendship which the old story attributes to _Antonio_. He therefore
+introduces us to a man sober even to sadness, thoughtful even to
+melancholy. The first words of the play unveil this characteristic. He
+holds "the world but as the world,"--
+
+ "A stage where every man must play a part,
+ And mine a sad one."
+
+The cause of this sadness we are left to conjecture. _Antonio_ himself
+professes not to know. But such a disposition, even if it be not
+occasioned by any definite event or object, will generally associate
+itself with one; and when _Antonio_ is accused of being in love, he
+repels the accusation with only a sad "Fie! fie!" This, and his whole
+character, seem to me to point to an old but ever cherished grief.
+
+Into the original story upon which this play is founded, Shakspere has,
+among other variations, introduced the story of _Jessica_ and _Lorenzo_,
+apparently altogether of his own invention. What was his object in doing
+so? Surely there were characters and interests enough already!--It seems
+to me that Shakspere doubted whether the Jew would have actually
+proceeded to carry out his fell design against _Antonio_, upon the
+original ground of his hatred, without the further incitement to revenge
+afforded by another passion, second only to his love of gold--his
+affection for his daughter; for in the Jew having reference to his own
+property, it had risen to a passion. Shakspere therefore invents her,
+that he may send a dog of a Christian to steal her, and, yet worse, to
+tempt her to steal her father's stones and ducats. I suspect Shakspere
+sends the old villain off the stage at the last with more of the pity of
+the audience than any of the other dramatists of the time would have
+ventured to rouse, had they been capable of doing so. I suspect he is
+the only human Jew of the English drama up to that time.
+
+I have now arrived at the last and most important stage of my argument.
+It is this: If Shakspere was so well aware of the artistic relations of
+the parts of his drama, is it likely that the grand meanings involved in
+the whole were unperceived by him, and conveyed to us without any
+intention on his part--had their origin only in the fact that he dealt
+with human nature so truly, that his representations must involve
+whatever lessons human life itself involves?
+
+Is there no intention, for instance, in placing _Prospero_, who forsook
+the duties of his dukedom for the study of magic, in a desert island,
+with just three subjects; one, a monster below humanity; the second, a
+creature etherealized beyond it; and the third a complete embodiment of
+human perfection? Is it not that he may learn how to rule, and, having
+learned, return, by the aid of his magic wisely directed, to the home
+and duties from which exclusive devotion to that magic had driven him?
+
+In "Julius Caesar," the death of _Brutus_, while following as the
+consequence of his murder of _Caesar_, is yet as much distinguished in
+character from that death, as the character of _Brutus_ is different
+from that of _Caesar_. _Caesar's_ last words were _Et tu Brute? Brutus_,
+when resolved to lay violent hands on himself, takes leave of his
+friends with these words:
+
+ "Countrymen,
+ My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life,
+ I found no man, but he was true to me."
+
+Here Shakspere did not invent. He found both speeches in Plutarch. But
+how unerring his choice!
+
+Is the final catastrophe in "Hamlet" such, because Shakspere could do no
+better?--It is: he could do no better than the best. Where but in the
+regions beyond could such questionings as _Hamlet's_ be put to rest? It
+would have been a fine thing indeed for the most nobly perplexed of
+thinkers to be left--his love in the grave; the memory of his father a
+torment, of his mother a blot; with innocent blood on his innocent
+hands, and but half understood by his best friend--to ascend in desolate
+dreariness the contemptible height of the degraded throne, and shine the
+first in a drunken court!
+
+Before bringing forward my last instance, I will direct the attention of
+my readers to a passage, in another play, in which the lesson of the
+play I am about to speak of, is _directly_ taught: the first speech in
+the second act of "As You Like It," might be made a text for the
+exposition of the whole play of "King Lear."
+
+The banished duke is seeking to bring his courtiers to regard their
+exile as a part of their moral training. I am aware that I point the
+passage differently, while I revert to the old text.
+
+ "Are not these woods
+ More free from peril than the envious court?
+ Here feel we not the penalty of Adam--
+ The season's difference, as the icy fang,
+ And churlish chiding of the winter's wind?
+ Which, when it bites and blows upon my body,
+ Even till I shrink with cold, I smile and say--
+ This is no flattery; these are counsellors
+ That feelingly persuade me what I am.
+ Sweet are the uses of adversity."
+
+The line _Here feel we not the penalty of Adam?_ has given rise to much
+perplexity. The expounders of Shakspere do not believe he can mean that
+the uses of adversity are really sweet. But the duke sees that _the
+penalty_ of Adam is what makes the _woods more free from peril than the
+envious court;_ that this penalty is in fact the best blessing, for it
+_feelingly persuades_ man _what_ he is; and to know what we are, to have
+no false judgments of ourselves, he considers so sweet, that to be thus
+taught, the _churlish chiding of the winter's wind_ is well endured.
+
+Now let us turn to _Lear_. We find in him an old man with a large
+heart, hungry for love, and yet not knowing what love is; an old man as
+ignorant as a child in all matters of high import; with a temper so
+unsubdued, and therefore so unkingly, that he storms because his dinner
+is not ready by the clock of his hunger; a child, in short, in
+everything but his grey hairs and wrinkled face, but his failing,
+instead of growing, strength. If a life end so, let the success of that
+life be otherwise what it may, it is a wretched and unworthy end. But
+let _Lear_ be blown by the winds and beaten by the rains of heaven, till
+he pities "poor naked wretches;" till he feels that he has "ta'en too
+little care of" such; till pomp no longer conceals from him what "a
+poor, bare, forked animal" he is; and the old king has risen higher in
+the real social scale--the scale of that country to which he is
+bound--far higher than he stood while he still held his kingdom
+undivided to his thankless daughters. Then let him learn at last that
+"love is the only good in the world;" let him find his _Cordelia_, and
+plot with her how they will in their dungeon _singing like birds i' the
+cage_, and, dwelling in the secret place of peace, look abroad on the
+world like _God's spies_; and then let the generous great old heart
+swell till it breaks at last--not with rage and hate and vengeance, but
+with love; and all is well: it is time the man should go to overtake his
+daughter; henceforth to dwell with her in the home of the true, the
+eternal, the unchangeable. All his suffering came from his own fault;
+but from the suffering has sprung another crop, not of evil but of good;
+the seeds of which had lain unfruitful in the soil, but were brought
+within the blessed influences of the air of heaven by the sharp tortures
+of the ploughshare of ill.
+
+
+
+
+THE ELDER HAMLET.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1875]
+
+ 'Tis bitter cold,
+ And I am sick at heart.
+
+The ghost in "Hamlet" is as faithfully treated as any character in the
+play. Next to Hamlet himself, he is to me the most interesting person of
+the drama. The rumour of his appearance is wrapped in the larger rumour
+of war. Loud preparations for uncertain attack fill the ears of "the
+subject of the land." The state is troubled. The new king has hardly
+compassed his election before his marriage with his brother's widow
+swathes the court in the dust-cloud of shame, which the merriment of its
+forced revelry can do little to dispel. A feeling is in the moral air to
+which the words of Francisco, the only words of significance he utters,
+give the key: "'Tis bitter cold, and I am sick at heart." Into the
+frosty air, the pallid moonlight, the drunken shouts of Claudius and his
+court, the bellowing of the cannon from the rampart for the enlargement
+of the insane clamour that it may beat the drum of its own disgrace at
+the portals of heaven, glides the silent prisoner of hell, no longer a
+king of the day walking about his halls, "the observed of all
+observers," but a thrall of the night, wandering between the bell and
+the cock, like a jailer on each side of him. A poet tells the tale of
+the king who lost his garments and ceased to be a king: here is the king
+who has lost his body, and in the eyes of his court has ceased to be a
+man. Is the cold of the earth's night pleasant to him after the purging
+fire? What crimes had the honest ghost committed in his days of nature?
+He calls them foul crimes! Could such be his? Only who can tell how a
+ghost, with his doubled experience, may think of this thing or that? The
+ghost and the fire may between them distinctly recognize that as a foul
+crime which the man and the court regarded as a weakness at worst, and
+indeed in a king laudable.
+
+Alas, poor ghost! Around the house he flits, shifting and shadowy, over
+the ground he once paced in ringing armour--armed still, but his very
+armour a shadow! It cannot keep out the arrow of the cock's cry, and the
+heart that pierces is no shadow. Where now is the loaded axe with which,
+in angry dispute, he smote the ice at his feet that cracked to the blow?
+Where is the arm that heaved the axe? Wasting in the marble maw of the
+sepulchre, and the arm he carries now--I know not what it can do, but it
+cannot slay his murderer. For that he seeks his son's. Doubtless his new
+ethereal form has its capacities and privileges. It can shift its garb
+at will; can appear in mail or night-gown, unaided of armourer or
+tailor; can pass through Hades-gates or chamber-door with equal ease;
+can work in the ground like mole or pioneer, and let its voice be heard
+from the cellarage. But there is one to whom it cannot appear, one whom
+the ghost can see, but to whom he cannot show himself. She has built a
+doorless, windowless wall between them, and sees the husband of her
+youth no more. Outside her heart--that is the night in which he wanders,
+while the palace-windows are flaring, and the low wind throbs to the
+wassail shouts: within, his murderer sits by the wife of his bosom, and
+in the orchard the spilt poison is yet gnawing at the roots of the
+daisies.
+
+Twice has the ghost grown out of the night upon the eyes of the
+sentinels. With solemn march, slow and stately, three times each night,
+has he walked by them; they, jellied with fear, have uttered no
+challenge. They seek Horatio, who the third night speaks to him as a
+scholar can. To the first challenge he makes no answer, but stalks away;
+to the second,
+
+ It lifted up its head, and did address
+ Itself to motion, like as it would speak;
+
+but the gaoler cock calls him, and the kingly shape
+
+ started like a guilty thing
+ Upon a fearful summons;
+
+and then
+
+ shrunk in haste away,
+ And vanished from our sight.
+
+Ah, that summons! at which majesty welks and shrivels, the king and
+soldier starts and cowers, and, armour and all, withers from the air!
+
+But why has he not spoken before? why not now ere the cock could claim
+him? He cannot trust the men. His court has forsaken his memory--crowds
+with as eager discontent about the mildewed ear as ever about his
+wholesome brother, and how should he trust mere sentinels? There is but
+one who will heed his tale. A word to any other would but defeat his
+intent. Out of the multitude of courtiers and subjects, in all the land
+of Denmark, there is but one whom he can trust--his student-son. Him he
+has not yet found--the condition of a ghost involving strange
+difficulties.
+
+Or did the horror of the men at the sight of him wound and repel him?
+Does the sense of regal dignity, not yet exhausted for all the fasting
+in fires, unite with that of grievous humiliation to make him shun their
+speech?
+
+But Horatio--why does the ghost not answer him ere the time of the cock
+is come? Does he fold the cloak of indignation around him because his
+son's friend has addressed him as an intruder on the night, an usurper
+of the form that is his own? The companions of the speaker take note
+that he is offended and stalks away.
+
+Much has the kingly ghost to endure in his attempt to re-open relations
+with the world he has left: when he has overcome his wrath and returns,
+that moment Horatio again insults him, calling him an illusion. But this
+time he will bear it, and opens his mouth to speak. It is too late; the
+cock is awake, and he must go. Then alas for the buried majesty of
+Denmark! with upheaved halberts they strike at the shadow, and would
+stop it if they might--usage so grossly unfitting that they are
+instantly ashamed of it themselves, recognizing the offence in the
+majesty of the offended. But he is already gone. The proud, angry king
+has found himself but a thing of nothing to his body-guard--for he has
+lost the body which was their guard. Still, not even yet has he learned
+how little it lies in the power of an honest ghost to gain credit for
+himself or his tale! His very privileges are against him.
+
+All this time his son is consuming his heart in the knowledge of a
+mother capable of so soon and so utterly forgetting such a husband, and
+in pity and sorrow for the dead father who has had such a wife. He is
+thirty years of age, an obedient, honourable son--a man of thought, of
+faith, of aspiration. Him now the ghost seeks, his heart burning like a
+coal with the sense of unendurable wrong. He is seeking the one drop
+that can fall cooling on that heart--the sympathy, the answering rage
+and grief of his boy. But when at length he finds him, the generous,
+loving father has to see that son tremble like an aspen-leaf in his
+doubtful presence. He has exposed himself to the shame of eyes and the
+indignities of dullness, that he may pour the pent torrent of his wrongs
+into his ears, but his disfranchisement from the flesh tells against him
+even with his son: the young Hamlet is doubtful of the identity of the
+apparition with his father. After all the burning words of the phantom,
+the spirit he has seen may yet be a devil; the devil has power to assume
+a pleasing shape, and is perhaps taking advantage of his melancholy to
+damn him.
+
+Armed in the complete steel of a suit well known to the eyes of the
+sentinels, visionary none the less, with useless truncheon in hand,
+resuming the memory of old martial habits, but with quiet countenance,
+more in sorrow than in anger, troubled--not now with the thought of the
+hell-day to which he must sleepless return, but with that unceasing ache
+at the heart, which ever, as often as he is released into the cooling
+air of the upper world, draws him back to the region of his
+wrongs--where having fallen asleep in his orchard, in sacred security
+and old custom, suddenly, by cruel assault, he was flung into Hades,
+where horror upon horror awaited him--worst horror of all, the knowledge
+of his wife!--armed he comes, in shadowy armour but how real sorrow!
+Still it is not pity he seeks from his son: he needs it not--he can
+endure. There is no weakness in the ghost. It is but to the imperfect
+human sense that he is shadowy. To himself he knows his doom his
+deliverance; that the hell in which he finds himself shall endure but
+until it has burnt up the hell he has found within him--until the evil
+he was and is capable of shall have dropped from him into the lake of
+fire; he nerves himself to bear. And the cry of revenge that comes from
+the sorrowful lips is the cry of a king and a Dane rather than of a
+wronged man. It is for public justice and not individual vengeance he
+calls. He cannot endure that the royal bed of Denmark should be a couch
+for luxury and damned incest. To stay this he would bring the murderer
+to justice. There is a worse wrong, for which he seeks no revenge: it
+involves his wife; and there comes in love, and love knows no amends but
+amendment, seeks only the repentance tenfold more needful to the wronger
+than the wronged. It is not alone the father's care for the human nature
+of his son that warns him to take no measures against his mother; it is
+the husband's tenderness also for her who once lay in his bosom. The
+murdered brother, the dethroned king, the dishonoured husband, the
+tormented sinner, is yet a gentle ghost. Has suffering already begun to
+make him, like Prometheus, wise?
+
+But to measure the gentleness, the forgiveness, the tenderness of the
+ghost, we must well understand his wrongs. The murder is plain; but
+there is that which went before and is worse, yet is not so plain to
+every eye that reads the story. There is that without which the murder
+had never been, and which, therefore, is a cause of all the wrong. For
+listen to what the ghost reveals when at length he has withdrawn his son
+that he may speak with him alone, and Hamlet has forestalled the
+disclosure of the murderer:
+
+ "Ay, that incestuous, that adulterate beast,
+ With witchcraft of his wit, with traitorous gifts,
+ (O wicked wit and gifts that have the power
+ So to seduce!) won to his shameful lust
+ The will of my most seeming virtuous queen:
+ Oh, Hamlet, what a falling off was there!
+ From me, whose love was of that dignity
+ That it went hand in hand even with the vow
+ I made to her in marriage, and to decline
+ Upon a wretch, whose natural gifts were poor
+ To those of mine!
+ But virtue--as it never will be moved
+ Though lewdness court it in a shape of heaven,
+ So lust, though to a radiant angel linked,
+ Will sate itself in a celestial bed,
+ And prey on garbage."
+
+Reading this passage, can any one doubt that the ghost charges his late
+wife with adultery, as the root of all his woes? It is true that,
+obedient to the ghost's injunctions, as well as his own filial
+instincts, Hamlet accuses his mother of no more than was patent to all
+the world; but unless we suppose the ghost misinformed or mistaken, we
+must accept this charge. And had Gertrude not yielded to the witchcraft
+of Claudius' wit, Claudius would never have murdered Hamlet. Through her
+his life was dishonoured, and his death violent and premature: unhuzled,
+disappointed, unaneled, he woke to the air--not of his orchard-blossoms,
+but of a prison-house, the lightest word of whose terrors would freeze
+the blood of the listener. What few men can say, he could--that his love
+to his wife had kept even step with the vow he made to her in marriage;
+and his son says of him--
+
+ "so loving to my mother
+ That he might not beteem the winds of heaven
+ Visit her face too roughly;"
+
+and this was her return! Yet is it thus he charges his son concerning
+her:
+
+ "But howsoever thou pursu'st this act,
+ Taint not thy mind, nor let thy soul contrive
+ Against thy mother aught; leave her to heaven,
+ And to those thorns that in her bosom lodge,
+ To prick and sting her."
+
+And may we not suppose it to be for her sake in part that the ghost
+insists, with fourfold repetition, upon a sword-sworn oath to silence
+from Horatio and Marcellus?
+
+Only once again does he show himself--not now in armour upon the walls,
+but in his gown and in his wife's closet.
+
+Ever since his first appearance, that is, all the time filling the
+interval between the first and second acts, we may presume him to have
+haunted the palace unseen, waiting what his son would do. But the task
+has been more difficult than either had supposed. The ambassadors have
+gone to Norway and returned; but Hamlet has done nothing. Probably he
+has had no opportunity; certainly he has had no clear vision of duty.
+But now all through the second and third acts, together occupying, it
+must be remembered, only one day, something seems imminent. The play has
+been acted, and Hamlet has gained some assurance, yet the one chance
+presented of killing the king--at his prayers--he has refused. He is now
+in his mother's closet, whose eyes he has turned into her very soul.
+There, and then, the ghost once more appears--come, he says, to whet his
+son's almost blunted purpose. But, as I have said, he does not know all
+the disadvantages of one who, having forsaken the world, has yet
+business therein to which he would persuade; he does not know how hard
+it is for a man to give credence to a ghost; how thoroughly he is
+justified in delay, and the demand for more perfect proof. He does not
+know what good reasons his son has had for uncertainty, or how much
+natural and righteous doubt has had to do with what he takes for the
+blunting of his purpose. Neither does he know how much more tender his
+son's conscience is than his own, or how necessary it is to him to be
+sure before he acts. As little perhaps does he understand how hateful to
+Hamlet is the task laid upon him--the killing of one wretched villain in
+the midst of a corrupt and contemptible court, one of a world of whose
+women his mother may be the type!
+
+Whatever the main object of the ghost's appearance, he has spoken but a
+few words concerning the matter between him and Hamlet, when he turns
+abruptly from it to plead with his son for his wife. The ghost sees and
+mistakes the terror of her looks; imagines that, either from some
+feeling of his presence, or from the power of Hamlet's words, her
+conscience is thoroughly roused, and that her vision, her conception of
+the facts, is now more than she can bear. She and her fighting soul are
+at odds. She is a kingdom divided against itself. He fears the
+consequences. He would not have her go mad. He would not have her die
+yet. Even while ready to start at the summons of that hell to which she
+has sold him, he forgets his vengeance on her seducer in his desire to
+comfort her. He dares not, if he could, manifest himself to her: what
+word of consolation could she hear from his lips? Is not the thought of
+him her one despair? He turns to his son for help: he cannot console his
+wife; his son must take his place. Alas! even now he thinks better of
+her than she deserves; for it is only the fancy of her son's madness
+that is terrifying her: he gazes on the apparition of which she sees
+nothing, and from his looks she anticipates an ungovernable outbreak.
+
+ "But look; amazement on thy mother sits!
+ Oh; step between her and her fighting soul
+ Conceit in weakest bodies strongest works.
+ Speak to her, Hamlet."
+
+The call to his son to soothe his wicked mother is the ghost's last
+utterance. For a few moments, sadly regardful of the two, he
+stands--while his son seeks in vain to reveal to his mother the presence
+of his father--a few moments of piteous action, all but ruining the
+remnant of his son's sorely-harassed self-possession--his whole concern
+his wife's distress, and neither his own doom nor his son's duty; then,
+as if lost in despair at the impassable gulf betwixt them, revealed by
+her utter incapacity for even the imagination of his proximity, he turns
+away, and steals out at the portal. Or perhaps he has heard the black
+cock crow, and is wanted beneath: his turn has come.
+
+Will the fires ever cleanse _her_? Will his love ever lift him above the
+pain of its loss? Will eternity ever be bliss, ever be endurable to poor
+_King Hamlet?_
+
+Alas! even the memory of the poor ghost is insulted. Night after night
+on the stage his effigy appears--cadaverous, sepulchral--no longer as
+Shakspere must have represented him, aerial, shadowy, gracious, the thin
+corporeal husk of an eternal--shall I say ineffaceable?--sorrow! It is
+no hollow monotone that can rightly upbear such words as his, but a
+sound mingled of distance and wind in the pine-tops, of agony and love,
+of horror and hope and loss and judgment--a voice of endless and
+sweetest inflection, yet with a shuddering echo in it as from the caves
+of memory, on whose walls, are written the eternal blazon that must not
+be to ears of flesh and blood. The spirit that can assume form at will
+must surely be able to bend that form to completest and most delicate
+expression, and the part of the ghost in the play offers work worthy of
+the highest artist. The would-be actor takes from it vitality and
+motion, endowing it instead with the rigidity of death, as if the soul
+had resumed its cast-off garment, the stiffened and mouldy corpse--whose
+frozen deadness it could ill model to the utterance of its lively will!
+
+
+
+
+ON POLISH.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1865]
+
+By Polish I mean a certain well-known and immediately recognizable
+condition of surface. But I must request my reader to consider well what
+this condition really is. For the definition of it appears to us to be,
+that condition of surface which allows the inner structure of the
+material to manifest itself. Polish is, as it were, a translucent skin,
+in which the life of the inorganic comes to the surface, as in the
+animal skin the animal life. Once clothed in this, the inner glories of
+the marble rock, of the jasper, of the porphyry, leave the darkness
+behind, and glow into the day. From the heart of the agate the mossy
+landscape comes dreaming out. From the depth of the green chrysolite
+looks up the eye of its gold. The "goings on of life" hidden for ages
+under the rough bark of the patient forest-trees, are brought to light;
+the rings of lovely shadow which the creature went on making in the
+dark, as the oyster its opaline laminations, and its tree-pearls of
+beautiful knots, where a beneficent disease has broken the geometrical
+perfection of its structure, gloom out in their infinite variousness.
+
+Nor are the revelations of polish confined to things having variety in
+their internal construction; they operate equally in things of
+homogeneous structure. It is the polished ebony or jet which gives the
+true blank, the material darkness. It is the polished steel that shines
+keen and remorseless and cold, like that human justice whose symbol it
+is. And in the polished diamond the distinctive purity is most evident;
+while from it, I presume, will the light absorbed from the sun gleam
+forth on the dark most plentifully.
+
+But the mere fact that the end of polish is revelation, can hardly be
+worth setting forth except for some ulterior object, some further
+revelation in the fact itself.--I wish to show that in the symbolic use
+of the word the same truth is involved, or, if not involved, at least
+suggested. But let me first make another remark on the preceding
+definition of the word.
+
+There is no denying that the first notion suggested by the word polish
+is that of smoothness, which will indeed be the sole idea associated
+with it before we begin to contemplate the matter. But when we consider
+what things are chosen to be "clothed upon" with this smoothness, then
+we find that the smoothness is scarcely desired for its own sake, and
+remember besides that in many materials and situations it is elaborately
+avoided. We find that here it is sought because of its faculty of
+enabling other things to show themselves--to come to the surface.
+
+I proceed then to examine how far my pregnant interpretation of the word
+will apply to its figurative use in two cases--_Polish of Style_, and
+_Polish of Manners_. The two might be treated together, seeing that
+_Style_ may be called the manners of intellectual utterance, and
+_Manners_ the style of social utterance; but it is more convenient to
+treat them separately.
+
+I will begin with the Polish of Style.
+
+It will be seen at once that if the notion of polish be limited to that
+of smoothness, there can be little to say on the matter, and nothing
+worthy of being said. For mere smoothness is no more a desirable quality
+in a style than it is in a country or a countenance; and its pursuit
+will result at length in the gain of the monotonous and the loss of the
+melodious and harmonious. But it is only upon worthless material that
+polish can be _mere_ smoothness; and where the material is not valuable,
+polish can be nothing but smoothness. No amount of polish in a style can
+render the production of value, except there be in it embodied thought
+thereby revealed; and the labour of the polish is lost. Let us then take
+the fuller meaning of polish, and see how it will apply to style.
+
+If it applies, then Polish of Style will imply the approximately
+complete revelation of the thought. It will be the removal of everything
+that can interfere between the thought of the speaker and the mind of
+the hearer. True polish in marble or in speech reveals inlying
+realities, and, in the latter at least, mere smoothness, either of sound
+or of meaning, is not worthy of the name. The most polished style will
+be that which most immediately and most truly flashes the meaning
+embodied in the utterance upon the mind of the listener or reader.
+
+"Will you then," I imagine a reader objecting, "admit of no ornament in
+style?"
+
+"Assuredly," I answer, "I would admit of no ornament whatever."
+
+But let me explain what I mean by ornament. I mean anything stuck in or
+on, like a spangle, because it is pretty in itself, although it reveals
+nothing. Not one such ornament can belong to a polished style. It is
+paint, not polish. And if this is not what my questioner means by
+_ornament_, my answer must then be read according to the differences in
+his definition of the word. What I have said has not the least
+application to the natural forms of beauty which thought assumes in
+speech. Between such beauty and such ornament there lies the same
+difference as between the overflow of life in the hair, and the dressing
+of that loveliest of utterances in grease and gold.
+
+For, when I say that polish is the removal of everything that comes
+between thought and thinking, it must not be supposed that in my idea
+thought is only of the intellect, and therefore that all forms but bare
+intellectual forms are of the nature of ornament. As well might one say
+that the only essential portion of the human form is the bones. And
+every human thought is in a sense a human being, has as necessarily its
+muscles of motion, its skin of beauty, its blood of feeling, as its
+skeleton of logic. For complete utterance, music itself in its right
+proportions, sometimes clear and strong, as in rhymed harmonies,
+sometimes veiled and dim, as in the prose compositions of the masters of
+speech, is as necessary as correctness of logic, and common sense in
+construction. I should have said _conveyance_ rather than utterance; for
+there may be utterance such as to relieve the mind of the speaker with
+more or less of fancied communication, while the conveyance of thought
+may be little or none; as in the speaking with tongues of the infant
+Church, to which the lovely babblement of our children has probably more
+than a figurative resemblance, relieving their own minds, but, the
+interpreter not yet at his post, neither instructing nor misleading any
+one. But as the object of grown-up speech must in the main be the
+conveyance of thought, and not the mere utterance, everything in the
+style of that speech which interposes between the mental eyes and the
+thought embodied in the speech, must be polished away, that the
+indwelling life may manifest itself.
+
+What, then (for now we must come to the practical), is the kind of thing
+to be polished away in order that the hidden may be revealed?
+
+All words that can be dismissed without loss; for all such more or less
+obscure the meaning upon which they gather. The first step towards the
+polishing of most styles is to strike out--polish off--the useless words
+and phrases. It is wonderful with how many fewer words most things could
+be said that are said; while the degree of certainty and rapidity with
+which an idea is conveyed would generally be found to be in an inverse
+ratio to the number of words employed.
+
+All ornaments so called--the nose and lip jewels of style--the tattooing
+of the speech; all similes that, although true, give no additional
+insight into the meaning; everything that is only pretty and not
+beautiful; all mere sparkle as of jewels that lose their own beauty by
+being set in the grandeur of statues or the dignity of monumental stone,
+must be ruthlessly polished away.
+
+All utterances which, however they may add to the amount of thought,
+distract the mind, and confuse its observation of the main idea, the
+essence or life of the book or paper, must be diligently refused. In the
+manuscript of _Comus_ there exists, cancelled but legible, a passage of
+which I have the best authority for saying that it would have made the
+poetic fame of any writer. But the grand old self-denier struck it out
+of the opening speech because that would be more polished without
+it--because the _Attendant Spirit_ would say more immediately and
+exclusively, and therefore more completely, what he had to say, without
+it.--All this applies much more widely and deeply in the region of art;
+but I am at present dealing with the surface of style, not with the
+round of result.
+
+I have one instance at hand, however, belonging to this region, than
+which I could scarcely produce a more apt illustration of my thesis. One
+of the greatest of living painters, walking with a friend through the
+late Exhibition of Art-Treasures at Manchester, came upon Albert Drer's
+_Melancholia_. After looking at it for a moment, he told his friend that
+now for the first time he understood it, and proceeded to set forth what
+he saw in it. It was a very early impression, and the delicacy of the
+lines was so much the greater. He had never seen such a perfect
+impression before, and had never perceived the intent and scope of the
+engraving. The mere removal of accidental thickness and furriness in the
+lines of the drawing enabled him to see into the meaning of that
+wonderful production. The polish brought it to the surface. Or, what
+amounts to the same thing for my argument, the dulling of the surface
+had concealed it even from his experienced eyes.
+
+In fine, and more generally, all cause whatever of obscurity must be
+polished away. There may lie in the matter itself a darkness of colour
+and texture which no amount of polishing can render clear or even vivid;
+the thoughts themselves may be hard to think, and difficulty must not be
+confounded with obscurity. The former belongs to the thoughts
+themselves; the latter to the mode of their embodiment. All cause of
+obscurity in this must, I say, be removed. Such may lie even in the
+region of grammar, or in the mere arrangement of a sentence. And while,
+as I have said, no ornament is to be allowed, so all roughnesses, which
+irritate the mental ear, and so far incapacitate it for receiving a true
+impression of the meaning from the words, must be carefully reduced. For
+the true music of a sentence, belonging as it does to the essence of the
+thought itself, is the herald which goes before to prepare the mind for
+the following thought, calming the surface of the intellect to a
+mirror-like reflection of the image about to fall upon it. But syllables
+that hang heavy on the tongue and grate harsh upon the ear are the
+trumpet of discord rousing to unconscious opposition and conscious
+rejection.
+
+And now the consideration of the Polish of Manners will lead us to some
+yet more important reflections. Here again I must admit that the
+ordinary use of the phrase is analogous to that of the preceding; but
+its relations lead us deep into realities. For as diamond alone can
+polish diamond, so men alone can polish men; and hence it is that it was
+first by living in a city ([Greek: polis], _polis_) that men--
+
+ "rubbed each other's angles down,"
+
+and became _polished_. And while a certain amount of ease with regard to
+ourselves and of consideration with regard to others is everywhere
+necessary to a man's passing as a gentleman--all unevenness of behaviour
+resulting either from shyness or self-consciousness (in the shape of
+awkwardness), or from overweening or selfishness (in the shape of
+rudeness), having to be polished away--true human polish must go further
+than this. Its respects are not confined to the manners of the ball-room
+or the dinner-table, of the club or the exchange, but wherever a man may
+rejoice with them that rejoice or weep with them that weep, he must
+remain one and the same, as polished to the tiller of the soil as to the
+leader of the fashion.
+
+But how will the figure of material polish aid us any further? How can
+it be said that Polish of Manners is a revelation of that which is
+within, a calling up to the surface of the hidden loveliness of the
+material? For do we not know that courtesy may cover contempt; that
+smiles themselves may hide hate; that one who will place you at his
+right hand when in want of your inferior aid, may scarce acknowledge
+your presence when his necessity has gone by? And how then can polished
+manners be a revelation of what is within? Are they not the result of
+putting on rather than of taking off? Are they not paint and varnish
+rather than polish?
+
+I must yield the answer to each of these questions; protesting, however,
+that with such polish I have nothing to do; for these manners are
+confessedly false. But even where least able to mislead, they are, with
+corresponding courtesy, accepted as outward signs of an inward grace.
+Hence even such, by the nature of their falsehood, support my position.
+For in what forms are the colours of the paint laid upon the surface of
+the material? Is it not in as near imitations of the real right human
+feelings about oneself and others as the necessarily imperfect knowledge
+of such an artist can produce? He will not encounter the labour of
+polishing, for he does not believe in the divine depths of his own
+nature: he paints, and calls the varnish polish.
+
+"But why talk of polish with reference to such a character, seeing that
+no amount of polishing can bring to the surface what is not there? No
+polishing of sandstone will reveal the mottling of marble. For it is
+sandstone, crumbling and gritty--not noble in any way."
+
+Is it so then? Can such be the real nature of the man? And can polish
+reach nothing deeper in him than such? May not this selfishness be
+polished away, revealing true colour and harmony beneath? Was not the
+man made in the image of God? Or, if you say that man lost that image,
+did not a new process of creation begin from the point of that loss, a
+process of re-creation in him in whom all shall be made alive, which,
+although so far from being completed yet, can never be checked? If we
+cut away deep enough at the rough block of our nature, shall we not
+arrive at some likeness of that true man who, the apostle says, dwells
+in us--the hope of glory? He informs us--that is, forms us from within.
+
+Dr. Donne (who knew less than any other writer in the English language
+what Polish of Style means) recognizes this divine polishing to the
+full. He says in a poem called "The Cross:"--
+
+ As perchance carvers do not faces make,
+ But that away, which hid them there, do take,
+ Let Crosses so take what hid Christ in thee,
+ And be his Image, or not his, but He.
+
+This is no doubt a higher figure than that of _polish_, but it is of the
+same kind, revealing the same truth. It recognizes the fact that the
+divine nature lies at the root of the human nature, and that the polish
+which lets that spiritual nature shine out in the simplicity of heavenly
+childhood, is the true Polish of Manners of which all merely social
+refinements are a poor imitation.--Whence Coleridge says that nothing
+but religion can make a man a gentleman.--And when these harmonies of
+our nature come to the surface, we shall be indeed "lively stones," fit
+for building into the great temple of the universe, and echoing the
+music of creation. Dr. Donne recognizes, besides, the notable fact that
+_crosses_ or afflictions are the polishing powers by means of which the
+beautiful realities of human nature are brought to the surface. One can
+tell at once by the peculiar loveliness of certain persons that they
+have suffered.
+
+But, to look for a moment less profoundly into the matter, have we not
+known those whose best never could get to the surface just from the lack
+of polish?--persons who, if they could only reveal the kindness of
+their nature, would make men believe in human nature, but in whom some
+roughness of awkwardness or of shyness prevents the true self from
+appearing? Even the dread of seeming to claim a good deed or to
+patronize a fellow-man will sometimes spoil the last touch of tenderness
+which would have been the final polish of the act of giving, and would
+have revealed infinite depths of human devotion. For let the truth out,
+and it will be seen to be true.
+
+Simplicity is the end of all Polish, as of all Art, Culture, Morals,
+Religion, and Life. The Lord our God is one Lord, and we and our
+brothers and sisters are one Humanity, one Body of the Head.
+
+Now to the practical: what are we to do for the polish of our manners?
+
+Just what I have said we must do for the polish of our style. Take off;
+do not put on. Polish away this rudeness, that awkwardness. Correct
+everything self-assertive, which includes nine tenths of all vulgarity.
+Imitate no one's behaviour; that is to paint. Do not think about
+yourself; that is to varnish. Put what is wrong right, and what is in
+you will show itself in harmonious behaviour.
+
+But no one can go far in this track without discovering that true polish
+reaches much deeper; that the outward exists but for the sake of the
+inward; and that the manners, as they depend on the morals, must be
+forgotten in the morals of which they are but the revelation. Look at
+the high-shouldered, ungainly child in the corner: his mother tells him
+to go to his book, and he wants to go to his play. Regard the swollen
+lips, the skin tightened over the nose, the distortion of his shape, the
+angularity of his whole appearance. Yet he is not an awkward child by
+nature. Look at him again the moment after he has given in and kissed
+his mother. His shoulders have dropped to their place; his limbs are
+free from the fetters that bound them; his motions are graceful, and the
+one blends harmoniously with the other. He is no longer thinking of
+himself. He has given up his own way. The true childhood comes to the
+surface, and you see what the boy is meant to be always. Look at the
+jerkiness of the conceited man. Look at the quiet _fluency_ of motion in
+the modest man. Look how anger itself which forgets self, which is
+unhating and righteous, will elevate the carriage and ennoble the
+movements.
+
+But how far can the same rule of _omission_ or _rejection_ be applied
+with safety to this deeper character--the manners of the spirit?
+
+It seems to me that in morals too the main thing is to avoid doing
+wrong; for then the active spirit of life in us will drive us on to the
+right. But on such a momentous question I would not be dogmatic. Only as
+far as regards the feelings I would say: it is of no use to try to make
+ourselves feel thus or thus. Let us fight with our wrong feelings; let
+us polish away the rough ugly distortions of feeling. Then the real and
+the good will come of themselves. Or rather, to keep to my figure, they
+will then show themselves of themselves as the natural home-produce, the
+indwelling facts of our deepest--that is, our divine nature.
+
+Here I find that I am sinking through my subject into another and
+deeper--a truth, namely, which should, however, be the foundation of all
+our building, the background of all our representations: that Life is at
+work in us--the sacred Spirit of God travailing in us. That Spirit has
+gained one end of his labour--at which he can begin to do yet more for
+us--when he has brought us to beg for the help which he has been giving
+us all the time.
+
+I have been regarding infinite things through the medium of one limited
+figure, knowing that figures with all their suggestions and relations
+could not reveal them utterly. But so far as they go, these thoughts
+raised by the word Polish and its figurative uses appear to me to be
+most true.
+
+
+
+
+BROWNING'S "CHRISTMAS EVE"
+
+
+[Footnote: 1853.]
+
+
+Goethe says:--
+
+ "Poems are painted window panes.
+ If one looks from the square into the church,
+ Dusk and dimness are his gains--
+ Sir Philistine is left in the lurch!
+ The sight, so seen, may well enrage him,
+ Nor anything henceforth assuage him.
+
+ "But come just inside what conceals;
+ Cross the holy threshold quite--
+ All at once 'tis rainbow-bright,
+ Device and story flash to light,
+ A gracious splendour truth reveals.
+ This to God's children is full measure,
+ It edifies and gives you pleasure!"
+
+This is true concerning every form in which truth is embodied, whether
+it be sight or sound, geometric diagram or scientific formula.
+Unintelligible, it may be dismal enough, regarded from the outside;
+prismatic in its revelation of truth from within. Such is the world
+itself, as beheld by the speculative eye; a thing of disorder,
+obscurity, and sadness: only the child-like heart, to which the door
+into the divine idea is thrown open, can understand somewhat the secret
+of the Almighty. In human things it is particularly true of art, in
+which the fundamental idea seems to be the revelation of the true
+through the beautiful. But of all the arts it is most applicable to
+poetry; for the others have more that is beautiful on the outside; can
+give pleasure to the senses by the form of the marble, the hues of the
+painting, or the sweet sounds of the music, although the heart may never
+perceive the meaning that lies within. But poetry, except its rhythmic
+melody, and its scattered gleams of material imagery, for which few care
+that love it not for its own sake, has no attraction on the outside to
+entice the passer to enter and partake of its truth. It is inwards that
+its colours shine, within that its forms move, and the sound of its holy
+organ cannot be heard from without.
+
+Now, if one has been able to reach the heart of a poem, answering to
+Goethe's parabolic description; or even to discover a loop-hole, through
+which, from an opposite point, the glories of its stained windows are
+visible; it is well that he should seek to make others partakers in his
+pleasure and profit. Some who might not find out for themselves, would
+yet be evermore grateful to him who led them to the point of vision.
+Surely if a man would help his fellow-men, he can do so far more
+effectually by exhibiting truth than exposing error, by unveiling beauty
+than by a critical dissection of deformity. From the very nature of the
+things it must be so. Let the true and good destroy their opposites. It
+is only by the good and beautiful that the evil and ugly are known. It
+is the light that makes manifest.
+
+The poem "Christmas Eve," by Robert Browning, with the accompanying poem
+"Easter Day," seems not to have attracted much notice from the readers
+of poetry, although highly prized by a few. This is, perhaps, to be
+attributed, in a great measure, to what many would call a considerable
+degree of obscurity. But obscurity is the appearance which to a first
+glance may be presented either by profundity or carelessness of thought.
+To some, obscurity itself is attractive, from the hope that worthiness
+is the cause of it. To apply a test similar to that by which Pascal
+tries the Koran and the Scriptures: what is the character of those
+portions, the meaning of which is plain? Are they wise or foolish? If
+the former, the presumption is that the obscurity of other parts is
+caused not by opacity, but profundity. But some will object,
+notwithstanding, that a writer ought to make himself plain to his
+readers; nay, that if he has a clear idea himself, he must be able to
+express that idea clearly. But for communion of thought, two minds, not
+one, are necessary. The fault may lie in him that receives or in him
+that gives, or it may be in neither. For how can the result of much
+thought, the idea which for mouths has been shaping itself in the mind
+of one man, be at once received by another mind to which it comes a
+stranger and unexpected? The reader has no right to complain of so
+caused obscurity. Nor is that form of expression, which is most easily
+understood at first sight, necessarily the best. It will not, therefore,
+continue to move; nor will it gather force and influence with more
+intimate acquaintance. Here Goethe's little parable, as he calls it, is
+peculiarly applicable. But, indeed, if after all a writer is obscure,
+the man who has spent most labour in seeking to enter into his thoughts,
+will be the least likely to complain of his obscurity; and they who have
+the least difficulty in understanding a writer, are frequently those who
+understand him the least.
+
+To those to whom the religion of Christ has been the law of liberty; who
+by that door have entered into the universe of God, and have begun to
+feel a growing delight in all the manifestations of God, it is cause of
+much joy to find that, whatever may be the position taken by men of
+science, or by those in whom the intellect predominates, with regard to
+the Christian religion, men of genius, at least, in virtue of what is
+child-like in their nature, are, in the present time, plainly
+manifesting deep devotion to Christ. There are exceptions, certainly;
+but even in those, there are symptoms of feelings which, one can hardly
+help thinking, tend towards him, and will one day flame forth in
+conscious worship. A mind that recognizes any of the multitudinous
+meanings of the revelation of God, in the world of sounds, and forms,
+and colours, cannot be blind to the higher manifestation of God in
+common humanity; nor to him in whom is hid the key to the whole, the
+First-born of the creation of God, in whose heart lies, as yet but
+partially developed, the kingdom of heaven, which is the redemption of
+the earth. The mind that delights in that which is lofty and great,
+which feels there is something higher than self, will undoubtedly be
+drawn towards Christ; and they, who at first looked on him as a great
+prophet, came at length to perceive that he was the radiation of the
+Father's glory, the likeness of his unseen being.
+
+A description of the poem may, perhaps, both induce to the reading of
+it, and contribute to its easier comprehension while being perused. On a
+stormy Christmas Eve, the poet, or rather the seer (for the whole must
+be regarded as a poetic vision), is compelled to take refuge in the
+"lath and plaster entry" of a little chapel, belonging to a congregation
+of Calvinistic Methodists, who are at the time assembling for worship.
+Wonderful in its reality is the description of various of the flock that
+pass him as they enter the chapel, from
+
+ "the many-tattered
+ Little old-faced, peaking sister-turned-mother
+ Of the sickly babe she tried to smother
+ Somehow up, with its spotted face,
+ From the cold, on her breast, the one warm place:"
+
+to the "shoemaker's lad;" whom he follows, determined not to endure the
+inquisition of their looks any longer, into the chapel. The humour of
+the whole scene within is excellent. The stifling closeness, both of the
+atmosphere and of the sermon, the wonderful content of the audience, the
+"old fat woman," who
+
+ "purred with pleasure,
+ And thumb round thumb went twirling faster,
+ While she, to his periods keeping measure,
+ Maternally devoured the pastor;"
+
+are represented by a few rapid touches that bring certain points of the
+reality almost unpleasantly near. At length, unable to endure it longer,
+he rushes out into the air. Objection may, probably, be made to the
+mingling of the humorous, even the ridiculous, with the serious; at
+least, in a work of art like this, where they must be brought into such
+close proximity. But are not these things as closely connected in the
+world as they can be in any representation of it? Surely there are few
+who have never had occasion to attempt to reconcile the thought of the
+two in their own minds. Nor can there be anything human that is not, in
+some connexion or other, admissible into art. The widest idea of art
+must comprehend all things. A work of this kind must, like God's world,
+in which he sends rain on the just and on the unjust, be taken as a
+whole and in regard to its design. The requisition is, that everything
+introduced have a relation to the adjacent parts and to the whole
+suitable to the design. Here the thing is real, is true, is human; a
+thing to be thought about. It has its place amongst other phenomena,
+with which, however apparently incongruous, it is yet vitally connected
+within.
+
+A coolness and delight visit us, on turning over the page and commencing
+to read the description of sky, and moon, and clouds, which greet him
+outside the chapel. It is as a vision of the vision-bearing world
+itself, in one of its fine, though not, at first, one of its rarest
+moods. And here a short digression to notice like feelings in unlike
+dresses, one thought differently expressed will, perhaps, be pardoned.
+The moon is prevented from shining out by the "blocks" of cloud "built
+up in the west:"--
+
+ "And the empty other half of the sky
+ Seemed in its silence as if it knew
+ What, any moment, might look through
+ A chance-gap in that fortress massy."
+
+Old Henry Vaughan says of the "Dawning:"--
+
+ "The whole Creation shakes off night,
+ And for thy shadow looks the Light;
+ Stars now vanish without number,
+ Sleepie Planets set and slumber,
+ The pursie Clouds disband and scatter,
+ _All expect some sudden matter_."
+
+Calmness settles down on his mind. He walks on, thinking of the scene he
+had left, and the sermon he had heard. In the latter he sees the good
+and the bad intimately mingled; and is convinced that the chief benefit
+derived from it is a reproducing of former impressions. The thought
+crosses him, in how many places and how many different forms the same
+thing takes place, "a convincing" of the "convinced;" and he rejoices in
+the contrast which his church presents to these; for in the church of
+Nature his love to God, assurance of God's love to him, and confidence
+in the design of God regarding him, commenced. While exulting in God and
+the knowledge of Him to be attained hereafter, he is favoured with a
+sight of a glorious moon-rainbow, which elevates his worship to ecstasy.
+During which--
+
+ "All at once I looked up with terror--
+ He was there.
+ He himself with His human air,
+ On the narrow pathway, just before:
+ I saw the back of Him, no more--
+ He had left the chapel, then, as I.
+ I forgot all about the sky.
+ No face: only the sight
+ Of a sweepy garment, vast and white,
+ With a hem that I could recognize.
+ I felt terror, no surprise:
+ My mind filled with the cataract,
+ At one bound, of the mighty fact.
+ I remembered, He did say
+ Doubtless, that, to this world's end,
+ Where two or three should meet and pray,
+ He would be in the midst, their friend:
+ Certainly He was there with them.
+ And my pulses leaped for joy
+ Of the golden thought without alloy,
+ That I saw His very vesture's hem.
+ Then rushed the blood back, cold and clear,
+ With a fresh enhancing shiver of fear."
+
+Praying for forgiveness wherein he has sinned, and prostrate in
+adoration before the form of Christ, he is "caught up in the whirl and
+drift" of his vesture, and carried along with him over the earth.
+
+Stopping at length at the entrance of St. Peter's in Rome, he remains
+outside, while the form disappears within. He is able, however, to see
+all that goes on, in the crowded, hushed interior. It is high mass. He
+has been carried at once from the little chapel to the opposite
+aesthetic pole. From the entry, where--
+
+ "The flame of the single tallow candle
+ In the cracked square lanthorn I stood under
+ Shot its blue lip at me,"
+
+to--
+ "This miraculous dome of God--
+ This colonnade
+ With arms wide open to embrace
+ The entry of the human race
+ To the breast of.... what is it, yon building,
+ Ablaze in front, all paint and gilding,
+ With marble for brick, and stones of price
+ For garniture of the edifice?"
+
+to "those fountains"--
+
+ "Growing up eternally
+ Each to a musical water-tree,
+ Whose blossoms drop, a glittering boon,
+ Before my eyes, in the light of the moon,
+ To the granite lavers underneath;"
+
+from the singing of the chapel to the organ self-restrained, that "holds
+his breath and grovels latent," while expecting the elevation of the
+Host. Christ is within; he is left without. Reflecting on the matter, he
+thinks his Lord would not require him to go in, though he himself
+entered, because there was a way to reach him there. By-and-by, however,
+his heart awakes and declares that Love goes beyond error with them, and
+if the Intellect be kept down, yet Love is the oppressor; so next time
+he resolves to enter and praise along with them. The passage commencing,
+"Oh, love of those first Christian days!" describing Love's victory over
+Intellect, is very fine.
+
+Again he is caught up and carried along as before. This time halt is
+made at the door of a college in a German town, in which the class-room
+of one of the professors is open for lecture this Christmas Eve. It is,
+intellectually considered, the opposite pole to both the Methodist
+chapel and the Roman Basilica. The poet enters, fearful of losing the
+society of "any that call themselves his friends." He describes the
+assembled company, and the entrance of "the hawk-nosed, high-cheek-boned
+professor," of part of whose Christmas Eve's discourse he proceeds to
+give the substance. The professor takes it for granted that "plainly no
+such life was liveable," and goes on to inquire what explanation of the
+phenomena of the life of Christ it were best to adopt. Not that it
+mattered much, "so the idea be left the same." Taking the popular story,
+for convenience sake, and separating all extraneous matter from it, he
+found that Christ was simply a good man, with an honest, true heart;
+whose disciples thought him divine; and whose doctrine, though quite
+mistaken by those who received and published it, "had yet a meaning
+quite as respectable." Here the poet takes advantage of a pause to leave
+him; reflecting that though the air may be poisoned by the sects, yet
+here "the critic leaves no air to poison." His meditations and arguments
+following, are among the most valuable passages in the book. The
+professor, notwithstanding the idea of Christ has by him been exhausted
+of all that is peculiar to it, yet recommends him to the veneration and
+worship of his hearers, "rather than all who went before him, and all
+who ever followed after." But why? says the poet. For his intellect,
+
+ "Which tells me simply what was told
+ (If mere morality, bereft
+ Of the God in Christ, be all that's left)
+ Elsewhere by voices manifold?"
+
+with which must be combined the fact that this intellect of his did not
+save him from making the "important stumble," of saying that he and God
+were one. "But his followers misunderstood him," says the objector.
+Perhaps so; but "the stumbling-block, his speech, who laid it?" Well
+then, is it on the score of his goodness that he should rule his race?
+
+ "You pledge
+ Your fealty to such rule? What, all--
+ From Heavenly John and Attic Paul,
+ And that brave weather-battered Peter,
+ Whose stout faith only stood completer
+ For buffets, sinning to be pardoned,
+ As the more his hands hauled nets, they hardened--
+ All, down to you, the man of men,
+ Professing here at Gttingen,
+ Compose Christ's flock! So, you and I
+ Are sheep of a good man! And why?"
+
+Did Christ _invent_ goodness? or did he only demonstrate that of which
+the common conscience was judge?
+
+ "I would decree
+ Worship for such mere demonstration
+ And simple work of nomenclature,
+ Only the day I praised, not Nature,
+ But Harvey, for the circulation."
+
+The worst man, says the poet, _knows_ more than the best man _does_. God
+in Christ appeared to men to help them to _do_, to awaken the life
+within them.
+
+ "Morality to the uttermost,
+ Supreme in Christ as we all confess,
+ Why need _we_ prove would avail no jot
+ To make Him God, if God he were not?
+ What is the point where Himself lays stress?
+ Does the precept run, 'Believe in good,
+ In justice, truth, now understood
+ For the first time?'--or, 'Believe in ME,
+ Who lived and died, yet essentially
+ Am Lord of life'? Whoever can take
+ The same to his heart, and for mere love's sake
+ Conceive of the love,--that man obtains
+ A new truth; no conviction gains
+ Of an old one only, made intense
+ By a fresh appeal to his faded sense."
+
+In this lies the most direct practical argument with regard to what is
+commonly called the Divinity of Christ. Here is a man whom those that
+magnify him the least confess to be a good man, the best of men. He
+_says_, "I and the Father are one." Will an earnest heart, knowing this,
+be likely to draw back, or will it draw nearer to behold the great
+sight? Will not such a heart feel: "A good man like this would not have
+said so, were it not so. In all probability the great truth of God lies
+behind this veil." The reality of Christ's nature is not to be proved by
+argument. He must be beheld. The manifestation of Him must "gravitate
+inwards" on the soul. It is by looking that one can know. As a
+mathematical theorem is to be proved only by the demonstration of that
+theorem itself, not by talking _about_ it; so Christ must prove himself
+to the human soul through being beheld. The only proof of Christ's
+divinity is his humanity. Because his humanity is not comprehended, his
+divinity is doubted; and while the former is uncomprehended, an assent
+to the latter is of little avail. For a man to theorize theologically in
+any form, while he has not so apprehended Christ, or to neglect the
+gazing on him for the attempt to substantiate to himself any form of
+belief respecting him, is to bring on himself, in a matter of divine
+import, such errors as the expounders of nature in old time brought on
+themselves, when they speculated on what a thing must be, instead of
+observing what it was; this _must be_ having for its foundation not
+self-evident truth, but notions whose chief strength lay in their
+preconception. There are thoughts and feelings that cannot be called up
+in the mind by any power of will or force of imagination; which, being
+spiritual, must arise in the soul when in its highest spiritual
+condition; when the mind, indeed, like a smooth lake, reflects only
+heavenly images. A steadfast regarding of Him will produce this calm,
+and His will be the heavenly form reflected from the mental depth.
+
+But to return to the poem. The fact that Christ remains inside, leads
+the poet to reflect, in the spirit of Him who found all the good in men
+he could, neglecting no point of contact which presented itself, whether
+there was anything at this lecture with which he could sympathize; and
+he finds that the heart of the professor does something to rescue him
+from the error of his brain. In his brain, even, "if Love's dead there,
+it has left a ghost." For when the natural deduction from his argument
+would be that our faith
+
+ "Be swept forthwith to its natural dust-hole,--
+ He bids us, when we least expect it,
+ Take back our faith--if it be not just whole,
+ Yet a pearl indeed, as his tests affect it,
+ Which fact pays the damage done rewardingly,
+ So, prize we our dust and ashes accordingly!"
+
+Love as well as learning being necessary to the understanding of the New
+Testament, it is to the poet matter of regret that "loveless learning"
+should leave its proper work, and make such havoc in that which belongs
+not to it. But while he sits "talking with his mind," his mood begins to
+degenerate from sympathy with that which is good to indifference towards
+all forms, and he feels inclined to rest quietly in the enjoyment of his
+own religious confidence, and trouble himself in no wise about the faith
+of his neighbours; for doubtless all are partakers of the central light,
+though variously refracted by the varied translucency of the mental
+prism....
+
+ "'Twas the horrible storm began afresh!
+ The black night caught me in his mesh,
+ Whirled me up, and flung me prone!
+ I was left on the college-step alone.
+ I looked, and far there, ever fleeting
+ Far, far away, the receding gesture,
+ And looming of the lessening vesture,
+ Swept forward from my stupid hand,
+ While I watched my foolish heart expand
+ In the lazy glow of benevolence
+ O'er the various modes of man's belief.
+ I sprang up with fear's vehemence.
+ --Needs must there be one way, our chief
+ Best way of worship: let me strive
+ To find it, and when found, contrive
+ My fellows also take their share.
+ This constitutes my earthly care:
+ God's is above it and distinct!"
+
+The symbolism in the former part of this extract is grand. As soon as he
+ceases to look practically on the phenomena with which he is surrounded,
+he is enveloped in storm and darkness, and sees only in the far distance
+the disappearing skirt of his Lord's garment. God's care is over all, he
+goes on to say; I must do _my part_. If I look speculatively on the
+world, there is nothing but dimness and mystery. If I look practically
+on it,
+
+ "No mere mote's-breadth, but teems immense
+ With witnessings of Providence."
+
+And whether the world which I seek to help censures or praises me--that
+is nothing to me. My life--how is it with me?
+
+ "Soul of mine, hadst thou caught and held
+ By the hem of the vesture....
+ And I caught
+ At the flying robe, and, unrepelled,
+ Was lapped again in its folds full-fraught
+ With warmth and wonder and delight,
+ God's mercy being infinite.
+ And scarce had the words escaped my tongue,
+ When, at a passionate bound, I sprung
+ Out of the wandering world of rain,
+ Into the little chapel again."
+
+Had he dreamed? how then could he report of the sermon and the preacher?
+of which and of whom he proceeds to give a very external account. But
+correcting himself--
+
+ "Ha! Is God mocked, as He asks?
+ Shall I take on me to change his tasks,
+ And dare, despatched to a river-head
+ For a simple draught of the element,
+ Neglect the thing for which He sent,
+ And return with another thing instead!
+ Saying .... 'Because the water found
+ Welling up from underground,
+ Is mingled with the taints of earth,
+ While Thou, I know, dost laugh at dearth,
+ And couldest, at a word, convulse
+ The world with the leap of its river-pulse,--
+ Therefore I turned from the oozings muddy,
+ And bring thee a chalice I found, instead.
+ See the brave veins in the breccia ruddy!
+ One would suppose that the marble bled.
+ What matters the water? A hope I have nursed,
+ That the waterless cup will quench my thirst.'
+ --Better have knelt at the poorest stream
+ That trickles in pain from the straitest rift!
+ For the less or the more is all God's gift,
+ Who blocks up or breaks wide the granite seam.
+ And here, is there water or not, to drink?"
+
+He comes to the conclusion, that the best for him is that mode of
+worship which partakes the least of human forms, and brings him nearest
+to the spiritual; and, while expressing good wishes for the Pope and the
+professor--
+
+ "Meantime, in the still recurring fear
+ Lest myself, at unawares, be found,
+ While attacking the choice of my neighbours round,
+ Without my own made--I choose here!"
+
+He therefore joins heartily in the hymn which is sung by the
+congregation of the little chapel at the close of their worship. And
+this concludes the poem.
+
+What is the central point from which this poem can be regarded? It does
+not seem to be very hard to find. Novalis has said: "Die Philosophie ist
+eigentlich Heimweh, ein Trieb berall zu Hause zu sein." (Philosophy is
+really home-sickness, an impulse to be at home everywhere.) The life of
+a man here, if life it be, and not the vain image of what might be a
+life, is a continual attempt to find his place, his centre of
+recipiency, and active agency. He wants to know where he is, and where
+he ought to be and can be; for, rightly considered, the position a man
+ought to occupy is the only one he truly _can_ occupy. It is a climbing
+and striving to reach that point of vision where the multiplex crossings
+and apparent intertwistings of the lines of fact and feeling and duty
+shall manifest themselves as a regular and symmetrical design. A
+contradiction, or a thing unrelated, is foreign and painful to him, even
+as the rocky particle in the gelatinous substance of the oyster; and,
+like the latter, he can only rid himself of it by encasing it in the
+pearl-like enclosure of faith; believing that hidden there lies the
+necessity for a higher theory of the universe than has yet been
+generated in his soul. The quest for this home-centre, in the man who
+has faith, is calm and ceaseless; in the man whose faith is weak, it is
+stormy and intermittent. Unhappy is that man, of necessity, whose
+perceptions are keener than his faith is strong. Everywhere Nature
+herself is putting strange questions to him; the human world is full of
+dismay and confusion; his own conscience is bewildered by contradictory
+appearances; all which may well happen to the man whose eye is not yet
+single, whose heart is not yet pure. He is not at home; his soul is
+astray amid people of a strange speech and a stammering tongue. But the
+faithful man is led onward; in the stillness that his confidence
+produces arise the bright images of truth; and visions of God, which are
+only beheld in solitary places, are granted to his soul.
+
+ "O struggling with the darkness all the night,
+ And visited all night by troops of stars!"
+
+What is true of the whole, is true of its parts. In all the relations of
+life, in all the parts of the great whole of existence, the true man is
+ever seeking his home. This poem seems to show us such a quest. "Here I
+am in the midst of many who belong to the same family. They differ in
+education, in habits, in forms of thought; but they are called by the
+same name. What position with regard to them am I to assume? I am a
+Christian; how am I to live in relation to Christians?" Such seems to be
+something like the poet's thought. What central position can he gain,
+which, while it answers best the necessities of his own soul with regard
+to God, will enable him to feel himself connected with the whole
+Christian world, and to sympathize with all; so that he may not be
+alone, but one of the whole. Certainly the position necessary for both
+requirements is one and the same. He that is isolated from his brethren,
+loses one of the greatest helps to draw near to God. Now, in this time,
+which is so peculiarly transitional, this is a question of no little
+import for all who, while they gladly forsake old, or rather _modern_,
+theories, for what is to them a more full development of Christianity as
+well as a return to the fountain-head, yet seek to be saved from the
+danger of losing sympathy with those who are content with what they are
+compelled to abandon. Seeing much in the common modes of thought and
+belief that is inconsistent with Christianity, and even opposed to it,
+they yet cannot but see likewise in many of them a power of spiritual
+good; which, though not dependent on the peculiar mode, is yet
+enveloped, if not embodied, in that mode.
+
+ "Ask, else, these ruins of humanity,
+ This flesh worn out to rags and tatters,
+ This soul at struggle with insanity,
+ Who thence take comfort, can I doubt,
+ Which an empire gained, were a loss without."
+
+The love of God is the soul of Christianity. Christ is the body of that
+truth. The love of God is the creating and redeeming, the forming and
+satisfying power of the universe. The love of God is that which kills
+evil and glorifies goodness. It is the safety of the great whole. It is
+the home-atmosphere of all life. Well does the poet of the "Christmas
+Eve" say:--
+
+ "The loving worm within its clod,
+ Were diviner than a loveless God
+ Amid his worlds, I will dare to say."
+
+Surely then, inasmuch as man is made in the image of God nothing less
+than a love in the image of God's love, all-embracing, quietly excusing,
+heartily commending, can constitute the blessedness of man; a love not
+insensible to that which is foreign to it, but overcoming it with good.
+Where man loves in his kind, even as God loves in His kind, then man is
+saved, then he has reached the unseen and eternal. But if, besides the
+necessity to love that lies in a man, there be likewise in the man whom
+he ought to love something in common with him, then the law of love has
+increased force. If that point of sympathy lies at the centre of the
+being of each, and if these centres are brought into contact, then the
+circles of their being will be, if not coincident, yet concentric. We
+must wait patiently for the completion of God's great harmony, and
+meantime love everywhere and as we can.
+
+But the great lesson which this poem teaches, and which is taught more
+directly in the "Easter Day" (forming part of the same volume), is that
+the business of a man's life is to be a Christian. A man has to do with
+God first; in Him only can he find the unity and harmony he seeks. To be
+one with Him is to be at the centre of things. If one acknowledges that
+God has revealed himself in Christ; that God has recognized man as his
+family, by appearing among them in their form; surely that very
+acknowledgment carries with it the admission that man's chief concern is
+with this revelation. What does God say and mean, teach and manifest,
+herein? If this world is God's making, and he is present in all nature;
+if he rules all things and is present in all history; if the soul of man
+is in his image, with all its circles of thought and multiplicity of
+forms; and if for man it be not enough to be rooted in God, but he must
+likewise lay hold on God; then surely no question, in whatever
+direction, can be truly answered, save by him who stands at the side of
+Christ. The doings of God cannot be understood, save by him who has the
+mind of Christ, which is the mind of God. All things must be strange to
+one who sympathizes not with the thought of the Maker, who understands
+not the design of the Artist. Where is he to begin? What light has he by
+which to classify? How will he bring order out of this apparent
+confusion, when the order is higher than his thought; when the confusion
+to him is _caused_ by the order's being greater than he can comprehend?
+Because he stands outside and not within, he sees an entangled maze of
+forces, where there is in truth an intertwining dance of harmony. There
+is for no one any solution of the world's mystery, or of any part of its
+mystery, except he be able to say with our poet:--
+
+ "I have looked to Thee from the beginning,
+ Straight up to Thee through all the world,
+ Which, like an idle scroll, lay furled
+ To nothingness on either side:
+ And since the time Thou wast descried,
+ Spite of the weak heart, so have I
+ Lived ever, and so fain would die,
+ Living and dying, Thee before!"
+
+Christianity is not the ornament, or even complement, of life; it is its
+necessity; it is life itself glorified into God's ideal.
+
+Dr. Chalmers, from considering the minuteness of the directions given to
+Moses for the making of the tabernacle, was led to think that he himself
+was wrong in attending too little to the "_petite morale_" of dress.
+Will this be excuse enough for occupying a few sentences with the
+rhyming of this poem? Certainly the rhymes of a poem form no small part
+of its artistic existence. Probably there is a deeper meaning in this
+part of the poetic art than has yet been made clear to poet's mind. In
+this poem the rhymes have their share in its humorous charm. The
+writer's power of using double and triple rhymes is remarkable, and the
+effect is often pleasing, even where they are used in the more solemn
+parts of the poem. Take the lines:--
+
+ "No! love which, on earth, amid all the shows of it,
+ Has ever been seen the sole good of life in it,
+ The love, ever growing there, spite of the strife in it,
+ Shall arise, made perfect, from death's repose of it."
+
+A poem is a thing not for the understanding or heart only, but likewise
+for the ear; or, rather, for the understanding and heart through the
+ear. The best poem is best set forth when best read. If, then, there be
+rhymes which, when read aloud, do, by their composition of words,
+prevent the understanding from laying hold on the separate words, while
+the ear lays hold on the rhymes, the perfection of the art must here be
+lost sight of, notwithstanding the completeness which the rhyming
+manifests on close examination. For instance, in "_equipt yours,"
+"Scriptures;" "Manchester," "haunches stir_;" or "_affirm any,"
+"Germany_;" where two words rhyme with one word. But there are very few
+of them that are objectionable on account of this difficulty and
+necessity of rapid analysis.
+
+One of the most wonderful things in the poem is, that so much of
+argument is expressed in a species of verse, which one might be
+inclined, at first sight, to think the least fitted for embodying it.
+But, in fact, the same amount of argument in any other kind of verse
+would, in all likelihood, have been intolerably dull as a work of art.
+Here the verse is full of life and vigour, flagging never. Where, in
+several parts, the exact meaning is difficult to reach, this results
+chiefly from the dramatic rapidity and condensation of the thoughts. The
+argumentative power is indeed wonderful; the arguments themselves
+powerful in their simplicity, and embodied in words of admirable force.
+The poem is full of pathos and humour; full of beauty and grandeur,
+earnestness and truth.
+
+
+
+
+ESSAYS ON SOME OF THE FORMS OF LITERATURE
+
+
+[Footnote: "Essays on some of
+the Forms of Literature." By T.T. Lynch, Author of "Theophilus Trinal."
+Longmans.]
+
+
+Schoppe, the satiric chorus of Jean Paul's romance of Titan, makes his
+appearance at a certain masked ball, carrying in front of him a glass
+case, in which the ball is remasked, repeated, and again reflected in a
+mirror behind, by a set of puppets, ludicrously aping the apery of the
+courtiers, whose whole life and outward manifestation was but a
+body-mask mechanically moved with the semblance of real life and action.
+The court simulates reality. The masks are a multiform mockery at their
+own unreality, and as such are regarded by Schoppe, who takes them off
+with the utmost ridicule in his masked puppet-show, which, with its
+reflection in the mirror, is again indefinitely multiplied in the
+many-sided reflector of Schoppe's, or of Richter's, or of the reader's
+own imagination. The successive retreating and beholding in this scene
+is suggested to the reviewer by the fact that the last of these essays
+by Mr. Lynch is devoted in part to reviews. So that the reviews review
+books,--Mr. Lynch reviews the reviews, and the present Reviewer finds
+himself (somewhat presumptuously, it may be) attempting to review Mr.
+Lynch. In this, however, his office must be very different from that of
+Schoppe (for there is a deeper and more real correspondence between the
+position of the showman and the reviewer than that outward resemblance
+which first caused the one to suggest the other). The latter's office,
+in the present instance, was, by mockery, to destroy the false, the very
+involution of the satire adding to the strength of the ridicule. His
+glass case was simply a review uttered by shapes and wires instead of
+words and handwriting. And the work of the true critic must sometimes be
+to condemn, and, as far as his strength can reach, utterly to destroy
+the false,--scorching and withering its seeming beauty, till it is
+reduced to its essence and original groundwork of dust and ashes. It is
+only, however, when it wears the form of beauty which is the garment of
+truth, and so, like the Erl-maidens, has power to bewitch, that it is
+worth the notice and attack of the critic. Many forms of error, perhaps
+most, are better left alone to die of their own weakness, for the
+galvanic battery of criticism only helps to perpetuate their ghastly
+life. The highest work of the critic, however, must surely be to direct
+attention to the true, in whatever form it may have found utterance. But
+on this let us hear Mr. Lynch himself in the last of these four lectures
+which were delivered by him at the Royal Institution, Manchester, and
+are now before us in the form of a book:--
+
+"The kritikos, the discerner, if he is ever saying to us, This is not
+gold; and never, This is; is either very humbly useful, or very
+perverse, or very unfortunate. This is not gold, he says. Thank you, we
+reply, we perceived as much. And this is not, he adds. True, we answer,
+but we see gold grains glittering out of its rude, dark mass. Well, at
+least, this is not, he proceeds. Perverse man! we retort, are you
+seeking what is not gold? We are inquiring for what is, and unfortunate
+indeed are we if, born into a world of Nature, and of Spirit once so
+rich, we are born but to find that it has spent or has lost all its
+wealth. Unhappy man would he be, who, walking his garden, should scent
+only the earthy savour of leaves dead or dying, never perceiving, and
+that afar off, the heavenly odour of roses fresh to-day from the Maker's
+hands. The discerning by spiritual aroma may lead to discernment by the
+eye, and to that careful scrutiny, and thence greater knowledge, of
+which the eye is instrument and minister."
+
+And again:--
+
+"The critic criticized, if dealt with in the worst fashion of his own
+class, must be pronounced a mere monster, 'seeking whom he may devour;'
+and, therefore, to be hunted and slain as speedily as possible, and
+stuffed for the museum, where he may be regarded with due horror, but in
+safety. But if dealt with after the best fashion of his class, a very
+honourable and beneficent office is assigned him, and he is warned
+only--though zealously--against its perversions. A judicial chair in the
+kingdom of human thought, filled by a man of true integrity,
+comprehensiveness, and delicacy of spirit, is a seat of terror and
+praise, whose powers are at once most fostering to whatever is good,
+most repressive of whatever is evil.... The critic, in his office of
+censurer, has need so much to controvert, expose, and punish, because of
+the abundance of literary faults; and as there is a right and a wrong
+side in warfare, so there will be in criticism. And as when soldiers are
+numerous, there will be not a few who are only tolerable, if even that,
+so of critics. But then the critic is more than the censurer; and in his
+higher and happier aspect appears before us and serves us, as the
+discoverer, the vindicator, and the eulogist of excellence."
+
+But resisting the temptation to quote further from Mr. Lynch's book on
+this matter of Criticism, which seemed the natural point of contact by
+which the Reviewer could lay hold on the book, he would pass on with the
+remark that his duty in the present instance is of the nobler and better
+sort--nobler and better, that is, with regard to the object, for duty in
+the man remains ever the same--namely, the exposition of excellence, and
+not of its opposite. Mr. Lynch is a man of true insight and large heart,
+who has already done good in the world, and will do more; although,
+possibly, he belongs rather to the last class of writers described by
+himself, in the extract I am about to give from this same essay, than to
+any of the preceding:--
+
+"Some of the best books are written avowedly, or with evident
+consciousness of the fact, for the select public that is constituted by
+minds of the deeper class, or minds the more advanced of their time.
+Such books may have but a restricted circulation and limited esteem in
+their own day, and may afterwards extend both their fame and the circle
+of their readers. Others of the best books, written with a pathos and a
+power that may be universally felt, appeal at once to the common
+humanity of the world, and get a response marvellously strong and
+immediate. An ordinary human eye and heart, whose glances are true,
+whose pulses healthy, will fit us to say of much that we read--This is
+good, that is poor. But only the educated eye and the experienced heart
+will fit us to judge of what relates to matters veiled from ordinary
+observation, and belonging to the profounder region of human thought and
+emotion. Powers, however, that the few only possess, may be required to
+paint what everybody can see, so that everybody shall say, How
+beautiful! how like! And powers adequate to do this in the finest manner
+will be often adequate to do much more--may produce, indeed, books or
+pictures, whose singular merit only the few shall perceive, and the many
+for awhile deny, and books or pictures which, while they give an
+immediate and pure pleasure to the common eye, shall give a far fuller
+and finer pleasure to that eye that is the organ of a deeper and more
+cultivated soul. There are, too, men of _peculiar_ powers, rare and
+fine, who can never hope to please the large public, at least of their
+own age, but whose writings are a heart's ease and heart's joy to the
+select few, and serve such as a cup of heavenly comfort for the earth's
+journey, and a lamp of heavenly light for the shadows of the way."
+
+One other extract from the general remarks on Books in this essay, and
+we will turn to another:--
+
+"In all our estimation of the various qualities of books, if it be true
+that our reading assists our life, it is true also that our life assists
+our reading. If we let our spirit talk to us in undistracted moments--if
+we commune with friendly, serious Nature, face to face, often--if we
+pursue honourable aims in a steady progress--if we learn how a man's
+best work falls below his thought, yet how still his failure prompts a
+tenderer love of his thought--if we live in sincere, frank relations
+with some few friends, joying in their joy, hearing the tale and sharing
+the pain of their grief, and in frequent interchange of honest,
+household sensibility--if we look about us on character, marking
+distinctly what we can see, and feeling the prompting of a hundred
+questions concerning what is out of our ken:--if we live thus, we shall
+be good readers and critics of books, and improving ones."
+
+The second and third of these essays are on Biography and Fiction
+respectively and principally; treating, however, of collateral subjects
+as well. Deep is the relation between the life shadowed forth in a
+biography, and the life in a man's brain which he shadows forth in a
+fiction--when that fiction is of the highest order, and written in love,
+is beheld even by the writer himself with reverence. Delightful, surely,
+it must be; yes, awful too, to read to-day the embodiment of a man's
+noblest thought, to follow the hero of his creation through his
+temptations, contests, and victories, in a world which likewise is--
+
+ "All made out of the carver's brain;"
+
+and to-morrow to read the biography of this same writer. What of his own
+ideal has he realized? Where can the life-fountain be detected within
+him which found issue to the world's light and air, in this ideal self?
+Shall God's fiction, which is man's reality, fall short of man's
+fiction? Shall a man be less than what he can conceive and utter? Surely
+it will not, cannot end thus. If a man live at all in harmony with the
+great laws of being--if he will permit the working out of God's idea in
+him, he must one day arrive at something greater than what now he can
+project and behold. Yet, in biography, we do not so often find traces of
+those struggles depicted in the loftier fiction. One reason may be that
+the contest is often entirely within, and so a man may have won his
+spiritual freedom without any outward token directly significant of the
+victory; except, if he be an artist, such expression as it finds in
+fiction, whether the fiction be in marble, or in sweet harmonies, or in
+ink. Nor can we determine the true significance of any living act; for
+being ourselves within the compass of the life-mystery, we cannot hold
+it at arm's length from us and look at its lines of configuration. Nor
+of a life can we in any measure determine the success by what we behold
+of it. It is to us at best but a truncated spire, whose want of
+completion may be the greater because of the breadth of its base, and
+its slow taper, indicating the lofty height to which it is intended to
+aspire. The idea of our own life is more than we can embrace. It is not
+ours, but God's, and fades away into the infinite. Our comprehension is
+finite; we ourselves infinite. We can only trust in God and do the
+truth; then, and then only, is our life safe, and sure both of
+continuance and development.
+
+But the reviewer perhaps too often merely steals his author's text and
+writes upon it; or, like a man who lies in bed thinking about a dream
+till its folds enwrap him and he sinks into the midst of its visions, he
+forgets his position of beholding, and passes from observation into
+spontaneous utterance. What says our author about "biography,
+autobiography, and history?" This lecture has pleased the reviewer most
+of the four. Reading it in a lonely place, under a tree, with wide
+fields and slopes around, it produced on his mind the two effects which
+perhaps Mr. Lynch would most wish it should produce--namely, first, a
+longing to lead a more true and noble life; and, secondly, a desire to
+read more biography. Nor can he but hope that it must produce the same
+effect on every earnest reader, on every one whose own biography would
+not be altogether a blank in what regards the individual will and
+spiritual aim.
+
+"In meditative hours, when we blend despair of ourself with complaint of
+the world, the biography of a man successful in this great business of
+living is as the visit of an angel sent to strengthen us. Give the
+soldier his sword, the farmer his plough, the carpenter his hammer and
+nails, the manufacturer his machines, the merchant his stores, and the
+scholar his books; these are but implements; the man is more than his
+work or tools. How far has he fulfilled the law of his being, and
+attained its desire? Is his life a whole; the days as threads and as
+touches; the life, the well-woven garment, the well-painted picture?
+Which of two sacrifices has he offered--the one so acceptable to the
+powers of dark worlds, the other so acceptable to powers of bright
+ones--that of soul to body, or that of body to soul? Has he slain what
+was holiest in him to obtain gifts from Fashion or Mammon? Or has he, in
+days so arduous, so assiduous, that they are like a noble army of
+martyrs, made burnt-offering of what was secondary, throwing into the
+flames the salt of true moral energy and the incense of cordial
+affections? We want the work to show us by its parts, its mass, its
+form, the qualities of the man, and to see that the man is perfected
+through his work as well as the work finished by his effort."
+
+Perhaps the highest moral height which a man can reach, and at the same
+time the most difficult of attainment, is the willingness to be
+_nothing_ relatively, so that he attain that positive excellence which
+the original conditions of his being render not merely possible, but
+imperative. It is nothing to a man to be greater or less than
+another--to be esteemed or otherwise by the public or private world in
+which he moves. Does he, or does he not, behold, and love, and live, the
+unchangeable, the essential, the divine? This he can only do according
+as God hath made him. He can behold and understand God in the least
+degree, as well as in the greatest, only by the godlike within him; and
+he that loves thus the good and great, has no room, no thought, no
+necessity for comparison and difference. The truth satisfies him. He
+lives in its absoluteness. God makes the glow-worm as well as the star;
+the light in both is divine. If mine be an earth-star to gladden the
+wayside, I must cultivate humbly and rejoicingly its green earth-glow,
+and not seek to blanch it to the whiteness of the stars that lie in the
+fields of blue. For to deny God in my own being is to cease to behold
+him in any. God and man can meet only by the man's becoming that which
+God meant him to be. Then he enters into the house of life, which is
+greater than the house of fame. It is better to be a child in a green
+field than a knight of many orders in a state ceremonial.
+
+"One biography may help conjecture or satisfy reason concerning the
+story of a thousand unrecorded lives. And how few even of the deserving
+among the multitude can deserve, as 'dear sons of memory,' to be shrined
+in the public heart. Few of us die unwept, but most of us unwritten. We
+shall find a grave--less certainly a tombstone--and with much less
+likelihood a biographer. Those 'bright particular' stars that at evening
+look towards us from afar, yet still are individual in the distance, are
+at clearest times but about a thousand; but the milky lustre that runs
+through mid heaven is composed of a million million lights, which are
+not the less separate because seen undistinguishably. Absorbed, not
+lost, in the multitude of the unrecorded, our private dear ones make
+part in this mild, blissful shining of the 'general assembly,' the great
+congregation of the skies. Thus the past is aglow with the unwritten,
+the nameless. The leaders, sons of fame, conspicuous in lustre, eminent
+in place; these are the few, whose great individuality burns with
+distinct, starry light through the dark of ages. Such stars, without the
+starry way, would not teach us the vastness of heaven; and the 'way,'
+without these, were not sufficient to gladden and glorify the night with
+pomp of Hierarchical Ascents of Domination."
+
+There are many passages in this essay with which the reviewer would be
+glad to enrich his notice of the book, but limitation of space, and
+perhaps justice to the essay itself, which ought to be read in its own
+completeness, forbid. Mr. Lynch looks to the heart of the matter, and
+makes one put the question--"Would not a biography written by Mr. Lynch
+himself be a valuable addition to this kind of literature?" His would
+not be an interesting account of outward events and relationships and
+progress, nor even a succession of revelations of inward conditions, but
+we should expect to find ourselves elevated by him to a point of view
+from which the life of the man would assume an artistic individuality,
+as it were an isolation of existence; for the supposed author could not
+choose for his regard any biography for which this would be impossible;
+or in which the reticulated nerves of purpose did not combine the whole,
+with more or less of success, into a true and remarkable unity. One
+passage more from this essay,--
+
+"Biography, then, makes life known to us as more wealthy in character,
+and much more remarkable in its every-day stories, than we had deemed
+it. Another good it does us is this. It introduces us to some of our
+most agreeable and stimulative friendships. People may be more
+beneficially intimate with one they never saw than even with a neighbour
+or brother. Many a solitary, puzzled, incommunicative person, has found
+society provided, his riddle read, and his heart's secret, that longed
+and strove for utterance, outspoken for him in a biography. And both a
+love purer than any yet entertained may be originated, and a pure but
+ungratified love already existing, find an object, by the visit of a
+biography. In actual life you see your friend to-day, and will see him
+again to-morrow or next year; but in the dear book, you have your friend
+and all his experiences at once and ever. He is with you wholly, and may
+be with you at any time. He lives for you, and has already died for you,
+to give finish to the meaning, fulness, and sanctity, to the comfort of
+his days. He is mysteriously above as well as before you, by this fact,
+that he has died. Thus your intimate is your superior, your solace, but
+your support, too, and an example of the victory to which he calls you.
+His end, or her end, is our own in view, and the flagging spirit
+revives. We see the goal, and gird our loins anew for the race. Or,
+speaking of things minor, there is fresh prospect of the game, there is
+companionship in the hunt, and spirit for the winning. Such biography,
+too, is a mirror in which we see ourselves; and we see that we may trim
+or adorn, or that the plain signs of our deficient health or ill-ruled
+temper may set us to look for, and to use the means of improvement. But
+such a mirror is as a water one; in which first you may see your face,
+and which then becomes for you a bath to wash away the stains you see,
+and to offer its pure, cool stream as a restorative and cosmetic for
+your wrinkles and pallors. And what a pleasure there will be sometimes
+as we peruse a biography, in finding another who is so like
+ourself--saying the same things, feeling the same dreads, and shames, and
+flutterings; hampered and harassed much as poor self is. Then, the
+escapes of such a friend give us hope of deliverance for ourself; and
+his better, or if not better, yet rewarded, patience, freshens our eye
+and sinews, and puts a staff into our hand. And certain seals of
+impossibility that we had put on this stone, and on that, beneath which
+our hopes lay buried, are by this biography, as by a visiting angel,
+effectually broken, and our hopes arise again. Our view of life becomes
+more complete because we see the whole of his, or of hers. We view life,
+too, in a more composed, tender way. Wavering faith, in its chosen
+determining principles, is confirmed. In quiet comparison of ourselves
+with one of our own class, or one who has made the mark for which we are
+striving, we are shamed to have done no better, and stirred to attempt
+former things again, or fresh ones in a stronger and more patient
+spirit."
+
+It is, indeed, well with him who has found a friend whose spirit touches
+his own and illuminates it.
+
+ "I missed him when the sun began to bend;
+ I found him not when I had lost his rim;
+ With many tears I went in search of him,
+ Climbing high mountains which did still ascend,
+ And gave me echoes when I called my friend;
+ Through cities vast and charnel-houses grim,
+ And high cathedrals where the light was dim;
+ Through books, and arts, and works without an end--
+ But found him not, the friend whom I had lost.
+ And yet I found him, as I found the lark,
+ A sound in fields I heard but could not mark;
+ I found him nearest when I missed him most,
+ I found him in my heart, a life in frost,
+ A light I knew not till my soul was dark."
+
+Next to possessing a true, wise, and victorious friend seated by your
+fireside, it is blessed to have the spirit of such a friend
+embodied--for spirit can assume any embodiment--on your bookshelves. But
+in the latter case the friendship is all on one side. For full
+friendship your friend must love you, and know that you love him. Surely
+these biographies are not merely spiritual links connecting us in the
+truest manner with past times and vanished minds, and thus producing
+strong half friendships. Are they not likewise links connecting us with
+a future, wherein these souls shall dawn upon ours, rising again from
+the death of the past into the life of our knowledge and love? Are not
+these biographies letters of introduction, forwarded, but not yet
+followed by him whom they introduce, for whose step we listen, and whose
+voice we long to hear; and whom we shall yet meet somewhere in the
+Infinite? Shall I not one day, "somewhere, somehow," clasp the large
+hand of Novalis, and, gazing on his face, compare his features with
+those of Saint John?
+
+The essay on light literature must be left to the spontaneous
+appreciation of those who are already acquainted with this book, or who
+may be induced, by the representations here made, to become acquainted
+with it. Before proceeding to notice the first essay in the little
+volume, namely, that on Poetry, its subject suggests the fact of the
+publication of a second edition of the Memorials of Theophilus Trinal,
+by the same author, a portion of which consists of interspersed poems.
+These are of true poetic worth; and although in some cases wanting in
+rhythmic melody, yet in most of these cases they possess a wild and
+peculiar rhythm of their own. The reviewer knows of some whose hearts
+this book has made glad, and doubtless there are many such.
+
+The essay on Poetry is itself poetic throughout in its expression. And
+how else shall Poetry be described than by Poetry? What form shall
+embrace and define the highest? Must it not be self-descriptive as
+self-existent? For what man is to this planet, what the eye is to man
+himself, Poetry is to Literature. Yet one can hardly help wishing that
+the poetic forms in this Essay were fewer and less minute, and the whole
+a little more scientific; though it is a question how far we have a
+right to ask for this. As you open it, however, the pages seem
+absolutely to sparkle, as if strewn with diamond sparks. It is no dull,
+metallic, surface lustre, but a shining from within, as well as from the
+superficies. Still one cannot deny that fancy is too prominent in Mr.
+Lynch's writings. It is true that his Fancy is the fairy attendant on
+his Imagination, which latter uses the former for her own higher ends;
+and that there is little or no _mere_ fancy to be found in his books;
+for if you look below the surface-form you find a truth. But it were to
+be desired that the Truth clothed herself always in the living forms of
+Imagination, and thus walked forth amongst her worshippers, looking on
+them from living eyes, rather than that she should show herself through
+the windows of fancy. Sometimes there may be an offence against taste,
+as in page 20; sometimes an image may be expanded too much, and
+sometimes the very exuberance of imaginative fancy (if the combination
+be correct) may lead to an association of images that suggests
+incongruity. Still the essay is abundantly beautiful and true. The
+poetical quotations are not isolated, or exposed to view as specimens,
+but are worked into the web of the prose like the flowers in the damask,
+and do their part in the evolution of the continuous thought.
+
+"If poetry, as light from the heart of God, is for our heart, that we
+may brighten and distinguish individual things; if it is to transfigure
+for us the round, dusk world as by an inner radiance; if it is to
+present human life and history as Rembrandt pictures, in which darkness
+serves and glorifies light; if, like light, formless in its essence, all
+things shapen towards the perfection of their forms under its influence;
+if, entering as through crevices in single beams, it makes dimmest
+places cheerful and sacred with its golden touch: then must the heart of
+the Poet in which this true light shineth be as a hospice on the
+mountain pathways of the world, and his verse must be the lamp seen from
+far that burns to tell us where bread and shelter, drink, fire, and
+companionship, may be found; and he himself should have the
+mountaineer's hardiness and resolution. From the heart as source, to the
+heart in influence, Poetry comes. The inward, the upward, and the
+onward, whether we speak of an individual or a nation, may not be
+separated in our consideration. Deep and sacred imaginative meditations
+are needed for the true earthward as well as for the heavenward progress
+of men and peoples. And Poetry, whether old or new, streaming from the
+heart moved by the powerful spirit of love, has influence on the heart
+public and individual, and thence on the manners, laws, and institutions
+of nations. If Poesy visit the length and breadth of a country after
+years unfruitfully dull, coming like a showery fertilizing wind after
+drought, the corners and the valley-hidings are visited too, and these
+perhaps she now visits first, as these sometimes she has visited only.
+For miles and for miles, the public corn, the bread of the nation's
+life, is bettered; and in our own endeared spot, the roses, delight of
+our individual eye and sense, yield us more prosperingly their colour
+and their fragrance. For the universal sunshine which brightens a
+thousand cities, beautifies ten thousand homesteads, and rejoices ten
+times ten thousand hearts. And as rains in the mid season renew for
+awhile the faded greenness of spring; and trees in fervent summers, when
+their foliage has deepened or fully fixed its hue, bedeck themselves
+through the fervency with bright midsummer shoots; so, by Poetry are the
+youthful hues of the soul renewed, and truths that have long stood
+full-foliaged in our minds, are by its fine influences empowered to put
+forth fresh shoots. Thus age, which is a necessity for the body, may be
+warded off as a disease from the soul, and we may be like the old man in
+Chaucer, who had nothing hoary about him but his hairs--
+
+ "'Though I be hoor I fare as doth a tree
+ That blosmeth er the fruit ywoxen be,
+ The blosmy tree n' is neither drie ne ded:
+ I feel me nowhere hoor, but on my head.
+ Min herte and all my limmes ben as grene
+ As laurel through the yere is for to sene.'"
+
+Hear our author again as to the calling of the poet:--
+
+"To unite earthly love and celestial--'true to the kindred points of
+heaven and home;' to reconcile time and eternity; to draw presage of
+joy's victory from the delight of the secret honey dropping from the
+clefts of rocky sorrow; _to harmonize our instinctive longings for the
+definite and the infinite, in the ideal Perfect_; to read creation as a
+human book of the heart, both plain and mystical, and divinely written:
+such is the office fulfilled by best-loved poets. Their ladder of
+celestial ascent must be fixed on its base, earth, if its top is to
+securely rest on heaven."
+
+Beautifully, too, does he describe the birth of Poetry; though one may
+doubt its correctness, at least if attributed to the highest kind of
+poetry.
+
+"When words of felt truth were first spoken by the first pair, in love
+of their garden, their God, and one another, and these words were with
+joyful surprise felt to be in their form and glow answerable to the
+happy thought uttered; then Poetry sprang. And when the first Father and
+first Mother, settling their soul upon its thought, found that thought
+brighten; and when from it, as thus they mused, like branchlets from a
+branch, or flowerets from their bud, other thoughts came, ranging
+themselves by the exerted, yet painlessly exerted, power of the soul, in
+an order felt to be beautiful, and of a sound pleasant in utterance to
+ear and soul; being withal, through the sweetness of their impression on
+the heart, fixed for memory's frequentest recurrence; then was the
+world's first poem composed, and in the joyful flutter of a heart that
+had thus become a maker, the maker of a 'thing of beauty,' like in
+beauty even unto God's heaven, and trees, and flowers, the secret of
+Poesy shone tremulously forth."
+
+Whether this be so or not, the highest poetic feeling of which we are
+now conscious springs not from the beholding of perfected beauty, but
+from the mute sympathy which the creation with all its children
+manifests with us in the groaning and travailing which looketh for the
+sonship. Because of our need and aspiration, the snowdrop gives birth in
+our hearts to a loftier spiritual and poetic feeling, than the rose most
+complete in form, colour, and odour. The rose is of Paradise--the
+snowdrop is of the striving, hoping, longing Earth. Perhaps our highest
+poetry is the expression of our aspirations in the sympathetic forms of
+visible nature. Nor is this merely a longing for a restored Paradise;
+for even in the ordinary history of men, no man or woman that has fallen
+can be restored to the position formerly occupied. Such must rise to a
+yet higher place, whence they can behold their former standing far
+beneath their feet. They must be restored by attaining something better
+than they ever possessed before, or not at all. If the law be a
+weariness, we must escape it by being filled with the spirit, for not
+otherwise can we fulfil the law than by being above the law. There is
+for us no escape, save as the Poet counsels us:--
+
+ "Is thy strait horizon dreary?
+ Is thy foolish fancy chill?
+ Change the feet that have grown weary,
+ For the wings that never will.
+ Burst the flesh and live the spirit;
+ Haunt the beautiful and far;
+ Thou hast all things to inherit,
+ And a soul for every star."
+
+But the Reviewer must hasten to take leave, though unwillingly, of this
+pleasing, earnest, and profitable book. Perhaps it could be wished that
+the writer helped his readers a little more into the channel of his
+thought; made it easier for them to see the direction in which he is
+leading them; called out to them, "Come up hither," before he said, "I
+will show you a thing." But the Reviewer says this with deference; and
+takes his leave with the hope that Mr. Lynch will be listened to for two
+good reasons: first, that he speaks the truth; last, that he has already
+suffered for the Truth's sake.
+
+
+
+
+THE HISTORY AND HEROES OF MEDICINE.
+
+
+[Footnote: By J. Rutherfurd Russell, M.D.]
+
+In this volume, Dr. Russell has not merely aimed at the production of a
+book that might be serviceable to the Faculty, by which the history of
+its own art is not at all sufficiently studied, but has aspired to the
+far more difficult success of writing a history of medicine which shall
+be readable to all who care for true history--that history, namely, in
+which not merely growth and change are represented, but the secret
+supplies and influences as well, which minister to the one and occasion
+the other. If the difficulty has been greater (although with his
+evidently wide sympathies and keen insight into humanity we doubt if it
+has), the success is the more honourable; for a success it certainly is.
+The partially biographical plan on which he has constructed his work has
+no doubt aided in the accomplishment of this purpose; for it is much
+easier to present the subject in its human relations, when its history
+is given in connexion with the lives of those who were most immediately
+associated with it. But it would be a great mistake to conclude from
+this, that it is the less a history of the art itself; for no art or
+science has life in itself, apart from the minds which foresee,
+discover, and verify it. Whatever point in its progress it may have
+reached, it will there remain until a new man appears, whose new
+questions shall illicit new replies from nature--replies which are the
+essential food of the science, by which it lives, grows, and makes
+itself a history.
+
+Nor must our readers suppose that because the book is readable, it is
+therefore slight, either in material or construction. Much reading and
+research have provided the material, while real thought and argument
+have superintended the construction. Nor is it by any means without the
+adornment that a poetic temperament and a keen sense of humour can
+supply.
+
+Naturally, the central life in the book is that of Lord Bacon, the man
+who brought out of his treasures things both new and old. Up to him the
+story gradually leads from the prehistoric times of Aesculapius, the
+pathway first becoming plainly visible in the life and labours of
+Hippocrates. His fine intellect and powers of acute observation afforded
+the material necessary for the making of a true physician. The Greek
+mind, partly, perhaps, from its artistic tendencies, seems to have been
+peculiarly impatient of incomplete forms, and therefore, to have much
+preferred the construction of a theory from the most shadowy material,
+to the patient experiment and investigation necessary for the procuring
+of the real substance; and Hippocrates, not knowing how to advance to a
+theory by rational experiment, and too honest to invent one, assumes the
+traditional theories, founded on the vaguest and most obtrusive
+generalizations. Those which his experience taught him to reject, were
+adopted and maintained by Galen and all who followed him for centuries,
+the chief instance of progress being only the substitution by the
+Arabians of some of the milder medicines now in use, for the terrible
+and often fatal drugs employed by the Greek and Roman physicians. The
+fanciful classification of diseases into four kinds--hot, cold, moist
+and dry, with the corresponding arbitrary classification of remedies to
+be administered by contraries, continued to be the only recognized
+theory of medicine for many centuries after the Christian era.
+
+But Lord Bacon, amongst other branches of knowledge which he considers
+ill-followed, makes especial mention of medicine, which he would submit
+to the same rules of observation and experiment laid down by him for the
+advancement of learning in general. With regard to it, as with regard to
+the discovery of all the higher laws of nature, he considers "that men
+have made too untimely a departure, and too remote a recess from
+particulars." Men have hurried to conclusions, and then argued from them
+as from facts. Therefore let us have no traditional theories, and make
+none for ourselves but such as are revealed in the form of laws to the
+patient investigator, who has "straightened and held fast Proteus, that
+he might be compelled to change his shapes," and so reveal his nature.
+Hence one of the aspects in which Lord Bacon was compelled to appear was
+that of a destroyer of what preceded. In this he resembled Cardan and
+Paracelsus who went before him, and who like him pulled down, but could
+not, like him, build up. He resembled them, however, in the possession
+of another element of character, namely, that poetic imagination which
+looks abroad into the regions of possibilities, and foresees or invents.
+But in the case of the charlatan, the vaguest suggestions of his mind in
+its favourite mood, is adopted as a theory all but proved, if not as a
+direct revelation to the favoured individual; while the true thinker
+seeks but an hypothesis corresponding in some measure to facts already
+discovered, in order that he may have the suggestion of new experiments
+and investigations in the course of his attempts to verify or disprove
+the hypothesis. Lord Bacon considered hypothesis invaluable in the
+discovery of truth, but he only used it as a board upon which to write
+his questions to nature; or, to use another figure, hypothesis with him
+is as the next stepping-stone in the swollen river, which he supposes to
+be here or there, and so feels for with his staff. But it must be proved
+before it be regarded as a law, and greatly corroborated before it be
+even adopted as a theory. Cardan and Paracelsus were destroyers and
+mystics only; they destroyed on the earth that they might build in the
+air: Lord Bacon united both characters in the philosopher. He looked
+abroad into the regions of the unknown, whence all knowledge comes; he
+called wonder the seed of knowledge; but he would build nowhere but on
+the earth--on the firm land of ascertained truth. That which kept him
+right was his practical humanity. It was for the sake of delivering men
+from the ills of life, by discovering the laws of the elements amidst
+which that life must be led, that he laboured and thought. This object
+kept him true, made him able to discover the very laws of discovery;
+brought him so far into _rapport_ with the heart of nature herself,
+that, like a physical prophet, his seeing could outspeed his knowing,
+and behold a law--dimly, it is true, but yet behold it--long before his
+intellect, which had to build bridges and find straw to make the bricks,
+could dare to affirm its approach to the same conclusion. Truth to
+humanity made him true to fact; and truth to fact made him true in
+theory.
+
+It was in this spirit of devotion to his kind that he said, "Therefore
+here is the deficience which I find, that physicians have not ... set
+down and delivered over certain experimental medicines for the cure of
+particular diseases."
+
+Dr. Russell's true insight into the relation of Lord Bacon to the
+medical as well as to all science, has suggested the above remarks. What
+our author chiefly desires is, that the same principles which made
+medicine what it is, should be allowed to carry it yet further, and make
+it what it ought to be, and must become. As he goes on to show, through
+succeeding lives and theories, that just in proportion as these
+principles have been followed--the principles of careful observation,
+hypothesis, and experiment--have men made discoveries that have been
+helpful to their fellow-men; while, on the other hand, the most
+elaborate theories of the most popular physicians, which have owed their
+birth to premature generalization and invention, have passed away, like
+the crackling of thorns under a pot. Belonging to the latter class of
+men, we have Stahl, Hoffman, Boerhaave, Cullen, and Brown; while to the
+former belong Harvey, Sydenham, Jenner, and Hahnemann.
+
+After the last name, there is no need to say that our author is a
+homoeopath. Whatever may be our private opinion of the system, justice
+requires that we should say at least that books such as these are quite
+as open to refutation as to ridicule; for it is only a good argument
+that is worth refuting by a better. But we fear there are few books on
+this subject that treat of it with the calmness and fairness which would
+incline an honest homoeopath to put them into the hands of one of the
+opposite party as an exposition of his opinions. There is no excitement
+in these pages. They are the work of a man of liberal education, of
+refinement, and of truthfulness, with power to understand, and facility
+to express; one of whose main objects is to vindicate for homoeopathy,
+on the most rightful of all grounds--those on which alone science can
+stand--on the ground, that is, of laws discovered by observation and
+experiment--the place not only of a fact in the history of medicine, but
+the right to be considered as one of the greatest advances towards the
+establishment of a science of curing. Certainly if he and the rest of
+its advocates should fail utterly in this, the heresy will yet have
+established for itself a memorial in history, as one of the most
+powerful illusions that have ever deceived both priests and people. But
+the chief advantage which the system will derive from Dr. Russell's book
+will spring, it seems to us, from his attempt--a successful one it must
+be confessed--to prove _that homoeopathy is a development, and not a
+mere reaction_; that it has its roots far down in the history of
+science. The first mention of it in the book, however, is made for the
+purpose of disavowing the claim, advanced by many homoeopathists, to
+Hippocrates as one of their order. Not to mention the curious story
+about Galen and the patient ill from an overdose of theriacum, who was
+cured by another dose of the same substance, nor the ridicule of the
+doctrine of contraries by Paracelsus and Van Helmont, nor the fact that
+the _contraries_ of Boerhaave, by his own explanation, merely signify
+whatever substances prove their contrariety to the disease by curing
+it--to pass by these, we find one of the main objects of homoeopathy,
+the discovery of specifics, insisted upon by Lord Bacon in his words
+already quoted. Not that homoeopaths, while they depend upon specifics,
+believe that there is any such thing as a specific for a disease--a
+disease being as various as the individuality of the human beings whom
+it may attack; but that an approximate specific may be found for every
+well-defined stage in every individual disease; a disease having its
+process of change, development, and decline, like a vegetable or animal
+life. Besides an equally strong desire for specifics, and a determined
+opposition to compound medicines, Boyle, who was born the year of
+Bacon's death, and inherited the mantle of the great philosopher,
+manifests a strong belief in the power of the infinitesimal dose.
+Neither Bacon nor Boyle, however, were medical men by profession. But
+Sydenham followed them, according to Dr. Russell, in their tendency
+towards specifics. It is almost needless to mention Jenner's victory
+over the small-pox as, in the eyes of the homoeopaths, a grand step in
+the development of their system. It gives Dr. Russell an opportunity of
+showing in a strong instance that the best discoveries for delivering
+mankind from those ills even of which they are most sensible have been
+received with derision, with more than bare unbelief. This is one of his
+objects in the book, and while it is no proof whatever of the truth of
+homoepathy, it shows at least that the opposition manifested to it is no
+proof of its falsehood. This is enough; for it seeks to be tried on its
+own merits; and its foes are bound to accord it this when it is
+advocated in such an honest and dignified manner as in the book before
+us.
+
+The need of man, in physics as well as in higher things, is the guide to
+truth. With evils of any sort we need no further acquaintance than may
+be gained in the endeavour to combat them. The discovery of what will
+cure diseases seems the only natural mode of rising by generalization to
+the discovery of the laws of cure and the nature of disease.
+
+Those portions of the volume which discuss the influence of Christianity
+on the healing art, likewise those relating to the different feelings
+with which at different times in different countries physicians have
+been regarded, are especially interesting.
+
+The only portion of the book we should be inclined to find fault with,
+as to the quality of the thought expended upon it, is the dissertation
+in the second chapter on the [Greek: psuchae] and [Greek: pneuma]. We
+doubt likewise whether the author gives the Archaeus of Van Helmont
+quite fair play; but these are questions so purely theoretical that they
+scarcely admit of discussion here. We rise from the perusal of the
+book, whatever may be our feelings with regard to the truth or falsehood
+of the system it advocates, with increased respect for the profession of
+medicine, with enlarged hope for its future, and with a strong feeling
+of the nobility conferred by the art upon every one of its practitioners
+who is aware of the dignity of his calling.
+
+
+
+
+WORDSWORTH'S POETRY
+
+
+[Footnote: Delivered extempore at Manchester.]
+
+The history of the poetry of Wordsworth is a true reflex of the man
+himself. The life of Wordsworth was not outwardly eventful, but his
+inner life was full of conflict, discovery, and progress. His outward
+life seems to have been so ordered by Providence as to favour the
+development of the poetic life within. Educated in the country, and
+spending most of his life in the society of nature, he was not subjected
+to those violent external changes which have been the lot of some poets.
+Perfectly fitted as he was to cope with the world, and to fight his way
+to any desired position, he chose to retire from it, and in solitude to
+work out what appeared to him to be the true destiny of his life.
+
+The very element in which the mind of Wordsworth lived and moved was a
+Christian pantheism. Allow me to explain the word. The poets of the Old
+Testament speak of everything as being the work of God's hand:--We are
+the "work of his hand;" "The world was made by him." But in the New
+Testament there is a higher form used to express the relation in which
+we stand to him--"We are his offspring;" not the work of his hand, but
+the children that came forth from his heart. Our own poet Goldsmith,
+with the high instinct of genius, speaks of God as having "loved us into
+being." Now I think this is not only true with regard to man, but true
+likewise with regard to the world in which we live. This world is not
+merely a thing which God hath made, subjecting it to laws; but it is an
+expression of the thought, the feeling, the heart of God himself. And so
+it must be; because, if man be the child of God, would he not feel to be
+out of his element if he lived in a world which came, not from the heart
+of God, but only from his hand? This Christian pantheism, this belief
+that God is in everything, and showing himself in everything, has been
+much brought to the light by the poets of the past generation, and has
+its influence still, I hope, upon the poets of the present. We are not
+satisfied that the world should be a proof and varying indication of the
+intellect of God. That was how Paley viewed it. He taught us to believe
+there is a God from the mechanism of the world. But, allowing all the
+argument to be quite correct, what does it prove? A mechanical God, and
+nothing more.
+
+Let us go further; and, looking at beauty, believe that God is the first
+of artists; that he has put beauty into nature, knowing how it will
+affect us, and intending that it should so affect us; that he has
+embodied his own grand thoughts thus that we might see them and be glad.
+Then, let us go further still, and believe that whatever we feel in the
+highest moments of truth shining through beauty, whatever comes to our
+souls as a power of life, is meant to be seen and felt by us, and to be
+regarded not as the work of his hand, but as the flowing forth of his
+heart, the flowing forth of his love of us, making us blessed in the
+union of his heart and ours.
+
+Now, Wordsworth is the high priest of nature thus regarded. He saw God
+present everywhere; not always immediately, in his own form, it is true;
+but whether he looked upon the awful mountain-peak, sky-encompassed with
+loveliness, or upon the face of a little child, which is as it were eyes
+in the face of nature--in all things he felt the solemn presence of the
+Divine Spirit. By Keats this presence was recognized only as the spirit
+of beauty; to Wordsworth, God, as the Spirit of Truth, was manifested
+through the forms of the external world.
+
+I have said that the life of Wordsworth was so ordered as to bring this
+out of him, in the forms of _his_ art, to the ears of men. In childhood
+even his conscience was partly developed through the influences of
+nature upon him. He thus retrospectively describes this special
+influence of nature:--
+
+ One summer evening (led by her) I found
+ A little boat, tied to a willow tree,
+ Within a rocky cave, its usual home.
+ Straight I unloosed her chain, and stepping in,
+ Pushed from the shore. It was an act of stealth,
+ And troubled pleasure, nor without the voice
+ Of mountain echoes did my boat move on,
+ Leaving behind her still, on either side,
+ Small circles glittering idly in the moon,
+ Until they melted all into one track
+ Of sparkling light. But now, like one who rows
+ Proud of his skill, to reach a chosen point
+ With an unswerving line, I fixed my view
+ Upon the summit of a craggy ridge,
+ The horizon's utmost boundary; far above
+ Was nothing but the stars and the grey sky.
+ She was an elfin pinnace; lustily
+ I dipped my oars into the silent lake,
+ And, as I rose upon the stroke, my boat
+ Went heaving through the water like a swan;
+ When, from behind that craggy steep, till then
+ The horizon's bound, a huge peak, black and huge,
+ As if with voluntary power instinct,
+ Upreared its head. I struck and struck again,
+ And, growing still in stature, the grim shape
+ Towered up between me and the stars, and still
+ For so it seemed, with purpose of its own,
+ And measured motion like a living thing,
+ Strode after me. With trembling oars I turned,
+ And through the silent water stole my way
+ Back to the covert of the willow tree;
+ There in her mooring place I left my bark,
+ And through the meadows homeward went, in grave
+ And serious mood; but after I had seen
+ That spectacle, for many days, my brain
+ Worked with a dim and undetermined sense
+ Of unknown modes of being; o'er my thoughts
+ There hung a darkness, call it solitude,
+ Or blank desertion. No familiar shapes
+ Remained, no pleasant images of trees,
+ Of sea, or sky, no colours of green fields;
+ But huge and mighty forms, that do not live
+ Like living men, moved slowly through the mind
+ By day, and were a trouble to my dreams.
+
+Here we see that a fresh impulse was given to his life even in boyhood,
+by the influence of nature. If we have had any similar experience, we
+shall be able to enter into this feeling of Wordsworth's; if not, the
+tale will be almost incredible.
+
+One passage more I would refer to, as showing what Wordsworth felt with
+regard to nature, in his youth; and the growth that took place in him in
+consequence. Nature laid up in the storehouse of his mind and heart her
+most beautiful and grand forms, whence they might be brought,
+afterwards, to be put to the highest human service. I quote only a few
+lines from that poem, deservedly a favourite with all the lovers of
+Wordsworth, "Lines written above Tintern Abbey:"--
+
+ I cannot paint
+ What then I was. The sounding cataract
+ Haunted me like a passion; the tall rock,
+ The mountain, and the deep and gloomy wood,
+ Their colours and their forms, were then to me
+ An appetite; a feeling and a love,
+ That had no need of a remoter charm
+ By thought supplied, nor any interest
+ Unborrowed from the eye.--That time is past,
+ And all its aching joys are now no more,
+ And all its dizzy raptures. Not for this
+ Faint I, nor mourn nor murmur; other gifts
+ Have followed; for such loss, I would believe,
+ Abundant recompense. For I have learned
+ To look on nature, not as in the hour
+ Of thoughtless youth; but hearing oftentimes
+ The still, sad music of humanity,
+ Nor harsh, nor grating, though of ample power
+ To chasten and subdue. And I have felt
+ A presence that disturbs me with the joy
+ Of elevated thoughts; a sense sublime
+ Of something far more deeply interfused,
+ Whose dwelling is the light of setting suns,
+ And the round ocean, and the living air
+ And the blue sky, and in the mind of man;
+ A motion and a spirit, that impels
+ All thinking things, all objects of all thought,
+ And rolls through all things.
+
+In this little passage you see the growth of the influence of nature on
+the mind of the poet. You observe, too, that nature passes into poetry;
+that form is sublimed into speech. You see the result of the conjunction
+of the mind of man, and the mind of God manifested in His works; spirit
+coming to know the speech of spirit. The outflowing of spirit in nature
+is received by the poet, and he utters again, in his form, what God has
+already uttered in His. Wordsworth wished to give to man what he found
+in nature. It was to him a power of good, a world of teaching, a
+strength of life. He knew that nature was not his, and that his
+enjoyment of nature was given to him that he might give it to man. It
+was the birthright of man.
+
+But what did Wordsworth find in nature? To begin with the lowest; he
+found amusement in nature. Right amusement is a part of teaching; it is
+the childish form of teaching, and if we can get this in nature, we get
+something that lies near the root of good. In proof that Wordsworth
+found this, I refer to a poem which you probably know well, "The Daisy."
+The poet sits playing with the flower, and listening to the suggestions
+that come to him of odd resemblances that this flower bears to other
+things. He likens the daisy to--
+
+ A little cyclops, with one eye
+ Staring to threaten and defy,
+ That thought comes next--and instantly
+ The freak is over,
+ The shape will vanish--and behold
+ A silver shield with boss of gold,
+ That spreads itself, some fary bold
+ In fight to cover!
+
+Look at the last stanza, too, and you will see how close amusement may
+lie to deep and earnest thought:--
+
+ Bright _Flower_! for by that name at last
+ When all my reveries are past,
+ I call thee, and to that cleave fast,
+ Sweet silent creature!
+ That breath'st with me in sun and air,
+ Do thou, as thou art wont, repair
+ My heart with gladness, and a share
+ Of thy meek nature!
+
+But Wordsworth found also joy in nature, which is a better thing than
+amusement, and consequently easier to be found. We can often have joy
+where we can have no amusement,--
+
+ I wandered lonely as a cloud
+ That floats on high o'er vales and hills
+ When all at once I saw a crowd,
+ A host, of golden daffodils;
+ Beside the lake, beneath the trees,
+ Fluttering and dancing in the breeze.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ The waves beside them danced; but they
+ Out-did the sparkling waves in glee:
+ A poet could not but be gay,
+ In such a jocund company:
+ I gazed--and gazed--but little thought
+ What Health the show to me had brought.
+
+ "For oft, when on my couch I lie
+ In vacant or in pensive mood,
+ They flash upon that inward eye
+ Which is the bliss of solitude;
+ And then my heart with pleasure fills,
+ And dances with the daffodils."
+
+This is the joy of the eye, as far as that can be separated from the joy
+of the whole nature; for his whole nature rejoiced in the joy of the
+eye; but it was simply joy; there was no further teaching, no attempt to
+go through this beauty and find the truth below it. We are not always to
+be in that hungry, restless condition, even after truth itself. If we
+keep our minds quiet and ready to receive truth, and _sometimes_ are
+hungry for it, that is enough.
+
+Going a step higher, you will find that he sometimes _draws_ a lesson
+from nature, seeming almost to force a meaning from her. I do not object
+to this, if he does not make too much of it as _existing_ in nature. It
+is rather finding a meaning in nature that he brought to it. The meaning
+exists, if not _there_. For illustration I refer to another poem.
+Observe that Wordsworth found the lesson because he looked for it, and
+_would_ find it.
+
+ This Lawn, a carpet all alive
+ With shadows flung from leaves--to strive
+ In dance, amid a press
+ Of sunshine, an apt emblem yields
+ Of Worldlings revelling in the fields
+ Of strenuous idleness.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ Yet, spite of all this eager strife,
+ This ceaseless play, the genuine life
+ That serves the steadfast hours,
+ Is in the grass beneath, that grows
+ Unheeded, and the mute repose
+ Of sweetly-breathing flowers.
+
+Whether he forced this lesson from nature, or not, it is a good lesson,
+teaching a great many things with regard to life and work.
+
+Again, nature sometimes flashes a lesson on his mind; _gives_ it to
+him--and when nature gives, we cannot but receive. As in this sonnet
+composed during a storm,--
+
+ One who was suffering tumult in his soul
+ Yet failed to seek the sure relief of prayer,
+ Went forth; his course surrendering to the care
+ Of the fierce wind, while mid-day lightnings prowl
+ Insiduously, untimely thunders growl;
+ While trees, dim-seen, in frenzied numbers tear
+ The lingering remnant of their yellow hair,
+ And shivering wolves, surprised with darkness, howl
+ As if the sun were not. He raised his eye
+ Soul-smitten; for, that instant, did appear
+ Large space (mid dreadful clouds) of purest sky,
+ An azure disc--shield of Tranquillity;
+ Invisible, unlooked-for, minister
+ Of providential goodness ever nigh!
+
+Observe that he was not looking for this; he had not thought of praying;
+he was in such distress that it had benumbed the out-goings of his
+spirit towards the source whence alone sure comfort comes. He went out
+into the storm; and the uproar in the outer world was in harmony with
+the tumult within his soul. Suddenly a clear space in the sky makes him
+feel--he has no time to think about it--that there is a shield of
+tranquillity spread over him. For was it not as it were an opening up
+into that region where there are no storms; the regions of peace,
+because the regions of love, and truth, and purity,--the home of God
+himself?
+
+There is yet a higher and more sustained influence exercised by nature,
+and that takes effect when she puts a man into that mood or condition in
+which thoughts come of themselves. That is perhaps the best thing that
+can be done for us, the best at least that nature can do. It is
+certainly higher than mere intellectual teaching. That nature did this
+for Wordsworth is very clear; and it is easily intelligible. If the
+world proceeded from the imagination of God, and man proceeded from the
+love of God, it is easy to believe that that which proceeded from the
+imagination of God should rouse the best thoughts in the mind of a being
+who proceeded from the love of God. This I think is the relation between
+man and the world. As an instance of what I mean, I refer to one of
+Wordsworth's finest poems, which he classes under the head of "Evening
+Voluntaries." It was composed upon an evening of extraordinary splendour
+and beauty:--
+
+ "Had this effulgence disappeared
+ With flying haste, I might have sent,
+ Among the speechless clouds, a look
+ Of blank astonishment;
+ But 'tis endued with power to stay,
+ And sanctify one closing day,
+ That frail Mortality may see--
+ What is?--ah no, but what _can_, be!
+ Time was when field and watery cove
+ With modulated echoes rang,
+ While choirs of fervent Angels sang
+ Their vespers in the grove;
+ Or, crowning, star-like, each some sovereign height,
+ Warbled, for heaven above and earth below,
+ Strains suitable to both. Such holy rite,
+ Methinks, if audibly repeated now
+ From hill or valley, could not move
+ Sublimer transport, purer love,
+ Than doth this silent spectacle--the gleam--
+ The shadow--and the peace supreme!
+
+ "No sound is uttered,--but a deep
+ And solemn harmony pervades
+ The hollow vale from steep to steep,
+ And penetrates the glades.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ "Wings at my shoulders seem to play;
+ But, rooted here, I stand and gaze
+ On those bright steps that heaven-ward raise
+ Their practicable way.
+ Come forth, ye drooping old men, look abroad,
+ And see to what fair countries ye are bound!
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ "Dread Power! whom peace and calmness serve
+ No less than Nature's threatening voice,
+ From THEE, if I would swerve,
+ Oh, let Thy grace remind me of the light
+ Full early lost, and fruitlessly deplored;
+ Which, at this moment, on my waking sight
+ Appears to shine, by miracle restored;
+ My soul, though yet confined to earth,
+ Rejoices in a second birth!"
+
+Picture the scene for yourselves; and observe how it moves in him the
+sense of responsibility, and the prayer, that if he has in any matter
+wandered from the right road, if he has forgotten the simplicity of
+childhood in the toil of life, he may, from this time, remember the vow
+that he now records--from this time to press on towards the things that
+are unseen, but which are manifested through the things that are seen. I
+refer you likewise to the poem "Resolution and Independence," commonly
+called "The Leech Gatherer;" also to that grandest ode that has ever
+been written, the "Ode on Immortality." You will find there, whatever
+you may think of his theory, in the latter, sufficient proof that nature
+was to him a divine teaching power. Do not suppose that I mean that man
+can do without more teaching than nature's, or that a man with only
+nature's teaching would have seen these things in nature. No, the soul
+must be tuned to such things. Wordsworth could not have found such
+things, had he not known something that was more definite and helpful to
+him; but this known, then nature was full of teaching. When we
+understand the Word of God, then we understand the works of God; when we
+know the nature of an artist, we know his pictures; when we have known
+and talked with the poet, we understand his poetry far better. To the
+man of God, all nature will be but changeful reflections of the face of
+God.
+
+Loving man as Wordsworth did, he was most anxious to give him this
+teaching. How was he to do it? By poetry. Nature put into the crucible
+of a loving heart becomes poetry. We cannot explain poetry
+scientifically; because poetry is something beyond science. The poet may
+be man of science, and the man of science may be a poet; but poetry
+includes science, and the man who will advance science most, is the man
+who, other qualifications being equal, has most of the poetic faculty in
+him. Wordsworth defines poetry to be "the impassioned expression which
+is on the face of science." Science has to do with the construction of
+things. The casting of the granite ribs of the mighty earth, and all the
+thousand operations that result in the manifestations on its surface,
+this is the domain of science. But when there come the grass-bearing
+meadows, the heaven-reared hills, the great streams that go ever
+downward, the bubbling fountains that ever arise, the wind that wanders
+amongst the leaves, and the odours that are wafted upon its wings; when
+we have colour, and shape, and sound, then we have the material with
+which poetry has to do. Science has to do with the underwork. For what
+does this great central world exist, with its hidden winds and waters,
+its upheavings and its downsinkings, its strong frame of rock, and its
+heart of fire? What do they all exist for? Not for themselves surely,
+but for the sake of this out-spreading world of beauty, that floats up,
+as it were, to the surface of the shapeless region of force. Science has
+to do with the one, and poetry with the other: poetry is "the
+impassioned expression that is on the face of science." To illustrate it
+still further. You are walking in the woods, and you find the first
+primrose of the year. You feel almost as if you had found a child. You
+know in yourself that you have found a new beauty and a new joy, though
+you have seen it a thousand times before. It is a primrose. A little
+flower that looks at me, thinks itself into my heart, and gives me a
+pleasure distinct in itself, and which I feel as if I could not do
+without. The impassioned expression on the face of this little outspread
+flower is its childhood; it means trust, consciousness of protection,
+faith, and hope. Science, in the person of the botanist, comes after
+you, and pulls it to pieces to see its construction, and delights the
+intellect; but the science itself is dead, and kills what it touches.
+The flower exists not for it, but for the expression on its face, which
+is its poetry,--that expression which you feel to mean a living thing;
+that expression which makes you feel that this flower is, as it were,
+just growing out of the heart of God. The intellect itself is but the
+scaffolding for the uprearing of the spiritual nature.
+
+It will make all this yet plainer, if you can suppose a human form to be
+created without a soul in it. Divine science _has_ put it together, but
+only for the sake of the outshining soul that shall cause it to live,
+and move, and have a being of its own in God. When you see the face
+lighted up with soul, when you recognize in it thought and feeling, joy
+and love, then you know that here is the end for which it was made. Thus
+you see the relation that poetry has to science; and you find that, to
+speak in an apparent paradox, the surface is the deepest after all; for,
+through the surface, for the sake of which all this building went on, we
+have, as it were, a window into the depths of truth. There is not a form
+that lives in the world, but is a window cloven through the blank
+darkness of nothingness, to let us look into the heart, and feeling, and
+nature of God. So the surface of things is the best and the deepest,
+provided it is not mere surface, but the impassioned expression, for the
+sake of which the science of God has thought and laboured.
+
+Satisfied that this was the nature of poetry, and wanting to convey this
+to the minds of his fellow-men, "What vehicle," Wordsworth may be
+supposed to have asked himself, "shall I use? How shall I decide what
+form of words to employ? Where am I to find the right language for
+speaking such great things to men?" He saw that the poetry of the
+eighteenth century (he was born in 1770) was not like nature at all, but
+was an artificial thing, with no more originality in it than there would
+be in a picture a hundred times copied, the copyists never reverting to
+the original. You cannot look into this eighteenth century poetry,
+excepting, of course, a great proportion of the poetry of Cowper and
+Thompson, without being struck with the sort of agreement that nothing
+should be said naturally. A certain set form and mode was employed for
+saying things that ought never to have been said twice in the same way.
+Wordsworth resolved to go back to the root of the thing, to the natural
+simplicity of speech; he would have none of these stereotyped forms of
+expression. "Where shall I find," said he, "the language that will be
+simple and powerful?" And he came to the conclusion that the language of
+the common people was the only language suitable for his purpose. Your
+experience of the everyday language of the common people may be that it
+is not poetical. True, but not even a poet can speak poetically in his
+stupid moments. Wordsworth's idea was to take the language of the common
+people in their uncommon moods, in their high and, consequently, simple
+moods, when their minds are influenced by grief, hope, reverence,
+worship, love; for then he believed he could get just the language
+suitable for the poet. As far as that language will go, I think he was
+right, if I may venture to give an opinion in support of Wordsworth. Of
+course, there will occur necessities to the poet which would not be
+comprehended in the language of a man whose thoughts had never moved in
+the same directions, but the kind of language will be the right thing,
+and I have heard such amongst the common people myself--language which
+they did not know to be poetic, but which fell upon my ear and heart as
+profoundly poetic both in its feeling and its form.
+
+In attempting to carry out this theory, I am not prepared to say that
+Wordsworth never transgressed his own self-imposed laws. But he adhered
+to his theory to the last. A friend of the poet's told me that
+Wordsworth had to him expressed his belief that he would be remembered
+longest, not by his sonnets, as his friend thought, but by his lyrical
+ballads, those for which he had been reviled and laughed at; the most by
+critics who could not understand him, and who were unworthy to read what
+he had written. As a proof of this let me read to you three verses,
+composing a poem that was especially marked for derision:--
+
+ She dwelt among the untrodden ways,
+ Beside the springs of Dove;
+ A maid whom there were none to praise,
+ And very few to love.
+
+ A violet by a mossy stone.
+ Half hidden from the eye;
+ Fair as a star, when only one
+ Is shining in the sky.
+
+ She lived unknown, and few could know
+ When Lucy ceased to be;
+ But she is in her grave, and Oh!
+ The difference to me.
+
+The last line was especially chosen as the object of ridicule; but I
+think with most of us the feeling will be, that its very simplicity of
+expression is overflowing in suggestion, it throws us back upon our own
+experience; for, instead of trying to utter what he felt, he says in
+those simple and common words, "You who have known anything of the kind,
+will know what the difference to me is, and only you can know." "My
+intention and desire," he says in one of his essays, "are that the
+interest of the poem shall owe nothing to the circumstances; but that
+the circumstances shall be made interesting by the thing itself." In
+most novels, for instance, the attempt is made to interest us in
+worthless, commonplace people, whom, if we had our choice, we would far
+rather not meet at all, by surrounding them with peculiar and
+extraordinary circumstances; but this is a low source of interest.
+Wordsworth was determined to owe nothing to such an adventitious cause.
+For illustration allow me to read that well-known little ballad, "The
+Reverie of Poor Susan," and you will see how entirely it bears out what
+he lays down as his theory. The scene is in London:--
+
+ At the corner of Wood-street, when daylight appears,
+ Hangs a Thrush that sings loud, it has sung for three years;
+ Poor Susan has passed by the spot, and has heard,
+ In the silence of morning, the song of the Bird.
+
+ 'Tis a note of enchantment: what ails her? She sees
+ A mountain ascending, a vision of trees;
+ Bright volumes of vapour through Lothbury glide,
+ And a river flows on through the vale of Cheapside.
+
+ Green pastures she views in the midst of the dale,
+ Down which she so often has tripped with her pail;
+ And a single small cottage, a nest like a dove's,
+ The one only dwelling on earth that she loves.
+
+ She looks, and her heart is in heaven: but they fade,
+ The mist and the river, the hill and the shade:
+ The stream will not flow, and the hill will not rise,
+ And the colours have all passed away from her eyes!
+
+Is any of the interest here owing to the circumstances? Is it not a very
+common incident? But has he not treated it so that it is not
+_commonplace_ in the least? We recognize in this girl just the feelings
+we discover in ourselves, and acknowledge almost with tears her
+sisterhood to us all.
+
+I have tried to make you feel something of what Wordsworth attempts to
+do, but I have not given you the best of his poems. Allow me to finish
+by reading the closing portion of the _Prelude_, the poem that was
+published after his death. It is addressed to Coleridge:--
+
+ Oh! yet a few short years of useful life,
+ And all will be complete, thy race be run,
+ Thy monument of glory will be raised;
+ Then, though (too weak to head the ways of truth)
+ This age fall back to old idolatry,
+ Though men return to servitude as fast
+ As the tide ebbs, to ignominy and shame
+ By nations sink together, we shall still
+ Find solace--knowing what we have learnt to know--
+ Rich in true happiness, if allowed to be
+ Faithful alike in forwarding a day
+ Of firmer trust, joint labourers in the work
+ (Should Providence such grace to us vouchsafe)
+ Of their deliverance, surely yet to come.
+ Prophets of Nature, we to them will speak
+ A lasting inspiration, sanctified
+ By reason, blest by faith: what we have loved,
+ Others will love, and we will teach them how;
+ Instruct them how the mind of man becomes
+ A thousand times more beautiful than the earth
+ On which he dwells, above this frame of things
+ (Which, 'mid all revolution in the hopes
+ And fears of men, doth still remain unchanged)
+ In beauty exalted, as it is itself
+ Of quality and fabric more divine.
+
+
+
+
+SHELLEY.
+
+
+Whatever opinion may be held with regard to the relative position
+occupied by Shelley as a poet, it will be granted by most of those who
+have studied his writings, that they are of such an individual and
+original kind, that he can neither be hidden in the shade, nor lost in
+the brightness, of any other poet. No idea of his works could be
+conveyed by instituting a comparison, for he does not sufficiently
+resemble any other among English writers to make such a comparison
+possible.
+
+Percy Bysshe Shelley was born at Field Place, near Horsham, in the
+county of Sussex, on the 4th of August, 1792. He was the son of Timothy
+Shelley, Esq., and grandson of Sir Bysshe Shelley, the first baronet.
+His ancestors had long been large landed proprietors in Sussex.
+
+As a child his habits were noticeable. He was especially fond of
+rambling by moonlight, of inventing wonderful tales, of occupying
+himself with strange, and sometimes dangerous, amusements. At the age of
+thirteen he went to Eton. In this little world, that determined
+opposition to whatever appeared to him an invasion of human rights and
+liberty, which was afterwards the animating principle of most of his
+writings, was first roused in the mind of Shelley. Were we not aware of
+far keener distress which he afterwards endured from yet greater
+injustice, we might suppose that the sufferings he had to bear from
+placing himself in opposition to the custom of the school, by refusing
+to fag, had made him morbidly sensitive on the point of liberty. At a
+time, however, when freedom of speech, as indicating freedom of thought,
+was especially obnoxious to established authorities; when no allowance
+could be made on the score of youth, still less on that of individual
+peculiarity, Shelley became a student at Oxford. He was then eighteen.
+Devoted to metaphysical speculation, and especially fond of logical
+discussion, he, in his first year, printed and distributed among the
+authorities and members of his college a pamphlet, if that can be called
+a pamphlet which consisted only of two pages, in which he opposed the
+usual arguments for the existence of a Deity; arguments which, perhaps,
+the most ardent believers have equally considered inconclusive. Whether
+Shelley wrote this pamphlet as an embodiment of his own opinions, or
+merely as a logical confutation of certain arguments, the mode of
+procedure adopted with him was certainly not one which necessarily
+resulted from the position of those to whose care the education of his
+opinions was entrusted. Without waiting to be assured that he was the
+author, and satisfying themselves with his refusal to answer when
+questioned as to the authorship, they handed him his sentence of
+expulsion, which had been already drawn up in due form.
+
+About this time Shelley wrote, or commenced writing, _Queen Mab_, a poem
+which he never published, although he distributed copies among his
+friends. In after years he had such a low opinion of it in every
+respect, that he regretted having printed it at all; and when an edition
+of it was published without his consent, he applied to the Court of
+Chancery for an injunction to suppress it.
+
+Shelley's opinions in politics and theology, which he appears to have
+been far more anxious to maintain than was consistent with the peace of
+the household, were peculiarly obnoxious to his father, a man as
+different from his son as it is possible to conceive; and his expulsion
+from Oxford was soon followed by exile from his home. He went to London,
+where, through his sisters, who were at school in the neighbourhood, he
+made the acquaintence of Harriet West brook, whom he eloped with and
+married, when he was nineteen and she sixteen years of age. It seems
+doubtful whether the attachment between them was more than the result of
+the reception accorded by the enthusiasm of the girl to the enthusiasm
+of the youth, manifesting itself in wild talk about human rights, and
+equally wild plans for their recovery and security. However this may be,
+the result was unfortunate. They wandered about England, Scotland, and
+Ireland, with frequent and sudden change of residence, for rather more
+than two years. During this time Shelley gained the friendship of some
+of the most eminent men of the age, of whom the one who exercised the
+most influence upon his character and future history was William Godwin,
+whose instructions and expostulations tended to reduce to solidity and
+form the vague and extravagant opinions and projects of the youthful
+reformer. Shortly after the commencement of the third year of their
+married life, an estrangement of feeling, which had been gradually
+widening between them, resulted in the final separation of the poet and
+his wife. We are not informed as to the causes of this estrangement,
+further than that it seems to have been owing, in a considerable degree,
+to the influence of an elder sister of Mrs. Shelley, who domineered over
+her, and whose presence became at last absolutely hateful to Shelley.
+His wife returned to her father's house; where, apparently about three
+years after, she committed suicide. There seems to have been no
+immediate connection between this act and any conduct of Shelley. One of
+his biographers informs us, that while they were living happily
+together, suicide was with Mrs. Shelley a favourite subject of
+speculation and conversation.
+
+Shortly after his first wife's death, Shelley married the daughter of
+William Godwin. He had lived with her almost from the date of the
+separation, during which time they had twice visited Switzerland. In the
+following year (1817), it was decreed in Chancery that Shelley was not a
+proper person to take charge of his two children by his first wife, who
+had lived with her till her death. The bill was filed in Chancery by
+their grandfather, Mr. Westbrook. The effects of this proceeding upon
+Shelley may be easily imagined. Perhaps he never recovered from them,
+for they were not of a nature to pass away. During this year he resided
+at Marlow, and wrote _The Revolt of Islam_, besides portions of other
+poems; and the next year he left England, not to return. The state of
+his health, for he had appeared to be in a consumption for some time,
+and the fear lest his son, by his second wife, should be taken from him,
+combined to induce him to take refuge in Italy from both impending
+evils. At Lucca he began his _Prometheus_, and wrote _Julian and
+Maddalo_. He moved from place to place in Italy, as he had done in his
+own country. Their two children dying, they were for a time left
+childless; but the loss of these grieved Shelley less than that of his
+eldest two, who were taken from him by the hand of man. In 1819, Shelley
+finished his _Prometheus Unbound_, writing the greater part at Rome, and
+completing it at Florence. In this year also he wrote his tragedy, _The
+Cenci_, which attracted more attention during his lifetime than any
+other of his works. The _Ode to a Skylark_ was written at Leghorn in the
+spring of 1820; and in August of the same year, the _Witch of Atlas_ was
+written, near Pisa. In the following year Shelley and Byron met at Pisa.
+They were a good deal together; but their friendship, although real,
+does not appear to have been of a very profound nature; for though
+unlikeness be one of the necessary elements of friendship, there are
+kinds of unlikeness which will not harmonize. During all this time, he
+was not only maligned by unknown enemies, and abused by anonymous
+writers, but attempts of other kinds are said to have been made to
+render his life as uncomfortable as possible. There are grounds,
+however, for doubting whether Shelley was not subject to a kind of
+monomania upon this and similar points. In 1821, he wrote his _Adonais_,
+a monody on the death of Keats. Part of this poem had its origin in the
+mistaken notion, that the illness and death of Keats were caused by a
+brutal criticism of his _Endymion_, which appeared in the _Quarterly
+Review_. The last verse of the _Adonais_ seems almost prophetic of his
+own end. Passionately fond of boating, he and a friend of his, Mr.
+Williams, united in constructing a boat of a peculiar build, a very fast
+sailer, but difficult to manage. On the 8th of July, 1822, Shelley and
+his friend Williams sailed from Leghorn for Lerici, on the Bay of
+Spezia, near which lay his home for the time. A sudden squall came on,
+and their boat disappeared. The bodies of the two friends were cast on
+shore; and, according to quarantine regulations, were burned to ashes.
+Lord Byron, Leigh Hunt, and Mr. Trelawney were present when the body of
+Shelley was burned; so that his ashes were saved, and buried in the
+Protestant burial-ground at Rome, near the grave of Keats, whose body
+had been laid there in the spring of the preceding year. _Cor Cordium_
+were the words inscribed by his widow on the tomb of the poet.
+
+The character of Shelley has been sadly maligned. Whatever faults he may
+have committed against society, they were not the result of sensuality.
+One of his biographers, who was his companion at Oxford, and who does
+not seem inclined to do him _more_ than justice, asserts that while
+there his conduct was immaculate. The whole picture he gives of the
+youth, makes it easy to believe this. To discuss the moral question
+involved in one part of his history would be out of place here; but even
+on the supposition that a man's conduct is altogether inexcusable in
+individual instances, there is the more need that nothing but the truth
+should be said concerning that, and other portions thereof. And whatever
+society may have thought itself justified in making subject of
+reprobation, it must be remembered that Shelley was under less
+obligation to society than most men. Yet his heart seemed full of love
+to his kind; and the distress which the oppression of others caused him,
+was the source of much of that wild denunciation which exposed him to
+the contempt and hatred of those who were rendered uncomfortable by his
+unsparing and indiscriminate anathemas. In private, he was beloved by
+all who knew him; a steady, generous, self-denying friend, not only to
+those who moved in his own circle, but to all who were brought within
+the reach of any aid he could bestow. To the poor he was a true and
+laborious benefactor. That man must have been good to whom the heart of
+his widow returns with such earnest devotion and thankfulness in the
+recollection of the past, and such fond hope for the future, as are
+manifested by Mrs. Shelley in those extracts from her private journal
+given us by Lady Shelley.
+
+As regards his religious opinions, one of the thoughts which most
+strongly suggest themselves is,--how ill he must have been instructed in
+the principles of Christianity! He says himself in a letter to Godwin,
+"I have known no tutor or adviser (_not excepting my father_) from whose
+lessons and suggestions I have not recoiled with disgust." So far is he
+from being an opponent of Christianity properly so called, that one can
+hardly help feeling what a Christian he would have been, could he but
+have seen Christianity in any other way than through the traditional and
+practical misrepresentations of it which surrounded him. All his attacks
+on Christianity are, in reality, directed against evils to which the
+true doctrines of Christianity are more opposed than those of Shelley
+could possibly be. How far he was excusable in giving the name of
+Christianity to what he might have seen to be only a miserable
+perversion of it, is another question, and one which hardly admits of
+discussion here. It was in the _name_ of Christianity, however, that the
+worst injuries of which he had to complain were inflicted upon him.
+Coming out of the cathedral at Pisa one day, [Footnote: From _Shelley
+Memorials_, edited by Lady Shelley, which the writer of this paper has
+principally followed in regard to the external facts of Shelley's
+history.] Shelley warmly assented to a remark of Leigh Hunt, "that a
+divine religion might be found out, if charity were really made the
+principle of it instead of faith." Surely the founders of Christianity,
+even when they magnified faith, intended thereby a spiritual condition,
+of which the central principle is coincident with charity. Shelley's own
+feelings towards others, as judged from his poetry, seem to be tinctured
+with the very essence of Christianity. [Footnote: His _Essay on
+Christianity_ is full of noble views, some of which are held at the
+present day by some of the most earnest believers. At what time of his
+life it was written we are not informed; but it seems such as would
+insure his acceptance with any company of intelligent and devout
+Unitarians.] He did not, at one time at least, believe that we could
+know the source of our being; and seemed to take it as a self-evident
+truth, that the Creator could not be like the creature. But it is unjust
+to fix upon any utterance of opinion, and regard it as the religion of a
+man who died in his thirtieth year, and whose habits of thinking were
+such, that his opinions must have been in a state of constant change.
+Coleridge says in a letter: "His (Shelley's) discussions, tending
+towards atheism of a certain sort, would not have scared _me;_ for _me_
+it would have been a semitransparent larva, soon to be sloughed, and
+through which I should have seen the true _image_--the final
+metamorphosis. Besides, I have ever thought that sort of atheism the
+next best religion to Christianity; nor does the better faith I have
+learned from Paul and John interfere with the cordial reverence I feel
+for Benedict Spinoza."
+
+Shelley's favourite study was metaphysics. The more impulse there is in
+any direction, the more education and experience are necessary to
+balance that impulse: one cannot help thinking that Shelley's _taste_
+for exercises of this kind was developed more rapidly than the
+corresponding _power_. His favourite physical studies were chemistry and
+electricity. With these he occupied himself from his childhood;
+apparently, however, with more delight in the experiments themselves,
+than interest in the general conclusions to be arrived at by means of
+them. In the embodiment of his metaphysical ideas in poetry, the
+influence of these studies seems to show itself; for he uses forms which
+appeal more to the outer senses than to the inward eye; and his similes
+belong to the realm of the fancy, rather than the imagination: they lack
+_vital_ resemblance. Logic had considerable attractions for him. To
+geometry and mathematics he was quite indifferent. One of his
+biographers states that "he was neglectful of flowers," because he had
+no interest in botany; but one who derived such full delight from the
+contemplation of their external forms, could hardly be expected to feel
+very strongly the impulse to dissect them. He derived exceeding pleasure
+from Greek literature, especially from the works of Plato.
+
+Several little peculiarities in Shelley's tastes are worth mentioning,
+because, although in themselves insignificant, they seem to correspond
+with the nature of his poetry. Perhaps the most prominent of these was
+his passion for boat-sailing. He could not pass any piece of water
+without launching upon it a number of boats, constructed from what paper
+he could find in his pockets. The fly-leaves of the books he was in the
+way of carrying with him, for he was constantly reading, often went to
+this end. He would watch the fate of these boats with the utmost
+interest, till they sank or reached the opposite side. He was just as
+fond of real boating, and that frequently of a dangerous kind; but it is
+characteristic of him, that all the boats he describes in his poems are
+of a fairy, fantastic sort, barely related to the boats which battle
+with earthly winds and waves. Pistol-shooting was also a favourite
+amusement. Fireworks, too, gave him great delight. Some of his habits
+were likewise peculiar. He was remarkably abstemious, preferring bread
+and raisins to anything else in the way of eating, and very seldom
+drinking anything stronger than water. Honey was a favourite luxury with
+him. While at college, his biographer Hogg says he was in the habit,
+during the evening, of going to sleep on the rug, close to a blazing
+fire, heat seeming never to have other than a beneficial effect upon
+him. After sleeping some hours, he would awake perfectly restored, and
+continue actively occupied till far into the morning. His whole
+movements are represented as rapid, hurried, and uncertain. He would
+appear and disappear suddenly and unexpectedly; forget appointments;
+burst into wild laughter, heedless of his situation, whenever anything
+struck him as peculiarly ludicrous. His changes of residence were most
+numerous, and frequently made with so much haste that whole little
+libraries were left behind, and often lost. He was very fond of
+children, and used to make humorous efforts to induce them to disclose
+to him the still-remembered secrets of their pre-existence. He seemed to
+have a peculiar attraction towards mystery, and was ready to believe in
+a hidden secret, where no one else would have thought of one. His room,
+while he was at college, was in a state of indescribable confusion. Not
+only were all sorts of personal necessaries mingled with books and
+philosophical instruments, but things belonging to one department of
+service were not unfrequently pressed into the slavery of another. He
+dressed well but carelessly. In person he was tall, slender, and
+stooping; awkward in gait, but in manners a thorough gentleman. His
+complexion was delicate; his head, face, and features, remarkably small;
+the last not very regular, but in expression, both intellectual and
+moral, wonderfully beautiful. His eyes were deep blue, "of a wild,
+strange beauty;" his forehead high and white; his hair dark brown,
+curling, long, and bushy. His appearance in later life is described as
+singularly combining the appearances of premature age and prolonged
+youth.
+
+The only art in which his taste appears to have been developed was
+poetry. Even in his poetry, taken as a whole, the artistic element is
+not generally very manifest. His earliest verses (none of which are
+included in his collected works) can hardly be said to be good in any
+sense. He seems in these to have chosen poetry as a fitting material for
+the embodiment of his ardent, hopeful, indignant thoughts and feelings,
+but, provided he can say what he wants to say, does not seem to
+care much about _how_ he says it. Indeed, there is too much of
+this throughout his works; for if the _utterance_, instead of
+the _conveyance_ of thought, were the object pursued in art, of
+course not merely imperfection of language, but absolute external
+unintelligibility, would be admissible. But his art constantly increases
+with his sense of its necessity; so that the _Cenci_, which is the last
+work of any pretension that he wrote, is decidedly the most artistic of
+all. There are beautiful passages in _Queen Mab_, but it is the work of
+a boy-poet; and as it was all but repudiated by himself, it is not
+necessary to remark further upon it. _The Revolt of Islam_ is a poem of
+twelve cantos, in the Spenserian stanza; but in all respects except the
+arrangement of lines and rimes, his stanza, in common with all other
+imitations of the Spenserian, has little or nothing of the spirit or
+individuality of the original. The poem is dedicated to the cause of
+freedom, and records the efforts, successes, defeats, and final
+triumphant death of two inspired champions of liberty--a youth and
+maiden. The adventures are marvellous, not intended to be within the
+bounds of probability, scarcely of possibility. There are very noble
+sentiments and fine passages throughout the poem. Now and then there is
+grandeur. But the absence of art is too evident in the fact that the
+meaning is often obscure; an obscurity not unfrequently occasioned by
+the difficulty of the stanza, which is the most difficult mode of
+composition in English, except the rigid sonnet. The words and forms he
+employs to express thought seem sometimes mechanical devices for that
+purpose, rather than an utterance which suggested itself naturally to a
+mind where the thought was vitally present. The words are more a
+_clothing_ for the thought than an _embodiment_ of it. They do not lie
+near enough to the thing which is intended to be represented by them. It
+is, however, but just to remark, that some of the obscurity is owing to
+the fact, that, even with Mrs. Shelley's superintendence, the works have
+not yet been satisfactorily edited, or at least not conducted through
+the press with sufficient care. [Footnote: This statement is no longer
+true.]
+
+_The Cenci_ is a very powerful tragedy, but unfitted for public
+representation by the horrible nature of the historical facts upon which
+it is founded. In the execution of it, however, Shelley has kept very
+much nearer to nature than in any other of his works. He has rigidly
+adhered to his perception of artistic propriety in respect to the
+dramatic utterance. It may be doubted whether there is sufficient
+difference between the modes of speech of the different actors in the
+tragedy, but it is quite possible to individualize speech far too
+minutely for probable nature; and in this respect, at least, Shelley has
+not erred. Perhaps the action of the whole is a little hurried, and a
+central moment of awful repose and fearful anticipation might add to the
+force of the tragedy. The scenes also might, perhaps, have been
+constructed so as to suggest more of evolution; but the central point of
+horror is most powerfully and delicately handled. You see a possible
+spiritual horror yet behind, more frightful than all that has gone
+before. The whole drama, indeed, is constructed around, not a prominent
+point, but a dim, infinitely-withdrawn, underground perspective of
+dismay and agony. Perhaps it detracts a little from our interest in the
+Lady Beatrice, that after all she should wish to live, and should seek
+to preserve her life by a denial of her crime. She, however, evidently
+justifies the denial to herself on the ground that, the deed being
+absolutely right, although regarded as most criminal by her judges, the
+only way to get true justice is to deny the fact, which, there being no
+guilt, she might consider as only a verbal lie. Her very purity of
+conscience enables her to utter this with the most absolute innocence of
+look, and word, and tone. This is probably a historical fact, and
+Shelley had to make the best of it. In the drama there is great
+tenderness, as well as terror; but for a full effect, one feels it
+desirable to be brought better acquainted with the individuals than the
+drama, from its want of graduation, permits. Shelley, however, was only
+six-and-twenty when he wrote it. He must have been attracted to the
+subject by its embodying the concentration of tyranny, lawlessness, and
+brutality in old Cenci, as opposed to, and exercised upon, an ideal
+loveliness and nobleness in the person of Beatrice.
+
+But of all Shelley's works, the _Prometheus Unbound_ is that which
+combines the greatest amount of individual power and peculiarity. There
+is an airy grandeur about it, reminding one of the vast masses of cloud
+scattered about in broken, yet magnificently suggestive forms, all over
+the summer sky, after a thunderstorm. The fundamental ideas are grand;
+the superstructure, in many parts, so ethereal, that one hardly knows
+whether he is gazing on towers of solid masonry rendered dim and
+unsubstantial by intervening vapour, or upon the golden turrets of
+cloudland, themselves born of the mist which surrounds them with a halo
+of glory. The beings of Greek, mythology are idealized and etherealized
+by the new souls which he puts into them, making them think his thoughts
+and say his words. In reading this, as in reading most of his poetry, we
+feel that, unable to cope with the evils and wrongs of the world as it
+and they are, he constructs a new universe, wherein he may rule
+according to his will; and a good will in the main it is--good always in
+intent, good generally in form and utterance. Of the wrongs which
+Shelley endured from the collision and resulting conflict between his
+lawless goodness and the lawful wickedness of those in authority, this
+is one of the greatest,--that during the right period of pupillage, he
+was driven from the place of learning, cast on his own mental resources
+long before those resources were sufficient for his support, and
+irritated against the purest embodiment of good by the harsh treatment
+he received under its name. If that reverence which was far from wanting
+to his nature, had been but presented, in the person of some guide to
+his spiritual being, with an object worthy of its homage and trust, it
+is probable that the yet free and noble result of Shelley's
+individuality would have been presented to the world in a form which,
+while it attracted still only the few, would not have repelled the many;
+at least, not by such things as were merely accidental in their
+association with his earnest desires and efforts for the well-being of
+humanity.
+
+That which chiefly distinguishes Shelley from other writers is the
+unequalled exuberance of his fancy. The reader, say for instance of that
+fantastically brilliant poem, _The Witch of Atlas_, the work of three
+days, is overwhelmed in a storm, as it were, of rainbow snow-flakes and
+many-coloured lightnings, accompanied ever by "a low melodious thunder."
+The evidences of pure imagination in his writings are unfrequent as
+compared with those of fancy: there are not half the instances of the
+direct embodiment of idea in form, that there are of the presentation of
+strange resemblances between external things.
+
+One of the finest short specimens of Shelley's peculiar mode is his _Ode
+to the West Wind_, full of mysterious melody of thought and sound. But
+of all his poems, the most popular, and deservedly so, is the _Skylark_.
+Perhaps the _Cloud_ may contest it with the _Skylark_ in regard to
+popular favour; but the _Cloud_, although full of beautiful words and
+fantastic cloud-like images, is, after all, principally a work of the
+fancy; while the _Skylark_, though even in it fancy predominates over
+imagination in the visual images, forms, as a whole, a lovely, true,
+individual work of art; a _lyric_ not unworthy of the _lark_, which
+Mason apostrophizes as "sweet feathered lyric." The strain of sadness
+which pervades it is only enough to make the song of the lark human.
+
+In _The Sensitive Plant_, a poem full of the peculiarities of his
+genius, tending through a wilderness of fanciful beauties to a thicket
+of mystical speculation, one curious idiosyncrasy is more prominent than
+in any other--curious, as belonging to the poet of beauty and
+loveliness: it is the tendency to be fascinated by what is ugly and
+revolting, so that he cannot withdraw his thoughts from it till he has
+described it in language, powerful, it is true, and poetic, when
+considered as to its fitness for the desired end, but, in force of these
+very excellences in the means, nearly as revolting as the objects
+themselves. Associated with this is the tendency to discover strangely
+unpleasant likenesses between things; which likenesses he is not content
+with seeing, but seems compelled, perhaps in order to get rid of them
+himself, to force upon the observation of his reader. But the admirer of
+Shelley is not pleased to find that one or two passages of this nature
+have been omitted in some editions of his works.
+
+Few men have been more misunderstood or misrepresented than Shelley.
+Doubtless this has in part been his own fault, as Coleridge implies when
+he writes to this effect of him: that his horror of hypocrisy made him
+speak in such a wild way, that Southey (who was so much a man of forms
+and proprieties) was quite misled, not merely in his estimate of his
+worth, but in his judgment of his character. But setting aside this
+consideration altogether, and regarding him merely as a poet, Shelley
+has written verse which will last as long as English literature lasts;
+valuable not only from its excellence, but from the peculiarity of its
+excellence. To say nothing of his noble aims and hopes, Shelley will
+always be admired for his sweet melodies, lovely pictures, and wild
+prophetic imaginings. His indignant remonstrances, intermingled with
+grand imprecations, burst in thunder from a heart overcharged with the
+love of his kind, and roused to a keener sense of all oppression by the
+wrongs which sought to overwhelm himself. But as he recedes further in
+time, and men are able to see more truly the proportions of the man,
+they will judge, that without having gained the rank of a great
+reformer, Shelley had in him that element of wide sympathy and lofty
+hope for his kind which is essential both to the _birth_ and the
+subsequent _making_ of the greatest of poets.
+
+
+
+
+A SERMON.
+
+
+[Footnote: Read in the Unitarian chapel, Essex-street, London, 1879.]
+
+PHILIPPIANS iii. 15, 16.--Let us therefore, as many as be perfect, be
+thus minded; and if in anything ye be otherwise minded, God shall reveal
+even this unto you. Nevertheless, whereto we have already attained, let
+us walk by that same.
+
+
+This is the reading of the oldest manuscripts. The rest of the verse is
+pretty clearly a not overwise marginal gloss that has crept into the
+text.
+
+In its origin, opinion is the intellectual body, taken for utterance and
+presentation by something necessarily larger than any intellect can
+afford stuff sufficient for the embodiment of. To the man himself,
+therefore, in whose mind it arose, an opinion will always represent and
+recall the spirit whose form it is,--so long, at least, as the man
+remains true to his better self. Hence, a man's opinion may be for him
+invaluable, the needle of his moral compass, always pointing to the
+truth whence it issued, and whose form it is. Nor is the man's opinion
+of the less value to him that it may change. Nay, to be of true value,
+it must have in it not only the possibility, but the necessity of
+change: it must change in every man who is alive with that life which,
+in the New Testament, is alone treated as life at all. For, if a man's
+opinion be in no process of change whatever, it must be dead, valueless,
+hurtful Opinion is the offspring of that which is itself born to grow;
+which, being imperfect, must grow or die. Where opinion is growing, its
+imperfections, however many and serious, will do but little hurt; where
+it is not growing, these imperfections will further the decay and
+corruption which must already have laid hold of the very heart of the
+man. But it is plain in the world's history that what, at some given
+stage of the same, was the embodiment in intellectual form of the
+highest and deepest of which it was then spiritually capable, has often
+and speedily become the source of the most frightful outrages upon
+humanity. How is this? Because it has passed from the mind in which it
+grew into another in which it did not grow, and has of necessity altered
+its nature. Itself sprung from that which was deepest in the man, it
+casts seeds which take root only in the intellectual understanding of
+his neighbour; and these, springing up, produce flowers indeed which
+look much the same to the eye, but fruit which is poison and
+bitterness,--worst of it all, the false and arrogant notion that it is
+duty to force the opinion upon the acceptance of others. But it is
+because such men themselves hold with so poor a grasp the truth
+underlying their forms that they are, in their self-sufficiency, so
+ambitious of propagating the forms, making of themselves the worst
+enemies of the truth of which they fancy themselves the champions. How
+truly, in the case of all genuine teachers of men, shall a man's foes be
+they of his own household! For of all the destroyers of the truth which
+any man has preached, none have done it so effectually or so grievously
+as his own followers. So many of them have received but the forms, and
+know nothing of the truth which gave him those forms! They lay hold but
+of the non-essential, the specially perishing in those forms; and these
+aspects, doubly false and misleading in their crumbling disjunction,
+they proceed to force upon the attention and reception of men, calling
+that the truth which is at best but the draggled and useless fringe of
+its earth-made garment. Opinions so held belong to the theology of
+hell,--not necessarily altogether false in form, but false utterly in
+heart and spirit. The opinion then that is hurtful is not that which is
+formed in the depths, and from the honest necessities of a man's own
+nature, but that which he has taken up at second hand, the study of
+which has pleased his intellect; has perhaps subdued fears and mollified
+distresses which ought rather to have grown and increased until they had
+driven the man to the true physician; has puffed him up with a sense of
+superiority as false as foolish, and placed in his hand a club with
+which to subjugate his neighbour to his spiritual dictation. The true
+man even, who aims at the perpetuation of his opinion, is rather
+obstructing than aiding the course of that truth for the love of which
+he holds his opinion; for truth is a living thing, opinion is a dead
+thing, and transmitted opinion a deadening thing.
+
+Let us look at St. Paul's feeling in this regard. And, in order that we
+may deprive it of none of its force, let us note first the nature of the
+truth which he had just been presenting to his disciples, when he
+follows it with the words of my text:--
+
+
+But what things were gain to me, those I counted loss for Christ.
+
+Yea doubtless, and I count all things but loss for the excellency of the
+knowledge of Christ Jesus my Lord: for whom I have suffered the loss of
+all things, and do count them but dung, that I may win Christ,
+
+And be found in him, not having mine own righteousness, which is of the
+law, but that which is through the faith of Christ, the righteousness
+which is of God by faith:
+
+That I may know him, and the power of his resurrection, and the
+fellowship of his sufferings, being made conformable unto his death;
+
+If by any means I might attain unto the resurrection of the dead.
+
+Not as though I had already attained, either were already perfect: but I
+follow after, if that I may apprehend that for which also I am
+apprehended of Christ Jesus.
+
+Brethren, I count not myself to have apprehended: but this one thing I
+do, forgetting those things which are behind, and reaching forth unto
+those things which are before, I press toward the mark for the prize of
+the high calling of God in Christ Jesus.
+
+
+St. Paul, then, had been declaring to the Philippians the idea upon
+which, so far as it lay with him, his life was constructed, the thing
+for which he lived, to which the whole conscious effort of his being was
+directed,--namely, to be in his very nature one with Christ, to become
+righteous as he is righteous; to die into his death, so that he should
+no more hold the slightest personal relation to evil, but be alive in
+every fibre to all that is pure, lovely, loving, beautiful, perfect. He
+had been telling them that he spent himself in continuous effort to lay
+hold upon that for the sake of which Christ had laid hold on him. This
+he declares the sole thing worth living for: the hope of this, the hope
+of becoming one with the living God, is that which keeps a glorious
+consciousness awake in him, amidst all the unrest of a being not yet at
+harmony with itself, and a laborious and persecuted life. It cannot
+therefore be any shadow of indifference to the truth to which he has
+borne this witness, that causes him to add, "If in anything ye be
+otherwise minded." It is to him even the test of perfection, whether
+they be thus minded or not; for, although a moment before, he has
+declared himself short of the desired perfection, he now says, "Let as
+many of us as are perfect be thus minded." There is here no room for
+that unprofitable thing, bare logic: we must look through the shifting
+rainbow of his words,--rather, we must gather all their tints together,
+then turn our backs upon the rainbow, that we may see the glorious light
+which is the soul of it. St. Paul is not that which he would be, which
+he must be; but he, and all they who with him believe that the
+perfection of Christ is the sole worthy effort of a man's life, are in
+the region, though not yet at the centre, of perfection. They are, even
+now, not indeed grasping, but in the grasp of, that perfection. He tells
+them this is the one thing to mind, the one thing to go on desiring and
+labouring for, with all the earnestness of a God-born existence; but, if
+any one be at all otherwise minded,--that is, of a different
+opinion,--what then? That it is of little or no consequence? No, verily;
+but of such endless consequence that God will himself unveil to them the
+truth of the matter. This is Paul's faith, not his opinion. Faith is
+that by which a man lives inwardly, and orders his way outwardly. Faith
+is the root, belief the tree, and opinion the foliage that falls and is
+renewed with the seasons. Opinion is, at best, even the opinion of a
+true man, but the cloak of his belief, which he may indeed cast to his
+neighbour, but not with the truth inside it: that remains in his own
+bosom, the oneness between him and his God. St. Paul knows well--who
+better?--that by no argument, the best that logic itself can afford, can
+a man be set right with the truth; that the spiritual perception which
+comes of hungering contact with the living truth--a perception which is
+in itself a being born again--can alone be the mediator between a man
+and the truth. He knows that, even if he could pass his opinion over
+bodily into the understanding of his neighbour, there would be little or
+nothing gained thereby, for the man's spiritual condition would be just
+what it was before. God must reveal, or nothing is known. And this,
+through thousands of difficulties occasioned by the man himself, God is
+ever and always doing his mighty best to effect.
+
+See the grandeur of redeeming liberality in the Apostle. In his heart of
+hearts he knows that salvation consists in nothing else than being one
+with Christ; that the only life of every man is hid with Christ in God,
+and to be found by no search anywhere else. He believes that for this
+cause was he born into the world,--that he should give himself, heart
+and soul, body and spirit, to him who came into the world that he might
+bear witness to the truth. He believes that for the sake of this, and
+nothing less,--anything more there cannot be,--was the world, with its
+endless glories, created. Nay, more than all, he believes that for this
+did the Lord, in whose cross, type and triumph of his self-abnegation,
+he glories, come into the world, and live and die there. And yet, and
+yet, he says, and says plainly, that a man thinking differently from all
+this or at least, quite unprepared to make this whole-hearted profession
+of faith, is yet his brother in Christ, in whom the knowledge of Christ
+that he has will work and work, the new leaven casting out the old
+leaven until he, too, in the revelation of the Father, shall come to the
+perfect stature of the fulness of Christ. Meantime, Paul, the Apostle,
+must show due reverence to the halting and dull disciple. He must and
+will make no demand upon him on the grounds of what he, Paul, believes.
+He is where he is, and God is his teacher. To his own Master,--that is,
+Paul's Master, and not Paul,--he stands. He leaves him to the company of
+his Master. "Leaves him?" No: that he does not; that he will never do,
+any more than God will leave him. Still and ever will he hold him and
+help him. But how help him, if he is not to press upon him his own
+larger and deeper and wiser insights? The answer is ready: he will
+press, not his opinion, not even the man's opinion, but the man's own
+faith upon him. "O brother, beloved of the Father, walk in the
+light,--in the light, that is, which is thine, not which is mine; in the
+light which is given to thee, not to me: thou canst not walk by my
+light, I cannot walk by thine: how should either walk except by the
+light which is in him? O brother, what thou seest, that do; and what
+thou seest not, that thou shalt see: God himself, the Father of Lights,
+will show it to you." This, this is the condition of all growth,--that
+whereto we have attained, we mind that same; for such, following the
+manuscripts, at least the oldest, seems to me the Apostle's meaning.
+Obedience is the one condition of progress, and he entreats them to
+obey. If a man will but work that which is in him, will but make the
+power of God his own, then is it well with him for evermore. Like his
+Master, Paul urges to action, to the highest operation, therefore to the
+highest condition of humanity. As Christ was the Son of his Father
+because he did the will of the Father, so the Apostle would have them
+the sons of the Father by doing the will of the Father. Whereto ye have
+attained, walk by _that_.
+
+But there is more involved in this utterance than the words themselves
+will expressly carry. Next to his love to the Father and the Elder
+Brother, the passion of Paul's life--I cannot call it less--is love to
+all his brothers and sisters. Everything human is dear to him: he can
+part with none of it. Division, separation, the breaking of the body of
+Christ, is that which he cannot endure. The body of his flesh had once
+been broken, that a grander body might be prepared for him: was it for
+that body itself to tear itself asunder? With the whole energy of his
+great heart, Paul clung to unity. He could clasp together with might and
+main the body of his Master--the body that Master loved because it was a
+spiritual body, with the life of his Father in it. And he knew well that
+only by walking in the truth to which they had attained, could they ever
+draw near to each other. Whereto we have attained, let us walk by that.
+
+My honoured friends, if we are not practical, we are nothing. Now, the
+one main fault in the Christian Church is separation, repulsion, recoil
+between the component particles of the Lord's body. I will not, I do not
+care to inquire who is more to blame than another in the evil fact. I
+only care to insist that it is the duty of every individual man to be
+innocent of the same. One main cause, perhaps I should say _the one_
+cause of this deathly condition, is that whereto we had, we did not,
+whereto we have attained, we do not walk by that. Ah, friend! do not now
+think of thy neighbour. Do not applaud my opinion as just from what thou
+hast seen around thee, but answer it from thy own being, thy own
+behaviour. Dost thou ever feel thus toward thy neighbour,--"Yes, of
+course, every man is my brother; but how can I be a brother to him so
+long as he thinks me wrong in what I believe, and so long as I think he
+wrongs in his opinions the dignity of the truth?" What, I return, has
+the man no hand to grasp, no eyes into which yours may gaze far deeper
+than your vaunted intellect can follow? Is there not, I ask, anything in
+him to love? Who asks you to be of one opinion? It is the Lord who asks
+you to be of one heart. Does the Lord love the man? Can the Lord love,
+where there is nothing to love? Are you wiser than he, inasmuch as you
+perceive impossibility where he has failed to discover it? Or will you
+say, "Let the Lord love where he pleases: I will love where I please"?
+or say, and imagine you yield, "Well, I suppose I must, and therefore I
+will,--but with certain reservations, politely quiet in my own heart"?
+Or wilt thou say none of all these things, but do them all, one after
+the other, in the secret chambers of thy proud spirit? If you delight to
+condemn, you are a wounder, a divider of the oneness of Christ. If you
+pride yourself on your loftier vision, and are haughty to your
+neighbour, you are yourself a division and have reason to ask: "Am I a
+particle of the body at all?" The Master will deal with thee upon the
+score. Let it humble thee to know that thy dearest opinion, the one thou
+dost worship as if it, and not God, were thy Saviour, this very opinion
+thou art doomed to change, for it cannot possibly be right, if it work
+in thee for death and not for life.
+
+Friends, you have done me the honour and the kindness to ask me to speak
+to you. I will speak plainly. I come before you neither hiding anything
+of my belief, nor foolishly imagining I can transfer my opinions into
+your bosoms. If there is one rle I hate, it is that of the
+proselytizer. But shall I not come to you as a brother to brethren?
+Shall I not use the privilege of your invitation and of the place in
+which I stand, nay, must I not myself be obedient to the heavenly
+vision, in urging you with all the power of my persuasion to set
+yourselves afresh to _walk_ according to that to which you have
+attained. So doing, whatever yet there is to learn, you shall learn it.
+Thus doing, and thus only, can you draw nigh to the centre truth; thus
+doing, and thus only, shall we draw nigh to each other, and become
+brothers and sisters in Christ, caring for each other's honour and
+righteousness and true well-being. It is to them that keep his
+commandments that he and his Father will come to take up their abode
+with them. Whether you or I have the larger share of the truth in that
+which we hold, of this I am sure, that it is to them that keep his
+commandments that it shall be given to eat of the Tree of Life. I
+believe that Jesus is the eternal son of the eternal Father; that in him
+the ideal humanity sat enthroned from all eternity; that as he is the
+divine man, so is he the human God; that there was no taking of our
+nature upon himself, but the showing of himself as he really was, and
+that from evermore: these things, friends, I believe, though never would
+I be guilty of what in me would be the irreverence of opening my mouth
+in dispute upon them. Not for a moment would I endeavour by argument to
+convince another of this, my opinion. If it be true, it is God's work to
+show it, for logic cannot. But the more, and not the less, do I believe
+that he, who is no respecter of persons, will, least of all, respect the
+person of him who thinks to please him by respecting his person, calling
+him, "Lord, Lord," and not doing the things that he tells him. Even if I
+be right, friend, and thou wrong, to thee who doest his commandments
+more faithfully than I, will the more abundant entrance be administered.
+God grant that, when thou art admitted first, I may not be cast out, but
+admitted to learn of thee that it is truth in the inward parts that he
+requireth, and they that have that truth, and they alone, shall ever
+know wisdom. Bear with me, friends, for I love and honour you. I seek
+but to stir up your hearts, as I would daily stir up my own, to be true
+to that which is deepest in us,--the voice and the will of the Father of
+our spirits.
+
+Friends, I have not said we are not to utter our opinions. I have only
+said we are not to make those opinions the point of a fresh start, the
+foundation of a new building, the groundwork of anything. They are not
+to occupy us in our dealings with our brethren. Opinion is often the
+very death of love. Love aright, and you will come to think aright; and
+those who think aright must think the same. In the meantime, it matters
+nothing. The thing that does matter is, that whereto we have attained,
+by that we should walk. But, while we are not to insist upon our
+opinions, which is only one way of insisting upon ourselves, however we
+may cloak the fact from ourselves in the vain imagination of thereby
+spreading the truth, we are bound by loftiest duty to spread the truth;
+for that is the saving of men. Do you ask, How spread it, if we are not
+to talk about it? Friends, I never said, Do not talk about the truth,
+although I insist upon a better and the only indispensable way: let your
+light shine. What I said before, and say again, is, Do not talk about
+the lantern that holds the lamp, but make haste, uncover the light, and
+let it shine. Let your light so shine before men that they may see your
+good works,--I incline to the Vatican reading of _good things_,--and
+glorify your Father who is in heaven. It is not, Let your good works
+shine, but, Let your light shine. Let it be the genuine love of your
+hearts, taking form in true deeds; not the doing of good deeds to prove
+that your opinions are right. If ye are thus true, your very talk about
+the truth will be a good work, a shining of the light that is in you. A
+true smile is a good work, and may do much to reveal the Father who is
+in heaven; but the smile that is put on for the sake of looking right,
+or even for the sake of being right, will hardly reveal him, not being
+like him. Men say that you are cold: if you fear it may be so, do not
+think to make yourselves warm by putting on the cloak of this or that
+fresh opinion; draw nearer to the central heat, the living humanity of
+the Son of Man, that ye may have life in yourselves, so heat in
+yourselves, so light in yourselves; understand him, obey him, then your
+light will shine, and your warmth will warm. There is an infection, as
+in evil, so in good. The better we are, the more will men glorify God.
+If we trim our lamps so that we have light in our house, that light will
+shine through our windows, and give light to those that are not in the
+house. But remember, love of the light alone can trim the lamp. Had Love
+trimmed Psyche's lamp, it had never dropped the scalding oil that scared
+him from her.
+
+The man who holds his opinion the most honestly ought to see the most
+plainly that his opinion must change. It is impossible a man should hold
+anything aright. How shall the created embrace the self-existent
+Creator? That Creator, and he alone, is _the truth_: how, then, shall a
+man embrace the truth? But to him who will live it,--to him, that is,
+who walks by that to which he has attained,--the truth will reach down a
+thousand true hands for his to grasp. We would not wish to enclose that
+which we can do more than enclose,--live in, namely, as our home,
+inherit, exult in,--the presence of the infinitely higher and better,
+the heart of the living one. And, if we know that God himself is our
+inheritance, why should we tremble even with hatred at the suggestion
+that we may, that we must, change our opinions? If we held them aright,
+we should know that nothing in them that is good can ever be lost; for
+that is the true, whatever in them may be the false. It is only as they
+help us toward God, that our opinions are worth a straw; and every
+necessary change in them must be to more truth, to greater uplifting
+power. Lord, change me as thou wilt, only do not send me away. That in
+my opinions for which I really hold them, if I be a true man, will never
+pass away; that which my evils and imperfections have, in the process of
+embodying it, associated with the truth, must, thank God, perish and
+fall. My opinions, as my life, as my love, I leave in the hands of him
+who is my being. I commend my spirit to him of whom it came. Why, then,
+that dislike to the very idea of such change, that dread of having to
+accept the thing offered by those whom we count our opponents, which is
+such a stumbling-block in the way in which we have to walk, such an
+obstruction to our yet inevitable growth? It may be objected that no man
+will hold his opinions with the needful earnestness, who can entertain
+the idea of having to change them. But the very objection speaks
+powerfully against such an overvaluing of opinion. For what is it but to
+say that, in order to be wise, a man must consent to be a fool. Whatever
+must be, a man must be able to look in the face. It is because we cleave
+to our opinions rather than to the living God, because self and pride
+interest themselves for their own vile sakes with that which belongs
+only to the truth, that we become such fools of logic and temper that we
+lie in the prison-houses of our own fancies, ideas, and experiences,
+shut the doors and windows against the entrance of the free spirit, and
+will not inherit the love of the Father.
+
+Yet, for the help and comfort of even such a refuser as this, I would
+say: Nothing which you reject can be such as it seems to you. For a
+thing is either true or untrue: if it be untrue, it looks, so far like
+itself that you reject it, and with it we have nothing more to do; but,
+if it be true, the very fact that you reject it shows that to you it has
+not appeared true,--has not appeared itself. The truth can never be even
+beheld but by the man who accepts it: the thing, therefore, which you
+reject, is not that which it seems to you, but a thing good, and
+altogether beautiful, altogether fit for your gladsome embrace,--a thing
+from which you would not turn away, did you see it as it is, but rush to
+it, as Dante says, like the wild beast to his den,--so eager for the
+refuge of home. No honest man holds a truth for the sake of that because
+of which another honest man rejects it: how it may be with the
+dishonest, I have no confidence in my judgment, and hope I am not bound
+to understand.
+
+Let us then, my friends, beware lest our opinions come between us and
+our God, between us and our neighbour, between us and our better selves.
+Let us be jealous that the human shall not obscure the divine. For we
+are not _mere_ human: we, too, are divine; and there is no such
+obliterator of the divine as the human that acts undivinely. The one
+security against our opinions is to walk according to the truth which
+they contain.
+
+And if men seem to us unreasonable, opposers of that which to us is
+plainly true, let us remember that we are not here to convince men, but
+to let our light shine. Knowledge is not necessarily light; and it is
+light, not knowledge, that we have to diffuse. The best thing we can do,
+infinitely the best, indeed the only thing, that men may receive the
+truth, is to be ourselves true. Beyond all doing of good is the being
+good; for he that is good not only does good things, but all that he
+does is good. Above all, let us be humble before the God of truth,
+faithfully desiring of him that truth in the inward parts which alone
+can enable us to walk according to that which we have attained. May the
+God of peace give you his peace; may the love of Christ constrain you;
+may the gift of the Holy Spirit be yours. Amen.
+
+
+
+
+TRUE CHRISTIAN MINISTERING.
+
+
+[Footnote: A spoken sermon.]
+
+MATT. xx. 25--28--But Jesus called them unto him and said, Ye know that
+the princes of the Gentiles exercise dominion over them, and they that
+are great exercise authority upon them. But it should not be so among
+you: but whosoever will be great among you, let him be your minister;
+and whosoever will be chief among you, let him be your servant: even as
+the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister, and to
+give his life a ransom for many.
+
+
+How little this is believed! People think, if they think about it at
+all, that this is very well in the church, but, as things go in the
+world, it won't do. At least, their actions imply this, for every man is
+struggling to get above the other. Every man would make his neighbour
+his footstool that he may climb upon him to some throne of glory which
+he has in his own mind. There is a continual jostling, and crowding, and
+buzzing, and striving to get promotion. Of course there are known and
+noble exceptions; but still, there it is. And yet we call ourselves
+"Christians," and we are Christians, all of us, thus far, that the truth
+is within reach of us all, that it has come nigh to us, talking to us at
+our door, and even speaking in our hearts, and yet this is the way in
+which we go on! The Lord said, "It shall not be so among you." Did he
+mean only his twelve disciples? This was all that he had to say to them,
+but--thanks be to him!--he says the same to every one of us now. "It
+shall not be so among you: that is not the way in my kingdom." The
+people of the world--the people who live in the world--will always think
+it best to get up, to have less and less of service to do, more and more
+of service done to them. The notion of rank in the world is like a
+pyramid; the higher you go up, the fewer are there who have to serve
+those above them, and who are served more than those underneath them.
+All who are under serve those who are above, until you come to the apex,
+and there stands some one who has to do no service, but whom all the
+others have to serve. Something like that is the notion of position--of
+social standing and rank. And if it be so in an intellectual way
+even--to say nothing of mere bodily service--if any man works to a
+position that others shall all look up to him and that he may have to
+look up to nobody, he has just put himself precisely into the same
+condition as the people of whom our Lord speaks--as those who exercise
+dominion and authority, and really he thinks it a fine thing to be
+served.
+
+But it is not so in the kingdom of heaven. The figure there is entirely
+reversed. As you may see a pyramid reflected in the water, just so, in a
+reversed way altogether, is the thing to be found in the kingdom of God.
+It is in this way: the Son of Man lies at the inverted apex of the
+pyramid; he upholds, and serves, and ministers unto all, and they who
+would be high in his kingdom must go near to him at the bottom, to
+uphold and minister to all that they may or can uphold and minister
+unto. There is no other law of precedence, no other law of rank and
+position in God's kingdom. And mind, that is _the_ kingdom. The other
+kingdom passes away--it is a transitory, ephemeral, passing, bad thing,
+and away it must go. It is only there on sufferance, because in the mind
+of God even that which is bad ministers to that which is good; and when
+the new kingdom is built the old kingdom shall pass away.
+
+But the man who seeks this rank of which I have spoken, must be honest
+to follow it. It will not do to say, "I want to be great, and therefore
+I will serve." A man will not get at it so. He may begin so, but he will
+soon find that that will not do. He must seek it for the truth's sake,
+for the love of his fellows, for the worship of God, for the delight in
+what is good. In the kingdom of heaven people do not think whether I am
+promoted, or whether you are promoted. They are so absorbed in the
+delight and glory of the goodness that is round about them, that they
+learn not to think much about themselves. It is the bad that is in us
+that makes us think about ourselves. It is necessary for us, because
+there is bad in us, to think about ourselves, but as we go on we think
+less and less about ourselves, until at last we are possessed with the
+spirit of the truth, the spirit of the kingdom, and live in gladness and
+in peace. We are prouder of our brothers and sisters than of ourselves;
+we delight to look at them. God looks at us, and makes us what he
+pleases, and this is what we must come to; there is no escape from it.
+
+But the Lord says, that "the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto."
+Was he not ministered unto then? Ah! he was ministered unto as never man
+was, but he did not come for that. Even now we bring to him the
+burnt-offerings of our very spirits, but he did not come for that. It
+was to help us that he came. We are told, likewise, that he is the
+express image of the Father. Then what he does, the Father must do; and
+he says himself, when he is accused of breaking the Sabbath by doing
+work on it, "My Father worketh hitherto, and I work." Then this must be
+God's way too, or else it could not have been Jesus's way. It is God's
+way. Oh! do not think that God made us with his hands, and then turned
+us out to find out our own way. Do not think of him as being always over
+our heads, merely throwing over us a wide-spread benevolence. You can
+imagine the tenderness of a mother's heart who takes her child even from
+its beloved nurse to soothe and to minister to it, and that is like God;
+that is God. His hand is not only over us, but recollect what David
+said--"His hand was upon me." I wish we were all as good Christians as
+David was. "Wherever I go," he said, "God is there--beneath me, before
+me, his hand is upon me; if I go to sleep he is there; when I go down to
+the dead he is there." Everywhere is God. The earth underneath us is his
+hand upholding us. [Footnote: The waters are in the hollow of it.] Every
+spring-fountain of gladness about us is his making and his delight. He
+tends us and cares for us; he is close to us, breathing into our
+nostrils the breath of life, and breathing into our spirit this thought
+and that thought to make us look up and recognize the love and the care
+around us. What a poor thing for the little baby would it be if it were
+to be constantly tended thus tenderly and preciously by its mother, but
+if it were never to open its eyes to look up and see her mother's face
+bending over it. A poor thing all its tending would be without that. It
+is for that that the other exists; it is by that that the other comes.
+To recognize and know this loving-kindness, and to stand up in it strong
+and glad; this is the ministration of God unto us. Do you ever think "I
+could worship God if he was so-and-so?" Do you imagine that God is not
+as good, as perfect, as absolutely all-in-all as your thoughts can
+imagine? Aye, you cannot come up to it; do what you will you never will
+come up to it. Use all the symbols that we have in nature, in human
+relations, in the family--all our symbols of grace and tenderness, and
+loving-kindness between man and man, and between man and woman, and
+between woman and woman, but you can never come up to the thought of
+what God's ministration is. When our Lord came he just let us see how
+his Father was doing this always, he "came to give his life a ransom for
+many." It was in giving his life a ransom for us that he died; that was
+the consummation and crown of it all, but it was his life that he gave
+for us--his whole being, his whole strength, his whole energy--not alone
+his days of trouble and of toil, but deeper than that, he gave his whole
+being for us; yea, he even went down to death for us.
+
+But how are we to learn this ministration? I will tell you where it
+begins. The most of us are forced to work; if you do not see that the
+commonest things in life belong to the Christian scheme, the plan of
+God, you have got to learn it. I say this is at the beginning. Most of
+us have to work, and infinitely better is that for us than if we were
+not forced to work, but not a very fine thing unless it goes to
+something farther. We are forced to work; and what is our work? It is
+doing something for other people always. It is doing; it is ministration
+in some shape or other. All kind of work is a serving, but it may not be
+always Christian service. No. Some of us only work for our wages; we
+must have them. We starve, and deserve to starve, if we do not work to
+get them. But we must go a little beyond that; yes, a very great way
+beyond that. There is no honest work that one man does for another which
+he may not do as unto the Lord and not unto men; in which he cannot do
+right as he ought to do right. Thus, I say that the man who sees the
+commonest thing in the world, recognizing it as part of the divine order
+of things, the law by which the world goes, being the intention of God
+that one man should be serviceable and useful to another--the man, I
+say, who does a thing well because of this, and who tries to do it
+better, is doing God service.
+
+We talk of "divine service." It is a miserable name for a great thing.
+It is not service, properly speaking, at all. When a boy comes to his
+father and says, "May I do so and so for you?" or, rather, comes and
+breaks out in some way, showing his love to his father--says, "May I
+come and sit beside you? May I have some of your books? May I come and
+be quiet a little in your room?" what would you think of that boy if he
+went and said, "I have been doing my father a service." So with praying
+to and thanking God, do you call that serving God? If it is not serving
+yourselves it is worth nothing; if it is not the best condition you can
+find yourselves in, you have to learn what it is yet. Not so; the work
+you have to do to-morrow in the counting-house, in the shop, or wherever
+you may be, is that by which you are to serve God. Do it with a high
+regard, and then there is nothing mean in it; but there is everything
+mean in it if you are pretending to please people when you only look for
+your wages. It is mean then; but if you have regard to doing a thing
+nobly, greatly, and truly, because it is the work that God has given you
+to do, then you are doing the divine service.
+
+Of course, this goes a great deal farther. We have endless opportunities
+of showing ourselves neighbours to the man who comes near us. That is
+the divine service; that is the reality of serving God. The others ought
+to be your reward, if "reward" is a word that can be used in such a
+relation at all. Go home and speak to God; nay, hold your tongue, and
+quietly go to him in the secret recesses of your own heart, and know
+that God is there. Say, "God has given me this work to do, and I am
+doing it;" and that is your joy, that is your refuge, that is your going
+to heaven. It is not service. The words "divine service," as they are
+used, always move me to something of indignation. It is perfect
+paganism; it is looking to please God by gathering together your
+services,--something that is supposed to be service to him. He is
+serving us for ever, and our Lord says, "If I have washed your feet, so
+you ought to wash one another's feet." This will be the way in which to
+minister for some.
+
+But still, when we are beginning to learn this, some of us are looking
+about us in a blind kind of way, thinking, "I wish I could serve God; I
+do not know what to do! How is it to be begun? What is it at the root of
+it? What shall I find out to do? Where is there something to do?"
+
+Now, first of all, service is obedience, or it is nothing. This is what
+I would gladly impress upon you; upon every young man who has come to
+the point to be able to receive it. There is a tendency in us to think
+that there is something degrading in obedience, something degrading in
+service. According to the social judgment there is; according to the
+judgment of the earth there is. Not so according to the judgment of
+heaven, for God would only have us do the very thing he is doing
+himself. You may see the tendency of this nowadays. There is scarcely a
+young man who will speak of his "master." He feels as if there is
+something that hurts his dignity in doing so. He does just what so many
+theologians have done about God, who, instead of taking what our Lord
+has given us, talk about God as "the Governor of the Universe." So a
+young man talks about his master as "the governor;" nay, he even talks
+of his own father in that way, and then you come in another region
+altogether, and a worse one. I take these things as symptoms, mind. I
+know habits may be picked up, when they get common, without any great
+corresponding feeling; but a wrong habit tends always to a wrong
+feeling, and if a man cannot learn to honour his father, so as to be
+able to call him "father," I think one or the other of them is greatly
+to blame, whether the father or the son I cannot say. I know there are
+such parents that to tell their children that God is their "Father" is
+no help to them, but the contrary. I heard of a lady just the other day
+to whom, in trying to comfort her, some one said, "Remember God is your
+Father." "Do not mention the name 'father' to me," she said. Ah! that
+kind of fault does not lie in God, but in those who, not being like him,
+cannot use the names aright which belong to him.
+
+But now, as to this service, this obedience. Our Lord came to give his
+life a ransom for the many, and to minister unto all in obedience to his
+Father's will. We call him equal with God--at least, most of us here, I
+suppose, do; of course we do not pretend to explain; we know that God is
+greater than he, because he said so; but somehow, we can worship him
+with our God, and we need not try to distinguish more than is necessary
+about it. But do you think that he was less divine than the Father when
+he was obedient? Observe his obedience to the will of his Father. He was
+not the ruler there. He did not give the commands; he obeyed them. And
+yet we say He is God! Ah, that is no difficulty to me. Obedience is as
+divine in its essence as command; nay, it may be more divine in the
+human being far; it cannot be more divine in God, but obedience is far
+more divine in its essence with regard to humanity than command is. It
+is not the ruling being who is most like God; it is the man who
+ministers to his fellow, who is like God; and the man who will just
+sternly and rigidly do what his master tells him--be that master what he
+may--who is likest Christ in that one particular matter. Obedience is
+the grandest thing in the world to begin with. Yes, and we shall end
+with it too. I do not think the time will ever come when we shall not
+have something to do, because we are told to do it without knowing why.
+Those parents act most foolishly who wish to explain everything to their
+children--most foolishly. No; teach your child to obey, and you give him
+the most precious lesson that can be given to a child. Let him come to
+that before you have had him long, to do what he is told, and you have
+given him the plainest, first, and best lesson that you can give him. If
+he never goes to school at all he had better have that lesson than all
+the schooling in the world. Hence, when some people are accustomed to
+glorify this age of ours as being so much better in everything than
+those which went before, I look back to the times of chivalry, which we
+regard now, almost, as a thing to laugh at, or a merry thing to make
+jokes about; but I find that the one essential of chivalry was
+obedience. It is recognized in our army still, but in those times it was
+carried much farther. When a boy was seven years old he was sent into
+another family, and put with another boy there to do what? To wait with
+him upon the master and the mistress of the house, and to be taught, as
+well, what few things they knew in those times in the way of
+intellectual cultivation. But he also learned stern, strict obedience,
+such as it was impossible for him to forget. Then, when he had been
+there seven years, hard at work, standing behind the chair, and
+ministering, he was advanced a step; and what was that step? He was made
+an esquire. He had his armour given him; he had to watch his armour in
+the chapel all night, laying it on the altar in silent devotion to God.
+I do not say that all these things were carried out afterwards, but this
+was the idea of them. He was an esquire, and what was the duty of an
+esquire? More service; more important service. He still had to attend to
+his master, the knight. He had to watch him; he had to groom his horse
+for him; he had to see that his horse was sound; he had to clean his
+armour for him; to see that every bolt, every rivet, every strap, every
+buckle was sound, for the life of his master was in his hands. The
+master, having to fight, must not be troubled with these things, and
+therefore the squire had to attend to them. Then seven years after that
+a more solemn ceremony is gone through, and the squire is made a knight;
+but is he free of service then? No; he makes a solemn oath to help
+everybody who needs help, especially women and children, and so he rides
+out into the world to do the work of a true man. There was a grand and
+essential idea of Christianity in that--no doubt wonderfully broken and
+shattered, but not more so than the Christian church has been;
+wonderfully broken and shattered, but still the essence of obedience;
+and I say it is recognized in our army still, and in every army; and
+where it is lost it is a terrible loss, and an army is worth nothing
+without it. You remember that terrible story from the East, that fearful
+death-charge, one of the grandest things in our history, although one of
+the most blundering:--
+
+ "Theirs not to make reply,
+ Theirs not to reason why,
+ Theirs but to do and die;
+ Into the valley of death
+ Rode the Six Hundred."
+
+So with the Christian man; whatever meets him, obedience is the thing.
+If he is told by his conscience, which is the candle of God within him,
+that he must do a thing, why he must do it. He may tremble from head to
+foot at having to do it, but he will tremble more if he turns his back.
+You recollect how our old poet Spenser shows us the Knight of the Red
+Cross, who is the knight of holiness, ill in body, diseased in mind,
+without any of his armour on, attacked by a fearful giant. What does he
+do? Run away? No, he has but time to catch up his sword, and, trembling
+in every limb, he goes on to meet the giant; and that is the thing that
+every Christian man must do. I cannot put it too strongly; it is
+impossible. There is no escape from it. If death itself lies before us,
+and we know it, there is nothing to be said; it is all to be done, and
+then there is no loss; everything else is all lost unto God. Look at our
+Lord. He gave his life to do the will of his Father, and on he went and
+did it. Do you think it was easy for him--easier for him than it would
+have been for us? Ah! the greater the man the more delicate and tender
+his nature, and the more he shrinks from the opposition even of his
+fellowmen, because he loves them. It was a terrible thing for Christ.
+Even now and then, even in the little touches that come to us in the
+scanty story (though enough) this breaks out. "We are told by John that
+at the Last Supper He was troubled in spirit, and testified." And then
+how he tries to comfort himself as soon as Judas has gone out to do the
+thing which was to finish his great work: "Now is the Son of Man
+glorified, and God is glorified in him. If God be glorified in him, God
+shall also glorify him in himself." Then he adds,--just gathering up his
+strength,--"I shall straightway glorify him." This was said to his
+disciples, but I seem to see in it that some of it was said for himself.
+This is the grand obedience! Oh, friends, this is a hard lesson to
+learn. We find every day that it is a hard thing to teach. We are
+continually grumbling because we cannot get the people about us, our
+servants, our tradespeople, or whoever they may be, to do just what we
+tell them. It makes half the misery in the world because they will have
+something of their own in it against what they are told. But are we not
+always doing the same thing? and ought we not to learn something of
+forgiveness for them, and very much from the fact that we are just in
+the same position? We only recognize in part that we are put here in
+this world precisely to learn to be obedient. He who is our Lord and our
+God went on being obedient all the time, and was obedient always; and I
+say it is as divine for us to obey as it is for God to rule. As I have
+said already, God is ministering the whole time. Now, do you want to
+know how to minister? Begin by obeying. Obey every one who has a right
+to command you; but above all, look to what our Lord has said, and find
+out what he wants you to do out of what he left behind, and try whether
+obedience to that will not give a consciousness of use, of ministering,
+of being a part of the grand scheme and way of God in this world. In
+fact, take your place in it as a vital portion of the divine kingdom,
+or--to use a better figure than that--a vital portion of the Godhead.
+Try it, and see whether obedience is not salvation; whether service is
+not dignity; whether you will not feel in yourselves that you have begun
+to be cleansed from your plague when you begin to say, "I will seek no
+more to be above my fellows, but I will seek to minister to them, doing
+my work in God's name for them."
+
+ "Who sweeps a room as for Thy law,
+ Makes that and the action fine."
+
+Both the room and the action are good when done for God's sake. That is
+dear old George Herbert's way of saying the same truth, for every man
+has his own way of saying it. The gift of the Spirit of God to make you
+think as God thinks, feel as God feels, judge as God judges, is just the
+one thing that is promised. I do not know anything else that is promised
+positively but that, and who dares pray for anything else with perfect
+confidence? God will not give us what we pray for except it be good for
+us, but that is one thing that we must have or perish. Therefore, let us
+pray for that, and with the name of God dwelling in us--if this is not
+true, the whole world is a heap of ruins--let us go forth and do this
+service of God in ministering to our fellows, and so helping him in his
+work of upholding, and glorifying and saving all.
+
+
+
+
+THE FANTASTIC IMAGINATION
+
+
+That we have in English no word corresponding to the German _Mhrchen_,
+drives us to use the word _Fairytale_, regardless of the fact that the
+tale may have nothing to do with any sort of fairy. The old use of the
+word _Fairy_, by Spenser at least, might, however, well be adduced, were
+justification or excuse necessary where _need must_.
+
+Were I asked, what is a fairytale? I should reply, _Read Undine: that
+is a fairytale; then read this and that as well, and you will see what
+is a fairytale_. Were I further begged to describe the _fairytale_, or
+define what it is, I would make answer, that I should as soon think of
+describing the abstract human face, or stating what must go to
+constitute a human being. A fairytale is just a fairytale, as a face is
+just a face; and of all fairytales I know, I think _Undine_ the most
+beautiful.
+
+Many a man, however, who would not attempt to define _a man_, might
+venture to say something as to what a man ought to be: even so much I
+will not in this place venture with regard to the fairytale, for my long
+past work in that kind might but poorly instance or illustrate my now
+more matured judgment. I will but say some things helpful to the
+reading, in right-minded fashion, of such fairytales as I would wish to
+write, or care to read.
+
+Some thinkers would feel sorely hampered if at liberty to use no forms
+but such as existed in nature, or to invent nothing save in accordance
+with the laws of the world of the senses; but it must not therefore be
+imagined that they desire escape from the region of law. Nothing lawless
+can show the least reason why it should exist, or could at best have
+more than an appearance of life.
+
+The natural world has its laws, and no man must interfere with them in
+the way of presentment any more than in the way of use; but they
+themselves may suggest laws of other kinds, and man may, if he pleases,
+invent a little world of his own, with its own laws; for there is that
+in him which delights in calling up new forms--which is the nearest,
+perhaps, he can come to creation. When such forms are new embodiments of
+old truths, we call them products of the Imagination; when they are mere
+inventions, however lovely, I should call them the work of the Fancy: in
+either case, Law has been diligently at work.
+
+His world once invented, the highest law that comes next into play is,
+that there shall be harmony between the laws by which the new world has
+begun to exist; and in the process of his creation, the inventor must
+hold by those laws. The moment he forgets one of them, he makes the
+story, by its own postulates, incredible. To be able to live a moment in
+an imagined world, we must see the laws of its existence obeyed. Those
+broken, we fall out of it. The imagination in us, whose exercise is
+essential to the most temporary submission to the imagination of
+another, immediately, with the disappearance, of Law, ceases to act.
+Suppose the gracious creatures of some childlike region of Fairyland
+talking either cockney or Gascon! Would not the tale, however lovelily
+begun, sink at once to the level of the Burlesque--of all forms of
+literature the least worthy? A man's inventions may be stupid or clever,
+but if he do not hold by the laws of them, or if he make one law jar
+with another, he contradicts himself as an inventor, he is no artist. He
+does not rightly consort his instruments, or he tunes them in different
+keys. The mind of man is the product of live Law; it thinks by law, it
+dwells in the midst of law, it gathers from law its growth; with law,
+therefore, can it alone work to any result. Inharmonious, unconsorting
+ideas will come to a man, but if he try to use one of such, his work
+will grow dull, and he will drop it from mere lack of interest. Law is
+the soil in which alone beauty will grow; beauty is the only stuff in
+which Truth can be clothed; and you may, if you will, call Imagination
+the tailor that cuts her garments to fit her, and Fancy his journeyman
+that puts the pieces of them together, or perhaps at most embroiders
+their button-holes. Obeying law, the maker works like his creator; not
+obeying law, he is such a fool as heaps a pile of stones and calls it a
+church.
+
+In the moral world it is different: there a man may clothe in new forms,
+and for this employ his imagination freely, but he must invent nothing.
+He may not, for any purpose, turn its laws upside down. He must not
+meddle with the relations of live souls. The laws of the spirit of man
+must hold, alike in this world and in any world he may invent. It were
+no offence to suppose a world in which everything repelled instead of
+attracted the things around it; it would be wicked to write a tale
+representing a man it called good as always doing bad things, or a man
+it called bad as always doing good things: the notion itself is
+absolutely lawless. In physical things a man may invent; in moral things
+he must obey--and take their laws with him into his invented world as
+well.
+
+"You write as if a fairytale were a thing of importance: must it have a
+meaning?"
+
+It cannot help having some meaning; if it have proportion and harmony it
+has vitality, and vitality is truth. The beauty may be plainer in it
+than the truth, but without the truth the beauty could not be, and the
+fairytale would give no delight. Everyone, however, who feels the story,
+will read its meaning after his own nature and development: one man will
+read one meaning in it, another will read another.
+
+"If so, how am I to assure myself that I am not reading my own meaning
+into it, but yours out of it?"
+
+Why should you be so assured? It may be better that you should read your
+meaning into it. That may be a higher operation of your intellect than
+the mere reading of mine out of it: your meaning may be superior to
+mine.
+
+"Suppose my child ask me what the fairytale means, what am I to say?"
+
+If you do not know what it means, what is easier than to say so? If you
+do see a meaning in it, there it is for you to give him. A genuine work
+of art must mean many things; the truer its art, the more things it will
+mean. If my drawing, on the other hand, is so far from being a work of
+art that it needs THIS IS A HORSE written under it, what can it matter
+that neither you nor your child should know what it means? It is there
+not so much to convey a meaning as to wake a meaning. If it do not even
+wake an interest, throw it aside. A meaning may be there, but it is not
+for you. If, again, you do not know a horse when you see it, the name
+written under it will not serve you much. At all events, the business of
+the painter is not to teach zoology.
+
+But indeed your children are not likely to trouble you about the
+meaning. They find what they are capable of finding, and more would be
+too much. For my part, I do not write for children, but for the
+childlike, whether of five, or fifty, or seventy-five.
+
+A fairytale is not an allegory. There may be allegory in it, but it is
+not an allegory. He must be an artist indeed who can, in any mode,
+produce a strict allegory that is not a weariness to the spirit. An
+allegory must be Mastery or Moorditch.
+
+A fairytale, like a butterfly or a bee, helps itself on all sides, sips
+at every wholesome flower, and spoils not one. The true fairytale is, to
+my mind, very like the sonata. We all know that a sonata means
+something; and where there is the faculty of talking with suitable
+vagueness, and choosing metaphor sufficiently loose, mind may approach
+mind, in the interpretation of a sonata, with the result of a more or
+less contenting consciousness of sympathy. But if two or three men sat
+down to write each what the sonata meant to him, what approximation to
+definite idea would be the result? Little enough--and that little more
+than needful. We should find it had roused related, if not identical,
+feelings, but probably not one common thought. Has the sonata therefore
+failed? Had it undertaken to convey, or ought it to be expected to
+impart anything defined, anything notionally recognizable?
+
+"But words are not music; words at least are meant and fitted to carry a
+precise meaning!"
+
+It is very seldom indeed that they carry the exact meaning of any user
+of them! And if they can be so used as to convey definite meaning, it
+does not follow that they ought never to carry anything else. Words are
+live things that may be variously employed to various ends. They can
+convey a scientific fact, or throw a shadow of her child's dream on the
+heart of a mother. They are things to put together like the pieces of a
+dissected map, or to arrange like the notes on a stave. Is the music in
+them to go for nothing? It can hardly help the definiteness of a
+meaning: is it therefore to be disregarded? They have length, and
+breadth, and outline: have they nothing to do with depth? Have they only
+to describe, never to impress? Has nothing any claim to their use but
+the definite? The cause of a child's tears may be altogether
+undefinable: has the mother therefore no antidote for his vague misery?
+That may be strong in colour which has no evident outline. A fairytale,
+a sonata, a gathering storm, a limitless night, seizes you and sweeps
+you away: do you begin at once to wrestle with it and ask whence its
+power over you, whither it is carrying you? The law of each is in the
+mind of its composer; that law makes one man feel this way, another man
+feel that way. To one the sonata is a world of odour and beauty, to
+another of soothing only and sweetness. To one, the cloudy rendezvous is
+a wild dance, with a terror at its heart; to another, a majestic march
+of heavenly hosts, with Truth in their centre pointing their course, but
+as yet restraining her voice. The greatest forces lie in the region of
+the uncomprehended.
+
+I will go farther.--The best thing you can do for your fellow, next to
+rousing his conscience, is--not to give him things to think about, but
+to wake things up that are in him; or say, to make him think things for
+himself. The best Nature does for us is to work in us such moods in
+which thoughts of high import arise. Does any aspect of Nature wake but
+one thought? Does she ever suggest only one definite thing? Does she
+make any two men in the same place at the same moment think the same
+thing? Is she therefore a failure, because she is not definite? Is it
+nothing that she rouses the something deeper than the understanding--the
+power that underlies thoughts? Does she not set feeling, and so thinking
+at work? Would it be better that she did this after one fashion and not
+after many fashions? Nature is mood-engendering, thought-provoking: such
+ought the sonata, such ought the fairytale to be.
+
+"But a man may then imagine in your work what he pleases, what you never
+meant!"
+
+Not what he pleases, but what he can. If he be not a true man, he will
+draw evil out of the best; we need not mind how he treats any work of
+art! If he be a true man, he will imagine true things; what matter
+whether I meant them or not? They are there none the less that I cannot
+claim putting them there! One difference between God's work and man's
+is, that, while God's work cannot mean more than he meant, man's must
+mean more than he meant. For in everything that God has made, there is
+layer upon layer of ascending significance; also he expresses the same
+thought in higher and higher kinds of that thought: it is God's things,
+his embodied thoughts, which alone a man has to use, modified and
+adapted to his own purposes, for the expression of his thoughts;
+therefore he cannot help his words and figures falling into such
+combinations in the mind of another as he had himself not foreseen, so
+many are the thoughts allied to every other thought, so many are the
+relations involved in every figure, so many the facts hinted in every
+symbol. A man may well himself discover truth in what he wrote; for he
+was dealing all the time with things that came from thoughts beyond his
+own.
+
+"But surely you would explain your idea to one who asked you?"
+
+I say again, if I cannot draw a horse, I will not write THIS IS A HORSE
+under what I foolishly meant for one. Any key to a work of imagination
+would be nearly, if not quite, as absurd. The tale is there, not to
+hide, but to show: if it show nothing at your window, do not open your
+door to it; leave it out in the cold. To ask me to explain, is to say,
+"Roses! Boil them, or we won't have them!" My tales may not be roses,
+but I will not boil them.
+
+So long as I think my dog can bark, I will not sit up to bark for him.
+
+If a writer's aim be logical conviction, he must spare no logical pains,
+not merely to be understood, but to escape being misunderstood; where
+his object is to move by suggestion, to cause to imagine, then let him
+assail the soul of his reader as the wind assails an aeolian harp. If
+there be music in my reader, I would gladly wake it. Let fairytale of
+mine go for a firefly that now flashes, now is dark, but may flash
+again. Caught in a hand which does not love its kind, it will turn to an
+insignificant, ugly thing, that can neither flash nor fly.
+
+The best way with music, I imagine, is not to bring the forces of our
+intellect to bear upon it, but to be still and let it work on that part
+of us for whose sake it exists. We spoil countless precious things by
+intellectual greed. He who will be a man, and will not be a child,
+must--he cannot help himself--become a little man, that is, a dwarf. He
+will, however, need no consolation, for he is sure to think himself a
+very large creature indeed.
+
+If any strain of my "broken music" make a child's eyes flash, or his
+mother's grow for a moment dim, my labour will not have been in vain.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Dish Of Orts, by George MacDonald
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A DISH OF ORTS ***
+
+***** This file should be named 9393-8.txt or 9393-8.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/9/3/9/9393/
+
+Produced by Jonathan Ingram, Sandra Brown, and Project
+Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
+ www.gutenberg.org/license.
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
+North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
+contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
+Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
diff --git a/9393-8.zip b/9393-8.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d022e21
--- /dev/null
+++ b/9393-8.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/9393-h.zip b/9393-h.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..ac1c800
--- /dev/null
+++ b/9393-h.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/9393-h/9393-h.htm b/9393-h/9393-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..4aa68e9
--- /dev/null
+++ b/9393-h/9393-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,9569 @@
+<?xml version="1.0" encoding="utf-8"?>
+
+<!DOCTYPE html
+ PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
+ "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd" >
+
+<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" lang="en">
+ <head>
+ <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
+ <title>
+ A Dish of Orts, by George Macdonald
+ </title>
+ <style type="text/css" xml:space="preserve">
+
+ body { margin:5%; background:#faebd0; text-align:justify}
+ P { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: .25em; margin-bottom: .25em; }
+ H1,H2,H3,H4,H5,H6 { text-align: center; margin-left: 15%; margin-right: 15%; }
+ hr { width: 50%; text-align: center;}
+ .foot { margin-left: 20%; margin-right: 20%; text-align: justify; text-indent: -3em; font-size: 90%; }
+ blockquote {font-size: 97%; font-style: italic; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%;}
+ .mynote {background-color: #DDE; color: #000; padding: .5em; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-family: sans-serif; font-size: 95%;}
+ .toc { margin-left: 10%; margin-bottom: .75em;}
+ .toc2 { margin-left: 20%;}
+ div.fig { display:block; margin:0 auto; text-align:center; }
+ div.middle { margin-left: 20%; margin-right: 20%; text-align: justify; }
+ .figleft {float: left; margin-left: 0%; margin-right: 1%;}
+ .figright {float: right; margin-right: 0%; margin-left: 1%;}
+ .pagenum {display:inline; font-size: 70%; font-style:normal;
+ margin: 0; padding: 0; position: absolute; right: 1%;
+ text-align: right;}
+ pre { font-style: italic; font-size: 90%; margin-left: 10%;}
+
+</style>
+ </head>
+ <body>
+
+
+<pre>
+
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of A Dish Of Orts, by George MacDonald
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: A Dish Of Orts
+
+Author: George MacDonald
+
+
+Release Date: November, 2005 [EBook #9393]
+This file was first posted on September 29, 2003
+Last Updated: October 10, 2016
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: UTF-8
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A DISH OF ORTS ***
+
+
+
+
+Text file produced by Jonathan Ingram, Sandra Brown, and Project
+Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
+
+HTML file produced by David Widger
+
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+ <div style="height: 8em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h1>
+ A DISH OF ORTS
+ </h1>
+ <h2>
+ By George Macdonald
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ <br /> <br />
+ </p>
+ <hr />
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_PREF" id="link2H_PREF">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ PREFACE.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ Since printing throughout the title <i>Orts</i>, a doubt has arisen in my
+ mind as to its fitting the nature of the volume. It could hardly, however,
+ be imagined that I associate the idea of <i>worthlessness</i> with the
+ work contained in it. No one would insult his readers by offering them
+ what he counted valueless scraps, and telling them they were such. These
+ papers, those two even which were caught in the net of the ready-writer
+ from extempore utterance, whatever their merits in themselves; are the
+ results of by no means trifling labour. So much a man <i>ought</i> to be
+ able to say for his work. And hence I might defend, if not quite justify
+ my title&mdash;for they are but fragmentary presentments of larger
+ meditation. My friends at least will accept them as such, whether they
+ like their collective title or not.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The title of the last is not quite suitable. It is that of the religious
+ newspaper which reported the sermon. I noted the fact too late for
+ correction. It ought to be <i>True Greatness</i>.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The paper on <i>The Fantastic Imagination</i> had its origin in the
+ repeated request of readers for an explanation of things in certain
+ shorter stories I had written. It forms the preface to an American edition
+ of my so-called Fairy Tales.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ GEORGE MACDONALD.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ EDENBRIDGE, KENT. <i>August 5, 1893.</i>
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <br /> <br />
+ </p>
+ <hr />
+ <p>
+ <br /> <br />
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <b>CONTENTS</b>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_PREF"> PREFACE. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0002"> THE IMAGINATION: ITS FUNCTIONS AND ITS CULTURE.
+ </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0003"> A SKETCH OF INDIVIDUAL DEVELOPMENT. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0004"> ST. GEORGE&rsquo;S DAY, 1564. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0005"> THE ART OF SHAKSPERE, AS REVEALED BY HIMSELF.
+ </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0006"> THE ELDER HAMLET. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0007"> ON POLISH. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0008"> BROWNING&rsquo;S &ldquo;CHRISTMAS EVE&rdquo; </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0009"> ESSAYS ON SOME OF THE FORMS OF LITERATURE </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0010"> THE HISTORY AND HEROES OF MEDICINE. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0011"> WORDSWORTH&rsquo;S POETRY </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0012"> SHELLEY. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0013"> A SERMON. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0014"> TRUE CHRISTIAN MINISTERING. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0015"> THE FANTASTIC IMAGINATION </a>
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <br /> <br />
+ </p>
+ <hr />
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0002" id="link2H_4_0002">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ THE IMAGINATION: ITS FUNCTIONS AND ITS CULTURE.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1867.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There are in whose notion education would seem to consist in the
+ production of a certain repose through the development of this and that
+ faculty, and the depression, if not eradication, of this and that other
+ faculty. But if mere repose were the end in view, an unsparing depression
+ of all the faculties would be the surest means of approaching it, provided
+ always the animal instincts could be depressed likewise, or, better still,
+ kept in a state of constant repletion. Happily, however, for the human
+ race, it possesses in the passion of hunger even, a more immediate saviour
+ than in the wisest selection and treatment of its faculties. For repose is
+ not the end of education; its end is a noble unrest, an ever renewed
+ awaking from the dead, a ceaseless questioning of the past for the
+ interpretation of the future, an urging on of the motions of life, which
+ had better far be accelerated into fever, than retarded into lethargy.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ By those who consider a balanced repose the end of culture, the
+ imagination must necessarily be regarded as the one faculty before all
+ others to be suppressed. &ldquo;Are there not facts?&rdquo; say they. &ldquo;Why forsake
+ them for fancies? Is there not that which, may be <i>known</i>? Why
+ forsake it for inventions? What God hath made, into that let man inquire.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We answer: To inquire into what God has made is the main function of the
+ imagination. It is aroused by facts, is nourished by facts; seeks for
+ higher and yet higher laws in those facts; but refuses to regard science
+ as the sole interpreter of nature, or the laws of science as the only
+ region of discovery.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We must begin with a definition of the word <i>imagination</i>, or rather
+ some description of the faculty to which we give the name.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The word itself means an <i>imaging</i> or a making of likenesses. The
+ imagination is that faculty which gives form to thought&mdash;not
+ necessarily uttered form, but form capable of being uttered in shape or in
+ sound, or in any mode upon which the senses can lay hold. It is,
+ therefore, that faculty in man which is likest to the prime operation of
+ the power of God, and has, therefore, been called the <i>creative</i>
+ faculty, and its exercise <i>creation</i>. <i>Poet</i> means <i>maker</i>.
+ We must not forget, however, that between creator and poet lies the one
+ unpassable gulf which distinguishes&mdash;far be it from us to say <i>divides</i>&mdash;all
+ that is God&rsquo;s from all that is man&rsquo;s; a gulf teeming with infinite
+ revelations, but a gulf over which no man can pass to find out God,
+ although God needs not to pass over it to find man; the gulf between that
+ which calls, and that which is thus called into being; between that which
+ makes in its own image and that which is made in that image. It is better
+ to keep the word <i>creation</i> for that calling out of nothing which is
+ the imagination of God; except it be as an occasional symbolic expression,
+ whose daring is fully recognized, of the likeness of man&rsquo;s work to the
+ work of his maker. The necessary unlikeness between the creator and the
+ created holds within it the equally necessary likeness of the thing made
+ to him who makes it, and so of the work of the made to the work of the
+ maker. When therefore, refusing to employ the word <i>creation</i> of the
+ work of man, we yet use the word <i>imagination</i> of the work of God, we
+ cannot be said to dare at all. It is only to give the name of man&rsquo;s
+ faculty to that power after which and by which it was fashioned. The
+ imagination of man is made in the image of the imagination of God.
+ Everything of man must have been of God first; and it will help much
+ towards our understanding of the imagination and its functions in man if
+ we first succeed in regarding aright the imagination of God, in which the
+ imagination of man lives and moves and has its being.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ As to <i>what</i> thought is in the mind of God ere it takes form, or what
+ the form is to him ere he utters it; in a word, what the consciousness of
+ God is in either case, all we can say is, that our consciousness in the
+ resembling conditions must, afar off, resemble his. But when we come to
+ consider the acts embodying the Divine thought (if indeed thought and act
+ be not with him one and the same), then we enter a region of large
+ difference. We discover at once, for instance, that where a man would make
+ a machine, or a picture, or a book, God makes the man that makes the book,
+ or the picture, or the machine. Would God give us a drama? He makes a
+ Shakespere. Or would he construct a drama more immediately his own? He
+ begins with the building of the stage itself, and that stage is a world&mdash;a
+ universe of worlds. He makes the actors, and they do not act,&mdash;they
+ <i>are</i> their part. He utters them into the visible to work out their
+ life&mdash;his drama. When he would have an epic, he sends a thinking hero
+ into his drama, and the epic is the soliloquy of his Hamlet. Instead of
+ writing his lyrics, he sets his birds and his maidens a-singing. All the
+ processes of the ages are God&rsquo;s science; all the flow of history is his
+ poetry. His sculpture is not in marble, but in living and speech-giving
+ forms, which pass away, not to yield place to those that come after, but
+ to be perfected in a nobler studio. What he has done remains, although it
+ vanishes; and he never either forgets what he has once done, or does it
+ even once again. As the thoughts move in the mind of a man, so move the
+ worlds of men and women in the mind of God, and make no confusion there,
+ for there they had their birth, the offspring of his imagination. Man is
+ but a thought of God.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If we now consider the so-called creative faculty in man, we shall find
+ that in no <i>primary</i> sense is this faculty creative. Indeed, a man is
+ rather <i>being thought</i> than <i>thinking</i>, when a new thought
+ arises in his mind. He knew it not till he found it there, therefore he
+ could not even have sent for it. He did not create it, else how could it
+ be the surprise that it was when it arose? He may, indeed, in rare
+ instances foresee that something is coming, and make ready the place for
+ its birth; but that is the utmost relation of consciousness and will he
+ can bear to the dawning idea. Leaving this aside, however, and turning to
+ the <i>embodiment</i> or revelation of thought, we shall find that a man
+ no more <i>creates</i> the forms by which he would reveal his thoughts,
+ than he creates those thoughts themselves.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For what are the forms by means of which a man may reveal his thoughts?
+ Are they not those of nature? But although he is created in the closest
+ sympathy with these forms, yet even these forms are not born in his mind.
+ What springs there is the perception that this or that form is already an
+ expression of this or that phase of thought or of feeling. For the world
+ around him is an outward figuration of the condition of his mind; an
+ inexhaustible storehouse of forms whence he may choose exponents&mdash;the
+ crystal pitchers that shall protect his thought and not need to be broken
+ that the light may break forth. The meanings are in those forms already,
+ else they could be no garment of unveiling. God has made the world that it
+ should thus serve his creature, developing in the service that imagination
+ whose necessity it meets. The man has but to light the lamp within the
+ form: his imagination is the light, it is not the form. Straightway the
+ shining thought makes the form visible, and becomes itself visible through
+ the form. [Footnote: We would not be understood to say that the man works
+ consciously even in this. Oftentimes, if not always, the vision arises in
+ the mind, thought and form together.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In illustration of what we mean, take a passage from the poet Shelley.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In his poem <i>Adonais</i>, written upon the death of Keats, representing
+ death as the revealer of secrets, he says:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The one remains; the many change and pass;
+ Heaven&rsquo;s light for ever shines; earth&rsquo;s shadows fly;
+ Life, like a dome of many coloured glass,
+ Stains the white radiance of eternity,
+ Until death tramples it to fragments.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ This is a new embodiment, certainly, whence he who gains not, for the
+ moment at least, a loftier feeling of death, must be dull either of heart
+ or of understanding. But has Shelley created this figure, or only put
+ together its parts according to the harmony of truths already embodied in
+ each of the parts? For first he takes the inventions of his fellow-men, in
+ glass, in colour, in dome: with these he represents life as finite though
+ elevated, and as an analysis although a lovely one. Next he presents
+ eternity as the dome of the sky above this dome of coloured glass&mdash;the
+ sky having ever been regarded as the true symbol of eternity. This portion
+ of the figure he enriches by the attribution of whiteness, or unity and
+ radiance. And last, he shows us Death as the destroying revealer, walking
+ aloft through, the upper region, treading out this life-bubble of colours,
+ that the man may look beyond it and behold the true, the uncoloured, the
+ all-coloured.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But although the human imagination has no choice but to make use of the
+ forms already prepared for it, its operation is the same as that of the
+ divine inasmuch as it does put thought into form. And if it be to man what
+ creation is to God, we must expect to find it operative in every sphere of
+ human activity. Such is, indeed, the fact, and that to a far greater
+ extent than is commonly supposed.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The sovereignty of the imagination, for instance, over the region of
+ poetry will hardly, in the present day at least, be questioned; but not
+ every one is prepared to be told that the imagination has had nearly as
+ much to do with the making of our language as with &ldquo;Macbeth&rdquo; or the
+ &ldquo;Paradise Lost.&rdquo; The half of our language is the work of the imagination.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For how shall two agree together what name they shall give to a thought or
+ a feeling. How shall the one show the other that which is invisible? True,
+ he can unveil the mind&rsquo;s construction in the face&mdash;that living
+ eternally changeful symbol which God has hung in front of the unseen
+ spirit&mdash;but that without words reaches only to the expression of
+ present feeling. To attempt to employ it alone for the conveyance of the
+ intellectual or the historical would constantly mislead; while the
+ expression of feeling itself would be misinterpreted, especially with
+ regard to cause and object: the dumb show would be worse than dumb.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But let a man become aware of some new movement within him. Loneliness
+ comes with it, for he would share his mind with his friend, and he cannot;
+ he is shut up in speechlessness. Thus
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ He <i>may</i> live a man forbid
+ Weary seven nights nine times nine,
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ or the first moment of his perplexity may be that of his release. Gazing
+ about him in pain, he suddenly beholds the material form of his immaterial
+ condition. There stands his thought! God thought it before him, and put
+ its picture there ready for him when he wanted it. Or, to express the
+ thing more prosaically, the man cannot look around him long without
+ perceiving some form, aspect, or movement of nature, some relation between
+ its forms, or between such and himself which resembles the state or motion
+ within him. This he seizes as the symbol, as the garment or body of his
+ invisible thought, presents it to his friend, and his friend understands
+ him. Every word so employed with a new meaning is henceforth, in its new
+ character, born of the spirit and not of the flesh, born of the
+ imagination and not of the understanding, and is henceforth submitted to
+ new laws of growth and modification.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Thinkest thou,&rdquo; says Carlyle in &ldquo;Past and Present,&rdquo; &ldquo;there were no poets
+ till Dan Chaucer? No heart burning with a thought which it could not hold,
+ and had no word for; and needed to shape and coin a word for&mdash;what
+ thou callest a metaphor, trope, or the like? For every word we have there
+ was such a man and poet. The coldest word was once a glowing new metaphor
+ and bold questionable originality. Thy very ATTENTION, does it not mean an
+ <i>attentio</i>, a STRETCHING-TO? Fancy that act of the mind, which all
+ were conscious of, which none had yet named,&mdash;when this new poet
+ first felt bound and driven to name it. His questionable originality and
+ new glowing metaphor was found adoptable, intelligible, and remains our
+ name for it to this day.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All words, then, belonging to the inner world of the mind, are of the
+ imagination, are originally poetic words. The better, however, any such
+ word is fitted for the needs of humanity, the sooner it loses its poetic
+ aspect by commonness of use. It ceases to be heard as a symbol, and
+ appears only as a sign. Thus thousands of words which were originally
+ poetic words owing their existence to the imagination, lose their
+ vitality, and harden into mummies of prose. Not merely in literature does
+ poetry come first, and prose afterwards, but poetry is the source of all
+ the language that belongs to the inner world, whether it be of passion or
+ of metaphysics, of psychology or of aspiration. No poetry comes by the
+ elevation of prose; but the half of prose comes by the &ldquo;massing into the
+ common clay&rdquo; of thousands of winged words, whence, like the lovely shells
+ of by-gone ages, one is occasionally disinterred by some lover of speech,
+ and held up to the light to show the play of colour in its manifold
+ laminations.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For the world is&mdash;allow us the homely figure&mdash;the human being
+ turned inside out. All that moves in the mind is symbolized in Nature. Or,
+ to use another more philosophical, and certainly not less poetic figure,
+ the world is a sensuous analysis of humanity, and hence an inexhaustible
+ wardrobe for the clothing of human thought. Take any word expressive of
+ emotion&mdash;take the word <i>emotion</i> itself&mdash;and you will find
+ that its primary meaning is of the outer world. In the swaying of the
+ woods, in the unrest of the &ldquo;wavy plain,&rdquo; the imagination saw the picture
+ of a well-known condition of the human mind; and hence the word <i>emotion</i>.
+ [Footnote: This passage contains only a repetition of what is far better
+ said in the preceding extract from Carlyle, but it was written before we
+ had read (if reviewers may be allowed to confess such ignorance) the book
+ from which that extract is taken.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But while the imagination of man has thus the divine function of putting
+ thought into form, it has a duty altogether human, which is paramount to
+ that function&mdash;the duty, namely, which springs from his immediate
+ relation to the Father, that of following and finding out the divine
+ imagination in whose image it was made. To do this, the man must watch its
+ signs, its manifestations. He must contemplate what the Hebrew poets call
+ the works of His hands.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But to follow those is the province of the intellect, not of the
+ imagination.&rdquo;&mdash;We will leave out of the question at present that
+ poetic interpretation of the works of Nature with which the intellect has
+ almost nothing, and the imagination almost everything, to do. It is
+ unnecessary to insist that the higher being of a flower even is dependent
+ for its reception upon the human imagination; that science may pull the
+ snowdrop to shreds, but cannot find out the idea of suffering hope and
+ pale confident submission, for the sake of which that darling of the
+ spring looks out of heaven, namely, God&rsquo;s heart, upon us his wiser and
+ more sinful children; for if there be any truth in this region of things
+ acknowledged at all, it will be at the same time acknowledged that that
+ region belongs to the imagination. We confine ourselves to that
+ questioning of the works of God which is called the province of science.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Shall, then, the human intellect,&rdquo; we ask, &ldquo;come into readier contact
+ with the divine imagination than that human imagination?&rdquo; The work of the
+ Higher must be discovered by the search of the Lower in degree which is
+ yet similar in kind. Let us not be supposed to exclude the intellect from
+ a share in every highest office. Man is not divided when the
+ manifestations of his life are distinguished. The intellect &ldquo;is all in
+ every part.&rdquo; There were no imagination without intellect, however much it
+ may appear that intellect can exist without imagination. What we mean to
+ insist upon is, that in finding out the works of God, the Intellect must
+ labour, workman-like, under the direction of the architect, Imagination.
+ Herein, too, we proceed in the hope to show how much more than is commonly
+ supposed the imagination has to do with human endeavour; how large a share
+ it has in the work that is done under the sun.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But how can the imagination have anything to do with science? That
+ region, at least, is governed by fixed laws.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;True,&rdquo; we answer. &ldquo;But how much do we know of these laws? How much of
+ science already belongs to the region of the ascertained&mdash;in other
+ words, has been conquered by the intellect? We will not now dispute, your
+ vindication of the <i>ascertained</i> from the intrusion of the
+ imagination; but we do claim for it all the undiscovered, all the
+ unexplored.&rdquo; &ldquo;Ah, well! There it can do little harm. There let it run riot
+ if you will.&rdquo; &ldquo;No,&rdquo; we reply. &ldquo;Licence is not what we claim when we assert
+ the duty of the imagination to be that of following and finding out the
+ work that God maketh. Her part is to understand God ere she attempts to
+ utter man. Where is the room for being fanciful or riotous here? It is
+ only the ill-bred, that is, the uncultivated imagination that will amuse
+ itself where it ought to worship and work.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But the facts of Nature are to be discovered only by observation and
+ experiment.&rdquo; True. But how does the man of science come to think of his
+ experiments? Does observation reach to the non-present, the possible, the
+ yet unconceived? Even if it showed you the experiments which <i>ought</i>
+ to be made, will observation reveal to you the experiments which <i>might</i>
+ be made? And who can tell of which kind is the one that carries in its
+ bosom the secret of the law you seek? We yield you your facts. The laws we
+ claim for the prophetic imagination. &ldquo;He hath set the world <i>in</i>
+ man&rsquo;s heart,&rdquo; not in his understanding. And the heart must open the door
+ to the understanding. It is the far-seeing imagination which beholds what
+ might be a form of things, and says to the intellect: &ldquo;Try whether that
+ may not be the form of these things;&rdquo; which beholds or invents <i>a</i>
+ harmonious relation of parts and operations, and sends the intellect to
+ find out whether that be not <i>the</i> harmonious relation of them&mdash;that
+ is, the law of the phenomenon it contemplates. Nay, the poetic relations
+ themselves in the phenomenon may suggest to the imagination the law that
+ rules its scientific life. Yea, more than this: we dare to claim for the
+ true, childlike, humble imagination, such an inward oneness with the laws
+ of the universe that it possesses in itself an insight into the very
+ nature of things.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Lord Bacon tells us that a prudent question is the half of knowledge.
+ Whence comes this prudent question? we repeat. And we answer, From the
+ imagination. It is the imagination that suggests in what direction to make
+ the new inquiry&mdash;which, should it cast no immediate light on the
+ answer sought, can yet hardly fail to be a step towards final discovery.
+ Every experiment has its origin in hypothesis; without the scaffolding of
+ hypothesis, the house of science could never arise. And the construction
+ of any hypothesis whatever is the work of the imagination. The man who
+ cannot invent will never discover. The imagination often gets a glimpse of
+ the law itself long before it is or can be <i>ascertained</i> to be a law.
+ [Footnote: This paper was already written when, happening to mention the
+ present subject to a mathematical friend, a lecturer at one of the
+ universities, he gave us a corroborative instance. He had lately <i>guessed</i>
+ that a certain algebraic process could be shortened exceedingly if the
+ method which his imagination suggested should prove to be a true one&mdash;that
+ is, an algebraic law. He put it to the test of experiment&mdash;committed
+ the verification, that is, into the hands of his intellect&mdash;and found
+ the method true. It has since been accepted by the Royal Society.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Noteworthy illustration we have lately found in the record of the
+ experiences of an Edinburgh detective, an Irishman of the name of McLevy.
+ That the service of the imagination in the solution of the problems
+ peculiar to his calling is well known to him, we could adduce many proofs.
+ He recognizes its function in the construction of the theory which shall
+ unite this and that hint into an organic whole, and he expressly sets
+ forth the need of a theory before facts can be serviceable:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;I would wait for my &lsquo;idea&rsquo;.... I never did any good without mine....
+ Chance never smiled on me unless I poked her some way; so that my
+ &lsquo;notion,&rsquo; after all, has been in the getting of it my own work only
+ perfected by a higher hand.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;On leaving the shop I went direct to Prince&rsquo;s Street,&mdash;of course
+ with an idea in my mind; and somehow I have always been contented with one
+ idea when I could not get another; and the advantage of sticking by one
+ is, that the other don&rsquo;t jostle it and turn you about in a circle when you
+ should go in a straight line.&rdquo; (Footnote: Since quoting the above I have
+ learned that the book referred to is unworthy of confidence. But let it
+ stand as illustration where it cannot be proof.)]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The region belonging to the pure intellect is straitened: the imagination
+ labours to extend its territories, to give it room. She sweeps across the
+ borders, searching out new lands into which she may guide her plodding
+ brother. The imagination is the light which redeems from the darkness for
+ the eyes of the understanding. Novalis says, &ldquo;The imagination is the stuff
+ of the intellect&rdquo;&mdash;affords, that is, the material upon which the
+ intellect works. And Bacon, in his &ldquo;Advancement of Learning,&rdquo; fully
+ recognizes this its office, corresponding to the foresight of God in this,
+ that it beholds afar off. And he says: &ldquo;Imagination is much akin to
+ miracle-working faith.&rdquo; [Footnote: We are sorry we cannot verify this
+ quotation, for which we are indebted to Mr. Oldbuck the Antiquary, in the
+ novel of that ilk. There is, however, little room for doubt that it is
+ sufficiently correct.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the scientific region of her duty of which we speak, the Imagination
+ cannot have her perfect work; this belongs to another and higher sphere
+ than that of intellectual truth&mdash;that, namely, of full-globed
+ humanity, operating in which she gives birth to poetry&mdash;truth in
+ beauty. But her function in the complete sphere of our nature, will, at
+ the same time, influence her more limited operation in the sections that
+ belong to science. Coleridge says that no one but a poet will make any
+ further <i>great</i> discoveries in mathematics; and Bacon says that
+ &ldquo;wonder,&rdquo; that faculty of the mind especially attendant on the child-like
+ imagination, &ldquo;is the seed of knowledge.&rdquo; The influence of the poetic upon
+ the scientific imagination is, for instance, especially present in the
+ construction of an invisible whole from the hints afforded by a visible
+ part; where the needs of the part, its uselessness, its broken relations,
+ are the only guides to a multiplex harmony, completeness, and end, which
+ is the whole. From a little bone, worn with ages of death, older than the
+ man can think, his scientific imagination dashed with the poetic, calls up
+ the form, size, habits, periods, belonging to an animal never beheld by
+ human eyes, even to the mingling contrasts of scales and wings, of
+ feathers and hair. Through the combined lenses of science and imagination,
+ we look back into ancient times, so dreadful in their incompleteness, that
+ it may well have been the task of seraphic faith, as well as of cherubic
+ imagination, to behold in the wallowing monstrosities of the
+ terror-teeming earth, the prospective, quiet, age-long labour of God
+ preparing the world with all its humble, graceful service for his unborn
+ Man. The imagination of the poet, on the other hand, dashed with the
+ imagination of the man of science, revealed to Goethe the prophecy of the
+ flower in the leaf. No other than an artistic imagination, however,
+ fulfilled of science, could have attained to the discovery of the fact
+ that the leaf is the imperfect flower.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ When we turn to history, however, we find probably the greatest operative
+ sphere of the intellectuo-constructive imagination. To discover its laws;
+ the cycles in which events return, with the reasons of their return,
+ recognizing them notwithstanding metamorphosis; to perceive the vital
+ motions of this spiritual body of mankind; to learn from its facts the
+ rule of God; to construct from a succession of broken indications a whole
+ accordant with human nature; to approach a scheme of the forces at work,
+ the passions overwhelming or upheaving, the aspirations securely
+ upraising, the selfishnesses debasing and crumbling, with the vital
+ interworking of the whole; to illuminate all from the analogy with
+ individual life, and from the predominant phases of individual character
+ which are taken as the mind of the people&mdash;this is the province of
+ the imagination. Without her influence no process of recording events can
+ develop into a history. As truly might that be called the description of a
+ volcano which occupied itself with a delineation of the shapes assumed by
+ the smoke expelled from the mountain&rsquo;s burning bosom. What history becomes
+ under the full sway of the imagination may be seen in the &ldquo;History of the
+ French Revolution,&rdquo; by Thomas Carlyle, at once a true picture, a
+ philosophical revelation, a noble poem.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is a wonderful passage about <i>Time</i> in Shakespere&rsquo;s &ldquo;Rape of
+ Lucrece,&rdquo; which shows how he understood history. The passage is really
+ about history, and not about time; for time itself does nothing&mdash;not
+ even &ldquo;blot old books and alter their contents.&rdquo; It is the forces at work
+ in time that produce all the changes; and they are history. We quote for
+ the sake of one line chiefly, but the whole stanza is pertinent.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Time&rsquo;s glory is to calm contending kings,
+ To unmask falsehood, and bring truth to light,
+ To stamp the seal of time in aged things,
+ To wake the morn and sentinel the night,
+ <i>To wrong the wronger till he render right;</i>
+ To ruinate proud buildings with thy hours,
+ And smear with dust their glittering golden towers.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ <i>To wrong the wronger till he render right.</i> Here is a historical
+ cycle worthy of the imagination of Shakespere, yea, worthy of the creative
+ imagination of our God&mdash;the God who made the Shakespere with the
+ imagination, as well as evolved the history from the laws which that
+ imagination followed and found out.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In full instance we would refer our readers to Shakespere&rsquo;s historical
+ plays; and, as a side-illustration, to the fact that he repeatedly
+ represents his greatest characters, when at the point of death, as
+ relieving their overcharged minds by prophecy. Such prophecy is the result
+ of the light of imagination, cleared of all distorting dimness by the
+ vanishing of earthly hopes and desires, cast upon the facts of experience.
+ Such prophecy is the perfect working of the historical imagination.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the interpretation of individual life, the same principles hold; and
+ nowhere can the imagination be more healthily and rewardingly occupied
+ than in endeavouring to construct the life of an individual out of the
+ fragments which are all that can reach us of the history of even the
+ noblest of our race. How this will apply to the reading of the gospel
+ story we leave to the earnest thought of our readers.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We now pass to one more sphere in which the student imagination works in
+ glad freedom&mdash;the sphere which is understood to belong more
+ immediately to the poet.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We have already said that the forms of Nature (by which word <i>forms</i>
+ we mean any of those conditions of Nature which affect the senses of man)
+ are so many approximate representations of the mental conditions of
+ humanity. The outward, commonly called the material, is <i>informed</i>
+ by, or has form in virtue of, the inward or immaterial&mdash;in a word,
+ the thought. The forms of Nature are the representations of human thought
+ in virtue of their being the embodiment of God&rsquo;s thought. As such,
+ therefore, they can be read and used to any depth, shallow or profound.
+ Men of all ages and all developments have discovered in them the means of
+ expression; and the men of ages to come, before us in every path along
+ which we are now striving, must likewise find such means in those forms,
+ unfolding with their unfolding necessities. The man, then, who, in harmony
+ with nature, attempts the discovery of more of her meanings, is just
+ searching out the things of God. The deepest of these are far too simple
+ for us to understand as yet. But let our imagination interpretive reveal
+ to us one severed significance of one of her parts, and such is the
+ harmony of the whole, that all the realm of Nature is open to us
+ henceforth&mdash;not without labour&mdash;and in time. Upon the man who
+ can understand the human meaning of the snowdrop, of the primrose, or of
+ the daisy, the life of the earth blossoming into the cosmical flower of a
+ perfect moment will one day seize, possessing him with its prophetic hope,
+ arousing his conscience with the vision of the &ldquo;rest that remaineth,&rdquo; and
+ stirring up the aspiration to enter into that rest:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Thine is the tranquil hour, purpureal Eve!
+ But long as godlike wish, or hope divine,
+ Informs my spirit, ne&rsquo;er can I believe
+ That this magnificence is wholly thine!
+ &mdash;From worlds not quickened by the sun
+ A portion of the gift is won;
+ An intermingling of Heaven&rsquo;s pomp is spread
+ On ground which British shepherds tread!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Even the careless curve of a frozen cloud across the blue will calm some
+ troubled thoughts, may slay some selfish thoughts. And what shall be said
+ of such gorgeous shows as the scarlet poppies in the green corn, the
+ likest we have to those lilies of the field which spoke to the Saviour
+ himself of the care of God, and rejoiced His eyes with the glory of their
+ God-devised array? From such visions as these the imagination reaps the
+ best fruits of the earth, for the sake of which all the science involved
+ in its construction, is the inferior, yet willing and beautiful support.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ From what we have now advanced, will it not then appear that, on the
+ whole, the name given by our Norman ancestors is more fitting for the man
+ who moves in these regions than the name given by the Greeks? Is not the
+ <i>Poet</i>, the <i>Maker</i>, a less suitable name for him than the <i>Trouvère</i>,
+ the <i>Finder</i>? At least, must not the faculty that finds precede the
+ faculty that utters?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But is there nothing to be said of the function of the imagination from
+ the Greek side of the question? Does it possess no creative faculty? Has
+ it no originating power?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Certainly it would be a poor description of the Imagination which omitted
+ the one element especially present to the mind that invented the word <i>Poet</i>.&mdash;It
+ can present us with new thought-forms&mdash;new, that is, as revelations
+ of thought. It has created none of the material that goes to make these
+ forms. Nor does it work upon raw material. But it takes forms already
+ existing, and gathers them about a thought so much higher than they, that
+ it can group and subordinate and harmonize them into a whole which shall
+ represent, unveil that thought. [Footnote: Just so Spenser describes the
+ process of the embodiment of a human soul in his Platonic &ldquo;Hymn in Honour
+ of Beauty.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;She frames her house in which she will be placed
+ Fit for herself....
+ And the gross matter by a sovereign might
+ Tempers so trim....
+ For of the soul the body form doth take;
+ For soul is form, and doth the body make.&rdquo;]
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The nature of this process we will illustrate by an examination of the
+ well-known <i>Bugle Song</i> in Tennyson&rsquo;s &ldquo;Princess.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ First of all, there is the new music of the song, which does not even
+ remind one of the music of any other. The rhythm, rhyme, melody, harmony
+ are all an embodiment in sound, as distinguished from word, of what can be
+ so embodied&mdash;the <i>feeling</i> of the poem, which goes before, and
+ prepares the way for the following thought&mdash;tunes the heart into a
+ receptive harmony. Then comes the new arrangement of thought and figure
+ whereby the meaning contained is presented as it never was before. We give
+ a sort of paraphrastical synopsis of the poem, which, partly in virtue of
+ its disagreeableness, will enable the lovers of the song to return to it
+ with an increase of pleasure.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The glory of midsummer mid-day upon mountain, lake, and ruin. Give nature
+ a voice for her gladness. Blow, bugle.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Nature answers with dying echoes, sinking in the midst of her splendour
+ into a sad silence.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Not so with human nature. The echoes of the word of truth gather volume
+ and richness from every soul that re-echoes it to brother and sister
+ souls.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ With poets the <i>fashion</i> has been to contrast the stability and
+ rejuvenescence of nature with the evanescence and unreturning decay of
+ humanity:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Yet soon reviving plants and flowers, anew shall deck the plain;
+ The woods shall hear the voice of Spring, and flourish green again.
+ But man forsakes this earthly scene, ah! never to return:
+ Shall any following Spring revive the ashes of the urn?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But our poet vindicates the eternal in humanity:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;O Love, they die in yon rich sky,
+ They faint on hill or field or river:
+ Our echoes roll from soul to soul,
+ And grow for ever and for ever.
+ Blow, bugle, blow, set the wild echoes flying;
+ And answer, echoes, answer, Dying, dying, dying.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Is not this a new form to the thought&mdash;a form which makes us feel the
+ truth of it afresh? And every new embodiment of a known truth must be a
+ new and wider revelation. No man is capable of seeing for himself the
+ whole of any truth: he needs it echoed back to him from every soul in the
+ universe; and still its centre is hid in the Father of Lights. In so far,
+ then, as either form or thought is new, we may grant the use of the word
+ Creation, modified according to our previous definitions.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ This operation of the imagination in choosing, gathering, and vitally
+ combining the material of a new revelation, may be well illustrated from a
+ certain employment of the poetic faculty in which our greatest poets have
+ delighted. Perceiving truth half hidden and half revealed in the slow
+ speech and stammering tongue of men who have gone before them, they have
+ taken up the unfinished form and completed it; they have, as it were,
+ rescued the soul of meaning from its prison of uninformed crudity, where
+ it sat like the Prince in the &ldquo;Arabian Nights,&rdquo; half man, half marble;
+ they have set it free in its own form, in a shape, namely, which it could
+ &ldquo;through every part impress.&rdquo; Shakespere&rsquo;s keen eye suggested many such a
+ rescue from the tomb&mdash;of a tale drearily told&mdash;a tale which no
+ one now would read save for the glorified form in which he has re-embodied
+ its true contents. And from Tennyson we can produce one specimen small
+ enough for our use, which, a mere chip from the great marble re-embodying
+ the old legend of Arthur&rsquo;s death, may, like the hand of Achilles holding
+ his spear in the crowded picture,
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Stand for the whole to be imagined.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In the &ldquo;History of Prince Arthur,&rdquo; when Sir Bedivere returns after hiding
+ Excalibur the first time, the king asks him what he has seen, and he
+ answers&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Sir, I saw nothing but waves and wind.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The second time, to the same question, he answers&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Sir, I saw nothing but the water<a href="#linknote-1" name="linknoteref-1"
+ id="linknoteref-1">1</a> wap, and the waves wan.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ <a name="linknote-1" id="linknote-1">
+ <!-- Note --></a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="foot">
+ 1 (<a href="#linknoteref-1">return</a>)<br /> [ The word <i>wap</i> is
+ plain enough; the word <i>wan</i> we cannot satisfy ourselves about. Had
+ it been used with regard to the water, it might have been worth remarking
+ that <i>wan</i>, meaning dark, gloomy, turbid, is a common adjective to a
+ river in the old Scotch ballad. And it might be an adjective here; but
+ that is not likely, seeing it is conjoined with the verb <i>wap</i>. The
+ Anglo-Saxon <i>wanian</i>, to decrease, might be the root-word, perhaps,
+ (in the sense of <i>to ebb</i>,) if this water had been the sea and not a
+ lake. But possibly the meaning is, &ldquo;I heard the water <i>whoop</i> or <i>wail
+ aloud</i>&rdquo; (from <i>Wópan</i>); and &ldquo;the waves <i>whine</i> or <i>bewail</i>&rdquo;
+ (from <i>Wánian</i> to lament). But even then the two verbs would seem to
+ predicate of transposed subjects.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ This answer Tennyson has expanded into the well-known lines&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;I heard the ripple washing in the reeds,
+ And the wild water lapping on the crag;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ slightly varied, for the other occasion, into&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;I heard the water lapping on the crag,
+ And the long ripple washing in the reeds.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But, as to this matter of <i>creation</i>, is there, after all, I ask yet,
+ any genuine sense in which a man may be said to create his own
+ thought-forms? Allowing that a new combination of forms already existing
+ might be called creation, is the man, after all, the author of this new
+ combination? Did he, with his will and his knowledge, proceed wittingly,
+ consciously, to construct a form which should embody his thought? Or did
+ this form arise within him without will or effort of his&mdash;vivid if
+ not clear&mdash;certain if not outlined? Ruskin (and better authority we
+ do not know) will assert the latter, and we think he is right: though
+ perhaps he would insist more upon the absolute perfection of the vision
+ than we are quite prepared to do. Such embodiments are not the result of
+ the man&rsquo;s intention, or of the operation of his conscious nature. His
+ feeling is that they are given to him; that from the vast unknown, where
+ time and space are not, they suddenly appear in luminous writing upon the
+ wall of his consciousness. Can it be correct, then, to say that he created
+ them? Nothing less so, as it seems to us. But can we not say that they are
+ the creation of the unconscious portion of his nature? Yes, provided we
+ can understand that that which is the individual, the man, can know, and
+ not know that it knows, can create and yet be ignorant that virtue has
+ gone out of it. From that unknown region we grant they come, but not by
+ its own blind working. Nor, even were it so, could any amount of such
+ production, where no will was concerned, be dignified with the name of
+ creation. But God sits in that chamber of our being in which the candle of
+ our consciousness goes out in darkness, and sends forth from thence
+ wonderful gifts into the light of that understanding which is His candle.
+ Our hope lies in no most perfect mechanism even of the spirit, but in the
+ wisdom wherein we live and move and have our being. Thence we hope for
+ endless forms of beauty informed of truth. If the dark portion of our own
+ being were the origin of our imaginations, we might well fear the
+ apparition of such monsters as would be generated in the sickness of a
+ decay which could never feel&mdash;only declare&mdash;a slow return
+ towards primeval chaos. But the Maker is our Light.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One word more, ere we turn to consider the culture of this noblest
+ faculty, which we might well call the creative, did we not see a something
+ in God for which we would humbly keep our mighty word:&mdash;the fact that
+ there is always more in a work of art&mdash;which is the highest human
+ result of the embodying imagination&mdash;than the producer himself
+ perceived while he produced it, seems to us a strong reason for
+ attributing to it a larger origin than the man alone&mdash;for saying at
+ the last, that the inspiration of the Almighty shaped its ends.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We return now to the class which, from the first, we supposed hostile to
+ the imagination and its functions generally. Those belonging to it will
+ now say: &ldquo;It was to no imagination such as you have been setting forth
+ that we were opposed, but to those wild fancies and vague reveries in
+ which young people indulge, to the damage and loss of the real in the
+ world around them.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;And,&rdquo; we insist, &ldquo;you would rectify the matter by smothering the young
+ monster at once&mdash;because he has wings, and, young to their use,
+ flutters them about in a way discomposing to your nerves, and destructive
+ to those notions of propriety of which this creature&mdash;you stop not to
+ inquire whether angel or pterodactyle&mdash;has not yet learned even the
+ existence. Or, if it is only the creature&rsquo;s vagaries of which you
+ disapprove, why speak of them as <i>the</i> exercise of the imagination?
+ As well speak of religion as the mother of cruelty because religion has
+ given more occasion of cruelty, as of all dishonesty and devilry, than any
+ other object of human interest. Are we not to worship, because our
+ forefathers burned and stabbed for religion? It is more religion we want.
+ It is more imagination we need. Be assured that these are but the first
+ vital motions of that whose results, at least in the region of science,
+ you are more than willing to accept.&rdquo; That evil may spring from the
+ imagination, as from everything except the perfect love of God, cannot be
+ denied. But infinitely worse evils would be the result of its absence.
+ Selfishness, avarice, sensuality, cruelty, would flourish tenfold; and the
+ power of Satan would be well established ere some children had begun to
+ choose. Those who would quell the apparently lawless tossing of the
+ spirit, called the youthful imagination, would suppress all that is to
+ grow out of it. They fear the enthusiasm they never felt; and instead of
+ cherishing this divine thing, instead of giving it room and air for
+ healthful growth, they would crush and confine it&mdash;with but one
+ result of their victorious endeavours&mdash;imposthume, fever, and
+ corruption. And the disastrous consequences would soon appear in the
+ intellect likewise which they worship. Kill that whence spring the crude
+ fancies and wild day-dreams of the young, and you will never lead them
+ beyond dull facts&mdash;dull because their relations to each other, and
+ the one life that works in them all, must remain undiscovered. Whoever
+ would have his children avoid this arid region will do well to allow no
+ teacher to approach them&mdash;not even of mathematics&mdash;who has no
+ imagination.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But although good results may appear in a few from the indulgence of the
+ imagination, how will it be with the many?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We answer that the antidote to indulgence is development, not restraint,
+ and that such is the duty of the wise servant of Him who made the
+ imagination.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But will most girls, for instance, rise to those useful uses of the
+ imagination? Are they not more likely to exercise it in building castles
+ in the air to the neglect of houses on the earth? And as the world affords
+ such poor scope for the ideal, will not this habit breed vain desires and
+ vain regrets? Is it not better, therefore, to keep to that which is known,
+ and leave the rest?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+&ldquo;Is the world so poor?&rdquo; we ask in return. The less reason, then, to be
+satisfied with it; the more reason to rise above it, into the region of
+the true, of the eternal, of things as God thinks them. This outward
+world is but a passing vision of the persistent true. We shall not live
+in it always. We are dwellers in a divine universe where no desires are
+in vain, if only they be large enough. Not even in this world do all
+disappointments breed only vain regrets. [Footnote:
+ &ldquo;We will grieve not, rather find
+ Strength in what remains behind;
+ In the primal sympathy
+ Which, having been, must ever be;
+ In the soothing thoughts that spring
+ Out of human suffering;
+ In the faith that looks through death,
+ In years that bring the philosophic mind.&rdquo;]
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ And as to keeping to that which is known and leaving the rest&mdash;how
+ many affairs of this world are so well-defined, so capable of being
+ clearly understood, as not to leave large spaces of uncertainty, whose
+ very correlate faculty is the imagination? Indeed it must, in most things,
+ work after some fashion, filling the gaps after some possible plan, before
+ action can even begin. In very truth, a wise imagination, which is the
+ presence of the spirit of God, is the best guide that man or woman can
+ have; for it is not the things we see the most clearly that influence us
+ the most powerfully; undefined, yet vivid visions of something beyond,
+ something which eye has not seen nor ear heard, have far more influence
+ than any logical sequences whereby the same things may be demonstrated to
+ the intellect. It is the nature of the thing, not the clearness of its
+ outline, that determines its operation. We live by faith, and not by
+ sight. Put the question to our mathematicians&mdash;only be sure the
+ question reaches them&mdash;whether they would part with the well-defined
+ perfection of their diagrams, or the dim, strange, possibly
+ half-obliterated characters woven in the web of their being; their
+ science, in short, or their poetry; their certainties, or their hopes;
+ their consciousness of knowledge, or their vague sense of that which
+ cannot be known absolutely: will they hold by their craft or by their
+ inspirations, by their intellects or their imaginations? If they say the
+ former in each alternative, I shall yet doubt whether the objects of the
+ choice are actually before them, and with equal presentation.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ What can be known must be known severely; but is there, therefore, no
+ faculty for those infinite lands of uncertainty lying all about the sphere
+ hollowed out of the dark by the glimmering lamp of our knowledge? Are they
+ not the natural property of the imagination? there, <i>for</i> it, that it
+ may have room to grow? there, that the man may learn to imagine greatly
+ like God who made him, himself discovering their mysteries, in virtue of
+ his following and worshipping imagination?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All that has been said, then, tends to enforce the culture of the
+ imagination. But the strongest argument of all remains behind. For, if the
+ whole power of pedantry should rise against her, the imagination will yet
+ work; and if not for good, then for evil; if not for truth, then for
+ falsehood; if not for life, then for death; the evil alternative becoming
+ the more likely from the unnatural treatment she has experienced from
+ those who ought to have fostered her. The power that might have gone forth
+ in conceiving the noblest forms of action, in realizing the lives of the
+ true-hearted, the self-forgetting, will go forth in building airy castles
+ of vain ambition, of boundless riches, of unearned admiration. The
+ imagination that might be devising how to make home blessed or to help the
+ poor neighbour, will be absorbed in the invention of the new dress, or
+ worse, in devising the means of procuring it. For, if she be not occupied
+ with the beautiful, she will be occupied by the pleasant; that which goes
+ not out to worship, will remain at home to be sensual. Cultivate the mere
+ intellect as you may, it will never reduce the passions: the imagination,
+ seeking the ideal in everything, will elevate them to their true and noble
+ service. Seek not that your sons and your daughters should not see
+ visions, should not dream dreams; seek that they should see true visions,
+ that they should dream noble dreams. Such out-going of the imagination is
+ one with aspiration, and will do more to elevate above what is low and
+ vile than all possible inculcations of morality. Nor can religion herself
+ ever rise up into her own calm home, her crystal shrine, when one of her
+ wings, one of the twain with which she flies, is thus broken or paralyzed.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The universe is infinitely wide,
+ And conquering Reason, if self-glorified,
+ Can nowhere move uncrossed by some new wall
+ Or gulf of mystery, which thou alone,
+ Imaginative Faith! canst overleap,
+ In progress towards the fount of love.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The danger that lies in the repression of the imagination may be well
+ illustrated from the play of &ldquo;Macbeth.&rdquo; The imagination of the hero (in
+ him a powerful faculty), representing how the deed would appear to others,
+ and so representing its true nature to himself, was his great impediment
+ on the path to crime. Nor would he have succeeded in reaching it, had he
+ not gone to his wife for help&mdash;sought refuge from his troublesome
+ imagination with her. She, possessing far less of the faculty, and having
+ dealt more destructively with what she had, took his hand, and led him to
+ the deed. From her imagination, again, she for her part takes refuge in
+ unbelief and denial, declaring to herself and her husband that there is no
+ reality in its representations; that there is no reality in anything
+ beyond the present effect it produces on the mind upon which it operates;
+ that intellect and courage are equal to any, even an evil emergency; and
+ that no harm will come to those who can rule themselves according to their
+ own will. Still, however, finding her imagination, and yet more that of
+ her husband, troublesome, she effects a marvellous combination of
+ materialism and idealism, and asserts that things are not, cannot be, and
+ shall not be more or other than people choose to think them. She says,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;These deeds must not be thought
+ After these ways; so, it will make us mad.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;The sleeping and the dead
+ Are but as pictures.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But she had over-estimated the power of her will, and under-estimated that
+ of her imagination. Her will was the one thing in her that was bad,
+ without root or support in the universe, while her imagination was the
+ voice of God himself out of her own unknown being. The choice of no man or
+ woman can long determine how or what he or she shall think of things. Lady
+ Macbeth&rsquo;s imagination would not be repressed beyond its appointed period&mdash;a
+ time determined by laws of her being over which she had no control. It
+ arose, at length, as from the dead, overshadowing her with all the
+ blackness of her crime. The woman who drank strong drink that she might
+ murder, dared not sleep without a light by her bed; rose and walked in the
+ night, a sleepless spirit in a sleeping body, rubbing the spotted hand of
+ her dreams, which, often as water had cleared it of the deed, yet smelt so
+ in her sleeping nostrils, that all the perfumes of Arabia would not
+ sweeten it. Thus her long down-trodden imagination rose and took
+ vengeance, even through those senses which she had thought to subordinate
+ to her wicked will.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But all this is of the imagination itself, and fitter, therefore, for
+ illustration than for argument. Let us come to facts.&mdash;Dr. Pritchard,
+ lately executed for murder, had no lack of that invention, which is, as it
+ were, the intellect of the imagination&mdash;its lowest form. One of the
+ clergymen who, at his own request, attended the prisoner, went through
+ indescribable horrors in the vain endeavour to induce the man simply to
+ cease from lying: one invention after another followed the most earnest
+ asseverations of truth. The effect produced upon us by this clergyman&rsquo;s
+ report of his experience was a moral dismay, such as we had never felt
+ with regard to human being, and drew from us the exclamation, &ldquo;The man
+ could have had no imagination.&rdquo; The reply was, &ldquo;None whatever.&rdquo; Never
+ seeking true or high things, caring only for appearances, and, therefore,
+ for inventions, he had left his imagination all undeveloped, and when it
+ represented his own inner condition to him, had repressed it until it was
+ nearly destroyed, and what remained of it was set on fire of hell.
+ [Footnote: One of the best weekly papers in London, evidently as much in
+ ignorance of the man as of the facts of the case, spoke of Dr. MacLeod as
+ having been engaged in &ldquo;white-washing the murderer for heaven.&rdquo; So far is
+ this from a true representation, that Dr. MacLeod actually refused to pray
+ with him, telling him that if there was a hell to go to, he must go to
+ it.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Man is &ldquo;the roof and crown of things.&rdquo; He is the world, and more.
+ Therefore the chief scope of his imagination, next to God who made him,
+ will he the world in relation to his own life therein. Will he do better
+ or worse in it if this imagination, touched to fine issues and having free
+ scope, present him with noble pictures of relationship and duty, of
+ possible elevation of character and attainable justice of behaviour, of
+ friendship and of love; and, above all, of all these in that life to
+ understand which as a whole, must ever be the loftiest aspiration of this
+ noblest power of humanity? Will a woman lead a more or a less troubled
+ life that the sights and sounds of nature break through the crust of
+ gathering anxiety, and remind her of the peace of the lilies and the
+ well-being of the birds of the air? Or will life be less interesting to
+ her, that the lives of her neighbours, instead of passing like shadows
+ upon a wall, assume a consistent wholeness, forming themselves into
+ stories and phases of life? Will she not hereby love more and talk less?
+ Or will she be more unlikely to make a good match&mdash;&mdash;? But here
+ we arrest ourselves in bewilderment over the word <i>good</i>, and seek to
+ re-arrange our thoughts. If what mothers mean by a <i>good</i> match, is
+ the alliance of a man of position and means&mdash;or let them throw
+ intellect, manners, and personal advantages into the same scale&mdash;if
+ this be all, then we grant the daughter of cultivated imagination may not
+ be manageable, will probably be obstinate. &ldquo;We hope she will be obstinate
+ enough. [Footnote: Let women who feel the wrongs of their kind teach women
+ to be high-minded in their relation to men, and they will do more for the
+ social elevation of women, and the establishment of their rights, whatever
+ those rights may be, than by any amount of intellectual development or
+ assertion of equality. Nor, if they are other than mere partisans, will
+ they refuse the attempt because in its success men will, after all, be
+ equal, if not greater gainers, if only thereby they should be &ldquo;feelingly
+ persuaded&rdquo; what they are.] But will the girl be less likely to marry a <i>gentleman</i>,
+ in the grand old meaning of the sixteenth century? when it was no
+ irreverence to call our Lord
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The first true gentleman that ever breathed;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ or in that of the fourteenth?&mdash;when Chaucer teaching &ldquo;whom is worthy
+ to be called gentill,&rdquo; writes thus:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The first stocke was full of rightwisnes,
+ Trewe of his worde, sober, pitous and free,
+ Clene of his goste, and loved besinesse,
+ Against the vice of slouth in honeste;
+ And but his heire love vertue as did he,
+ He is not gentill though he rich seme,
+ All weare he miter, crowne, or diademe.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Will she be less likely to marry one who honours women, and for their
+ sakes, as well as his own, honours himself? Or to speak from what many
+ would regard as the mother&rsquo;s side of the question&mdash;will the girl be
+ more likely, because of such a culture of her imagination, to refuse the
+ wise, true-hearted, generous rich man, and fall in love with the talking,
+ verse-making fool, <i>because</i> he is poor, as if that were a virtue for
+ which he had striven? The highest imagination and the lowliest common
+ sense are always on one side.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For the end of imagination is <i>harmony</i>. A right imagination, being
+ the reflex of the creation, will fall in with the divine order of things
+ as the highest form of its own operation; &ldquo;will tune its instrument here
+ at the door&rdquo; to the divine harmonies within; will be content alone with
+ growth towards the divine idea, which includes all that is beautiful in
+ the imperfect imaginations of men; will know that every deviation from
+ that growth is downward; and will therefore send the man forth from its
+ loftiest representations to do the commonest duty of the most wearisome
+ calling in a hearty and hopeful spirit. This is the work of the right
+ imagination; and towards this work every imagination, in proportion to the
+ rightness that is in it, will tend. The reveries even of the wise man will
+ make him stronger for his work; his dreaming as well as his thinking will
+ render him sorry for past failure, and hopeful of future success.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To come now to the culture of the imagination. Its development is one of
+ the main ends of the divine education of life with all its efforts and
+ experiences. Therefore the first and essential means for its culture must
+ be an ordering of our life towards harmony with its ideal in the mind of
+ God. As he that is willing to do the will of the Father, shall know of the
+ doctrine, so, we doubt not, he that will do the will of THE POET, shall
+ behold the Beautiful. For all is God&rsquo;s; and the man who is growing into
+ harmony with His will, is growing into harmony with himself; all the
+ hidden glories of his being are coming out into the light of humble
+ consciousness; so that at the last he shall be a pure microcosm,
+ faithfully reflecting, after his manner, the mighty macrocosm. We believe,
+ therefore, that nothing will do so much for the intellect or the
+ imagination as <i>being good</i>&mdash;we do not mean after any formula or
+ any creed, but simply after the faith of Him who did the will of his
+ Father in heaven.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But if we speak of direct means for the culture of the imagination, the
+ whole is comprised in two words&mdash;food and exercise. If you want
+ strong arms, take animal food, and row. Feed your imagination with food
+ convenient for it, and exercise it, not in the contortions of the acrobat,
+ but in the movements of the gymnast. And first for the food.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Goethe has told us that the way to develop the aesthetic faculty is to
+ have constantly before our eyes, that is, in the room we most frequent,
+ some work of the best attainable art. This will teach us to refuse the
+ evil and choose the good. It will plant itself in our minds and become our
+ counsellor. Involuntarily, unconsciously, we shall compare with its
+ perfection everything that comes before us for judgment. Now, although no
+ better advice could be given, it involves one danger, that of narrowness.
+ And not easily, in dread of this danger, would one change his tutor, and
+ so procure variety of instruction. But in the culture of the imagination,
+ books, although not the only, are the readiest means of supplying the food
+ convenient for it, and a hundred books may be had where even one work of
+ art of the right sort is unattainable, seeing such must be of some size as
+ well as of thorough excellence. And in variety alone is safety from the
+ danger of the convenient food becoming the inconvenient model.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us suppose, then, that one who himself justly estimates the
+ imagination is anxious to develop its operation in his child. No doubt the
+ best beginning, especially if the child be young, is an acquaintance with
+ nature, in which let him be encouraged to observe vital phenomena, to put
+ things together, to speculate from what he sees to what he does not see.
+ But let earnest care be taken that upon no matter shall he go on talking
+ foolishly. Let him be as fanciful as he may, but let him not, even in his
+ fancy, sin against fancy&rsquo;s sense; for fancy has its laws as certainly as
+ the most ordinary business of life. When he is silly, let him know it and
+ be ashamed.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But where this association with nature is but occasionally possible,
+ recourse must be had to literature. In books, we not only have store of
+ all results of the imagination, but in them, as in her workshop, we may
+ behold her embodying before our very eyes, in music of speech, in wonder
+ of words, till her work, like a golden dish set with shining jewels, and
+ adorned by the hands of the cunning workmen, stands finished before us. In
+ this kind, then, the best must be set before the learner, that he may eat
+ and not be satisfied; for the finest products of the imagination are of
+ the best nourishment for the beginnings of that imagination. And the mind
+ of the teacher must mediate between the work of art and the mind of the
+ pupil, bringing them together in the vital contact of intelligence;
+ directing the observation to the lines of expression, the points of force;
+ and helping the mind to repose upon the whole, so that no separable
+ beauties shall lead to a neglect of the scope&mdash;that is the shape or
+ form complete. And ever he must seek to <i>show</i> excellence rather than
+ talk about it, giving the thing itself, that it may grow into the mind,
+ and not a eulogy of his own upon the thing; isolating the point worthy of
+ remark rather than making many remarks upon the point.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Especially must he endeavour to show the spiritual scaffolding or skeleton
+ of any work of art; those main ideas upon which the shape is constructed,
+ and around which the rest group as ministering dependencies.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But he will not, therefore, pass over that intellectual structure without
+ which the other could not be manifested. He will not forget the builder
+ while he admires the architect. While he dwells with delight on the
+ relation of the peculiar arch to the meaning of the whole cathedral, he
+ will not think it needless to explain the principles on which it is
+ constructed, or even how those principles are carried out in actual
+ process. Neither yet will the tracery of its windows, the foliage of its
+ crockets, or the fretting of its mouldings be forgotten. Every beauty will
+ have its word, only all beauties will be subordinated to the final beauty&mdash;that
+ is, the unity of the whole.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Thus doing, he shall perform the true office of friendship. He will
+ introduce his pupil into the society which he himself prizes most,
+ surrounding him with the genial presence of the high-minded, that this
+ good company may work its own kind in him who frequents it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But he will likewise seek to turn him aside from such company, whether of
+ books or of men, as might tend to lower his reverence, his choice, or his
+ standard. He will, therefore, discourage indiscriminate reading, and that
+ worse than waste which consists in skimming the books of a circulating
+ library. He knows that if a book is worth reading at all, it is worth
+ reading well; and that, if it is not worth reading, it is only to the most
+ accomplished reader that it <i>can</i> be worth skimming. He will seek to
+ make him discern, not merely between the good and the evil, but between
+ the good and the not so good. And this not for the sake of sharpening the
+ intellect, still less of generating that self-satisfaction which is the
+ closest attendant upon criticism, but for the sake of choosing the best
+ path and the best companions upon it. A spirit of criticism for the sake
+ of distinguishing only, or, far worse, for the sake of having one&rsquo;s
+ opinion ready upon demand, is not merely repulsive to all true thinkers,
+ but is, in itself, destructive of all thinking. A spirit of criticism for
+ the sake of the truth&mdash;a spirit that does not start from its chamber
+ at every noise, but waits till its presence is desired&mdash;cannot,
+ indeed, garnish the house, but can sweep it clean. Were there enough of
+ such wise criticism, there would be ten times the study of the best
+ writers of the past, and perhaps one-tenth of the admiration for the
+ ephemeral productions of the day. A gathered mountain of misplaced
+ worships would be swept into the sea by the study of one good book; and
+ while what was good in an inferior book would still be admired, the
+ relative position of the book would be altered and its influence lessened.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Speaking of true learning, Lord Bacon says: &ldquo;It taketh away vain
+ admiration of anything, <i>which is the root of all weakness</i>.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The right teacher would have his pupil easy to please, but ill to satisfy;
+ ready to enjoy, unready to embrace; keen to discover beauty, slow to say,
+ &ldquo;Here I will dwell.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But he will not confine his instructions to the region of art. He will
+ encourage him to read history with an eye eager for the dawning figure of
+ the past. He will especially show him that a great part of the Bible is
+ only thus to be understood; and that the constant and consistent way of
+ God, to be discovered in it, is in fact the key to all history.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the history of individuals, as well, he will try to show him how to put
+ sign and token together, constructing not indeed a whole, but a probable
+ suggestion of the whole.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And, again, while showing him the reflex of nature in the poets, he will
+ not be satisfied without sending him to Nature herself; urging him in
+ country rambles to keep open eyes for the sweet fashionings and blendings
+ of her operation around him; and in city walks to watch the &ldquo;human face
+ divine.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Once more: he will point out to him the essential difference between
+ reverie and thought; between dreaming and imagining. He will teach him not
+ to mistake fancy, either in himself or in others for imagination, and to
+ beware of hunting after resemblances that carry with them no
+ interpretation.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Such training is not solely fitted for the possible development of
+ artistic faculty. Few, in this world, will ever be able to utter what they
+ feel. Fewer still will be able to utter it in forms of their own. Nor is
+ it necessary that there should be many such. But it is necessary that all
+ should feel. It is necessary that all should understand and imagine the
+ good; that all should begin, at least, to follow and find out God.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;The glory of God is to conceal a thing, but the glory of the king is to
+ find it out,&rdquo; says Solomon. &ldquo;As if,&rdquo; remarks Bacon on the passage,
+ &ldquo;according to the innocent play of children, the Divine Majesty took
+ delight to hide his works, to the end to have them found out; and as if
+ kings could not obtain a greater honour than to be God&rsquo;s playfellows in
+ that game.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One more quotation from the book of Ecclesiastes, setting forth both the
+ necessity we are under to imagine, and the comfort that our imagining
+ cannot outstrip God&rsquo;s making.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;I have seen the travail which God hath given to the sons of men to be
+ exercised in it. He hath made everything beautiful in his time; also he
+ hath set the world in their heart, so that no man can find out the work
+ that God maketh from the beginning to the end.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Thus to be playfellows with God in this game, the little ones may gather
+ their daisies and follow their painted moths; the child of the kingdom may
+ pore upon the lilies of the field, and gather faith as the birds of the
+ air their food from the leafless hawthorn, ruddy with the stores God has
+ laid up for them; and the man of science
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;May sit and rightly spell
+ Of every star that heaven doth shew,
+ And every herb that sips the dew;
+ Till old experience do attain
+ To something like prophetic strain.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0003" id="link2H_4_0003">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ A SKETCH OF INDIVIDUAL DEVELOPMENT.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1880.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;I wish I had thought to watch when God was making me!&rdquo; said a child once
+ to his mother. &ldquo;Only,&rdquo; he added, &ldquo;I was not made till I was finished, so I
+ couldn&rsquo;t.&rdquo; We cannot recall whence we came, nor tell how we began to be.
+ We know approximately how far back we can remember, but have no idea how
+ far back we may not have forgotten. Certainly we knew once much that we
+ have forgotten now. My own earliest definable memory is of a great funeral
+ of one of the Dukes of Gordon, when I was between two and three years of
+ age. Surely my first knowledge was not of death. I must have known much
+ and many things before, although that seems my earliest memory. As in what
+ we foolishly call maturity, so in the dawn of consciousness, both before
+ and after it has begun to be buttressed with <i>self</i>-consciousness,
+ each succeeding consciousness dims&mdash;often obliterates&mdash;that
+ which went before, and with regard to our past as well as our future,
+ imagination and faith must step into the place vacated of knowledge. We
+ are aware, and we know that we are aware, but when or how we began to be
+ aware, is wrapt in a mist that deepens on the one side into deepest night,
+ and on the other brightens into the full assurance of existence. Looking
+ back we can but dream, looking forward we lose ourselves in speculation;
+ but we may both speculate and dream, for all speculation is not false, and
+ all dreaming is not of the unreal. What may we fairly imagine as to the
+ inward condition of the child before the first moment of which his memory
+ affords him testimony?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It is one, I venture to say, of absolute, though, no doubt, largely
+ negative faith. Neither memory of pain that is past, nor apprehension of
+ pain to come, once arises to give him the smallest concern. In some way,
+ doubtless very vague, for his being itself is a border-land of awful
+ mystery, he is aware of being surrounded, enfolded with an atmosphere of
+ love; the sky over him is his mother&rsquo;s face; the earth that nourishes him
+ is his mother&rsquo;s bosom. The source, the sustentation, the defence of his
+ being, the endless mediation betwixt his needs and the things that supply
+ them, are all one. There is no type so near the highest idea of relation
+ to a God, as that of the child to his mother. Her face is God, her bosom
+ Nature, her arms are Providence&mdash;all love&mdash;one love&mdash;to him
+ an undivided bliss.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The region beyond him he regards from this vantage-ground of unquestioned
+ security. There things may come and go, rise and vanish&mdash;he neither
+ desires nor bemoans them. Change may grow swift, its swiftness grow
+ fierce, and pass into storm: to him storm is calm; his haven is secure;
+ his rest cannot be broken: he is accountable for nothing, knows no
+ responsibility. Conscience is not yet awake, and there is no conflict. His
+ waking is full of sleep, yet his very being is enough for him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But all the time his mother lives in the hope of his growth. In the
+ present babe, her heart broods over the coming boy&mdash;the unknown
+ marvel closed in the visible germ. Let mothers lament as they will over
+ the change from childhood to maturity, which of them would not grow weary
+ of nursing for ever a child in whom no live law of growth kept unfolding
+ an infinite change! The child knows nothing of growth&mdash;desires none&mdash;but
+ grows. Within him is the force of a power he can no more resist than the
+ peach can refuse to swell and grow ruddy in the sun. By slow,
+ inappreciable, indivisible accretion and outfolding, he is lifted,
+ floated, drifted on towards the face of the awful mirror in which he must
+ encounter his first foe&mdash;must front himself.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ By degrees he has learned that the world is around, and not within him&mdash;that
+ he is apart, and that is apart; from consciousness he passes to
+ self-consciousness. This is a second birth, for now a higher life begins.
+ When a man not only lives, but knows that he lives, then first the
+ possibility of a real life commences. By <i>real life</i>, I mean life
+ which has a share in its own existence.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For now, towards the world around him&mdash;the world that is not his
+ mother, and, actively at least, neither loves him nor ministers to him,
+ reveal themselves certain relations, initiated by fancies, desires,
+ preferences, that arise within himself&mdash;reasonable or not matters
+ little:&mdash;founded in reason, they can in no case be <i>devoid</i> of
+ reason. Every object concerned in these relations presents itself to the
+ man as lovely, desirable, good, or ugly, hateful, bad; and through these
+ relations, obscure and imperfect, and to a being weighted with a strong
+ faculty for mistake, begins to be revealed the existence and force of
+ Being other and higher than his own, recognized as <i>Will</i>, and first
+ of all in its opposition to his desires. Thereupon begins the strife
+ without which there never was, and, I presume, never can be, any growth,
+ any progress; and the first result is what I may call the third birth of
+ the human being.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The first opposing glance of the mother wakes in the child not only
+ answering opposition, which is as the rudimentary sac of his own coming
+ will, but a new something, to which for long he needs no name, so natural
+ does it seem, so entirely a portion of his being, even when most he
+ refuses to listen to and obey it. This new something&mdash;we call it <i>Conscience</i>&mdash;sides
+ with his mother, and causes its presence and judgment to be felt not only
+ before but after the event, so that he soon comes to know that it is well
+ with him or ill with him as he obeys or disobeys it. And now he not only
+ knows, not only knows that he knows, but knows he knows that he knows&mdash;knows
+ that he is self-conscious&mdash;that he has a conscience. With the first
+ sense of resistance to it, the power above him has drawn nearer, and the
+ deepest within him has declared itself on the side of the highest without
+ him. At one and the same moment, the heaven of his childhood has, as it
+ were, receded and come nigher. He has run from under it, but it claims
+ him. It is farther, yet closer&mdash;immeasurably closer: he feels on his
+ being the grasp and hold of his mother&rsquo;s. Through the higher individuality
+ he becomes aware of his own. Through the assertion of his mother&rsquo;s will,
+ his own begins to awake. He becomes conscious of himself as capable of
+ action&mdash;of doing or of not doing; his responsibility has begun.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ He slips from her lap; he travels from chair to chair; he puts his circle
+ round the room; he dares to cross the threshold; he braves the precipice
+ of the stair; he takes the greatest step that, according to George
+ Herbert, is possible to man&mdash;that out of doors, changing the house
+ for the universe; he runs from flower to flower in the garden; crosses the
+ road; wanders, is lost, is found again. His powers expand, his activity
+ increases; he goes to school, and meets other boys like himself; new
+ objects of strife are discovered, new elements of strife developed; new
+ desires are born, fresh impulses urge. The old heaven, the face and will
+ of his mother, recede farther and farther; a world of men, which he
+ foolishly thinks a nobler as it is a larger world, draws him, claims him.
+ More or less he yields. The example and influence of such as seem to him
+ more than his mother like himself, grow strong upon him. His conscience
+ speaks louder. And here, even at this early point in his history, what I
+ might call his fourth birth <i>may</i> begin to take place: I mean the
+ birth in him of the Will&mdash;the real Will&mdash;not the pseudo-will,
+ which is the mere Desire, swayed of impulse, selfishness, or one of many a
+ miserable motive. When the man, listening to his conscience, wills and
+ does the right, irrespective of inclination as of consequence, then is the
+ man free, the universe open before him. He is born from above. To him
+ conscience needs never speak aloud, needs never speak twice; to him her
+ voice never grows less powerful, for he never neglects what she commands.
+ And when he becomes aware that he can will his will, that God has given
+ him a share in essential life, in the causation of his own being, then is
+ he a man indeed. I say, even here this birth may begin; but with most it
+ takes years not a few to complete it. For, the power of the mother having
+ waned, the power of the neighbour is waxing. If the boy be of common clay,
+ that is, of clay willing to accept dishonour, this power of the neighbour
+ over him will increase and increase, till individuality shall have
+ vanished from him, and what his friends, what society, what the trade or
+ the profession say, will be to him the rule of life. With such, however, I
+ have to do no more than with the deaf dead, who sleep too deep for words
+ to reach them.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ My typical child of man is not of such. He is capable not of being
+ influenced merely, but of influencing&mdash;and first of all of
+ influencing himself; of taking a share in his own making; of determining
+ actively, not by mere passivity, what he shall be and become; for he never
+ ceases to pay at least a little heed, however poor and intermittent, to
+ the voice of his conscience, and to-day he pays more heed than he did
+ yesterday.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Long ere now the joy of space, of room, has laid hold upon him&mdash;the
+ more powerfully if he inhabit a wild and broken region. The human animal
+ delights in motion and change, motions of his members even violent, and
+ swiftest changes of place. It is as if he would lay hold of the infinite
+ by ceaseless abandonment and choice of a never-abiding stand-point, as if
+ he would lay hold of strength by the consciousness of the strength he has.
+ He is full of unrest. He must know what lies on the farther shore of every
+ river, see how the world looks from every hill: <i>What is behind? What is
+ beyond?</i> is his constant cry. To learn, to gather into himself, is his
+ longing. Nor do many years pass thus, it may be not many months, ere the
+ world begins to come alive around him. He begins to feel that the stars
+ are strange, that the moon is sad, that the sunrise is mighty. He begins
+ to see in them all the something men call beauty. He will lie on the sunny
+ bank and gaze into the blue heaven till his soul seems to float abroad and
+ mingle with the infinite made visible, with the boundless condensed into
+ colour and shape. The rush of the water through the still twilight, under
+ the faint gleam of the exhausted west, makes in his ears a melody he is
+ almost aware he cannot understand. Dissatisfied with his emotions he
+ desires a deeper waking, longs for a greater beauty, is troubled with the
+ stirring in his bosom of an unknown ideal of Nature. Nor is it an ideal of
+ Nature alone that is forming within him. A far more precious thing, a
+ human ideal namely, is in his soul, gathering to itself shape and
+ consistency. The wind that at night fills him with sadness&mdash;he cannot
+ tell why, in the daytime haunts him like a wild consciousness of strength
+ which has neither difficulty nor danger enough to spend itself upon. He
+ would be a champion of the weak, a friend to the great; for both he would
+ fight&mdash;a merciless foe to every oppressor of his kind. He would be
+ rich that he might help, strong that he might rescue, brave&mdash;that he
+ counts himself already, for he has not proved his own weakness. In the
+ first encounter he fails, and the bitter cup of shame and confusion of
+ face, wholesome and saving, is handed him from the well of life. He is not
+ yet capable of understanding that one such as he, filled with the glory
+ and not the duty of victory, could not but fail, and therefore ought to
+ fail; but his dismay and chagrin are soothed by the forgetfulness the days
+ and nights bring, gently wiping out the sins that are past, that the young
+ life may have a fresh chance, as we say, and begin again unburdened by the
+ weight of a too much present failure.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And now, probably at school, or in the first months of his college-life, a
+ new phase of experience begins. He has wandered over the border of what is
+ commonly called science, and the marvel of facts multitudinous, strung
+ upon the golden threads of law, has laid hold upon him. His intellect is
+ seized and possessed by a new spirit. For a time knowledge is pride; the
+ mere consciousness of knowing is the reward of its labour; the ever
+ recurring, ever passing contact of mind with a new fact is a joy full of
+ excitement, and promises an endless delight. But ever the thing that is
+ known sinks into insignificance, save as a step of the endless stair on
+ which he is climbing&mdash;whither he knows not; the unknown draws him;
+ the new fact touches his mind, flames up in the contact, and drops dark, a
+ mere fact, on the heap below. Even the grandeur of law as law, so far from
+ adding fresh consciousness to his life, causes it no small suffering and
+ loss. For at the entrance of Science, nobly and gracefully as she bears
+ herself, young Poetry shrinks back startled, dismayed. Poetry is true as
+ Science, and Science is holy as Poetry; but young Poetry is timid and
+ Science is fearless, and bears with her a colder atmosphere than the other
+ has yet learned to brave. It is not that Madam Science shows any
+ antagonism to Lady Poetry; but the atmosphere and plane on which alone
+ they can meet as friends who understand each other, is the mind and heart
+ of the sage, not of the boy. The youth gazes on the face of Science, cold,
+ clear, beautiful; then, turning, looks for his friend&mdash;but, alas!
+ Poetry has fled. With a great pang at the heart he rushes abroad to find
+ her, but descries only the rainbow glimmer of her skirt on the far
+ horizon. At night, in his dreams, she returns, but never for a season may
+ he look on her face of loveliness. What, alas! have evaporation, caloric,
+ atmosphere, refraction, the prism, and the second planet of our system, to
+ do with &ldquo;sad Hesper o&rsquo;er the buried sun?&rdquo; From quantitative analysis how
+ shall he turn again to &ldquo;the rime of the ancient mariner,&rdquo; and &ldquo;the moving
+ moon&rdquo; that &ldquo;went up the sky, and nowhere did abide&rdquo;? From his window he
+ gazes across the sands to the mightily troubled ocean: &ldquo;What is the storm
+ to me any more!&rdquo; he cries; &ldquo;it is but the clashing of countless
+ water-drops!&rdquo; He finds relief in the discovery that, the moment you place
+ man in the midst of it, the clashing of water-drops becomes a storm,
+ terrible to heart and brain: human thought and feeling, hope, fear, love,
+ sacrifice, make the motions of nature alive with mystery and the shadows
+ of destiny. The relief, however, is but partial, and may be but temporary;
+ for what if this mingling of man and Nature in the mind of man be but the
+ casting of a coloured shadow over her cold indifference? What if she means
+ nothing&mdash;never was meant to mean anything! What if in truth &ldquo;we
+ receive but what we give, and in our life alone doth Nature live!&rdquo; What if
+ the language of metaphysics as well as of poetry be drawn, not from Nature
+ at all, but from human fancy concerning her!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ At length, from the unknown, whence himself he came, appears an angel to
+ deliver him from this horror&mdash;this stony look&mdash;ah, God! of
+ soulless law. The woman is on her way whose part it is to meet him with a
+ life other than his own, at once the complement of his, and the visible
+ presentment of that in it which is beyond his own understanding. The
+ enchantment of what we specially call <i>love</i> is upon him&mdash;a
+ deceiving glamour, say some, showing what is not, an opening of the eyes,
+ say others, revealing that of which a man had not been aware: men will
+ still be divided into those who believe that the horses of fire and the
+ chariots of fire are ever present at their need of them, and those who
+ class the prophet and the drunkard in the same category as the fools of
+ their own fancies. But what this love is, he who thinks he knows least
+ understands. Let foolish maidens and vulgar youths simper and jest over it
+ as they please, it is one of the most potent mysteries of the living God.
+ The man who can love a woman and remain a lover of his wretched self, is
+ fit only to be cast out with the broken potsherds of the city, as one in
+ whom the very salt has lost its savour. With this love in his heart, a man
+ puts on at least the vision robes of the seer, if not the singing robes of
+ the poet. Be he the paltriest human animal that ever breathed, for the
+ time, and in his degree, he rises above himself. His nature so far
+ clarifies itself, that here and there a truth of the great world will
+ penetrate, sorely dimmed, through the fog-laden, self-shadowed atmosphere
+ of his microcosm. For the time, I repeat, he is not a lover only, but
+ something of a friend, with a reflex touch of his own far-off childhood.
+ To the youth of my history, in the light of his love&mdash;a light that
+ passes outward from the eyes of the lover&mdash;the world grows alive
+ again, yea radiant as an infinite face. He sees the flowers as he saw them
+ in boyhood, recovering from an illness of all the winter, only they have a
+ yet deeper glow, a yet fresher delight, a yet more unspeakable soul. He
+ becomes pitiful over them, and not willingly breaks their stems, to hurt
+ the life he more than half believes they share with him. He cannot think
+ anything created only for him, any more than only for itself. Nature is no
+ longer a mere contention of forces, whose heaven and whose hell in one is
+ the dull peace of an equilibrium; but a struggle, through splendour of
+ colour, graciousness of form, and evasive vitality of motion and sound,
+ after an utterance hard to find, and never found but marred by the
+ imperfection of the small and weak that would embody and set forth the
+ great and mighty. The waving of the tree-tops is the billowy movement of a
+ hidden delight. The sun lifts his head with intent to be glorious. No day
+ lasts too long, no night comes too soon: the twilight is woven of shadowy
+ arms that draw the loving to the bosom of the Night. In the woman, the
+ infinite after which he thirsts is given him for his own.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Man&rsquo;s occupation with himself turns his eyes from the great life beyond
+ his threshold: when love awakes, he forgets himself for a time, and many a
+ glimpse of strange truth finds its way through his windows, blocked no
+ longer by the shadow of himself. He may now catch even a glimpse of the
+ possibilities of his own being&mdash;may dimly perceive for a moment the
+ image after which he was made. But alas! too soon, self, radiant of
+ darkness, awakes; every window becomes opaque with shadow, and the man is
+ again a prisoner. For it is not the highest word alone that the cares of
+ this world, the deceitfulness of riches, and the lust of other things
+ entering in, choke, and render unfruitful. Waking from the divine vision,
+ if that can be called waking which is indeed dying into the common day,
+ the common man regards it straightway as a foolish dream; the wise man
+ believes in it still, holds fast by the memory of the vanished glory, and
+ looks to have it one day again a present portion of the light of his life.
+ He knows that, because of the imperfection and dulness and weakness of his
+ nature, after every vision follow the inclosing clouds, with the threat of
+ an ever during dark; knows that, even if the vision could tarry, it were
+ not well, for the sake of that which must yet be done with him, yet be
+ made of him, that it should tarry. But the youth whose history I am
+ following is not like the former, nor as yet like the latter.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ From whatever cause, then, whether of fault, of natural law, or of
+ supernal will, the flush that seemed to promise the dawn of an eternal
+ day, shrinks and fades, though, with him, like the lagging skirt of the
+ sunset in the northern west, it does not vanish, but travels on, a
+ withered pilgrim, all the night, at the long last to rise the aureole of
+ the eternal Aurora. And now new paths entice him&mdash;or old paths
+ opening fresh horizons. With stronger thews and keener nerves he turns
+ again to the visible around him. The changelessness amid change, the law
+ amid seeming disorder, the unity amid units, draws him again. He begins to
+ descry the indwelling poetry of science. The untiring forces at work in
+ measurable yet inconceivable spaces of time and room, fill his soul with
+ an awe that threatens to uncreate him with a sense of littleness; while,
+ on the other side, the grandeur of their operations fills him with such an
+ informing glory, the mere presence of the mighty facts, that he no more
+ thinks of himself, but in humility is great, and knows it not. Rapt
+ spectator, seer entranced under the magic wand of Science, he beholds the
+ billions of billions of miles of incandescent vapour begin a slow, scarce
+ perceptible revolution, gradually grow swift, and gather an awful speed.
+ He sees the vapour, as it whirls, condensing through slow eternities to a
+ plastic fluidity. He notes ring after ring part from the circumference of
+ the mass, break, rush together into a globe, and the glowing ball keep on
+ through space with the speed of its parent bulk. It cools and still cools
+ and condenses, but still fiercely glows. Presently&mdash;after tens of
+ thousands of years is the creative <i>presently</i>&mdash;arises fierce
+ contention betwixt the glowing heart and its accompanying atmosphere. The
+ latter invades the former with antagonistic element. He listens in his
+ soul, and hears the rush of ever descending torrent rains, with the
+ continuous roaring shock of their evanishment in vapour&mdash;to turn
+ again to water in the higher regions, and again rush to the attack upon
+ the citadel of fire. He beholds the slow victory of the water at last, and
+ the great globe, now glooming in a cloak of darkness, covered with a
+ wildly boiling sea&mdash;not boiling by figure of speech, under contending
+ forces of wind and tide, but boiling high as the hills to come, with
+ veritable heat. He sees the rise of the wrinkles we call hills and
+ mountains, and from their sides the avalanches of water to the lower
+ levels. He sees race after race of living things appear, as the earth
+ becomes, for each new and higher kind, a passing home; and he watches the
+ succession of terrible convulsions dividing kind from kind, until at
+ length the kind he calls his own arrives. Endless are the visions of
+ material grandeur unfathomable, awaked in his soul by the bare facts of
+ external existence.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But soon comes a change. So far as he can see or learn, all the motion,
+ all the seeming dance, is but a rush for death, a panic flight into the
+ moveless silence. The summer wind, the tropic tornado, the softest tide,
+ the fiercest storm, are alike the tumultuous conflict of forces, rushing,
+ and fighting as they rush, into the arms of eternal negation. On and on
+ they hurry&mdash;down and down, to a cold stirless solidity, where wind
+ blows not, water flows not, where the seas are not merely tideless and
+ beat no shores, but frozen cleave with frozen roots to their gulfy basin.
+ All things are on the steep-sloping path to final evanishment, uncreation,
+ non-existence. He is filled with horror&mdash;not so much of the dreary
+ end, as at the weary hopelessness of the path thitherward. Then a dim
+ light breaks upon him, and with it a faint hope revives, for he seems to
+ see in all the forms of life, innumerably varied, a spirit rushing upward
+ from death&mdash;a something in escape from the terror of the downward
+ cataract, of the rest that knows not peace. &ldquo;Is it not,&rdquo; he asks, &ldquo;the
+ soaring of the silver dove of life from its potsherd-bed&mdash;the
+ heavenward flight of some higher and incorruptible thing? Is not vitality,
+ revealed in growth, itself an unending resurrection?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The vision also of the oneness of the universe, ever reappearing through
+ the vapours of question, helps to keep hope alive in him. To find, for
+ instance, the law of the relation of the arrangements of the leaves on
+ differing plants, correspond to the law of the relative distances of the
+ planets in approach to their central sun, wakes in him that hope of a
+ central Will, which alone can justify one ecstatic throb at any seeming
+ loveliness of the universe. For without the hope of such a centre, delight
+ is unreason&mdash;a mockery not such as the skeleton at the Egyptian
+ feast, but such rather as a crowned corpse at a feast of skeletons. Life
+ without the higher glory of the unspeakable, the atmosphere of a God, is
+ not life, is not worth living. He would rather cease to be, than walk the
+ dull level of the commonplace&mdash;than live the unideal of men in whose
+ company he can take no pleasure&mdash;men who are as of a lower race, whom
+ he fain would lift, who will not rise, but for whom as for himself he
+ would cherish the hope they do their best to kill. Those who seem to him
+ great, recognize the unseen&mdash;believe the roots of science to be
+ therein hid&mdash;regard the bringing forth into sight of the things that
+ are invisible as the end of all Art and every art&mdash;judge the true
+ leader of men to be him who leads them closer to the essential facts of
+ their being. Alas for his love and his hope, alas for himself, if the
+ visible should exist for its own sake only!&mdash;if the face of a flower
+ means nothing&mdash;appeals to no region beyond the scope of the science
+ that would unveil its growth. He cannot believe that its structure exists
+ for the sake of its laws; that would be to build for the sake of its
+ joints a scaffold where no house was to stand. Those who put their faith
+ in Science are trying to live in the scaffold of the house invisible.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ He finds harbour and comfort at times in the written poetry of his
+ fellows. He delights in analyzing and grasping the thought that informs
+ the utterance. For a moment, the fine figure, the delicate phrase, make
+ him jubilant and strong; but the jubilation and the strength soon pass,
+ for it is not any of the <i>forms</i>, even of the thought-forms of truth
+ that can give rest to his soul.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ History attracts him little, for he is not able to discover by its records
+ the operation of principles yielding hope for his race. Such there may be,
+ but he does not find them. What hope for the rising wave that knows in its
+ rise only its doom to sink, and at length be dashed on the low shore of
+ annihilation?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the time would fail me to follow the doubling of the soul coursed by
+ the hounds of Death, or to set down the forms innumerable in which the
+ golden Haemony springs in its path,
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ Of sovran use
+ &lsquo;Gainst all enchantments, mildew blast, or damp.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ And now the shadows are beginning to lengthen towards the night, which,
+ whether there be a following morn or no, is the night, and spreads out the
+ wings of darkness. And still as it approaches the more aware grows the man
+ of a want that differs from any feeling I have already sought to describe&mdash;a
+ sense of insecurity, in no wise the same as the doubt of life beyond the
+ grave&mdash;a need more profound even than that which cries for a living
+ Nature. And now he plainly knows, that, all his life, like a conscious
+ duty unfulfilled, this sense has haunted his path, ever and anon
+ descending and clinging, a cold mist, about his heart. What if this lack
+ was indeed the root of every other anxiety! Now freshly revived, this
+ sense of not having, of something, he knows not what, for lack of which
+ his being is in pain at its own incompleteness, never leaves him more. And
+ with it the terror has returned and grows, lest there should be no Unseen
+ Power, as his fathers believed, and his mother taught him, filling all
+ things and <i>meaning</i> all things,&mdash;no Power with whom, in his
+ last extremity, awaits him a final refuge. With the quickening doubt falls
+ a tenfold blight on the world of poetry, both that in Nature and that in
+ books. Far worse than that early chill which the assertions of science
+ concerning what it knows, cast upon his inexperienced soul, is now the
+ shivering death which its pretended denials concerning what it knows not,
+ send through all his vital frame. The soul departs from the face of
+ beauty, when the eye begins to doubt if there be any soul behind it; and
+ now the man feels like one I knew, affected with a strange disease, who
+ saw in the living face always the face of a corpse. What can the world be
+ to him who lives for thought, if there be no supreme and perfect Thought,&mdash;none
+ but such poor struggles after thought as he finds in himself? Take the
+ eternal thought from the heart of things, no longer can any beauty be
+ real, no more can shape, motion, aspect of nature have significance in
+ itself, or sympathy with human soul. At best and most the beauty he
+ thought he saw was but the projected perfection of his own being, and from
+ himself as the crown and summit of things, the soul of the man shrinks
+ with horror: it is the more imperfect being who knows the least his
+ incompleteness, and for whom, seeing so little beyond himself, it is
+ easiest to imagine himself the heart and apex of things, and rejoice in
+ the fancy. The killing power of a godless science returns upon him with
+ tenfold force. The ocean-tempest is once more a mere clashing of
+ innumerable water-drops; the green and amber sadness of the evening sky is
+ a mockery of sorrow; his own soul and its sadness is a mockery of himself.
+ There is nothing in the sadness, nothing in the mockery. To tell him as
+ comfort, that in his own thought lives the meaning if nowhere else, is
+ mockery worst of all; for if there be no truth in them, if these things be
+ no embodiment, to make them serve as such is to put a candle in a
+ death&rsquo;s-head to light the dying through the place of tombs. To his former
+ foolish fancy a primrose might preach a childlike trust; the untoiling
+ lilies might from their field cast seeds of a higher growth into his
+ troubled heart; now they are no better than the colour the painter leaves
+ behind him on the doorpost of his workshop, when, the day&rsquo;s labour over,
+ he wipes his brush on it ere he depart for the night. The look in the eyes
+ of his dog, happy in that he is short-lived, is one of infinite sadness.
+ All graciousness must henceforth be a sorrow: it has to go with the
+ sunsets. That a thing must cease takes from it the joy of even an aeonian
+ endurance&mdash;for its <i>kind</i> is mortal; it belongs to the nature of
+ things that cannot live. The sorrow is not so much that it shall perish as
+ that it could not live&mdash;that it is not in its nature a real, that is,
+ an eternal thing. His children are shadows&mdash;their life a dance, a
+ sickness, a corruption. The very element of unselfishness, which, however
+ feeble and beclouded it may be, yet exists in all love, in giving life its
+ only dignity adds to its sorrow. Nowhere at the root of things is love&mdash;it
+ is only a something that came after, some sort of fungous excrescence in
+ the hearts of men grown helplessly superior to their origin. Law, nothing
+ but cold, impassive, material law, is the root of things&mdash;lifeless
+ happily, so not knowing itself, else were it a demon instead of a creative
+ nothing. Endeavour is paralyzed in him. &ldquo;Work for posterity,&rdquo; says he of
+ the skyless philosophy; answers the man, &ldquo;How can I work without hope?
+ Little heart have I to labour, where labour is so little help. What can I
+ do for my children that would render their life less hopeless than my own!
+ Give me all you would secure for them, and my life would be to me but the
+ worse mockery. The true end of labour would be, to lessen the number
+ doomed to breathe the breath of this despair.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Straightway he developes another and a deeper mood. He turns and regards
+ himself. Suspicion or sudden insight has directed the look. And there, in
+ himself, he discovers such imperfection, such wrong, such shame, such
+ weakness, as cause him to cry out, &ldquo;It were well I should cease! Why
+ should I mourn after life? Where were the good of prolonging it in a being
+ like me? &lsquo;What should such fellows as I do crawling between heaven and
+ earth!&rsquo;&rdquo; Such insights, when they come, the seers do their best, in
+ general, to obscure; suspicion of themselves they regard as a monster, and
+ would stifle. They resent the waking of such doubt. Any attempt at the
+ raising in them of their buried best they regard as an offence against
+ intercourse. A man takes his social life in his hand who dares it. Few
+ therefore understand the judgment of Hamlet upon himself; the common
+ reader is so incapable of imagining he could mean it of his own general
+ character as a man, that he attributes the utterance to shame for the
+ postponement of a vengeance, which indeed he must have been such as his
+ critic to be capable of performing upon no better proof than he had yet
+ had. When the man whose unfolding I would now represent, regards even his
+ dearest love, he finds it such a poor, selfish, low-lived thing, that in
+ his heart he shames himself before his children and his friends. How
+ little labour, how little watching, how little pain has he endured for
+ their sakes! He reads of great things in this kind, but in himself he does
+ not find them. How often has he not been wrongfully displeased&mdash;wrathful
+ with the innocent! How often has he not hurt a heart more tender than his
+ own! Has he ever once been faithful to the height of his ideal? Is his
+ life on the whole a thing to regard with complacency, or to be troubled
+ exceedingly concerning? Beyond him rise and spread infinite seeming
+ possibilities&mdash;height beyond height, glory beyond glory, each rooted
+ in and rising from his conscious being, but alas! where is any hope of
+ ascending them? These hills of peace, &ldquo;in a season of calm weather,&rdquo; seem
+ to surround and infold him, as a land in which he could dwell at ease and
+ at home: surely among them lies the place of his birth!&mdash;while
+ against their purity and grandeur the being of his consciousness shows
+ miserable&mdash;dark, weak, and undefined&mdash;a shadow that would fain
+ be substance&mdash;a dream that would gladly be born into the light of
+ reality. But alas if the whole thing be only in himself&mdash;if the
+ vision be a dream of nothing, a revelation of lies, the outcome of that
+ which, helplessly existent, is yet not created, therefore cannot create&mdash;if
+ not the whole thing only be a dream of the impotent, but the impotent be
+ himself but a dream&mdash;a dream of his own&mdash;a self-dreamed dream&mdash;with
+ no master of dreams to whom to cry! Where then the cherished hope of one
+ day atoning for his wrongs to those who loved him!&mdash;they are nowhere&mdash;vanished
+ for ever, upmingled and dissolved in the primeval darkness! If truth be
+ but the hollow of a sphere, ah, never shall he cast himself before them,
+ to tell them that now at last, after long years of revealing separation,
+ he knows himself and them, and that now the love of them is a part of his
+ very being&mdash;to implore their forgiveness on the ground that he hates,
+ despises, contemns, and scorns the self that showed them less than
+ absolute love and devotion! Never thus shall he lay his being bare to
+ their eyes of love! They do not even rest, for they do not and will not
+ know it. There is no voice nor hearing in them, and how can there be in
+ him any heart to live! The one comfort left him is, that, unable to follow
+ them, he shall yet die and cease, and fare as they&mdash;go also
+ nowhither!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To a man under the dismay of existence dissociated from power, unrooted
+ in, unshadowed by a creating Will, who is Love, the Father of Man&mdash;to
+ him who knows not being and God together, the idea of death&mdash;a death
+ that knows no reviving, must be, and ought to be the blessedest thought
+ left him. &ldquo;O land of shadows!&rdquo; well may such a one cry! &ldquo;land where the
+ shadows love to ecstatic self-loss, yet forget, and love no more! land of
+ sorrows and despairs, that sink the soul into a deeper Tophet than death
+ has ever sounded! broken kaleidoscope! shaken camera! promiser, speaking
+ truth to the ear, but lying to the sense! land where the heart of my
+ friend is sorrowful as my heart&mdash;the more sorrowful that I have been
+ but a poor and far-off friend! land where sin is strong and righteousness
+ faint! where love dreams mightily and walks abroad so feeble! land where
+ the face of my father is dust, and the hand of my mother will never more
+ caress! where my children will spend a few years of like trouble to mine,
+ and then drop from the dream into the no-dream! gladly, O land of
+ sickliest shadows&mdash;gladly, that is, with what power of gladness is in
+ me, I take my leave of thee! Welcome the cold, pain-soothing embrace of
+ immortal Death! Hideous are his looks, but I love him better than Life: he
+ is true, and will not deceive us. Nay, he only is our saviour, setting us
+ free from the tyranny of the false that ought to be true, and sets us
+ longing in vain.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But through all the man&rsquo;s doubts, fears, and perplexities, a certain
+ whisper, say rather, an uncertain rumour, a vague legendary murmur, has
+ been at the same time about, rather than in, his ears&mdash;never ceasing
+ to haunt his air, although hitherto he has hardly heeded it. He knows it
+ has come down the ages, and that some in every age have been more or less
+ influenced by a varied acceptance of it. Upon those, however, with whom he
+ has chiefly associated, it has made no impression beyond that of a
+ remarkable legend. It is the story of a man, represented as at least
+ greater, stronger, and better than any other man. With the hero of this
+ tale he has had a constantly recurring, though altogether undefined
+ suspicion that he has something to do. It is strongest, though not even
+ then strong, at such times when he is most aware of evil and imperfection
+ in himself. Betwixt the two, the idea of this man and his knowledge of
+ himself, seems to lie, dim-shadowy, some imperative duty. He knows that
+ the whole matter concerning the man is commemorated in many of the oldest
+ institutions of his country, but up to this time he has shrunk from the
+ demands which, by a kind of spiritual insight, he foresaw would follow,
+ were he once to admit certain things to be true. He has, however, known
+ some and read of more who by their faith in the man conquered all anxiety,
+ doubt, and fear, lived pure, and died in gladsome hope. On the other hand,
+ it seems to him that the faith which was once easy has now become almost
+ an impossibility. And what is it he is called upon to believe? One says
+ one thing, another another. Much that is asserted is simply unworthy of
+ belief, and the foundation of the whole has in his eyes something of the
+ look of a cunningly devised fable. Even should it be true, it cannot help
+ him, he thinks, for it does not even touch the things that make his woe:
+ the God the tale presents is not the being whose very existence can alone
+ be his cure.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But he meets one who says to him, &ldquo;Have you then come to your time of
+ life, and not yet ceased to accept hearsay as ground of action&mdash;for
+ there is action in abstaining as well as in doing? Suppose the man in
+ question to have taken all possible pains to be understood, does it follow
+ of necessity that he is now or ever was fairly represented by the bulk of
+ his followers? With such a moral distance between him and them, is it
+ possible?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But the whole thing has from first to last a strange aspect!&rdquo; our thinker
+ replies.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;As to the <i>last</i> that is not yet come. And as to its <i>aspect</i>,
+ its reality must be such as human eye could never convey to reading heart.
+ Every human idea of it <i>must</i> be more or less wrong. And yet perhaps
+ the truer the aspect the stranger it would be. But is it not just with
+ ordinary things you are dissatisfied? And should not therefore the very
+ strangeness of these to you little better than rumours incline you to
+ examine the object of them? Will you assert that nothing strange can have
+ to do with human affairs? Much that was once scarce credible is now so
+ ordinary that men have grown stupid to the wonder inherent in it. Nothing
+ around you serves your need: try what is at least of another class of
+ phenomena. What if the things rumoured belong to a <i>more</i> natural
+ order than these, lie nearer the roots of your dissatisfied existence, and
+ look strange only because you have hitherto been living in the outer
+ court, not in the <i>penetralia</i> of life? The rumour has been vital
+ enough to float down the ages, emerging from every storm: why not see for
+ yourself what may be in it? So powerful an influence on human history,
+ surely there will be found in it signs by which to determine whether the
+ man understood himself and his message, or owed his apparent greatness to
+ the deluded worship of his followers! That he has always had foolish
+ followers none will deny, and none but a fool would judge any leader from
+ such a fact. Wisdom as well as folly will serve a fool&rsquo;s purpose; he turns
+ all into folly. I say nothing now of my own conclusions, because what you
+ imagine my opinions are as hateful to me as to you disagreeable and
+ foolish.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ So says the friend; the man hears, takes up the old story, and says to
+ himself, &ldquo;Let me see then what I can see!&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I will not follow him through the many shadows and slow dawns by which at
+ length he arrives at this much: A man claiming to be the Son of God says
+ he has come to be the light of men; says, &ldquo;Come to me, and I will give you
+ rest;&rdquo; says, &ldquo;Follow me, and you shall find my Father; to know him is the
+ one thing you cannot do without, for it is eternal life.&rdquo; He has learned
+ from the reported words of the man, and from the man himself as in the
+ tale presented, that the bliss of his conscious being is his Father; that
+ his one delight is to do the will of that Father&mdash;the only thing in
+ his eyes worthy of being done, or worth having done; that he would make
+ men blessed with his own blessedness; that the cry of creation, the cry of
+ humanity shall be answered into the deepest soul of desire; that less than
+ the divine mode of existence, the godlike way of being, can satisfy no
+ man, that is, make him content with his consciousness; that not this world
+ only, but the whole universe is the inheritance of those who consent to be
+ the children of their Father in heaven, who put forth the power of their
+ will to be of the same sort as he; that to as many as receive him he gives
+ power to become the sons of God; that they shall be partakers of the
+ divine nature, of the divine joy, of the divine power&mdash;shall have
+ whatever they desire, shall know no fear, shall love perfectly, and shall
+ never die; that these things are beyond the grasp of the knowing ones of
+ the world, and to them the message will be a scorn; but that the time will
+ come when its truth shall be apparent, to some in confusion of face, to
+ others in joy unspeakable; only that we must beware of judging, for many
+ that are first shall be last, and there are last that shall be first.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To find himself in such conscious as well as vital relation with the
+ source of his being, with a Will by which his own will exists, with a
+ Consciousness by and through which he is conscious, would indeed be the
+ end of all the man&rsquo;s ills! nor can he imagine any other, not to say better
+ way, in which his sorrows could be met, understood and annihilated. For
+ the ills that oppress him are both within him and without, and over each
+ kind he is powerless. If the message were but a true one! If indeed this
+ man knew what he talked of! But if there should be help for man from
+ anywhere beyond him, some <i>one</i> might know it first, and may not this
+ be the one? And if the message be so great, so perfect as this man
+ asserts, then only a perfect, an eternal man, at home in the bosom of the
+ Father, could know, or bring, or tell it. According to the tale, it had
+ been from the first the intent of the Father to reveal himself to man as
+ man, for without the knowledge of the Father after man&rsquo;s own modes of
+ being, he could not grow to real manhood. The grander the whole idea, the
+ more likely is it to be what it claims to be! and if not high as the
+ heavens above the earth, beyond us yet within our reach, it is not for us,
+ it cannot be true. Fact or not, the existence of a God such as Christ, a
+ God who is a good man infinitely, is the only idea containing hope enough
+ for man! If such a God has come to be known, marvel must surround the
+ first news at least of the revelation of him. Because of its marvel, shall
+ men find it in reason to turn from the gracious rumour of what, if it be
+ true, must be the event of all events? And could marvel be lovelier than
+ the marvel reported? But the humble men of heart alone can believe in the
+ high&mdash;they alone can perceive, they alone can embrace grandeur.
+ Humility is essential greatness, the inside of grandeur.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Something of such truths the man glimmeringly sees. But in his mind awake,
+ thereupon, endless doubts and questions. What if the whole idea of his
+ mission was a deception born of the very goodness of the man? What if the
+ whole matter was the invention of men pretending themselves the followers
+ of such a man? What if it was a little truth greatly exaggerated? Only, be
+ it what it may, less than its full idea would not be enough for the wants
+ and sorrows that weaken and weigh him down!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ He passes through many a thorny thicket of inquiry; gathers evidence upon
+ evidence; reasons upon the goodness of the men who wrote: they might be
+ deceived, but they dared not invent; holds with himself a thousand
+ arguments, historical, psychical, metaphysical&mdash;which for their
+ setting-forth would require volumes; hears many an opposing, many a
+ scoffing word from men &ldquo;who surely know, else would they speak?&rdquo; and finds
+ himself much where he was before. But at least he is haunting the possible
+ borders of discovery, while those who turn their backs upon the idea are
+ divided from him by a great gulf&mdash;it may be of moral difference. To
+ him there is still a grand auroral hope about the idea, and it still draws
+ him; the others, taking the thing from merest report of opinion, look
+ anywhere but thitherward. He who would not trust his best friend to set
+ forth his views of life, accepts the random judgements of unknown others
+ for a sufficing disposal of what the highest of the race have regarded as
+ a veritable revelation from the Father of men. He sees in it therefore
+ nothing but folly; for what he takes for the thing nowhere meets his
+ nature. Our searcher at least holds open the door for the hearing of what
+ voice may come to him from the region invisible: if there be truth there,
+ he is where it will find him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ As he continues to read and reflect, the perception gradually grows clear
+ in him, that, if there be truth in the matter, he must, first of all, and
+ beyond all things else, give his best heed to the reported words of the
+ man himself&mdash;to what he says, not what is said about him, valuable as
+ that may afterwards prove to be. And he finds that concerning these words
+ of his, the man says, or at least plainly implies, that only the obedient,
+ childlike soul can understand them. It follows that the judgement of no
+ man who does not obey can be received concerning them or the speaker of
+ them&mdash;that, for instance, a man who hates his enemy, who tells lies,
+ who thinks to serve God and Mammon, whether he call himself a Christian or
+ no, has not the right of an opinion concerning the Master or his words&mdash;at
+ least in the eyes of the Master, however it may be in his own. This is in
+ the very nature of things: obedience alone places a man in the position in
+ which he can see so as to judge that which is above him. In respect of
+ great truths investigation goes for little, speculation for nothing; if a
+ man would know them, he must obey them. Their nature is such that the only
+ door into them is obedience. And the truth-seeker perceives&mdash;which
+ allows him no loophole of escape from life&mdash;that what things the Son
+ of Man requires of him, are either such as his conscience backs for just,
+ or such as seem too great, too high for any man. But if there be help for
+ him, it must be a help that recognizes the highest in him, and urges him
+ to its use. Help cannot come to one made in the image of God, save in the
+ obedient effort of what life and power are in him, for God is action. In
+ such effort alone is it possible for need to encounter help. It is the
+ upstretched that meets the downstretched hand. He alone who obeys can with
+ confidence pray&mdash;to him alone does an answer seem a thing that may
+ come. And should anything spoken by the Son of Man seem to the seeker
+ unreasonable, he feels in the rest such a majesty of duty as compels him
+ to judge with regard to the other, that he has not yet perceived its true
+ nature, or its true relation to life.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And now comes the crisis: if here the man sets himself honestly to do the
+ thing the Son of Man tells him, he so, and so first, sets out positively
+ upon the path which, if there be truth in these things, will conduct him
+ to a knowledge of the whole matter; not until then is he a disciple. If
+ the message be a true one, the condition of the knowledge of its truth is
+ not only reasonable but an unavoidable necessity. If there be help for
+ him, how otherways should it draw nigh? He has to be assured of the
+ highest truth of his being: there can be no other assurance than that to
+ be gained thus, and thus alone; for not only by obedience does a man come
+ into such contact with truth as to know what it is, and in regard to truth
+ knowledge and belief are one. That things which cannot appear save to the
+ eye capable of seeing them, that things which cannot be recognized save by
+ the mind of a certain development, should be examined by eye incapable,
+ and pronounced upon by mind undeveloped, is absurd. The deliverance the
+ message offers is a change such that the man shall <i>be</i> the rightness
+ of which he talked: while his soul is not a hungered, athirst, aglow, a
+ groaning after righteousness&mdash;that is, longing to be himself honest
+ and upright, it is an absurdity that he should judge concerning the way to
+ this rightness, seeing that, while he walks not in it, he is and shall be
+ a dishonest man: he knows not whither it leads and how can he know the
+ way! What he <i>can</i> judge of is, his duty at a given moment&mdash;and
+ that not in the abstract, but as something to be by him <i>done</i>,
+ neither more, nor less, nor other than <i>done</i>. Thus judging and
+ doing, he makes the only possible step nearer to righteousness and
+ righteous judgement; doing otherwise, he becomes the more unrighteous, the
+ more blind. For the man who knows not God, whether he believes there is a
+ God or not, there can be, I repeat, no judgement of things pertaining to
+ God. To our supposed searcher, then, the crowning word of the Son of Man
+ is this, &ldquo;If any man is willing to do the will of the Father, he shall
+ know of the doctrine, whether it be of God, or whether I speak of myself.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Having thus accompanied my type to the borders of liberty, my task for the
+ present is over. The rest let him who reads prove for himself. Obedience
+ alone can convince. To convince without obedience I would take no bootless
+ labour; it would be but a gain for hell. If any man call these things
+ foolishness, his judgement is to me insignificant. If any man say he is
+ open to conviction, I answer him he can have none but on the condition, by
+ the means of obedience. If a man say, &ldquo;The thing is not interesting to
+ me,&rdquo; I ask him, &ldquo;Are you following your conscience? By that, and not by
+ the interest you take or do not take in a thing, shall you be judged. Nor
+ will anything be said to you, or of you, in that day, whatever <i>that day</i>
+ mean, of which your conscience will not echo every syllable.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Oneness with God is the sole truth of humanity. Life parted from its
+ causative life would be no life; it would at best be but a barrack of
+ corruption, an outpost of annihilation. In proportion as the union is
+ incomplete, the derived life is imperfect. And no man can be one with
+ neighbour, child, dearest, except as he is one with his origin; and he
+ fails of his perfection so long as there is one being in the universe he
+ could not love.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Of all men he is bound to hold his face like a flint in witness of this
+ truth who owes everything that makes for eternal good, to the belief that
+ at the heart of things and causing them to be, at the centre of monad, of
+ world, of protoplastic mass, of loving dog, and of man most cruel, is an
+ absolute, perfect love; and that in the man Christ Jesus this love is with
+ us men to take us home. To nothing else do I for one owe any grasp upon
+ life. In this I see the setting right of all things. To the man who
+ believes in the Son of God, poetry returns in a mighty wave; history
+ unrolls itself in harmony; science shows crowned with its own aureole of
+ holiness. There is no enlivener of the imagination, no enabler of the
+ judgment, no strengthener of the intellect, to compare with the belief in
+ a live Ideal, at the heart of all personality, as of every law. If there
+ be no such live Ideal, then a falsehood can do more for the race than the
+ facts of its being; then an unreality is needful for the development of
+ the man in all that is real, in all that is in the highest sense true;
+ then falsehood is greater than fact, and an idol necessary for lack of a
+ God. They who deny cannot, in the nature of things, know what they deny.
+ When one sees a chaos begin to put on the shape of an ordered world, he
+ will hardly be persuaded it is by the power of a foolish notion bred in a
+ diseased fancy.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let the man then who would rise to the height of his being, be persuaded
+ to test the Truth by the deed&mdash;the highest and only test that can be
+ applied to the loftiest of all assertions. To every man I say, &ldquo;Do the
+ truth you know, and you shall learn the truth you need to know.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0004" id="link2H_4_0004">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ ST. GEORGE&rsquo;S DAY, 1564.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1864.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All England knows that this year (1864) is the three hundredth since
+ Shakspere was born. The strong probability is likewise that this month of
+ April is that in which he first saw the earthly light. On the twenty-sixth
+ of April he was baptized. Whether he was born on the twenty-third, to
+ which effect there may once have been a tradition, we do not know; but
+ though there is nothing to corroborate that statement, there are two facts
+ which would incline us to believe it if we could: the one that he <i>died</i>
+ on the twenty-third of April, thus, as it were, completing a cycle; and
+ the other that the twenty-third of April is St. George&rsquo;s Day. If there is
+ no harm in indulging in a little fanciful sentiment about such a grand
+ fact, we should say that certainly it was <i>St. George for merry England</i>
+ when Shakspere was born. But had St. George been the best saint in the
+ calendar&mdash;which we have little enough ground for supposing he was&mdash;it
+ would better suit our subject to say that the Highest was thinking of his
+ England when he sent Shakspere into it, to be a strength, a wonder, and a
+ gladness to the nations of his earth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But if we write thus about Shakspere, influenced only by the fashion of
+ the day, we shall be much in the condition of those <i>fashionable</i>
+ architects who with their vain praises built the tombs of the prophets,
+ while they had no regard to the lessons they taught. We hope to be able to
+ show that we have good grounds for our rejoicing in the birth of that
+ child whom after-years placed highest on the rocky steep of Art, up which
+ so many of those who combine feeling and thought are always striving.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ First, however, let us look at some of the more powerful of the influences
+ into the midst of which he was born. For a child is born into the womb of
+ the time, which indeed enclosed and fed him before he was born. Not the
+ least subtle and potent of those influences which tend to the education of
+ the child (in the true sense of the word <i>education</i>) are those which
+ are brought to bear upon him <i>through</i> the mind, heart, judgement of
+ his parents. We mean that those powers which have operated strongly upon
+ them, have a certain concentrated operation, both antenatal and
+ psychological, as well as educational and spiritual, upon the child. Now
+ Shakspere was born in the sixth year of Queen Elizabeth. He was the eldest
+ son, but the third child. His father and mother must have been married not
+ later than the year 1557, two years after Cranmer was burned at the stake,
+ one of the two hundred who thus perished in that time of pain, resulting
+ in the firm establishment of a reformation which, like all other changes
+ for the better, could not be verified and secured without some form or
+ other of the <i>trial by fire</i>. Events such as then took place in every
+ part of the country could not fail to make a strong impression upon all
+ thinking people, especially as it was not those of high position only who
+ were thus called upon to bear witness to their beliefs. John Shakspere and
+ Mary Arden were in all likelihood themselves of the Protestant party; and
+ although, as far as we know, they were never in any especial danger of
+ being denounced, the whole of the circumstances must have tended to
+ produce in them individually, what seems to have been characteristic of
+ the age in which they lived, earnestness. In times such as those, people
+ are compelled to think.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And here an interesting question occurs: Was it in part to his mother that
+ Shakspere was indebted for that profound knowledge of the Bible which is
+ so evident in his writings? A good many copies of the Scriptures must have
+ been by this time, in one translation or another, scattered over the
+ country. [Footnote: And it seems to us probable that this diffusion of the
+ Bible, did more to rouse the slumbering literary power of England, than
+ any influences of foreign literature whatever.] No doubt the word was
+ precious in those days, and hard to buy; but there might have been a copy,
+ notwithstanding, in the house of John Shakspere, and it is possible that
+ it was from his mother&rsquo;s lips that the boy first heard the Scripture
+ tales. We have called his acquaintance with Scripture <i>profound</i>, and
+ one peculiar way in which it manifests itself will bear out the assertion;
+ for frequently it is the very spirit and essential aroma of the passage
+ that he reproduces, without making any use of the words themselves. There
+ are passages in his writings which we could not have understood but for
+ some acquaintance with the New Testament. We will produce a few specimens
+ of the kind we mean, confining ourselves to one play, &ldquo;Macbeth.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Just mentioning the phrase, &ldquo;temple-haunting martlet&rdquo; (act i. scene 6), as
+ including in it a reference to the verse, &ldquo;Yea, the sparrow hath found an
+ house, and the swallow a nest for herself, where she may lay her young,
+ even thine altars, O Lord of hosts,&rdquo; we pass to the following passage, for
+ which we do not believe there is any explanation but that suggested to us
+ by the passage of Scripture to be cited.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Macbeth, on his way to murder Duncan, says,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Thou sure and firm-set earth,
+ Hear not my steps, which way they walk, for fear
+ Thy very stones prate of my whereabout,
+ And take the present horror from the time
+ Which now suits with it.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ What is meant by the last two lines? It seems to us to be just another
+ form of the words, &ldquo;For there is nothing covered, that shall not be
+ revealed; neither hid, that shall not be known. Therefore whatsoever ye
+ have spoken in darkness shall be heard in the light; and that which ye
+ have spoken in the ear in closets shall be proclaimed upon the
+ house-tops.&rdquo; Of course we do not mean that Macbeth is represented as
+ having this passage in his mind, but that Shakspere had the feeling of it
+ when he wrote thus. What Macbeth means is, &ldquo;Earth, do not hear me in the
+ dark, which is suitable to the present horror, lest the very stones prate
+ about it in the daylight, which is not suitable to such things; thus
+ taking &lsquo;the present horror <i>from</i> the time which now suits with it.&rsquo;&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Again, in the only piece of humour in the play&mdash;if that should be
+ called humour which, taken in its relation to the consciousness of the
+ principal characters, is as terrible as anything in the piece&mdash;the
+ porter ends off his fantastic soliloquy, in which he personates the porter
+ of hell-gate, with the words, &ldquo;But this place is too cold for hell: I&rsquo;ll
+ devil-porter it no further. I had thought to have let in some of all
+ professions, that go the primrose way to the everlasting bonfire.&rdquo; Now
+ what else had the writer in his mind but the verse from the Sermon on the
+ Mount, &ldquo;For wide is the gate, and broad is the way, that leadeth to
+ destruction, and many there be which go in thereat&rdquo;?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It may be objected that such passages as these, being of the most commonly
+ quoted, imply no profound acquaintance with Scripture, such as we have
+ said Shakspere possessed. But no amount of knowledge of the <i>words</i>
+ of the Bible would be sufficient to justify the use of the word <i>profound</i>.
+ What is remarkable in the employment of these passages, is not merely that
+ they are so present to his mind that they come up for use in the most
+ exciting moments of composition, but that he embodies the spirit of them
+ in such a new form as reveals to minds saturated and deadened with the <i>sound</i>
+ of the words, the very visual image and spiritual meaning involved in
+ them. &ldquo;<i>The primrose way!</i>&rdquo; And to what?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We will confine ourselves to one passage more:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Macbeth
+ Is ripe for shaking, and the powers above
+ Put on their instruments.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In the end of the 14th chapter of the Revelation we have the words,
+ &ldquo;Thrust in thy sickle, and reap: for the time is come for thee to reap;
+ for the harvest of the earth is ripe.&rdquo; We suspect that Shakspere wrote,
+ ripe <i>to</i> shaking.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The instances to which we have confined ourselves do not by any means
+ belong to the most evident kind of proof that might be adduced of
+ Shakspere&rsquo;s acquaintance with Scripture. The subject, in its ordinary
+ aspect, has been elsewhere treated with far more fulness than our design
+ would permit us to indulge in, even if it had not been done already. Our
+ object has been to bring forward a few passages which seem to us to
+ breathe the very spirit of individual passages in sacred writ, without
+ direct use of the words themselves; and, of course, in such a case we can
+ only appeal to the (no doubt) very various degrees of conviction which
+ they may rouse in the minds of our readers.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But there is one singular correspondence in another <i>almost</i> literal
+ quotation from the Gospel, which is to us wonderfully interesting. We are
+ told that the words &ldquo;eye of a needle,&rdquo; in the passage about a rich man
+ entering the kingdom of heaven, mean the small side entrance in a city
+ gate. Now, in &ldquo;Richard II,&rdquo; act v. scene 5, <i>Richard</i> quotes the
+ passage thus:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;It is as hard to come as for a camel
+ To thread the postern of a needle&rsquo;s eye;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ showing that either the imagination of Shakspere suggested the real
+ explanation, or he had taken pains to acquaint himself with the
+ significance of the simile. We can hardly say that the correspondence
+ might be <i>merely</i> fortuitous; because, at the least, Shakspere looked
+ for and found a suitable figure to associate with the words <i>eye of a
+ needle</i>, and so fell upon the real explanation; except, indeed, he had
+ no particular significance in using the word that meant a <i>little</i>
+ gate, instead of a word meaning any kind of entrance, which, with him,
+ seems unlikely.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We have not by any means proven that Shakspere&rsquo;s acquaintance with the
+ Scriptures had an early date in his history; but certainly the Bible must
+ have had a great influence upon him who was the highest representative
+ mind of the time, its influence on the general development of the nation
+ being unquestionable. This, therefore, seeing the Bible itself was just
+ dawning full upon the country while Shakspere was becoming capable of
+ understanding it, seems the suitable sequence in which to take notice of
+ that influence, and of some of those passages in his works which testify
+ to it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But, besides <i>the</i> Bible, every nation has <i>a</i> Bible, or at
+ least <i>an</i> Old Testament, in its own history; and that Shakspere paid
+ especial attention to this, is no matter of conjecture. We suspect his
+ mode of writing historical plays is more after the fashion of the Bible
+ histories than that of most writers of history. Indeed, the development
+ and consequences of character and conduct are clear to those that read his
+ histories with open eyes. Now, in his childhood Shakspere may have had
+ some special incentive to the study of history springing out of the fact
+ that his mother&rsquo;s grandfather had been &ldquo;groom of the chamber to Henry
+ VII.,&rdquo; while there is sufficient testimony that a further removed ancestor
+ of his father, as well, had stood high in the favour of the same monarch.
+ Therefore the history of the troublous times of the preceding century,
+ which were brought to a close by the usurpation of Henry VII., would
+ naturally be a subject of talk in the quiet household, where books and
+ amusements such as now occupy our boys, were scarce or wanting altogether.
+ The proximity of such a past of strife and commotion, crowded with
+ eventful change, must have formed a background full of the material of
+ excitement to an age which lived in the midst of a peculiarly exciting
+ history of its own.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Perhaps the chief intellectual characteristic of the age of Elizabeth was
+ <i>activity</i>; this activity accounting even for much that is
+ objectionable in its literature. Now this activity must have been growing
+ in the people throughout the fifteenth century; the wars of the Roses,
+ although they stifled literature, so that it had, as it were, to be born
+ again in the beginning of the following century, being, after all, but as
+ the &ldquo;eager strife&rdquo; of the shadow-leaves above the &ldquo;genuine life&rdquo; of the
+ grass,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;And the mute repose
+ Of sweetly breathing flowers.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But when peace had fallen on the land, it would seem as if the impulse to
+ action springing from strife still operated, as the waves will go on
+ raving upon the shore after the wind has ceased, and found one outlet,
+ amongst others, in literature, and peculiarly in dramatic literature.
+ Peace, rendered yet more intense by the cessation of the cries of the
+ tormentors, and the groans of the noble army of suffering martyrs, made,
+ as it were, a kind of vacuum; and into that vacuum burst up the
+ torrent-springs of a thousand souls&mdash;the thoughts that were no longer
+ repressed&mdash;in the history of the past and the Utopian speculation on
+ the future; in noble theology, capable statesmanship, and science at once
+ brilliant and profound; in the voyage of discovery, and the change of the
+ swan-like merchantman into a very fire-drake of war for the defence of the
+ threatened shores; in the first brave speech of the Puritan in Elizabeth&rsquo;s
+ Parliament, the first murmurs of the voice of liberty, soon to thunder
+ throughout the land; in the naturalizing of foreign genius by translation,
+ and the invention, or at least adoption, of a new and transcendent rhythm;
+ in the song, in the epic, in the drama.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ So much for the general. Let us now, following the course of his life,
+ recall, in a few sentences, some of the chief events which must have
+ impressed the all-open mind of Shakspere in the earlier portion of his
+ history.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Perhaps it would not be going back too far to begin with the Massacre of
+ Paris, which took place when he was eight years old. It caused so much
+ horror in England, that it is not absurd to suppose that some black rays
+ from the deed of darkness may have fallen on the mind of such a child as
+ Shakspere.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In strong contrast with the foregoing is the next event to which we shall
+ refer.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ When he was eleven years old, Leicester gave the Queen that magnificent
+ reception at Kenilworth which is so well known from its memorials in our
+ literature. It has been suggested as probable, with quite enough of
+ likelihood to justify a conjecture, that Shakspere may have been present
+ at the dramatic representations then so gorgeously accumulated before her
+ Majesty. If such was the fact, it is easy to imagine what an influence the
+ shows must have had on the mind of the young dramatic genius, at a time
+ when, happily, the critical faculty is not by any means so fully awake as
+ are the receptive and exultant faculties, and when what the nature chiefly
+ needs is excitement to growth, without which all pruning, the most
+ artistic, is useless, as having nothing to operate upon.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ When he was fifteen years old, Sir Thomas North&rsquo;s translation of Plutarch
+ (through the French) was first published. Any reader who has compared one
+ of Shakspere&rsquo;s Roman plays with the corresponding life in Plutarch, will
+ not be surprised that we should mention this as one of those events which
+ must have been of paramount influence upon Shakspere. It is not likely
+ that he became acquainted with the large folio with its medallion
+ portraits first placed singly, and then repeated side by side for
+ comparison, as soon as it made its appearance, but as we cannot tell when
+ he began to read it, it seems as well to place it in the order its
+ publication would assign to it. Besides, it evidently took such a hold of
+ the man, that it is most probable his acquaintance with it began at a very
+ early period of his history. Indeed, it seems to us to have been one of
+ the most powerful aids to the development of that perception and
+ discrimination of character with which he was gifted to such a remarkable
+ degree. Nor would it be any derogation from the originality of his genius
+ to say, that in a very pregnant sense he must have been a disciple of
+ Plutarch. In those plays founded on Plutarch&rsquo;s stories he picked out every
+ dramatic point, and occasionally employed the very phrases of North&rsquo;s
+ nervous, graphic, and characteristic English. He seems to have felt that
+ it was an honour to his work to embody in it the words of Plutarch
+ himself, as he knew them first. From him he seems especially to have
+ learned how to bring out the points of a character, by putting one man
+ over against another, and remarking wherein they resembled each other and
+ wherein they differed; after which fashion, in other plays as well as
+ those, he partly arranged his dramatic characters.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Not long after he went to London, when he was twenty-two, the death of Sir
+ Philip Sidney at the age of thirty-two, must have had its unavoidable
+ influence on him, seeing all Europe was in mourning for the death of its
+ model, almost ideal man. In England the general mourning, both in the
+ court and the city, which lasted for months, is supposed by Dr. Zouch to
+ have been the first instance of the kind; that is, for the death of a
+ private person. Renowned over the civilized world for everything for which
+ a man could be renowned, his literary fame must have had a considerable
+ share in the impression his death would make on such a man as Shakspere.
+ For although none of his works were published till after his death, the
+ first within a few months of that event, his fame as a writer was widely
+ spread in private, and report of the same could hardly fail to reach one
+ who, although he had probably no friends of rank as yet, kept such keen
+ open ears for all that was going on around him. But whether or not he had
+ heard of the literary greatness of Sir Philip before his death, the
+ &ldquo;Arcadia,&rdquo; which was first published four years after his death (1590),
+ and which in eight years had reached the third edition&mdash;with another
+ still in Scotland the following year&mdash;must have been full of interest
+ to Shakspere. This book is very different indeed from the ordinary
+ impression of it which most minds have received through the confident
+ incapacity of the critics of last century. Few books have been published
+ more fruitful in the results and causes of thought, more sparkling with
+ fancy, more evidently the outcome of rich and noble habit, than this
+ &ldquo;Arcadia&rdquo; of Philip Sidney. That Shakspere read it, is sufficiently
+ evident from the fact that from it he has taken the secondary but still
+ important plots in two of his plays.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Although we are anticipating, it is better to mention here another book,
+ published in the same year, namely, 1590, when Shakspere was
+ six-and-twenty: the first three books of Spenser&rsquo;s &ldquo;Faery Queen.&rdquo; Of its
+ reception and character it is needless here to say anything further than,
+ of the latter, that nowadays the depths of its teaching, heartily prized
+ as that was by no less a man than Milton, are seldom explored. But it
+ would be a labour of months to set out the known and imagined sources of
+ the knowledge and spiritual pabulum of the man who laid every mental
+ region so under contribution, that he has been claimed by almost every
+ profession as having been at one time or another a student of its peculiar
+ science, so marvellously in him was the power of assimilation combined
+ with that of reproduction.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To go back a little: in 1587, when he was three-and-twenty, Mary Queen of
+ Scots was executed. In the following year came that mighty victory of
+ England, and her allies the winds and the waters, over the towering pride
+ of the Spanish Armada. Out from the coasts, like the birds from their
+ cliffs to defend their young, flew the little navy, many of the vessels
+ only able to carry a few guns; and fighting, fire-ships and tempest left
+ this island,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;This precious stone set in the silver sea,&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ still a &ldquo;blessed plot,&rdquo; with an accumulated obligation to liberty which
+ can only be paid by helping others to be free; and when she utterly
+ forgets which, her doom is sealed, as surely as that of the old empires
+ which passed away in their self-indulgence and wickedness.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ When Shakspere was about thirty-two, Sir Walter Raleigh published his
+ glowing account of Guiana, which instantly provided the English mind with
+ an earthly paradise or fairy-land. Raleigh himself seems to have been too
+ full of his own reports for us to be able to suppose that he either
+ invented or disbelieved them; especially when he represents the heavenly
+ country to which, in expectation of his execution, he is looking forward,
+ after the fashion of those regions of the wonderful West:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Then the blessed Paths wee&rsquo;l travel,
+ Strow&rsquo;d with Rubies thick as gravel;
+ Sealings of Diamonds, Saphire floors,
+ High walls of Coral, and Pearly Bowers.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Such were some of the influences which widened the region of thought, and
+ excited the productive power, in the minds of the time. After this period
+ there were fewer of such in Shakspere&rsquo;s life; and if there had been more
+ of them they would have been of less import as to their operation on a
+ mind more fully formed and more capable of choosing its own influences.
+ Let us now give a backward glance at the history of the art which
+ Shakspere chose as the means of easing his own mind of that wealth which,
+ like the gold and the silver, has a moth and rust of its own, except it be
+ kept in use by being sent out for the good of our neighbours.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It was a mighty gain for the language and the people when, in the middle
+ of the fourteenth century, by permission of the Pope, the miracle-plays,
+ most probably hitherto represented in Norman-French, as Mr. Collier
+ supposes, began to be represented in English. Most likely there had been
+ dramatic representations of a sort from the very earliest period of the
+ nation&rsquo;s history; for, to begin with the lowest form, at what time would
+ there not, for the delight of listeners, have been the imitation of animal
+ sounds, such as the drama of the conversation between an attacking poodle
+ and a fiercely repellent puss? Through innumerable gradations of childhood
+ would the art grow before it attained the first formal embodiment in such
+ plays as those, so-called, of miracles, consisting just of Scripture
+ stories, both canonical and apocryphal, dramatized after the rudest
+ fashion. Regarded from the height which the art had reached two hundred
+ and fifty years after, &ldquo;how dwarfed a growth of cold and night&rdquo; do these
+ miracle-plays show themselves! But at a time when there was no printing,
+ little preaching, and Latin prayers, we cannot help thinking that,
+ grotesque and ill-imagined as they are, they must have been of unspeakable
+ value for the instruction of a people whose spiritual digestion was not of
+ a sort to be injured by the presence of a quite abnormal quantity of husk
+ and saw-dust in their food. And occasionally we find verses of true poetic
+ feeling, such as the following, in &ldquo;The Fall of Man:&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ <i>Deus.</i> Adam, that with myn handys I made,
+ Where art thou now? What hast thou wrought?
+
+ <i>Adam.</i> A! lord, for synne oure floures do ffade,
+ I here thi voys, but I se the nought;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ implying that the separation between God and man, although it had
+ destroyed the beatific vision, was not yet so complete as to make the
+ creature deaf to the voice of his Maker. Nor are the words of Eve, with
+ which she begs her husband, in her shame and remorse, to strangle her, odd
+ and quaint as they are, without an almost overpowering pathos:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Now stomble we on stalk and ston;
+ My wyt awey is fro me gon:
+ Wrythe on to my necke bon
+ With, hardnesse of thin honde.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ To this Adam commences his reply with the verses,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Wyff, thi wytt is not wurthe a rosche.
+ Leve woman, turn thi thought.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ And this portion of the general representation ends with these verses,
+ spoken by Eve:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Alas! that ever we wrought this synne.
+ Oure bodely sustenauns for to wynne,
+ Ye must delve and I xal spynne,
+ In care to ledyn oure lyff.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In connexion with these plays, one of the contemplations most interesting
+ to us is, the contrast between them and the places in which they were
+ occasionally represented. For though the scaffolds on which they were
+ shown were usually erected in market-places or churchyards, sometimes they
+ rose in the great churches, and the plays were represented with the aid of
+ ecclesiastics. Here, then, we have the rude beginnings of the dramatic
+ art, in which the devil is the unfortunate buffoon, giving occasion to the
+ most exuberant laughter of the people&mdash;here is this rude boyhood, if
+ we may so say, of the one art, roofed in with the perfection of another,
+ of architecture; a perfection which now we can only imitate at our best:
+ below, the clumsy contrivance and the vulgar jest; above, the solemn
+ heaven of uplifted arches, their mysterious glooms ringing with the
+ delight of the multitude: the play of children enclosed in the heart of
+ prayer aspiring in stone. But it was not by any means all laughter; and so
+ much, nearer than architecture is the drama to the ordinary human heart,
+ that we cannot help thinking these grotesque representations did far more
+ to arouse the inward life and conscience of the people than all the glory
+ into which the out-working spirit of the monks had compelled the stubborn
+ stone to bourgeon and blossom.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But although, no doubt, there was some kind of growth going on in the
+ drama even during the dreary fifteenth century, we must not suppose that
+ it was by any regular and steady progression that it arrived at the
+ grandeur of the Elizabethan perfection. It was rather as if a dry, knotty,
+ uncouth, but vigorous plant suddenly opened out its inward life in a
+ flower of surpassing splendour and loveliness. When the representation of
+ real historical persons in the miracle-plays gave way before the
+ introduction of unreal allegorical personages, and the miracle-play was
+ almost driven from the stage by the &ldquo;play of morals&rdquo; as it was called,
+ there was certainly no great advance made in dramatic representation. The
+ chief advantage gained was room for more variety; while in some important
+ respects these plays fell off from the merits of the preceding kind.
+ Indeed, any attempt to teach morals allegorically must lack that vivifying
+ fire of faith working in the poorest representations of a history which
+ the people heartily believed and loved. Nor when we come to examine the
+ favourite amusement of later royalty, do we find that the interludes
+ brought forward in the pauses of the banquets of Henry VIII. have a claim
+ to any refinement upon those old miracle-plays. They have gained in
+ facility and wit; they have lost in poetry. They have lost pathos too, and
+ have gathered grossness. In the comedies which soon appear, there is far
+ more of fun than of art; and although the historical play had existed for
+ some time, and the streams of learning from the inns of court had flowed
+ in to swell that of the drama, it is not before the appearance of
+ Shakspere that we find any <i>whole</i> of artistic or poetic value. And
+ this brings us to another branch of the subject, of which it seems to us
+ that the importance has never been duly acknowledged. We refer to the use,
+ if not invention, of <i>blank verse</i> in England, and its application to
+ the purposes of the drama. It seems to us that in any contemplation of
+ Shakspere and his times, the consideration of these points ought not to be
+ omitted.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We have in the present day one grand master of blank verse, the Poet
+ Laureate. But where would he have been if Milton had not gone before him;
+ or if the verse amidst which he works like an informing spirit had not
+ existed at all? No doubt he might have invented it himself; but how
+ different would the result have been from the verse which he will now
+ leave behind him to lie side by side for comparison with that of the
+ master of the epic! All thanks then to Henry Howard, Earl of Surrey! who,
+ if, dying on the scaffold at the early age of thirty, he has left no
+ poetry in itself of much value, yet so wrote that he refined the poetic
+ usages of the language, and, above all, was the first who ever made blank
+ verse in English. He used it in translating the second and fourth books of
+ Virgil&rsquo;s &ldquo;Aeneid.&rdquo; This translation he probably wrote not long before his
+ execution, which took place in 1547, seventeen years before the birth of
+ Shakspere. There are passages of excellence in the work, and very rarely
+ does a verse quite fail. But, as might be expected, it is somewhat stiff,
+ and, as it were, stunted in sound; partly from the fact that the lines are
+ too much divided, where <i>distinction</i> would have been sufficient. It
+ would have been strange, indeed, if he had at once made a free use of a
+ rhythm which every boy-poet now thinks he can do what he pleases with, but
+ of which only a few ever learn the real scope and capabilities. Besides,
+ the difficulty was increased by the fact that the nearest approach to it
+ in measure was the heroic couplet, so well known in our language, although
+ scarce one who has used it has come up to the variousness of its modelling
+ in the hands of Chaucer, with whose writings Surrey was of course
+ familiar. But various as is its melody in Chaucer, the fact of there being
+ always an anticipation of the perfecting of a rhyme at the end of the
+ couplet would make one accustomed to heroic verse ready to introduce a
+ rhythmical fall and kind of close at the end of every blank verse in
+ trying to write that measure for the first time. Still, as we say, there
+ is good verse in Surrey&rsquo;s translation. Take the following lines for a
+ specimen, in which the fault just mentioned is scarcely perceptible.
+ Mercury is the subject of them.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;His golden wings he knits, which him transport,
+ With a light wind above the earth and seas;
+ And then with him his wand he took, whereby
+ He calls from hell pale ghosts.
+</pre>
+
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;By power whereof he drives the winds away,
+ And passeth eke amid the troubled clouds,
+ Till in his flight he &lsquo;gan descry the top
+ And the steep flanks of rocky Atlas&rsquo; hill
+ That with his crown sustains the welkin up;
+ Whose head, forgrown with pine, circled alway
+ With misty clouds, is beaten with wind and storm;
+ His shoulders spread with snow; and from his chin
+ The springs descend; his beard frozen with ice.
+ Here Mercury with equal shining wings
+ First touched.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In all comparative criticism justice demands that he who began any mode
+ should not be compared with those who follow only on the ground of
+ absolute merit in the productions themselves; for while he may be inferior
+ in regard to quality, he stands on a height, as the inventor, to which
+ they, as imitators, can never ascend, although they may climb other and
+ loftier heights, through the example he has set them. It is doubtful,
+ however, whether Surrey himself invented this verse, or only followed the
+ lead of some poet of Italy or Spain; in both which countries it is said
+ that blank verse had been used before Surrey wrote English in that
+ measure.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Here then we have the low beginnings of blank verse. It was nearly a
+ hundred and twenty years before Milton took it up, and, while it served
+ him well, glorified it; nor are we aware of any poem of worth written in
+ that measure between. Here, of course, we speak of the epic form of the
+ verse, which, as being uttered <i>ore rotundo</i>, is necessarily of
+ considerable difference from the form it assumes in the drama.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us now glance for a moment at the forms of composition in use for
+ dramatic purposes before blank verse came into favour with play-writers.
+ The nature of the verse employed in the miracle-plays will be sufficiently
+ seen from the short specimens already given. These plays were made up of
+ carefully measured and varied lines, with correct and superabundant
+ rhymes, and no marked lack of melody or rhythm. But as far as we have made
+ acquaintance with the moral and other rhymed plays which followed, there
+ was a great falling off in these respects. They are in great measure
+ composed of long, irregular lines, with a kind of rhythmical progress
+ rather than rhythm in them. They are exceedingly difficult to read
+ musically, at least to one of our day. Here are a few verses of the sort,
+ from the dramatic poem, rather than drama, called somewhat improperly &ldquo;The
+ Moral Play of God&rsquo;s Promises,&rdquo; by John Bale, who died the year before
+ Shakspere was born. It is the first in Dodsley&rsquo;s collection. The verses
+ have some poetic merit. The rhythm will be allowed to be difficult at
+ least. The verses are arranged in stanzas, of which we give two. In most
+ plays the verses are arranged in rhyming couplets only.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ <i>Pater Coelestis.</i>
+
+ I have with fearcenesse mankynde oft tymes corrected,
+ And agayne, I have allured hym by swete promes.
+ I have sent sore plages, when he hath me neglected,
+ And then by and by, most comfortable swetnes.
+ To wynne hym to grace, bothe mercye and ryghteousnes
+ I have exercysed, yet wyll he not amende.
+ Shall I now lose hym, or shall I him defende?
+
+ In hys most myschefe, most hygh grace will I sende,
+ To overcome hym by favoure, if it may be.
+ With hys abusyons no longar wyll I contende,
+ But now accomplysh my first wyll and decre.
+ My worde beynge flesh, from hens shall set hym fre,
+ Hym teachynge a waye of perfyght ryhteousnesse,
+ That he shall not nede to perysh in hys weaknesse.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ To our ears, at least, the older miracle-plays were greatly superior. It
+ is interesting to find, however, in this apparently popular mode of
+ &ldquo;building the rhyme&rdquo;&mdash;certainly not the <i>lofty</i> rhyme, for no
+ such crumbling foundation could carry any height of superstructure&mdash;the
+ elements of the most popular rhythm of the present day; a rhythm admitting
+ of any number of syllables in the line, from four up to twelve, or even
+ more, and demanding only that there shall be not more than four accented
+ syllables in the line. A song written with any spirit in this measure has,
+ other things <i>not</i> being quite equal, yet almost a certainty of
+ becoming more popular than one written in any other measure. Most of Barry
+ Cornwall&rsquo;s and Mrs. Heman&rsquo;s songs are written in it. Scott&rsquo;s &ldquo;Lay of the
+ Last Minstrel,&rdquo; Coleridge&rsquo;s &ldquo;Christabel,&rdquo; Byron&rsquo;s &ldquo;Siege of Corinth,&rdquo;
+ Shelley&rsquo;s &ldquo;Sensitive Plant,&rdquo; are examples of the rhythm. Spenser is the
+ first who has made good use of it. One of the months in the &ldquo;Shepherd&rsquo;s
+ Calendar&rdquo; is composed in it. We quote a few lines from this poem, to show
+ at once the kind we mean:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;No marvel, Thenot, if thou can bear
+ Cheerfully the winter&rsquo;s wrathful cheer;
+ For age and winter accord full nigh;
+ This chill, that cold; this crooked, that wry;
+ And as the lowering weather looks down,
+ So seemest thou like Good Friday to frown:
+ But my flowering youth is foe to frost;
+ My ship unwont in storms to be tost.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ We can trace it slightly in Sir Thomas Wyatt, and we think in others who
+ preceded Spenser. There is no sign of it in Chaucer. But we judge it to be
+ the essential rhythm of Anglo-Saxon poetry, which will quite harmonize
+ with, if it cannot explain, the fact of its being the most popular measure
+ still. Shakspere makes a little use of it in one, if not in more, of his
+ plays, though it there partakes of the irregular character of that of the
+ older plays which he is imitating. But we suspect the clowns of the
+ authorship of some of the rhymes, &ldquo;speaking more than was set down for
+ them,&rdquo; evidently no uncommon offence.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Prose was likewise in use for the drama at an early period.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But we must now regard the application of blank verse to the use of the
+ drama. And in this part of our subject we owe most to the investigations
+ of Mr. Collier, than whom no one has done more to merit our gratitude for
+ such aids. It is universally acknowledged that &ldquo;Ferrex and Porrex&rdquo; was the
+ first drama in blank verse. But it was never represented on the public
+ stage. It was the joint production of Thomas Sackville, afterwards Lord
+ Buckhurst and Earl of Dorset, and Thomas Norton, both gentlemen of the
+ Inner Temple, by the members of which it was played before the Queen at
+ Whitehall in 1561, three years before Shakspere was born. As to its
+ merits, the impression left by it upon our minds is such that, although
+ the verse is decent, and in some respects irreproachable, we think the
+ time spent in reading it must be all but lost to any but those who must
+ verify to themselves their literary profession; a profession which, like
+ all other professions, involves a good deal of disagreeable duty. We spare
+ our readers all quotation, there being no occasion to show what blank
+ verse of the commonest description is. But we beg to be allowed to state
+ that this drama by no means represents the poetic powers of Thomas
+ Sackville. For although we cannot agree with Hallam&rsquo;s general criticism,
+ either for or against Sackville, and although we admire Spenser, we hope,
+ as much as that writer could have admired him, we yet venture to say that
+ not only may some of Sackville&rsquo;s personifications &ldquo;fairly be compared with
+ some of the most poetical passages in Spenser,&rdquo; but that there is in this
+ kind in Sackville a strength and simplicity of representation which
+ surpasses that of Spenser in passages in which the latter probably
+ imitated the former. We refer to the allegorical personages in Sackville&rsquo;s
+ &ldquo;Induction to the Mirrour of Magistrates,&rdquo; and in Spenser&rsquo;s description of
+ the &ldquo;House of Pride.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Mr. Collier judges that the play in blank verse first represented on the
+ public stage was the &ldquo;Tamburlaine&rdquo; of Christopher Marlowe, and that it was
+ acted before 1587, at which date Shakspere would be twenty-three. This was
+ followed by other and better plays by the same author. Although we cannot
+ say much for the dramatic art of Marlowe, he has far surpassed every one
+ that went before him in dramatic <i>poetry</i>. The passages that might
+ worthily be quoted from Marlowe&rsquo;s writings for the sake of their poetry
+ are innumerable, notwithstanding that there are many others which occupy a
+ border land between poetry and bombast, and are such that it is to us
+ impossible to say to which class they rather belong. Of course it is easy
+ for a critic to gain the credit of common-sense at the same time that he
+ saves himself the trouble of doing what he too frequently shows himself
+ incapable of doing to any good purpose&mdash;we mean <i>thinking</i>&mdash;by
+ classing all such passages together as bombastical nonsense; but even in
+ the matter of poetry and bombast, a wise reader will recognize that
+ extremes so entirely meet, without being in the least identical, that they
+ are capable of a sort of chemico-literary admixture, if not of
+ combination. Goethe himself need not have been ashamed to have written one
+ or two of the scenes in Marlowe&rsquo;s &ldquo;Faust;&rdquo; not that we mean to imply that
+ they in the least resemble Goethe&rsquo;s handiwork. His verse is, for dramatic
+ purposes, far inferior to Shakspere&rsquo;s; but it was a great matter for
+ Shakspere that Marlowe preceded him, and helped to prepare to his hand the
+ tools and fashions he needed. The provision of blank verse for Shakspere&rsquo;s
+ use seems to us worthy of being called providential, even in a system in
+ which we cannot believe that there is any chance. For as the stage itself
+ is elevated a few feet above the ordinary level, because it is the scene
+ of a <i>representation</i>, just so the speech of the drama, dealing not
+ with unreal but with ideal persons, the fool being a worthy fool, and the
+ villain a worthy villain, needs to be elevated some tones above that of
+ ordinary life, which is generally flavoured with so much of the <i>commonplace</i>.
+ Now the commonplace has no place at all in the drama of Shakspere, which
+ fact at once elevates it above the tone of ordinary life. And so the mode
+ of the speech must be elevated as well; therefore from prose into blank
+ verse. If we go beyond this, we cease to be natural for the stage as well
+ as life; and the result is that kind of composition well enough known in
+ Shakspere&rsquo;s time, which he ridicules in the recitations of the player in
+ &ldquo;Hamlet,&rdquo; about <i>Priam</i> and <i>Hecuba</i>. We could show the very
+ passages of the play-writer Nash which Shakspere imitates in these. To use
+ another figure, Shakspere, in the same play, instructs the players &ldquo;to
+ hold, as &lsquo;twere, the mirror up to nature.&rdquo; Now every one must have felt
+ that somehow there is a difference between the appearance of any object or
+ group of objects immediately presented to the eye, and the appearance of
+ the same object or objects in a mirror. Nature herself is not the same in
+ the mirror held up to her. Everything changes sides in this
+ representation; and the room which is an ordinary, well-known, homely
+ room, gains something of the strange and poetic when regarded in the
+ mirror over the fire. Now for this representation, for this
+ mirror-reflection on the stage, blank verse is just the suitable glass to
+ receive the silvering of the genius-mind behind it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But if Shakspere had had to sit down and make his tools first, and then
+ quarry his stone and fell his timber for the building of his house,
+ instead of finding everything ready to his hand for dressing his stone
+ already hewn, for sawing and carving the timber already in logs and planks
+ beside him, no doubt his house would have been built; but can we with any
+ reason suppose that it would have proved such &ldquo;a lordly pleasure-house&rdquo;?
+ Not even Shakspere could do without his poor little brothers who preceded
+ him, and, like the goblins and gnomes of the drama, got everything out of
+ the bowels of the dark earth, ready for the master, whom it would have
+ been a shame to see working in the gloom and the dust instead of in the
+ open eye of the day. Nor is anything so helpful to the true development of
+ power as the possibility of free action for as much of the power as is
+ already operative. This room for free action was provided by blank verse.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Yet when Shakspere came first upon the scene of dramatic labour, he had to
+ serve his private apprenticeship, to which the apprenticeship of the age
+ in the drama, had led up. He had to act first of all. Driven to London and
+ the drama by an irresistible impulse, when the choice of some profession
+ was necessary to make him independent of his father, seeing he was
+ himself, though very young, a married man, the first form in which the
+ impulse to the drama would naturally show itself in him would be the
+ desire to act; for the outside relations would first operate. As to the
+ degree of merit he possessed as an actor we have but scanty means of
+ judging; for afterwards, in his own plays, he never took the best
+ characters, having written them for his friend Richard Burbage. Possibly
+ the dramatic impulse was sufficiently appeased by the writing of the play,
+ and he desired no further satisfaction from personal representation;
+ although the amount of study spent upon the higher department of the art
+ might have been more than sufficient to render him unrivalled as well in
+ the presentation of his own conceptions. But the dramatic spring, having
+ once broken the upper surface, would scoop out a deeper and deeper well
+ for itself to play in, and the actor would soon begin to work upon the
+ parts he had himself to study for presentation. It being found that he
+ greatly bettered his own parts, those of others would be submitted to him,
+ and at length whole plays committed to his revision, of which kind there
+ may be several in the collection of his works. If the feather-end of his
+ pen is just traceable in &ldquo;Titus Andronicus,&rdquo; the point of it is much more
+ evident, and to as good purpose as Beaumont or Fletcher could have used
+ his to, at the best, in &ldquo;Pericles, Prince of Tyre.&rdquo; Nor would it be long
+ before he would submit one of his own plays for approbation; and then the
+ whole of his dramatic career lies open before him, with every possible
+ advantage for perfecting the work, for the undertaking of which he was
+ better qualified by nature than probably any other man whosoever; for he
+ knew everything about acting, practically&mdash;about the play-house and
+ its capabilities, about stage necessities, about the personal endowments
+ and individual qualifications of each of the company&mdash;so that, when
+ he was writing a play, he could distribute the parts before they even
+ appeared upon paper, and write for each actor with the very living form of
+ the ideal person present &ldquo;in his mind&rsquo;s eye,&rdquo; and often to his bodily
+ sight; so that the actual came in aid of the ideal, as it always does if
+ the ideal be genuine, and the loftiest conceptions proved the truest to
+ visible nature.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ This close relation of Shakspere to the actual leads us to a general and
+ remarkable fact, which again will lead us back to Shakspere. All the great
+ writers of Queen Elizabeth&rsquo;s time were men of affairs; they were not
+ literary men merely, in the general acceptation of the word at present.
+ Hooker was a hard-working, sheep-keeping, cradle-rocking pastor of a
+ country parish. Bacon&rsquo;s legal duties were innumerable before he became
+ Lord Keeper and Lord Chancellor. Raleigh was soldier, sailor, adventurer,
+ courtier, politician, discoverer: indeed, it is to his imprisonment that
+ we are indebted for much the most ambitious of his literary undertakings,
+ &ldquo;The History of the World,&rdquo; a work which for simple majesty of subject and
+ style is hardly to be surpassed in prose. Sidney, at the age of
+ three-and-twenty, received the highest praise for the management of a
+ secret embassy to the Emperor of Germany; took the deepest and most active
+ interest in the political affairs of his country; would have sailed with
+ Sir Francis Drake for South American discovery; and might probably have
+ been king of poor Poland, if the queen had not been too selfish or wise to
+ spare him. The whole of his literary productions was the work of his spare
+ hours. Spenser himself, who was, except Shakspere, the most purely a
+ literary man of them all, was at one time Secretary to the Lord Deputy of
+ Ireland, and, later in life, Sheriff of Cork. Nor is the remark true only
+ of the writers of Elizabeth&rsquo;s period, or of the country of England.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It seems to us one of the greatest advantages that can befall a poet, to
+ be drawn out of his study, and still more out of the chamber of imagery in
+ his own thoughts, to behold and speculate upon the embodiment of Divine
+ thoughts and purposes in men and their affairs around him. Now Shakspere
+ had no public appointment, but he reaped all the advantage which such
+ could have given him, and more, from the perfection of his dramatic
+ position. It was not with making plays alone that he had to do; but,
+ himself an actor, himself in a great measure the owner of more than one
+ theatre, with a little realm far more difficult to rule than many a
+ kingdom&mdash;a company, namely, of actors&mdash;although possibly less
+ difficult from the fact that they were only men and boys; with the
+ pecuniary affairs of the management likewise under his supervision&mdash;he
+ must have found, in the relations and necessities of his own profession,
+ not merely enough of the actual to keep him real in his representations,
+ but almost sufficient opportunity for his one great study, that of
+ mankind, independently of social and friendly relations, which in his case
+ were of the widest and deepest.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But Shakspere had not business relations merely: he was a man of business.
+ There is a common blunder manifested, both in theory on the one side, and
+ in practice on the other, which the life of Shakspere sets full in the
+ light. The theory is, that genius is a sort of abnormal development of the
+ imagination, to the detriment and loss of the practical powers, and that a
+ genius is therefore a kind of incapable, incompetent being, as far as
+ worldly matters are concerned. The most complete refutation of this notion
+ lies in the fact that the greatest genius the world has known was a
+ successful man in common affairs. While his genius grew in strength,
+ fervour, and executive power, his worldly condition rose as well; he
+ became a man of importance in the eyes of his townspeople, by whom he
+ would not have been honoured if he had not made money; and he purchased
+ landed property in his native place with the results of his management of
+ his theatres.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The practical blunder lies in the notion cherished occasionally by young
+ people ambitious of literary distinction, that in the pursuit of such
+ things they must be content with the poverty to which the world dooms its
+ greatest men; accepting their very poverty as an additional proof of their
+ own genius. If this means that the poet is not to make money his object,
+ it means well: no man should. But if it means either that the world is
+ unkind, or that the poet is not to &ldquo;gather up the fragments, that nothing
+ be lost,&rdquo; it means ill. Shakspere did not make haste to be rich. He
+ neither blamed, courted, nor neglected the world: he was friendly with it.
+ He <i>could</i> not have pinched and scraped; but neither did he waste or
+ neglect his worldly substance, which is God&rsquo;s gift too. Many immense
+ fortunes have been made, not by absolute dishonesty, but in ways to which
+ a man of genius ought to be yet more ashamed than another to condescend;
+ but it does not therefore follow that if a man of genius will do honest
+ work he will not make a fair livelihood by it, which for all good results
+ of intellect and heart is better than a great fortune. But then Shakspere
+ began with doing what he could. He did not consent to starve until the
+ world should recognize his genius, or grumble against the blindness of the
+ nation in not seeing what it was impossible it should see before it was
+ fairly set forth. He began at once to supply something which the world
+ wanted; for it wants many an honest thing. He went on the stage and acted,
+ and so gained power to reveal the genius which he possessed; and the
+ world, in its possible measure, was not slow to recognize it. Many a young
+ fellow who has entered life with the one ambition of being a poet, has
+ failed because he did not perceive that it is better to be a man than to
+ be a poet, that it is his first duty to get an honest living by doing some
+ honest work that he can do, and for which there is a demand, although it
+ may not be the most pleasant employment. Time would have shown whether he
+ was meant to be a poet or not; and if he had been no poet he would have
+ been no beggar; and if he had turned out a poet, it would have been partly
+ in virtue of that experience of life and truth, gained in his case in the
+ struggle for bread, without which, gained somehow, a man may be a sweet
+ dreamer, but can be no strong maker, no poet. In a word, here is <i>the</i>
+ Englishman of genius, beginning life with nothing, and dying, not rich,
+ but easy and honoured; and this by doing what no one else could do,
+ writing dramas in which the outward grandeur or beauty is but an exponent
+ of the inward worth; hiding pearls for the wise even within the jewelled
+ play of the variegated bubbles of fancy, which he blew while he wrought,
+ for the innocent delight of his thoughtless brothers and sisters. Wherever
+ the rainbow of Shakspere&rsquo;s genius stands, there lies, indeed, at the foot
+ of its glorious arch, a golden key, which will open the secret doors of
+ truth, and admit the humble seeker into the presence of Wisdom, who,
+ having cried in the streets in vain, sits at home and waits for him who
+ will come to find her. And Shakspere had cakes and ale, although he was
+ virtuous.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But what do we know about the character of Shakspere? How can we tell the
+ inner life of a man who has uttered himself in dramas, in which of course
+ it is impossible that he should ever speak in his own person? No doubt he
+ may speak his own sentiments through the mouths of many of his persons;
+ but how are we to know in what cases he does so?&mdash;At least we may
+ assert, as a self-evident negative, that a passage treating of a wide
+ question put into the mouth of a person despised and rebuked by the best
+ characters in the play, is not likely to contain any cautiously formed and
+ cherished opinion of the dramatist. At first sight this may seem almost a
+ truism; but we have only to remind our readers that one of the passages
+ oftenest quoted with admiration, and indeed separately printed and
+ illuminated, is &ldquo;The Seven Ages of Man,&rdquo; a passage full of inhuman
+ contempt for humanity and unbelief in its destiny, in which not one of the
+ seven ages is allowed to pass over its poor sad stage without a sneer; and
+ that this passage is given by Shakspere to the <i>blasé</i> sensualist <i>Jaques</i>
+ in &ldquo;As You Like it,&rdquo; a man who, the good and wise <i>Duke</i> says, has
+ been as vile as it is possible for man to be, so vile that it would be an
+ additional sin in him to rebuke sin; a man who never was capable of seeing
+ what is good in any man, and hates men&rsquo;s vices <i>because</i> he hates
+ themselves, seeing in them only the reflex of his own disgust. Shakspere
+ knew better than to say that all the world is a stage, and all the men and
+ women merely players. He had been a player himself, but only on the stage:
+ <i>Jaques</i> had been a player where he ought to have been a true man.
+ The whole of his account of human life is contradicted and exposed at once
+ by the entrance, the very moment when he has finished his wicked
+ burlesque, of <i>Orlando</i>, the young master, carrying <i>Adam</i>, the
+ old servant, upon his back. The song that immediately follows, sings true:
+ &ldquo;Most friendship is feigning, most loving mere folly.&rdquo; But between the <i>all</i>
+ of <i>Jaques</i> and the <i>most</i> of the song, there is just the
+ difference between earth and hell.&mdash;Of course, both from a literary
+ and dramatic point of view, &ldquo;The Seven Ages&rdquo; is perfect.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now let us make one positive statement to balance the other: that wherever
+ we find, in the mouth of a noble character, not stock sentiments of stage
+ virtue, but appreciation of a truth which it needs deep thought and
+ experience united with love of truth, to discover or verify for one&rsquo;s
+ self, especially if the truth be of a sort which most men will fail not
+ merely to recognize as a truth, but to understand at all, because the
+ understanding of it depends on the foregoing spiritual perception&mdash;then
+ we think we may receive the passage as an expression of the inner soul of
+ the writer. He must have seen it before he could have said it; and to see
+ such a truth is to love it; or rather, love of truth in the general must
+ have preceded and enabled to the discovery of it. Such a passage is the
+ speech of the <i>Duke</i>, opening the second act of the play just
+ referred to, &ldquo;As You Like it.&rdquo; The lesson it contains is, that the
+ well-being of a man cannot be secured except he partakes of the ills of
+ life, &ldquo;the penalty of Adam.&rdquo; And it seems to us strange that the excellent
+ editors of the Cambridge edition, now in the course of publication&mdash;a
+ great boon to all students of Shakspere&mdash;should not have perceived
+ that the original reading, that of the folios, is the right one,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Here feel we <i>not</i> the penalty of Adam?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ which, with the point of interrogation supplied, furnishes the true
+ meaning of the whole passage; namely, that the penalty of Adam is just
+ what makes the &ldquo;wood more free from peril than the envious court,&rdquo;
+ teaching each &ldquo;not to think of himself more highly than he ought to
+ think.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But Shakspere, although everywhere felt, is nowhere seen in his plays. He
+ is too true an artist to show his own face from behind the play of life
+ with which he fills his stage. What we can find of him there we must find
+ by regarding the whole, and allowing the spiritual essence of the whole to
+ find its way to our brain, and thence to our heart. The student of
+ Shakspere becomes imbued with the idea of his character. It exhales from
+ his writings. And when we have found the main drift of any play&mdash;the
+ grand rounding of the whole&mdash;then by that we may interpret individual
+ passages. It is alone in their relation to the whole that we can do them
+ full justice, and in their relation to the whole that we discover the mind
+ of the master.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But we have another source of more direct enlightenment as to Shakspere
+ himself. We only say more <i>direct</i>, not more certain or extended
+ enlightenment. We have one collection of poems in which he speaks in his
+ own person and of himself. Of course we refer to his sonnets. Though these
+ occupy, with their presentation of himself, such a small relative space,
+ they yet admirably round and complete, to our eyes, the circle of his
+ individuality. In them and the plays the common saying&mdash;one of the
+ truest&mdash;that extremes meet, is verified. No man is complete in whom
+ there are no extremes, or in whom those extremes do not meet. Now the very
+ individuality of Shakspere, judged by his dramas alone, has been declared
+ nonexistent; while in the sonnets he manifests some of the deepest phases
+ of a healthy self-consciousness. We do not intend to enter into the still
+ unsettled question as to whether these sonnets were addressed to a man or
+ a woman. We have scarcely a doubt left on the question ourselves, as will
+ be seen from the argument we found on our conviction. We cannot say we
+ feel much interest in the other question, <i>If a man, what man?</i> A few
+ placed at the end, arranged as they have come down to us, are beyond doubt
+ addressed to a woman. But the difference in tone between these and the
+ others we think very remarkable. Possibly at the time they were written&mdash;most
+ of them early in his life, as it appears to us, although they were not
+ published till the year 1609, when he was forty-five years of age, Meres
+ referring to them in the year 1598, eleven years before, as known &ldquo;among
+ his private friends&rdquo;&mdash;he had not known such women as he knew
+ afterwards, and hence the true devotion of his soul is given to a friend
+ of his own sex. Gervinus, whose lectures on Shakspere, profound and lofty
+ to a degree unattempted by any other interpreter, we are glad to find have
+ been done into a suitable English translation, under the superintendence
+ of the author himself&mdash;Gervinus says somewhere in them that, as
+ Shakspere lived and wrote, his ideal of womanhood grew nobler and purer.
+ Certainly the woman to whom the last few of these sonnets are addressed
+ was neither noble nor pure. We think, in this matter at least, they record
+ one of his early experiences.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We shall briefly indicate what we find in these sonnets about the man
+ himself, and shall commence with what is least pleasing and of least
+ value.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We must confess, then, that, probably soon after he came first to London,
+ he, then a married man, had an intrigue with a married woman, of which
+ there are indications that he was afterwards deeply ashamed. One little
+ incident seems curiously traceable: that he had given her a set of tablets
+ which his friend had given him; and the sonnet in which he excuses himself
+ to his friend for having done so, seems to us the only piece of special
+ pleading, and therefore ungenuine expression, in the whole. This friend,
+ to whom the rest of the sonnets are addressed, made the acquaintance of
+ this woman, and both were false to Shakspere. Even Shakspere could not
+ keep the love of a worthless woman. So much the better for him; but it is
+ a sad story at best. Yet even in this environment of evil we see the
+ nobility of the man, and his real self. The sonnets in which he mourns his
+ friend&rsquo;s falsehood, forgives him, and even finds excuses for him, that he
+ may not lose his own love of him, are, to our minds, amongst the most
+ beautiful, as they are the most profound. Of these are the 33rd and 34th.
+ Nor does he stop here, but proceeds in the following, the 35th, to comfort
+ his friend in his grief for his offence, even accusing himself of offence
+ in having made more excuse for his fault than the fault needed! But to
+ leave this part of his history, which, as far as we know, stands alone,
+ and yet cannot with truth be passed by, any more than the story of the
+ crime of David, though in this case there is no comparison to be made
+ between the two further than the primary fact, let us look at the one
+ reality which, from a spiritual point of view, independently of the
+ literary beauties of these poems, causes them to stand all but alone in
+ literature. We mean what has been unavoidably touched upon already, the
+ devotion of his friendship. We have said this makes the poems stand <i>all
+ but alone</i>; for we ought to be better able to understand these poems of
+ Shakspere, from the fact that in our day has appeared the only other poem
+ which is like these, and which casts back a light upon them.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Yet turn thee to the doubtful shore,
+ Where thy first form was made a man:
+ I loved thee, spirit, and love; nor can
+ The soul of Shakspeare love thee more.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ So sings the Poet of our day, in the loftiest of his poems&mdash;&ldquo;In
+ Memoriam&rdquo;&mdash;addressing the spirit of his vanished friend. In the midst
+ of his song arises the thought of <i>the Poet</i> of all time, who loved
+ his friend too, and would have lost him in a way far worse than death, had
+ not his love been too strong even for that death, alone ghastly, which
+ threatened to cut the golden chain that bound them, and part them by the
+ gulf impassable. Tennyson&rsquo;s friend had never wronged him; and to the
+ divineness of Shakspere&rsquo;s love is added that of forgiveness. Such love as
+ this between man and man is rare, and therefore to the mind which is in
+ itself no way rare, incredible, because unintelligible. But though all the
+ commonest things are very divine, yet divine individuality is and will be
+ a rare thing at any given period on the earth. Faith, in its ideal sense,
+ will always be hard to find on the earth. But perhaps this kind of
+ affection between man and man may, as Coleridge indicates in his &ldquo;Table
+ Talk,&rdquo; have been more common in the reigns of Elizabeth and James than it
+ is now. There is a certain dread of the demonstrative in the present day,
+ which may, perhaps, be carried into regions where it is out of place, and
+ hinder the development of a devotion which must be real, and grand, and
+ divine, if one man such as Shakspere or Tennyson has ever felt it. If one
+ has felt it, humanity may claim it. And surely He who is <i>the</i> Son of
+ man has verified the claim. We believe there are indeed few of us who know
+ what <i>to love our neighbour as ourselves</i> means; but when we find a
+ man here and there in the course of centuries who does, we may take this
+ man as the prophet of coming good for his race, his prophecy being
+ himself.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But next to the interest of knowing that a man could love so well, comes
+ the association of this fact with his art. He who could look abroad upon
+ men, and understand them all&mdash;who stood, as it were, in the wide-open
+ gates of his palace, and admitted with welcome every one who came in sight&mdash;had
+ in the inner places of that palace one chamber in which he met his friend,
+ and in which his whole soul went forth to understand the soul of his
+ friend. The man to whom nothing in humanity was common or unclean; in whom
+ the most remarkable of his artistic morals is fair-play; who fills our
+ hearts with a saintly love for <i>Cordelia</i> and an admiration of <i>Sir
+ John Falstaff</i> the lost gentleman, mournful even in the height of our
+ laughter; who could make an <i>Autolycus</i> and a <i>Macbeth</i> both
+ human, and an <i>Ariel</i> and a <i>Puck</i> neither human&mdash;this is
+ the man who loved best. And we believe that this depth of capacity for
+ loving lay at the root of all his knowledge of men and women, and all his
+ dramatic pre-eminence. The heart is more intelligent than the intellect.
+ Well says the poet Matthew Raydon, who has hardly left anything behind him
+ but the lamentation over Sir Philip Sidney in which the lines occur,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;He that hath love and judgment too
+ Sees more than any other do.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Simply, we believe that this, not this only, but this more than any other
+ endowment, made Shakspere the artist he was, in providing him all the
+ material of humanity to work upon, and keeping him to the true spirit of
+ its use. Love looking forth upon strife, understood it all. Love is the
+ true revealer of secrets, because it makes one with the object regarded.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But,&rdquo; say some impatient readers, &ldquo;when shall we have done with
+ Shakspere? There is no end to this writing about him.&rdquo; It will be a bad
+ day for England when we have done with Shakspere; for that will imply,
+ along with the loss of him, that we are no longer capable of understanding
+ him. Should that time ever come, Heaven grant the generation which does
+ not understand him at least the grace to keep its pens off him, which will
+ by no means follow as a necessary consequence of the non-intelligence! But
+ the writing about Shakspere which has been hitherto so plentiful must do
+ good just in proportion as it directs attention to him and gives aid to
+ the understanding of him. And while the utterances of to-day pass away,
+ the children of to-morrow are born, and require a new utterance for their
+ fresh need from those who, having gone before, have already tasted life
+ and Shakspere, and can give some little help to further progress than
+ their own, by telling the following generation what they have found.
+ Suppose that this cry had been raised last century, after good Dr. Johnson
+ had ceased to produce to the eyes of men the facts about his own
+ incapacity which he presumed to be criticisms of Shakspere, where would
+ our aids be now to the understanding of the dramatist? Our own conviction
+ is, when we reflect with how much labour we have deepened our knowledge of
+ him, and thereby found in him <i>the best</i>&mdash;for the best lies not
+ on the surface for the careless reader&mdash;our own conviction is, that
+ not half has been done that ought to be done to help young people at least
+ to understand the master mind of their country. Few among them can ever
+ give the attention or work to it that we have given; but much may be done
+ with judicious aid. And a profound knowledge of their greatest writer
+ would do more than almost anything else to bind together as Englishmen, in
+ a true and unselfish way, the hearts of the coming generations; for his
+ works are our country in a convex magic mirror.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ When a man finds that every time he reads a book not only does some
+ obscurity melt away, but deeper depths, which he had not before seen, dawn
+ upon him, he is not likely to think that the time for ceasing to write
+ about the book has come. And certainly in Shakspere, as in all true
+ artistic work, as in nature herself, the depths are not to be revealed
+ utterly; while every new generation needs a new aid towards discovering
+ itself and its own thoughts in these forms of the past. And of all that
+ read about Shakspere there are few whom more than one or two utterances
+ have reached. The speech or the writing must go forth to find the soil for
+ the growth of its kernel of truth. We shall, therefore, with the full
+ consciousness that perhaps more has been already said and written about
+ Shakspere than about any other writer, yet venture to add to the mass by a
+ few general remarks.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And first we would remind our readers of the marvel of the combination in
+ Shakspere of such a high degree of two faculties, one of which is
+ generally altogether inferior to the other: the faculties of reception and
+ production. Rarely do we find that great receptive power, brought into
+ operation either by reading or by observation, is combined with
+ originality of thought. Some hungers are quite satisfied by taking in what
+ others have thought and felt and done. By the assimilation of this food
+ many minds grow and prosper; but other minds feed far more upon what rises
+ from their own depths; in the answers they are compelled to provide to the
+ questions that come unsought; in the theories they cannot help
+ constructing for the inclusion in one whole of the various facts around
+ them, which seem at first sight to strive with each other like the atoms
+ of a chaos; in the examination of those impulses of hidden origin which at
+ one time indicate a height of being far above the thinker&rsquo;s present
+ condition, at another a gulf of evil into which he may possibly fall. But
+ in Shakspere the two powers of beholding and originating meet like the
+ rejoining halves of a sphere. A man who thinks his own thoughts much, will
+ often walk through London streets and see nothing. In the man who observes
+ only, every passing object mirrors itself in its prominent peculiarities,
+ having a kind of harmony with all the rest, but arouses no magician from
+ the inner chamber to charm and chain its image to his purpose. In
+ Shakspere, on the contrary, every outer form of humanity and nature spoke
+ to that ever-moving, self-vindicating&mdash;we had almost said, and in a
+ sense it would be true, self-generating&mdash;humanity within him. The
+ sound of any action without him, struck in him just the chord which, in
+ motion in him, would have produced a similar action. When anything was
+ done, he felt as if he were doing it&mdash;perception and origination
+ conjoining in one consciousness.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But to this gift was united the gift of utterance, or representation. Many
+ a man both receives and generates who, somehow, cannot represent. Nothing
+ is more disappointing sometimes than our first experience of the artistic
+ attempts of a man who has roused our expectations by a social display of
+ familiarity with, and command over, the subjects of conversation. Have we
+ not sometimes found that when such a one sought to give vital or artistic
+ form to these thoughts, so that they might not be born and die in the same
+ moment upon his lips, but might <i>exist</i>, a poor, weak, faded <i>simulacrum</i>
+ alone was the result? Now Shakspere was a great talker, who enraptured the
+ listeners, and was himself so rapt in his speech that he could scarcely
+ come to a close; but when he was alone with his art, then and then only
+ did he rise to the height of his great argument, and all the talk was but
+ as the fallen mortar and stony chips lying about the walls of the great
+ temple of his drama.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But, along with all this wealth of artistic speech, an artistic virtue of
+ an opposite nature becomes remarkable: his reticence. How often might he
+ not say fine things, particularly poetic things, when he does not, because
+ it would not suit the character or the time! How many delicate points are
+ there not in his plays which we only discover after many readings, because
+ he will not put a single tone of success into the flow of natural
+ utterance, to draw our attention to the triumph of the author, and jar
+ with the all-important reality of his production! Wherever an author
+ obtrudes his own self-importance, an unreality is the consequence, of a
+ nature similar to that which we feel in the old moral plays, when
+ historical and allegorical personages, such as <i>Julius Caesar</i> and <i>Charity</i>,
+ for instance, are introduced at the same time on the same stage, acting in
+ the same story. Shakspere never points to any stroke of his own wit or
+ art. We may find it or not: there it is, and no matter if no one see it!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Much has been disputed about the degree of consciousness of his own art
+ possessed by Shakspere: whether he did it by a grand yet blind impulse, or
+ whether he knew what he wanted to do, and knowingly used the means to
+ arrive at that end. Now we cannot here enter upon the question; but we
+ would recommend any of our readers who are interested in it not to attempt
+ to make up their minds upon it before considering a passage in another of
+ his poems, which may throw some light on the subject for them. It is the
+ description of a painting, contained in &ldquo;The Rape of Lucrece,&rdquo; towards the
+ end of the poem. Its very minuteness involves the expression of
+ principles, and reveals that, in relation to an art not his own, he could
+ hold principles of execution, and indicate perfection of finish, which, to
+ say the least, must proceed from a general capacity for art, and therefore
+ might find an equally conscious operation in his own peculiar province of
+ it. For our own part, we think that his results are a perfect combination
+ of the results of consciousness and unconsciousness; consciousness where
+ the arrangements of the play, outside the region of inspiration, required
+ the care of the wakeful intellect; unconsciousness where the subject
+ itself bore him aloft on the wings of its own creative delight.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is another manifestation of his power which will astonish those who
+ consider it. It is this: that, while he was able to go down to the simple
+ and grand realities of human nature, which are all tragic; and while,
+ therefore, he must rejoice most in such contemplations of human nature as
+ find fit outlet in a &ldquo;Hamlet,&rdquo; a &ldquo;Lear,&rdquo; a &ldquo;Timon,&rdquo; or an &ldquo;Othello,&rdquo; the
+ tragedies of Doubt, Ingratitude, and Love, he can yet, when he chooses,
+ float on the very surface of human nature, as in &ldquo;Love&rsquo;s Labour&rsquo;s Lost,&rdquo;
+ &ldquo;The Merry Wives of Windsor,&rdquo; &ldquo;The Comedy of Errors,&rdquo; &ldquo;The Taming of the
+ Shrew;&rdquo; or he can descend half way as it were, and there remain suspended
+ in the characters and feelings of ordinary nice people, who, interesting
+ enough to meet in society, have neither received that development, nor are
+ placed in those circumstances, which admit of the highest and simplest
+ poetic treatment. In these he will bring out the ordinary noble or the
+ ordinary vicious. Of this nature are most of his comedies, in which he
+ gives an ideal representation of common social life, and steers perfectly
+ clear of what in such relations and surroundings would be <i>heroics</i>.
+ Look how steadily he keeps the noble-minded youth <i>Orlando</i> in this
+ middle region; and look how the best comes out at last in the wayward and
+ <i>recalcitrant</i> and <i>bizarre</i>, but honest and true natures of <i>Beatrice</i>
+ and <i>Benedick</i>; and this without any untruth to the nature of comedy,
+ although the circumstances border on the tragic. When he wants to give the
+ deeper affairs of the heart, he throws the whole at once out of the social
+ circle with its multiform restraints. As in &ldquo;Hamlet&rdquo; the stage on which
+ the whole is acted is really the heart of <i>Hamlet</i>, so he makes his
+ visible stage as it were, slope off into the misty infinite, with a grey,
+ starless heaven overhead, and Hades open beneath his feet. Hence young
+ people brought up in the country understand the tragedies far sooner than
+ they can comprehend the comedies. It needs acquaintance with society and
+ social ways to clear up the latter.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The remarks we have made on &ldquo;Hamlet&rdquo; by way of illustration, lead us to
+ point out how Shakspere prepares, in some of his plays, a stage suitable
+ for all the representation. In &ldquo;A Midsummer Night&rsquo;s Dream&rdquo; the place which
+ gives tone to the whole is a midnight wood in the first flush and youthful
+ delight of summer. In &ldquo;As You Like it&rdquo; it is a daylight wood in spring,
+ full of morning freshness, with a cold wind now and then blowing through
+ the half-clothed boughs. In &ldquo;The Tempest&rdquo; it is a solitary island, circled
+ by the mysterious sea-horizon, over which what may come who can tell?&mdash;a
+ place where the magician may work his will, and have all nature at the
+ beck of his superior knowledge.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The only writer who would have had a chance of rivalling Shakspere in his
+ own walk, if he had been born in the same period of English history, is
+ Chaucer. He has the same gift of individualizing the general, and
+ idealizing the portrait. But the best of the dramatic writers of
+ Shakspere&rsquo;s time, in their desire of dramatic individualization, forget
+ the modifying multiformity belonging to individual humanity. In their
+ anxiety to present a <i>character</i>, they take, as it were, a human
+ mould, label it with a certain peculiarity, and then fill in speeches and
+ forms according to the label. Thus the indications of character, of
+ peculiarity, so predominate, the whole is so much of one colour, that the
+ result resembles one of those allegorical personifications in which, as
+ much as possible, everything human is eliminated except what belongs to
+ the peculiarity, the personification. How different is it with Shakspere&rsquo;s
+ representations! He knows that no human being ever was like that. He makes
+ his most peculiar characters speak very much like other people; and it is
+ only over the whole that their peculiarities manifest themselves with
+ indubitable plainness. The one apparent exception is <i>Jaques</i>, in &ldquo;As
+ You Like it.&rdquo; But there we must remember that Shakspere is representing a
+ man who so chooses to represent himself. He is a man <i>in his humour</i>,
+ or his own peculiar and chosen affectation. <i>Jaques</i> is the writer of
+ his own part; for with him &ldquo;all the world&rsquo;s a stage, and all the men and
+ women,&rdquo; himself first, &ldquo;merely players.&rdquo; We have his own presentation of
+ himself, not, first of all, as he is, but as he chooses to be taken. Of
+ course his real self does come out in it, for no man can seem altogether
+ other than he is; and besides, the <i>Duke</i>, who sees quite through
+ him, rebukes him in the manner already referred to; but it is his
+ affectation that gives him the unnatural peculiarity of his modes and
+ speeches. He wishes them to be such.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is, then, for every one of Shakspere&rsquo;s characters the firm ground of
+ humanity, upon which the weeds, as well as the flowers, glorious or
+ fantastic, as the case may be, show themselves. His more heroic persons
+ are the most profoundly human. Nor are his villains unhuman, although
+ inhuman enough. Compared with Marlowe&rsquo;s Jew, <i>Shylock</i> is a terrible
+ <i>man</i> beside a dreary <i>monster</i>, and, as far as logic and the <i>lex
+ talionis</i> go, has the best of the argument. It is the strength of human
+ nature itself that makes crime strong. Wickedness could have no power of
+ itself: it lives by the perverted powers of good. And so great is
+ Shakspere&rsquo;s sympathy with <i>Shylock</i> even, in the hard and unjust doom
+ that overtakes him, that he dismisses him with some of the spare
+ sympathies of the more tender-hearted of his spectators. Nowhere is the
+ justice of genius more plain than in Shakspere&rsquo;s utter freedom from
+ party-spirit, even with regard to his own creations. Each character shall
+ set itself forth from its own point of view, and only in the choice and
+ scope of the whole shall the judgment of the poet be beheld. He never
+ allows his opinion to come out to the damaging of the individual&rsquo;s own
+ self-presentation. He knows well that for the worst something can be said,
+ and that a feeling of justice and his own right will be strong in the mind
+ of a man who is yet swayed by perfect selfishness. Therefore the false man
+ is not discoverable in his speech, not merely because the villain will
+ talk as like a true man as he may, but because seldom is the villainy
+ clear to the villain&rsquo;s own mind. It is impossible for us to determine
+ whether, in their fierce bandying of the lie, <i>Bolingbroke</i> or <i>Norfolk</i>
+ spoke the truth. Doubtless each believed the other to be the villain that
+ he called him. And Shakspere has no desire or need to act the historian in
+ the decision of that question. He leaves his reader in full sympathy with
+ the perplexity of <i>Richard</i>; as puzzled, in fact, as if he had been
+ present at the interrupted combat.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If every writer could write up to his own best, we should have far less to
+ marvel at in Shakspere. It is in great measure the wealth of Shakspere&rsquo;s
+ suggestions, giving him abundance of the best to choose from, that lifts
+ him so high above those who, having felt the inspiration of a good idea,
+ are forced to go on writing, constructing, carpentering, with dreary
+ handicraft, before the exhausted faculty has recovered sufficiently to
+ generate another. And then comes in the unerring choice of the best of
+ those suggestions. Yet if any one wishes to see what variety of the same
+ kind of thoughts he could produce, let him examine the treatment of the
+ same business in different plays; as, for instance, the way in which
+ instigation to a crime is managed in &ldquo;Macbeth,&rdquo; where <i>Macbeth</i>
+ tempts the two murderers to kill <i>Banquo</i>; in &ldquo;King John,&rdquo; when <i>the
+ King</i> tempts <i>Hubert</i> to kill <i>Arthur</i>; in &ldquo;The Tempest,&rdquo;
+ when <i>Antonio</i> tempts <i>Sebastian</i> to kill <i>Alonzo</i>; in &ldquo;As
+ You Like it,&rdquo; when <i>Oliver</i> instigates <i>Charles</i> to kill <i>Orlando</i>;
+ and in &ldquo;Hamlet,&rdquo; where <i>Claudius</i> urges <i>Laertes</i> to the murder
+ of <i>Hamlet</i>.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ He shows no anxiety about being original. When a man is full of his work
+ he forgets himself. In his desire to produce a good play he lays hold upon
+ any material that offers itself. He will even take a bad play and make a
+ good one of it. One of the most remarkable discoveries to the student of
+ Shakspere is the hide-bound poverty of some of the stories, which,
+ informed by his life-power; become forms of strength, richness, and grace.
+ He does what the <i>Spirit</i> in &ldquo;Comus&rdquo; says the music he heard might
+ do,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;create a soul
+ Under the ribs of death;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ and then death is straightway &ldquo;clothed upon.&rdquo; And nowhere is the refining
+ operation of his genius more evident than in the purification of these
+ stories. Characters and incidents which would have been honey and nuts to
+ Beaumont and Fletcher are, notwithstanding their dramatic recommendations,
+ entirely remodelled by him. The fair <i>Ophelia</i> is, in the old tale, a
+ common woman, and <i>Hamlet&rsquo;s</i> mistress; while the policy of the <i>Lady
+ of Belmont</i>, who in the old story occupies the place for which he
+ invented the lovely <i>Portia</i>, upon which policy the whole story
+ turns, is such that it is as unfit to set forth in our pages as it was
+ unfit for Shakspere&rsquo;s purposes of art. His noble art refuses to work upon
+ base matter. He sees at once the capabilities of a tale, but he will not
+ use it except he may do with it what he pleases.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If we might here offer some assistance to the young student who wants to
+ help himself, we would suggest that to follow, in a measure, Plutarch&rsquo;s
+ fashion of comparison, will be the most helpful guide to the understanding
+ of the poet. Let the reader take any two characters, and putting them side
+ by side, look first for differences, and then for resemblances between
+ them, with the causes of each; or let him make a wider attempt, and
+ setting two plays one over against the other, compare or contrast them,
+ and see what will be the result. Let him, for instance, take the two
+ characters <i>Hamlet</i> and <i>Brutus</i>, and compare their beginnings
+ and endings, the resemblances in their characters, the differences in
+ their conduct, the likeness and unlikeness of what was required of them,
+ the circumstances in which action was demanded of each, the helps or
+ hindrances each had to the working out of the problem of his life, the way
+ in which each encounters the supernatural, or any other question that may
+ suggest itself in reading either of the plays, ending off with the main
+ lesson taught in each; and he will be astonished to find, if he has not
+ already discovered it, what a rich mine of intellectual and spiritual
+ wealth is laid open to his delighted eyes. Perhaps not the least valuable
+ end to be so gained is, that the young Englishman, who wants to be
+ delivered from any temptation to think himself the centre around which the
+ universe revolves, will be aided in his endeavours after honourable
+ humility by looking up to the man who towers, like Saul, head and
+ shoulders above his brethren, and seeing that he is humble, may learn to
+ leave it to the pismire to be angry, to the earwig to be conceited, and to
+ the spider to insist on his own importance.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But to return to the main course of our observations. The dramas of
+ Shakspere are so natural, that this, the greatest praise that can be given
+ them, is the ground of one of the difficulties felt by the young student
+ in estimating them. The very simplicity of Shakspere&rsquo;s art seems to throw
+ him out of any known groove of judgment. When he hears one say, &ldquo;<i>Look
+ at this, and admire</i>,&rdquo; he feels inclined to rejoin, &ldquo;Why, he only says
+ in the simplest way what the thing must have been. It is as plain as
+ daylight.&rdquo; Yes, to the reader; and because Shakspere wrote it. But there
+ were a thousand wrong ways of doing it: Shakspere took the one right way.
+ It is he who has made it plain in art, whatever it was before in nature;
+ and most likely the very simplicity of it in nature was scarcely observed
+ before he saw it and represented it. And is it not the glory of art to
+ attain this simplicity? for simplicity is the end of all things&mdash;all
+ manners, all morals, all religion. To say that the thing could not have
+ been done otherwise, is just to say that you forget the art in beholding
+ its object, that you forget the mirror because you see nature reflected in
+ the mirror. Any one can see the moon in Lord Rosse&rsquo;s telescope; but who
+ made the reflector? And let the student try to express anything in prose
+ or in verse, in painting or in modelling, just as it is. No man knows till
+ he has made many attempts, how hard to reach is this simplicity of art.
+ And the greater the success, the fewer are the signs of the labour
+ expended. Simplicity is art&rsquo;s perfection.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But so natural are all his plays, and the great tragedies to which we
+ would now refer in particular, amongst the rest, that it may appear to
+ some, at first sight, that Shakspere could not have constructed them after
+ any moral plan, could have had no lesson of his own to teach in them,
+ seeing they bear no marks of individual intent, in that they depart
+ nowhere from, nature, the construction of the play itself going straight
+ on like a history. The directness of his plays springs in part from the
+ fact that it is humanity and not circumstance that Shakspere respects.
+ Circumstance he uses only for the setting forth of humanity; and for the
+ plot of circumstance, so much in favour with Ben Jonson, and others of his
+ contemporaries, he cares nothing. As to their looking too natural to have
+ any design in them, we are not of those who believe that it is unlike
+ nature to have a design and a result. If the proof of a high aim is to be
+ what the critics used to call <i>poetic justice</i>, a kind of justice
+ that one would gladly find more of in grocers&rsquo; and linen-drapers&rsquo; shops,
+ but can as well spare from a poem, then we must say that he has not always
+ a high end: the wicked man is not tortured, nor is the good man smothered
+ in bank-notes and rose-leaves. Even when he shows the outward ruin and
+ death that comes upon Macbeth at last, it is only as an unavoidable little
+ consequence, following in the wake of the mighty vengeance of nature, even
+ of God, that Macbeth cannot say <i>Amen</i>; that Macbeth can sleep no
+ more; that Macbeth is &ldquo;cabined cribbed, confined, bound in to saucy doubts
+ and fears;&rdquo; that his very brain is a charnel-house, whence arise the
+ ghosts of his own murders, till he envies the very dead the rest to which
+ his hand has sent them. That immediate and eternal vengeance upon crime,
+ and that inner reward of well-doing, never fail in nature or in Shakspere,
+ appear as such a matter of course that they hardly look like design either
+ in nature or in the mirror which he holds up to her. The secret is that,
+ in the ideal, habit and design are one.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Most authors seem anxious to round off and finish everything in full
+ sight. Most of Shakspere&rsquo;s tragedies compel our thoughts to follow their
+ <i>persons</i> across the bourn. They need, as Jean Paul says, a piece of
+ the next world painted in to complete the picture, And this is surely
+ nature: but it need not therefore be no design. What could be done with
+ Hamlet, but send him into a region where he has some chance of finding his
+ difficulties solved; where he will know that his reverence for God, which
+ was the sole stay left him in the flood of human worthlessness, has not
+ been in vain; that the skies are not &ldquo;a foul and pestilent congregation of
+ vapours;&rdquo; that there are noble women, though his mother was false and
+ Ophelia weak; and that there are noble men, although his uncle and Laertes
+ were villains and his old companions traitors? If Hamlet is not to die,
+ the whole of the play must perish under the accusation that the hero of it
+ is left at last with only a superadded misery, a fresh demand for action,
+ namely, to rule a worthless people, as they seem to him, when action has
+ for him become impossible; that he has to live on, forsaken even of death,
+ which will not come though the cup of misery is at the brim.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But a high end may be gained in this world, and the vision into the world
+ beyond so justified, as in King Lear. The passionate, impulsive,
+ unreasoning old king certainly must have given his wicked daughters
+ occasion enough of making the charges to which their avarice urged them.
+ He had learned very little by his life of kingship. He was but a boy with
+ grey hair. He had had no inner experiences. And so all the development of
+ manhood and age has to be crowded into the few remaining weeks of his
+ life. His own folly and blindness supply the occasion. And before the few
+ weeks are gone, he has passed through all the stages of a fever of
+ indignation and wrath, ending in a madness from which love redeems him; he
+ has learned that a king is nothing if the man is nothing; that a king
+ ought to care for those who cannot help themselves; that love has not its
+ origin or grounds in favours flowing from royal resource and munificence,
+ and yet that love is the one thing worth living for, which gained, it is
+ time to die. And now that he has the experience that life can give, has
+ become a child in simplicity of heart and judgment, he cannot lose his
+ daughter again; who, likewise, has learned the one thing she needed, as
+ far as her father was concerned, a little more excusing tenderness. In the
+ same play it cannot be by chance that at its commencement Gloucester
+ speaks with the utmost carelessness and <i>off-hand</i> wit about the
+ parentage of his natural son Edmund, but finds at last that this son is
+ his ruin.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Edgar, the true son, says to Edmund, after having righteously dealt him
+ his death-wound,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The gods are just, and of our pleasant vices
+ Make instruments to scourge us:
+ The dark and vicious place where thee he got
+ Cost him his eyes.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ To which the dying and convicted villain replies,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Thou hast spoken right; &lsquo;tis true:
+ The wheel is come full circle; I am here.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Could anything be put more plainly than the moral lesson in this?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It would be easy to produce examples of fine design from his comedies as
+ well; as for instance, from &ldquo;Much Ado about Nothing:&rdquo; the two who are made
+ to fall in love with each other, by being each severally assured of
+ possessing the love of the other, Beatrice and Benedick, are shown
+ beforehand to have a strong inclination towards each other, manifested in
+ their continual squabbling after a good-humoured fashion; but not all this
+ is sufficient to make them heartily in love, until they find out the
+ nobility of each other&rsquo;s character in their behaviour about the
+ calumniated Hero; and the author takes care they shall not be married
+ without a previous acquaintance with the trick that has been played upon
+ them. Indeed we think the remark, that Shakspere never leaves any of his
+ characters the same at the end of a play as he took them up at the
+ beginning, will be found to be true. They are better or worse, wiser or
+ more irretrievably foolish. The historical plays would illustrate the
+ remark as well as any.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But of all the terrible plays we are inclined to think &ldquo;Timon&rdquo; the most
+ terrible, and to doubt whether justice has been done to the finish and
+ completeness of it. At the same time we are inclined to think that it was
+ printed (first in the first folio, 1623, seven years after Shakspere&rsquo;s
+ death) from a copy, corrected by the author, but not <i>written fair</i>,
+ and containing consequent mistakes. The same account might belong to
+ others of the plays, but more evidently perhaps belongs to the &ldquo;Timon.&rdquo;
+ The idea of making the generous spendthrift, whose old idolaters had
+ forsaken him because the idol had no more to give, into the high-priest of
+ the Temple of Mammon, dispensing the gold which he hated and despised,
+ that it might be a curse to the race which he had learned to hate and
+ despise as well; and the way in which Shakspere discloses the depths of
+ Timon&rsquo;s wound, by bringing him into comparison with one who hates men by
+ profession and humour&mdash;are as powerful as anything to be found even
+ in Shakspere.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We are very willing to believe that &ldquo;Julius Caesar&rdquo; was one of his latest
+ plays; for certainly it is the play in which he has represented a hero in
+ the high and true sense. <i>Brutus</i> is this hero, of course; a hero
+ because he will do what he sees to be right, independently of personal
+ feeling or personal advantage. Nor does his attempt fail from any
+ overweening or blindness, in himself. Had he known that the various papers
+ thrown in his way, were the concoctions of <i>Cassius</i>, he would not
+ have made the mistake of supposing that the Romans longed for freedom, and
+ therefore would be ready to defend it. As it was, he attempted to liberate
+ a people which did not feel its slavery. He failed for others, but not for
+ himself; for his truth was such that everybody was true to him. Unlike
+ Jaques with his seven acts of the burlesque of human life, Brutus says at
+ the last,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Countrymen,
+ My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life,
+ I found no man but he was true to me.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Of course all this is in Plutarch. But it is easy to see with what relish
+ Shakspere takes it up, setting forth all the aids in himself and in others
+ which Brutus had to being a hero, and thus making the representation as
+ credible as possible.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We must heartily confess that no amount of genius alone will make a man a
+ good man; that genius only shows the right way&mdash;drives no man to walk
+ in it. But there is surely some moral scent in us to let us know whether a
+ man only cares for good from an artistic point of view, or whether he
+ admires and loves good. This admiration and love cannot be <i>prominently</i>
+ set forth by any dramatist true to his art; but it must come out over the
+ whole. His predilections must show themselves in the scope of his artistic
+ life, in the things and subjects he chooses, and the way in which he
+ represents them. Notwithstanding Uncle Toby and Maria, who will venture to
+ say that Sterne was noble or virtuous, when he looks over the whole that
+ he has written? But in Shakspere there is no suspicion of a cloven foot.
+ Everywhere he is on the side of virtue and of truth. Many small arguments,
+ with great cumulative force, might be adduced to this effect.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For ourselves we cannot easily believe that the calmness of his art could
+ be so unvarying except he exercised it with a good conscience; that he
+ could have kept looking out upon the world around him with the untroubled
+ regard necessary for seeing all things as they are, except there had been
+ peace in his house at home; that he could have known all men as he did,
+ and failed to know himself. We can understand the co-existence of any
+ degree of partial or excited genius with evil ways, but we cannot
+ understand the existence of such calm and universal genius, wrought out in
+ his works, except in association with all that is noblest in human nature.
+ Nor is it other than on the side of the argument for his rectitude that he
+ never forces rectitude upon the attention of others. The strong impression
+ left upon our minds is, that however Shakspere may have strayed in the
+ early portion of his life in London, he was not only an upright and noble
+ man for the main part, but a repentant man, and a man whose life was
+ influenced by the truths of Christianity.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Much is now said about a memorial to Shakspere. The best and only true
+ memorial is no doubt that described in Milton&rsquo;s poem on this very subject:
+ the living and ever-changing monument of human admiration, expressed in
+ the faces and forms of those absorbed in the reading of his works. But if
+ the external monument might be such as to foster the constant reproduction
+ of the inward monument of love and admiration, then, indeed, it might be
+ well to raise one; and with this object in view let us venture to propose
+ one mode which we think would favour the attainment of it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let a Gothic hall of the fourteenth century be built; such a hall as would
+ be more in the imagination of Shakspere than any of the architecture of
+ his own time. Let all the copies that can be procured of every early
+ edition of his works, singly or collectively, be stored in this hall. Let
+ a copy of every other edition ever printed be procured and deposited. Let
+ every book or treatise that can be found, good, bad, or indifferent,
+ written about Shakspere or any of his works, be likewise collected for the
+ Shakspere library. Let a special place be allotted to the shameless
+ corruptions of his plays that have been produced as improvements upon
+ them, some of which, to the disgrace of England, still partially occupy
+ the stage instead of what Shakspere wrote. Let one department contain
+ every work of whatever sort that tends to direct elucidation of his
+ meaning, chiefly those of the dramatic writers who preceded him and
+ closely followed him. Let the windows be filled with stained glass,
+ representing the popular sports of his own time and the times of his
+ English histories. Let a small museum be attached, containing all
+ procurable antiquities that are referred to in his plays, along with first
+ editions, if possible, of the best books that came out in his time, and
+ were probably read by him. Let the whole thus as much as possible
+ represent his time. Let a marble statue in the midst do the best that
+ English art can accomplish for the representation of the vanished man; and
+ let copies, if not the originals, of the several portraits be safely
+ shrined for the occasional beholding of the multitude. Let the perpetuity
+ of care necessary for this monument be secured by endowment; and let it be
+ for the use of the public, by means of a reading-room fitted for the
+ comfort of all who choose to avail themselves of these facilities for a
+ true acquaintance with our greatest artist. Let there likewise be a simple
+ and moderately-sized theatre attached, not for regular, but occasional
+ use; to be employed for the representation of Shakspere&rsquo;s plays <i>only</i>,
+ and allowed free of expense for amateur or other representations of them
+ for charitable purposes. But within a certain cycle of years&mdash;if,
+ indeed, it would be too much to expect that out of the London play-goers a
+ sufficient number would be found to justify the representation of all the
+ plays of Shakspere once in the season&mdash;let the whole of Shakspere&rsquo;s
+ plays be acted in the best manner possible to the managers for the time
+ being.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The very existence of such a theatre would be a noble protest of the
+ highest kind against the sort of play, chiefly translated and adapted from
+ the French, which infests our boards, the low tone of which, even where it
+ is not decidedly immoral, does more harm than any amount of the rough,
+ honest plain-spokenness of Shakspere, as judged by our more fastidious, if
+ not always purer manners. The representation of such plays forms the real
+ ground of objection to theatre-going. We believe that other objections,
+ which may be equally urged against large assemblies of any sort, are not
+ really grounded upon such an amount of objectionable fact as good people
+ often suppose. At all events it is not against the drama itself, but its
+ concomitants, its avoidable concomitants, that such objections are, or
+ ought to be, felt and directed. The dramatic impulse, as well as all other
+ impulses of our nature, are from the Maker.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ A monument like this would help to change a blind enthusiasm and a <i>dilettante</i>-talk
+ into knowledge, reverence, and study; and surely this would be the true
+ way to honour the memory of the man who appeals to posterity by no mighty
+ deeds of worldly prowess, but has left behind him food for heart, brain,
+ and conscience, on which the generations will feed till the end of time.
+ It would be the one true and natural mode of perpetuating his fame in
+ kind; helping him to do more of that for which he was born, and because of
+ which we humbly desire to do him honour, as the years flow farther away
+ from the time when, at the age of fifty-two, he left the world a richer
+ legacy of the results of intellectual labour than any other labourer in
+ literature has ever done. It would be to raise a monument to his mind more
+ than to his person.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But to honour Shakspere in the best way we must not gaze upon some grand
+ memorial of his fame, we must not talk largely of his wonderful doings, we
+ must not even behold the representation of his works on the stage,
+ invaluable aid as that is to the right understanding of what he has
+ written; but we must, by close, silent, patient study, enter into an
+ understanding with the spirit of the departed poet-sage, and thus let his
+ own words be the necromantic spell that raises the dead, and brings us
+ into communion with that man who knew what was in men more than any other
+ mere man ever did. Well was it for Shakspere that he was humble; else on
+ what a desolate pinnacle of companionless solitude must he have stood!
+ Where was he to find his peers? To most thoughtful minds it is a terrible
+ fancy to suppose that there were no greater human being than themselves.
+ From the terror of such a <i>truth</i> Shakspere&rsquo;s love for men preserved
+ him. He did not think about himself so much as he thought about them. Had
+ he been a self-student alone, or chiefly, could he ever have written those
+ dramas? We close with the repetition of this truth: that the love of our
+ kind is the one key to the knowledge of humanity and of ourselves. And
+ have we not sacred authority for concluding that he who loves his brother
+ is the more able and the more likely to love Him who made him and his
+ brother also, and then told them that love is the fulfilling of the law?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0005" id="link2H_4_0005">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ THE ART OF SHAKSPERE, AS REVEALED BY HIMSELF.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1863.]
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ Who taught you this?
+ I learn&rsquo;d it out of women&rsquo;s faces.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ <i>Winter&rsquo;s Tale</i>, Act ii. scene 1.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One occasionally hears the remark, that the commentators upon Shakspere
+ find far more in Shakspere than Shakspere ever intended to express. Taking
+ this assertion as it stands, it may be freely granted, not only of
+ Shakspere, but of every writer of genius. But if it be intended by it,
+ that nothing can <i>exist</i> in any work of art beyond what the writer
+ was conscious of while in the act of producing it, so much of its scope is
+ false.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ No artist can have such a claim to the high title of <i>creator</i>, as
+ that he invents for himself the forms, by means of which he produces his
+ new result; and all the forms of man and nature which he modifies and
+ combines to make a new region in his world of art, have their own original
+ life and meaning. The laws likewise of their various combinations are
+ natural laws, harmonious with each other. While, therefore, the artist
+ employs many or few of their original aspects for his immediate purpose,
+ he does not and cannot thereby deprive them of the many more which are
+ essential to their vitality, and the vitality likewise of his presentation
+ of them, although they form only the background from which his peculiar
+ use of them stands out. The objects presented must therefore fall, to the
+ eye of the observant reader, into many different combinations and
+ harmonies of operation and result, which are indubitably there, whether
+ the writer saw them or not. These latent combinations and relations will
+ be numerous and true, in proportion to the scope and the truth of the
+ representation; and the greater the number of meanings, harmonious with
+ each other, which any work of art presents, the greater claim it has to be
+ considered a work of genius. It must, therefore, be granted, and that
+ joyfully, that there may be meanings in Shakspere&rsquo;s writings which
+ Shakspere himself did not see, and to which therefore his art, as art,
+ does not point.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the probability, notwithstanding, must surely be allowed as well,
+ that, in great artists, the amount of conscious art will bear some
+ proportion to the amount of unconscious truth: the visible volcanic light
+ will bear a true relation to the hidden fire of the globe; so that it will
+ not seem likely that, in such a writer as Shakspere, we should find many
+ indications of present and operative <i>art</i>, of which he was himself
+ unaware. Some truths may be revealed through him, which he himself knew
+ only potentially; but it is not likely that marks of work, bearing upon
+ the results of the play, should be fortuitous, or that the work thus
+ indicated should be unconscious work. A stroke of the mallet may be more
+ effective than the sculptor had hoped; but it was intended. In the drama
+ it is easier to discover individual marks of the chisel, than in the
+ marble whence all signs of such are removed: in the drama the lines
+ themselves fall into the general finish, without necessary obliteration as
+ lines: Still, the reader cannot help being fearful, lest, not as regards
+ truth only, but as regards art as well, he be sometimes clothing the idol
+ of his intellect with the weavings of his fancy. My conviction is, that it
+ is the very consummateness of Shakspere&rsquo;s art, that exposes his work to
+ the doubt that springs from loving anxiety for his honour; the dramatist,
+ like the sculptor, avoiding every avoidable hint of the process, in order
+ to render the result a vital whole. But, fortunately, we are not left to
+ argue entirely from probabilities. He has himself given us a peep into his
+ studio&mdash;let me call it <i>workshop</i>, as more comprehensive.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It is not, of course, in the shape of <i>literary</i> criticism, that we
+ should expect to meet such a revelation; for to use art even consciously,
+ and to regard it as an object of contemplation, or to theorize about it,
+ are two very different mental operations. The productive and critical
+ faculties are rarely found in equal combination; and even where they are,
+ they cannot operate equally in regard to the same object. There is a
+ perfect satisfaction in producing, which does not demand a re-presentation
+ to the critical faculty. In other words, the criticism which a great
+ writer brings to bear upon his own work, is from within, regarding it upon
+ the hidden side, namely, in relation to his own idea; whereas criticism,
+ commonly understood, has reference to the side turned to the public gaze.
+ Neither could we expect one so prolific as Shakspere to find time for the
+ criticism of the works of other men, except in such moments of relaxation
+ as those in which the friends at the Mermaid Tavern sat silent beneath the
+ flow of his wisdom and humour, or made the street ring with the overflow
+ of their own enjoyment.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But if the artist proceed to speculate upon the nature or productions of
+ another art than his own, we may then expect the principles upon which he
+ operates in his own, to take outward and visible form&mdash;a form
+ modified by the difference of the art to which he now applies them. In one
+ of Shakspere&rsquo;s poems, we have the description of an imagined production of
+ a sister-art&mdash;that of Painting&mdash;a description so brilliant that
+ the light reflected from the poet-picture illumines the art of the Poet
+ himself, revealing the principles which he held with regard to
+ representative art generally, and suggesting many thoughts with regard to
+ detail and harmony, finish, pregnancy, and scope. This description is
+ found in &ldquo;The Rape of Lucrece.&rdquo; Apology will hardly be necessary for
+ making a long quotation, seeing that, besides the convenience it will
+ afford of easy reference to the ground of my argument, one of the greatest
+ helps which even the artist can give to us, is to isolate peculiar
+ beauties, and so compel us to perceive them.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Lucrece has sent a messenger to beg the immediate presence of her husband.
+ Awaiting his return, and worn out with weeping, she looks about for some
+ variation of her misery.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ 1.
+
+ At last she calls to mind where hangs a piece
+ Of skilful painting, made for Priam&rsquo;s Troy;
+ Before the which is drawn the power of Greece,
+ For Helen&rsquo;s rape the city to destroy,
+ Threatening cloud-kissing Ilion with annoy;
+ Which the conceited painter drew so proud,
+ As heaven, it seemed, to kiss the turrets, bowed.
+
+ 2.
+
+ A thousand lamentable objects there,
+ In scorn of Nature, Art gave lifeless life:
+ Many a dry drop seemed a weeping tear,
+ Shed for the slaughtered husband by the wife;
+ The red blood reeked, to show the painter&rsquo;s strife.
+ And dying eyes gleamed forth their ashy lights,
+ Like dying coals burnt out in tedious nights.
+
+ 3.
+
+ There might you see the labouring pioneer
+ Begrimed with sweat, and smeared all with dust;
+ And, from the towers of Troy there would appear
+ The very eyes of men through loopholes thrust,
+ Gazing upon the Greeks with little lust:
+ Such sweet observance in this work was had,
+ That one might see those far-off eyes look sad.
+
+ 4.
+
+ In great commanders, grace and majesty
+ You might behold, triumphing in their faces;
+ In youth, quick bearing and dexterity;
+ And here and there the painter interlaces
+ Pale cowards, marching on with trembling paces,
+ Which heartless peasants did so well resemble,
+ That one would swear he saw them quake and tremble.
+
+ 5.
+
+ In Ajax and Ulysses, O what art
+ Of physiognomy might one behold!
+ The face of either ciphered either&rsquo;s heart;
+ Their face their manners most expressly told:
+ In Ajax&rsquo; eyes blunt rage and rigour rolled;
+ But the mild glance that sly Ulysses lent
+ Showed deep regard, and smiling government.
+
+ 6.
+
+ There pleading might you see grave Nestor stand,
+ As &lsquo;twere encouraging the Greeks to fight;
+ Making such sober action with his hand,
+ That it beguiled attention, charmed the sight;
+ In speech, it seemed his beard, all silver-white,
+ Wagged up and down, and from his lips did fly
+ Thin winding breath, which purled up to the sky.
+
+ 7.
+
+ About him were a press of gaping faces,
+ Which seemed to swallow up his sound advice;
+ All jointly listening, but with several graces,
+ As if some mermaid did their ears entice;
+ Some high, some low, the painter was so nice.
+ The scalps of many, almost hid behind,
+ To jump up higher seemed, to mock the mind.
+
+ 8.
+
+ Here one man&rsquo;s hand leaned on another&rsquo;s head,
+ His nose being shadowed by his neighbour&rsquo;s ear;
+ Here one, being thronged, bears back, all bollen and red;
+ Another, smothered, seems to pelt and swear;
+ And in their rage such signs of rage they bear,
+ As, but for loss of Nestor&rsquo;s golden words,
+ It seemed they would debate with angry swords.
+
+ 9.
+
+ For much imaginary work was there;
+ Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind,
+ That for Achilles&rsquo; image stood his spear,
+ Griped in an armed hand; himself behind
+ Was left unseen, save to the eye of mind:
+ A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head,
+ Stood for the whole to be imagined.
+
+ 10.
+
+ And, from the walls of strong-besieged Troy,
+ When their brave hope, bold Hector, marched to field,
+ Stood many Trojan mothers, sharing joy
+ To see their youthful sons bright weapons wield,
+ And to their hope they such odd action yield;
+ That through their light joy seemed to appear,
+ Like bright things stained, a kind of heavy fear.
+
+ 11.
+
+ And from the strond of Dardan, where they fought,
+ To Simois&rsquo; reedy banks, the red blood ran;
+ Whose waves to imitate the battle sought,
+ With swelling ridges; and their ranks began
+ To break upon the galled shore, and then
+ Retire again, till, meeting greater ranks,
+ They join, and shoot their foam at Simois&rsquo; banks.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The oftener I read these verses, amongst the very earliest compositions of
+ Shakspere, I am the more impressed with the carefulness with which he
+ represents the <i>work</i> of the picture&mdash;&ldquo;shows the strife of the
+ painter.&rdquo; The most natural thought to follow in sequence is: How like his
+ own art!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The scope and variety of the whole picture, in which mass is effected by
+ the accumulation of individuality; in which, on the one hand, Troy stands
+ as the impersonation of the aim and object of the whole; and on the other,
+ the Simois flows in foaming rivalry of the strife of men,&mdash;the
+ pictorial form of that sympathy of nature with human effort and passion,
+ which he so often introduces in his plays,&mdash;is like nothing else so
+ much as one of the works of his own art. But to take a portion as a more
+ condensed representation of his art in combining all varieties into one
+ harmonious whole: his genius is like the oratory of Nestor as described by
+ its effects in the seventh and eighth stanzas. Every variety of attitude
+ and countenance and action is harmonized by the influence which is at once
+ the occasion of debate, and the charm which restrains by the fear of its
+ own loss: the eloquence and the listening form the one bond of the unruly
+ mass. So the dramatic genius that harmonizes his play, is visible only in
+ its effects; so ethereal in its own essence that it refuses to be
+ submitted to the analysis of the ruder intellect, it is like the words of
+ Nestor, for which in the picture there stands but &ldquo;thin winding breath
+ which purled up to the sky.&rdquo; Take, for an instance of this, the
+ reconciling power by which, in the mysterious midnight of the summer-wood,
+ he brings together in one harmony the graceful passions of childish elves,
+ and the fierce passions of men and women, with the ludicrous reflection of
+ those passions in the little convex mirror of the artisan&rsquo;s drama; while
+ the mischievous Puck revels in things that fall out preposterously, and
+ the Elf-Queen is in love with ass-headed Bottom, from the hollows of whose
+ long hairy ears&mdash;strange bouquet-holders&mdash;bloom and breathe the
+ musk-roses, the characteristic odour-founts of the play; and the
+ philosophy of the unbelieving Theseus, with the candour of Hippolyta,
+ lifts the whole into relation with the realities of human life. Or take,
+ as another instance, the pretended madman Edgar, the court-fool, and the
+ rugged old king going grandly mad, sheltered in one hut, and lapped in the
+ roar of a thunderstorm.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ My object, then, in respect to this poem, is to produce, from many
+ instances, a few examples of the metamorphosis of such excellences as he
+ describes in the picture, into the corresponding forms of the drama; in
+ the hope that it will not then be necessary to urge the probability that
+ the presence of those artistic virtues in his own practice, upon which he
+ expatiates in his representation of another man&rsquo;s art, were accompanied by
+ the corresponding consciousness&mdash;that, namely, of the artist as
+ differing from that of the critic, its objects being regarded from the
+ concave side of the hammered relief. If this probability be granted, I
+ would, from it, advance to a higher and far more important conclusion&mdash;how
+ unlikely it is that if the writer was conscious of such fitnesses, he
+ should be unconscious of those grand embodiments of truth, which are
+ indubitably present in his plays, whether he knew it or not. This portion
+ of my argument will be strengthened by an instance to show that Shakspere
+ was himself quite at home in the contemplation of such truths.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let me adduce, then, some of those corresponding embodiments in words
+ instead of in forms; in which colours yield to tones, lines to phrases. I
+ will begin with the lowest kind, in which the art has to do with matters
+ so small, that it is difficult to believe that <i>unconscious</i> art
+ could have any relation to them. They can hardly have proceeded directly
+ from the great inspiration of the whole. Their very minuteness is an
+ argument for their presence to the poet&rsquo;s consciousness; while belonging,
+ as they do, only to the <i>construction</i> of the play, no such
+ independent existence can be accorded to them, as to <i>truths</i>, which,
+ being in themselves realities, <i>are</i> there, whether Shakspere saw
+ them or not. If he did not intend them, the most that can be said for them
+ is, that such is the naturalness of Shakspere&rsquo;s representations, that
+ there is room in his plays, as in life, for those wonderful coincidences
+ which are reducible to no law.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Perhaps every one of the examples I adduce will be found open to dispute.
+ This is a kind in which direct proof can have no share; nor should I have
+ dared thus to combine them in argument, but for the ninth stanza of those
+ quoted above, to which I beg my readers to revert. Its <i>imaginary work</i>
+ means&mdash;work hinted at, and then left to the imagination of the
+ reader. Of course, in dramatic representation, such work must exist on a
+ great scale; but the minute particularization of the &ldquo;conceit deceitful&rdquo;
+ in the rest of the stanza, will surely justify us in thinking it possible
+ that Shakspere intended many, if not all, of the <i>little</i> fitnesses
+ which a careful reader discovers in his plays. That such are not oftener
+ discovered comes from this: that, like life itself, he so blends into
+ vital beauty, that there are no salient points. To use a homely simile: he
+ is not like the barn-door fowl, that always runs out cackling when she has
+ laid an egg; and often when she has not. In the tone of an ordinary drama,
+ you may know when something is coming; and the tone itself declares&mdash;<i>I
+ have done it</i>. But Shakspere will not spoil his art to show his art. It
+ is there, and does its part: that is enough. If you can discover it, good
+ and well; if not, pass on, and take what you can find. He can afford not
+ to be fathomed for every little pearl that lies at the bottom of his
+ ocean. If I succeed in showing that such art may exist where it is not
+ readily discovered, this may give some additional probability to its
+ existence in places where it is harder to isolate and define.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To produce a few instances, then:
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Much Ado about Nothing,&rdquo; seeing the very nature of the play is
+ expressed in its name, is it not likely that Shakspere named the two
+ constables, Dogberry (<i>a poisonous berry</i>) and Verjuice (<i>the juice
+ of crab-apples</i>); those names having absolutely nothing to do with the
+ stupid innocuousness of their characters, and so corresponding to their
+ way of turning things upside down, and saying the very opposite of what
+ they mean?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the same play we find Margaret objecting to her mistress&rsquo;s wearing a
+ certain rebato (<i>a large plaited ruff</i>), on the morning of her
+ wedding: may not this be intended to relate to the fact that Margaret had
+ dressed in her mistress&rsquo;s clothes the night before? She might have rumpled
+ or soiled it, and so feared discovery.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;King Henry IV.,&rdquo; Part I., we find, in the last scene, that the Prince
+ kills Hotspur. This is not recorded in history: the conqueror of Percy is
+ unknown. Had it been a fact, history would certainly have recorded it; and
+ the silence of history in regard to a deed of such mark, is equivalent to
+ its contradiction. But Shakspere requires, for his play&rsquo;s sake, to
+ identify the slayer of Hotspur with his rival the Prince. Yet Shakspere
+ will not contradict history, even in its silence. What is he to do? He
+ will account for history <i>not knowing</i> the fact.&mdash;Falstaff
+ claiming the honour, the Prince says to him:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;For my part, if a lie may do thee grace,
+ I&rsquo;ll gild it with the happiest terms I have;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ revealing thus the magnificence of his own character, in his readiness,
+ for the sake of his friend, to part with his chief renown. But the
+ Historic Muse could not believe that fat Jack Falstaff had killed Hotspur,
+ and therefore she would not record the claim.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the second part of the same play, act i. scene 2, we find Falstaff
+ toweringly indignant with Mr. Dombledon, the silk mercer, that he will
+ stand upon security with a gentleman for a short cloak and slops of satin.
+ In the first scene of the second act, the hostess mentions that Sir John
+ is going to dine with Master Smooth, the silkman. Foiled with Mr.
+ Dombledon, he has already made himself so agreeable to Master Smooth, that
+ he is &ldquo;indited to dinner&rdquo; with him. This is, by the bye, as to the action
+ of the play; but as to the character of Sir John, is it not
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind&rdquo;&mdash;<i>kinned&mdash;natural</i>?
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The <i>conceit deceitful</i> in the painting, is the imagination that
+ means more than its says. So the words of the speakers in the play, stand
+ for more than the speakers mean. They are <i>Shakspere&rsquo;s</i> in their
+ relation to his whole. To Achilles, his spear is but his spear: to the
+ painter and his company, the spear of Achilles stands for Achilles
+ himself.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Coleridge remarks upon <i>James Gurney</i>, in &ldquo;King John:&rdquo; &ldquo;How
+ individual and comical he is with the four words allowed to his dramatic
+ life!&rdquo; These words are those with which he answers the Bastard&rsquo;s request
+ to leave the room. He has been lingering with all the inquisitiveness and
+ privilege of an old servant; when Faulconbridge says: &ldquo;James Gurney, wilt
+ thou give us leave a while?&rdquo; with strained politeness. With marked
+ condescension to the request of the second son, whom he has known and
+ served from infancy, James Gurney replies: &ldquo;Good leave, good Philip;&rdquo;
+ giving occasion to Faulconbridge to show his ambition, and scorn of his
+ present standing, in the contempt with which he treats even the Christian
+ name he is so soon to exchange with his surname for <i>Sir Richard</i> and
+ <i>Plantagenet; Philip</i> being the name for a sparrow in those days,
+ when ladies made pets of them. Surely in these words of the serving-man,
+ we have an outcome of the same art by which
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head,
+ Stood for the whole to be imagined.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In the &ldquo;Winter&rsquo;s Tale,&rdquo; act iv. scene 3, Perdita, dressed with unwonted
+ gaiety at the festival of the sheep-shearing, is astonished at finding
+ herself talking in full strains of poetic verse. She says, half-ashamed:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Methinks I play as I have seen them do
+ In Whitsun pastorals: sure, this robe of mine
+ Does change my disposition!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ She does not mean this seriously. But the robe has more to do with it than
+ she thinks. Her passion for Florizel is the warmth that sets the springs
+ of her thoughts free, and they flow with the grace belonging to a
+ princess-nature; but it is the robe that opens the door of her speech,
+ and, by elevating her consciousness of herself, betrays her into what is
+ only natural to her, but seems to her, on reflection, inconsistent with
+ her low birth and poor education. This instance, however, involves far
+ higher elements than any of the examples I have given before, and
+ naturally leads to a much more important class of illustrations.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Macbeth,&rdquo; act ii. scene 4, why is the old man, who has nothing to do
+ with the conduct of the play, introduced?&mdash;That, in conversation with
+ Rosse, he may, as an old man, bear testimony to the exceptionally terrific
+ nature of that storm, which, we find&mdash;from the words of Banquo:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;There&rsquo;s husbandry in heaven:
+ Their candles are all out,&rdquo;&mdash;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ had begun to gather, before supper was over in the castle. This storm is
+ the sympathetic horror of Nature at the breaking open of the Lord&rsquo;s
+ anointed temple&mdash;horror in which the animal creation partakes, for
+ the horses of Duncan, &ldquo;the minions of their race,&rdquo; and therefore the most
+ sensitive of their sensitive race, tear each other to pieces in the
+ wildness of their horror. Consider along with this a foregoing portion of
+ the second scene in the same act. Macbeth, having joined his wife after
+ the murder, says:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Who lies i&rsquo; the second chamber?
+
+ &ldquo;<i>Lady M.</i> Donalbain.
+</pre>
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve"> </pre>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;There are two lodged together.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ These two, Macbeth says, woke each other&mdash;the one laughing, the other
+ crying <i>murder</i>. Then they said their prayers and went to sleep
+ again.&mdash;I used to think that the natural companion of Donalbain would
+ be Malcolm, his brother; and that the two brothers woke in horror from the
+ proximity of their father&rsquo;s murderer who was just passing the door. A
+ friend objected to this, that, had they been together, Malcolm, being the
+ elder, would have been mentioned rather than Donalbain. Accept this
+ objection, and we find a yet more delicate significance: the <i>presence</i>
+ operated differently on the two, one bursting out in a laugh, the other
+ crying <i>murder</i>; but both were in terror when they awoke, and dared
+ not sleep till they had said their prayers. His sons, his horses, the
+ elements themselves, are shaken by one unconscious sympathy with the
+ murdered king.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Associate with this the end of the third scene of the fourth act of
+ &ldquo;Julius Caesar;&rdquo; where we find that the attendants of Brutus all cry out
+ in their sleep, as the ghost of Caesar leaves their master&rsquo;s tent. This
+ outcry is not given in Plutarch.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To return to &ldquo;Macbeth:&rdquo; Why is the doctor of medicine introduced in the
+ scene at the English court? He has nothing to do with the progress of the
+ play itself, any more than the old man already alluded to.&mdash;He is
+ introduced for a precisely similar reason.&mdash;As a doctor, he is the
+ best testimony that could be adduced to the fact, that the English King
+ Edward the Confessor, is a fountain of health to his people, gifted for
+ his goodness with the sacred privilege of curing <i>The King&rsquo;s Evil</i>,
+ by the touch of his holy hands. The English King himself is thus
+ introduced, for the sake of contrast with the Scotch King, who is a raging
+ bear amongst his subjects.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the &ldquo;Winter&rsquo;s Tale,&rdquo; to which he gives the name because of the
+ altogether extraordinary character of the occurrences (referring to it in
+ the play itself, in the words: &ldquo;<i>a sad tale&rsquo;s best for winter: I have
+ one of sprites and goblins</i>&rdquo;) Antigonus has a remarkable dream or
+ vision, in which Hermione appears to him, and commands the exposure of her
+ child in a place to all appearance the most unsuitable and dangerous.
+ Convinced of the reality of the vision, Antigonus obeys; and the whole
+ marvellous result depends upon this obedience. Therefore the vision must
+ be intended for a genuine one. But how could it be such, if Hermione was
+ not dead, as, from her appearance to him, Antigonus firmly believed she
+ was? I should feel this to be an objection to the art of the play, but for
+ the following answer:&mdash;At the time she appeared to him, she was still
+ lying in that deathlike swoon, into which she fell when the news of the
+ loss of her son reached her as she stood before the judgment-seat of her
+ husband, at a time when she ought not to have been out of her chamber.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Note likewise, in the first scene of the second act of the same play, the
+ changefulness of Hermione&rsquo;s mood with regard to her boy, as indicative of
+ her condition at the time. If we do not regard this fact, we shall think
+ the words introduced only for the sake of filling up the business of the
+ play.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Twelfth Night,&rdquo; both ladies make the first advances in love. Is it not
+ worthy of notice that one of them has lost her brother, and that the other
+ believes she has lost hers? In this respect, they may be placed with
+ Phoebe, in &ldquo;As You Like It,&rdquo; who, having suddenly lost her love by the
+ discovery that its object was a woman, immediately and heartily accepts
+ the devotion of her rejected lover, Silvius. Along with these may be
+ classed Romeo, who, rejected and, as he believes, inconsolable, falls in
+ love with Juliet the moment he sees her. That his love for Rosaline,
+ however, was but a kind of <i>calf-love</i> compared with his love for
+ Juliet, may be found indicated in the differing tones of his speech under
+ the differing conditions. Compare what he says in his conversation with
+ Benvolio, in the first scene of the first act, with any of his many
+ speeches afterwards, and, while <i>conceit</i> will be found prominent
+ enough in both, the one will be found to be ruled by the fancy, the other
+ by the imagination.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In this same play, there is another similar point which I should like to
+ notice. In Arthur Brook&rsquo;s story, from which Shakspere took his, there is
+ no mention of any communication from Lady Capulet to Juliet of their
+ intention of marrying her to Count Paris. Why does Shakspere insert this?&mdash;to
+ explain her falling in love with Romeo so suddenly. Her mother has set her
+ mind moving in that direction. She has never seen Paris. She is looking
+ about her, wondering which may be he, and whether she shall be able to
+ like him, when she meets the love-filled eyes of Romeo fixed upon her, and
+ is at once overcome. What a significant speech is that given to Paulina in
+ the &ldquo;Winter&rsquo;s Tale,&rdquo; act v. scene 1: &ldquo;How? Not women?&rdquo; Paulina is a
+ thorough partisan, siding with women against men, and strengthened in this
+ by the treatment her mistress has received from her husband. One has just
+ said to her, that, if Perdita would begin a sect, she might &ldquo;make
+ proselytes of who she bid but follow.&rdquo; &ldquo;How? Not women?&rdquo; Paulina rejoins.
+ Having received assurance that &ldquo;women will love her,&rdquo; she has no more to
+ say.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I had the following explanation of a line in &ldquo;Twelfth Night&rdquo; from a
+ stranger I met in an old book-shop:&mdash;Malvolio, having built his
+ castle in the air, proceeds to inhabit it. Describing his own behaviour in
+ a supposed case, he says (act ii. scene 5): &ldquo;I frown the while; and
+ perchance, wind up my watch, or play with my some rich jewel&rdquo;&mdash;A dash
+ ought to come after <i>my</i>. Malvolio was about to say <i>chain</i>; but
+ remembering that his chain was the badge of his office of steward, and
+ therefore of his servitude, he alters the word to &ldquo;<i>some rich jewel</i>&rdquo;
+ uttered with pretended carelessness.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Hamlet,&rdquo; act iii. scene 1, did not Shakspere intend the passionate
+ soliloquy of Ophelia&mdash;a soliloquy which no maiden knowing that she
+ was overheard would have uttered,&mdash;coupled with the words of her
+ father:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;How now, Ophelia?
+ You need not tell us what lord Hamlet said,
+ We heard it all;&rdquo;&mdash;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ to indicate that, weak as Ophelia was, she was not false enough to be
+ accomplice in any plot for betraying Hamlet to her father and the King?
+ They had remained behind the arras, and had not gone out as she must have
+ supposed.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Next, let me request my reader to refer once more to the poem; and having
+ considered the physiognomy of Ajax and Ulysses, as described in the fifth
+ stanza, to turn then to the play of &ldquo;Troilus and Cressida,&rdquo; and there
+ contemplate that description as metamorphosed into the higher form of
+ revelation in speech. Then, if he will associate the general principles in
+ that stanza with the third, especially the last two lines, I will apply
+ this to the character of Lady Macbeth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Of course, Shakspere does not mean that one regarding that portion of the
+ picture alone, could see the eyes looking sad; but that the <i>sweet
+ observance</i> of the whole so roused the imagination that it supplied
+ what distance had concealed, keeping the far-off likewise in sweet
+ observance with the whole: the rest pointed that way.&mdash;In a manner
+ something like this are we conducted to a right understanding of the
+ character of Lady Macbeth. First put together these her utterances:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;You do unbend your noble strength, to think
+ So brainsickly of things.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;Get some water,
+ And wash this filthy witness from your hands.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;The sleeping and the dead
+ Are but as pictures.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;A little water clears us of this deed.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;When all&rsquo;s done,
+ You look but on a stool.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;You lack the season of all natures, sleep.&rdquo;&mdash;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Had these passages stood in the play unmodified by others, we might have
+ judged from them that Shakspere intended to represent Lady Macbeth as an
+ utter materialist, believing in nothing beyond the immediate
+ communications of the senses. But when we find them associated with such
+ passages as these&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Memory, the warder of the brain,
+ Shall be a fume, and the receipt of reason
+ A limbeck only;&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;Had he not resembled
+ My father as he slept, I had done&rsquo;t;
+
+ &ldquo;These deeds must not be thought
+ After these ways; so, it will make us mad;&rdquo;&mdash;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ then we find that our former theory will not do, for here are deeper and
+ broader foundations to build upon. We discover that Lady Macbeth was an
+ unbeliever <i>morally</i>, and so found it necessary to keep down all
+ imagination, which is the upheaving of that inward world whose very being
+ she would have annihilated. Yet out of this world arose at last the
+ phantom of her slain self, and possessing her sleeping frame, sent it out
+ to wander in the night, and rub its distressed and blood-stained hands in
+ vain. For, as in this same &ldquo;Rape of Lucrece,&rdquo;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;the soul&rsquo;s fair temple is defaced;
+ To whose weak ruins muster troops of cares,
+ To ask the spotted princess how she fares.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But when so many lines of delineation meet, and run into, and correct one
+ another, assuming such a natural and vital form, that there is no <i>making
+ of a point</i> anywhere; and the woman is shown after no theory, but
+ according to the natural laws of human declension, we feel that the only
+ way to account for the perfection of the representation is to say that,
+ given a shadow, Shakspere had the power to place himself so, that that
+ shadow became his own&mdash;was the correct representation as shadow, of
+ his form coming between it and the sunlight. And this is the highest
+ dramatic gift that a man can possess. But we feel at the same time, that
+ this is, in the main, not so much art as inspiration. There would be, in
+ all probability, a great mingling of conscious art with the inspiration;
+ but the lines of the former being lost in the general glow of the latter,
+ we may be left where we were as to any certainty about the artistic
+ consciousness of Shakspere. I will now therefore attempt to give a few
+ plainer instances of such <i>sweet observance</i> in his own work as he
+ would have admired in a painting.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ First, then, I would request my reader to think how comparatively seldom
+ Shakspere uses poetry in his plays. The whole play is a poem in the
+ highest sense; but truth forbids him to make it the rule for his
+ characters to speak poetically. Their speech is poetic in relation to the
+ whole and the end, not in relation to the speaker, or in the immediate
+ utterance. And even although their speech is immediately poetic, in this
+ sense, that every character is idealized; yet it is idealized <i>after its
+ kind</i>; and poetry certainly would not be the ideal speech of most of
+ the characters. This granted, let us look at the exceptions: we shall find
+ that such passages not only glow with poetic loveliness and fervour, but
+ are very jewels of <i>sweet observance</i>, whose setting allows them
+ their force as lawful, and their prominence as natural. I will mention a
+ few of such.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Julius Caesar,&rdquo; act i. scene 3, we are inclined to think the way <i>Casca</i>
+ speaks, quite inconsistent with the &ldquo;sour fashion&rdquo; which <i>Cassius</i>
+ very justly attributes to him; till we remember that he is speaking in the
+ midst of an almost supernatural thunder-storm: the hidden electricity of
+ the man&rsquo;s nature comes out in poetic forms and words, in response to the
+ wild outburst of the overcharged heavens and earth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Shakspere invariably makes the dying speak poetically, and generally
+ prophetically, recognizing the identity of the poetic and prophetic moods,
+ in their highest development, and the justice that gives them the same
+ name. Even <i>Sir John</i>, poor ruined gentleman, <i>babbles of green
+ fields</i>. Every one knows that the passage is disputed: I believe that
+ if this be not the restoration of the original reading, Shakspere himself
+ would justify it, and wish that he had so written it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <i>Romeo</i> and <i>Juliet</i> talk poetry as a matter of course.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;King John,&rdquo; act v. scenes 4 and 5, see how differently the dying <i>Melun</i>
+ and the living and victorious <i>Lewis</i> regard the same sunset:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ <i>Melun</i>.
+
+ . . . . . this night, whose black contagious breath
+ Already smokes about the burning crest
+ Of the old, feeble, and day-wearied sun.
+
+ <i>Lewis</i>.
+
+ The sun in heaven, methought, was loath to set;
+ But stayed, and made the western welkin blush,
+ When the English measured backward their own ground.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The exquisite duet between <i>Lorenzo</i> and <i>Jessica</i>, in the
+ opening of the fifth act of &ldquo;The Merchant of Venice,&rdquo; finds for its
+ subject the circumstances that produce the mood&mdash;the lovely night and
+ the crescent moon&mdash;which first make them talk poetry, then call for
+ music, and next speculate upon its nature.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us turn now to some instances of sweet observance in other kinds.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is observance, more true than sweet, in the character of <i>Jacques</i>,
+ in &ldquo;As You Like It:&rdquo; the fault-finder in age was the fault-doer in youth
+ and manhood. <i>Jacques</i> patronizing the fool, is one of the rarest
+ shows of self-ignorance.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the same play, when <i>Rosalind</i> hears that <i>Orlando</i> is in the
+ wood, she cries out, &ldquo;Alas the day! what shall I do with my doublet and
+ hose?&rdquo; And when <i>Orlando</i> asks her, &ldquo;Where dwell you, pretty youth?&rdquo;
+ she answers, tripping in her rôle, &ldquo;Here in the skirts of the forest, like
+ fringe upon a petticoat.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the second part of &ldquo;King Henry IV.,&rdquo; act iv. scene 3, <i>Falstaff</i>
+ says of <i>Prince John</i>: &ldquo;Good faith, this same young sober-blooded boy
+ doth not love me; nor a man cannot make him laugh;&mdash;but that&rsquo;s no
+ marvel: he drinks no wine.&rdquo; This is the <i>Prince John</i> who betrays the
+ insurgents afterwards by the falsest of quibbles, and gains his revenge
+ through their good faith.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;King Henry IV,&rdquo; act i. scene 2, <i>Poins</i> does not say <i>Falstaff</i>
+ is a coward like the other two; but only&mdash;&ldquo;If he fight longer than he
+ sees reason, I&rsquo;ll forswear arms.&rdquo; Associate this with <i>Falstaff&rsquo;s</i>
+ soliloquy about <i>honour</i> in the same play, act v. scene 1, and the
+ true character of his courage or cowardice&mdash;for it may bear either
+ name&mdash;comes out.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Is there not conscious art in representing the hospitable face of the
+ castle of <i>Macbeth</i>, bearing on it a homely welcome in the multitude
+ of the nests of <i>the temple-haunting martlet</i> (Psalm lxxxiv. 3), just
+ as <i>Lady Macbeth</i>, the fiend-soul of the house, steps from the door,
+ like the speech of the building, with her falsely smiled welcome? Is there
+ not <i>observance</i> in it?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the production of such instances might be endless, as the work of
+ Shakspere is infinite. I confine myself to two more, taken from &ldquo;The
+ Merchant of Venice.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Shakspere requires a character capable of the magnificent devotion of
+ friendship which the old story attributes to <i>Antonio</i>. He therefore
+ introduces us to a man sober even to sadness, thoughtful even to
+ melancholy. The first words of the play unveil this characteristic. He
+ holds &ldquo;the world but as the world,&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;A stage where every man must play a part,
+ And mine a sad one.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The cause of this sadness we are left to conjecture. <i>Antonio</i>
+ himself professes not to know. But such a disposition, even if it be not
+ occasioned by any definite event or object, will generally associate
+ itself with one; and when <i>Antonio</i> is accused of being in love, he
+ repels the accusation with only a sad &ldquo;Fie! fie!&rdquo; This, and his whole
+ character, seem to me to point to an old but ever cherished grief.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Into the original story upon which this play is founded, Shakspere has,
+ among other variations, introduced the story of <i>Jessica</i> and <i>Lorenzo</i>,
+ apparently altogether of his own invention. What was his object in doing
+ so? Surely there were characters and interests enough already!&mdash;It
+ seems to me that Shakspere doubted whether the Jew would have actually
+ proceeded to carry out his fell design against <i>Antonio</i>, upon the
+ original ground of his hatred, without the further incitement to revenge
+ afforded by another passion, second only to his love of gold&mdash;his
+ affection for his daughter; for in the Jew having reference to his own
+ property, it had risen to a passion. Shakspere therefore invents her, that
+ he may send a dog of a Christian to steal her, and, yet worse, to tempt
+ her to steal her father&rsquo;s stones and ducats. I suspect Shakspere sends the
+ old villain off the stage at the last with more of the pity of the
+ audience than any of the other dramatists of the time would have ventured
+ to rouse, had they been capable of doing so. I suspect he is the only
+ human Jew of the English drama up to that time.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I have now arrived at the last and most important stage of my argument. It
+ is this: If Shakspere was so well aware of the artistic relations of the
+ parts of his drama, is it likely that the grand meanings involved in the
+ whole were unperceived by him, and conveyed to us without any intention on
+ his part&mdash;had their origin only in the fact that he dealt with human
+ nature so truly, that his representations must involve whatever lessons
+ human life itself involves?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Is there no intention, for instance, in placing <i>Prospero</i>, who
+ forsook the duties of his dukedom for the study of magic, in a desert
+ island, with just three subjects; one, a monster below humanity; the
+ second, a creature etherealized beyond it; and the third a complete
+ embodiment of human perfection? Is it not that he may learn how to rule,
+ and, having learned, return, by the aid of his magic wisely directed, to
+ the home and duties from which exclusive devotion to that magic had driven
+ him?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Julius Caesar,&rdquo; the death of <i>Brutus</i>, while following as the
+ consequence of his murder of <i>Caesar</i>, is yet as much distinguished
+ in character from that death, as the character of <i>Brutus</i> is
+ different from that of <i>Caesar</i>. <i>Caesar&rsquo;s</i> last words were <i>Et
+ tu Brute? Brutus</i>, when resolved to lay violent hands on himself, takes
+ leave of his friends with these words:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Countrymen,
+ My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life,
+ I found no man, but he was true to me.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Here Shakspere did not invent. He found both speeches in Plutarch. But how
+ unerring his choice!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Is the final catastrophe in &ldquo;Hamlet&rdquo; such, because Shakspere could do no
+ better?&mdash;It is: he could do no better than the best. Where but in the
+ regions beyond could such questionings as <i>Hamlet&rsquo;s</i> be put to rest?
+ It would have been a fine thing indeed for the most nobly perplexed of
+ thinkers to be left&mdash;his love in the grave; the memory of his father
+ a torment, of his mother a blot; with innocent blood on his innocent
+ hands, and but half understood by his best friend&mdash;to ascend in
+ desolate dreariness the contemptible height of the degraded throne, and
+ shine the first in a drunken court!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Before bringing forward my last instance, I will direct the attention of
+ my readers to a passage, in another play, in which the lesson of the play
+ I am about to speak of, is <i>directly</i> taught: the first speech in the
+ second act of &ldquo;As You Like It,&rdquo; might be made a text for the exposition of
+ the whole play of &ldquo;King Lear.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The banished duke is seeking to bring his courtiers to regard their exile
+ as a part of their moral training. I am aware that I point the passage
+ differently, while I revert to the old text.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Are not these woods
+ More free from peril than the envious court?
+ Here feel we not the penalty of Adam&mdash;
+ The season&rsquo;s difference, as the icy fang,
+ And churlish chiding of the winter&rsquo;s wind?
+ Which, when it bites and blows upon my body,
+ Even till I shrink with cold, I smile and say&mdash;
+ This is no flattery; these are counsellors
+ That feelingly persuade me what I am.
+ Sweet are the uses of adversity.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The line <i>Here feel we not the penalty of Adam?</i> has given rise to
+ much perplexity. The expounders of Shakspere do not believe he can mean
+ that the uses of adversity are really sweet. But the duke sees that <i>the
+ penalty</i> of Adam is what makes the <i>woods more free from peril than
+ the envious court;</i> that this penalty is in fact the best blessing, for
+ it <i>feelingly persuades</i> man <i>what</i> he is; and to know what we
+ are, to have no false judgments of ourselves, he considers so sweet, that
+ to be thus taught, the <i>churlish chiding of the winter&rsquo;s wind</i> is
+ well endured.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now let us turn to <i>Lear</i>. We find in him an old man with a large
+ heart, hungry for love, and yet not knowing what love is; an old man as
+ ignorant as a child in all matters of high import; with a temper so
+ unsubdued, and therefore so unkingly, that he storms because his dinner is
+ not ready by the clock of his hunger; a child, in short, in everything but
+ his grey hairs and wrinkled face, but his failing, instead of growing,
+ strength. If a life end so, let the success of that life be otherwise what
+ it may, it is a wretched and unworthy end. But let <i>Lear</i> be blown by
+ the winds and beaten by the rains of heaven, till he pities &ldquo;poor naked
+ wretches;&rdquo; till he feels that he has &ldquo;ta&rsquo;en too little care of&rdquo; such; till
+ pomp no longer conceals from him what &ldquo;a poor, bare, forked animal&rdquo; he is;
+ and the old king has risen higher in the real social scale&mdash;the scale
+ of that country to which he is bound&mdash;far higher than he stood while
+ he still held his kingdom undivided to his thankless daughters. Then let
+ him learn at last that &ldquo;love is the only good in the world;&rdquo; let him find
+ his <i>Cordelia</i>, and plot with her how they will in their dungeon <i>singing
+ like birds i&rsquo; the cage</i>, and, dwelling in the secret place of peace,
+ look abroad on the world like <i>God&rsquo;s spies</i>; and then let the
+ generous great old heart swell till it breaks at last&mdash;not with rage
+ and hate and vengeance, but with love; and all is well: it is time the man
+ should go to overtake his daughter; henceforth to dwell with her in the
+ home of the true, the eternal, the unchangeable. All his suffering came
+ from his own fault; but from the suffering has sprung another crop, not of
+ evil but of good; the seeds of which had lain unfruitful in the soil, but
+ were brought within the blessed influences of the air of heaven by the
+ sharp tortures of the ploughshare of ill.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0006" id="link2H_4_0006">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ THE ELDER HAMLET.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1875]
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &lsquo;Tis bitter cold,
+ And I am sick at heart.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The ghost in &ldquo;Hamlet&rdquo; is as faithfully treated as any character in the
+ play. Next to Hamlet himself, he is to me the most interesting person of
+ the drama. The rumour of his appearance is wrapped in the larger rumour of
+ war. Loud preparations for uncertain attack fill the ears of &ldquo;the subject
+ of the land.&rdquo; The state is troubled. The new king has hardly compassed his
+ election before his marriage with his brother&rsquo;s widow swathes the court in
+ the dust-cloud of shame, which the merriment of its forced revelry can do
+ little to dispel. A feeling is in the moral air to which the words of
+ Francisco, the only words of significance he utters, give the key: &ldquo;&lsquo;Tis
+ bitter cold, and I am sick at heart.&rdquo; Into the frosty air, the pallid
+ moonlight, the drunken shouts of Claudius and his court, the bellowing of
+ the cannon from the rampart for the enlargement of the insane clamour that
+ it may beat the drum of its own disgrace at the portals of heaven, glides
+ the silent prisoner of hell, no longer a king of the day walking about his
+ halls, &ldquo;the observed of all observers,&rdquo; but a thrall of the night,
+ wandering between the bell and the cock, like a jailer on each side of
+ him. A poet tells the tale of the king who lost his garments and ceased to
+ be a king: here is the king who has lost his body, and in the eyes of his
+ court has ceased to be a man. Is the cold of the earth&rsquo;s night pleasant to
+ him after the purging fire? What crimes had the honest ghost committed in
+ his days of nature? He calls them foul crimes! Could such be his? Only who
+ can tell how a ghost, with his doubled experience, may think of this thing
+ or that? The ghost and the fire may between them distinctly recognize that
+ as a foul crime which the man and the court regarded as a weakness at
+ worst, and indeed in a king laudable.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Alas, poor ghost! Around the house he flits, shifting and shadowy, over
+ the ground he once paced in ringing armour&mdash;armed still, but his very
+ armour a shadow! It cannot keep out the arrow of the cock&rsquo;s cry, and the
+ heart that pierces is no shadow. Where now is the loaded axe with which,
+ in angry dispute, he smote the ice at his feet that cracked to the blow?
+ Where is the arm that heaved the axe? Wasting in the marble maw of the
+ sepulchre, and the arm he carries now&mdash;I know not what it can do, but
+ it cannot slay his murderer. For that he seeks his son&rsquo;s. Doubtless his
+ new ethereal form has its capacities and privileges. It can shift its garb
+ at will; can appear in mail or night-gown, unaided of armourer or tailor;
+ can pass through Hades-gates or chamber-door with equal ease; can work in
+ the ground like mole or pioneer, and let its voice be heard from the
+ cellarage. But there is one to whom it cannot appear, one whom the ghost
+ can see, but to whom he cannot show himself. She has built a doorless,
+ windowless wall between them, and sees the husband of her youth no more.
+ Outside her heart&mdash;that is the night in which he wanders, while the
+ palace-windows are flaring, and the low wind throbs to the wassail shouts:
+ within, his murderer sits by the wife of his bosom, and in the orchard the
+ spilt poison is yet gnawing at the roots of the daisies.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Twice has the ghost grown out of the night upon the eyes of the sentinels.
+ With solemn march, slow and stately, three times each night, has he walked
+ by them; they, jellied with fear, have uttered no challenge. They seek
+ Horatio, who the third night speaks to him as a scholar can. To the first
+ challenge he makes no answer, but stalks away; to the second,
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ It lifted up its head, and did address
+ Itself to motion, like as it would speak;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ but the gaoler cock calls him, and the kingly shape
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ started like a guilty thing
+ Upon a fearful summons;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ and then
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ shrunk in haste away,
+ And vanished from our sight.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Ah, that summons! at which majesty welks and shrivels, the king and
+ soldier starts and cowers, and, armour and all, withers from the air!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But why has he not spoken before? why not now ere the cock could claim
+ him? He cannot trust the men. His court has forsaken his memory&mdash;crowds
+ with as eager discontent about the mildewed ear as ever about his
+ wholesome brother, and how should he trust mere sentinels? There is but
+ one who will heed his tale. A word to any other would but defeat his
+ intent. Out of the multitude of courtiers and subjects, in all the land of
+ Denmark, there is but one whom he can trust&mdash;his student-son. Him he
+ has not yet found&mdash;the condition of a ghost involving strange
+ difficulties.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Or did the horror of the men at the sight of him wound and repel him? Does
+ the sense of regal dignity, not yet exhausted for all the fasting in
+ fires, unite with that of grievous humiliation to make him shun their
+ speech?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But Horatio&mdash;why does the ghost not answer him ere the time of the
+ cock is come? Does he fold the cloak of indignation around him because his
+ son&rsquo;s friend has addressed him as an intruder on the night, an usurper of
+ the form that is his own? The companions of the speaker take note that he
+ is offended and stalks away.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Much has the kingly ghost to endure in his attempt to re-open relations
+ with the world he has left: when he has overcome his wrath and returns,
+ that moment Horatio again insults him, calling him an illusion. But this
+ time he will bear it, and opens his mouth to speak. It is too late; the
+ cock is awake, and he must go. Then alas for the buried majesty of
+ Denmark! with upheaved halberts they strike at the shadow, and would stop
+ it if they might&mdash;usage so grossly unfitting that they are instantly
+ ashamed of it themselves, recognizing the offence in the majesty of the
+ offended. But he is already gone. The proud, angry king has found himself
+ but a thing of nothing to his body-guard&mdash;for he has lost the body
+ which was their guard. Still, not even yet has he learned how little it
+ lies in the power of an honest ghost to gain credit for himself or his
+ tale! His very privileges are against him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All this time his son is consuming his heart in the knowledge of a mother
+ capable of so soon and so utterly forgetting such a husband, and in pity
+ and sorrow for the dead father who has had such a wife. He is thirty years
+ of age, an obedient, honourable son&mdash;a man of thought, of faith, of
+ aspiration. Him now the ghost seeks, his heart burning like a coal with
+ the sense of unendurable wrong. He is seeking the one drop that can fall
+ cooling on that heart&mdash;the sympathy, the answering rage and grief of
+ his boy. But when at length he finds him, the generous, loving father has
+ to see that son tremble like an aspen-leaf in his doubtful presence. He
+ has exposed himself to the shame of eyes and the indignities of dullness,
+ that he may pour the pent torrent of his wrongs into his ears, but his
+ disfranchisement from the flesh tells against him even with his son: the
+ young Hamlet is doubtful of the identity of the apparition with his
+ father. After all the burning words of the phantom, the spirit he has seen
+ may yet be a devil; the devil has power to assume a pleasing shape, and is
+ perhaps taking advantage of his melancholy to damn him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Armed in the complete steel of a suit well known to the eyes of the
+ sentinels, visionary none the less, with useless truncheon in hand,
+ resuming the memory of old martial habits, but with quiet countenance,
+ more in sorrow than in anger, troubled&mdash;not now with the thought of
+ the hell-day to which he must sleepless return, but with that unceasing
+ ache at the heart, which ever, as often as he is released into the cooling
+ air of the upper world, draws him back to the region of his wrongs&mdash;where
+ having fallen asleep in his orchard, in sacred security and old custom,
+ suddenly, by cruel assault, he was flung into Hades, where horror upon
+ horror awaited him&mdash;worst horror of all, the knowledge of his wife!&mdash;armed
+ he comes, in shadowy armour but how real sorrow! Still it is not pity he
+ seeks from his son: he needs it not&mdash;he can endure. There is no
+ weakness in the ghost. It is but to the imperfect human sense that he is
+ shadowy. To himself he knows his doom his deliverance; that the hell in
+ which he finds himself shall endure but until it has burnt up the hell he
+ has found within him&mdash;until the evil he was and is capable of shall
+ have dropped from him into the lake of fire; he nerves himself to bear.
+ And the cry of revenge that comes from the sorrowful lips is the cry of a
+ king and a Dane rather than of a wronged man. It is for public justice and
+ not individual vengeance he calls. He cannot endure that the royal bed of
+ Denmark should be a couch for luxury and damned incest. To stay this he
+ would bring the murderer to justice. There is a worse wrong, for which he
+ seeks no revenge: it involves his wife; and there comes in love, and love
+ knows no amends but amendment, seeks only the repentance tenfold more
+ needful to the wronger than the wronged. It is not alone the father&rsquo;s care
+ for the human nature of his son that warns him to take no measures against
+ his mother; it is the husband&rsquo;s tenderness also for her who once lay in
+ his bosom. The murdered brother, the dethroned king, the dishonoured
+ husband, the tormented sinner, is yet a gentle ghost. Has suffering
+ already begun to make him, like Prometheus, wise?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But to measure the gentleness, the forgiveness, the tenderness of the
+ ghost, we must well understand his wrongs. The murder is plain; but there
+ is that which went before and is worse, yet is not so plain to every eye
+ that reads the story. There is that without which the murder had never
+ been, and which, therefore, is a cause of all the wrong. For listen to
+ what the ghost reveals when at length he has withdrawn his son that he may
+ speak with him alone, and Hamlet has forestalled the disclosure of the
+ murderer:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Ay, that incestuous, that adulterate beast,
+ With witchcraft of his wit, with traitorous gifts,
+ (O wicked wit and gifts that have the power
+ So to seduce!) won to his shameful lust
+ The will of my most seeming virtuous queen:
+ Oh, Hamlet, what a falling off was there!
+ From me, whose love was of that dignity
+ That it went hand in hand even with the vow
+ I made to her in marriage, and to decline
+ Upon a wretch, whose natural gifts were poor
+ To those of mine!
+ But virtue&mdash;as it never will be moved
+ Though lewdness court it in a shape of heaven,
+ So lust, though to a radiant angel linked,
+ Will sate itself in a celestial bed,
+ And prey on garbage.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Reading this passage, can any one doubt that the ghost charges his late
+ wife with adultery, as the root of all his woes? It is true that, obedient
+ to the ghost&rsquo;s injunctions, as well as his own filial instincts, Hamlet
+ accuses his mother of no more than was patent to all the world; but unless
+ we suppose the ghost misinformed or mistaken, we must accept this charge.
+ And had Gertrude not yielded to the witchcraft of Claudius&rsquo; wit, Claudius
+ would never have murdered Hamlet. Through her his life was dishonoured,
+ and his death violent and premature: unhuzled, disappointed, unaneled, he
+ woke to the air&mdash;not of his orchard-blossoms, but of a prison-house,
+ the lightest word of whose terrors would freeze the blood of the listener.
+ What few men can say, he could&mdash;that his love to his wife had kept
+ even step with the vow he made to her in marriage; and his son says of him&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;so loving to my mother
+ That he might not beteem the winds of heaven
+ Visit her face too roughly;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ and this was her return! Yet is it thus he charges his son concerning her:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;But howsoever thou pursu&rsquo;st this act,
+ Taint not thy mind, nor let thy soul contrive
+ Against thy mother aught; leave her to heaven,
+ And to those thorns that in her bosom lodge,
+ To prick and sting her.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ And may we not suppose it to be for her sake in part that the ghost
+ insists, with fourfold repetition, upon a sword-sworn oath to silence from
+ Horatio and Marcellus?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Only once again does he show himself&mdash;not now in armour upon the
+ walls, but in his gown and in his wife&rsquo;s closet.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Ever since his first appearance, that is, all the time filling the
+ interval between the first and second acts, we may presume him to have
+ haunted the palace unseen, waiting what his son would do. But the task has
+ been more difficult than either had supposed. The ambassadors have gone to
+ Norway and returned; but Hamlet has done nothing. Probably he has had no
+ opportunity; certainly he has had no clear vision of duty. But now all
+ through the second and third acts, together occupying, it must be
+ remembered, only one day, something seems imminent. The play has been
+ acted, and Hamlet has gained some assurance, yet the one chance presented
+ of killing the king&mdash;at his prayers&mdash;he has refused. He is now
+ in his mother&rsquo;s closet, whose eyes he has turned into her very soul.
+ There, and then, the ghost once more appears&mdash;come, he says, to whet
+ his son&rsquo;s almost blunted purpose. But, as I have said, he does not know
+ all the disadvantages of one who, having forsaken the world, has yet
+ business therein to which he would persuade; he does not know how hard it
+ is for a man to give credence to a ghost; how thoroughly he is justified
+ in delay, and the demand for more perfect proof. He does not know what
+ good reasons his son has had for uncertainty, or how much natural and
+ righteous doubt has had to do with what he takes for the blunting of his
+ purpose. Neither does he know how much more tender his son&rsquo;s conscience is
+ than his own, or how necessary it is to him to be sure before he acts. As
+ little perhaps does he understand how hateful to Hamlet is the task laid
+ upon him&mdash;the killing of one wretched villain in the midst of a
+ corrupt and contemptible court, one of a world of whose women his mother
+ may be the type!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Whatever the main object of the ghost&rsquo;s appearance, he has spoken but a
+ few words concerning the matter between him and Hamlet, when he turns
+ abruptly from it to plead with his son for his wife. The ghost sees and
+ mistakes the terror of her looks; imagines that, either from some feeling
+ of his presence, or from the power of Hamlet&rsquo;s words, her conscience is
+ thoroughly roused, and that her vision, her conception of the facts, is
+ now more than she can bear. She and her fighting soul are at odds. She is
+ a kingdom divided against itself. He fears the consequences. He would not
+ have her go mad. He would not have her die yet. Even while ready to start
+ at the summons of that hell to which she has sold him, he forgets his
+ vengeance on her seducer in his desire to comfort her. He dares not, if he
+ could, manifest himself to her: what word of consolation could she hear
+ from his lips? Is not the thought of him her one despair? He turns to his
+ son for help: he cannot console his wife; his son must take his place.
+ Alas! even now he thinks better of her than she deserves; for it is only
+ the fancy of her son&rsquo;s madness that is terrifying her: he gazes on the
+ apparition of which she sees nothing, and from his looks she anticipates
+ an ungovernable outbreak.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;But look; amazement on thy mother sits!
+ Oh; step between her and her fighting soul
+ Conceit in weakest bodies strongest works.
+ Speak to her, Hamlet.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The call to his son to soothe his wicked mother is the ghost&rsquo;s last
+ utterance. For a few moments, sadly regardful of the two, he stands&mdash;while
+ his son seeks in vain to reveal to his mother the presence of his father&mdash;a
+ few moments of piteous action, all but ruining the remnant of his son&rsquo;s
+ sorely-harassed self-possession&mdash;his whole concern his wife&rsquo;s
+ distress, and neither his own doom nor his son&rsquo;s duty; then, as if lost in
+ despair at the impassable gulf betwixt them, revealed by her utter
+ incapacity for even the imagination of his proximity, he turns away, and
+ steals out at the portal. Or perhaps he has heard the black cock crow, and
+ is wanted beneath: his turn has come.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Will the fires ever cleanse <i>her</i>? Will his love ever lift him above
+ the pain of its loss? Will eternity ever be bliss, ever be endurable to
+ poor <i>King Hamlet?</i>
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Alas! even the memory of the poor ghost is insulted. Night after night on
+ the stage his effigy appears&mdash;cadaverous, sepulchral&mdash;no longer
+ as Shakspere must have represented him, aerial, shadowy, gracious, the
+ thin corporeal husk of an eternal&mdash;shall I say ineffaceable?&mdash;sorrow!
+ It is no hollow monotone that can rightly upbear such words as his, but a
+ sound mingled of distance and wind in the pine-tops, of agony and love, of
+ horror and hope and loss and judgment&mdash;a voice of endless and
+ sweetest inflection, yet with a shuddering echo in it as from the caves of
+ memory, on whose walls, are written the eternal blazon that must not be to
+ ears of flesh and blood. The spirit that can assume form at will must
+ surely be able to bend that form to completest and most delicate
+ expression, and the part of the ghost in the play offers work worthy of
+ the highest artist. The would-be actor takes from it vitality and motion,
+ endowing it instead with the rigidity of death, as if the soul had resumed
+ its cast-off garment, the stiffened and mouldy corpse&mdash;whose frozen
+ deadness it could ill model to the utterance of its lively will!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0007" id="link2H_4_0007">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ ON POLISH.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1865]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ By Polish I mean a certain well-known and immediately recognizable
+ condition of surface. But I must request my reader to consider well what
+ this condition really is. For the definition of it appears to us to be,
+ that condition of surface which allows the inner structure of the material
+ to manifest itself. Polish is, as it were, a translucent skin, in which
+ the life of the inorganic comes to the surface, as in the animal skin the
+ animal life. Once clothed in this, the inner glories of the marble rock,
+ of the jasper, of the porphyry, leave the darkness behind, and glow into
+ the day. From the heart of the agate the mossy landscape comes dreaming
+ out. From the depth of the green chrysolite looks up the eye of its gold.
+ The &ldquo;goings on of life&rdquo; hidden for ages under the rough bark of the
+ patient forest-trees, are brought to light; the rings of lovely shadow
+ which the creature went on making in the dark, as the oyster its opaline
+ laminations, and its tree-pearls of beautiful knots, where a beneficent
+ disease has broken the geometrical perfection of its structure, gloom out
+ in their infinite variousness.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Nor are the revelations of polish confined to things having variety in
+ their internal construction; they operate equally in things of homogeneous
+ structure. It is the polished ebony or jet which gives the true blank, the
+ material darkness. It is the polished steel that shines keen and
+ remorseless and cold, like that human justice whose symbol it is. And in
+ the polished diamond the distinctive purity is most evident; while from
+ it, I presume, will the light absorbed from the sun gleam forth on the
+ dark most plentifully.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the mere fact that the end of polish is revelation, can hardly be
+ worth setting forth except for some ulterior object, some further
+ revelation in the fact itself.&mdash;I wish to show that in the symbolic
+ use of the word the same truth is involved, or, if not involved, at least
+ suggested. But let me first make another remark on the preceding
+ definition of the word.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is no denying that the first notion suggested by the word polish is
+ that of smoothness, which will indeed be the sole idea associated with it
+ before we begin to contemplate the matter. But when we consider what
+ things are chosen to be &ldquo;clothed upon&rdquo; with this smoothness, then we find
+ that the smoothness is scarcely desired for its own sake, and remember
+ besides that in many materials and situations it is elaborately avoided.
+ We find that here it is sought because of its faculty of enabling other
+ things to show themselves&mdash;to come to the surface.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I proceed then to examine how far my pregnant interpretation of the word
+ will apply to its figurative use in two cases&mdash;<i>Polish of Style</i>,
+ and <i>Polish of Manners</i>. The two might be treated together, seeing
+ that <i>Style</i> may be called the manners of intellectual utterance, and
+ <i>Manners</i> the style of social utterance; but it is more convenient to
+ treat them separately.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I will begin with the Polish of Style.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It will be seen at once that if the notion of polish be limited to that of
+ smoothness, there can be little to say on the matter, and nothing worthy
+ of being said. For mere smoothness is no more a desirable quality in a
+ style than it is in a country or a countenance; and its pursuit will
+ result at length in the gain of the monotonous and the loss of the
+ melodious and harmonious. But it is only upon worthless material that
+ polish can be <i>mere</i> smoothness; and where the material is not
+ valuable, polish can be nothing but smoothness. No amount of polish in a
+ style can render the production of value, except there be in it embodied
+ thought thereby revealed; and the labour of the polish is lost. Let us
+ then take the fuller meaning of polish, and see how it will apply to
+ style.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If it applies, then Polish of Style will imply the approximately complete
+ revelation of the thought. It will be the removal of everything that can
+ interfere between the thought of the speaker and the mind of the hearer.
+ True polish in marble or in speech reveals inlying realities, and, in the
+ latter at least, mere smoothness, either of sound or of meaning, is not
+ worthy of the name. The most polished style will be that which most
+ immediately and most truly flashes the meaning embodied in the utterance
+ upon the mind of the listener or reader.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Will you then,&rdquo; I imagine a reader objecting, &ldquo;admit of no ornament in
+ style?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Assuredly,&rdquo; I answer, &ldquo;I would admit of no ornament whatever.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But let me explain what I mean by ornament. I mean anything stuck in or
+ on, like a spangle, because it is pretty in itself, although it reveals
+ nothing. Not one such ornament can belong to a polished style. It is
+ paint, not polish. And if this is not what my questioner means by <i>ornament</i>,
+ my answer must then be read according to the differences in his definition
+ of the word. What I have said has not the least application to the natural
+ forms of beauty which thought assumes in speech. Between such beauty and
+ such ornament there lies the same difference as between the overflow of
+ life in the hair, and the dressing of that loveliest of utterances in
+ grease and gold.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For, when I say that polish is the removal of everything that comes
+ between thought and thinking, it must not be supposed that in my idea
+ thought is only of the intellect, and therefore that all forms but bare
+ intellectual forms are of the nature of ornament. As well might one say
+ that the only essential portion of the human form is the bones. And every
+ human thought is in a sense a human being, has as necessarily its muscles
+ of motion, its skin of beauty, its blood of feeling, as its skeleton of
+ logic. For complete utterance, music itself in its right proportions,
+ sometimes clear and strong, as in rhymed harmonies, sometimes veiled and
+ dim, as in the prose compositions of the masters of speech, is as
+ necessary as correctness of logic, and common sense in construction. I
+ should have said <i>conveyance</i> rather than utterance; for there may be
+ utterance such as to relieve the mind of the speaker with more or less of
+ fancied communication, while the conveyance of thought may be little or
+ none; as in the speaking with tongues of the infant Church, to which the
+ lovely babblement of our children has probably more than a figurative
+ resemblance, relieving their own minds, but, the interpreter not yet at
+ his post, neither instructing nor misleading any one. But as the object of
+ grown-up speech must in the main be the conveyance of thought, and not the
+ mere utterance, everything in the style of that speech which interposes
+ between the mental eyes and the thought embodied in the speech, must be
+ polished away, that the indwelling life may manifest itself.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ What, then (for now we must come to the practical), is the kind of thing
+ to be polished away in order that the hidden may be revealed?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All words that can be dismissed without loss; for all such more or less
+ obscure the meaning upon which they gather. The first step towards the
+ polishing of most styles is to strike out&mdash;polish off&mdash;the
+ useless words and phrases. It is wonderful with how many fewer words most
+ things could be said that are said; while the degree of certainty and
+ rapidity with which an idea is conveyed would generally be found to be in
+ an inverse ratio to the number of words employed.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All ornaments so called&mdash;the nose and lip jewels of style&mdash;the
+ tattooing of the speech; all similes that, although true, give no
+ additional insight into the meaning; everything that is only pretty and
+ not beautiful; all mere sparkle as of jewels that lose their own beauty by
+ being set in the grandeur of statues or the dignity of monumental stone,
+ must be ruthlessly polished away.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All utterances which, however they may add to the amount of thought,
+ distract the mind, and confuse its observation of the main idea, the
+ essence or life of the book or paper, must be diligently refused. In the
+ manuscript of <i>Comus</i> there exists, cancelled but legible, a passage
+ of which I have the best authority for saying that it would have made the
+ poetic fame of any writer. But the grand old self-denier struck it out of
+ the opening speech because that would be more polished without it&mdash;because
+ the <i>Attendant Spirit</i> would say more immediately and exclusively,
+ and therefore more completely, what he had to say, without it.&mdash;All
+ this applies much more widely and deeply in the region of art; but I am at
+ present dealing with the surface of style, not with the round of result.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I have one instance at hand, however, belonging to this region, than which
+ I could scarcely produce a more apt illustration of my thesis. One of the
+ greatest of living painters, walking with a friend through the late
+ Exhibition of Art-Treasures at Manchester, came upon Albert Dürer&rsquo;s <i>Melancholia</i>.
+ After looking at it for a moment, he told his friend that now for the
+ first time he understood it, and proceeded to set forth what he saw in it.
+ It was a very early impression, and the delicacy of the lines was so much
+ the greater. He had never seen such a perfect impression before, and had
+ never perceived the intent and scope of the engraving. The mere removal of
+ accidental thickness and furriness in the lines of the drawing enabled him
+ to see into the meaning of that wonderful production. The polish brought
+ it to the surface. Or, what amounts to the same thing for my argument, the
+ dulling of the surface had concealed it even from his experienced eyes.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In fine, and more generally, all cause whatever of obscurity must be
+ polished away. There may lie in the matter itself a darkness of colour and
+ texture which no amount of polishing can render clear or even vivid; the
+ thoughts themselves may be hard to think, and difficulty must not be
+ confounded with obscurity. The former belongs to the thoughts themselves;
+ the latter to the mode of their embodiment. All cause of obscurity in this
+ must, I say, be removed. Such may lie even in the region of grammar, or in
+ the mere arrangement of a sentence. And while, as I have said, no ornament
+ is to be allowed, so all roughnesses, which irritate the mental ear, and
+ so far incapacitate it for receiving a true impression of the meaning from
+ the words, must be carefully reduced. For the true music of a sentence,
+ belonging as it does to the essence of the thought itself, is the herald
+ which goes before to prepare the mind for the following thought, calming
+ the surface of the intellect to a mirror-like reflection of the image
+ about to fall upon it. But syllables that hang heavy on the tongue and
+ grate harsh upon the ear are the trumpet of discord rousing to unconscious
+ opposition and conscious rejection.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And now the consideration of the Polish of Manners will lead us to some
+ yet more important reflections. Here again I must admit that the ordinary
+ use of the phrase is analogous to that of the preceding; but its relations
+ lead us deep into realities. For as diamond alone can polish diamond, so
+ men alone can polish men; and hence it is that it was first by living in a
+ city ([Greek: polis], <i>polis</i>) that men&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;rubbed each other&rsquo;s angles down,&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ and became <i>polished</i>. And while a certain amount of ease with regard
+ to ourselves and of consideration with regard to others is everywhere
+ necessary to a man&rsquo;s passing as a gentleman&mdash;all unevenness of
+ behaviour resulting either from shyness or self-consciousness (in the
+ shape of awkwardness), or from overweening or selfishness (in the shape of
+ rudeness), having to be polished away&mdash;true human polish must go
+ further than this. Its respects are not confined to the manners of the
+ ball-room or the dinner-table, of the club or the exchange, but wherever a
+ man may rejoice with them that rejoice or weep with them that weep, he
+ must remain one and the same, as polished to the tiller of the soil as to
+ the leader of the fashion.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But how will the figure of material polish aid us any further? How can it
+ be said that Polish of Manners is a revelation of that which is within, a
+ calling up to the surface of the hidden loveliness of the material? For do
+ we not know that courtesy may cover contempt; that smiles themselves may
+ hide hate; that one who will place you at his right hand when in want of
+ your inferior aid, may scarce acknowledge your presence when his necessity
+ has gone by? And how then can polished manners be a revelation of what is
+ within? Are they not the result of putting on rather than of taking off?
+ Are they not paint and varnish rather than polish?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I must yield the answer to each of these questions; protesting, however,
+ that with such polish I have nothing to do; for these manners are
+ confessedly false. But even where least able to mislead, they are, with
+ corresponding courtesy, accepted as outward signs of an inward grace.
+ Hence even such, by the nature of their falsehood, support my position.
+ For in what forms are the colours of the paint laid upon the surface of
+ the material? Is it not in as near imitations of the real right human
+ feelings about oneself and others as the necessarily imperfect knowledge
+ of such an artist can produce? He will not encounter the labour of
+ polishing, for he does not believe in the divine depths of his own nature:
+ he paints, and calls the varnish polish.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But why talk of polish with reference to such a character, seeing that no
+ amount of polishing can bring to the surface what is not there? No
+ polishing of sandstone will reveal the mottling of marble. For it is
+ sandstone, crumbling and gritty&mdash;not noble in any way.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Is it so then? Can such be the real nature of the man? And can polish
+ reach nothing deeper in him than such? May not this selfishness be
+ polished away, revealing true colour and harmony beneath? Was not the man
+ made in the image of God? Or, if you say that man lost that image, did not
+ a new process of creation begin from the point of that loss, a process of
+ re-creation in him in whom all shall be made alive, which, although so far
+ from being completed yet, can never be checked? If we cut away deep enough
+ at the rough block of our nature, shall we not arrive at some likeness of
+ that true man who, the apostle says, dwells in us&mdash;the hope of glory?
+ He informs us&mdash;that is, forms us from within.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Dr. Donne (who knew less than any other writer in the English language
+ what Polish of Style means) recognizes this divine polishing to the full.
+ He says in a poem called &ldquo;The Cross:&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ As perchance carvers do not faces make,
+ But that away, which hid them there, do take,
+ Let Crosses so take what hid Christ in thee,
+ And be his Image, or not his, but He.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ This is no doubt a higher figure than that of <i>polish</i>, but it is of
+ the same kind, revealing the same truth. It recognizes the fact that the
+ divine nature lies at the root of the human nature, and that the polish
+ which lets that spiritual nature shine out in the simplicity of heavenly
+ childhood, is the true Polish of Manners of which all merely social
+ refinements are a poor imitation.&mdash;Whence Coleridge says that nothing
+ but religion can make a man a gentleman.&mdash;And when these harmonies of
+ our nature come to the surface, we shall be indeed &ldquo;lively stones,&rdquo; fit
+ for building into the great temple of the universe, and echoing the music
+ of creation. Dr. Donne recognizes, besides, the notable fact that <i>crosses</i>
+ or afflictions are the polishing powers by means of which the beautiful
+ realities of human nature are brought to the surface. One can tell at once
+ by the peculiar loveliness of certain persons that they have suffered.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But, to look for a moment less profoundly into the matter, have we not
+ known those whose best never could get to the surface just from the lack
+ of polish?&mdash;persons who, if they could only reveal the kindness of
+ their nature, would make men believe in human nature, but in whom some
+ roughness of awkwardness or of shyness prevents the true self from
+ appearing? Even the dread of seeming to claim a good deed or to patronize
+ a fellow-man will sometimes spoil the last touch of tenderness which would
+ have been the final polish of the act of giving, and would have revealed
+ infinite depths of human devotion. For let the truth out, and it will be
+ seen to be true.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Simplicity is the end of all Polish, as of all Art, Culture, Morals,
+ Religion, and Life. The Lord our God is one Lord, and we and our brothers
+ and sisters are one Humanity, one Body of the Head.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now to the practical: what are we to do for the polish of our manners?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Just what I have said we must do for the polish of our style. Take off; do
+ not put on. Polish away this rudeness, that awkwardness. Correct
+ everything self-assertive, which includes nine tenths of all vulgarity.
+ Imitate no one&rsquo;s behaviour; that is to paint. Do not think about yourself;
+ that is to varnish. Put what is wrong right, and what is in you will show
+ itself in harmonious behaviour.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But no one can go far in this track without discovering that true polish
+ reaches much deeper; that the outward exists but for the sake of the
+ inward; and that the manners, as they depend on the morals, must be
+ forgotten in the morals of which they are but the revelation. Look at the
+ high-shouldered, ungainly child in the corner: his mother tells him to go
+ to his book, and he wants to go to his play. Regard the swollen lips, the
+ skin tightened over the nose, the distortion of his shape, the angularity
+ of his whole appearance. Yet he is not an awkward child by nature. Look at
+ him again the moment after he has given in and kissed his mother. His
+ shoulders have dropped to their place; his limbs are free from the fetters
+ that bound them; his motions are graceful, and the one blends harmoniously
+ with the other. He is no longer thinking of himself. He has given up his
+ own way. The true childhood comes to the surface, and you see what the boy
+ is meant to be always. Look at the jerkiness of the conceited man. Look at
+ the quiet <i>fluency</i> of motion in the modest man. Look how anger
+ itself which forgets self, which is unhating and righteous, will elevate
+ the carriage and ennoble the movements.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But how far can the same rule of <i>omission</i> or <i>rejection</i> be
+ applied with safety to this deeper character&mdash;the manners of the
+ spirit?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It seems to me that in morals too the main thing is to avoid doing wrong;
+ for then the active spirit of life in us will drive us on to the right.
+ But on such a momentous question I would not be dogmatic. Only as far as
+ regards the feelings I would say: it is of no use to try to make ourselves
+ feel thus or thus. Let us fight with our wrong feelings; let us polish
+ away the rough ugly distortions of feeling. Then the real and the good
+ will come of themselves. Or rather, to keep to my figure, they will then
+ show themselves of themselves as the natural home-produce, the indwelling
+ facts of our deepest&mdash;that is, our divine nature.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Here I find that I am sinking through my subject into another and deeper&mdash;a
+ truth, namely, which should, however, be the foundation of all our
+ building, the background of all our representations: that Life is at work
+ in us&mdash;the sacred Spirit of God travailing in us. That Spirit has
+ gained one end of his labour&mdash;at which he can begin to do yet more
+ for us&mdash;when he has brought us to beg for the help which he has been
+ giving us all the time.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I have been regarding infinite things through the medium of one limited
+ figure, knowing that figures with all their suggestions and relations
+ could not reveal them utterly. But so far as they go, these thoughts
+ raised by the word Polish and its figurative uses appear to me to be most
+ true.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0008" id="link2H_4_0008">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ BROWNING&rsquo;S &ldquo;CHRISTMAS EVE&rdquo;
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1853.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Goethe says:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Poems are painted window panes.
+ If one looks from the square into the church,
+ Dusk and dimness are his gains&mdash;
+ Sir Philistine is left in the lurch!
+ The sight, so seen, may well enrage him,
+ Nor anything henceforth assuage him.
+
+ &ldquo;But come just inside what conceals;
+ Cross the holy threshold quite&mdash;
+ All at once &lsquo;tis rainbow-bright,
+ Device and story flash to light,
+ A gracious splendour truth reveals.
+ This to God&rsquo;s children is full measure,
+ It edifies and gives you pleasure!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ This is true concerning every form in which truth is embodied, whether it
+ be sight or sound, geometric diagram or scientific formula.
+ Unintelligible, it may be dismal enough, regarded from the outside;
+ prismatic in its revelation of truth from within. Such is the world
+ itself, as beheld by the speculative eye; a thing of disorder, obscurity,
+ and sadness: only the child-like heart, to which the door into the divine
+ idea is thrown open, can understand somewhat the secret of the Almighty.
+ In human things it is particularly true of art, in which the fundamental
+ idea seems to be the revelation of the true through the beautiful. But of
+ all the arts it is most applicable to poetry; for the others have more
+ that is beautiful on the outside; can give pleasure to the senses by the
+ form of the marble, the hues of the painting, or the sweet sounds of the
+ music, although the heart may never perceive the meaning that lies within.
+ But poetry, except its rhythmic melody, and its scattered gleams of
+ material imagery, for which few care that love it not for its own sake,
+ has no attraction on the outside to entice the passer to enter and partake
+ of its truth. It is inwards that its colours shine, within that its forms
+ move, and the sound of its holy organ cannot be heard from without.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now, if one has been able to reach the heart of a poem, answering to
+ Goethe&rsquo;s parabolic description; or even to discover a loop-hole, through
+ which, from an opposite point, the glories of its stained windows are
+ visible; it is well that he should seek to make others partakers in his
+ pleasure and profit. Some who might not find out for themselves, would yet
+ be evermore grateful to him who led them to the point of vision. Surely if
+ a man would help his fellow-men, he can do so far more effectually by
+ exhibiting truth than exposing error, by unveiling beauty than by a
+ critical dissection of deformity. From the very nature of the things it
+ must be so. Let the true and good destroy their opposites. It is only by
+ the good and beautiful that the evil and ugly are known. It is the light
+ that makes manifest.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The poem &ldquo;Christmas Eve,&rdquo; by Robert Browning, with the accompanying poem
+ &ldquo;Easter Day,&rdquo; seems not to have attracted much notice from the readers of
+ poetry, although highly prized by a few. This is, perhaps, to be
+ attributed, in a great measure, to what many would call a considerable
+ degree of obscurity. But obscurity is the appearance which to a first
+ glance may be presented either by profundity or carelessness of thought.
+ To some, obscurity itself is attractive, from the hope that worthiness is
+ the cause of it. To apply a test similar to that by which Pascal tries the
+ Koran and the Scriptures: what is the character of those portions, the
+ meaning of which is plain? Are they wise or foolish? If the former, the
+ presumption is that the obscurity of other parts is caused not by opacity,
+ but profundity. But some will object, notwithstanding, that a writer ought
+ to make himself plain to his readers; nay, that if he has a clear idea
+ himself, he must be able to express that idea clearly. But for communion
+ of thought, two minds, not one, are necessary. The fault may lie in him
+ that receives or in him that gives, or it may be in neither. For how can
+ the result of much thought, the idea which for mouths has been shaping
+ itself in the mind of one man, be at once received by another mind to
+ which it comes a stranger and unexpected? The reader has no right to
+ complain of so caused obscurity. Nor is that form of expression, which is
+ most easily understood at first sight, necessarily the best. It will not,
+ therefore, continue to move; nor will it gather force and influence with
+ more intimate acquaintance. Here Goethe&rsquo;s little parable, as he calls it,
+ is peculiarly applicable. But, indeed, if after all a writer is obscure,
+ the man who has spent most labour in seeking to enter into his thoughts,
+ will be the least likely to complain of his obscurity; and they who have
+ the least difficulty in understanding a writer, are frequently those who
+ understand him the least.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To those to whom the religion of Christ has been the law of liberty; who
+ by that door have entered into the universe of God, and have begun to feel
+ a growing delight in all the manifestations of God, it is cause of much
+ joy to find that, whatever may be the position taken by men of science, or
+ by those in whom the intellect predominates, with regard to the Christian
+ religion, men of genius, at least, in virtue of what is child-like in
+ their nature, are, in the present time, plainly manifesting deep devotion
+ to Christ. There are exceptions, certainly; but even in those, there are
+ symptoms of feelings which, one can hardly help thinking, tend towards
+ him, and will one day flame forth in conscious worship. A mind that
+ recognizes any of the multitudinous meanings of the revelation of God, in
+ the world of sounds, and forms, and colours, cannot be blind to the higher
+ manifestation of God in common humanity; nor to him in whom is hid the key
+ to the whole, the First-born of the creation of God, in whose heart lies,
+ as yet but partially developed, the kingdom of heaven, which is the
+ redemption of the earth. The mind that delights in that which is lofty and
+ great, which feels there is something higher than self, will undoubtedly
+ be drawn towards Christ; and they, who at first looked on him as a great
+ prophet, came at length to perceive that he was the radiation of the
+ Father&rsquo;s glory, the likeness of his unseen being.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ A description of the poem may, perhaps, both induce to the reading of it,
+ and contribute to its easier comprehension while being perused. On a
+ stormy Christmas Eve, the poet, or rather the seer (for the whole must be
+ regarded as a poetic vision), is compelled to take refuge in the &ldquo;lath and
+ plaster entry&rdquo; of a little chapel, belonging to a congregation of
+ Calvinistic Methodists, who are at the time assembling for worship.
+ Wonderful in its reality is the description of various of the flock that
+ pass him as they enter the chapel, from
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;the many-tattered
+ Little old-faced, peaking sister-turned-mother
+ Of the sickly babe she tried to smother
+ Somehow up, with its spotted face,
+ From the cold, on her breast, the one warm place:&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ to the &ldquo;shoemaker&rsquo;s lad;&rdquo; whom he follows, determined not to endure the
+ inquisition of their looks any longer, into the chapel. The humour of the
+ whole scene within is excellent. The stifling closeness, both of the
+ atmosphere and of the sermon, the wonderful content of the audience, the
+ &ldquo;old fat woman,&rdquo; who
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;purred with pleasure,
+ And thumb round thumb went twirling faster,
+ While she, to his periods keeping measure,
+ Maternally devoured the pastor;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ are represented by a few rapid touches that bring certain points of the
+ reality almost unpleasantly near. At length, unable to endure it longer,
+ he rushes out into the air. Objection may, probably, be made to the
+ mingling of the humorous, even the ridiculous, with the serious; at least,
+ in a work of art like this, where they must be brought into such close
+ proximity. But are not these things as closely connected in the world as
+ they can be in any representation of it? Surely there are few who have
+ never had occasion to attempt to reconcile the thought of the two in their
+ own minds. Nor can there be anything human that is not, in some connexion
+ or other, admissible into art. The widest idea of art must comprehend all
+ things. A work of this kind must, like God&rsquo;s world, in which he sends rain
+ on the just and on the unjust, be taken as a whole and in regard to its
+ design. The requisition is, that everything introduced have a relation to
+ the adjacent parts and to the whole suitable to the design. Here the thing
+ is real, is true, is human; a thing to be thought about. It has its place
+ amongst other phenomena, with which, however apparently incongruous, it is
+ yet vitally connected within.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ A coolness and delight visit us, on turning over the page and commencing
+ to read the description of sky, and moon, and clouds, which greet him
+ outside the chapel. It is as a vision of the vision-bearing world itself,
+ in one of its fine, though not, at first, one of its rarest moods. And
+ here a short digression to notice like feelings in unlike dresses, one
+ thought differently expressed will, perhaps, be pardoned. The moon is
+ prevented from shining out by the &ldquo;blocks&rdquo; of cloud &ldquo;built up in the
+ west:&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;And the empty other half of the sky
+ Seemed in its silence as if it knew
+ What, any moment, might look through
+ A chance-gap in that fortress massy.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Old Henry Vaughan says of the &ldquo;Dawning:&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The whole Creation shakes off night,
+ And for thy shadow looks the Light;
+ Stars now vanish without number,
+ Sleepie Planets set and slumber,
+ The pursie Clouds disband and scatter,
+ <i>All expect some sudden matter</i>.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Calmness settles down on his mind. He walks on, thinking of the scene he
+ had left, and the sermon he had heard. In the latter he sees the good and
+ the bad intimately mingled; and is convinced that the chief benefit
+ derived from it is a reproducing of former impressions. The thought
+ crosses him, in how many places and how many different forms the same
+ thing takes place, &ldquo;a convincing&rdquo; of the &ldquo;convinced;&rdquo; and he rejoices in
+ the contrast which his church presents to these; for in the church of
+ Nature his love to God, assurance of God&rsquo;s love to him, and confidence in
+ the design of God regarding him, commenced. While exulting in God and the
+ knowledge of Him to be attained hereafter, he is favoured with a sight of
+ a glorious moon-rainbow, which elevates his worship to ecstasy. During
+ which&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;All at once I looked up with terror&mdash;
+ He was there.
+ He himself with His human air,
+ On the narrow pathway, just before:
+ I saw the back of Him, no more&mdash;
+ He had left the chapel, then, as I.
+ I forgot all about the sky.
+ No face: only the sight
+ Of a sweepy garment, vast and white,
+ With a hem that I could recognize.
+ I felt terror, no surprise:
+ My mind filled with the cataract,
+ At one bound, of the mighty fact.
+ I remembered, He did say
+ Doubtless, that, to this world&rsquo;s end,
+ Where two or three should meet and pray,
+ He would be in the midst, their friend:
+ Certainly He was there with them.
+ And my pulses leaped for joy
+ Of the golden thought without alloy,
+ That I saw His very vesture&rsquo;s hem.
+ Then rushed the blood back, cold and clear,
+ With a fresh enhancing shiver of fear.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Praying for forgiveness wherein he has sinned, and prostrate in adoration
+ before the form of Christ, he is &ldquo;caught up in the whirl and drift&rdquo; of his
+ vesture, and carried along with him over the earth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Stopping at length at the entrance of St. Peter&rsquo;s in Rome, he remains
+ outside, while the form disappears within. He is able, however, to see all
+ that goes on, in the crowded, hushed interior. It is high mass. He has
+ been carried at once from the little chapel to the opposite aesthetic
+ pole. From the entry, where&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The flame of the single tallow candle
+ In the cracked square lanthorn I stood under
+ Shot its blue lip at me,&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+to&mdash;
+ &ldquo;This miraculous dome of God&mdash;
+ This colonnade
+ With arms wide open to embrace
+ The entry of the human race
+ To the breast of.... what is it, yon building,
+ Ablaze in front, all paint and gilding,
+ With marble for brick, and stones of price
+ For garniture of the edifice?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ to &ldquo;those fountains&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Growing up eternally
+ Each to a musical water-tree,
+ Whose blossoms drop, a glittering boon,
+ Before my eyes, in the light of the moon,
+ To the granite lavers underneath;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ from the singing of the chapel to the organ self-restrained, that &ldquo;holds
+ his breath and grovels latent,&rdquo; while expecting the elevation of the Host.
+ Christ is within; he is left without. Reflecting on the matter, he thinks
+ his Lord would not require him to go in, though he himself entered,
+ because there was a way to reach him there. By-and-by, however, his heart
+ awakes and declares that Love goes beyond error with them, and if the
+ Intellect be kept down, yet Love is the oppressor; so next time he
+ resolves to enter and praise along with them. The passage commencing, &ldquo;Oh,
+ love of those first Christian days!&rdquo; describing Love&rsquo;s victory over
+ Intellect, is very fine.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Again he is caught up and carried along as before. This time halt is made
+ at the door of a college in a German town, in which the class-room of one
+ of the professors is open for lecture this Christmas Eve. It is,
+ intellectually considered, the opposite pole to both the Methodist chapel
+ and the Roman Basilica. The poet enters, fearful of losing the society of
+ &ldquo;any that call themselves his friends.&rdquo; He describes the assembled
+ company, and the entrance of &ldquo;the hawk-nosed, high-cheek-boned professor,&rdquo;
+ of part of whose Christmas Eve&rsquo;s discourse he proceeds to give the
+ substance. The professor takes it for granted that &ldquo;plainly no such life
+ was liveable,&rdquo; and goes on to inquire what explanation of the phenomena of
+ the life of Christ it were best to adopt. Not that it mattered much, &ldquo;so
+ the idea be left the same.&rdquo; Taking the popular story, for convenience
+ sake, and separating all extraneous matter from it, he found that Christ
+ was simply a good man, with an honest, true heart; whose disciples thought
+ him divine; and whose doctrine, though quite mistaken by those who
+ received and published it, &ldquo;had yet a meaning quite as respectable.&rdquo; Here
+ the poet takes advantage of a pause to leave him; reflecting that though
+ the air may be poisoned by the sects, yet here &ldquo;the critic leaves no air
+ to poison.&rdquo; His meditations and arguments following, are among the most
+ valuable passages in the book. The professor, notwithstanding the idea of
+ Christ has by him been exhausted of all that is peculiar to it, yet
+ recommends him to the veneration and worship of his hearers, &ldquo;rather than
+ all who went before him, and all who ever followed after.&rdquo; But why? says
+ the poet. For his intellect,
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Which tells me simply what was told
+ (If mere morality, bereft
+ Of the God in Christ, be all that&rsquo;s left)
+ Elsewhere by voices manifold?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ with which must be combined the fact that this intellect of his did not
+ save him from making the &ldquo;important stumble,&rdquo; of saying that he and God
+ were one. &ldquo;But his followers misunderstood him,&rdquo; says the objector.
+ Perhaps so; but &ldquo;the stumbling-block, his speech, who laid it?&rdquo; Well then,
+ is it on the score of his goodness that he should rule his race?
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;You pledge
+ Your fealty to such rule? What, all&mdash;
+ From Heavenly John and Attic Paul,
+ And that brave weather-battered Peter,
+ Whose stout faith only stood completer
+ For buffets, sinning to be pardoned,
+ As the more his hands hauled nets, they hardened&mdash;
+ All, down to you, the man of men,
+ Professing here at Göttingen,
+ Compose Christ&rsquo;s flock! So, you and I
+ Are sheep of a good man! And why?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Did Christ <i>invent</i> goodness? or did he only demonstrate that of
+ which the common conscience was judge?
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;I would decree
+ Worship for such mere demonstration
+ And simple work of nomenclature,
+ Only the day I praised, not Nature,
+ But Harvey, for the circulation.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The worst man, says the poet, <i>knows</i> more than the best man <i>does</i>.
+ God in Christ appeared to men to help them to <i>do</i>, to awaken the
+ life within them.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Morality to the uttermost,
+ Supreme in Christ as we all confess,
+ Why need <i>we</i> prove would avail no jot
+ To make Him God, if God he were not?
+ What is the point where Himself lays stress?
+ Does the precept run, &lsquo;Believe in good,
+ In justice, truth, now understood
+ For the first time?&rsquo;&mdash;or, &lsquo;Believe in ME,
+ Who lived and died, yet essentially
+ Am Lord of life&rsquo;? Whoever can take
+ The same to his heart, and for mere love&rsquo;s sake
+ Conceive of the love,&mdash;that man obtains
+ A new truth; no conviction gains
+ Of an old one only, made intense
+ By a fresh appeal to his faded sense.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In this lies the most direct practical argument with regard to what is
+ commonly called the Divinity of Christ. Here is a man whom those that
+ magnify him the least confess to be a good man, the best of men. He <i>says</i>,
+ &ldquo;I and the Father are one.&rdquo; Will an earnest heart, knowing this, be likely
+ to draw back, or will it draw nearer to behold the great sight? Will not
+ such a heart feel: &ldquo;A good man like this would not have said so, were it
+ not so. In all probability the great truth of God lies behind this veil.&rdquo;
+ The reality of Christ&rsquo;s nature is not to be proved by argument. He must be
+ beheld. The manifestation of Him must &ldquo;gravitate inwards&rdquo; on the soul. It
+ is by looking that one can know. As a mathematical theorem is to be proved
+ only by the demonstration of that theorem itself, not by talking <i>about</i>
+ it; so Christ must prove himself to the human soul through being beheld.
+ The only proof of Christ&rsquo;s divinity is his humanity. Because his humanity
+ is not comprehended, his divinity is doubted; and while the former is
+ uncomprehended, an assent to the latter is of little avail. For a man to
+ theorize theologically in any form, while he has not so apprehended
+ Christ, or to neglect the gazing on him for the attempt to substantiate to
+ himself any form of belief respecting him, is to bring on himself, in a
+ matter of divine import, such errors as the expounders of nature in old
+ time brought on themselves, when they speculated on what a thing must be,
+ instead of observing what it was; this <i>must be</i> having for its
+ foundation not self-evident truth, but notions whose chief strength lay in
+ their preconception. There are thoughts and feelings that cannot be called
+ up in the mind by any power of will or force of imagination; which, being
+ spiritual, must arise in the soul when in its highest spiritual condition;
+ when the mind, indeed, like a smooth lake, reflects only heavenly images.
+ A steadfast regarding of Him will produce this calm, and His will be the
+ heavenly form reflected from the mental depth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But to return to the poem. The fact that Christ remains inside, leads the
+ poet to reflect, in the spirit of Him who found all the good in men he
+ could, neglecting no point of contact which presented itself, whether
+ there was anything at this lecture with which he could sympathize; and he
+ finds that the heart of the professor does something to rescue him from
+ the error of his brain. In his brain, even, &ldquo;if Love&rsquo;s dead there, it has
+ left a ghost.&rdquo; For when the natural deduction from his argument would be
+ that our faith
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Be swept forthwith to its natural dust-hole,&mdash;
+ He bids us, when we least expect it,
+ Take back our faith&mdash;if it be not just whole,
+ Yet a pearl indeed, as his tests affect it,
+ Which fact pays the damage done rewardingly,
+ So, prize we our dust and ashes accordingly!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Love as well as learning being necessary to the understanding of the New
+ Testament, it is to the poet matter of regret that &ldquo;loveless learning&rdquo;
+ should leave its proper work, and make such havoc in that which belongs
+ not to it. But while he sits &ldquo;talking with his mind,&rdquo; his mood begins to
+ degenerate from sympathy with that which is good to indifference towards
+ all forms, and he feels inclined to rest quietly in the enjoyment of his
+ own religious confidence, and trouble himself in no wise about the faith
+ of his neighbours; for doubtless all are partakers of the central light,
+ though variously refracted by the varied translucency of the mental
+ prism....
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;&lsquo;Twas the horrible storm began afresh!
+ The black night caught me in his mesh,
+ Whirled me up, and flung me prone!
+ I was left on the college-step alone.
+ I looked, and far there, ever fleeting
+ Far, far away, the receding gesture,
+ And looming of the lessening vesture,
+ Swept forward from my stupid hand,
+ While I watched my foolish heart expand
+ In the lazy glow of benevolence
+ O&rsquo;er the various modes of man&rsquo;s belief.
+ I sprang up with fear&rsquo;s vehemence.
+ &mdash;Needs must there be one way, our chief
+ Best way of worship: let me strive
+ To find it, and when found, contrive
+ My fellows also take their share.
+ This constitutes my earthly care:
+ God&rsquo;s is above it and distinct!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The symbolism in the former part of this extract is grand. As soon as he
+ ceases to look practically on the phenomena with which he is surrounded,
+ he is enveloped in storm and darkness, and sees only in the far distance
+ the disappearing skirt of his Lord&rsquo;s garment. God&rsquo;s care is over all, he
+ goes on to say; I must do <i>my part</i>. If I look speculatively on the
+ world, there is nothing but dimness and mystery. If I look practically on
+ it,
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;No mere mote&rsquo;s-breadth, but teems immense
+ With witnessings of Providence.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ And whether the world which I seek to help censures or praises me&mdash;that
+ is nothing to me. My life&mdash;how is it with me?
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Soul of mine, hadst thou caught and held
+ By the hem of the vesture....
+ And I caught
+ At the flying robe, and, unrepelled,
+ Was lapped again in its folds full-fraught
+ With warmth and wonder and delight,
+ God&rsquo;s mercy being infinite.
+ And scarce had the words escaped my tongue,
+ When, at a passionate bound, I sprung
+ Out of the wandering world of rain,
+ Into the little chapel again.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Had he dreamed? how then could he report of the sermon and the preacher?
+ of which and of whom he proceeds to give a very external account. But
+ correcting himself&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Ha! Is God mocked, as He asks?
+ Shall I take on me to change his tasks,
+ And dare, despatched to a river-head
+ For a simple draught of the element,
+ Neglect the thing for which He sent,
+ And return with another thing instead!
+ Saying .... &lsquo;Because the water found
+ Welling up from underground,
+ Is mingled with the taints of earth,
+ While Thou, I know, dost laugh at dearth,
+ And couldest, at a word, convulse
+ The world with the leap of its river-pulse,&mdash;
+ Therefore I turned from the oozings muddy,
+ And bring thee a chalice I found, instead.
+ See the brave veins in the breccia ruddy!
+ One would suppose that the marble bled.
+ What matters the water? A hope I have nursed,
+ That the waterless cup will quench my thirst.&rsquo;
+ &mdash;Better have knelt at the poorest stream
+ That trickles in pain from the straitest rift!
+ For the less or the more is all God&rsquo;s gift,
+ Who blocks up or breaks wide the granite seam.
+ And here, is there water or not, to drink?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ He comes to the conclusion, that the best for him is that mode of worship
+ which partakes the least of human forms, and brings him nearest to the
+ spiritual; and, while expressing good wishes for the Pope and the
+ professor&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Meantime, in the still recurring fear
+ Lest myself, at unawares, be found,
+ While attacking the choice of my neighbours round,
+ Without my own made&mdash;I choose here!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ He therefore joins heartily in the hymn which is sung by the congregation
+ of the little chapel at the close of their worship. And this concludes the
+ poem.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ What is the central point from which this poem can be regarded? It does
+ not seem to be very hard to find. Novalis has said: &ldquo;Die Philosophie ist
+ eigentlich Heimweh, ein Trieb überall zu Hause zu sein.&rdquo; (Philosophy is
+ really home-sickness, an impulse to be at home everywhere.) The life of a
+ man here, if life it be, and not the vain image of what might be a life,
+ is a continual attempt to find his place, his centre of recipiency, and
+ active agency. He wants to know where he is, and where he ought to be and
+ can be; for, rightly considered, the position a man ought to occupy is the
+ only one he truly <i>can</i> occupy. It is a climbing and striving to
+ reach that point of vision where the multiplex crossings and apparent
+ intertwistings of the lines of fact and feeling and duty shall manifest
+ themselves as a regular and symmetrical design. A contradiction, or a
+ thing unrelated, is foreign and painful to him, even as the rocky particle
+ in the gelatinous substance of the oyster; and, like the latter, he can
+ only rid himself of it by encasing it in the pearl-like enclosure of
+ faith; believing that hidden there lies the necessity for a higher theory
+ of the universe than has yet been generated in his soul. The quest for
+ this home-centre, in the man who has faith, is calm and ceaseless; in the
+ man whose faith is weak, it is stormy and intermittent. Unhappy is that
+ man, of necessity, whose perceptions are keener than his faith is strong.
+ Everywhere Nature herself is putting strange questions to him; the human
+ world is full of dismay and confusion; his own conscience is bewildered by
+ contradictory appearances; all which may well happen to the man whose eye
+ is not yet single, whose heart is not yet pure. He is not at home; his
+ soul is astray amid people of a strange speech and a stammering tongue.
+ But the faithful man is led onward; in the stillness that his confidence
+ produces arise the bright images of truth; and visions of God, which are
+ only beheld in solitary places, are granted to his soul.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;O struggling with the darkness all the night,
+ And visited all night by troops of stars!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ What is true of the whole, is true of its parts. In all the relations of
+ life, in all the parts of the great whole of existence, the true man is
+ ever seeking his home. This poem seems to show us such a quest. &ldquo;Here I am
+ in the midst of many who belong to the same family. They differ in
+ education, in habits, in forms of thought; but they are called by the same
+ name. What position with regard to them am I to assume? I am a Christian;
+ how am I to live in relation to Christians?&rdquo; Such seems to be something
+ like the poet&rsquo;s thought. What central position can he gain, which, while
+ it answers best the necessities of his own soul with regard to God, will
+ enable him to feel himself connected with the whole Christian world, and
+ to sympathize with all; so that he may not be alone, but one of the whole.
+ Certainly the position necessary for both requirements is one and the
+ same. He that is isolated from his brethren, loses one of the greatest
+ helps to draw near to God. Now, in this time, which is so peculiarly
+ transitional, this is a question of no little import for all who, while
+ they gladly forsake old, or rather <i>modern</i>, theories, for what is to
+ them a more full development of Christianity as well as a return to the
+ fountain-head, yet seek to be saved from the danger of losing sympathy
+ with those who are content with what they are compelled to abandon. Seeing
+ much in the common modes of thought and belief that is inconsistent with
+ Christianity, and even opposed to it, they yet cannot but see likewise in
+ many of them a power of spiritual good; which, though not dependent on the
+ peculiar mode, is yet enveloped, if not embodied, in that mode.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Ask, else, these ruins of humanity,
+ This flesh worn out to rags and tatters,
+ This soul at struggle with insanity,
+ Who thence take comfort, can I doubt,
+ Which an empire gained, were a loss without.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The love of God is the soul of Christianity. Christ is the body of that
+ truth. The love of God is the creating and redeeming, the forming and
+ satisfying power of the universe. The love of God is that which kills evil
+ and glorifies goodness. It is the safety of the great whole. It is the
+ home-atmosphere of all life. Well does the poet of the &ldquo;Christmas Eve&rdquo;
+ say:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The loving worm within its clod,
+ Were diviner than a loveless God
+ Amid his worlds, I will dare to say.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Surely then, inasmuch as man is made in the image of God nothing less than
+ a love in the image of God&rsquo;s love, all-embracing, quietly excusing,
+ heartily commending, can constitute the blessedness of man; a love not
+ insensible to that which is foreign to it, but overcoming it with good.
+ Where man loves in his kind, even as God loves in His kind, then man is
+ saved, then he has reached the unseen and eternal. But if, besides the
+ necessity to love that lies in a man, there be likewise in the man whom he
+ ought to love something in common with him, then the law of love has
+ increased force. If that point of sympathy lies at the centre of the being
+ of each, and if these centres are brought into contact, then the circles
+ of their being will be, if not coincident, yet concentric. We must wait
+ patiently for the completion of God&rsquo;s great harmony, and meantime love
+ everywhere and as we can.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the great lesson which this poem teaches, and which is taught more
+ directly in the &ldquo;Easter Day&rdquo; (forming part of the same volume), is that
+ the business of a man&rsquo;s life is to be a Christian. A man has to do with
+ God first; in Him only can he find the unity and harmony he seeks. To be
+ one with Him is to be at the centre of things. If one acknowledges that
+ God has revealed himself in Christ; that God has recognized man as his
+ family, by appearing among them in their form; surely that very
+ acknowledgment carries with it the admission that man&rsquo;s chief concern is
+ with this revelation. What does God say and mean, teach and manifest,
+ herein? If this world is God&rsquo;s making, and he is present in all nature; if
+ he rules all things and is present in all history; if the soul of man is
+ in his image, with all its circles of thought and multiplicity of forms;
+ and if for man it be not enough to be rooted in God, but he must likewise
+ lay hold on God; then surely no question, in whatever direction, can be
+ truly answered, save by him who stands at the side of Christ. The doings
+ of God cannot be understood, save by him who has the mind of Christ, which
+ is the mind of God. All things must be strange to one who sympathizes not
+ with the thought of the Maker, who understands not the design of the
+ Artist. Where is he to begin? What light has he by which to classify? How
+ will he bring order out of this apparent confusion, when the order is
+ higher than his thought; when the confusion to him is <i>caused</i> by the
+ order&rsquo;s being greater than he can comprehend? Because he stands outside
+ and not within, he sees an entangled maze of forces, where there is in
+ truth an intertwining dance of harmony. There is for no one any solution
+ of the world&rsquo;s mystery, or of any part of its mystery, except he be able
+ to say with our poet:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;I have looked to Thee from the beginning,
+ Straight up to Thee through all the world,
+ Which, like an idle scroll, lay furled
+ To nothingness on either side:
+ And since the time Thou wast descried,
+ Spite of the weak heart, so have I
+ Lived ever, and so fain would die,
+ Living and dying, Thee before!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Christianity is not the ornament, or even complement, of life; it is its
+ necessity; it is life itself glorified into God&rsquo;s ideal.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Dr. Chalmers, from considering the minuteness of the directions given to
+ Moses for the making of the tabernacle, was led to think that he himself
+ was wrong in attending too little to the &ldquo;<i>petite morale</i>&rdquo; of dress.
+ Will this be excuse enough for occupying a few sentences with the rhyming
+ of this poem? Certainly the rhymes of a poem form no small part of its
+ artistic existence. Probably there is a deeper meaning in this part of the
+ poetic art than has yet been made clear to poet&rsquo;s mind. In this poem the
+ rhymes have their share in its humorous charm. The writer&rsquo;s power of using
+ double and triple rhymes is remarkable, and the effect is often pleasing,
+ even where they are used in the more solemn parts of the poem. Take the
+ lines:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;No! love which, on earth, amid all the shows of it,
+ Has ever been seen the sole good of life in it,
+ The love, ever growing there, spite of the strife in it,
+ Shall arise, made perfect, from death&rsquo;s repose of it.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ A poem is a thing not for the understanding or heart only, but likewise
+ for the ear; or, rather, for the understanding and heart through the ear.
+ The best poem is best set forth when best read. If, then, there be rhymes
+ which, when read aloud, do, by their composition of words, prevent the
+ understanding from laying hold on the separate words, while the ear lays
+ hold on the rhymes, the perfection of the art must here be lost sight of,
+ notwithstanding the completeness which the rhyming manifests on close
+ examination. For instance, in &ldquo;<i>equipt yours,&rdquo; &ldquo;Scriptures;&rdquo;
+ &ldquo;Manchester,&rdquo; &ldquo;haunches stir</i>;&rdquo; or &ldquo;<i>affirm any,&rdquo; &ldquo;Germany</i>;&rdquo;
+ where two words rhyme with one word. But there are very few of them that
+ are objectionable on account of this difficulty and necessity of rapid
+ analysis.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One of the most wonderful things in the poem is, that so much of argument
+ is expressed in a species of verse, which one might be inclined, at first
+ sight, to think the least fitted for embodying it. But, in fact, the same
+ amount of argument in any other kind of verse would, in all likelihood,
+ have been intolerably dull as a work of art. Here the verse is full of
+ life and vigour, flagging never. Where, in several parts, the exact
+ meaning is difficult to reach, this results chiefly from the dramatic
+ rapidity and condensation of the thoughts. The argumentative power is
+ indeed wonderful; the arguments themselves powerful in their simplicity,
+ and embodied in words of admirable force. The poem is full of pathos and
+ humour; full of beauty and grandeur, earnestness and truth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0009" id="link2H_4_0009">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ ESSAYS ON SOME OF THE FORMS OF LITERATURE
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: &ldquo;Essays on some of the Forms of Literature.&rdquo; By T.T. Lynch,
+ Author of &ldquo;Theophilus Trinal.&rdquo; Longmans.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Schoppe, the satiric chorus of Jean Paul&rsquo;s romance of Titan, makes his
+ appearance at a certain masked ball, carrying in front of him a glass
+ case, in which the ball is remasked, repeated, and again reflected in a
+ mirror behind, by a set of puppets, ludicrously aping the apery of the
+ courtiers, whose whole life and outward manifestation was but a body-mask
+ mechanically moved with the semblance of real life and action. The court
+ simulates reality. The masks are a multiform mockery at their own
+ unreality, and as such are regarded by Schoppe, who takes them off with
+ the utmost ridicule in his masked puppet-show, which, with its reflection
+ in the mirror, is again indefinitely multiplied in the many-sided
+ reflector of Schoppe&rsquo;s, or of Richter&rsquo;s, or of the reader&rsquo;s own
+ imagination. The successive retreating and beholding in this scene is
+ suggested to the reviewer by the fact that the last of these essays by Mr.
+ Lynch is devoted in part to reviews. So that the reviews review books,&mdash;Mr.
+ Lynch reviews the reviews, and the present Reviewer finds himself
+ (somewhat presumptuously, it may be) attempting to review Mr. Lynch. In
+ this, however, his office must be very different from that of Schoppe (for
+ there is a deeper and more real correspondence between the position of the
+ showman and the reviewer than that outward resemblance which first caused
+ the one to suggest the other). The latter&rsquo;s office, in the present
+ instance, was, by mockery, to destroy the false, the very involution of
+ the satire adding to the strength of the ridicule. His glass case was
+ simply a review uttered by shapes and wires instead of words and
+ handwriting. And the work of the true critic must sometimes be to condemn,
+ and, as far as his strength can reach, utterly to destroy the false,&mdash;scorching
+ and withering its seeming beauty, till it is reduced to its essence and
+ original groundwork of dust and ashes. It is only, however, when it wears
+ the form of beauty which is the garment of truth, and so, like the
+ Erl-maidens, has power to bewitch, that it is worth the notice and attack
+ of the critic. Many forms of error, perhaps most, are better left alone to
+ die of their own weakness, for the galvanic battery of criticism only
+ helps to perpetuate their ghastly life. The highest work of the critic,
+ however, must surely be to direct attention to the true, in whatever form
+ it may have found utterance. But on this let us hear Mr. Lynch himself in
+ the last of these four lectures which were delivered by him at the Royal
+ Institution, Manchester, and are now before us in the form of a book:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;The kritikos, the discerner, if he is ever saying to us, This is not
+ gold; and never, This is; is either very humbly useful, or very perverse,
+ or very unfortunate. This is not gold, he says. Thank you, we reply, we
+ perceived as much. And this is not, he adds. True, we answer, but we see
+ gold grains glittering out of its rude, dark mass. Well, at least, this is
+ not, he proceeds. Perverse man! we retort, are you seeking what is not
+ gold? We are inquiring for what is, and unfortunate indeed are we if, born
+ into a world of Nature, and of Spirit once so rich, we are born but to
+ find that it has spent or has lost all its wealth. Unhappy man would he
+ be, who, walking his garden, should scent only the earthy savour of leaves
+ dead or dying, never perceiving, and that afar off, the heavenly odour of
+ roses fresh to-day from the Maker&rsquo;s hands. The discerning by spiritual
+ aroma may lead to discernment by the eye, and to that careful scrutiny,
+ and thence greater knowledge, of which the eye is instrument and
+ minister.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And again:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;The critic criticized, if dealt with in the worst fashion of his own
+ class, must be pronounced a mere monster, &lsquo;seeking whom he may devour;&rsquo;
+ and, therefore, to be hunted and slain as speedily as possible, and
+ stuffed for the museum, where he may be regarded with due horror, but in
+ safety. But if dealt with after the best fashion of his class, a very
+ honourable and beneficent office is assigned him, and he is warned only&mdash;though
+ zealously&mdash;against its perversions. A judicial chair in the kingdom
+ of human thought, filled by a man of true integrity, comprehensiveness,
+ and delicacy of spirit, is a seat of terror and praise, whose powers are
+ at once most fostering to whatever is good, most repressive of whatever is
+ evil.... The critic, in his office of censurer, has need so much to
+ controvert, expose, and punish, because of the abundance of literary
+ faults; and as there is a right and a wrong side in warfare, so there will
+ be in criticism. And as when soldiers are numerous, there will be not a
+ few who are only tolerable, if even that, so of critics. But then the
+ critic is more than the censurer; and in his higher and happier aspect
+ appears before us and serves us, as the discoverer, the vindicator, and
+ the eulogist of excellence.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But resisting the temptation to quote further from Mr. Lynch&rsquo;s book on
+ this matter of Criticism, which seemed the natural point of contact by
+ which the Reviewer could lay hold on the book, he would pass on with the
+ remark that his duty in the present instance is of the nobler and better
+ sort&mdash;nobler and better, that is, with regard to the object, for duty
+ in the man remains ever the same&mdash;namely, the exposition of
+ excellence, and not of its opposite. Mr. Lynch is a man of true insight
+ and large heart, who has already done good in the world, and will do more;
+ although, possibly, he belongs rather to the last class of writers
+ described by himself, in the extract I am about to give from this same
+ essay, than to any of the preceding:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Some of the best books are written avowedly, or with evident
+ consciousness of the fact, for the select public that is constituted by
+ minds of the deeper class, or minds the more advanced of their time. Such
+ books may have but a restricted circulation and limited esteem in their
+ own day, and may afterwards extend both their fame and the circle of their
+ readers. Others of the best books, written with a pathos and a power that
+ may be universally felt, appeal at once to the common humanity of the
+ world, and get a response marvellously strong and immediate. An ordinary
+ human eye and heart, whose glances are true, whose pulses healthy, will
+ fit us to say of much that we read&mdash;This is good, that is poor. But
+ only the educated eye and the experienced heart will fit us to judge of
+ what relates to matters veiled from ordinary observation, and belonging to
+ the profounder region of human thought and emotion. Powers, however, that
+ the few only possess, may be required to paint what everybody can see, so
+ that everybody shall say, How beautiful! how like! And powers adequate to
+ do this in the finest manner will be often adequate to do much more&mdash;may
+ produce, indeed, books or pictures, whose singular merit only the few
+ shall perceive, and the many for awhile deny, and books or pictures which,
+ while they give an immediate and pure pleasure to the common eye, shall
+ give a far fuller and finer pleasure to that eye that is the organ of a
+ deeper and more cultivated soul. There are, too, men of <i>peculiar</i>
+ powers, rare and fine, who can never hope to please the large public, at
+ least of their own age, but whose writings are a heart&rsquo;s ease and heart&rsquo;s
+ joy to the select few, and serve such as a cup of heavenly comfort for the
+ earth&rsquo;s journey, and a lamp of heavenly light for the shadows of the way.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One other extract from the general remarks on Books in this essay, and we
+ will turn to another:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;In all our estimation of the various qualities of books, if it be true
+ that our reading assists our life, it is true also that our life assists
+ our reading. If we let our spirit talk to us in undistracted moments&mdash;if
+ we commune with friendly, serious Nature, face to face, often&mdash;if we
+ pursue honourable aims in a steady progress&mdash;if we learn how a man&rsquo;s
+ best work falls below his thought, yet how still his failure prompts a
+ tenderer love of his thought&mdash;if we live in sincere, frank relations
+ with some few friends, joying in their joy, hearing the tale and sharing
+ the pain of their grief, and in frequent interchange of honest, household
+ sensibility&mdash;if we look about us on character, marking distinctly
+ what we can see, and feeling the prompting of a hundred questions
+ concerning what is out of our ken:&mdash;if we live thus, we shall be good
+ readers and critics of books, and improving ones.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The second and third of these essays are on Biography and Fiction
+ respectively and principally; treating, however, of collateral subjects as
+ well. Deep is the relation between the life shadowed forth in a biography,
+ and the life in a man&rsquo;s brain which he shadows forth in a fiction&mdash;when
+ that fiction is of the highest order, and written in love, is beheld even
+ by the writer himself with reverence. Delightful, surely, it must be; yes,
+ awful too, to read to-day the embodiment of a man&rsquo;s noblest thought, to
+ follow the hero of his creation through his temptations, contests, and
+ victories, in a world which likewise is&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;All made out of the carver&rsquo;s brain;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ and to-morrow to read the biography of this same writer. What of his own
+ ideal has he realized? Where can the life-fountain be detected within him
+ which found issue to the world&rsquo;s light and air, in this ideal self? Shall
+ God&rsquo;s fiction, which is man&rsquo;s reality, fall short of man&rsquo;s fiction? Shall
+ a man be less than what he can conceive and utter? Surely it will not,
+ cannot end thus. If a man live at all in harmony with the great laws of
+ being&mdash;if he will permit the working out of God&rsquo;s idea in him, he
+ must one day arrive at something greater than what now he can project and
+ behold. Yet, in biography, we do not so often find traces of those
+ struggles depicted in the loftier fiction. One reason may be that the
+ contest is often entirely within, and so a man may have won his spiritual
+ freedom without any outward token directly significant of the victory;
+ except, if he be an artist, such expression as it finds in fiction,
+ whether the fiction be in marble, or in sweet harmonies, or in ink. Nor
+ can we determine the true significance of any living act; for being
+ ourselves within the compass of the life-mystery, we cannot hold it at
+ arm&rsquo;s length from us and look at its lines of configuration. Nor of a life
+ can we in any measure determine the success by what we behold of it. It is
+ to us at best but a truncated spire, whose want of completion may be the
+ greater because of the breadth of its base, and its slow taper, indicating
+ the lofty height to which it is intended to aspire. The idea of our own
+ life is more than we can embrace. It is not ours, but God&rsquo;s, and fades
+ away into the infinite. Our comprehension is finite; we ourselves
+ infinite. We can only trust in God and do the truth; then, and then only,
+ is our life safe, and sure both of continuance and development.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the reviewer perhaps too often merely steals his author&rsquo;s text and
+ writes upon it; or, like a man who lies in bed thinking about a dream till
+ its folds enwrap him and he sinks into the midst of its visions, he
+ forgets his position of beholding, and passes from observation into
+ spontaneous utterance. What says our author about &ldquo;biography,
+ autobiography, and history?&rdquo; This lecture has pleased the reviewer most of
+ the four. Reading it in a lonely place, under a tree, with wide fields and
+ slopes around, it produced on his mind the two effects which perhaps Mr.
+ Lynch would most wish it should produce&mdash;namely, first, a longing to
+ lead a more true and noble life; and, secondly, a desire to read more
+ biography. Nor can he but hope that it must produce the same effect on
+ every earnest reader, on every one whose own biography would not be
+ altogether a blank in what regards the individual will and spiritual aim.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;In meditative hours, when we blend despair of ourself with complaint of
+ the world, the biography of a man successful in this great business of
+ living is as the visit of an angel sent to strengthen us. Give the soldier
+ his sword, the farmer his plough, the carpenter his hammer and nails, the
+ manufacturer his machines, the merchant his stores, and the scholar his
+ books; these are but implements; the man is more than his work or tools.
+ How far has he fulfilled the law of his being, and attained its desire? Is
+ his life a whole; the days as threads and as touches; the life, the
+ well-woven garment, the well-painted picture? Which of two sacrifices has
+ he offered&mdash;the one so acceptable to the powers of dark worlds, the
+ other so acceptable to powers of bright ones&mdash;that of soul to body,
+ or that of body to soul? Has he slain what was holiest in him to obtain
+ gifts from Fashion or Mammon? Or has he, in days so arduous, so assiduous,
+ that they are like a noble army of martyrs, made burnt-offering of what
+ was secondary, throwing into the flames the salt of true moral energy and
+ the incense of cordial affections? We want the work to show us by its
+ parts, its mass, its form, the qualities of the man, and to see that the
+ man is perfected through his work as well as the work finished by his
+ effort.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Perhaps the highest moral height which a man can reach, and at the same
+ time the most difficult of attainment, is the willingness to be <i>nothing</i>
+ relatively, so that he attain that positive excellence which the original
+ conditions of his being render not merely possible, but imperative. It is
+ nothing to a man to be greater or less than another&mdash;to be esteemed
+ or otherwise by the public or private world in which he moves. Does he, or
+ does he not, behold, and love, and live, the unchangeable, the essential,
+ the divine? This he can only do according as God hath made him. He can
+ behold and understand God in the least degree, as well as in the greatest,
+ only by the godlike within him; and he that loves thus the good and great,
+ has no room, no thought, no necessity for comparison and difference. The
+ truth satisfies him. He lives in its absoluteness. God makes the glow-worm
+ as well as the star; the light in both is divine. If mine be an earth-star
+ to gladden the wayside, I must cultivate humbly and rejoicingly its green
+ earth-glow, and not seek to blanch it to the whiteness of the stars that
+ lie in the fields of blue. For to deny God in my own being is to cease to
+ behold him in any. God and man can meet only by the man&rsquo;s becoming that
+ which God meant him to be. Then he enters into the house of life, which is
+ greater than the house of fame. It is better to be a child in a green
+ field than a knight of many orders in a state ceremonial.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;One biography may help conjecture or satisfy reason concerning the story
+ of a thousand unrecorded lives. And how few even of the deserving among
+ the multitude can deserve, as &lsquo;dear sons of memory,&rsquo; to be shrined in the
+ public heart. Few of us die unwept, but most of us unwritten. We shall
+ find a grave&mdash;less certainly a tombstone&mdash;and with much less
+ likelihood a biographer. Those &lsquo;bright particular&rsquo; stars that at evening
+ look towards us from afar, yet still are individual in the distance, are
+ at clearest times but about a thousand; but the milky lustre that runs
+ through mid heaven is composed of a million million lights, which are not
+ the less separate because seen undistinguishably. Absorbed, not lost, in
+ the multitude of the unrecorded, our private dear ones make part in this
+ mild, blissful shining of the &lsquo;general assembly,&rsquo; the great congregation
+ of the skies. Thus the past is aglow with the unwritten, the nameless. The
+ leaders, sons of fame, conspicuous in lustre, eminent in place; these are
+ the few, whose great individuality burns with distinct, starry light
+ through the dark of ages. Such stars, without the starry way, would not
+ teach us the vastness of heaven; and the &lsquo;way,&rsquo; without these, were not
+ sufficient to gladden and glorify the night with pomp of Hierarchical
+ Ascents of Domination.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There are many passages in this essay with which the reviewer would be
+ glad to enrich his notice of the book, but limitation of space, and
+ perhaps justice to the essay itself, which ought to be read in its own
+ completeness, forbid. Mr. Lynch looks to the heart of the matter, and
+ makes one put the question&mdash;&ldquo;Would not a biography written by Mr.
+ Lynch himself be a valuable addition to this kind of literature?&rdquo; His
+ would not be an interesting account of outward events and relationships
+ and progress, nor even a succession of revelations of inward conditions,
+ but we should expect to find ourselves elevated by him to a point of view
+ from which the life of the man would assume an artistic individuality, as
+ it were an isolation of existence; for the supposed author could not
+ choose for his regard any biography for which this would be impossible; or
+ in which the reticulated nerves of purpose did not combine the whole, with
+ more or less of success, into a true and remarkable unity. One passage
+ more from this essay,&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Biography, then, makes life known to us as more wealthy in character, and
+ much more remarkable in its every-day stories, than we had deemed it.
+ Another good it does us is this. It introduces us to some of our most
+ agreeable and stimulative friendships. People may be more beneficially
+ intimate with one they never saw than even with a neighbour or brother.
+ Many a solitary, puzzled, incommunicative person, has found society
+ provided, his riddle read, and his heart&rsquo;s secret, that longed and strove
+ for utterance, outspoken for him in a biography. And both a love purer
+ than any yet entertained may be originated, and a pure but ungratified
+ love already existing, find an object, by the visit of a biography. In
+ actual life you see your friend to-day, and will see him again to-morrow
+ or next year; but in the dear book, you have your friend and all his
+ experiences at once and ever. He is with you wholly, and may be with you
+ at any time. He lives for you, and has already died for you, to give
+ finish to the meaning, fulness, and sanctity, to the comfort of his days.
+ He is mysteriously above as well as before you, by this fact, that he has
+ died. Thus your intimate is your superior, your solace, but your support,
+ too, and an example of the victory to which he calls you. His end, or her
+ end, is our own in view, and the flagging spirit revives. We see the goal,
+ and gird our loins anew for the race. Or, speaking of things minor, there
+ is fresh prospect of the game, there is companionship in the hunt, and
+ spirit for the winning. Such biography, too, is a mirror in which we see
+ ourselves; and we see that we may trim or adorn, or that the plain signs
+ of our deficient health or ill-ruled temper may set us to look for, and to
+ use the means of improvement. But such a mirror is as a water one; in
+ which first you may see your face, and which then becomes for you a bath
+ to wash away the stains you see, and to offer its pure, cool stream as a
+ restorative and cosmetic for your wrinkles and pallors. And what a
+ pleasure there will be sometimes as we peruse a biography, in finding
+ another who is so like ourself&mdash;saying the same things, feeling the
+ same dreads, and shames, and flutterings; hampered and harassed much as
+ poor self is. Then, the escapes of such a friend give us hope of
+ deliverance for ourself; and his better, or if not better, yet rewarded,
+ patience, freshens our eye and sinews, and puts a staff into our hand. And
+ certain seals of impossibility that we had put on this stone, and on that,
+ beneath which our hopes lay buried, are by this biography, as by a
+ visiting angel, effectually broken, and our hopes arise again. Our view of
+ life becomes more complete because we see the whole of his, or of hers. We
+ view life, too, in a more composed, tender way. Wavering faith, in its
+ chosen determining principles, is confirmed. In quiet comparison of
+ ourselves with one of our own class, or one who has made the mark for
+ which we are striving, we are shamed to have done no better, and stirred
+ to attempt former things again, or fresh ones in a stronger and more
+ patient spirit.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It is, indeed, well with him who has found a friend whose spirit touches
+ his own and illuminates it.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;I missed him when the sun began to bend;
+ I found him not when I had lost his rim;
+ With many tears I went in search of him,
+ Climbing high mountains which did still ascend,
+ And gave me echoes when I called my friend;
+ Through cities vast and charnel-houses grim,
+ And high cathedrals where the light was dim;
+ Through books, and arts, and works without an end&mdash;
+ But found him not, the friend whom I had lost.
+ And yet I found him, as I found the lark,
+ A sound in fields I heard but could not mark;
+ I found him nearest when I missed him most,
+ I found him in my heart, a life in frost,
+ A light I knew not till my soul was dark.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Next to possessing a true, wise, and victorious friend seated by your
+ fireside, it is blessed to have the spirit of such a friend embodied&mdash;for
+ spirit can assume any embodiment&mdash;on your bookshelves. But in the
+ latter case the friendship is all on one side. For full friendship your
+ friend must love you, and know that you love him. Surely these biographies
+ are not merely spiritual links connecting us in the truest manner with
+ past times and vanished minds, and thus producing strong half friendships.
+ Are they not likewise links connecting us with a future, wherein these
+ souls shall dawn upon ours, rising again from the death of the past into
+ the life of our knowledge and love? Are not these biographies letters of
+ introduction, forwarded, but not yet followed by him whom they introduce,
+ for whose step we listen, and whose voice we long to hear; and whom we
+ shall yet meet somewhere in the Infinite? Shall I not one day, &ldquo;somewhere,
+ somehow,&rdquo; clasp the large hand of Novalis, and, gazing on his face,
+ compare his features with those of Saint John?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The essay on light literature must be left to the spontaneous appreciation
+ of those who are already acquainted with this book, or who may be induced,
+ by the representations here made, to become acquainted with it. Before
+ proceeding to notice the first essay in the little volume, namely, that on
+ Poetry, its subject suggests the fact of the publication of a second
+ edition of the Memorials of Theophilus Trinal, by the same author, a
+ portion of which consists of interspersed poems. These are of true poetic
+ worth; and although in some cases wanting in rhythmic melody, yet in most
+ of these cases they possess a wild and peculiar rhythm of their own. The
+ reviewer knows of some whose hearts this book has made glad, and doubtless
+ there are many such.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The essay on Poetry is itself poetic throughout in its expression. And how
+ else shall Poetry be described than by Poetry? What form shall embrace and
+ define the highest? Must it not be self-descriptive as self-existent? For
+ what man is to this planet, what the eye is to man himself, Poetry is to
+ Literature. Yet one can hardly help wishing that the poetic forms in this
+ Essay were fewer and less minute, and the whole a little more scientific;
+ though it is a question how far we have a right to ask for this. As you
+ open it, however, the pages seem absolutely to sparkle, as if strewn with
+ diamond sparks. It is no dull, metallic, surface lustre, but a shining
+ from within, as well as from the superficies. Still one cannot deny that
+ fancy is too prominent in Mr. Lynch&rsquo;s writings. It is true that his Fancy
+ is the fairy attendant on his Imagination, which latter uses the former
+ for her own higher ends; and that there is little or no <i>mere</i> fancy
+ to be found in his books; for if you look below the surface-form you find
+ a truth. But it were to be desired that the Truth clothed herself always
+ in the living forms of Imagination, and thus walked forth amongst her
+ worshippers, looking on them from living eyes, rather than that she should
+ show herself through the windows of fancy. Sometimes there may be an
+ offence against taste, as in page 20; sometimes an image may be expanded
+ too much, and sometimes the very exuberance of imaginative fancy (if the
+ combination be correct) may lead to an association of images that suggests
+ incongruity. Still the essay is abundantly beautiful and true. The
+ poetical quotations are not isolated, or exposed to view as specimens, but
+ are worked into the web of the prose like the flowers in the damask, and
+ do their part in the evolution of the continuous thought.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;If poetry, as light from the heart of God, is for our heart, that we may
+ brighten and distinguish individual things; if it is to transfigure for us
+ the round, dusk world as by an inner radiance; if it is to present human
+ life and history as Rembrandt pictures, in which darkness serves and
+ glorifies light; if, like light, formless in its essence, all things
+ shapen towards the perfection of their forms under its influence; if,
+ entering as through crevices in single beams, it makes dimmest places
+ cheerful and sacred with its golden touch: then must the heart of the Poet
+ in which this true light shineth be as a hospice on the mountain pathways
+ of the world, and his verse must be the lamp seen from far that burns to
+ tell us where bread and shelter, drink, fire, and companionship, may be
+ found; and he himself should have the mountaineer&rsquo;s hardiness and
+ resolution. From the heart as source, to the heart in influence, Poetry
+ comes. The inward, the upward, and the onward, whether we speak of an
+ individual or a nation, may not be separated in our consideration. Deep
+ and sacred imaginative meditations are needed for the true earthward as
+ well as for the heavenward progress of men and peoples. And Poetry,
+ whether old or new, streaming from the heart moved by the powerful spirit
+ of love, has influence on the heart public and individual, and thence on
+ the manners, laws, and institutions of nations. If Poesy visit the length
+ and breadth of a country after years unfruitfully dull, coming like a
+ showery fertilizing wind after drought, the corners and the valley-hidings
+ are visited too, and these perhaps she now visits first, as these
+ sometimes she has visited only. For miles and for miles, the public corn,
+ the bread of the nation&rsquo;s life, is bettered; and in our own endeared spot,
+ the roses, delight of our individual eye and sense, yield us more
+ prosperingly their colour and their fragrance. For the universal sunshine
+ which brightens a thousand cities, beautifies ten thousand homesteads, and
+ rejoices ten times ten thousand hearts. And as rains in the mid season
+ renew for awhile the faded greenness of spring; and trees in fervent
+ summers, when their foliage has deepened or fully fixed its hue, bedeck
+ themselves through the fervency with bright midsummer shoots; so, by
+ Poetry are the youthful hues of the soul renewed, and truths that have
+ long stood full-foliaged in our minds, are by its fine influences
+ empowered to put forth fresh shoots. Thus age, which is a necessity for
+ the body, may be warded off as a disease from the soul, and we may be like
+ the old man in Chaucer, who had nothing hoary about him but his hairs&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;&lsquo;Though I be hoor I fare as doth a tree
+ That blosmeth er the fruit ywoxen be,
+ The blosmy tree n&rsquo; is neither drie ne ded:
+ I feel me nowhere hoor, but on my head.
+ Min herte and all my limmes ben as grene
+ As laurel through the yere is for to sene.&rsquo;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Hear our author again as to the calling of the poet:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;To unite earthly love and celestial&mdash;&lsquo;true to the kindred points of
+ heaven and home;&rsquo; to reconcile time and eternity; to draw presage of joy&rsquo;s
+ victory from the delight of the secret honey dropping from the clefts of
+ rocky sorrow; <i>to harmonize our instinctive longings for the definite
+ and the infinite, in the ideal Perfect</i>; to read creation as a human
+ book of the heart, both plain and mystical, and divinely written: such is
+ the office fulfilled by best-loved poets. Their ladder of celestial ascent
+ must be fixed on its base, earth, if its top is to securely rest on
+ heaven.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Beautifully, too, does he describe the birth of Poetry; though one may
+ doubt its correctness, at least if attributed to the highest kind of
+ poetry.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;When words of felt truth were first spoken by the first pair, in love of
+ their garden, their God, and one another, and these words were with joyful
+ surprise felt to be in their form and glow answerable to the happy thought
+ uttered; then Poetry sprang. And when the first Father and first Mother,
+ settling their soul upon its thought, found that thought brighten; and
+ when from it, as thus they mused, like branchlets from a branch, or
+ flowerets from their bud, other thoughts came, ranging themselves by the
+ exerted, yet painlessly exerted, power of the soul, in an order felt to be
+ beautiful, and of a sound pleasant in utterance to ear and soul; being
+ withal, through the sweetness of their impression on the heart, fixed for
+ memory&rsquo;s frequentest recurrence; then was the world&rsquo;s first poem composed,
+ and in the joyful flutter of a heart that had thus become a maker, the
+ maker of a &lsquo;thing of beauty,&rsquo; like in beauty even unto God&rsquo;s heaven, and
+ trees, and flowers, the secret of Poesy shone tremulously forth.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Whether this be so or not, the highest poetic feeling of which we are now
+ conscious springs not from the beholding of perfected beauty, but from the
+ mute sympathy which the creation with all its children manifests with us
+ in the groaning and travailing which looketh for the sonship. Because of
+ our need and aspiration, the snowdrop gives birth in our hearts to a
+ loftier spiritual and poetic feeling, than the rose most complete in form,
+ colour, and odour. The rose is of Paradise&mdash;the snowdrop is of the
+ striving, hoping, longing Earth. Perhaps our highest poetry is the
+ expression of our aspirations in the sympathetic forms of visible nature.
+ Nor is this merely a longing for a restored Paradise; for even in the
+ ordinary history of men, no man or woman that has fallen can be restored
+ to the position formerly occupied. Such must rise to a yet higher place,
+ whence they can behold their former standing far beneath their feet. They
+ must be restored by attaining something better than they ever possessed
+ before, or not at all. If the law be a weariness, we must escape it by
+ being filled with the spirit, for not otherwise can we fulfil the law than
+ by being above the law. There is for us no escape, save as the Poet
+ counsels us:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Is thy strait horizon dreary?
+ Is thy foolish fancy chill?
+ Change the feet that have grown weary,
+ For the wings that never will.
+ Burst the flesh and live the spirit;
+ Haunt the beautiful and far;
+ Thou hast all things to inherit,
+ And a soul for every star.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But the Reviewer must hasten to take leave, though unwillingly, of this
+ pleasing, earnest, and profitable book. Perhaps it could be wished that
+ the writer helped his readers a little more into the channel of his
+ thought; made it easier for them to see the direction in which he is
+ leading them; called out to them, &ldquo;Come up hither,&rdquo; before he said, &ldquo;I
+ will show you a thing.&rdquo; But the Reviewer says this with deference; and
+ takes his leave with the hope that Mr. Lynch will be listened to for two
+ good reasons: first, that he speaks the truth; last, that he has already
+ suffered for the Truth&rsquo;s sake.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0010" id="link2H_4_0010">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ THE HISTORY AND HEROES OF MEDICINE.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: By J. Rutherfurd Russell, M.D.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In this volume, Dr. Russell has not merely aimed at the production of a
+ book that might be serviceable to the Faculty, by which the history of its
+ own art is not at all sufficiently studied, but has aspired to the far
+ more difficult success of writing a history of medicine which shall be
+ readable to all who care for true history&mdash;that history, namely, in
+ which not merely growth and change are represented, but the secret
+ supplies and influences as well, which minister to the one and occasion
+ the other. If the difficulty has been greater (although with his evidently
+ wide sympathies and keen insight into humanity we doubt if it has), the
+ success is the more honourable; for a success it certainly is. The
+ partially biographical plan on which he has constructed his work has no
+ doubt aided in the accomplishment of this purpose; for it is much easier
+ to present the subject in its human relations, when its history is given
+ in connexion with the lives of those who were most immediately associated
+ with it. But it would be a great mistake to conclude from this, that it is
+ the less a history of the art itself; for no art or science has life in
+ itself, apart from the minds which foresee, discover, and verify it.
+ Whatever point in its progress it may have reached, it will there remain
+ until a new man appears, whose new questions shall illicit new replies
+ from nature&mdash;replies which are the essential food of the science, by
+ which it lives, grows, and makes itself a history.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Nor must our readers suppose that because the book is readable, it is
+ therefore slight, either in material or construction. Much reading and
+ research have provided the material, while real thought and argument have
+ superintended the construction. Nor is it by any means without the
+ adornment that a poetic temperament and a keen sense of humour can supply.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Naturally, the central life in the book is that of Lord Bacon, the man who
+ brought out of his treasures things both new and old. Up to him the story
+ gradually leads from the prehistoric times of Aesculapius, the pathway
+ first becoming plainly visible in the life and labours of Hippocrates. His
+ fine intellect and powers of acute observation afforded the material
+ necessary for the making of a true physician. The Greek mind, partly,
+ perhaps, from its artistic tendencies, seems to have been peculiarly
+ impatient of incomplete forms, and therefore, to have much preferred the
+ construction of a theory from the most shadowy material, to the patient
+ experiment and investigation necessary for the procuring of the real
+ substance; and Hippocrates, not knowing how to advance to a theory by
+ rational experiment, and too honest to invent one, assumes the traditional
+ theories, founded on the vaguest and most obtrusive generalizations. Those
+ which his experience taught him to reject, were adopted and maintained by
+ Galen and all who followed him for centuries, the chief instance of
+ progress being only the substitution by the Arabians of some of the milder
+ medicines now in use, for the terrible and often fatal drugs employed by
+ the Greek and Roman physicians. The fanciful classification of diseases
+ into four kinds&mdash;hot, cold, moist and dry, with the corresponding
+ arbitrary classification of remedies to be administered by contraries,
+ continued to be the only recognized theory of medicine for many centuries
+ after the Christian era.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But Lord Bacon, amongst other branches of knowledge which he considers
+ ill-followed, makes especial mention of medicine, which he would submit to
+ the same rules of observation and experiment laid down by him for the
+ advancement of learning in general. With regard to it, as with regard to
+ the discovery of all the higher laws of nature, he considers &ldquo;that men
+ have made too untimely a departure, and too remote a recess from
+ particulars.&rdquo; Men have hurried to conclusions, and then argued from them
+ as from facts. Therefore let us have no traditional theories, and make
+ none for ourselves but such as are revealed in the form of laws to the
+ patient investigator, who has &ldquo;straightened and held fast Proteus, that he
+ might be compelled to change his shapes,&rdquo; and so reveal his nature. Hence
+ one of the aspects in which Lord Bacon was compelled to appear was that of
+ a destroyer of what preceded. In this he resembled Cardan and Paracelsus
+ who went before him, and who like him pulled down, but could not, like
+ him, build up. He resembled them, however, in the possession of another
+ element of character, namely, that poetic imagination which looks abroad
+ into the regions of possibilities, and foresees or invents. But in the
+ case of the charlatan, the vaguest suggestions of his mind in its
+ favourite mood, is adopted as a theory all but proved, if not as a direct
+ revelation to the favoured individual; while the true thinker seeks but an
+ hypothesis corresponding in some measure to facts already discovered, in
+ order that he may have the suggestion of new experiments and
+ investigations in the course of his attempts to verify or disprove the
+ hypothesis. Lord Bacon considered hypothesis invaluable in the discovery
+ of truth, but he only used it as a board upon which to write his questions
+ to nature; or, to use another figure, hypothesis with him is as the next
+ stepping-stone in the swollen river, which he supposes to be here or
+ there, and so feels for with his staff. But it must be proved before it be
+ regarded as a law, and greatly corroborated before it be even adopted as a
+ theory. Cardan and Paracelsus were destroyers and mystics only; they
+ destroyed on the earth that they might build in the air: Lord Bacon united
+ both characters in the philosopher. He looked abroad into the regions of
+ the unknown, whence all knowledge comes; he called wonder the seed of
+ knowledge; but he would build nowhere but on the earth&mdash;on the firm
+ land of ascertained truth. That which kept him right was his practical
+ humanity. It was for the sake of delivering men from the ills of life, by
+ discovering the laws of the elements amidst which that life must be led,
+ that he laboured and thought. This object kept him true, made him able to
+ discover the very laws of discovery; brought him so far into <i>rapport</i>
+ with the heart of nature herself, that, like a physical prophet, his
+ seeing could outspeed his knowing, and behold a law&mdash;dimly, it is
+ true, but yet behold it&mdash;long before his intellect, which had to
+ build bridges and find straw to make the bricks, could dare to affirm its
+ approach to the same conclusion. Truth to humanity made him true to fact;
+ and truth to fact made him true in theory.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It was in this spirit of devotion to his kind that he said, &ldquo;Therefore
+ here is the deficience which I find, that physicians have not ... set down
+ and delivered over certain experimental medicines for the cure of
+ particular diseases.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Dr. Russell&rsquo;s true insight into the relation of Lord Bacon to the medical
+ as well as to all science, has suggested the above remarks. What our
+ author chiefly desires is, that the same principles which made medicine
+ what it is, should be allowed to carry it yet further, and make it what it
+ ought to be, and must become. As he goes on to show, through succeeding
+ lives and theories, that just in proportion as these principles have been
+ followed&mdash;the principles of careful observation, hypothesis, and
+ experiment&mdash;have men made discoveries that have been helpful to their
+ fellow-men; while, on the other hand, the most elaborate theories of the
+ most popular physicians, which have owed their birth to premature
+ generalization and invention, have passed away, like the crackling of
+ thorns under a pot. Belonging to the latter class of men, we have Stahl,
+ Hoffman, Boerhaave, Cullen, and Brown; while to the former belong Harvey,
+ Sydenham, Jenner, and Hahnemann.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ After the last name, there is no need to say that our author is a
+ homoeopath. Whatever may be our private opinion of the system, justice
+ requires that we should say at least that books such as these are quite as
+ open to refutation as to ridicule; for it is only a good argument that is
+ worth refuting by a better. But we fear there are few books on this
+ subject that treat of it with the calmness and fairness which would
+ incline an honest homoeopath to put them into the hands of one of the
+ opposite party as an exposition of his opinions. There is no excitement in
+ these pages. They are the work of a man of liberal education, of
+ refinement, and of truthfulness, with power to understand, and facility to
+ express; one of whose main objects is to vindicate for homoeopathy, on the
+ most rightful of all grounds&mdash;those on which alone science can stand&mdash;on
+ the ground, that is, of laws discovered by observation and experiment&mdash;the
+ place not only of a fact in the history of medicine, but the right to be
+ considered as one of the greatest advances towards the establishment of a
+ science of curing. Certainly if he and the rest of its advocates should
+ fail utterly in this, the heresy will yet have established for itself a
+ memorial in history, as one of the most powerful illusions that have ever
+ deceived both priests and people. But the chief advantage which the system
+ will derive from Dr. Russell&rsquo;s book will spring, it seems to us, from his
+ attempt&mdash;a successful one it must be confessed&mdash;to prove <i>that
+ homoeopathy is a development, and not a mere reaction</i>; that it has its
+ roots far down in the history of science. The first mention of it in the
+ book, however, is made for the purpose of disavowing the claim, advanced
+ by many homoeopathists, to Hippocrates as one of their order. Not to
+ mention the curious story about Galen and the patient ill from an overdose
+ of theriacum, who was cured by another dose of the same substance, nor the
+ ridicule of the doctrine of contraries by Paracelsus and Van Helmont, nor
+ the fact that the <i>contraries</i> of Boerhaave, by his own explanation,
+ merely signify whatever substances prove their contrariety to the disease
+ by curing it&mdash;to pass by these, we find one of the main objects of
+ homoeopathy, the discovery of specifics, insisted upon by Lord Bacon in
+ his words already quoted. Not that homoeopaths, while they depend upon
+ specifics, believe that there is any such thing as a specific for a
+ disease&mdash;a disease being as various as the individuality of the human
+ beings whom it may attack; but that an approximate specific may be found
+ for every well-defined stage in every individual disease; a disease having
+ its process of change, development, and decline, like a vegetable or
+ animal life. Besides an equally strong desire for specifics, and a
+ determined opposition to compound medicines, Boyle, who was born the year
+ of Bacon&rsquo;s death, and inherited the mantle of the great philosopher,
+ manifests a strong belief in the power of the infinitesimal dose. Neither
+ Bacon nor Boyle, however, were medical men by profession. But Sydenham
+ followed them, according to Dr. Russell, in their tendency towards
+ specifics. It is almost needless to mention Jenner&rsquo;s victory over the
+ small-pox as, in the eyes of the homoeopaths, a grand step in the
+ development of their system. It gives Dr. Russell an opportunity of
+ showing in a strong instance that the best discoveries for delivering
+ mankind from those ills even of which they are most sensible have been
+ received with derision, with more than bare unbelief. This is one of his
+ objects in the book, and while it is no proof whatever of the truth of
+ homoepathy, it shows at least that the opposition manifested to it is no
+ proof of its falsehood. This is enough; for it seeks to be tried on its
+ own merits; and its foes are bound to accord it this when it is advocated
+ in such an honest and dignified manner as in the book before us.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The need of man, in physics as well as in higher things, is the guide to
+ truth. With evils of any sort we need no further acquaintance than may be
+ gained in the endeavour to combat them. The discovery of what will cure
+ diseases seems the only natural mode of rising by generalization to the
+ discovery of the laws of cure and the nature of disease.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Those portions of the volume which discuss the influence of Christianity
+ on the healing art, likewise those relating to the different feelings with
+ which at different times in different countries physicians have been
+ regarded, are especially interesting.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The only portion of the book we should be inclined to find fault with, as
+ to the quality of the thought expended upon it, is the dissertation in the
+ second chapter on the [Greek: psuchae] and [Greek: pneuma]. We doubt
+ likewise whether the author gives the Archaeus of Van Helmont quite fair
+ play; but these are questions so purely theoretical that they scarcely
+ admit of discussion here. We rise from the perusal of the book, whatever
+ may be our feelings with regard to the truth or falsehood of the system it
+ advocates, with increased respect for the profession of medicine, with
+ enlarged hope for its future, and with a strong feeling of the nobility
+ conferred by the art upon every one of its practitioners who is aware of
+ the dignity of his calling.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0011" id="link2H_4_0011">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ WORDSWORTH&rsquo;S POETRY
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: Delivered extempore at Manchester.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The history of the poetry of Wordsworth is a true reflex of the man
+ himself. The life of Wordsworth was not outwardly eventful, but his inner
+ life was full of conflict, discovery, and progress. His outward life seems
+ to have been so ordered by Providence as to favour the development of the
+ poetic life within. Educated in the country, and spending most of his life
+ in the society of nature, he was not subjected to those violent external
+ changes which have been the lot of some poets. Perfectly fitted as he was
+ to cope with the world, and to fight his way to any desired position, he
+ chose to retire from it, and in solitude to work out what appeared to him
+ to be the true destiny of his life.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The very element in which the mind of Wordsworth lived and moved was a
+ Christian pantheism. Allow me to explain the word. The poets of the Old
+ Testament speak of everything as being the work of God&rsquo;s hand:&mdash;We
+ are the &ldquo;work of his hand;&rdquo; &ldquo;The world was made by him.&rdquo; But in the New
+ Testament there is a higher form used to express the relation in which we
+ stand to him&mdash;&ldquo;We are his offspring;&rdquo; not the work of his hand, but
+ the children that came forth from his heart. Our own poet Goldsmith, with
+ the high instinct of genius, speaks of God as having &ldquo;loved us into
+ being.&rdquo; Now I think this is not only true with regard to man, but true
+ likewise with regard to the world in which we live. This world is not
+ merely a thing which God hath made, subjecting it to laws; but it is an
+ expression of the thought, the feeling, the heart of God himself. And so
+ it must be; because, if man be the child of God, would he not feel to be
+ out of his element if he lived in a world which came, not from the heart
+ of God, but only from his hand? This Christian pantheism, this belief that
+ God is in everything, and showing himself in everything, has been much
+ brought to the light by the poets of the past generation, and has its
+ influence still, I hope, upon the poets of the present. We are not
+ satisfied that the world should be a proof and varying indication of the
+ intellect of God. That was how Paley viewed it. He taught us to believe
+ there is a God from the mechanism of the world. But, allowing all the
+ argument to be quite correct, what does it prove? A mechanical God, and
+ nothing more.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us go further; and, looking at beauty, believe that God is the first
+ of artists; that he has put beauty into nature, knowing how it will affect
+ us, and intending that it should so affect us; that he has embodied his
+ own grand thoughts thus that we might see them and be glad. Then, let us
+ go further still, and believe that whatever we feel in the highest moments
+ of truth shining through beauty, whatever comes to our souls as a power of
+ life, is meant to be seen and felt by us, and to be regarded not as the
+ work of his hand, but as the flowing forth of his heart, the flowing forth
+ of his love of us, making us blessed in the union of his heart and ours.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now, Wordsworth is the high priest of nature thus regarded. He saw God
+ present everywhere; not always immediately, in his own form, it is true;
+ but whether he looked upon the awful mountain-peak, sky-encompassed with
+ loveliness, or upon the face of a little child, which is as it were eyes
+ in the face of nature&mdash;in all things he felt the solemn presence of
+ the Divine Spirit. By Keats this presence was recognized only as the
+ spirit of beauty; to Wordsworth, God, as the Spirit of Truth, was
+ manifested through the forms of the external world.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I have said that the life of Wordsworth was so ordered as to bring this
+ out of him, in the forms of <i>his</i> art, to the ears of men. In
+ childhood even his conscience was partly developed through the influences
+ of nature upon him. He thus retrospectively describes this special
+ influence of nature:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ One summer evening (led by her) I found
+ A little boat, tied to a willow tree,
+ Within a rocky cave, its usual home.
+ Straight I unloosed her chain, and stepping in,
+ Pushed from the shore. It was an act of stealth,
+ And troubled pleasure, nor without the voice
+ Of mountain echoes did my boat move on,
+ Leaving behind her still, on either side,
+ Small circles glittering idly in the moon,
+ Until they melted all into one track
+ Of sparkling light. But now, like one who rows
+ Proud of his skill, to reach a chosen point
+ With an unswerving line, I fixed my view
+ Upon the summit of a craggy ridge,
+ The horizon&rsquo;s utmost boundary; far above
+ Was nothing but the stars and the grey sky.
+ She was an elfin pinnace; lustily
+ I dipped my oars into the silent lake,
+ And, as I rose upon the stroke, my boat
+ Went heaving through the water like a swan;
+ When, from behind that craggy steep, till then
+ The horizon&rsquo;s bound, a huge peak, black and huge,
+ As if with voluntary power instinct,
+ Upreared its head. I struck and struck again,
+ And, growing still in stature, the grim shape
+ Towered up between me and the stars, and still
+ For so it seemed, with purpose of its own,
+ And measured motion like a living thing,
+ Strode after me. With trembling oars I turned,
+ And through the silent water stole my way
+ Back to the covert of the willow tree;
+ There in her mooring place I left my bark,
+ And through the meadows homeward went, in grave
+ And serious mood; but after I had seen
+ That spectacle, for many days, my brain
+ Worked with a dim and undetermined sense
+ Of unknown modes of being; o&rsquo;er my thoughts
+ There hung a darkness, call it solitude,
+ Or blank desertion. No familiar shapes
+ Remained, no pleasant images of trees,
+ Of sea, or sky, no colours of green fields;
+ But huge and mighty forms, that do not live
+ Like living men, moved slowly through the mind
+ By day, and were a trouble to my dreams.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Here we see that a fresh impulse was given to his life even in boyhood, by
+ the influence of nature. If we have had any similar experience, we shall
+ be able to enter into this feeling of Wordsworth&rsquo;s; if not, the tale will
+ be almost incredible.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One passage more I would refer to, as showing what Wordsworth felt with
+ regard to nature, in his youth; and the growth that took place in him in
+ consequence. Nature laid up in the storehouse of his mind and heart her
+ most beautiful and grand forms, whence they might be brought, afterwards,
+ to be put to the highest human service. I quote only a few lines from that
+ poem, deservedly a favourite with all the lovers of Wordsworth, &ldquo;Lines
+ written above Tintern Abbey:&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ I cannot paint
+ What then I was. The sounding cataract
+ Haunted me like a passion; the tall rock,
+ The mountain, and the deep and gloomy wood,
+ Their colours and their forms, were then to me
+ An appetite; a feeling and a love,
+ That had no need of a remoter charm
+ By thought supplied, nor any interest
+ Unborrowed from the eye.&mdash;That time is past,
+ And all its aching joys are now no more,
+ And all its dizzy raptures. Not for this
+ Faint I, nor mourn nor murmur; other gifts
+ Have followed; for such loss, I would believe,
+ Abundant recompense. For I have learned
+ To look on nature, not as in the hour
+ Of thoughtless youth; but hearing oftentimes
+ The still, sad music of humanity,
+ Nor harsh, nor grating, though of ample power
+ To chasten and subdue. And I have felt
+ A presence that disturbs me with the joy
+ Of elevated thoughts; a sense sublime
+ Of something far more deeply interfused,
+ Whose dwelling is the light of setting suns,
+ And the round ocean, and the living air
+ And the blue sky, and in the mind of man;
+ A motion and a spirit, that impels
+ All thinking things, all objects of all thought,
+ And rolls through all things.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ In this little passage you see the growth of the influence of nature on
+ the mind of the poet. You observe, too, that nature passes into poetry;
+ that form is sublimed into speech. You see the result of the conjunction
+ of the mind of man, and the mind of God manifested in His works; spirit
+ coming to know the speech of spirit. The outflowing of spirit in nature is
+ received by the poet, and he utters again, in his form, what God has
+ already uttered in His. Wordsworth wished to give to man what he found in
+ nature. It was to him a power of good, a world of teaching, a strength of
+ life. He knew that nature was not his, and that his enjoyment of nature
+ was given to him that he might give it to man. It was the birthright of
+ man.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But what did Wordsworth find in nature? To begin with the lowest; he found
+ amusement in nature. Right amusement is a part of teaching; it is the
+ childish form of teaching, and if we can get this in nature, we get
+ something that lies near the root of good. In proof that Wordsworth found
+ this, I refer to a poem which you probably know well, &ldquo;The Daisy.&rdquo; The
+ poet sits playing with the flower, and listening to the suggestions that
+ come to him of odd resemblances that this flower bears to other things. He
+ likens the daisy to&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ A little cyclops, with one eye
+ Staring to threaten and defy,
+ That thought comes next&mdash;and instantly
+ The freak is over,
+ The shape will vanish&mdash;and behold
+ A silver shield with boss of gold,
+ That spreads itself, some faëry bold
+ In fight to cover!
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Look at the last stanza, too, and you will see how close amusement may lie
+ to deep and earnest thought:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ Bright <i>Flower</i>! for by that name at last
+ When all my reveries are past,
+ I call thee, and to that cleave fast,
+ Sweet silent creature!
+ That breath&rsquo;st with me in sun and air,
+ Do thou, as thou art wont, repair
+ My heart with gladness, and a share
+ Of thy meek nature!
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ But Wordsworth found also joy in nature, which is a better thing than
+ amusement, and consequently easier to be found. We can often have joy
+ where we can have no amusement,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ I wandered lonely as a cloud
+ That floats on high o&rsquo;er vales and hills
+ When all at once I saw a crowd,
+ A host, of golden daffodils;
+ Beside the lake, beneath the trees,
+ Fluttering and dancing in the breeze.
+
+</pre>
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ The waves beside them danced; but they
+ Out-did the sparkling waves in glee:
+ A poet could not but be gay,
+ In such a jocund company:
+ I gazed&mdash;and gazed&mdash;but little thought
+ What Health the show to me had brought.
+
+ &ldquo;For oft, when on my couch I lie
+ In vacant or in pensive mood,
+ They flash upon that inward eye
+ Which is the bliss of solitude;
+ And then my heart with pleasure fills,
+ And dances with the daffodils.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ This is the joy of the eye, as far as that can be separated from the joy
+ of the whole nature; for his whole nature rejoiced in the joy of the eye;
+ but it was simply joy; there was no further teaching, no attempt to go
+ through this beauty and find the truth below it. We are not always to be
+ in that hungry, restless condition, even after truth itself. If we keep
+ our minds quiet and ready to receive truth, and <i>sometimes</i> are
+ hungry for it, that is enough.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Going a step higher, you will find that he sometimes <i>draws</i> a lesson
+ from nature, seeming almost to force a meaning from her. I do not object
+ to this, if he does not make too much of it as <i>existing</i> in nature.
+ It is rather finding a meaning in nature that he brought to it. The
+ meaning exists, if not <i>there</i>. For illustration I refer to another
+ poem. Observe that Wordsworth found the lesson because he looked for it,
+ and <i>would</i> find it.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ This Lawn, a carpet all alive
+ With shadows flung from leaves&mdash;to strive
+ In dance, amid a press
+ Of sunshine, an apt emblem yields
+ Of Worldlings revelling in the fields
+ Of strenuous idleness.
+
+</pre>
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ Yet, spite of all this eager strife,
+ This ceaseless play, the genuine life
+ That serves the steadfast hours,
+ Is in the grass beneath, that grows
+ Unheeded, and the mute repose
+ Of sweetly-breathing flowers.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Whether he forced this lesson from nature, or not, it is a good lesson,
+ teaching a great many things with regard to life and work.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Again, nature sometimes flashes a lesson on his mind; <i>gives</i> it to
+ him&mdash;and when nature gives, we cannot but receive. As in this sonnet
+ composed during a storm,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ One who was suffering tumult in his soul
+ Yet failed to seek the sure relief of prayer,
+ Went forth; his course surrendering to the care
+ Of the fierce wind, while mid-day lightnings prowl
+ Insiduously, untimely thunders growl;
+ While trees, dim-seen, in frenzied numbers tear
+ The lingering remnant of their yellow hair,
+ And shivering wolves, surprised with darkness, howl
+ As if the sun were not. He raised his eye
+ Soul-smitten; for, that instant, did appear
+ Large space (mid dreadful clouds) of purest sky,
+ An azure disc&mdash;shield of Tranquillity;
+ Invisible, unlooked-for, minister
+ Of providential goodness ever nigh!
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Observe that he was not looking for this; he had not thought of praying;
+ he was in such distress that it had benumbed the out-goings of his spirit
+ towards the source whence alone sure comfort comes. He went out into the
+ storm; and the uproar in the outer world was in harmony with the tumult
+ within his soul. Suddenly a clear space in the sky makes him feel&mdash;he
+ has no time to think about it&mdash;that there is a shield of tranquillity
+ spread over him. For was it not as it were an opening up into that region
+ where there are no storms; the regions of peace, because the regions of
+ love, and truth, and purity,&mdash;the home of God himself?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is yet a higher and more sustained influence exercised by nature,
+ and that takes effect when she puts a man into that mood or condition in
+ which thoughts come of themselves. That is perhaps the best thing that can
+ be done for us, the best at least that nature can do. It is certainly
+ higher than mere intellectual teaching. That nature did this for
+ Wordsworth is very clear; and it is easily intelligible. If the world
+ proceeded from the imagination of God, and man proceeded from the love of
+ God, it is easy to believe that that which proceeded from the imagination
+ of God should rouse the best thoughts in the mind of a being who proceeded
+ from the love of God. This I think is the relation between man and the
+ world. As an instance of what I mean, I refer to one of Wordsworth&rsquo;s
+ finest poems, which he classes under the head of &ldquo;Evening Voluntaries.&rdquo; It
+ was composed upon an evening of extraordinary splendour and beauty:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Had this effulgence disappeared
+ With flying haste, I might have sent,
+ Among the speechless clouds, a look
+ Of blank astonishment;
+ But &lsquo;tis endued with power to stay,
+ And sanctify one closing day,
+ That frail Mortality may see&mdash;
+ What is?&mdash;ah no, but what <i>can</i>, be!
+ Time was when field and watery cove
+ With modulated echoes rang,
+ While choirs of fervent Angels sang
+ Their vespers in the grove;
+ Or, crowning, star-like, each some sovereign height,
+ Warbled, for heaven above and earth below,
+ Strains suitable to both. Such holy rite,
+ Methinks, if audibly repeated now
+ From hill or valley, could not move
+ Sublimer transport, purer love,
+ Than doth this silent spectacle&mdash;the gleam&mdash;
+ The shadow&mdash;and the peace supreme!
+
+ &ldquo;No sound is uttered,&mdash;but a deep
+ And solemn harmony pervades
+ The hollow vale from steep to steep,
+ And penetrates the glades.
+
+</pre>
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Wings at my shoulders seem to play;
+ But, rooted here, I stand and gaze
+ On those bright steps that heaven-ward raise
+ Their practicable way.
+ Come forth, ye drooping old men, look abroad,
+ And see to what fair countries ye are bound!
+
+</pre>
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Dread Power! whom peace and calmness serve
+ No less than Nature&rsquo;s threatening voice,
+ From THEE, if I would swerve,
+ Oh, let Thy grace remind me of the light
+ Full early lost, and fruitlessly deplored;
+ Which, at this moment, on my waking sight
+ Appears to shine, by miracle restored;
+ My soul, though yet confined to earth,
+ Rejoices in a second birth!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Picture the scene for yourselves; and observe how it moves in him the
+ sense of responsibility, and the prayer, that if he has in any matter
+ wandered from the right road, if he has forgotten the simplicity of
+ childhood in the toil of life, he may, from this time, remember the vow
+ that he now records&mdash;from this time to press on towards the things
+ that are unseen, but which are manifested through the things that are
+ seen. I refer you likewise to the poem &ldquo;Resolution and Independence,&rdquo;
+ commonly called &ldquo;The Leech Gatherer;&rdquo; also to that grandest ode that has
+ ever been written, the &ldquo;Ode on Immortality.&rdquo; You will find there, whatever
+ you may think of his theory, in the latter, sufficient proof that nature
+ was to him a divine teaching power. Do not suppose that I mean that man
+ can do without more teaching than nature&rsquo;s, or that a man with only
+ nature&rsquo;s teaching would have seen these things in nature. No, the soul
+ must be tuned to such things. Wordsworth could not have found such things,
+ had he not known something that was more definite and helpful to him; but
+ this known, then nature was full of teaching. When we understand the Word
+ of God, then we understand the works of God; when we know the nature of an
+ artist, we know his pictures; when we have known and talked with the poet,
+ we understand his poetry far better. To the man of God, all nature will be
+ but changeful reflections of the face of God.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Loving man as Wordsworth did, he was most anxious to give him this
+ teaching. How was he to do it? By poetry. Nature put into the crucible of
+ a loving heart becomes poetry. We cannot explain poetry scientifically;
+ because poetry is something beyond science. The poet may be man of
+ science, and the man of science may be a poet; but poetry includes
+ science, and the man who will advance science most, is the man who, other
+ qualifications being equal, has most of the poetic faculty in him.
+ Wordsworth defines poetry to be &ldquo;the impassioned expression which is on
+ the face of science.&rdquo; Science has to do with the construction of things.
+ The casting of the granite ribs of the mighty earth, and all the thousand
+ operations that result in the manifestations on its surface, this is the
+ domain of science. But when there come the grass-bearing meadows, the
+ heaven-reared hills, the great streams that go ever downward, the bubbling
+ fountains that ever arise, the wind that wanders amongst the leaves, and
+ the odours that are wafted upon its wings; when we have colour, and shape,
+ and sound, then we have the material with which poetry has to do. Science
+ has to do with the underwork. For what does this great central world
+ exist, with its hidden winds and waters, its upheavings and its
+ downsinkings, its strong frame of rock, and its heart of fire? What do
+ they all exist for? Not for themselves surely, but for the sake of this
+ out-spreading world of beauty, that floats up, as it were, to the surface
+ of the shapeless region of force. Science has to do with the one, and
+ poetry with the other: poetry is &ldquo;the impassioned expression that is on
+ the face of science.&rdquo; To illustrate it still further. You are walking in
+ the woods, and you find the first primrose of the year. You feel almost as
+ if you had found a child. You know in yourself that you have found a new
+ beauty and a new joy, though you have seen it a thousand times before. It
+ is a primrose. A little flower that looks at me, thinks itself into my
+ heart, and gives me a pleasure distinct in itself, and which I feel as if
+ I could not do without. The impassioned expression on the face of this
+ little outspread flower is its childhood; it means trust, consciousness of
+ protection, faith, and hope. Science, in the person of the botanist, comes
+ after you, and pulls it to pieces to see its construction, and delights
+ the intellect; but the science itself is dead, and kills what it touches.
+ The flower exists not for it, but for the expression on its face, which is
+ its poetry,&mdash;that expression which you feel to mean a living thing;
+ that expression which makes you feel that this flower is, as it were, just
+ growing out of the heart of God. The intellect itself is but the
+ scaffolding for the uprearing of the spiritual nature.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It will make all this yet plainer, if you can suppose a human form to be
+ created without a soul in it. Divine science <i>has</i> put it together,
+ but only for the sake of the outshining soul that shall cause it to live,
+ and move, and have a being of its own in God. When you see the face
+ lighted up with soul, when you recognize in it thought and feeling, joy
+ and love, then you know that here is the end for which it was made. Thus
+ you see the relation that poetry has to science; and you find that, to
+ speak in an apparent paradox, the surface is the deepest after all; for,
+ through the surface, for the sake of which all this building went on, we
+ have, as it were, a window into the depths of truth. There is not a form
+ that lives in the world, but is a window cloven through the blank darkness
+ of nothingness, to let us look into the heart, and feeling, and nature of
+ God. So the surface of things is the best and the deepest, provided it is
+ not mere surface, but the impassioned expression, for the sake of which
+ the science of God has thought and laboured.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Satisfied that this was the nature of poetry, and wanting to convey this
+ to the minds of his fellow-men, &ldquo;What vehicle,&rdquo; Wordsworth may be supposed
+ to have asked himself, &ldquo;shall I use? How shall I decide what form of words
+ to employ? Where am I to find the right language for speaking such great
+ things to men?&rdquo; He saw that the poetry of the eighteenth century (he was
+ born in 1770) was not like nature at all, but was an artificial thing,
+ with no more originality in it than there would be in a picture a hundred
+ times copied, the copyists never reverting to the original. You cannot
+ look into this eighteenth century poetry, excepting, of course, a great
+ proportion of the poetry of Cowper and Thompson, without being struck with
+ the sort of agreement that nothing should be said naturally. A certain set
+ form and mode was employed for saying things that ought never to have been
+ said twice in the same way. Wordsworth resolved to go back to the root of
+ the thing, to the natural simplicity of speech; he would have none of
+ these stereotyped forms of expression. &ldquo;Where shall I find,&rdquo; said he, &ldquo;the
+ language that will be simple and powerful?&rdquo; And he came to the conclusion
+ that the language of the common people was the only language suitable for
+ his purpose. Your experience of the everyday language of the common people
+ may be that it is not poetical. True, but not even a poet can speak
+ poetically in his stupid moments. Wordsworth&rsquo;s idea was to take the
+ language of the common people in their uncommon moods, in their high and,
+ consequently, simple moods, when their minds are influenced by grief,
+ hope, reverence, worship, love; for then he believed he could get just the
+ language suitable for the poet. As far as that language will go, I think
+ he was right, if I may venture to give an opinion in support of
+ Wordsworth. Of course, there will occur necessities to the poet which
+ would not be comprehended in the language of a man whose thoughts had
+ never moved in the same directions, but the kind of language will be the
+ right thing, and I have heard such amongst the common people myself&mdash;language
+ which they did not know to be poetic, but which fell upon my ear and heart
+ as profoundly poetic both in its feeling and its form.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In attempting to carry out this theory, I am not prepared to say that
+ Wordsworth never transgressed his own self-imposed laws. But he adhered to
+ his theory to the last. A friend of the poet&rsquo;s told me that Wordsworth had
+ to him expressed his belief that he would be remembered longest, not by
+ his sonnets, as his friend thought, but by his lyrical ballads, those for
+ which he had been reviled and laughed at; the most by critics who could
+ not understand him, and who were unworthy to read what he had written. As
+ a proof of this let me read to you three verses, composing a poem that was
+ especially marked for derision:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ She dwelt among the untrodden ways,
+ Beside the springs of Dove;
+ A maid whom there were none to praise,
+ And very few to love.
+
+ A violet by a mossy stone.
+ Half hidden from the eye;
+ Fair as a star, when only one
+ Is shining in the sky.
+
+ She lived unknown, and few could know
+ When Lucy ceased to be;
+ But she is in her grave, and Oh!
+ The difference to me.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The last line was especially chosen as the object of ridicule; but I think
+ with most of us the feeling will be, that its very simplicity of
+ expression is overflowing in suggestion, it throws us back upon our own
+ experience; for, instead of trying to utter what he felt, he says in those
+ simple and common words, &ldquo;You who have known anything of the kind, will
+ know what the difference to me is, and only you can know.&rdquo; &ldquo;My intention
+ and desire,&rdquo; he says in one of his essays, &ldquo;are that the interest of the
+ poem shall owe nothing to the circumstances; but that the circumstances
+ shall be made interesting by the thing itself.&rdquo; In most novels, for
+ instance, the attempt is made to interest us in worthless, commonplace
+ people, whom, if we had our choice, we would far rather not meet at all,
+ by surrounding them with peculiar and extraordinary circumstances; but
+ this is a low source of interest. Wordsworth was determined to owe nothing
+ to such an adventitious cause. For illustration allow me to read that
+ well-known little ballad, &ldquo;The Reverie of Poor Susan,&rdquo; and you will see
+ how entirely it bears out what he lays down as his theory. The scene is in
+ London:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ At the corner of Wood-street, when daylight appears,
+ Hangs a Thrush that sings loud, it has sung for three years;
+ Poor Susan has passed by the spot, and has heard,
+ In the silence of morning, the song of the Bird.
+
+ &lsquo;Tis a note of enchantment: what ails her? She sees
+ A mountain ascending, a vision of trees;
+ Bright volumes of vapour through Lothbury glide,
+ And a river flows on through the vale of Cheapside.
+
+ Green pastures she views in the midst of the dale,
+ Down which she so often has tripped with her pail;
+ And a single small cottage, a nest like a dove&rsquo;s,
+ The one only dwelling on earth that she loves.
+
+ She looks, and her heart is in heaven: but they fade,
+ The mist and the river, the hill and the shade:
+ The stream will not flow, and the hill will not rise,
+ And the colours have all passed away from her eyes!
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Is any of the interest here owing to the circumstances? Is it not a very
+ common incident? But has he not treated it so that it is not <i>commonplace</i>
+ in the least? We recognize in this girl just the feelings we discover in
+ ourselves, and acknowledge almost with tears her sisterhood to us all.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I have tried to make you feel something of what Wordsworth attempts to do,
+ but I have not given you the best of his poems. Allow me to finish by
+ reading the closing portion of the <i>Prelude</i>, the poem that was
+ published after his death. It is addressed to Coleridge:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ Oh! yet a few short years of useful life,
+ And all will be complete, thy race be run,
+ Thy monument of glory will be raised;
+ Then, though (too weak to head the ways of truth)
+ This age fall back to old idolatry,
+ Though men return to servitude as fast
+ As the tide ebbs, to ignominy and shame
+ By nations sink together, we shall still
+ Find solace&mdash;knowing what we have learnt to know&mdash;
+ Rich in true happiness, if allowed to be
+ Faithful alike in forwarding a day
+ Of firmer trust, joint labourers in the work
+ (Should Providence such grace to us vouchsafe)
+ Of their deliverance, surely yet to come.
+ Prophets of Nature, we to them will speak
+ A lasting inspiration, sanctified
+ By reason, blest by faith: what we have loved,
+ Others will love, and we will teach them how;
+ Instruct them how the mind of man becomes
+ A thousand times more beautiful than the earth
+ On which he dwells, above this frame of things
+ (Which, &lsquo;mid all revolution in the hopes
+ And fears of men, doth still remain unchanged)
+ In beauty exalted, as it is itself
+ Of quality and fabric more divine.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0012" id="link2H_4_0012">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ SHELLEY.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ Whatever opinion may be held with regard to the relative position occupied
+ by Shelley as a poet, it will be granted by most of those who have studied
+ his writings, that they are of such an individual and original kind, that
+ he can neither be hidden in the shade, nor lost in the brightness, of any
+ other poet. No idea of his works could be conveyed by instituting a
+ comparison, for he does not sufficiently resemble any other among English
+ writers to make such a comparison possible.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Percy Bysshe Shelley was born at Field Place, near Horsham, in the county
+ of Sussex, on the 4th of August, 1792. He was the son of Timothy Shelley,
+ Esq., and grandson of Sir Bysshe Shelley, the first baronet. His ancestors
+ had long been large landed proprietors in Sussex.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ As a child his habits were noticeable. He was especially fond of rambling
+ by moonlight, of inventing wonderful tales, of occupying himself with
+ strange, and sometimes dangerous, amusements. At the age of thirteen he
+ went to Eton. In this little world, that determined opposition to whatever
+ appeared to him an invasion of human rights and liberty, which was
+ afterwards the animating principle of most of his writings, was first
+ roused in the mind of Shelley. Were we not aware of far keener distress
+ which he afterwards endured from yet greater injustice, we might suppose
+ that the sufferings he had to bear from placing himself in opposition to
+ the custom of the school, by refusing to fag, had made him morbidly
+ sensitive on the point of liberty. At a time, however, when freedom of
+ speech, as indicating freedom of thought, was especially obnoxious to
+ established authorities; when no allowance could be made on the score of
+ youth, still less on that of individual peculiarity, Shelley became a
+ student at Oxford. He was then eighteen. Devoted to metaphysical
+ speculation, and especially fond of logical discussion, he, in his first
+ year, printed and distributed among the authorities and members of his
+ college a pamphlet, if that can be called a pamphlet which consisted only
+ of two pages, in which he opposed the usual arguments for the existence of
+ a Deity; arguments which, perhaps, the most ardent believers have equally
+ considered inconclusive. Whether Shelley wrote this pamphlet as an
+ embodiment of his own opinions, or merely as a logical confutation of
+ certain arguments, the mode of procedure adopted with him was certainly
+ not one which necessarily resulted from the position of those to whose
+ care the education of his opinions was entrusted. Without waiting to be
+ assured that he was the author, and satisfying themselves with his refusal
+ to answer when questioned as to the authorship, they handed him his
+ sentence of expulsion, which had been already drawn up in due form.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ About this time Shelley wrote, or commenced writing, <i>Queen Mab</i>, a
+ poem which he never published, although he distributed copies among his
+ friends. In after years he had such a low opinion of it in every respect,
+ that he regretted having printed it at all; and when an edition of it was
+ published without his consent, he applied to the Court of Chancery for an
+ injunction to suppress it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Shelley&rsquo;s opinions in politics and theology, which he appears to have been
+ far more anxious to maintain than was consistent with the peace of the
+ household, were peculiarly obnoxious to his father, a man as different
+ from his son as it is possible to conceive; and his expulsion from Oxford
+ was soon followed by exile from his home. He went to London, where,
+ through his sisters, who were at school in the neighbourhood, he made the
+ acquaintence of Harriet West brook, whom he eloped with and married, when
+ he was nineteen and she sixteen years of age. It seems doubtful whether
+ the attachment between them was more than the result of the reception
+ accorded by the enthusiasm of the girl to the enthusiasm of the youth,
+ manifesting itself in wild talk about human rights, and equally wild plans
+ for their recovery and security. However this may be, the result was
+ unfortunate. They wandered about England, Scotland, and Ireland, with
+ frequent and sudden change of residence, for rather more than two years.
+ During this time Shelley gained the friendship of some of the most eminent
+ men of the age, of whom the one who exercised the most influence upon his
+ character and future history was William Godwin, whose instructions and
+ expostulations tended to reduce to solidity and form the vague and
+ extravagant opinions and projects of the youthful reformer. Shortly after
+ the commencement of the third year of their married life, an estrangement
+ of feeling, which had been gradually widening between them, resulted in
+ the final separation of the poet and his wife. We are not informed as to
+ the causes of this estrangement, further than that it seems to have been
+ owing, in a considerable degree, to the influence of an elder sister of
+ Mrs. Shelley, who domineered over her, and whose presence became at last
+ absolutely hateful to Shelley. His wife returned to her father&rsquo;s house;
+ where, apparently about three years after, she committed suicide. There
+ seems to have been no immediate connection between this act and any
+ conduct of Shelley. One of his biographers informs us, that while they
+ were living happily together, suicide was with Mrs. Shelley a favourite
+ subject of speculation and conversation.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Shortly after his first wife&rsquo;s death, Shelley married the daughter of
+ William Godwin. He had lived with her almost from the date of the
+ separation, during which time they had twice visited Switzerland. In the
+ following year (1817), it was decreed in Chancery that Shelley was not a
+ proper person to take charge of his two children by his first wife, who
+ had lived with her till her death. The bill was filed in Chancery by their
+ grandfather, Mr. Westbrook. The effects of this proceeding upon Shelley
+ may be easily imagined. Perhaps he never recovered from them, for they
+ were not of a nature to pass away. During this year he resided at Marlow,
+ and wrote <i>The Revolt of Islam</i>, besides portions of other poems; and
+ the next year he left England, not to return. The state of his health, for
+ he had appeared to be in a consumption for some time, and the fear lest
+ his son, by his second wife, should be taken from him, combined to induce
+ him to take refuge in Italy from both impending evils. At Lucca he began
+ his <i>Prometheus</i>, and wrote <i>Julian and Maddalo</i>. He moved from
+ place to place in Italy, as he had done in his own country. Their two
+ children dying, they were for a time left childless; but the loss of these
+ grieved Shelley less than that of his eldest two, who were taken from him
+ by the hand of man. In 1819, Shelley finished his <i>Prometheus Unbound</i>,
+ writing the greater part at Rome, and completing it at Florence. In this
+ year also he wrote his tragedy, <i>The Cenci</i>, which attracted more
+ attention during his lifetime than any other of his works. The <i>Ode to a
+ Skylark</i> was written at Leghorn in the spring of 1820; and in August of
+ the same year, the <i>Witch of Atlas</i> was written, near Pisa. In the
+ following year Shelley and Byron met at Pisa. They were a good deal
+ together; but their friendship, although real, does not appear to have
+ been of a very profound nature; for though unlikeness be one of the
+ necessary elements of friendship, there are kinds of unlikeness which will
+ not harmonize. During all this time, he was not only maligned by unknown
+ enemies, and abused by anonymous writers, but attempts of other kinds are
+ said to have been made to render his life as uncomfortable as possible.
+ There are grounds, however, for doubting whether Shelley was not subject
+ to a kind of monomania upon this and similar points. In 1821, he wrote his
+ <i>Adonais</i>, a monody on the death of Keats. Part of this poem had its
+ origin in the mistaken notion, that the illness and death of Keats were
+ caused by a brutal criticism of his <i>Endymion</i>, which appeared in the
+ <i>Quarterly Review</i>. The last verse of the <i>Adonais</i> seems almost
+ prophetic of his own end. Passionately fond of boating, he and a friend of
+ his, Mr. Williams, united in constructing a boat of a peculiar build, a
+ very fast sailer, but difficult to manage. On the 8th of July, 1822,
+ Shelley and his friend Williams sailed from Leghorn for Lerici, on the Bay
+ of Spezia, near which lay his home for the time. A sudden squall came on,
+ and their boat disappeared. The bodies of the two friends were cast on
+ shore; and, according to quarantine regulations, were burned to ashes.
+ Lord Byron, Leigh Hunt, and Mr. Trelawney were present when the body of
+ Shelley was burned; so that his ashes were saved, and buried in the
+ Protestant burial-ground at Rome, near the grave of Keats, whose body had
+ been laid there in the spring of the preceding year. <i>Cor Cordium</i>
+ were the words inscribed by his widow on the tomb of the poet.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The character of Shelley has been sadly maligned. Whatever faults he may
+ have committed against society, they were not the result of sensuality.
+ One of his biographers, who was his companion at Oxford, and who does not
+ seem inclined to do him <i>more</i> than justice, asserts that while there
+ his conduct was immaculate. The whole picture he gives of the youth, makes
+ it easy to believe this. To discuss the moral question involved in one
+ part of his history would be out of place here; but even on the
+ supposition that a man&rsquo;s conduct is altogether inexcusable in individual
+ instances, there is the more need that nothing but the truth should be
+ said concerning that, and other portions thereof. And whatever society may
+ have thought itself justified in making subject of reprobation, it must be
+ remembered that Shelley was under less obligation to society than most
+ men. Yet his heart seemed full of love to his kind; and the distress which
+ the oppression of others caused him, was the source of much of that wild
+ denunciation which exposed him to the contempt and hatred of those who
+ were rendered uncomfortable by his unsparing and indiscriminate anathemas.
+ In private, he was beloved by all who knew him; a steady, generous,
+ self-denying friend, not only to those who moved in his own circle, but to
+ all who were brought within the reach of any aid he could bestow. To the
+ poor he was a true and laborious benefactor. That man must have been good
+ to whom the heart of his widow returns with such earnest devotion and
+ thankfulness in the recollection of the past, and such fond hope for the
+ future, as are manifested by Mrs. Shelley in those extracts from her
+ private journal given us by Lady Shelley.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ As regards his religious opinions, one of the thoughts which most strongly
+ suggest themselves is,&mdash;how ill he must have been instructed in the
+ principles of Christianity! He says himself in a letter to Godwin, &ldquo;I have
+ known no tutor or adviser (<i>not excepting my father</i>) from whose
+ lessons and suggestions I have not recoiled with disgust.&rdquo; So far is he
+ from being an opponent of Christianity properly so called, that one can
+ hardly help feeling what a Christian he would have been, could he but have
+ seen Christianity in any other way than through the traditional and
+ practical misrepresentations of it which surrounded him. All his attacks
+ on Christianity are, in reality, directed against evils to which the true
+ doctrines of Christianity are more opposed than those of Shelley could
+ possibly be. How far he was excusable in giving the name of Christianity
+ to what he might have seen to be only a miserable perversion of it, is
+ another question, and one which hardly admits of discussion here. It was
+ in the <i>name</i> of Christianity, however, that the worst injuries of
+ which he had to complain were inflicted upon him. Coming out of the
+ cathedral at Pisa one day, [Footnote: From <i>Shelley Memorials</i>,
+ edited by Lady Shelley, which the writer of this paper has principally
+ followed in regard to the external facts of Shelley&rsquo;s history.] Shelley
+ warmly assented to a remark of Leigh Hunt, &ldquo;that a divine religion might
+ be found out, if charity were really made the principle of it instead of
+ faith.&rdquo; Surely the founders of Christianity, even when they magnified
+ faith, intended thereby a spiritual condition, of which the central
+ principle is coincident with charity. Shelley&rsquo;s own feelings towards
+ others, as judged from his poetry, seem to be tinctured with the very
+ essence of Christianity. [Footnote: His <i>Essay on Christianity</i> is
+ full of noble views, some of which are held at the present day by some of
+ the most earnest believers. At what time of his life it was written we are
+ not informed; but it seems such as would insure his acceptance with any
+ company of intelligent and devout Unitarians.] He did not, at one time at
+ least, believe that we could know the source of our being; and seemed to
+ take it as a self-evident truth, that the Creator could not be like the
+ creature. But it is unjust to fix upon any utterance of opinion, and
+ regard it as the religion of a man who died in his thirtieth year, and
+ whose habits of thinking were such, that his opinions must have been in a
+ state of constant change. Coleridge says in a letter: &ldquo;His (Shelley&rsquo;s)
+ discussions, tending towards atheism of a certain sort, would not have
+ scared <i>me;</i> for <i>me</i> it would have been a semitransparent
+ larva, soon to be sloughed, and through which I should have seen the true
+ <i>image</i>&mdash;the final metamorphosis. Besides, I have ever thought
+ that sort of atheism the next best religion to Christianity; nor does the
+ better faith I have learned from Paul and John interfere with the cordial
+ reverence I feel for Benedict Spinoza.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Shelley&rsquo;s favourite study was metaphysics. The more impulse there is in
+ any direction, the more education and experience are necessary to balance
+ that impulse: one cannot help thinking that Shelley&rsquo;s <i>taste</i> for
+ exercises of this kind was developed more rapidly than the corresponding
+ <i>power</i>. His favourite physical studies were chemistry and
+ electricity. With these he occupied himself from his childhood;
+ apparently, however, with more delight in the experiments themselves, than
+ interest in the general conclusions to be arrived at by means of them. In
+ the embodiment of his metaphysical ideas in poetry, the influence of these
+ studies seems to show itself; for he uses forms which appeal more to the
+ outer senses than to the inward eye; and his similes belong to the realm
+ of the fancy, rather than the imagination: they lack <i>vital</i>
+ resemblance. Logic had considerable attractions for him. To geometry and
+ mathematics he was quite indifferent. One of his biographers states that
+ &ldquo;he was neglectful of flowers,&rdquo; because he had no interest in botany; but
+ one who derived such full delight from the contemplation of their external
+ forms, could hardly be expected to feel very strongly the impulse to
+ dissect them. He derived exceeding pleasure from Greek literature,
+ especially from the works of Plato.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Several little peculiarities in Shelley&rsquo;s tastes are worth mentioning,
+ because, although in themselves insignificant, they seem to correspond
+ with the nature of his poetry. Perhaps the most prominent of these was his
+ passion for boat-sailing. He could not pass any piece of water without
+ launching upon it a number of boats, constructed from what paper he could
+ find in his pockets. The fly-leaves of the books he was in the way of
+ carrying with him, for he was constantly reading, often went to this end.
+ He would watch the fate of these boats with the utmost interest, till they
+ sank or reached the opposite side. He was just as fond of real boating,
+ and that frequently of a dangerous kind; but it is characteristic of him,
+ that all the boats he describes in his poems are of a fairy, fantastic
+ sort, barely related to the boats which battle with earthly winds and
+ waves. Pistol-shooting was also a favourite amusement. Fireworks, too,
+ gave him great delight. Some of his habits were likewise peculiar. He was
+ remarkably abstemious, preferring bread and raisins to anything else in
+ the way of eating, and very seldom drinking anything stronger than water.
+ Honey was a favourite luxury with him. While at college, his biographer
+ Hogg says he was in the habit, during the evening, of going to sleep on
+ the rug, close to a blazing fire, heat seeming never to have other than a
+ beneficial effect upon him. After sleeping some hours, he would awake
+ perfectly restored, and continue actively occupied till far into the
+ morning. His whole movements are represented as rapid, hurried, and
+ uncertain. He would appear and disappear suddenly and unexpectedly; forget
+ appointments; burst into wild laughter, heedless of his situation,
+ whenever anything struck him as peculiarly ludicrous. His changes of
+ residence were most numerous, and frequently made with so much haste that
+ whole little libraries were left behind, and often lost. He was very fond
+ of children, and used to make humorous efforts to induce them to disclose
+ to him the still-remembered secrets of their pre-existence. He seemed to
+ have a peculiar attraction towards mystery, and was ready to believe in a
+ hidden secret, where no one else would have thought of one. His room,
+ while he was at college, was in a state of indescribable confusion. Not
+ only were all sorts of personal necessaries mingled with books and
+ philosophical instruments, but things belonging to one department of
+ service were not unfrequently pressed into the slavery of another. He
+ dressed well but carelessly. In person he was tall, slender, and stooping;
+ awkward in gait, but in manners a thorough gentleman. His complexion was
+ delicate; his head, face, and features, remarkably small; the last not
+ very regular, but in expression, both intellectual and moral, wonderfully
+ beautiful. His eyes were deep blue, &ldquo;of a wild, strange beauty;&rdquo; his
+ forehead high and white; his hair dark brown, curling, long, and bushy.
+ His appearance in later life is described as singularly combining the
+ appearances of premature age and prolonged youth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The only art in which his taste appears to have been developed was poetry.
+ Even in his poetry, taken as a whole, the artistic element is not
+ generally very manifest. His earliest verses (none of which are included
+ in his collected works) can hardly be said to be good in any sense. He
+ seems in these to have chosen poetry as a fitting material for the
+ embodiment of his ardent, hopeful, indignant thoughts and feelings, but,
+ provided he can say what he wants to say, does not seem to care much about
+ <i>how</i> he says it. Indeed, there is too much of this throughout his
+ works; for if the <i>utterance</i>, instead of the <i>conveyance</i> of
+ thought, were the object pursued in art, of course not merely imperfection
+ of language, but absolute external unintelligibility, would be admissible.
+ But his art constantly increases with his sense of its necessity; so that
+ the <i>Cenci</i>, which is the last work of any pretension that he wrote,
+ is decidedly the most artistic of all. There are beautiful passages in <i>Queen
+ Mab</i>, but it is the work of a boy-poet; and as it was all but
+ repudiated by himself, it is not necessary to remark further upon it. <i>The
+ Revolt of Islam</i> is a poem of twelve cantos, in the Spenserian stanza;
+ but in all respects except the arrangement of lines and rimes, his stanza,
+ in common with all other imitations of the Spenserian, has little or
+ nothing of the spirit or individuality of the original. The poem is
+ dedicated to the cause of freedom, and records the efforts, successes,
+ defeats, and final triumphant death of two inspired champions of liberty&mdash;a
+ youth and maiden. The adventures are marvellous, not intended to be within
+ the bounds of probability, scarcely of possibility. There are very noble
+ sentiments and fine passages throughout the poem. Now and then there is
+ grandeur. But the absence of art is too evident in the fact that the
+ meaning is often obscure; an obscurity not unfrequently occasioned by the
+ difficulty of the stanza, which is the most difficult mode of composition
+ in English, except the rigid sonnet. The words and forms he employs to
+ express thought seem sometimes mechanical devices for that purpose, rather
+ than an utterance which suggested itself naturally to a mind where the
+ thought was vitally present. The words are more a <i>clothing</i> for the
+ thought than an <i>embodiment</i> of it. They do not lie near enough to
+ the thing which is intended to be represented by them. It is, however, but
+ just to remark, that some of the obscurity is owing to the fact, that,
+ even with Mrs. Shelley&rsquo;s superintendence, the works have not yet been
+ satisfactorily edited, or at least not conducted through the press with
+ sufficient care. [Footnote: This statement is no longer true.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <i>The Cenci</i> is a very powerful tragedy, but unfitted for public
+ representation by the horrible nature of the historical facts upon which
+ it is founded. In the execution of it, however, Shelley has kept very much
+ nearer to nature than in any other of his works. He has rigidly adhered to
+ his perception of artistic propriety in respect to the dramatic utterance.
+ It may be doubted whether there is sufficient difference between the modes
+ of speech of the different actors in the tragedy, but it is quite possible
+ to individualize speech far too minutely for probable nature; and in this
+ respect, at least, Shelley has not erred. Perhaps the action of the whole
+ is a little hurried, and a central moment of awful repose and fearful
+ anticipation might add to the force of the tragedy. The scenes also might,
+ perhaps, have been constructed so as to suggest more of evolution; but the
+ central point of horror is most powerfully and delicately handled. You see
+ a possible spiritual horror yet behind, more frightful than all that has
+ gone before. The whole drama, indeed, is constructed around, not a
+ prominent point, but a dim, infinitely-withdrawn, underground perspective
+ of dismay and agony. Perhaps it detracts a little from our interest in the
+ Lady Beatrice, that after all she should wish to live, and should seek to
+ preserve her life by a denial of her crime. She, however, evidently
+ justifies the denial to herself on the ground that, the deed being
+ absolutely right, although regarded as most criminal by her judges, the
+ only way to get true justice is to deny the fact, which, there being no
+ guilt, she might consider as only a verbal lie. Her very purity of
+ conscience enables her to utter this with the most absolute innocence of
+ look, and word, and tone. This is probably a historical fact, and Shelley
+ had to make the best of it. In the drama there is great tenderness, as
+ well as terror; but for a full effect, one feels it desirable to be
+ brought better acquainted with the individuals than the drama, from its
+ want of graduation, permits. Shelley, however, was only six-and-twenty
+ when he wrote it. He must have been attracted to the subject by its
+ embodying the concentration of tyranny, lawlessness, and brutality in old
+ Cenci, as opposed to, and exercised upon, an ideal loveliness and
+ nobleness in the person of Beatrice.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But of all Shelley&rsquo;s works, the <i>Prometheus Unbound</i> is that which
+ combines the greatest amount of individual power and peculiarity. There is
+ an airy grandeur about it, reminding one of the vast masses of cloud
+ scattered about in broken, yet magnificently suggestive forms, all over
+ the summer sky, after a thunderstorm. The fundamental ideas are grand; the
+ superstructure, in many parts, so ethereal, that one hardly knows whether
+ he is gazing on towers of solid masonry rendered dim and unsubstantial by
+ intervening vapour, or upon the golden turrets of cloudland, themselves
+ born of the mist which surrounds them with a halo of glory. The beings of
+ Greek, mythology are idealized and etherealized by the new souls which he
+ puts into them, making them think his thoughts and say his words. In
+ reading this, as in reading most of his poetry, we feel that, unable to
+ cope with the evils and wrongs of the world as it and they are, he
+ constructs a new universe, wherein he may rule according to his will; and
+ a good will in the main it is&mdash;good always in intent, good generally
+ in form and utterance. Of the wrongs which Shelley endured from the
+ collision and resulting conflict between his lawless goodness and the
+ lawful wickedness of those in authority, this is one of the greatest,&mdash;that
+ during the right period of pupillage, he was driven from the place of
+ learning, cast on his own mental resources long before those resources
+ were sufficient for his support, and irritated against the purest
+ embodiment of good by the harsh treatment he received under its name. If
+ that reverence which was far from wanting to his nature, had been but
+ presented, in the person of some guide to his spiritual being, with an
+ object worthy of its homage and trust, it is probable that the yet free
+ and noble result of Shelley&rsquo;s individuality would have been presented to
+ the world in a form which, while it attracted still only the few, would
+ not have repelled the many; at least, not by such things as were merely
+ accidental in their association with his earnest desires and efforts for
+ the well-being of humanity.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ That which chiefly distinguishes Shelley from other writers is the
+ unequalled exuberance of his fancy. The reader, say for instance of that
+ fantastically brilliant poem, <i>The Witch of Atlas</i>, the work of three
+ days, is overwhelmed in a storm, as it were, of rainbow snow-flakes and
+ many-coloured lightnings, accompanied ever by &ldquo;a low melodious thunder.&rdquo;
+ The evidences of pure imagination in his writings are unfrequent as
+ compared with those of fancy: there are not half the instances of the
+ direct embodiment of idea in form, that there are of the presentation of
+ strange resemblances between external things.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One of the finest short specimens of Shelley&rsquo;s peculiar mode is his <i>Ode
+ to the West Wind</i>, full of mysterious melody of thought and sound. But
+ of all his poems, the most popular, and deservedly so, is the <i>Skylark</i>.
+ Perhaps the <i>Cloud</i> may contest it with the <i>Skylark</i> in regard
+ to popular favour; but the <i>Cloud</i>, although full of beautiful words
+ and fantastic cloud-like images, is, after all, principally a work of the
+ fancy; while the <i>Skylark</i>, though even in it fancy predominates over
+ imagination in the visual images, forms, as a whole, a lovely, true,
+ individual work of art; a <i>lyric</i> not unworthy of the <i>lark</i>,
+ which Mason apostrophizes as &ldquo;sweet feathered lyric.&rdquo; The strain of
+ sadness which pervades it is only enough to make the song of the lark
+ human.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In <i>The Sensitive Plant</i>, a poem full of the peculiarities of his
+ genius, tending through a wilderness of fanciful beauties to a thicket of
+ mystical speculation, one curious idiosyncrasy is more prominent than in
+ any other&mdash;curious, as belonging to the poet of beauty and
+ loveliness: it is the tendency to be fascinated by what is ugly and
+ revolting, so that he cannot withdraw his thoughts from it till he has
+ described it in language, powerful, it is true, and poetic, when
+ considered as to its fitness for the desired end, but, in force of these
+ very excellences in the means, nearly as revolting as the objects
+ themselves. Associated with this is the tendency to discover strangely
+ unpleasant likenesses between things; which likenesses he is not content
+ with seeing, but seems compelled, perhaps in order to get rid of them
+ himself, to force upon the observation of his reader. But the admirer of
+ Shelley is not pleased to find that one or two passages of this nature
+ have been omitted in some editions of his works.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Few men have been more misunderstood or misrepresented than Shelley.
+ Doubtless this has in part been his own fault, as Coleridge implies when
+ he writes to this effect of him: that his horror of hypocrisy made him
+ speak in such a wild way, that Southey (who was so much a man of forms and
+ proprieties) was quite misled, not merely in his estimate of his worth,
+ but in his judgment of his character. But setting aside this consideration
+ altogether, and regarding him merely as a poet, Shelley has written verse
+ which will last as long as English literature lasts; valuable not only
+ from its excellence, but from the peculiarity of its excellence. To say
+ nothing of his noble aims and hopes, Shelley will always be admired for
+ his sweet melodies, lovely pictures, and wild prophetic imaginings. His
+ indignant remonstrances, intermingled with grand imprecations, burst in
+ thunder from a heart overcharged with the love of his kind, and roused to
+ a keener sense of all oppression by the wrongs which sought to overwhelm
+ himself. But as he recedes further in time, and men are able to see more
+ truly the proportions of the man, they will judge, that without having
+ gained the rank of a great reformer, Shelley had in him that element of
+ wide sympathy and lofty hope for his kind which is essential both to the
+ <i>birth</i> and the subsequent <i>making</i> of the greatest of poets.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0013" id="link2H_4_0013">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ A SERMON.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: Read in the Unitarian chapel, Essex-street, London, 1879.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ PHILIPPIANS iii. 15, 16.&mdash;Let us therefore, as many as be perfect, be
+ thus minded; and if in anything ye be otherwise minded, God shall reveal
+ even this unto you. Nevertheless, whereto we have already attained, let us
+ walk by that same.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ This is the reading of the oldest manuscripts. The rest of the verse is
+ pretty clearly a not overwise marginal gloss that has crept into the text.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In its origin, opinion is the intellectual body, taken for utterance and
+ presentation by something necessarily larger than any intellect can afford
+ stuff sufficient for the embodiment of. To the man himself, therefore, in
+ whose mind it arose, an opinion will always represent and recall the
+ spirit whose form it is,&mdash;so long, at least, as the man remains true
+ to his better self. Hence, a man&rsquo;s opinion may be for him invaluable, the
+ needle of his moral compass, always pointing to the truth whence it
+ issued, and whose form it is. Nor is the man&rsquo;s opinion of the less value
+ to him that it may change. Nay, to be of true value, it must have in it
+ not only the possibility, but the necessity of change: it must change in
+ every man who is alive with that life which, in the New Testament, is
+ alone treated as life at all. For, if a man&rsquo;s opinion be in no process of
+ change whatever, it must be dead, valueless, hurtful Opinion is the
+ offspring of that which is itself born to grow; which, being imperfect,
+ must grow or die. Where opinion is growing, its imperfections, however
+ many and serious, will do but little hurt; where it is not growing, these
+ imperfections will further the decay and corruption which must already
+ have laid hold of the very heart of the man. But it is plain in the
+ world&rsquo;s history that what, at some given stage of the same, was the
+ embodiment in intellectual form of the highest and deepest of which it was
+ then spiritually capable, has often and speedily become the source of the
+ most frightful outrages upon humanity. How is this? Because it has passed
+ from the mind in which it grew into another in which it did not grow, and
+ has of necessity altered its nature. Itself sprung from that which was
+ deepest in the man, it casts seeds which take root only in the
+ intellectual understanding of his neighbour; and these, springing up,
+ produce flowers indeed which look much the same to the eye, but fruit
+ which is poison and bitterness,&mdash;worst of it all, the false and
+ arrogant notion that it is duty to force the opinion upon the acceptance
+ of others. But it is because such men themselves hold with so poor a grasp
+ the truth underlying their forms that they are, in their self-sufficiency,
+ so ambitious of propagating the forms, making of themselves the worst
+ enemies of the truth of which they fancy themselves the champions. How
+ truly, in the case of all genuine teachers of men, shall a man&rsquo;s foes be
+ they of his own household! For of all the destroyers of the truth which
+ any man has preached, none have done it so effectually or so grievously as
+ his own followers. So many of them have received but the forms, and know
+ nothing of the truth which gave him those forms! They lay hold but of the
+ non-essential, the specially perishing in those forms; and these aspects,
+ doubly false and misleading in their crumbling disjunction, they proceed
+ to force upon the attention and reception of men, calling that the truth
+ which is at best but the draggled and useless fringe of its earth-made
+ garment. Opinions so held belong to the theology of hell,&mdash;not
+ necessarily altogether false in form, but false utterly in heart and
+ spirit. The opinion then that is hurtful is not that which is formed in
+ the depths, and from the honest necessities of a man&rsquo;s own nature, but
+ that which he has taken up at second hand, the study of which has pleased
+ his intellect; has perhaps subdued fears and mollified distresses which
+ ought rather to have grown and increased until they had driven the man to
+ the true physician; has puffed him up with a sense of superiority as false
+ as foolish, and placed in his hand a club with which to subjugate his
+ neighbour to his spiritual dictation. The true man even, who aims at the
+ perpetuation of his opinion, is rather obstructing than aiding the course
+ of that truth for the love of which he holds his opinion; for truth is a
+ living thing, opinion is a dead thing, and transmitted opinion a deadening
+ thing.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us look at St. Paul&rsquo;s feeling in this regard. And, in order that we
+ may deprive it of none of its force, let us note first the nature of the
+ truth which he had just been presenting to his disciples, when he follows
+ it with the words of my text:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But what things were gain to me, those I counted loss for Christ.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Yea doubtless, and I count all things but loss for the excellency of the
+ knowledge of Christ Jesus my Lord: for whom I have suffered the loss of
+ all things, and do count them but dung, that I may win Christ,
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And be found in him, not having mine own righteousness, which is of the
+ law, but that which is through the faith of Christ, the righteousness
+ which is of God by faith:
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ That I may know him, and the power of his resurrection, and the fellowship
+ of his sufferings, being made conformable unto his death;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If by any means I might attain unto the resurrection of the dead.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Not as though I had already attained, either were already perfect: but I
+ follow after, if that I may apprehend that for which also I am apprehended
+ of Christ Jesus.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Brethren, I count not myself to have apprehended: but this one thing I do,
+ forgetting those things which are behind, and reaching forth unto those
+ things which are before, I press toward the mark for the prize of the high
+ calling of God in Christ Jesus.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ St. Paul, then, had been declaring to the Philippians the idea upon which,
+ so far as it lay with him, his life was constructed, the thing for which
+ he lived, to which the whole conscious effort of his being was directed,&mdash;namely,
+ to be in his very nature one with Christ, to become righteous as he is
+ righteous; to die into his death, so that he should no more hold the
+ slightest personal relation to evil, but be alive in every fibre to all
+ that is pure, lovely, loving, beautiful, perfect. He had been telling them
+ that he spent himself in continuous effort to lay hold upon that for the
+ sake of which Christ had laid hold on him. This he declares the sole thing
+ worth living for: the hope of this, the hope of becoming one with the
+ living God, is that which keeps a glorious consciousness awake in him,
+ amidst all the unrest of a being not yet at harmony with itself, and a
+ laborious and persecuted life. It cannot therefore be any shadow of
+ indifference to the truth to which he has borne this witness, that causes
+ him to add, &ldquo;If in anything ye be otherwise minded.&rdquo; It is to him even the
+ test of perfection, whether they be thus minded or not; for, although a
+ moment before, he has declared himself short of the desired perfection, he
+ now says, &ldquo;Let as many of us as are perfect be thus minded.&rdquo; There is here
+ no room for that unprofitable thing, bare logic: we must look through the
+ shifting rainbow of his words,&mdash;rather, we must gather all their
+ tints together, then turn our backs upon the rainbow, that we may see the
+ glorious light which is the soul of it. St. Paul is not that which he
+ would be, which he must be; but he, and all they who with him believe that
+ the perfection of Christ is the sole worthy effort of a man&rsquo;s life, are in
+ the region, though not yet at the centre, of perfection. They are, even
+ now, not indeed grasping, but in the grasp of, that perfection. He tells
+ them this is the one thing to mind, the one thing to go on desiring and
+ labouring for, with all the earnestness of a God-born existence; but, if
+ any one be at all otherwise minded,&mdash;that is, of a different opinion,&mdash;what
+ then? That it is of little or no consequence? No, verily; but of such
+ endless consequence that God will himself unveil to them the truth of the
+ matter. This is Paul&rsquo;s faith, not his opinion. Faith is that by which a
+ man lives inwardly, and orders his way outwardly. Faith is the root,
+ belief the tree, and opinion the foliage that falls and is renewed with
+ the seasons. Opinion is, at best, even the opinion of a true man, but the
+ cloak of his belief, which he may indeed cast to his neighbour, but not
+ with the truth inside it: that remains in his own bosom, the oneness
+ between him and his God. St. Paul knows well&mdash;who better?&mdash;that
+ by no argument, the best that logic itself can afford, can a man be set
+ right with the truth; that the spiritual perception which comes of
+ hungering contact with the living truth&mdash;a perception which is in
+ itself a being born again&mdash;can alone be the mediator between a man
+ and the truth. He knows that, even if he could pass his opinion over
+ bodily into the understanding of his neighbour, there would be little or
+ nothing gained thereby, for the man&rsquo;s spiritual condition would be just
+ what it was before. God must reveal, or nothing is known. And this,
+ through thousands of difficulties occasioned by the man himself, God is
+ ever and always doing his mighty best to effect.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ See the grandeur of redeeming liberality in the Apostle. In his heart of
+ hearts he knows that salvation consists in nothing else than being one
+ with Christ; that the only life of every man is hid with Christ in God,
+ and to be found by no search anywhere else. He believes that for this
+ cause was he born into the world,&mdash;that he should give himself, heart
+ and soul, body and spirit, to him who came into the world that he might
+ bear witness to the truth. He believes that for the sake of this, and
+ nothing less,&mdash;anything more there cannot be,&mdash;was the world,
+ with its endless glories, created. Nay, more than all, he believes that
+ for this did the Lord, in whose cross, type and triumph of his
+ self-abnegation, he glories, come into the world, and live and die there.
+ And yet, and yet, he says, and says plainly, that a man thinking
+ differently from all this or at least, quite unprepared to make this
+ whole-hearted profession of faith, is yet his brother in Christ, in whom
+ the knowledge of Christ that he has will work and work, the new leaven
+ casting out the old leaven until he, too, in the revelation of the Father,
+ shall come to the perfect stature of the fulness of Christ. Meantime,
+ Paul, the Apostle, must show due reverence to the halting and dull
+ disciple. He must and will make no demand upon him on the grounds of what
+ he, Paul, believes. He is where he is, and God is his teacher. To his own
+ Master,&mdash;that is, Paul&rsquo;s Master, and not Paul,&mdash;he stands. He
+ leaves him to the company of his Master. &ldquo;Leaves him?&rdquo; No: that he does
+ not; that he will never do, any more than God will leave him. Still and
+ ever will he hold him and help him. But how help him, if he is not to
+ press upon him his own larger and deeper and wiser insights? The answer is
+ ready: he will press, not his opinion, not even the man&rsquo;s opinion, but the
+ man&rsquo;s own faith upon him. &ldquo;O brother, beloved of the Father, walk in the
+ light,&mdash;in the light, that is, which is thine, not which is mine; in
+ the light which is given to thee, not to me: thou canst not walk by my
+ light, I cannot walk by thine: how should either walk except by the light
+ which is in him? O brother, what thou seest, that do; and what thou seest
+ not, that thou shalt see: God himself, the Father of Lights, will show it
+ to you.&rdquo; This, this is the condition of all growth,&mdash;that whereto we
+ have attained, we mind that same; for such, following the manuscripts, at
+ least the oldest, seems to me the Apostle&rsquo;s meaning. Obedience is the one
+ condition of progress, and he entreats them to obey. If a man will but
+ work that which is in him, will but make the power of God his own, then is
+ it well with him for evermore. Like his Master, Paul urges to action, to
+ the highest operation, therefore to the highest condition of humanity. As
+ Christ was the Son of his Father because he did the will of the Father, so
+ the Apostle would have them the sons of the Father by doing the will of
+ the Father. Whereto ye have attained, walk by <i>that</i>.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But there is more involved in this utterance than the words themselves
+ will expressly carry. Next to his love to the Father and the Elder
+ Brother, the passion of Paul&rsquo;s life&mdash;I cannot call it less&mdash;is
+ love to all his brothers and sisters. Everything human is dear to him: he
+ can part with none of it. Division, separation, the breaking of the body
+ of Christ, is that which he cannot endure. The body of his flesh had once
+ been broken, that a grander body might be prepared for him: was it for
+ that body itself to tear itself asunder? With the whole energy of his
+ great heart, Paul clung to unity. He could clasp together with might and
+ main the body of his Master&mdash;the body that Master loved because it
+ was a spiritual body, with the life of his Father in it. And he knew well
+ that only by walking in the truth to which they had attained, could they
+ ever draw near to each other. Whereto we have attained, let us walk by
+ that.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ My honoured friends, if we are not practical, we are nothing. Now, the one
+ main fault in the Christian Church is separation, repulsion, recoil
+ between the component particles of the Lord&rsquo;s body. I will not, I do not
+ care to inquire who is more to blame than another in the evil fact. I only
+ care to insist that it is the duty of every individual man to be innocent
+ of the same. One main cause, perhaps I should say <i>the one</i> cause of
+ this deathly condition, is that whereto we had, we did not, whereto we
+ have attained, we do not walk by that. Ah, friend! do not now think of thy
+ neighbour. Do not applaud my opinion as just from what thou hast seen
+ around thee, but answer it from thy own being, thy own behaviour. Dost
+ thou ever feel thus toward thy neighbour,&mdash;&ldquo;Yes, of course, every man
+ is my brother; but how can I be a brother to him so long as he thinks me
+ wrong in what I believe, and so long as I think he wrongs in his opinions
+ the dignity of the truth?&rdquo; What, I return, has the man no hand to grasp,
+ no eyes into which yours may gaze far deeper than your vaunted intellect
+ can follow? Is there not, I ask, anything in him to love? Who asks you to
+ be of one opinion? It is the Lord who asks you to be of one heart. Does
+ the Lord love the man? Can the Lord love, where there is nothing to love?
+ Are you wiser than he, inasmuch as you perceive impossibility where he has
+ failed to discover it? Or will you say, &ldquo;Let the Lord love where he
+ pleases: I will love where I please&rdquo;? or say, and imagine you yield,
+ &ldquo;Well, I suppose I must, and therefore I will,&mdash;but with certain
+ reservations, politely quiet in my own heart&rdquo;? Or wilt thou say none of
+ all these things, but do them all, one after the other, in the secret
+ chambers of thy proud spirit? If you delight to condemn, you are a
+ wounder, a divider of the oneness of Christ. If you pride yourself on your
+ loftier vision, and are haughty to your neighbour, you are yourself a
+ division and have reason to ask: &ldquo;Am I a particle of the body at all?&rdquo; The
+ Master will deal with thee upon the score. Let it humble thee to know that
+ thy dearest opinion, the one thou dost worship as if it, and not God, were
+ thy Saviour, this very opinion thou art doomed to change, for it cannot
+ possibly be right, if it work in thee for death and not for life.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Friends, you have done me the honour and the kindness to ask me to speak
+ to you. I will speak plainly. I come before you neither hiding anything of
+ my belief, nor foolishly imagining I can transfer my opinions into your
+ bosoms. If there is one rôle I hate, it is that of the proselytizer. But
+ shall I not come to you as a brother to brethren? Shall I not use the
+ privilege of your invitation and of the place in which I stand, nay, must
+ I not myself be obedient to the heavenly vision, in urging you with all
+ the power of my persuasion to set yourselves afresh to <i>walk</i>
+ according to that to which you have attained. So doing, whatever yet there
+ is to learn, you shall learn it. Thus doing, and thus only, can you draw
+ nigh to the centre truth; thus doing, and thus only, shall we draw nigh to
+ each other, and become brothers and sisters in Christ, caring for each
+ other&rsquo;s honour and righteousness and true well-being. It is to them that
+ keep his commandments that he and his Father will come to take up their
+ abode with them. Whether you or I have the larger share of the truth in
+ that which we hold, of this I am sure, that it is to them that keep his
+ commandments that it shall be given to eat of the Tree of Life. I believe
+ that Jesus is the eternal son of the eternal Father; that in him the ideal
+ humanity sat enthroned from all eternity; that as he is the divine man, so
+ is he the human God; that there was no taking of our nature upon himself,
+ but the showing of himself as he really was, and that from evermore: these
+ things, friends, I believe, though never would I be guilty of what in me
+ would be the irreverence of opening my mouth in dispute upon them. Not for
+ a moment would I endeavour by argument to convince another of this, my
+ opinion. If it be true, it is God&rsquo;s work to show it, for logic cannot. But
+ the more, and not the less, do I believe that he, who is no respecter of
+ persons, will, least of all, respect the person of him who thinks to
+ please him by respecting his person, calling him, &ldquo;Lord, Lord,&rdquo; and not
+ doing the things that he tells him. Even if I be right, friend, and thou
+ wrong, to thee who doest his commandments more faithfully than I, will the
+ more abundant entrance be administered. God grant that, when thou art
+ admitted first, I may not be cast out, but admitted to learn of thee that
+ it is truth in the inward parts that he requireth, and they that have that
+ truth, and they alone, shall ever know wisdom. Bear with me, friends, for
+ I love and honour you. I seek but to stir up your hearts, as I would daily
+ stir up my own, to be true to that which is deepest in us,&mdash;the voice
+ and the will of the Father of our spirits.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Friends, I have not said we are not to utter our opinions. I have only
+ said we are not to make those opinions the point of a fresh start, the
+ foundation of a new building, the groundwork of anything. They are not to
+ occupy us in our dealings with our brethren. Opinion is often the very
+ death of love. Love aright, and you will come to think aright; and those
+ who think aright must think the same. In the meantime, it matters nothing.
+ The thing that does matter is, that whereto we have attained, by that we
+ should walk. But, while we are not to insist upon our opinions, which is
+ only one way of insisting upon ourselves, however we may cloak the fact
+ from ourselves in the vain imagination of thereby spreading the truth, we
+ are bound by loftiest duty to spread the truth; for that is the saving of
+ men. Do you ask, How spread it, if we are not to talk about it? Friends, I
+ never said, Do not talk about the truth, although I insist upon a better
+ and the only indispensable way: let your light shine. What I said before,
+ and say again, is, Do not talk about the lantern that holds the lamp, but
+ make haste, uncover the light, and let it shine. Let your light so shine
+ before men that they may see your good works,&mdash;I incline to the
+ Vatican reading of <i>good things</i>,&mdash;and glorify your Father who
+ is in heaven. It is not, Let your good works shine, but, Let your light
+ shine. Let it be the genuine love of your hearts, taking form in true
+ deeds; not the doing of good deeds to prove that your opinions are right.
+ If ye are thus true, your very talk about the truth will be a good work, a
+ shining of the light that is in you. A true smile is a good work, and may
+ do much to reveal the Father who is in heaven; but the smile that is put
+ on for the sake of looking right, or even for the sake of being right,
+ will hardly reveal him, not being like him. Men say that you are cold: if
+ you fear it may be so, do not think to make yourselves warm by putting on
+ the cloak of this or that fresh opinion; draw nearer to the central heat,
+ the living humanity of the Son of Man, that ye may have life in
+ yourselves, so heat in yourselves, so light in yourselves; understand him,
+ obey him, then your light will shine, and your warmth will warm. There is
+ an infection, as in evil, so in good. The better we are, the more will men
+ glorify God. If we trim our lamps so that we have light in our house, that
+ light will shine through our windows, and give light to those that are not
+ in the house. But remember, love of the light alone can trim the lamp. Had
+ Love trimmed Psyche&rsquo;s lamp, it had never dropped the scalding oil that
+ scared him from her.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The man who holds his opinion the most honestly ought to see the most
+ plainly that his opinion must change. It is impossible a man should hold
+ anything aright. How shall the created embrace the self-existent Creator?
+ That Creator, and he alone, is <i>the truth</i>: how, then, shall a man
+ embrace the truth? But to him who will live it,&mdash;to him, that is, who
+ walks by that to which he has attained,&mdash;the truth will reach down a
+ thousand true hands for his to grasp. We would not wish to enclose that
+ which we can do more than enclose,&mdash;live in, namely, as our home,
+ inherit, exult in,&mdash;the presence of the infinitely higher and better,
+ the heart of the living one. And, if we know that God himself is our
+ inheritance, why should we tremble even with hatred at the suggestion that
+ we may, that we must, change our opinions? If we held them aright, we
+ should know that nothing in them that is good can ever be lost; for that
+ is the true, whatever in them may be the false. It is only as they help us
+ toward God, that our opinions are worth a straw; and every necessary
+ change in them must be to more truth, to greater uplifting power. Lord,
+ change me as thou wilt, only do not send me away. That in my opinions for
+ which I really hold them, if I be a true man, will never pass away; that
+ which my evils and imperfections have, in the process of embodying it,
+ associated with the truth, must, thank God, perish and fall. My opinions,
+ as my life, as my love, I leave in the hands of him who is my being. I
+ commend my spirit to him of whom it came. Why, then, that dislike to the
+ very idea of such change, that dread of having to accept the thing offered
+ by those whom we count our opponents, which is such a stumbling-block in
+ the way in which we have to walk, such an obstruction to our yet
+ inevitable growth? It may be objected that no man will hold his opinions
+ with the needful earnestness, who can entertain the idea of having to
+ change them. But the very objection speaks powerfully against such an
+ overvaluing of opinion. For what is it but to say that, in order to be
+ wise, a man must consent to be a fool. Whatever must be, a man must be
+ able to look in the face. It is because we cleave to our opinions rather
+ than to the living God, because self and pride interest themselves for
+ their own vile sakes with that which belongs only to the truth, that we
+ become such fools of logic and temper that we lie in the prison-houses of
+ our own fancies, ideas, and experiences, shut the doors and windows
+ against the entrance of the free spirit, and will not inherit the love of
+ the Father.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Yet, for the help and comfort of even such a refuser as this, I would say:
+ Nothing which you reject can be such as it seems to you. For a thing is
+ either true or untrue: if it be untrue, it looks, so far like itself that
+ you reject it, and with it we have nothing more to do; but, if it be true,
+ the very fact that you reject it shows that to you it has not appeared
+ true,&mdash;has not appeared itself. The truth can never be even beheld
+ but by the man who accepts it: the thing, therefore, which you reject, is
+ not that which it seems to you, but a thing good, and altogether
+ beautiful, altogether fit for your gladsome embrace,&mdash;a thing from
+ which you would not turn away, did you see it as it is, but rush to it, as
+ Dante says, like the wild beast to his den,&mdash;so eager for the refuge
+ of home. No honest man holds a truth for the sake of that because of which
+ another honest man rejects it: how it may be with the dishonest, I have no
+ confidence in my judgment, and hope I am not bound to understand.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us then, my friends, beware lest our opinions come between us and our
+ God, between us and our neighbour, between us and our better selves. Let
+ us be jealous that the human shall not obscure the divine. For we are not
+ <i>mere</i> human: we, too, are divine; and there is no such obliterator
+ of the divine as the human that acts undivinely. The one security against
+ our opinions is to walk according to the truth which they contain.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And if men seem to us unreasonable, opposers of that which to us is
+ plainly true, let us remember that we are not here to convince men, but to
+ let our light shine. Knowledge is not necessarily light; and it is light,
+ not knowledge, that we have to diffuse. The best thing we can do,
+ infinitely the best, indeed the only thing, that men may receive the
+ truth, is to be ourselves true. Beyond all doing of good is the being
+ good; for he that is good not only does good things, but all that he does
+ is good. Above all, let us be humble before the God of truth, faithfully
+ desiring of him that truth in the inward parts which alone can enable us
+ to walk according to that which we have attained. May the God of peace
+ give you his peace; may the love of Christ constrain you; may the gift of
+ the Holy Spirit be yours. Amen.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0014" id="link2H_4_0014">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ TRUE CHRISTIAN MINISTERING.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: A spoken sermon.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ MATT. xx. 25&mdash;28&mdash;But Jesus called them unto him and said, Ye
+ know that the princes of the Gentiles exercise dominion over them, and
+ they that are great exercise authority upon them. But it should not be so
+ among you: but whosoever will be great among you, let him be your
+ minister; and whosoever will be chief among you, let him be your servant:
+ even as the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister,
+ and to give his life a ransom for many.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ How little this is believed! People think, if they think about it at all,
+ that this is very well in the church, but, as things go in the world, it
+ won&rsquo;t do. At least, their actions imply this, for every man is struggling
+ to get above the other. Every man would make his neighbour his footstool
+ that he may climb upon him to some throne of glory which he has in his own
+ mind. There is a continual jostling, and crowding, and buzzing, and
+ striving to get promotion. Of course there are known and noble exceptions;
+ but still, there it is. And yet we call ourselves &ldquo;Christians,&rdquo; and we are
+ Christians, all of us, thus far, that the truth is within reach of us all,
+ that it has come nigh to us, talking to us at our door, and even speaking
+ in our hearts, and yet this is the way in which we go on! The Lord said,
+ &ldquo;It shall not be so among you.&rdquo; Did he mean only his twelve disciples?
+ This was all that he had to say to them, but&mdash;thanks be to him!&mdash;he
+ says the same to every one of us now. &ldquo;It shall not be so among you: that
+ is not the way in my kingdom.&rdquo; The people of the world&mdash;the people
+ who live in the world&mdash;will always think it best to get up, to have
+ less and less of service to do, more and more of service done to them. The
+ notion of rank in the world is like a pyramid; the higher you go up, the
+ fewer are there who have to serve those above them, and who are served
+ more than those underneath them. All who are under serve those who are
+ above, until you come to the apex, and there stands some one who has to do
+ no service, but whom all the others have to serve. Something like that is
+ the notion of position&mdash;of social standing and rank. And if it be so
+ in an intellectual way even&mdash;to say nothing of mere bodily service&mdash;if
+ any man works to a position that others shall all look up to him and that
+ he may have to look up to nobody, he has just put himself precisely into
+ the same condition as the people of whom our Lord speaks&mdash;as those
+ who exercise dominion and authority, and really he thinks it a fine thing
+ to be served.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But it is not so in the kingdom of heaven. The figure there is entirely
+ reversed. As you may see a pyramid reflected in the water, just so, in a
+ reversed way altogether, is the thing to be found in the kingdom of God.
+ It is in this way: the Son of Man lies at the inverted apex of the
+ pyramid; he upholds, and serves, and ministers unto all, and they who
+ would be high in his kingdom must go near to him at the bottom, to uphold
+ and minister to all that they may or can uphold and minister unto. There
+ is no other law of precedence, no other law of rank and position in God&rsquo;s
+ kingdom. And mind, that is <i>the</i> kingdom. The other kingdom passes
+ away&mdash;it is a transitory, ephemeral, passing, bad thing, and away it
+ must go. It is only there on sufferance, because in the mind of God even
+ that which is bad ministers to that which is good; and when the new
+ kingdom is built the old kingdom shall pass away.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the man who seeks this rank of which I have spoken, must be honest to
+ follow it. It will not do to say, &ldquo;I want to be great, and therefore I
+ will serve.&rdquo; A man will not get at it so. He may begin so, but he will
+ soon find that that will not do. He must seek it for the truth&rsquo;s sake, for
+ the love of his fellows, for the worship of God, for the delight in what
+ is good. In the kingdom of heaven people do not think whether I am
+ promoted, or whether you are promoted. They are so absorbed in the delight
+ and glory of the goodness that is round about them, that they learn not to
+ think much about themselves. It is the bad that is in us that makes us
+ think about ourselves. It is necessary for us, because there is bad in us,
+ to think about ourselves, but as we go on we think less and less about
+ ourselves, until at last we are possessed with the spirit of the truth,
+ the spirit of the kingdom, and live in gladness and in peace. We are
+ prouder of our brothers and sisters than of ourselves; we delight to look
+ at them. God looks at us, and makes us what he pleases, and this is what
+ we must come to; there is no escape from it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the Lord says, that &ldquo;the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto.&rdquo;
+ Was he not ministered unto then? Ah! he was ministered unto as never man
+ was, but he did not come for that. Even now we bring to him the
+ burnt-offerings of our very spirits, but he did not come for that. It was
+ to help us that he came. We are told, likewise, that he is the express
+ image of the Father. Then what he does, the Father must do; and he says
+ himself, when he is accused of breaking the Sabbath by doing work on it,
+ &ldquo;My Father worketh hitherto, and I work.&rdquo; Then this must be God&rsquo;s way too,
+ or else it could not have been Jesus&rsquo;s way. It is God&rsquo;s way. Oh! do not
+ think that God made us with his hands, and then turned us out to find out
+ our own way. Do not think of him as being always over our heads, merely
+ throwing over us a wide-spread benevolence. You can imagine the tenderness
+ of a mother&rsquo;s heart who takes her child even from its beloved nurse to
+ soothe and to minister to it, and that is like God; that is God. His hand
+ is not only over us, but recollect what David said&mdash;&ldquo;His hand was
+ upon me.&rdquo; I wish we were all as good Christians as David was. &ldquo;Wherever I
+ go,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;God is there&mdash;beneath me, before me, his hand is upon
+ me; if I go to sleep he is there; when I go down to the dead he is there.&rdquo;
+ Everywhere is God. The earth underneath us is his hand upholding us.
+ [Footnote: The waters are in the hollow of it.] Every spring-fountain of
+ gladness about us is his making and his delight. He tends us and cares for
+ us; he is close to us, breathing into our nostrils the breath of life, and
+ breathing into our spirit this thought and that thought to make us look up
+ and recognize the love and the care around us. What a poor thing for the
+ little baby would it be if it were to be constantly tended thus tenderly
+ and preciously by its mother, but if it were never to open its eyes to
+ look up and see her mother&rsquo;s face bending over it. A poor thing all its
+ tending would be without that. It is for that that the other exists; it is
+ by that that the other comes. To recognize and know this loving-kindness,
+ and to stand up in it strong and glad; this is the ministration of God
+ unto us. Do you ever think &ldquo;I could worship God if he was so-and-so?&rdquo; Do
+ you imagine that God is not as good, as perfect, as absolutely all-in-all
+ as your thoughts can imagine? Aye, you cannot come up to it; do what you
+ will you never will come up to it. Use all the symbols that we have in
+ nature, in human relations, in the family&mdash;all our symbols of grace
+ and tenderness, and loving-kindness between man and man, and between man
+ and woman, and between woman and woman, but you can never come up to the
+ thought of what God&rsquo;s ministration is. When our Lord came he just let us
+ see how his Father was doing this always, he &ldquo;came to give his life a
+ ransom for many.&rdquo; It was in giving his life a ransom for us that he died;
+ that was the consummation and crown of it all, but it was his life that he
+ gave for us&mdash;his whole being, his whole strength, his whole energy&mdash;not
+ alone his days of trouble and of toil, but deeper than that, he gave his
+ whole being for us; yea, he even went down to death for us.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But how are we to learn this ministration? I will tell you where it
+ begins. The most of us are forced to work; if you do not see that the
+ commonest things in life belong to the Christian scheme, the plan of God,
+ you have got to learn it. I say this is at the beginning. Most of us have
+ to work, and infinitely better is that for us than if we were not forced
+ to work, but not a very fine thing unless it goes to something farther. We
+ are forced to work; and what is our work? It is doing something for other
+ people always. It is doing; it is ministration in some shape or other. All
+ kind of work is a serving, but it may not be always Christian service. No.
+ Some of us only work for our wages; we must have them. We starve, and
+ deserve to starve, if we do not work to get them. But we must go a little
+ beyond that; yes, a very great way beyond that. There is no honest work
+ that one man does for another which he may not do as unto the Lord and not
+ unto men; in which he cannot do right as he ought to do right. Thus, I say
+ that the man who sees the commonest thing in the world, recognizing it as
+ part of the divine order of things, the law by which the world goes, being
+ the intention of God that one man should be serviceable and useful to
+ another&mdash;the man, I say, who does a thing well because of this, and
+ who tries to do it better, is doing God service.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We talk of &ldquo;divine service.&rdquo; It is a miserable name for a great thing. It
+ is not service, properly speaking, at all. When a boy comes to his father
+ and says, &ldquo;May I do so and so for you?&rdquo; or, rather, comes and breaks out
+ in some way, showing his love to his father&mdash;says, &ldquo;May I come and
+ sit beside you? May I have some of your books? May I come and be quiet a
+ little in your room?&rdquo; what would you think of that boy if he went and
+ said, &ldquo;I have been doing my father a service.&rdquo; So with praying to and
+ thanking God, do you call that serving God? If it is not serving
+ yourselves it is worth nothing; if it is not the best condition you can
+ find yourselves in, you have to learn what it is yet. Not so; the work you
+ have to do to-morrow in the counting-house, in the shop, or wherever you
+ may be, is that by which you are to serve God. Do it with a high regard,
+ and then there is nothing mean in it; but there is everything mean in it
+ if you are pretending to please people when you only look for your wages.
+ It is mean then; but if you have regard to doing a thing nobly, greatly,
+ and truly, because it is the work that God has given you to do, then you
+ are doing the divine service.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Of course, this goes a great deal farther. We have endless opportunities
+ of showing ourselves neighbours to the man who comes near us. That is the
+ divine service; that is the reality of serving God. The others ought to be
+ your reward, if &ldquo;reward&rdquo; is a word that can be used in such a relation at
+ all. Go home and speak to God; nay, hold your tongue, and quietly go to
+ him in the secret recesses of your own heart, and know that God is there.
+ Say, &ldquo;God has given me this work to do, and I am doing it;&rdquo; and that is
+ your joy, that is your refuge, that is your going to heaven. It is not
+ service. The words &ldquo;divine service,&rdquo; as they are used, always move me to
+ something of indignation. It is perfect paganism; it is looking to please
+ God by gathering together your services,&mdash;something that is supposed
+ to be service to him. He is serving us for ever, and our Lord says, &ldquo;If I
+ have washed your feet, so you ought to wash one another&rsquo;s feet.&rdquo; This will
+ be the way in which to minister for some.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But still, when we are beginning to learn this, some of us are looking
+ about us in a blind kind of way, thinking, &ldquo;I wish I could serve God; I do
+ not know what to do! How is it to be begun? What is it at the root of it?
+ What shall I find out to do? Where is there something to do?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now, first of all, service is obedience, or it is nothing. This is what I
+ would gladly impress upon you; upon every young man who has come to the
+ point to be able to receive it. There is a tendency in us to think that
+ there is something degrading in obedience, something degrading in service.
+ According to the social judgment there is; according to the judgment of
+ the earth there is. Not so according to the judgment of heaven, for God
+ would only have us do the very thing he is doing himself. You may see the
+ tendency of this nowadays. There is scarcely a young man who will speak of
+ his &ldquo;master.&rdquo; He feels as if there is something that hurts his dignity in
+ doing so. He does just what so many theologians have done about God, who,
+ instead of taking what our Lord has given us, talk about God as &ldquo;the
+ Governor of the Universe.&rdquo; So a young man talks about his master as &ldquo;the
+ governor;&rdquo; nay, he even talks of his own father in that way, and then you
+ come in another region altogether, and a worse one. I take these things as
+ symptoms, mind. I know habits may be picked up, when they get common,
+ without any great corresponding feeling; but a wrong habit tends always to
+ a wrong feeling, and if a man cannot learn to honour his father, so as to
+ be able to call him &ldquo;father,&rdquo; I think one or the other of them is greatly
+ to blame, whether the father or the son I cannot say. I know there are
+ such parents that to tell their children that God is their &ldquo;Father&rdquo; is no
+ help to them, but the contrary. I heard of a lady just the other day to
+ whom, in trying to comfort her, some one said, &ldquo;Remember God is your
+ Father.&rdquo; &ldquo;Do not mention the name &lsquo;father&rsquo; to me,&rdquo; she said. Ah! that kind
+ of fault does not lie in God, but in those who, not being like him, cannot
+ use the names aright which belong to him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But now, as to this service, this obedience. Our Lord came to give his
+ life a ransom for the many, and to minister unto all in obedience to his
+ Father&rsquo;s will. We call him equal with God&mdash;at least, most of us here,
+ I suppose, do; of course we do not pretend to explain; we know that God is
+ greater than he, because he said so; but somehow, we can worship him with
+ our God, and we need not try to distinguish more than is necessary about
+ it. But do you think that he was less divine than the Father when he was
+ obedient? Observe his obedience to the will of his Father. He was not the
+ ruler there. He did not give the commands; he obeyed them. And yet we say
+ He is God! Ah, that is no difficulty to me. Obedience is as divine in its
+ essence as command; nay, it may be more divine in the human being far; it
+ cannot be more divine in God, but obedience is far more divine in its
+ essence with regard to humanity than command is. It is not the ruling
+ being who is most like God; it is the man who ministers to his fellow, who
+ is like God; and the man who will just sternly and rigidly do what his
+ master tells him&mdash;be that master what he may&mdash;who is likest
+ Christ in that one particular matter. Obedience is the grandest thing in
+ the world to begin with. Yes, and we shall end with it too. I do not think
+ the time will ever come when we shall not have something to do, because we
+ are told to do it without knowing why. Those parents act most foolishly
+ who wish to explain everything to their children&mdash;most foolishly. No;
+ teach your child to obey, and you give him the most precious lesson that
+ can be given to a child. Let him come to that before you have had him
+ long, to do what he is told, and you have given him the plainest, first,
+ and best lesson that you can give him. If he never goes to school at all
+ he had better have that lesson than all the schooling in the world. Hence,
+ when some people are accustomed to glorify this age of ours as being so
+ much better in everything than those which went before, I look back to the
+ times of chivalry, which we regard now, almost, as a thing to laugh at, or
+ a merry thing to make jokes about; but I find that the one essential of
+ chivalry was obedience. It is recognized in our army still, but in those
+ times it was carried much farther. When a boy was seven years old he was
+ sent into another family, and put with another boy there to do what? To
+ wait with him upon the master and the mistress of the house, and to be
+ taught, as well, what few things they knew in those times in the way of
+ intellectual cultivation. But he also learned stern, strict obedience,
+ such as it was impossible for him to forget. Then, when he had been there
+ seven years, hard at work, standing behind the chair, and ministering, he
+ was advanced a step; and what was that step? He was made an esquire. He
+ had his armour given him; he had to watch his armour in the chapel all
+ night, laying it on the altar in silent devotion to God. I do not say that
+ all these things were carried out afterwards, but this was the idea of
+ them. He was an esquire, and what was the duty of an esquire? More
+ service; more important service. He still had to attend to his master, the
+ knight. He had to watch him; he had to groom his horse for him; he had to
+ see that his horse was sound; he had to clean his armour for him; to see
+ that every bolt, every rivet, every strap, every buckle was sound, for the
+ life of his master was in his hands. The master, having to fight, must not
+ be troubled with these things, and therefore the squire had to attend to
+ them. Then seven years after that a more solemn ceremony is gone through,
+ and the squire is made a knight; but is he free of service then? No; he
+ makes a solemn oath to help everybody who needs help, especially women and
+ children, and so he rides out into the world to do the work of a true man.
+ There was a grand and essential idea of Christianity in that&mdash;no
+ doubt wonderfully broken and shattered, but not more so than the Christian
+ church has been; wonderfully broken and shattered, but still the essence
+ of obedience; and I say it is recognized in our army still, and in every
+ army; and where it is lost it is a terrible loss, and an army is worth
+ nothing without it. You remember that terrible story from the East, that
+ fearful death-charge, one of the grandest things in our history, although
+ one of the most blundering:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Theirs not to make reply,
+ Theirs not to reason why,
+ Theirs but to do and die;
+ Into the valley of death
+ Rode the Six Hundred.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ So with the Christian man; whatever meets him, obedience is the thing. If
+ he is told by his conscience, which is the candle of God within him, that
+ he must do a thing, why he must do it. He may tremble from head to foot at
+ having to do it, but he will tremble more if he turns his back. You
+ recollect how our old poet Spenser shows us the Knight of the Red Cross,
+ who is the knight of holiness, ill in body, diseased in mind, without any
+ of his armour on, attacked by a fearful giant. What does he do? Run away?
+ No, he has but time to catch up his sword, and, trembling in every limb,
+ he goes on to meet the giant; and that is the thing that every Christian
+ man must do. I cannot put it too strongly; it is impossible. There is no
+ escape from it. If death itself lies before us, and we know it, there is
+ nothing to be said; it is all to be done, and then there is no loss;
+ everything else is all lost unto God. Look at our Lord. He gave his life
+ to do the will of his Father, and on he went and did it. Do you think it
+ was easy for him&mdash;easier for him than it would have been for us? Ah!
+ the greater the man the more delicate and tender his nature, and the more
+ he shrinks from the opposition even of his fellowmen, because he loves
+ them. It was a terrible thing for Christ. Even now and then, even in the
+ little touches that come to us in the scanty story (though enough) this
+ breaks out. &ldquo;We are told by John that at the Last Supper He was troubled
+ in spirit, and testified.&rdquo; And then how he tries to comfort himself as
+ soon as Judas has gone out to do the thing which was to finish his great
+ work: &ldquo;Now is the Son of Man glorified, and God is glorified in him. If
+ God be glorified in him, God shall also glorify him in himself.&rdquo; Then he
+ adds,&mdash;just gathering up his strength,&mdash;&ldquo;I shall straightway
+ glorify him.&rdquo; This was said to his disciples, but I seem to see in it that
+ some of it was said for himself. This is the grand obedience! Oh, friends,
+ this is a hard lesson to learn. We find every day that it is a hard thing
+ to teach. We are continually grumbling because we cannot get the people
+ about us, our servants, our tradespeople, or whoever they may be, to do
+ just what we tell them. It makes half the misery in the world because they
+ will have something of their own in it against what they are told. But are
+ we not always doing the same thing? and ought we not to learn something of
+ forgiveness for them, and very much from the fact that we are just in the
+ same position? We only recognize in part that we are put here in this
+ world precisely to learn to be obedient. He who is our Lord and our God
+ went on being obedient all the time, and was obedient always; and I say it
+ is as divine for us to obey as it is for God to rule. As I have said
+ already, God is ministering the whole time. Now, do you want to know how
+ to minister? Begin by obeying. Obey every one who has a right to command
+ you; but above all, look to what our Lord has said, and find out what he
+ wants you to do out of what he left behind, and try whether obedience to
+ that will not give a consciousness of use, of ministering, of being a part
+ of the grand scheme and way of God in this world. In fact, take your place
+ in it as a vital portion of the divine kingdom, or&mdash;to use a better
+ figure than that&mdash;a vital portion of the Godhead. Try it, and see
+ whether obedience is not salvation; whether service is not dignity;
+ whether you will not feel in yourselves that you have begun to be cleansed
+ from your plague when you begin to say, &ldquo;I will seek no more to be above
+ my fellows, but I will seek to minister to them, doing my work in God&rsquo;s
+ name for them.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Who sweeps a room as for Thy law,
+ Makes that and the action fine.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Both the room and the action are good when done for God&rsquo;s sake. That is
+ dear old George Herbert&rsquo;s way of saying the same truth, for every man has
+ his own way of saying it. The gift of the Spirit of God to make you think
+ as God thinks, feel as God feels, judge as God judges, is just the one
+ thing that is promised. I do not know anything else that is promised
+ positively but that, and who dares pray for anything else with perfect
+ confidence? God will not give us what we pray for except it be good for
+ us, but that is one thing that we must have or perish. Therefore, let us
+ pray for that, and with the name of God dwelling in us&mdash;if this is
+ not true, the whole world is a heap of ruins&mdash;let us go forth and do
+ this service of God in ministering to our fellows, and so helping him in
+ his work of upholding, and glorifying and saving all.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0015" id="link2H_4_0015">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ THE FANTASTIC IMAGINATION
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ That we have in English no word corresponding to the German <i>Mährchen</i>,
+ drives us to use the word <i>Fairytale</i>, regardless of the fact that
+ the tale may have nothing to do with any sort of fairy. The old use of the
+ word <i>Fairy</i>, by Spenser at least, might, however, well be adduced,
+ were justification or excuse necessary where <i>need must</i>.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Were I asked, what is a fairytale? I should reply, <i>Read Undine: that is
+ a fairytale; then read this and that as well, and you will see what is a
+ fairytale</i>. Were I further begged to describe the <i>fairytale</i>, or
+ define what it is, I would make answer, that I should as soon think of
+ describing the abstract human face, or stating what must go to constitute
+ a human being. A fairytale is just a fairytale, as a face is just a face;
+ and of all fairytales I know, I think <i>Undine</i> the most beautiful.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Many a man, however, who would not attempt to define <i>a man</i>, might
+ venture to say something as to what a man ought to be: even so much I will
+ not in this place venture with regard to the fairytale, for my long past
+ work in that kind might but poorly instance or illustrate my now more
+ matured judgment. I will but say some things helpful to the reading, in
+ right-minded fashion, of such fairytales as I would wish to write, or care
+ to read.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Some thinkers would feel sorely hampered if at liberty to use no forms but
+ such as existed in nature, or to invent nothing save in accordance with
+ the laws of the world of the senses; but it must not therefore be imagined
+ that they desire escape from the region of law. Nothing lawless can show
+ the least reason why it should exist, or could at best have more than an
+ appearance of life.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The natural world has its laws, and no man must interfere with them in the
+ way of presentment any more than in the way of use; but they themselves
+ may suggest laws of other kinds, and man may, if he pleases, invent a
+ little world of his own, with its own laws; for there is that in him which
+ delights in calling up new forms&mdash;which is the nearest, perhaps, he
+ can come to creation. When such forms are new embodiments of old truths,
+ we call them products of the Imagination; when they are mere inventions,
+ however lovely, I should call them the work of the Fancy: in either case,
+ Law has been diligently at work.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ His world once invented, the highest law that comes next into play is,
+ that there shall be harmony between the laws by which the new world has
+ begun to exist; and in the process of his creation, the inventor must hold
+ by those laws. The moment he forgets one of them, he makes the story, by
+ its own postulates, incredible. To be able to live a moment in an imagined
+ world, we must see the laws of its existence obeyed. Those broken, we fall
+ out of it. The imagination in us, whose exercise is essential to the most
+ temporary submission to the imagination of another, immediately, with the
+ disappearance, of Law, ceases to act. Suppose the gracious creatures of
+ some childlike region of Fairyland talking either cockney or Gascon! Would
+ not the tale, however lovelily begun, sink at once to the level of the
+ Burlesque&mdash;of all forms of literature the least worthy? A man&rsquo;s
+ inventions may be stupid or clever, but if he do not hold by the laws of
+ them, or if he make one law jar with another, he contradicts himself as an
+ inventor, he is no artist. He does not rightly consort his instruments, or
+ he tunes them in different keys. The mind of man is the product of live
+ Law; it thinks by law, it dwells in the midst of law, it gathers from law
+ its growth; with law, therefore, can it alone work to any result.
+ Inharmonious, unconsorting ideas will come to a man, but if he try to use
+ one of such, his work will grow dull, and he will drop it from mere lack
+ of interest. Law is the soil in which alone beauty will grow; beauty is
+ the only stuff in which Truth can be clothed; and you may, if you will,
+ call Imagination the tailor that cuts her garments to fit her, and Fancy
+ his journeyman that puts the pieces of them together, or perhaps at most
+ embroiders their button-holes. Obeying law, the maker works like his
+ creator; not obeying law, he is such a fool as heaps a pile of stones and
+ calls it a church.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the moral world it is different: there a man may clothe in new forms,
+ and for this employ his imagination freely, but he must invent nothing. He
+ may not, for any purpose, turn its laws upside down. He must not meddle
+ with the relations of live souls. The laws of the spirit of man must hold,
+ alike in this world and in any world he may invent. It were no offence to
+ suppose a world in which everything repelled instead of attracted the
+ things around it; it would be wicked to write a tale representing a man it
+ called good as always doing bad things, or a man it called bad as always
+ doing good things: the notion itself is absolutely lawless. In physical
+ things a man may invent; in moral things he must obey&mdash;and take their
+ laws with him into his invented world as well.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;You write as if a fairytale were a thing of importance: must it have a
+ meaning?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It cannot help having some meaning; if it have proportion and harmony it
+ has vitality, and vitality is truth. The beauty may be plainer in it than
+ the truth, but without the truth the beauty could not be, and the
+ fairytale would give no delight. Everyone, however, who feels the story,
+ will read its meaning after his own nature and development: one man will
+ read one meaning in it, another will read another.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;If so, how am I to assure myself that I am not reading my own meaning
+ into it, but yours out of it?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Why should you be so assured? It may be better that you should read your
+ meaning into it. That may be a higher operation of your intellect than the
+ mere reading of mine out of it: your meaning may be superior to mine.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Suppose my child ask me what the fairytale means, what am I to say?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If you do not know what it means, what is easier than to say so? If you do
+ see a meaning in it, there it is for you to give him. A genuine work of
+ art must mean many things; the truer its art, the more things it will
+ mean. If my drawing, on the other hand, is so far from being a work of art
+ that it needs THIS IS A HORSE written under it, what can it matter that
+ neither you nor your child should know what it means? It is there not so
+ much to convey a meaning as to wake a meaning. If it do not even wake an
+ interest, throw it aside. A meaning may be there, but it is not for you.
+ If, again, you do not know a horse when you see it, the name written under
+ it will not serve you much. At all events, the business of the painter is
+ not to teach zoology.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But indeed your children are not likely to trouble you about the meaning.
+ They find what they are capable of finding, and more would be too much.
+ For my part, I do not write for children, but for the childlike, whether
+ of five, or fifty, or seventy-five.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ A fairytale is not an allegory. There may be allegory in it, but it is not
+ an allegory. He must be an artist indeed who can, in any mode, produce a
+ strict allegory that is not a weariness to the spirit. An allegory must be
+ Mastery or Moorditch.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ A fairytale, like a butterfly or a bee, helps itself on all sides, sips at
+ every wholesome flower, and spoils not one. The true fairytale is, to my
+ mind, very like the sonata. We all know that a sonata means something; and
+ where there is the faculty of talking with suitable vagueness, and
+ choosing metaphor sufficiently loose, mind may approach mind, in the
+ interpretation of a sonata, with the result of a more or less contenting
+ consciousness of sympathy. But if two or three men sat down to write each
+ what the sonata meant to him, what approximation to definite idea would be
+ the result? Little enough&mdash;and that little more than needful. We
+ should find it had roused related, if not identical, feelings, but
+ probably not one common thought. Has the sonata therefore failed? Had it
+ undertaken to convey, or ought it to be expected to impart anything
+ defined, anything notionally recognizable?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But words are not music; words at least are meant and fitted to carry a
+ precise meaning!&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It is very seldom indeed that they carry the exact meaning of any user of
+ them! And if they can be so used as to convey definite meaning, it does
+ not follow that they ought never to carry anything else. Words are live
+ things that may be variously employed to various ends. They can convey a
+ scientific fact, or throw a shadow of her child&rsquo;s dream on the heart of a
+ mother. They are things to put together like the pieces of a dissected
+ map, or to arrange like the notes on a stave. Is the music in them to go
+ for nothing? It can hardly help the definiteness of a meaning: is it
+ therefore to be disregarded? They have length, and breadth, and outline:
+ have they nothing to do with depth? Have they only to describe, never to
+ impress? Has nothing any claim to their use but the definite? The cause of
+ a child&rsquo;s tears may be altogether undefinable: has the mother therefore no
+ antidote for his vague misery? That may be strong in colour which has no
+ evident outline. A fairytale, a sonata, a gathering storm, a limitless
+ night, seizes you and sweeps you away: do you begin at once to wrestle
+ with it and ask whence its power over you, whither it is carrying you? The
+ law of each is in the mind of its composer; that law makes one man feel
+ this way, another man feel that way. To one the sonata is a world of odour
+ and beauty, to another of soothing only and sweetness. To one, the cloudy
+ rendezvous is a wild dance, with a terror at its heart; to another, a
+ majestic march of heavenly hosts, with Truth in their centre pointing
+ their course, but as yet restraining her voice. The greatest forces lie in
+ the region of the uncomprehended.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I will go farther.&mdash;The best thing you can do for your fellow, next
+ to rousing his conscience, is&mdash;not to give him things to think about,
+ but to wake things up that are in him; or say, to make him think things
+ for himself. The best Nature does for us is to work in us such moods in
+ which thoughts of high import arise. Does any aspect of Nature wake but
+ one thought? Does she ever suggest only one definite thing? Does she make
+ any two men in the same place at the same moment think the same thing? Is
+ she therefore a failure, because she is not definite? Is it nothing that
+ she rouses the something deeper than the understanding&mdash;the power
+ that underlies thoughts? Does she not set feeling, and so thinking at
+ work? Would it be better that she did this after one fashion and not after
+ many fashions? Nature is mood-engendering, thought-provoking: such ought
+ the sonata, such ought the fairytale to be.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But a man may then imagine in your work what he pleases, what you never
+ meant!&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Not what he pleases, but what he can. If he be not a true man, he will
+ draw evil out of the best; we need not mind how he treats any work of art!
+ If he be a true man, he will imagine true things; what matter whether I
+ meant them or not? They are there none the less that I cannot claim
+ putting them there! One difference between God&rsquo;s work and man&rsquo;s is, that,
+ while God&rsquo;s work cannot mean more than he meant, man&rsquo;s must mean more than
+ he meant. For in everything that God has made, there is layer upon layer
+ of ascending significance; also he expresses the same thought in higher
+ and higher kinds of that thought: it is God&rsquo;s things, his embodied
+ thoughts, which alone a man has to use, modified and adapted to his own
+ purposes, for the expression of his thoughts; therefore he cannot help his
+ words and figures falling into such combinations in the mind of another as
+ he had himself not foreseen, so many are the thoughts allied to every
+ other thought, so many are the relations involved in every figure, so many
+ the facts hinted in every symbol. A man may well himself discover truth in
+ what he wrote; for he was dealing all the time with things that came from
+ thoughts beyond his own.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But surely you would explain your idea to one who asked you?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I say again, if I cannot draw a horse, I will not write THIS IS A HORSE
+ under what I foolishly meant for one. Any key to a work of imagination
+ would be nearly, if not quite, as absurd. The tale is there, not to hide,
+ but to show: if it show nothing at your window, do not open your door to
+ it; leave it out in the cold. To ask me to explain, is to say, &ldquo;Roses!
+ Boil them, or we won&rsquo;t have them!&rdquo; My tales may not be roses, but I will
+ not boil them.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ So long as I think my dog can bark, I will not sit up to bark for him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If a writer&rsquo;s aim be logical conviction, he must spare no logical pains,
+ not merely to be understood, but to escape being misunderstood; where his
+ object is to move by suggestion, to cause to imagine, then let him assail
+ the soul of his reader as the wind assails an aeolian harp. If there be
+ music in my reader, I would gladly wake it. Let fairytale of mine go for a
+ firefly that now flashes, now is dark, but may flash again. Caught in a
+ hand which does not love its kind, it will turn to an insignificant, ugly
+ thing, that can neither flash nor fly.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The best way with music, I imagine, is not to bring the forces of our
+ intellect to bear upon it, but to be still and let it work on that part of
+ us for whose sake it exists. We spoil countless precious things by
+ intellectual greed. He who will be a man, and will not be a child, must&mdash;he
+ cannot help himself&mdash;become a little man, that is, a dwarf. He will,
+ however, need no consolation, for he is sure to think himself a very large
+ creature indeed.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If any strain of my &ldquo;broken music&rdquo; make a child&rsquo;s eyes flash, or his
+ mother&rsquo;s grow for a moment dim, my labour will not have been in vain.
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 6em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<pre>
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Dish Of Orts, by George MacDonald
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A DISH OF ORTS ***
+
+***** This file should be named 9393-h.htm or 9393-h.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/9/3/9/9393/
+
+
+Text file produced by Jonathan Ingram, Sandra Brown, and Project
+Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
+
+HTML file produced by David Widger
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &ldquo;Project
+Gutenberg&rdquo;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
+ www.gutenberg.org/license.
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. &ldquo;Project Gutenberg&rdquo; is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&ldquo;the Foundation&rdquo;
+ or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase &ldquo;Project Gutenberg&rdquo; appears, or with which the phrase &ldquo;Project
+Gutenberg&rdquo; is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase &ldquo;Project Gutenberg&rdquo; associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+&ldquo;Plain Vanilla ASCII&rdquo; or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original &ldquo;Plain Vanilla ASCII&rdquo; or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, &ldquo;Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.&rdquo;
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+&ldquo;Defects,&rdquo; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &ldquo;Right
+of Replacement or Refund&rdquo; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &lsquo;AS-IS&rsquo;, WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm&rsquo;s
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation&rsquo;s EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state&rsquo;s laws.
+
+The Foundation&rsquo;s principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
+North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
+contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
+Foundation&rsquo;s web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+ </body>
+</html>
diff --git a/9393.txt b/9393.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..23522fa
--- /dev/null
+++ b/9393.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,8915 @@
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of A Dish Of Orts, by George MacDonald
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: A Dish Of Orts
+
+Author: George MacDonald
+
+
+Release Date: November, 2005 [EBook #9393]
+This file was first posted on September 29, 2003
+Last Updated: April 17, 2013
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A DISH OF ORTS ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Jonathan Ingram, Sandra Brown, and Project
+Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+A DISH OF ORTS
+
+BY GEORGE MACDONALD
+
+
+
+
+PREFACE.
+
+
+Since printing throughout the title _Orts_, a doubt has arisen in my
+mind as to its fitting the nature of the volume. It could hardly,
+however, be imagined that I associate the idea of _worthlessness_ with
+the work contained in it. No one would insult his readers by offering
+them what he counted valueless scraps, and telling them they were such.
+These papers, those two even which were caught in the net of the
+ready-writer from extempore utterance, whatever their merits in
+themselves; are the results of by no means trifling labour. So much a
+man _ought_ to be able to say for his work. And hence I might defend, if
+not quite justify my title--for they are but fragmentary presentments of
+larger meditation. My friends at least will accept them as such, whether
+they like their collective title or not.
+
+The title of the last is not quite suitable. It is that of the religious
+newspaper which reported the sermon. I noted the fact too late for
+correction. It ought to be _True Greatness_.
+
+The paper on _The Fantastic Imagination_ had its origin in the repeated
+request of readers for an explanation of things in certain shorter
+stories I had written. It forms the preface to an American edition of my
+so-called Fairy Tales.
+
+GEORGE MACDONALD.
+
+EDENBRIDGE, KENT. _August 5, 1893._
+
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS.
+
+THE IMAGINATION: ITS FUNCTIONS AND ITS CULTURE
+
+A SKETCH OF INDIVIDUAL DEVELOPMENT
+
+ST. GEORGE'S DAY, 1564
+
+THE ART OF SHAKSPERE, AS REVEALED BY HIMSELF
+
+THE ELDER HAMLET
+
+ON POLISH
+
+BROWNING'S "CHRISTMAS EVE"
+
+"ESSAYS ON SOME OF THE FORMS OF LITERATURE"
+
+"THE HISTORY AND HEROES OF MEDICINE"
+
+WORDSWORTH'S POETRY
+
+SHELLEY
+
+A SERMON
+
+TRUE CHRISTIAN MINISTERING
+
+THE FANTASTIC IMAGINATION
+
+
+
+
+THE IMAGINATION: ITS FUNCTIONS AND ITS CULTURE.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1867.]
+
+There are in whose notion education would seem to consist in the
+production of a certain repose through the development of this and that
+faculty, and the depression, if not eradication, of this and that other
+faculty. But if mere repose were the end in view, an unsparing
+depression of all the faculties would be the surest means of approaching
+it, provided always the animal instincts could be depressed likewise,
+or, better still, kept in a state of constant repletion. Happily,
+however, for the human race, it possesses in the passion of hunger even,
+a more immediate saviour than in the wisest selection and treatment of
+its faculties. For repose is not the end of education; its end is a
+noble unrest, an ever renewed awaking from the dead, a ceaseless
+questioning of the past for the interpretation of the future, an urging
+on of the motions of life, which had better far be accelerated into
+fever, than retarded into lethargy.
+
+By those who consider a balanced repose the end of culture, the
+imagination must necessarily be regarded as the one faculty before all
+others to be suppressed. "Are there not facts?" say they. "Why forsake
+them for fancies? Is there not that which, may be _known_? Why forsake
+it for inventions? What God hath made, into that let man inquire."
+
+We answer: To inquire into what God has made is the main function of the
+imagination. It is aroused by facts, is nourished by facts; seeks for
+higher and yet higher laws in those facts; but refuses to regard science
+as the sole interpreter of nature, or the laws of science as the only
+region of discovery.
+
+We must begin with a definition of the word _imagination_, or rather
+some description of the faculty to which we give the name.
+
+The word itself means an _imaging_ or a making of likenesses. The
+imagination is that faculty which gives form to thought--not necessarily
+uttered form, but form capable of being uttered in shape or in sound, or
+in any mode upon which the senses can lay hold. It is, therefore, that
+faculty in man which is likest to the prime operation of the power of
+God, and has, therefore, been called the _creative_ faculty, and its
+exercise _creation_. _Poet_ means _maker_. We must not forget, however,
+that between creator and poet lies the one unpassable gulf which
+distinguishes--far be it from us to say _divides_--all that is God's
+from all that is man's; a gulf teeming with infinite revelations, but a
+gulf over which no man can pass to find out God, although God needs not
+to pass over it to find man; the gulf between that which calls, and that
+which is thus called into being; between that which makes in its own
+image and that which is made in that image. It is better to keep the
+word _creation_ for that calling out of nothing which is the imagination
+of God; except it be as an occasional symbolic expression, whose daring
+is fully recognized, of the likeness of man's work to the work of his
+maker. The necessary unlikeness between the creator and the created
+holds within it the equally necessary likeness of the thing made to him
+who makes it, and so of the work of the made to the work of the maker.
+When therefore, refusing to employ the word _creation_ of the work of
+man, we yet use the word _imagination_ of the work of God, we cannot be
+said to dare at all. It is only to give the name of man's faculty to
+that power after which and by which it was fashioned. The imagination of
+man is made in the image of the imagination of God. Everything of man
+must have been of God first; and it will help much towards our
+understanding of the imagination and its functions in man if we first
+succeed in regarding aright the imagination of God, in which the
+imagination of man lives and moves and has its being.
+
+As to _what_ thought is in the mind of God ere it takes form, or what
+the form is to him ere he utters it; in a word, what the consciousness
+of God is in either case, all we can say is, that our consciousness in
+the resembling conditions must, afar off, resemble his. But when we come
+to consider the acts embodying the Divine thought (if indeed thought and
+act be not with him one and the same), then we enter a region of large
+difference. We discover at once, for instance, that where a man would
+make a machine, or a picture, or a book, God makes the man that makes
+the book, or the picture, or the machine. Would God give us a drama? He
+makes a Shakespere. Or would he construct a drama more immediately his
+own? He begins with the building of the stage itself, and that stage is
+a world--a universe of worlds. He makes the actors, and they do not
+act,--they _are_ their part. He utters them into the visible to work out
+their life--his drama. When he would have an epic, he sends a thinking
+hero into his drama, and the epic is the soliloquy of his Hamlet.
+Instead of writing his lyrics, he sets his birds and his maidens
+a-singing. All the processes of the ages are God's science; all the flow
+of history is his poetry. His sculpture is not in marble, but in living
+and speech-giving forms, which pass away, not to yield place to those
+that come after, but to be perfected in a nobler studio. What he has
+done remains, although it vanishes; and he never either forgets what he
+has once done, or does it even once again. As the thoughts move in the
+mind of a man, so move the worlds of men and women in the mind of God,
+and make no confusion there, for there they had their birth, the
+offspring of his imagination. Man is but a thought of God.
+
+If we now consider the so-called creative faculty in man, we shall find
+that in no _primary_ sense is this faculty creative. Indeed, a man is
+rather _being thought_ than _thinking_, when a new thought arises in his
+mind. He knew it not till he found it there, therefore he could not even
+have sent for it. He did not create it, else how could it be the
+surprise that it was when it arose? He may, indeed, in rare instances
+foresee that something is coming, and make ready the place for its
+birth; but that is the utmost relation of consciousness and will he can
+bear to the dawning idea. Leaving this aside, however, and turning to
+the _embodiment_ or revelation of thought, we shall find that a man no
+more _creates_ the forms by which he would reveal his thoughts, than he
+creates those thoughts themselves.
+
+For what are the forms by means of which a man may reveal his thoughts?
+Are they not those of nature? But although he is created in the closest
+sympathy with these forms, yet even these forms are not born in his
+mind. What springs there is the perception that this or that form is
+already an expression of this or that phase of thought or of feeling.
+For the world around him is an outward figuration of the condition of
+his mind; an inexhaustible storehouse of forms whence he may choose
+exponents--the crystal pitchers that shall protect his thought and not
+need to be broken that the light may break forth. The meanings are in
+those forms already, else they could be no garment of unveiling. God has
+made the world that it should thus serve his creature, developing in the
+service that imagination whose necessity it meets. The man has but to
+light the lamp within the form: his imagination is the light, it is not
+the form. Straightway the shining thought makes the form visible, and
+becomes itself visible through the form. [Footnote: We would not be
+understood to say that the man works consciously even in this.
+Oftentimes, if not always, the vision arises in the mind, thought and
+form together.]
+
+In illustration of what we mean, take a passage from the poet Shelley.
+
+In his poem _Adonais_, written upon the death of Keats, representing
+death as the revealer of secrets, he says:--
+
+ "The one remains; the many change and pass;
+ Heaven's light for ever shines; earth's shadows fly;
+ Life, like a dome of many coloured glass,
+ Stains the white radiance of eternity,
+ Until death tramples it to fragments."
+
+This is a new embodiment, certainly, whence he who gains not, for the
+moment at least, a loftier feeling of death, must be dull either of
+heart or of understanding. But has Shelley created this figure, or only
+put together its parts according to the harmony of truths already
+embodied in each of the parts? For first he takes the inventions of his
+fellow-men, in glass, in colour, in dome: with these he represents life
+as finite though elevated, and as an analysis although a lovely one.
+Next he presents eternity as the dome of the sky above this dome of
+coloured glass--the sky having ever been regarded as the true symbol of
+eternity. This portion of the figure he enriches by the attribution of
+whiteness, or unity and radiance. And last, he shows us Death as the
+destroying revealer, walking aloft through, the upper region, treading
+out this life-bubble of colours, that the man may look beyond it and
+behold the true, the uncoloured, the all-coloured.
+
+But although the human imagination has no choice but to make use of the
+forms already prepared for it, its operation is the same as that of the
+divine inasmuch as it does put thought into form. And if it be to man
+what creation is to God, we must expect to find it operative in every
+sphere of human activity. Such is, indeed, the fact, and that to a far
+greater extent than is commonly supposed.
+
+The sovereignty of the imagination, for instance, over the region of
+poetry will hardly, in the present day at least, be questioned; but not
+every one is prepared to be told that the imagination has had nearly as
+much to do with the making of our language as with "Macbeth" or the
+"Paradise Lost." The half of our language is the work of the
+imagination.
+
+For how shall two agree together what name they shall give to a thought
+or a feeling. How shall the one show the other that which is invisible?
+True, he can unveil the mind's construction in the face--that living
+eternally changeful symbol which God has hung in front of the unseen
+spirit--but that without words reaches only to the expression of present
+feeling. To attempt to employ it alone for the conveyance of the
+intellectual or the historical would constantly mislead; while the
+expression of feeling itself would be misinterpreted, especially with
+regard to cause and object: the dumb show would be worse than dumb.
+
+But let a man become aware of some new movement within him. Loneliness
+comes with it, for he would share his mind with his friend, and he
+cannot; he is shut up in speechlessness. Thus
+
+ He _may_ live a man forbid
+ Weary seven nights nine times nine,
+
+or the first moment of his perplexity may be that of his release. Gazing
+about him in pain, he suddenly beholds the material form of his
+immaterial condition. There stands his thought! God thought it before
+him, and put its picture there ready for him when he wanted it. Or, to
+express the thing more prosaically, the man cannot look around him long
+without perceiving some form, aspect, or movement of nature, some
+relation between its forms, or between such and himself which resembles
+the state or motion within him. This he seizes as the symbol, as the
+garment or body of his invisible thought, presents it to his friend, and
+his friend understands him. Every word so employed with a new meaning is
+henceforth, in its new character, born of the spirit and not of the
+flesh, born of the imagination and not of the understanding, and is
+henceforth submitted to new laws of growth and modification.
+
+"Thinkest thou," says Carlyle in "Past and Present," "there were no
+poets till Dan Chaucer? No heart burning with a thought which it could
+not hold, and had no word for; and needed to shape and coin a word
+for--what thou callest a metaphor, trope, or the like? For every word we
+have there was such a man and poet. The coldest word was once a glowing
+new metaphor and bold questionable originality. Thy very ATTENTION, does
+it not mean an _attentio_, a STRETCHING-TO? Fancy that act of the mind,
+which all were conscious of, which none had yet named,--when this new
+poet first felt bound and driven to name it. His questionable
+originality and new glowing metaphor was found adoptable, intelligible,
+and remains our name for it to this day."
+
+All words, then, belonging to the inner world of the mind, are of the
+imagination, are originally poetic words. The better, however, any such
+word is fitted for the needs of humanity, the sooner it loses its poetic
+aspect by commonness of use. It ceases to be heard as a symbol, and
+appears only as a sign. Thus thousands of words which were originally
+poetic words owing their existence to the imagination, lose their
+vitality, and harden into mummies of prose. Not merely in literature
+does poetry come first, and prose afterwards, but poetry is the source
+of all the language that belongs to the inner world, whether it be of
+passion or of metaphysics, of psychology or of aspiration. No poetry
+comes by the elevation of prose; but the half of prose comes by the
+"massing into the common clay" of thousands of winged words, whence,
+like the lovely shells of by-gone ages, one is occasionally disinterred
+by some lover of speech, and held up to the light to show the play of
+colour in its manifold laminations.
+
+For the world is--allow us the homely figure--the human being turned
+inside out. All that moves in the mind is symbolized in Nature. Or, to
+use another more philosophical, and certainly not less poetic figure,
+the world is a sensuous analysis of humanity, and hence an inexhaustible
+wardrobe for the clothing of human thought. Take any word expressive of
+emotion--take the word _emotion_ itself--and you will find that its
+primary meaning is of the outer world. In the swaying of the woods, in
+the unrest of the "wavy plain," the imagination saw the picture of a
+well-known condition of the human mind; and hence the word _emotion_.
+[Footnote: This passage contains only a repetition of what is far better
+said in the preceding extract from Carlyle, but it was written before we
+had read (if reviewers may be allowed to confess such ignorance) the
+book from which that extract is taken.]
+
+But while the imagination of man has thus the divine function of putting
+thought into form, it has a duty altogether human, which is paramount to
+that function--the duty, namely, which springs from his immediate
+relation to the Father, that of following and finding out the divine
+imagination in whose image it was made. To do this, the man must watch
+its signs, its manifestations. He must contemplate what the Hebrew poets
+call the works of His hands.
+
+"But to follow those is the province of the intellect, not of the
+imagination."--We will leave out of the question at present that poetic
+interpretation of the works of Nature with which the intellect has
+almost nothing, and the imagination almost everything, to do. It is
+unnecessary to insist that the higher being of a flower even is
+dependent for its reception upon the human imagination; that science may
+pull the snowdrop to shreds, but cannot find out the idea of suffering
+hope and pale confident submission, for the sake of which that darling
+of the spring looks out of heaven, namely, God's heart, upon us his
+wiser and more sinful children; for if there be any truth in this region
+of things acknowledged at all, it will be at the same time acknowledged
+that that region belongs to the imagination. We confine ourselves to
+that questioning of the works of God which is called the province of
+science.
+
+"Shall, then, the human intellect," we ask, "come into readier contact
+with the divine imagination than that human imagination?" The work of
+the Higher must be discovered by the search of the Lower in degree which
+is yet similar in kind. Let us not be supposed to exclude the intellect
+from a share in every highest office. Man is not divided when the
+manifestations of his life are distinguished. The intellect "is all in
+every part." There were no imagination without intellect, however much
+it may appear that intellect can exist without imagination. What we mean
+to insist upon is, that in finding out the works of God, the Intellect
+must labour, workman-like, under the direction of the architect,
+Imagination. Herein, too, we proceed in the hope to show how much more
+than is commonly supposed the imagination has to do with human
+endeavour; how large a share it has in the work that is done under the
+sun.
+
+"But how can the imagination have anything to do with science? That
+region, at least, is governed by fixed laws."
+
+"True," we answer. "But how much do we know of these laws? How much of
+science already belongs to the region of the ascertained--in other
+words, has been conquered by the intellect? We will not now dispute,
+your vindication of the _ascertained_ from the intrusion of the
+imagination; but we do claim for it all the undiscovered, all the
+unexplored." "Ah, well! There it can do little harm. There let it run
+riot if you will." "No," we reply. "Licence is not what we claim when we
+assert the duty of the imagination to be that of following and finding
+out the work that God maketh. Her part is to understand God ere she
+attempts to utter man. Where is the room for being fanciful or riotous
+here? It is only the ill-bred, that is, the uncultivated imagination
+that will amuse itself where it ought to worship and work."
+
+"But the facts of Nature are to be discovered only by observation and
+experiment." True. But how does the man of science come to think of his
+experiments? Does observation reach to the non-present, the possible,
+the yet unconceived? Even if it showed you the experiments which _ought_
+to be made, will observation reveal to you the experiments which _might_
+be made? And who can tell of which kind is the one that carries in its
+bosom the secret of the law you seek? We yield you your facts. The laws
+we claim for the prophetic imagination. "He hath set the world _in_
+man's heart," not in his understanding. And the heart must open the door
+to the understanding. It is the far-seeing imagination which beholds
+what might be a form of things, and says to the intellect: "Try whether
+that may not be the form of these things;" which beholds or invents _a_
+harmonious relation of parts and operations, and sends the intellect to
+find out whether that be not _the_ harmonious relation of them--that is,
+the law of the phenomenon it contemplates. Nay, the poetic relations
+themselves in the phenomenon may suggest to the imagination the law that
+rules its scientific life. Yea, more than this: we dare to claim for the
+true, childlike, humble imagination, such an inward oneness with the
+laws of the universe that it possesses in itself an insight into the
+very nature of things.
+
+Lord Bacon tells us that a prudent question is the half of knowledge.
+Whence comes this prudent question? we repeat. And we answer, From the
+imagination. It is the imagination that suggests in what direction to
+make the new inquiry--which, should it cast no immediate light on the
+answer sought, can yet hardly fail to be a step towards final discovery.
+Every experiment has its origin in hypothesis; without the scaffolding
+of hypothesis, the house of science could never arise. And the
+construction of any hypothesis whatever is the work of the imagination.
+The man who cannot invent will never discover. The imagination often
+gets a glimpse of the law itself long before it is or can be
+_ascertained_ to be a law. [Footnote: This paper was already written
+when, happening to mention the present subject to a mathematical friend,
+a lecturer at one of the universities, he gave us a corroborative
+instance. He had lately _guessed_ that a certain algebraic process could
+be shortened exceedingly if the method which his imagination suggested
+should prove to be a true one--that is, an algebraic law. He put it to
+the test of experiment--committed the verification, that is, into the
+hands of his intellect--and found the method true. It has since been
+accepted by the Royal Society.
+
+Noteworthy illustration we have lately found in the record of the
+experiences of an Edinburgh detective, an Irishman of the name of
+McLevy. That the service of the imagination in the solution of the
+problems peculiar to his calling is well known to him, we could adduce
+many proofs. He recognizes its function in the construction of the
+theory which shall unite this and that hint into an organic whole, and
+he expressly sets forth the need of a theory before facts can be
+serviceable:--
+
+"I would wait for my 'idea'.... I never did any good without mine....
+Chance never smiled on me unless I poked her some way; so that my
+'notion,' after all, has been in the getting of it my own work only
+perfected by a higher hand."
+
+"On leaving the shop I went direct to Prince's Street,--of course with
+an idea in my mind; and somehow I have always been contented with one
+idea when I could not get another; and the advantage of sticking by one
+is, that the other don't jostle it and turn you about in a circle when
+you should go in a straight line." (Footnote: Since quoting the above I
+have learned that the book referred to is unworthy of confidence. But
+let it stand as illustration where it cannot be proof.)]
+
+The region belonging to the pure intellect is straitened: the
+imagination labours to extend its territories, to give it room. She
+sweeps across the borders, searching out new lands into which she may
+guide her plodding brother. The imagination is the light which redeems
+from the darkness for the eyes of the understanding. Novalis says, "The
+imagination is the stuff of the intellect"--affords, that is, the
+material upon which the intellect works. And Bacon, in his "Advancement
+of Learning," fully recognizes this its office, corresponding to the
+foresight of God in this, that it beholds afar off. And he says:
+"Imagination is much akin to miracle-working faith." [Footnote: We are
+sorry we cannot verify this quotation, for which we are indebted to Mr.
+Oldbuck the Antiquary, in the novel of that ilk. There is, however,
+little room for doubt that it is sufficiently correct.]
+
+In the scientific region of her duty of which we speak, the Imagination
+cannot have her perfect work; this belongs to another and higher sphere
+than that of intellectual truth--that, namely, of full-globed humanity,
+operating in which she gives birth to poetry--truth in beauty. But her
+function in the complete sphere of our nature, will, at the same time,
+influence her more limited operation in the sections that belong to
+science. Coleridge says that no one but a poet will make any further
+_great_ discoveries in mathematics; and Bacon says that "wonder," that
+faculty of the mind especially attendant on the child-like imagination,
+"is the seed of knowledge." The influence of the poetic upon the
+scientific imagination is, for instance, especially present in the
+construction of an invisible whole from the hints afforded by a visible
+part; where the needs of the part, its uselessness, its broken
+relations, are the only guides to a multiplex harmony, completeness, and
+end, which is the whole. From a little bone, worn with ages of death,
+older than the man can think, his scientific imagination dashed with the
+poetic, calls up the form, size, habits, periods, belonging to an animal
+never beheld by human eyes, even to the mingling contrasts of scales and
+wings, of feathers and hair. Through the combined lenses of science and
+imagination, we look back into ancient times, so dreadful in their
+incompleteness, that it may well have been the task of seraphic faith,
+as well as of cherubic imagination, to behold in the wallowing
+monstrosities of the terror-teeming earth, the prospective, quiet,
+age-long labour of God preparing the world with all its humble, graceful
+service for his unborn Man. The imagination of the poet, on the other
+hand, dashed with the imagination of the man of science, revealed to
+Goethe the prophecy of the flower in the leaf. No other than an artistic
+imagination, however, fulfilled of science, could have attained to the
+discovery of the fact that the leaf is the imperfect flower.
+
+When we turn to history, however, we find probably the greatest
+operative sphere of the intellectuo-constructive imagination. To
+discover its laws; the cycles in which events return, with the reasons
+of their return, recognizing them notwithstanding metamorphosis; to
+perceive the vital motions of this spiritual body of mankind; to learn
+from its facts the rule of God; to construct from a succession of broken
+indications a whole accordant with human nature; to approach a scheme of
+the forces at work, the passions overwhelming or upheaving, the
+aspirations securely upraising, the selfishnesses debasing and
+crumbling, with the vital interworking of the whole; to illuminate all
+from the analogy with individual life, and from the predominant phases
+of individual character which are taken as the mind of the people--this
+is the province of the imagination. Without her influence no process of
+recording events can develop into a history. As truly might that be
+called the description of a volcano which occupied itself with a
+delineation of the shapes assumed by the smoke expelled from the
+mountain's burning bosom. What history becomes under the full sway of
+the imagination may be seen in the "History of the French Revolution,"
+by Thomas Carlyle, at once a true picture, a philosophical revelation, a
+noble poem.
+
+There is a wonderful passage about _Time_ in Shakespere's "Rape of
+Lucrece," which shows how he understood history. The passage is really
+about history, and not about time; for time itself does nothing--not
+even "blot old books and alter their contents." It is the forces at work
+in time that produce all the changes; and they are history. We quote for
+the sake of one line chiefly, but the whole stanza is pertinent.
+
+ "Time's glory is to calm contending kings,
+ To unmask falsehood, and bring truth to light,
+ To stamp the seal of time in aged things,
+ To wake the morn and sentinel the night,
+ _To wrong the wronger till he render right;_
+ To ruinate proud buildings with thy hours,
+ And smear with dust their glittering golden towers."
+
+_To wrong the wronger till he render right._ Here is a historical cycle
+worthy of the imagination of Shakespere, yea, worthy of the creative
+imagination of our God--the God who made the Shakespere with the
+imagination, as well as evolved the history from the laws which that
+imagination followed and found out.
+
+In full instance we would refer our readers to Shakespere's historical
+plays; and, as a side-illustration, to the fact that he repeatedly
+represents his greatest characters, when at the point of death, as
+relieving their overcharged minds by prophecy. Such prophecy is the
+result of the light of imagination, cleared of all distorting dimness by
+the vanishing of earthly hopes and desires, cast upon the facts of
+experience. Such prophecy is the perfect working of the historical
+imagination.
+
+In the interpretation of individual life, the same principles hold; and
+nowhere can the imagination be more healthily and rewardingly occupied
+than in endeavouring to construct the life of an individual out of the
+fragments which are all that can reach us of the history of even the
+noblest of our race. How this will apply to the reading of the gospel
+story we leave to the earnest thought of our readers.
+
+We now pass to one more sphere in which the student imagination works in
+glad freedom--the sphere which is understood to belong more immediately
+to the poet.
+
+We have already said that the forms of Nature (by which word _forms_ we
+mean any of those conditions of Nature which affect the senses of man)
+are so many approximate representations of the mental conditions of
+humanity. The outward, commonly called the material, is _informed_ by,
+or has form in virtue of, the inward or immaterial--in a word, the
+thought. The forms of Nature are the representations of human thought in
+virtue of their being the embodiment of God's thought. As such,
+therefore, they can be read and used to any depth, shallow or profound.
+Men of all ages and all developments have discovered in them the means
+of expression; and the men of ages to come, before us in every path
+along which we are now striving, must likewise find such means in those
+forms, unfolding with their unfolding necessities. The man, then, who,
+in harmony with nature, attempts the discovery of more of her meanings,
+is just searching out the things of God. The deepest of these are far
+too simple for us to understand as yet. But let our imagination
+interpretive reveal to us one severed significance of one of her parts,
+and such is the harmony of the whole, that all the realm of Nature is
+open to us henceforth--not without labour--and in time. Upon the man who
+can understand the human meaning of the snowdrop, of the primrose, or of
+the daisy, the life of the earth blossoming into the cosmical flower of
+a perfect moment will one day seize, possessing him with its prophetic
+hope, arousing his conscience with the vision of the "rest that
+remaineth," and stirring up the aspiration to enter into that rest:
+
+ "Thine is the tranquil hour, purpureal Eve!
+ But long as godlike wish, or hope divine,
+ Informs my spirit, ne'er can I believe
+ That this magnificence is wholly thine!
+ --From worlds not quickened by the sun
+ A portion of the gift is won;
+ An intermingling of Heaven's pomp is spread
+ On ground which British shepherds tread!"
+
+Even the careless curve of a frozen cloud across the blue will calm some
+troubled thoughts, may slay some selfish thoughts. And what shall be
+said of such gorgeous shows as the scarlet poppies in the green corn,
+the likest we have to those lilies of the field which spoke to the
+Saviour himself of the care of God, and rejoiced His eyes with the glory
+of their God-devised array? From such visions as these the imagination
+reaps the best fruits of the earth, for the sake of which all the
+science involved in its construction, is the inferior, yet willing and
+beautiful support.
+
+From what we have now advanced, will it not then appear that, on the
+whole, the name given by our Norman ancestors is more fitting for the
+man who moves in these regions than the name given by the Greeks? Is not
+the _Poet_, the _Maker_, a less suitable name for him than the
+_Trouvere_, the _Finder_? At least, must not the faculty that finds
+precede the faculty that utters?
+
+But is there nothing to be said of the function of the imagination from
+the Greek side of the question? Does it possess no creative faculty? Has
+it no originating power?
+
+Certainly it would be a poor description of the Imagination which
+omitted the one element especially present to the mind that invented the
+word _Poet_.--It can present us with new thought-forms--new, that is, as
+revelations of thought. It has created none of the material that goes to
+make these forms. Nor does it work upon raw material. But it takes forms
+already existing, and gathers them about a thought so much higher than
+they, that it can group and subordinate and harmonize them into a whole
+which shall represent, unveil that thought. [Footnote: Just so Spenser
+describes the process of the embodiment of a human soul in his Platonic
+"Hymn in Honour of Beauty."
+
+ "She frames her house in which she will be placed
+ Fit for herself....
+ And the gross matter by a sovereign might
+ Tempers so trim....
+ For of the soul the body form doth take;
+ For soul is form, and doth the body make."]
+
+The nature of this process we will illustrate by an examination of the
+well-known _Bugle Song_ in Tennyson's "Princess."
+
+First of all, there is the new music of the song, which does not even
+remind one of the music of any other. The rhythm, rhyme, melody, harmony
+are all an embodiment in sound, as distinguished from word, of what can
+be so embodied--the _feeling_ of the poem, which goes before, and
+prepares the way for the following thought--tunes the heart into a
+receptive harmony. Then comes the new arrangement of thought and figure
+whereby the meaning contained is presented as it never was before. We
+give a sort of paraphrastical synopsis of the poem, which, partly in
+virtue of its disagreeableness, will enable the lovers of the song to
+return to it with an increase of pleasure.
+
+The glory of midsummer mid-day upon mountain, lake, and ruin. Give
+nature a voice for her gladness. Blow, bugle.
+
+Nature answers with dying echoes, sinking in the midst of her splendour
+into a sad silence.
+
+Not so with human nature. The echoes of the word of truth gather volume
+and richness from every soul that re-echoes it to brother and sister
+souls.
+
+With poets the _fashion_ has been to contrast the stability and
+rejuvenescence of nature with the evanescence and unreturning decay of
+humanity:--
+
+ "Yet soon reviving plants and flowers, anew shall deck the plain;
+ The woods shall hear the voice of Spring, and flourish green again.
+ But man forsakes this earthly scene, ah! never to return:
+ Shall any following Spring revive the ashes of the urn?"
+
+But our poet vindicates the eternal in humanity:--
+
+ "O Love, they die in yon rich sky,
+ They faint on hill or field or river:
+ Our echoes roll from soul to soul,
+ And grow for ever and for ever.
+ Blow, bugle, blow, set the wild echoes flying;
+ And answer, echoes, answer, Dying, dying, dying."
+
+Is not this a new form to the thought--a form which makes us feel the
+truth of it afresh? And every new embodiment of a known truth must be a
+new and wider revelation. No man is capable of seeing for himself the
+whole of any truth: he needs it echoed back to him from every soul in
+the universe; and still its centre is hid in the Father of Lights. In so
+far, then, as either form or thought is new, we may grant the use of the
+word Creation, modified according to our previous definitions.
+
+This operation of the imagination in choosing, gathering, and vitally
+combining the material of a new revelation, may be well illustrated from
+a certain employment of the poetic faculty in which our greatest poets
+have delighted. Perceiving truth half hidden and half revealed in the
+slow speech and stammering tongue of men who have gone before them, they
+have taken up the unfinished form and completed it; they have, as it
+were, rescued the soul of meaning from its prison of uninformed crudity,
+where it sat like the Prince in the "Arabian Nights," half man, half
+marble; they have set it free in its own form, in a shape, namely, which
+it could "through every part impress." Shakespere's keen eye suggested
+many such a rescue from the tomb--of a tale drearily told--a tale which
+no one now would read save for the glorified form in which he has
+re-embodied its true contents. And from Tennyson we can produce one
+specimen small enough for our use, which, a mere chip from the great
+marble re-embodying the old legend of Arthur's death, may, like the hand
+of Achilles holding his spear in the crowded picture,
+
+ "Stand for the whole to be imagined."
+
+In the "History of Prince Arthur," when Sir Bedivere returns after
+hiding Excalibur the first time, the king asks him what he has seen, and
+he answers--
+
+ "Sir, I saw nothing but waves and wind."
+
+The second time, to the same question, he answers--
+
+ "Sir, I saw nothing but the water[1] wap, and the waves wan."
+
+[Footnote 1: The word _wap_ is plain enough; the word _wan_ we cannot
+satisfy ourselves about. Had it been used with regard to the water, it
+might have been worth remarking that _wan_, meaning dark, gloomy,
+turbid, is a common adjective to a river in the old Scotch ballad. And
+it might be an adjective here; but that is not likely, seeing it is
+conjoined with the verb _wap_. The Anglo-Saxon _wanian_, to decrease,
+might be the root-word, perhaps, (in the sense of _to ebb_,) if this
+water had been the sea and not a lake. But possibly the meaning is, "I
+heard the water _whoop_ or _wail aloud_" (from _Wopan_); and "the waves
+_whine_ or _bewail_" (from _Wanian_ to lament). But even then the two
+verbs would seem to predicate of transposed subjects.]
+
+This answer Tennyson has expanded into the well-known lines--
+
+ "I heard the ripple washing in the reeds,
+ And the wild water lapping on the crag;"
+
+slightly varied, for the other occasion, into--
+
+ "I heard the water lapping on the crag,
+ And the long ripple washing in the reeds."
+
+But, as to this matter of _creation_, is there, after all, I ask yet,
+any genuine sense in which a man may be said to create his own
+thought-forms? Allowing that a new combination of forms already existing
+might be called creation, is the man, after all, the author of this new
+combination? Did he, with his will and his knowledge, proceed wittingly,
+consciously, to construct a form which should embody his thought? Or did
+this form arise within him without will or effort of his--vivid if not
+clear--certain if not outlined? Ruskin (and better authority we do not
+know) will assert the latter, and we think he is right: though perhaps
+he would insist more upon the absolute perfection of the vision than we
+are quite prepared to do. Such embodiments are not the result of the
+man's intention, or of the operation of his conscious nature. His
+feeling is that they are given to him; that from the vast unknown, where
+time and space are not, they suddenly appear in luminous writing upon
+the wall of his consciousness. Can it be correct, then, to say that he
+created them? Nothing less so, as it seems to us. But can we not say
+that they are the creation of the unconscious portion of his nature?
+Yes, provided we can understand that that which is the individual, the
+man, can know, and not know that it knows, can create and yet be
+ignorant that virtue has gone out of it. From that unknown region we
+grant they come, but not by its own blind working. Nor, even were it so,
+could any amount of such production, where no will was concerned, be
+dignified with the name of creation. But God sits in that chamber of our
+being in which the candle of our consciousness goes out in darkness, and
+sends forth from thence wonderful gifts into the light of that
+understanding which is His candle. Our hope lies in no most perfect
+mechanism even of the spirit, but in the wisdom wherein we live and move
+and have our being. Thence we hope for endless forms of beauty informed
+of truth. If the dark portion of our own being were the origin of our
+imaginations, we might well fear the apparition of such monsters as
+would be generated in the sickness of a decay which could never
+feel--only declare--a slow return towards primeval chaos. But the Maker
+is our Light.
+
+One word more, ere we turn to consider the culture of this noblest
+faculty, which we might well call the creative, did we not see a
+something in God for which we would humbly keep our mighty word:--the
+fact that there is always more in a work of art--which is the highest
+human result of the embodying imagination--than the producer himself
+perceived while he produced it, seems to us a strong reason for
+attributing to it a larger origin than the man alone--for saying at the
+last, that the inspiration of the Almighty shaped its ends.
+
+We return now to the class which, from the first, we supposed hostile to
+the imagination and its functions generally. Those belonging to it will
+now say: "It was to no imagination such as you have been setting forth
+that we were opposed, but to those wild fancies and vague reveries in
+which young people indulge, to the damage and loss of the real in the
+world around them."
+
+"And," we insist, "you would rectify the matter by smothering the young
+monster at once--because he has wings, and, young to their use, flutters
+them about in a way discomposing to your nerves, and destructive to
+those notions of propriety of which this creature--you stop not to
+inquire whether angel or pterodactyle--has not yet learned even the
+existence. Or, if it is only the creature's vagaries of which you
+disapprove, why speak of them as _the_ exercise of the imagination? As
+well speak of religion as the mother of cruelty because religion has
+given more occasion of cruelty, as of all dishonesty and devilry, than
+any other object of human interest. Are we not to worship, because our
+forefathers burned and stabbed for religion? It is more religion we
+want. It is more imagination we need. Be assured that these are but the
+first vital motions of that whose results, at least in the region of
+science, you are more than willing to accept." That evil may spring from
+the imagination, as from everything except the perfect love of God,
+cannot be denied. But infinitely worse evils would be the result of its
+absence. Selfishness, avarice, sensuality, cruelty, would flourish
+tenfold; and the power of Satan would be well established ere some
+children had begun to choose. Those who would quell the apparently
+lawless tossing of the spirit, called the youthful imagination, would
+suppress all that is to grow out of it. They fear the enthusiasm they
+never felt; and instead of cherishing this divine thing, instead of
+giving it room and air for healthful growth, they would crush
+and confine it--with but one result of their victorious
+endeavours--imposthume, fever, and corruption. And the disastrous
+consequences would soon appear in the intellect likewise which they
+worship. Kill that whence spring the crude fancies and wild day-dreams
+of the young, and you will never lead them beyond dull facts--dull
+because their relations to each other, and the one life that works in
+them all, must remain undiscovered. Whoever would have his children
+avoid this arid region will do well to allow no teacher to approach
+them--not even of mathematics--who has no imagination.
+
+"But although good results may appear in a few from the indulgence of
+the imagination, how will it be with the many?"
+
+We answer that the antidote to indulgence is development, not restraint,
+and that such is the duty of the wise servant of Him who made the
+imagination.
+
+"But will most girls, for instance, rise to those useful uses of the
+imagination? Are they not more likely to exercise it in building castles
+in the air to the neglect of houses on the earth? And as the world
+affords such poor scope for the ideal, will not this habit breed vain
+desires and vain regrets? Is it not better, therefore, to keep to that
+which is known, and leave the rest?"
+
+"Is the world so poor?" we ask in return. The less reason, then, to be
+satisfied with it; the more reason to rise above it, into the region of
+the true, of the eternal, of things as God thinks them. This outward
+world is but a passing vision of the persistent true. We shall not live
+in it always. We are dwellers in a divine universe where no desires are
+in vain, if only they be large enough. Not even in this world do all
+disappointments breed only vain regrets. [Footnote:
+ "We will grieve not, rather find
+ Strength in what remains behind;
+ In the primal sympathy
+ Which, having been, must ever be;
+ In the soothing thoughts that spring
+ Out of human suffering;
+ In the faith that looks through death,
+ In years that bring the philosophic mind."]
+
+And as to keeping to that which is known and leaving the rest--how many
+affairs of this world are so well-defined, so capable of being clearly
+understood, as not to leave large spaces of uncertainty, whose very
+correlate faculty is the imagination? Indeed it must, in most things,
+work after some fashion, filling the gaps after some possible plan,
+before action can even begin. In very truth, a wise imagination, which
+is the presence of the spirit of God, is the best guide that man or
+woman can have; for it is not the things we see the most clearly that
+influence us the most powerfully; undefined, yet vivid visions of
+something beyond, something which eye has not seen nor ear heard, have
+far more influence than any logical sequences whereby the same things
+may be demonstrated to the intellect. It is the nature of the thing, not
+the clearness of its outline, that determines its operation. We live by
+faith, and not by sight. Put the question to our mathematicians--only be
+sure the question reaches them--whether they would part with the
+well-defined perfection of their diagrams, or the dim, strange, possibly
+half-obliterated characters woven in the web of their being; their
+science, in short, or their poetry; their certainties, or their hopes;
+their consciousness of knowledge, or their vague sense of that which
+cannot be known absolutely: will they hold by their craft or by their
+inspirations, by their intellects or their imaginations? If they say the
+former in each alternative, I shall yet doubt whether the objects of the
+choice are actually before them, and with equal presentation.
+
+What can be known must be known severely; but is there, therefore, no
+faculty for those infinite lands of uncertainty lying all about the
+sphere hollowed out of the dark by the glimmering lamp of our knowledge?
+Are they not the natural property of the imagination? there, _for_ it,
+that it may have room to grow? there, that the man may learn to imagine
+greatly like God who made him, himself discovering their mysteries, in
+virtue of his following and worshipping imagination?
+
+All that has been said, then, tends to enforce the culture of the
+imagination. But the strongest argument of all remains behind. For, if
+the whole power of pedantry should rise against her, the imagination
+will yet work; and if not for good, then for evil; if not for truth,
+then for falsehood; if not for life, then for death; the evil
+alternative becoming the more likely from the unnatural treatment she
+has experienced from those who ought to have fostered her. The power
+that might have gone forth in conceiving the noblest forms of action, in
+realizing the lives of the true-hearted, the self-forgetting, will go
+forth in building airy castles of vain ambition, of boundless riches, of
+unearned admiration. The imagination that might be devising how to make
+home blessed or to help the poor neighbour, will be absorbed in the
+invention of the new dress, or worse, in devising the means of procuring
+it. For, if she be not occupied with the beautiful, she will be occupied
+by the pleasant; that which goes not out to worship, will remain at home
+to be sensual. Cultivate the mere intellect as you may, it will never
+reduce the passions: the imagination, seeking the ideal in everything,
+will elevate them to their true and noble service. Seek not that your
+sons and your daughters should not see visions, should not dream dreams;
+seek that they should see true visions, that they should dream noble
+dreams. Such out-going of the imagination is one with aspiration, and
+will do more to elevate above what is low and vile than all possible
+inculcations of morality. Nor can religion herself ever rise up into her
+own calm home, her crystal shrine, when one of her wings, one of the
+twain with which she flies, is thus broken or paralyzed.
+
+ "The universe is infinitely wide,
+ And conquering Reason, if self-glorified,
+ Can nowhere move uncrossed by some new wall
+ Or gulf of mystery, which thou alone,
+ Imaginative Faith! canst overleap,
+ In progress towards the fount of love."
+
+The danger that lies in the repression of the imagination may be well
+illustrated from the play of "Macbeth." The imagination of the hero (in
+him a powerful faculty), representing how the deed would appear to
+others, and so representing its true nature to himself, was his great
+impediment on the path to crime. Nor would he have succeeded in reaching
+it, had he not gone to his wife for help--sought refuge from his
+troublesome imagination with her. She, possessing far less of the
+faculty, and having dealt more destructively with what she had, took his
+hand, and led him to the deed. From her imagination, again, she for her
+part takes refuge in unbelief and denial, declaring to herself and her
+husband that there is no reality in its representations; that there is
+no reality in anything beyond the present effect it produces on the mind
+upon which it operates; that intellect and courage are equal to any,
+even an evil emergency; and that no harm will come to those who can rule
+themselves according to their own will. Still, however, finding her
+imagination, and yet more that of her husband, troublesome, she effects
+a marvellous combination of materialism and idealism, and asserts that
+things are not, cannot be, and shall not be more or other than people
+choose to think them. She says,--
+
+ "These deeds must not be thought
+ After these ways; so, it will make us mad."
+
+ "The sleeping and the dead
+ Are but as pictures."
+
+But she had over-estimated the power of her will, and under-estimated
+that of her imagination. Her will was the one thing in her that was bad,
+without root or support in the universe, while her imagination was the
+voice of God himself out of her own unknown being. The choice of no man
+or woman can long determine how or what he or she shall think of things.
+Lady Macbeth's imagination would not be repressed beyond its appointed
+period--a time determined by laws of her being over which she had no
+control. It arose, at length, as from the dead, overshadowing her with
+all the blackness of her crime. The woman who drank strong drink that
+she might murder, dared not sleep without a light by her bed; rose and
+walked in the night, a sleepless spirit in a sleeping body, rubbing the
+spotted hand of her dreams, which, often as water had cleared it of the
+deed, yet smelt so in her sleeping nostrils, that all the perfumes of
+Arabia would not sweeten it. Thus her long down-trodden imagination rose
+and took vengeance, even through those senses which she had thought to
+subordinate to her wicked will.
+
+But all this is of the imagination itself, and fitter, therefore, for
+illustration than for argument. Let us come to facts.--Dr. Pritchard,
+lately executed for murder, had no lack of that invention, which is, as
+it were, the intellect of the imagination--its lowest form. One of the
+clergymen who, at his own request, attended the prisoner, went through
+indescribable horrors in the vain endeavour to induce the man simply to
+cease from lying: one invention after another followed the most earnest
+asseverations of truth. The effect produced upon us by this clergyman's
+report of his experience was a moral dismay, such as we had never felt
+with regard to human being, and drew from us the exclamation, "The man
+could have had no imagination." The reply was, "None whatever." Never
+seeking true or high things, caring only for appearances, and,
+therefore, for inventions, he had left his imagination all undeveloped,
+and when it represented his own inner condition to him, had repressed it
+until it was nearly destroyed, and what remained of it was set on fire
+of hell. [Footnote: One of the best weekly papers in London, evidently
+as much in ignorance of the man as of the facts of the case, spoke of
+Dr. MacLeod as having been engaged in "white-washing the murderer for
+heaven." So far is this from a true representation, that Dr. MacLeod
+actually refused to pray with him, telling him that if there was a hell
+to go to, he must go to it.]
+
+Man is "the roof and crown of things." He is the world, and more.
+Therefore the chief scope of his imagination, next to God who made him,
+will he the world in relation to his own life therein. Will he do better
+or worse in it if this imagination, touched to fine issues and having
+free scope, present him with noble pictures of relationship and duty, of
+possible elevation of character and attainable justice of behaviour, of
+friendship and of love; and, above all, of all these in that life to
+understand which as a whole, must ever be the loftiest aspiration of
+this noblest power of humanity? Will a woman lead a more or a less
+troubled life that the sights and sounds of nature break through the
+crust of gathering anxiety, and remind her of the peace of the lilies
+and the well-being of the birds of the air? Or will life be less
+interesting to her, that the lives of her neighbours, instead of passing
+like shadows upon a wall, assume a consistent wholeness, forming
+themselves into stories and phases of life? Will she not hereby love
+more and talk less? Or will she be more unlikely to make a good
+match----? But here we arrest ourselves in bewilderment over the word
+_good_, and seek to re-arrange our thoughts. If what mothers mean by a
+_good_ match, is the alliance of a man of position and means--or let
+them throw intellect, manners, and personal advantages into the same
+scale--if this be all, then we grant the daughter of cultivated
+imagination may not be manageable, will probably be obstinate. "We hope
+she will be obstinate enough. [Footnote: Let women who feel the wrongs
+of their kind teach women to be high-minded in their relation to men,
+and they will do more for the social elevation of women, and the
+establishment of their rights, whatever those rights may be, than by any
+amount of intellectual development or assertion of equality. Nor, if
+they are other than mere partisans, will they refuse the attempt because
+in its success men will, after all, be equal, if not greater gainers, if
+only thereby they should be "feelingly persuaded" what they are.] But
+will the girl be less likely to marry a _gentleman_, in the grand old
+meaning of the sixteenth century? when it was no irreverence to call our
+Lord
+
+ "The first true gentleman that ever breathed;"
+
+or in that of the fourteenth?--when Chaucer teaching "whom is worthy to
+be called gentill," writes thus:--
+
+ "The first stocke was full of rightwisnes,
+ Trewe of his worde, sober, pitous and free,
+ Clene of his goste, and loved besinesse,
+ Against the vice of slouth in honeste;
+ And but his heire love vertue as did he,
+ He is not gentill though he rich seme,
+ All weare he miter, crowne, or diademe."
+
+Will she be less likely to marry one who honours women, and for their
+sakes, as well as his own, honours himself? Or to speak from what many
+would regard as the mother's side of the question--will the girl be more
+likely, because of such a culture of her imagination, to refuse the
+wise, true-hearted, generous rich man, and fall in love with the
+talking, verse-making fool, _because_ he is poor, as if that were a
+virtue for which he had striven? The highest imagination and the
+lowliest common sense are always on one side.
+
+For the end of imagination is _harmony_. A right imagination, being the
+reflex of the creation, will fall in with the divine order of things as
+the highest form of its own operation; "will tune its instrument here at
+the door" to the divine harmonies within; will be content alone with
+growth towards the divine idea, which includes all that is beautiful in
+the imperfect imaginations of men; will know that every deviation from
+that growth is downward; and will therefore send the man forth from its
+loftiest representations to do the commonest duty of the most wearisome
+calling in a hearty and hopeful spirit. This is the work of the right
+imagination; and towards this work every imagination, in proportion to
+the rightness that is in it, will tend. The reveries even of the wise
+man will make him stronger for his work; his dreaming as well as his
+thinking will render him sorry for past failure, and hopeful of future
+success.
+
+To come now to the culture of the imagination. Its development is one of
+the main ends of the divine education of life with all its efforts and
+experiences. Therefore the first and essential means for its culture
+must be an ordering of our life towards harmony with its ideal in the
+mind of God. As he that is willing to do the will of the Father, shall
+know of the doctrine, so, we doubt not, he that will do the will of THE
+POET, shall behold the Beautiful. For all is God's; and the man who is
+growing into harmony with His will, is growing into harmony with
+himself; all the hidden glories of his being are coming out into the
+light of humble consciousness; so that at the last he shall be a pure
+microcosm, faithfully reflecting, after his manner, the mighty
+macrocosm. We believe, therefore, that nothing will do so much for the
+intellect or the imagination as _being good_--we do not mean after any
+formula or any creed, but simply after the faith of Him who did the will
+of his Father in heaven.
+
+But if we speak of direct means for the culture of the imagination, the
+whole is comprised in two words--food and exercise. If you want strong
+arms, take animal food, and row. Feed your imagination with food
+convenient for it, and exercise it, not in the contortions of the
+acrobat, but in the movements of the gymnast. And first for the food.
+
+Goethe has told us that the way to develop the aesthetic faculty is to
+have constantly before our eyes, that is, in the room we most frequent,
+some work of the best attainable art. This will teach us to refuse the
+evil and choose the good. It will plant itself in our minds and become
+our counsellor. Involuntarily, unconsciously, we shall compare with its
+perfection everything that comes before us for judgment. Now, although
+no better advice could be given, it involves one danger, that of
+narrowness. And not easily, in dread of this danger, would one change
+his tutor, and so procure variety of instruction. But in the culture of
+the imagination, books, although not the only, are the readiest means of
+supplying the food convenient for it, and a hundred books may be had
+where even one work of art of the right sort is unattainable, seeing
+such must be of some size as well as of thorough excellence. And in
+variety alone is safety from the danger of the convenient food becoming
+the inconvenient model.
+
+Let us suppose, then, that one who himself justly estimates the
+imagination is anxious to develop its operation in his child. No doubt
+the best beginning, especially if the child be young, is an acquaintance
+with nature, in which let him be encouraged to observe vital phenomena,
+to put things together, to speculate from what he sees to what he does
+not see. But let earnest care be taken that upon no matter shall he go
+on talking foolishly. Let him be as fanciful as he may, but let him not,
+even in his fancy, sin against fancy's sense; for fancy has its laws as
+certainly as the most ordinary business of life. When he is silly, let
+him know it and be ashamed.
+
+But where this association with nature is but occasionally possible,
+recourse must be had to literature. In books, we not only have store of
+all results of the imagination, but in them, as in her workshop, we may
+behold her embodying before our very eyes, in music of speech, in wonder
+of words, till her work, like a golden dish set with shining jewels, and
+adorned by the hands of the cunning workmen, stands finished before us.
+In this kind, then, the best must be set before the learner, that he may
+eat and not be satisfied; for the finest products of the imagination are
+of the best nourishment for the beginnings of that imagination. And the
+mind of the teacher must mediate between the work of art and the mind of
+the pupil, bringing them together in the vital contact of intelligence;
+directing the observation to the lines of expression, the points of
+force; and helping the mind to repose upon the whole, so that no
+separable beauties shall lead to a neglect of the scope--that is the
+shape or form complete. And ever he must seek to _show_ excellence
+rather than talk about it, giving the thing itself, that it may grow
+into the mind, and not a eulogy of his own upon the thing; isolating the
+point worthy of remark rather than making many remarks upon the point.
+
+Especially must he endeavour to show the spiritual scaffolding or
+skeleton of any work of art; those main ideas upon which the shape is
+constructed, and around which the rest group as ministering
+dependencies.
+
+But he will not, therefore, pass over that intellectual structure
+without which the other could not be manifested. He will not forget the
+builder while he admires the architect. While he dwells with delight on
+the relation of the peculiar arch to the meaning of the whole cathedral,
+he will not think it needless to explain the principles on which it is
+constructed, or even how those principles are carried out in actual
+process. Neither yet will the tracery of its windows, the foliage of its
+crockets, or the fretting of its mouldings be forgotten. Every beauty
+will have its word, only all beauties will be subordinated to the final
+beauty--that is, the unity of the whole.
+
+Thus doing, he shall perform the true office of friendship. He will
+introduce his pupil into the society which he himself prizes most,
+surrounding him with the genial presence of the high-minded, that this
+good company may work its own kind in him who frequents it.
+
+But he will likewise seek to turn him aside from such company, whether
+of books or of men, as might tend to lower his reverence, his choice, or
+his standard. He will, therefore, discourage indiscriminate reading, and
+that worse than waste which consists in skimming the books of a
+circulating library. He knows that if a book is worth reading at all, it
+is worth reading well; and that, if it is not worth reading, it is only
+to the most accomplished reader that it _can_ be worth skimming. He will
+seek to make him discern, not merely between the good and the evil, but
+between the good and the not so good. And this not for the sake of
+sharpening the intellect, still less of generating that
+self-satisfaction which is the closest attendant upon criticism, but for
+the sake of choosing the best path and the best companions upon it. A
+spirit of criticism for the sake of distinguishing only, or, far worse,
+for the sake of having one's opinion ready upon demand, is not merely
+repulsive to all true thinkers, but is, in itself, destructive of all
+thinking. A spirit of criticism for the sake of the truth--a spirit that
+does not start from its chamber at every noise, but waits till its
+presence is desired--cannot, indeed, garnish the house, but can sweep it
+clean. Were there enough of such wise criticism, there would be ten
+times the study of the best writers of the past, and perhaps one-tenth
+of the admiration for the ephemeral productions of the day. A gathered
+mountain of misplaced worships would be swept into the sea by the study
+of one good book; and while what was good in an inferior book would
+still be admired, the relative position of the book would be altered and
+its influence lessened.
+
+Speaking of true learning, Lord Bacon says: "It taketh away vain
+admiration of anything, _which is the root of all weakness_."
+
+The right teacher would have his pupil easy to please, but ill to
+satisfy; ready to enjoy, unready to embrace; keen to discover beauty,
+slow to say, "Here I will dwell."
+
+But he will not confine his instructions to the region of art. He will
+encourage him to read history with an eye eager for the dawning figure
+of the past. He will especially show him that a great part of the Bible
+is only thus to be understood; and that the constant and consistent way
+of God, to be discovered in it, is in fact the key to all history.
+
+In the history of individuals, as well, he will try to show him how to
+put sign and token together, constructing not indeed a whole, but a
+probable suggestion of the whole.
+
+And, again, while showing him the reflex of nature in the poets, he will
+not be satisfied without sending him to Nature herself; urging him in
+country rambles to keep open eyes for the sweet fashionings and
+blendings of her operation around him; and in city walks to watch the
+"human face divine."
+
+Once more: he will point out to him the essential difference between
+reverie and thought; between dreaming and imagining. He will teach him
+not to mistake fancy, either in himself or in others for imagination,
+and to beware of hunting after resemblances that carry with them no
+interpretation.
+
+Such training is not solely fitted for the possible development of
+artistic faculty. Few, in this world, will ever be able to utter what
+they feel. Fewer still will be able to utter it in forms of their own.
+Nor is it necessary that there should be many such. But it is necessary
+that all should feel. It is necessary that all should understand and
+imagine the good; that all should begin, at least, to follow and find
+out God.
+
+"The glory of God is to conceal a thing, but the glory of the king is to
+find it out," says Solomon. "As if," remarks Bacon on the passage,
+"according to the innocent play of children, the Divine Majesty took
+delight to hide his works, to the end to have them found out; and as if
+kings could not obtain a greater honour than to be God's playfellows in
+that game."
+
+One more quotation from the book of Ecclesiastes, setting forth both the
+necessity we are under to imagine, and the comfort that our imagining
+cannot outstrip God's making.
+
+"I have seen the travail which God hath given to the sons of men to be
+exercised in it. He hath made everything beautiful in his time; also he
+hath set the world in their heart, so that no man can find out the work
+that God maketh from the beginning to the end."
+
+Thus to be playfellows with God in this game, the little ones may gather
+their daisies and follow their painted moths; the child of the kingdom
+may pore upon the lilies of the field, and gather faith as the birds of
+the air their food from the leafless hawthorn, ruddy with the stores God
+has laid up for them; and the man of science
+
+ "May sit and rightly spell
+ Of every star that heaven doth shew,
+ And every herb that sips the dew;
+ Till old experience do attain
+ To something like prophetic strain."
+
+
+
+
+A SKETCH OF INDIVIDUAL DEVELOPMENT.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1880.]
+
+"I wish I had thought to watch when God was making me!" said a child
+once to his mother. "Only," he added, "I was not made till I was
+finished, so I couldn't." We cannot recall whence we came, nor tell how
+we began to be. We know approximately how far back we can remember, but
+have no idea how far back we may not have forgotten. Certainly we knew
+once much that we have forgotten now. My own earliest definable memory
+is of a great funeral of one of the Dukes of Gordon, when I was between
+two and three years of age. Surely my first knowledge was not of death.
+I must have known much and many things before, although that seems my
+earliest memory. As in what we foolishly call maturity, so in the dawn
+of consciousness, both before and after it has begun to be buttressed
+with _self_-consciousness, each succeeding consciousness dims--often
+obliterates--that which went before, and with regard to our past as well
+as our future, imagination and faith must step into the place vacated of
+knowledge. We are aware, and we know that we are aware, but when or how
+we began to be aware, is wrapt in a mist that deepens on the one side
+into deepest night, and on the other brightens into the full assurance
+of existence. Looking back we can but dream, looking forward we lose
+ourselves in speculation; but we may both speculate and dream, for all
+speculation is not false, and all dreaming is not of the unreal. What
+may we fairly imagine as to the inward condition of the child before the
+first moment of which his memory affords him testimony?
+
+It is one, I venture to say, of absolute, though, no doubt, largely
+negative faith. Neither memory of pain that is past, nor apprehension of
+pain to come, once arises to give him the smallest concern. In some way,
+doubtless very vague, for his being itself is a border-land of awful
+mystery, he is aware of being surrounded, enfolded with an atmosphere of
+love; the sky over him is his mother's face; the earth that nourishes
+him is his mother's bosom. The source, the sustentation, the defence of
+his being, the endless mediation betwixt his needs and the things that
+supply them, are all one. There is no type so near the highest idea of
+relation to a God, as that of the child to his mother. Her face is God,
+her bosom Nature, her arms are Providence--all love--one love--to him an
+undivided bliss.
+
+The region beyond him he regards from this vantage-ground of
+unquestioned security. There things may come and go, rise and vanish--he
+neither desires nor bemoans them. Change may grow swift, its swiftness
+grow fierce, and pass into storm: to him storm is calm; his haven is
+secure; his rest cannot be broken: he is accountable for nothing, knows
+no responsibility. Conscience is not yet awake, and there is no
+conflict. His waking is full of sleep, yet his very being is enough for
+him.
+
+But all the time his mother lives in the hope of his growth. In the
+present babe, her heart broods over the coming boy--the unknown marvel
+closed in the visible germ. Let mothers lament as they will over the
+change from childhood to maturity, which of them would not grow weary of
+nursing for ever a child in whom no live law of growth kept unfolding an
+infinite change! The child knows nothing of growth--desires none--but
+grows. Within him is the force of a power he can no more resist than the
+peach can refuse to swell and grow ruddy in the sun. By slow,
+inappreciable, indivisible accretion and outfolding, he is lifted,
+floated, drifted on towards the face of the awful mirror in which he
+must encounter his first foe--must front himself.
+
+By degrees he has learned that the world is around, and not within
+him--that he is apart, and that is apart; from consciousness he passes
+to self-consciousness. This is a second birth, for now a higher life
+begins. When a man not only lives, but knows that he lives, then first
+the possibility of a real life commences. By _real life_, I mean life
+which has a share in its own existence.
+
+For now, towards the world around him--the world that is not his mother,
+and, actively at least, neither loves him nor ministers to him, reveal
+themselves certain relations, initiated by fancies, desires,
+preferences, that arise within himself--reasonable or not matters
+little:--founded in reason, they can in no case be _devoid_ of reason.
+Every object concerned in these relations presents itself to the man as
+lovely, desirable, good, or ugly, hateful, bad; and through these
+relations, obscure and imperfect, and to a being weighted with a strong
+faculty for mistake, begins to be revealed the existence and force of
+Being other and higher than his own, recognized as _Will_, and first of
+all in its opposition to his desires. Thereupon begins the strife
+without which there never was, and, I presume, never can be, any growth,
+any progress; and the first result is what I may call the third birth of
+the human being.
+
+The first opposing glance of the mother wakes in the child not only
+answering opposition, which is as the rudimentary sac of his own coming
+will, but a new something, to which for long he needs no name, so
+natural does it seem, so entirely a portion of his being, even when most
+he refuses to listen to and obey it. This new something--we call it
+_Conscience_--sides with his mother, and causes its presence and
+judgment to be felt not only before but after the event, so that he soon
+comes to know that it is well with him or ill with him as he obeys or
+disobeys it. And now he not only knows, not only knows that he knows,
+but knows he knows that he knows--knows that he is self-conscious--that
+he has a conscience. With the first sense of resistance to it, the power
+above him has drawn nearer, and the deepest within him has declared
+itself on the side of the highest without him. At one and the same
+moment, the heaven of his childhood has, as it were, receded and come
+nigher. He has run from under it, but it claims him. It is farther, yet
+closer--immeasurably closer: he feels on his being the grasp and hold of
+his mother's. Through the higher individuality he becomes aware of his
+own. Through the assertion of his mother's will, his own begins to
+awake. He becomes conscious of himself as capable of action--of doing or
+of not doing; his responsibility has begun.
+
+He slips from her lap; he travels from chair to chair; he puts his
+circle round the room; he dares to cross the threshold; he braves the
+precipice of the stair; he takes the greatest step that, according to
+George Herbert, is possible to man--that out of doors, changing the
+house for the universe; he runs from flower to flower in the garden;
+crosses the road; wanders, is lost, is found again. His powers expand,
+his activity increases; he goes to school, and meets other boys like
+himself; new objects of strife are discovered, new elements of strife
+developed; new desires are born, fresh impulses urge. The old heaven,
+the face and will of his mother, recede farther and farther; a world of
+men, which he foolishly thinks a nobler as it is a larger world, draws
+him, claims him. More or less he yields. The example and influence of
+such as seem to him more than his mother like himself, grow strong upon
+him. His conscience speaks louder. And here, even at this early point in
+his history, what I might call his fourth birth _may_ begin to take
+place: I mean the birth in him of the Will--the real Will--not the
+pseudo-will, which is the mere Desire, swayed of impulse, selfishness,
+or one of many a miserable motive. When the man, listening to his
+conscience, wills and does the right, irrespective of inclination as of
+consequence, then is the man free, the universe open before him. He is
+born from above. To him conscience needs never speak aloud, needs never
+speak twice; to him her voice never grows less powerful, for he never
+neglects what she commands. And when he becomes aware that he can will
+his will, that God has given him a share in essential life, in the
+causation of his own being, then is he a man indeed. I say, even here
+this birth may begin; but with most it takes years not a few to complete
+it. For, the power of the mother having waned, the power of the
+neighbour is waxing. If the boy be of common clay, that is, of clay
+willing to accept dishonour, this power of the neighbour over him will
+increase and increase, till individuality shall have vanished from him,
+and what his friends, what society, what the trade or the profession
+say, will be to him the rule of life. With such, however, I have to do
+no more than with the deaf dead, who sleep too deep for words to reach
+them.
+
+My typical child of man is not of such. He is capable not of being
+influenced merely, but of influencing--and first of all of influencing
+himself; of taking a share in his own making; of determining actively,
+not by mere passivity, what he shall be and become; for he never ceases
+to pay at least a little heed, however poor and intermittent, to the
+voice of his conscience, and to-day he pays more heed than he did
+yesterday.
+
+Long ere now the joy of space, of room, has laid hold upon him--the more
+powerfully if he inhabit a wild and broken region. The human animal
+delights in motion and change, motions of his members even violent, and
+swiftest changes of place. It is as if he would lay hold of the infinite
+by ceaseless abandonment and choice of a never-abiding stand-point, as
+if he would lay hold of strength by the consciousness of the strength he
+has. He is full of unrest. He must know what lies on the farther shore
+of every river, see how the world looks from every hill: _What is
+behind? What is beyond?_ is his constant cry. To learn, to gather into
+himself, is his longing. Nor do many years pass thus, it may be not many
+months, ere the world begins to come alive around him. He begins to feel
+that the stars are strange, that the moon is sad, that the sunrise is
+mighty. He begins to see in them all the something men call beauty. He
+will lie on the sunny bank and gaze into the blue heaven till his soul
+seems to float abroad and mingle with the infinite made visible, with
+the boundless condensed into colour and shape. The rush of the water
+through the still twilight, under the faint gleam of the exhausted west,
+makes in his ears a melody he is almost aware he cannot understand.
+Dissatisfied with his emotions he desires a deeper waking, longs for a
+greater beauty, is troubled with the stirring in his bosom of an unknown
+ideal of Nature. Nor is it an ideal of Nature alone that is forming
+within him. A far more precious thing, a human ideal namely, is in his
+soul, gathering to itself shape and consistency. The wind that at night
+fills him with sadness--he cannot tell why, in the daytime haunts him
+like a wild consciousness of strength which has neither difficulty nor
+danger enough to spend itself upon. He would be a champion of the weak,
+a friend to the great; for both he would fight--a merciless foe to every
+oppressor of his kind. He would be rich that he might help, strong that
+he might rescue, brave--that he counts himself already, for he has not
+proved his own weakness. In the first encounter he fails, and the bitter
+cup of shame and confusion of face, wholesome and saving, is handed him
+from the well of life. He is not yet capable of understanding that one
+such as he, filled with the glory and not the duty of victory, could not
+but fail, and therefore ought to fail; but his dismay and chagrin are
+soothed by the forgetfulness the days and nights bring, gently wiping
+out the sins that are past, that the young life may have a fresh chance,
+as we say, and begin again unburdened by the weight of a too much
+present failure.
+
+And now, probably at school, or in the first months of his college-life,
+a new phase of experience begins. He has wandered over the border of
+what is commonly called science, and the marvel of facts multitudinous,
+strung upon the golden threads of law, has laid hold upon him. His
+intellect is seized and possessed by a new spirit. For a time knowledge
+is pride; the mere consciousness of knowing is the reward of its labour;
+the ever recurring, ever passing contact of mind with a new fact is a
+joy full of excitement, and promises an endless delight. But ever the
+thing that is known sinks into insignificance, save as a step of the
+endless stair on which he is climbing--whither he knows not; the unknown
+draws him; the new fact touches his mind, flames up in the contact, and
+drops dark, a mere fact, on the heap below. Even the grandeur of law as
+law, so far from adding fresh consciousness to his life, causes it no
+small suffering and loss. For at the entrance of Science, nobly and
+gracefully as she bears herself, young Poetry shrinks back startled,
+dismayed. Poetry is true as Science, and Science is holy as Poetry; but
+young Poetry is timid and Science is fearless, and bears with her a
+colder atmosphere than the other has yet learned to brave. It is not
+that Madam Science shows any antagonism to Lady Poetry; but the
+atmosphere and plane on which alone they can meet as friends who
+understand each other, is the mind and heart of the sage, not of the
+boy. The youth gazes on the face of Science, cold, clear, beautiful;
+then, turning, looks for his friend--but, alas! Poetry has fled. With a
+great pang at the heart he rushes abroad to find her, but descries only
+the rainbow glimmer of her skirt on the far horizon. At night, in his
+dreams, she returns, but never for a season may he look on her face of
+loveliness. What, alas! have evaporation, caloric, atmosphere,
+refraction, the prism, and the second planet of our system, to do with
+"sad Hesper o'er the buried sun?" From quantitative analysis how shall
+he turn again to "the rime of the ancient mariner," and "the moving
+moon" that "went up the sky, and nowhere did abide"? From his window he
+gazes across the sands to the mightily troubled ocean: "What is the
+storm to me any more!" he cries; "it is but the clashing of countless
+water-drops!" He finds relief in the discovery that, the moment you
+place man in the midst of it, the clashing of water-drops becomes a
+storm, terrible to heart and brain: human thought and feeling, hope,
+fear, love, sacrifice, make the motions of nature alive with mystery and
+the shadows of destiny. The relief, however, is but partial, and may be
+but temporary; for what if this mingling of man and Nature in the mind
+of man be but the casting of a coloured shadow over her cold
+indifference? What if she means nothing--never was meant to mean
+anything! What if in truth "we receive but what we give, and in our life
+alone doth Nature live!" What if the language of metaphysics as well as
+of poetry be drawn, not from Nature at all, but from human fancy
+concerning her!
+
+At length, from the unknown, whence himself he came, appears an angel to
+deliver him from this horror--this stony look--ah, God! of soulless law.
+The woman is on her way whose part it is to meet him with a life other
+than his own, at once the complement of his, and the visible presentment
+of that in it which is beyond his own understanding. The enchantment of
+what we specially call _love_ is upon him--a deceiving glamour, say
+some, showing what is not, an opening of the eyes, say others, revealing
+that of which a man had not been aware: men will still be divided into
+those who believe that the horses of fire and the chariots of fire are
+ever present at their need of them, and those who class the prophet and
+the drunkard in the same category as the fools of their own fancies. But
+what this love is, he who thinks he knows least understands. Let foolish
+maidens and vulgar youths simper and jest over it as they please, it is
+one of the most potent mysteries of the living God. The man who can love
+a woman and remain a lover of his wretched self, is fit only to be cast
+out with the broken potsherds of the city, as one in whom the very salt
+has lost its savour. With this love in his heart, a man puts on at least
+the vision robes of the seer, if not the singing robes of the poet. Be
+he the paltriest human animal that ever breathed, for the time, and in
+his degree, he rises above himself. His nature so far clarifies itself,
+that here and there a truth of the great world will penetrate, sorely
+dimmed, through the fog-laden, self-shadowed atmosphere of his
+microcosm. For the time, I repeat, he is not a lover only, but something
+of a friend, with a reflex touch of his own far-off childhood. To the
+youth of my history, in the light of his love--a light that passes
+outward from the eyes of the lover--the world grows alive again, yea
+radiant as an infinite face. He sees the flowers as he saw them in
+boyhood, recovering from an illness of all the winter, only they have a
+yet deeper glow, a yet fresher delight, a yet more unspeakable soul. He
+becomes pitiful over them, and not willingly breaks their stems, to hurt
+the life he more than half believes they share with him. He cannot think
+anything created only for him, any more than only for itself. Nature is
+no longer a mere contention of forces, whose heaven and whose hell in
+one is the dull peace of an equilibrium; but a struggle, through
+splendour of colour, graciousness of form, and evasive vitality of
+motion and sound, after an utterance hard to find, and never found but
+marred by the imperfection of the small and weak that would embody and
+set forth the great and mighty. The waving of the tree-tops is the
+billowy movement of a hidden delight. The sun lifts his head with intent
+to be glorious. No day lasts too long, no night comes too soon: the
+twilight is woven of shadowy arms that draw the loving to the bosom of
+the Night. In the woman, the infinite after which he thirsts is given
+him for his own.
+
+Man's occupation with himself turns his eyes from the great life beyond
+his threshold: when love awakes, he forgets himself for a time, and many
+a glimpse of strange truth finds its way through his windows, blocked no
+longer by the shadow of himself. He may now catch even a glimpse of the
+possibilities of his own being--may dimly perceive for a moment the
+image after which he was made. But alas! too soon, self, radiant of
+darkness, awakes; every window becomes opaque with shadow, and the man
+is again a prisoner. For it is not the highest word alone that the cares
+of this world, the deceitfulness of riches, and the lust of other things
+entering in, choke, and render unfruitful. Waking from the divine
+vision, if that can be called waking which is indeed dying into the
+common day, the common man regards it straightway as a foolish dream;
+the wise man believes in it still, holds fast by the memory of the
+vanished glory, and looks to have it one day again a present portion of
+the light of his life. He knows that, because of the imperfection and
+dulness and weakness of his nature, after every vision follow the
+inclosing clouds, with the threat of an ever during dark; knows that,
+even if the vision could tarry, it were not well, for the sake of that
+which must yet be done with him, yet be made of him, that it should
+tarry. But the youth whose history I am following is not like the
+former, nor as yet like the latter.
+
+From whatever cause, then, whether of fault, of natural law, or of
+supernal will, the flush that seemed to promise the dawn of an eternal
+day, shrinks and fades, though, with him, like the lagging skirt of the
+sunset in the northern west, it does not vanish, but travels on, a
+withered pilgrim, all the night, at the long last to rise the aureole of
+the eternal Aurora. And now new paths entice him--or old paths opening
+fresh horizons. With stronger thews and keener nerves he turns again to
+the visible around him. The changelessness amid change, the law amid
+seeming disorder, the unity amid units, draws him again. He begins to
+descry the indwelling poetry of science. The untiring forces at work in
+measurable yet inconceivable spaces of time and room, fill his soul with
+an awe that threatens to uncreate him with a sense of littleness; while,
+on the other side, the grandeur of their operations fills him with such
+an informing glory, the mere presence of the mighty facts, that he no
+more thinks of himself, but in humility is great, and knows it not. Rapt
+spectator, seer entranced under the magic wand of Science, he beholds
+the billions of billions of miles of incandescent vapour begin a slow,
+scarce perceptible revolution, gradually grow swift, and gather an awful
+speed. He sees the vapour, as it whirls, condensing through slow
+eternities to a plastic fluidity. He notes ring after ring part from the
+circumference of the mass, break, rush together into a globe, and the
+glowing ball keep on through space with the speed of its parent bulk. It
+cools and still cools and condenses, but still fiercely glows.
+Presently--after tens of thousands of years is the creative
+_presently_--arises fierce contention betwixt the glowing heart and its
+accompanying atmosphere. The latter invades the former with antagonistic
+element. He listens in his soul, and hears the rush of ever descending
+torrent rains, with the continuous roaring shock of their evanishment in
+vapour--to turn again to water in the higher regions, and again rush to
+the attack upon the citadel of fire. He beholds the slow victory of the
+water at last, and the great globe, now glooming in a cloak of darkness,
+covered with a wildly boiling sea--not boiling by figure of speech,
+under contending forces of wind and tide, but boiling high as the hills
+to come, with veritable heat. He sees the rise of the wrinkles we call
+hills and mountains, and from their sides the avalanches of water to the
+lower levels. He sees race after race of living things appear, as the
+earth becomes, for each new and higher kind, a passing home; and he
+watches the succession of terrible convulsions dividing kind from kind,
+until at length the kind he calls his own arrives. Endless are the
+visions of material grandeur unfathomable, awaked in his soul by the
+bare facts of external existence.
+
+But soon comes a change. So far as he can see or learn, all the motion,
+all the seeming dance, is but a rush for death, a panic flight into the
+moveless silence. The summer wind, the tropic tornado, the softest tide,
+the fiercest storm, are alike the tumultuous conflict of forces,
+rushing, and fighting as they rush, into the arms of eternal negation.
+On and on they hurry--down and down, to a cold stirless solidity, where
+wind blows not, water flows not, where the seas are not merely tideless
+and beat no shores, but frozen cleave with frozen roots to their gulfy
+basin. All things are on the steep-sloping path to final evanishment,
+uncreation, non-existence. He is filled with horror--not so much of the
+dreary end, as at the weary hopelessness of the path thitherward. Then a
+dim light breaks upon him, and with it a faint hope revives, for he
+seems to see in all the forms of life, innumerably varied, a spirit
+rushing upward from death--a something in escape from the terror of the
+downward cataract, of the rest that knows not peace. "Is it not," he
+asks, "the soaring of the silver dove of life from its potsherd-bed--the
+heavenward flight of some higher and incorruptible thing? Is not
+vitality, revealed in growth, itself an unending resurrection?"
+
+The vision also of the oneness of the universe, ever reappearing through
+the vapours of question, helps to keep hope alive in him. To find, for
+instance, the law of the relation of the arrangements of the leaves on
+differing plants, correspond to the law of the relative distances of the
+planets in approach to their central sun, wakes in him that hope of a
+central Will, which alone can justify one ecstatic throb at any seeming
+loveliness of the universe. For without the hope of such a centre,
+delight is unreason--a mockery not such as the skeleton at the Egyptian
+feast, but such rather as a crowned corpse at a feast of skeletons. Life
+without the higher glory of the unspeakable, the atmosphere of a God, is
+not life, is not worth living. He would rather cease to be, than walk
+the dull level of the commonplace--than live the unideal of men in whose
+company he can take no pleasure--men who are as of a lower race, whom he
+fain would lift, who will not rise, but for whom as for himself he would
+cherish the hope they do their best to kill. Those who seem to him
+great, recognize the unseen--believe the roots of science to be therein
+hid--regard the bringing forth into sight of the things that are
+invisible as the end of all Art and every art--judge the true leader of
+men to be him who leads them closer to the essential facts of their
+being. Alas for his love and his hope, alas for himself, if the visible
+should exist for its own sake only!--if the face of a flower means
+nothing--appeals to no region beyond the scope of the science that would
+unveil its growth. He cannot believe that its structure exists for the
+sake of its laws; that would be to build for the sake of its joints a
+scaffold where no house was to stand. Those who put their faith in
+Science are trying to live in the scaffold of the house invisible.
+
+He finds harbour and comfort at times in the written poetry of his
+fellows. He delights in analyzing and grasping the thought that informs
+the utterance. For a moment, the fine figure, the delicate phrase, make
+him jubilant and strong; but the jubilation and the strength soon pass,
+for it is not any of the _forms_, even of the thought-forms of truth
+that can give rest to his soul.
+
+History attracts him little, for he is not able to discover by its
+records the operation of principles yielding hope for his race. Such
+there may be, but he does not find them. What hope for the rising wave
+that knows in its rise only its doom to sink, and at length be dashed on
+the low shore of annihilation?
+
+But the time would fail me to follow the doubling of the soul coursed by
+the hounds of Death, or to set down the forms innumerable in which the
+golden Haemony springs in its path,
+
+ Of sovran use
+ 'Gainst all enchantments, mildew blast, or damp.
+
+And now the shadows are beginning to lengthen towards the night, which,
+whether there be a following morn or no, is the night, and spreads out
+the wings of darkness. And still as it approaches the more aware grows
+the man of a want that differs from any feeling I have already sought to
+describe--a sense of insecurity, in no wise the same as the doubt of
+life beyond the grave--a need more profound even than that which cries
+for a living Nature. And now he plainly knows, that, all his life, like
+a conscious duty unfulfilled, this sense has haunted his path, ever and
+anon descending and clinging, a cold mist, about his heart. What if this
+lack was indeed the root of every other anxiety! Now freshly revived,
+this sense of not having, of something, he knows not what, for lack of
+which his being is in pain at its own incompleteness, never leaves him
+more. And with it the terror has returned and grows, lest there should
+be no Unseen Power, as his fathers believed, and his mother taught him,
+filling all things and _meaning_ all things,--no Power with whom, in his
+last extremity, awaits him a final refuge. With the quickening doubt
+falls a tenfold blight on the world of poetry, both that in Nature and
+that in books. Far worse than that early chill which the assertions of
+science concerning what it knows, cast upon his inexperienced soul, is
+now the shivering death which its pretended denials concerning what it
+knows not, send through all his vital frame. The soul departs from the
+face of beauty, when the eye begins to doubt if there be any soul behind
+it; and now the man feels like one I knew, affected with a strange
+disease, who saw in the living face always the face of a corpse. What
+can the world be to him who lives for thought, if there be no supreme
+and perfect Thought,--none but such poor struggles after thought as he
+finds in himself? Take the eternal thought from the heart of things, no
+longer can any beauty be real, no more can shape, motion, aspect of
+nature have significance in itself, or sympathy with human soul. At best
+and most the beauty he thought he saw was but the projected perfection
+of his own being, and from himself as the crown and summit of things,
+the soul of the man shrinks with horror: it is the more imperfect being
+who knows the least his incompleteness, and for whom, seeing so little
+beyond himself, it is easiest to imagine himself the heart and apex of
+things, and rejoice in the fancy. The killing power of a godless science
+returns upon him with tenfold force. The ocean-tempest is once more a
+mere clashing of innumerable water-drops; the green and amber sadness of
+the evening sky is a mockery of sorrow; his own soul and its sadness is
+a mockery of himself. There is nothing in the sadness, nothing in the
+mockery. To tell him as comfort, that in his own thought lives the
+meaning if nowhere else, is mockery worst of all; for if there be no
+truth in them, if these things be no embodiment, to make them serve as
+such is to put a candle in a death's-head to light the dying through the
+place of tombs. To his former foolish fancy a primrose might preach a
+childlike trust; the untoiling lilies might from their field cast seeds
+of a higher growth into his troubled heart; now they are no better than
+the colour the painter leaves behind him on the doorpost of his
+workshop, when, the day's labour over, he wipes his brush on it ere he
+depart for the night. The look in the eyes of his dog, happy in that he
+is short-lived, is one of infinite sadness. All graciousness must
+henceforth be a sorrow: it has to go with the sunsets. That a thing must
+cease takes from it the joy of even an aeonian endurance--for its _kind_
+is mortal; it belongs to the nature of things that cannot live. The
+sorrow is not so much that it shall perish as that it could not
+live--that it is not in its nature a real, that is, an eternal thing.
+His children are shadows--their life a dance, a sickness, a corruption.
+The very element of unselfishness, which, however feeble and beclouded
+it may be, yet exists in all love, in giving life its only dignity adds
+to its sorrow. Nowhere at the root of things is love--it is only a
+something that came after, some sort of fungous excrescence in the
+hearts of men grown helplessly superior to their origin. Law, nothing
+but cold, impassive, material law, is the root of things--lifeless
+happily, so not knowing itself, else were it a demon instead of a
+creative nothing. Endeavour is paralyzed in him. "Work for posterity,"
+says he of the skyless philosophy; answers the man, "How can I work
+without hope? Little heart have I to labour, where labour is so little
+help. What can I do for my children that would render their life less
+hopeless than my own! Give me all you would secure for them, and my life
+would be to me but the worse mockery. The true end of labour would be,
+to lessen the number doomed to breathe the breath of this despair."
+
+Straightway he developes another and a deeper mood. He turns and regards
+himself. Suspicion or sudden insight has directed the look. And there,
+in himself, he discovers such imperfection, such wrong, such shame, such
+weakness, as cause him to cry out, "It were well I should cease! Why
+should I mourn after life? Where were the good of prolonging it in a
+being like me? 'What should such fellows as I do crawling between heaven
+and earth!'" Such insights, when they come, the seers do their best, in
+general, to obscure; suspicion of themselves they regard as a monster,
+and would stifle. They resent the waking of such doubt. Any attempt at
+the raising in them of their buried best they regard as an offence
+against intercourse. A man takes his social life in his hand who dares
+it. Few therefore understand the judgment of Hamlet upon himself; the
+common reader is so incapable of imagining he could mean it of his own
+general character as a man, that he attributes the utterance to shame
+for the postponement of a vengeance, which indeed he must have been such
+as his critic to be capable of performing upon no better proof than he
+had yet had. When the man whose unfolding I would now represent, regards
+even his dearest love, he finds it such a poor, selfish, low-lived
+thing, that in his heart he shames himself before his children and his
+friends. How little labour, how little watching, how little pain has he
+endured for their sakes! He reads of great things in this kind, but in
+himself he does not find them. How often has he not been wrongfully
+displeased--wrathful with the innocent! How often has he not hurt a
+heart more tender than his own! Has he ever once been faithful to the
+height of his ideal? Is his life on the whole a thing to regard with
+complacency, or to be troubled exceedingly concerning? Beyond him rise
+and spread infinite seeming possibilities--height beyond height, glory
+beyond glory, each rooted in and rising from his conscious being, but
+alas! where is any hope of ascending them? These hills of peace, "in a
+season of calm weather," seem to surround and infold him, as a land in
+which he could dwell at ease and at home: surely among them lies the
+place of his birth!--while against their purity and grandeur the being
+of his consciousness shows miserable--dark, weak, and undefined--a
+shadow that would fain be substance--a dream that would gladly be born
+into the light of reality. But alas if the whole thing be only in
+himself--if the vision be a dream of nothing, a revelation of lies, the
+outcome of that which, helplessly existent, is yet not created,
+therefore cannot create--if not the whole thing only be a dream of the
+impotent, but the impotent be himself but a dream--a dream of his own--a
+self-dreamed dream--with no master of dreams to whom to cry! Where then
+the cherished hope of one day atoning for his wrongs to those who loved
+him!--they are nowhere--vanished for ever, upmingled and dissolved in
+the primeval darkness! If truth be but the hollow of a sphere, ah, never
+shall he cast himself before them, to tell them that now at last, after
+long years of revealing separation, he knows himself and them, and that
+now the love of them is a part of his very being--to implore their
+forgiveness on the ground that he hates, despises, contemns, and scorns
+the self that showed them less than absolute love and devotion! Never
+thus shall he lay his being bare to their eyes of love! They do not even
+rest, for they do not and will not know it. There is no voice nor
+hearing in them, and how can there be in him any heart to live! The one
+comfort left him is, that, unable to follow them, he shall yet die and
+cease, and fare as they--go also nowhither!
+
+To a man under the dismay of existence dissociated from power, unrooted
+in, unshadowed by a creating Will, who is Love, the Father of Man--to
+him who knows not being and God together, the idea of death--a death
+that knows no reviving, must be, and ought to be the blessedest thought
+left him. "O land of shadows!" well may such a one cry! "land where the
+shadows love to ecstatic self-loss, yet forget, and love no more! land
+of sorrows and despairs, that sink the soul into a deeper Tophet than
+death has ever sounded! broken kaleidoscope! shaken camera! promiser,
+speaking truth to the ear, but lying to the sense! land where the heart
+of my friend is sorrowful as my heart--the more sorrowful that I have
+been but a poor and far-off friend! land where sin is strong and
+righteousness faint! where love dreams mightily and walks abroad so
+feeble! land where the face of my father is dust, and the hand of my
+mother will never more caress! where my children will spend a few years
+of like trouble to mine, and then drop from the dream into the no-dream!
+gladly, O land of sickliest shadows--gladly, that is, with what power of
+gladness is in me, I take my leave of thee! Welcome the cold,
+pain-soothing embrace of immortal Death! Hideous are his looks, but I
+love him better than Life: he is true, and will not deceive us. Nay, he
+only is our saviour, setting us free from the tyranny of the false that
+ought to be true, and sets us longing in vain."
+
+But through all the man's doubts, fears, and perplexities, a certain
+whisper, say rather, an uncertain rumour, a vague legendary murmur, has
+been at the same time about, rather than in, his ears--never ceasing to
+haunt his air, although hitherto he has hardly heeded it. He knows it
+has come down the ages, and that some in every age have been more or
+less influenced by a varied acceptance of it. Upon those, however, with
+whom he has chiefly associated, it has made no impression beyond that of
+a remarkable legend. It is the story of a man, represented as at least
+greater, stronger, and better than any other man. With the hero of this
+tale he has had a constantly recurring, though altogether undefined
+suspicion that he has something to do. It is strongest, though not even
+then strong, at such times when he is most aware of evil and
+imperfection in himself. Betwixt the two, the idea of this man and his
+knowledge of himself, seems to lie, dim-shadowy, some imperative duty.
+He knows that the whole matter concerning the man is commemorated in
+many of the oldest institutions of his country, but up to this time he
+has shrunk from the demands which, by a kind of spiritual insight, he
+foresaw would follow, were he once to admit certain things to be true.
+He has, however, known some and read of more who by their faith in the
+man conquered all anxiety, doubt, and fear, lived pure, and died in
+gladsome hope. On the other hand, it seems to him that the faith which
+was once easy has now become almost an impossibility. And what is it he
+is called upon to believe? One says one thing, another another. Much
+that is asserted is simply unworthy of belief, and the foundation of the
+whole has in his eyes something of the look of a cunningly devised
+fable. Even should it be true, it cannot help him, he thinks, for it
+does not even touch the things that make his woe: the God the tale
+presents is not the being whose very existence can alone be his cure.
+
+But he meets one who says to him, "Have you then come to your time of
+life, and not yet ceased to accept hearsay as ground of action--for
+there is action in abstaining as well as in doing? Suppose the man in
+question to have taken all possible pains to be understood, does it
+follow of necessity that he is now or ever was fairly represented by the
+bulk of his followers? With such a moral distance between him and them,
+is it possible?"
+
+"But the whole thing has from first to last a strange aspect!" our
+thinker replies.
+
+"As to the _last_ that is not yet come. And as to its _aspect_, its
+reality must be such as human eye could never convey to reading heart.
+Every human idea of it _must_ be more or less wrong. And yet perhaps the
+truer the aspect the stranger it would be. But is it not just with
+ordinary things you are dissatisfied? And should not therefore the very
+strangeness of these to you little better than rumours incline you to
+examine the object of them? Will you assert that nothing strange can
+have to do with human affairs? Much that was once scarce credible is now
+so ordinary that men have grown stupid to the wonder inherent in it.
+Nothing around you serves your need: try what is at least of another
+class of phenomena. What if the things rumoured belong to a _more_
+natural order than these, lie nearer the roots of your dissatisfied
+existence, and look strange only because you have hitherto been living
+in the outer court, not in the _penetralia_ of life? The rumour has been
+vital enough to float down the ages, emerging from every storm: why not
+see for yourself what may be in it? So powerful an influence on human
+history, surely there will be found in it signs by which to determine
+whether the man understood himself and his message, or owed his apparent
+greatness to the deluded worship of his followers! That he has always
+had foolish followers none will deny, and none but a fool would judge
+any leader from such a fact. Wisdom as well as folly will serve a fool's
+purpose; he turns all into folly. I say nothing now of my own
+conclusions, because what you imagine my opinions are as hateful to me
+as to you disagreeable and foolish."
+
+So says the friend; the man hears, takes up the old story, and says to
+himself, "Let me see then what I can see!"
+
+I will not follow him through the many shadows and slow dawns by which
+at length he arrives at this much: A man claiming to be the Son of God
+says he has come to be the light of men; says, "Come to me, and I will
+give you rest;" says, "Follow me, and you shall find my Father; to know
+him is the one thing you cannot do without, for it is eternal life." He
+has learned from the reported words of the man, and from the man himself
+as in the tale presented, that the bliss of his conscious being is his
+Father; that his one delight is to do the will of that Father--the only
+thing in his eyes worthy of being done, or worth having done; that he
+would make men blessed with his own blessedness; that the cry of
+creation, the cry of humanity shall be answered into the deepest soul of
+desire; that less than the divine mode of existence, the godlike way of
+being, can satisfy no man, that is, make him content with his
+consciousness; that not this world only, but the whole universe is the
+inheritance of those who consent to be the children of their Father in
+heaven, who put forth the power of their will to be of the same sort as
+he; that to as many as receive him he gives power to become the sons of
+God; that they shall be partakers of the divine nature, of the divine
+joy, of the divine power--shall have whatever they desire, shall know no
+fear, shall love perfectly, and shall never die; that these things are
+beyond the grasp of the knowing ones of the world, and to them the
+message will be a scorn; but that the time will come when its truth
+shall be apparent, to some in confusion of face, to others in joy
+unspeakable; only that we must beware of judging, for many that are
+first shall be last, and there are last that shall be first.
+
+To find himself in such conscious as well as vital relation with the
+source of his being, with a Will by which his own will exists, with a
+Consciousness by and through which he is conscious, would indeed be the
+end of all the man's ills! nor can he imagine any other, not to say
+better way, in which his sorrows could be met, understood and
+annihilated. For the ills that oppress him are both within him and
+without, and over each kind he is powerless. If the message were but a
+true one! If indeed this man knew what he talked of! But if there should
+be help for man from anywhere beyond him, some _one_ might know it
+first, and may not this be the one? And if the message be so great, so
+perfect as this man asserts, then only a perfect, an eternal man, at
+home in the bosom of the Father, could know, or bring, or tell it.
+According to the tale, it had been from the first the intent of the
+Father to reveal himself to man as man, for without the knowledge of the
+Father after man's own modes of being, he could not grow to real
+manhood. The grander the whole idea, the more likely is it to be what it
+claims to be! and if not high as the heavens above the earth, beyond us
+yet within our reach, it is not for us, it cannot be true. Fact or not,
+the existence of a God such as Christ, a God who is a good man
+infinitely, is the only idea containing hope enough for man! If such a
+God has come to be known, marvel must surround the first news at least
+of the revelation of him. Because of its marvel, shall men find it in
+reason to turn from the gracious rumour of what, if it be true, must be
+the event of all events? And could marvel be lovelier than the marvel
+reported? But the humble men of heart alone can believe in the
+high--they alone can perceive, they alone can embrace grandeur. Humility
+is essential greatness, the inside of grandeur.
+
+Something of such truths the man glimmeringly sees. But in his mind
+awake, thereupon, endless doubts and questions. What if the whole idea
+of his mission was a deception born of the very goodness of the man?
+What if the whole matter was the invention of men pretending themselves
+the followers of such a man? What if it was a little truth greatly
+exaggerated? Only, be it what it may, less than its full idea would not
+be enough for the wants and sorrows that weaken and weigh him down!
+
+He passes through many a thorny thicket of inquiry; gathers evidence
+upon evidence; reasons upon the goodness of the men who wrote: they
+might be deceived, but they dared not invent; holds with himself a
+thousand arguments, historical, psychical, metaphysical--which for their
+setting-forth would require volumes; hears many an opposing, many a
+scoffing word from men "who surely know, else would they speak?" and
+finds himself much where he was before. But at least he is haunting the
+possible borders of discovery, while those who turn their backs upon the
+idea are divided from him by a great gulf--it may be of moral
+difference. To him there is still a grand auroral hope about the idea,
+and it still draws him; the others, taking the thing from merest report
+of opinion, look anywhere but thitherward. He who would not trust his
+best friend to set forth his views of life, accepts the random
+judgements of unknown others for a sufficing disposal of what the
+highest of the race have regarded as a veritable revelation from the
+Father of men. He sees in it therefore nothing but folly; for what he
+takes for the thing nowhere meets his nature. Our searcher at least
+holds open the door for the hearing of what voice may come to him from
+the region invisible: if there be truth there, he is where it will find
+him.
+
+As he continues to read and reflect, the perception gradually grows
+clear in him, that, if there be truth in the matter, he must, first of
+all, and beyond all things else, give his best heed to the reported
+words of the man himself--to what he says, not what is said about him,
+valuable as that may afterwards prove to be. And he finds that
+concerning these words of his, the man says, or at least plainly
+implies, that only the obedient, childlike soul can understand them. It
+follows that the judgement of no man who does not obey can be received
+concerning them or the speaker of them--that, for instance, a man who
+hates his enemy, who tells lies, who thinks to serve God and Mammon,
+whether he call himself a Christian or no, has not the right of an
+opinion concerning the Master or his words--at least in the eyes of the
+Master, however it may be in his own. This is in the very nature of
+things: obedience alone places a man in the position in which he can see
+so as to judge that which is above him. In respect of great truths
+investigation goes for little, speculation for nothing; if a man would
+know them, he must obey them. Their nature is such that the only door
+into them is obedience. And the truth-seeker perceives--which allows
+him no loophole of escape from life--that what things the Son of Man
+requires of him, are either such as his conscience backs for just, or
+such as seem too great, too high for any man. But if there be help for
+him, it must be a help that recognizes the highest in him, and urges him
+to its use. Help cannot come to one made in the image of God, save in
+the obedient effort of what life and power are in him, for God is
+action. In such effort alone is it possible for need to encounter help.
+It is the upstretched that meets the downstretched hand. He alone who
+obeys can with confidence pray--to him alone does an answer seem a thing
+that may come. And should anything spoken by the Son of Man seem to the
+seeker unreasonable, he feels in the rest such a majesty of duty as
+compels him to judge with regard to the other, that he has not yet
+perceived its true nature, or its true relation to life.
+
+And now comes the crisis: if here the man sets himself honestly to do
+the thing the Son of Man tells him, he so, and so first, sets out
+positively upon the path which, if there be truth in these things, will
+conduct him to a knowledge of the whole matter; not until then is he a
+disciple. If the message be a true one, the condition of the knowledge
+of its truth is not only reasonable but an unavoidable necessity. If
+there be help for him, how otherways should it draw nigh? He has to be
+assured of the highest truth of his being: there can be no other
+assurance than that to be gained thus, and thus alone; for not only by
+obedience does a man come into such contact with truth as to know what
+it is, and in regard to truth knowledge and belief are one. That things
+which cannot appear save to the eye capable of seeing them, that things
+which cannot be recognized save by the mind of a certain development,
+should be examined by eye incapable, and pronounced upon by mind
+undeveloped, is absurd. The deliverance the message offers is a change
+such that the man shall _be_ the rightness of which he talked: while his
+soul is not a hungered, athirst, aglow, a groaning after
+righteousness--that is, longing to be himself honest and upright, it is
+an absurdity that he should judge concerning the way to this rightness,
+seeing that, while he walks not in it, he is and shall be a dishonest
+man: he knows not whither it leads and how can he know the way! What he
+_can_ judge of is, his duty at a given moment--and that not in the
+abstract, but as something to be by him _done_, neither more, nor less,
+nor other than _done_. Thus judging and doing, he makes the only
+possible step nearer to righteousness and righteous judgement; doing
+otherwise, he becomes the more unrighteous, the more blind. For the man
+who knows not God, whether he believes there is a God or not, there can
+be, I repeat, no judgement of things pertaining to God. To our supposed
+searcher, then, the crowning word of the Son of Man is this, "If any man
+is willing to do the will of the Father, he shall know of the doctrine,
+whether it be of God, or whether I speak of myself."
+
+Having thus accompanied my type to the borders of liberty, my task for
+the present is over. The rest let him who reads prove for himself.
+Obedience alone can convince. To convince without obedience I would take
+no bootless labour; it would be but a gain for hell. If any man call
+these things foolishness, his judgement is to me insignificant. If any
+man say he is open to conviction, I answer him he can have none but on
+the condition, by the means of obedience. If a man say, "The thing is
+not interesting to me," I ask him, "Are you following your conscience?
+By that, and not by the interest you take or do not take in a thing,
+shall you be judged. Nor will anything be said to you, or of you, in
+that day, whatever _that day_ mean, of which your conscience will not
+echo every syllable."
+
+Oneness with God is the sole truth of humanity. Life parted from its
+causative life would be no life; it would at best be but a barrack of
+corruption, an outpost of annihilation. In proportion as the union is
+incomplete, the derived life is imperfect. And no man can be one with
+neighbour, child, dearest, except as he is one with his origin; and he
+fails of his perfection so long as there is one being in the universe he
+could not love.
+
+Of all men he is bound to hold his face like a flint in witness of this
+truth who owes everything that makes for eternal good, to the belief
+that at the heart of things and causing them to be, at the centre of
+monad, of world, of protoplastic mass, of loving dog, and of man most
+cruel, is an absolute, perfect love; and that in the man Christ Jesus
+this love is with us men to take us home. To nothing else do I for one
+owe any grasp upon life. In this I see the setting right of all things.
+To the man who believes in the Son of God, poetry returns in a mighty
+wave; history unrolls itself in harmony; science shows crowned with its
+own aureole of holiness. There is no enlivener of the imagination, no
+enabler of the judgment, no strengthener of the intellect, to compare
+with the belief in a live Ideal, at the heart of all personality, as of
+every law. If there be no such live Ideal, then a falsehood can do more
+for the race than the facts of its being; then an unreality is needful
+for the development of the man in all that is real, in all that is in
+the highest sense true; then falsehood is greater than fact, and an idol
+necessary for lack of a God. They who deny cannot, in the nature of
+things, know what they deny. When one sees a chaos begin to put on the
+shape of an ordered world, he will hardly be persuaded it is by the
+power of a foolish notion bred in a diseased fancy.
+
+Let the man then who would rise to the height of his being, be persuaded
+to test the Truth by the deed--the highest and only test that can be
+applied to the loftiest of all assertions. To every man I say, "Do the
+truth you know, and you shall learn the truth you need to know."
+
+
+
+
+ST. GEORGE'S DAY, 1564.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1864.]
+
+All England knows that this year (1864) is the three hundredth since
+Shakspere was born. The strong probability is likewise that this month
+of April is that in which he first saw the earthly light. On the
+twenty-sixth of April he was baptized. Whether he was born on the
+twenty-third, to which effect there may once have been a tradition, we
+do not know; but though there is nothing to corroborate that statement,
+there are two facts which would incline us to believe it if we could:
+the one that he _died_ on the twenty-third of April, thus, as it were,
+completing a cycle; and the other that the twenty-third of April is St.
+George's Day. If there is no harm in indulging in a little fanciful
+sentiment about such a grand fact, we should say that certainly it was
+_St. George for merry England_ when Shakspere was born. But had St.
+George been the best saint in the calendar--which we have little enough
+ground for supposing he was--it would better suit our subject to say
+that the Highest was thinking of his England when he sent Shakspere into
+it, to be a strength, a wonder, and a gladness to the nations of his
+earth.
+
+But if we write thus about Shakspere, influenced only by the fashion of
+the day, we shall be much in the condition of those _fashionable_
+architects who with their vain praises built the tombs of the prophets,
+while they had no regard to the lessons they taught. We hope to be able
+to show that we have good grounds for our rejoicing in the birth of that
+child whom after-years placed highest on the rocky steep of Art, up
+which so many of those who combine feeling and thought are always
+striving.
+
+First, however, let us look at some of the more powerful of the
+influences into the midst of which he was born. For a child is born into
+the womb of the time, which indeed enclosed and fed him before he was
+born. Not the least subtle and potent of those influences which tend to
+the education of the child (in the true sense of the word _education_)
+are those which are brought to bear upon him _through_ the mind, heart,
+judgement of his parents. We mean that those powers which have operated
+strongly upon them, have a certain concentrated operation, both
+antenatal and psychological, as well as educational and spiritual, upon
+the child. Now Shakspere was born in the sixth year of Queen Elizabeth.
+He was the eldest son, but the third child. His father and mother must
+have been married not later than the year 1557, two years after Cranmer
+was burned at the stake, one of the two hundred who thus perished in
+that time of pain, resulting in the firm establishment of a reformation
+which, like all other changes for the better, could not be verified and
+secured without some form or other of the _trial by fire_. Events such
+as then took place in every part of the country could not fail to make a
+strong impression upon all thinking people, especially as it was not
+those of high position only who were thus called upon to bear witness to
+their beliefs. John Shakspere and Mary Arden were in all likelihood
+themselves of the Protestant party; and although, as far as we know,
+they were never in any especial danger of being denounced, the whole of
+the circumstances must have tended to produce in them individually, what
+seems to have been characteristic of the age in which they lived,
+earnestness. In times such as those, people are compelled to think.
+
+And here an interesting question occurs: Was it in part to his mother
+that Shakspere was indebted for that profound knowledge of the Bible
+which is so evident in his writings? A good many copies of the
+Scriptures must have been by this time, in one translation or another,
+scattered over the country. [Footnote: And it seems to us probable that
+this diffusion of the Bible, did more to rouse the slumbering literary
+power of England, than any influences of foreign literature whatever.]
+No doubt the word was precious in those days, and hard to buy; but there
+might have been a copy, notwithstanding, in the house of John Shakspere,
+and it is possible that it was from his mother's lips that the boy first
+heard the Scripture tales. We have called his acquaintance with
+Scripture _profound_, and one peculiar way in which it manifests itself
+will bear out the assertion; for frequently it is the very spirit and
+essential aroma of the passage that he reproduces, without making any
+use of the words themselves. There are passages in his writings which we
+could not have understood but for some acquaintance with the New
+Testament. We will produce a few specimens of the kind we mean,
+confining ourselves to one play, "Macbeth."
+
+Just mentioning the phrase, "temple-haunting martlet" (act i. scene 6),
+as including in it a reference to the verse, "Yea, the sparrow hath
+found an house, and the swallow a nest for herself, where she may lay
+her young, even thine altars, O Lord of hosts," we pass to the following
+passage, for which we do not believe there is any explanation but that
+suggested to us by the passage of Scripture to be cited.
+
+Macbeth, on his way to murder Duncan, says,--
+
+ "Thou sure and firm-set earth,
+ Hear not my steps, which way they walk, for fear
+ Thy very stones prate of my whereabout,
+ And take the present horror from the time
+ Which now suits with it."
+
+What is meant by the last two lines? It seems to us to be just another
+form of the words, "For there is nothing covered, that shall not be
+revealed; neither hid, that shall not be known. Therefore whatsoever ye
+have spoken in darkness shall be heard in the light; and that which ye
+have spoken in the ear in closets shall be proclaimed upon the
+house-tops." Of course we do not mean that Macbeth is represented as
+having this passage in his mind, but that Shakspere had the feeling of
+it when he wrote thus. What Macbeth means is, "Earth, do not hear me in
+the dark, which is suitable to the present horror, lest the very stones
+prate about it in the daylight, which is not suitable to such things;
+thus taking 'the present horror _from_ the time which now suits with
+it.'"
+
+Again, in the only piece of humour in the play--if that should be called
+humour which, taken in its relation to the consciousness of the
+principal characters, is as terrible as anything in the piece--the
+porter ends off his fantastic soliloquy, in which he personates the
+porter of hell-gate, with the words, "But this place is too cold for
+hell: I'll devil-porter it no further. I had thought to have let in some
+of all professions, that go the primrose way to the everlasting
+bonfire." Now what else had the writer in his mind but the verse from
+the Sermon on the Mount, "For wide is the gate, and broad is the way,
+that leadeth to destruction, and many there be which go in thereat"?
+
+It may be objected that such passages as these, being of the most
+commonly quoted, imply no profound acquaintance with Scripture, such as
+we have said Shakspere possessed. But no amount of knowledge of the
+_words_ of the Bible would be sufficient to justify the use of the word
+_profound_. What is remarkable in the employment of these passages, is
+not merely that they are so present to his mind that they come up for
+use in the most exciting moments of composition, but that he embodies
+the spirit of them in such a new form as reveals to minds saturated and
+deadened with the _sound_ of the words, the very visual image and
+spiritual meaning involved in them. "_The primrose way!_" And to what?
+
+We will confine ourselves to one passage more:--
+
+ "Macbeth
+ Is ripe for shaking, and the powers above
+ Put on their instruments."
+
+In the end of the 14th chapter of the Revelation we have the words,
+"Thrust in thy sickle, and reap: for the time is come for thee to reap;
+for the harvest of the earth is ripe." We suspect that Shakspere wrote,
+ripe _to_ shaking.
+
+The instances to which we have confined ourselves do not by any means
+belong to the most evident kind of proof that might be adduced of
+Shakspere's acquaintance with Scripture. The subject, in its ordinary
+aspect, has been elsewhere treated with far more fulness than our design
+would permit us to indulge in, even if it had not been done already. Our
+object has been to bring forward a few passages which seem to us to
+breathe the very spirit of individual passages in sacred writ, without
+direct use of the words themselves; and, of course, in such a case we
+can only appeal to the (no doubt) very various degrees of conviction
+which they may rouse in the minds of our readers.
+
+But there is one singular correspondence in another _almost_ literal
+quotation from the Gospel, which is to us wonderfully interesting. We
+are told that the words "eye of a needle," in the passage about a rich
+man entering the kingdom of heaven, mean the small side entrance in a
+city gate. Now, in "Richard II," act v. scene 5, _Richard_ quotes the
+passage thus:--
+
+ "It is as hard to come as for a camel
+ To thread the postern of a needle's eye;"
+
+showing that either the imagination of Shakspere suggested the real
+explanation, or he had taken pains to acquaint himself with the
+significance of the simile. We can hardly say that the correspondence
+might be _merely_ fortuitous; because, at the least, Shakspere looked
+for and found a suitable figure to associate with the words _eye of a
+needle_, and so fell upon the real explanation; except, indeed, he had
+no particular significance in using the word that meant a _little_ gate,
+instead of a word meaning any kind of entrance, which, with him, seems
+unlikely.
+
+We have not by any means proven that Shakspere's acquaintance with the
+Scriptures had an early date in his history; but certainly the Bible
+must have had a great influence upon him who was the highest
+representative mind of the time, its influence on the general
+development of the nation being unquestionable. This, therefore, seeing
+the Bible itself was just dawning full upon the country while Shakspere
+was becoming capable of understanding it, seems the suitable sequence in
+which to take notice of that influence, and of some of those passages in
+his works which testify to it.
+
+But, besides _the_ Bible, every nation has _a_ Bible, or at least _an_
+Old Testament, in its own history; and that Shakspere paid especial
+attention to this, is no matter of conjecture. We suspect his mode of
+writing historical plays is more after the fashion of the Bible
+histories than that of most writers of history. Indeed, the development
+and consequences of character and conduct are clear to those that read
+his histories with open eyes. Now, in his childhood Shakspere may have
+had some special incentive to the study of history springing out of the
+fact that his mother's grandfather had been "groom of the chamber to
+Henry VII.," while there is sufficient testimony that a further removed
+ancestor of his father, as well, had stood high in the favour of the
+same monarch. Therefore the history of the troublous times of the
+preceding century, which were brought to a close by the usurpation of
+Henry VII., would naturally be a subject of talk in the quiet household,
+where books and amusements such as now occupy our boys, were scarce or
+wanting altogether. The proximity of such a past of strife and
+commotion, crowded with eventful change, must have formed a background
+full of the material of excitement to an age which lived in the midst of
+a peculiarly exciting history of its own.
+
+Perhaps the chief intellectual characteristic of the age of Elizabeth
+was _activity_; this activity accounting even for much that is
+objectionable in its literature. Now this activity must have been
+growing in the people throughout the fifteenth century; the wars of the
+Roses, although they stifled literature, so that it had, as it were, to
+be born again in the beginning of the following century, being, after
+all, but as the "eager strife" of the shadow-leaves above the "genuine
+life" of the grass,--
+
+ "And the mute repose
+ Of sweetly breathing flowers."
+
+But when peace had fallen on the land, it would seem as if the impulse
+to action springing from strife still operated, as the waves will go on
+raving upon the shore after the wind has ceased, and found one outlet,
+amongst others, in literature, and peculiarly in dramatic literature.
+Peace, rendered yet more intense by the cessation of the cries of the
+tormentors, and the groans of the noble army of suffering martyrs, made,
+as it were, a kind of vacuum; and into that vacuum burst up the
+torrent-springs of a thousand souls--the thoughts that were no longer
+repressed--in the history of the past and the Utopian speculation on the
+future; in noble theology, capable statesmanship, and science at once
+brilliant and profound; in the voyage of discovery, and the change of
+the swan-like merchantman into a very fire-drake of war for the defence
+of the threatened shores; in the first brave speech of the Puritan in
+Elizabeth's Parliament, the first murmurs of the voice of liberty, soon
+to thunder throughout the land; in the naturalizing of foreign genius by
+translation, and the invention, or at least adoption, of a new and
+transcendent rhythm; in the song, in the epic, in the drama.
+
+So much for the general. Let us now, following the course of his life,
+recall, in a few sentences, some of the chief events which must have
+impressed the all-open mind of Shakspere in the earlier portion of his
+history.
+
+Perhaps it would not be going back too far to begin with the Massacre of
+Paris, which took place when he was eight years old. It caused so much
+horror in England, that it is not absurd to suppose that some black rays
+from the deed of darkness may have fallen on the mind of such a child as
+Shakspere.
+
+In strong contrast with the foregoing is the next event to which we
+shall refer.
+
+When he was eleven years old, Leicester gave the Queen that magnificent
+reception at Kenilworth which is so well known from its memorials in our
+literature. It has been suggested as probable, with quite enough of
+likelihood to justify a conjecture, that Shakspere may have been present
+at the dramatic representations then so gorgeously accumulated before
+her Majesty. If such was the fact, it is easy to imagine what an
+influence the shows must have had on the mind of the young dramatic
+genius, at a time when, happily, the critical faculty is not by any
+means so fully awake as are the receptive and exultant faculties, and
+when what the nature chiefly needs is excitement to growth, without
+which all pruning, the most artistic, is useless, as having nothing to
+operate upon.
+
+When he was fifteen years old, Sir Thomas North's translation of
+Plutarch (through the French) was first published. Any reader who has
+compared one of Shakspere's Roman plays with the corresponding life in
+Plutarch, will not be surprised that we should mention this as one of
+those events which must have been of paramount influence upon Shakspere.
+It is not likely that he became acquainted with the large folio with its
+medallion portraits first placed singly, and then repeated side by side
+for comparison, as soon as it made its appearance, but as we cannot tell
+when he began to read it, it seems as well to place it in the order its
+publication would assign to it. Besides, it evidently took such a hold
+of the man, that it is most probable his acquaintance with it began at a
+very early period of his history. Indeed, it seems to us to have been
+one of the most powerful aids to the development of that perception and
+discrimination of character with which he was gifted to such a
+remarkable degree. Nor would it be any derogation from the originality
+of his genius to say, that in a very pregnant sense he must have been a
+disciple of Plutarch. In those plays founded on Plutarch's stories he
+picked out every dramatic point, and occasionally employed the very
+phrases of North's nervous, graphic, and characteristic English. He
+seems to have felt that it was an honour to his work to embody in it the
+words of Plutarch himself, as he knew them first. From him he seems
+especially to have learned how to bring out the points of a character,
+by putting one man over against another, and remarking wherein they
+resembled each other and wherein they differed; after which fashion, in
+other plays as well as those, he partly arranged his dramatic
+characters.
+
+Not long after he went to London, when he was twenty-two, the death of
+Sir Philip Sidney at the age of thirty-two, must have had its
+unavoidable influence on him, seeing all Europe was in mourning for the
+death of its model, almost ideal man. In England the general mourning,
+both in the court and the city, which lasted for months, is supposed by
+Dr. Zouch to have been the first instance of the kind; that is, for the
+death of a private person. Renowned over the civilized world for
+everything for which a man could be renowned, his literary fame must
+have had a considerable share in the impression his death would make on
+such a man as Shakspere. For although none of his works were published
+till after his death, the first within a few months of that event, his
+fame as a writer was widely spread in private, and report of the same
+could hardly fail to reach one who, although he had probably no friends
+of rank as yet, kept such keen open ears for all that was going on
+around him. But whether or not he had heard of the literary greatness of
+Sir Philip before his death, the "Arcadia," which was first published
+four years after his death (1590), and which in eight years had reached
+the third edition--with another still in Scotland the following
+year--must have been full of interest to Shakspere. This book is very
+different indeed from the ordinary impression of it which most minds
+have received through the confident incapacity of the critics of last
+century. Few books have been published more fruitful in the results and
+causes of thought, more sparkling with fancy, more evidently the outcome
+of rich and noble habit, than this "Arcadia" of Philip Sidney. That
+Shakspere read it, is sufficiently evident from the fact that from it he
+has taken the secondary but still important plots in two of his plays.
+
+Although we are anticipating, it is better to mention here another book,
+published in the same year, namely, 1590, when Shakspere was
+six-and-twenty: the first three books of Spenser's "Faery Queen." Of its
+reception and character it is needless here to say anything further
+than, of the latter, that nowadays the depths of its teaching, heartily
+prized as that was by no less a man than Milton, are seldom explored.
+But it would be a labour of months to set out the known and imagined
+sources of the knowledge and spiritual pabulum of the man who laid every
+mental region so under contribution, that he has been claimed by almost
+every profession as having been at one time or another a student of its
+peculiar science, so marvellously in him was the power of assimilation
+combined with that of reproduction.
+
+To go back a little: in 1587, when he was three-and-twenty, Mary Queen
+of Scots was executed. In the following year came that mighty victory of
+England, and her allies the winds and the waters, over the towering
+pride of the Spanish Armada. Out from the coasts, like the birds from
+their cliffs to defend their young, flew the little navy, many of the
+vessels only able to carry a few guns; and fighting, fire-ships and
+tempest left this island,--
+
+ "This precious stone set in the silver sea,"
+
+still a "blessed plot," with an accumulated obligation to liberty which
+can only be paid by helping others to be free; and when she utterly
+forgets which, her doom is sealed, as surely as that of the old empires
+which passed away in their self-indulgence and wickedness.
+
+When Shakspere was about thirty-two, Sir Walter Raleigh published his
+glowing account of Guiana, which instantly provided the English mind
+with an earthly paradise or fairy-land. Raleigh himself seems to have
+been too full of his own reports for us to be able to suppose that he
+either invented or disbelieved them; especially when he represents the
+heavenly country to which, in expectation of his execution, he is
+looking forward, after the fashion of those regions of the wonderful
+West:--
+
+ "Then the blessed Paths wee'l travel,
+ Strow'd with Rubies thick as gravel;
+ Sealings of Diamonds, Saphire floors,
+ High walls of Coral, and Pearly Bowers."
+
+Such were some of the influences which widened the region of thought,
+and excited the productive power, in the minds of the time. After this
+period there were fewer of such in Shakspere's life; and if there had
+been more of them they would have been of less import as to their
+operation on a mind more fully formed and more capable of choosing its
+own influences. Let us now give a backward glance at the history of the
+art which Shakspere chose as the means of easing his own mind of that
+wealth which, like the gold and the silver, has a moth and rust of its
+own, except it be kept in use by being sent out for the good of our
+neighbours.
+
+It was a mighty gain for the language and the people when, in the middle
+of the fourteenth century, by permission of the Pope, the miracle-plays,
+most probably hitherto represented in Norman-French, as Mr. Collier
+supposes, began to be represented in English. Most likely there had been
+dramatic representations of a sort from the very earliest period of the
+nation's history; for, to begin with the lowest form, at what time would
+there not, for the delight of listeners, have been the imitation of
+animal sounds, such as the drama of the conversation between an
+attacking poodle and a fiercely repellent puss? Through innumerable
+gradations of childhood would the art grow before it attained the first
+formal embodiment in such plays as those, so-called, of miracles,
+consisting just of Scripture stories, both canonical and apocryphal,
+dramatized after the rudest fashion. Regarded from the height which the
+art had reached two hundred and fifty years after, "how dwarfed a growth
+of cold and night" do these miracle-plays show themselves! But at a time
+when there was no printing, little preaching, and Latin prayers, we
+cannot help thinking that, grotesque and ill-imagined as they are, they
+must have been of unspeakable value for the instruction of a people
+whose spiritual digestion was not of a sort to be injured by the
+presence of a quite abnormal quantity of husk and saw-dust in their
+food. And occasionally we find verses of true poetic feeling, such as
+the following, in "The Fall of Man:"--
+
+ _Deus._ Adam, that with myn handys I made,
+ Where art thou now? What hast thou wrought?
+
+ _Adam._ A! lord, for synne oure floures do ffade,
+ I here thi voys, but I se the nought;
+
+implying that the separation between God and man, although it had
+destroyed the beatific vision, was not yet so complete as to make the
+creature deaf to the voice of his Maker. Nor are the words of Eve, with
+which she begs her husband, in her shame and remorse, to strangle her,
+odd and quaint as they are, without an almost overpowering pathos:--
+
+ "Now stomble we on stalk and ston;
+ My wyt awey is fro me gon:
+ Wrythe on to my necke bon
+ With, hardnesse of thin honde."
+
+To this Adam commences his reply with the verses,--
+
+ "Wyff, thi wytt is not wurthe a rosche.
+ Leve woman, turn thi thought."
+
+And this portion of the general representation ends with these verses,
+spoken by Eve:--
+
+ "Alas! that ever we wrought this synne.
+ Oure bodely sustenauns for to wynne,
+ Ye must delve and I xal spynne,
+ In care to ledyn oure lyff."
+
+In connexion with these plays, one of the contemplations most
+interesting to us is, the contrast between them and the places in which
+they were occasionally represented. For though the scaffolds on which
+they were shown were usually erected in market-places or churchyards,
+sometimes they rose in the great churches, and the plays were
+represented with the aid of ecclesiastics. Here, then, we have the rude
+beginnings of the dramatic art, in which the devil is the unfortunate
+buffoon, giving occasion to the most exuberant laughter of the
+people--here is this rude boyhood, if we may so say, of the one art,
+roofed in with the perfection of another, of architecture; a perfection
+which now we can only imitate at our best: below, the clumsy contrivance
+and the vulgar jest; above, the solemn heaven of uplifted arches, their
+mysterious glooms ringing with the delight of the multitude: the play of
+children enclosed in the heart of prayer aspiring in stone. But it was
+not by any means all laughter; and so much, nearer than architecture is
+the drama to the ordinary human heart, that we cannot help thinking
+these grotesque representations did far more to arouse the inward life
+and conscience of the people than all the glory into which the
+out-working spirit of the monks had compelled the stubborn stone to
+bourgeon and blossom.
+
+But although, no doubt, there was some kind of growth going on in the
+drama even during the dreary fifteenth century, we must not suppose that
+it was by any regular and steady progression that it arrived at the
+grandeur of the Elizabethan perfection. It was rather as if a dry,
+knotty, uncouth, but vigorous plant suddenly opened out its inward life
+in a flower of surpassing splendour and loveliness. When the
+representation of real historical persons in the miracle-plays gave way
+before the introduction of unreal allegorical personages, and the
+miracle-play was almost driven from the stage by the "play of morals" as
+it was called, there was certainly no great advance made in dramatic
+representation. The chief advantage gained was room for more variety;
+while in some important respects these plays fell off from the merits of
+the preceding kind. Indeed, any attempt to teach morals allegorically
+must lack that vivifying fire of faith working in the poorest
+representations of a history which the people heartily believed and
+loved. Nor when we come to examine the favourite amusement of later
+royalty, do we find that the interludes brought forward in the pauses of
+the banquets of Henry VIII. have a claim to any refinement upon those
+old miracle-plays. They have gained in facility and wit; they have lost
+in poetry. They have lost pathos too, and have gathered grossness. In
+the comedies which soon appear, there is far more of fun than of art;
+and although the historical play had existed for some time, and the
+streams of learning from the inns of court had flowed in to swell that
+of the drama, it is not before the appearance of Shakspere that we find
+any _whole_ of artistic or poetic value. And this brings us to another
+branch of the subject, of which it seems to us that the importance has
+never been duly acknowledged. We refer to the use, if not invention, of
+_blank verse_ in England, and its application to the purposes of the
+drama. It seems to us that in any contemplation of Shakspere and his
+times, the consideration of these points ought not to be omitted.
+
+We have in the present day one grand master of blank verse, the Poet
+Laureate. But where would he have been if Milton had not gone before
+him; or if the verse amidst which he works like an informing spirit had
+not existed at all? No doubt he might have invented it himself; but how
+different would the result have been from the verse which he will now
+leave behind him to lie side by side for comparison with that of the
+master of the epic! All thanks then to Henry Howard, Earl of Surrey!
+who, if, dying on the scaffold at the early age of thirty, he has left
+no poetry in itself of much value, yet so wrote that he refined the
+poetic usages of the language, and, above all, was the first who ever
+made blank verse in English. He used it in translating the second and
+fourth books of Virgil's "Aeneid." This translation he probably wrote
+not long before his execution, which took place in 1547, seventeen years
+before the birth of Shakspere. There are passages of excellence in the
+work, and very rarely does a verse quite fail. But, as might be
+expected, it is somewhat stiff, and, as it were, stunted in sound;
+partly from the fact that the lines are too much divided, where
+_distinction_ would have been sufficient. It would have been strange,
+indeed, if he had at once made a free use of a rhythm which every
+boy-poet now thinks he can do what he pleases with, but of which only a
+few ever learn the real scope and capabilities. Besides, the difficulty
+was increased by the fact that the nearest approach to it in measure was
+the heroic couplet, so well known in our language, although scarce one
+who has used it has come up to the variousness of its modelling in the
+hands of Chaucer, with whose writings Surrey was of course familiar. But
+various as is its melody in Chaucer, the fact of there being always an
+anticipation of the perfecting of a rhyme at the end of the couplet
+would make one accustomed to heroic verse ready to introduce a
+rhythmical fall and kind of close at the end of every blank verse in
+trying to write that measure for the first time. Still, as we say, there
+is good verse in Surrey's translation. Take the following lines for a
+specimen, in which the fault just mentioned is scarcely perceptible.
+Mercury is the subject of them.
+
+ "His golden wings he knits, which him transport,
+ With a light wind above the earth and seas;
+ And then with him his wand he took, whereby
+ He calls from hell pale ghosts.
+ * * * * *
+ "By power whereof he drives the winds away,
+ And passeth eke amid the troubled clouds,
+ Till in his flight he 'gan descry the top
+ And the steep flanks of rocky Atlas' hill
+ That with his crown sustains the welkin up;
+ Whose head, forgrown with pine, circled alway
+ With misty clouds, is beaten with wind and storm;
+ His shoulders spread with snow; and from his chin
+ The springs descend; his beard frozen with ice.
+ Here Mercury with equal shining wings
+ First touched."
+
+In all comparative criticism justice demands that he who began any mode
+should not be compared with those who follow only on the ground of
+absolute merit in the productions themselves; for while he may be
+inferior in regard to quality, he stands on a height, as the inventor,
+to which they, as imitators, can never ascend, although they may climb
+other and loftier heights, through the example he has set them. It is
+doubtful, however, whether Surrey himself invented this verse, or only
+followed the lead of some poet of Italy or Spain; in both which
+countries it is said that blank verse had been used before Surrey wrote
+English in that measure.
+
+Here then we have the low beginnings of blank verse. It was nearly a
+hundred and twenty years before Milton took it up, and, while it served
+him well, glorified it; nor are we aware of any poem of worth written in
+that measure between. Here, of course, we speak of the epic form of the
+verse, which, as being uttered _ore rotundo_, is necessarily of
+considerable difference from the form it assumes in the drama.
+
+Let us now glance for a moment at the forms of composition in use for
+dramatic purposes before blank verse came into favour with play-writers.
+The nature of the verse employed in the miracle-plays will be
+sufficiently seen from the short specimens already given. These plays
+were made up of carefully measured and varied lines, with correct and
+superabundant rhymes, and no marked lack of melody or rhythm. But as far
+as we have made acquaintance with the moral and other rhymed plays which
+followed, there was a great falling off in these respects. They are in
+great measure composed of long, irregular lines, with a kind of
+rhythmical progress rather than rhythm in them. They are exceedingly
+difficult to read musically, at least to one of our day. Here are a few
+verses of the sort, from the dramatic poem, rather than drama, called
+somewhat improperly "The Moral Play of God's Promises," by John Bale,
+who died the year before Shakspere was born. It is the first in
+Dodsley's collection. The verses have some poetic merit. The rhythm will
+be allowed to be difficult at least. The verses are arranged in stanzas,
+of which we give two. In most plays the verses are arranged in rhyming
+couplets only.
+
+ _Pater Coelestis._
+
+ I have with fearcenesse mankynde oft tymes corrected,
+ And agayne, I have allured hym by swete promes.
+ I have sent sore plages, when he hath me neglected,
+ And then by and by, most comfortable swetnes.
+ To wynne hym to grace, bothe mercye and ryghteousnes
+ I have exercysed, yet wyll he not amende.
+ Shall I now lose hym, or shall I him defende?
+
+ In hys most myschefe, most hygh grace will I sende,
+ To overcome hym by favoure, if it may be.
+ With hys abusyons no longar wyll I contende,
+ But now accomplysh my first wyll and decre.
+ My worde beynge flesh, from hens shall set hym fre,
+ Hym teachynge a waye of perfyght ryhteousnesse,
+ That he shall not nede to perysh in hys weaknesse.
+
+To our ears, at least, the older miracle-plays were greatly superior. It
+is interesting to find, however, in this apparently popular mode of
+"building the rhyme"--certainly not the _lofty_ rhyme, for no such
+crumbling foundation could carry any height of superstructure--the
+elements of the most popular rhythm of the present day; a rhythm
+admitting of any number of syllables in the line, from four up to
+twelve, or even more, and demanding only that there shall be not more
+than four accented syllables in the line. A song written with any spirit
+in this measure has, other things _not_ being quite equal, yet almost a
+certainty of becoming more popular than one written in any other
+measure. Most of Barry Cornwall's and Mrs. Heman's songs are written in
+it. Scott's "Lay of the Last Minstrel," Coleridge's "Christabel,"
+Byron's "Siege of Corinth," Shelley's "Sensitive Plant," are examples of
+the rhythm. Spenser is the first who has made good use of it. One of the
+months in the "Shepherd's Calendar" is composed in it. We quote a few
+lines from this poem, to show at once the kind we mean:--
+
+ "No marvel, Thenot, if thou can bear
+ Cheerfully the winter's wrathful cheer;
+ For age and winter accord full nigh;
+ This chill, that cold; this crooked, that wry;
+ And as the lowering weather looks down,
+ So seemest thou like Good Friday to frown:
+ But my flowering youth is foe to frost;
+ My ship unwont in storms to be tost."
+
+We can trace it slightly in Sir Thomas Wyatt, and we think in others who
+preceded Spenser. There is no sign of it in Chaucer. But we judge it to
+be the essential rhythm of Anglo-Saxon poetry, which will quite
+harmonize with, if it cannot explain, the fact of its being the most
+popular measure still. Shakspere makes a little use of it in one, if not
+in more, of his plays, though it there partakes of the irregular
+character of that of the older plays which he is imitating. But we
+suspect the clowns of the authorship of some of the rhymes, "speaking
+more than was set down for them," evidently no uncommon offence.
+
+Prose was likewise in use for the drama at an early period.
+
+But we must now regard the application of blank verse to the use of the
+drama. And in this part of our subject we owe most to the investigations
+of Mr. Collier, than whom no one has done more to merit our gratitude
+for such aids. It is universally acknowledged that "Ferrex and Porrex"
+was the first drama in blank verse. But it was never represented on the
+public stage. It was the joint production of Thomas Sackville,
+afterwards Lord Buckhurst and Earl of Dorset, and Thomas Norton, both
+gentlemen of the Inner Temple, by the members of which it was played
+before the Queen at Whitehall in 1561, three years before Shakspere was
+born. As to its merits, the impression left by it upon our minds is such
+that, although the verse is decent, and in some respects irreproachable,
+we think the time spent in reading it must be all but lost to any but
+those who must verify to themselves their literary profession; a
+profession which, like all other professions, involves a good deal of
+disagreeable duty. We spare our readers all quotation, there being no
+occasion to show what blank verse of the commonest description is. But
+we beg to be allowed to state that this drama by no means represents the
+poetic powers of Thomas Sackville. For although we cannot agree with
+Hallam's general criticism, either for or against Sackville, and
+although we admire Spenser, we hope, as much as that writer could have
+admired him, we yet venture to say that not only may some of Sackville's
+personifications "fairly be compared with some of the most poetical
+passages in Spenser," but that there is in this kind in Sackville a
+strength and simplicity of representation which surpasses that of
+Spenser in passages in which the latter probably imitated the former. We
+refer to the allegorical personages in Sackville's "Induction to the
+Mirrour of Magistrates," and in Spenser's description of the "House of
+Pride."
+
+Mr. Collier judges that the play in blank verse first represented on the
+public stage was the "Tamburlaine" of Christopher Marlowe, and that it
+was acted before 1587, at which date Shakspere would be twenty-three.
+This was followed by other and better plays by the same author. Although
+we cannot say much for the dramatic art of Marlowe, he has far surpassed
+every one that went before him in dramatic _poetry_. The passages that
+might worthily be quoted from Marlowe's writings for the sake of their
+poetry are innumerable, notwithstanding that there are many others which
+occupy a border land between poetry and bombast, and are such that it is
+to us impossible to say to which class they rather belong. Of course it
+is easy for a critic to gain the credit of common-sense at the same time
+that he saves himself the trouble of doing what he too frequently shows
+himself incapable of doing to any good purpose--we mean _thinking_--by
+classing all such passages together as bombastical nonsense; but even in
+the matter of poetry and bombast, a wise reader will recognize that
+extremes so entirely meet, without being in the least identical, that
+they are capable of a sort of chemico-literary admixture, if not of
+combination. Goethe himself need not have been ashamed to have written
+one or two of the scenes in Marlowe's "Faust;" not that we mean to imply
+that they in the least resemble Goethe's handiwork. His verse is, for
+dramatic purposes, far inferior to Shakspere's; but it was a great
+matter for Shakspere that Marlowe preceded him, and helped to prepare to
+his hand the tools and fashions he needed. The provision of blank verse
+for Shakspere's use seems to us worthy of being called providential,
+even in a system in which we cannot believe that there is any chance.
+For as the stage itself is elevated a few feet above the ordinary level,
+because it is the scene of a _representation_, just so the speech of the
+drama, dealing not with unreal but with ideal persons, the fool being a
+worthy fool, and the villain a worthy villain, needs to be elevated some
+tones above that of ordinary life, which is generally flavoured with so
+much of the _commonplace_. Now the commonplace has no place at all in
+the drama of Shakspere, which fact at once elevates it above the tone of
+ordinary life. And so the mode of the speech must be elevated as well;
+therefore from prose into blank verse. If we go beyond this, we cease to
+be natural for the stage as well as life; and the result is that kind of
+composition well enough known in Shakspere's time, which he ridicules in
+the recitations of the player in "Hamlet," about _Priam_ and _Hecuba_.
+We could show the very passages of the play-writer Nash which Shakspere
+imitates in these. To use another figure, Shakspere, in the same play,
+instructs the players "to hold, as 'twere, the mirror up to nature." Now
+every one must have felt that somehow there is a difference between the
+appearance of any object or group of objects immediately presented to
+the eye, and the appearance of the same object or objects in a mirror.
+Nature herself is not the same in the mirror held up to her. Everything
+changes sides in this representation; and the room which is an ordinary,
+well-known, homely room, gains something of the strange and poetic when
+regarded in the mirror over the fire. Now for this representation, for
+this mirror-reflection on the stage, blank verse is just the suitable
+glass to receive the silvering of the genius-mind behind it.
+
+But if Shakspere had had to sit down and make his tools first, and then
+quarry his stone and fell his timber for the building of his house,
+instead of finding everything ready to his hand for dressing his stone
+already hewn, for sawing and carving the timber already in logs and
+planks beside him, no doubt his house would have been built; but can we
+with any reason suppose that it would have proved such "a lordly
+pleasure-house"? Not even Shakspere could do without his poor little
+brothers who preceded him, and, like the goblins and gnomes of the
+drama, got everything out of the bowels of the dark earth, ready for the
+master, whom it would have been a shame to see working in the gloom and
+the dust instead of in the open eye of the day. Nor is anything so
+helpful to the true development of power as the possibility of free
+action for as much of the power as is already operative. This room for
+free action was provided by blank verse.
+
+Yet when Shakspere came first upon the scene of dramatic labour, he had
+to serve his private apprenticeship, to which the apprenticeship of the
+age in the drama, had led up. He had to act first of all. Driven to
+London and the drama by an irresistible impulse, when the choice of some
+profession was necessary to make him independent of his father, seeing
+he was himself, though very young, a married man, the first form in
+which the impulse to the drama would naturally show itself in him would
+be the desire to act; for the outside relations would first operate. As
+to the degree of merit he possessed as an actor we have but scanty means
+of judging; for afterwards, in his own plays, he never took the best
+characters, having written them for his friend Richard Burbage. Possibly
+the dramatic impulse was sufficiently appeased by the writing of the
+play, and he desired no further satisfaction from personal
+representation; although the amount of study spent upon the higher
+department of the art might have been more than sufficient to render him
+unrivalled as well in the presentation of his own conceptions. But the
+dramatic spring, having once broken the upper surface, would scoop out a
+deeper and deeper well for itself to play in, and the actor would soon
+begin to work upon the parts he had himself to study for presentation.
+It being found that he greatly bettered his own parts, those of others
+would be submitted to him, and at length whole plays committed to his
+revision, of which kind there may be several in the collection of his
+works. If the feather-end of his pen is just traceable in "Titus
+Andronicus," the point of it is much more evident, and to as good
+purpose as Beaumont or Fletcher could have used his to, at the best, in
+"Pericles, Prince of Tyre." Nor would it be long before he would submit
+one of his own plays for approbation; and then the whole of his dramatic
+career lies open before him, with every possible advantage for
+perfecting the work, for the undertaking of which he was better
+qualified by nature than probably any other man whosoever; for he knew
+everything about acting, practically--about the play-house and its
+capabilities, about stage necessities, about the personal endowments and
+individual qualifications of each of the company--so that, when he was
+writing a play, he could distribute the parts before they even appeared
+upon paper, and write for each actor with the very living form of the
+ideal person present "in his mind's eye," and often to his bodily sight;
+so that the actual came in aid of the ideal, as it always does if the
+ideal be genuine, and the loftiest conceptions proved the truest to
+visible nature.
+
+This close relation of Shakspere to the actual leads us to a general and
+remarkable fact, which again will lead us back to Shakspere. All the
+great writers of Queen Elizabeth's time were men of affairs; they were
+not literary men merely, in the general acceptation of the word at
+present. Hooker was a hard-working, sheep-keeping, cradle-rocking pastor
+of a country parish. Bacon's legal duties were innumerable before he
+became Lord Keeper and Lord Chancellor. Raleigh was soldier, sailor,
+adventurer, courtier, politician, discoverer: indeed, it is to his
+imprisonment that we are indebted for much the most ambitious of his
+literary undertakings, "The History of the World," a work which for
+simple majesty of subject and style is hardly to be surpassed in prose.
+Sidney, at the age of three-and-twenty, received the highest praise for
+the management of a secret embassy to the Emperor of Germany; took the
+deepest and most active interest in the political affairs of his
+country; would have sailed with Sir Francis Drake for South American
+discovery; and might probably have been king of poor Poland, if the
+queen had not been too selfish or wise to spare him. The whole of his
+literary productions was the work of his spare hours. Spenser himself,
+who was, except Shakspere, the most purely a literary man of them all,
+was at one time Secretary to the Lord Deputy of Ireland, and, later in
+life, Sheriff of Cork. Nor is the remark true only of the writers of
+Elizabeth's period, or of the country of England.
+
+It seems to us one of the greatest advantages that can befall a poet, to
+be drawn out of his study, and still more out of the chamber of imagery
+in his own thoughts, to behold and speculate upon the embodiment of
+Divine thoughts and purposes in men and their affairs around him. Now
+Shakspere had no public appointment, but he reaped all the advantage
+which such could have given him, and more, from the perfection of his
+dramatic position. It was not with making plays alone that he had to do;
+but, himself an actor, himself in a great measure the owner of more than
+one theatre, with a little realm far more difficult to rule than many a
+kingdom--a company, namely, of actors--although possibly less difficult
+from the fact that they were only men and boys; with the pecuniary
+affairs of the management likewise under his supervision--he must have
+found, in the relations and necessities of his own profession, not
+merely enough of the actual to keep him real in his representations, but
+almost sufficient opportunity for his one great study, that of mankind,
+independently of social and friendly relations, which in his case were
+of the widest and deepest.
+
+But Shakspere had not business relations merely: he was a man of
+business. There is a common blunder manifested, both in theory on the
+one side, and in practice on the other, which the life of Shakspere sets
+full in the light. The theory is, that genius is a sort of abnormal
+development of the imagination, to the detriment and loss of the
+practical powers, and that a genius is therefore a kind of incapable,
+incompetent being, as far as worldly matters are concerned. The most
+complete refutation of this notion lies in the fact that the greatest
+genius the world has known was a successful man in common affairs. While
+his genius grew in strength, fervour, and executive power, his worldly
+condition rose as well; he became a man of importance in the eyes of his
+townspeople, by whom he would not have been honoured if he had not made
+money; and he purchased landed property in his native place with the
+results of his management of his theatres.
+
+The practical blunder lies in the notion cherished occasionally by young
+people ambitious of literary distinction, that in the pursuit of such
+things they must be content with the poverty to which the world dooms
+its greatest men; accepting their very poverty as an additional proof of
+their own genius. If this means that the poet is not to make money his
+object, it means well: no man should. But if it means either that the
+world is unkind, or that the poet is not to "gather up the fragments,
+that nothing be lost," it means ill. Shakspere did not make haste to be
+rich. He neither blamed, courted, nor neglected the world: he was
+friendly with it. He _could_ not have pinched and scraped; but neither
+did he waste or neglect his worldly substance, which is God's gift too.
+Many immense fortunes have been made, not by absolute dishonesty, but in
+ways to which a man of genius ought to be yet more ashamed than another
+to condescend; but it does not therefore follow that if a man of genius
+will do honest work he will not make a fair livelihood by it, which for
+all good results of intellect and heart is better than a great fortune.
+But then Shakspere began with doing what he could. He did not consent to
+starve until the world should recognize his genius, or grumble against
+the blindness of the nation in not seeing what it was impossible it
+should see before it was fairly set forth. He began at once to supply
+something which the world wanted; for it wants many an honest thing. He
+went on the stage and acted, and so gained power to reveal the genius
+which he possessed; and the world, in its possible measure, was not slow
+to recognize it. Many a young fellow who has entered life with the one
+ambition of being a poet, has failed because he did not perceive that it
+is better to be a man than to be a poet, that it is his first duty to
+get an honest living by doing some honest work that he can do, and for
+which there is a demand, although it may not be the most pleasant
+employment. Time would have shown whether he was meant to be a poet or
+not; and if he had been no poet he would have been no beggar; and if he
+had turned out a poet, it would have been partly in virtue of that
+experience of life and truth, gained in his case in the struggle for
+bread, without which, gained somehow, a man may be a sweet dreamer, but
+can be no strong maker, no poet. In a word, here is _the_ Englishman of
+genius, beginning life with nothing, and dying, not rich, but easy and
+honoured; and this by doing what no one else could do, writing dramas in
+which the outward grandeur or beauty is but an exponent of the inward
+worth; hiding pearls for the wise even within the jewelled play of the
+variegated bubbles of fancy, which he blew while he wrought, for the
+innocent delight of his thoughtless brothers and sisters. Wherever the
+rainbow of Shakspere's genius stands, there lies, indeed, at the foot of
+its glorious arch, a golden key, which will open the secret doors of
+truth, and admit the humble seeker into the presence of Wisdom, who,
+having cried in the streets in vain, sits at home and waits for him who
+will come to find her. And Shakspere had cakes and ale, although he was
+virtuous.
+
+But what do we know about the character of Shakspere? How can we tell
+the inner life of a man who has uttered himself in dramas, in which of
+course it is impossible that he should ever speak in his own person? No
+doubt he may speak his own sentiments through the mouths of many of his
+persons; but how are we to know in what cases he does so?--At least we
+may assert, as a self-evident negative, that a passage treating of a
+wide question put into the mouth of a person despised and rebuked by the
+best characters in the play, is not likely to contain any cautiously
+formed and cherished opinion of the dramatist. At first sight this may
+seem almost a truism; but we have only to remind our readers that one of
+the passages oftenest quoted with admiration, and indeed separately
+printed and illuminated, is "The Seven Ages of Man," a passage full of
+inhuman contempt for humanity and unbelief in its destiny, in which not
+one of the seven ages is allowed to pass over its poor sad stage without
+a sneer; and that this passage is given by Shakspere to the _blase_
+sensualist _Jaques_ in "As You Like it," a man who, the good and wise
+_Duke_ says, has been as vile as it is possible for man to be, so vile
+that it would be an additional sin in him to rebuke sin; a man who never
+was capable of seeing what is good in any man, and hates men's vices
+_because_ he hates themselves, seeing in them only the reflex of his own
+disgust. Shakspere knew better than to say that all the world is a
+stage, and all the men and women merely players. He had been a player
+himself, but only on the stage: _Jaques_ had been a player where he
+ought to have been a true man. The whole of his account of human life is
+contradicted and exposed at once by the entrance, the very moment when
+he has finished his wicked burlesque, of _Orlando_, the young master,
+carrying _Adam_, the old servant, upon his back. The song that
+immediately follows, sings true: "Most friendship is feigning, most
+loving mere folly." But between the _all_ of _Jaques_ and the _most_ of
+the song, there is just the difference between earth and hell.--Of
+course, both from a literary and dramatic point of view, "The Seven
+Ages" is perfect.
+
+Now let us make one positive statement to balance the other: that
+wherever we find, in the mouth of a noble character, not stock
+sentiments of stage virtue, but appreciation of a truth which it needs
+deep thought and experience united with love of truth, to discover or
+verify for one's self, especially if the truth be of a sort which most
+men will fail not merely to recognize as a truth, but to understand at
+all, because the understanding of it depends on the foregoing spiritual
+perception--then we think we may receive the passage as an expression of
+the inner soul of the writer. He must have seen it before he could have
+said it; and to see such a truth is to love it; or rather, love of truth
+in the general must have preceded and enabled to the discovery of it.
+Such a passage is the speech of the _Duke_, opening the second act of
+the play just referred to, "As You Like it." The lesson it contains is,
+that the well-being of a man cannot be secured except he partakes of the
+ills of life, "the penalty of Adam." And it seems to us strange that the
+excellent editors of the Cambridge edition, now in the course of
+publication--a great boon to all students of Shakspere--should not have
+perceived that the original reading, that of the folios, is the right
+one,--
+
+ "Here feel we _not_ the penalty of Adam?"
+
+which, with the point of interrogation supplied, furnishes the true
+meaning of the whole passage; namely, that the penalty of Adam is just
+what makes the "wood more free from peril than the envious court,"
+teaching each "not to think of himself more highly than he ought to
+think."
+
+But Shakspere, although everywhere felt, is nowhere seen in his plays.
+He is too true an artist to show his own face from behind the play of
+life with which he fills his stage. What we can find of him there we
+must find by regarding the whole, and allowing the spiritual essence of
+the whole to find its way to our brain, and thence to our heart. The
+student of Shakspere becomes imbued with the idea of his character. It
+exhales from his writings. And when we have found the main drift of any
+play--the grand rounding of the whole--then by that we may interpret
+individual passages. It is alone in their relation to the whole that we
+can do them full justice, and in their relation to the whole that we
+discover the mind of the master.
+
+But we have another source of more direct enlightenment as to Shakspere
+himself. We only say more _direct_, not more certain or extended
+enlightenment. We have one collection of poems in which he speaks in his
+own person and of himself. Of course we refer to his sonnets. Though
+these occupy, with their presentation of himself, such a small relative
+space, they yet admirably round and complete, to our eyes, the circle of
+his individuality. In them and the plays the common saying--one of the
+truest--that extremes meet, is verified. No man is complete in whom
+there are no extremes, or in whom those extremes do not meet. Now the
+very individuality of Shakspere, judged by his dramas alone, has been
+declared nonexistent; while in the sonnets he manifests some of the
+deepest phases of a healthy self-consciousness. We do not intend to
+enter into the still unsettled question as to whether these sonnets were
+addressed to a man or a woman. We have scarcely a doubt left on the
+question ourselves, as will be seen from the argument we found on our
+conviction. We cannot say we feel much interest in the other question,
+_If a man, what man?_ A few placed at the end, arranged as they have
+come down to us, are beyond doubt addressed to a woman. But the
+difference in tone between these and the others we think very
+remarkable. Possibly at the time they were written--most of them early
+in his life, as it appears to us, although they were not published till
+the year 1609, when he was forty-five years of age, Meres referring to
+them in the year 1598, eleven years before, as known "among his private
+friends"--he had not known such women as he knew afterwards, and hence
+the true devotion of his soul is given to a friend of his own sex.
+Gervinus, whose lectures on Shakspere, profound and lofty to a degree
+unattempted by any other interpreter, we are glad to find have been done
+into a suitable English translation, under the superintendence of the
+author himself--Gervinus says somewhere in them that, as Shakspere lived
+and wrote, his ideal of womanhood grew nobler and purer. Certainly the
+woman to whom the last few of these sonnets are addressed was neither
+noble nor pure. We think, in this matter at least, they record one of
+his early experiences.
+
+We shall briefly indicate what we find in these sonnets about the man
+himself, and shall commence with what is least pleasing and of least
+value.
+
+We must confess, then, that, probably soon after he came first to
+London, he, then a married man, had an intrigue with a married woman, of
+which there are indications that he was afterwards deeply ashamed. One
+little incident seems curiously traceable: that he had given her a set
+of tablets which his friend had given him; and the sonnet in which he
+excuses himself to his friend for having done so, seems to us the only
+piece of special pleading, and therefore ungenuine expression, in the
+whole. This friend, to whom the rest of the sonnets are addressed, made
+the acquaintance of this woman, and both were false to Shakspere. Even
+Shakspere could not keep the love of a worthless woman. So much the
+better for him; but it is a sad story at best. Yet even in this
+environment of evil we see the nobility of the man, and his real self.
+The sonnets in which he mourns his friend's falsehood, forgives him, and
+even finds excuses for him, that he may not lose his own love of him,
+are, to our minds, amongst the most beautiful, as they are the most
+profound. Of these are the 33rd and 34th. Nor does he stop here, but
+proceeds in the following, the 35th, to comfort his friend in his grief
+for his offence, even accusing himself of offence in having made more
+excuse for his fault than the fault needed! But to leave this part of
+his history, which, as far as we know, stands alone, and yet cannot with
+truth be passed by, any more than the story of the crime of David,
+though in this case there is no comparison to be made between the two
+further than the primary fact, let us look at the one reality which,
+from a spiritual point of view, independently of the literary beauties
+of these poems, causes them to stand all but alone in literature. We
+mean what has been unavoidably touched upon already, the devotion of his
+friendship. We have said this makes the poems stand _all but alone_; for
+we ought to be better able to understand these poems of Shakspere, from
+the fact that in our day has appeared the only other poem which is like
+these, and which casts back a light upon them.
+
+ "Yet turn thee to the doubtful shore,
+ Where thy first form was made a man:
+ I loved thee, spirit, and love; nor can
+ The soul of Shakspeare love thee more."
+
+So sings the Poet of our day, in the loftiest of his poems--"In
+Memoriam"--addressing the spirit of his vanished friend. In the midst of
+his song arises the thought of _the Poet_ of all time, who loved his
+friend too, and would have lost him in a way far worse than death, had
+not his love been too strong even for that death, alone ghastly, which
+threatened to cut the golden chain that bound them, and part them by the
+gulf impassable. Tennyson's friend had never wronged him; and to the
+divineness of Shakspere's love is added that of forgiveness. Such love
+as this between man and man is rare, and therefore to the mind which is
+in itself no way rare, incredible, because unintelligible. But though
+all the commonest things are very divine, yet divine individuality is
+and will be a rare thing at any given period on the earth. Faith, in its
+ideal sense, will always be hard to find on the earth. But perhaps this
+kind of affection between man and man may, as Coleridge indicates in his
+"Table Talk," have been more common in the reigns of Elizabeth and James
+than it is now. There is a certain dread of the demonstrative in the
+present day, which may, perhaps, be carried into regions where it is out
+of place, and hinder the development of a devotion which must be real,
+and grand, and divine, if one man such as Shakspere or Tennyson has ever
+felt it. If one has felt it, humanity may claim it. And surely He who is
+_the_ Son of man has verified the claim. We believe there are indeed few
+of us who know what _to love our neighbour as ourselves_ means; but when
+we find a man here and there in the course of centuries who does, we may
+take this man as the prophet of coming good for his race, his prophecy
+being himself.
+
+But next to the interest of knowing that a man could love so well, comes
+the association of this fact with his art. He who could look abroad upon
+men, and understand them all--who stood, as it were, in the wide-open
+gates of his palace, and admitted with welcome every one who came in
+sight--had in the inner places of that palace one chamber in which he
+met his friend, and in which his whole soul went forth to understand the
+soul of his friend. The man to whom nothing in humanity was common or
+unclean; in whom the most remarkable of his artistic morals is
+fair-play; who fills our hearts with a saintly love for _Cordelia_ and
+an admiration of _Sir John Falstaff_ the lost gentleman, mournful even
+in the height of our laughter; who could make an _Autolycus_ and a
+_Macbeth_ both human, and an _Ariel_ and a _Puck_ neither human--this is
+the man who loved best. And we believe that this depth of capacity for
+loving lay at the root of all his knowledge of men and women, and all
+his dramatic pre-eminence. The heart is more intelligent than the
+intellect. Well says the poet Matthew Raydon, who has hardly left
+anything behind him but the lamentation over Sir Philip Sidney in which
+the lines occur,--
+
+ "He that hath love and judgment too
+ Sees more than any other do."
+
+Simply, we believe that this, not this only, but this more than any
+other endowment, made Shakspere the artist he was, in providing him all
+the material of humanity to work upon, and keeping him to the true
+spirit of its use. Love looking forth upon strife, understood it all.
+Love is the true revealer of secrets, because it makes one with the
+object regarded.
+
+"But," say some impatient readers, "when shall we have done with
+Shakspere? There is no end to this writing about him." It will be a bad
+day for England when we have done with Shakspere; for that will imply,
+along with the loss of him, that we are no longer capable of
+understanding him. Should that time ever come, Heaven grant the
+generation which does not understand him at least the grace to keep its
+pens off him, which will by no means follow as a necessary consequence
+of the non-intelligence! But the writing about Shakspere which has been
+hitherto so plentiful must do good just in proportion as it directs
+attention to him and gives aid to the understanding of him. And while
+the utterances of to-day pass away, the children of to-morrow are born,
+and require a new utterance for their fresh need from those who, having
+gone before, have already tasted life and Shakspere, and can give some
+little help to further progress than their own, by telling the following
+generation what they have found. Suppose that this cry had been raised
+last century, after good Dr. Johnson had ceased to produce to the eyes
+of men the facts about his own incapacity which he presumed to be
+criticisms of Shakspere, where would our aids be now to the
+understanding of the dramatist? Our own conviction is, when we reflect
+with how much labour we have deepened our knowledge of him, and thereby
+found in him _the best_--for the best lies not on the surface for the
+careless reader--our own conviction is, that not half has been done that
+ought to be done to help young people at least to understand the master
+mind of their country. Few among them can ever give the attention or
+work to it that we have given; but much may be done with judicious aid.
+And a profound knowledge of their greatest writer would do more than
+almost anything else to bind together as Englishmen, in a true and
+unselfish way, the hearts of the coming generations; for his works are
+our country in a convex magic mirror.
+
+When a man finds that every time he reads a book not only does some
+obscurity melt away, but deeper depths, which he had not before seen,
+dawn upon him, he is not likely to think that the time for ceasing to
+write about the book has come. And certainly in Shakspere, as in all
+true artistic work, as in nature herself, the depths are not to be
+revealed utterly; while every new generation needs a new aid towards
+discovering itself and its own thoughts in these forms of the past. And
+of all that read about Shakspere there are few whom more than one or two
+utterances have reached. The speech or the writing must go forth to find
+the soil for the growth of its kernel of truth. We shall, therefore,
+with the full consciousness that perhaps more has been already said and
+written about Shakspere than about any other writer, yet venture to add
+to the mass by a few general remarks.
+
+And first we would remind our readers of the marvel of the combination
+in Shakspere of such a high degree of two faculties, one of which is
+generally altogether inferior to the other: the faculties of reception
+and production. Rarely do we find that great receptive power, brought
+into operation either by reading or by observation, is combined with
+originality of thought. Some hungers are quite satisfied by taking in
+what others have thought and felt and done. By the assimilation of this
+food many minds grow and prosper; but other minds feed far more upon
+what rises from their own depths; in the answers they are compelled to
+provide to the questions that come unsought; in the theories they cannot
+help constructing for the inclusion in one whole of the various facts
+around them, which seem at first sight to strive with each other like
+the atoms of a chaos; in the examination of those impulses of hidden
+origin which at one time indicate a height of being far above the
+thinker's present condition, at another a gulf of evil into which he may
+possibly fall. But in Shakspere the two powers of beholding and
+originating meet like the rejoining halves of a sphere. A man who thinks
+his own thoughts much, will often walk through London streets and see
+nothing. In the man who observes only, every passing object mirrors
+itself in its prominent peculiarities, having a kind of harmony with all
+the rest, but arouses no magician from the inner chamber to charm and
+chain its image to his purpose. In Shakspere, on the contrary, every
+outer form of humanity and nature spoke to that ever-moving,
+self-vindicating--we had almost said, and in a sense it would be true,
+self-generating--humanity within him. The sound of any action without
+him, struck in him just the chord which, in motion in him, would have
+produced a similar action. When anything was done, he felt as if he were
+doing it--perception and origination conjoining in one consciousness.
+
+But to this gift was united the gift of utterance, or representation.
+Many a man both receives and generates who, somehow, cannot represent.
+Nothing is more disappointing sometimes than our first experience of the
+artistic attempts of a man who has roused our expectations by a social
+display of familiarity with, and command over, the subjects of
+conversation. Have we not sometimes found that when such a one sought to
+give vital or artistic form to these thoughts, so that they might not be
+born and die in the same moment upon his lips, but might _exist_, a
+poor, weak, faded _simulacrum_ alone was the result? Now Shakspere was a
+great talker, who enraptured the listeners, and was himself so rapt in
+his speech that he could scarcely come to a close; but when he was alone
+with his art, then and then only did he rise to the height of his great
+argument, and all the talk was but as the fallen mortar and stony chips
+lying about the walls of the great temple of his drama.
+
+But, along with all this wealth of artistic speech, an artistic virtue
+of an opposite nature becomes remarkable: his reticence. How often might
+he not say fine things, particularly poetic things, when he does not,
+because it would not suit the character or the time! How many delicate
+points are there not in his plays which we only discover after many
+readings, because he will not put a single tone of success into the flow
+of natural utterance, to draw our attention to the triumph of the
+author, and jar with the all-important reality of his production!
+Wherever an author obtrudes his own self-importance, an unreality is the
+consequence, of a nature similar to that which we feel in the old moral
+plays, when historical and allegorical personages, such as _Julius
+Caesar_ and _Charity_, for instance, are introduced at the same time on
+the same stage, acting in the same story. Shakspere never points to any
+stroke of his own wit or art. We may find it or not: there it is, and no
+matter if no one see it!
+
+Much has been disputed about the degree of consciousness of his own art
+possessed by Shakspere: whether he did it by a grand yet blind impulse,
+or whether he knew what he wanted to do, and knowingly used the means to
+arrive at that end. Now we cannot here enter upon the question; but we
+would recommend any of our readers who are interested in it not to
+attempt to make up their minds upon it before considering a passage in
+another of his poems, which may throw some light on the subject for
+them. It is the description of a painting, contained in "The Rape of
+Lucrece," towards the end of the poem. Its very minuteness involves the
+expression of principles, and reveals that, in relation to an art not
+his own, he could hold principles of execution, and indicate perfection
+of finish, which, to say the least, must proceed from a general capacity
+for art, and therefore might find an equally conscious operation in his
+own peculiar province of it. For our own part, we think that his results
+are a perfect combination of the results of consciousness and
+unconsciousness; consciousness where the arrangements of the play,
+outside the region of inspiration, required the care of the wakeful
+intellect; unconsciousness where the subject itself bore him aloft on
+the wings of its own creative delight.
+
+There is another manifestation of his power which will astonish those
+who consider it. It is this: that, while he was able to go down to the
+simple and grand realities of human nature, which are all tragic; and
+while, therefore, he must rejoice most in such contemplations of human
+nature as find fit outlet in a "Hamlet," a "Lear," a "Timon," or an
+"Othello," the tragedies of Doubt, Ingratitude, and Love, he can yet,
+when he chooses, float on the very surface of human nature, as in
+"Love's Labour's Lost," "The Merry Wives of Windsor," "The Comedy of
+Errors," "The Taming of the Shrew;" or he can descend half way as it
+were, and there remain suspended in the characters and feelings of
+ordinary nice people, who, interesting enough to meet in society, have
+neither received that development, nor are placed in those
+circumstances, which admit of the highest and simplest poetic treatment.
+In these he will bring out the ordinary noble or the ordinary vicious.
+Of this nature are most of his comedies, in which he gives an ideal
+representation of common social life, and steers perfectly clear of what
+in such relations and surroundings would be _heroics_. Look how steadily
+he keeps the noble-minded youth _Orlando_ in this middle region; and
+look how the best comes out at last in the wayward and _recalcitrant_
+and _bizarre_, but honest and true natures of _Beatrice_ and _Benedick_;
+and this without any untruth to the nature of comedy, although the
+circumstances border on the tragic. When he wants to give the deeper
+affairs of the heart, he throws the whole at once out of the social
+circle with its multiform restraints. As in "Hamlet" the stage on which
+the whole is acted is really the heart of _Hamlet_, so he makes his
+visible stage as it were, slope off into the misty infinite, with a
+grey, starless heaven overhead, and Hades open beneath his feet. Hence
+young people brought up in the country understand the tragedies far
+sooner than they can comprehend the comedies. It needs acquaintance with
+society and social ways to clear up the latter.
+
+The remarks we have made on "Hamlet" by way of illustration, lead us to
+point out how Shakspere prepares, in some of his plays, a stage suitable
+for all the representation. In "A Midsummer Night's Dream" the place
+which gives tone to the whole is a midnight wood in the first flush and
+youthful delight of summer. In "As You Like it" it is a daylight wood in
+spring, full of morning freshness, with a cold wind now and then blowing
+through the half-clothed boughs. In "The Tempest" it is a solitary
+island, circled by the mysterious sea-horizon, over which what may come
+who can tell?--a place where the magician may work his will, and have
+all nature at the beck of his superior knowledge.
+
+The only writer who would have had a chance of rivalling Shakspere in
+his own walk, if he had been born in the same period of English history,
+is Chaucer. He has the same gift of individualizing the general, and
+idealizing the portrait. But the best of the dramatic writers of
+Shakspere's time, in their desire of dramatic individualization, forget
+the modifying multiformity belonging to individual humanity. In their
+anxiety to present a _character_, they take, as it were, a human mould,
+label it with a certain peculiarity, and then fill in speeches and forms
+according to the label. Thus the indications of character, of
+peculiarity, so predominate, the whole is so much of one colour, that
+the result resembles one of those allegorical personifications in which,
+as much as possible, everything human is eliminated except what belongs
+to the peculiarity, the personification. How different is it with
+Shakspere's representations! He knows that no human being ever was like
+that. He makes his most peculiar characters speak very much like other
+people; and it is only over the whole that their peculiarities manifest
+themselves with indubitable plainness. The one apparent exception is
+_Jaques_, in "As You Like it." But there we must remember that Shakspere
+is representing a man who so chooses to represent himself. He is a man
+_in his humour_, or his own peculiar and chosen affectation. _Jaques_ is
+the writer of his own part; for with him "all the world's a stage, and
+all the men and women," himself first, "merely players." We have his
+own presentation of himself, not, first of all, as he is, but as he
+chooses to be taken. Of course his real self does come out in it, for no
+man can seem altogether other than he is; and besides, the _Duke_, who
+sees quite through him, rebukes him in the manner already referred to;
+but it is his affectation that gives him the unnatural peculiarity of
+his modes and speeches. He wishes them to be such.
+
+There is, then, for every one of Shakspere's characters the firm ground
+of humanity, upon which the weeds, as well as the flowers, glorious or
+fantastic, as the case may be, show themselves. His more heroic persons
+are the most profoundly human. Nor are his villains unhuman, although
+inhuman enough. Compared with Marlowe's Jew, _Shylock_ is a terrible
+_man_ beside a dreary _monster_, and, as far as logic and the _lex
+talionis_ go, has the best of the argument. It is the strength of human
+nature itself that makes crime strong. Wickedness could have no power of
+itself: it lives by the perverted powers of good. And so great is
+Shakspere's sympathy with _Shylock_ even, in the hard and unjust doom
+that overtakes him, that he dismisses him with some of the spare
+sympathies of the more tender-hearted of his spectators. Nowhere is the
+justice of genius more plain than in Shakspere's utter freedom from
+party-spirit, even with regard to his own creations. Each character
+shall set itself forth from its own point of view, and only in the
+choice and scope of the whole shall the judgment of the poet be beheld.
+He never allows his opinion to come out to the damaging of the
+individual's own self-presentation. He knows well that for the worst
+something can be said, and that a feeling of justice and his own right
+will be strong in the mind of a man who is yet swayed by perfect
+selfishness. Therefore the false man is not discoverable in his speech,
+not merely because the villain will talk as like a true man as he may,
+but because seldom is the villainy clear to the villain's own mind. It
+is impossible for us to determine whether, in their fierce bandying of
+the lie, _Bolingbroke_ or _Norfolk_ spoke the truth. Doubtless each
+believed the other to be the villain that he called him. And Shakspere
+has no desire or need to act the historian in the decision of that
+question. He leaves his reader in full sympathy with the perplexity of
+_Richard_; as puzzled, in fact, as if he had been present at the
+interrupted combat.
+
+If every writer could write up to his own best, we should have far less
+to marvel at in Shakspere. It is in great measure the wealth of
+Shakspere's suggestions, giving him abundance of the best to choose
+from, that lifts him so high above those who, having felt the
+inspiration of a good idea, are forced to go on writing, constructing,
+carpentering, with dreary handicraft, before the exhausted faculty has
+recovered sufficiently to generate another. And then comes in the
+unerring choice of the best of those suggestions. Yet if any one wishes
+to see what variety of the same kind of thoughts he could produce, let
+him examine the treatment of the same business in different plays; as,
+for instance, the way in which instigation to a crime is managed in
+"Macbeth," where _Macbeth_ tempts the two murderers to kill _Banquo_; in
+"King John," when _the King_ tempts _Hubert_ to kill _Arthur_; in "The
+Tempest," when _Antonio_ tempts _Sebastian_ to kill _Alonzo_; in "As You
+Like it," when _Oliver_ instigates _Charles_ to kill _Orlando_; and in
+"Hamlet," where _Claudius_ urges _Laertes_ to the murder of _Hamlet_.
+
+He shows no anxiety about being original. When a man is full of his work
+he forgets himself. In his desire to produce a good play he lays hold
+upon any material that offers itself. He will even take a bad play and
+make a good one of it. One of the most remarkable discoveries to the
+student of Shakspere is the hide-bound poverty of some of the stories,
+which, informed by his life-power; become forms of strength, richness,
+and grace. He does what the _Spirit_ in "Comus" says the music he heard
+might do,--
+
+ "create a soul
+ Under the ribs of death;"
+
+and then death is straightway "clothed upon." And nowhere is the
+refining operation of his genius more evident than in the purification
+of these stories. Characters and incidents which would have been honey
+and nuts to Beaumont and Fletcher are, notwithstanding their dramatic
+recommendations, entirely remodelled by him. The fair _Ophelia_ is, in
+the old tale, a common woman, and _Hamlet's_ mistress; while the policy
+of the _Lady of Belmont_, who in the old story occupies the place for
+which he invented the lovely _Portia_, upon which policy the whole story
+turns, is such that it is as unfit to set forth in our pages as it was
+unfit for Shakspere's purposes of art. His noble art refuses to work
+upon base matter. He sees at once the capabilities of a tale, but he
+will not use it except he may do with it what he pleases.
+
+If we might here offer some assistance to the young student who wants to
+help himself, we would suggest that to follow, in a measure, Plutarch's
+fashion of comparison, will be the most helpful guide to the
+understanding of the poet. Let the reader take any two characters, and
+putting them side by side, look first for differences, and then for
+resemblances between them, with the causes of each; or let him make a
+wider attempt, and setting two plays one over against the other, compare
+or contrast them, and see what will be the result. Let him, for
+instance, take the two characters _Hamlet_ and _Brutus_, and compare
+their beginnings and endings, the resemblances in their characters, the
+differences in their conduct, the likeness and unlikeness of what was
+required of them, the circumstances in which action was demanded of
+each, the helps or hindrances each had to the working out of the problem
+of his life, the way in which each encounters the supernatural, or any
+other question that may suggest itself in reading either of the plays,
+ending off with the main lesson taught in each; and he will be
+astonished to find, if he has not already discovered it, what a rich
+mine of intellectual and spiritual wealth is laid open to his delighted
+eyes. Perhaps not the least valuable end to be so gained is, that the
+young Englishman, who wants to be delivered from any temptation to think
+himself the centre around which the universe revolves, will be aided in
+his endeavours after honourable humility by looking up to the man who
+towers, like Saul, head and shoulders above his brethren, and seeing
+that he is humble, may learn to leave it to the pismire to be angry, to
+the earwig to be conceited, and to the spider to insist on his own
+importance.
+
+But to return to the main course of our observations. The dramas of
+Shakspere are so natural, that this, the greatest praise that can be
+given them, is the ground of one of the difficulties felt by the young
+student in estimating them. The very simplicity of Shakspere's art seems
+to throw him out of any known groove of judgment. When he hears one say,
+"_Look at this, and admire_," he feels inclined to rejoin, "Why, he only
+says in the simplest way what the thing must have been. It is as plain
+as daylight." Yes, to the reader; and because Shakspere wrote it. But
+there were a thousand wrong ways of doing it: Shakspere took the one
+right way. It is he who has made it plain in art, whatever it was before
+in nature; and most likely the very simplicity of it in nature was
+scarcely observed before he saw it and represented it. And is it not the
+glory of art to attain this simplicity? for simplicity is the end of all
+things--all manners, all morals, all religion. To say that the thing
+could not have been done otherwise, is just to say that you forget the
+art in beholding its object, that you forget the mirror because you see
+nature reflected in the mirror. Any one can see the moon in Lord Rosse's
+telescope; but who made the reflector? And let the student try to
+express anything in prose or in verse, in painting or in modelling, just
+as it is. No man knows till he has made many attempts, how hard to reach
+is this simplicity of art. And the greater the success, the fewer are
+the signs of the labour expended. Simplicity is art's perfection.
+
+But so natural are all his plays, and the great tragedies to which we
+would now refer in particular, amongst the rest, that it may appear to
+some, at first sight, that Shakspere could not have constructed them
+after any moral plan, could have had no lesson of his own to teach in
+them, seeing they bear no marks of individual intent, in that they
+depart nowhere from, nature, the construction of the play itself going
+straight on like a history. The directness of his plays springs in part
+from the fact that it is humanity and not circumstance that Shakspere
+respects. Circumstance he uses only for the setting forth of humanity;
+and for the plot of circumstance, so much in favour with Ben Jonson, and
+others of his contemporaries, he cares nothing. As to their looking too
+natural to have any design in them, we are not of those who believe that
+it is unlike nature to have a design and a result. If the proof of a
+high aim is to be what the critics used to call _poetic justice_, a kind
+of justice that one would gladly find more of in grocers' and
+linen-drapers' shops, but can as well spare from a poem, then we must
+say that he has not always a high end: the wicked man is not tortured,
+nor is the good man smothered in bank-notes and rose-leaves. Even when
+he shows the outward ruin and death that comes upon Macbeth at last, it
+is only as an unavoidable little consequence, following in the wake of
+the mighty vengeance of nature, even of God, that Macbeth cannot say
+_Amen_; that Macbeth can sleep no more; that Macbeth is "cabined
+cribbed, confined, bound in to saucy doubts and fears;" that his very
+brain is a charnel-house, whence arise the ghosts of his own murders,
+till he envies the very dead the rest to which his hand has sent them.
+That immediate and eternal vengeance upon crime, and that inner reward
+of well-doing, never fail in nature or in Shakspere, appear as such a
+matter of course that they hardly look like design either in nature or
+in the mirror which he holds up to her. The secret is that, in the
+ideal, habit and design are one.
+
+Most authors seem anxious to round off and finish everything in full
+sight. Most of Shakspere's tragedies compel our thoughts to follow their
+_persons_ across the bourn. They need, as Jean Paul says, a piece of the
+next world painted in to complete the picture, And this is surely
+nature: but it need not therefore be no design. What could be done with
+Hamlet, but send him into a region where he has some chance of finding
+his difficulties solved; where he will know that his reverence for God,
+which was the sole stay left him in the flood of human worthlessness,
+has not been in vain; that the skies are not "a foul and pestilent
+congregation of vapours;" that there are noble women, though his mother
+was false and Ophelia weak; and that there are noble men, although his
+uncle and Laertes were villains and his old companions traitors? If
+Hamlet is not to die, the whole of the play must perish under the
+accusation that the hero of it is left at last with only a superadded
+misery, a fresh demand for action, namely, to rule a worthless people,
+as they seem to him, when action has for him become impossible; that he
+has to live on, forsaken even of death, which will not come though the
+cup of misery is at the brim.
+
+But a high end may be gained in this world, and the vision into the
+world beyond so justified, as in King Lear. The passionate, impulsive,
+unreasoning old king certainly must have given his wicked daughters
+occasion enough of making the charges to which their avarice urged them.
+He had learned very little by his life of kingship. He was but a boy
+with grey hair. He had had no inner experiences. And so all the
+development of manhood and age has to be crowded into the few remaining
+weeks of his life. His own folly and blindness supply the occasion. And
+before the few weeks are gone, he has passed through all the stages of a
+fever of indignation and wrath, ending in a madness from which love
+redeems him; he has learned that a king is nothing if the man is
+nothing; that a king ought to care for those who cannot help themselves;
+that love has not its origin or grounds in favours flowing from royal
+resource and munificence, and yet that love is the one thing worth
+living for, which gained, it is time to die. And now that he has the
+experience that life can give, has become a child in simplicity of heart
+and judgment, he cannot lose his daughter again; who, likewise, has
+learned the one thing she needed, as far as her father was concerned, a
+little more excusing tenderness. In the same play it cannot be by chance
+that at its commencement Gloucester speaks with the utmost carelessness
+and _off-hand_ wit about the parentage of his natural son Edmund, but
+finds at last that this son is his ruin.
+
+Edgar, the true son, says to Edmund, after having righteously dealt him
+his death-wound,--
+
+ "The gods are just, and of our pleasant vices
+ Make instruments to scourge us:
+ The dark and vicious place where thee he got
+ Cost him his eyes."
+
+To which the dying and convicted villain replies,--
+
+ "Thou hast spoken right; 'tis true:
+ The wheel is come full circle; I am here."
+
+Could anything be put more plainly than the moral lesson in this?
+
+It would be easy to produce examples of fine design from his comedies as
+well; as for instance, from "Much Ado about Nothing:" the two who are
+made to fall in love with each other, by being each severally assured of
+possessing the love of the other, Beatrice and Benedick, are shown
+beforehand to have a strong inclination towards each other, manifested
+in their continual squabbling after a good-humoured fashion; but not all
+this is sufficient to make them heartily in love, until they find out
+the nobility of each other's character in their behaviour about the
+calumniated Hero; and the author takes care they shall not be married
+without a previous acquaintance with the trick that has been played upon
+them. Indeed we think the remark, that Shakspere never leaves any of his
+characters the same at the end of a play as he took them up at the
+beginning, will be found to be true. They are better or worse, wiser or
+more irretrievably foolish. The historical plays would illustrate the
+remark as well as any.
+
+But of all the terrible plays we are inclined to think "Timon" the most
+terrible, and to doubt whether justice has been done to the finish and
+completeness of it. At the same time we are inclined to think that it
+was printed (first in the first folio, 1623, seven years after
+Shakspere's death) from a copy, corrected by the author, but not
+_written fair_, and containing consequent mistakes. The same account
+might belong to others of the plays, but more evidently perhaps belongs
+to the "Timon." The idea of making the generous spendthrift, whose old
+idolaters had forsaken him because the idol had no more to give, into
+the high-priest of the Temple of Mammon, dispensing the gold which he
+hated and despised, that it might be a curse to the race which he had
+learned to hate and despise as well; and the way in which Shakspere
+discloses the depths of Timon's wound, by bringing him into comparison
+with one who hates men by profession and humour--are as powerful as
+anything to be found even in Shakspere.
+
+We are very willing to believe that "Julius Caesar" was one of his
+latest plays; for certainly it is the play in which he has represented a
+hero in the high and true sense. _Brutus_ is this hero, of course; a
+hero because he will do what he sees to be right, independently of
+personal feeling or personal advantage. Nor does his attempt fail from
+any overweening or blindness, in himself. Had he known that the various
+papers thrown in his way, were the concoctions of _Cassius_, he would
+not have made the mistake of supposing that the Romans longed for
+freedom, and therefore would be ready to defend it. As it was, he
+attempted to liberate a people which did not feel its slavery. He failed
+for others, but not for himself; for his truth was such that everybody
+was true to him. Unlike Jaques with his seven acts of the burlesque of
+human life, Brutus says at the last,--
+
+ "Countrymen,
+ My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life,
+ I found no man but he was true to me."
+
+Of course all this is in Plutarch. But it is easy to see with what
+relish Shakspere takes it up, setting forth all the aids in himself and
+in others which Brutus had to being a hero, and thus making the
+representation as credible as possible.
+
+We must heartily confess that no amount of genius alone will make a man
+a good man; that genius only shows the right way--drives no man to walk
+in it. But there is surely some moral scent in us to let us know whether
+a man only cares for good from an artistic point of view, or whether he
+admires and loves good. This admiration and love cannot be _prominently_
+set forth by any dramatist true to his art; but it must come out over
+the whole. His predilections must show themselves in the scope of his
+artistic life, in the things and subjects he chooses, and the way in
+which he represents them. Notwithstanding Uncle Toby and Maria, who will
+venture to say that Sterne was noble or virtuous, when he looks over the
+whole that he has written? But in Shakspere there is no suspicion of a
+cloven foot. Everywhere he is on the side of virtue and of truth. Many
+small arguments, with great cumulative force, might be adduced to this
+effect.
+
+For ourselves we cannot easily believe that the calmness of his art
+could be so unvarying except he exercised it with a good conscience;
+that he could have kept looking out upon the world around him with the
+untroubled regard necessary for seeing all things as they are, except
+there had been peace in his house at home; that he could have known all
+men as he did, and failed to know himself. We can understand the
+co-existence of any degree of partial or excited genius with evil ways,
+but we cannot understand the existence of such calm and universal
+genius, wrought out in his works, except in association with all that is
+noblest in human nature. Nor is it other than on the side of the
+argument for his rectitude that he never forces rectitude upon the
+attention of others. The strong impression left upon our minds is, that
+however Shakspere may have strayed in the early portion of his life in
+London, he was not only an upright and noble man for the main part, but
+a repentant man, and a man whose life was influenced by the truths of
+Christianity.
+
+Much is now said about a memorial to Shakspere. The best and only true
+memorial is no doubt that described in Milton's poem on this very
+subject: the living and ever-changing monument of human admiration,
+expressed in the faces and forms of those absorbed in the reading of his
+works. But if the external monument might be such as to foster the
+constant reproduction of the inward monument of love and admiration,
+then, indeed, it might be well to raise one; and with this object in
+view let us venture to propose one mode which we think would favour the
+attainment of it.
+
+Let a Gothic hall of the fourteenth century be built; such a hall as
+would be more in the imagination of Shakspere than any of the
+architecture of his own time. Let all the copies that can be procured of
+every early edition of his works, singly or collectively, be stored in
+this hall. Let a copy of every other edition ever printed be procured
+and deposited. Let every book or treatise that can be found, good, bad,
+or indifferent, written about Shakspere or any of his works, be likewise
+collected for the Shakspere library. Let a special place be allotted to
+the shameless corruptions of his plays that have been produced as
+improvements upon them, some of which, to the disgrace of England, still
+partially occupy the stage instead of what Shakspere wrote. Let one
+department contain every work of whatever sort that tends to direct
+elucidation of his meaning, chiefly those of the dramatic writers who
+preceded him and closely followed him. Let the windows be filled with
+stained glass, representing the popular sports of his own time and the
+times of his English histories. Let a small museum be attached,
+containing all procurable antiquities that are referred to in his plays,
+along with first editions, if possible, of the best books that came out
+in his time, and were probably read by him. Let the whole thus as much
+as possible represent his time. Let a marble statue in the midst do the
+best that English art can accomplish for the representation of the
+vanished man; and let copies, if not the originals, of the several
+portraits be safely shrined for the occasional beholding of the
+multitude. Let the perpetuity of care necessary for this monument be
+secured by endowment; and let it be for the use of the public, by means
+of a reading-room fitted for the comfort of all who choose to avail
+themselves of these facilities for a true acquaintance with our greatest
+artist. Let there likewise be a simple and moderately-sized theatre
+attached, not for regular, but occasional use; to be employed for the
+representation of Shakspere's plays _only_, and allowed free of expense
+for amateur or other representations of them for charitable purposes.
+But within a certain cycle of years--if, indeed, it would be too much to
+expect that out of the London play-goers a sufficient number would be
+found to justify the representation of all the plays of Shakspere once
+in the season--let the whole of Shakspere's plays be acted in the best
+manner possible to the managers for the time being.
+
+The very existence of such a theatre would be a noble protest of the
+highest kind against the sort of play, chiefly translated and adapted
+from the French, which infests our boards, the low tone of which, even
+where it is not decidedly immoral, does more harm than any amount of the
+rough, honest plain-spokenness of Shakspere, as judged by our more
+fastidious, if not always purer manners. The representation of such
+plays forms the real ground of objection to theatre-going. We believe
+that other objections, which may be equally urged against large
+assemblies of any sort, are not really grounded upon such an amount of
+objectionable fact as good people often suppose. At all events it is not
+against the drama itself, but its concomitants, its avoidable
+concomitants, that such objections are, or ought to be, felt and
+directed. The dramatic impulse, as well as all other impulses of our
+nature, are from the Maker.
+
+A monument like this would help to change a blind enthusiasm and a
+_dilettante_-talk into knowledge, reverence, and study; and surely this
+would be the true way to honour the memory of the man who appeals to
+posterity by no mighty deeds of worldly prowess, but has left behind him
+food for heart, brain, and conscience, on which the generations will
+feed till the end of time. It would be the one true and natural mode of
+perpetuating his fame in kind; helping him to do more of that for which
+he was born, and because of which we humbly desire to do him honour, as
+the years flow farther away from the time when, at the age of fifty-two,
+he left the world a richer legacy of the results of intellectual labour
+than any other labourer in literature has ever done. It would be to
+raise a monument to his mind more than to his person.
+
+But to honour Shakspere in the best way we must not gaze upon some grand
+memorial of his fame, we must not talk largely of his wonderful doings,
+we must not even behold the representation of his works on the stage,
+invaluable aid as that is to the right understanding of what he has
+written; but we must, by close, silent, patient study, enter into an
+understanding with the spirit of the departed poet-sage, and thus let
+his own words be the necromantic spell that raises the dead, and brings
+us into communion with that man who knew what was in men more than any
+other mere man ever did. Well was it for Shakspere that he was humble;
+else on what a desolate pinnacle of companionless solitude must he have
+stood! Where was he to find his peers? To most thoughtful minds it is a
+terrible fancy to suppose that there were no greater human being than
+themselves. From the terror of such a _truth_ Shakspere's love for men
+preserved him. He did not think about himself so much as he thought
+about them. Had he been a self-student alone, or chiefly, could he ever
+have written those dramas? We close with the repetition of this truth:
+that the love of our kind is the one key to the knowledge of humanity
+and of ourselves. And have we not sacred authority for concluding that
+he who loves his brother is the more able and the more likely to love
+Him who made him and his brother also, and then told them that love is
+the fulfilling of the law?
+
+
+
+
+THE ART OF SHAKSPERE, AS REVEALED BY HIMSELF.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1863.]
+
+
+ Who taught you this?
+ I learn'd it out of women's faces.
+
+_Winter's Tale_, Act ii. scene 1.
+
+
+One occasionally hears the remark, that the commentators upon Shakspere
+find far more in Shakspere than Shakspere ever intended to express.
+Taking this assertion as it stands, it may be freely granted, not only
+of Shakspere, but of every writer of genius. But if it be intended by
+it, that nothing can _exist_ in any work of art beyond what the writer
+was conscious of while in the act of producing it, so much of its scope
+is false.
+
+No artist can have such a claim to the high title of _creator_, as that
+he invents for himself the forms, by means of which he produces his new
+result; and all the forms of man and nature which he modifies and
+combines to make a new region in his world of art, have their own
+original life and meaning. The laws likewise of their various
+combinations are natural laws, harmonious with each other. While,
+therefore, the artist employs many or few of their original aspects for
+his immediate purpose, he does not and cannot thereby deprive them of
+the many more which are essential to their vitality, and the vitality
+likewise of his presentation of them, although they form only the
+background from which his peculiar use of them stands out. The objects
+presented must therefore fall, to the eye of the observant reader, into
+many different combinations and harmonies of operation and result, which
+are indubitably there, whether the writer saw them or not. These latent
+combinations and relations will be numerous and true, in proportion to
+the scope and the truth of the representation; and the greater the
+number of meanings, harmonious with each other, which any work of art
+presents, the greater claim it has to be considered a work of genius. It
+must, therefore, be granted, and that joyfully, that there may be
+meanings in Shakspere's writings which Shakspere himself did not see,
+and to which therefore his art, as art, does not point.
+
+But the probability, notwithstanding, must surely be allowed as well,
+that, in great artists, the amount of conscious art will bear some
+proportion to the amount of unconscious truth: the visible volcanic
+light will bear a true relation to the hidden fire of the globe; so that
+it will not seem likely that, in such a writer as Shakspere, we should
+find many indications of present and operative _art_, of which he was
+himself unaware. Some truths may be revealed through him, which he
+himself knew only potentially; but it is not likely that marks of work,
+bearing upon the results of the play, should be fortuitous, or that the
+work thus indicated should be unconscious work. A stroke of the mallet
+may be more effective than the sculptor had hoped; but it was intended.
+In the drama it is easier to discover individual marks of the chisel,
+than in the marble whence all signs of such are removed: in the drama
+the lines themselves fall into the general finish, without necessary
+obliteration as lines: Still, the reader cannot help being fearful,
+lest, not as regards truth only, but as regards art as well, he be
+sometimes clothing the idol of his intellect with the weavings of his
+fancy. My conviction is, that it is the very consummateness of
+Shakspere's art, that exposes his work to the doubt that springs from
+loving anxiety for his honour; the dramatist, like the sculptor,
+avoiding every avoidable hint of the process, in order to render the
+result a vital whole. But, fortunately, we are not left to argue
+entirely from probabilities. He has himself given us a peep into his
+studio--let me call it _workshop_, as more comprehensive.
+
+It is not, of course, in the shape of _literary_ criticism, that we
+should expect to meet such a revelation; for to use art even
+consciously, and to regard it as an object of contemplation, or to
+theorize about it, are two very different mental operations. The
+productive and critical faculties are rarely found in equal combination;
+and even where they are, they cannot operate equally in regard to the
+same object. There is a perfect satisfaction in producing, which does
+not demand a re-presentation to the critical faculty. In other words,
+the criticism which a great writer brings to bear upon his own work, is
+from within, regarding it upon the hidden side, namely, in relation to
+his own idea; whereas criticism, commonly understood, has reference to
+the side turned to the public gaze. Neither could we expect one so
+prolific as Shakspere to find time for the criticism of the works of
+other men, except in such moments of relaxation as those in which the
+friends at the Mermaid Tavern sat silent beneath the flow of his wisdom
+and humour, or made the street ring with the overflow of their own
+enjoyment.
+
+But if the artist proceed to speculate upon the nature or productions of
+another art than his own, we may then expect the principles upon which
+he operates in his own, to take outward and visible form--a form
+modified by the difference of the art to which he now applies them. In
+one of Shakspere's poems, we have the description of an imagined
+production of a sister-art--that of Painting--a description so brilliant
+that the light reflected from the poet-picture illumines the art of the
+Poet himself, revealing the principles which he held with regard to
+representative art generally, and suggesting many thoughts with regard
+to detail and harmony, finish, pregnancy, and scope. This description is
+found in "The Rape of Lucrece." Apology will hardly be necessary for
+making a long quotation, seeing that, besides the convenience it will
+afford of easy reference to the ground of my argument, one of the
+greatest helps which even the artist can give to us, is to isolate
+peculiar beauties, and so compel us to perceive them.
+
+Lucrece has sent a messenger to beg the immediate presence of her
+husband. Awaiting his return, and worn out with weeping, she looks about
+for some variation of her misery.
+
+ 1.
+
+ At last she calls to mind where hangs a piece
+ Of skilful painting, made for Priam's Troy;
+ Before the which is drawn the power of Greece,
+ For Helen's rape the city to destroy,
+ Threatening cloud-kissing Ilion with annoy;
+ Which the conceited painter drew so proud,
+ As heaven, it seemed, to kiss the turrets, bowed.
+
+ 2.
+
+ A thousand lamentable objects there,
+ In scorn of Nature, Art gave lifeless life:
+ Many a dry drop seemed a weeping tear,
+ Shed for the slaughtered husband by the wife;
+ The red blood reeked, to show the painter's strife.
+ And dying eyes gleamed forth their ashy lights,
+ Like dying coals burnt out in tedious nights.
+
+ 3.
+
+ There might you see the labouring pioneer
+ Begrimed with sweat, and smeared all with dust;
+ And, from the towers of Troy there would appear
+ The very eyes of men through loopholes thrust,
+ Gazing upon the Greeks with little lust:
+ Such sweet observance in this work was had,
+ That one might see those far-off eyes look sad.
+
+ 4.
+
+ In great commanders, grace and majesty
+ You might behold, triumphing in their faces;
+ In youth, quick bearing and dexterity;
+ And here and there the painter interlaces
+ Pale cowards, marching on with trembling paces,
+ Which heartless peasants did so well resemble,
+ That one would swear he saw them quake and tremble.
+
+ 5.
+
+ In Ajax and Ulysses, O what art
+ Of physiognomy might one behold!
+ The face of either ciphered either's heart;
+ Their face their manners most expressly told:
+ In Ajax' eyes blunt rage and rigour rolled;
+ But the mild glance that sly Ulysses lent
+ Showed deep regard, and smiling government.
+
+ 6.
+
+ There pleading might you see grave Nestor stand,
+ As 'twere encouraging the Greeks to fight;
+ Making such sober action with his hand,
+ That it beguiled attention, charmed the sight;
+ In speech, it seemed his beard, all silver-white,
+ Wagged up and down, and from his lips did fly
+ Thin winding breath, which purled up to the sky.
+
+ 7.
+
+ About him were a press of gaping faces,
+ Which seemed to swallow up his sound advice;
+ All jointly listening, but with several graces,
+ As if some mermaid did their ears entice;
+ Some high, some low, the painter was so nice.
+ The scalps of many, almost hid behind,
+ To jump up higher seemed, to mock the mind.
+
+ 8.
+
+ Here one man's hand leaned on another's head,
+ His nose being shadowed by his neighbour's ear;
+ Here one, being thronged, bears back, all bollen and red;
+ Another, smothered, seems to pelt and swear;
+ And in their rage such signs of rage they bear,
+ As, but for loss of Nestor's golden words,
+ It seemed they would debate with angry swords.
+
+ 9.
+
+ For much imaginary work was there;
+ Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind,
+ That for Achilles' image stood his spear,
+ Griped in an armed hand; himself behind
+ Was left unseen, save to the eye of mind:
+ A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head,
+ Stood for the whole to be imagined.
+
+ 10.
+
+ And, from the walls of strong-besieged Troy,
+ When their brave hope, bold Hector, marched to field,
+ Stood many Trojan mothers, sharing joy
+ To see their youthful sons bright weapons wield,
+ And to their hope they such odd action yield;
+ That through their light joy seemed to appear,
+ Like bright things stained, a kind of heavy fear.
+
+ 11.
+
+ And from the strond of Dardan, where they fought,
+ To Simois' reedy banks, the red blood ran;
+ Whose waves to imitate the battle sought,
+ With swelling ridges; and their ranks began
+ To break upon the galled shore, and then
+ Retire again, till, meeting greater ranks,
+ They join, and shoot their foam at Simois' banks.
+
+The oftener I read these verses, amongst the very earliest compositions
+of Shakspere, I am the more impressed with the carefulness with which he
+represents the _work_ of the picture--"shows the strife of the painter."
+The most natural thought to follow in sequence is: How like his own art!
+
+The scope and variety of the whole picture, in which mass is effected by
+the accumulation of individuality; in which, on the one hand, Troy
+stands as the impersonation of the aim and object of the whole; and on
+the other, the Simois flows in foaming rivalry of the strife of
+men,--the pictorial form of that sympathy of nature with human effort
+and passion, which he so often introduces in his plays,--is like nothing
+else so much as one of the works of his own art. But to take a portion
+as a more condensed representation of his art in combining all varieties
+into one harmonious whole: his genius is like the oratory of Nestor as
+described by its effects in the seventh and eighth stanzas. Every
+variety of attitude and countenance and action is harmonized by the
+influence which is at once the occasion of debate, and the charm which
+restrains by the fear of its own loss: the eloquence and the listening
+form the one bond of the unruly mass. So the dramatic genius that
+harmonizes his play, is visible only in its effects; so ethereal in its
+own essence that it refuses to be submitted to the analysis of the ruder
+intellect, it is like the words of Nestor, for which in the picture
+there stands but "thin winding breath which purled up to the sky." Take,
+for an instance of this, the reconciling power by which, in the
+mysterious midnight of the summer-wood, he brings together in one
+harmony the graceful passions of childish elves, and the fierce passions
+of men and women, with the ludicrous reflection of those passions in the
+little convex mirror of the artisan's drama; while the mischievous Puck
+revels in things that fall out preposterously, and the Elf-Queen is in
+love with ass-headed Bottom, from the hollows of whose long hairy
+ears--strange bouquet-holders--bloom and breathe the musk-roses, the
+characteristic odour-founts of the play; and the philosophy of the
+unbelieving Theseus, with the candour of Hippolyta, lifts the whole into
+relation with the realities of human life. Or take, as another instance,
+the pretended madman Edgar, the court-fool, and the rugged old king
+going grandly mad, sheltered in one hut, and lapped in the roar of a
+thunderstorm.
+
+My object, then, in respect to this poem, is to produce, from many
+instances, a few examples of the metamorphosis of such excellences as he
+describes in the picture, into the corresponding forms of the drama; in
+the hope that it will not then be necessary to urge the probability that
+the presence of those artistic virtues in his own practice, upon which
+he expatiates in his representation of another man's art, were
+accompanied by the corresponding consciousness--that, namely, of the
+artist as differing from that of the critic, its objects being regarded
+from the concave side of the hammered relief. If this probability be
+granted, I would, from it, advance to a higher and far more important
+conclusion--how unlikely it is that if the writer was conscious of such
+fitnesses, he should be unconscious of those grand embodiments of truth,
+which are indubitably present in his plays, whether he knew it or not.
+This portion of my argument will be strengthened by an instance to show
+that Shakspere was himself quite at home in the contemplation of such
+truths.
+
+Let me adduce, then, some of those corresponding embodiments in words
+instead of in forms; in which colours yield to tones, lines to phrases.
+I will begin with the lowest kind, in which the art has to do with
+matters so small, that it is difficult to believe that _unconscious_ art
+could have any relation to them. They can hardly have proceeded directly
+from the great inspiration of the whole. Their very minuteness is an
+argument for their presence to the poet's consciousness; while
+belonging, as they do, only to the _construction_ of the play, no such
+independent existence can be accorded to them, as to _truths_, which,
+being in themselves realities, _are_ there, whether Shakspere saw them
+or not. If he did not intend them, the most that can be said for them
+is, that such is the naturalness of Shakspere's representations, that
+there is room in his plays, as in life, for those wonderful coincidences
+which are reducible to no law.
+
+Perhaps every one of the examples I adduce will be found open to
+dispute. This is a kind in which direct proof can have no share; nor
+should I have dared thus to combine them in argument, but for the ninth
+stanza of those quoted above, to which I beg my readers to revert. Its
+_imaginary work_ means--work hinted at, and then left to the imagination
+of the reader. Of course, in dramatic representation, such work must
+exist on a great scale; but the minute particularization of the "conceit
+deceitful" in the rest of the stanza, will surely justify us in thinking
+it possible that Shakspere intended many, if not all, of the _little_
+fitnesses which a careful reader discovers in his plays. That such are
+not oftener discovered comes from this: that, like life itself, he so
+blends into vital beauty, that there are no salient points. To use a
+homely simile: he is not like the barn-door fowl, that always runs out
+cackling when she has laid an egg; and often when she has not. In the
+tone of an ordinary drama, you may know when something is coming; and
+the tone itself declares--_I have done it_. But Shakspere will not spoil
+his art to show his art. It is there, and does its part: that is enough.
+If you can discover it, good and well; if not, pass on, and take what
+you can find. He can afford not to be fathomed for every little pearl
+that lies at the bottom of his ocean. If I succeed in showing that such
+art may exist where it is not readily discovered, this may give some
+additional probability to its existence in places where it is harder to
+isolate and define.
+
+To produce a few instances, then:
+
+In "Much Ado about Nothing," seeing the very nature of the play is
+expressed in its name, is it not likely that Shakspere named the two
+constables, Dogberry (_a poisonous berry_) and Verjuice (_the juice of
+crab-apples_); those names having absolutely nothing to do with the
+stupid innocuousness of their characters, and so corresponding to their
+way of turning things upside down, and saying the very opposite of what
+they mean?
+
+In the same play we find Margaret objecting to her mistress's wearing a
+certain rebato (_a large plaited ruff_), on the morning of her wedding:
+may not this be intended to relate to the fact that Margaret had dressed
+in her mistress's clothes the night before? She might have rumpled or
+soiled it, and so feared discovery.
+
+In "King Henry IV.," Part I., we find, in the last scene, that the
+Prince kills Hotspur. This is not recorded in history: the conqueror of
+Percy is unknown. Had it been a fact, history would certainly have
+recorded it; and the silence of history in regard to a deed of such
+mark, is equivalent to its contradiction. But Shakspere requires, for
+his play's sake, to identify the slayer of Hotspur with his rival the
+Prince. Yet Shakspere will not contradict history, even in its silence.
+What is he to do? He will account for history _not knowing_ the
+fact.--Falstaff claiming the honour, the Prince says to him:
+
+ "For my part, if a lie may do thee grace,
+ I'll gild it with the happiest terms I have;"
+
+revealing thus the magnificence of his own character, in his readiness,
+for the sake of his friend, to part with his chief renown. But the
+Historic Muse could not believe that fat Jack Falstaff had killed
+Hotspur, and therefore she would not record the claim.
+
+In the second part of the same play, act i. scene 2, we find Falstaff
+toweringly indignant with Mr. Dombledon, the silk mercer, that he will
+stand upon security with a gentleman for a short cloak and slops of
+satin. In the first scene of the second act, the hostess mentions that
+Sir John is going to dine with Master Smooth, the silkman. Foiled with
+Mr. Dombledon, he has already made himself so agreeable to Master
+Smooth, that he is "indited to dinner" with him. This is, by the bye, as
+to the action of the play; but as to the character of Sir John, is it
+not
+
+ "Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind"--_kinned--natural_?
+
+The _conceit deceitful_ in the painting, is the imagination that means
+more than its says. So the words of the speakers in the play, stand for
+more than the speakers mean. They are _Shakspere's_ in their relation to
+his whole. To Achilles, his spear is but his spear: to the painter and
+his company, the spear of Achilles stands for Achilles himself.
+
+Coleridge remarks upon _James Gurney_, in "King John:" "How individual
+and comical he is with the four words allowed to his dramatic life!"
+These words are those with which he answers the Bastard's request to
+leave the room. He has been lingering with all the inquisitiveness and
+privilege of an old servant; when Faulconbridge says: "James Gurney,
+wilt thou give us leave a while?" with strained politeness. With marked
+condescension to the request of the second son, whom he has known and
+served from infancy, James Gurney replies: "Good leave, good Philip;"
+giving occasion to Faulconbridge to show his ambition, and scorn of his
+present standing, in the contempt with which he treats even the
+Christian name he is so soon to exchange with his surname for _Sir
+Richard_ and _Plantagenet; Philip_ being the name for a sparrow in those
+days, when ladies made pets of them. Surely in these words of the
+serving-man, we have an outcome of the same art by which
+
+ "A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head,
+ Stood for the whole to be imagined."
+
+In the "Winter's Tale," act iv. scene 3, Perdita, dressed with unwonted
+gaiety at the festival of the sheep-shearing, is astonished at finding
+herself talking in full strains of poetic verse. She says, half-ashamed:
+
+ "Methinks I play as I have seen them do
+ In Whitsun pastorals: sure, this robe of mine
+ Does change my disposition!"
+
+She does not mean this seriously. But the robe has more to do with it
+than she thinks. Her passion for Florizel is the warmth that sets the
+springs of her thoughts free, and they flow with the grace belonging to
+a princess-nature; but it is the robe that opens the door of her speech,
+and, by elevating her consciousness of herself, betrays her into what is
+only natural to her, but seems to her, on reflection, inconsistent with
+her low birth and poor education. This instance, however, involves far
+higher elements than any of the examples I have given before, and
+naturally leads to a much more important class of illustrations.
+
+In "Macbeth," act ii. scene 4, why is the old man, who has nothing to do
+with the conduct of the play, introduced?--That, in conversation with
+Rosse, he may, as an old man, bear testimony to the exceptionally
+terrific nature of that storm, which, we find--from the words of Banquo:
+
+ "There's husbandry in heaven:
+ Their candles are all out,"--
+
+had begun to gather, before supper was over in the castle. This storm is
+the sympathetic horror of Nature at the breaking open of the Lord's
+anointed temple--horror in which the animal creation partakes, for the
+horses of Duncan, "the minions of their race," and therefore the most
+sensitive of their sensitive race, tear each other to pieces in the
+wildness of their horror. Consider along with this a foregoing portion
+of the second scene in the same act. Macbeth, having joined his wife
+after the murder, says:
+
+ "Who lies i' the second chamber?
+
+ "_Lady M._ Donalbain.
+ * * * * *
+ "There are two lodged together."
+
+These two, Macbeth says, woke each other--the one laughing, the other
+crying _murder_. Then they said their prayers and went to sleep
+again.--I used to think that the natural companion of Donalbain would be
+Malcolm, his brother; and that the two brothers woke in horror from the
+proximity of their father's murderer who was just passing the door. A
+friend objected to this, that, had they been together, Malcolm, being
+the elder, would have been mentioned rather than Donalbain. Accept this
+objection, and we find a yet more delicate significance: the _presence_
+operated differently on the two, one bursting out in a laugh, the other
+crying _murder_; but both were in terror when they awoke, and dared not
+sleep till they had said their prayers. His sons, his horses, the
+elements themselves, are shaken by one unconscious sympathy with the
+murdered king.
+
+Associate with this the end of the third scene of the fourth act of
+"Julius Caesar;" where we find that the attendants of Brutus all cry out
+in their sleep, as the ghost of Caesar leaves their master's tent. This
+outcry is not given in Plutarch.
+
+To return to "Macbeth:" Why is the doctor of medicine introduced in the
+scene at the English court? He has nothing to do with the progress of
+the play itself, any more than the old man already alluded to.--He is
+introduced for a precisely similar reason.--As a doctor, he is the best
+testimony that could be adduced to the fact, that the English King
+Edward the Confessor, is a fountain of health to his people, gifted for
+his goodness with the sacred privilege of curing _The King's Evil_, by
+the touch of his holy hands. The English King himself is thus
+introduced, for the sake of contrast with the Scotch King, who is a
+raging bear amongst his subjects.
+
+In the "Winter's Tale," to which he gives the name because of the
+altogether extraordinary character of the occurrences (referring to it
+in the play itself, in the words: "_a sad tale's best for winter: I have
+one of sprites and goblins_") Antigonus has a remarkable dream or
+vision, in which Hermione appears to him, and commands the exposure of
+her child in a place to all appearance the most unsuitable and
+dangerous. Convinced of the reality of the vision, Antigonus obeys; and
+the whole marvellous result depends upon this obedience. Therefore the
+vision must be intended for a genuine one. But how could it be such, if
+Hermione was not dead, as, from her appearance to him, Antigonus firmly
+believed she was? I should feel this to be an objection to the art of
+the play, but for the following answer:--At the time she appeared to
+him, she was still lying in that deathlike swoon, into which she fell
+when the news of the loss of her son reached her as she stood before the
+judgment-seat of her husband, at a time when she ought not to have been
+out of her chamber.
+
+Note likewise, in the first scene of the second act of the same play,
+the changefulness of Hermione's mood with regard to her boy, as
+indicative of her condition at the time. If we do not regard this fact,
+we shall think the words introduced only for the sake of filling up the
+business of the play.
+
+In "Twelfth Night," both ladies make the first advances in love. Is it
+not worthy of notice that one of them has lost her brother, and that the
+other believes she has lost hers? In this respect, they may be placed
+with Phoebe, in "As You Like It," who, having suddenly lost her love by
+the discovery that its object was a woman, immediately and heartily
+accepts the devotion of her rejected lover, Silvius. Along with these
+may be classed Romeo, who, rejected and, as he believes, inconsolable,
+falls in love with Juliet the moment he sees her. That his love for
+Rosaline, however, was but a kind of _calf-love_ compared with his love
+for Juliet, may be found indicated in the differing tones of his speech
+under the differing conditions. Compare what he says in his conversation
+with Benvolio, in the first scene of the first act, with any of his many
+speeches afterwards, and, while _conceit_ will be found prominent enough
+in both, the one will be found to be ruled by the fancy, the other by
+the imagination.
+
+In this same play, there is another similar point which I should like to
+notice. In Arthur Brook's story, from which Shakspere took his, there is
+no mention of any communication from Lady Capulet to Juliet of their
+intention of marrying her to Count Paris. Why does Shakspere insert
+this?--to explain her falling in love with Romeo so suddenly. Her mother
+has set her mind moving in that direction. She has never seen Paris. She
+is looking about her, wondering which may be he, and whether she shall
+be able to like him, when she meets the love-filled eyes of Romeo fixed
+upon her, and is at once overcome. What a significant speech is that
+given to Paulina in the "Winter's Tale," act v. scene 1: "How? Not
+women?" Paulina is a thorough partisan, siding with women against men,
+and strengthened in this by the treatment her mistress has received from
+her husband. One has just said to her, that, if Perdita would begin a
+sect, she might "make proselytes of who she bid but follow." "How? Not
+women?" Paulina rejoins. Having received assurance that "women will love
+her," she has no more to say.
+
+I had the following explanation of a line in "Twelfth Night" from a
+stranger I met in an old book-shop:--Malvolio, having built his castle
+in the air, proceeds to inhabit it. Describing his own behaviour in a
+supposed case, he says (act ii. scene 5): "I frown the while; and
+perchance, wind up my watch, or play with my some rich jewel"--A dash
+ought to come after _my_. Malvolio was about to say _chain_; but
+remembering that his chain was the badge of his office of steward, and
+therefore of his servitude, he alters the word to "_some rich jewel_"
+uttered with pretended carelessness.
+
+In "Hamlet," act iii. scene 1, did not Shakspere intend the passionate
+soliloquy of Ophelia--a soliloquy which no maiden knowing that she was
+overheard would have uttered,--coupled with the words of her father:
+
+ "How now, Ophelia?
+ You need not tell us what lord Hamlet said,
+ We heard it all;"--
+
+to indicate that, weak as Ophelia was, she was not false enough to be
+accomplice in any plot for betraying Hamlet to her father and the King?
+They had remained behind the arras, and had not gone out as she must
+have supposed.
+
+Next, let me request my reader to refer once more to the poem; and
+having considered the physiognomy of Ajax and Ulysses, as described in
+the fifth stanza, to turn then to the play of "Troilus and Cressida,"
+and there contemplate that description as metamorphosed into the higher
+form of revelation in speech. Then, if he will associate the general
+principles in that stanza with the third, especially the last two lines,
+I will apply this to the character of Lady Macbeth.
+
+Of course, Shakspere does not mean that one regarding that portion of
+the picture alone, could see the eyes looking sad; but that the _sweet
+observance_ of the whole so roused the imagination that it supplied what
+distance had concealed, keeping the far-off likewise in sweet observance
+with the whole: the rest pointed that way.--In a manner something like
+this are we conducted to a right understanding of the character of Lady
+Macbeth. First put together these her utterances:
+
+ "You do unbend your noble strength, to think
+ So brainsickly of things."
+
+ "Get some water,
+ And wash this filthy witness from your hands."
+
+ "The sleeping and the dead
+ Are but as pictures."
+
+ "A little water clears us of this deed."
+
+ "When all's done,
+ You look but on a stool."
+
+ "You lack the season of all natures, sleep."--
+
+Had these passages stood in the play unmodified by others, we might have
+judged from them that Shakspere intended to represent Lady Macbeth as an
+utter materialist, believing in nothing beyond the immediate
+communications of the senses. But when we find them associated with such
+passages as these--
+
+ "Memory, the warder of the brain,
+ Shall be a fume, and the receipt of reason
+ A limbeck only;"
+
+ "Had he not resembled
+ My father as he slept, I had done't;
+
+ "These deeds must not be thought
+ After these ways; so, it will make us mad;"--
+
+then we find that our former theory will not do, for here are deeper and
+broader foundations to build upon. We discover that Lady Macbeth was an
+unbeliever _morally_, and so found it necessary to keep down all
+imagination, which is the upheaving of that inward world whose very
+being she would have annihilated. Yet out of this world arose at last
+the phantom of her slain self, and possessing her sleeping frame, sent
+it out to wander in the night, and rub its distressed and blood-stained
+hands in vain. For, as in this same "Rape of Lucrece,"
+
+ "the soul's fair temple is defaced;
+ To whose weak ruins muster troops of cares,
+ To ask the spotted princess how she fares."
+
+But when so many lines of delineation meet, and run into, and correct
+one another, assuming such a natural and vital form, that there is no
+_making of a point_ anywhere; and the woman is shown after no theory,
+but according to the natural laws of human declension, we feel that the
+only way to account for the perfection of the representation is to say
+that, given a shadow, Shakspere had the power to place himself so, that
+that shadow became his own--was the correct representation as shadow, of
+his form coming between it and the sunlight. And this is the highest
+dramatic gift that a man can possess. But we feel at the same time, that
+this is, in the main, not so much art as inspiration. There would be, in
+all probability, a great mingling of conscious art with the inspiration;
+but the lines of the former being lost in the general glow of the
+latter, we may be left where we were as to any certainty about the
+artistic consciousness of Shakspere. I will now therefore attempt to
+give a few plainer instances of such _sweet observance_ in his own work
+as he would have admired in a painting.
+
+First, then, I would request my reader to think how comparatively seldom
+Shakspere uses poetry in his plays. The whole play is a poem in the
+highest sense; but truth forbids him to make it the rule for his
+characters to speak poetically. Their speech is poetic in relation to
+the whole and the end, not in relation to the speaker, or in the
+immediate utterance. And even although their speech is immediately
+poetic, in this sense, that every character is idealized; yet it is
+idealized _after its kind_; and poetry certainly would not be the ideal
+speech of most of the characters. This granted, let us look at the
+exceptions: we shall find that such passages not only glow with poetic
+loveliness and fervour, but are very jewels of _sweet observance_, whose
+setting allows them their force as lawful, and their prominence as
+natural. I will mention a few of such.
+
+In "Julius Caesar," act i. scene 3, we are inclined to think the way
+_Casca_ speaks, quite inconsistent with the "sour fashion" which
+_Cassius_ very justly attributes to him; till we remember that he is
+speaking in the midst of an almost supernatural thunder-storm: the
+hidden electricity of the man's nature comes out in poetic forms and
+words, in response to the wild outburst of the overcharged heavens and
+earth.
+
+Shakspere invariably makes the dying speak poetically, and generally
+prophetically, recognizing the identity of the poetic and prophetic
+moods, in their highest development, and the justice that gives them the
+same name. Even _Sir John_, poor ruined gentleman, _babbles of green
+fields_. Every one knows that the passage is disputed: I believe that if
+this be not the restoration of the original reading, Shakspere himself
+would justify it, and wish that he had so written it.
+
+_Romeo_ and _Juliet_ talk poetry as a matter of course.
+
+In "King John," act v. scenes 4 and 5, see how differently the dying
+_Melun_ and the living and victorious _Lewis_ regard the same sunset:
+
+ _Melun_.
+
+ . . . . . this night, whose black contagious breath
+ Already smokes about the burning crest
+ Of the old, feeble, and day-wearied sun.
+
+ _Lewis_.
+
+ The sun in heaven, methought, was loath to set;
+ But stayed, and made the western welkin blush,
+ When the English measured backward their own ground.
+
+The exquisite duet between _Lorenzo_ and _Jessica_, in the opening of
+the fifth act of "The Merchant of Venice," finds for its subject the
+circumstances that produce the mood--the lovely night and the crescent
+moon--which first make them talk poetry, then call for music, and next
+speculate upon its nature.
+
+Let us turn now to some instances of sweet observance in other kinds.
+
+There is observance, more true than sweet, in the character of
+_Jacques_, in "As You Like It:" the fault-finder in age was the
+fault-doer in youth and manhood. _Jacques_ patronizing the fool, is one
+of the rarest shows of self-ignorance.
+
+In the same play, when _Rosalind_ hears that _Orlando_ is in the wood,
+she cries out, "Alas the day! what shall I do with my doublet and hose?"
+And when _Orlando_ asks her, "Where dwell you, pretty youth?" she
+answers, tripping in her role, "Here in the skirts of the forest, like
+fringe upon a petticoat."
+
+In the second part of "King Henry IV.," act iv. scene 3, _Falstaff_ says
+of _Prince John_: "Good faith, this same young sober-blooded boy doth
+not love me; nor a man cannot make him laugh;--but that's no marvel: he
+drinks no wine." This is the _Prince John_ who betrays the insurgents
+afterwards by the falsest of quibbles, and gains his revenge through
+their good faith.
+
+In "King Henry IV," act i. scene 2, _Poins_ does not say _Falstaff_ is a
+coward like the other two; but only--"If he fight longer than he sees
+reason, I'll forswear arms." Associate this with _Falstaff's_ soliloquy
+about _honour_ in the same play, act v. scene 1, and the true character
+of his courage or cowardice--for it may bear either name--comes out.
+
+Is there not conscious art in representing the hospitable face of the
+castle of _Macbeth_, bearing on it a homely welcome in the multitude of
+the nests of _the temple-haunting martlet_ (Psalm lxxxiv. 3), just as
+_Lady Macbeth_, the fiend-soul of the house, steps from the door, like
+the speech of the building, with her falsely smiled welcome? Is there
+not _observance_ in it?
+
+But the production of such instances might be endless, as the work of
+Shakspere is infinite. I confine myself to two more, taken from "The
+Merchant of Venice."
+
+Shakspere requires a character capable of the magnificent devotion of
+friendship which the old story attributes to _Antonio_. He therefore
+introduces us to a man sober even to sadness, thoughtful even to
+melancholy. The first words of the play unveil this characteristic. He
+holds "the world but as the world,"--
+
+ "A stage where every man must play a part,
+ And mine a sad one."
+
+The cause of this sadness we are left to conjecture. _Antonio_ himself
+professes not to know. But such a disposition, even if it be not
+occasioned by any definite event or object, will generally associate
+itself with one; and when _Antonio_ is accused of being in love, he
+repels the accusation with only a sad "Fie! fie!" This, and his whole
+character, seem to me to point to an old but ever cherished grief.
+
+Into the original story upon which this play is founded, Shakspere has,
+among other variations, introduced the story of _Jessica_ and _Lorenzo_,
+apparently altogether of his own invention. What was his object in doing
+so? Surely there were characters and interests enough already!--It seems
+to me that Shakspere doubted whether the Jew would have actually
+proceeded to carry out his fell design against _Antonio_, upon the
+original ground of his hatred, without the further incitement to revenge
+afforded by another passion, second only to his love of gold--his
+affection for his daughter; for in the Jew having reference to his own
+property, it had risen to a passion. Shakspere therefore invents her,
+that he may send a dog of a Christian to steal her, and, yet worse, to
+tempt her to steal her father's stones and ducats. I suspect Shakspere
+sends the old villain off the stage at the last with more of the pity of
+the audience than any of the other dramatists of the time would have
+ventured to rouse, had they been capable of doing so. I suspect he is
+the only human Jew of the English drama up to that time.
+
+I have now arrived at the last and most important stage of my argument.
+It is this: If Shakspere was so well aware of the artistic relations of
+the parts of his drama, is it likely that the grand meanings involved in
+the whole were unperceived by him, and conveyed to us without any
+intention on his part--had their origin only in the fact that he dealt
+with human nature so truly, that his representations must involve
+whatever lessons human life itself involves?
+
+Is there no intention, for instance, in placing _Prospero_, who forsook
+the duties of his dukedom for the study of magic, in a desert island,
+with just three subjects; one, a monster below humanity; the second, a
+creature etherealized beyond it; and the third a complete embodiment of
+human perfection? Is it not that he may learn how to rule, and, having
+learned, return, by the aid of his magic wisely directed, to the home
+and duties from which exclusive devotion to that magic had driven him?
+
+In "Julius Caesar," the death of _Brutus_, while following as the
+consequence of his murder of _Caesar_, is yet as much distinguished in
+character from that death, as the character of _Brutus_ is different
+from that of _Caesar_. _Caesar's_ last words were _Et tu Brute? Brutus_,
+when resolved to lay violent hands on himself, takes leave of his
+friends with these words:
+
+ "Countrymen,
+ My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life,
+ I found no man, but he was true to me."
+
+Here Shakspere did not invent. He found both speeches in Plutarch. But
+how unerring his choice!
+
+Is the final catastrophe in "Hamlet" such, because Shakspere could do no
+better?--It is: he could do no better than the best. Where but in the
+regions beyond could such questionings as _Hamlet's_ be put to rest? It
+would have been a fine thing indeed for the most nobly perplexed of
+thinkers to be left--his love in the grave; the memory of his father a
+torment, of his mother a blot; with innocent blood on his innocent
+hands, and but half understood by his best friend--to ascend in desolate
+dreariness the contemptible height of the degraded throne, and shine the
+first in a drunken court!
+
+Before bringing forward my last instance, I will direct the attention of
+my readers to a passage, in another play, in which the lesson of the
+play I am about to speak of, is _directly_ taught: the first speech in
+the second act of "As You Like It," might be made a text for the
+exposition of the whole play of "King Lear."
+
+The banished duke is seeking to bring his courtiers to regard their
+exile as a part of their moral training. I am aware that I point the
+passage differently, while I revert to the old text.
+
+ "Are not these woods
+ More free from peril than the envious court?
+ Here feel we not the penalty of Adam--
+ The season's difference, as the icy fang,
+ And churlish chiding of the winter's wind?
+ Which, when it bites and blows upon my body,
+ Even till I shrink with cold, I smile and say--
+ This is no flattery; these are counsellors
+ That feelingly persuade me what I am.
+ Sweet are the uses of adversity."
+
+The line _Here feel we not the penalty of Adam?_ has given rise to much
+perplexity. The expounders of Shakspere do not believe he can mean that
+the uses of adversity are really sweet. But the duke sees that _the
+penalty_ of Adam is what makes the _woods more free from peril than the
+envious court;_ that this penalty is in fact the best blessing, for it
+_feelingly persuades_ man _what_ he is; and to know what we are, to have
+no false judgments of ourselves, he considers so sweet, that to be thus
+taught, the _churlish chiding of the winter's wind_ is well endured.
+
+Now let us turn to _Lear_. We find in him an old man with a large
+heart, hungry for love, and yet not knowing what love is; an old man as
+ignorant as a child in all matters of high import; with a temper so
+unsubdued, and therefore so unkingly, that he storms because his dinner
+is not ready by the clock of his hunger; a child, in short, in
+everything but his grey hairs and wrinkled face, but his failing,
+instead of growing, strength. If a life end so, let the success of that
+life be otherwise what it may, it is a wretched and unworthy end. But
+let _Lear_ be blown by the winds and beaten by the rains of heaven, till
+he pities "poor naked wretches;" till he feels that he has "ta'en too
+little care of" such; till pomp no longer conceals from him what "a
+poor, bare, forked animal" he is; and the old king has risen higher in
+the real social scale--the scale of that country to which he is
+bound--far higher than he stood while he still held his kingdom
+undivided to his thankless daughters. Then let him learn at last that
+"love is the only good in the world;" let him find his _Cordelia_, and
+plot with her how they will in their dungeon _singing like birds i' the
+cage_, and, dwelling in the secret place of peace, look abroad on the
+world like _God's spies_; and then let the generous great old heart
+swell till it breaks at last--not with rage and hate and vengeance, but
+with love; and all is well: it is time the man should go to overtake his
+daughter; henceforth to dwell with her in the home of the true, the
+eternal, the unchangeable. All his suffering came from his own fault;
+but from the suffering has sprung another crop, not of evil but of good;
+the seeds of which had lain unfruitful in the soil, but were brought
+within the blessed influences of the air of heaven by the sharp tortures
+of the ploughshare of ill.
+
+
+
+
+THE ELDER HAMLET.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1875]
+
+ 'Tis bitter cold,
+ And I am sick at heart.
+
+The ghost in "Hamlet" is as faithfully treated as any character in the
+play. Next to Hamlet himself, he is to me the most interesting person of
+the drama. The rumour of his appearance is wrapped in the larger rumour
+of war. Loud preparations for uncertain attack fill the ears of "the
+subject of the land." The state is troubled. The new king has hardly
+compassed his election before his marriage with his brother's widow
+swathes the court in the dust-cloud of shame, which the merriment of its
+forced revelry can do little to dispel. A feeling is in the moral air to
+which the words of Francisco, the only words of significance he utters,
+give the key: "'Tis bitter cold, and I am sick at heart." Into the
+frosty air, the pallid moonlight, the drunken shouts of Claudius and his
+court, the bellowing of the cannon from the rampart for the enlargement
+of the insane clamour that it may beat the drum of its own disgrace at
+the portals of heaven, glides the silent prisoner of hell, no longer a
+king of the day walking about his halls, "the observed of all
+observers," but a thrall of the night, wandering between the bell and
+the cock, like a jailer on each side of him. A poet tells the tale of
+the king who lost his garments and ceased to be a king: here is the king
+who has lost his body, and in the eyes of his court has ceased to be a
+man. Is the cold of the earth's night pleasant to him after the purging
+fire? What crimes had the honest ghost committed in his days of nature?
+He calls them foul crimes! Could such be his? Only who can tell how a
+ghost, with his doubled experience, may think of this thing or that? The
+ghost and the fire may between them distinctly recognize that as a foul
+crime which the man and the court regarded as a weakness at worst, and
+indeed in a king laudable.
+
+Alas, poor ghost! Around the house he flits, shifting and shadowy, over
+the ground he once paced in ringing armour--armed still, but his very
+armour a shadow! It cannot keep out the arrow of the cock's cry, and the
+heart that pierces is no shadow. Where now is the loaded axe with which,
+in angry dispute, he smote the ice at his feet that cracked to the blow?
+Where is the arm that heaved the axe? Wasting in the marble maw of the
+sepulchre, and the arm he carries now--I know not what it can do, but it
+cannot slay his murderer. For that he seeks his son's. Doubtless his new
+ethereal form has its capacities and privileges. It can shift its garb
+at will; can appear in mail or night-gown, unaided of armourer or
+tailor; can pass through Hades-gates or chamber-door with equal ease;
+can work in the ground like mole or pioneer, and let its voice be heard
+from the cellarage. But there is one to whom it cannot appear, one whom
+the ghost can see, but to whom he cannot show himself. She has built a
+doorless, windowless wall between them, and sees the husband of her
+youth no more. Outside her heart--that is the night in which he wanders,
+while the palace-windows are flaring, and the low wind throbs to the
+wassail shouts: within, his murderer sits by the wife of his bosom, and
+in the orchard the spilt poison is yet gnawing at the roots of the
+daisies.
+
+Twice has the ghost grown out of the night upon the eyes of the
+sentinels. With solemn march, slow and stately, three times each night,
+has he walked by them; they, jellied with fear, have uttered no
+challenge. They seek Horatio, who the third night speaks to him as a
+scholar can. To the first challenge he makes no answer, but stalks away;
+to the second,
+
+ It lifted up its head, and did address
+ Itself to motion, like as it would speak;
+
+but the gaoler cock calls him, and the kingly shape
+
+ started like a guilty thing
+ Upon a fearful summons;
+
+and then
+
+ shrunk in haste away,
+ And vanished from our sight.
+
+Ah, that summons! at which majesty welks and shrivels, the king and
+soldier starts and cowers, and, armour and all, withers from the air!
+
+But why has he not spoken before? why not now ere the cock could claim
+him? He cannot trust the men. His court has forsaken his memory--crowds
+with as eager discontent about the mildewed ear as ever about his
+wholesome brother, and how should he trust mere sentinels? There is but
+one who will heed his tale. A word to any other would but defeat his
+intent. Out of the multitude of courtiers and subjects, in all the land
+of Denmark, there is but one whom he can trust--his student-son. Him he
+has not yet found--the condition of a ghost involving strange
+difficulties.
+
+Or did the horror of the men at the sight of him wound and repel him?
+Does the sense of regal dignity, not yet exhausted for all the fasting
+in fires, unite with that of grievous humiliation to make him shun their
+speech?
+
+But Horatio--why does the ghost not answer him ere the time of the cock
+is come? Does he fold the cloak of indignation around him because his
+son's friend has addressed him as an intruder on the night, an usurper
+of the form that is his own? The companions of the speaker take note
+that he is offended and stalks away.
+
+Much has the kingly ghost to endure in his attempt to re-open relations
+with the world he has left: when he has overcome his wrath and returns,
+that moment Horatio again insults him, calling him an illusion. But this
+time he will bear it, and opens his mouth to speak. It is too late; the
+cock is awake, and he must go. Then alas for the buried majesty of
+Denmark! with upheaved halberts they strike at the shadow, and would
+stop it if they might--usage so grossly unfitting that they are
+instantly ashamed of it themselves, recognizing the offence in the
+majesty of the offended. But he is already gone. The proud, angry king
+has found himself but a thing of nothing to his body-guard--for he has
+lost the body which was their guard. Still, not even yet has he learned
+how little it lies in the power of an honest ghost to gain credit for
+himself or his tale! His very privileges are against him.
+
+All this time his son is consuming his heart in the knowledge of a
+mother capable of so soon and so utterly forgetting such a husband, and
+in pity and sorrow for the dead father who has had such a wife. He is
+thirty years of age, an obedient, honourable son--a man of thought, of
+faith, of aspiration. Him now the ghost seeks, his heart burning like a
+coal with the sense of unendurable wrong. He is seeking the one drop
+that can fall cooling on that heart--the sympathy, the answering rage
+and grief of his boy. But when at length he finds him, the generous,
+loving father has to see that son tremble like an aspen-leaf in his
+doubtful presence. He has exposed himself to the shame of eyes and the
+indignities of dullness, that he may pour the pent torrent of his wrongs
+into his ears, but his disfranchisement from the flesh tells against him
+even with his son: the young Hamlet is doubtful of the identity of the
+apparition with his father. After all the burning words of the phantom,
+the spirit he has seen may yet be a devil; the devil has power to assume
+a pleasing shape, and is perhaps taking advantage of his melancholy to
+damn him.
+
+Armed in the complete steel of a suit well known to the eyes of the
+sentinels, visionary none the less, with useless truncheon in hand,
+resuming the memory of old martial habits, but with quiet countenance,
+more in sorrow than in anger, troubled--not now with the thought of the
+hell-day to which he must sleepless return, but with that unceasing ache
+at the heart, which ever, as often as he is released into the cooling
+air of the upper world, draws him back to the region of his
+wrongs--where having fallen asleep in his orchard, in sacred security
+and old custom, suddenly, by cruel assault, he was flung into Hades,
+where horror upon horror awaited him--worst horror of all, the knowledge
+of his wife!--armed he comes, in shadowy armour but how real sorrow!
+Still it is not pity he seeks from his son: he needs it not--he can
+endure. There is no weakness in the ghost. It is but to the imperfect
+human sense that he is shadowy. To himself he knows his doom his
+deliverance; that the hell in which he finds himself shall endure but
+until it has burnt up the hell he has found within him--until the evil
+he was and is capable of shall have dropped from him into the lake of
+fire; he nerves himself to bear. And the cry of revenge that comes from
+the sorrowful lips is the cry of a king and a Dane rather than of a
+wronged man. It is for public justice and not individual vengeance he
+calls. He cannot endure that the royal bed of Denmark should be a couch
+for luxury and damned incest. To stay this he would bring the murderer
+to justice. There is a worse wrong, for which he seeks no revenge: it
+involves his wife; and there comes in love, and love knows no amends but
+amendment, seeks only the repentance tenfold more needful to the wronger
+than the wronged. It is not alone the father's care for the human nature
+of his son that warns him to take no measures against his mother; it is
+the husband's tenderness also for her who once lay in his bosom. The
+murdered brother, the dethroned king, the dishonoured husband, the
+tormented sinner, is yet a gentle ghost. Has suffering already begun to
+make him, like Prometheus, wise?
+
+But to measure the gentleness, the forgiveness, the tenderness of the
+ghost, we must well understand his wrongs. The murder is plain; but
+there is that which went before and is worse, yet is not so plain to
+every eye that reads the story. There is that without which the murder
+had never been, and which, therefore, is a cause of all the wrong. For
+listen to what the ghost reveals when at length he has withdrawn his son
+that he may speak with him alone, and Hamlet has forestalled the
+disclosure of the murderer:
+
+ "Ay, that incestuous, that adulterate beast,
+ With witchcraft of his wit, with traitorous gifts,
+ (O wicked wit and gifts that have the power
+ So to seduce!) won to his shameful lust
+ The will of my most seeming virtuous queen:
+ Oh, Hamlet, what a falling off was there!
+ From me, whose love was of that dignity
+ That it went hand in hand even with the vow
+ I made to her in marriage, and to decline
+ Upon a wretch, whose natural gifts were poor
+ To those of mine!
+ But virtue--as it never will be moved
+ Though lewdness court it in a shape of heaven,
+ So lust, though to a radiant angel linked,
+ Will sate itself in a celestial bed,
+ And prey on garbage."
+
+Reading this passage, can any one doubt that the ghost charges his late
+wife with adultery, as the root of all his woes? It is true that,
+obedient to the ghost's injunctions, as well as his own filial
+instincts, Hamlet accuses his mother of no more than was patent to all
+the world; but unless we suppose the ghost misinformed or mistaken, we
+must accept this charge. And had Gertrude not yielded to the witchcraft
+of Claudius' wit, Claudius would never have murdered Hamlet. Through her
+his life was dishonoured, and his death violent and premature: unhuzled,
+disappointed, unaneled, he woke to the air--not of his orchard-blossoms,
+but of a prison-house, the lightest word of whose terrors would freeze
+the blood of the listener. What few men can say, he could--that his love
+to his wife had kept even step with the vow he made to her in marriage;
+and his son says of him--
+
+ "so loving to my mother
+ That he might not beteem the winds of heaven
+ Visit her face too roughly;"
+
+and this was her return! Yet is it thus he charges his son concerning
+her:
+
+ "But howsoever thou pursu'st this act,
+ Taint not thy mind, nor let thy soul contrive
+ Against thy mother aught; leave her to heaven,
+ And to those thorns that in her bosom lodge,
+ To prick and sting her."
+
+And may we not suppose it to be for her sake in part that the ghost
+insists, with fourfold repetition, upon a sword-sworn oath to silence
+from Horatio and Marcellus?
+
+Only once again does he show himself--not now in armour upon the walls,
+but in his gown and in his wife's closet.
+
+Ever since his first appearance, that is, all the time filling the
+interval between the first and second acts, we may presume him to have
+haunted the palace unseen, waiting what his son would do. But the task
+has been more difficult than either had supposed. The ambassadors have
+gone to Norway and returned; but Hamlet has done nothing. Probably he
+has had no opportunity; certainly he has had no clear vision of duty.
+But now all through the second and third acts, together occupying, it
+must be remembered, only one day, something seems imminent. The play has
+been acted, and Hamlet has gained some assurance, yet the one chance
+presented of killing the king--at his prayers--he has refused. He is now
+in his mother's closet, whose eyes he has turned into her very soul.
+There, and then, the ghost once more appears--come, he says, to whet his
+son's almost blunted purpose. But, as I have said, he does not know all
+the disadvantages of one who, having forsaken the world, has yet
+business therein to which he would persuade; he does not know how hard
+it is for a man to give credence to a ghost; how thoroughly he is
+justified in delay, and the demand for more perfect proof. He does not
+know what good reasons his son has had for uncertainty, or how much
+natural and righteous doubt has had to do with what he takes for the
+blunting of his purpose. Neither does he know how much more tender his
+son's conscience is than his own, or how necessary it is to him to be
+sure before he acts. As little perhaps does he understand how hateful to
+Hamlet is the task laid upon him--the killing of one wretched villain in
+the midst of a corrupt and contemptible court, one of a world of whose
+women his mother may be the type!
+
+Whatever the main object of the ghost's appearance, he has spoken but a
+few words concerning the matter between him and Hamlet, when he turns
+abruptly from it to plead with his son for his wife. The ghost sees and
+mistakes the terror of her looks; imagines that, either from some
+feeling of his presence, or from the power of Hamlet's words, her
+conscience is thoroughly roused, and that her vision, her conception of
+the facts, is now more than she can bear. She and her fighting soul are
+at odds. She is a kingdom divided against itself. He fears the
+consequences. He would not have her go mad. He would not have her die
+yet. Even while ready to start at the summons of that hell to which she
+has sold him, he forgets his vengeance on her seducer in his desire to
+comfort her. He dares not, if he could, manifest himself to her: what
+word of consolation could she hear from his lips? Is not the thought of
+him her one despair? He turns to his son for help: he cannot console his
+wife; his son must take his place. Alas! even now he thinks better of
+her than she deserves; for it is only the fancy of her son's madness
+that is terrifying her: he gazes on the apparition of which she sees
+nothing, and from his looks she anticipates an ungovernable outbreak.
+
+ "But look; amazement on thy mother sits!
+ Oh; step between her and her fighting soul
+ Conceit in weakest bodies strongest works.
+ Speak to her, Hamlet."
+
+The call to his son to soothe his wicked mother is the ghost's last
+utterance. For a few moments, sadly regardful of the two, he
+stands--while his son seeks in vain to reveal to his mother the presence
+of his father--a few moments of piteous action, all but ruining the
+remnant of his son's sorely-harassed self-possession--his whole concern
+his wife's distress, and neither his own doom nor his son's duty; then,
+as if lost in despair at the impassable gulf betwixt them, revealed by
+her utter incapacity for even the imagination of his proximity, he turns
+away, and steals out at the portal. Or perhaps he has heard the black
+cock crow, and is wanted beneath: his turn has come.
+
+Will the fires ever cleanse _her_? Will his love ever lift him above the
+pain of its loss? Will eternity ever be bliss, ever be endurable to poor
+_King Hamlet?_
+
+Alas! even the memory of the poor ghost is insulted. Night after night
+on the stage his effigy appears--cadaverous, sepulchral--no longer as
+Shakspere must have represented him, aerial, shadowy, gracious, the thin
+corporeal husk of an eternal--shall I say ineffaceable?--sorrow! It is
+no hollow monotone that can rightly upbear such words as his, but a
+sound mingled of distance and wind in the pine-tops, of agony and love,
+of horror and hope and loss and judgment--a voice of endless and
+sweetest inflection, yet with a shuddering echo in it as from the caves
+of memory, on whose walls, are written the eternal blazon that must not
+be to ears of flesh and blood. The spirit that can assume form at will
+must surely be able to bend that form to completest and most delicate
+expression, and the part of the ghost in the play offers work worthy of
+the highest artist. The would-be actor takes from it vitality and
+motion, endowing it instead with the rigidity of death, as if the soul
+had resumed its cast-off garment, the stiffened and mouldy corpse--whose
+frozen deadness it could ill model to the utterance of its lively will!
+
+
+
+
+ON POLISH.
+
+
+[Footnote: 1865]
+
+By Polish I mean a certain well-known and immediately recognizable
+condition of surface. But I must request my reader to consider well what
+this condition really is. For the definition of it appears to us to be,
+that condition of surface which allows the inner structure of the
+material to manifest itself. Polish is, as it were, a translucent skin,
+in which the life of the inorganic comes to the surface, as in the
+animal skin the animal life. Once clothed in this, the inner glories of
+the marble rock, of the jasper, of the porphyry, leave the darkness
+behind, and glow into the day. From the heart of the agate the mossy
+landscape comes dreaming out. From the depth of the green chrysolite
+looks up the eye of its gold. The "goings on of life" hidden for ages
+under the rough bark of the patient forest-trees, are brought to light;
+the rings of lovely shadow which the creature went on making in the
+dark, as the oyster its opaline laminations, and its tree-pearls of
+beautiful knots, where a beneficent disease has broken the geometrical
+perfection of its structure, gloom out in their infinite variousness.
+
+Nor are the revelations of polish confined to things having variety in
+their internal construction; they operate equally in things of
+homogeneous structure. It is the polished ebony or jet which gives the
+true blank, the material darkness. It is the polished steel that shines
+keen and remorseless and cold, like that human justice whose symbol it
+is. And in the polished diamond the distinctive purity is most evident;
+while from it, I presume, will the light absorbed from the sun gleam
+forth on the dark most plentifully.
+
+But the mere fact that the end of polish is revelation, can hardly be
+worth setting forth except for some ulterior object, some further
+revelation in the fact itself.--I wish to show that in the symbolic use
+of the word the same truth is involved, or, if not involved, at least
+suggested. But let me first make another remark on the preceding
+definition of the word.
+
+There is no denying that the first notion suggested by the word polish
+is that of smoothness, which will indeed be the sole idea associated
+with it before we begin to contemplate the matter. But when we consider
+what things are chosen to be "clothed upon" with this smoothness, then
+we find that the smoothness is scarcely desired for its own sake, and
+remember besides that in many materials and situations it is elaborately
+avoided. We find that here it is sought because of its faculty of
+enabling other things to show themselves--to come to the surface.
+
+I proceed then to examine how far my pregnant interpretation of the word
+will apply to its figurative use in two cases--_Polish of Style_, and
+_Polish of Manners_. The two might be treated together, seeing that
+_Style_ may be called the manners of intellectual utterance, and
+_Manners_ the style of social utterance; but it is more convenient to
+treat them separately.
+
+I will begin with the Polish of Style.
+
+It will be seen at once that if the notion of polish be limited to that
+of smoothness, there can be little to say on the matter, and nothing
+worthy of being said. For mere smoothness is no more a desirable quality
+in a style than it is in a country or a countenance; and its pursuit
+will result at length in the gain of the monotonous and the loss of the
+melodious and harmonious. But it is only upon worthless material that
+polish can be _mere_ smoothness; and where the material is not valuable,
+polish can be nothing but smoothness. No amount of polish in a style can
+render the production of value, except there be in it embodied thought
+thereby revealed; and the labour of the polish is lost. Let us then take
+the fuller meaning of polish, and see how it will apply to style.
+
+If it applies, then Polish of Style will imply the approximately
+complete revelation of the thought. It will be the removal of everything
+that can interfere between the thought of the speaker and the mind of
+the hearer. True polish in marble or in speech reveals inlying
+realities, and, in the latter at least, mere smoothness, either of sound
+or of meaning, is not worthy of the name. The most polished style will
+be that which most immediately and most truly flashes the meaning
+embodied in the utterance upon the mind of the listener or reader.
+
+"Will you then," I imagine a reader objecting, "admit of no ornament in
+style?"
+
+"Assuredly," I answer, "I would admit of no ornament whatever."
+
+But let me explain what I mean by ornament. I mean anything stuck in or
+on, like a spangle, because it is pretty in itself, although it reveals
+nothing. Not one such ornament can belong to a polished style. It is
+paint, not polish. And if this is not what my questioner means by
+_ornament_, my answer must then be read according to the differences in
+his definition of the word. What I have said has not the least
+application to the natural forms of beauty which thought assumes in
+speech. Between such beauty and such ornament there lies the same
+difference as between the overflow of life in the hair, and the dressing
+of that loveliest of utterances in grease and gold.
+
+For, when I say that polish is the removal of everything that comes
+between thought and thinking, it must not be supposed that in my idea
+thought is only of the intellect, and therefore that all forms but bare
+intellectual forms are of the nature of ornament. As well might one say
+that the only essential portion of the human form is the bones. And
+every human thought is in a sense a human being, has as necessarily its
+muscles of motion, its skin of beauty, its blood of feeling, as its
+skeleton of logic. For complete utterance, music itself in its right
+proportions, sometimes clear and strong, as in rhymed harmonies,
+sometimes veiled and dim, as in the prose compositions of the masters of
+speech, is as necessary as correctness of logic, and common sense in
+construction. I should have said _conveyance_ rather than utterance; for
+there may be utterance such as to relieve the mind of the speaker with
+more or less of fancied communication, while the conveyance of thought
+may be little or none; as in the speaking with tongues of the infant
+Church, to which the lovely babblement of our children has probably more
+than a figurative resemblance, relieving their own minds, but, the
+interpreter not yet at his post, neither instructing nor misleading any
+one. But as the object of grown-up speech must in the main be the
+conveyance of thought, and not the mere utterance, everything in the
+style of that speech which interposes between the mental eyes and the
+thought embodied in the speech, must be polished away, that the
+indwelling life may manifest itself.
+
+What, then (for now we must come to the practical), is the kind of thing
+to be polished away in order that the hidden may be revealed?
+
+All words that can be dismissed without loss; for all such more or less
+obscure the meaning upon which they gather. The first step towards the
+polishing of most styles is to strike out--polish off--the useless words
+and phrases. It is wonderful with how many fewer words most things could
+be said that are said; while the degree of certainty and rapidity with
+which an idea is conveyed would generally be found to be in an inverse
+ratio to the number of words employed.
+
+All ornaments so called--the nose and lip jewels of style--the tattooing
+of the speech; all similes that, although true, give no additional
+insight into the meaning; everything that is only pretty and not
+beautiful; all mere sparkle as of jewels that lose their own beauty by
+being set in the grandeur of statues or the dignity of monumental stone,
+must be ruthlessly polished away.
+
+All utterances which, however they may add to the amount of thought,
+distract the mind, and confuse its observation of the main idea, the
+essence or life of the book or paper, must be diligently refused. In the
+manuscript of _Comus_ there exists, cancelled but legible, a passage of
+which I have the best authority for saying that it would have made the
+poetic fame of any writer. But the grand old self-denier struck it out
+of the opening speech because that would be more polished without
+it--because the _Attendant Spirit_ would say more immediately and
+exclusively, and therefore more completely, what he had to say, without
+it.--All this applies much more widely and deeply in the region of art;
+but I am at present dealing with the surface of style, not with the
+round of result.
+
+I have one instance at hand, however, belonging to this region, than
+which I could scarcely produce a more apt illustration of my thesis. One
+of the greatest of living painters, walking with a friend through the
+late Exhibition of Art-Treasures at Manchester, came upon Albert Duerer's
+_Melancholia_. After looking at it for a moment, he told his friend that
+now for the first time he understood it, and proceeded to set forth what
+he saw in it. It was a very early impression, and the delicacy of the
+lines was so much the greater. He had never seen such a perfect
+impression before, and had never perceived the intent and scope of the
+engraving. The mere removal of accidental thickness and furriness in the
+lines of the drawing enabled him to see into the meaning of that
+wonderful production. The polish brought it to the surface. Or, what
+amounts to the same thing for my argument, the dulling of the surface
+had concealed it even from his experienced eyes.
+
+In fine, and more generally, all cause whatever of obscurity must be
+polished away. There may lie in the matter itself a darkness of colour
+and texture which no amount of polishing can render clear or even vivid;
+the thoughts themselves may be hard to think, and difficulty must not be
+confounded with obscurity. The former belongs to the thoughts
+themselves; the latter to the mode of their embodiment. All cause of
+obscurity in this must, I say, be removed. Such may lie even in the
+region of grammar, or in the mere arrangement of a sentence. And while,
+as I have said, no ornament is to be allowed, so all roughnesses, which
+irritate the mental ear, and so far incapacitate it for receiving a true
+impression of the meaning from the words, must be carefully reduced. For
+the true music of a sentence, belonging as it does to the essence of the
+thought itself, is the herald which goes before to prepare the mind for
+the following thought, calming the surface of the intellect to a
+mirror-like reflection of the image about to fall upon it. But syllables
+that hang heavy on the tongue and grate harsh upon the ear are the
+trumpet of discord rousing to unconscious opposition and conscious
+rejection.
+
+And now the consideration of the Polish of Manners will lead us to some
+yet more important reflections. Here again I must admit that the
+ordinary use of the phrase is analogous to that of the preceding; but
+its relations lead us deep into realities. For as diamond alone can
+polish diamond, so men alone can polish men; and hence it is that it was
+first by living in a city ([Greek: polis], _polis_) that men--
+
+ "rubbed each other's angles down,"
+
+and became _polished_. And while a certain amount of ease with regard to
+ourselves and of consideration with regard to others is everywhere
+necessary to a man's passing as a gentleman--all unevenness of behaviour
+resulting either from shyness or self-consciousness (in the shape of
+awkwardness), or from overweening or selfishness (in the shape of
+rudeness), having to be polished away--true human polish must go further
+than this. Its respects are not confined to the manners of the ball-room
+or the dinner-table, of the club or the exchange, but wherever a man may
+rejoice with them that rejoice or weep with them that weep, he must
+remain one and the same, as polished to the tiller of the soil as to the
+leader of the fashion.
+
+But how will the figure of material polish aid us any further? How can
+it be said that Polish of Manners is a revelation of that which is
+within, a calling up to the surface of the hidden loveliness of the
+material? For do we not know that courtesy may cover contempt; that
+smiles themselves may hide hate; that one who will place you at his
+right hand when in want of your inferior aid, may scarce acknowledge
+your presence when his necessity has gone by? And how then can polished
+manners be a revelation of what is within? Are they not the result of
+putting on rather than of taking off? Are they not paint and varnish
+rather than polish?
+
+I must yield the answer to each of these questions; protesting, however,
+that with such polish I have nothing to do; for these manners are
+confessedly false. But even where least able to mislead, they are, with
+corresponding courtesy, accepted as outward signs of an inward grace.
+Hence even such, by the nature of their falsehood, support my position.
+For in what forms are the colours of the paint laid upon the surface of
+the material? Is it not in as near imitations of the real right human
+feelings about oneself and others as the necessarily imperfect knowledge
+of such an artist can produce? He will not encounter the labour of
+polishing, for he does not believe in the divine depths of his own
+nature: he paints, and calls the varnish polish.
+
+"But why talk of polish with reference to such a character, seeing that
+no amount of polishing can bring to the surface what is not there? No
+polishing of sandstone will reveal the mottling of marble. For it is
+sandstone, crumbling and gritty--not noble in any way."
+
+Is it so then? Can such be the real nature of the man? And can polish
+reach nothing deeper in him than such? May not this selfishness be
+polished away, revealing true colour and harmony beneath? Was not the
+man made in the image of God? Or, if you say that man lost that image,
+did not a new process of creation begin from the point of that loss, a
+process of re-creation in him in whom all shall be made alive, which,
+although so far from being completed yet, can never be checked? If we
+cut away deep enough at the rough block of our nature, shall we not
+arrive at some likeness of that true man who, the apostle says, dwells
+in us--the hope of glory? He informs us--that is, forms us from within.
+
+Dr. Donne (who knew less than any other writer in the English language
+what Polish of Style means) recognizes this divine polishing to the
+full. He says in a poem called "The Cross:"--
+
+ As perchance carvers do not faces make,
+ But that away, which hid them there, do take,
+ Let Crosses so take what hid Christ in thee,
+ And be his Image, or not his, but He.
+
+This is no doubt a higher figure than that of _polish_, but it is of the
+same kind, revealing the same truth. It recognizes the fact that the
+divine nature lies at the root of the human nature, and that the polish
+which lets that spiritual nature shine out in the simplicity of heavenly
+childhood, is the true Polish of Manners of which all merely social
+refinements are a poor imitation.--Whence Coleridge says that nothing
+but religion can make a man a gentleman.--And when these harmonies of
+our nature come to the surface, we shall be indeed "lively stones," fit
+for building into the great temple of the universe, and echoing the
+music of creation. Dr. Donne recognizes, besides, the notable fact that
+_crosses_ or afflictions are the polishing powers by means of which the
+beautiful realities of human nature are brought to the surface. One can
+tell at once by the peculiar loveliness of certain persons that they
+have suffered.
+
+But, to look for a moment less profoundly into the matter, have we not
+known those whose best never could get to the surface just from the lack
+of polish?--persons who, if they could only reveal the kindness of
+their nature, would make men believe in human nature, but in whom some
+roughness of awkwardness or of shyness prevents the true self from
+appearing? Even the dread of seeming to claim a good deed or to
+patronize a fellow-man will sometimes spoil the last touch of tenderness
+which would have been the final polish of the act of giving, and would
+have revealed infinite depths of human devotion. For let the truth out,
+and it will be seen to be true.
+
+Simplicity is the end of all Polish, as of all Art, Culture, Morals,
+Religion, and Life. The Lord our God is one Lord, and we and our
+brothers and sisters are one Humanity, one Body of the Head.
+
+Now to the practical: what are we to do for the polish of our manners?
+
+Just what I have said we must do for the polish of our style. Take off;
+do not put on. Polish away this rudeness, that awkwardness. Correct
+everything self-assertive, which includes nine tenths of all vulgarity.
+Imitate no one's behaviour; that is to paint. Do not think about
+yourself; that is to varnish. Put what is wrong right, and what is in
+you will show itself in harmonious behaviour.
+
+But no one can go far in this track without discovering that true polish
+reaches much deeper; that the outward exists but for the sake of the
+inward; and that the manners, as they depend on the morals, must be
+forgotten in the morals of which they are but the revelation. Look at
+the high-shouldered, ungainly child in the corner: his mother tells him
+to go to his book, and he wants to go to his play. Regard the swollen
+lips, the skin tightened over the nose, the distortion of his shape, the
+angularity of his whole appearance. Yet he is not an awkward child by
+nature. Look at him again the moment after he has given in and kissed
+his mother. His shoulders have dropped to their place; his limbs are
+free from the fetters that bound them; his motions are graceful, and the
+one blends harmoniously with the other. He is no longer thinking of
+himself. He has given up his own way. The true childhood comes to the
+surface, and you see what the boy is meant to be always. Look at the
+jerkiness of the conceited man. Look at the quiet _fluency_ of motion in
+the modest man. Look how anger itself which forgets self, which is
+unhating and righteous, will elevate the carriage and ennoble the
+movements.
+
+But how far can the same rule of _omission_ or _rejection_ be applied
+with safety to this deeper character--the manners of the spirit?
+
+It seems to me that in morals too the main thing is to avoid doing
+wrong; for then the active spirit of life in us will drive us on to the
+right. But on such a momentous question I would not be dogmatic. Only as
+far as regards the feelings I would say: it is of no use to try to make
+ourselves feel thus or thus. Let us fight with our wrong feelings; let
+us polish away the rough ugly distortions of feeling. Then the real and
+the good will come of themselves. Or rather, to keep to my figure, they
+will then show themselves of themselves as the natural home-produce, the
+indwelling facts of our deepest--that is, our divine nature.
+
+Here I find that I am sinking through my subject into another and
+deeper--a truth, namely, which should, however, be the foundation of all
+our building, the background of all our representations: that Life is at
+work in us--the sacred Spirit of God travailing in us. That Spirit has
+gained one end of his labour--at which he can begin to do yet more for
+us--when he has brought us to beg for the help which he has been giving
+us all the time.
+
+I have been regarding infinite things through the medium of one limited
+figure, knowing that figures with all their suggestions and relations
+could not reveal them utterly. But so far as they go, these thoughts
+raised by the word Polish and its figurative uses appear to me to be
+most true.
+
+
+
+
+BROWNING'S "CHRISTMAS EVE"
+
+
+[Footnote: 1853.]
+
+
+Goethe says:--
+
+ "Poems are painted window panes.
+ If one looks from the square into the church,
+ Dusk and dimness are his gains--
+ Sir Philistine is left in the lurch!
+ The sight, so seen, may well enrage him,
+ Nor anything henceforth assuage him.
+
+ "But come just inside what conceals;
+ Cross the holy threshold quite--
+ All at once 'tis rainbow-bright,
+ Device and story flash to light,
+ A gracious splendour truth reveals.
+ This to God's children is full measure,
+ It edifies and gives you pleasure!"
+
+This is true concerning every form in which truth is embodied, whether
+it be sight or sound, geometric diagram or scientific formula.
+Unintelligible, it may be dismal enough, regarded from the outside;
+prismatic in its revelation of truth from within. Such is the world
+itself, as beheld by the speculative eye; a thing of disorder,
+obscurity, and sadness: only the child-like heart, to which the door
+into the divine idea is thrown open, can understand somewhat the secret
+of the Almighty. In human things it is particularly true of art, in
+which the fundamental idea seems to be the revelation of the true
+through the beautiful. But of all the arts it is most applicable to
+poetry; for the others have more that is beautiful on the outside; can
+give pleasure to the senses by the form of the marble, the hues of the
+painting, or the sweet sounds of the music, although the heart may never
+perceive the meaning that lies within. But poetry, except its rhythmic
+melody, and its scattered gleams of material imagery, for which few care
+that love it not for its own sake, has no attraction on the outside to
+entice the passer to enter and partake of its truth. It is inwards that
+its colours shine, within that its forms move, and the sound of its holy
+organ cannot be heard from without.
+
+Now, if one has been able to reach the heart of a poem, answering to
+Goethe's parabolic description; or even to discover a loop-hole, through
+which, from an opposite point, the glories of its stained windows are
+visible; it is well that he should seek to make others partakers in his
+pleasure and profit. Some who might not find out for themselves, would
+yet be evermore grateful to him who led them to the point of vision.
+Surely if a man would help his fellow-men, he can do so far more
+effectually by exhibiting truth than exposing error, by unveiling beauty
+than by a critical dissection of deformity. From the very nature of the
+things it must be so. Let the true and good destroy their opposites. It
+is only by the good and beautiful that the evil and ugly are known. It
+is the light that makes manifest.
+
+The poem "Christmas Eve," by Robert Browning, with the accompanying poem
+"Easter Day," seems not to have attracted much notice from the readers
+of poetry, although highly prized by a few. This is, perhaps, to be
+attributed, in a great measure, to what many would call a considerable
+degree of obscurity. But obscurity is the appearance which to a first
+glance may be presented either by profundity or carelessness of thought.
+To some, obscurity itself is attractive, from the hope that worthiness
+is the cause of it. To apply a test similar to that by which Pascal
+tries the Koran and the Scriptures: what is the character of those
+portions, the meaning of which is plain? Are they wise or foolish? If
+the former, the presumption is that the obscurity of other parts is
+caused not by opacity, but profundity. But some will object,
+notwithstanding, that a writer ought to make himself plain to his
+readers; nay, that if he has a clear idea himself, he must be able to
+express that idea clearly. But for communion of thought, two minds, not
+one, are necessary. The fault may lie in him that receives or in him
+that gives, or it may be in neither. For how can the result of much
+thought, the idea which for mouths has been shaping itself in the mind
+of one man, be at once received by another mind to which it comes a
+stranger and unexpected? The reader has no right to complain of so
+caused obscurity. Nor is that form of expression, which is most easily
+understood at first sight, necessarily the best. It will not, therefore,
+continue to move; nor will it gather force and influence with more
+intimate acquaintance. Here Goethe's little parable, as he calls it, is
+peculiarly applicable. But, indeed, if after all a writer is obscure,
+the man who has spent most labour in seeking to enter into his thoughts,
+will be the least likely to complain of his obscurity; and they who have
+the least difficulty in understanding a writer, are frequently those who
+understand him the least.
+
+To those to whom the religion of Christ has been the law of liberty; who
+by that door have entered into the universe of God, and have begun to
+feel a growing delight in all the manifestations of God, it is cause of
+much joy to find that, whatever may be the position taken by men of
+science, or by those in whom the intellect predominates, with regard to
+the Christian religion, men of genius, at least, in virtue of what is
+child-like in their nature, are, in the present time, plainly
+manifesting deep devotion to Christ. There are exceptions, certainly;
+but even in those, there are symptoms of feelings which, one can hardly
+help thinking, tend towards him, and will one day flame forth in
+conscious worship. A mind that recognizes any of the multitudinous
+meanings of the revelation of God, in the world of sounds, and forms,
+and colours, cannot be blind to the higher manifestation of God in
+common humanity; nor to him in whom is hid the key to the whole, the
+First-born of the creation of God, in whose heart lies, as yet but
+partially developed, the kingdom of heaven, which is the redemption of
+the earth. The mind that delights in that which is lofty and great,
+which feels there is something higher than self, will undoubtedly be
+drawn towards Christ; and they, who at first looked on him as a great
+prophet, came at length to perceive that he was the radiation of the
+Father's glory, the likeness of his unseen being.
+
+A description of the poem may, perhaps, both induce to the reading of
+it, and contribute to its easier comprehension while being perused. On a
+stormy Christmas Eve, the poet, or rather the seer (for the whole must
+be regarded as a poetic vision), is compelled to take refuge in the
+"lath and plaster entry" of a little chapel, belonging to a congregation
+of Calvinistic Methodists, who are at the time assembling for worship.
+Wonderful in its reality is the description of various of the flock that
+pass him as they enter the chapel, from
+
+ "the many-tattered
+ Little old-faced, peaking sister-turned-mother
+ Of the sickly babe she tried to smother
+ Somehow up, with its spotted face,
+ From the cold, on her breast, the one warm place:"
+
+to the "shoemaker's lad;" whom he follows, determined not to endure the
+inquisition of their looks any longer, into the chapel. The humour of
+the whole scene within is excellent. The stifling closeness, both of the
+atmosphere and of the sermon, the wonderful content of the audience, the
+"old fat woman," who
+
+ "purred with pleasure,
+ And thumb round thumb went twirling faster,
+ While she, to his periods keeping measure,
+ Maternally devoured the pastor;"
+
+are represented by a few rapid touches that bring certain points of the
+reality almost unpleasantly near. At length, unable to endure it longer,
+he rushes out into the air. Objection may, probably, be made to the
+mingling of the humorous, even the ridiculous, with the serious; at
+least, in a work of art like this, where they must be brought into such
+close proximity. But are not these things as closely connected in the
+world as they can be in any representation of it? Surely there are few
+who have never had occasion to attempt to reconcile the thought of the
+two in their own minds. Nor can there be anything human that is not, in
+some connexion or other, admissible into art. The widest idea of art
+must comprehend all things. A work of this kind must, like God's world,
+in which he sends rain on the just and on the unjust, be taken as a
+whole and in regard to its design. The requisition is, that everything
+introduced have a relation to the adjacent parts and to the whole
+suitable to the design. Here the thing is real, is true, is human; a
+thing to be thought about. It has its place amongst other phenomena,
+with which, however apparently incongruous, it is yet vitally connected
+within.
+
+A coolness and delight visit us, on turning over the page and commencing
+to read the description of sky, and moon, and clouds, which greet him
+outside the chapel. It is as a vision of the vision-bearing world
+itself, in one of its fine, though not, at first, one of its rarest
+moods. And here a short digression to notice like feelings in unlike
+dresses, one thought differently expressed will, perhaps, be pardoned.
+The moon is prevented from shining out by the "blocks" of cloud "built
+up in the west:"--
+
+ "And the empty other half of the sky
+ Seemed in its silence as if it knew
+ What, any moment, might look through
+ A chance-gap in that fortress massy."
+
+Old Henry Vaughan says of the "Dawning:"--
+
+ "The whole Creation shakes off night,
+ And for thy shadow looks the Light;
+ Stars now vanish without number,
+ Sleepie Planets set and slumber,
+ The pursie Clouds disband and scatter,
+ _All expect some sudden matter_."
+
+Calmness settles down on his mind. He walks on, thinking of the scene he
+had left, and the sermon he had heard. In the latter he sees the good
+and the bad intimately mingled; and is convinced that the chief benefit
+derived from it is a reproducing of former impressions. The thought
+crosses him, in how many places and how many different forms the same
+thing takes place, "a convincing" of the "convinced;" and he rejoices in
+the contrast which his church presents to these; for in the church of
+Nature his love to God, assurance of God's love to him, and confidence
+in the design of God regarding him, commenced. While exulting in God and
+the knowledge of Him to be attained hereafter, he is favoured with a
+sight of a glorious moon-rainbow, which elevates his worship to ecstasy.
+During which--
+
+ "All at once I looked up with terror--
+ He was there.
+ He himself with His human air,
+ On the narrow pathway, just before:
+ I saw the back of Him, no more--
+ He had left the chapel, then, as I.
+ I forgot all about the sky.
+ No face: only the sight
+ Of a sweepy garment, vast and white,
+ With a hem that I could recognize.
+ I felt terror, no surprise:
+ My mind filled with the cataract,
+ At one bound, of the mighty fact.
+ I remembered, He did say
+ Doubtless, that, to this world's end,
+ Where two or three should meet and pray,
+ He would be in the midst, their friend:
+ Certainly He was there with them.
+ And my pulses leaped for joy
+ Of the golden thought without alloy,
+ That I saw His very vesture's hem.
+ Then rushed the blood back, cold and clear,
+ With a fresh enhancing shiver of fear."
+
+Praying for forgiveness wherein he has sinned, and prostrate in
+adoration before the form of Christ, he is "caught up in the whirl and
+drift" of his vesture, and carried along with him over the earth.
+
+Stopping at length at the entrance of St. Peter's in Rome, he remains
+outside, while the form disappears within. He is able, however, to see
+all that goes on, in the crowded, hushed interior. It is high mass. He
+has been carried at once from the little chapel to the opposite
+aesthetic pole. From the entry, where--
+
+ "The flame of the single tallow candle
+ In the cracked square lanthorn I stood under
+ Shot its blue lip at me,"
+
+to--
+ "This miraculous dome of God--
+ This colonnade
+ With arms wide open to embrace
+ The entry of the human race
+ To the breast of.... what is it, yon building,
+ Ablaze in front, all paint and gilding,
+ With marble for brick, and stones of price
+ For garniture of the edifice?"
+
+to "those fountains"--
+
+ "Growing up eternally
+ Each to a musical water-tree,
+ Whose blossoms drop, a glittering boon,
+ Before my eyes, in the light of the moon,
+ To the granite lavers underneath;"
+
+from the singing of the chapel to the organ self-restrained, that "holds
+his breath and grovels latent," while expecting the elevation of the
+Host. Christ is within; he is left without. Reflecting on the matter, he
+thinks his Lord would not require him to go in, though he himself
+entered, because there was a way to reach him there. By-and-by, however,
+his heart awakes and declares that Love goes beyond error with them, and
+if the Intellect be kept down, yet Love is the oppressor; so next time
+he resolves to enter and praise along with them. The passage commencing,
+"Oh, love of those first Christian days!" describing Love's victory over
+Intellect, is very fine.
+
+Again he is caught up and carried along as before. This time halt is
+made at the door of a college in a German town, in which the class-room
+of one of the professors is open for lecture this Christmas Eve. It is,
+intellectually considered, the opposite pole to both the Methodist
+chapel and the Roman Basilica. The poet enters, fearful of losing the
+society of "any that call themselves his friends." He describes the
+assembled company, and the entrance of "the hawk-nosed, high-cheek-boned
+professor," of part of whose Christmas Eve's discourse he proceeds to
+give the substance. The professor takes it for granted that "plainly no
+such life was liveable," and goes on to inquire what explanation of the
+phenomena of the life of Christ it were best to adopt. Not that it
+mattered much, "so the idea be left the same." Taking the popular story,
+for convenience sake, and separating all extraneous matter from it, he
+found that Christ was simply a good man, with an honest, true heart;
+whose disciples thought him divine; and whose doctrine, though quite
+mistaken by those who received and published it, "had yet a meaning
+quite as respectable." Here the poet takes advantage of a pause to leave
+him; reflecting that though the air may be poisoned by the sects, yet
+here "the critic leaves no air to poison." His meditations and arguments
+following, are among the most valuable passages in the book. The
+professor, notwithstanding the idea of Christ has by him been exhausted
+of all that is peculiar to it, yet recommends him to the veneration and
+worship of his hearers, "rather than all who went before him, and all
+who ever followed after." But why? says the poet. For his intellect,
+
+ "Which tells me simply what was told
+ (If mere morality, bereft
+ Of the God in Christ, be all that's left)
+ Elsewhere by voices manifold?"
+
+with which must be combined the fact that this intellect of his did not
+save him from making the "important stumble," of saying that he and God
+were one. "But his followers misunderstood him," says the objector.
+Perhaps so; but "the stumbling-block, his speech, who laid it?" Well
+then, is it on the score of his goodness that he should rule his race?
+
+ "You pledge
+ Your fealty to such rule? What, all--
+ From Heavenly John and Attic Paul,
+ And that brave weather-battered Peter,
+ Whose stout faith only stood completer
+ For buffets, sinning to be pardoned,
+ As the more his hands hauled nets, they hardened--
+ All, down to you, the man of men,
+ Professing here at Goettingen,
+ Compose Christ's flock! So, you and I
+ Are sheep of a good man! And why?"
+
+Did Christ _invent_ goodness? or did he only demonstrate that of which
+the common conscience was judge?
+
+ "I would decree
+ Worship for such mere demonstration
+ And simple work of nomenclature,
+ Only the day I praised, not Nature,
+ But Harvey, for the circulation."
+
+The worst man, says the poet, _knows_ more than the best man _does_. God
+in Christ appeared to men to help them to _do_, to awaken the life
+within them.
+
+ "Morality to the uttermost,
+ Supreme in Christ as we all confess,
+ Why need _we_ prove would avail no jot
+ To make Him God, if God he were not?
+ What is the point where Himself lays stress?
+ Does the precept run, 'Believe in good,
+ In justice, truth, now understood
+ For the first time?'--or, 'Believe in ME,
+ Who lived and died, yet essentially
+ Am Lord of life'? Whoever can take
+ The same to his heart, and for mere love's sake
+ Conceive of the love,--that man obtains
+ A new truth; no conviction gains
+ Of an old one only, made intense
+ By a fresh appeal to his faded sense."
+
+In this lies the most direct practical argument with regard to what is
+commonly called the Divinity of Christ. Here is a man whom those that
+magnify him the least confess to be a good man, the best of men. He
+_says_, "I and the Father are one." Will an earnest heart, knowing this,
+be likely to draw back, or will it draw nearer to behold the great
+sight? Will not such a heart feel: "A good man like this would not have
+said so, were it not so. In all probability the great truth of God lies
+behind this veil." The reality of Christ's nature is not to be proved by
+argument. He must be beheld. The manifestation of Him must "gravitate
+inwards" on the soul. It is by looking that one can know. As a
+mathematical theorem is to be proved only by the demonstration of that
+theorem itself, not by talking _about_ it; so Christ must prove himself
+to the human soul through being beheld. The only proof of Christ's
+divinity is his humanity. Because his humanity is not comprehended, his
+divinity is doubted; and while the former is uncomprehended, an assent
+to the latter is of little avail. For a man to theorize theologically in
+any form, while he has not so apprehended Christ, or to neglect the
+gazing on him for the attempt to substantiate to himself any form of
+belief respecting him, is to bring on himself, in a matter of divine
+import, such errors as the expounders of nature in old time brought on
+themselves, when they speculated on what a thing must be, instead of
+observing what it was; this _must be_ having for its foundation not
+self-evident truth, but notions whose chief strength lay in their
+preconception. There are thoughts and feelings that cannot be called up
+in the mind by any power of will or force of imagination; which, being
+spiritual, must arise in the soul when in its highest spiritual
+condition; when the mind, indeed, like a smooth lake, reflects only
+heavenly images. A steadfast regarding of Him will produce this calm,
+and His will be the heavenly form reflected from the mental depth.
+
+But to return to the poem. The fact that Christ remains inside, leads
+the poet to reflect, in the spirit of Him who found all the good in men
+he could, neglecting no point of contact which presented itself, whether
+there was anything at this lecture with which he could sympathize; and
+he finds that the heart of the professor does something to rescue him
+from the error of his brain. In his brain, even, "if Love's dead there,
+it has left a ghost." For when the natural deduction from his argument
+would be that our faith
+
+ "Be swept forthwith to its natural dust-hole,--
+ He bids us, when we least expect it,
+ Take back our faith--if it be not just whole,
+ Yet a pearl indeed, as his tests affect it,
+ Which fact pays the damage done rewardingly,
+ So, prize we our dust and ashes accordingly!"
+
+Love as well as learning being necessary to the understanding of the New
+Testament, it is to the poet matter of regret that "loveless learning"
+should leave its proper work, and make such havoc in that which belongs
+not to it. But while he sits "talking with his mind," his mood begins to
+degenerate from sympathy with that which is good to indifference towards
+all forms, and he feels inclined to rest quietly in the enjoyment of his
+own religious confidence, and trouble himself in no wise about the faith
+of his neighbours; for doubtless all are partakers of the central light,
+though variously refracted by the varied translucency of the mental
+prism....
+
+ "'Twas the horrible storm began afresh!
+ The black night caught me in his mesh,
+ Whirled me up, and flung me prone!
+ I was left on the college-step alone.
+ I looked, and far there, ever fleeting
+ Far, far away, the receding gesture,
+ And looming of the lessening vesture,
+ Swept forward from my stupid hand,
+ While I watched my foolish heart expand
+ In the lazy glow of benevolence
+ O'er the various modes of man's belief.
+ I sprang up with fear's vehemence.
+ --Needs must there be one way, our chief
+ Best way of worship: let me strive
+ To find it, and when found, contrive
+ My fellows also take their share.
+ This constitutes my earthly care:
+ God's is above it and distinct!"
+
+The symbolism in the former part of this extract is grand. As soon as he
+ceases to look practically on the phenomena with which he is surrounded,
+he is enveloped in storm and darkness, and sees only in the far distance
+the disappearing skirt of his Lord's garment. God's care is over all, he
+goes on to say; I must do _my part_. If I look speculatively on the
+world, there is nothing but dimness and mystery. If I look practically
+on it,
+
+ "No mere mote's-breadth, but teems immense
+ With witnessings of Providence."
+
+And whether the world which I seek to help censures or praises me--that
+is nothing to me. My life--how is it with me?
+
+ "Soul of mine, hadst thou caught and held
+ By the hem of the vesture....
+ And I caught
+ At the flying robe, and, unrepelled,
+ Was lapped again in its folds full-fraught
+ With warmth and wonder and delight,
+ God's mercy being infinite.
+ And scarce had the words escaped my tongue,
+ When, at a passionate bound, I sprung
+ Out of the wandering world of rain,
+ Into the little chapel again."
+
+Had he dreamed? how then could he report of the sermon and the preacher?
+of which and of whom he proceeds to give a very external account. But
+correcting himself--
+
+ "Ha! Is God mocked, as He asks?
+ Shall I take on me to change his tasks,
+ And dare, despatched to a river-head
+ For a simple draught of the element,
+ Neglect the thing for which He sent,
+ And return with another thing instead!
+ Saying .... 'Because the water found
+ Welling up from underground,
+ Is mingled with the taints of earth,
+ While Thou, I know, dost laugh at dearth,
+ And couldest, at a word, convulse
+ The world with the leap of its river-pulse,--
+ Therefore I turned from the oozings muddy,
+ And bring thee a chalice I found, instead.
+ See the brave veins in the breccia ruddy!
+ One would suppose that the marble bled.
+ What matters the water? A hope I have nursed,
+ That the waterless cup will quench my thirst.'
+ --Better have knelt at the poorest stream
+ That trickles in pain from the straitest rift!
+ For the less or the more is all God's gift,
+ Who blocks up or breaks wide the granite seam.
+ And here, is there water or not, to drink?"
+
+He comes to the conclusion, that the best for him is that mode of
+worship which partakes the least of human forms, and brings him nearest
+to the spiritual; and, while expressing good wishes for the Pope and the
+professor--
+
+ "Meantime, in the still recurring fear
+ Lest myself, at unawares, be found,
+ While attacking the choice of my neighbours round,
+ Without my own made--I choose here!"
+
+He therefore joins heartily in the hymn which is sung by the
+congregation of the little chapel at the close of their worship. And
+this concludes the poem.
+
+What is the central point from which this poem can be regarded? It does
+not seem to be very hard to find. Novalis has said: "Die Philosophie ist
+eigentlich Heimweh, ein Trieb ueberall zu Hause zu sein." (Philosophy is
+really home-sickness, an impulse to be at home everywhere.) The life of
+a man here, if life it be, and not the vain image of what might be a
+life, is a continual attempt to find his place, his centre of
+recipiency, and active agency. He wants to know where he is, and where
+he ought to be and can be; for, rightly considered, the position a man
+ought to occupy is the only one he truly _can_ occupy. It is a climbing
+and striving to reach that point of vision where the multiplex crossings
+and apparent intertwistings of the lines of fact and feeling and duty
+shall manifest themselves as a regular and symmetrical design. A
+contradiction, or a thing unrelated, is foreign and painful to him, even
+as the rocky particle in the gelatinous substance of the oyster; and,
+like the latter, he can only rid himself of it by encasing it in the
+pearl-like enclosure of faith; believing that hidden there lies the
+necessity for a higher theory of the universe than has yet been
+generated in his soul. The quest for this home-centre, in the man who
+has faith, is calm and ceaseless; in the man whose faith is weak, it is
+stormy and intermittent. Unhappy is that man, of necessity, whose
+perceptions are keener than his faith is strong. Everywhere Nature
+herself is putting strange questions to him; the human world is full of
+dismay and confusion; his own conscience is bewildered by contradictory
+appearances; all which may well happen to the man whose eye is not yet
+single, whose heart is not yet pure. He is not at home; his soul is
+astray amid people of a strange speech and a stammering tongue. But the
+faithful man is led onward; in the stillness that his confidence
+produces arise the bright images of truth; and visions of God, which are
+only beheld in solitary places, are granted to his soul.
+
+ "O struggling with the darkness all the night,
+ And visited all night by troops of stars!"
+
+What is true of the whole, is true of its parts. In all the relations of
+life, in all the parts of the great whole of existence, the true man is
+ever seeking his home. This poem seems to show us such a quest. "Here I
+am in the midst of many who belong to the same family. They differ in
+education, in habits, in forms of thought; but they are called by the
+same name. What position with regard to them am I to assume? I am a
+Christian; how am I to live in relation to Christians?" Such seems to be
+something like the poet's thought. What central position can he gain,
+which, while it answers best the necessities of his own soul with regard
+to God, will enable him to feel himself connected with the whole
+Christian world, and to sympathize with all; so that he may not be
+alone, but one of the whole. Certainly the position necessary for both
+requirements is one and the same. He that is isolated from his brethren,
+loses one of the greatest helps to draw near to God. Now, in this time,
+which is so peculiarly transitional, this is a question of no little
+import for all who, while they gladly forsake old, or rather _modern_,
+theories, for what is to them a more full development of Christianity as
+well as a return to the fountain-head, yet seek to be saved from the
+danger of losing sympathy with those who are content with what they are
+compelled to abandon. Seeing much in the common modes of thought and
+belief that is inconsistent with Christianity, and even opposed to it,
+they yet cannot but see likewise in many of them a power of spiritual
+good; which, though not dependent on the peculiar mode, is yet
+enveloped, if not embodied, in that mode.
+
+ "Ask, else, these ruins of humanity,
+ This flesh worn out to rags and tatters,
+ This soul at struggle with insanity,
+ Who thence take comfort, can I doubt,
+ Which an empire gained, were a loss without."
+
+The love of God is the soul of Christianity. Christ is the body of that
+truth. The love of God is the creating and redeeming, the forming and
+satisfying power of the universe. The love of God is that which kills
+evil and glorifies goodness. It is the safety of the great whole. It is
+the home-atmosphere of all life. Well does the poet of the "Christmas
+Eve" say:--
+
+ "The loving worm within its clod,
+ Were diviner than a loveless God
+ Amid his worlds, I will dare to say."
+
+Surely then, inasmuch as man is made in the image of God nothing less
+than a love in the image of God's love, all-embracing, quietly excusing,
+heartily commending, can constitute the blessedness of man; a love not
+insensible to that which is foreign to it, but overcoming it with good.
+Where man loves in his kind, even as God loves in His kind, then man is
+saved, then he has reached the unseen and eternal. But if, besides the
+necessity to love that lies in a man, there be likewise in the man whom
+he ought to love something in common with him, then the law of love has
+increased force. If that point of sympathy lies at the centre of the
+being of each, and if these centres are brought into contact, then the
+circles of their being will be, if not coincident, yet concentric. We
+must wait patiently for the completion of God's great harmony, and
+meantime love everywhere and as we can.
+
+But the great lesson which this poem teaches, and which is taught more
+directly in the "Easter Day" (forming part of the same volume), is that
+the business of a man's life is to be a Christian. A man has to do with
+God first; in Him only can he find the unity and harmony he seeks. To be
+one with Him is to be at the centre of things. If one acknowledges that
+God has revealed himself in Christ; that God has recognized man as his
+family, by appearing among them in their form; surely that very
+acknowledgment carries with it the admission that man's chief concern is
+with this revelation. What does God say and mean, teach and manifest,
+herein? If this world is God's making, and he is present in all nature;
+if he rules all things and is present in all history; if the soul of man
+is in his image, with all its circles of thought and multiplicity of
+forms; and if for man it be not enough to be rooted in God, but he must
+likewise lay hold on God; then surely no question, in whatever
+direction, can be truly answered, save by him who stands at the side of
+Christ. The doings of God cannot be understood, save by him who has the
+mind of Christ, which is the mind of God. All things must be strange to
+one who sympathizes not with the thought of the Maker, who understands
+not the design of the Artist. Where is he to begin? What light has he by
+which to classify? How will he bring order out of this apparent
+confusion, when the order is higher than his thought; when the confusion
+to him is _caused_ by the order's being greater than he can comprehend?
+Because he stands outside and not within, he sees an entangled maze of
+forces, where there is in truth an intertwining dance of harmony. There
+is for no one any solution of the world's mystery, or of any part of its
+mystery, except he be able to say with our poet:--
+
+ "I have looked to Thee from the beginning,
+ Straight up to Thee through all the world,
+ Which, like an idle scroll, lay furled
+ To nothingness on either side:
+ And since the time Thou wast descried,
+ Spite of the weak heart, so have I
+ Lived ever, and so fain would die,
+ Living and dying, Thee before!"
+
+Christianity is not the ornament, or even complement, of life; it is its
+necessity; it is life itself glorified into God's ideal.
+
+Dr. Chalmers, from considering the minuteness of the directions given to
+Moses for the making of the tabernacle, was led to think that he himself
+was wrong in attending too little to the "_petite morale_" of dress.
+Will this be excuse enough for occupying a few sentences with the
+rhyming of this poem? Certainly the rhymes of a poem form no small part
+of its artistic existence. Probably there is a deeper meaning in this
+part of the poetic art than has yet been made clear to poet's mind. In
+this poem the rhymes have their share in its humorous charm. The
+writer's power of using double and triple rhymes is remarkable, and the
+effect is often pleasing, even where they are used in the more solemn
+parts of the poem. Take the lines:--
+
+ "No! love which, on earth, amid all the shows of it,
+ Has ever been seen the sole good of life in it,
+ The love, ever growing there, spite of the strife in it,
+ Shall arise, made perfect, from death's repose of it."
+
+A poem is a thing not for the understanding or heart only, but likewise
+for the ear; or, rather, for the understanding and heart through the
+ear. The best poem is best set forth when best read. If, then, there be
+rhymes which, when read aloud, do, by their composition of words,
+prevent the understanding from laying hold on the separate words, while
+the ear lays hold on the rhymes, the perfection of the art must here be
+lost sight of, notwithstanding the completeness which the rhyming
+manifests on close examination. For instance, in "_equipt yours,"
+"Scriptures;" "Manchester," "haunches stir_;" or "_affirm any,"
+"Germany_;" where two words rhyme with one word. But there are very few
+of them that are objectionable on account of this difficulty and
+necessity of rapid analysis.
+
+One of the most wonderful things in the poem is, that so much of
+argument is expressed in a species of verse, which one might be
+inclined, at first sight, to think the least fitted for embodying it.
+But, in fact, the same amount of argument in any other kind of verse
+would, in all likelihood, have been intolerably dull as a work of art.
+Here the verse is full of life and vigour, flagging never. Where, in
+several parts, the exact meaning is difficult to reach, this results
+chiefly from the dramatic rapidity and condensation of the thoughts. The
+argumentative power is indeed wonderful; the arguments themselves
+powerful in their simplicity, and embodied in words of admirable force.
+The poem is full of pathos and humour; full of beauty and grandeur,
+earnestness and truth.
+
+
+
+
+ESSAYS ON SOME OF THE FORMS OF LITERATURE
+
+
+[Footnote: "Essays on some of
+the Forms of Literature." By T.T. Lynch, Author of "Theophilus Trinal."
+Longmans.]
+
+
+Schoppe, the satiric chorus of Jean Paul's romance of Titan, makes his
+appearance at a certain masked ball, carrying in front of him a glass
+case, in which the ball is remasked, repeated, and again reflected in a
+mirror behind, by a set of puppets, ludicrously aping the apery of the
+courtiers, whose whole life and outward manifestation was but a
+body-mask mechanically moved with the semblance of real life and action.
+The court simulates reality. The masks are a multiform mockery at their
+own unreality, and as such are regarded by Schoppe, who takes them off
+with the utmost ridicule in his masked puppet-show, which, with its
+reflection in the mirror, is again indefinitely multiplied in the
+many-sided reflector of Schoppe's, or of Richter's, or of the reader's
+own imagination. The successive retreating and beholding in this scene
+is suggested to the reviewer by the fact that the last of these essays
+by Mr. Lynch is devoted in part to reviews. So that the reviews review
+books,--Mr. Lynch reviews the reviews, and the present Reviewer finds
+himself (somewhat presumptuously, it may be) attempting to review Mr.
+Lynch. In this, however, his office must be very different from that of
+Schoppe (for there is a deeper and more real correspondence between the
+position of the showman and the reviewer than that outward resemblance
+which first caused the one to suggest the other). The latter's office,
+in the present instance, was, by mockery, to destroy the false, the very
+involution of the satire adding to the strength of the ridicule. His
+glass case was simply a review uttered by shapes and wires instead of
+words and handwriting. And the work of the true critic must sometimes be
+to condemn, and, as far as his strength can reach, utterly to destroy
+the false,--scorching and withering its seeming beauty, till it is
+reduced to its essence and original groundwork of dust and ashes. It is
+only, however, when it wears the form of beauty which is the garment of
+truth, and so, like the Erl-maidens, has power to bewitch, that it is
+worth the notice and attack of the critic. Many forms of error, perhaps
+most, are better left alone to die of their own weakness, for the
+galvanic battery of criticism only helps to perpetuate their ghastly
+life. The highest work of the critic, however, must surely be to direct
+attention to the true, in whatever form it may have found utterance. But
+on this let us hear Mr. Lynch himself in the last of these four lectures
+which were delivered by him at the Royal Institution, Manchester, and
+are now before us in the form of a book:--
+
+"The kritikos, the discerner, if he is ever saying to us, This is not
+gold; and never, This is; is either very humbly useful, or very
+perverse, or very unfortunate. This is not gold, he says. Thank you, we
+reply, we perceived as much. And this is not, he adds. True, we answer,
+but we see gold grains glittering out of its rude, dark mass. Well, at
+least, this is not, he proceeds. Perverse man! we retort, are you
+seeking what is not gold? We are inquiring for what is, and unfortunate
+indeed are we if, born into a world of Nature, and of Spirit once so
+rich, we are born but to find that it has spent or has lost all its
+wealth. Unhappy man would he be, who, walking his garden, should scent
+only the earthy savour of leaves dead or dying, never perceiving, and
+that afar off, the heavenly odour of roses fresh to-day from the Maker's
+hands. The discerning by spiritual aroma may lead to discernment by the
+eye, and to that careful scrutiny, and thence greater knowledge, of
+which the eye is instrument and minister."
+
+And again:--
+
+"The critic criticized, if dealt with in the worst fashion of his own
+class, must be pronounced a mere monster, 'seeking whom he may devour;'
+and, therefore, to be hunted and slain as speedily as possible, and
+stuffed for the museum, where he may be regarded with due horror, but in
+safety. But if dealt with after the best fashion of his class, a very
+honourable and beneficent office is assigned him, and he is warned
+only--though zealously--against its perversions. A judicial chair in the
+kingdom of human thought, filled by a man of true integrity,
+comprehensiveness, and delicacy of spirit, is a seat of terror and
+praise, whose powers are at once most fostering to whatever is good,
+most repressive of whatever is evil.... The critic, in his office of
+censurer, has need so much to controvert, expose, and punish, because of
+the abundance of literary faults; and as there is a right and a wrong
+side in warfare, so there will be in criticism. And as when soldiers are
+numerous, there will be not a few who are only tolerable, if even that,
+so of critics. But then the critic is more than the censurer; and in his
+higher and happier aspect appears before us and serves us, as the
+discoverer, the vindicator, and the eulogist of excellence."
+
+But resisting the temptation to quote further from Mr. Lynch's book on
+this matter of Criticism, which seemed the natural point of contact by
+which the Reviewer could lay hold on the book, he would pass on with the
+remark that his duty in the present instance is of the nobler and better
+sort--nobler and better, that is, with regard to the object, for duty in
+the man remains ever the same--namely, the exposition of excellence, and
+not of its opposite. Mr. Lynch is a man of true insight and large heart,
+who has already done good in the world, and will do more; although,
+possibly, he belongs rather to the last class of writers described by
+himself, in the extract I am about to give from this same essay, than to
+any of the preceding:--
+
+"Some of the best books are written avowedly, or with evident
+consciousness of the fact, for the select public that is constituted by
+minds of the deeper class, or minds the more advanced of their time.
+Such books may have but a restricted circulation and limited esteem in
+their own day, and may afterwards extend both their fame and the circle
+of their readers. Others of the best books, written with a pathos and a
+power that may be universally felt, appeal at once to the common
+humanity of the world, and get a response marvellously strong and
+immediate. An ordinary human eye and heart, whose glances are true,
+whose pulses healthy, will fit us to say of much that we read--This is
+good, that is poor. But only the educated eye and the experienced heart
+will fit us to judge of what relates to matters veiled from ordinary
+observation, and belonging to the profounder region of human thought and
+emotion. Powers, however, that the few only possess, may be required to
+paint what everybody can see, so that everybody shall say, How
+beautiful! how like! And powers adequate to do this in the finest manner
+will be often adequate to do much more--may produce, indeed, books or
+pictures, whose singular merit only the few shall perceive, and the many
+for awhile deny, and books or pictures which, while they give an
+immediate and pure pleasure to the common eye, shall give a far fuller
+and finer pleasure to that eye that is the organ of a deeper and more
+cultivated soul. There are, too, men of _peculiar_ powers, rare and
+fine, who can never hope to please the large public, at least of their
+own age, but whose writings are a heart's ease and heart's joy to the
+select few, and serve such as a cup of heavenly comfort for the earth's
+journey, and a lamp of heavenly light for the shadows of the way."
+
+One other extract from the general remarks on Books in this essay, and
+we will turn to another:--
+
+"In all our estimation of the various qualities of books, if it be true
+that our reading assists our life, it is true also that our life assists
+our reading. If we let our spirit talk to us in undistracted moments--if
+we commune with friendly, serious Nature, face to face, often--if we
+pursue honourable aims in a steady progress--if we learn how a man's
+best work falls below his thought, yet how still his failure prompts a
+tenderer love of his thought--if we live in sincere, frank relations
+with some few friends, joying in their joy, hearing the tale and sharing
+the pain of their grief, and in frequent interchange of honest,
+household sensibility--if we look about us on character, marking
+distinctly what we can see, and feeling the prompting of a hundred
+questions concerning what is out of our ken:--if we live thus, we shall
+be good readers and critics of books, and improving ones."
+
+The second and third of these essays are on Biography and Fiction
+respectively and principally; treating, however, of collateral subjects
+as well. Deep is the relation between the life shadowed forth in a
+biography, and the life in a man's brain which he shadows forth in a
+fiction--when that fiction is of the highest order, and written in love,
+is beheld even by the writer himself with reverence. Delightful, surely,
+it must be; yes, awful too, to read to-day the embodiment of a man's
+noblest thought, to follow the hero of his creation through his
+temptations, contests, and victories, in a world which likewise is--
+
+ "All made out of the carver's brain;"
+
+and to-morrow to read the biography of this same writer. What of his own
+ideal has he realized? Where can the life-fountain be detected within
+him which found issue to the world's light and air, in this ideal self?
+Shall God's fiction, which is man's reality, fall short of man's
+fiction? Shall a man be less than what he can conceive and utter? Surely
+it will not, cannot end thus. If a man live at all in harmony with the
+great laws of being--if he will permit the working out of God's idea in
+him, he must one day arrive at something greater than what now he can
+project and behold. Yet, in biography, we do not so often find traces of
+those struggles depicted in the loftier fiction. One reason may be that
+the contest is often entirely within, and so a man may have won his
+spiritual freedom without any outward token directly significant of the
+victory; except, if he be an artist, such expression as it finds in
+fiction, whether the fiction be in marble, or in sweet harmonies, or in
+ink. Nor can we determine the true significance of any living act; for
+being ourselves within the compass of the life-mystery, we cannot hold
+it at arm's length from us and look at its lines of configuration. Nor
+of a life can we in any measure determine the success by what we behold
+of it. It is to us at best but a truncated spire, whose want of
+completion may be the greater because of the breadth of its base, and
+its slow taper, indicating the lofty height to which it is intended to
+aspire. The idea of our own life is more than we can embrace. It is not
+ours, but God's, and fades away into the infinite. Our comprehension is
+finite; we ourselves infinite. We can only trust in God and do the
+truth; then, and then only, is our life safe, and sure both of
+continuance and development.
+
+But the reviewer perhaps too often merely steals his author's text and
+writes upon it; or, like a man who lies in bed thinking about a dream
+till its folds enwrap him and he sinks into the midst of its visions, he
+forgets his position of beholding, and passes from observation into
+spontaneous utterance. What says our author about "biography,
+autobiography, and history?" This lecture has pleased the reviewer most
+of the four. Reading it in a lonely place, under a tree, with wide
+fields and slopes around, it produced on his mind the two effects which
+perhaps Mr. Lynch would most wish it should produce--namely, first, a
+longing to lead a more true and noble life; and, secondly, a desire to
+read more biography. Nor can he but hope that it must produce the same
+effect on every earnest reader, on every one whose own biography would
+not be altogether a blank in what regards the individual will and
+spiritual aim.
+
+"In meditative hours, when we blend despair of ourself with complaint of
+the world, the biography of a man successful in this great business of
+living is as the visit of an angel sent to strengthen us. Give the
+soldier his sword, the farmer his plough, the carpenter his hammer and
+nails, the manufacturer his machines, the merchant his stores, and the
+scholar his books; these are but implements; the man is more than his
+work or tools. How far has he fulfilled the law of his being, and
+attained its desire? Is his life a whole; the days as threads and as
+touches; the life, the well-woven garment, the well-painted picture?
+Which of two sacrifices has he offered--the one so acceptable to the
+powers of dark worlds, the other so acceptable to powers of bright
+ones--that of soul to body, or that of body to soul? Has he slain what
+was holiest in him to obtain gifts from Fashion or Mammon? Or has he, in
+days so arduous, so assiduous, that they are like a noble army of
+martyrs, made burnt-offering of what was secondary, throwing into the
+flames the salt of true moral energy and the incense of cordial
+affections? We want the work to show us by its parts, its mass, its
+form, the qualities of the man, and to see that the man is perfected
+through his work as well as the work finished by his effort."
+
+Perhaps the highest moral height which a man can reach, and at the same
+time the most difficult of attainment, is the willingness to be
+_nothing_ relatively, so that he attain that positive excellence which
+the original conditions of his being render not merely possible, but
+imperative. It is nothing to a man to be greater or less than
+another--to be esteemed or otherwise by the public or private world in
+which he moves. Does he, or does he not, behold, and love, and live, the
+unchangeable, the essential, the divine? This he can only do according
+as God hath made him. He can behold and understand God in the least
+degree, as well as in the greatest, only by the godlike within him; and
+he that loves thus the good and great, has no room, no thought, no
+necessity for comparison and difference. The truth satisfies him. He
+lives in its absoluteness. God makes the glow-worm as well as the star;
+the light in both is divine. If mine be an earth-star to gladden the
+wayside, I must cultivate humbly and rejoicingly its green earth-glow,
+and not seek to blanch it to the whiteness of the stars that lie in the
+fields of blue. For to deny God in my own being is to cease to behold
+him in any. God and man can meet only by the man's becoming that which
+God meant him to be. Then he enters into the house of life, which is
+greater than the house of fame. It is better to be a child in a green
+field than a knight of many orders in a state ceremonial.
+
+"One biography may help conjecture or satisfy reason concerning the
+story of a thousand unrecorded lives. And how few even of the deserving
+among the multitude can deserve, as 'dear sons of memory,' to be shrined
+in the public heart. Few of us die unwept, but most of us unwritten. We
+shall find a grave--less certainly a tombstone--and with much less
+likelihood a biographer. Those 'bright particular' stars that at evening
+look towards us from afar, yet still are individual in the distance, are
+at clearest times but about a thousand; but the milky lustre that runs
+through mid heaven is composed of a million million lights, which are
+not the less separate because seen undistinguishably. Absorbed, not
+lost, in the multitude of the unrecorded, our private dear ones make
+part in this mild, blissful shining of the 'general assembly,' the great
+congregation of the skies. Thus the past is aglow with the unwritten,
+the nameless. The leaders, sons of fame, conspicuous in lustre, eminent
+in place; these are the few, whose great individuality burns with
+distinct, starry light through the dark of ages. Such stars, without the
+starry way, would not teach us the vastness of heaven; and the 'way,'
+without these, were not sufficient to gladden and glorify the night with
+pomp of Hierarchical Ascents of Domination."
+
+There are many passages in this essay with which the reviewer would be
+glad to enrich his notice of the book, but limitation of space, and
+perhaps justice to the essay itself, which ought to be read in its own
+completeness, forbid. Mr. Lynch looks to the heart of the matter, and
+makes one put the question--"Would not a biography written by Mr. Lynch
+himself be a valuable addition to this kind of literature?" His would
+not be an interesting account of outward events and relationships and
+progress, nor even a succession of revelations of inward conditions, but
+we should expect to find ourselves elevated by him to a point of view
+from which the life of the man would assume an artistic individuality,
+as it were an isolation of existence; for the supposed author could not
+choose for his regard any biography for which this would be impossible;
+or in which the reticulated nerves of purpose did not combine the whole,
+with more or less of success, into a true and remarkable unity. One
+passage more from this essay,--
+
+"Biography, then, makes life known to us as more wealthy in character,
+and much more remarkable in its every-day stories, than we had deemed
+it. Another good it does us is this. It introduces us to some of our
+most agreeable and stimulative friendships. People may be more
+beneficially intimate with one they never saw than even with a neighbour
+or brother. Many a solitary, puzzled, incommunicative person, has found
+society provided, his riddle read, and his heart's secret, that longed
+and strove for utterance, outspoken for him in a biography. And both a
+love purer than any yet entertained may be originated, and a pure but
+ungratified love already existing, find an object, by the visit of a
+biography. In actual life you see your friend to-day, and will see him
+again to-morrow or next year; but in the dear book, you have your friend
+and all his experiences at once and ever. He is with you wholly, and may
+be with you at any time. He lives for you, and has already died for you,
+to give finish to the meaning, fulness, and sanctity, to the comfort of
+his days. He is mysteriously above as well as before you, by this fact,
+that he has died. Thus your intimate is your superior, your solace, but
+your support, too, and an example of the victory to which he calls you.
+His end, or her end, is our own in view, and the flagging spirit
+revives. We see the goal, and gird our loins anew for the race. Or,
+speaking of things minor, there is fresh prospect of the game, there is
+companionship in the hunt, and spirit for the winning. Such biography,
+too, is a mirror in which we see ourselves; and we see that we may trim
+or adorn, or that the plain signs of our deficient health or ill-ruled
+temper may set us to look for, and to use the means of improvement. But
+such a mirror is as a water one; in which first you may see your face,
+and which then becomes for you a bath to wash away the stains you see,
+and to offer its pure, cool stream as a restorative and cosmetic for
+your wrinkles and pallors. And what a pleasure there will be sometimes
+as we peruse a biography, in finding another who is so like
+ourself--saying the same things, feeling the same dreads, and shames, and
+flutterings; hampered and harassed much as poor self is. Then, the
+escapes of such a friend give us hope of deliverance for ourself; and
+his better, or if not better, yet rewarded, patience, freshens our eye
+and sinews, and puts a staff into our hand. And certain seals of
+impossibility that we had put on this stone, and on that, beneath which
+our hopes lay buried, are by this biography, as by a visiting angel,
+effectually broken, and our hopes arise again. Our view of life becomes
+more complete because we see the whole of his, or of hers. We view life,
+too, in a more composed, tender way. Wavering faith, in its chosen
+determining principles, is confirmed. In quiet comparison of ourselves
+with one of our own class, or one who has made the mark for which we are
+striving, we are shamed to have done no better, and stirred to attempt
+former things again, or fresh ones in a stronger and more patient
+spirit."
+
+It is, indeed, well with him who has found a friend whose spirit touches
+his own and illuminates it.
+
+ "I missed him when the sun began to bend;
+ I found him not when I had lost his rim;
+ With many tears I went in search of him,
+ Climbing high mountains which did still ascend,
+ And gave me echoes when I called my friend;
+ Through cities vast and charnel-houses grim,
+ And high cathedrals where the light was dim;
+ Through books, and arts, and works without an end--
+ But found him not, the friend whom I had lost.
+ And yet I found him, as I found the lark,
+ A sound in fields I heard but could not mark;
+ I found him nearest when I missed him most,
+ I found him in my heart, a life in frost,
+ A light I knew not till my soul was dark."
+
+Next to possessing a true, wise, and victorious friend seated by your
+fireside, it is blessed to have the spirit of such a friend
+embodied--for spirit can assume any embodiment--on your bookshelves. But
+in the latter case the friendship is all on one side. For full
+friendship your friend must love you, and know that you love him. Surely
+these biographies are not merely spiritual links connecting us in the
+truest manner with past times and vanished minds, and thus producing
+strong half friendships. Are they not likewise links connecting us with
+a future, wherein these souls shall dawn upon ours, rising again from
+the death of the past into the life of our knowledge and love? Are not
+these biographies letters of introduction, forwarded, but not yet
+followed by him whom they introduce, for whose step we listen, and whose
+voice we long to hear; and whom we shall yet meet somewhere in the
+Infinite? Shall I not one day, "somewhere, somehow," clasp the large
+hand of Novalis, and, gazing on his face, compare his features with
+those of Saint John?
+
+The essay on light literature must be left to the spontaneous
+appreciation of those who are already acquainted with this book, or who
+may be induced, by the representations here made, to become acquainted
+with it. Before proceeding to notice the first essay in the little
+volume, namely, that on Poetry, its subject suggests the fact of the
+publication of a second edition of the Memorials of Theophilus Trinal,
+by the same author, a portion of which consists of interspersed poems.
+These are of true poetic worth; and although in some cases wanting in
+rhythmic melody, yet in most of these cases they possess a wild and
+peculiar rhythm of their own. The reviewer knows of some whose hearts
+this book has made glad, and doubtless there are many such.
+
+The essay on Poetry is itself poetic throughout in its expression. And
+how else shall Poetry be described than by Poetry? What form shall
+embrace and define the highest? Must it not be self-descriptive as
+self-existent? For what man is to this planet, what the eye is to man
+himself, Poetry is to Literature. Yet one can hardly help wishing that
+the poetic forms in this Essay were fewer and less minute, and the whole
+a little more scientific; though it is a question how far we have a
+right to ask for this. As you open it, however, the pages seem
+absolutely to sparkle, as if strewn with diamond sparks. It is no dull,
+metallic, surface lustre, but a shining from within, as well as from the
+superficies. Still one cannot deny that fancy is too prominent in Mr.
+Lynch's writings. It is true that his Fancy is the fairy attendant on
+his Imagination, which latter uses the former for her own higher ends;
+and that there is little or no _mere_ fancy to be found in his books;
+for if you look below the surface-form you find a truth. But it were to
+be desired that the Truth clothed herself always in the living forms of
+Imagination, and thus walked forth amongst her worshippers, looking on
+them from living eyes, rather than that she should show herself through
+the windows of fancy. Sometimes there may be an offence against taste,
+as in page 20; sometimes an image may be expanded too much, and
+sometimes the very exuberance of imaginative fancy (if the combination
+be correct) may lead to an association of images that suggests
+incongruity. Still the essay is abundantly beautiful and true. The
+poetical quotations are not isolated, or exposed to view as specimens,
+but are worked into the web of the prose like the flowers in the damask,
+and do their part in the evolution of the continuous thought.
+
+"If poetry, as light from the heart of God, is for our heart, that we
+may brighten and distinguish individual things; if it is to transfigure
+for us the round, dusk world as by an inner radiance; if it is to
+present human life and history as Rembrandt pictures, in which darkness
+serves and glorifies light; if, like light, formless in its essence, all
+things shapen towards the perfection of their forms under its influence;
+if, entering as through crevices in single beams, it makes dimmest
+places cheerful and sacred with its golden touch: then must the heart of
+the Poet in which this true light shineth be as a hospice on the
+mountain pathways of the world, and his verse must be the lamp seen from
+far that burns to tell us where bread and shelter, drink, fire, and
+companionship, may be found; and he himself should have the
+mountaineer's hardiness and resolution. From the heart as source, to the
+heart in influence, Poetry comes. The inward, the upward, and the
+onward, whether we speak of an individual or a nation, may not be
+separated in our consideration. Deep and sacred imaginative meditations
+are needed for the true earthward as well as for the heavenward progress
+of men and peoples. And Poetry, whether old or new, streaming from the
+heart moved by the powerful spirit of love, has influence on the heart
+public and individual, and thence on the manners, laws, and institutions
+of nations. If Poesy visit the length and breadth of a country after
+years unfruitfully dull, coming like a showery fertilizing wind after
+drought, the corners and the valley-hidings are visited too, and these
+perhaps she now visits first, as these sometimes she has visited only.
+For miles and for miles, the public corn, the bread of the nation's
+life, is bettered; and in our own endeared spot, the roses, delight of
+our individual eye and sense, yield us more prosperingly their colour
+and their fragrance. For the universal sunshine which brightens a
+thousand cities, beautifies ten thousand homesteads, and rejoices ten
+times ten thousand hearts. And as rains in the mid season renew for
+awhile the faded greenness of spring; and trees in fervent summers, when
+their foliage has deepened or fully fixed its hue, bedeck themselves
+through the fervency with bright midsummer shoots; so, by Poetry are the
+youthful hues of the soul renewed, and truths that have long stood
+full-foliaged in our minds, are by its fine influences empowered to put
+forth fresh shoots. Thus age, which is a necessity for the body, may be
+warded off as a disease from the soul, and we may be like the old man in
+Chaucer, who had nothing hoary about him but his hairs--
+
+ "'Though I be hoor I fare as doth a tree
+ That blosmeth er the fruit ywoxen be,
+ The blosmy tree n' is neither drie ne ded:
+ I feel me nowhere hoor, but on my head.
+ Min herte and all my limmes ben as grene
+ As laurel through the yere is for to sene.'"
+
+Hear our author again as to the calling of the poet:--
+
+"To unite earthly love and celestial--'true to the kindred points of
+heaven and home;' to reconcile time and eternity; to draw presage of
+joy's victory from the delight of the secret honey dropping from the
+clefts of rocky sorrow; _to harmonize our instinctive longings for the
+definite and the infinite, in the ideal Perfect_; to read creation as a
+human book of the heart, both plain and mystical, and divinely written:
+such is the office fulfilled by best-loved poets. Their ladder of
+celestial ascent must be fixed on its base, earth, if its top is to
+securely rest on heaven."
+
+Beautifully, too, does he describe the birth of Poetry; though one may
+doubt its correctness, at least if attributed to the highest kind of
+poetry.
+
+"When words of felt truth were first spoken by the first pair, in love
+of their garden, their God, and one another, and these words were with
+joyful surprise felt to be in their form and glow answerable to the
+happy thought uttered; then Poetry sprang. And when the first Father and
+first Mother, settling their soul upon its thought, found that thought
+brighten; and when from it, as thus they mused, like branchlets from a
+branch, or flowerets from their bud, other thoughts came, ranging
+themselves by the exerted, yet painlessly exerted, power of the soul, in
+an order felt to be beautiful, and of a sound pleasant in utterance to
+ear and soul; being withal, through the sweetness of their impression on
+the heart, fixed for memory's frequentest recurrence; then was the
+world's first poem composed, and in the joyful flutter of a heart that
+had thus become a maker, the maker of a 'thing of beauty,' like in
+beauty even unto God's heaven, and trees, and flowers, the secret of
+Poesy shone tremulously forth."
+
+Whether this be so or not, the highest poetic feeling of which we are
+now conscious springs not from the beholding of perfected beauty, but
+from the mute sympathy which the creation with all its children
+manifests with us in the groaning and travailing which looketh for the
+sonship. Because of our need and aspiration, the snowdrop gives birth in
+our hearts to a loftier spiritual and poetic feeling, than the rose most
+complete in form, colour, and odour. The rose is of Paradise--the
+snowdrop is of the striving, hoping, longing Earth. Perhaps our highest
+poetry is the expression of our aspirations in the sympathetic forms of
+visible nature. Nor is this merely a longing for a restored Paradise;
+for even in the ordinary history of men, no man or woman that has fallen
+can be restored to the position formerly occupied. Such must rise to a
+yet higher place, whence they can behold their former standing far
+beneath their feet. They must be restored by attaining something better
+than they ever possessed before, or not at all. If the law be a
+weariness, we must escape it by being filled with the spirit, for not
+otherwise can we fulfil the law than by being above the law. There is
+for us no escape, save as the Poet counsels us:--
+
+ "Is thy strait horizon dreary?
+ Is thy foolish fancy chill?
+ Change the feet that have grown weary,
+ For the wings that never will.
+ Burst the flesh and live the spirit;
+ Haunt the beautiful and far;
+ Thou hast all things to inherit,
+ And a soul for every star."
+
+But the Reviewer must hasten to take leave, though unwillingly, of this
+pleasing, earnest, and profitable book. Perhaps it could be wished that
+the writer helped his readers a little more into the channel of his
+thought; made it easier for them to see the direction in which he is
+leading them; called out to them, "Come up hither," before he said, "I
+will show you a thing." But the Reviewer says this with deference; and
+takes his leave with the hope that Mr. Lynch will be listened to for two
+good reasons: first, that he speaks the truth; last, that he has already
+suffered for the Truth's sake.
+
+
+
+
+THE HISTORY AND HEROES OF MEDICINE.
+
+
+[Footnote: By J. Rutherfurd Russell, M.D.]
+
+In this volume, Dr. Russell has not merely aimed at the production of a
+book that might be serviceable to the Faculty, by which the history of
+its own art is not at all sufficiently studied, but has aspired to the
+far more difficult success of writing a history of medicine which shall
+be readable to all who care for true history--that history, namely, in
+which not merely growth and change are represented, but the secret
+supplies and influences as well, which minister to the one and occasion
+the other. If the difficulty has been greater (although with his
+evidently wide sympathies and keen insight into humanity we doubt if it
+has), the success is the more honourable; for a success it certainly is.
+The partially biographical plan on which he has constructed his work has
+no doubt aided in the accomplishment of this purpose; for it is much
+easier to present the subject in its human relations, when its history
+is given in connexion with the lives of those who were most immediately
+associated with it. But it would be a great mistake to conclude from
+this, that it is the less a history of the art itself; for no art or
+science has life in itself, apart from the minds which foresee,
+discover, and verify it. Whatever point in its progress it may have
+reached, it will there remain until a new man appears, whose new
+questions shall illicit new replies from nature--replies which are the
+essential food of the science, by which it lives, grows, and makes
+itself a history.
+
+Nor must our readers suppose that because the book is readable, it is
+therefore slight, either in material or construction. Much reading and
+research have provided the material, while real thought and argument
+have superintended the construction. Nor is it by any means without the
+adornment that a poetic temperament and a keen sense of humour can
+supply.
+
+Naturally, the central life in the book is that of Lord Bacon, the man
+who brought out of his treasures things both new and old. Up to him the
+story gradually leads from the prehistoric times of Aesculapius, the
+pathway first becoming plainly visible in the life and labours of
+Hippocrates. His fine intellect and powers of acute observation afforded
+the material necessary for the making of a true physician. The Greek
+mind, partly, perhaps, from its artistic tendencies, seems to have been
+peculiarly impatient of incomplete forms, and therefore, to have much
+preferred the construction of a theory from the most shadowy material,
+to the patient experiment and investigation necessary for the procuring
+of the real substance; and Hippocrates, not knowing how to advance to a
+theory by rational experiment, and too honest to invent one, assumes the
+traditional theories, founded on the vaguest and most obtrusive
+generalizations. Those which his experience taught him to reject, were
+adopted and maintained by Galen and all who followed him for centuries,
+the chief instance of progress being only the substitution by the
+Arabians of some of the milder medicines now in use, for the terrible
+and often fatal drugs employed by the Greek and Roman physicians. The
+fanciful classification of diseases into four kinds--hot, cold, moist
+and dry, with the corresponding arbitrary classification of remedies to
+be administered by contraries, continued to be the only recognized
+theory of medicine for many centuries after the Christian era.
+
+But Lord Bacon, amongst other branches of knowledge which he considers
+ill-followed, makes especial mention of medicine, which he would submit
+to the same rules of observation and experiment laid down by him for the
+advancement of learning in general. With regard to it, as with regard to
+the discovery of all the higher laws of nature, he considers "that men
+have made too untimely a departure, and too remote a recess from
+particulars." Men have hurried to conclusions, and then argued from them
+as from facts. Therefore let us have no traditional theories, and make
+none for ourselves but such as are revealed in the form of laws to the
+patient investigator, who has "straightened and held fast Proteus, that
+he might be compelled to change his shapes," and so reveal his nature.
+Hence one of the aspects in which Lord Bacon was compelled to appear was
+that of a destroyer of what preceded. In this he resembled Cardan and
+Paracelsus who went before him, and who like him pulled down, but could
+not, like him, build up. He resembled them, however, in the possession
+of another element of character, namely, that poetic imagination which
+looks abroad into the regions of possibilities, and foresees or invents.
+But in the case of the charlatan, the vaguest suggestions of his mind in
+its favourite mood, is adopted as a theory all but proved, if not as a
+direct revelation to the favoured individual; while the true thinker
+seeks but an hypothesis corresponding in some measure to facts already
+discovered, in order that he may have the suggestion of new experiments
+and investigations in the course of his attempts to verify or disprove
+the hypothesis. Lord Bacon considered hypothesis invaluable in the
+discovery of truth, but he only used it as a board upon which to write
+his questions to nature; or, to use another figure, hypothesis with him
+is as the next stepping-stone in the swollen river, which he supposes to
+be here or there, and so feels for with his staff. But it must be proved
+before it be regarded as a law, and greatly corroborated before it be
+even adopted as a theory. Cardan and Paracelsus were destroyers and
+mystics only; they destroyed on the earth that they might build in the
+air: Lord Bacon united both characters in the philosopher. He looked
+abroad into the regions of the unknown, whence all knowledge comes; he
+called wonder the seed of knowledge; but he would build nowhere but on
+the earth--on the firm land of ascertained truth. That which kept him
+right was his practical humanity. It was for the sake of delivering men
+from the ills of life, by discovering the laws of the elements amidst
+which that life must be led, that he laboured and thought. This object
+kept him true, made him able to discover the very laws of discovery;
+brought him so far into _rapport_ with the heart of nature herself,
+that, like a physical prophet, his seeing could outspeed his knowing,
+and behold a law--dimly, it is true, but yet behold it--long before his
+intellect, which had to build bridges and find straw to make the bricks,
+could dare to affirm its approach to the same conclusion. Truth to
+humanity made him true to fact; and truth to fact made him true in
+theory.
+
+It was in this spirit of devotion to his kind that he said, "Therefore
+here is the deficience which I find, that physicians have not ... set
+down and delivered over certain experimental medicines for the cure of
+particular diseases."
+
+Dr. Russell's true insight into the relation of Lord Bacon to the
+medical as well as to all science, has suggested the above remarks. What
+our author chiefly desires is, that the same principles which made
+medicine what it is, should be allowed to carry it yet further, and make
+it what it ought to be, and must become. As he goes on to show, through
+succeeding lives and theories, that just in proportion as these
+principles have been followed--the principles of careful observation,
+hypothesis, and experiment--have men made discoveries that have been
+helpful to their fellow-men; while, on the other hand, the most
+elaborate theories of the most popular physicians, which have owed their
+birth to premature generalization and invention, have passed away, like
+the crackling of thorns under a pot. Belonging to the latter class of
+men, we have Stahl, Hoffman, Boerhaave, Cullen, and Brown; while to the
+former belong Harvey, Sydenham, Jenner, and Hahnemann.
+
+After the last name, there is no need to say that our author is a
+homoeopath. Whatever may be our private opinion of the system, justice
+requires that we should say at least that books such as these are quite
+as open to refutation as to ridicule; for it is only a good argument
+that is worth refuting by a better. But we fear there are few books on
+this subject that treat of it with the calmness and fairness which would
+incline an honest homoeopath to put them into the hands of one of the
+opposite party as an exposition of his opinions. There is no excitement
+in these pages. They are the work of a man of liberal education, of
+refinement, and of truthfulness, with power to understand, and facility
+to express; one of whose main objects is to vindicate for homoeopathy,
+on the most rightful of all grounds--those on which alone science can
+stand--on the ground, that is, of laws discovered by observation and
+experiment--the place not only of a fact in the history of medicine, but
+the right to be considered as one of the greatest advances towards the
+establishment of a science of curing. Certainly if he and the rest of
+its advocates should fail utterly in this, the heresy will yet have
+established for itself a memorial in history, as one of the most
+powerful illusions that have ever deceived both priests and people. But
+the chief advantage which the system will derive from Dr. Russell's book
+will spring, it seems to us, from his attempt--a successful one it must
+be confessed--to prove _that homoeopathy is a development, and not a
+mere reaction_; that it has its roots far down in the history of
+science. The first mention of it in the book, however, is made for the
+purpose of disavowing the claim, advanced by many homoeopathists, to
+Hippocrates as one of their order. Not to mention the curious story
+about Galen and the patient ill from an overdose of theriacum, who was
+cured by another dose of the same substance, nor the ridicule of the
+doctrine of contraries by Paracelsus and Van Helmont, nor the fact that
+the _contraries_ of Boerhaave, by his own explanation, merely signify
+whatever substances prove their contrariety to the disease by curing
+it--to pass by these, we find one of the main objects of homoeopathy,
+the discovery of specifics, insisted upon by Lord Bacon in his words
+already quoted. Not that homoeopaths, while they depend upon specifics,
+believe that there is any such thing as a specific for a disease--a
+disease being as various as the individuality of the human beings whom
+it may attack; but that an approximate specific may be found for every
+well-defined stage in every individual disease; a disease having its
+process of change, development, and decline, like a vegetable or animal
+life. Besides an equally strong desire for specifics, and a determined
+opposition to compound medicines, Boyle, who was born the year of
+Bacon's death, and inherited the mantle of the great philosopher,
+manifests a strong belief in the power of the infinitesimal dose.
+Neither Bacon nor Boyle, however, were medical men by profession. But
+Sydenham followed them, according to Dr. Russell, in their tendency
+towards specifics. It is almost needless to mention Jenner's victory
+over the small-pox as, in the eyes of the homoeopaths, a grand step in
+the development of their system. It gives Dr. Russell an opportunity of
+showing in a strong instance that the best discoveries for delivering
+mankind from those ills even of which they are most sensible have been
+received with derision, with more than bare unbelief. This is one of his
+objects in the book, and while it is no proof whatever of the truth of
+homoepathy, it shows at least that the opposition manifested to it is no
+proof of its falsehood. This is enough; for it seeks to be tried on its
+own merits; and its foes are bound to accord it this when it is
+advocated in such an honest and dignified manner as in the book before
+us.
+
+The need of man, in physics as well as in higher things, is the guide to
+truth. With evils of any sort we need no further acquaintance than may
+be gained in the endeavour to combat them. The discovery of what will
+cure diseases seems the only natural mode of rising by generalization to
+the discovery of the laws of cure and the nature of disease.
+
+Those portions of the volume which discuss the influence of Christianity
+on the healing art, likewise those relating to the different feelings
+with which at different times in different countries physicians have
+been regarded, are especially interesting.
+
+The only portion of the book we should be inclined to find fault with,
+as to the quality of the thought expended upon it, is the dissertation
+in the second chapter on the [Greek: psuchae] and [Greek: pneuma]. We
+doubt likewise whether the author gives the Archaeus of Van Helmont
+quite fair play; but these are questions so purely theoretical that they
+scarcely admit of discussion here. We rise from the perusal of the
+book, whatever may be our feelings with regard to the truth or falsehood
+of the system it advocates, with increased respect for the profession of
+medicine, with enlarged hope for its future, and with a strong feeling
+of the nobility conferred by the art upon every one of its practitioners
+who is aware of the dignity of his calling.
+
+
+
+
+WORDSWORTH'S POETRY
+
+
+[Footnote: Delivered extempore at Manchester.]
+
+The history of the poetry of Wordsworth is a true reflex of the man
+himself. The life of Wordsworth was not outwardly eventful, but his
+inner life was full of conflict, discovery, and progress. His outward
+life seems to have been so ordered by Providence as to favour the
+development of the poetic life within. Educated in the country, and
+spending most of his life in the society of nature, he was not subjected
+to those violent external changes which have been the lot of some poets.
+Perfectly fitted as he was to cope with the world, and to fight his way
+to any desired position, he chose to retire from it, and in solitude to
+work out what appeared to him to be the true destiny of his life.
+
+The very element in which the mind of Wordsworth lived and moved was a
+Christian pantheism. Allow me to explain the word. The poets of the Old
+Testament speak of everything as being the work of God's hand:--We are
+the "work of his hand;" "The world was made by him." But in the New
+Testament there is a higher form used to express the relation in which
+we stand to him--"We are his offspring;" not the work of his hand, but
+the children that came forth from his heart. Our own poet Goldsmith,
+with the high instinct of genius, speaks of God as having "loved us into
+being." Now I think this is not only true with regard to man, but true
+likewise with regard to the world in which we live. This world is not
+merely a thing which God hath made, subjecting it to laws; but it is an
+expression of the thought, the feeling, the heart of God himself. And so
+it must be; because, if man be the child of God, would he not feel to be
+out of his element if he lived in a world which came, not from the heart
+of God, but only from his hand? This Christian pantheism, this belief
+that God is in everything, and showing himself in everything, has been
+much brought to the light by the poets of the past generation, and has
+its influence still, I hope, upon the poets of the present. We are not
+satisfied that the world should be a proof and varying indication of the
+intellect of God. That was how Paley viewed it. He taught us to believe
+there is a God from the mechanism of the world. But, allowing all the
+argument to be quite correct, what does it prove? A mechanical God, and
+nothing more.
+
+Let us go further; and, looking at beauty, believe that God is the first
+of artists; that he has put beauty into nature, knowing how it will
+affect us, and intending that it should so affect us; that he has
+embodied his own grand thoughts thus that we might see them and be glad.
+Then, let us go further still, and believe that whatever we feel in the
+highest moments of truth shining through beauty, whatever comes to our
+souls as a power of life, is meant to be seen and felt by us, and to be
+regarded not as the work of his hand, but as the flowing forth of his
+heart, the flowing forth of his love of us, making us blessed in the
+union of his heart and ours.
+
+Now, Wordsworth is the high priest of nature thus regarded. He saw God
+present everywhere; not always immediately, in his own form, it is true;
+but whether he looked upon the awful mountain-peak, sky-encompassed with
+loveliness, or upon the face of a little child, which is as it were eyes
+in the face of nature--in all things he felt the solemn presence of the
+Divine Spirit. By Keats this presence was recognized only as the spirit
+of beauty; to Wordsworth, God, as the Spirit of Truth, was manifested
+through the forms of the external world.
+
+I have said that the life of Wordsworth was so ordered as to bring this
+out of him, in the forms of _his_ art, to the ears of men. In childhood
+even his conscience was partly developed through the influences of
+nature upon him. He thus retrospectively describes this special
+influence of nature:--
+
+ One summer evening (led by her) I found
+ A little boat, tied to a willow tree,
+ Within a rocky cave, its usual home.
+ Straight I unloosed her chain, and stepping in,
+ Pushed from the shore. It was an act of stealth,
+ And troubled pleasure, nor without the voice
+ Of mountain echoes did my boat move on,
+ Leaving behind her still, on either side,
+ Small circles glittering idly in the moon,
+ Until they melted all into one track
+ Of sparkling light. But now, like one who rows
+ Proud of his skill, to reach a chosen point
+ With an unswerving line, I fixed my view
+ Upon the summit of a craggy ridge,
+ The horizon's utmost boundary; far above
+ Was nothing but the stars and the grey sky.
+ She was an elfin pinnace; lustily
+ I dipped my oars into the silent lake,
+ And, as I rose upon the stroke, my boat
+ Went heaving through the water like a swan;
+ When, from behind that craggy steep, till then
+ The horizon's bound, a huge peak, black and huge,
+ As if with voluntary power instinct,
+ Upreared its head. I struck and struck again,
+ And, growing still in stature, the grim shape
+ Towered up between me and the stars, and still
+ For so it seemed, with purpose of its own,
+ And measured motion like a living thing,
+ Strode after me. With trembling oars I turned,
+ And through the silent water stole my way
+ Back to the covert of the willow tree;
+ There in her mooring place I left my bark,
+ And through the meadows homeward went, in grave
+ And serious mood; but after I had seen
+ That spectacle, for many days, my brain
+ Worked with a dim and undetermined sense
+ Of unknown modes of being; o'er my thoughts
+ There hung a darkness, call it solitude,
+ Or blank desertion. No familiar shapes
+ Remained, no pleasant images of trees,
+ Of sea, or sky, no colours of green fields;
+ But huge and mighty forms, that do not live
+ Like living men, moved slowly through the mind
+ By day, and were a trouble to my dreams.
+
+Here we see that a fresh impulse was given to his life even in boyhood,
+by the influence of nature. If we have had any similar experience, we
+shall be able to enter into this feeling of Wordsworth's; if not, the
+tale will be almost incredible.
+
+One passage more I would refer to, as showing what Wordsworth felt with
+regard to nature, in his youth; and the growth that took place in him in
+consequence. Nature laid up in the storehouse of his mind and heart her
+most beautiful and grand forms, whence they might be brought,
+afterwards, to be put to the highest human service. I quote only a few
+lines from that poem, deservedly a favourite with all the lovers of
+Wordsworth, "Lines written above Tintern Abbey:"--
+
+ I cannot paint
+ What then I was. The sounding cataract
+ Haunted me like a passion; the tall rock,
+ The mountain, and the deep and gloomy wood,
+ Their colours and their forms, were then to me
+ An appetite; a feeling and a love,
+ That had no need of a remoter charm
+ By thought supplied, nor any interest
+ Unborrowed from the eye.--That time is past,
+ And all its aching joys are now no more,
+ And all its dizzy raptures. Not for this
+ Faint I, nor mourn nor murmur; other gifts
+ Have followed; for such loss, I would believe,
+ Abundant recompense. For I have learned
+ To look on nature, not as in the hour
+ Of thoughtless youth; but hearing oftentimes
+ The still, sad music of humanity,
+ Nor harsh, nor grating, though of ample power
+ To chasten and subdue. And I have felt
+ A presence that disturbs me with the joy
+ Of elevated thoughts; a sense sublime
+ Of something far more deeply interfused,
+ Whose dwelling is the light of setting suns,
+ And the round ocean, and the living air
+ And the blue sky, and in the mind of man;
+ A motion and a spirit, that impels
+ All thinking things, all objects of all thought,
+ And rolls through all things.
+
+In this little passage you see the growth of the influence of nature on
+the mind of the poet. You observe, too, that nature passes into poetry;
+that form is sublimed into speech. You see the result of the conjunction
+of the mind of man, and the mind of God manifested in His works; spirit
+coming to know the speech of spirit. The outflowing of spirit in nature
+is received by the poet, and he utters again, in his form, what God has
+already uttered in His. Wordsworth wished to give to man what he found
+in nature. It was to him a power of good, a world of teaching, a
+strength of life. He knew that nature was not his, and that his
+enjoyment of nature was given to him that he might give it to man. It
+was the birthright of man.
+
+But what did Wordsworth find in nature? To begin with the lowest; he
+found amusement in nature. Right amusement is a part of teaching; it is
+the childish form of teaching, and if we can get this in nature, we get
+something that lies near the root of good. In proof that Wordsworth
+found this, I refer to a poem which you probably know well, "The Daisy."
+The poet sits playing with the flower, and listening to the suggestions
+that come to him of odd resemblances that this flower bears to other
+things. He likens the daisy to--
+
+ A little cyclops, with one eye
+ Staring to threaten and defy,
+ That thought comes next--and instantly
+ The freak is over,
+ The shape will vanish--and behold
+ A silver shield with boss of gold,
+ That spreads itself, some faery bold
+ In fight to cover!
+
+Look at the last stanza, too, and you will see how close amusement may
+lie to deep and earnest thought:--
+
+ Bright _Flower_! for by that name at last
+ When all my reveries are past,
+ I call thee, and to that cleave fast,
+ Sweet silent creature!
+ That breath'st with me in sun and air,
+ Do thou, as thou art wont, repair
+ My heart with gladness, and a share
+ Of thy meek nature!
+
+But Wordsworth found also joy in nature, which is a better thing than
+amusement, and consequently easier to be found. We can often have joy
+where we can have no amusement,--
+
+ I wandered lonely as a cloud
+ That floats on high o'er vales and hills
+ When all at once I saw a crowd,
+ A host, of golden daffodils;
+ Beside the lake, beneath the trees,
+ Fluttering and dancing in the breeze.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ The waves beside them danced; but they
+ Out-did the sparkling waves in glee:
+ A poet could not but be gay,
+ In such a jocund company:
+ I gazed--and gazed--but little thought
+ What Health the show to me had brought.
+
+ "For oft, when on my couch I lie
+ In vacant or in pensive mood,
+ They flash upon that inward eye
+ Which is the bliss of solitude;
+ And then my heart with pleasure fills,
+ And dances with the daffodils."
+
+This is the joy of the eye, as far as that can be separated from the joy
+of the whole nature; for his whole nature rejoiced in the joy of the
+eye; but it was simply joy; there was no further teaching, no attempt to
+go through this beauty and find the truth below it. We are not always to
+be in that hungry, restless condition, even after truth itself. If we
+keep our minds quiet and ready to receive truth, and _sometimes_ are
+hungry for it, that is enough.
+
+Going a step higher, you will find that he sometimes _draws_ a lesson
+from nature, seeming almost to force a meaning from her. I do not object
+to this, if he does not make too much of it as _existing_ in nature. It
+is rather finding a meaning in nature that he brought to it. The meaning
+exists, if not _there_. For illustration I refer to another poem.
+Observe that Wordsworth found the lesson because he looked for it, and
+_would_ find it.
+
+ This Lawn, a carpet all alive
+ With shadows flung from leaves--to strive
+ In dance, amid a press
+ Of sunshine, an apt emblem yields
+ Of Worldlings revelling in the fields
+ Of strenuous idleness.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ Yet, spite of all this eager strife,
+ This ceaseless play, the genuine life
+ That serves the steadfast hours,
+ Is in the grass beneath, that grows
+ Unheeded, and the mute repose
+ Of sweetly-breathing flowers.
+
+Whether he forced this lesson from nature, or not, it is a good lesson,
+teaching a great many things with regard to life and work.
+
+Again, nature sometimes flashes a lesson on his mind; _gives_ it to
+him--and when nature gives, we cannot but receive. As in this sonnet
+composed during a storm,--
+
+ One who was suffering tumult in his soul
+ Yet failed to seek the sure relief of prayer,
+ Went forth; his course surrendering to the care
+ Of the fierce wind, while mid-day lightnings prowl
+ Insiduously, untimely thunders growl;
+ While trees, dim-seen, in frenzied numbers tear
+ The lingering remnant of their yellow hair,
+ And shivering wolves, surprised with darkness, howl
+ As if the sun were not. He raised his eye
+ Soul-smitten; for, that instant, did appear
+ Large space (mid dreadful clouds) of purest sky,
+ An azure disc--shield of Tranquillity;
+ Invisible, unlooked-for, minister
+ Of providential goodness ever nigh!
+
+Observe that he was not looking for this; he had not thought of praying;
+he was in such distress that it had benumbed the out-goings of his
+spirit towards the source whence alone sure comfort comes. He went out
+into the storm; and the uproar in the outer world was in harmony with
+the tumult within his soul. Suddenly a clear space in the sky makes him
+feel--he has no time to think about it--that there is a shield of
+tranquillity spread over him. For was it not as it were an opening up
+into that region where there are no storms; the regions of peace,
+because the regions of love, and truth, and purity,--the home of God
+himself?
+
+There is yet a higher and more sustained influence exercised by nature,
+and that takes effect when she puts a man into that mood or condition in
+which thoughts come of themselves. That is perhaps the best thing that
+can be done for us, the best at least that nature can do. It is
+certainly higher than mere intellectual teaching. That nature did this
+for Wordsworth is very clear; and it is easily intelligible. If the
+world proceeded from the imagination of God, and man proceeded from the
+love of God, it is easy to believe that that which proceeded from the
+imagination of God should rouse the best thoughts in the mind of a being
+who proceeded from the love of God. This I think is the relation between
+man and the world. As an instance of what I mean, I refer to one of
+Wordsworth's finest poems, which he classes under the head of "Evening
+Voluntaries." It was composed upon an evening of extraordinary splendour
+and beauty:--
+
+ "Had this effulgence disappeared
+ With flying haste, I might have sent,
+ Among the speechless clouds, a look
+ Of blank astonishment;
+ But 'tis endued with power to stay,
+ And sanctify one closing day,
+ That frail Mortality may see--
+ What is?--ah no, but what _can_, be!
+ Time was when field and watery cove
+ With modulated echoes rang,
+ While choirs of fervent Angels sang
+ Their vespers in the grove;
+ Or, crowning, star-like, each some sovereign height,
+ Warbled, for heaven above and earth below,
+ Strains suitable to both. Such holy rite,
+ Methinks, if audibly repeated now
+ From hill or valley, could not move
+ Sublimer transport, purer love,
+ Than doth this silent spectacle--the gleam--
+ The shadow--and the peace supreme!
+
+ "No sound is uttered,--but a deep
+ And solemn harmony pervades
+ The hollow vale from steep to steep,
+ And penetrates the glades.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ "Wings at my shoulders seem to play;
+ But, rooted here, I stand and gaze
+ On those bright steps that heaven-ward raise
+ Their practicable way.
+ Come forth, ye drooping old men, look abroad,
+ And see to what fair countries ye are bound!
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ "Dread Power! whom peace and calmness serve
+ No less than Nature's threatening voice,
+ From THEE, if I would swerve,
+ Oh, let Thy grace remind me of the light
+ Full early lost, and fruitlessly deplored;
+ Which, at this moment, on my waking sight
+ Appears to shine, by miracle restored;
+ My soul, though yet confined to earth,
+ Rejoices in a second birth!"
+
+Picture the scene for yourselves; and observe how it moves in him the
+sense of responsibility, and the prayer, that if he has in any matter
+wandered from the right road, if he has forgotten the simplicity of
+childhood in the toil of life, he may, from this time, remember the vow
+that he now records--from this time to press on towards the things that
+are unseen, but which are manifested through the things that are seen. I
+refer you likewise to the poem "Resolution and Independence," commonly
+called "The Leech Gatherer;" also to that grandest ode that has ever
+been written, the "Ode on Immortality." You will find there, whatever
+you may think of his theory, in the latter, sufficient proof that nature
+was to him a divine teaching power. Do not suppose that I mean that man
+can do without more teaching than nature's, or that a man with only
+nature's teaching would have seen these things in nature. No, the soul
+must be tuned to such things. Wordsworth could not have found such
+things, had he not known something that was more definite and helpful to
+him; but this known, then nature was full of teaching. When we
+understand the Word of God, then we understand the works of God; when we
+know the nature of an artist, we know his pictures; when we have known
+and talked with the poet, we understand his poetry far better. To the
+man of God, all nature will be but changeful reflections of the face of
+God.
+
+Loving man as Wordsworth did, he was most anxious to give him this
+teaching. How was he to do it? By poetry. Nature put into the crucible
+of a loving heart becomes poetry. We cannot explain poetry
+scientifically; because poetry is something beyond science. The poet may
+be man of science, and the man of science may be a poet; but poetry
+includes science, and the man who will advance science most, is the man
+who, other qualifications being equal, has most of the poetic faculty in
+him. Wordsworth defines poetry to be "the impassioned expression which
+is on the face of science." Science has to do with the construction of
+things. The casting of the granite ribs of the mighty earth, and all the
+thousand operations that result in the manifestations on its surface,
+this is the domain of science. But when there come the grass-bearing
+meadows, the heaven-reared hills, the great streams that go ever
+downward, the bubbling fountains that ever arise, the wind that wanders
+amongst the leaves, and the odours that are wafted upon its wings; when
+we have colour, and shape, and sound, then we have the material with
+which poetry has to do. Science has to do with the underwork. For what
+does this great central world exist, with its hidden winds and waters,
+its upheavings and its downsinkings, its strong frame of rock, and its
+heart of fire? What do they all exist for? Not for themselves surely,
+but for the sake of this out-spreading world of beauty, that floats up,
+as it were, to the surface of the shapeless region of force. Science has
+to do with the one, and poetry with the other: poetry is "the
+impassioned expression that is on the face of science." To illustrate it
+still further. You are walking in the woods, and you find the first
+primrose of the year. You feel almost as if you had found a child. You
+know in yourself that you have found a new beauty and a new joy, though
+you have seen it a thousand times before. It is a primrose. A little
+flower that looks at me, thinks itself into my heart, and gives me a
+pleasure distinct in itself, and which I feel as if I could not do
+without. The impassioned expression on the face of this little outspread
+flower is its childhood; it means trust, consciousness of protection,
+faith, and hope. Science, in the person of the botanist, comes after
+you, and pulls it to pieces to see its construction, and delights the
+intellect; but the science itself is dead, and kills what it touches.
+The flower exists not for it, but for the expression on its face, which
+is its poetry,--that expression which you feel to mean a living thing;
+that expression which makes you feel that this flower is, as it were,
+just growing out of the heart of God. The intellect itself is but the
+scaffolding for the uprearing of the spiritual nature.
+
+It will make all this yet plainer, if you can suppose a human form to be
+created without a soul in it. Divine science _has_ put it together, but
+only for the sake of the outshining soul that shall cause it to live,
+and move, and have a being of its own in God. When you see the face
+lighted up with soul, when you recognize in it thought and feeling, joy
+and love, then you know that here is the end for which it was made. Thus
+you see the relation that poetry has to science; and you find that, to
+speak in an apparent paradox, the surface is the deepest after all; for,
+through the surface, for the sake of which all this building went on, we
+have, as it were, a window into the depths of truth. There is not a form
+that lives in the world, but is a window cloven through the blank
+darkness of nothingness, to let us look into the heart, and feeling, and
+nature of God. So the surface of things is the best and the deepest,
+provided it is not mere surface, but the impassioned expression, for the
+sake of which the science of God has thought and laboured.
+
+Satisfied that this was the nature of poetry, and wanting to convey this
+to the minds of his fellow-men, "What vehicle," Wordsworth may be
+supposed to have asked himself, "shall I use? How shall I decide what
+form of words to employ? Where am I to find the right language for
+speaking such great things to men?" He saw that the poetry of the
+eighteenth century (he was born in 1770) was not like nature at all, but
+was an artificial thing, with no more originality in it than there would
+be in a picture a hundred times copied, the copyists never reverting to
+the original. You cannot look into this eighteenth century poetry,
+excepting, of course, a great proportion of the poetry of Cowper and
+Thompson, without being struck with the sort of agreement that nothing
+should be said naturally. A certain set form and mode was employed for
+saying things that ought never to have been said twice in the same way.
+Wordsworth resolved to go back to the root of the thing, to the natural
+simplicity of speech; he would have none of these stereotyped forms of
+expression. "Where shall I find," said he, "the language that will be
+simple and powerful?" And he came to the conclusion that the language of
+the common people was the only language suitable for his purpose. Your
+experience of the everyday language of the common people may be that it
+is not poetical. True, but not even a poet can speak poetically in his
+stupid moments. Wordsworth's idea was to take the language of the common
+people in their uncommon moods, in their high and, consequently, simple
+moods, when their minds are influenced by grief, hope, reverence,
+worship, love; for then he believed he could get just the language
+suitable for the poet. As far as that language will go, I think he was
+right, if I may venture to give an opinion in support of Wordsworth. Of
+course, there will occur necessities to the poet which would not be
+comprehended in the language of a man whose thoughts had never moved in
+the same directions, but the kind of language will be the right thing,
+and I have heard such amongst the common people myself--language which
+they did not know to be poetic, but which fell upon my ear and heart as
+profoundly poetic both in its feeling and its form.
+
+In attempting to carry out this theory, I am not prepared to say that
+Wordsworth never transgressed his own self-imposed laws. But he adhered
+to his theory to the last. A friend of the poet's told me that
+Wordsworth had to him expressed his belief that he would be remembered
+longest, not by his sonnets, as his friend thought, but by his lyrical
+ballads, those for which he had been reviled and laughed at; the most by
+critics who could not understand him, and who were unworthy to read what
+he had written. As a proof of this let me read to you three verses,
+composing a poem that was especially marked for derision:--
+
+ She dwelt among the untrodden ways,
+ Beside the springs of Dove;
+ A maid whom there were none to praise,
+ And very few to love.
+
+ A violet by a mossy stone.
+ Half hidden from the eye;
+ Fair as a star, when only one
+ Is shining in the sky.
+
+ She lived unknown, and few could know
+ When Lucy ceased to be;
+ But she is in her grave, and Oh!
+ The difference to me.
+
+The last line was especially chosen as the object of ridicule; but I
+think with most of us the feeling will be, that its very simplicity of
+expression is overflowing in suggestion, it throws us back upon our own
+experience; for, instead of trying to utter what he felt, he says in
+those simple and common words, "You who have known anything of the kind,
+will know what the difference to me is, and only you can know." "My
+intention and desire," he says in one of his essays, "are that the
+interest of the poem shall owe nothing to the circumstances; but that
+the circumstances shall be made interesting by the thing itself." In
+most novels, for instance, the attempt is made to interest us in
+worthless, commonplace people, whom, if we had our choice, we would far
+rather not meet at all, by surrounding them with peculiar and
+extraordinary circumstances; but this is a low source of interest.
+Wordsworth was determined to owe nothing to such an adventitious cause.
+For illustration allow me to read that well-known little ballad, "The
+Reverie of Poor Susan," and you will see how entirely it bears out what
+he lays down as his theory. The scene is in London:--
+
+ At the corner of Wood-street, when daylight appears,
+ Hangs a Thrush that sings loud, it has sung for three years;
+ Poor Susan has passed by the spot, and has heard,
+ In the silence of morning, the song of the Bird.
+
+ 'Tis a note of enchantment: what ails her? She sees
+ A mountain ascending, a vision of trees;
+ Bright volumes of vapour through Lothbury glide,
+ And a river flows on through the vale of Cheapside.
+
+ Green pastures she views in the midst of the dale,
+ Down which she so often has tripped with her pail;
+ And a single small cottage, a nest like a dove's,
+ The one only dwelling on earth that she loves.
+
+ She looks, and her heart is in heaven: but they fade,
+ The mist and the river, the hill and the shade:
+ The stream will not flow, and the hill will not rise,
+ And the colours have all passed away from her eyes!
+
+Is any of the interest here owing to the circumstances? Is it not a very
+common incident? But has he not treated it so that it is not
+_commonplace_ in the least? We recognize in this girl just the feelings
+we discover in ourselves, and acknowledge almost with tears her
+sisterhood to us all.
+
+I have tried to make you feel something of what Wordsworth attempts to
+do, but I have not given you the best of his poems. Allow me to finish
+by reading the closing portion of the _Prelude_, the poem that was
+published after his death. It is addressed to Coleridge:--
+
+ Oh! yet a few short years of useful life,
+ And all will be complete, thy race be run,
+ Thy monument of glory will be raised;
+ Then, though (too weak to head the ways of truth)
+ This age fall back to old idolatry,
+ Though men return to servitude as fast
+ As the tide ebbs, to ignominy and shame
+ By nations sink together, we shall still
+ Find solace--knowing what we have learnt to know--
+ Rich in true happiness, if allowed to be
+ Faithful alike in forwarding a day
+ Of firmer trust, joint labourers in the work
+ (Should Providence such grace to us vouchsafe)
+ Of their deliverance, surely yet to come.
+ Prophets of Nature, we to them will speak
+ A lasting inspiration, sanctified
+ By reason, blest by faith: what we have loved,
+ Others will love, and we will teach them how;
+ Instruct them how the mind of man becomes
+ A thousand times more beautiful than the earth
+ On which he dwells, above this frame of things
+ (Which, 'mid all revolution in the hopes
+ And fears of men, doth still remain unchanged)
+ In beauty exalted, as it is itself
+ Of quality and fabric more divine.
+
+
+
+
+SHELLEY.
+
+
+Whatever opinion may be held with regard to the relative position
+occupied by Shelley as a poet, it will be granted by most of those who
+have studied his writings, that they are of such an individual and
+original kind, that he can neither be hidden in the shade, nor lost in
+the brightness, of any other poet. No idea of his works could be
+conveyed by instituting a comparison, for he does not sufficiently
+resemble any other among English writers to make such a comparison
+possible.
+
+Percy Bysshe Shelley was born at Field Place, near Horsham, in the
+county of Sussex, on the 4th of August, 1792. He was the son of Timothy
+Shelley, Esq., and grandson of Sir Bysshe Shelley, the first baronet.
+His ancestors had long been large landed proprietors in Sussex.
+
+As a child his habits were noticeable. He was especially fond of
+rambling by moonlight, of inventing wonderful tales, of occupying
+himself with strange, and sometimes dangerous, amusements. At the age of
+thirteen he went to Eton. In this little world, that determined
+opposition to whatever appeared to him an invasion of human rights and
+liberty, which was afterwards the animating principle of most of his
+writings, was first roused in the mind of Shelley. Were we not aware of
+far keener distress which he afterwards endured from yet greater
+injustice, we might suppose that the sufferings he had to bear from
+placing himself in opposition to the custom of the school, by refusing
+to fag, had made him morbidly sensitive on the point of liberty. At a
+time, however, when freedom of speech, as indicating freedom of thought,
+was especially obnoxious to established authorities; when no allowance
+could be made on the score of youth, still less on that of individual
+peculiarity, Shelley became a student at Oxford. He was then eighteen.
+Devoted to metaphysical speculation, and especially fond of logical
+discussion, he, in his first year, printed and distributed among the
+authorities and members of his college a pamphlet, if that can be called
+a pamphlet which consisted only of two pages, in which he opposed the
+usual arguments for the existence of a Deity; arguments which, perhaps,
+the most ardent believers have equally considered inconclusive. Whether
+Shelley wrote this pamphlet as an embodiment of his own opinions, or
+merely as a logical confutation of certain arguments, the mode of
+procedure adopted with him was certainly not one which necessarily
+resulted from the position of those to whose care the education of his
+opinions was entrusted. Without waiting to be assured that he was the
+author, and satisfying themselves with his refusal to answer when
+questioned as to the authorship, they handed him his sentence of
+expulsion, which had been already drawn up in due form.
+
+About this time Shelley wrote, or commenced writing, _Queen Mab_, a poem
+which he never published, although he distributed copies among his
+friends. In after years he had such a low opinion of it in every
+respect, that he regretted having printed it at all; and when an edition
+of it was published without his consent, he applied to the Court of
+Chancery for an injunction to suppress it.
+
+Shelley's opinions in politics and theology, which he appears to have
+been far more anxious to maintain than was consistent with the peace of
+the household, were peculiarly obnoxious to his father, a man as
+different from his son as it is possible to conceive; and his expulsion
+from Oxford was soon followed by exile from his home. He went to London,
+where, through his sisters, who were at school in the neighbourhood, he
+made the acquaintence of Harriet West brook, whom he eloped with and
+married, when he was nineteen and she sixteen years of age. It seems
+doubtful whether the attachment between them was more than the result of
+the reception accorded by the enthusiasm of the girl to the enthusiasm
+of the youth, manifesting itself in wild talk about human rights, and
+equally wild plans for their recovery and security. However this may be,
+the result was unfortunate. They wandered about England, Scotland, and
+Ireland, with frequent and sudden change of residence, for rather more
+than two years. During this time Shelley gained the friendship of some
+of the most eminent men of the age, of whom the one who exercised the
+most influence upon his character and future history was William Godwin,
+whose instructions and expostulations tended to reduce to solidity and
+form the vague and extravagant opinions and projects of the youthful
+reformer. Shortly after the commencement of the third year of their
+married life, an estrangement of feeling, which had been gradually
+widening between them, resulted in the final separation of the poet and
+his wife. We are not informed as to the causes of this estrangement,
+further than that it seems to have been owing, in a considerable degree,
+to the influence of an elder sister of Mrs. Shelley, who domineered over
+her, and whose presence became at last absolutely hateful to Shelley.
+His wife returned to her father's house; where, apparently about three
+years after, she committed suicide. There seems to have been no
+immediate connection between this act and any conduct of Shelley. One of
+his biographers informs us, that while they were living happily
+together, suicide was with Mrs. Shelley a favourite subject of
+speculation and conversation.
+
+Shortly after his first wife's death, Shelley married the daughter of
+William Godwin. He had lived with her almost from the date of the
+separation, during which time they had twice visited Switzerland. In the
+following year (1817), it was decreed in Chancery that Shelley was not a
+proper person to take charge of his two children by his first wife, who
+had lived with her till her death. The bill was filed in Chancery by
+their grandfather, Mr. Westbrook. The effects of this proceeding upon
+Shelley may be easily imagined. Perhaps he never recovered from them,
+for they were not of a nature to pass away. During this year he resided
+at Marlow, and wrote _The Revolt of Islam_, besides portions of other
+poems; and the next year he left England, not to return. The state of
+his health, for he had appeared to be in a consumption for some time,
+and the fear lest his son, by his second wife, should be taken from him,
+combined to induce him to take refuge in Italy from both impending
+evils. At Lucca he began his _Prometheus_, and wrote _Julian and
+Maddalo_. He moved from place to place in Italy, as he had done in his
+own country. Their two children dying, they were for a time left
+childless; but the loss of these grieved Shelley less than that of his
+eldest two, who were taken from him by the hand of man. In 1819, Shelley
+finished his _Prometheus Unbound_, writing the greater part at Rome, and
+completing it at Florence. In this year also he wrote his tragedy, _The
+Cenci_, which attracted more attention during his lifetime than any
+other of his works. The _Ode to a Skylark_ was written at Leghorn in the
+spring of 1820; and in August of the same year, the _Witch of Atlas_ was
+written, near Pisa. In the following year Shelley and Byron met at Pisa.
+They were a good deal together; but their friendship, although real,
+does not appear to have been of a very profound nature; for though
+unlikeness be one of the necessary elements of friendship, there are
+kinds of unlikeness which will not harmonize. During all this time, he
+was not only maligned by unknown enemies, and abused by anonymous
+writers, but attempts of other kinds are said to have been made to
+render his life as uncomfortable as possible. There are grounds,
+however, for doubting whether Shelley was not subject to a kind of
+monomania upon this and similar points. In 1821, he wrote his _Adonais_,
+a monody on the death of Keats. Part of this poem had its origin in the
+mistaken notion, that the illness and death of Keats were caused by a
+brutal criticism of his _Endymion_, which appeared in the _Quarterly
+Review_. The last verse of the _Adonais_ seems almost prophetic of his
+own end. Passionately fond of boating, he and a friend of his, Mr.
+Williams, united in constructing a boat of a peculiar build, a very fast
+sailer, but difficult to manage. On the 8th of July, 1822, Shelley and
+his friend Williams sailed from Leghorn for Lerici, on the Bay of
+Spezia, near which lay his home for the time. A sudden squall came on,
+and their boat disappeared. The bodies of the two friends were cast on
+shore; and, according to quarantine regulations, were burned to ashes.
+Lord Byron, Leigh Hunt, and Mr. Trelawney were present when the body of
+Shelley was burned; so that his ashes were saved, and buried in the
+Protestant burial-ground at Rome, near the grave of Keats, whose body
+had been laid there in the spring of the preceding year. _Cor Cordium_
+were the words inscribed by his widow on the tomb of the poet.
+
+The character of Shelley has been sadly maligned. Whatever faults he may
+have committed against society, they were not the result of sensuality.
+One of his biographers, who was his companion at Oxford, and who does
+not seem inclined to do him _more_ than justice, asserts that while
+there his conduct was immaculate. The whole picture he gives of the
+youth, makes it easy to believe this. To discuss the moral question
+involved in one part of his history would be out of place here; but even
+on the supposition that a man's conduct is altogether inexcusable in
+individual instances, there is the more need that nothing but the truth
+should be said concerning that, and other portions thereof. And whatever
+society may have thought itself justified in making subject of
+reprobation, it must be remembered that Shelley was under less
+obligation to society than most men. Yet his heart seemed full of love
+to his kind; and the distress which the oppression of others caused him,
+was the source of much of that wild denunciation which exposed him to
+the contempt and hatred of those who were rendered uncomfortable by his
+unsparing and indiscriminate anathemas. In private, he was beloved by
+all who knew him; a steady, generous, self-denying friend, not only to
+those who moved in his own circle, but to all who were brought within
+the reach of any aid he could bestow. To the poor he was a true and
+laborious benefactor. That man must have been good to whom the heart of
+his widow returns with such earnest devotion and thankfulness in the
+recollection of the past, and such fond hope for the future, as are
+manifested by Mrs. Shelley in those extracts from her private journal
+given us by Lady Shelley.
+
+As regards his religious opinions, one of the thoughts which most
+strongly suggest themselves is,--how ill he must have been instructed in
+the principles of Christianity! He says himself in a letter to Godwin,
+"I have known no tutor or adviser (_not excepting my father_) from whose
+lessons and suggestions I have not recoiled with disgust." So far is he
+from being an opponent of Christianity properly so called, that one can
+hardly help feeling what a Christian he would have been, could he but
+have seen Christianity in any other way than through the traditional and
+practical misrepresentations of it which surrounded him. All his attacks
+on Christianity are, in reality, directed against evils to which the
+true doctrines of Christianity are more opposed than those of Shelley
+could possibly be. How far he was excusable in giving the name of
+Christianity to what he might have seen to be only a miserable
+perversion of it, is another question, and one which hardly admits of
+discussion here. It was in the _name_ of Christianity, however, that the
+worst injuries of which he had to complain were inflicted upon him.
+Coming out of the cathedral at Pisa one day, [Footnote: From _Shelley
+Memorials_, edited by Lady Shelley, which the writer of this paper has
+principally followed in regard to the external facts of Shelley's
+history.] Shelley warmly assented to a remark of Leigh Hunt, "that a
+divine religion might be found out, if charity were really made the
+principle of it instead of faith." Surely the founders of Christianity,
+even when they magnified faith, intended thereby a spiritual condition,
+of which the central principle is coincident with charity. Shelley's own
+feelings towards others, as judged from his poetry, seem to be tinctured
+with the very essence of Christianity. [Footnote: His _Essay on
+Christianity_ is full of noble views, some of which are held at the
+present day by some of the most earnest believers. At what time of his
+life it was written we are not informed; but it seems such as would
+insure his acceptance with any company of intelligent and devout
+Unitarians.] He did not, at one time at least, believe that we could
+know the source of our being; and seemed to take it as a self-evident
+truth, that the Creator could not be like the creature. But it is unjust
+to fix upon any utterance of opinion, and regard it as the religion of a
+man who died in his thirtieth year, and whose habits of thinking were
+such, that his opinions must have been in a state of constant change.
+Coleridge says in a letter: "His (Shelley's) discussions, tending
+towards atheism of a certain sort, would not have scared _me;_ for _me_
+it would have been a semitransparent larva, soon to be sloughed, and
+through which I should have seen the true _image_--the final
+metamorphosis. Besides, I have ever thought that sort of atheism the
+next best religion to Christianity; nor does the better faith I have
+learned from Paul and John interfere with the cordial reverence I feel
+for Benedict Spinoza."
+
+Shelley's favourite study was metaphysics. The more impulse there is in
+any direction, the more education and experience are necessary to
+balance that impulse: one cannot help thinking that Shelley's _taste_
+for exercises of this kind was developed more rapidly than the
+corresponding _power_. His favourite physical studies were chemistry and
+electricity. With these he occupied himself from his childhood;
+apparently, however, with more delight in the experiments themselves,
+than interest in the general conclusions to be arrived at by means of
+them. In the embodiment of his metaphysical ideas in poetry, the
+influence of these studies seems to show itself; for he uses forms which
+appeal more to the outer senses than to the inward eye; and his similes
+belong to the realm of the fancy, rather than the imagination: they lack
+_vital_ resemblance. Logic had considerable attractions for him. To
+geometry and mathematics he was quite indifferent. One of his
+biographers states that "he was neglectful of flowers," because he had
+no interest in botany; but one who derived such full delight from the
+contemplation of their external forms, could hardly be expected to feel
+very strongly the impulse to dissect them. He derived exceeding pleasure
+from Greek literature, especially from the works of Plato.
+
+Several little peculiarities in Shelley's tastes are worth mentioning,
+because, although in themselves insignificant, they seem to correspond
+with the nature of his poetry. Perhaps the most prominent of these was
+his passion for boat-sailing. He could not pass any piece of water
+without launching upon it a number of boats, constructed from what paper
+he could find in his pockets. The fly-leaves of the books he was in the
+way of carrying with him, for he was constantly reading, often went to
+this end. He would watch the fate of these boats with the utmost
+interest, till they sank or reached the opposite side. He was just as
+fond of real boating, and that frequently of a dangerous kind; but it is
+characteristic of him, that all the boats he describes in his poems are
+of a fairy, fantastic sort, barely related to the boats which battle
+with earthly winds and waves. Pistol-shooting was also a favourite
+amusement. Fireworks, too, gave him great delight. Some of his habits
+were likewise peculiar. He was remarkably abstemious, preferring bread
+and raisins to anything else in the way of eating, and very seldom
+drinking anything stronger than water. Honey was a favourite luxury with
+him. While at college, his biographer Hogg says he was in the habit,
+during the evening, of going to sleep on the rug, close to a blazing
+fire, heat seeming never to have other than a beneficial effect upon
+him. After sleeping some hours, he would awake perfectly restored, and
+continue actively occupied till far into the morning. His whole
+movements are represented as rapid, hurried, and uncertain. He would
+appear and disappear suddenly and unexpectedly; forget appointments;
+burst into wild laughter, heedless of his situation, whenever anything
+struck him as peculiarly ludicrous. His changes of residence were most
+numerous, and frequently made with so much haste that whole little
+libraries were left behind, and often lost. He was very fond of
+children, and used to make humorous efforts to induce them to disclose
+to him the still-remembered secrets of their pre-existence. He seemed to
+have a peculiar attraction towards mystery, and was ready to believe in
+a hidden secret, where no one else would have thought of one. His room,
+while he was at college, was in a state of indescribable confusion. Not
+only were all sorts of personal necessaries mingled with books and
+philosophical instruments, but things belonging to one department of
+service were not unfrequently pressed into the slavery of another. He
+dressed well but carelessly. In person he was tall, slender, and
+stooping; awkward in gait, but in manners a thorough gentleman. His
+complexion was delicate; his head, face, and features, remarkably small;
+the last not very regular, but in expression, both intellectual and
+moral, wonderfully beautiful. His eyes were deep blue, "of a wild,
+strange beauty;" his forehead high and white; his hair dark brown,
+curling, long, and bushy. His appearance in later life is described as
+singularly combining the appearances of premature age and prolonged
+youth.
+
+The only art in which his taste appears to have been developed was
+poetry. Even in his poetry, taken as a whole, the artistic element is
+not generally very manifest. His earliest verses (none of which are
+included in his collected works) can hardly be said to be good in any
+sense. He seems in these to have chosen poetry as a fitting material for
+the embodiment of his ardent, hopeful, indignant thoughts and feelings,
+but, provided he can say what he wants to say, does not seem to
+care much about _how_ he says it. Indeed, there is too much of
+this throughout his works; for if the _utterance_, instead of
+the _conveyance_ of thought, were the object pursued in art, of
+course not merely imperfection of language, but absolute external
+unintelligibility, would be admissible. But his art constantly increases
+with his sense of its necessity; so that the _Cenci_, which is the last
+work of any pretension that he wrote, is decidedly the most artistic of
+all. There are beautiful passages in _Queen Mab_, but it is the work of
+a boy-poet; and as it was all but repudiated by himself, it is not
+necessary to remark further upon it. _The Revolt of Islam_ is a poem of
+twelve cantos, in the Spenserian stanza; but in all respects except the
+arrangement of lines and rimes, his stanza, in common with all other
+imitations of the Spenserian, has little or nothing of the spirit or
+individuality of the original. The poem is dedicated to the cause of
+freedom, and records the efforts, successes, defeats, and final
+triumphant death of two inspired champions of liberty--a youth and
+maiden. The adventures are marvellous, not intended to be within the
+bounds of probability, scarcely of possibility. There are very noble
+sentiments and fine passages throughout the poem. Now and then there is
+grandeur. But the absence of art is too evident in the fact that the
+meaning is often obscure; an obscurity not unfrequently occasioned by
+the difficulty of the stanza, which is the most difficult mode of
+composition in English, except the rigid sonnet. The words and forms he
+employs to express thought seem sometimes mechanical devices for that
+purpose, rather than an utterance which suggested itself naturally to a
+mind where the thought was vitally present. The words are more a
+_clothing_ for the thought than an _embodiment_ of it. They do not lie
+near enough to the thing which is intended to be represented by them. It
+is, however, but just to remark, that some of the obscurity is owing to
+the fact, that, even with Mrs. Shelley's superintendence, the works have
+not yet been satisfactorily edited, or at least not conducted through
+the press with sufficient care. [Footnote: This statement is no longer
+true.]
+
+_The Cenci_ is a very powerful tragedy, but unfitted for public
+representation by the horrible nature of the historical facts upon which
+it is founded. In the execution of it, however, Shelley has kept very
+much nearer to nature than in any other of his works. He has rigidly
+adhered to his perception of artistic propriety in respect to the
+dramatic utterance. It may be doubted whether there is sufficient
+difference between the modes of speech of the different actors in the
+tragedy, but it is quite possible to individualize speech far too
+minutely for probable nature; and in this respect, at least, Shelley has
+not erred. Perhaps the action of the whole is a little hurried, and a
+central moment of awful repose and fearful anticipation might add to the
+force of the tragedy. The scenes also might, perhaps, have been
+constructed so as to suggest more of evolution; but the central point of
+horror is most powerfully and delicately handled. You see a possible
+spiritual horror yet behind, more frightful than all that has gone
+before. The whole drama, indeed, is constructed around, not a prominent
+point, but a dim, infinitely-withdrawn, underground perspective of
+dismay and agony. Perhaps it detracts a little from our interest in the
+Lady Beatrice, that after all she should wish to live, and should seek
+to preserve her life by a denial of her crime. She, however, evidently
+justifies the denial to herself on the ground that, the deed being
+absolutely right, although regarded as most criminal by her judges, the
+only way to get true justice is to deny the fact, which, there being no
+guilt, she might consider as only a verbal lie. Her very purity of
+conscience enables her to utter this with the most absolute innocence of
+look, and word, and tone. This is probably a historical fact, and
+Shelley had to make the best of it. In the drama there is great
+tenderness, as well as terror; but for a full effect, one feels it
+desirable to be brought better acquainted with the individuals than the
+drama, from its want of graduation, permits. Shelley, however, was only
+six-and-twenty when he wrote it. He must have been attracted to the
+subject by its embodying the concentration of tyranny, lawlessness, and
+brutality in old Cenci, as opposed to, and exercised upon, an ideal
+loveliness and nobleness in the person of Beatrice.
+
+But of all Shelley's works, the _Prometheus Unbound_ is that which
+combines the greatest amount of individual power and peculiarity. There
+is an airy grandeur about it, reminding one of the vast masses of cloud
+scattered about in broken, yet magnificently suggestive forms, all over
+the summer sky, after a thunderstorm. The fundamental ideas are grand;
+the superstructure, in many parts, so ethereal, that one hardly knows
+whether he is gazing on towers of solid masonry rendered dim and
+unsubstantial by intervening vapour, or upon the golden turrets of
+cloudland, themselves born of the mist which surrounds them with a halo
+of glory. The beings of Greek, mythology are idealized and etherealized
+by the new souls which he puts into them, making them think his thoughts
+and say his words. In reading this, as in reading most of his poetry, we
+feel that, unable to cope with the evils and wrongs of the world as it
+and they are, he constructs a new universe, wherein he may rule
+according to his will; and a good will in the main it is--good always in
+intent, good generally in form and utterance. Of the wrongs which
+Shelley endured from the collision and resulting conflict between his
+lawless goodness and the lawful wickedness of those in authority, this
+is one of the greatest,--that during the right period of pupillage, he
+was driven from the place of learning, cast on his own mental resources
+long before those resources were sufficient for his support, and
+irritated against the purest embodiment of good by the harsh treatment
+he received under its name. If that reverence which was far from wanting
+to his nature, had been but presented, in the person of some guide to
+his spiritual being, with an object worthy of its homage and trust, it
+is probable that the yet free and noble result of Shelley's
+individuality would have been presented to the world in a form which,
+while it attracted still only the few, would not have repelled the many;
+at least, not by such things as were merely accidental in their
+association with his earnest desires and efforts for the well-being of
+humanity.
+
+That which chiefly distinguishes Shelley from other writers is the
+unequalled exuberance of his fancy. The reader, say for instance of that
+fantastically brilliant poem, _The Witch of Atlas_, the work of three
+days, is overwhelmed in a storm, as it were, of rainbow snow-flakes and
+many-coloured lightnings, accompanied ever by "a low melodious thunder."
+The evidences of pure imagination in his writings are unfrequent as
+compared with those of fancy: there are not half the instances of the
+direct embodiment of idea in form, that there are of the presentation of
+strange resemblances between external things.
+
+One of the finest short specimens of Shelley's peculiar mode is his _Ode
+to the West Wind_, full of mysterious melody of thought and sound. But
+of all his poems, the most popular, and deservedly so, is the _Skylark_.
+Perhaps the _Cloud_ may contest it with the _Skylark_ in regard to
+popular favour; but the _Cloud_, although full of beautiful words and
+fantastic cloud-like images, is, after all, principally a work of the
+fancy; while the _Skylark_, though even in it fancy predominates over
+imagination in the visual images, forms, as a whole, a lovely, true,
+individual work of art; a _lyric_ not unworthy of the _lark_, which
+Mason apostrophizes as "sweet feathered lyric." The strain of sadness
+which pervades it is only enough to make the song of the lark human.
+
+In _The Sensitive Plant_, a poem full of the peculiarities of his
+genius, tending through a wilderness of fanciful beauties to a thicket
+of mystical speculation, one curious idiosyncrasy is more prominent than
+in any other--curious, as belonging to the poet of beauty and
+loveliness: it is the tendency to be fascinated by what is ugly and
+revolting, so that he cannot withdraw his thoughts from it till he has
+described it in language, powerful, it is true, and poetic, when
+considered as to its fitness for the desired end, but, in force of these
+very excellences in the means, nearly as revolting as the objects
+themselves. Associated with this is the tendency to discover strangely
+unpleasant likenesses between things; which likenesses he is not content
+with seeing, but seems compelled, perhaps in order to get rid of them
+himself, to force upon the observation of his reader. But the admirer of
+Shelley is not pleased to find that one or two passages of this nature
+have been omitted in some editions of his works.
+
+Few men have been more misunderstood or misrepresented than Shelley.
+Doubtless this has in part been his own fault, as Coleridge implies when
+he writes to this effect of him: that his horror of hypocrisy made him
+speak in such a wild way, that Southey (who was so much a man of forms
+and proprieties) was quite misled, not merely in his estimate of his
+worth, but in his judgment of his character. But setting aside this
+consideration altogether, and regarding him merely as a poet, Shelley
+has written verse which will last as long as English literature lasts;
+valuable not only from its excellence, but from the peculiarity of its
+excellence. To say nothing of his noble aims and hopes, Shelley will
+always be admired for his sweet melodies, lovely pictures, and wild
+prophetic imaginings. His indignant remonstrances, intermingled with
+grand imprecations, burst in thunder from a heart overcharged with the
+love of his kind, and roused to a keener sense of all oppression by the
+wrongs which sought to overwhelm himself. But as he recedes further in
+time, and men are able to see more truly the proportions of the man,
+they will judge, that without having gained the rank of a great
+reformer, Shelley had in him that element of wide sympathy and lofty
+hope for his kind which is essential both to the _birth_ and the
+subsequent _making_ of the greatest of poets.
+
+
+
+
+A SERMON.
+
+
+[Footnote: Read in the Unitarian chapel, Essex-street, London, 1879.]
+
+PHILIPPIANS iii. 15, 16.--Let us therefore, as many as be perfect, be
+thus minded; and if in anything ye be otherwise minded, God shall reveal
+even this unto you. Nevertheless, whereto we have already attained, let
+us walk by that same.
+
+
+This is the reading of the oldest manuscripts. The rest of the verse is
+pretty clearly a not overwise marginal gloss that has crept into the
+text.
+
+In its origin, opinion is the intellectual body, taken for utterance and
+presentation by something necessarily larger than any intellect can
+afford stuff sufficient for the embodiment of. To the man himself,
+therefore, in whose mind it arose, an opinion will always represent and
+recall the spirit whose form it is,--so long, at least, as the man
+remains true to his better self. Hence, a man's opinion may be for him
+invaluable, the needle of his moral compass, always pointing to the
+truth whence it issued, and whose form it is. Nor is the man's opinion
+of the less value to him that it may change. Nay, to be of true value,
+it must have in it not only the possibility, but the necessity of
+change: it must change in every man who is alive with that life which,
+in the New Testament, is alone treated as life at all. For, if a man's
+opinion be in no process of change whatever, it must be dead, valueless,
+hurtful Opinion is the offspring of that which is itself born to grow;
+which, being imperfect, must grow or die. Where opinion is growing, its
+imperfections, however many and serious, will do but little hurt; where
+it is not growing, these imperfections will further the decay and
+corruption which must already have laid hold of the very heart of the
+man. But it is plain in the world's history that what, at some given
+stage of the same, was the embodiment in intellectual form of the
+highest and deepest of which it was then spiritually capable, has often
+and speedily become the source of the most frightful outrages upon
+humanity. How is this? Because it has passed from the mind in which it
+grew into another in which it did not grow, and has of necessity altered
+its nature. Itself sprung from that which was deepest in the man, it
+casts seeds which take root only in the intellectual understanding of
+his neighbour; and these, springing up, produce flowers indeed which
+look much the same to the eye, but fruit which is poison and
+bitterness,--worst of it all, the false and arrogant notion that it is
+duty to force the opinion upon the acceptance of others. But it is
+because such men themselves hold with so poor a grasp the truth
+underlying their forms that they are, in their self-sufficiency, so
+ambitious of propagating the forms, making of themselves the worst
+enemies of the truth of which they fancy themselves the champions. How
+truly, in the case of all genuine teachers of men, shall a man's foes be
+they of his own household! For of all the destroyers of the truth which
+any man has preached, none have done it so effectually or so grievously
+as his own followers. So many of them have received but the forms, and
+know nothing of the truth which gave him those forms! They lay hold but
+of the non-essential, the specially perishing in those forms; and these
+aspects, doubly false and misleading in their crumbling disjunction,
+they proceed to force upon the attention and reception of men, calling
+that the truth which is at best but the draggled and useless fringe of
+its earth-made garment. Opinions so held belong to the theology of
+hell,--not necessarily altogether false in form, but false utterly in
+heart and spirit. The opinion then that is hurtful is not that which is
+formed in the depths, and from the honest necessities of a man's own
+nature, but that which he has taken up at second hand, the study of
+which has pleased his intellect; has perhaps subdued fears and mollified
+distresses which ought rather to have grown and increased until they had
+driven the man to the true physician; has puffed him up with a sense of
+superiority as false as foolish, and placed in his hand a club with
+which to subjugate his neighbour to his spiritual dictation. The true
+man even, who aims at the perpetuation of his opinion, is rather
+obstructing than aiding the course of that truth for the love of which
+he holds his opinion; for truth is a living thing, opinion is a dead
+thing, and transmitted opinion a deadening thing.
+
+Let us look at St. Paul's feeling in this regard. And, in order that we
+may deprive it of none of its force, let us note first the nature of the
+truth which he had just been presenting to his disciples, when he
+follows it with the words of my text:--
+
+
+But what things were gain to me, those I counted loss for Christ.
+
+Yea doubtless, and I count all things but loss for the excellency of the
+knowledge of Christ Jesus my Lord: for whom I have suffered the loss of
+all things, and do count them but dung, that I may win Christ,
+
+And be found in him, not having mine own righteousness, which is of the
+law, but that which is through the faith of Christ, the righteousness
+which is of God by faith:
+
+That I may know him, and the power of his resurrection, and the
+fellowship of his sufferings, being made conformable unto his death;
+
+If by any means I might attain unto the resurrection of the dead.
+
+Not as though I had already attained, either were already perfect: but I
+follow after, if that I may apprehend that for which also I am
+apprehended of Christ Jesus.
+
+Brethren, I count not myself to have apprehended: but this one thing I
+do, forgetting those things which are behind, and reaching forth unto
+those things which are before, I press toward the mark for the prize of
+the high calling of God in Christ Jesus.
+
+
+St. Paul, then, had been declaring to the Philippians the idea upon
+which, so far as it lay with him, his life was constructed, the thing
+for which he lived, to which the whole conscious effort of his being was
+directed,--namely, to be in his very nature one with Christ, to become
+righteous as he is righteous; to die into his death, so that he should
+no more hold the slightest personal relation to evil, but be alive in
+every fibre to all that is pure, lovely, loving, beautiful, perfect. He
+had been telling them that he spent himself in continuous effort to lay
+hold upon that for the sake of which Christ had laid hold on him. This
+he declares the sole thing worth living for: the hope of this, the hope
+of becoming one with the living God, is that which keeps a glorious
+consciousness awake in him, amidst all the unrest of a being not yet at
+harmony with itself, and a laborious and persecuted life. It cannot
+therefore be any shadow of indifference to the truth to which he has
+borne this witness, that causes him to add, "If in anything ye be
+otherwise minded." It is to him even the test of perfection, whether
+they be thus minded or not; for, although a moment before, he has
+declared himself short of the desired perfection, he now says, "Let as
+many of us as are perfect be thus minded." There is here no room for
+that unprofitable thing, bare logic: we must look through the shifting
+rainbow of his words,--rather, we must gather all their tints together,
+then turn our backs upon the rainbow, that we may see the glorious light
+which is the soul of it. St. Paul is not that which he would be, which
+he must be; but he, and all they who with him believe that the
+perfection of Christ is the sole worthy effort of a man's life, are in
+the region, though not yet at the centre, of perfection. They are, even
+now, not indeed grasping, but in the grasp of, that perfection. He tells
+them this is the one thing to mind, the one thing to go on desiring and
+labouring for, with all the earnestness of a God-born existence; but, if
+any one be at all otherwise minded,--that is, of a different
+opinion,--what then? That it is of little or no consequence? No, verily;
+but of such endless consequence that God will himself unveil to them the
+truth of the matter. This is Paul's faith, not his opinion. Faith is
+that by which a man lives inwardly, and orders his way outwardly. Faith
+is the root, belief the tree, and opinion the foliage that falls and is
+renewed with the seasons. Opinion is, at best, even the opinion of a
+true man, but the cloak of his belief, which he may indeed cast to his
+neighbour, but not with the truth inside it: that remains in his own
+bosom, the oneness between him and his God. St. Paul knows well--who
+better?--that by no argument, the best that logic itself can afford, can
+a man be set right with the truth; that the spiritual perception which
+comes of hungering contact with the living truth--a perception which is
+in itself a being born again--can alone be the mediator between a man
+and the truth. He knows that, even if he could pass his opinion over
+bodily into the understanding of his neighbour, there would be little or
+nothing gained thereby, for the man's spiritual condition would be just
+what it was before. God must reveal, or nothing is known. And this,
+through thousands of difficulties occasioned by the man himself, God is
+ever and always doing his mighty best to effect.
+
+See the grandeur of redeeming liberality in the Apostle. In his heart of
+hearts he knows that salvation consists in nothing else than being one
+with Christ; that the only life of every man is hid with Christ in God,
+and to be found by no search anywhere else. He believes that for this
+cause was he born into the world,--that he should give himself, heart
+and soul, body and spirit, to him who came into the world that he might
+bear witness to the truth. He believes that for the sake of this, and
+nothing less,--anything more there cannot be,--was the world, with its
+endless glories, created. Nay, more than all, he believes that for this
+did the Lord, in whose cross, type and triumph of his self-abnegation,
+he glories, come into the world, and live and die there. And yet, and
+yet, he says, and says plainly, that a man thinking differently from all
+this or at least, quite unprepared to make this whole-hearted profession
+of faith, is yet his brother in Christ, in whom the knowledge of Christ
+that he has will work and work, the new leaven casting out the old
+leaven until he, too, in the revelation of the Father, shall come to the
+perfect stature of the fulness of Christ. Meantime, Paul, the Apostle,
+must show due reverence to the halting and dull disciple. He must and
+will make no demand upon him on the grounds of what he, Paul, believes.
+He is where he is, and God is his teacher. To his own Master,--that is,
+Paul's Master, and not Paul,--he stands. He leaves him to the company of
+his Master. "Leaves him?" No: that he does not; that he will never do,
+any more than God will leave him. Still and ever will he hold him and
+help him. But how help him, if he is not to press upon him his own
+larger and deeper and wiser insights? The answer is ready: he will
+press, not his opinion, not even the man's opinion, but the man's own
+faith upon him. "O brother, beloved of the Father, walk in the
+light,--in the light, that is, which is thine, not which is mine; in the
+light which is given to thee, not to me: thou canst not walk by my
+light, I cannot walk by thine: how should either walk except by the
+light which is in him? O brother, what thou seest, that do; and what
+thou seest not, that thou shalt see: God himself, the Father of Lights,
+will show it to you." This, this is the condition of all growth,--that
+whereto we have attained, we mind that same; for such, following the
+manuscripts, at least the oldest, seems to me the Apostle's meaning.
+Obedience is the one condition of progress, and he entreats them to
+obey. If a man will but work that which is in him, will but make the
+power of God his own, then is it well with him for evermore. Like his
+Master, Paul urges to action, to the highest operation, therefore to the
+highest condition of humanity. As Christ was the Son of his Father
+because he did the will of the Father, so the Apostle would have them
+the sons of the Father by doing the will of the Father. Whereto ye have
+attained, walk by _that_.
+
+But there is more involved in this utterance than the words themselves
+will expressly carry. Next to his love to the Father and the Elder
+Brother, the passion of Paul's life--I cannot call it less--is love to
+all his brothers and sisters. Everything human is dear to him: he can
+part with none of it. Division, separation, the breaking of the body of
+Christ, is that which he cannot endure. The body of his flesh had once
+been broken, that a grander body might be prepared for him: was it for
+that body itself to tear itself asunder? With the whole energy of his
+great heart, Paul clung to unity. He could clasp together with might and
+main the body of his Master--the body that Master loved because it was a
+spiritual body, with the life of his Father in it. And he knew well that
+only by walking in the truth to which they had attained, could they ever
+draw near to each other. Whereto we have attained, let us walk by that.
+
+My honoured friends, if we are not practical, we are nothing. Now, the
+one main fault in the Christian Church is separation, repulsion, recoil
+between the component particles of the Lord's body. I will not, I do not
+care to inquire who is more to blame than another in the evil fact. I
+only care to insist that it is the duty of every individual man to be
+innocent of the same. One main cause, perhaps I should say _the one_
+cause of this deathly condition, is that whereto we had, we did not,
+whereto we have attained, we do not walk by that. Ah, friend! do not now
+think of thy neighbour. Do not applaud my opinion as just from what thou
+hast seen around thee, but answer it from thy own being, thy own
+behaviour. Dost thou ever feel thus toward thy neighbour,--"Yes, of
+course, every man is my brother; but how can I be a brother to him so
+long as he thinks me wrong in what I believe, and so long as I think he
+wrongs in his opinions the dignity of the truth?" What, I return, has
+the man no hand to grasp, no eyes into which yours may gaze far deeper
+than your vaunted intellect can follow? Is there not, I ask, anything in
+him to love? Who asks you to be of one opinion? It is the Lord who asks
+you to be of one heart. Does the Lord love the man? Can the Lord love,
+where there is nothing to love? Are you wiser than he, inasmuch as you
+perceive impossibility where he has failed to discover it? Or will you
+say, "Let the Lord love where he pleases: I will love where I please"?
+or say, and imagine you yield, "Well, I suppose I must, and therefore I
+will,--but with certain reservations, politely quiet in my own heart"?
+Or wilt thou say none of all these things, but do them all, one after
+the other, in the secret chambers of thy proud spirit? If you delight to
+condemn, you are a wounder, a divider of the oneness of Christ. If you
+pride yourself on your loftier vision, and are haughty to your
+neighbour, you are yourself a division and have reason to ask: "Am I a
+particle of the body at all?" The Master will deal with thee upon the
+score. Let it humble thee to know that thy dearest opinion, the one thou
+dost worship as if it, and not God, were thy Saviour, this very opinion
+thou art doomed to change, for it cannot possibly be right, if it work
+in thee for death and not for life.
+
+Friends, you have done me the honour and the kindness to ask me to speak
+to you. I will speak plainly. I come before you neither hiding anything
+of my belief, nor foolishly imagining I can transfer my opinions into
+your bosoms. If there is one role I hate, it is that of the
+proselytizer. But shall I not come to you as a brother to brethren?
+Shall I not use the privilege of your invitation and of the place in
+which I stand, nay, must I not myself be obedient to the heavenly
+vision, in urging you with all the power of my persuasion to set
+yourselves afresh to _walk_ according to that to which you have
+attained. So doing, whatever yet there is to learn, you shall learn it.
+Thus doing, and thus only, can you draw nigh to the centre truth; thus
+doing, and thus only, shall we draw nigh to each other, and become
+brothers and sisters in Christ, caring for each other's honour and
+righteousness and true well-being. It is to them that keep his
+commandments that he and his Father will come to take up their abode
+with them. Whether you or I have the larger share of the truth in that
+which we hold, of this I am sure, that it is to them that keep his
+commandments that it shall be given to eat of the Tree of Life. I
+believe that Jesus is the eternal son of the eternal Father; that in him
+the ideal humanity sat enthroned from all eternity; that as he is the
+divine man, so is he the human God; that there was no taking of our
+nature upon himself, but the showing of himself as he really was, and
+that from evermore: these things, friends, I believe, though never would
+I be guilty of what in me would be the irreverence of opening my mouth
+in dispute upon them. Not for a moment would I endeavour by argument to
+convince another of this, my opinion. If it be true, it is God's work to
+show it, for logic cannot. But the more, and not the less, do I believe
+that he, who is no respecter of persons, will, least of all, respect the
+person of him who thinks to please him by respecting his person, calling
+him, "Lord, Lord," and not doing the things that he tells him. Even if I
+be right, friend, and thou wrong, to thee who doest his commandments
+more faithfully than I, will the more abundant entrance be administered.
+God grant that, when thou art admitted first, I may not be cast out, but
+admitted to learn of thee that it is truth in the inward parts that he
+requireth, and they that have that truth, and they alone, shall ever
+know wisdom. Bear with me, friends, for I love and honour you. I seek
+but to stir up your hearts, as I would daily stir up my own, to be true
+to that which is deepest in us,--the voice and the will of the Father of
+our spirits.
+
+Friends, I have not said we are not to utter our opinions. I have only
+said we are not to make those opinions the point of a fresh start, the
+foundation of a new building, the groundwork of anything. They are not
+to occupy us in our dealings with our brethren. Opinion is often the
+very death of love. Love aright, and you will come to think aright; and
+those who think aright must think the same. In the meantime, it matters
+nothing. The thing that does matter is, that whereto we have attained,
+by that we should walk. But, while we are not to insist upon our
+opinions, which is only one way of insisting upon ourselves, however we
+may cloak the fact from ourselves in the vain imagination of thereby
+spreading the truth, we are bound by loftiest duty to spread the truth;
+for that is the saving of men. Do you ask, How spread it, if we are not
+to talk about it? Friends, I never said, Do not talk about the truth,
+although I insist upon a better and the only indispensable way: let your
+light shine. What I said before, and say again, is, Do not talk about
+the lantern that holds the lamp, but make haste, uncover the light, and
+let it shine. Let your light so shine before men that they may see your
+good works,--I incline to the Vatican reading of _good things_,--and
+glorify your Father who is in heaven. It is not, Let your good works
+shine, but, Let your light shine. Let it be the genuine love of your
+hearts, taking form in true deeds; not the doing of good deeds to prove
+that your opinions are right. If ye are thus true, your very talk about
+the truth will be a good work, a shining of the light that is in you. A
+true smile is a good work, and may do much to reveal the Father who is
+in heaven; but the smile that is put on for the sake of looking right,
+or even for the sake of being right, will hardly reveal him, not being
+like him. Men say that you are cold: if you fear it may be so, do not
+think to make yourselves warm by putting on the cloak of this or that
+fresh opinion; draw nearer to the central heat, the living humanity of
+the Son of Man, that ye may have life in yourselves, so heat in
+yourselves, so light in yourselves; understand him, obey him, then your
+light will shine, and your warmth will warm. There is an infection, as
+in evil, so in good. The better we are, the more will men glorify God.
+If we trim our lamps so that we have light in our house, that light will
+shine through our windows, and give light to those that are not in the
+house. But remember, love of the light alone can trim the lamp. Had Love
+trimmed Psyche's lamp, it had never dropped the scalding oil that scared
+him from her.
+
+The man who holds his opinion the most honestly ought to see the most
+plainly that his opinion must change. It is impossible a man should hold
+anything aright. How shall the created embrace the self-existent
+Creator? That Creator, and he alone, is _the truth_: how, then, shall a
+man embrace the truth? But to him who will live it,--to him, that is,
+who walks by that to which he has attained,--the truth will reach down a
+thousand true hands for his to grasp. We would not wish to enclose that
+which we can do more than enclose,--live in, namely, as our home,
+inherit, exult in,--the presence of the infinitely higher and better,
+the heart of the living one. And, if we know that God himself is our
+inheritance, why should we tremble even with hatred at the suggestion
+that we may, that we must, change our opinions? If we held them aright,
+we should know that nothing in them that is good can ever be lost; for
+that is the true, whatever in them may be the false. It is only as they
+help us toward God, that our opinions are worth a straw; and every
+necessary change in them must be to more truth, to greater uplifting
+power. Lord, change me as thou wilt, only do not send me away. That in
+my opinions for which I really hold them, if I be a true man, will never
+pass away; that which my evils and imperfections have, in the process of
+embodying it, associated with the truth, must, thank God, perish and
+fall. My opinions, as my life, as my love, I leave in the hands of him
+who is my being. I commend my spirit to him of whom it came. Why, then,
+that dislike to the very idea of such change, that dread of having to
+accept the thing offered by those whom we count our opponents, which is
+such a stumbling-block in the way in which we have to walk, such an
+obstruction to our yet inevitable growth? It may be objected that no man
+will hold his opinions with the needful earnestness, who can entertain
+the idea of having to change them. But the very objection speaks
+powerfully against such an overvaluing of opinion. For what is it but to
+say that, in order to be wise, a man must consent to be a fool. Whatever
+must be, a man must be able to look in the face. It is because we cleave
+to our opinions rather than to the living God, because self and pride
+interest themselves for their own vile sakes with that which belongs
+only to the truth, that we become such fools of logic and temper that we
+lie in the prison-houses of our own fancies, ideas, and experiences,
+shut the doors and windows against the entrance of the free spirit, and
+will not inherit the love of the Father.
+
+Yet, for the help and comfort of even such a refuser as this, I would
+say: Nothing which you reject can be such as it seems to you. For a
+thing is either true or untrue: if it be untrue, it looks, so far like
+itself that you reject it, and with it we have nothing more to do; but,
+if it be true, the very fact that you reject it shows that to you it has
+not appeared true,--has not appeared itself. The truth can never be even
+beheld but by the man who accepts it: the thing, therefore, which you
+reject, is not that which it seems to you, but a thing good, and
+altogether beautiful, altogether fit for your gladsome embrace,--a thing
+from which you would not turn away, did you see it as it is, but rush to
+it, as Dante says, like the wild beast to his den,--so eager for the
+refuge of home. No honest man holds a truth for the sake of that because
+of which another honest man rejects it: how it may be with the
+dishonest, I have no confidence in my judgment, and hope I am not bound
+to understand.
+
+Let us then, my friends, beware lest our opinions come between us and
+our God, between us and our neighbour, between us and our better selves.
+Let us be jealous that the human shall not obscure the divine. For we
+are not _mere_ human: we, too, are divine; and there is no such
+obliterator of the divine as the human that acts undivinely. The one
+security against our opinions is to walk according to the truth which
+they contain.
+
+And if men seem to us unreasonable, opposers of that which to us is
+plainly true, let us remember that we are not here to convince men, but
+to let our light shine. Knowledge is not necessarily light; and it is
+light, not knowledge, that we have to diffuse. The best thing we can do,
+infinitely the best, indeed the only thing, that men may receive the
+truth, is to be ourselves true. Beyond all doing of good is the being
+good; for he that is good not only does good things, but all that he
+does is good. Above all, let us be humble before the God of truth,
+faithfully desiring of him that truth in the inward parts which alone
+can enable us to walk according to that which we have attained. May the
+God of peace give you his peace; may the love of Christ constrain you;
+may the gift of the Holy Spirit be yours. Amen.
+
+
+
+
+TRUE CHRISTIAN MINISTERING.
+
+
+[Footnote: A spoken sermon.]
+
+MATT. xx. 25--28--But Jesus called them unto him and said, Ye know that
+the princes of the Gentiles exercise dominion over them, and they that
+are great exercise authority upon them. But it should not be so among
+you: but whosoever will be great among you, let him be your minister;
+and whosoever will be chief among you, let him be your servant: even as
+the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister, and to
+give his life a ransom for many.
+
+
+How little this is believed! People think, if they think about it at
+all, that this is very well in the church, but, as things go in the
+world, it won't do. At least, their actions imply this, for every man is
+struggling to get above the other. Every man would make his neighbour
+his footstool that he may climb upon him to some throne of glory which
+he has in his own mind. There is a continual jostling, and crowding, and
+buzzing, and striving to get promotion. Of course there are known and
+noble exceptions; but still, there it is. And yet we call ourselves
+"Christians," and we are Christians, all of us, thus far, that the truth
+is within reach of us all, that it has come nigh to us, talking to us at
+our door, and even speaking in our hearts, and yet this is the way in
+which we go on! The Lord said, "It shall not be so among you." Did he
+mean only his twelve disciples? This was all that he had to say to them,
+but--thanks be to him!--he says the same to every one of us now. "It
+shall not be so among you: that is not the way in my kingdom." The
+people of the world--the people who live in the world--will always think
+it best to get up, to have less and less of service to do, more and more
+of service done to them. The notion of rank in the world is like a
+pyramid; the higher you go up, the fewer are there who have to serve
+those above them, and who are served more than those underneath them.
+All who are under serve those who are above, until you come to the apex,
+and there stands some one who has to do no service, but whom all the
+others have to serve. Something like that is the notion of position--of
+social standing and rank. And if it be so in an intellectual way
+even--to say nothing of mere bodily service--if any man works to a
+position that others shall all look up to him and that he may have to
+look up to nobody, he has just put himself precisely into the same
+condition as the people of whom our Lord speaks--as those who exercise
+dominion and authority, and really he thinks it a fine thing to be
+served.
+
+But it is not so in the kingdom of heaven. The figure there is entirely
+reversed. As you may see a pyramid reflected in the water, just so, in a
+reversed way altogether, is the thing to be found in the kingdom of God.
+It is in this way: the Son of Man lies at the inverted apex of the
+pyramid; he upholds, and serves, and ministers unto all, and they who
+would be high in his kingdom must go near to him at the bottom, to
+uphold and minister to all that they may or can uphold and minister
+unto. There is no other law of precedence, no other law of rank and
+position in God's kingdom. And mind, that is _the_ kingdom. The other
+kingdom passes away--it is a transitory, ephemeral, passing, bad thing,
+and away it must go. It is only there on sufferance, because in the mind
+of God even that which is bad ministers to that which is good; and when
+the new kingdom is built the old kingdom shall pass away.
+
+But the man who seeks this rank of which I have spoken, must be honest
+to follow it. It will not do to say, "I want to be great, and therefore
+I will serve." A man will not get at it so. He may begin so, but he will
+soon find that that will not do. He must seek it for the truth's sake,
+for the love of his fellows, for the worship of God, for the delight in
+what is good. In the kingdom of heaven people do not think whether I am
+promoted, or whether you are promoted. They are so absorbed in the
+delight and glory of the goodness that is round about them, that they
+learn not to think much about themselves. It is the bad that is in us
+that makes us think about ourselves. It is necessary for us, because
+there is bad in us, to think about ourselves, but as we go on we think
+less and less about ourselves, until at last we are possessed with the
+spirit of the truth, the spirit of the kingdom, and live in gladness and
+in peace. We are prouder of our brothers and sisters than of ourselves;
+we delight to look at them. God looks at us, and makes us what he
+pleases, and this is what we must come to; there is no escape from it.
+
+But the Lord says, that "the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto."
+Was he not ministered unto then? Ah! he was ministered unto as never man
+was, but he did not come for that. Even now we bring to him the
+burnt-offerings of our very spirits, but he did not come for that. It
+was to help us that he came. We are told, likewise, that he is the
+express image of the Father. Then what he does, the Father must do; and
+he says himself, when he is accused of breaking the Sabbath by doing
+work on it, "My Father worketh hitherto, and I work." Then this must be
+God's way too, or else it could not have been Jesus's way. It is God's
+way. Oh! do not think that God made us with his hands, and then turned
+us out to find out our own way. Do not think of him as being always over
+our heads, merely throwing over us a wide-spread benevolence. You can
+imagine the tenderness of a mother's heart who takes her child even from
+its beloved nurse to soothe and to minister to it, and that is like God;
+that is God. His hand is not only over us, but recollect what David
+said--"His hand was upon me." I wish we were all as good Christians as
+David was. "Wherever I go," he said, "God is there--beneath me, before
+me, his hand is upon me; if I go to sleep he is there; when I go down to
+the dead he is there." Everywhere is God. The earth underneath us is his
+hand upholding us. [Footnote: The waters are in the hollow of it.] Every
+spring-fountain of gladness about us is his making and his delight. He
+tends us and cares for us; he is close to us, breathing into our
+nostrils the breath of life, and breathing into our spirit this thought
+and that thought to make us look up and recognize the love and the care
+around us. What a poor thing for the little baby would it be if it were
+to be constantly tended thus tenderly and preciously by its mother, but
+if it were never to open its eyes to look up and see her mother's face
+bending over it. A poor thing all its tending would be without that. It
+is for that that the other exists; it is by that that the other comes.
+To recognize and know this loving-kindness, and to stand up in it strong
+and glad; this is the ministration of God unto us. Do you ever think "I
+could worship God if he was so-and-so?" Do you imagine that God is not
+as good, as perfect, as absolutely all-in-all as your thoughts can
+imagine? Aye, you cannot come up to it; do what you will you never will
+come up to it. Use all the symbols that we have in nature, in human
+relations, in the family--all our symbols of grace and tenderness, and
+loving-kindness between man and man, and between man and woman, and
+between woman and woman, but you can never come up to the thought of
+what God's ministration is. When our Lord came he just let us see how
+his Father was doing this always, he "came to give his life a ransom for
+many." It was in giving his life a ransom for us that he died; that was
+the consummation and crown of it all, but it was his life that he gave
+for us--his whole being, his whole strength, his whole energy--not alone
+his days of trouble and of toil, but deeper than that, he gave his whole
+being for us; yea, he even went down to death for us.
+
+But how are we to learn this ministration? I will tell you where it
+begins. The most of us are forced to work; if you do not see that the
+commonest things in life belong to the Christian scheme, the plan of
+God, you have got to learn it. I say this is at the beginning. Most of
+us have to work, and infinitely better is that for us than if we were
+not forced to work, but not a very fine thing unless it goes to
+something farther. We are forced to work; and what is our work? It is
+doing something for other people always. It is doing; it is ministration
+in some shape or other. All kind of work is a serving, but it may not be
+always Christian service. No. Some of us only work for our wages; we
+must have them. We starve, and deserve to starve, if we do not work to
+get them. But we must go a little beyond that; yes, a very great way
+beyond that. There is no honest work that one man does for another which
+he may not do as unto the Lord and not unto men; in which he cannot do
+right as he ought to do right. Thus, I say that the man who sees the
+commonest thing in the world, recognizing it as part of the divine order
+of things, the law by which the world goes, being the intention of God
+that one man should be serviceable and useful to another--the man, I
+say, who does a thing well because of this, and who tries to do it
+better, is doing God service.
+
+We talk of "divine service." It is a miserable name for a great thing.
+It is not service, properly speaking, at all. When a boy comes to his
+father and says, "May I do so and so for you?" or, rather, comes and
+breaks out in some way, showing his love to his father--says, "May I
+come and sit beside you? May I have some of your books? May I come and
+be quiet a little in your room?" what would you think of that boy if he
+went and said, "I have been doing my father a service." So with praying
+to and thanking God, do you call that serving God? If it is not serving
+yourselves it is worth nothing; if it is not the best condition you can
+find yourselves in, you have to learn what it is yet. Not so; the work
+you have to do to-morrow in the counting-house, in the shop, or wherever
+you may be, is that by which you are to serve God. Do it with a high
+regard, and then there is nothing mean in it; but there is everything
+mean in it if you are pretending to please people when you only look for
+your wages. It is mean then; but if you have regard to doing a thing
+nobly, greatly, and truly, because it is the work that God has given you
+to do, then you are doing the divine service.
+
+Of course, this goes a great deal farther. We have endless opportunities
+of showing ourselves neighbours to the man who comes near us. That is
+the divine service; that is the reality of serving God. The others ought
+to be your reward, if "reward" is a word that can be used in such a
+relation at all. Go home and speak to God; nay, hold your tongue, and
+quietly go to him in the secret recesses of your own heart, and know
+that God is there. Say, "God has given me this work to do, and I am
+doing it;" and that is your joy, that is your refuge, that is your going
+to heaven. It is not service. The words "divine service," as they are
+used, always move me to something of indignation. It is perfect
+paganism; it is looking to please God by gathering together your
+services,--something that is supposed to be service to him. He is
+serving us for ever, and our Lord says, "If I have washed your feet, so
+you ought to wash one another's feet." This will be the way in which to
+minister for some.
+
+But still, when we are beginning to learn this, some of us are looking
+about us in a blind kind of way, thinking, "I wish I could serve God; I
+do not know what to do! How is it to be begun? What is it at the root of
+it? What shall I find out to do? Where is there something to do?"
+
+Now, first of all, service is obedience, or it is nothing. This is what
+I would gladly impress upon you; upon every young man who has come to
+the point to be able to receive it. There is a tendency in us to think
+that there is something degrading in obedience, something degrading in
+service. According to the social judgment there is; according to the
+judgment of the earth there is. Not so according to the judgment of
+heaven, for God would only have us do the very thing he is doing
+himself. You may see the tendency of this nowadays. There is scarcely a
+young man who will speak of his "master." He feels as if there is
+something that hurts his dignity in doing so. He does just what so many
+theologians have done about God, who, instead of taking what our Lord
+has given us, talk about God as "the Governor of the Universe." So a
+young man talks about his master as "the governor;" nay, he even talks
+of his own father in that way, and then you come in another region
+altogether, and a worse one. I take these things as symptoms, mind. I
+know habits may be picked up, when they get common, without any great
+corresponding feeling; but a wrong habit tends always to a wrong
+feeling, and if a man cannot learn to honour his father, so as to be
+able to call him "father," I think one or the other of them is greatly
+to blame, whether the father or the son I cannot say. I know there are
+such parents that to tell their children that God is their "Father" is
+no help to them, but the contrary. I heard of a lady just the other day
+to whom, in trying to comfort her, some one said, "Remember God is your
+Father." "Do not mention the name 'father' to me," she said. Ah! that
+kind of fault does not lie in God, but in those who, not being like him,
+cannot use the names aright which belong to him.
+
+But now, as to this service, this obedience. Our Lord came to give his
+life a ransom for the many, and to minister unto all in obedience to his
+Father's will. We call him equal with God--at least, most of us here, I
+suppose, do; of course we do not pretend to explain; we know that God is
+greater than he, because he said so; but somehow, we can worship him
+with our God, and we need not try to distinguish more than is necessary
+about it. But do you think that he was less divine than the Father when
+he was obedient? Observe his obedience to the will of his Father. He was
+not the ruler there. He did not give the commands; he obeyed them. And
+yet we say He is God! Ah, that is no difficulty to me. Obedience is as
+divine in its essence as command; nay, it may be more divine in the
+human being far; it cannot be more divine in God, but obedience is far
+more divine in its essence with regard to humanity than command is. It
+is not the ruling being who is most like God; it is the man who
+ministers to his fellow, who is like God; and the man who will just
+sternly and rigidly do what his master tells him--be that master what he
+may--who is likest Christ in that one particular matter. Obedience is
+the grandest thing in the world to begin with. Yes, and we shall end
+with it too. I do not think the time will ever come when we shall not
+have something to do, because we are told to do it without knowing why.
+Those parents act most foolishly who wish to explain everything to their
+children--most foolishly. No; teach your child to obey, and you give him
+the most precious lesson that can be given to a child. Let him come to
+that before you have had him long, to do what he is told, and you have
+given him the plainest, first, and best lesson that you can give him. If
+he never goes to school at all he had better have that lesson than all
+the schooling in the world. Hence, when some people are accustomed to
+glorify this age of ours as being so much better in everything than
+those which went before, I look back to the times of chivalry, which we
+regard now, almost, as a thing to laugh at, or a merry thing to make
+jokes about; but I find that the one essential of chivalry was
+obedience. It is recognized in our army still, but in those times it was
+carried much farther. When a boy was seven years old he was sent into
+another family, and put with another boy there to do what? To wait with
+him upon the master and the mistress of the house, and to be taught, as
+well, what few things they knew in those times in the way of
+intellectual cultivation. But he also learned stern, strict obedience,
+such as it was impossible for him to forget. Then, when he had been
+there seven years, hard at work, standing behind the chair, and
+ministering, he was advanced a step; and what was that step? He was made
+an esquire. He had his armour given him; he had to watch his armour in
+the chapel all night, laying it on the altar in silent devotion to God.
+I do not say that all these things were carried out afterwards, but this
+was the idea of them. He was an esquire, and what was the duty of an
+esquire? More service; more important service. He still had to attend to
+his master, the knight. He had to watch him; he had to groom his horse
+for him; he had to see that his horse was sound; he had to clean his
+armour for him; to see that every bolt, every rivet, every strap, every
+buckle was sound, for the life of his master was in his hands. The
+master, having to fight, must not be troubled with these things, and
+therefore the squire had to attend to them. Then seven years after that
+a more solemn ceremony is gone through, and the squire is made a knight;
+but is he free of service then? No; he makes a solemn oath to help
+everybody who needs help, especially women and children, and so he rides
+out into the world to do the work of a true man. There was a grand and
+essential idea of Christianity in that--no doubt wonderfully broken and
+shattered, but not more so than the Christian church has been;
+wonderfully broken and shattered, but still the essence of obedience;
+and I say it is recognized in our army still, and in every army; and
+where it is lost it is a terrible loss, and an army is worth nothing
+without it. You remember that terrible story from the East, that fearful
+death-charge, one of the grandest things in our history, although one of
+the most blundering:--
+
+ "Theirs not to make reply,
+ Theirs not to reason why,
+ Theirs but to do and die;
+ Into the valley of death
+ Rode the Six Hundred."
+
+So with the Christian man; whatever meets him, obedience is the thing.
+If he is told by his conscience, which is the candle of God within him,
+that he must do a thing, why he must do it. He may tremble from head to
+foot at having to do it, but he will tremble more if he turns his back.
+You recollect how our old poet Spenser shows us the Knight of the Red
+Cross, who is the knight of holiness, ill in body, diseased in mind,
+without any of his armour on, attacked by a fearful giant. What does he
+do? Run away? No, he has but time to catch up his sword, and, trembling
+in every limb, he goes on to meet the giant; and that is the thing that
+every Christian man must do. I cannot put it too strongly; it is
+impossible. There is no escape from it. If death itself lies before us,
+and we know it, there is nothing to be said; it is all to be done, and
+then there is no loss; everything else is all lost unto God. Look at our
+Lord. He gave his life to do the will of his Father, and on he went and
+did it. Do you think it was easy for him--easier for him than it would
+have been for us? Ah! the greater the man the more delicate and tender
+his nature, and the more he shrinks from the opposition even of his
+fellowmen, because he loves them. It was a terrible thing for Christ.
+Even now and then, even in the little touches that come to us in the
+scanty story (though enough) this breaks out. "We are told by John that
+at the Last Supper He was troubled in spirit, and testified." And then
+how he tries to comfort himself as soon as Judas has gone out to do the
+thing which was to finish his great work: "Now is the Son of Man
+glorified, and God is glorified in him. If God be glorified in him, God
+shall also glorify him in himself." Then he adds,--just gathering up his
+strength,--"I shall straightway glorify him." This was said to his
+disciples, but I seem to see in it that some of it was said for himself.
+This is the grand obedience! Oh, friends, this is a hard lesson to
+learn. We find every day that it is a hard thing to teach. We are
+continually grumbling because we cannot get the people about us, our
+servants, our tradespeople, or whoever they may be, to do just what we
+tell them. It makes half the misery in the world because they will have
+something of their own in it against what they are told. But are we not
+always doing the same thing? and ought we not to learn something of
+forgiveness for them, and very much from the fact that we are just in
+the same position? We only recognize in part that we are put here in
+this world precisely to learn to be obedient. He who is our Lord and our
+God went on being obedient all the time, and was obedient always; and I
+say it is as divine for us to obey as it is for God to rule. As I have
+said already, God is ministering the whole time. Now, do you want to
+know how to minister? Begin by obeying. Obey every one who has a right
+to command you; but above all, look to what our Lord has said, and find
+out what he wants you to do out of what he left behind, and try whether
+obedience to that will not give a consciousness of use, of ministering,
+of being a part of the grand scheme and way of God in this world. In
+fact, take your place in it as a vital portion of the divine kingdom,
+or--to use a better figure than that--a vital portion of the Godhead.
+Try it, and see whether obedience is not salvation; whether service is
+not dignity; whether you will not feel in yourselves that you have begun
+to be cleansed from your plague when you begin to say, "I will seek no
+more to be above my fellows, but I will seek to minister to them, doing
+my work in God's name for them."
+
+ "Who sweeps a room as for Thy law,
+ Makes that and the action fine."
+
+Both the room and the action are good when done for God's sake. That is
+dear old George Herbert's way of saying the same truth, for every man
+has his own way of saying it. The gift of the Spirit of God to make you
+think as God thinks, feel as God feels, judge as God judges, is just the
+one thing that is promised. I do not know anything else that is promised
+positively but that, and who dares pray for anything else with perfect
+confidence? God will not give us what we pray for except it be good for
+us, but that is one thing that we must have or perish. Therefore, let us
+pray for that, and with the name of God dwelling in us--if this is not
+true, the whole world is a heap of ruins--let us go forth and do this
+service of God in ministering to our fellows, and so helping him in his
+work of upholding, and glorifying and saving all.
+
+
+
+
+THE FANTASTIC IMAGINATION
+
+
+That we have in English no word corresponding to the German _Maehrchen_,
+drives us to use the word _Fairytale_, regardless of the fact that the
+tale may have nothing to do with any sort of fairy. The old use of the
+word _Fairy_, by Spenser at least, might, however, well be adduced, were
+justification or excuse necessary where _need must_.
+
+Were I asked, what is a fairytale? I should reply, _Read Undine: that
+is a fairytale; then read this and that as well, and you will see what
+is a fairytale_. Were I further begged to describe the _fairytale_, or
+define what it is, I would make answer, that I should as soon think of
+describing the abstract human face, or stating what must go to
+constitute a human being. A fairytale is just a fairytale, as a face is
+just a face; and of all fairytales I know, I think _Undine_ the most
+beautiful.
+
+Many a man, however, who would not attempt to define _a man_, might
+venture to say something as to what a man ought to be: even so much I
+will not in this place venture with regard to the fairytale, for my long
+past work in that kind might but poorly instance or illustrate my now
+more matured judgment. I will but say some things helpful to the
+reading, in right-minded fashion, of such fairytales as I would wish to
+write, or care to read.
+
+Some thinkers would feel sorely hampered if at liberty to use no forms
+but such as existed in nature, or to invent nothing save in accordance
+with the laws of the world of the senses; but it must not therefore be
+imagined that they desire escape from the region of law. Nothing lawless
+can show the least reason why it should exist, or could at best have
+more than an appearance of life.
+
+The natural world has its laws, and no man must interfere with them in
+the way of presentment any more than in the way of use; but they
+themselves may suggest laws of other kinds, and man may, if he pleases,
+invent a little world of his own, with its own laws; for there is that
+in him which delights in calling up new forms--which is the nearest,
+perhaps, he can come to creation. When such forms are new embodiments of
+old truths, we call them products of the Imagination; when they are mere
+inventions, however lovely, I should call them the work of the Fancy: in
+either case, Law has been diligently at work.
+
+His world once invented, the highest law that comes next into play is,
+that there shall be harmony between the laws by which the new world has
+begun to exist; and in the process of his creation, the inventor must
+hold by those laws. The moment he forgets one of them, he makes the
+story, by its own postulates, incredible. To be able to live a moment in
+an imagined world, we must see the laws of its existence obeyed. Those
+broken, we fall out of it. The imagination in us, whose exercise is
+essential to the most temporary submission to the imagination of
+another, immediately, with the disappearance, of Law, ceases to act.
+Suppose the gracious creatures of some childlike region of Fairyland
+talking either cockney or Gascon! Would not the tale, however lovelily
+begun, sink at once to the level of the Burlesque--of all forms of
+literature the least worthy? A man's inventions may be stupid or clever,
+but if he do not hold by the laws of them, or if he make one law jar
+with another, he contradicts himself as an inventor, he is no artist. He
+does not rightly consort his instruments, or he tunes them in different
+keys. The mind of man is the product of live Law; it thinks by law, it
+dwells in the midst of law, it gathers from law its growth; with law,
+therefore, can it alone work to any result. Inharmonious, unconsorting
+ideas will come to a man, but if he try to use one of such, his work
+will grow dull, and he will drop it from mere lack of interest. Law is
+the soil in which alone beauty will grow; beauty is the only stuff in
+which Truth can be clothed; and you may, if you will, call Imagination
+the tailor that cuts her garments to fit her, and Fancy his journeyman
+that puts the pieces of them together, or perhaps at most embroiders
+their button-holes. Obeying law, the maker works like his creator; not
+obeying law, he is such a fool as heaps a pile of stones and calls it a
+church.
+
+In the moral world it is different: there a man may clothe in new forms,
+and for this employ his imagination freely, but he must invent nothing.
+He may not, for any purpose, turn its laws upside down. He must not
+meddle with the relations of live souls. The laws of the spirit of man
+must hold, alike in this world and in any world he may invent. It were
+no offence to suppose a world in which everything repelled instead of
+attracted the things around it; it would be wicked to write a tale
+representing a man it called good as always doing bad things, or a man
+it called bad as always doing good things: the notion itself is
+absolutely lawless. In physical things a man may invent; in moral things
+he must obey--and take their laws with him into his invented world as
+well.
+
+"You write as if a fairytale were a thing of importance: must it have a
+meaning?"
+
+It cannot help having some meaning; if it have proportion and harmony it
+has vitality, and vitality is truth. The beauty may be plainer in it
+than the truth, but without the truth the beauty could not be, and the
+fairytale would give no delight. Everyone, however, who feels the story,
+will read its meaning after his own nature and development: one man will
+read one meaning in it, another will read another.
+
+"If so, how am I to assure myself that I am not reading my own meaning
+into it, but yours out of it?"
+
+Why should you be so assured? It may be better that you should read your
+meaning into it. That may be a higher operation of your intellect than
+the mere reading of mine out of it: your meaning may be superior to
+mine.
+
+"Suppose my child ask me what the fairytale means, what am I to say?"
+
+If you do not know what it means, what is easier than to say so? If you
+do see a meaning in it, there it is for you to give him. A genuine work
+of art must mean many things; the truer its art, the more things it will
+mean. If my drawing, on the other hand, is so far from being a work of
+art that it needs THIS IS A HORSE written under it, what can it matter
+that neither you nor your child should know what it means? It is there
+not so much to convey a meaning as to wake a meaning. If it do not even
+wake an interest, throw it aside. A meaning may be there, but it is not
+for you. If, again, you do not know a horse when you see it, the name
+written under it will not serve you much. At all events, the business of
+the painter is not to teach zoology.
+
+But indeed your children are not likely to trouble you about the
+meaning. They find what they are capable of finding, and more would be
+too much. For my part, I do not write for children, but for the
+childlike, whether of five, or fifty, or seventy-five.
+
+A fairytale is not an allegory. There may be allegory in it, but it is
+not an allegory. He must be an artist indeed who can, in any mode,
+produce a strict allegory that is not a weariness to the spirit. An
+allegory must be Mastery or Moorditch.
+
+A fairytale, like a butterfly or a bee, helps itself on all sides, sips
+at every wholesome flower, and spoils not one. The true fairytale is, to
+my mind, very like the sonata. We all know that a sonata means
+something; and where there is the faculty of talking with suitable
+vagueness, and choosing metaphor sufficiently loose, mind may approach
+mind, in the interpretation of a sonata, with the result of a more or
+less contenting consciousness of sympathy. But if two or three men sat
+down to write each what the sonata meant to him, what approximation to
+definite idea would be the result? Little enough--and that little more
+than needful. We should find it had roused related, if not identical,
+feelings, but probably not one common thought. Has the sonata therefore
+failed? Had it undertaken to convey, or ought it to be expected to
+impart anything defined, anything notionally recognizable?
+
+"But words are not music; words at least are meant and fitted to carry a
+precise meaning!"
+
+It is very seldom indeed that they carry the exact meaning of any user
+of them! And if they can be so used as to convey definite meaning, it
+does not follow that they ought never to carry anything else. Words are
+live things that may be variously employed to various ends. They can
+convey a scientific fact, or throw a shadow of her child's dream on the
+heart of a mother. They are things to put together like the pieces of a
+dissected map, or to arrange like the notes on a stave. Is the music in
+them to go for nothing? It can hardly help the definiteness of a
+meaning: is it therefore to be disregarded? They have length, and
+breadth, and outline: have they nothing to do with depth? Have they only
+to describe, never to impress? Has nothing any claim to their use but
+the definite? The cause of a child's tears may be altogether
+undefinable: has the mother therefore no antidote for his vague misery?
+That may be strong in colour which has no evident outline. A fairytale,
+a sonata, a gathering storm, a limitless night, seizes you and sweeps
+you away: do you begin at once to wrestle with it and ask whence its
+power over you, whither it is carrying you? The law of each is in the
+mind of its composer; that law makes one man feel this way, another man
+feel that way. To one the sonata is a world of odour and beauty, to
+another of soothing only and sweetness. To one, the cloudy rendezvous is
+a wild dance, with a terror at its heart; to another, a majestic march
+of heavenly hosts, with Truth in their centre pointing their course, but
+as yet restraining her voice. The greatest forces lie in the region of
+the uncomprehended.
+
+I will go farther.--The best thing you can do for your fellow, next to
+rousing his conscience, is--not to give him things to think about, but
+to wake things up that are in him; or say, to make him think things for
+himself. The best Nature does for us is to work in us such moods in
+which thoughts of high import arise. Does any aspect of Nature wake but
+one thought? Does she ever suggest only one definite thing? Does she
+make any two men in the same place at the same moment think the same
+thing? Is she therefore a failure, because she is not definite? Is it
+nothing that she rouses the something deeper than the understanding--the
+power that underlies thoughts? Does she not set feeling, and so thinking
+at work? Would it be better that she did this after one fashion and not
+after many fashions? Nature is mood-engendering, thought-provoking: such
+ought the sonata, such ought the fairytale to be.
+
+"But a man may then imagine in your work what he pleases, what you never
+meant!"
+
+Not what he pleases, but what he can. If he be not a true man, he will
+draw evil out of the best; we need not mind how he treats any work of
+art! If he be a true man, he will imagine true things; what matter
+whether I meant them or not? They are there none the less that I cannot
+claim putting them there! One difference between God's work and man's
+is, that, while God's work cannot mean more than he meant, man's must
+mean more than he meant. For in everything that God has made, there is
+layer upon layer of ascending significance; also he expresses the same
+thought in higher and higher kinds of that thought: it is God's things,
+his embodied thoughts, which alone a man has to use, modified and
+adapted to his own purposes, for the expression of his thoughts;
+therefore he cannot help his words and figures falling into such
+combinations in the mind of another as he had himself not foreseen, so
+many are the thoughts allied to every other thought, so many are the
+relations involved in every figure, so many the facts hinted in every
+symbol. A man may well himself discover truth in what he wrote; for he
+was dealing all the time with things that came from thoughts beyond his
+own.
+
+"But surely you would explain your idea to one who asked you?"
+
+I say again, if I cannot draw a horse, I will not write THIS IS A HORSE
+under what I foolishly meant for one. Any key to a work of imagination
+would be nearly, if not quite, as absurd. The tale is there, not to
+hide, but to show: if it show nothing at your window, do not open your
+door to it; leave it out in the cold. To ask me to explain, is to say,
+"Roses! Boil them, or we won't have them!" My tales may not be roses,
+but I will not boil them.
+
+So long as I think my dog can bark, I will not sit up to bark for him.
+
+If a writer's aim be logical conviction, he must spare no logical pains,
+not merely to be understood, but to escape being misunderstood; where
+his object is to move by suggestion, to cause to imagine, then let him
+assail the soul of his reader as the wind assails an aeolian harp. If
+there be music in my reader, I would gladly wake it. Let fairytale of
+mine go for a firefly that now flashes, now is dark, but may flash
+again. Caught in a hand which does not love its kind, it will turn to an
+insignificant, ugly thing, that can neither flash nor fly.
+
+The best way with music, I imagine, is not to bring the forces of our
+intellect to bear upon it, but to be still and let it work on that part
+of us for whose sake it exists. We spoil countless precious things by
+intellectual greed. He who will be a man, and will not be a child,
+must--he cannot help himself--become a little man, that is, a dwarf. He
+will, however, need no consolation, for he is sure to think himself a
+very large creature indeed.
+
+If any strain of my "broken music" make a child's eyes flash, or his
+mother's grow for a moment dim, my labour will not have been in vain.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Dish Of Orts, by George MacDonald
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A DISH OF ORTS ***
+
+***** This file should be named 9393.txt or 9393.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/9/3/9/9393/
+
+Produced by Jonathan Ingram, Sandra Brown, and Project
+Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
+ www.gutenberg.org/license.
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
+North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
+contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
+Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
diff --git a/9393.zip b/9393.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..b05d3ed
--- /dev/null
+++ b/9393.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..89ec380
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #9393 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/9393)
diff --git a/old/8orts10.zip b/old/8orts10.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..01d2487
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/8orts10.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/9393-h.htm.2021-01-26 b/old/9393-h.htm.2021-01-26
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..b27997d
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/9393-h.htm.2021-01-26
@@ -0,0 +1,9568 @@
+<?xml version="1.0" encoding="utf-8"?>
+
+<!DOCTYPE html
+ PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
+ "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd" >
+
+<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" lang="en">
+ <head>
+ <title>
+ A Dish of Orts, by George Macdonald
+ </title>
+ <style type="text/css" xml:space="preserve">
+
+ body { margin:5%; background:#faebd0; text-align:justify}
+ P { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: .25em; margin-bottom: .25em; }
+ H1,H2,H3,H4,H5,H6 { text-align: center; margin-left: 15%; margin-right: 15%; }
+ hr { width: 50%; text-align: center;}
+ .foot { margin-left: 20%; margin-right: 20%; text-align: justify; text-indent: -3em; font-size: 90%; }
+ blockquote {font-size: 97%; font-style: italic; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%;}
+ .mynote {background-color: #DDE; color: #000; padding: .5em; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-family: sans-serif; font-size: 95%;}
+ .toc { margin-left: 10%; margin-bottom: .75em;}
+ .toc2 { margin-left: 20%;}
+ div.fig { display:block; margin:0 auto; text-align:center; }
+ div.middle { margin-left: 20%; margin-right: 20%; text-align: justify; }
+ .figleft {float: left; margin-left: 0%; margin-right: 1%;}
+ .figright {float: right; margin-right: 0%; margin-left: 1%;}
+ .pagenum {display:inline; font-size: 70%; font-style:normal;
+ margin: 0; padding: 0; position: absolute; right: 1%;
+ text-align: right;}
+ pre { font-style: italic; font-size: 90%; margin-left: 10%;}
+
+</style>
+ </head>
+ <body>
+
+
+<pre>
+
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of A Dish Of Orts, by George MacDonald
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: A Dish Of Orts
+
+Author: George MacDonald
+
+
+Release Date: November, 2005 [EBook #9393]
+This file was first posted on September 29, 2003
+Last Updated: October 10, 2016
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: UTF-8
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A DISH OF ORTS ***
+
+
+
+
+Text file produced by Jonathan Ingram, Sandra Brown, and Project
+Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
+
+HTML file produced by David Widger
+
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+ <div style="height: 8em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h1>
+ A DISH OF ORTS
+ </h1>
+ <h2>
+ By George Macdonald
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ <br /> <br />
+ </p>
+ <hr />
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_PREF" id="link2H_PREF">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ PREFACE.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ Since printing throughout the title <i>Orts</i>, a doubt has arisen in my
+ mind as to its fitting the nature of the volume. It could hardly, however,
+ be imagined that I associate the idea of <i>worthlessness</i> with the
+ work contained in it. No one would insult his readers by offering them
+ what he counted valueless scraps, and telling them they were such. These
+ papers, those two even which were caught in the net of the ready-writer
+ from extempore utterance, whatever their merits in themselves; are the
+ results of by no means trifling labour. So much a man <i>ought</i> to be
+ able to say for his work. And hence I might defend, if not quite justify
+ my title&mdash;for they are but fragmentary presentments of larger
+ meditation. My friends at least will accept them as such, whether they
+ like their collective title or not.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The title of the last is not quite suitable. It is that of the religious
+ newspaper which reported the sermon. I noted the fact too late for
+ correction. It ought to be <i>True Greatness</i>.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The paper on <i>The Fantastic Imagination</i> had its origin in the
+ repeated request of readers for an explanation of things in certain
+ shorter stories I had written. It forms the preface to an American edition
+ of my so-called Fairy Tales.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ GEORGE MACDONALD.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ EDENBRIDGE, KENT. <i>August 5, 1893.</i>
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <br /> <br />
+ </p>
+ <hr />
+ <p>
+ <br /> <br />
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <b>CONTENTS</b>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_PREF"> PREFACE. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0002"> THE IMAGINATION: ITS FUNCTIONS AND ITS CULTURE.
+ </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0003"> A SKETCH OF INDIVIDUAL DEVELOPMENT. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0004"> ST. GEORGE&rsquo;S DAY, 1564. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0005"> THE ART OF SHAKSPERE, AS REVEALED BY HIMSELF.
+ </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0006"> THE ELDER HAMLET. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0007"> ON POLISH. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0008"> BROWNING&rsquo;S &ldquo;CHRISTMAS EVE&rdquo; </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0009"> ESSAYS ON SOME OF THE FORMS OF LITERATURE </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0010"> THE HISTORY AND HEROES OF MEDICINE. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0011"> WORDSWORTH&rsquo;S POETRY </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0012"> SHELLEY. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0013"> A SERMON. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0014"> TRUE CHRISTIAN MINISTERING. </a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="toc">
+ <a href="#link2H_4_0015"> THE FANTASTIC IMAGINATION </a>
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <br /> <br />
+ </p>
+ <hr />
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0002" id="link2H_4_0002">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ THE IMAGINATION: ITS FUNCTIONS AND ITS CULTURE.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1867.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There are in whose notion education would seem to consist in the
+ production of a certain repose through the development of this and that
+ faculty, and the depression, if not eradication, of this and that other
+ faculty. But if mere repose were the end in view, an unsparing depression
+ of all the faculties would be the surest means of approaching it, provided
+ always the animal instincts could be depressed likewise, or, better still,
+ kept in a state of constant repletion. Happily, however, for the human
+ race, it possesses in the passion of hunger even, a more immediate saviour
+ than in the wisest selection and treatment of its faculties. For repose is
+ not the end of education; its end is a noble unrest, an ever renewed
+ awaking from the dead, a ceaseless questioning of the past for the
+ interpretation of the future, an urging on of the motions of life, which
+ had better far be accelerated into fever, than retarded into lethargy.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ By those who consider a balanced repose the end of culture, the
+ imagination must necessarily be regarded as the one faculty before all
+ others to be suppressed. &ldquo;Are there not facts?&rdquo; say they. &ldquo;Why forsake
+ them for fancies? Is there not that which, may be <i>known</i>? Why
+ forsake it for inventions? What God hath made, into that let man inquire.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We answer: To inquire into what God has made is the main function of the
+ imagination. It is aroused by facts, is nourished by facts; seeks for
+ higher and yet higher laws in those facts; but refuses to regard science
+ as the sole interpreter of nature, or the laws of science as the only
+ region of discovery.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We must begin with a definition of the word <i>imagination</i>, or rather
+ some description of the faculty to which we give the name.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The word itself means an <i>imaging</i> or a making of likenesses. The
+ imagination is that faculty which gives form to thought&mdash;not
+ necessarily uttered form, but form capable of being uttered in shape or in
+ sound, or in any mode upon which the senses can lay hold. It is,
+ therefore, that faculty in man which is likest to the prime operation of
+ the power of God, and has, therefore, been called the <i>creative</i>
+ faculty, and its exercise <i>creation</i>. <i>Poet</i> means <i>maker</i>.
+ We must not forget, however, that between creator and poet lies the one
+ unpassable gulf which distinguishes&mdash;far be it from us to say <i>divides</i>&mdash;all
+ that is God&rsquo;s from all that is man&rsquo;s; a gulf teeming with infinite
+ revelations, but a gulf over which no man can pass to find out God,
+ although God needs not to pass over it to find man; the gulf between that
+ which calls, and that which is thus called into being; between that which
+ makes in its own image and that which is made in that image. It is better
+ to keep the word <i>creation</i> for that calling out of nothing which is
+ the imagination of God; except it be as an occasional symbolic expression,
+ whose daring is fully recognized, of the likeness of man&rsquo;s work to the
+ work of his maker. The necessary unlikeness between the creator and the
+ created holds within it the equally necessary likeness of the thing made
+ to him who makes it, and so of the work of the made to the work of the
+ maker. When therefore, refusing to employ the word <i>creation</i> of the
+ work of man, we yet use the word <i>imagination</i> of the work of God, we
+ cannot be said to dare at all. It is only to give the name of man&rsquo;s
+ faculty to that power after which and by which it was fashioned. The
+ imagination of man is made in the image of the imagination of God.
+ Everything of man must have been of God first; and it will help much
+ towards our understanding of the imagination and its functions in man if
+ we first succeed in regarding aright the imagination of God, in which the
+ imagination of man lives and moves and has its being.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ As to <i>what</i> thought is in the mind of God ere it takes form, or what
+ the form is to him ere he utters it; in a word, what the consciousness of
+ God is in either case, all we can say is, that our consciousness in the
+ resembling conditions must, afar off, resemble his. But when we come to
+ consider the acts embodying the Divine thought (if indeed thought and act
+ be not with him one and the same), then we enter a region of large
+ difference. We discover at once, for instance, that where a man would make
+ a machine, or a picture, or a book, God makes the man that makes the book,
+ or the picture, or the machine. Would God give us a drama? He makes a
+ Shakespere. Or would he construct a drama more immediately his own? He
+ begins with the building of the stage itself, and that stage is a world&mdash;a
+ universe of worlds. He makes the actors, and they do not act,&mdash;they
+ <i>are</i> their part. He utters them into the visible to work out their
+ life&mdash;his drama. When he would have an epic, he sends a thinking hero
+ into his drama, and the epic is the soliloquy of his Hamlet. Instead of
+ writing his lyrics, he sets his birds and his maidens a-singing. All the
+ processes of the ages are God&rsquo;s science; all the flow of history is his
+ poetry. His sculpture is not in marble, but in living and speech-giving
+ forms, which pass away, not to yield place to those that come after, but
+ to be perfected in a nobler studio. What he has done remains, although it
+ vanishes; and he never either forgets what he has once done, or does it
+ even once again. As the thoughts move in the mind of a man, so move the
+ worlds of men and women in the mind of God, and make no confusion there,
+ for there they had their birth, the offspring of his imagination. Man is
+ but a thought of God.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If we now consider the so-called creative faculty in man, we shall find
+ that in no <i>primary</i> sense is this faculty creative. Indeed, a man is
+ rather <i>being thought</i> than <i>thinking</i>, when a new thought
+ arises in his mind. He knew it not till he found it there, therefore he
+ could not even have sent for it. He did not create it, else how could it
+ be the surprise that it was when it arose? He may, indeed, in rare
+ instances foresee that something is coming, and make ready the place for
+ its birth; but that is the utmost relation of consciousness and will he
+ can bear to the dawning idea. Leaving this aside, however, and turning to
+ the <i>embodiment</i> or revelation of thought, we shall find that a man
+ no more <i>creates</i> the forms by which he would reveal his thoughts,
+ than he creates those thoughts themselves.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For what are the forms by means of which a man may reveal his thoughts?
+ Are they not those of nature? But although he is created in the closest
+ sympathy with these forms, yet even these forms are not born in his mind.
+ What springs there is the perception that this or that form is already an
+ expression of this or that phase of thought or of feeling. For the world
+ around him is an outward figuration of the condition of his mind; an
+ inexhaustible storehouse of forms whence he may choose exponents&mdash;the
+ crystal pitchers that shall protect his thought and not need to be broken
+ that the light may break forth. The meanings are in those forms already,
+ else they could be no garment of unveiling. God has made the world that it
+ should thus serve his creature, developing in the service that imagination
+ whose necessity it meets. The man has but to light the lamp within the
+ form: his imagination is the light, it is not the form. Straightway the
+ shining thought makes the form visible, and becomes itself visible through
+ the form. [Footnote: We would not be understood to say that the man works
+ consciously even in this. Oftentimes, if not always, the vision arises in
+ the mind, thought and form together.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In illustration of what we mean, take a passage from the poet Shelley.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In his poem <i>Adonais</i>, written upon the death of Keats, representing
+ death as the revealer of secrets, he says:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The one remains; the many change and pass;
+ Heaven&rsquo;s light for ever shines; earth&rsquo;s shadows fly;
+ Life, like a dome of many coloured glass,
+ Stains the white radiance of eternity,
+ Until death tramples it to fragments.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ This is a new embodiment, certainly, whence he who gains not, for the
+ moment at least, a loftier feeling of death, must be dull either of heart
+ or of understanding. But has Shelley created this figure, or only put
+ together its parts according to the harmony of truths already embodied in
+ each of the parts? For first he takes the inventions of his fellow-men, in
+ glass, in colour, in dome: with these he represents life as finite though
+ elevated, and as an analysis although a lovely one. Next he presents
+ eternity as the dome of the sky above this dome of coloured glass&mdash;the
+ sky having ever been regarded as the true symbol of eternity. This portion
+ of the figure he enriches by the attribution of whiteness, or unity and
+ radiance. And last, he shows us Death as the destroying revealer, walking
+ aloft through, the upper region, treading out this life-bubble of colours,
+ that the man may look beyond it and behold the true, the uncoloured, the
+ all-coloured.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But although the human imagination has no choice but to make use of the
+ forms already prepared for it, its operation is the same as that of the
+ divine inasmuch as it does put thought into form. And if it be to man what
+ creation is to God, we must expect to find it operative in every sphere of
+ human activity. Such is, indeed, the fact, and that to a far greater
+ extent than is commonly supposed.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The sovereignty of the imagination, for instance, over the region of
+ poetry will hardly, in the present day at least, be questioned; but not
+ every one is prepared to be told that the imagination has had nearly as
+ much to do with the making of our language as with &ldquo;Macbeth&rdquo; or the
+ &ldquo;Paradise Lost.&rdquo; The half of our language is the work of the imagination.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For how shall two agree together what name they shall give to a thought or
+ a feeling. How shall the one show the other that which is invisible? True,
+ he can unveil the mind&rsquo;s construction in the face&mdash;that living
+ eternally changeful symbol which God has hung in front of the unseen
+ spirit&mdash;but that without words reaches only to the expression of
+ present feeling. To attempt to employ it alone for the conveyance of the
+ intellectual or the historical would constantly mislead; while the
+ expression of feeling itself would be misinterpreted, especially with
+ regard to cause and object: the dumb show would be worse than dumb.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But let a man become aware of some new movement within him. Loneliness
+ comes with it, for he would share his mind with his friend, and he cannot;
+ he is shut up in speechlessness. Thus
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ He <i>may</i> live a man forbid
+ Weary seven nights nine times nine,
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ or the first moment of his perplexity may be that of his release. Gazing
+ about him in pain, he suddenly beholds the material form of his immaterial
+ condition. There stands his thought! God thought it before him, and put
+ its picture there ready for him when he wanted it. Or, to express the
+ thing more prosaically, the man cannot look around him long without
+ perceiving some form, aspect, or movement of nature, some relation between
+ its forms, or between such and himself which resembles the state or motion
+ within him. This he seizes as the symbol, as the garment or body of his
+ invisible thought, presents it to his friend, and his friend understands
+ him. Every word so employed with a new meaning is henceforth, in its new
+ character, born of the spirit and not of the flesh, born of the
+ imagination and not of the understanding, and is henceforth submitted to
+ new laws of growth and modification.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Thinkest thou,&rdquo; says Carlyle in &ldquo;Past and Present,&rdquo; &ldquo;there were no poets
+ till Dan Chaucer? No heart burning with a thought which it could not hold,
+ and had no word for; and needed to shape and coin a word for&mdash;what
+ thou callest a metaphor, trope, or the like? For every word we have there
+ was such a man and poet. The coldest word was once a glowing new metaphor
+ and bold questionable originality. Thy very ATTENTION, does it not mean an
+ <i>attentio</i>, a STRETCHING-TO? Fancy that act of the mind, which all
+ were conscious of, which none had yet named,&mdash;when this new poet
+ first felt bound and driven to name it. His questionable originality and
+ new glowing metaphor was found adoptable, intelligible, and remains our
+ name for it to this day.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All words, then, belonging to the inner world of the mind, are of the
+ imagination, are originally poetic words. The better, however, any such
+ word is fitted for the needs of humanity, the sooner it loses its poetic
+ aspect by commonness of use. It ceases to be heard as a symbol, and
+ appears only as a sign. Thus thousands of words which were originally
+ poetic words owing their existence to the imagination, lose their
+ vitality, and harden into mummies of prose. Not merely in literature does
+ poetry come first, and prose afterwards, but poetry is the source of all
+ the language that belongs to the inner world, whether it be of passion or
+ of metaphysics, of psychology or of aspiration. No poetry comes by the
+ elevation of prose; but the half of prose comes by the &ldquo;massing into the
+ common clay&rdquo; of thousands of winged words, whence, like the lovely shells
+ of by-gone ages, one is occasionally disinterred by some lover of speech,
+ and held up to the light to show the play of colour in its manifold
+ laminations.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For the world is&mdash;allow us the homely figure&mdash;the human being
+ turned inside out. All that moves in the mind is symbolized in Nature. Or,
+ to use another more philosophical, and certainly not less poetic figure,
+ the world is a sensuous analysis of humanity, and hence an inexhaustible
+ wardrobe for the clothing of human thought. Take any word expressive of
+ emotion&mdash;take the word <i>emotion</i> itself&mdash;and you will find
+ that its primary meaning is of the outer world. In the swaying of the
+ woods, in the unrest of the &ldquo;wavy plain,&rdquo; the imagination saw the picture
+ of a well-known condition of the human mind; and hence the word <i>emotion</i>.
+ [Footnote: This passage contains only a repetition of what is far better
+ said in the preceding extract from Carlyle, but it was written before we
+ had read (if reviewers may be allowed to confess such ignorance) the book
+ from which that extract is taken.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But while the imagination of man has thus the divine function of putting
+ thought into form, it has a duty altogether human, which is paramount to
+ that function&mdash;the duty, namely, which springs from his immediate
+ relation to the Father, that of following and finding out the divine
+ imagination in whose image it was made. To do this, the man must watch its
+ signs, its manifestations. He must contemplate what the Hebrew poets call
+ the works of His hands.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But to follow those is the province of the intellect, not of the
+ imagination.&rdquo;&mdash;We will leave out of the question at present that
+ poetic interpretation of the works of Nature with which the intellect has
+ almost nothing, and the imagination almost everything, to do. It is
+ unnecessary to insist that the higher being of a flower even is dependent
+ for its reception upon the human imagination; that science may pull the
+ snowdrop to shreds, but cannot find out the idea of suffering hope and
+ pale confident submission, for the sake of which that darling of the
+ spring looks out of heaven, namely, God&rsquo;s heart, upon us his wiser and
+ more sinful children; for if there be any truth in this region of things
+ acknowledged at all, it will be at the same time acknowledged that that
+ region belongs to the imagination. We confine ourselves to that
+ questioning of the works of God which is called the province of science.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Shall, then, the human intellect,&rdquo; we ask, &ldquo;come into readier contact
+ with the divine imagination than that human imagination?&rdquo; The work of the
+ Higher must be discovered by the search of the Lower in degree which is
+ yet similar in kind. Let us not be supposed to exclude the intellect from
+ a share in every highest office. Man is not divided when the
+ manifestations of his life are distinguished. The intellect &ldquo;is all in
+ every part.&rdquo; There were no imagination without intellect, however much it
+ may appear that intellect can exist without imagination. What we mean to
+ insist upon is, that in finding out the works of God, the Intellect must
+ labour, workman-like, under the direction of the architect, Imagination.
+ Herein, too, we proceed in the hope to show how much more than is commonly
+ supposed the imagination has to do with human endeavour; how large a share
+ it has in the work that is done under the sun.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But how can the imagination have anything to do with science? That
+ region, at least, is governed by fixed laws.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;True,&rdquo; we answer. &ldquo;But how much do we know of these laws? How much of
+ science already belongs to the region of the ascertained&mdash;in other
+ words, has been conquered by the intellect? We will not now dispute, your
+ vindication of the <i>ascertained</i> from the intrusion of the
+ imagination; but we do claim for it all the undiscovered, all the
+ unexplored.&rdquo; &ldquo;Ah, well! There it can do little harm. There let it run riot
+ if you will.&rdquo; &ldquo;No,&rdquo; we reply. &ldquo;Licence is not what we claim when we assert
+ the duty of the imagination to be that of following and finding out the
+ work that God maketh. Her part is to understand God ere she attempts to
+ utter man. Where is the room for being fanciful or riotous here? It is
+ only the ill-bred, that is, the uncultivated imagination that will amuse
+ itself where it ought to worship and work.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But the facts of Nature are to be discovered only by observation and
+ experiment.&rdquo; True. But how does the man of science come to think of his
+ experiments? Does observation reach to the non-present, the possible, the
+ yet unconceived? Even if it showed you the experiments which <i>ought</i>
+ to be made, will observation reveal to you the experiments which <i>might</i>
+ be made? And who can tell of which kind is the one that carries in its
+ bosom the secret of the law you seek? We yield you your facts. The laws we
+ claim for the prophetic imagination. &ldquo;He hath set the world <i>in</i>
+ man&rsquo;s heart,&rdquo; not in his understanding. And the heart must open the door
+ to the understanding. It is the far-seeing imagination which beholds what
+ might be a form of things, and says to the intellect: &ldquo;Try whether that
+ may not be the form of these things;&rdquo; which beholds or invents <i>a</i>
+ harmonious relation of parts and operations, and sends the intellect to
+ find out whether that be not <i>the</i> harmonious relation of them&mdash;that
+ is, the law of the phenomenon it contemplates. Nay, the poetic relations
+ themselves in the phenomenon may suggest to the imagination the law that
+ rules its scientific life. Yea, more than this: we dare to claim for the
+ true, childlike, humble imagination, such an inward oneness with the laws
+ of the universe that it possesses in itself an insight into the very
+ nature of things.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Lord Bacon tells us that a prudent question is the half of knowledge.
+ Whence comes this prudent question? we repeat. And we answer, From the
+ imagination. It is the imagination that suggests in what direction to make
+ the new inquiry&mdash;which, should it cast no immediate light on the
+ answer sought, can yet hardly fail to be a step towards final discovery.
+ Every experiment has its origin in hypothesis; without the scaffolding of
+ hypothesis, the house of science could never arise. And the construction
+ of any hypothesis whatever is the work of the imagination. The man who
+ cannot invent will never discover. The imagination often gets a glimpse of
+ the law itself long before it is or can be <i>ascertained</i> to be a law.
+ [Footnote: This paper was already written when, happening to mention the
+ present subject to a mathematical friend, a lecturer at one of the
+ universities, he gave us a corroborative instance. He had lately <i>guessed</i>
+ that a certain algebraic process could be shortened exceedingly if the
+ method which his imagination suggested should prove to be a true one&mdash;that
+ is, an algebraic law. He put it to the test of experiment&mdash;committed
+ the verification, that is, into the hands of his intellect&mdash;and found
+ the method true. It has since been accepted by the Royal Society.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Noteworthy illustration we have lately found in the record of the
+ experiences of an Edinburgh detective, an Irishman of the name of McLevy.
+ That the service of the imagination in the solution of the problems
+ peculiar to his calling is well known to him, we could adduce many proofs.
+ He recognizes its function in the construction of the theory which shall
+ unite this and that hint into an organic whole, and he expressly sets
+ forth the need of a theory before facts can be serviceable:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;I would wait for my &lsquo;idea&rsquo;.... I never did any good without mine....
+ Chance never smiled on me unless I poked her some way; so that my
+ &lsquo;notion,&rsquo; after all, has been in the getting of it my own work only
+ perfected by a higher hand.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;On leaving the shop I went direct to Prince&rsquo;s Street,&mdash;of course
+ with an idea in my mind; and somehow I have always been contented with one
+ idea when I could not get another; and the advantage of sticking by one
+ is, that the other don&rsquo;t jostle it and turn you about in a circle when you
+ should go in a straight line.&rdquo; (Footnote: Since quoting the above I have
+ learned that the book referred to is unworthy of confidence. But let it
+ stand as illustration where it cannot be proof.)]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The region belonging to the pure intellect is straitened: the imagination
+ labours to extend its territories, to give it room. She sweeps across the
+ borders, searching out new lands into which she may guide her plodding
+ brother. The imagination is the light which redeems from the darkness for
+ the eyes of the understanding. Novalis says, &ldquo;The imagination is the stuff
+ of the intellect&rdquo;&mdash;affords, that is, the material upon which the
+ intellect works. And Bacon, in his &ldquo;Advancement of Learning,&rdquo; fully
+ recognizes this its office, corresponding to the foresight of God in this,
+ that it beholds afar off. And he says: &ldquo;Imagination is much akin to
+ miracle-working faith.&rdquo; [Footnote: We are sorry we cannot verify this
+ quotation, for which we are indebted to Mr. Oldbuck the Antiquary, in the
+ novel of that ilk. There is, however, little room for doubt that it is
+ sufficiently correct.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the scientific region of her duty of which we speak, the Imagination
+ cannot have her perfect work; this belongs to another and higher sphere
+ than that of intellectual truth&mdash;that, namely, of full-globed
+ humanity, operating in which she gives birth to poetry&mdash;truth in
+ beauty. But her function in the complete sphere of our nature, will, at
+ the same time, influence her more limited operation in the sections that
+ belong to science. Coleridge says that no one but a poet will make any
+ further <i>great</i> discoveries in mathematics; and Bacon says that
+ &ldquo;wonder,&rdquo; that faculty of the mind especially attendant on the child-like
+ imagination, &ldquo;is the seed of knowledge.&rdquo; The influence of the poetic upon
+ the scientific imagination is, for instance, especially present in the
+ construction of an invisible whole from the hints afforded by a visible
+ part; where the needs of the part, its uselessness, its broken relations,
+ are the only guides to a multiplex harmony, completeness, and end, which
+ is the whole. From a little bone, worn with ages of death, older than the
+ man can think, his scientific imagination dashed with the poetic, calls up
+ the form, size, habits, periods, belonging to an animal never beheld by
+ human eyes, even to the mingling contrasts of scales and wings, of
+ feathers and hair. Through the combined lenses of science and imagination,
+ we look back into ancient times, so dreadful in their incompleteness, that
+ it may well have been the task of seraphic faith, as well as of cherubic
+ imagination, to behold in the wallowing monstrosities of the
+ terror-teeming earth, the prospective, quiet, age-long labour of God
+ preparing the world with all its humble, graceful service for his unborn
+ Man. The imagination of the poet, on the other hand, dashed with the
+ imagination of the man of science, revealed to Goethe the prophecy of the
+ flower in the leaf. No other than an artistic imagination, however,
+ fulfilled of science, could have attained to the discovery of the fact
+ that the leaf is the imperfect flower.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ When we turn to history, however, we find probably the greatest operative
+ sphere of the intellectuo-constructive imagination. To discover its laws;
+ the cycles in which events return, with the reasons of their return,
+ recognizing them notwithstanding metamorphosis; to perceive the vital
+ motions of this spiritual body of mankind; to learn from its facts the
+ rule of God; to construct from a succession of broken indications a whole
+ accordant with human nature; to approach a scheme of the forces at work,
+ the passions overwhelming or upheaving, the aspirations securely
+ upraising, the selfishnesses debasing and crumbling, with the vital
+ interworking of the whole; to illuminate all from the analogy with
+ individual life, and from the predominant phases of individual character
+ which are taken as the mind of the people&mdash;this is the province of
+ the imagination. Without her influence no process of recording events can
+ develop into a history. As truly might that be called the description of a
+ volcano which occupied itself with a delineation of the shapes assumed by
+ the smoke expelled from the mountain&rsquo;s burning bosom. What history becomes
+ under the full sway of the imagination may be seen in the &ldquo;History of the
+ French Revolution,&rdquo; by Thomas Carlyle, at once a true picture, a
+ philosophical revelation, a noble poem.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is a wonderful passage about <i>Time</i> in Shakespere&rsquo;s &ldquo;Rape of
+ Lucrece,&rdquo; which shows how he understood history. The passage is really
+ about history, and not about time; for time itself does nothing&mdash;not
+ even &ldquo;blot old books and alter their contents.&rdquo; It is the forces at work
+ in time that produce all the changes; and they are history. We quote for
+ the sake of one line chiefly, but the whole stanza is pertinent.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Time&rsquo;s glory is to calm contending kings,
+ To unmask falsehood, and bring truth to light,
+ To stamp the seal of time in aged things,
+ To wake the morn and sentinel the night,
+ <i>To wrong the wronger till he render right;</i>
+ To ruinate proud buildings with thy hours,
+ And smear with dust their glittering golden towers.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ <i>To wrong the wronger till he render right.</i> Here is a historical
+ cycle worthy of the imagination of Shakespere, yea, worthy of the creative
+ imagination of our God&mdash;the God who made the Shakespere with the
+ imagination, as well as evolved the history from the laws which that
+ imagination followed and found out.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In full instance we would refer our readers to Shakespere&rsquo;s historical
+ plays; and, as a side-illustration, to the fact that he repeatedly
+ represents his greatest characters, when at the point of death, as
+ relieving their overcharged minds by prophecy. Such prophecy is the result
+ of the light of imagination, cleared of all distorting dimness by the
+ vanishing of earthly hopes and desires, cast upon the facts of experience.
+ Such prophecy is the perfect working of the historical imagination.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the interpretation of individual life, the same principles hold; and
+ nowhere can the imagination be more healthily and rewardingly occupied
+ than in endeavouring to construct the life of an individual out of the
+ fragments which are all that can reach us of the history of even the
+ noblest of our race. How this will apply to the reading of the gospel
+ story we leave to the earnest thought of our readers.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We now pass to one more sphere in which the student imagination works in
+ glad freedom&mdash;the sphere which is understood to belong more
+ immediately to the poet.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We have already said that the forms of Nature (by which word <i>forms</i>
+ we mean any of those conditions of Nature which affect the senses of man)
+ are so many approximate representations of the mental conditions of
+ humanity. The outward, commonly called the material, is <i>informed</i>
+ by, or has form in virtue of, the inward or immaterial&mdash;in a word,
+ the thought. The forms of Nature are the representations of human thought
+ in virtue of their being the embodiment of God&rsquo;s thought. As such,
+ therefore, they can be read and used to any depth, shallow or profound.
+ Men of all ages and all developments have discovered in them the means of
+ expression; and the men of ages to come, before us in every path along
+ which we are now striving, must likewise find such means in those forms,
+ unfolding with their unfolding necessities. The man, then, who, in harmony
+ with nature, attempts the discovery of more of her meanings, is just
+ searching out the things of God. The deepest of these are far too simple
+ for us to understand as yet. But let our imagination interpretive reveal
+ to us one severed significance of one of her parts, and such is the
+ harmony of the whole, that all the realm of Nature is open to us
+ henceforth&mdash;not without labour&mdash;and in time. Upon the man who
+ can understand the human meaning of the snowdrop, of the primrose, or of
+ the daisy, the life of the earth blossoming into the cosmical flower of a
+ perfect moment will one day seize, possessing him with its prophetic hope,
+ arousing his conscience with the vision of the &ldquo;rest that remaineth,&rdquo; and
+ stirring up the aspiration to enter into that rest:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Thine is the tranquil hour, purpureal Eve!
+ But long as godlike wish, or hope divine,
+ Informs my spirit, ne&rsquo;er can I believe
+ That this magnificence is wholly thine!
+ &mdash;From worlds not quickened by the sun
+ A portion of the gift is won;
+ An intermingling of Heaven&rsquo;s pomp is spread
+ On ground which British shepherds tread!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Even the careless curve of a frozen cloud across the blue will calm some
+ troubled thoughts, may slay some selfish thoughts. And what shall be said
+ of such gorgeous shows as the scarlet poppies in the green corn, the
+ likest we have to those lilies of the field which spoke to the Saviour
+ himself of the care of God, and rejoiced His eyes with the glory of their
+ God-devised array? From such visions as these the imagination reaps the
+ best fruits of the earth, for the sake of which all the science involved
+ in its construction, is the inferior, yet willing and beautiful support.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ From what we have now advanced, will it not then appear that, on the
+ whole, the name given by our Norman ancestors is more fitting for the man
+ who moves in these regions than the name given by the Greeks? Is not the
+ <i>Poet</i>, the <i>Maker</i>, a less suitable name for him than the <i>Trouvère</i>,
+ the <i>Finder</i>? At least, must not the faculty that finds precede the
+ faculty that utters?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But is there nothing to be said of the function of the imagination from
+ the Greek side of the question? Does it possess no creative faculty? Has
+ it no originating power?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Certainly it would be a poor description of the Imagination which omitted
+ the one element especially present to the mind that invented the word <i>Poet</i>.&mdash;It
+ can present us with new thought-forms&mdash;new, that is, as revelations
+ of thought. It has created none of the material that goes to make these
+ forms. Nor does it work upon raw material. But it takes forms already
+ existing, and gathers them about a thought so much higher than they, that
+ it can group and subordinate and harmonize them into a whole which shall
+ represent, unveil that thought. [Footnote: Just so Spenser describes the
+ process of the embodiment of a human soul in his Platonic &ldquo;Hymn in Honour
+ of Beauty.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;She frames her house in which she will be placed
+ Fit for herself....
+ And the gross matter by a sovereign might
+ Tempers so trim....
+ For of the soul the body form doth take;
+ For soul is form, and doth the body make.&rdquo;]
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The nature of this process we will illustrate by an examination of the
+ well-known <i>Bugle Song</i> in Tennyson&rsquo;s &ldquo;Princess.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ First of all, there is the new music of the song, which does not even
+ remind one of the music of any other. The rhythm, rhyme, melody, harmony
+ are all an embodiment in sound, as distinguished from word, of what can be
+ so embodied&mdash;the <i>feeling</i> of the poem, which goes before, and
+ prepares the way for the following thought&mdash;tunes the heart into a
+ receptive harmony. Then comes the new arrangement of thought and figure
+ whereby the meaning contained is presented as it never was before. We give
+ a sort of paraphrastical synopsis of the poem, which, partly in virtue of
+ its disagreeableness, will enable the lovers of the song to return to it
+ with an increase of pleasure.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The glory of midsummer mid-day upon mountain, lake, and ruin. Give nature
+ a voice for her gladness. Blow, bugle.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Nature answers with dying echoes, sinking in the midst of her splendour
+ into a sad silence.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Not so with human nature. The echoes of the word of truth gather volume
+ and richness from every soul that re-echoes it to brother and sister
+ souls.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ With poets the <i>fashion</i> has been to contrast the stability and
+ rejuvenescence of nature with the evanescence and unreturning decay of
+ humanity:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Yet soon reviving plants and flowers, anew shall deck the plain;
+ The woods shall hear the voice of Spring, and flourish green again.
+ But man forsakes this earthly scene, ah! never to return:
+ Shall any following Spring revive the ashes of the urn?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But our poet vindicates the eternal in humanity:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;O Love, they die in yon rich sky,
+ They faint on hill or field or river:
+ Our echoes roll from soul to soul,
+ And grow for ever and for ever.
+ Blow, bugle, blow, set the wild echoes flying;
+ And answer, echoes, answer, Dying, dying, dying.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Is not this a new form to the thought&mdash;a form which makes us feel the
+ truth of it afresh? And every new embodiment of a known truth must be a
+ new and wider revelation. No man is capable of seeing for himself the
+ whole of any truth: he needs it echoed back to him from every soul in the
+ universe; and still its centre is hid in the Father of Lights. In so far,
+ then, as either form or thought is new, we may grant the use of the word
+ Creation, modified according to our previous definitions.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ This operation of the imagination in choosing, gathering, and vitally
+ combining the material of a new revelation, may be well illustrated from a
+ certain employment of the poetic faculty in which our greatest poets have
+ delighted. Perceiving truth half hidden and half revealed in the slow
+ speech and stammering tongue of men who have gone before them, they have
+ taken up the unfinished form and completed it; they have, as it were,
+ rescued the soul of meaning from its prison of uninformed crudity, where
+ it sat like the Prince in the &ldquo;Arabian Nights,&rdquo; half man, half marble;
+ they have set it free in its own form, in a shape, namely, which it could
+ &ldquo;through every part impress.&rdquo; Shakespere&rsquo;s keen eye suggested many such a
+ rescue from the tomb&mdash;of a tale drearily told&mdash;a tale which no
+ one now would read save for the glorified form in which he has re-embodied
+ its true contents. And from Tennyson we can produce one specimen small
+ enough for our use, which, a mere chip from the great marble re-embodying
+ the old legend of Arthur&rsquo;s death, may, like the hand of Achilles holding
+ his spear in the crowded picture,
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Stand for the whole to be imagined.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In the &ldquo;History of Prince Arthur,&rdquo; when Sir Bedivere returns after hiding
+ Excalibur the first time, the king asks him what he has seen, and he
+ answers&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Sir, I saw nothing but waves and wind.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The second time, to the same question, he answers&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Sir, I saw nothing but the water<a href="#linknote-1" name="linknoteref-1"
+ id="linknoteref-1">1</a> wap, and the waves wan.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ <a name="linknote-1" id="linknote-1">
+ <!-- Note --></a>
+ </p>
+ <p class="foot">
+ 1 (<a href="#linknoteref-1">return</a>)<br /> [ The word <i>wap</i> is
+ plain enough; the word <i>wan</i> we cannot satisfy ourselves about. Had
+ it been used with regard to the water, it might have been worth remarking
+ that <i>wan</i>, meaning dark, gloomy, turbid, is a common adjective to a
+ river in the old Scotch ballad. And it might be an adjective here; but
+ that is not likely, seeing it is conjoined with the verb <i>wap</i>. The
+ Anglo-Saxon <i>wanian</i>, to decrease, might be the root-word, perhaps,
+ (in the sense of <i>to ebb</i>,) if this water had been the sea and not a
+ lake. But possibly the meaning is, &ldquo;I heard the water <i>whoop</i> or <i>wail
+ aloud</i>&rdquo; (from <i>Wópan</i>); and &ldquo;the waves <i>whine</i> or <i>bewail</i>&rdquo;
+ (from <i>Wánian</i> to lament). But even then the two verbs would seem to
+ predicate of transposed subjects.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ This answer Tennyson has expanded into the well-known lines&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;I heard the ripple washing in the reeds,
+ And the wild water lapping on the crag;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ slightly varied, for the other occasion, into&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;I heard the water lapping on the crag,
+ And the long ripple washing in the reeds.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But, as to this matter of <i>creation</i>, is there, after all, I ask yet,
+ any genuine sense in which a man may be said to create his own
+ thought-forms? Allowing that a new combination of forms already existing
+ might be called creation, is the man, after all, the author of this new
+ combination? Did he, with his will and his knowledge, proceed wittingly,
+ consciously, to construct a form which should embody his thought? Or did
+ this form arise within him without will or effort of his&mdash;vivid if
+ not clear&mdash;certain if not outlined? Ruskin (and better authority we
+ do not know) will assert the latter, and we think he is right: though
+ perhaps he would insist more upon the absolute perfection of the vision
+ than we are quite prepared to do. Such embodiments are not the result of
+ the man&rsquo;s intention, or of the operation of his conscious nature. His
+ feeling is that they are given to him; that from the vast unknown, where
+ time and space are not, they suddenly appear in luminous writing upon the
+ wall of his consciousness. Can it be correct, then, to say that he created
+ them? Nothing less so, as it seems to us. But can we not say that they are
+ the creation of the unconscious portion of his nature? Yes, provided we
+ can understand that that which is the individual, the man, can know, and
+ not know that it knows, can create and yet be ignorant that virtue has
+ gone out of it. From that unknown region we grant they come, but not by
+ its own blind working. Nor, even were it so, could any amount of such
+ production, where no will was concerned, be dignified with the name of
+ creation. But God sits in that chamber of our being in which the candle of
+ our consciousness goes out in darkness, and sends forth from thence
+ wonderful gifts into the light of that understanding which is His candle.
+ Our hope lies in no most perfect mechanism even of the spirit, but in the
+ wisdom wherein we live and move and have our being. Thence we hope for
+ endless forms of beauty informed of truth. If the dark portion of our own
+ being were the origin of our imaginations, we might well fear the
+ apparition of such monsters as would be generated in the sickness of a
+ decay which could never feel&mdash;only declare&mdash;a slow return
+ towards primeval chaos. But the Maker is our Light.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One word more, ere we turn to consider the culture of this noblest
+ faculty, which we might well call the creative, did we not see a something
+ in God for which we would humbly keep our mighty word:&mdash;the fact that
+ there is always more in a work of art&mdash;which is the highest human
+ result of the embodying imagination&mdash;than the producer himself
+ perceived while he produced it, seems to us a strong reason for
+ attributing to it a larger origin than the man alone&mdash;for saying at
+ the last, that the inspiration of the Almighty shaped its ends.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We return now to the class which, from the first, we supposed hostile to
+ the imagination and its functions generally. Those belonging to it will
+ now say: &ldquo;It was to no imagination such as you have been setting forth
+ that we were opposed, but to those wild fancies and vague reveries in
+ which young people indulge, to the damage and loss of the real in the
+ world around them.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;And,&rdquo; we insist, &ldquo;you would rectify the matter by smothering the young
+ monster at once&mdash;because he has wings, and, young to their use,
+ flutters them about in a way discomposing to your nerves, and destructive
+ to those notions of propriety of which this creature&mdash;you stop not to
+ inquire whether angel or pterodactyle&mdash;has not yet learned even the
+ existence. Or, if it is only the creature&rsquo;s vagaries of which you
+ disapprove, why speak of them as <i>the</i> exercise of the imagination?
+ As well speak of religion as the mother of cruelty because religion has
+ given more occasion of cruelty, as of all dishonesty and devilry, than any
+ other object of human interest. Are we not to worship, because our
+ forefathers burned and stabbed for religion? It is more religion we want.
+ It is more imagination we need. Be assured that these are but the first
+ vital motions of that whose results, at least in the region of science,
+ you are more than willing to accept.&rdquo; That evil may spring from the
+ imagination, as from everything except the perfect love of God, cannot be
+ denied. But infinitely worse evils would be the result of its absence.
+ Selfishness, avarice, sensuality, cruelty, would flourish tenfold; and the
+ power of Satan would be well established ere some children had begun to
+ choose. Those who would quell the apparently lawless tossing of the
+ spirit, called the youthful imagination, would suppress all that is to
+ grow out of it. They fear the enthusiasm they never felt; and instead of
+ cherishing this divine thing, instead of giving it room and air for
+ healthful growth, they would crush and confine it&mdash;with but one
+ result of their victorious endeavours&mdash;imposthume, fever, and
+ corruption. And the disastrous consequences would soon appear in the
+ intellect likewise which they worship. Kill that whence spring the crude
+ fancies and wild day-dreams of the young, and you will never lead them
+ beyond dull facts&mdash;dull because their relations to each other, and
+ the one life that works in them all, must remain undiscovered. Whoever
+ would have his children avoid this arid region will do well to allow no
+ teacher to approach them&mdash;not even of mathematics&mdash;who has no
+ imagination.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But although good results may appear in a few from the indulgence of the
+ imagination, how will it be with the many?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We answer that the antidote to indulgence is development, not restraint,
+ and that such is the duty of the wise servant of Him who made the
+ imagination.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But will most girls, for instance, rise to those useful uses of the
+ imagination? Are they not more likely to exercise it in building castles
+ in the air to the neglect of houses on the earth? And as the world affords
+ such poor scope for the ideal, will not this habit breed vain desires and
+ vain regrets? Is it not better, therefore, to keep to that which is known,
+ and leave the rest?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+&ldquo;Is the world so poor?&rdquo; we ask in return. The less reason, then, to be
+satisfied with it; the more reason to rise above it, into the region of
+the true, of the eternal, of things as God thinks them. This outward
+world is but a passing vision of the persistent true. We shall not live
+in it always. We are dwellers in a divine universe where no desires are
+in vain, if only they be large enough. Not even in this world do all
+disappointments breed only vain regrets. [Footnote:
+ &ldquo;We will grieve not, rather find
+ Strength in what remains behind;
+ In the primal sympathy
+ Which, having been, must ever be;
+ In the soothing thoughts that spring
+ Out of human suffering;
+ In the faith that looks through death,
+ In years that bring the philosophic mind.&rdquo;]
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ And as to keeping to that which is known and leaving the rest&mdash;how
+ many affairs of this world are so well-defined, so capable of being
+ clearly understood, as not to leave large spaces of uncertainty, whose
+ very correlate faculty is the imagination? Indeed it must, in most things,
+ work after some fashion, filling the gaps after some possible plan, before
+ action can even begin. In very truth, a wise imagination, which is the
+ presence of the spirit of God, is the best guide that man or woman can
+ have; for it is not the things we see the most clearly that influence us
+ the most powerfully; undefined, yet vivid visions of something beyond,
+ something which eye has not seen nor ear heard, have far more influence
+ than any logical sequences whereby the same things may be demonstrated to
+ the intellect. It is the nature of the thing, not the clearness of its
+ outline, that determines its operation. We live by faith, and not by
+ sight. Put the question to our mathematicians&mdash;only be sure the
+ question reaches them&mdash;whether they would part with the well-defined
+ perfection of their diagrams, or the dim, strange, possibly
+ half-obliterated characters woven in the web of their being; their
+ science, in short, or their poetry; their certainties, or their hopes;
+ their consciousness of knowledge, or their vague sense of that which
+ cannot be known absolutely: will they hold by their craft or by their
+ inspirations, by their intellects or their imaginations? If they say the
+ former in each alternative, I shall yet doubt whether the objects of the
+ choice are actually before them, and with equal presentation.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ What can be known must be known severely; but is there, therefore, no
+ faculty for those infinite lands of uncertainty lying all about the sphere
+ hollowed out of the dark by the glimmering lamp of our knowledge? Are they
+ not the natural property of the imagination? there, <i>for</i> it, that it
+ may have room to grow? there, that the man may learn to imagine greatly
+ like God who made him, himself discovering their mysteries, in virtue of
+ his following and worshipping imagination?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All that has been said, then, tends to enforce the culture of the
+ imagination. But the strongest argument of all remains behind. For, if the
+ whole power of pedantry should rise against her, the imagination will yet
+ work; and if not for good, then for evil; if not for truth, then for
+ falsehood; if not for life, then for death; the evil alternative becoming
+ the more likely from the unnatural treatment she has experienced from
+ those who ought to have fostered her. The power that might have gone forth
+ in conceiving the noblest forms of action, in realizing the lives of the
+ true-hearted, the self-forgetting, will go forth in building airy castles
+ of vain ambition, of boundless riches, of unearned admiration. The
+ imagination that might be devising how to make home blessed or to help the
+ poor neighbour, will be absorbed in the invention of the new dress, or
+ worse, in devising the means of procuring it. For, if she be not occupied
+ with the beautiful, she will be occupied by the pleasant; that which goes
+ not out to worship, will remain at home to be sensual. Cultivate the mere
+ intellect as you may, it will never reduce the passions: the imagination,
+ seeking the ideal in everything, will elevate them to their true and noble
+ service. Seek not that your sons and your daughters should not see
+ visions, should not dream dreams; seek that they should see true visions,
+ that they should dream noble dreams. Such out-going of the imagination is
+ one with aspiration, and will do more to elevate above what is low and
+ vile than all possible inculcations of morality. Nor can religion herself
+ ever rise up into her own calm home, her crystal shrine, when one of her
+ wings, one of the twain with which she flies, is thus broken or paralyzed.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The universe is infinitely wide,
+ And conquering Reason, if self-glorified,
+ Can nowhere move uncrossed by some new wall
+ Or gulf of mystery, which thou alone,
+ Imaginative Faith! canst overleap,
+ In progress towards the fount of love.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The danger that lies in the repression of the imagination may be well
+ illustrated from the play of &ldquo;Macbeth.&rdquo; The imagination of the hero (in
+ him a powerful faculty), representing how the deed would appear to others,
+ and so representing its true nature to himself, was his great impediment
+ on the path to crime. Nor would he have succeeded in reaching it, had he
+ not gone to his wife for help&mdash;sought refuge from his troublesome
+ imagination with her. She, possessing far less of the faculty, and having
+ dealt more destructively with what she had, took his hand, and led him to
+ the deed. From her imagination, again, she for her part takes refuge in
+ unbelief and denial, declaring to herself and her husband that there is no
+ reality in its representations; that there is no reality in anything
+ beyond the present effect it produces on the mind upon which it operates;
+ that intellect and courage are equal to any, even an evil emergency; and
+ that no harm will come to those who can rule themselves according to their
+ own will. Still, however, finding her imagination, and yet more that of
+ her husband, troublesome, she effects a marvellous combination of
+ materialism and idealism, and asserts that things are not, cannot be, and
+ shall not be more or other than people choose to think them. She says,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;These deeds must not be thought
+ After these ways; so, it will make us mad.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;The sleeping and the dead
+ Are but as pictures.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But she had over-estimated the power of her will, and under-estimated that
+ of her imagination. Her will was the one thing in her that was bad,
+ without root or support in the universe, while her imagination was the
+ voice of God himself out of her own unknown being. The choice of no man or
+ woman can long determine how or what he or she shall think of things. Lady
+ Macbeth&rsquo;s imagination would not be repressed beyond its appointed period&mdash;a
+ time determined by laws of her being over which she had no control. It
+ arose, at length, as from the dead, overshadowing her with all the
+ blackness of her crime. The woman who drank strong drink that she might
+ murder, dared not sleep without a light by her bed; rose and walked in the
+ night, a sleepless spirit in a sleeping body, rubbing the spotted hand of
+ her dreams, which, often as water had cleared it of the deed, yet smelt so
+ in her sleeping nostrils, that all the perfumes of Arabia would not
+ sweeten it. Thus her long down-trodden imagination rose and took
+ vengeance, even through those senses which she had thought to subordinate
+ to her wicked will.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But all this is of the imagination itself, and fitter, therefore, for
+ illustration than for argument. Let us come to facts.&mdash;Dr. Pritchard,
+ lately executed for murder, had no lack of that invention, which is, as it
+ were, the intellect of the imagination&mdash;its lowest form. One of the
+ clergymen who, at his own request, attended the prisoner, went through
+ indescribable horrors in the vain endeavour to induce the man simply to
+ cease from lying: one invention after another followed the most earnest
+ asseverations of truth. The effect produced upon us by this clergyman&rsquo;s
+ report of his experience was a moral dismay, such as we had never felt
+ with regard to human being, and drew from us the exclamation, &ldquo;The man
+ could have had no imagination.&rdquo; The reply was, &ldquo;None whatever.&rdquo; Never
+ seeking true or high things, caring only for appearances, and, therefore,
+ for inventions, he had left his imagination all undeveloped, and when it
+ represented his own inner condition to him, had repressed it until it was
+ nearly destroyed, and what remained of it was set on fire of hell.
+ [Footnote: One of the best weekly papers in London, evidently as much in
+ ignorance of the man as of the facts of the case, spoke of Dr. MacLeod as
+ having been engaged in &ldquo;white-washing the murderer for heaven.&rdquo; So far is
+ this from a true representation, that Dr. MacLeod actually refused to pray
+ with him, telling him that if there was a hell to go to, he must go to
+ it.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Man is &ldquo;the roof and crown of things.&rdquo; He is the world, and more.
+ Therefore the chief scope of his imagination, next to God who made him,
+ will he the world in relation to his own life therein. Will he do better
+ or worse in it if this imagination, touched to fine issues and having free
+ scope, present him with noble pictures of relationship and duty, of
+ possible elevation of character and attainable justice of behaviour, of
+ friendship and of love; and, above all, of all these in that life to
+ understand which as a whole, must ever be the loftiest aspiration of this
+ noblest power of humanity? Will a woman lead a more or a less troubled
+ life that the sights and sounds of nature break through the crust of
+ gathering anxiety, and remind her of the peace of the lilies and the
+ well-being of the birds of the air? Or will life be less interesting to
+ her, that the lives of her neighbours, instead of passing like shadows
+ upon a wall, assume a consistent wholeness, forming themselves into
+ stories and phases of life? Will she not hereby love more and talk less?
+ Or will she be more unlikely to make a good match&mdash;&mdash;? But here
+ we arrest ourselves in bewilderment over the word <i>good</i>, and seek to
+ re-arrange our thoughts. If what mothers mean by a <i>good</i> match, is
+ the alliance of a man of position and means&mdash;or let them throw
+ intellect, manners, and personal advantages into the same scale&mdash;if
+ this be all, then we grant the daughter of cultivated imagination may not
+ be manageable, will probably be obstinate. &ldquo;We hope she will be obstinate
+ enough. [Footnote: Let women who feel the wrongs of their kind teach women
+ to be high-minded in their relation to men, and they will do more for the
+ social elevation of women, and the establishment of their rights, whatever
+ those rights may be, than by any amount of intellectual development or
+ assertion of equality. Nor, if they are other than mere partisans, will
+ they refuse the attempt because in its success men will, after all, be
+ equal, if not greater gainers, if only thereby they should be &ldquo;feelingly
+ persuaded&rdquo; what they are.] But will the girl be less likely to marry a <i>gentleman</i>,
+ in the grand old meaning of the sixteenth century? when it was no
+ irreverence to call our Lord
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The first true gentleman that ever breathed;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ or in that of the fourteenth?&mdash;when Chaucer teaching &ldquo;whom is worthy
+ to be called gentill,&rdquo; writes thus:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The first stocke was full of rightwisnes,
+ Trewe of his worde, sober, pitous and free,
+ Clene of his goste, and loved besinesse,
+ Against the vice of slouth in honeste;
+ And but his heire love vertue as did he,
+ He is not gentill though he rich seme,
+ All weare he miter, crowne, or diademe.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Will she be less likely to marry one who honours women, and for their
+ sakes, as well as his own, honours himself? Or to speak from what many
+ would regard as the mother&rsquo;s side of the question&mdash;will the girl be
+ more likely, because of such a culture of her imagination, to refuse the
+ wise, true-hearted, generous rich man, and fall in love with the talking,
+ verse-making fool, <i>because</i> he is poor, as if that were a virtue for
+ which he had striven? The highest imagination and the lowliest common
+ sense are always on one side.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For the end of imagination is <i>harmony</i>. A right imagination, being
+ the reflex of the creation, will fall in with the divine order of things
+ as the highest form of its own operation; &ldquo;will tune its instrument here
+ at the door&rdquo; to the divine harmonies within; will be content alone with
+ growth towards the divine idea, which includes all that is beautiful in
+ the imperfect imaginations of men; will know that every deviation from
+ that growth is downward; and will therefore send the man forth from its
+ loftiest representations to do the commonest duty of the most wearisome
+ calling in a hearty and hopeful spirit. This is the work of the right
+ imagination; and towards this work every imagination, in proportion to the
+ rightness that is in it, will tend. The reveries even of the wise man will
+ make him stronger for his work; his dreaming as well as his thinking will
+ render him sorry for past failure, and hopeful of future success.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To come now to the culture of the imagination. Its development is one of
+ the main ends of the divine education of life with all its efforts and
+ experiences. Therefore the first and essential means for its culture must
+ be an ordering of our life towards harmony with its ideal in the mind of
+ God. As he that is willing to do the will of the Father, shall know of the
+ doctrine, so, we doubt not, he that will do the will of THE POET, shall
+ behold the Beautiful. For all is God&rsquo;s; and the man who is growing into
+ harmony with His will, is growing into harmony with himself; all the
+ hidden glories of his being are coming out into the light of humble
+ consciousness; so that at the last he shall be a pure microcosm,
+ faithfully reflecting, after his manner, the mighty macrocosm. We believe,
+ therefore, that nothing will do so much for the intellect or the
+ imagination as <i>being good</i>&mdash;we do not mean after any formula or
+ any creed, but simply after the faith of Him who did the will of his
+ Father in heaven.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But if we speak of direct means for the culture of the imagination, the
+ whole is comprised in two words&mdash;food and exercise. If you want
+ strong arms, take animal food, and row. Feed your imagination with food
+ convenient for it, and exercise it, not in the contortions of the acrobat,
+ but in the movements of the gymnast. And first for the food.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Goethe has told us that the way to develop the aesthetic faculty is to
+ have constantly before our eyes, that is, in the room we most frequent,
+ some work of the best attainable art. This will teach us to refuse the
+ evil and choose the good. It will plant itself in our minds and become our
+ counsellor. Involuntarily, unconsciously, we shall compare with its
+ perfection everything that comes before us for judgment. Now, although no
+ better advice could be given, it involves one danger, that of narrowness.
+ And not easily, in dread of this danger, would one change his tutor, and
+ so procure variety of instruction. But in the culture of the imagination,
+ books, although not the only, are the readiest means of supplying the food
+ convenient for it, and a hundred books may be had where even one work of
+ art of the right sort is unattainable, seeing such must be of some size as
+ well as of thorough excellence. And in variety alone is safety from the
+ danger of the convenient food becoming the inconvenient model.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us suppose, then, that one who himself justly estimates the
+ imagination is anxious to develop its operation in his child. No doubt the
+ best beginning, especially if the child be young, is an acquaintance with
+ nature, in which let him be encouraged to observe vital phenomena, to put
+ things together, to speculate from what he sees to what he does not see.
+ But let earnest care be taken that upon no matter shall he go on talking
+ foolishly. Let him be as fanciful as he may, but let him not, even in his
+ fancy, sin against fancy&rsquo;s sense; for fancy has its laws as certainly as
+ the most ordinary business of life. When he is silly, let him know it and
+ be ashamed.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But where this association with nature is but occasionally possible,
+ recourse must be had to literature. In books, we not only have store of
+ all results of the imagination, but in them, as in her workshop, we may
+ behold her embodying before our very eyes, in music of speech, in wonder
+ of words, till her work, like a golden dish set with shining jewels, and
+ adorned by the hands of the cunning workmen, stands finished before us. In
+ this kind, then, the best must be set before the learner, that he may eat
+ and not be satisfied; for the finest products of the imagination are of
+ the best nourishment for the beginnings of that imagination. And the mind
+ of the teacher must mediate between the work of art and the mind of the
+ pupil, bringing them together in the vital contact of intelligence;
+ directing the observation to the lines of expression, the points of force;
+ and helping the mind to repose upon the whole, so that no separable
+ beauties shall lead to a neglect of the scope&mdash;that is the shape or
+ form complete. And ever he must seek to <i>show</i> excellence rather than
+ talk about it, giving the thing itself, that it may grow into the mind,
+ and not a eulogy of his own upon the thing; isolating the point worthy of
+ remark rather than making many remarks upon the point.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Especially must he endeavour to show the spiritual scaffolding or skeleton
+ of any work of art; those main ideas upon which the shape is constructed,
+ and around which the rest group as ministering dependencies.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But he will not, therefore, pass over that intellectual structure without
+ which the other could not be manifested. He will not forget the builder
+ while he admires the architect. While he dwells with delight on the
+ relation of the peculiar arch to the meaning of the whole cathedral, he
+ will not think it needless to explain the principles on which it is
+ constructed, or even how those principles are carried out in actual
+ process. Neither yet will the tracery of its windows, the foliage of its
+ crockets, or the fretting of its mouldings be forgotten. Every beauty will
+ have its word, only all beauties will be subordinated to the final beauty&mdash;that
+ is, the unity of the whole.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Thus doing, he shall perform the true office of friendship. He will
+ introduce his pupil into the society which he himself prizes most,
+ surrounding him with the genial presence of the high-minded, that this
+ good company may work its own kind in him who frequents it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But he will likewise seek to turn him aside from such company, whether of
+ books or of men, as might tend to lower his reverence, his choice, or his
+ standard. He will, therefore, discourage indiscriminate reading, and that
+ worse than waste which consists in skimming the books of a circulating
+ library. He knows that if a book is worth reading at all, it is worth
+ reading well; and that, if it is not worth reading, it is only to the most
+ accomplished reader that it <i>can</i> be worth skimming. He will seek to
+ make him discern, not merely between the good and the evil, but between
+ the good and the not so good. And this not for the sake of sharpening the
+ intellect, still less of generating that self-satisfaction which is the
+ closest attendant upon criticism, but for the sake of choosing the best
+ path and the best companions upon it. A spirit of criticism for the sake
+ of distinguishing only, or, far worse, for the sake of having one&rsquo;s
+ opinion ready upon demand, is not merely repulsive to all true thinkers,
+ but is, in itself, destructive of all thinking. A spirit of criticism for
+ the sake of the truth&mdash;a spirit that does not start from its chamber
+ at every noise, but waits till its presence is desired&mdash;cannot,
+ indeed, garnish the house, but can sweep it clean. Were there enough of
+ such wise criticism, there would be ten times the study of the best
+ writers of the past, and perhaps one-tenth of the admiration for the
+ ephemeral productions of the day. A gathered mountain of misplaced
+ worships would be swept into the sea by the study of one good book; and
+ while what was good in an inferior book would still be admired, the
+ relative position of the book would be altered and its influence lessened.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Speaking of true learning, Lord Bacon says: &ldquo;It taketh away vain
+ admiration of anything, <i>which is the root of all weakness</i>.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The right teacher would have his pupil easy to please, but ill to satisfy;
+ ready to enjoy, unready to embrace; keen to discover beauty, slow to say,
+ &ldquo;Here I will dwell.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But he will not confine his instructions to the region of art. He will
+ encourage him to read history with an eye eager for the dawning figure of
+ the past. He will especially show him that a great part of the Bible is
+ only thus to be understood; and that the constant and consistent way of
+ God, to be discovered in it, is in fact the key to all history.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the history of individuals, as well, he will try to show him how to put
+ sign and token together, constructing not indeed a whole, but a probable
+ suggestion of the whole.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And, again, while showing him the reflex of nature in the poets, he will
+ not be satisfied without sending him to Nature herself; urging him in
+ country rambles to keep open eyes for the sweet fashionings and blendings
+ of her operation around him; and in city walks to watch the &ldquo;human face
+ divine.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Once more: he will point out to him the essential difference between
+ reverie and thought; between dreaming and imagining. He will teach him not
+ to mistake fancy, either in himself or in others for imagination, and to
+ beware of hunting after resemblances that carry with them no
+ interpretation.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Such training is not solely fitted for the possible development of
+ artistic faculty. Few, in this world, will ever be able to utter what they
+ feel. Fewer still will be able to utter it in forms of their own. Nor is
+ it necessary that there should be many such. But it is necessary that all
+ should feel. It is necessary that all should understand and imagine the
+ good; that all should begin, at least, to follow and find out God.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;The glory of God is to conceal a thing, but the glory of the king is to
+ find it out,&rdquo; says Solomon. &ldquo;As if,&rdquo; remarks Bacon on the passage,
+ &ldquo;according to the innocent play of children, the Divine Majesty took
+ delight to hide his works, to the end to have them found out; and as if
+ kings could not obtain a greater honour than to be God&rsquo;s playfellows in
+ that game.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One more quotation from the book of Ecclesiastes, setting forth both the
+ necessity we are under to imagine, and the comfort that our imagining
+ cannot outstrip God&rsquo;s making.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;I have seen the travail which God hath given to the sons of men to be
+ exercised in it. He hath made everything beautiful in his time; also he
+ hath set the world in their heart, so that no man can find out the work
+ that God maketh from the beginning to the end.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Thus to be playfellows with God in this game, the little ones may gather
+ their daisies and follow their painted moths; the child of the kingdom may
+ pore upon the lilies of the field, and gather faith as the birds of the
+ air their food from the leafless hawthorn, ruddy with the stores God has
+ laid up for them; and the man of science
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;May sit and rightly spell
+ Of every star that heaven doth shew,
+ And every herb that sips the dew;
+ Till old experience do attain
+ To something like prophetic strain.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0003" id="link2H_4_0003">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ A SKETCH OF INDIVIDUAL DEVELOPMENT.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1880.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;I wish I had thought to watch when God was making me!&rdquo; said a child once
+ to his mother. &ldquo;Only,&rdquo; he added, &ldquo;I was not made till I was finished, so I
+ couldn&rsquo;t.&rdquo; We cannot recall whence we came, nor tell how we began to be.
+ We know approximately how far back we can remember, but have no idea how
+ far back we may not have forgotten. Certainly we knew once much that we
+ have forgotten now. My own earliest definable memory is of a great funeral
+ of one of the Dukes of Gordon, when I was between two and three years of
+ age. Surely my first knowledge was not of death. I must have known much
+ and many things before, although that seems my earliest memory. As in what
+ we foolishly call maturity, so in the dawn of consciousness, both before
+ and after it has begun to be buttressed with <i>self</i>-consciousness,
+ each succeeding consciousness dims&mdash;often obliterates&mdash;that
+ which went before, and with regard to our past as well as our future,
+ imagination and faith must step into the place vacated of knowledge. We
+ are aware, and we know that we are aware, but when or how we began to be
+ aware, is wrapt in a mist that deepens on the one side into deepest night,
+ and on the other brightens into the full assurance of existence. Looking
+ back we can but dream, looking forward we lose ourselves in speculation;
+ but we may both speculate and dream, for all speculation is not false, and
+ all dreaming is not of the unreal. What may we fairly imagine as to the
+ inward condition of the child before the first moment of which his memory
+ affords him testimony?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It is one, I venture to say, of absolute, though, no doubt, largely
+ negative faith. Neither memory of pain that is past, nor apprehension of
+ pain to come, once arises to give him the smallest concern. In some way,
+ doubtless very vague, for his being itself is a border-land of awful
+ mystery, he is aware of being surrounded, enfolded with an atmosphere of
+ love; the sky over him is his mother&rsquo;s face; the earth that nourishes him
+ is his mother&rsquo;s bosom. The source, the sustentation, the defence of his
+ being, the endless mediation betwixt his needs and the things that supply
+ them, are all one. There is no type so near the highest idea of relation
+ to a God, as that of the child to his mother. Her face is God, her bosom
+ Nature, her arms are Providence&mdash;all love&mdash;one love&mdash;to him
+ an undivided bliss.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The region beyond him he regards from this vantage-ground of unquestioned
+ security. There things may come and go, rise and vanish&mdash;he neither
+ desires nor bemoans them. Change may grow swift, its swiftness grow
+ fierce, and pass into storm: to him storm is calm; his haven is secure;
+ his rest cannot be broken: he is accountable for nothing, knows no
+ responsibility. Conscience is not yet awake, and there is no conflict. His
+ waking is full of sleep, yet his very being is enough for him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But all the time his mother lives in the hope of his growth. In the
+ present babe, her heart broods over the coming boy&mdash;the unknown
+ marvel closed in the visible germ. Let mothers lament as they will over
+ the change from childhood to maturity, which of them would not grow weary
+ of nursing for ever a child in whom no live law of growth kept unfolding
+ an infinite change! The child knows nothing of growth&mdash;desires none&mdash;but
+ grows. Within him is the force of a power he can no more resist than the
+ peach can refuse to swell and grow ruddy in the sun. By slow,
+ inappreciable, indivisible accretion and outfolding, he is lifted,
+ floated, drifted on towards the face of the awful mirror in which he must
+ encounter his first foe&mdash;must front himself.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ By degrees he has learned that the world is around, and not within him&mdash;that
+ he is apart, and that is apart; from consciousness he passes to
+ self-consciousness. This is a second birth, for now a higher life begins.
+ When a man not only lives, but knows that he lives, then first the
+ possibility of a real life commences. By <i>real life</i>, I mean life
+ which has a share in its own existence.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For now, towards the world around him&mdash;the world that is not his
+ mother, and, actively at least, neither loves him nor ministers to him,
+ reveal themselves certain relations, initiated by fancies, desires,
+ preferences, that arise within himself&mdash;reasonable or not matters
+ little:&mdash;founded in reason, they can in no case be <i>devoid</i> of
+ reason. Every object concerned in these relations presents itself to the
+ man as lovely, desirable, good, or ugly, hateful, bad; and through these
+ relations, obscure and imperfect, and to a being weighted with a strong
+ faculty for mistake, begins to be revealed the existence and force of
+ Being other and higher than his own, recognized as <i>Will</i>, and first
+ of all in its opposition to his desires. Thereupon begins the strife
+ without which there never was, and, I presume, never can be, any growth,
+ any progress; and the first result is what I may call the third birth of
+ the human being.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The first opposing glance of the mother wakes in the child not only
+ answering opposition, which is as the rudimentary sac of his own coming
+ will, but a new something, to which for long he needs no name, so natural
+ does it seem, so entirely a portion of his being, even when most he
+ refuses to listen to and obey it. This new something&mdash;we call it <i>Conscience</i>&mdash;sides
+ with his mother, and causes its presence and judgment to be felt not only
+ before but after the event, so that he soon comes to know that it is well
+ with him or ill with him as he obeys or disobeys it. And now he not only
+ knows, not only knows that he knows, but knows he knows that he knows&mdash;knows
+ that he is self-conscious&mdash;that he has a conscience. With the first
+ sense of resistance to it, the power above him has drawn nearer, and the
+ deepest within him has declared itself on the side of the highest without
+ him. At one and the same moment, the heaven of his childhood has, as it
+ were, receded and come nigher. He has run from under it, but it claims
+ him. It is farther, yet closer&mdash;immeasurably closer: he feels on his
+ being the grasp and hold of his mother&rsquo;s. Through the higher individuality
+ he becomes aware of his own. Through the assertion of his mother&rsquo;s will,
+ his own begins to awake. He becomes conscious of himself as capable of
+ action&mdash;of doing or of not doing; his responsibility has begun.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ He slips from her lap; he travels from chair to chair; he puts his circle
+ round the room; he dares to cross the threshold; he braves the precipice
+ of the stair; he takes the greatest step that, according to George
+ Herbert, is possible to man&mdash;that out of doors, changing the house
+ for the universe; he runs from flower to flower in the garden; crosses the
+ road; wanders, is lost, is found again. His powers expand, his activity
+ increases; he goes to school, and meets other boys like himself; new
+ objects of strife are discovered, new elements of strife developed; new
+ desires are born, fresh impulses urge. The old heaven, the face and will
+ of his mother, recede farther and farther; a world of men, which he
+ foolishly thinks a nobler as it is a larger world, draws him, claims him.
+ More or less he yields. The example and influence of such as seem to him
+ more than his mother like himself, grow strong upon him. His conscience
+ speaks louder. And here, even at this early point in his history, what I
+ might call his fourth birth <i>may</i> begin to take place: I mean the
+ birth in him of the Will&mdash;the real Will&mdash;not the pseudo-will,
+ which is the mere Desire, swayed of impulse, selfishness, or one of many a
+ miserable motive. When the man, listening to his conscience, wills and
+ does the right, irrespective of inclination as of consequence, then is the
+ man free, the universe open before him. He is born from above. To him
+ conscience needs never speak aloud, needs never speak twice; to him her
+ voice never grows less powerful, for he never neglects what she commands.
+ And when he becomes aware that he can will his will, that God has given
+ him a share in essential life, in the causation of his own being, then is
+ he a man indeed. I say, even here this birth may begin; but with most it
+ takes years not a few to complete it. For, the power of the mother having
+ waned, the power of the neighbour is waxing. If the boy be of common clay,
+ that is, of clay willing to accept dishonour, this power of the neighbour
+ over him will increase and increase, till individuality shall have
+ vanished from him, and what his friends, what society, what the trade or
+ the profession say, will be to him the rule of life. With such, however, I
+ have to do no more than with the deaf dead, who sleep too deep for words
+ to reach them.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ My typical child of man is not of such. He is capable not of being
+ influenced merely, but of influencing&mdash;and first of all of
+ influencing himself; of taking a share in his own making; of determining
+ actively, not by mere passivity, what he shall be and become; for he never
+ ceases to pay at least a little heed, however poor and intermittent, to
+ the voice of his conscience, and to-day he pays more heed than he did
+ yesterday.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Long ere now the joy of space, of room, has laid hold upon him&mdash;the
+ more powerfully if he inhabit a wild and broken region. The human animal
+ delights in motion and change, motions of his members even violent, and
+ swiftest changes of place. It is as if he would lay hold of the infinite
+ by ceaseless abandonment and choice of a never-abiding stand-point, as if
+ he would lay hold of strength by the consciousness of the strength he has.
+ He is full of unrest. He must know what lies on the farther shore of every
+ river, see how the world looks from every hill: <i>What is behind? What is
+ beyond?</i> is his constant cry. To learn, to gather into himself, is his
+ longing. Nor do many years pass thus, it may be not many months, ere the
+ world begins to come alive around him. He begins to feel that the stars
+ are strange, that the moon is sad, that the sunrise is mighty. He begins
+ to see in them all the something men call beauty. He will lie on the sunny
+ bank and gaze into the blue heaven till his soul seems to float abroad and
+ mingle with the infinite made visible, with the boundless condensed into
+ colour and shape. The rush of the water through the still twilight, under
+ the faint gleam of the exhausted west, makes in his ears a melody he is
+ almost aware he cannot understand. Dissatisfied with his emotions he
+ desires a deeper waking, longs for a greater beauty, is troubled with the
+ stirring in his bosom of an unknown ideal of Nature. Nor is it an ideal of
+ Nature alone that is forming within him. A far more precious thing, a
+ human ideal namely, is in his soul, gathering to itself shape and
+ consistency. The wind that at night fills him with sadness&mdash;he cannot
+ tell why, in the daytime haunts him like a wild consciousness of strength
+ which has neither difficulty nor danger enough to spend itself upon. He
+ would be a champion of the weak, a friend to the great; for both he would
+ fight&mdash;a merciless foe to every oppressor of his kind. He would be
+ rich that he might help, strong that he might rescue, brave&mdash;that he
+ counts himself already, for he has not proved his own weakness. In the
+ first encounter he fails, and the bitter cup of shame and confusion of
+ face, wholesome and saving, is handed him from the well of life. He is not
+ yet capable of understanding that one such as he, filled with the glory
+ and not the duty of victory, could not but fail, and therefore ought to
+ fail; but his dismay and chagrin are soothed by the forgetfulness the days
+ and nights bring, gently wiping out the sins that are past, that the young
+ life may have a fresh chance, as we say, and begin again unburdened by the
+ weight of a too much present failure.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And now, probably at school, or in the first months of his college-life, a
+ new phase of experience begins. He has wandered over the border of what is
+ commonly called science, and the marvel of facts multitudinous, strung
+ upon the golden threads of law, has laid hold upon him. His intellect is
+ seized and possessed by a new spirit. For a time knowledge is pride; the
+ mere consciousness of knowing is the reward of its labour; the ever
+ recurring, ever passing contact of mind with a new fact is a joy full of
+ excitement, and promises an endless delight. But ever the thing that is
+ known sinks into insignificance, save as a step of the endless stair on
+ which he is climbing&mdash;whither he knows not; the unknown draws him;
+ the new fact touches his mind, flames up in the contact, and drops dark, a
+ mere fact, on the heap below. Even the grandeur of law as law, so far from
+ adding fresh consciousness to his life, causes it no small suffering and
+ loss. For at the entrance of Science, nobly and gracefully as she bears
+ herself, young Poetry shrinks back startled, dismayed. Poetry is true as
+ Science, and Science is holy as Poetry; but young Poetry is timid and
+ Science is fearless, and bears with her a colder atmosphere than the other
+ has yet learned to brave. It is not that Madam Science shows any
+ antagonism to Lady Poetry; but the atmosphere and plane on which alone
+ they can meet as friends who understand each other, is the mind and heart
+ of the sage, not of the boy. The youth gazes on the face of Science, cold,
+ clear, beautiful; then, turning, looks for his friend&mdash;but, alas!
+ Poetry has fled. With a great pang at the heart he rushes abroad to find
+ her, but descries only the rainbow glimmer of her skirt on the far
+ horizon. At night, in his dreams, she returns, but never for a season may
+ he look on her face of loveliness. What, alas! have evaporation, caloric,
+ atmosphere, refraction, the prism, and the second planet of our system, to
+ do with &ldquo;sad Hesper o&rsquo;er the buried sun?&rdquo; From quantitative analysis how
+ shall he turn again to &ldquo;the rime of the ancient mariner,&rdquo; and &ldquo;the moving
+ moon&rdquo; that &ldquo;went up the sky, and nowhere did abide&rdquo;? From his window he
+ gazes across the sands to the mightily troubled ocean: &ldquo;What is the storm
+ to me any more!&rdquo; he cries; &ldquo;it is but the clashing of countless
+ water-drops!&rdquo; He finds relief in the discovery that, the moment you place
+ man in the midst of it, the clashing of water-drops becomes a storm,
+ terrible to heart and brain: human thought and feeling, hope, fear, love,
+ sacrifice, make the motions of nature alive with mystery and the shadows
+ of destiny. The relief, however, is but partial, and may be but temporary;
+ for what if this mingling of man and Nature in the mind of man be but the
+ casting of a coloured shadow over her cold indifference? What if she means
+ nothing&mdash;never was meant to mean anything! What if in truth &ldquo;we
+ receive but what we give, and in our life alone doth Nature live!&rdquo; What if
+ the language of metaphysics as well as of poetry be drawn, not from Nature
+ at all, but from human fancy concerning her!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ At length, from the unknown, whence himself he came, appears an angel to
+ deliver him from this horror&mdash;this stony look&mdash;ah, God! of
+ soulless law. The woman is on her way whose part it is to meet him with a
+ life other than his own, at once the complement of his, and the visible
+ presentment of that in it which is beyond his own understanding. The
+ enchantment of what we specially call <i>love</i> is upon him&mdash;a
+ deceiving glamour, say some, showing what is not, an opening of the eyes,
+ say others, revealing that of which a man had not been aware: men will
+ still be divided into those who believe that the horses of fire and the
+ chariots of fire are ever present at their need of them, and those who
+ class the prophet and the drunkard in the same category as the fools of
+ their own fancies. But what this love is, he who thinks he knows least
+ understands. Let foolish maidens and vulgar youths simper and jest over it
+ as they please, it is one of the most potent mysteries of the living God.
+ The man who can love a woman and remain a lover of his wretched self, is
+ fit only to be cast out with the broken potsherds of the city, as one in
+ whom the very salt has lost its savour. With this love in his heart, a man
+ puts on at least the vision robes of the seer, if not the singing robes of
+ the poet. Be he the paltriest human animal that ever breathed, for the
+ time, and in his degree, he rises above himself. His nature so far
+ clarifies itself, that here and there a truth of the great world will
+ penetrate, sorely dimmed, through the fog-laden, self-shadowed atmosphere
+ of his microcosm. For the time, I repeat, he is not a lover only, but
+ something of a friend, with a reflex touch of his own far-off childhood.
+ To the youth of my history, in the light of his love&mdash;a light that
+ passes outward from the eyes of the lover&mdash;the world grows alive
+ again, yea radiant as an infinite face. He sees the flowers as he saw them
+ in boyhood, recovering from an illness of all the winter, only they have a
+ yet deeper glow, a yet fresher delight, a yet more unspeakable soul. He
+ becomes pitiful over them, and not willingly breaks their stems, to hurt
+ the life he more than half believes they share with him. He cannot think
+ anything created only for him, any more than only for itself. Nature is no
+ longer a mere contention of forces, whose heaven and whose hell in one is
+ the dull peace of an equilibrium; but a struggle, through splendour of
+ colour, graciousness of form, and evasive vitality of motion and sound,
+ after an utterance hard to find, and never found but marred by the
+ imperfection of the small and weak that would embody and set forth the
+ great and mighty. The waving of the tree-tops is the billowy movement of a
+ hidden delight. The sun lifts his head with intent to be glorious. No day
+ lasts too long, no night comes too soon: the twilight is woven of shadowy
+ arms that draw the loving to the bosom of the Night. In the woman, the
+ infinite after which he thirsts is given him for his own.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Man&rsquo;s occupation with himself turns his eyes from the great life beyond
+ his threshold: when love awakes, he forgets himself for a time, and many a
+ glimpse of strange truth finds its way through his windows, blocked no
+ longer by the shadow of himself. He may now catch even a glimpse of the
+ possibilities of his own being&mdash;may dimly perceive for a moment the
+ image after which he was made. But alas! too soon, self, radiant of
+ darkness, awakes; every window becomes opaque with shadow, and the man is
+ again a prisoner. For it is not the highest word alone that the cares of
+ this world, the deceitfulness of riches, and the lust of other things
+ entering in, choke, and render unfruitful. Waking from the divine vision,
+ if that can be called waking which is indeed dying into the common day,
+ the common man regards it straightway as a foolish dream; the wise man
+ believes in it still, holds fast by the memory of the vanished glory, and
+ looks to have it one day again a present portion of the light of his life.
+ He knows that, because of the imperfection and dulness and weakness of his
+ nature, after every vision follow the inclosing clouds, with the threat of
+ an ever during dark; knows that, even if the vision could tarry, it were
+ not well, for the sake of that which must yet be done with him, yet be
+ made of him, that it should tarry. But the youth whose history I am
+ following is not like the former, nor as yet like the latter.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ From whatever cause, then, whether of fault, of natural law, or of
+ supernal will, the flush that seemed to promise the dawn of an eternal
+ day, shrinks and fades, though, with him, like the lagging skirt of the
+ sunset in the northern west, it does not vanish, but travels on, a
+ withered pilgrim, all the night, at the long last to rise the aureole of
+ the eternal Aurora. And now new paths entice him&mdash;or old paths
+ opening fresh horizons. With stronger thews and keener nerves he turns
+ again to the visible around him. The changelessness amid change, the law
+ amid seeming disorder, the unity amid units, draws him again. He begins to
+ descry the indwelling poetry of science. The untiring forces at work in
+ measurable yet inconceivable spaces of time and room, fill his soul with
+ an awe that threatens to uncreate him with a sense of littleness; while,
+ on the other side, the grandeur of their operations fills him with such an
+ informing glory, the mere presence of the mighty facts, that he no more
+ thinks of himself, but in humility is great, and knows it not. Rapt
+ spectator, seer entranced under the magic wand of Science, he beholds the
+ billions of billions of miles of incandescent vapour begin a slow, scarce
+ perceptible revolution, gradually grow swift, and gather an awful speed.
+ He sees the vapour, as it whirls, condensing through slow eternities to a
+ plastic fluidity. He notes ring after ring part from the circumference of
+ the mass, break, rush together into a globe, and the glowing ball keep on
+ through space with the speed of its parent bulk. It cools and still cools
+ and condenses, but still fiercely glows. Presently&mdash;after tens of
+ thousands of years is the creative <i>presently</i>&mdash;arises fierce
+ contention betwixt the glowing heart and its accompanying atmosphere. The
+ latter invades the former with antagonistic element. He listens in his
+ soul, and hears the rush of ever descending torrent rains, with the
+ continuous roaring shock of their evanishment in vapour&mdash;to turn
+ again to water in the higher regions, and again rush to the attack upon
+ the citadel of fire. He beholds the slow victory of the water at last, and
+ the great globe, now glooming in a cloak of darkness, covered with a
+ wildly boiling sea&mdash;not boiling by figure of speech, under contending
+ forces of wind and tide, but boiling high as the hills to come, with
+ veritable heat. He sees the rise of the wrinkles we call hills and
+ mountains, and from their sides the avalanches of water to the lower
+ levels. He sees race after race of living things appear, as the earth
+ becomes, for each new and higher kind, a passing home; and he watches the
+ succession of terrible convulsions dividing kind from kind, until at
+ length the kind he calls his own arrives. Endless are the visions of
+ material grandeur unfathomable, awaked in his soul by the bare facts of
+ external existence.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But soon comes a change. So far as he can see or learn, all the motion,
+ all the seeming dance, is but a rush for death, a panic flight into the
+ moveless silence. The summer wind, the tropic tornado, the softest tide,
+ the fiercest storm, are alike the tumultuous conflict of forces, rushing,
+ and fighting as they rush, into the arms of eternal negation. On and on
+ they hurry&mdash;down and down, to a cold stirless solidity, where wind
+ blows not, water flows not, where the seas are not merely tideless and
+ beat no shores, but frozen cleave with frozen roots to their gulfy basin.
+ All things are on the steep-sloping path to final evanishment, uncreation,
+ non-existence. He is filled with horror&mdash;not so much of the dreary
+ end, as at the weary hopelessness of the path thitherward. Then a dim
+ light breaks upon him, and with it a faint hope revives, for he seems to
+ see in all the forms of life, innumerably varied, a spirit rushing upward
+ from death&mdash;a something in escape from the terror of the downward
+ cataract, of the rest that knows not peace. &ldquo;Is it not,&rdquo; he asks, &ldquo;the
+ soaring of the silver dove of life from its potsherd-bed&mdash;the
+ heavenward flight of some higher and incorruptible thing? Is not vitality,
+ revealed in growth, itself an unending resurrection?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The vision also of the oneness of the universe, ever reappearing through
+ the vapours of question, helps to keep hope alive in him. To find, for
+ instance, the law of the relation of the arrangements of the leaves on
+ differing plants, correspond to the law of the relative distances of the
+ planets in approach to their central sun, wakes in him that hope of a
+ central Will, which alone can justify one ecstatic throb at any seeming
+ loveliness of the universe. For without the hope of such a centre, delight
+ is unreason&mdash;a mockery not such as the skeleton at the Egyptian
+ feast, but such rather as a crowned corpse at a feast of skeletons. Life
+ without the higher glory of the unspeakable, the atmosphere of a God, is
+ not life, is not worth living. He would rather cease to be, than walk the
+ dull level of the commonplace&mdash;than live the unideal of men in whose
+ company he can take no pleasure&mdash;men who are as of a lower race, whom
+ he fain would lift, who will not rise, but for whom as for himself he
+ would cherish the hope they do their best to kill. Those who seem to him
+ great, recognize the unseen&mdash;believe the roots of science to be
+ therein hid&mdash;regard the bringing forth into sight of the things that
+ are invisible as the end of all Art and every art&mdash;judge the true
+ leader of men to be him who leads them closer to the essential facts of
+ their being. Alas for his love and his hope, alas for himself, if the
+ visible should exist for its own sake only!&mdash;if the face of a flower
+ means nothing&mdash;appeals to no region beyond the scope of the science
+ that would unveil its growth. He cannot believe that its structure exists
+ for the sake of its laws; that would be to build for the sake of its
+ joints a scaffold where no house was to stand. Those who put their faith
+ in Science are trying to live in the scaffold of the house invisible.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ He finds harbour and comfort at times in the written poetry of his
+ fellows. He delights in analyzing and grasping the thought that informs
+ the utterance. For a moment, the fine figure, the delicate phrase, make
+ him jubilant and strong; but the jubilation and the strength soon pass,
+ for it is not any of the <i>forms</i>, even of the thought-forms of truth
+ that can give rest to his soul.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ History attracts him little, for he is not able to discover by its records
+ the operation of principles yielding hope for his race. Such there may be,
+ but he does not find them. What hope for the rising wave that knows in its
+ rise only its doom to sink, and at length be dashed on the low shore of
+ annihilation?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the time would fail me to follow the doubling of the soul coursed by
+ the hounds of Death, or to set down the forms innumerable in which the
+ golden Haemony springs in its path,
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ Of sovran use
+ &lsquo;Gainst all enchantments, mildew blast, or damp.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ And now the shadows are beginning to lengthen towards the night, which,
+ whether there be a following morn or no, is the night, and spreads out the
+ wings of darkness. And still as it approaches the more aware grows the man
+ of a want that differs from any feeling I have already sought to describe&mdash;a
+ sense of insecurity, in no wise the same as the doubt of life beyond the
+ grave&mdash;a need more profound even than that which cries for a living
+ Nature. And now he plainly knows, that, all his life, like a conscious
+ duty unfulfilled, this sense has haunted his path, ever and anon
+ descending and clinging, a cold mist, about his heart. What if this lack
+ was indeed the root of every other anxiety! Now freshly revived, this
+ sense of not having, of something, he knows not what, for lack of which
+ his being is in pain at its own incompleteness, never leaves him more. And
+ with it the terror has returned and grows, lest there should be no Unseen
+ Power, as his fathers believed, and his mother taught him, filling all
+ things and <i>meaning</i> all things,&mdash;no Power with whom, in his
+ last extremity, awaits him a final refuge. With the quickening doubt falls
+ a tenfold blight on the world of poetry, both that in Nature and that in
+ books. Far worse than that early chill which the assertions of science
+ concerning what it knows, cast upon his inexperienced soul, is now the
+ shivering death which its pretended denials concerning what it knows not,
+ send through all his vital frame. The soul departs from the face of
+ beauty, when the eye begins to doubt if there be any soul behind it; and
+ now the man feels like one I knew, affected with a strange disease, who
+ saw in the living face always the face of a corpse. What can the world be
+ to him who lives for thought, if there be no supreme and perfect Thought,&mdash;none
+ but such poor struggles after thought as he finds in himself? Take the
+ eternal thought from the heart of things, no longer can any beauty be
+ real, no more can shape, motion, aspect of nature have significance in
+ itself, or sympathy with human soul. At best and most the beauty he
+ thought he saw was but the projected perfection of his own being, and from
+ himself as the crown and summit of things, the soul of the man shrinks
+ with horror: it is the more imperfect being who knows the least his
+ incompleteness, and for whom, seeing so little beyond himself, it is
+ easiest to imagine himself the heart and apex of things, and rejoice in
+ the fancy. The killing power of a godless science returns upon him with
+ tenfold force. The ocean-tempest is once more a mere clashing of
+ innumerable water-drops; the green and amber sadness of the evening sky is
+ a mockery of sorrow; his own soul and its sadness is a mockery of himself.
+ There is nothing in the sadness, nothing in the mockery. To tell him as
+ comfort, that in his own thought lives the meaning if nowhere else, is
+ mockery worst of all; for if there be no truth in them, if these things be
+ no embodiment, to make them serve as such is to put a candle in a
+ death&rsquo;s-head to light the dying through the place of tombs. To his former
+ foolish fancy a primrose might preach a childlike trust; the untoiling
+ lilies might from their field cast seeds of a higher growth into his
+ troubled heart; now they are no better than the colour the painter leaves
+ behind him on the doorpost of his workshop, when, the day&rsquo;s labour over,
+ he wipes his brush on it ere he depart for the night. The look in the eyes
+ of his dog, happy in that he is short-lived, is one of infinite sadness.
+ All graciousness must henceforth be a sorrow: it has to go with the
+ sunsets. That a thing must cease takes from it the joy of even an aeonian
+ endurance&mdash;for its <i>kind</i> is mortal; it belongs to the nature of
+ things that cannot live. The sorrow is not so much that it shall perish as
+ that it could not live&mdash;that it is not in its nature a real, that is,
+ an eternal thing. His children are shadows&mdash;their life a dance, a
+ sickness, a corruption. The very element of unselfishness, which, however
+ feeble and beclouded it may be, yet exists in all love, in giving life its
+ only dignity adds to its sorrow. Nowhere at the root of things is love&mdash;it
+ is only a something that came after, some sort of fungous excrescence in
+ the hearts of men grown helplessly superior to their origin. Law, nothing
+ but cold, impassive, material law, is the root of things&mdash;lifeless
+ happily, so not knowing itself, else were it a demon instead of a creative
+ nothing. Endeavour is paralyzed in him. &ldquo;Work for posterity,&rdquo; says he of
+ the skyless philosophy; answers the man, &ldquo;How can I work without hope?
+ Little heart have I to labour, where labour is so little help. What can I
+ do for my children that would render their life less hopeless than my own!
+ Give me all you would secure for them, and my life would be to me but the
+ worse mockery. The true end of labour would be, to lessen the number
+ doomed to breathe the breath of this despair.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Straightway he developes another and a deeper mood. He turns and regards
+ himself. Suspicion or sudden insight has directed the look. And there, in
+ himself, he discovers such imperfection, such wrong, such shame, such
+ weakness, as cause him to cry out, &ldquo;It were well I should cease! Why
+ should I mourn after life? Where were the good of prolonging it in a being
+ like me? &lsquo;What should such fellows as I do crawling between heaven and
+ earth!&rsquo;&rdquo; Such insights, when they come, the seers do their best, in
+ general, to obscure; suspicion of themselves they regard as a monster, and
+ would stifle. They resent the waking of such doubt. Any attempt at the
+ raising in them of their buried best they regard as an offence against
+ intercourse. A man takes his social life in his hand who dares it. Few
+ therefore understand the judgment of Hamlet upon himself; the common
+ reader is so incapable of imagining he could mean it of his own general
+ character as a man, that he attributes the utterance to shame for the
+ postponement of a vengeance, which indeed he must have been such as his
+ critic to be capable of performing upon no better proof than he had yet
+ had. When the man whose unfolding I would now represent, regards even his
+ dearest love, he finds it such a poor, selfish, low-lived thing, that in
+ his heart he shames himself before his children and his friends. How
+ little labour, how little watching, how little pain has he endured for
+ their sakes! He reads of great things in this kind, but in himself he does
+ not find them. How often has he not been wrongfully displeased&mdash;wrathful
+ with the innocent! How often has he not hurt a heart more tender than his
+ own! Has he ever once been faithful to the height of his ideal? Is his
+ life on the whole a thing to regard with complacency, or to be troubled
+ exceedingly concerning? Beyond him rise and spread infinite seeming
+ possibilities&mdash;height beyond height, glory beyond glory, each rooted
+ in and rising from his conscious being, but alas! where is any hope of
+ ascending them? These hills of peace, &ldquo;in a season of calm weather,&rdquo; seem
+ to surround and infold him, as a land in which he could dwell at ease and
+ at home: surely among them lies the place of his birth!&mdash;while
+ against their purity and grandeur the being of his consciousness shows
+ miserable&mdash;dark, weak, and undefined&mdash;a shadow that would fain
+ be substance&mdash;a dream that would gladly be born into the light of
+ reality. But alas if the whole thing be only in himself&mdash;if the
+ vision be a dream of nothing, a revelation of lies, the outcome of that
+ which, helplessly existent, is yet not created, therefore cannot create&mdash;if
+ not the whole thing only be a dream of the impotent, but the impotent be
+ himself but a dream&mdash;a dream of his own&mdash;a self-dreamed dream&mdash;with
+ no master of dreams to whom to cry! Where then the cherished hope of one
+ day atoning for his wrongs to those who loved him!&mdash;they are nowhere&mdash;vanished
+ for ever, upmingled and dissolved in the primeval darkness! If truth be
+ but the hollow of a sphere, ah, never shall he cast himself before them,
+ to tell them that now at last, after long years of revealing separation,
+ he knows himself and them, and that now the love of them is a part of his
+ very being&mdash;to implore their forgiveness on the ground that he hates,
+ despises, contemns, and scorns the self that showed them less than
+ absolute love and devotion! Never thus shall he lay his being bare to
+ their eyes of love! They do not even rest, for they do not and will not
+ know it. There is no voice nor hearing in them, and how can there be in
+ him any heart to live! The one comfort left him is, that, unable to follow
+ them, he shall yet die and cease, and fare as they&mdash;go also
+ nowhither!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To a man under the dismay of existence dissociated from power, unrooted
+ in, unshadowed by a creating Will, who is Love, the Father of Man&mdash;to
+ him who knows not being and God together, the idea of death&mdash;a death
+ that knows no reviving, must be, and ought to be the blessedest thought
+ left him. &ldquo;O land of shadows!&rdquo; well may such a one cry! &ldquo;land where the
+ shadows love to ecstatic self-loss, yet forget, and love no more! land of
+ sorrows and despairs, that sink the soul into a deeper Tophet than death
+ has ever sounded! broken kaleidoscope! shaken camera! promiser, speaking
+ truth to the ear, but lying to the sense! land where the heart of my
+ friend is sorrowful as my heart&mdash;the more sorrowful that I have been
+ but a poor and far-off friend! land where sin is strong and righteousness
+ faint! where love dreams mightily and walks abroad so feeble! land where
+ the face of my father is dust, and the hand of my mother will never more
+ caress! where my children will spend a few years of like trouble to mine,
+ and then drop from the dream into the no-dream! gladly, O land of
+ sickliest shadows&mdash;gladly, that is, with what power of gladness is in
+ me, I take my leave of thee! Welcome the cold, pain-soothing embrace of
+ immortal Death! Hideous are his looks, but I love him better than Life: he
+ is true, and will not deceive us. Nay, he only is our saviour, setting us
+ free from the tyranny of the false that ought to be true, and sets us
+ longing in vain.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But through all the man&rsquo;s doubts, fears, and perplexities, a certain
+ whisper, say rather, an uncertain rumour, a vague legendary murmur, has
+ been at the same time about, rather than in, his ears&mdash;never ceasing
+ to haunt his air, although hitherto he has hardly heeded it. He knows it
+ has come down the ages, and that some in every age have been more or less
+ influenced by a varied acceptance of it. Upon those, however, with whom he
+ has chiefly associated, it has made no impression beyond that of a
+ remarkable legend. It is the story of a man, represented as at least
+ greater, stronger, and better than any other man. With the hero of this
+ tale he has had a constantly recurring, though altogether undefined
+ suspicion that he has something to do. It is strongest, though not even
+ then strong, at such times when he is most aware of evil and imperfection
+ in himself. Betwixt the two, the idea of this man and his knowledge of
+ himself, seems to lie, dim-shadowy, some imperative duty. He knows that
+ the whole matter concerning the man is commemorated in many of the oldest
+ institutions of his country, but up to this time he has shrunk from the
+ demands which, by a kind of spiritual insight, he foresaw would follow,
+ were he once to admit certain things to be true. He has, however, known
+ some and read of more who by their faith in the man conquered all anxiety,
+ doubt, and fear, lived pure, and died in gladsome hope. On the other hand,
+ it seems to him that the faith which was once easy has now become almost
+ an impossibility. And what is it he is called upon to believe? One says
+ one thing, another another. Much that is asserted is simply unworthy of
+ belief, and the foundation of the whole has in his eyes something of the
+ look of a cunningly devised fable. Even should it be true, it cannot help
+ him, he thinks, for it does not even touch the things that make his woe:
+ the God the tale presents is not the being whose very existence can alone
+ be his cure.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But he meets one who says to him, &ldquo;Have you then come to your time of
+ life, and not yet ceased to accept hearsay as ground of action&mdash;for
+ there is action in abstaining as well as in doing? Suppose the man in
+ question to have taken all possible pains to be understood, does it follow
+ of necessity that he is now or ever was fairly represented by the bulk of
+ his followers? With such a moral distance between him and them, is it
+ possible?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But the whole thing has from first to last a strange aspect!&rdquo; our thinker
+ replies.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;As to the <i>last</i> that is not yet come. And as to its <i>aspect</i>,
+ its reality must be such as human eye could never convey to reading heart.
+ Every human idea of it <i>must</i> be more or less wrong. And yet perhaps
+ the truer the aspect the stranger it would be. But is it not just with
+ ordinary things you are dissatisfied? And should not therefore the very
+ strangeness of these to you little better than rumours incline you to
+ examine the object of them? Will you assert that nothing strange can have
+ to do with human affairs? Much that was once scarce credible is now so
+ ordinary that men have grown stupid to the wonder inherent in it. Nothing
+ around you serves your need: try what is at least of another class of
+ phenomena. What if the things rumoured belong to a <i>more</i> natural
+ order than these, lie nearer the roots of your dissatisfied existence, and
+ look strange only because you have hitherto been living in the outer
+ court, not in the <i>penetralia</i> of life? The rumour has been vital
+ enough to float down the ages, emerging from every storm: why not see for
+ yourself what may be in it? So powerful an influence on human history,
+ surely there will be found in it signs by which to determine whether the
+ man understood himself and his message, or owed his apparent greatness to
+ the deluded worship of his followers! That he has always had foolish
+ followers none will deny, and none but a fool would judge any leader from
+ such a fact. Wisdom as well as folly will serve a fool&rsquo;s purpose; he turns
+ all into folly. I say nothing now of my own conclusions, because what you
+ imagine my opinions are as hateful to me as to you disagreeable and
+ foolish.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ So says the friend; the man hears, takes up the old story, and says to
+ himself, &ldquo;Let me see then what I can see!&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I will not follow him through the many shadows and slow dawns by which at
+ length he arrives at this much: A man claiming to be the Son of God says
+ he has come to be the light of men; says, &ldquo;Come to me, and I will give you
+ rest;&rdquo; says, &ldquo;Follow me, and you shall find my Father; to know him is the
+ one thing you cannot do without, for it is eternal life.&rdquo; He has learned
+ from the reported words of the man, and from the man himself as in the
+ tale presented, that the bliss of his conscious being is his Father; that
+ his one delight is to do the will of that Father&mdash;the only thing in
+ his eyes worthy of being done, or worth having done; that he would make
+ men blessed with his own blessedness; that the cry of creation, the cry of
+ humanity shall be answered into the deepest soul of desire; that less than
+ the divine mode of existence, the godlike way of being, can satisfy no
+ man, that is, make him content with his consciousness; that not this world
+ only, but the whole universe is the inheritance of those who consent to be
+ the children of their Father in heaven, who put forth the power of their
+ will to be of the same sort as he; that to as many as receive him he gives
+ power to become the sons of God; that they shall be partakers of the
+ divine nature, of the divine joy, of the divine power&mdash;shall have
+ whatever they desire, shall know no fear, shall love perfectly, and shall
+ never die; that these things are beyond the grasp of the knowing ones of
+ the world, and to them the message will be a scorn; but that the time will
+ come when its truth shall be apparent, to some in confusion of face, to
+ others in joy unspeakable; only that we must beware of judging, for many
+ that are first shall be last, and there are last that shall be first.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To find himself in such conscious as well as vital relation with the
+ source of his being, with a Will by which his own will exists, with a
+ Consciousness by and through which he is conscious, would indeed be the
+ end of all the man&rsquo;s ills! nor can he imagine any other, not to say better
+ way, in which his sorrows could be met, understood and annihilated. For
+ the ills that oppress him are both within him and without, and over each
+ kind he is powerless. If the message were but a true one! If indeed this
+ man knew what he talked of! But if there should be help for man from
+ anywhere beyond him, some <i>one</i> might know it first, and may not this
+ be the one? And if the message be so great, so perfect as this man
+ asserts, then only a perfect, an eternal man, at home in the bosom of the
+ Father, could know, or bring, or tell it. According to the tale, it had
+ been from the first the intent of the Father to reveal himself to man as
+ man, for without the knowledge of the Father after man&rsquo;s own modes of
+ being, he could not grow to real manhood. The grander the whole idea, the
+ more likely is it to be what it claims to be! and if not high as the
+ heavens above the earth, beyond us yet within our reach, it is not for us,
+ it cannot be true. Fact or not, the existence of a God such as Christ, a
+ God who is a good man infinitely, is the only idea containing hope enough
+ for man! If such a God has come to be known, marvel must surround the
+ first news at least of the revelation of him. Because of its marvel, shall
+ men find it in reason to turn from the gracious rumour of what, if it be
+ true, must be the event of all events? And could marvel be lovelier than
+ the marvel reported? But the humble men of heart alone can believe in the
+ high&mdash;they alone can perceive, they alone can embrace grandeur.
+ Humility is essential greatness, the inside of grandeur.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Something of such truths the man glimmeringly sees. But in his mind awake,
+ thereupon, endless doubts and questions. What if the whole idea of his
+ mission was a deception born of the very goodness of the man? What if the
+ whole matter was the invention of men pretending themselves the followers
+ of such a man? What if it was a little truth greatly exaggerated? Only, be
+ it what it may, less than its full idea would not be enough for the wants
+ and sorrows that weaken and weigh him down!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ He passes through many a thorny thicket of inquiry; gathers evidence upon
+ evidence; reasons upon the goodness of the men who wrote: they might be
+ deceived, but they dared not invent; holds with himself a thousand
+ arguments, historical, psychical, metaphysical&mdash;which for their
+ setting-forth would require volumes; hears many an opposing, many a
+ scoffing word from men &ldquo;who surely know, else would they speak?&rdquo; and finds
+ himself much where he was before. But at least he is haunting the possible
+ borders of discovery, while those who turn their backs upon the idea are
+ divided from him by a great gulf&mdash;it may be of moral difference. To
+ him there is still a grand auroral hope about the idea, and it still draws
+ him; the others, taking the thing from merest report of opinion, look
+ anywhere but thitherward. He who would not trust his best friend to set
+ forth his views of life, accepts the random judgements of unknown others
+ for a sufficing disposal of what the highest of the race have regarded as
+ a veritable revelation from the Father of men. He sees in it therefore
+ nothing but folly; for what he takes for the thing nowhere meets his
+ nature. Our searcher at least holds open the door for the hearing of what
+ voice may come to him from the region invisible: if there be truth there,
+ he is where it will find him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ As he continues to read and reflect, the perception gradually grows clear
+ in him, that, if there be truth in the matter, he must, first of all, and
+ beyond all things else, give his best heed to the reported words of the
+ man himself&mdash;to what he says, not what is said about him, valuable as
+ that may afterwards prove to be. And he finds that concerning these words
+ of his, the man says, or at least plainly implies, that only the obedient,
+ childlike soul can understand them. It follows that the judgement of no
+ man who does not obey can be received concerning them or the speaker of
+ them&mdash;that, for instance, a man who hates his enemy, who tells lies,
+ who thinks to serve God and Mammon, whether he call himself a Christian or
+ no, has not the right of an opinion concerning the Master or his words&mdash;at
+ least in the eyes of the Master, however it may be in his own. This is in
+ the very nature of things: obedience alone places a man in the position in
+ which he can see so as to judge that which is above him. In respect of
+ great truths investigation goes for little, speculation for nothing; if a
+ man would know them, he must obey them. Their nature is such that the only
+ door into them is obedience. And the truth-seeker perceives&mdash;which
+ allows him no loophole of escape from life&mdash;that what things the Son
+ of Man requires of him, are either such as his conscience backs for just,
+ or such as seem too great, too high for any man. But if there be help for
+ him, it must be a help that recognizes the highest in him, and urges him
+ to its use. Help cannot come to one made in the image of God, save in the
+ obedient effort of what life and power are in him, for God is action. In
+ such effort alone is it possible for need to encounter help. It is the
+ upstretched that meets the downstretched hand. He alone who obeys can with
+ confidence pray&mdash;to him alone does an answer seem a thing that may
+ come. And should anything spoken by the Son of Man seem to the seeker
+ unreasonable, he feels in the rest such a majesty of duty as compels him
+ to judge with regard to the other, that he has not yet perceived its true
+ nature, or its true relation to life.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And now comes the crisis: if here the man sets himself honestly to do the
+ thing the Son of Man tells him, he so, and so first, sets out positively
+ upon the path which, if there be truth in these things, will conduct him
+ to a knowledge of the whole matter; not until then is he a disciple. If
+ the message be a true one, the condition of the knowledge of its truth is
+ not only reasonable but an unavoidable necessity. If there be help for
+ him, how otherways should it draw nigh? He has to be assured of the
+ highest truth of his being: there can be no other assurance than that to
+ be gained thus, and thus alone; for not only by obedience does a man come
+ into such contact with truth as to know what it is, and in regard to truth
+ knowledge and belief are one. That things which cannot appear save to the
+ eye capable of seeing them, that things which cannot be recognized save by
+ the mind of a certain development, should be examined by eye incapable,
+ and pronounced upon by mind undeveloped, is absurd. The deliverance the
+ message offers is a change such that the man shall <i>be</i> the rightness
+ of which he talked: while his soul is not a hungered, athirst, aglow, a
+ groaning after righteousness&mdash;that is, longing to be himself honest
+ and upright, it is an absurdity that he should judge concerning the way to
+ this rightness, seeing that, while he walks not in it, he is and shall be
+ a dishonest man: he knows not whither it leads and how can he know the
+ way! What he <i>can</i> judge of is, his duty at a given moment&mdash;and
+ that not in the abstract, but as something to be by him <i>done</i>,
+ neither more, nor less, nor other than <i>done</i>. Thus judging and
+ doing, he makes the only possible step nearer to righteousness and
+ righteous judgement; doing otherwise, he becomes the more unrighteous, the
+ more blind. For the man who knows not God, whether he believes there is a
+ God or not, there can be, I repeat, no judgement of things pertaining to
+ God. To our supposed searcher, then, the crowning word of the Son of Man
+ is this, &ldquo;If any man is willing to do the will of the Father, he shall
+ know of the doctrine, whether it be of God, or whether I speak of myself.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Having thus accompanied my type to the borders of liberty, my task for the
+ present is over. The rest let him who reads prove for himself. Obedience
+ alone can convince. To convince without obedience I would take no bootless
+ labour; it would be but a gain for hell. If any man call these things
+ foolishness, his judgement is to me insignificant. If any man say he is
+ open to conviction, I answer him he can have none but on the condition, by
+ the means of obedience. If a man say, &ldquo;The thing is not interesting to
+ me,&rdquo; I ask him, &ldquo;Are you following your conscience? By that, and not by
+ the interest you take or do not take in a thing, shall you be judged. Nor
+ will anything be said to you, or of you, in that day, whatever <i>that day</i>
+ mean, of which your conscience will not echo every syllable.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Oneness with God is the sole truth of humanity. Life parted from its
+ causative life would be no life; it would at best be but a barrack of
+ corruption, an outpost of annihilation. In proportion as the union is
+ incomplete, the derived life is imperfect. And no man can be one with
+ neighbour, child, dearest, except as he is one with his origin; and he
+ fails of his perfection so long as there is one being in the universe he
+ could not love.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Of all men he is bound to hold his face like a flint in witness of this
+ truth who owes everything that makes for eternal good, to the belief that
+ at the heart of things and causing them to be, at the centre of monad, of
+ world, of protoplastic mass, of loving dog, and of man most cruel, is an
+ absolute, perfect love; and that in the man Christ Jesus this love is with
+ us men to take us home. To nothing else do I for one owe any grasp upon
+ life. In this I see the setting right of all things. To the man who
+ believes in the Son of God, poetry returns in a mighty wave; history
+ unrolls itself in harmony; science shows crowned with its own aureole of
+ holiness. There is no enlivener of the imagination, no enabler of the
+ judgment, no strengthener of the intellect, to compare with the belief in
+ a live Ideal, at the heart of all personality, as of every law. If there
+ be no such live Ideal, then a falsehood can do more for the race than the
+ facts of its being; then an unreality is needful for the development of
+ the man in all that is real, in all that is in the highest sense true;
+ then falsehood is greater than fact, and an idol necessary for lack of a
+ God. They who deny cannot, in the nature of things, know what they deny.
+ When one sees a chaos begin to put on the shape of an ordered world, he
+ will hardly be persuaded it is by the power of a foolish notion bred in a
+ diseased fancy.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let the man then who would rise to the height of his being, be persuaded
+ to test the Truth by the deed&mdash;the highest and only test that can be
+ applied to the loftiest of all assertions. To every man I say, &ldquo;Do the
+ truth you know, and you shall learn the truth you need to know.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0004" id="link2H_4_0004">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ ST. GEORGE&rsquo;S DAY, 1564.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1864.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All England knows that this year (1864) is the three hundredth since
+ Shakspere was born. The strong probability is likewise that this month of
+ April is that in which he first saw the earthly light. On the twenty-sixth
+ of April he was baptized. Whether he was born on the twenty-third, to
+ which effect there may once have been a tradition, we do not know; but
+ though there is nothing to corroborate that statement, there are two facts
+ which would incline us to believe it if we could: the one that he <i>died</i>
+ on the twenty-third of April, thus, as it were, completing a cycle; and
+ the other that the twenty-third of April is St. George&rsquo;s Day. If there is
+ no harm in indulging in a little fanciful sentiment about such a grand
+ fact, we should say that certainly it was <i>St. George for merry England</i>
+ when Shakspere was born. But had St. George been the best saint in the
+ calendar&mdash;which we have little enough ground for supposing he was&mdash;it
+ would better suit our subject to say that the Highest was thinking of his
+ England when he sent Shakspere into it, to be a strength, a wonder, and a
+ gladness to the nations of his earth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But if we write thus about Shakspere, influenced only by the fashion of
+ the day, we shall be much in the condition of those <i>fashionable</i>
+ architects who with their vain praises built the tombs of the prophets,
+ while they had no regard to the lessons they taught. We hope to be able to
+ show that we have good grounds for our rejoicing in the birth of that
+ child whom after-years placed highest on the rocky steep of Art, up which
+ so many of those who combine feeling and thought are always striving.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ First, however, let us look at some of the more powerful of the influences
+ into the midst of which he was born. For a child is born into the womb of
+ the time, which indeed enclosed and fed him before he was born. Not the
+ least subtle and potent of those influences which tend to the education of
+ the child (in the true sense of the word <i>education</i>) are those which
+ are brought to bear upon him <i>through</i> the mind, heart, judgement of
+ his parents. We mean that those powers which have operated strongly upon
+ them, have a certain concentrated operation, both antenatal and
+ psychological, as well as educational and spiritual, upon the child. Now
+ Shakspere was born in the sixth year of Queen Elizabeth. He was the eldest
+ son, but the third child. His father and mother must have been married not
+ later than the year 1557, two years after Cranmer was burned at the stake,
+ one of the two hundred who thus perished in that time of pain, resulting
+ in the firm establishment of a reformation which, like all other changes
+ for the better, could not be verified and secured without some form or
+ other of the <i>trial by fire</i>. Events such as then took place in every
+ part of the country could not fail to make a strong impression upon all
+ thinking people, especially as it was not those of high position only who
+ were thus called upon to bear witness to their beliefs. John Shakspere and
+ Mary Arden were in all likelihood themselves of the Protestant party; and
+ although, as far as we know, they were never in any especial danger of
+ being denounced, the whole of the circumstances must have tended to
+ produce in them individually, what seems to have been characteristic of
+ the age in which they lived, earnestness. In times such as those, people
+ are compelled to think.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And here an interesting question occurs: Was it in part to his mother that
+ Shakspere was indebted for that profound knowledge of the Bible which is
+ so evident in his writings? A good many copies of the Scriptures must have
+ been by this time, in one translation or another, scattered over the
+ country. [Footnote: And it seems to us probable that this diffusion of the
+ Bible, did more to rouse the slumbering literary power of England, than
+ any influences of foreign literature whatever.] No doubt the word was
+ precious in those days, and hard to buy; but there might have been a copy,
+ notwithstanding, in the house of John Shakspere, and it is possible that
+ it was from his mother&rsquo;s lips that the boy first heard the Scripture
+ tales. We have called his acquaintance with Scripture <i>profound</i>, and
+ one peculiar way in which it manifests itself will bear out the assertion;
+ for frequently it is the very spirit and essential aroma of the passage
+ that he reproduces, without making any use of the words themselves. There
+ are passages in his writings which we could not have understood but for
+ some acquaintance with the New Testament. We will produce a few specimens
+ of the kind we mean, confining ourselves to one play, &ldquo;Macbeth.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Just mentioning the phrase, &ldquo;temple-haunting martlet&rdquo; (act i. scene 6), as
+ including in it a reference to the verse, &ldquo;Yea, the sparrow hath found an
+ house, and the swallow a nest for herself, where she may lay her young,
+ even thine altars, O Lord of hosts,&rdquo; we pass to the following passage, for
+ which we do not believe there is any explanation but that suggested to us
+ by the passage of Scripture to be cited.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Macbeth, on his way to murder Duncan, says,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Thou sure and firm-set earth,
+ Hear not my steps, which way they walk, for fear
+ Thy very stones prate of my whereabout,
+ And take the present horror from the time
+ Which now suits with it.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ What is meant by the last two lines? It seems to us to be just another
+ form of the words, &ldquo;For there is nothing covered, that shall not be
+ revealed; neither hid, that shall not be known. Therefore whatsoever ye
+ have spoken in darkness shall be heard in the light; and that which ye
+ have spoken in the ear in closets shall be proclaimed upon the
+ house-tops.&rdquo; Of course we do not mean that Macbeth is represented as
+ having this passage in his mind, but that Shakspere had the feeling of it
+ when he wrote thus. What Macbeth means is, &ldquo;Earth, do not hear me in the
+ dark, which is suitable to the present horror, lest the very stones prate
+ about it in the daylight, which is not suitable to such things; thus
+ taking &lsquo;the present horror <i>from</i> the time which now suits with it.&rsquo;&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Again, in the only piece of humour in the play&mdash;if that should be
+ called humour which, taken in its relation to the consciousness of the
+ principal characters, is as terrible as anything in the piece&mdash;the
+ porter ends off his fantastic soliloquy, in which he personates the porter
+ of hell-gate, with the words, &ldquo;But this place is too cold for hell: I&rsquo;ll
+ devil-porter it no further. I had thought to have let in some of all
+ professions, that go the primrose way to the everlasting bonfire.&rdquo; Now
+ what else had the writer in his mind but the verse from the Sermon on the
+ Mount, &ldquo;For wide is the gate, and broad is the way, that leadeth to
+ destruction, and many there be which go in thereat&rdquo;?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It may be objected that such passages as these, being of the most commonly
+ quoted, imply no profound acquaintance with Scripture, such as we have
+ said Shakspere possessed. But no amount of knowledge of the <i>words</i>
+ of the Bible would be sufficient to justify the use of the word <i>profound</i>.
+ What is remarkable in the employment of these passages, is not merely that
+ they are so present to his mind that they come up for use in the most
+ exciting moments of composition, but that he embodies the spirit of them
+ in such a new form as reveals to minds saturated and deadened with the <i>sound</i>
+ of the words, the very visual image and spiritual meaning involved in
+ them. &ldquo;<i>The primrose way!</i>&rdquo; And to what?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We will confine ourselves to one passage more:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Macbeth
+ Is ripe for shaking, and the powers above
+ Put on their instruments.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In the end of the 14th chapter of the Revelation we have the words,
+ &ldquo;Thrust in thy sickle, and reap: for the time is come for thee to reap;
+ for the harvest of the earth is ripe.&rdquo; We suspect that Shakspere wrote,
+ ripe <i>to</i> shaking.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The instances to which we have confined ourselves do not by any means
+ belong to the most evident kind of proof that might be adduced of
+ Shakspere&rsquo;s acquaintance with Scripture. The subject, in its ordinary
+ aspect, has been elsewhere treated with far more fulness than our design
+ would permit us to indulge in, even if it had not been done already. Our
+ object has been to bring forward a few passages which seem to us to
+ breathe the very spirit of individual passages in sacred writ, without
+ direct use of the words themselves; and, of course, in such a case we can
+ only appeal to the (no doubt) very various degrees of conviction which
+ they may rouse in the minds of our readers.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But there is one singular correspondence in another <i>almost</i> literal
+ quotation from the Gospel, which is to us wonderfully interesting. We are
+ told that the words &ldquo;eye of a needle,&rdquo; in the passage about a rich man
+ entering the kingdom of heaven, mean the small side entrance in a city
+ gate. Now, in &ldquo;Richard II,&rdquo; act v. scene 5, <i>Richard</i> quotes the
+ passage thus:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;It is as hard to come as for a camel
+ To thread the postern of a needle&rsquo;s eye;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ showing that either the imagination of Shakspere suggested the real
+ explanation, or he had taken pains to acquaint himself with the
+ significance of the simile. We can hardly say that the correspondence
+ might be <i>merely</i> fortuitous; because, at the least, Shakspere looked
+ for and found a suitable figure to associate with the words <i>eye of a
+ needle</i>, and so fell upon the real explanation; except, indeed, he had
+ no particular significance in using the word that meant a <i>little</i>
+ gate, instead of a word meaning any kind of entrance, which, with him,
+ seems unlikely.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We have not by any means proven that Shakspere&rsquo;s acquaintance with the
+ Scriptures had an early date in his history; but certainly the Bible must
+ have had a great influence upon him who was the highest representative
+ mind of the time, its influence on the general development of the nation
+ being unquestionable. This, therefore, seeing the Bible itself was just
+ dawning full upon the country while Shakspere was becoming capable of
+ understanding it, seems the suitable sequence in which to take notice of
+ that influence, and of some of those passages in his works which testify
+ to it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But, besides <i>the</i> Bible, every nation has <i>a</i> Bible, or at
+ least <i>an</i> Old Testament, in its own history; and that Shakspere paid
+ especial attention to this, is no matter of conjecture. We suspect his
+ mode of writing historical plays is more after the fashion of the Bible
+ histories than that of most writers of history. Indeed, the development
+ and consequences of character and conduct are clear to those that read his
+ histories with open eyes. Now, in his childhood Shakspere may have had
+ some special incentive to the study of history springing out of the fact
+ that his mother&rsquo;s grandfather had been &ldquo;groom of the chamber to Henry
+ VII.,&rdquo; while there is sufficient testimony that a further removed ancestor
+ of his father, as well, had stood high in the favour of the same monarch.
+ Therefore the history of the troublous times of the preceding century,
+ which were brought to a close by the usurpation of Henry VII., would
+ naturally be a subject of talk in the quiet household, where books and
+ amusements such as now occupy our boys, were scarce or wanting altogether.
+ The proximity of such a past of strife and commotion, crowded with
+ eventful change, must have formed a background full of the material of
+ excitement to an age which lived in the midst of a peculiarly exciting
+ history of its own.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Perhaps the chief intellectual characteristic of the age of Elizabeth was
+ <i>activity</i>; this activity accounting even for much that is
+ objectionable in its literature. Now this activity must have been growing
+ in the people throughout the fifteenth century; the wars of the Roses,
+ although they stifled literature, so that it had, as it were, to be born
+ again in the beginning of the following century, being, after all, but as
+ the &ldquo;eager strife&rdquo; of the shadow-leaves above the &ldquo;genuine life&rdquo; of the
+ grass,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;And the mute repose
+ Of sweetly breathing flowers.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But when peace had fallen on the land, it would seem as if the impulse to
+ action springing from strife still operated, as the waves will go on
+ raving upon the shore after the wind has ceased, and found one outlet,
+ amongst others, in literature, and peculiarly in dramatic literature.
+ Peace, rendered yet more intense by the cessation of the cries of the
+ tormentors, and the groans of the noble army of suffering martyrs, made,
+ as it were, a kind of vacuum; and into that vacuum burst up the
+ torrent-springs of a thousand souls&mdash;the thoughts that were no longer
+ repressed&mdash;in the history of the past and the Utopian speculation on
+ the future; in noble theology, capable statesmanship, and science at once
+ brilliant and profound; in the voyage of discovery, and the change of the
+ swan-like merchantman into a very fire-drake of war for the defence of the
+ threatened shores; in the first brave speech of the Puritan in Elizabeth&rsquo;s
+ Parliament, the first murmurs of the voice of liberty, soon to thunder
+ throughout the land; in the naturalizing of foreign genius by translation,
+ and the invention, or at least adoption, of a new and transcendent rhythm;
+ in the song, in the epic, in the drama.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ So much for the general. Let us now, following the course of his life,
+ recall, in a few sentences, some of the chief events which must have
+ impressed the all-open mind of Shakspere in the earlier portion of his
+ history.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Perhaps it would not be going back too far to begin with the Massacre of
+ Paris, which took place when he was eight years old. It caused so much
+ horror in England, that it is not absurd to suppose that some black rays
+ from the deed of darkness may have fallen on the mind of such a child as
+ Shakspere.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In strong contrast with the foregoing is the next event to which we shall
+ refer.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ When he was eleven years old, Leicester gave the Queen that magnificent
+ reception at Kenilworth which is so well known from its memorials in our
+ literature. It has been suggested as probable, with quite enough of
+ likelihood to justify a conjecture, that Shakspere may have been present
+ at the dramatic representations then so gorgeously accumulated before her
+ Majesty. If such was the fact, it is easy to imagine what an influence the
+ shows must have had on the mind of the young dramatic genius, at a time
+ when, happily, the critical faculty is not by any means so fully awake as
+ are the receptive and exultant faculties, and when what the nature chiefly
+ needs is excitement to growth, without which all pruning, the most
+ artistic, is useless, as having nothing to operate upon.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ When he was fifteen years old, Sir Thomas North&rsquo;s translation of Plutarch
+ (through the French) was first published. Any reader who has compared one
+ of Shakspere&rsquo;s Roman plays with the corresponding life in Plutarch, will
+ not be surprised that we should mention this as one of those events which
+ must have been of paramount influence upon Shakspere. It is not likely
+ that he became acquainted with the large folio with its medallion
+ portraits first placed singly, and then repeated side by side for
+ comparison, as soon as it made its appearance, but as we cannot tell when
+ he began to read it, it seems as well to place it in the order its
+ publication would assign to it. Besides, it evidently took such a hold of
+ the man, that it is most probable his acquaintance with it began at a very
+ early period of his history. Indeed, it seems to us to have been one of
+ the most powerful aids to the development of that perception and
+ discrimination of character with which he was gifted to such a remarkable
+ degree. Nor would it be any derogation from the originality of his genius
+ to say, that in a very pregnant sense he must have been a disciple of
+ Plutarch. In those plays founded on Plutarch&rsquo;s stories he picked out every
+ dramatic point, and occasionally employed the very phrases of North&rsquo;s
+ nervous, graphic, and characteristic English. He seems to have felt that
+ it was an honour to his work to embody in it the words of Plutarch
+ himself, as he knew them first. From him he seems especially to have
+ learned how to bring out the points of a character, by putting one man
+ over against another, and remarking wherein they resembled each other and
+ wherein they differed; after which fashion, in other plays as well as
+ those, he partly arranged his dramatic characters.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Not long after he went to London, when he was twenty-two, the death of Sir
+ Philip Sidney at the age of thirty-two, must have had its unavoidable
+ influence on him, seeing all Europe was in mourning for the death of its
+ model, almost ideal man. In England the general mourning, both in the
+ court and the city, which lasted for months, is supposed by Dr. Zouch to
+ have been the first instance of the kind; that is, for the death of a
+ private person. Renowned over the civilized world for everything for which
+ a man could be renowned, his literary fame must have had a considerable
+ share in the impression his death would make on such a man as Shakspere.
+ For although none of his works were published till after his death, the
+ first within a few months of that event, his fame as a writer was widely
+ spread in private, and report of the same could hardly fail to reach one
+ who, although he had probably no friends of rank as yet, kept such keen
+ open ears for all that was going on around him. But whether or not he had
+ heard of the literary greatness of Sir Philip before his death, the
+ &ldquo;Arcadia,&rdquo; which was first published four years after his death (1590),
+ and which in eight years had reached the third edition&mdash;with another
+ still in Scotland the following year&mdash;must have been full of interest
+ to Shakspere. This book is very different indeed from the ordinary
+ impression of it which most minds have received through the confident
+ incapacity of the critics of last century. Few books have been published
+ more fruitful in the results and causes of thought, more sparkling with
+ fancy, more evidently the outcome of rich and noble habit, than this
+ &ldquo;Arcadia&rdquo; of Philip Sidney. That Shakspere read it, is sufficiently
+ evident from the fact that from it he has taken the secondary but still
+ important plots in two of his plays.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Although we are anticipating, it is better to mention here another book,
+ published in the same year, namely, 1590, when Shakspere was
+ six-and-twenty: the first three books of Spenser&rsquo;s &ldquo;Faery Queen.&rdquo; Of its
+ reception and character it is needless here to say anything further than,
+ of the latter, that nowadays the depths of its teaching, heartily prized
+ as that was by no less a man than Milton, are seldom explored. But it
+ would be a labour of months to set out the known and imagined sources of
+ the knowledge and spiritual pabulum of the man who laid every mental
+ region so under contribution, that he has been claimed by almost every
+ profession as having been at one time or another a student of its peculiar
+ science, so marvellously in him was the power of assimilation combined
+ with that of reproduction.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To go back a little: in 1587, when he was three-and-twenty, Mary Queen of
+ Scots was executed. In the following year came that mighty victory of
+ England, and her allies the winds and the waters, over the towering pride
+ of the Spanish Armada. Out from the coasts, like the birds from their
+ cliffs to defend their young, flew the little navy, many of the vessels
+ only able to carry a few guns; and fighting, fire-ships and tempest left
+ this island,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;This precious stone set in the silver sea,&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ still a &ldquo;blessed plot,&rdquo; with an accumulated obligation to liberty which
+ can only be paid by helping others to be free; and when she utterly
+ forgets which, her doom is sealed, as surely as that of the old empires
+ which passed away in their self-indulgence and wickedness.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ When Shakspere was about thirty-two, Sir Walter Raleigh published his
+ glowing account of Guiana, which instantly provided the English mind with
+ an earthly paradise or fairy-land. Raleigh himself seems to have been too
+ full of his own reports for us to be able to suppose that he either
+ invented or disbelieved them; especially when he represents the heavenly
+ country to which, in expectation of his execution, he is looking forward,
+ after the fashion of those regions of the wonderful West:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Then the blessed Paths wee&rsquo;l travel,
+ Strow&rsquo;d with Rubies thick as gravel;
+ Sealings of Diamonds, Saphire floors,
+ High walls of Coral, and Pearly Bowers.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Such were some of the influences which widened the region of thought, and
+ excited the productive power, in the minds of the time. After this period
+ there were fewer of such in Shakspere&rsquo;s life; and if there had been more
+ of them they would have been of less import as to their operation on a
+ mind more fully formed and more capable of choosing its own influences.
+ Let us now give a backward glance at the history of the art which
+ Shakspere chose as the means of easing his own mind of that wealth which,
+ like the gold and the silver, has a moth and rust of its own, except it be
+ kept in use by being sent out for the good of our neighbours.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It was a mighty gain for the language and the people when, in the middle
+ of the fourteenth century, by permission of the Pope, the miracle-plays,
+ most probably hitherto represented in Norman-French, as Mr. Collier
+ supposes, began to be represented in English. Most likely there had been
+ dramatic representations of a sort from the very earliest period of the
+ nation&rsquo;s history; for, to begin with the lowest form, at what time would
+ there not, for the delight of listeners, have been the imitation of animal
+ sounds, such as the drama of the conversation between an attacking poodle
+ and a fiercely repellent puss? Through innumerable gradations of childhood
+ would the art grow before it attained the first formal embodiment in such
+ plays as those, so-called, of miracles, consisting just of Scripture
+ stories, both canonical and apocryphal, dramatized after the rudest
+ fashion. Regarded from the height which the art had reached two hundred
+ and fifty years after, &ldquo;how dwarfed a growth of cold and night&rdquo; do these
+ miracle-plays show themselves! But at a time when there was no printing,
+ little preaching, and Latin prayers, we cannot help thinking that,
+ grotesque and ill-imagined as they are, they must have been of unspeakable
+ value for the instruction of a people whose spiritual digestion was not of
+ a sort to be injured by the presence of a quite abnormal quantity of husk
+ and saw-dust in their food. And occasionally we find verses of true poetic
+ feeling, such as the following, in &ldquo;The Fall of Man:&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ <i>Deus.</i> Adam, that with myn handys I made,
+ Where art thou now? What hast thou wrought?
+
+ <i>Adam.</i> A! lord, for synne oure floures do ffade,
+ I here thi voys, but I se the nought;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ implying that the separation between God and man, although it had
+ destroyed the beatific vision, was not yet so complete as to make the
+ creature deaf to the voice of his Maker. Nor are the words of Eve, with
+ which she begs her husband, in her shame and remorse, to strangle her, odd
+ and quaint as they are, without an almost overpowering pathos:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Now stomble we on stalk and ston;
+ My wyt awey is fro me gon:
+ Wrythe on to my necke bon
+ With, hardnesse of thin honde.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ To this Adam commences his reply with the verses,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Wyff, thi wytt is not wurthe a rosche.
+ Leve woman, turn thi thought.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ And this portion of the general representation ends with these verses,
+ spoken by Eve:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Alas! that ever we wrought this synne.
+ Oure bodely sustenauns for to wynne,
+ Ye must delve and I xal spynne,
+ In care to ledyn oure lyff.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In connexion with these plays, one of the contemplations most interesting
+ to us is, the contrast between them and the places in which they were
+ occasionally represented. For though the scaffolds on which they were
+ shown were usually erected in market-places or churchyards, sometimes they
+ rose in the great churches, and the plays were represented with the aid of
+ ecclesiastics. Here, then, we have the rude beginnings of the dramatic
+ art, in which the devil is the unfortunate buffoon, giving occasion to the
+ most exuberant laughter of the people&mdash;here is this rude boyhood, if
+ we may so say, of the one art, roofed in with the perfection of another,
+ of architecture; a perfection which now we can only imitate at our best:
+ below, the clumsy contrivance and the vulgar jest; above, the solemn
+ heaven of uplifted arches, their mysterious glooms ringing with the
+ delight of the multitude: the play of children enclosed in the heart of
+ prayer aspiring in stone. But it was not by any means all laughter; and so
+ much, nearer than architecture is the drama to the ordinary human heart,
+ that we cannot help thinking these grotesque representations did far more
+ to arouse the inward life and conscience of the people than all the glory
+ into which the out-working spirit of the monks had compelled the stubborn
+ stone to bourgeon and blossom.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But although, no doubt, there was some kind of growth going on in the
+ drama even during the dreary fifteenth century, we must not suppose that
+ it was by any regular and steady progression that it arrived at the
+ grandeur of the Elizabethan perfection. It was rather as if a dry, knotty,
+ uncouth, but vigorous plant suddenly opened out its inward life in a
+ flower of surpassing splendour and loveliness. When the representation of
+ real historical persons in the miracle-plays gave way before the
+ introduction of unreal allegorical personages, and the miracle-play was
+ almost driven from the stage by the &ldquo;play of morals&rdquo; as it was called,
+ there was certainly no great advance made in dramatic representation. The
+ chief advantage gained was room for more variety; while in some important
+ respects these plays fell off from the merits of the preceding kind.
+ Indeed, any attempt to teach morals allegorically must lack that vivifying
+ fire of faith working in the poorest representations of a history which
+ the people heartily believed and loved. Nor when we come to examine the
+ favourite amusement of later royalty, do we find that the interludes
+ brought forward in the pauses of the banquets of Henry VIII. have a claim
+ to any refinement upon those old miracle-plays. They have gained in
+ facility and wit; they have lost in poetry. They have lost pathos too, and
+ have gathered grossness. In the comedies which soon appear, there is far
+ more of fun than of art; and although the historical play had existed for
+ some time, and the streams of learning from the inns of court had flowed
+ in to swell that of the drama, it is not before the appearance of
+ Shakspere that we find any <i>whole</i> of artistic or poetic value. And
+ this brings us to another branch of the subject, of which it seems to us
+ that the importance has never been duly acknowledged. We refer to the use,
+ if not invention, of <i>blank verse</i> in England, and its application to
+ the purposes of the drama. It seems to us that in any contemplation of
+ Shakspere and his times, the consideration of these points ought not to be
+ omitted.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We have in the present day one grand master of blank verse, the Poet
+ Laureate. But where would he have been if Milton had not gone before him;
+ or if the verse amidst which he works like an informing spirit had not
+ existed at all? No doubt he might have invented it himself; but how
+ different would the result have been from the verse which he will now
+ leave behind him to lie side by side for comparison with that of the
+ master of the epic! All thanks then to Henry Howard, Earl of Surrey! who,
+ if, dying on the scaffold at the early age of thirty, he has left no
+ poetry in itself of much value, yet so wrote that he refined the poetic
+ usages of the language, and, above all, was the first who ever made blank
+ verse in English. He used it in translating the second and fourth books of
+ Virgil&rsquo;s &ldquo;Aeneid.&rdquo; This translation he probably wrote not long before his
+ execution, which took place in 1547, seventeen years before the birth of
+ Shakspere. There are passages of excellence in the work, and very rarely
+ does a verse quite fail. But, as might be expected, it is somewhat stiff,
+ and, as it were, stunted in sound; partly from the fact that the lines are
+ too much divided, where <i>distinction</i> would have been sufficient. It
+ would have been strange, indeed, if he had at once made a free use of a
+ rhythm which every boy-poet now thinks he can do what he pleases with, but
+ of which only a few ever learn the real scope and capabilities. Besides,
+ the difficulty was increased by the fact that the nearest approach to it
+ in measure was the heroic couplet, so well known in our language, although
+ scarce one who has used it has come up to the variousness of its modelling
+ in the hands of Chaucer, with whose writings Surrey was of course
+ familiar. But various as is its melody in Chaucer, the fact of there being
+ always an anticipation of the perfecting of a rhyme at the end of the
+ couplet would make one accustomed to heroic verse ready to introduce a
+ rhythmical fall and kind of close at the end of every blank verse in
+ trying to write that measure for the first time. Still, as we say, there
+ is good verse in Surrey&rsquo;s translation. Take the following lines for a
+ specimen, in which the fault just mentioned is scarcely perceptible.
+ Mercury is the subject of them.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;His golden wings he knits, which him transport,
+ With a light wind above the earth and seas;
+ And then with him his wand he took, whereby
+ He calls from hell pale ghosts.
+</pre>
+
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;By power whereof he drives the winds away,
+ And passeth eke amid the troubled clouds,
+ Till in his flight he &lsquo;gan descry the top
+ And the steep flanks of rocky Atlas&rsquo; hill
+ That with his crown sustains the welkin up;
+ Whose head, forgrown with pine, circled alway
+ With misty clouds, is beaten with wind and storm;
+ His shoulders spread with snow; and from his chin
+ The springs descend; his beard frozen with ice.
+ Here Mercury with equal shining wings
+ First touched.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In all comparative criticism justice demands that he who began any mode
+ should not be compared with those who follow only on the ground of
+ absolute merit in the productions themselves; for while he may be inferior
+ in regard to quality, he stands on a height, as the inventor, to which
+ they, as imitators, can never ascend, although they may climb other and
+ loftier heights, through the example he has set them. It is doubtful,
+ however, whether Surrey himself invented this verse, or only followed the
+ lead of some poet of Italy or Spain; in both which countries it is said
+ that blank verse had been used before Surrey wrote English in that
+ measure.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Here then we have the low beginnings of blank verse. It was nearly a
+ hundred and twenty years before Milton took it up, and, while it served
+ him well, glorified it; nor are we aware of any poem of worth written in
+ that measure between. Here, of course, we speak of the epic form of the
+ verse, which, as being uttered <i>ore rotundo</i>, is necessarily of
+ considerable difference from the form it assumes in the drama.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us now glance for a moment at the forms of composition in use for
+ dramatic purposes before blank verse came into favour with play-writers.
+ The nature of the verse employed in the miracle-plays will be sufficiently
+ seen from the short specimens already given. These plays were made up of
+ carefully measured and varied lines, with correct and superabundant
+ rhymes, and no marked lack of melody or rhythm. But as far as we have made
+ acquaintance with the moral and other rhymed plays which followed, there
+ was a great falling off in these respects. They are in great measure
+ composed of long, irregular lines, with a kind of rhythmical progress
+ rather than rhythm in them. They are exceedingly difficult to read
+ musically, at least to one of our day. Here are a few verses of the sort,
+ from the dramatic poem, rather than drama, called somewhat improperly &ldquo;The
+ Moral Play of God&rsquo;s Promises,&rdquo; by John Bale, who died the year before
+ Shakspere was born. It is the first in Dodsley&rsquo;s collection. The verses
+ have some poetic merit. The rhythm will be allowed to be difficult at
+ least. The verses are arranged in stanzas, of which we give two. In most
+ plays the verses are arranged in rhyming couplets only.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ <i>Pater Coelestis.</i>
+
+ I have with fearcenesse mankynde oft tymes corrected,
+ And agayne, I have allured hym by swete promes.
+ I have sent sore plages, when he hath me neglected,
+ And then by and by, most comfortable swetnes.
+ To wynne hym to grace, bothe mercye and ryghteousnes
+ I have exercysed, yet wyll he not amende.
+ Shall I now lose hym, or shall I him defende?
+
+ In hys most myschefe, most hygh grace will I sende,
+ To overcome hym by favoure, if it may be.
+ With hys abusyons no longar wyll I contende,
+ But now accomplysh my first wyll and decre.
+ My worde beynge flesh, from hens shall set hym fre,
+ Hym teachynge a waye of perfyght ryhteousnesse,
+ That he shall not nede to perysh in hys weaknesse.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ To our ears, at least, the older miracle-plays were greatly superior. It
+ is interesting to find, however, in this apparently popular mode of
+ &ldquo;building the rhyme&rdquo;&mdash;certainly not the <i>lofty</i> rhyme, for no
+ such crumbling foundation could carry any height of superstructure&mdash;the
+ elements of the most popular rhythm of the present day; a rhythm admitting
+ of any number of syllables in the line, from four up to twelve, or even
+ more, and demanding only that there shall be not more than four accented
+ syllables in the line. A song written with any spirit in this measure has,
+ other things <i>not</i> being quite equal, yet almost a certainty of
+ becoming more popular than one written in any other measure. Most of Barry
+ Cornwall&rsquo;s and Mrs. Heman&rsquo;s songs are written in it. Scott&rsquo;s &ldquo;Lay of the
+ Last Minstrel,&rdquo; Coleridge&rsquo;s &ldquo;Christabel,&rdquo; Byron&rsquo;s &ldquo;Siege of Corinth,&rdquo;
+ Shelley&rsquo;s &ldquo;Sensitive Plant,&rdquo; are examples of the rhythm. Spenser is the
+ first who has made good use of it. One of the months in the &ldquo;Shepherd&rsquo;s
+ Calendar&rdquo; is composed in it. We quote a few lines from this poem, to show
+ at once the kind we mean:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;No marvel, Thenot, if thou can bear
+ Cheerfully the winter&rsquo;s wrathful cheer;
+ For age and winter accord full nigh;
+ This chill, that cold; this crooked, that wry;
+ And as the lowering weather looks down,
+ So seemest thou like Good Friday to frown:
+ But my flowering youth is foe to frost;
+ My ship unwont in storms to be tost.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ We can trace it slightly in Sir Thomas Wyatt, and we think in others who
+ preceded Spenser. There is no sign of it in Chaucer. But we judge it to be
+ the essential rhythm of Anglo-Saxon poetry, which will quite harmonize
+ with, if it cannot explain, the fact of its being the most popular measure
+ still. Shakspere makes a little use of it in one, if not in more, of his
+ plays, though it there partakes of the irregular character of that of the
+ older plays which he is imitating. But we suspect the clowns of the
+ authorship of some of the rhymes, &ldquo;speaking more than was set down for
+ them,&rdquo; evidently no uncommon offence.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Prose was likewise in use for the drama at an early period.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But we must now regard the application of blank verse to the use of the
+ drama. And in this part of our subject we owe most to the investigations
+ of Mr. Collier, than whom no one has done more to merit our gratitude for
+ such aids. It is universally acknowledged that &ldquo;Ferrex and Porrex&rdquo; was the
+ first drama in blank verse. But it was never represented on the public
+ stage. It was the joint production of Thomas Sackville, afterwards Lord
+ Buckhurst and Earl of Dorset, and Thomas Norton, both gentlemen of the
+ Inner Temple, by the members of which it was played before the Queen at
+ Whitehall in 1561, three years before Shakspere was born. As to its
+ merits, the impression left by it upon our minds is such that, although
+ the verse is decent, and in some respects irreproachable, we think the
+ time spent in reading it must be all but lost to any but those who must
+ verify to themselves their literary profession; a profession which, like
+ all other professions, involves a good deal of disagreeable duty. We spare
+ our readers all quotation, there being no occasion to show what blank
+ verse of the commonest description is. But we beg to be allowed to state
+ that this drama by no means represents the poetic powers of Thomas
+ Sackville. For although we cannot agree with Hallam&rsquo;s general criticism,
+ either for or against Sackville, and although we admire Spenser, we hope,
+ as much as that writer could have admired him, we yet venture to say that
+ not only may some of Sackville&rsquo;s personifications &ldquo;fairly be compared with
+ some of the most poetical passages in Spenser,&rdquo; but that there is in this
+ kind in Sackville a strength and simplicity of representation which
+ surpasses that of Spenser in passages in which the latter probably
+ imitated the former. We refer to the allegorical personages in Sackville&rsquo;s
+ &ldquo;Induction to the Mirrour of Magistrates,&rdquo; and in Spenser&rsquo;s description of
+ the &ldquo;House of Pride.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Mr. Collier judges that the play in blank verse first represented on the
+ public stage was the &ldquo;Tamburlaine&rdquo; of Christopher Marlowe, and that it was
+ acted before 1587, at which date Shakspere would be twenty-three. This was
+ followed by other and better plays by the same author. Although we cannot
+ say much for the dramatic art of Marlowe, he has far surpassed every one
+ that went before him in dramatic <i>poetry</i>. The passages that might
+ worthily be quoted from Marlowe&rsquo;s writings for the sake of their poetry
+ are innumerable, notwithstanding that there are many others which occupy a
+ border land between poetry and bombast, and are such that it is to us
+ impossible to say to which class they rather belong. Of course it is easy
+ for a critic to gain the credit of common-sense at the same time that he
+ saves himself the trouble of doing what he too frequently shows himself
+ incapable of doing to any good purpose&mdash;we mean <i>thinking</i>&mdash;by
+ classing all such passages together as bombastical nonsense; but even in
+ the matter of poetry and bombast, a wise reader will recognize that
+ extremes so entirely meet, without being in the least identical, that they
+ are capable of a sort of chemico-literary admixture, if not of
+ combination. Goethe himself need not have been ashamed to have written one
+ or two of the scenes in Marlowe&rsquo;s &ldquo;Faust;&rdquo; not that we mean to imply that
+ they in the least resemble Goethe&rsquo;s handiwork. His verse is, for dramatic
+ purposes, far inferior to Shakspere&rsquo;s; but it was a great matter for
+ Shakspere that Marlowe preceded him, and helped to prepare to his hand the
+ tools and fashions he needed. The provision of blank verse for Shakspere&rsquo;s
+ use seems to us worthy of being called providential, even in a system in
+ which we cannot believe that there is any chance. For as the stage itself
+ is elevated a few feet above the ordinary level, because it is the scene
+ of a <i>representation</i>, just so the speech of the drama, dealing not
+ with unreal but with ideal persons, the fool being a worthy fool, and the
+ villain a worthy villain, needs to be elevated some tones above that of
+ ordinary life, which is generally flavoured with so much of the <i>commonplace</i>.
+ Now the commonplace has no place at all in the drama of Shakspere, which
+ fact at once elevates it above the tone of ordinary life. And so the mode
+ of the speech must be elevated as well; therefore from prose into blank
+ verse. If we go beyond this, we cease to be natural for the stage as well
+ as life; and the result is that kind of composition well enough known in
+ Shakspere&rsquo;s time, which he ridicules in the recitations of the player in
+ &ldquo;Hamlet,&rdquo; about <i>Priam</i> and <i>Hecuba</i>. We could show the very
+ passages of the play-writer Nash which Shakspere imitates in these. To use
+ another figure, Shakspere, in the same play, instructs the players &ldquo;to
+ hold, as &lsquo;twere, the mirror up to nature.&rdquo; Now every one must have felt
+ that somehow there is a difference between the appearance of any object or
+ group of objects immediately presented to the eye, and the appearance of
+ the same object or objects in a mirror. Nature herself is not the same in
+ the mirror held up to her. Everything changes sides in this
+ representation; and the room which is an ordinary, well-known, homely
+ room, gains something of the strange and poetic when regarded in the
+ mirror over the fire. Now for this representation, for this
+ mirror-reflection on the stage, blank verse is just the suitable glass to
+ receive the silvering of the genius-mind behind it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But if Shakspere had had to sit down and make his tools first, and then
+ quarry his stone and fell his timber for the building of his house,
+ instead of finding everything ready to his hand for dressing his stone
+ already hewn, for sawing and carving the timber already in logs and planks
+ beside him, no doubt his house would have been built; but can we with any
+ reason suppose that it would have proved such &ldquo;a lordly pleasure-house&rdquo;?
+ Not even Shakspere could do without his poor little brothers who preceded
+ him, and, like the goblins and gnomes of the drama, got everything out of
+ the bowels of the dark earth, ready for the master, whom it would have
+ been a shame to see working in the gloom and the dust instead of in the
+ open eye of the day. Nor is anything so helpful to the true development of
+ power as the possibility of free action for as much of the power as is
+ already operative. This room for free action was provided by blank verse.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Yet when Shakspere came first upon the scene of dramatic labour, he had to
+ serve his private apprenticeship, to which the apprenticeship of the age
+ in the drama, had led up. He had to act first of all. Driven to London and
+ the drama by an irresistible impulse, when the choice of some profession
+ was necessary to make him independent of his father, seeing he was
+ himself, though very young, a married man, the first form in which the
+ impulse to the drama would naturally show itself in him would be the
+ desire to act; for the outside relations would first operate. As to the
+ degree of merit he possessed as an actor we have but scanty means of
+ judging; for afterwards, in his own plays, he never took the best
+ characters, having written them for his friend Richard Burbage. Possibly
+ the dramatic impulse was sufficiently appeased by the writing of the play,
+ and he desired no further satisfaction from personal representation;
+ although the amount of study spent upon the higher department of the art
+ might have been more than sufficient to render him unrivalled as well in
+ the presentation of his own conceptions. But the dramatic spring, having
+ once broken the upper surface, would scoop out a deeper and deeper well
+ for itself to play in, and the actor would soon begin to work upon the
+ parts he had himself to study for presentation. It being found that he
+ greatly bettered his own parts, those of others would be submitted to him,
+ and at length whole plays committed to his revision, of which kind there
+ may be several in the collection of his works. If the feather-end of his
+ pen is just traceable in &ldquo;Titus Andronicus,&rdquo; the point of it is much more
+ evident, and to as good purpose as Beaumont or Fletcher could have used
+ his to, at the best, in &ldquo;Pericles, Prince of Tyre.&rdquo; Nor would it be long
+ before he would submit one of his own plays for approbation; and then the
+ whole of his dramatic career lies open before him, with every possible
+ advantage for perfecting the work, for the undertaking of which he was
+ better qualified by nature than probably any other man whosoever; for he
+ knew everything about acting, practically&mdash;about the play-house and
+ its capabilities, about stage necessities, about the personal endowments
+ and individual qualifications of each of the company&mdash;so that, when
+ he was writing a play, he could distribute the parts before they even
+ appeared upon paper, and write for each actor with the very living form of
+ the ideal person present &ldquo;in his mind&rsquo;s eye,&rdquo; and often to his bodily
+ sight; so that the actual came in aid of the ideal, as it always does if
+ the ideal be genuine, and the loftiest conceptions proved the truest to
+ visible nature.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ This close relation of Shakspere to the actual leads us to a general and
+ remarkable fact, which again will lead us back to Shakspere. All the great
+ writers of Queen Elizabeth&rsquo;s time were men of affairs; they were not
+ literary men merely, in the general acceptation of the word at present.
+ Hooker was a hard-working, sheep-keeping, cradle-rocking pastor of a
+ country parish. Bacon&rsquo;s legal duties were innumerable before he became
+ Lord Keeper and Lord Chancellor. Raleigh was soldier, sailor, adventurer,
+ courtier, politician, discoverer: indeed, it is to his imprisonment that
+ we are indebted for much the most ambitious of his literary undertakings,
+ &ldquo;The History of the World,&rdquo; a work which for simple majesty of subject and
+ style is hardly to be surpassed in prose. Sidney, at the age of
+ three-and-twenty, received the highest praise for the management of a
+ secret embassy to the Emperor of Germany; took the deepest and most active
+ interest in the political affairs of his country; would have sailed with
+ Sir Francis Drake for South American discovery; and might probably have
+ been king of poor Poland, if the queen had not been too selfish or wise to
+ spare him. The whole of his literary productions was the work of his spare
+ hours. Spenser himself, who was, except Shakspere, the most purely a
+ literary man of them all, was at one time Secretary to the Lord Deputy of
+ Ireland, and, later in life, Sheriff of Cork. Nor is the remark true only
+ of the writers of Elizabeth&rsquo;s period, or of the country of England.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It seems to us one of the greatest advantages that can befall a poet, to
+ be drawn out of his study, and still more out of the chamber of imagery in
+ his own thoughts, to behold and speculate upon the embodiment of Divine
+ thoughts and purposes in men and their affairs around him. Now Shakspere
+ had no public appointment, but he reaped all the advantage which such
+ could have given him, and more, from the perfection of his dramatic
+ position. It was not with making plays alone that he had to do; but,
+ himself an actor, himself in a great measure the owner of more than one
+ theatre, with a little realm far more difficult to rule than many a
+ kingdom&mdash;a company, namely, of actors&mdash;although possibly less
+ difficult from the fact that they were only men and boys; with the
+ pecuniary affairs of the management likewise under his supervision&mdash;he
+ must have found, in the relations and necessities of his own profession,
+ not merely enough of the actual to keep him real in his representations,
+ but almost sufficient opportunity for his one great study, that of
+ mankind, independently of social and friendly relations, which in his case
+ were of the widest and deepest.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But Shakspere had not business relations merely: he was a man of business.
+ There is a common blunder manifested, both in theory on the one side, and
+ in practice on the other, which the life of Shakspere sets full in the
+ light. The theory is, that genius is a sort of abnormal development of the
+ imagination, to the detriment and loss of the practical powers, and that a
+ genius is therefore a kind of incapable, incompetent being, as far as
+ worldly matters are concerned. The most complete refutation of this notion
+ lies in the fact that the greatest genius the world has known was a
+ successful man in common affairs. While his genius grew in strength,
+ fervour, and executive power, his worldly condition rose as well; he
+ became a man of importance in the eyes of his townspeople, by whom he
+ would not have been honoured if he had not made money; and he purchased
+ landed property in his native place with the results of his management of
+ his theatres.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The practical blunder lies in the notion cherished occasionally by young
+ people ambitious of literary distinction, that in the pursuit of such
+ things they must be content with the poverty to which the world dooms its
+ greatest men; accepting their very poverty as an additional proof of their
+ own genius. If this means that the poet is not to make money his object,
+ it means well: no man should. But if it means either that the world is
+ unkind, or that the poet is not to &ldquo;gather up the fragments, that nothing
+ be lost,&rdquo; it means ill. Shakspere did not make haste to be rich. He
+ neither blamed, courted, nor neglected the world: he was friendly with it.
+ He <i>could</i> not have pinched and scraped; but neither did he waste or
+ neglect his worldly substance, which is God&rsquo;s gift too. Many immense
+ fortunes have been made, not by absolute dishonesty, but in ways to which
+ a man of genius ought to be yet more ashamed than another to condescend;
+ but it does not therefore follow that if a man of genius will do honest
+ work he will not make a fair livelihood by it, which for all good results
+ of intellect and heart is better than a great fortune. But then Shakspere
+ began with doing what he could. He did not consent to starve until the
+ world should recognize his genius, or grumble against the blindness of the
+ nation in not seeing what it was impossible it should see before it was
+ fairly set forth. He began at once to supply something which the world
+ wanted; for it wants many an honest thing. He went on the stage and acted,
+ and so gained power to reveal the genius which he possessed; and the
+ world, in its possible measure, was not slow to recognize it. Many a young
+ fellow who has entered life with the one ambition of being a poet, has
+ failed because he did not perceive that it is better to be a man than to
+ be a poet, that it is his first duty to get an honest living by doing some
+ honest work that he can do, and for which there is a demand, although it
+ may not be the most pleasant employment. Time would have shown whether he
+ was meant to be a poet or not; and if he had been no poet he would have
+ been no beggar; and if he had turned out a poet, it would have been partly
+ in virtue of that experience of life and truth, gained in his case in the
+ struggle for bread, without which, gained somehow, a man may be a sweet
+ dreamer, but can be no strong maker, no poet. In a word, here is <i>the</i>
+ Englishman of genius, beginning life with nothing, and dying, not rich,
+ but easy and honoured; and this by doing what no one else could do,
+ writing dramas in which the outward grandeur or beauty is but an exponent
+ of the inward worth; hiding pearls for the wise even within the jewelled
+ play of the variegated bubbles of fancy, which he blew while he wrought,
+ for the innocent delight of his thoughtless brothers and sisters. Wherever
+ the rainbow of Shakspere&rsquo;s genius stands, there lies, indeed, at the foot
+ of its glorious arch, a golden key, which will open the secret doors of
+ truth, and admit the humble seeker into the presence of Wisdom, who,
+ having cried in the streets in vain, sits at home and waits for him who
+ will come to find her. And Shakspere had cakes and ale, although he was
+ virtuous.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But what do we know about the character of Shakspere? How can we tell the
+ inner life of a man who has uttered himself in dramas, in which of course
+ it is impossible that he should ever speak in his own person? No doubt he
+ may speak his own sentiments through the mouths of many of his persons;
+ but how are we to know in what cases he does so?&mdash;At least we may
+ assert, as a self-evident negative, that a passage treating of a wide
+ question put into the mouth of a person despised and rebuked by the best
+ characters in the play, is not likely to contain any cautiously formed and
+ cherished opinion of the dramatist. At first sight this may seem almost a
+ truism; but we have only to remind our readers that one of the passages
+ oftenest quoted with admiration, and indeed separately printed and
+ illuminated, is &ldquo;The Seven Ages of Man,&rdquo; a passage full of inhuman
+ contempt for humanity and unbelief in its destiny, in which not one of the
+ seven ages is allowed to pass over its poor sad stage without a sneer; and
+ that this passage is given by Shakspere to the <i>blasé</i> sensualist <i>Jaques</i>
+ in &ldquo;As You Like it,&rdquo; a man who, the good and wise <i>Duke</i> says, has
+ been as vile as it is possible for man to be, so vile that it would be an
+ additional sin in him to rebuke sin; a man who never was capable of seeing
+ what is good in any man, and hates men&rsquo;s vices <i>because</i> he hates
+ themselves, seeing in them only the reflex of his own disgust. Shakspere
+ knew better than to say that all the world is a stage, and all the men and
+ women merely players. He had been a player himself, but only on the stage:
+ <i>Jaques</i> had been a player where he ought to have been a true man.
+ The whole of his account of human life is contradicted and exposed at once
+ by the entrance, the very moment when he has finished his wicked
+ burlesque, of <i>Orlando</i>, the young master, carrying <i>Adam</i>, the
+ old servant, upon his back. The song that immediately follows, sings true:
+ &ldquo;Most friendship is feigning, most loving mere folly.&rdquo; But between the <i>all</i>
+ of <i>Jaques</i> and the <i>most</i> of the song, there is just the
+ difference between earth and hell.&mdash;Of course, both from a literary
+ and dramatic point of view, &ldquo;The Seven Ages&rdquo; is perfect.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now let us make one positive statement to balance the other: that wherever
+ we find, in the mouth of a noble character, not stock sentiments of stage
+ virtue, but appreciation of a truth which it needs deep thought and
+ experience united with love of truth, to discover or verify for one&rsquo;s
+ self, especially if the truth be of a sort which most men will fail not
+ merely to recognize as a truth, but to understand at all, because the
+ understanding of it depends on the foregoing spiritual perception&mdash;then
+ we think we may receive the passage as an expression of the inner soul of
+ the writer. He must have seen it before he could have said it; and to see
+ such a truth is to love it; or rather, love of truth in the general must
+ have preceded and enabled to the discovery of it. Such a passage is the
+ speech of the <i>Duke</i>, opening the second act of the play just
+ referred to, &ldquo;As You Like it.&rdquo; The lesson it contains is, that the
+ well-being of a man cannot be secured except he partakes of the ills of
+ life, &ldquo;the penalty of Adam.&rdquo; And it seems to us strange that the excellent
+ editors of the Cambridge edition, now in the course of publication&mdash;a
+ great boon to all students of Shakspere&mdash;should not have perceived
+ that the original reading, that of the folios, is the right one,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Here feel we <i>not</i> the penalty of Adam?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ which, with the point of interrogation supplied, furnishes the true
+ meaning of the whole passage; namely, that the penalty of Adam is just
+ what makes the &ldquo;wood more free from peril than the envious court,&rdquo;
+ teaching each &ldquo;not to think of himself more highly than he ought to
+ think.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But Shakspere, although everywhere felt, is nowhere seen in his plays. He
+ is too true an artist to show his own face from behind the play of life
+ with which he fills his stage. What we can find of him there we must find
+ by regarding the whole, and allowing the spiritual essence of the whole to
+ find its way to our brain, and thence to our heart. The student of
+ Shakspere becomes imbued with the idea of his character. It exhales from
+ his writings. And when we have found the main drift of any play&mdash;the
+ grand rounding of the whole&mdash;then by that we may interpret individual
+ passages. It is alone in their relation to the whole that we can do them
+ full justice, and in their relation to the whole that we discover the mind
+ of the master.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But we have another source of more direct enlightenment as to Shakspere
+ himself. We only say more <i>direct</i>, not more certain or extended
+ enlightenment. We have one collection of poems in which he speaks in his
+ own person and of himself. Of course we refer to his sonnets. Though these
+ occupy, with their presentation of himself, such a small relative space,
+ they yet admirably round and complete, to our eyes, the circle of his
+ individuality. In them and the plays the common saying&mdash;one of the
+ truest&mdash;that extremes meet, is verified. No man is complete in whom
+ there are no extremes, or in whom those extremes do not meet. Now the very
+ individuality of Shakspere, judged by his dramas alone, has been declared
+ nonexistent; while in the sonnets he manifests some of the deepest phases
+ of a healthy self-consciousness. We do not intend to enter into the still
+ unsettled question as to whether these sonnets were addressed to a man or
+ a woman. We have scarcely a doubt left on the question ourselves, as will
+ be seen from the argument we found on our conviction. We cannot say we
+ feel much interest in the other question, <i>If a man, what man?</i> A few
+ placed at the end, arranged as they have come down to us, are beyond doubt
+ addressed to a woman. But the difference in tone between these and the
+ others we think very remarkable. Possibly at the time they were written&mdash;most
+ of them early in his life, as it appears to us, although they were not
+ published till the year 1609, when he was forty-five years of age, Meres
+ referring to them in the year 1598, eleven years before, as known &ldquo;among
+ his private friends&rdquo;&mdash;he had not known such women as he knew
+ afterwards, and hence the true devotion of his soul is given to a friend
+ of his own sex. Gervinus, whose lectures on Shakspere, profound and lofty
+ to a degree unattempted by any other interpreter, we are glad to find have
+ been done into a suitable English translation, under the superintendence
+ of the author himself&mdash;Gervinus says somewhere in them that, as
+ Shakspere lived and wrote, his ideal of womanhood grew nobler and purer.
+ Certainly the woman to whom the last few of these sonnets are addressed
+ was neither noble nor pure. We think, in this matter at least, they record
+ one of his early experiences.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We shall briefly indicate what we find in these sonnets about the man
+ himself, and shall commence with what is least pleasing and of least
+ value.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We must confess, then, that, probably soon after he came first to London,
+ he, then a married man, had an intrigue with a married woman, of which
+ there are indications that he was afterwards deeply ashamed. One little
+ incident seems curiously traceable: that he had given her a set of tablets
+ which his friend had given him; and the sonnet in which he excuses himself
+ to his friend for having done so, seems to us the only piece of special
+ pleading, and therefore ungenuine expression, in the whole. This friend,
+ to whom the rest of the sonnets are addressed, made the acquaintance of
+ this woman, and both were false to Shakspere. Even Shakspere could not
+ keep the love of a worthless woman. So much the better for him; but it is
+ a sad story at best. Yet even in this environment of evil we see the
+ nobility of the man, and his real self. The sonnets in which he mourns his
+ friend&rsquo;s falsehood, forgives him, and even finds excuses for him, that he
+ may not lose his own love of him, are, to our minds, amongst the most
+ beautiful, as they are the most profound. Of these are the 33rd and 34th.
+ Nor does he stop here, but proceeds in the following, the 35th, to comfort
+ his friend in his grief for his offence, even accusing himself of offence
+ in having made more excuse for his fault than the fault needed! But to
+ leave this part of his history, which, as far as we know, stands alone,
+ and yet cannot with truth be passed by, any more than the story of the
+ crime of David, though in this case there is no comparison to be made
+ between the two further than the primary fact, let us look at the one
+ reality which, from a spiritual point of view, independently of the
+ literary beauties of these poems, causes them to stand all but alone in
+ literature. We mean what has been unavoidably touched upon already, the
+ devotion of his friendship. We have said this makes the poems stand <i>all
+ but alone</i>; for we ought to be better able to understand these poems of
+ Shakspere, from the fact that in our day has appeared the only other poem
+ which is like these, and which casts back a light upon them.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Yet turn thee to the doubtful shore,
+ Where thy first form was made a man:
+ I loved thee, spirit, and love; nor can
+ The soul of Shakspeare love thee more.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ So sings the Poet of our day, in the loftiest of his poems&mdash;&ldquo;In
+ Memoriam&rdquo;&mdash;addressing the spirit of his vanished friend. In the midst
+ of his song arises the thought of <i>the Poet</i> of all time, who loved
+ his friend too, and would have lost him in a way far worse than death, had
+ not his love been too strong even for that death, alone ghastly, which
+ threatened to cut the golden chain that bound them, and part them by the
+ gulf impassable. Tennyson&rsquo;s friend had never wronged him; and to the
+ divineness of Shakspere&rsquo;s love is added that of forgiveness. Such love as
+ this between man and man is rare, and therefore to the mind which is in
+ itself no way rare, incredible, because unintelligible. But though all the
+ commonest things are very divine, yet divine individuality is and will be
+ a rare thing at any given period on the earth. Faith, in its ideal sense,
+ will always be hard to find on the earth. But perhaps this kind of
+ affection between man and man may, as Coleridge indicates in his &ldquo;Table
+ Talk,&rdquo; have been more common in the reigns of Elizabeth and James than it
+ is now. There is a certain dread of the demonstrative in the present day,
+ which may, perhaps, be carried into regions where it is out of place, and
+ hinder the development of a devotion which must be real, and grand, and
+ divine, if one man such as Shakspere or Tennyson has ever felt it. If one
+ has felt it, humanity may claim it. And surely He who is <i>the</i> Son of
+ man has verified the claim. We believe there are indeed few of us who know
+ what <i>to love our neighbour as ourselves</i> means; but when we find a
+ man here and there in the course of centuries who does, we may take this
+ man as the prophet of coming good for his race, his prophecy being
+ himself.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But next to the interest of knowing that a man could love so well, comes
+ the association of this fact with his art. He who could look abroad upon
+ men, and understand them all&mdash;who stood, as it were, in the wide-open
+ gates of his palace, and admitted with welcome every one who came in sight&mdash;had
+ in the inner places of that palace one chamber in which he met his friend,
+ and in which his whole soul went forth to understand the soul of his
+ friend. The man to whom nothing in humanity was common or unclean; in whom
+ the most remarkable of his artistic morals is fair-play; who fills our
+ hearts with a saintly love for <i>Cordelia</i> and an admiration of <i>Sir
+ John Falstaff</i> the lost gentleman, mournful even in the height of our
+ laughter; who could make an <i>Autolycus</i> and a <i>Macbeth</i> both
+ human, and an <i>Ariel</i> and a <i>Puck</i> neither human&mdash;this is
+ the man who loved best. And we believe that this depth of capacity for
+ loving lay at the root of all his knowledge of men and women, and all his
+ dramatic pre-eminence. The heart is more intelligent than the intellect.
+ Well says the poet Matthew Raydon, who has hardly left anything behind him
+ but the lamentation over Sir Philip Sidney in which the lines occur,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;He that hath love and judgment too
+ Sees more than any other do.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Simply, we believe that this, not this only, but this more than any other
+ endowment, made Shakspere the artist he was, in providing him all the
+ material of humanity to work upon, and keeping him to the true spirit of
+ its use. Love looking forth upon strife, understood it all. Love is the
+ true revealer of secrets, because it makes one with the object regarded.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But,&rdquo; say some impatient readers, &ldquo;when shall we have done with
+ Shakspere? There is no end to this writing about him.&rdquo; It will be a bad
+ day for England when we have done with Shakspere; for that will imply,
+ along with the loss of him, that we are no longer capable of understanding
+ him. Should that time ever come, Heaven grant the generation which does
+ not understand him at least the grace to keep its pens off him, which will
+ by no means follow as a necessary consequence of the non-intelligence! But
+ the writing about Shakspere which has been hitherto so plentiful must do
+ good just in proportion as it directs attention to him and gives aid to
+ the understanding of him. And while the utterances of to-day pass away,
+ the children of to-morrow are born, and require a new utterance for their
+ fresh need from those who, having gone before, have already tasted life
+ and Shakspere, and can give some little help to further progress than
+ their own, by telling the following generation what they have found.
+ Suppose that this cry had been raised last century, after good Dr. Johnson
+ had ceased to produce to the eyes of men the facts about his own
+ incapacity which he presumed to be criticisms of Shakspere, where would
+ our aids be now to the understanding of the dramatist? Our own conviction
+ is, when we reflect with how much labour we have deepened our knowledge of
+ him, and thereby found in him <i>the best</i>&mdash;for the best lies not
+ on the surface for the careless reader&mdash;our own conviction is, that
+ not half has been done that ought to be done to help young people at least
+ to understand the master mind of their country. Few among them can ever
+ give the attention or work to it that we have given; but much may be done
+ with judicious aid. And a profound knowledge of their greatest writer
+ would do more than almost anything else to bind together as Englishmen, in
+ a true and unselfish way, the hearts of the coming generations; for his
+ works are our country in a convex magic mirror.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ When a man finds that every time he reads a book not only does some
+ obscurity melt away, but deeper depths, which he had not before seen, dawn
+ upon him, he is not likely to think that the time for ceasing to write
+ about the book has come. And certainly in Shakspere, as in all true
+ artistic work, as in nature herself, the depths are not to be revealed
+ utterly; while every new generation needs a new aid towards discovering
+ itself and its own thoughts in these forms of the past. And of all that
+ read about Shakspere there are few whom more than one or two utterances
+ have reached. The speech or the writing must go forth to find the soil for
+ the growth of its kernel of truth. We shall, therefore, with the full
+ consciousness that perhaps more has been already said and written about
+ Shakspere than about any other writer, yet venture to add to the mass by a
+ few general remarks.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And first we would remind our readers of the marvel of the combination in
+ Shakspere of such a high degree of two faculties, one of which is
+ generally altogether inferior to the other: the faculties of reception and
+ production. Rarely do we find that great receptive power, brought into
+ operation either by reading or by observation, is combined with
+ originality of thought. Some hungers are quite satisfied by taking in what
+ others have thought and felt and done. By the assimilation of this food
+ many minds grow and prosper; but other minds feed far more upon what rises
+ from their own depths; in the answers they are compelled to provide to the
+ questions that come unsought; in the theories they cannot help
+ constructing for the inclusion in one whole of the various facts around
+ them, which seem at first sight to strive with each other like the atoms
+ of a chaos; in the examination of those impulses of hidden origin which at
+ one time indicate a height of being far above the thinker&rsquo;s present
+ condition, at another a gulf of evil into which he may possibly fall. But
+ in Shakspere the two powers of beholding and originating meet like the
+ rejoining halves of a sphere. A man who thinks his own thoughts much, will
+ often walk through London streets and see nothing. In the man who observes
+ only, every passing object mirrors itself in its prominent peculiarities,
+ having a kind of harmony with all the rest, but arouses no magician from
+ the inner chamber to charm and chain its image to his purpose. In
+ Shakspere, on the contrary, every outer form of humanity and nature spoke
+ to that ever-moving, self-vindicating&mdash;we had almost said, and in a
+ sense it would be true, self-generating&mdash;humanity within him. The
+ sound of any action without him, struck in him just the chord which, in
+ motion in him, would have produced a similar action. When anything was
+ done, he felt as if he were doing it&mdash;perception and origination
+ conjoining in one consciousness.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But to this gift was united the gift of utterance, or representation. Many
+ a man both receives and generates who, somehow, cannot represent. Nothing
+ is more disappointing sometimes than our first experience of the artistic
+ attempts of a man who has roused our expectations by a social display of
+ familiarity with, and command over, the subjects of conversation. Have we
+ not sometimes found that when such a one sought to give vital or artistic
+ form to these thoughts, so that they might not be born and die in the same
+ moment upon his lips, but might <i>exist</i>, a poor, weak, faded <i>simulacrum</i>
+ alone was the result? Now Shakspere was a great talker, who enraptured the
+ listeners, and was himself so rapt in his speech that he could scarcely
+ come to a close; but when he was alone with his art, then and then only
+ did he rise to the height of his great argument, and all the talk was but
+ as the fallen mortar and stony chips lying about the walls of the great
+ temple of his drama.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But, along with all this wealth of artistic speech, an artistic virtue of
+ an opposite nature becomes remarkable: his reticence. How often might he
+ not say fine things, particularly poetic things, when he does not, because
+ it would not suit the character or the time! How many delicate points are
+ there not in his plays which we only discover after many readings, because
+ he will not put a single tone of success into the flow of natural
+ utterance, to draw our attention to the triumph of the author, and jar
+ with the all-important reality of his production! Wherever an author
+ obtrudes his own self-importance, an unreality is the consequence, of a
+ nature similar to that which we feel in the old moral plays, when
+ historical and allegorical personages, such as <i>Julius Caesar</i> and <i>Charity</i>,
+ for instance, are introduced at the same time on the same stage, acting in
+ the same story. Shakspere never points to any stroke of his own wit or
+ art. We may find it or not: there it is, and no matter if no one see it!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Much has been disputed about the degree of consciousness of his own art
+ possessed by Shakspere: whether he did it by a grand yet blind impulse, or
+ whether he knew what he wanted to do, and knowingly used the means to
+ arrive at that end. Now we cannot here enter upon the question; but we
+ would recommend any of our readers who are interested in it not to attempt
+ to make up their minds upon it before considering a passage in another of
+ his poems, which may throw some light on the subject for them. It is the
+ description of a painting, contained in &ldquo;The Rape of Lucrece,&rdquo; towards the
+ end of the poem. Its very minuteness involves the expression of
+ principles, and reveals that, in relation to an art not his own, he could
+ hold principles of execution, and indicate perfection of finish, which, to
+ say the least, must proceed from a general capacity for art, and therefore
+ might find an equally conscious operation in his own peculiar province of
+ it. For our own part, we think that his results are a perfect combination
+ of the results of consciousness and unconsciousness; consciousness where
+ the arrangements of the play, outside the region of inspiration, required
+ the care of the wakeful intellect; unconsciousness where the subject
+ itself bore him aloft on the wings of its own creative delight.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is another manifestation of his power which will astonish those who
+ consider it. It is this: that, while he was able to go down to the simple
+ and grand realities of human nature, which are all tragic; and while,
+ therefore, he must rejoice most in such contemplations of human nature as
+ find fit outlet in a &ldquo;Hamlet,&rdquo; a &ldquo;Lear,&rdquo; a &ldquo;Timon,&rdquo; or an &ldquo;Othello,&rdquo; the
+ tragedies of Doubt, Ingratitude, and Love, he can yet, when he chooses,
+ float on the very surface of human nature, as in &ldquo;Love&rsquo;s Labour&rsquo;s Lost,&rdquo;
+ &ldquo;The Merry Wives of Windsor,&rdquo; &ldquo;The Comedy of Errors,&rdquo; &ldquo;The Taming of the
+ Shrew;&rdquo; or he can descend half way as it were, and there remain suspended
+ in the characters and feelings of ordinary nice people, who, interesting
+ enough to meet in society, have neither received that development, nor are
+ placed in those circumstances, which admit of the highest and simplest
+ poetic treatment. In these he will bring out the ordinary noble or the
+ ordinary vicious. Of this nature are most of his comedies, in which he
+ gives an ideal representation of common social life, and steers perfectly
+ clear of what in such relations and surroundings would be <i>heroics</i>.
+ Look how steadily he keeps the noble-minded youth <i>Orlando</i> in this
+ middle region; and look how the best comes out at last in the wayward and
+ <i>recalcitrant</i> and <i>bizarre</i>, but honest and true natures of <i>Beatrice</i>
+ and <i>Benedick</i>; and this without any untruth to the nature of comedy,
+ although the circumstances border on the tragic. When he wants to give the
+ deeper affairs of the heart, he throws the whole at once out of the social
+ circle with its multiform restraints. As in &ldquo;Hamlet&rdquo; the stage on which
+ the whole is acted is really the heart of <i>Hamlet</i>, so he makes his
+ visible stage as it were, slope off into the misty infinite, with a grey,
+ starless heaven overhead, and Hades open beneath his feet. Hence young
+ people brought up in the country understand the tragedies far sooner than
+ they can comprehend the comedies. It needs acquaintance with society and
+ social ways to clear up the latter.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The remarks we have made on &ldquo;Hamlet&rdquo; by way of illustration, lead us to
+ point out how Shakspere prepares, in some of his plays, a stage suitable
+ for all the representation. In &ldquo;A Midsummer Night&rsquo;s Dream&rdquo; the place which
+ gives tone to the whole is a midnight wood in the first flush and youthful
+ delight of summer. In &ldquo;As You Like it&rdquo; it is a daylight wood in spring,
+ full of morning freshness, with a cold wind now and then blowing through
+ the half-clothed boughs. In &ldquo;The Tempest&rdquo; it is a solitary island, circled
+ by the mysterious sea-horizon, over which what may come who can tell?&mdash;a
+ place where the magician may work his will, and have all nature at the
+ beck of his superior knowledge.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The only writer who would have had a chance of rivalling Shakspere in his
+ own walk, if he had been born in the same period of English history, is
+ Chaucer. He has the same gift of individualizing the general, and
+ idealizing the portrait. But the best of the dramatic writers of
+ Shakspere&rsquo;s time, in their desire of dramatic individualization, forget
+ the modifying multiformity belonging to individual humanity. In their
+ anxiety to present a <i>character</i>, they take, as it were, a human
+ mould, label it with a certain peculiarity, and then fill in speeches and
+ forms according to the label. Thus the indications of character, of
+ peculiarity, so predominate, the whole is so much of one colour, that the
+ result resembles one of those allegorical personifications in which, as
+ much as possible, everything human is eliminated except what belongs to
+ the peculiarity, the personification. How different is it with Shakspere&rsquo;s
+ representations! He knows that no human being ever was like that. He makes
+ his most peculiar characters speak very much like other people; and it is
+ only over the whole that their peculiarities manifest themselves with
+ indubitable plainness. The one apparent exception is <i>Jaques</i>, in &ldquo;As
+ You Like it.&rdquo; But there we must remember that Shakspere is representing a
+ man who so chooses to represent himself. He is a man <i>in his humour</i>,
+ or his own peculiar and chosen affectation. <i>Jaques</i> is the writer of
+ his own part; for with him &ldquo;all the world&rsquo;s a stage, and all the men and
+ women,&rdquo; himself first, &ldquo;merely players.&rdquo; We have his own presentation of
+ himself, not, first of all, as he is, but as he chooses to be taken. Of
+ course his real self does come out in it, for no man can seem altogether
+ other than he is; and besides, the <i>Duke</i>, who sees quite through
+ him, rebukes him in the manner already referred to; but it is his
+ affectation that gives him the unnatural peculiarity of his modes and
+ speeches. He wishes them to be such.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is, then, for every one of Shakspere&rsquo;s characters the firm ground of
+ humanity, upon which the weeds, as well as the flowers, glorious or
+ fantastic, as the case may be, show themselves. His more heroic persons
+ are the most profoundly human. Nor are his villains unhuman, although
+ inhuman enough. Compared with Marlowe&rsquo;s Jew, <i>Shylock</i> is a terrible
+ <i>man</i> beside a dreary <i>monster</i>, and, as far as logic and the <i>lex
+ talionis</i> go, has the best of the argument. It is the strength of human
+ nature itself that makes crime strong. Wickedness could have no power of
+ itself: it lives by the perverted powers of good. And so great is
+ Shakspere&rsquo;s sympathy with <i>Shylock</i> even, in the hard and unjust doom
+ that overtakes him, that he dismisses him with some of the spare
+ sympathies of the more tender-hearted of his spectators. Nowhere is the
+ justice of genius more plain than in Shakspere&rsquo;s utter freedom from
+ party-spirit, even with regard to his own creations. Each character shall
+ set itself forth from its own point of view, and only in the choice and
+ scope of the whole shall the judgment of the poet be beheld. He never
+ allows his opinion to come out to the damaging of the individual&rsquo;s own
+ self-presentation. He knows well that for the worst something can be said,
+ and that a feeling of justice and his own right will be strong in the mind
+ of a man who is yet swayed by perfect selfishness. Therefore the false man
+ is not discoverable in his speech, not merely because the villain will
+ talk as like a true man as he may, but because seldom is the villainy
+ clear to the villain&rsquo;s own mind. It is impossible for us to determine
+ whether, in their fierce bandying of the lie, <i>Bolingbroke</i> or <i>Norfolk</i>
+ spoke the truth. Doubtless each believed the other to be the villain that
+ he called him. And Shakspere has no desire or need to act the historian in
+ the decision of that question. He leaves his reader in full sympathy with
+ the perplexity of <i>Richard</i>; as puzzled, in fact, as if he had been
+ present at the interrupted combat.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If every writer could write up to his own best, we should have far less to
+ marvel at in Shakspere. It is in great measure the wealth of Shakspere&rsquo;s
+ suggestions, giving him abundance of the best to choose from, that lifts
+ him so high above those who, having felt the inspiration of a good idea,
+ are forced to go on writing, constructing, carpentering, with dreary
+ handicraft, before the exhausted faculty has recovered sufficiently to
+ generate another. And then comes in the unerring choice of the best of
+ those suggestions. Yet if any one wishes to see what variety of the same
+ kind of thoughts he could produce, let him examine the treatment of the
+ same business in different plays; as, for instance, the way in which
+ instigation to a crime is managed in &ldquo;Macbeth,&rdquo; where <i>Macbeth</i>
+ tempts the two murderers to kill <i>Banquo</i>; in &ldquo;King John,&rdquo; when <i>the
+ King</i> tempts <i>Hubert</i> to kill <i>Arthur</i>; in &ldquo;The Tempest,&rdquo;
+ when <i>Antonio</i> tempts <i>Sebastian</i> to kill <i>Alonzo</i>; in &ldquo;As
+ You Like it,&rdquo; when <i>Oliver</i> instigates <i>Charles</i> to kill <i>Orlando</i>;
+ and in &ldquo;Hamlet,&rdquo; where <i>Claudius</i> urges <i>Laertes</i> to the murder
+ of <i>Hamlet</i>.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ He shows no anxiety about being original. When a man is full of his work
+ he forgets himself. In his desire to produce a good play he lays hold upon
+ any material that offers itself. He will even take a bad play and make a
+ good one of it. One of the most remarkable discoveries to the student of
+ Shakspere is the hide-bound poverty of some of the stories, which,
+ informed by his life-power; become forms of strength, richness, and grace.
+ He does what the <i>Spirit</i> in &ldquo;Comus&rdquo; says the music he heard might
+ do,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;create a soul
+ Under the ribs of death;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ and then death is straightway &ldquo;clothed upon.&rdquo; And nowhere is the refining
+ operation of his genius more evident than in the purification of these
+ stories. Characters and incidents which would have been honey and nuts to
+ Beaumont and Fletcher are, notwithstanding their dramatic recommendations,
+ entirely remodelled by him. The fair <i>Ophelia</i> is, in the old tale, a
+ common woman, and <i>Hamlet&rsquo;s</i> mistress; while the policy of the <i>Lady
+ of Belmont</i>, who in the old story occupies the place for which he
+ invented the lovely <i>Portia</i>, upon which policy the whole story
+ turns, is such that it is as unfit to set forth in our pages as it was
+ unfit for Shakspere&rsquo;s purposes of art. His noble art refuses to work upon
+ base matter. He sees at once the capabilities of a tale, but he will not
+ use it except he may do with it what he pleases.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If we might here offer some assistance to the young student who wants to
+ help himself, we would suggest that to follow, in a measure, Plutarch&rsquo;s
+ fashion of comparison, will be the most helpful guide to the understanding
+ of the poet. Let the reader take any two characters, and putting them side
+ by side, look first for differences, and then for resemblances between
+ them, with the causes of each; or let him make a wider attempt, and
+ setting two plays one over against the other, compare or contrast them,
+ and see what will be the result. Let him, for instance, take the two
+ characters <i>Hamlet</i> and <i>Brutus</i>, and compare their beginnings
+ and endings, the resemblances in their characters, the differences in
+ their conduct, the likeness and unlikeness of what was required of them,
+ the circumstances in which action was demanded of each, the helps or
+ hindrances each had to the working out of the problem of his life, the way
+ in which each encounters the supernatural, or any other question that may
+ suggest itself in reading either of the plays, ending off with the main
+ lesson taught in each; and he will be astonished to find, if he has not
+ already discovered it, what a rich mine of intellectual and spiritual
+ wealth is laid open to his delighted eyes. Perhaps not the least valuable
+ end to be so gained is, that the young Englishman, who wants to be
+ delivered from any temptation to think himself the centre around which the
+ universe revolves, will be aided in his endeavours after honourable
+ humility by looking up to the man who towers, like Saul, head and
+ shoulders above his brethren, and seeing that he is humble, may learn to
+ leave it to the pismire to be angry, to the earwig to be conceited, and to
+ the spider to insist on his own importance.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But to return to the main course of our observations. The dramas of
+ Shakspere are so natural, that this, the greatest praise that can be given
+ them, is the ground of one of the difficulties felt by the young student
+ in estimating them. The very simplicity of Shakspere&rsquo;s art seems to throw
+ him out of any known groove of judgment. When he hears one say, &ldquo;<i>Look
+ at this, and admire</i>,&rdquo; he feels inclined to rejoin, &ldquo;Why, he only says
+ in the simplest way what the thing must have been. It is as plain as
+ daylight.&rdquo; Yes, to the reader; and because Shakspere wrote it. But there
+ were a thousand wrong ways of doing it: Shakspere took the one right way.
+ It is he who has made it plain in art, whatever it was before in nature;
+ and most likely the very simplicity of it in nature was scarcely observed
+ before he saw it and represented it. And is it not the glory of art to
+ attain this simplicity? for simplicity is the end of all things&mdash;all
+ manners, all morals, all religion. To say that the thing could not have
+ been done otherwise, is just to say that you forget the art in beholding
+ its object, that you forget the mirror because you see nature reflected in
+ the mirror. Any one can see the moon in Lord Rosse&rsquo;s telescope; but who
+ made the reflector? And let the student try to express anything in prose
+ or in verse, in painting or in modelling, just as it is. No man knows till
+ he has made many attempts, how hard to reach is this simplicity of art.
+ And the greater the success, the fewer are the signs of the labour
+ expended. Simplicity is art&rsquo;s perfection.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But so natural are all his plays, and the great tragedies to which we
+ would now refer in particular, amongst the rest, that it may appear to
+ some, at first sight, that Shakspere could not have constructed them after
+ any moral plan, could have had no lesson of his own to teach in them,
+ seeing they bear no marks of individual intent, in that they depart
+ nowhere from, nature, the construction of the play itself going straight
+ on like a history. The directness of his plays springs in part from the
+ fact that it is humanity and not circumstance that Shakspere respects.
+ Circumstance he uses only for the setting forth of humanity; and for the
+ plot of circumstance, so much in favour with Ben Jonson, and others of his
+ contemporaries, he cares nothing. As to their looking too natural to have
+ any design in them, we are not of those who believe that it is unlike
+ nature to have a design and a result. If the proof of a high aim is to be
+ what the critics used to call <i>poetic justice</i>, a kind of justice
+ that one would gladly find more of in grocers&rsquo; and linen-drapers&rsquo; shops,
+ but can as well spare from a poem, then we must say that he has not always
+ a high end: the wicked man is not tortured, nor is the good man smothered
+ in bank-notes and rose-leaves. Even when he shows the outward ruin and
+ death that comes upon Macbeth at last, it is only as an unavoidable little
+ consequence, following in the wake of the mighty vengeance of nature, even
+ of God, that Macbeth cannot say <i>Amen</i>; that Macbeth can sleep no
+ more; that Macbeth is &ldquo;cabined cribbed, confined, bound in to saucy doubts
+ and fears;&rdquo; that his very brain is a charnel-house, whence arise the
+ ghosts of his own murders, till he envies the very dead the rest to which
+ his hand has sent them. That immediate and eternal vengeance upon crime,
+ and that inner reward of well-doing, never fail in nature or in Shakspere,
+ appear as such a matter of course that they hardly look like design either
+ in nature or in the mirror which he holds up to her. The secret is that,
+ in the ideal, habit and design are one.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Most authors seem anxious to round off and finish everything in full
+ sight. Most of Shakspere&rsquo;s tragedies compel our thoughts to follow their
+ <i>persons</i> across the bourn. They need, as Jean Paul says, a piece of
+ the next world painted in to complete the picture, And this is surely
+ nature: but it need not therefore be no design. What could be done with
+ Hamlet, but send him into a region where he has some chance of finding his
+ difficulties solved; where he will know that his reverence for God, which
+ was the sole stay left him in the flood of human worthlessness, has not
+ been in vain; that the skies are not &ldquo;a foul and pestilent congregation of
+ vapours;&rdquo; that there are noble women, though his mother was false and
+ Ophelia weak; and that there are noble men, although his uncle and Laertes
+ were villains and his old companions traitors? If Hamlet is not to die,
+ the whole of the play must perish under the accusation that the hero of it
+ is left at last with only a superadded misery, a fresh demand for action,
+ namely, to rule a worthless people, as they seem to him, when action has
+ for him become impossible; that he has to live on, forsaken even of death,
+ which will not come though the cup of misery is at the brim.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But a high end may be gained in this world, and the vision into the world
+ beyond so justified, as in King Lear. The passionate, impulsive,
+ unreasoning old king certainly must have given his wicked daughters
+ occasion enough of making the charges to which their avarice urged them.
+ He had learned very little by his life of kingship. He was but a boy with
+ grey hair. He had had no inner experiences. And so all the development of
+ manhood and age has to be crowded into the few remaining weeks of his
+ life. His own folly and blindness supply the occasion. And before the few
+ weeks are gone, he has passed through all the stages of a fever of
+ indignation and wrath, ending in a madness from which love redeems him; he
+ has learned that a king is nothing if the man is nothing; that a king
+ ought to care for those who cannot help themselves; that love has not its
+ origin or grounds in favours flowing from royal resource and munificence,
+ and yet that love is the one thing worth living for, which gained, it is
+ time to die. And now that he has the experience that life can give, has
+ become a child in simplicity of heart and judgment, he cannot lose his
+ daughter again; who, likewise, has learned the one thing she needed, as
+ far as her father was concerned, a little more excusing tenderness. In the
+ same play it cannot be by chance that at its commencement Gloucester
+ speaks with the utmost carelessness and <i>off-hand</i> wit about the
+ parentage of his natural son Edmund, but finds at last that this son is
+ his ruin.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Edgar, the true son, says to Edmund, after having righteously dealt him
+ his death-wound,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The gods are just, and of our pleasant vices
+ Make instruments to scourge us:
+ The dark and vicious place where thee he got
+ Cost him his eyes.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ To which the dying and convicted villain replies,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Thou hast spoken right; &lsquo;tis true:
+ The wheel is come full circle; I am here.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Could anything be put more plainly than the moral lesson in this?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It would be easy to produce examples of fine design from his comedies as
+ well; as for instance, from &ldquo;Much Ado about Nothing:&rdquo; the two who are made
+ to fall in love with each other, by being each severally assured of
+ possessing the love of the other, Beatrice and Benedick, are shown
+ beforehand to have a strong inclination towards each other, manifested in
+ their continual squabbling after a good-humoured fashion; but not all this
+ is sufficient to make them heartily in love, until they find out the
+ nobility of each other&rsquo;s character in their behaviour about the
+ calumniated Hero; and the author takes care they shall not be married
+ without a previous acquaintance with the trick that has been played upon
+ them. Indeed we think the remark, that Shakspere never leaves any of his
+ characters the same at the end of a play as he took them up at the
+ beginning, will be found to be true. They are better or worse, wiser or
+ more irretrievably foolish. The historical plays would illustrate the
+ remark as well as any.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But of all the terrible plays we are inclined to think &ldquo;Timon&rdquo; the most
+ terrible, and to doubt whether justice has been done to the finish and
+ completeness of it. At the same time we are inclined to think that it was
+ printed (first in the first folio, 1623, seven years after Shakspere&rsquo;s
+ death) from a copy, corrected by the author, but not <i>written fair</i>,
+ and containing consequent mistakes. The same account might belong to
+ others of the plays, but more evidently perhaps belongs to the &ldquo;Timon.&rdquo;
+ The idea of making the generous spendthrift, whose old idolaters had
+ forsaken him because the idol had no more to give, into the high-priest of
+ the Temple of Mammon, dispensing the gold which he hated and despised,
+ that it might be a curse to the race which he had learned to hate and
+ despise as well; and the way in which Shakspere discloses the depths of
+ Timon&rsquo;s wound, by bringing him into comparison with one who hates men by
+ profession and humour&mdash;are as powerful as anything to be found even
+ in Shakspere.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We are very willing to believe that &ldquo;Julius Caesar&rdquo; was one of his latest
+ plays; for certainly it is the play in which he has represented a hero in
+ the high and true sense. <i>Brutus</i> is this hero, of course; a hero
+ because he will do what he sees to be right, independently of personal
+ feeling or personal advantage. Nor does his attempt fail from any
+ overweening or blindness, in himself. Had he known that the various papers
+ thrown in his way, were the concoctions of <i>Cassius</i>, he would not
+ have made the mistake of supposing that the Romans longed for freedom, and
+ therefore would be ready to defend it. As it was, he attempted to liberate
+ a people which did not feel its slavery. He failed for others, but not for
+ himself; for his truth was such that everybody was true to him. Unlike
+ Jaques with his seven acts of the burlesque of human life, Brutus says at
+ the last,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Countrymen,
+ My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life,
+ I found no man but he was true to me.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Of course all this is in Plutarch. But it is easy to see with what relish
+ Shakspere takes it up, setting forth all the aids in himself and in others
+ which Brutus had to being a hero, and thus making the representation as
+ credible as possible.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We must heartily confess that no amount of genius alone will make a man a
+ good man; that genius only shows the right way&mdash;drives no man to walk
+ in it. But there is surely some moral scent in us to let us know whether a
+ man only cares for good from an artistic point of view, or whether he
+ admires and loves good. This admiration and love cannot be <i>prominently</i>
+ set forth by any dramatist true to his art; but it must come out over the
+ whole. His predilections must show themselves in the scope of his artistic
+ life, in the things and subjects he chooses, and the way in which he
+ represents them. Notwithstanding Uncle Toby and Maria, who will venture to
+ say that Sterne was noble or virtuous, when he looks over the whole that
+ he has written? But in Shakspere there is no suspicion of a cloven foot.
+ Everywhere he is on the side of virtue and of truth. Many small arguments,
+ with great cumulative force, might be adduced to this effect.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For ourselves we cannot easily believe that the calmness of his art could
+ be so unvarying except he exercised it with a good conscience; that he
+ could have kept looking out upon the world around him with the untroubled
+ regard necessary for seeing all things as they are, except there had been
+ peace in his house at home; that he could have known all men as he did,
+ and failed to know himself. We can understand the co-existence of any
+ degree of partial or excited genius with evil ways, but we cannot
+ understand the existence of such calm and universal genius, wrought out in
+ his works, except in association with all that is noblest in human nature.
+ Nor is it other than on the side of the argument for his rectitude that he
+ never forces rectitude upon the attention of others. The strong impression
+ left upon our minds is, that however Shakspere may have strayed in the
+ early portion of his life in London, he was not only an upright and noble
+ man for the main part, but a repentant man, and a man whose life was
+ influenced by the truths of Christianity.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Much is now said about a memorial to Shakspere. The best and only true
+ memorial is no doubt that described in Milton&rsquo;s poem on this very subject:
+ the living and ever-changing monument of human admiration, expressed in
+ the faces and forms of those absorbed in the reading of his works. But if
+ the external monument might be such as to foster the constant reproduction
+ of the inward monument of love and admiration, then, indeed, it might be
+ well to raise one; and with this object in view let us venture to propose
+ one mode which we think would favour the attainment of it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let a Gothic hall of the fourteenth century be built; such a hall as would
+ be more in the imagination of Shakspere than any of the architecture of
+ his own time. Let all the copies that can be procured of every early
+ edition of his works, singly or collectively, be stored in this hall. Let
+ a copy of every other edition ever printed be procured and deposited. Let
+ every book or treatise that can be found, good, bad, or indifferent,
+ written about Shakspere or any of his works, be likewise collected for the
+ Shakspere library. Let a special place be allotted to the shameless
+ corruptions of his plays that have been produced as improvements upon
+ them, some of which, to the disgrace of England, still partially occupy
+ the stage instead of what Shakspere wrote. Let one department contain
+ every work of whatever sort that tends to direct elucidation of his
+ meaning, chiefly those of the dramatic writers who preceded him and
+ closely followed him. Let the windows be filled with stained glass,
+ representing the popular sports of his own time and the times of his
+ English histories. Let a small museum be attached, containing all
+ procurable antiquities that are referred to in his plays, along with first
+ editions, if possible, of the best books that came out in his time, and
+ were probably read by him. Let the whole thus as much as possible
+ represent his time. Let a marble statue in the midst do the best that
+ English art can accomplish for the representation of the vanished man; and
+ let copies, if not the originals, of the several portraits be safely
+ shrined for the occasional beholding of the multitude. Let the perpetuity
+ of care necessary for this monument be secured by endowment; and let it be
+ for the use of the public, by means of a reading-room fitted for the
+ comfort of all who choose to avail themselves of these facilities for a
+ true acquaintance with our greatest artist. Let there likewise be a simple
+ and moderately-sized theatre attached, not for regular, but occasional
+ use; to be employed for the representation of Shakspere&rsquo;s plays <i>only</i>,
+ and allowed free of expense for amateur or other representations of them
+ for charitable purposes. But within a certain cycle of years&mdash;if,
+ indeed, it would be too much to expect that out of the London play-goers a
+ sufficient number would be found to justify the representation of all the
+ plays of Shakspere once in the season&mdash;let the whole of Shakspere&rsquo;s
+ plays be acted in the best manner possible to the managers for the time
+ being.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The very existence of such a theatre would be a noble protest of the
+ highest kind against the sort of play, chiefly translated and adapted from
+ the French, which infests our boards, the low tone of which, even where it
+ is not decidedly immoral, does more harm than any amount of the rough,
+ honest plain-spokenness of Shakspere, as judged by our more fastidious, if
+ not always purer manners. The representation of such plays forms the real
+ ground of objection to theatre-going. We believe that other objections,
+ which may be equally urged against large assemblies of any sort, are not
+ really grounded upon such an amount of objectionable fact as good people
+ often suppose. At all events it is not against the drama itself, but its
+ concomitants, its avoidable concomitants, that such objections are, or
+ ought to be, felt and directed. The dramatic impulse, as well as all other
+ impulses of our nature, are from the Maker.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ A monument like this would help to change a blind enthusiasm and a <i>dilettante</i>-talk
+ into knowledge, reverence, and study; and surely this would be the true
+ way to honour the memory of the man who appeals to posterity by no mighty
+ deeds of worldly prowess, but has left behind him food for heart, brain,
+ and conscience, on which the generations will feed till the end of time.
+ It would be the one true and natural mode of perpetuating his fame in
+ kind; helping him to do more of that for which he was born, and because of
+ which we humbly desire to do him honour, as the years flow farther away
+ from the time when, at the age of fifty-two, he left the world a richer
+ legacy of the results of intellectual labour than any other labourer in
+ literature has ever done. It would be to raise a monument to his mind more
+ than to his person.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But to honour Shakspere in the best way we must not gaze upon some grand
+ memorial of his fame, we must not talk largely of his wonderful doings, we
+ must not even behold the representation of his works on the stage,
+ invaluable aid as that is to the right understanding of what he has
+ written; but we must, by close, silent, patient study, enter into an
+ understanding with the spirit of the departed poet-sage, and thus let his
+ own words be the necromantic spell that raises the dead, and brings us
+ into communion with that man who knew what was in men more than any other
+ mere man ever did. Well was it for Shakspere that he was humble; else on
+ what a desolate pinnacle of companionless solitude must he have stood!
+ Where was he to find his peers? To most thoughtful minds it is a terrible
+ fancy to suppose that there were no greater human being than themselves.
+ From the terror of such a <i>truth</i> Shakspere&rsquo;s love for men preserved
+ him. He did not think about himself so much as he thought about them. Had
+ he been a self-student alone, or chiefly, could he ever have written those
+ dramas? We close with the repetition of this truth: that the love of our
+ kind is the one key to the knowledge of humanity and of ourselves. And
+ have we not sacred authority for concluding that he who loves his brother
+ is the more able and the more likely to love Him who made him and his
+ brother also, and then told them that love is the fulfilling of the law?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0005" id="link2H_4_0005">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ THE ART OF SHAKSPERE, AS REVEALED BY HIMSELF.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1863.]
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ Who taught you this?
+ I learn&rsquo;d it out of women&rsquo;s faces.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ <i>Winter&rsquo;s Tale</i>, Act ii. scene 1.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One occasionally hears the remark, that the commentators upon Shakspere
+ find far more in Shakspere than Shakspere ever intended to express. Taking
+ this assertion as it stands, it may be freely granted, not only of
+ Shakspere, but of every writer of genius. But if it be intended by it,
+ that nothing can <i>exist</i> in any work of art beyond what the writer
+ was conscious of while in the act of producing it, so much of its scope is
+ false.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ No artist can have such a claim to the high title of <i>creator</i>, as
+ that he invents for himself the forms, by means of which he produces his
+ new result; and all the forms of man and nature which he modifies and
+ combines to make a new region in his world of art, have their own original
+ life and meaning. The laws likewise of their various combinations are
+ natural laws, harmonious with each other. While, therefore, the artist
+ employs many or few of their original aspects for his immediate purpose,
+ he does not and cannot thereby deprive them of the many more which are
+ essential to their vitality, and the vitality likewise of his presentation
+ of them, although they form only the background from which his peculiar
+ use of them stands out. The objects presented must therefore fall, to the
+ eye of the observant reader, into many different combinations and
+ harmonies of operation and result, which are indubitably there, whether
+ the writer saw them or not. These latent combinations and relations will
+ be numerous and true, in proportion to the scope and the truth of the
+ representation; and the greater the number of meanings, harmonious with
+ each other, which any work of art presents, the greater claim it has to be
+ considered a work of genius. It must, therefore, be granted, and that
+ joyfully, that there may be meanings in Shakspere&rsquo;s writings which
+ Shakspere himself did not see, and to which therefore his art, as art,
+ does not point.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the probability, notwithstanding, must surely be allowed as well,
+ that, in great artists, the amount of conscious art will bear some
+ proportion to the amount of unconscious truth: the visible volcanic light
+ will bear a true relation to the hidden fire of the globe; so that it will
+ not seem likely that, in such a writer as Shakspere, we should find many
+ indications of present and operative <i>art</i>, of which he was himself
+ unaware. Some truths may be revealed through him, which he himself knew
+ only potentially; but it is not likely that marks of work, bearing upon
+ the results of the play, should be fortuitous, or that the work thus
+ indicated should be unconscious work. A stroke of the mallet may be more
+ effective than the sculptor had hoped; but it was intended. In the drama
+ it is easier to discover individual marks of the chisel, than in the
+ marble whence all signs of such are removed: in the drama the lines
+ themselves fall into the general finish, without necessary obliteration as
+ lines: Still, the reader cannot help being fearful, lest, not as regards
+ truth only, but as regards art as well, he be sometimes clothing the idol
+ of his intellect with the weavings of his fancy. My conviction is, that it
+ is the very consummateness of Shakspere&rsquo;s art, that exposes his work to
+ the doubt that springs from loving anxiety for his honour; the dramatist,
+ like the sculptor, avoiding every avoidable hint of the process, in order
+ to render the result a vital whole. But, fortunately, we are not left to
+ argue entirely from probabilities. He has himself given us a peep into his
+ studio&mdash;let me call it <i>workshop</i>, as more comprehensive.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It is not, of course, in the shape of <i>literary</i> criticism, that we
+ should expect to meet such a revelation; for to use art even consciously,
+ and to regard it as an object of contemplation, or to theorize about it,
+ are two very different mental operations. The productive and critical
+ faculties are rarely found in equal combination; and even where they are,
+ they cannot operate equally in regard to the same object. There is a
+ perfect satisfaction in producing, which does not demand a re-presentation
+ to the critical faculty. In other words, the criticism which a great
+ writer brings to bear upon his own work, is from within, regarding it upon
+ the hidden side, namely, in relation to his own idea; whereas criticism,
+ commonly understood, has reference to the side turned to the public gaze.
+ Neither could we expect one so prolific as Shakspere to find time for the
+ criticism of the works of other men, except in such moments of relaxation
+ as those in which the friends at the Mermaid Tavern sat silent beneath the
+ flow of his wisdom and humour, or made the street ring with the overflow
+ of their own enjoyment.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But if the artist proceed to speculate upon the nature or productions of
+ another art than his own, we may then expect the principles upon which he
+ operates in his own, to take outward and visible form&mdash;a form
+ modified by the difference of the art to which he now applies them. In one
+ of Shakspere&rsquo;s poems, we have the description of an imagined production of
+ a sister-art&mdash;that of Painting&mdash;a description so brilliant that
+ the light reflected from the poet-picture illumines the art of the Poet
+ himself, revealing the principles which he held with regard to
+ representative art generally, and suggesting many thoughts with regard to
+ detail and harmony, finish, pregnancy, and scope. This description is
+ found in &ldquo;The Rape of Lucrece.&rdquo; Apology will hardly be necessary for
+ making a long quotation, seeing that, besides the convenience it will
+ afford of easy reference to the ground of my argument, one of the greatest
+ helps which even the artist can give to us, is to isolate peculiar
+ beauties, and so compel us to perceive them.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Lucrece has sent a messenger to beg the immediate presence of her husband.
+ Awaiting his return, and worn out with weeping, she looks about for some
+ variation of her misery.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ 1.
+
+ At last she calls to mind where hangs a piece
+ Of skilful painting, made for Priam&rsquo;s Troy;
+ Before the which is drawn the power of Greece,
+ For Helen&rsquo;s rape the city to destroy,
+ Threatening cloud-kissing Ilion with annoy;
+ Which the conceited painter drew so proud,
+ As heaven, it seemed, to kiss the turrets, bowed.
+
+ 2.
+
+ A thousand lamentable objects there,
+ In scorn of Nature, Art gave lifeless life:
+ Many a dry drop seemed a weeping tear,
+ Shed for the slaughtered husband by the wife;
+ The red blood reeked, to show the painter&rsquo;s strife.
+ And dying eyes gleamed forth their ashy lights,
+ Like dying coals burnt out in tedious nights.
+
+ 3.
+
+ There might you see the labouring pioneer
+ Begrimed with sweat, and smeared all with dust;
+ And, from the towers of Troy there would appear
+ The very eyes of men through loopholes thrust,
+ Gazing upon the Greeks with little lust:
+ Such sweet observance in this work was had,
+ That one might see those far-off eyes look sad.
+
+ 4.
+
+ In great commanders, grace and majesty
+ You might behold, triumphing in their faces;
+ In youth, quick bearing and dexterity;
+ And here and there the painter interlaces
+ Pale cowards, marching on with trembling paces,
+ Which heartless peasants did so well resemble,
+ That one would swear he saw them quake and tremble.
+
+ 5.
+
+ In Ajax and Ulysses, O what art
+ Of physiognomy might one behold!
+ The face of either ciphered either&rsquo;s heart;
+ Their face their manners most expressly told:
+ In Ajax&rsquo; eyes blunt rage and rigour rolled;
+ But the mild glance that sly Ulysses lent
+ Showed deep regard, and smiling government.
+
+ 6.
+
+ There pleading might you see grave Nestor stand,
+ As &lsquo;twere encouraging the Greeks to fight;
+ Making such sober action with his hand,
+ That it beguiled attention, charmed the sight;
+ In speech, it seemed his beard, all silver-white,
+ Wagged up and down, and from his lips did fly
+ Thin winding breath, which purled up to the sky.
+
+ 7.
+
+ About him were a press of gaping faces,
+ Which seemed to swallow up his sound advice;
+ All jointly listening, but with several graces,
+ As if some mermaid did their ears entice;
+ Some high, some low, the painter was so nice.
+ The scalps of many, almost hid behind,
+ To jump up higher seemed, to mock the mind.
+
+ 8.
+
+ Here one man&rsquo;s hand leaned on another&rsquo;s head,
+ His nose being shadowed by his neighbour&rsquo;s ear;
+ Here one, being thronged, bears back, all bollen and red;
+ Another, smothered, seems to pelt and swear;
+ And in their rage such signs of rage they bear,
+ As, but for loss of Nestor&rsquo;s golden words,
+ It seemed they would debate with angry swords.
+
+ 9.
+
+ For much imaginary work was there;
+ Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind,
+ That for Achilles&rsquo; image stood his spear,
+ Griped in an armed hand; himself behind
+ Was left unseen, save to the eye of mind:
+ A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head,
+ Stood for the whole to be imagined.
+
+ 10.
+
+ And, from the walls of strong-besieged Troy,
+ When their brave hope, bold Hector, marched to field,
+ Stood many Trojan mothers, sharing joy
+ To see their youthful sons bright weapons wield,
+ And to their hope they such odd action yield;
+ That through their light joy seemed to appear,
+ Like bright things stained, a kind of heavy fear.
+
+ 11.
+
+ And from the strond of Dardan, where they fought,
+ To Simois&rsquo; reedy banks, the red blood ran;
+ Whose waves to imitate the battle sought,
+ With swelling ridges; and their ranks began
+ To break upon the galled shore, and then
+ Retire again, till, meeting greater ranks,
+ They join, and shoot their foam at Simois&rsquo; banks.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The oftener I read these verses, amongst the very earliest compositions of
+ Shakspere, I am the more impressed with the carefulness with which he
+ represents the <i>work</i> of the picture&mdash;&ldquo;shows the strife of the
+ painter.&rdquo; The most natural thought to follow in sequence is: How like his
+ own art!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The scope and variety of the whole picture, in which mass is effected by
+ the accumulation of individuality; in which, on the one hand, Troy stands
+ as the impersonation of the aim and object of the whole; and on the other,
+ the Simois flows in foaming rivalry of the strife of men,&mdash;the
+ pictorial form of that sympathy of nature with human effort and passion,
+ which he so often introduces in his plays,&mdash;is like nothing else so
+ much as one of the works of his own art. But to take a portion as a more
+ condensed representation of his art in combining all varieties into one
+ harmonious whole: his genius is like the oratory of Nestor as described by
+ its effects in the seventh and eighth stanzas. Every variety of attitude
+ and countenance and action is harmonized by the influence which is at once
+ the occasion of debate, and the charm which restrains by the fear of its
+ own loss: the eloquence and the listening form the one bond of the unruly
+ mass. So the dramatic genius that harmonizes his play, is visible only in
+ its effects; so ethereal in its own essence that it refuses to be
+ submitted to the analysis of the ruder intellect, it is like the words of
+ Nestor, for which in the picture there stands but &ldquo;thin winding breath
+ which purled up to the sky.&rdquo; Take, for an instance of this, the
+ reconciling power by which, in the mysterious midnight of the summer-wood,
+ he brings together in one harmony the graceful passions of childish elves,
+ and the fierce passions of men and women, with the ludicrous reflection of
+ those passions in the little convex mirror of the artisan&rsquo;s drama; while
+ the mischievous Puck revels in things that fall out preposterously, and
+ the Elf-Queen is in love with ass-headed Bottom, from the hollows of whose
+ long hairy ears&mdash;strange bouquet-holders&mdash;bloom and breathe the
+ musk-roses, the characteristic odour-founts of the play; and the
+ philosophy of the unbelieving Theseus, with the candour of Hippolyta,
+ lifts the whole into relation with the realities of human life. Or take,
+ as another instance, the pretended madman Edgar, the court-fool, and the
+ rugged old king going grandly mad, sheltered in one hut, and lapped in the
+ roar of a thunderstorm.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ My object, then, in respect to this poem, is to produce, from many
+ instances, a few examples of the metamorphosis of such excellences as he
+ describes in the picture, into the corresponding forms of the drama; in
+ the hope that it will not then be necessary to urge the probability that
+ the presence of those artistic virtues in his own practice, upon which he
+ expatiates in his representation of another man&rsquo;s art, were accompanied by
+ the corresponding consciousness&mdash;that, namely, of the artist as
+ differing from that of the critic, its objects being regarded from the
+ concave side of the hammered relief. If this probability be granted, I
+ would, from it, advance to a higher and far more important conclusion&mdash;how
+ unlikely it is that if the writer was conscious of such fitnesses, he
+ should be unconscious of those grand embodiments of truth, which are
+ indubitably present in his plays, whether he knew it or not. This portion
+ of my argument will be strengthened by an instance to show that Shakspere
+ was himself quite at home in the contemplation of such truths.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let me adduce, then, some of those corresponding embodiments in words
+ instead of in forms; in which colours yield to tones, lines to phrases. I
+ will begin with the lowest kind, in which the art has to do with matters
+ so small, that it is difficult to believe that <i>unconscious</i> art
+ could have any relation to them. They can hardly have proceeded directly
+ from the great inspiration of the whole. Their very minuteness is an
+ argument for their presence to the poet&rsquo;s consciousness; while belonging,
+ as they do, only to the <i>construction</i> of the play, no such
+ independent existence can be accorded to them, as to <i>truths</i>, which,
+ being in themselves realities, <i>are</i> there, whether Shakspere saw
+ them or not. If he did not intend them, the most that can be said for them
+ is, that such is the naturalness of Shakspere&rsquo;s representations, that
+ there is room in his plays, as in life, for those wonderful coincidences
+ which are reducible to no law.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Perhaps every one of the examples I adduce will be found open to dispute.
+ This is a kind in which direct proof can have no share; nor should I have
+ dared thus to combine them in argument, but for the ninth stanza of those
+ quoted above, to which I beg my readers to revert. Its <i>imaginary work</i>
+ means&mdash;work hinted at, and then left to the imagination of the
+ reader. Of course, in dramatic representation, such work must exist on a
+ great scale; but the minute particularization of the &ldquo;conceit deceitful&rdquo;
+ in the rest of the stanza, will surely justify us in thinking it possible
+ that Shakspere intended many, if not all, of the <i>little</i> fitnesses
+ which a careful reader discovers in his plays. That such are not oftener
+ discovered comes from this: that, like life itself, he so blends into
+ vital beauty, that there are no salient points. To use a homely simile: he
+ is not like the barn-door fowl, that always runs out cackling when she has
+ laid an egg; and often when she has not. In the tone of an ordinary drama,
+ you may know when something is coming; and the tone itself declares&mdash;<i>I
+ have done it</i>. But Shakspere will not spoil his art to show his art. It
+ is there, and does its part: that is enough. If you can discover it, good
+ and well; if not, pass on, and take what you can find. He can afford not
+ to be fathomed for every little pearl that lies at the bottom of his
+ ocean. If I succeed in showing that such art may exist where it is not
+ readily discovered, this may give some additional probability to its
+ existence in places where it is harder to isolate and define.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To produce a few instances, then:
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Much Ado about Nothing,&rdquo; seeing the very nature of the play is
+ expressed in its name, is it not likely that Shakspere named the two
+ constables, Dogberry (<i>a poisonous berry</i>) and Verjuice (<i>the juice
+ of crab-apples</i>); those names having absolutely nothing to do with the
+ stupid innocuousness of their characters, and so corresponding to their
+ way of turning things upside down, and saying the very opposite of what
+ they mean?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the same play we find Margaret objecting to her mistress&rsquo;s wearing a
+ certain rebato (<i>a large plaited ruff</i>), on the morning of her
+ wedding: may not this be intended to relate to the fact that Margaret had
+ dressed in her mistress&rsquo;s clothes the night before? She might have rumpled
+ or soiled it, and so feared discovery.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;King Henry IV.,&rdquo; Part I., we find, in the last scene, that the Prince
+ kills Hotspur. This is not recorded in history: the conqueror of Percy is
+ unknown. Had it been a fact, history would certainly have recorded it; and
+ the silence of history in regard to a deed of such mark, is equivalent to
+ its contradiction. But Shakspere requires, for his play&rsquo;s sake, to
+ identify the slayer of Hotspur with his rival the Prince. Yet Shakspere
+ will not contradict history, even in its silence. What is he to do? He
+ will account for history <i>not knowing</i> the fact.&mdash;Falstaff
+ claiming the honour, the Prince says to him:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;For my part, if a lie may do thee grace,
+ I&rsquo;ll gild it with the happiest terms I have;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ revealing thus the magnificence of his own character, in his readiness,
+ for the sake of his friend, to part with his chief renown. But the
+ Historic Muse could not believe that fat Jack Falstaff had killed Hotspur,
+ and therefore she would not record the claim.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the second part of the same play, act i. scene 2, we find Falstaff
+ toweringly indignant with Mr. Dombledon, the silk mercer, that he will
+ stand upon security with a gentleman for a short cloak and slops of satin.
+ In the first scene of the second act, the hostess mentions that Sir John
+ is going to dine with Master Smooth, the silkman. Foiled with Mr.
+ Dombledon, he has already made himself so agreeable to Master Smooth, that
+ he is &ldquo;indited to dinner&rdquo; with him. This is, by the bye, as to the action
+ of the play; but as to the character of Sir John, is it not
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind&rdquo;&mdash;<i>kinned&mdash;natural</i>?
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The <i>conceit deceitful</i> in the painting, is the imagination that
+ means more than its says. So the words of the speakers in the play, stand
+ for more than the speakers mean. They are <i>Shakspere&rsquo;s</i> in their
+ relation to his whole. To Achilles, his spear is but his spear: to the
+ painter and his company, the spear of Achilles stands for Achilles
+ himself.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Coleridge remarks upon <i>James Gurney</i>, in &ldquo;King John:&rdquo; &ldquo;How
+ individual and comical he is with the four words allowed to his dramatic
+ life!&rdquo; These words are those with which he answers the Bastard&rsquo;s request
+ to leave the room. He has been lingering with all the inquisitiveness and
+ privilege of an old servant; when Faulconbridge says: &ldquo;James Gurney, wilt
+ thou give us leave a while?&rdquo; with strained politeness. With marked
+ condescension to the request of the second son, whom he has known and
+ served from infancy, James Gurney replies: &ldquo;Good leave, good Philip;&rdquo;
+ giving occasion to Faulconbridge to show his ambition, and scorn of his
+ present standing, in the contempt with which he treats even the Christian
+ name he is so soon to exchange with his surname for <i>Sir Richard</i> and
+ <i>Plantagenet; Philip</i> being the name for a sparrow in those days,
+ when ladies made pets of them. Surely in these words of the serving-man,
+ we have an outcome of the same art by which
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head,
+ Stood for the whole to be imagined.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In the &ldquo;Winter&rsquo;s Tale,&rdquo; act iv. scene 3, Perdita, dressed with unwonted
+ gaiety at the festival of the sheep-shearing, is astonished at finding
+ herself talking in full strains of poetic verse. She says, half-ashamed:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Methinks I play as I have seen them do
+ In Whitsun pastorals: sure, this robe of mine
+ Does change my disposition!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ She does not mean this seriously. But the robe has more to do with it than
+ she thinks. Her passion for Florizel is the warmth that sets the springs
+ of her thoughts free, and they flow with the grace belonging to a
+ princess-nature; but it is the robe that opens the door of her speech,
+ and, by elevating her consciousness of herself, betrays her into what is
+ only natural to her, but seems to her, on reflection, inconsistent with
+ her low birth and poor education. This instance, however, involves far
+ higher elements than any of the examples I have given before, and
+ naturally leads to a much more important class of illustrations.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Macbeth,&rdquo; act ii. scene 4, why is the old man, who has nothing to do
+ with the conduct of the play, introduced?&mdash;That, in conversation with
+ Rosse, he may, as an old man, bear testimony to the exceptionally terrific
+ nature of that storm, which, we find&mdash;from the words of Banquo:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;There&rsquo;s husbandry in heaven:
+ Their candles are all out,&rdquo;&mdash;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ had begun to gather, before supper was over in the castle. This storm is
+ the sympathetic horror of Nature at the breaking open of the Lord&rsquo;s
+ anointed temple&mdash;horror in which the animal creation partakes, for
+ the horses of Duncan, &ldquo;the minions of their race,&rdquo; and therefore the most
+ sensitive of their sensitive race, tear each other to pieces in the
+ wildness of their horror. Consider along with this a foregoing portion of
+ the second scene in the same act. Macbeth, having joined his wife after
+ the murder, says:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Who lies i&rsquo; the second chamber?
+
+ &ldquo;<i>Lady M.</i> Donalbain.
+</pre>
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve"> </pre>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;There are two lodged together.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ These two, Macbeth says, woke each other&mdash;the one laughing, the other
+ crying <i>murder</i>. Then they said their prayers and went to sleep
+ again.&mdash;I used to think that the natural companion of Donalbain would
+ be Malcolm, his brother; and that the two brothers woke in horror from the
+ proximity of their father&rsquo;s murderer who was just passing the door. A
+ friend objected to this, that, had they been together, Malcolm, being the
+ elder, would have been mentioned rather than Donalbain. Accept this
+ objection, and we find a yet more delicate significance: the <i>presence</i>
+ operated differently on the two, one bursting out in a laugh, the other
+ crying <i>murder</i>; but both were in terror when they awoke, and dared
+ not sleep till they had said their prayers. His sons, his horses, the
+ elements themselves, are shaken by one unconscious sympathy with the
+ murdered king.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Associate with this the end of the third scene of the fourth act of
+ &ldquo;Julius Caesar;&rdquo; where we find that the attendants of Brutus all cry out
+ in their sleep, as the ghost of Caesar leaves their master&rsquo;s tent. This
+ outcry is not given in Plutarch.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To return to &ldquo;Macbeth:&rdquo; Why is the doctor of medicine introduced in the
+ scene at the English court? He has nothing to do with the progress of the
+ play itself, any more than the old man already alluded to.&mdash;He is
+ introduced for a precisely similar reason.&mdash;As a doctor, he is the
+ best testimony that could be adduced to the fact, that the English King
+ Edward the Confessor, is a fountain of health to his people, gifted for
+ his goodness with the sacred privilege of curing <i>The King&rsquo;s Evil</i>,
+ by the touch of his holy hands. The English King himself is thus
+ introduced, for the sake of contrast with the Scotch King, who is a raging
+ bear amongst his subjects.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the &ldquo;Winter&rsquo;s Tale,&rdquo; to which he gives the name because of the
+ altogether extraordinary character of the occurrences (referring to it in
+ the play itself, in the words: &ldquo;<i>a sad tale&rsquo;s best for winter: I have
+ one of sprites and goblins</i>&rdquo;) Antigonus has a remarkable dream or
+ vision, in which Hermione appears to him, and commands the exposure of her
+ child in a place to all appearance the most unsuitable and dangerous.
+ Convinced of the reality of the vision, Antigonus obeys; and the whole
+ marvellous result depends upon this obedience. Therefore the vision must
+ be intended for a genuine one. But how could it be such, if Hermione was
+ not dead, as, from her appearance to him, Antigonus firmly believed she
+ was? I should feel this to be an objection to the art of the play, but for
+ the following answer:&mdash;At the time she appeared to him, she was still
+ lying in that deathlike swoon, into which she fell when the news of the
+ loss of her son reached her as she stood before the judgment-seat of her
+ husband, at a time when she ought not to have been out of her chamber.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Note likewise, in the first scene of the second act of the same play, the
+ changefulness of Hermione&rsquo;s mood with regard to her boy, as indicative of
+ her condition at the time. If we do not regard this fact, we shall think
+ the words introduced only for the sake of filling up the business of the
+ play.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Twelfth Night,&rdquo; both ladies make the first advances in love. Is it not
+ worthy of notice that one of them has lost her brother, and that the other
+ believes she has lost hers? In this respect, they may be placed with
+ Phoebe, in &ldquo;As You Like It,&rdquo; who, having suddenly lost her love by the
+ discovery that its object was a woman, immediately and heartily accepts
+ the devotion of her rejected lover, Silvius. Along with these may be
+ classed Romeo, who, rejected and, as he believes, inconsolable, falls in
+ love with Juliet the moment he sees her. That his love for Rosaline,
+ however, was but a kind of <i>calf-love</i> compared with his love for
+ Juliet, may be found indicated in the differing tones of his speech under
+ the differing conditions. Compare what he says in his conversation with
+ Benvolio, in the first scene of the first act, with any of his many
+ speeches afterwards, and, while <i>conceit</i> will be found prominent
+ enough in both, the one will be found to be ruled by the fancy, the other
+ by the imagination.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In this same play, there is another similar point which I should like to
+ notice. In Arthur Brook&rsquo;s story, from which Shakspere took his, there is
+ no mention of any communication from Lady Capulet to Juliet of their
+ intention of marrying her to Count Paris. Why does Shakspere insert this?&mdash;to
+ explain her falling in love with Romeo so suddenly. Her mother has set her
+ mind moving in that direction. She has never seen Paris. She is looking
+ about her, wondering which may be he, and whether she shall be able to
+ like him, when she meets the love-filled eyes of Romeo fixed upon her, and
+ is at once overcome. What a significant speech is that given to Paulina in
+ the &ldquo;Winter&rsquo;s Tale,&rdquo; act v. scene 1: &ldquo;How? Not women?&rdquo; Paulina is a
+ thorough partisan, siding with women against men, and strengthened in this
+ by the treatment her mistress has received from her husband. One has just
+ said to her, that, if Perdita would begin a sect, she might &ldquo;make
+ proselytes of who she bid but follow.&rdquo; &ldquo;How? Not women?&rdquo; Paulina rejoins.
+ Having received assurance that &ldquo;women will love her,&rdquo; she has no more to
+ say.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I had the following explanation of a line in &ldquo;Twelfth Night&rdquo; from a
+ stranger I met in an old book-shop:&mdash;Malvolio, having built his
+ castle in the air, proceeds to inhabit it. Describing his own behaviour in
+ a supposed case, he says (act ii. scene 5): &ldquo;I frown the while; and
+ perchance, wind up my watch, or play with my some rich jewel&rdquo;&mdash;A dash
+ ought to come after <i>my</i>. Malvolio was about to say <i>chain</i>; but
+ remembering that his chain was the badge of his office of steward, and
+ therefore of his servitude, he alters the word to &ldquo;<i>some rich jewel</i>&rdquo;
+ uttered with pretended carelessness.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Hamlet,&rdquo; act iii. scene 1, did not Shakspere intend the passionate
+ soliloquy of Ophelia&mdash;a soliloquy which no maiden knowing that she
+ was overheard would have uttered,&mdash;coupled with the words of her
+ father:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;How now, Ophelia?
+ You need not tell us what lord Hamlet said,
+ We heard it all;&rdquo;&mdash;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ to indicate that, weak as Ophelia was, she was not false enough to be
+ accomplice in any plot for betraying Hamlet to her father and the King?
+ They had remained behind the arras, and had not gone out as she must have
+ supposed.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Next, let me request my reader to refer once more to the poem; and having
+ considered the physiognomy of Ajax and Ulysses, as described in the fifth
+ stanza, to turn then to the play of &ldquo;Troilus and Cressida,&rdquo; and there
+ contemplate that description as metamorphosed into the higher form of
+ revelation in speech. Then, if he will associate the general principles in
+ that stanza with the third, especially the last two lines, I will apply
+ this to the character of Lady Macbeth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Of course, Shakspere does not mean that one regarding that portion of the
+ picture alone, could see the eyes looking sad; but that the <i>sweet
+ observance</i> of the whole so roused the imagination that it supplied
+ what distance had concealed, keeping the far-off likewise in sweet
+ observance with the whole: the rest pointed that way.&mdash;In a manner
+ something like this are we conducted to a right understanding of the
+ character of Lady Macbeth. First put together these her utterances:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;You do unbend your noble strength, to think
+ So brainsickly of things.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;Get some water,
+ And wash this filthy witness from your hands.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;The sleeping and the dead
+ Are but as pictures.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;A little water clears us of this deed.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;When all&rsquo;s done,
+ You look but on a stool.&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;You lack the season of all natures, sleep.&rdquo;&mdash;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Had these passages stood in the play unmodified by others, we might have
+ judged from them that Shakspere intended to represent Lady Macbeth as an
+ utter materialist, believing in nothing beyond the immediate
+ communications of the senses. But when we find them associated with such
+ passages as these&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Memory, the warder of the brain,
+ Shall be a fume, and the receipt of reason
+ A limbeck only;&rdquo;
+
+ &ldquo;Had he not resembled
+ My father as he slept, I had done&rsquo;t;
+
+ &ldquo;These deeds must not be thought
+ After these ways; so, it will make us mad;&rdquo;&mdash;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ then we find that our former theory will not do, for here are deeper and
+ broader foundations to build upon. We discover that Lady Macbeth was an
+ unbeliever <i>morally</i>, and so found it necessary to keep down all
+ imagination, which is the upheaving of that inward world whose very being
+ she would have annihilated. Yet out of this world arose at last the
+ phantom of her slain self, and possessing her sleeping frame, sent it out
+ to wander in the night, and rub its distressed and blood-stained hands in
+ vain. For, as in this same &ldquo;Rape of Lucrece,&rdquo;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;the soul&rsquo;s fair temple is defaced;
+ To whose weak ruins muster troops of cares,
+ To ask the spotted princess how she fares.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But when so many lines of delineation meet, and run into, and correct one
+ another, assuming such a natural and vital form, that there is no <i>making
+ of a point</i> anywhere; and the woman is shown after no theory, but
+ according to the natural laws of human declension, we feel that the only
+ way to account for the perfection of the representation is to say that,
+ given a shadow, Shakspere had the power to place himself so, that that
+ shadow became his own&mdash;was the correct representation as shadow, of
+ his form coming between it and the sunlight. And this is the highest
+ dramatic gift that a man can possess. But we feel at the same time, that
+ this is, in the main, not so much art as inspiration. There would be, in
+ all probability, a great mingling of conscious art with the inspiration;
+ but the lines of the former being lost in the general glow of the latter,
+ we may be left where we were as to any certainty about the artistic
+ consciousness of Shakspere. I will now therefore attempt to give a few
+ plainer instances of such <i>sweet observance</i> in his own work as he
+ would have admired in a painting.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ First, then, I would request my reader to think how comparatively seldom
+ Shakspere uses poetry in his plays. The whole play is a poem in the
+ highest sense; but truth forbids him to make it the rule for his
+ characters to speak poetically. Their speech is poetic in relation to the
+ whole and the end, not in relation to the speaker, or in the immediate
+ utterance. And even although their speech is immediately poetic, in this
+ sense, that every character is idealized; yet it is idealized <i>after its
+ kind</i>; and poetry certainly would not be the ideal speech of most of
+ the characters. This granted, let us look at the exceptions: we shall find
+ that such passages not only glow with poetic loveliness and fervour, but
+ are very jewels of <i>sweet observance</i>, whose setting allows them
+ their force as lawful, and their prominence as natural. I will mention a
+ few of such.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Julius Caesar,&rdquo; act i. scene 3, we are inclined to think the way <i>Casca</i>
+ speaks, quite inconsistent with the &ldquo;sour fashion&rdquo; which <i>Cassius</i>
+ very justly attributes to him; till we remember that he is speaking in the
+ midst of an almost supernatural thunder-storm: the hidden electricity of
+ the man&rsquo;s nature comes out in poetic forms and words, in response to the
+ wild outburst of the overcharged heavens and earth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Shakspere invariably makes the dying speak poetically, and generally
+ prophetically, recognizing the identity of the poetic and prophetic moods,
+ in their highest development, and the justice that gives them the same
+ name. Even <i>Sir John</i>, poor ruined gentleman, <i>babbles of green
+ fields</i>. Every one knows that the passage is disputed: I believe that
+ if this be not the restoration of the original reading, Shakspere himself
+ would justify it, and wish that he had so written it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <i>Romeo</i> and <i>Juliet</i> talk poetry as a matter of course.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;King John,&rdquo; act v. scenes 4 and 5, see how differently the dying <i>Melun</i>
+ and the living and victorious <i>Lewis</i> regard the same sunset:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ <i>Melun</i>.
+
+ . . . . . this night, whose black contagious breath
+ Already smokes about the burning crest
+ Of the old, feeble, and day-wearied sun.
+
+ <i>Lewis</i>.
+
+ The sun in heaven, methought, was loath to set;
+ But stayed, and made the western welkin blush,
+ When the English measured backward their own ground.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The exquisite duet between <i>Lorenzo</i> and <i>Jessica</i>, in the
+ opening of the fifth act of &ldquo;The Merchant of Venice,&rdquo; finds for its
+ subject the circumstances that produce the mood&mdash;the lovely night and
+ the crescent moon&mdash;which first make them talk poetry, then call for
+ music, and next speculate upon its nature.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us turn now to some instances of sweet observance in other kinds.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is observance, more true than sweet, in the character of <i>Jacques</i>,
+ in &ldquo;As You Like It:&rdquo; the fault-finder in age was the fault-doer in youth
+ and manhood. <i>Jacques</i> patronizing the fool, is one of the rarest
+ shows of self-ignorance.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the same play, when <i>Rosalind</i> hears that <i>Orlando</i> is in the
+ wood, she cries out, &ldquo;Alas the day! what shall I do with my doublet and
+ hose?&rdquo; And when <i>Orlando</i> asks her, &ldquo;Where dwell you, pretty youth?&rdquo;
+ she answers, tripping in her rôle, &ldquo;Here in the skirts of the forest, like
+ fringe upon a petticoat.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the second part of &ldquo;King Henry IV.,&rdquo; act iv. scene 3, <i>Falstaff</i>
+ says of <i>Prince John</i>: &ldquo;Good faith, this same young sober-blooded boy
+ doth not love me; nor a man cannot make him laugh;&mdash;but that&rsquo;s no
+ marvel: he drinks no wine.&rdquo; This is the <i>Prince John</i> who betrays the
+ insurgents afterwards by the falsest of quibbles, and gains his revenge
+ through their good faith.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;King Henry IV,&rdquo; act i. scene 2, <i>Poins</i> does not say <i>Falstaff</i>
+ is a coward like the other two; but only&mdash;&ldquo;If he fight longer than he
+ sees reason, I&rsquo;ll forswear arms.&rdquo; Associate this with <i>Falstaff&rsquo;s</i>
+ soliloquy about <i>honour</i> in the same play, act v. scene 1, and the
+ true character of his courage or cowardice&mdash;for it may bear either
+ name&mdash;comes out.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Is there not conscious art in representing the hospitable face of the
+ castle of <i>Macbeth</i>, bearing on it a homely welcome in the multitude
+ of the nests of <i>the temple-haunting martlet</i> (Psalm lxxxiv. 3), just
+ as <i>Lady Macbeth</i>, the fiend-soul of the house, steps from the door,
+ like the speech of the building, with her falsely smiled welcome? Is there
+ not <i>observance</i> in it?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the production of such instances might be endless, as the work of
+ Shakspere is infinite. I confine myself to two more, taken from &ldquo;The
+ Merchant of Venice.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Shakspere requires a character capable of the magnificent devotion of
+ friendship which the old story attributes to <i>Antonio</i>. He therefore
+ introduces us to a man sober even to sadness, thoughtful even to
+ melancholy. The first words of the play unveil this characteristic. He
+ holds &ldquo;the world but as the world,&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;A stage where every man must play a part,
+ And mine a sad one.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The cause of this sadness we are left to conjecture. <i>Antonio</i>
+ himself professes not to know. But such a disposition, even if it be not
+ occasioned by any definite event or object, will generally associate
+ itself with one; and when <i>Antonio</i> is accused of being in love, he
+ repels the accusation with only a sad &ldquo;Fie! fie!&rdquo; This, and his whole
+ character, seem to me to point to an old but ever cherished grief.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Into the original story upon which this play is founded, Shakspere has,
+ among other variations, introduced the story of <i>Jessica</i> and <i>Lorenzo</i>,
+ apparently altogether of his own invention. What was his object in doing
+ so? Surely there were characters and interests enough already!&mdash;It
+ seems to me that Shakspere doubted whether the Jew would have actually
+ proceeded to carry out his fell design against <i>Antonio</i>, upon the
+ original ground of his hatred, without the further incitement to revenge
+ afforded by another passion, second only to his love of gold&mdash;his
+ affection for his daughter; for in the Jew having reference to his own
+ property, it had risen to a passion. Shakspere therefore invents her, that
+ he may send a dog of a Christian to steal her, and, yet worse, to tempt
+ her to steal her father&rsquo;s stones and ducats. I suspect Shakspere sends the
+ old villain off the stage at the last with more of the pity of the
+ audience than any of the other dramatists of the time would have ventured
+ to rouse, had they been capable of doing so. I suspect he is the only
+ human Jew of the English drama up to that time.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I have now arrived at the last and most important stage of my argument. It
+ is this: If Shakspere was so well aware of the artistic relations of the
+ parts of his drama, is it likely that the grand meanings involved in the
+ whole were unperceived by him, and conveyed to us without any intention on
+ his part&mdash;had their origin only in the fact that he dealt with human
+ nature so truly, that his representations must involve whatever lessons
+ human life itself involves?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Is there no intention, for instance, in placing <i>Prospero</i>, who
+ forsook the duties of his dukedom for the study of magic, in a desert
+ island, with just three subjects; one, a monster below humanity; the
+ second, a creature etherealized beyond it; and the third a complete
+ embodiment of human perfection? Is it not that he may learn how to rule,
+ and, having learned, return, by the aid of his magic wisely directed, to
+ the home and duties from which exclusive devotion to that magic had driven
+ him?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In &ldquo;Julius Caesar,&rdquo; the death of <i>Brutus</i>, while following as the
+ consequence of his murder of <i>Caesar</i>, is yet as much distinguished
+ in character from that death, as the character of <i>Brutus</i> is
+ different from that of <i>Caesar</i>. <i>Caesar&rsquo;s</i> last words were <i>Et
+ tu Brute? Brutus</i>, when resolved to lay violent hands on himself, takes
+ leave of his friends with these words:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Countrymen,
+ My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life,
+ I found no man, but he was true to me.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Here Shakspere did not invent. He found both speeches in Plutarch. But how
+ unerring his choice!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Is the final catastrophe in &ldquo;Hamlet&rdquo; such, because Shakspere could do no
+ better?&mdash;It is: he could do no better than the best. Where but in the
+ regions beyond could such questionings as <i>Hamlet&rsquo;s</i> be put to rest?
+ It would have been a fine thing indeed for the most nobly perplexed of
+ thinkers to be left&mdash;his love in the grave; the memory of his father
+ a torment, of his mother a blot; with innocent blood on his innocent
+ hands, and but half understood by his best friend&mdash;to ascend in
+ desolate dreariness the contemptible height of the degraded throne, and
+ shine the first in a drunken court!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Before bringing forward my last instance, I will direct the attention of
+ my readers to a passage, in another play, in which the lesson of the play
+ I am about to speak of, is <i>directly</i> taught: the first speech in the
+ second act of &ldquo;As You Like It,&rdquo; might be made a text for the exposition of
+ the whole play of &ldquo;King Lear.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The banished duke is seeking to bring his courtiers to regard their exile
+ as a part of their moral training. I am aware that I point the passage
+ differently, while I revert to the old text.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Are not these woods
+ More free from peril than the envious court?
+ Here feel we not the penalty of Adam&mdash;
+ The season&rsquo;s difference, as the icy fang,
+ And churlish chiding of the winter&rsquo;s wind?
+ Which, when it bites and blows upon my body,
+ Even till I shrink with cold, I smile and say&mdash;
+ This is no flattery; these are counsellors
+ That feelingly persuade me what I am.
+ Sweet are the uses of adversity.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The line <i>Here feel we not the penalty of Adam?</i> has given rise to
+ much perplexity. The expounders of Shakspere do not believe he can mean
+ that the uses of adversity are really sweet. But the duke sees that <i>the
+ penalty</i> of Adam is what makes the <i>woods more free from peril than
+ the envious court;</i> that this penalty is in fact the best blessing, for
+ it <i>feelingly persuades</i> man <i>what</i> he is; and to know what we
+ are, to have no false judgments of ourselves, he considers so sweet, that
+ to be thus taught, the <i>churlish chiding of the winter&rsquo;s wind</i> is
+ well endured.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now let us turn to <i>Lear</i>. We find in him an old man with a large
+ heart, hungry for love, and yet not knowing what love is; an old man as
+ ignorant as a child in all matters of high import; with a temper so
+ unsubdued, and therefore so unkingly, that he storms because his dinner is
+ not ready by the clock of his hunger; a child, in short, in everything but
+ his grey hairs and wrinkled face, but his failing, instead of growing,
+ strength. If a life end so, let the success of that life be otherwise what
+ it may, it is a wretched and unworthy end. But let <i>Lear</i> be blown by
+ the winds and beaten by the rains of heaven, till he pities &ldquo;poor naked
+ wretches;&rdquo; till he feels that he has &ldquo;ta&rsquo;en too little care of&rdquo; such; till
+ pomp no longer conceals from him what &ldquo;a poor, bare, forked animal&rdquo; he is;
+ and the old king has risen higher in the real social scale&mdash;the scale
+ of that country to which he is bound&mdash;far higher than he stood while
+ he still held his kingdom undivided to his thankless daughters. Then let
+ him learn at last that &ldquo;love is the only good in the world;&rdquo; let him find
+ his <i>Cordelia</i>, and plot with her how they will in their dungeon <i>singing
+ like birds i&rsquo; the cage</i>, and, dwelling in the secret place of peace,
+ look abroad on the world like <i>God&rsquo;s spies</i>; and then let the
+ generous great old heart swell till it breaks at last&mdash;not with rage
+ and hate and vengeance, but with love; and all is well: it is time the man
+ should go to overtake his daughter; henceforth to dwell with her in the
+ home of the true, the eternal, the unchangeable. All his suffering came
+ from his own fault; but from the suffering has sprung another crop, not of
+ evil but of good; the seeds of which had lain unfruitful in the soil, but
+ were brought within the blessed influences of the air of heaven by the
+ sharp tortures of the ploughshare of ill.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0006" id="link2H_4_0006">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ THE ELDER HAMLET.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1875]
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &lsquo;Tis bitter cold,
+ And I am sick at heart.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The ghost in &ldquo;Hamlet&rdquo; is as faithfully treated as any character in the
+ play. Next to Hamlet himself, he is to me the most interesting person of
+ the drama. The rumour of his appearance is wrapped in the larger rumour of
+ war. Loud preparations for uncertain attack fill the ears of &ldquo;the subject
+ of the land.&rdquo; The state is troubled. The new king has hardly compassed his
+ election before his marriage with his brother&rsquo;s widow swathes the court in
+ the dust-cloud of shame, which the merriment of its forced revelry can do
+ little to dispel. A feeling is in the moral air to which the words of
+ Francisco, the only words of significance he utters, give the key: &ldquo;&lsquo;Tis
+ bitter cold, and I am sick at heart.&rdquo; Into the frosty air, the pallid
+ moonlight, the drunken shouts of Claudius and his court, the bellowing of
+ the cannon from the rampart for the enlargement of the insane clamour that
+ it may beat the drum of its own disgrace at the portals of heaven, glides
+ the silent prisoner of hell, no longer a king of the day walking about his
+ halls, &ldquo;the observed of all observers,&rdquo; but a thrall of the night,
+ wandering between the bell and the cock, like a jailer on each side of
+ him. A poet tells the tale of the king who lost his garments and ceased to
+ be a king: here is the king who has lost his body, and in the eyes of his
+ court has ceased to be a man. Is the cold of the earth&rsquo;s night pleasant to
+ him after the purging fire? What crimes had the honest ghost committed in
+ his days of nature? He calls them foul crimes! Could such be his? Only who
+ can tell how a ghost, with his doubled experience, may think of this thing
+ or that? The ghost and the fire may between them distinctly recognize that
+ as a foul crime which the man and the court regarded as a weakness at
+ worst, and indeed in a king laudable.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Alas, poor ghost! Around the house he flits, shifting and shadowy, over
+ the ground he once paced in ringing armour&mdash;armed still, but his very
+ armour a shadow! It cannot keep out the arrow of the cock&rsquo;s cry, and the
+ heart that pierces is no shadow. Where now is the loaded axe with which,
+ in angry dispute, he smote the ice at his feet that cracked to the blow?
+ Where is the arm that heaved the axe? Wasting in the marble maw of the
+ sepulchre, and the arm he carries now&mdash;I know not what it can do, but
+ it cannot slay his murderer. For that he seeks his son&rsquo;s. Doubtless his
+ new ethereal form has its capacities and privileges. It can shift its garb
+ at will; can appear in mail or night-gown, unaided of armourer or tailor;
+ can pass through Hades-gates or chamber-door with equal ease; can work in
+ the ground like mole or pioneer, and let its voice be heard from the
+ cellarage. But there is one to whom it cannot appear, one whom the ghost
+ can see, but to whom he cannot show himself. She has built a doorless,
+ windowless wall between them, and sees the husband of her youth no more.
+ Outside her heart&mdash;that is the night in which he wanders, while the
+ palace-windows are flaring, and the low wind throbs to the wassail shouts:
+ within, his murderer sits by the wife of his bosom, and in the orchard the
+ spilt poison is yet gnawing at the roots of the daisies.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Twice has the ghost grown out of the night upon the eyes of the sentinels.
+ With solemn march, slow and stately, three times each night, has he walked
+ by them; they, jellied with fear, have uttered no challenge. They seek
+ Horatio, who the third night speaks to him as a scholar can. To the first
+ challenge he makes no answer, but stalks away; to the second,
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ It lifted up its head, and did address
+ Itself to motion, like as it would speak;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ but the gaoler cock calls him, and the kingly shape
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ started like a guilty thing
+ Upon a fearful summons;
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ and then
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ shrunk in haste away,
+ And vanished from our sight.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Ah, that summons! at which majesty welks and shrivels, the king and
+ soldier starts and cowers, and, armour and all, withers from the air!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But why has he not spoken before? why not now ere the cock could claim
+ him? He cannot trust the men. His court has forsaken his memory&mdash;crowds
+ with as eager discontent about the mildewed ear as ever about his
+ wholesome brother, and how should he trust mere sentinels? There is but
+ one who will heed his tale. A word to any other would but defeat his
+ intent. Out of the multitude of courtiers and subjects, in all the land of
+ Denmark, there is but one whom he can trust&mdash;his student-son. Him he
+ has not yet found&mdash;the condition of a ghost involving strange
+ difficulties.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Or did the horror of the men at the sight of him wound and repel him? Does
+ the sense of regal dignity, not yet exhausted for all the fasting in
+ fires, unite with that of grievous humiliation to make him shun their
+ speech?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But Horatio&mdash;why does the ghost not answer him ere the time of the
+ cock is come? Does he fold the cloak of indignation around him because his
+ son&rsquo;s friend has addressed him as an intruder on the night, an usurper of
+ the form that is his own? The companions of the speaker take note that he
+ is offended and stalks away.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Much has the kingly ghost to endure in his attempt to re-open relations
+ with the world he has left: when he has overcome his wrath and returns,
+ that moment Horatio again insults him, calling him an illusion. But this
+ time he will bear it, and opens his mouth to speak. It is too late; the
+ cock is awake, and he must go. Then alas for the buried majesty of
+ Denmark! with upheaved halberts they strike at the shadow, and would stop
+ it if they might&mdash;usage so grossly unfitting that they are instantly
+ ashamed of it themselves, recognizing the offence in the majesty of the
+ offended. But he is already gone. The proud, angry king has found himself
+ but a thing of nothing to his body-guard&mdash;for he has lost the body
+ which was their guard. Still, not even yet has he learned how little it
+ lies in the power of an honest ghost to gain credit for himself or his
+ tale! His very privileges are against him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All this time his son is consuming his heart in the knowledge of a mother
+ capable of so soon and so utterly forgetting such a husband, and in pity
+ and sorrow for the dead father who has had such a wife. He is thirty years
+ of age, an obedient, honourable son&mdash;a man of thought, of faith, of
+ aspiration. Him now the ghost seeks, his heart burning like a coal with
+ the sense of unendurable wrong. He is seeking the one drop that can fall
+ cooling on that heart&mdash;the sympathy, the answering rage and grief of
+ his boy. But when at length he finds him, the generous, loving father has
+ to see that son tremble like an aspen-leaf in his doubtful presence. He
+ has exposed himself to the shame of eyes and the indignities of dullness,
+ that he may pour the pent torrent of his wrongs into his ears, but his
+ disfranchisement from the flesh tells against him even with his son: the
+ young Hamlet is doubtful of the identity of the apparition with his
+ father. After all the burning words of the phantom, the spirit he has seen
+ may yet be a devil; the devil has power to assume a pleasing shape, and is
+ perhaps taking advantage of his melancholy to damn him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Armed in the complete steel of a suit well known to the eyes of the
+ sentinels, visionary none the less, with useless truncheon in hand,
+ resuming the memory of old martial habits, but with quiet countenance,
+ more in sorrow than in anger, troubled&mdash;not now with the thought of
+ the hell-day to which he must sleepless return, but with that unceasing
+ ache at the heart, which ever, as often as he is released into the cooling
+ air of the upper world, draws him back to the region of his wrongs&mdash;where
+ having fallen asleep in his orchard, in sacred security and old custom,
+ suddenly, by cruel assault, he was flung into Hades, where horror upon
+ horror awaited him&mdash;worst horror of all, the knowledge of his wife!&mdash;armed
+ he comes, in shadowy armour but how real sorrow! Still it is not pity he
+ seeks from his son: he needs it not&mdash;he can endure. There is no
+ weakness in the ghost. It is but to the imperfect human sense that he is
+ shadowy. To himself he knows his doom his deliverance; that the hell in
+ which he finds himself shall endure but until it has burnt up the hell he
+ has found within him&mdash;until the evil he was and is capable of shall
+ have dropped from him into the lake of fire; he nerves himself to bear.
+ And the cry of revenge that comes from the sorrowful lips is the cry of a
+ king and a Dane rather than of a wronged man. It is for public justice and
+ not individual vengeance he calls. He cannot endure that the royal bed of
+ Denmark should be a couch for luxury and damned incest. To stay this he
+ would bring the murderer to justice. There is a worse wrong, for which he
+ seeks no revenge: it involves his wife; and there comes in love, and love
+ knows no amends but amendment, seeks only the repentance tenfold more
+ needful to the wronger than the wronged. It is not alone the father&rsquo;s care
+ for the human nature of his son that warns him to take no measures against
+ his mother; it is the husband&rsquo;s tenderness also for her who once lay in
+ his bosom. The murdered brother, the dethroned king, the dishonoured
+ husband, the tormented sinner, is yet a gentle ghost. Has suffering
+ already begun to make him, like Prometheus, wise?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But to measure the gentleness, the forgiveness, the tenderness of the
+ ghost, we must well understand his wrongs. The murder is plain; but there
+ is that which went before and is worse, yet is not so plain to every eye
+ that reads the story. There is that without which the murder had never
+ been, and which, therefore, is a cause of all the wrong. For listen to
+ what the ghost reveals when at length he has withdrawn his son that he may
+ speak with him alone, and Hamlet has forestalled the disclosure of the
+ murderer:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Ay, that incestuous, that adulterate beast,
+ With witchcraft of his wit, with traitorous gifts,
+ (O wicked wit and gifts that have the power
+ So to seduce!) won to his shameful lust
+ The will of my most seeming virtuous queen:
+ Oh, Hamlet, what a falling off was there!
+ From me, whose love was of that dignity
+ That it went hand in hand even with the vow
+ I made to her in marriage, and to decline
+ Upon a wretch, whose natural gifts were poor
+ To those of mine!
+ But virtue&mdash;as it never will be moved
+ Though lewdness court it in a shape of heaven,
+ So lust, though to a radiant angel linked,
+ Will sate itself in a celestial bed,
+ And prey on garbage.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Reading this passage, can any one doubt that the ghost charges his late
+ wife with adultery, as the root of all his woes? It is true that, obedient
+ to the ghost&rsquo;s injunctions, as well as his own filial instincts, Hamlet
+ accuses his mother of no more than was patent to all the world; but unless
+ we suppose the ghost misinformed or mistaken, we must accept this charge.
+ And had Gertrude not yielded to the witchcraft of Claudius&rsquo; wit, Claudius
+ would never have murdered Hamlet. Through her his life was dishonoured,
+ and his death violent and premature: unhuzled, disappointed, unaneled, he
+ woke to the air&mdash;not of his orchard-blossoms, but of a prison-house,
+ the lightest word of whose terrors would freeze the blood of the listener.
+ What few men can say, he could&mdash;that his love to his wife had kept
+ even step with the vow he made to her in marriage; and his son says of him&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;so loving to my mother
+ That he might not beteem the winds of heaven
+ Visit her face too roughly;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ and this was her return! Yet is it thus he charges his son concerning her:
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;But howsoever thou pursu&rsquo;st this act,
+ Taint not thy mind, nor let thy soul contrive
+ Against thy mother aught; leave her to heaven,
+ And to those thorns that in her bosom lodge,
+ To prick and sting her.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ And may we not suppose it to be for her sake in part that the ghost
+ insists, with fourfold repetition, upon a sword-sworn oath to silence from
+ Horatio and Marcellus?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Only once again does he show himself&mdash;not now in armour upon the
+ walls, but in his gown and in his wife&rsquo;s closet.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Ever since his first appearance, that is, all the time filling the
+ interval between the first and second acts, we may presume him to have
+ haunted the palace unseen, waiting what his son would do. But the task has
+ been more difficult than either had supposed. The ambassadors have gone to
+ Norway and returned; but Hamlet has done nothing. Probably he has had no
+ opportunity; certainly he has had no clear vision of duty. But now all
+ through the second and third acts, together occupying, it must be
+ remembered, only one day, something seems imminent. The play has been
+ acted, and Hamlet has gained some assurance, yet the one chance presented
+ of killing the king&mdash;at his prayers&mdash;he has refused. He is now
+ in his mother&rsquo;s closet, whose eyes he has turned into her very soul.
+ There, and then, the ghost once more appears&mdash;come, he says, to whet
+ his son&rsquo;s almost blunted purpose. But, as I have said, he does not know
+ all the disadvantages of one who, having forsaken the world, has yet
+ business therein to which he would persuade; he does not know how hard it
+ is for a man to give credence to a ghost; how thoroughly he is justified
+ in delay, and the demand for more perfect proof. He does not know what
+ good reasons his son has had for uncertainty, or how much natural and
+ righteous doubt has had to do with what he takes for the blunting of his
+ purpose. Neither does he know how much more tender his son&rsquo;s conscience is
+ than his own, or how necessary it is to him to be sure before he acts. As
+ little perhaps does he understand how hateful to Hamlet is the task laid
+ upon him&mdash;the killing of one wretched villain in the midst of a
+ corrupt and contemptible court, one of a world of whose women his mother
+ may be the type!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Whatever the main object of the ghost&rsquo;s appearance, he has spoken but a
+ few words concerning the matter between him and Hamlet, when he turns
+ abruptly from it to plead with his son for his wife. The ghost sees and
+ mistakes the terror of her looks; imagines that, either from some feeling
+ of his presence, or from the power of Hamlet&rsquo;s words, her conscience is
+ thoroughly roused, and that her vision, her conception of the facts, is
+ now more than she can bear. She and her fighting soul are at odds. She is
+ a kingdom divided against itself. He fears the consequences. He would not
+ have her go mad. He would not have her die yet. Even while ready to start
+ at the summons of that hell to which she has sold him, he forgets his
+ vengeance on her seducer in his desire to comfort her. He dares not, if he
+ could, manifest himself to her: what word of consolation could she hear
+ from his lips? Is not the thought of him her one despair? He turns to his
+ son for help: he cannot console his wife; his son must take his place.
+ Alas! even now he thinks better of her than she deserves; for it is only
+ the fancy of her son&rsquo;s madness that is terrifying her: he gazes on the
+ apparition of which she sees nothing, and from his looks she anticipates
+ an ungovernable outbreak.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;But look; amazement on thy mother sits!
+ Oh; step between her and her fighting soul
+ Conceit in weakest bodies strongest works.
+ Speak to her, Hamlet.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The call to his son to soothe his wicked mother is the ghost&rsquo;s last
+ utterance. For a few moments, sadly regardful of the two, he stands&mdash;while
+ his son seeks in vain to reveal to his mother the presence of his father&mdash;a
+ few moments of piteous action, all but ruining the remnant of his son&rsquo;s
+ sorely-harassed self-possession&mdash;his whole concern his wife&rsquo;s
+ distress, and neither his own doom nor his son&rsquo;s duty; then, as if lost in
+ despair at the impassable gulf betwixt them, revealed by her utter
+ incapacity for even the imagination of his proximity, he turns away, and
+ steals out at the portal. Or perhaps he has heard the black cock crow, and
+ is wanted beneath: his turn has come.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Will the fires ever cleanse <i>her</i>? Will his love ever lift him above
+ the pain of its loss? Will eternity ever be bliss, ever be endurable to
+ poor <i>King Hamlet?</i>
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Alas! even the memory of the poor ghost is insulted. Night after night on
+ the stage his effigy appears&mdash;cadaverous, sepulchral&mdash;no longer
+ as Shakspere must have represented him, aerial, shadowy, gracious, the
+ thin corporeal husk of an eternal&mdash;shall I say ineffaceable?&mdash;sorrow!
+ It is no hollow monotone that can rightly upbear such words as his, but a
+ sound mingled of distance and wind in the pine-tops, of agony and love, of
+ horror and hope and loss and judgment&mdash;a voice of endless and
+ sweetest inflection, yet with a shuddering echo in it as from the caves of
+ memory, on whose walls, are written the eternal blazon that must not be to
+ ears of flesh and blood. The spirit that can assume form at will must
+ surely be able to bend that form to completest and most delicate
+ expression, and the part of the ghost in the play offers work worthy of
+ the highest artist. The would-be actor takes from it vitality and motion,
+ endowing it instead with the rigidity of death, as if the soul had resumed
+ its cast-off garment, the stiffened and mouldy corpse&mdash;whose frozen
+ deadness it could ill model to the utterance of its lively will!
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0007" id="link2H_4_0007">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ ON POLISH.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1865]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ By Polish I mean a certain well-known and immediately recognizable
+ condition of surface. But I must request my reader to consider well what
+ this condition really is. For the definition of it appears to us to be,
+ that condition of surface which allows the inner structure of the material
+ to manifest itself. Polish is, as it were, a translucent skin, in which
+ the life of the inorganic comes to the surface, as in the animal skin the
+ animal life. Once clothed in this, the inner glories of the marble rock,
+ of the jasper, of the porphyry, leave the darkness behind, and glow into
+ the day. From the heart of the agate the mossy landscape comes dreaming
+ out. From the depth of the green chrysolite looks up the eye of its gold.
+ The &ldquo;goings on of life&rdquo; hidden for ages under the rough bark of the
+ patient forest-trees, are brought to light; the rings of lovely shadow
+ which the creature went on making in the dark, as the oyster its opaline
+ laminations, and its tree-pearls of beautiful knots, where a beneficent
+ disease has broken the geometrical perfection of its structure, gloom out
+ in their infinite variousness.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Nor are the revelations of polish confined to things having variety in
+ their internal construction; they operate equally in things of homogeneous
+ structure. It is the polished ebony or jet which gives the true blank, the
+ material darkness. It is the polished steel that shines keen and
+ remorseless and cold, like that human justice whose symbol it is. And in
+ the polished diamond the distinctive purity is most evident; while from
+ it, I presume, will the light absorbed from the sun gleam forth on the
+ dark most plentifully.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the mere fact that the end of polish is revelation, can hardly be
+ worth setting forth except for some ulterior object, some further
+ revelation in the fact itself.&mdash;I wish to show that in the symbolic
+ use of the word the same truth is involved, or, if not involved, at least
+ suggested. But let me first make another remark on the preceding
+ definition of the word.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is no denying that the first notion suggested by the word polish is
+ that of smoothness, which will indeed be the sole idea associated with it
+ before we begin to contemplate the matter. But when we consider what
+ things are chosen to be &ldquo;clothed upon&rdquo; with this smoothness, then we find
+ that the smoothness is scarcely desired for its own sake, and remember
+ besides that in many materials and situations it is elaborately avoided.
+ We find that here it is sought because of its faculty of enabling other
+ things to show themselves&mdash;to come to the surface.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I proceed then to examine how far my pregnant interpretation of the word
+ will apply to its figurative use in two cases&mdash;<i>Polish of Style</i>,
+ and <i>Polish of Manners</i>. The two might be treated together, seeing
+ that <i>Style</i> may be called the manners of intellectual utterance, and
+ <i>Manners</i> the style of social utterance; but it is more convenient to
+ treat them separately.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I will begin with the Polish of Style.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It will be seen at once that if the notion of polish be limited to that of
+ smoothness, there can be little to say on the matter, and nothing worthy
+ of being said. For mere smoothness is no more a desirable quality in a
+ style than it is in a country or a countenance; and its pursuit will
+ result at length in the gain of the monotonous and the loss of the
+ melodious and harmonious. But it is only upon worthless material that
+ polish can be <i>mere</i> smoothness; and where the material is not
+ valuable, polish can be nothing but smoothness. No amount of polish in a
+ style can render the production of value, except there be in it embodied
+ thought thereby revealed; and the labour of the polish is lost. Let us
+ then take the fuller meaning of polish, and see how it will apply to
+ style.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If it applies, then Polish of Style will imply the approximately complete
+ revelation of the thought. It will be the removal of everything that can
+ interfere between the thought of the speaker and the mind of the hearer.
+ True polish in marble or in speech reveals inlying realities, and, in the
+ latter at least, mere smoothness, either of sound or of meaning, is not
+ worthy of the name. The most polished style will be that which most
+ immediately and most truly flashes the meaning embodied in the utterance
+ upon the mind of the listener or reader.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Will you then,&rdquo; I imagine a reader objecting, &ldquo;admit of no ornament in
+ style?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Assuredly,&rdquo; I answer, &ldquo;I would admit of no ornament whatever.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But let me explain what I mean by ornament. I mean anything stuck in or
+ on, like a spangle, because it is pretty in itself, although it reveals
+ nothing. Not one such ornament can belong to a polished style. It is
+ paint, not polish. And if this is not what my questioner means by <i>ornament</i>,
+ my answer must then be read according to the differences in his definition
+ of the word. What I have said has not the least application to the natural
+ forms of beauty which thought assumes in speech. Between such beauty and
+ such ornament there lies the same difference as between the overflow of
+ life in the hair, and the dressing of that loveliest of utterances in
+ grease and gold.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ For, when I say that polish is the removal of everything that comes
+ between thought and thinking, it must not be supposed that in my idea
+ thought is only of the intellect, and therefore that all forms but bare
+ intellectual forms are of the nature of ornament. As well might one say
+ that the only essential portion of the human form is the bones. And every
+ human thought is in a sense a human being, has as necessarily its muscles
+ of motion, its skin of beauty, its blood of feeling, as its skeleton of
+ logic. For complete utterance, music itself in its right proportions,
+ sometimes clear and strong, as in rhymed harmonies, sometimes veiled and
+ dim, as in the prose compositions of the masters of speech, is as
+ necessary as correctness of logic, and common sense in construction. I
+ should have said <i>conveyance</i> rather than utterance; for there may be
+ utterance such as to relieve the mind of the speaker with more or less of
+ fancied communication, while the conveyance of thought may be little or
+ none; as in the speaking with tongues of the infant Church, to which the
+ lovely babblement of our children has probably more than a figurative
+ resemblance, relieving their own minds, but, the interpreter not yet at
+ his post, neither instructing nor misleading any one. But as the object of
+ grown-up speech must in the main be the conveyance of thought, and not the
+ mere utterance, everything in the style of that speech which interposes
+ between the mental eyes and the thought embodied in the speech, must be
+ polished away, that the indwelling life may manifest itself.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ What, then (for now we must come to the practical), is the kind of thing
+ to be polished away in order that the hidden may be revealed?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All words that can be dismissed without loss; for all such more or less
+ obscure the meaning upon which they gather. The first step towards the
+ polishing of most styles is to strike out&mdash;polish off&mdash;the
+ useless words and phrases. It is wonderful with how many fewer words most
+ things could be said that are said; while the degree of certainty and
+ rapidity with which an idea is conveyed would generally be found to be in
+ an inverse ratio to the number of words employed.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All ornaments so called&mdash;the nose and lip jewels of style&mdash;the
+ tattooing of the speech; all similes that, although true, give no
+ additional insight into the meaning; everything that is only pretty and
+ not beautiful; all mere sparkle as of jewels that lose their own beauty by
+ being set in the grandeur of statues or the dignity of monumental stone,
+ must be ruthlessly polished away.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ All utterances which, however they may add to the amount of thought,
+ distract the mind, and confuse its observation of the main idea, the
+ essence or life of the book or paper, must be diligently refused. In the
+ manuscript of <i>Comus</i> there exists, cancelled but legible, a passage
+ of which I have the best authority for saying that it would have made the
+ poetic fame of any writer. But the grand old self-denier struck it out of
+ the opening speech because that would be more polished without it&mdash;because
+ the <i>Attendant Spirit</i> would say more immediately and exclusively,
+ and therefore more completely, what he had to say, without it.&mdash;All
+ this applies much more widely and deeply in the region of art; but I am at
+ present dealing with the surface of style, not with the round of result.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I have one instance at hand, however, belonging to this region, than which
+ I could scarcely produce a more apt illustration of my thesis. One of the
+ greatest of living painters, walking with a friend through the late
+ Exhibition of Art-Treasures at Manchester, came upon Albert Dürer&rsquo;s <i>Melancholia</i>.
+ After looking at it for a moment, he told his friend that now for the
+ first time he understood it, and proceeded to set forth what he saw in it.
+ It was a very early impression, and the delicacy of the lines was so much
+ the greater. He had never seen such a perfect impression before, and had
+ never perceived the intent and scope of the engraving. The mere removal of
+ accidental thickness and furriness in the lines of the drawing enabled him
+ to see into the meaning of that wonderful production. The polish brought
+ it to the surface. Or, what amounts to the same thing for my argument, the
+ dulling of the surface had concealed it even from his experienced eyes.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In fine, and more generally, all cause whatever of obscurity must be
+ polished away. There may lie in the matter itself a darkness of colour and
+ texture which no amount of polishing can render clear or even vivid; the
+ thoughts themselves may be hard to think, and difficulty must not be
+ confounded with obscurity. The former belongs to the thoughts themselves;
+ the latter to the mode of their embodiment. All cause of obscurity in this
+ must, I say, be removed. Such may lie even in the region of grammar, or in
+ the mere arrangement of a sentence. And while, as I have said, no ornament
+ is to be allowed, so all roughnesses, which irritate the mental ear, and
+ so far incapacitate it for receiving a true impression of the meaning from
+ the words, must be carefully reduced. For the true music of a sentence,
+ belonging as it does to the essence of the thought itself, is the herald
+ which goes before to prepare the mind for the following thought, calming
+ the surface of the intellect to a mirror-like reflection of the image
+ about to fall upon it. But syllables that hang heavy on the tongue and
+ grate harsh upon the ear are the trumpet of discord rousing to unconscious
+ opposition and conscious rejection.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And now the consideration of the Polish of Manners will lead us to some
+ yet more important reflections. Here again I must admit that the ordinary
+ use of the phrase is analogous to that of the preceding; but its relations
+ lead us deep into realities. For as diamond alone can polish diamond, so
+ men alone can polish men; and hence it is that it was first by living in a
+ city ([Greek: polis], <i>polis</i>) that men&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;rubbed each other&rsquo;s angles down,&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ and became <i>polished</i>. And while a certain amount of ease with regard
+ to ourselves and of consideration with regard to others is everywhere
+ necessary to a man&rsquo;s passing as a gentleman&mdash;all unevenness of
+ behaviour resulting either from shyness or self-consciousness (in the
+ shape of awkwardness), or from overweening or selfishness (in the shape of
+ rudeness), having to be polished away&mdash;true human polish must go
+ further than this. Its respects are not confined to the manners of the
+ ball-room or the dinner-table, of the club or the exchange, but wherever a
+ man may rejoice with them that rejoice or weep with them that weep, he
+ must remain one and the same, as polished to the tiller of the soil as to
+ the leader of the fashion.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But how will the figure of material polish aid us any further? How can it
+ be said that Polish of Manners is a revelation of that which is within, a
+ calling up to the surface of the hidden loveliness of the material? For do
+ we not know that courtesy may cover contempt; that smiles themselves may
+ hide hate; that one who will place you at his right hand when in want of
+ your inferior aid, may scarce acknowledge your presence when his necessity
+ has gone by? And how then can polished manners be a revelation of what is
+ within? Are they not the result of putting on rather than of taking off?
+ Are they not paint and varnish rather than polish?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I must yield the answer to each of these questions; protesting, however,
+ that with such polish I have nothing to do; for these manners are
+ confessedly false. But even where least able to mislead, they are, with
+ corresponding courtesy, accepted as outward signs of an inward grace.
+ Hence even such, by the nature of their falsehood, support my position.
+ For in what forms are the colours of the paint laid upon the surface of
+ the material? Is it not in as near imitations of the real right human
+ feelings about oneself and others as the necessarily imperfect knowledge
+ of such an artist can produce? He will not encounter the labour of
+ polishing, for he does not believe in the divine depths of his own nature:
+ he paints, and calls the varnish polish.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But why talk of polish with reference to such a character, seeing that no
+ amount of polishing can bring to the surface what is not there? No
+ polishing of sandstone will reveal the mottling of marble. For it is
+ sandstone, crumbling and gritty&mdash;not noble in any way.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Is it so then? Can such be the real nature of the man? And can polish
+ reach nothing deeper in him than such? May not this selfishness be
+ polished away, revealing true colour and harmony beneath? Was not the man
+ made in the image of God? Or, if you say that man lost that image, did not
+ a new process of creation begin from the point of that loss, a process of
+ re-creation in him in whom all shall be made alive, which, although so far
+ from being completed yet, can never be checked? If we cut away deep enough
+ at the rough block of our nature, shall we not arrive at some likeness of
+ that true man who, the apostle says, dwells in us&mdash;the hope of glory?
+ He informs us&mdash;that is, forms us from within.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Dr. Donne (who knew less than any other writer in the English language
+ what Polish of Style means) recognizes this divine polishing to the full.
+ He says in a poem called &ldquo;The Cross:&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ As perchance carvers do not faces make,
+ But that away, which hid them there, do take,
+ Let Crosses so take what hid Christ in thee,
+ And be his Image, or not his, but He.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ This is no doubt a higher figure than that of <i>polish</i>, but it is of
+ the same kind, revealing the same truth. It recognizes the fact that the
+ divine nature lies at the root of the human nature, and that the polish
+ which lets that spiritual nature shine out in the simplicity of heavenly
+ childhood, is the true Polish of Manners of which all merely social
+ refinements are a poor imitation.&mdash;Whence Coleridge says that nothing
+ but religion can make a man a gentleman.&mdash;And when these harmonies of
+ our nature come to the surface, we shall be indeed &ldquo;lively stones,&rdquo; fit
+ for building into the great temple of the universe, and echoing the music
+ of creation. Dr. Donne recognizes, besides, the notable fact that <i>crosses</i>
+ or afflictions are the polishing powers by means of which the beautiful
+ realities of human nature are brought to the surface. One can tell at once
+ by the peculiar loveliness of certain persons that they have suffered.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But, to look for a moment less profoundly into the matter, have we not
+ known those whose best never could get to the surface just from the lack
+ of polish?&mdash;persons who, if they could only reveal the kindness of
+ their nature, would make men believe in human nature, but in whom some
+ roughness of awkwardness or of shyness prevents the true self from
+ appearing? Even the dread of seeming to claim a good deed or to patronize
+ a fellow-man will sometimes spoil the last touch of tenderness which would
+ have been the final polish of the act of giving, and would have revealed
+ infinite depths of human devotion. For let the truth out, and it will be
+ seen to be true.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Simplicity is the end of all Polish, as of all Art, Culture, Morals,
+ Religion, and Life. The Lord our God is one Lord, and we and our brothers
+ and sisters are one Humanity, one Body of the Head.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now to the practical: what are we to do for the polish of our manners?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Just what I have said we must do for the polish of our style. Take off; do
+ not put on. Polish away this rudeness, that awkwardness. Correct
+ everything self-assertive, which includes nine tenths of all vulgarity.
+ Imitate no one&rsquo;s behaviour; that is to paint. Do not think about yourself;
+ that is to varnish. Put what is wrong right, and what is in you will show
+ itself in harmonious behaviour.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But no one can go far in this track without discovering that true polish
+ reaches much deeper; that the outward exists but for the sake of the
+ inward; and that the manners, as they depend on the morals, must be
+ forgotten in the morals of which they are but the revelation. Look at the
+ high-shouldered, ungainly child in the corner: his mother tells him to go
+ to his book, and he wants to go to his play. Regard the swollen lips, the
+ skin tightened over the nose, the distortion of his shape, the angularity
+ of his whole appearance. Yet he is not an awkward child by nature. Look at
+ him again the moment after he has given in and kissed his mother. His
+ shoulders have dropped to their place; his limbs are free from the fetters
+ that bound them; his motions are graceful, and the one blends harmoniously
+ with the other. He is no longer thinking of himself. He has given up his
+ own way. The true childhood comes to the surface, and you see what the boy
+ is meant to be always. Look at the jerkiness of the conceited man. Look at
+ the quiet <i>fluency</i> of motion in the modest man. Look how anger
+ itself which forgets self, which is unhating and righteous, will elevate
+ the carriage and ennoble the movements.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But how far can the same rule of <i>omission</i> or <i>rejection</i> be
+ applied with safety to this deeper character&mdash;the manners of the
+ spirit?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It seems to me that in morals too the main thing is to avoid doing wrong;
+ for then the active spirit of life in us will drive us on to the right.
+ But on such a momentous question I would not be dogmatic. Only as far as
+ regards the feelings I would say: it is of no use to try to make ourselves
+ feel thus or thus. Let us fight with our wrong feelings; let us polish
+ away the rough ugly distortions of feeling. Then the real and the good
+ will come of themselves. Or rather, to keep to my figure, they will then
+ show themselves of themselves as the natural home-produce, the indwelling
+ facts of our deepest&mdash;that is, our divine nature.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Here I find that I am sinking through my subject into another and deeper&mdash;a
+ truth, namely, which should, however, be the foundation of all our
+ building, the background of all our representations: that Life is at work
+ in us&mdash;the sacred Spirit of God travailing in us. That Spirit has
+ gained one end of his labour&mdash;at which he can begin to do yet more
+ for us&mdash;when he has brought us to beg for the help which he has been
+ giving us all the time.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I have been regarding infinite things through the medium of one limited
+ figure, knowing that figures with all their suggestions and relations
+ could not reveal them utterly. But so far as they go, these thoughts
+ raised by the word Polish and its figurative uses appear to me to be most
+ true.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0008" id="link2H_4_0008">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ BROWNING&rsquo;S &ldquo;CHRISTMAS EVE&rdquo;
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: 1853.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Goethe says:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Poems are painted window panes.
+ If one looks from the square into the church,
+ Dusk and dimness are his gains&mdash;
+ Sir Philistine is left in the lurch!
+ The sight, so seen, may well enrage him,
+ Nor anything henceforth assuage him.
+
+ &ldquo;But come just inside what conceals;
+ Cross the holy threshold quite&mdash;
+ All at once &lsquo;tis rainbow-bright,
+ Device and story flash to light,
+ A gracious splendour truth reveals.
+ This to God&rsquo;s children is full measure,
+ It edifies and gives you pleasure!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ This is true concerning every form in which truth is embodied, whether it
+ be sight or sound, geometric diagram or scientific formula.
+ Unintelligible, it may be dismal enough, regarded from the outside;
+ prismatic in its revelation of truth from within. Such is the world
+ itself, as beheld by the speculative eye; a thing of disorder, obscurity,
+ and sadness: only the child-like heart, to which the door into the divine
+ idea is thrown open, can understand somewhat the secret of the Almighty.
+ In human things it is particularly true of art, in which the fundamental
+ idea seems to be the revelation of the true through the beautiful. But of
+ all the arts it is most applicable to poetry; for the others have more
+ that is beautiful on the outside; can give pleasure to the senses by the
+ form of the marble, the hues of the painting, or the sweet sounds of the
+ music, although the heart may never perceive the meaning that lies within.
+ But poetry, except its rhythmic melody, and its scattered gleams of
+ material imagery, for which few care that love it not for its own sake,
+ has no attraction on the outside to entice the passer to enter and partake
+ of its truth. It is inwards that its colours shine, within that its forms
+ move, and the sound of its holy organ cannot be heard from without.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now, if one has been able to reach the heart of a poem, answering to
+ Goethe&rsquo;s parabolic description; or even to discover a loop-hole, through
+ which, from an opposite point, the glories of its stained windows are
+ visible; it is well that he should seek to make others partakers in his
+ pleasure and profit. Some who might not find out for themselves, would yet
+ be evermore grateful to him who led them to the point of vision. Surely if
+ a man would help his fellow-men, he can do so far more effectually by
+ exhibiting truth than exposing error, by unveiling beauty than by a
+ critical dissection of deformity. From the very nature of the things it
+ must be so. Let the true and good destroy their opposites. It is only by
+ the good and beautiful that the evil and ugly are known. It is the light
+ that makes manifest.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The poem &ldquo;Christmas Eve,&rdquo; by Robert Browning, with the accompanying poem
+ &ldquo;Easter Day,&rdquo; seems not to have attracted much notice from the readers of
+ poetry, although highly prized by a few. This is, perhaps, to be
+ attributed, in a great measure, to what many would call a considerable
+ degree of obscurity. But obscurity is the appearance which to a first
+ glance may be presented either by profundity or carelessness of thought.
+ To some, obscurity itself is attractive, from the hope that worthiness is
+ the cause of it. To apply a test similar to that by which Pascal tries the
+ Koran and the Scriptures: what is the character of those portions, the
+ meaning of which is plain? Are they wise or foolish? If the former, the
+ presumption is that the obscurity of other parts is caused not by opacity,
+ but profundity. But some will object, notwithstanding, that a writer ought
+ to make himself plain to his readers; nay, that if he has a clear idea
+ himself, he must be able to express that idea clearly. But for communion
+ of thought, two minds, not one, are necessary. The fault may lie in him
+ that receives or in him that gives, or it may be in neither. For how can
+ the result of much thought, the idea which for mouths has been shaping
+ itself in the mind of one man, be at once received by another mind to
+ which it comes a stranger and unexpected? The reader has no right to
+ complain of so caused obscurity. Nor is that form of expression, which is
+ most easily understood at first sight, necessarily the best. It will not,
+ therefore, continue to move; nor will it gather force and influence with
+ more intimate acquaintance. Here Goethe&rsquo;s little parable, as he calls it,
+ is peculiarly applicable. But, indeed, if after all a writer is obscure,
+ the man who has spent most labour in seeking to enter into his thoughts,
+ will be the least likely to complain of his obscurity; and they who have
+ the least difficulty in understanding a writer, are frequently those who
+ understand him the least.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ To those to whom the religion of Christ has been the law of liberty; who
+ by that door have entered into the universe of God, and have begun to feel
+ a growing delight in all the manifestations of God, it is cause of much
+ joy to find that, whatever may be the position taken by men of science, or
+ by those in whom the intellect predominates, with regard to the Christian
+ religion, men of genius, at least, in virtue of what is child-like in
+ their nature, are, in the present time, plainly manifesting deep devotion
+ to Christ. There are exceptions, certainly; but even in those, there are
+ symptoms of feelings which, one can hardly help thinking, tend towards
+ him, and will one day flame forth in conscious worship. A mind that
+ recognizes any of the multitudinous meanings of the revelation of God, in
+ the world of sounds, and forms, and colours, cannot be blind to the higher
+ manifestation of God in common humanity; nor to him in whom is hid the key
+ to the whole, the First-born of the creation of God, in whose heart lies,
+ as yet but partially developed, the kingdom of heaven, which is the
+ redemption of the earth. The mind that delights in that which is lofty and
+ great, which feels there is something higher than self, will undoubtedly
+ be drawn towards Christ; and they, who at first looked on him as a great
+ prophet, came at length to perceive that he was the radiation of the
+ Father&rsquo;s glory, the likeness of his unseen being.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ A description of the poem may, perhaps, both induce to the reading of it,
+ and contribute to its easier comprehension while being perused. On a
+ stormy Christmas Eve, the poet, or rather the seer (for the whole must be
+ regarded as a poetic vision), is compelled to take refuge in the &ldquo;lath and
+ plaster entry&rdquo; of a little chapel, belonging to a congregation of
+ Calvinistic Methodists, who are at the time assembling for worship.
+ Wonderful in its reality is the description of various of the flock that
+ pass him as they enter the chapel, from
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;the many-tattered
+ Little old-faced, peaking sister-turned-mother
+ Of the sickly babe she tried to smother
+ Somehow up, with its spotted face,
+ From the cold, on her breast, the one warm place:&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ to the &ldquo;shoemaker&rsquo;s lad;&rdquo; whom he follows, determined not to endure the
+ inquisition of their looks any longer, into the chapel. The humour of the
+ whole scene within is excellent. The stifling closeness, both of the
+ atmosphere and of the sermon, the wonderful content of the audience, the
+ &ldquo;old fat woman,&rdquo; who
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;purred with pleasure,
+ And thumb round thumb went twirling faster,
+ While she, to his periods keeping measure,
+ Maternally devoured the pastor;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ are represented by a few rapid touches that bring certain points of the
+ reality almost unpleasantly near. At length, unable to endure it longer,
+ he rushes out into the air. Objection may, probably, be made to the
+ mingling of the humorous, even the ridiculous, with the serious; at least,
+ in a work of art like this, where they must be brought into such close
+ proximity. But are not these things as closely connected in the world as
+ they can be in any representation of it? Surely there are few who have
+ never had occasion to attempt to reconcile the thought of the two in their
+ own minds. Nor can there be anything human that is not, in some connexion
+ or other, admissible into art. The widest idea of art must comprehend all
+ things. A work of this kind must, like God&rsquo;s world, in which he sends rain
+ on the just and on the unjust, be taken as a whole and in regard to its
+ design. The requisition is, that everything introduced have a relation to
+ the adjacent parts and to the whole suitable to the design. Here the thing
+ is real, is true, is human; a thing to be thought about. It has its place
+ amongst other phenomena, with which, however apparently incongruous, it is
+ yet vitally connected within.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ A coolness and delight visit us, on turning over the page and commencing
+ to read the description of sky, and moon, and clouds, which greet him
+ outside the chapel. It is as a vision of the vision-bearing world itself,
+ in one of its fine, though not, at first, one of its rarest moods. And
+ here a short digression to notice like feelings in unlike dresses, one
+ thought differently expressed will, perhaps, be pardoned. The moon is
+ prevented from shining out by the &ldquo;blocks&rdquo; of cloud &ldquo;built up in the
+ west:&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;And the empty other half of the sky
+ Seemed in its silence as if it knew
+ What, any moment, might look through
+ A chance-gap in that fortress massy.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Old Henry Vaughan says of the &ldquo;Dawning:&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The whole Creation shakes off night,
+ And for thy shadow looks the Light;
+ Stars now vanish without number,
+ Sleepie Planets set and slumber,
+ The pursie Clouds disband and scatter,
+ <i>All expect some sudden matter</i>.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Calmness settles down on his mind. He walks on, thinking of the scene he
+ had left, and the sermon he had heard. In the latter he sees the good and
+ the bad intimately mingled; and is convinced that the chief benefit
+ derived from it is a reproducing of former impressions. The thought
+ crosses him, in how many places and how many different forms the same
+ thing takes place, &ldquo;a convincing&rdquo; of the &ldquo;convinced;&rdquo; and he rejoices in
+ the contrast which his church presents to these; for in the church of
+ Nature his love to God, assurance of God&rsquo;s love to him, and confidence in
+ the design of God regarding him, commenced. While exulting in God and the
+ knowledge of Him to be attained hereafter, he is favoured with a sight of
+ a glorious moon-rainbow, which elevates his worship to ecstasy. During
+ which&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;All at once I looked up with terror&mdash;
+ He was there.
+ He himself with His human air,
+ On the narrow pathway, just before:
+ I saw the back of Him, no more&mdash;
+ He had left the chapel, then, as I.
+ I forgot all about the sky.
+ No face: only the sight
+ Of a sweepy garment, vast and white,
+ With a hem that I could recognize.
+ I felt terror, no surprise:
+ My mind filled with the cataract,
+ At one bound, of the mighty fact.
+ I remembered, He did say
+ Doubtless, that, to this world&rsquo;s end,
+ Where two or three should meet and pray,
+ He would be in the midst, their friend:
+ Certainly He was there with them.
+ And my pulses leaped for joy
+ Of the golden thought without alloy,
+ That I saw His very vesture&rsquo;s hem.
+ Then rushed the blood back, cold and clear,
+ With a fresh enhancing shiver of fear.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Praying for forgiveness wherein he has sinned, and prostrate in adoration
+ before the form of Christ, he is &ldquo;caught up in the whirl and drift&rdquo; of his
+ vesture, and carried along with him over the earth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Stopping at length at the entrance of St. Peter&rsquo;s in Rome, he remains
+ outside, while the form disappears within. He is able, however, to see all
+ that goes on, in the crowded, hushed interior. It is high mass. He has
+ been carried at once from the little chapel to the opposite aesthetic
+ pole. From the entry, where&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The flame of the single tallow candle
+ In the cracked square lanthorn I stood under
+ Shot its blue lip at me,&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+to&mdash;
+ &ldquo;This miraculous dome of God&mdash;
+ This colonnade
+ With arms wide open to embrace
+ The entry of the human race
+ To the breast of.... what is it, yon building,
+ Ablaze in front, all paint and gilding,
+ With marble for brick, and stones of price
+ For garniture of the edifice?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ to &ldquo;those fountains&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Growing up eternally
+ Each to a musical water-tree,
+ Whose blossoms drop, a glittering boon,
+ Before my eyes, in the light of the moon,
+ To the granite lavers underneath;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ from the singing of the chapel to the organ self-restrained, that &ldquo;holds
+ his breath and grovels latent,&rdquo; while expecting the elevation of the Host.
+ Christ is within; he is left without. Reflecting on the matter, he thinks
+ his Lord would not require him to go in, though he himself entered,
+ because there was a way to reach him there. By-and-by, however, his heart
+ awakes and declares that Love goes beyond error with them, and if the
+ Intellect be kept down, yet Love is the oppressor; so next time he
+ resolves to enter and praise along with them. The passage commencing, &ldquo;Oh,
+ love of those first Christian days!&rdquo; describing Love&rsquo;s victory over
+ Intellect, is very fine.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Again he is caught up and carried along as before. This time halt is made
+ at the door of a college in a German town, in which the class-room of one
+ of the professors is open for lecture this Christmas Eve. It is,
+ intellectually considered, the opposite pole to both the Methodist chapel
+ and the Roman Basilica. The poet enters, fearful of losing the society of
+ &ldquo;any that call themselves his friends.&rdquo; He describes the assembled
+ company, and the entrance of &ldquo;the hawk-nosed, high-cheek-boned professor,&rdquo;
+ of part of whose Christmas Eve&rsquo;s discourse he proceeds to give the
+ substance. The professor takes it for granted that &ldquo;plainly no such life
+ was liveable,&rdquo; and goes on to inquire what explanation of the phenomena of
+ the life of Christ it were best to adopt. Not that it mattered much, &ldquo;so
+ the idea be left the same.&rdquo; Taking the popular story, for convenience
+ sake, and separating all extraneous matter from it, he found that Christ
+ was simply a good man, with an honest, true heart; whose disciples thought
+ him divine; and whose doctrine, though quite mistaken by those who
+ received and published it, &ldquo;had yet a meaning quite as respectable.&rdquo; Here
+ the poet takes advantage of a pause to leave him; reflecting that though
+ the air may be poisoned by the sects, yet here &ldquo;the critic leaves no air
+ to poison.&rdquo; His meditations and arguments following, are among the most
+ valuable passages in the book. The professor, notwithstanding the idea of
+ Christ has by him been exhausted of all that is peculiar to it, yet
+ recommends him to the veneration and worship of his hearers, &ldquo;rather than
+ all who went before him, and all who ever followed after.&rdquo; But why? says
+ the poet. For his intellect,
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Which tells me simply what was told
+ (If mere morality, bereft
+ Of the God in Christ, be all that&rsquo;s left)
+ Elsewhere by voices manifold?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ with which must be combined the fact that this intellect of his did not
+ save him from making the &ldquo;important stumble,&rdquo; of saying that he and God
+ were one. &ldquo;But his followers misunderstood him,&rdquo; says the objector.
+ Perhaps so; but &ldquo;the stumbling-block, his speech, who laid it?&rdquo; Well then,
+ is it on the score of his goodness that he should rule his race?
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;You pledge
+ Your fealty to such rule? What, all&mdash;
+ From Heavenly John and Attic Paul,
+ And that brave weather-battered Peter,
+ Whose stout faith only stood completer
+ For buffets, sinning to be pardoned,
+ As the more his hands hauled nets, they hardened&mdash;
+ All, down to you, the man of men,
+ Professing here at Göttingen,
+ Compose Christ&rsquo;s flock! So, you and I
+ Are sheep of a good man! And why?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Did Christ <i>invent</i> goodness? or did he only demonstrate that of
+ which the common conscience was judge?
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;I would decree
+ Worship for such mere demonstration
+ And simple work of nomenclature,
+ Only the day I praised, not Nature,
+ But Harvey, for the circulation.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The worst man, says the poet, <i>knows</i> more than the best man <i>does</i>.
+ God in Christ appeared to men to help them to <i>do</i>, to awaken the
+ life within them.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Morality to the uttermost,
+ Supreme in Christ as we all confess,
+ Why need <i>we</i> prove would avail no jot
+ To make Him God, if God he were not?
+ What is the point where Himself lays stress?
+ Does the precept run, &lsquo;Believe in good,
+ In justice, truth, now understood
+ For the first time?&rsquo;&mdash;or, &lsquo;Believe in ME,
+ Who lived and died, yet essentially
+ Am Lord of life&rsquo;? Whoever can take
+ The same to his heart, and for mere love&rsquo;s sake
+ Conceive of the love,&mdash;that man obtains
+ A new truth; no conviction gains
+ Of an old one only, made intense
+ By a fresh appeal to his faded sense.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ In this lies the most direct practical argument with regard to what is
+ commonly called the Divinity of Christ. Here is a man whom those that
+ magnify him the least confess to be a good man, the best of men. He <i>says</i>,
+ &ldquo;I and the Father are one.&rdquo; Will an earnest heart, knowing this, be likely
+ to draw back, or will it draw nearer to behold the great sight? Will not
+ such a heart feel: &ldquo;A good man like this would not have said so, were it
+ not so. In all probability the great truth of God lies behind this veil.&rdquo;
+ The reality of Christ&rsquo;s nature is not to be proved by argument. He must be
+ beheld. The manifestation of Him must &ldquo;gravitate inwards&rdquo; on the soul. It
+ is by looking that one can know. As a mathematical theorem is to be proved
+ only by the demonstration of that theorem itself, not by talking <i>about</i>
+ it; so Christ must prove himself to the human soul through being beheld.
+ The only proof of Christ&rsquo;s divinity is his humanity. Because his humanity
+ is not comprehended, his divinity is doubted; and while the former is
+ uncomprehended, an assent to the latter is of little avail. For a man to
+ theorize theologically in any form, while he has not so apprehended
+ Christ, or to neglect the gazing on him for the attempt to substantiate to
+ himself any form of belief respecting him, is to bring on himself, in a
+ matter of divine import, such errors as the expounders of nature in old
+ time brought on themselves, when they speculated on what a thing must be,
+ instead of observing what it was; this <i>must be</i> having for its
+ foundation not self-evident truth, but notions whose chief strength lay in
+ their preconception. There are thoughts and feelings that cannot be called
+ up in the mind by any power of will or force of imagination; which, being
+ spiritual, must arise in the soul when in its highest spiritual condition;
+ when the mind, indeed, like a smooth lake, reflects only heavenly images.
+ A steadfast regarding of Him will produce this calm, and His will be the
+ heavenly form reflected from the mental depth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But to return to the poem. The fact that Christ remains inside, leads the
+ poet to reflect, in the spirit of Him who found all the good in men he
+ could, neglecting no point of contact which presented itself, whether
+ there was anything at this lecture with which he could sympathize; and he
+ finds that the heart of the professor does something to rescue him from
+ the error of his brain. In his brain, even, &ldquo;if Love&rsquo;s dead there, it has
+ left a ghost.&rdquo; For when the natural deduction from his argument would be
+ that our faith
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Be swept forthwith to its natural dust-hole,&mdash;
+ He bids us, when we least expect it,
+ Take back our faith&mdash;if it be not just whole,
+ Yet a pearl indeed, as his tests affect it,
+ Which fact pays the damage done rewardingly,
+ So, prize we our dust and ashes accordingly!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Love as well as learning being necessary to the understanding of the New
+ Testament, it is to the poet matter of regret that &ldquo;loveless learning&rdquo;
+ should leave its proper work, and make such havoc in that which belongs
+ not to it. But while he sits &ldquo;talking with his mind,&rdquo; his mood begins to
+ degenerate from sympathy with that which is good to indifference towards
+ all forms, and he feels inclined to rest quietly in the enjoyment of his
+ own religious confidence, and trouble himself in no wise about the faith
+ of his neighbours; for doubtless all are partakers of the central light,
+ though variously refracted by the varied translucency of the mental
+ prism....
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;&lsquo;Twas the horrible storm began afresh!
+ The black night caught me in his mesh,
+ Whirled me up, and flung me prone!
+ I was left on the college-step alone.
+ I looked, and far there, ever fleeting
+ Far, far away, the receding gesture,
+ And looming of the lessening vesture,
+ Swept forward from my stupid hand,
+ While I watched my foolish heart expand
+ In the lazy glow of benevolence
+ O&rsquo;er the various modes of man&rsquo;s belief.
+ I sprang up with fear&rsquo;s vehemence.
+ &mdash;Needs must there be one way, our chief
+ Best way of worship: let me strive
+ To find it, and when found, contrive
+ My fellows also take their share.
+ This constitutes my earthly care:
+ God&rsquo;s is above it and distinct!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The symbolism in the former part of this extract is grand. As soon as he
+ ceases to look practically on the phenomena with which he is surrounded,
+ he is enveloped in storm and darkness, and sees only in the far distance
+ the disappearing skirt of his Lord&rsquo;s garment. God&rsquo;s care is over all, he
+ goes on to say; I must do <i>my part</i>. If I look speculatively on the
+ world, there is nothing but dimness and mystery. If I look practically on
+ it,
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;No mere mote&rsquo;s-breadth, but teems immense
+ With witnessings of Providence.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ And whether the world which I seek to help censures or praises me&mdash;that
+ is nothing to me. My life&mdash;how is it with me?
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Soul of mine, hadst thou caught and held
+ By the hem of the vesture....
+ And I caught
+ At the flying robe, and, unrepelled,
+ Was lapped again in its folds full-fraught
+ With warmth and wonder and delight,
+ God&rsquo;s mercy being infinite.
+ And scarce had the words escaped my tongue,
+ When, at a passionate bound, I sprung
+ Out of the wandering world of rain,
+ Into the little chapel again.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Had he dreamed? how then could he report of the sermon and the preacher?
+ of which and of whom he proceeds to give a very external account. But
+ correcting himself&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Ha! Is God mocked, as He asks?
+ Shall I take on me to change his tasks,
+ And dare, despatched to a river-head
+ For a simple draught of the element,
+ Neglect the thing for which He sent,
+ And return with another thing instead!
+ Saying .... &lsquo;Because the water found
+ Welling up from underground,
+ Is mingled with the taints of earth,
+ While Thou, I know, dost laugh at dearth,
+ And couldest, at a word, convulse
+ The world with the leap of its river-pulse,&mdash;
+ Therefore I turned from the oozings muddy,
+ And bring thee a chalice I found, instead.
+ See the brave veins in the breccia ruddy!
+ One would suppose that the marble bled.
+ What matters the water? A hope I have nursed,
+ That the waterless cup will quench my thirst.&rsquo;
+ &mdash;Better have knelt at the poorest stream
+ That trickles in pain from the straitest rift!
+ For the less or the more is all God&rsquo;s gift,
+ Who blocks up or breaks wide the granite seam.
+ And here, is there water or not, to drink?&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ He comes to the conclusion, that the best for him is that mode of worship
+ which partakes the least of human forms, and brings him nearest to the
+ spiritual; and, while expressing good wishes for the Pope and the
+ professor&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Meantime, in the still recurring fear
+ Lest myself, at unawares, be found,
+ While attacking the choice of my neighbours round,
+ Without my own made&mdash;I choose here!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ He therefore joins heartily in the hymn which is sung by the congregation
+ of the little chapel at the close of their worship. And this concludes the
+ poem.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ What is the central point from which this poem can be regarded? It does
+ not seem to be very hard to find. Novalis has said: &ldquo;Die Philosophie ist
+ eigentlich Heimweh, ein Trieb überall zu Hause zu sein.&rdquo; (Philosophy is
+ really home-sickness, an impulse to be at home everywhere.) The life of a
+ man here, if life it be, and not the vain image of what might be a life,
+ is a continual attempt to find his place, his centre of recipiency, and
+ active agency. He wants to know where he is, and where he ought to be and
+ can be; for, rightly considered, the position a man ought to occupy is the
+ only one he truly <i>can</i> occupy. It is a climbing and striving to
+ reach that point of vision where the multiplex crossings and apparent
+ intertwistings of the lines of fact and feeling and duty shall manifest
+ themselves as a regular and symmetrical design. A contradiction, or a
+ thing unrelated, is foreign and painful to him, even as the rocky particle
+ in the gelatinous substance of the oyster; and, like the latter, he can
+ only rid himself of it by encasing it in the pearl-like enclosure of
+ faith; believing that hidden there lies the necessity for a higher theory
+ of the universe than has yet been generated in his soul. The quest for
+ this home-centre, in the man who has faith, is calm and ceaseless; in the
+ man whose faith is weak, it is stormy and intermittent. Unhappy is that
+ man, of necessity, whose perceptions are keener than his faith is strong.
+ Everywhere Nature herself is putting strange questions to him; the human
+ world is full of dismay and confusion; his own conscience is bewildered by
+ contradictory appearances; all which may well happen to the man whose eye
+ is not yet single, whose heart is not yet pure. He is not at home; his
+ soul is astray amid people of a strange speech and a stammering tongue.
+ But the faithful man is led onward; in the stillness that his confidence
+ produces arise the bright images of truth; and visions of God, which are
+ only beheld in solitary places, are granted to his soul.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;O struggling with the darkness all the night,
+ And visited all night by troops of stars!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ What is true of the whole, is true of its parts. In all the relations of
+ life, in all the parts of the great whole of existence, the true man is
+ ever seeking his home. This poem seems to show us such a quest. &ldquo;Here I am
+ in the midst of many who belong to the same family. They differ in
+ education, in habits, in forms of thought; but they are called by the same
+ name. What position with regard to them am I to assume? I am a Christian;
+ how am I to live in relation to Christians?&rdquo; Such seems to be something
+ like the poet&rsquo;s thought. What central position can he gain, which, while
+ it answers best the necessities of his own soul with regard to God, will
+ enable him to feel himself connected with the whole Christian world, and
+ to sympathize with all; so that he may not be alone, but one of the whole.
+ Certainly the position necessary for both requirements is one and the
+ same. He that is isolated from his brethren, loses one of the greatest
+ helps to draw near to God. Now, in this time, which is so peculiarly
+ transitional, this is a question of no little import for all who, while
+ they gladly forsake old, or rather <i>modern</i>, theories, for what is to
+ them a more full development of Christianity as well as a return to the
+ fountain-head, yet seek to be saved from the danger of losing sympathy
+ with those who are content with what they are compelled to abandon. Seeing
+ much in the common modes of thought and belief that is inconsistent with
+ Christianity, and even opposed to it, they yet cannot but see likewise in
+ many of them a power of spiritual good; which, though not dependent on the
+ peculiar mode, is yet enveloped, if not embodied, in that mode.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Ask, else, these ruins of humanity,
+ This flesh worn out to rags and tatters,
+ This soul at struggle with insanity,
+ Who thence take comfort, can I doubt,
+ Which an empire gained, were a loss without.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ The love of God is the soul of Christianity. Christ is the body of that
+ truth. The love of God is the creating and redeeming, the forming and
+ satisfying power of the universe. The love of God is that which kills evil
+ and glorifies goodness. It is the safety of the great whole. It is the
+ home-atmosphere of all life. Well does the poet of the &ldquo;Christmas Eve&rdquo;
+ say:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;The loving worm within its clod,
+ Were diviner than a loveless God
+ Amid his worlds, I will dare to say.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Surely then, inasmuch as man is made in the image of God nothing less than
+ a love in the image of God&rsquo;s love, all-embracing, quietly excusing,
+ heartily commending, can constitute the blessedness of man; a love not
+ insensible to that which is foreign to it, but overcoming it with good.
+ Where man loves in his kind, even as God loves in His kind, then man is
+ saved, then he has reached the unseen and eternal. But if, besides the
+ necessity to love that lies in a man, there be likewise in the man whom he
+ ought to love something in common with him, then the law of love has
+ increased force. If that point of sympathy lies at the centre of the being
+ of each, and if these centres are brought into contact, then the circles
+ of their being will be, if not coincident, yet concentric. We must wait
+ patiently for the completion of God&rsquo;s great harmony, and meantime love
+ everywhere and as we can.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the great lesson which this poem teaches, and which is taught more
+ directly in the &ldquo;Easter Day&rdquo; (forming part of the same volume), is that
+ the business of a man&rsquo;s life is to be a Christian. A man has to do with
+ God first; in Him only can he find the unity and harmony he seeks. To be
+ one with Him is to be at the centre of things. If one acknowledges that
+ God has revealed himself in Christ; that God has recognized man as his
+ family, by appearing among them in their form; surely that very
+ acknowledgment carries with it the admission that man&rsquo;s chief concern is
+ with this revelation. What does God say and mean, teach and manifest,
+ herein? If this world is God&rsquo;s making, and he is present in all nature; if
+ he rules all things and is present in all history; if the soul of man is
+ in his image, with all its circles of thought and multiplicity of forms;
+ and if for man it be not enough to be rooted in God, but he must likewise
+ lay hold on God; then surely no question, in whatever direction, can be
+ truly answered, save by him who stands at the side of Christ. The doings
+ of God cannot be understood, save by him who has the mind of Christ, which
+ is the mind of God. All things must be strange to one who sympathizes not
+ with the thought of the Maker, who understands not the design of the
+ Artist. Where is he to begin? What light has he by which to classify? How
+ will he bring order out of this apparent confusion, when the order is
+ higher than his thought; when the confusion to him is <i>caused</i> by the
+ order&rsquo;s being greater than he can comprehend? Because he stands outside
+ and not within, he sees an entangled maze of forces, where there is in
+ truth an intertwining dance of harmony. There is for no one any solution
+ of the world&rsquo;s mystery, or of any part of its mystery, except he be able
+ to say with our poet:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;I have looked to Thee from the beginning,
+ Straight up to Thee through all the world,
+ Which, like an idle scroll, lay furled
+ To nothingness on either side:
+ And since the time Thou wast descried,
+ Spite of the weak heart, so have I
+ Lived ever, and so fain would die,
+ Living and dying, Thee before!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Christianity is not the ornament, or even complement, of life; it is its
+ necessity; it is life itself glorified into God&rsquo;s ideal.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Dr. Chalmers, from considering the minuteness of the directions given to
+ Moses for the making of the tabernacle, was led to think that he himself
+ was wrong in attending too little to the &ldquo;<i>petite morale</i>&rdquo; of dress.
+ Will this be excuse enough for occupying a few sentences with the rhyming
+ of this poem? Certainly the rhymes of a poem form no small part of its
+ artistic existence. Probably there is a deeper meaning in this part of the
+ poetic art than has yet been made clear to poet&rsquo;s mind. In this poem the
+ rhymes have their share in its humorous charm. The writer&rsquo;s power of using
+ double and triple rhymes is remarkable, and the effect is often pleasing,
+ even where they are used in the more solemn parts of the poem. Take the
+ lines:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;No! love which, on earth, amid all the shows of it,
+ Has ever been seen the sole good of life in it,
+ The love, ever growing there, spite of the strife in it,
+ Shall arise, made perfect, from death&rsquo;s repose of it.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ A poem is a thing not for the understanding or heart only, but likewise
+ for the ear; or, rather, for the understanding and heart through the ear.
+ The best poem is best set forth when best read. If, then, there be rhymes
+ which, when read aloud, do, by their composition of words, prevent the
+ understanding from laying hold on the separate words, while the ear lays
+ hold on the rhymes, the perfection of the art must here be lost sight of,
+ notwithstanding the completeness which the rhyming manifests on close
+ examination. For instance, in &ldquo;<i>equipt yours,&rdquo; &ldquo;Scriptures;&rdquo;
+ &ldquo;Manchester,&rdquo; &ldquo;haunches stir</i>;&rdquo; or &ldquo;<i>affirm any,&rdquo; &ldquo;Germany</i>;&rdquo;
+ where two words rhyme with one word. But there are very few of them that
+ are objectionable on account of this difficulty and necessity of rapid
+ analysis.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One of the most wonderful things in the poem is, that so much of argument
+ is expressed in a species of verse, which one might be inclined, at first
+ sight, to think the least fitted for embodying it. But, in fact, the same
+ amount of argument in any other kind of verse would, in all likelihood,
+ have been intolerably dull as a work of art. Here the verse is full of
+ life and vigour, flagging never. Where, in several parts, the exact
+ meaning is difficult to reach, this results chiefly from the dramatic
+ rapidity and condensation of the thoughts. The argumentative power is
+ indeed wonderful; the arguments themselves powerful in their simplicity,
+ and embodied in words of admirable force. The poem is full of pathos and
+ humour; full of beauty and grandeur, earnestness and truth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0009" id="link2H_4_0009">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ ESSAYS ON SOME OF THE FORMS OF LITERATURE
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: &ldquo;Essays on some of the Forms of Literature.&rdquo; By T.T. Lynch,
+ Author of &ldquo;Theophilus Trinal.&rdquo; Longmans.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Schoppe, the satiric chorus of Jean Paul&rsquo;s romance of Titan, makes his
+ appearance at a certain masked ball, carrying in front of him a glass
+ case, in which the ball is remasked, repeated, and again reflected in a
+ mirror behind, by a set of puppets, ludicrously aping the apery of the
+ courtiers, whose whole life and outward manifestation was but a body-mask
+ mechanically moved with the semblance of real life and action. The court
+ simulates reality. The masks are a multiform mockery at their own
+ unreality, and as such are regarded by Schoppe, who takes them off with
+ the utmost ridicule in his masked puppet-show, which, with its reflection
+ in the mirror, is again indefinitely multiplied in the many-sided
+ reflector of Schoppe&rsquo;s, or of Richter&rsquo;s, or of the reader&rsquo;s own
+ imagination. The successive retreating and beholding in this scene is
+ suggested to the reviewer by the fact that the last of these essays by Mr.
+ Lynch is devoted in part to reviews. So that the reviews review books,&mdash;Mr.
+ Lynch reviews the reviews, and the present Reviewer finds himself
+ (somewhat presumptuously, it may be) attempting to review Mr. Lynch. In
+ this, however, his office must be very different from that of Schoppe (for
+ there is a deeper and more real correspondence between the position of the
+ showman and the reviewer than that outward resemblance which first caused
+ the one to suggest the other). The latter&rsquo;s office, in the present
+ instance, was, by mockery, to destroy the false, the very involution of
+ the satire adding to the strength of the ridicule. His glass case was
+ simply a review uttered by shapes and wires instead of words and
+ handwriting. And the work of the true critic must sometimes be to condemn,
+ and, as far as his strength can reach, utterly to destroy the false,&mdash;scorching
+ and withering its seeming beauty, till it is reduced to its essence and
+ original groundwork of dust and ashes. It is only, however, when it wears
+ the form of beauty which is the garment of truth, and so, like the
+ Erl-maidens, has power to bewitch, that it is worth the notice and attack
+ of the critic. Many forms of error, perhaps most, are better left alone to
+ die of their own weakness, for the galvanic battery of criticism only
+ helps to perpetuate their ghastly life. The highest work of the critic,
+ however, must surely be to direct attention to the true, in whatever form
+ it may have found utterance. But on this let us hear Mr. Lynch himself in
+ the last of these four lectures which were delivered by him at the Royal
+ Institution, Manchester, and are now before us in the form of a book:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;The kritikos, the discerner, if he is ever saying to us, This is not
+ gold; and never, This is; is either very humbly useful, or very perverse,
+ or very unfortunate. This is not gold, he says. Thank you, we reply, we
+ perceived as much. And this is not, he adds. True, we answer, but we see
+ gold grains glittering out of its rude, dark mass. Well, at least, this is
+ not, he proceeds. Perverse man! we retort, are you seeking what is not
+ gold? We are inquiring for what is, and unfortunate indeed are we if, born
+ into a world of Nature, and of Spirit once so rich, we are born but to
+ find that it has spent or has lost all its wealth. Unhappy man would he
+ be, who, walking his garden, should scent only the earthy savour of leaves
+ dead or dying, never perceiving, and that afar off, the heavenly odour of
+ roses fresh to-day from the Maker&rsquo;s hands. The discerning by spiritual
+ aroma may lead to discernment by the eye, and to that careful scrutiny,
+ and thence greater knowledge, of which the eye is instrument and
+ minister.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And again:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;The critic criticized, if dealt with in the worst fashion of his own
+ class, must be pronounced a mere monster, &lsquo;seeking whom he may devour;&rsquo;
+ and, therefore, to be hunted and slain as speedily as possible, and
+ stuffed for the museum, where he may be regarded with due horror, but in
+ safety. But if dealt with after the best fashion of his class, a very
+ honourable and beneficent office is assigned him, and he is warned only&mdash;though
+ zealously&mdash;against its perversions. A judicial chair in the kingdom
+ of human thought, filled by a man of true integrity, comprehensiveness,
+ and delicacy of spirit, is a seat of terror and praise, whose powers are
+ at once most fostering to whatever is good, most repressive of whatever is
+ evil.... The critic, in his office of censurer, has need so much to
+ controvert, expose, and punish, because of the abundance of literary
+ faults; and as there is a right and a wrong side in warfare, so there will
+ be in criticism. And as when soldiers are numerous, there will be not a
+ few who are only tolerable, if even that, so of critics. But then the
+ critic is more than the censurer; and in his higher and happier aspect
+ appears before us and serves us, as the discoverer, the vindicator, and
+ the eulogist of excellence.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But resisting the temptation to quote further from Mr. Lynch&rsquo;s book on
+ this matter of Criticism, which seemed the natural point of contact by
+ which the Reviewer could lay hold on the book, he would pass on with the
+ remark that his duty in the present instance is of the nobler and better
+ sort&mdash;nobler and better, that is, with regard to the object, for duty
+ in the man remains ever the same&mdash;namely, the exposition of
+ excellence, and not of its opposite. Mr. Lynch is a man of true insight
+ and large heart, who has already done good in the world, and will do more;
+ although, possibly, he belongs rather to the last class of writers
+ described by himself, in the extract I am about to give from this same
+ essay, than to any of the preceding:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Some of the best books are written avowedly, or with evident
+ consciousness of the fact, for the select public that is constituted by
+ minds of the deeper class, or minds the more advanced of their time. Such
+ books may have but a restricted circulation and limited esteem in their
+ own day, and may afterwards extend both their fame and the circle of their
+ readers. Others of the best books, written with a pathos and a power that
+ may be universally felt, appeal at once to the common humanity of the
+ world, and get a response marvellously strong and immediate. An ordinary
+ human eye and heart, whose glances are true, whose pulses healthy, will
+ fit us to say of much that we read&mdash;This is good, that is poor. But
+ only the educated eye and the experienced heart will fit us to judge of
+ what relates to matters veiled from ordinary observation, and belonging to
+ the profounder region of human thought and emotion. Powers, however, that
+ the few only possess, may be required to paint what everybody can see, so
+ that everybody shall say, How beautiful! how like! And powers adequate to
+ do this in the finest manner will be often adequate to do much more&mdash;may
+ produce, indeed, books or pictures, whose singular merit only the few
+ shall perceive, and the many for awhile deny, and books or pictures which,
+ while they give an immediate and pure pleasure to the common eye, shall
+ give a far fuller and finer pleasure to that eye that is the organ of a
+ deeper and more cultivated soul. There are, too, men of <i>peculiar</i>
+ powers, rare and fine, who can never hope to please the large public, at
+ least of their own age, but whose writings are a heart&rsquo;s ease and heart&rsquo;s
+ joy to the select few, and serve such as a cup of heavenly comfort for the
+ earth&rsquo;s journey, and a lamp of heavenly light for the shadows of the way.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One other extract from the general remarks on Books in this essay, and we
+ will turn to another:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;In all our estimation of the various qualities of books, if it be true
+ that our reading assists our life, it is true also that our life assists
+ our reading. If we let our spirit talk to us in undistracted moments&mdash;if
+ we commune with friendly, serious Nature, face to face, often&mdash;if we
+ pursue honourable aims in a steady progress&mdash;if we learn how a man&rsquo;s
+ best work falls below his thought, yet how still his failure prompts a
+ tenderer love of his thought&mdash;if we live in sincere, frank relations
+ with some few friends, joying in their joy, hearing the tale and sharing
+ the pain of their grief, and in frequent interchange of honest, household
+ sensibility&mdash;if we look about us on character, marking distinctly
+ what we can see, and feeling the prompting of a hundred questions
+ concerning what is out of our ken:&mdash;if we live thus, we shall be good
+ readers and critics of books, and improving ones.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The second and third of these essays are on Biography and Fiction
+ respectively and principally; treating, however, of collateral subjects as
+ well. Deep is the relation between the life shadowed forth in a biography,
+ and the life in a man&rsquo;s brain which he shadows forth in a fiction&mdash;when
+ that fiction is of the highest order, and written in love, is beheld even
+ by the writer himself with reverence. Delightful, surely, it must be; yes,
+ awful too, to read to-day the embodiment of a man&rsquo;s noblest thought, to
+ follow the hero of his creation through his temptations, contests, and
+ victories, in a world which likewise is&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;All made out of the carver&rsquo;s brain;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ and to-morrow to read the biography of this same writer. What of his own
+ ideal has he realized? Where can the life-fountain be detected within him
+ which found issue to the world&rsquo;s light and air, in this ideal self? Shall
+ God&rsquo;s fiction, which is man&rsquo;s reality, fall short of man&rsquo;s fiction? Shall
+ a man be less than what he can conceive and utter? Surely it will not,
+ cannot end thus. If a man live at all in harmony with the great laws of
+ being&mdash;if he will permit the working out of God&rsquo;s idea in him, he
+ must one day arrive at something greater than what now he can project and
+ behold. Yet, in biography, we do not so often find traces of those
+ struggles depicted in the loftier fiction. One reason may be that the
+ contest is often entirely within, and so a man may have won his spiritual
+ freedom without any outward token directly significant of the victory;
+ except, if he be an artist, such expression as it finds in fiction,
+ whether the fiction be in marble, or in sweet harmonies, or in ink. Nor
+ can we determine the true significance of any living act; for being
+ ourselves within the compass of the life-mystery, we cannot hold it at
+ arm&rsquo;s length from us and look at its lines of configuration. Nor of a life
+ can we in any measure determine the success by what we behold of it. It is
+ to us at best but a truncated spire, whose want of completion may be the
+ greater because of the breadth of its base, and its slow taper, indicating
+ the lofty height to which it is intended to aspire. The idea of our own
+ life is more than we can embrace. It is not ours, but God&rsquo;s, and fades
+ away into the infinite. Our comprehension is finite; we ourselves
+ infinite. We can only trust in God and do the truth; then, and then only,
+ is our life safe, and sure both of continuance and development.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the reviewer perhaps too often merely steals his author&rsquo;s text and
+ writes upon it; or, like a man who lies in bed thinking about a dream till
+ its folds enwrap him and he sinks into the midst of its visions, he
+ forgets his position of beholding, and passes from observation into
+ spontaneous utterance. What says our author about &ldquo;biography,
+ autobiography, and history?&rdquo; This lecture has pleased the reviewer most of
+ the four. Reading it in a lonely place, under a tree, with wide fields and
+ slopes around, it produced on his mind the two effects which perhaps Mr.
+ Lynch would most wish it should produce&mdash;namely, first, a longing to
+ lead a more true and noble life; and, secondly, a desire to read more
+ biography. Nor can he but hope that it must produce the same effect on
+ every earnest reader, on every one whose own biography would not be
+ altogether a blank in what regards the individual will and spiritual aim.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;In meditative hours, when we blend despair of ourself with complaint of
+ the world, the biography of a man successful in this great business of
+ living is as the visit of an angel sent to strengthen us. Give the soldier
+ his sword, the farmer his plough, the carpenter his hammer and nails, the
+ manufacturer his machines, the merchant his stores, and the scholar his
+ books; these are but implements; the man is more than his work or tools.
+ How far has he fulfilled the law of his being, and attained its desire? Is
+ his life a whole; the days as threads and as touches; the life, the
+ well-woven garment, the well-painted picture? Which of two sacrifices has
+ he offered&mdash;the one so acceptable to the powers of dark worlds, the
+ other so acceptable to powers of bright ones&mdash;that of soul to body,
+ or that of body to soul? Has he slain what was holiest in him to obtain
+ gifts from Fashion or Mammon? Or has he, in days so arduous, so assiduous,
+ that they are like a noble army of martyrs, made burnt-offering of what
+ was secondary, throwing into the flames the salt of true moral energy and
+ the incense of cordial affections? We want the work to show us by its
+ parts, its mass, its form, the qualities of the man, and to see that the
+ man is perfected through his work as well as the work finished by his
+ effort.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Perhaps the highest moral height which a man can reach, and at the same
+ time the most difficult of attainment, is the willingness to be <i>nothing</i>
+ relatively, so that he attain that positive excellence which the original
+ conditions of his being render not merely possible, but imperative. It is
+ nothing to a man to be greater or less than another&mdash;to be esteemed
+ or otherwise by the public or private world in which he moves. Does he, or
+ does he not, behold, and love, and live, the unchangeable, the essential,
+ the divine? This he can only do according as God hath made him. He can
+ behold and understand God in the least degree, as well as in the greatest,
+ only by the godlike within him; and he that loves thus the good and great,
+ has no room, no thought, no necessity for comparison and difference. The
+ truth satisfies him. He lives in its absoluteness. God makes the glow-worm
+ as well as the star; the light in both is divine. If mine be an earth-star
+ to gladden the wayside, I must cultivate humbly and rejoicingly its green
+ earth-glow, and not seek to blanch it to the whiteness of the stars that
+ lie in the fields of blue. For to deny God in my own being is to cease to
+ behold him in any. God and man can meet only by the man&rsquo;s becoming that
+ which God meant him to be. Then he enters into the house of life, which is
+ greater than the house of fame. It is better to be a child in a green
+ field than a knight of many orders in a state ceremonial.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;One biography may help conjecture or satisfy reason concerning the story
+ of a thousand unrecorded lives. And how few even of the deserving among
+ the multitude can deserve, as &lsquo;dear sons of memory,&rsquo; to be shrined in the
+ public heart. Few of us die unwept, but most of us unwritten. We shall
+ find a grave&mdash;less certainly a tombstone&mdash;and with much less
+ likelihood a biographer. Those &lsquo;bright particular&rsquo; stars that at evening
+ look towards us from afar, yet still are individual in the distance, are
+ at clearest times but about a thousand; but the milky lustre that runs
+ through mid heaven is composed of a million million lights, which are not
+ the less separate because seen undistinguishably. Absorbed, not lost, in
+ the multitude of the unrecorded, our private dear ones make part in this
+ mild, blissful shining of the &lsquo;general assembly,&rsquo; the great congregation
+ of the skies. Thus the past is aglow with the unwritten, the nameless. The
+ leaders, sons of fame, conspicuous in lustre, eminent in place; these are
+ the few, whose great individuality burns with distinct, starry light
+ through the dark of ages. Such stars, without the starry way, would not
+ teach us the vastness of heaven; and the &lsquo;way,&rsquo; without these, were not
+ sufficient to gladden and glorify the night with pomp of Hierarchical
+ Ascents of Domination.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There are many passages in this essay with which the reviewer would be
+ glad to enrich his notice of the book, but limitation of space, and
+ perhaps justice to the essay itself, which ought to be read in its own
+ completeness, forbid. Mr. Lynch looks to the heart of the matter, and
+ makes one put the question&mdash;&ldquo;Would not a biography written by Mr.
+ Lynch himself be a valuable addition to this kind of literature?&rdquo; His
+ would not be an interesting account of outward events and relationships
+ and progress, nor even a succession of revelations of inward conditions,
+ but we should expect to find ourselves elevated by him to a point of view
+ from which the life of the man would assume an artistic individuality, as
+ it were an isolation of existence; for the supposed author could not
+ choose for his regard any biography for which this would be impossible; or
+ in which the reticulated nerves of purpose did not combine the whole, with
+ more or less of success, into a true and remarkable unity. One passage
+ more from this essay,&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Biography, then, makes life known to us as more wealthy in character, and
+ much more remarkable in its every-day stories, than we had deemed it.
+ Another good it does us is this. It introduces us to some of our most
+ agreeable and stimulative friendships. People may be more beneficially
+ intimate with one they never saw than even with a neighbour or brother.
+ Many a solitary, puzzled, incommunicative person, has found society
+ provided, his riddle read, and his heart&rsquo;s secret, that longed and strove
+ for utterance, outspoken for him in a biography. And both a love purer
+ than any yet entertained may be originated, and a pure but ungratified
+ love already existing, find an object, by the visit of a biography. In
+ actual life you see your friend to-day, and will see him again to-morrow
+ or next year; but in the dear book, you have your friend and all his
+ experiences at once and ever. He is with you wholly, and may be with you
+ at any time. He lives for you, and has already died for you, to give
+ finish to the meaning, fulness, and sanctity, to the comfort of his days.
+ He is mysteriously above as well as before you, by this fact, that he has
+ died. Thus your intimate is your superior, your solace, but your support,
+ too, and an example of the victory to which he calls you. His end, or her
+ end, is our own in view, and the flagging spirit revives. We see the goal,
+ and gird our loins anew for the race. Or, speaking of things minor, there
+ is fresh prospect of the game, there is companionship in the hunt, and
+ spirit for the winning. Such biography, too, is a mirror in which we see
+ ourselves; and we see that we may trim or adorn, or that the plain signs
+ of our deficient health or ill-ruled temper may set us to look for, and to
+ use the means of improvement. But such a mirror is as a water one; in
+ which first you may see your face, and which then becomes for you a bath
+ to wash away the stains you see, and to offer its pure, cool stream as a
+ restorative and cosmetic for your wrinkles and pallors. And what a
+ pleasure there will be sometimes as we peruse a biography, in finding
+ another who is so like ourself&mdash;saying the same things, feeling the
+ same dreads, and shames, and flutterings; hampered and harassed much as
+ poor self is. Then, the escapes of such a friend give us hope of
+ deliverance for ourself; and his better, or if not better, yet rewarded,
+ patience, freshens our eye and sinews, and puts a staff into our hand. And
+ certain seals of impossibility that we had put on this stone, and on that,
+ beneath which our hopes lay buried, are by this biography, as by a
+ visiting angel, effectually broken, and our hopes arise again. Our view of
+ life becomes more complete because we see the whole of his, or of hers. We
+ view life, too, in a more composed, tender way. Wavering faith, in its
+ chosen determining principles, is confirmed. In quiet comparison of
+ ourselves with one of our own class, or one who has made the mark for
+ which we are striving, we are shamed to have done no better, and stirred
+ to attempt former things again, or fresh ones in a stronger and more
+ patient spirit.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It is, indeed, well with him who has found a friend whose spirit touches
+ his own and illuminates it.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;I missed him when the sun began to bend;
+ I found him not when I had lost his rim;
+ With many tears I went in search of him,
+ Climbing high mountains which did still ascend,
+ And gave me echoes when I called my friend;
+ Through cities vast and charnel-houses grim,
+ And high cathedrals where the light was dim;
+ Through books, and arts, and works without an end&mdash;
+ But found him not, the friend whom I had lost.
+ And yet I found him, as I found the lark,
+ A sound in fields I heard but could not mark;
+ I found him nearest when I missed him most,
+ I found him in my heart, a life in frost,
+ A light I knew not till my soul was dark.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Next to possessing a true, wise, and victorious friend seated by your
+ fireside, it is blessed to have the spirit of such a friend embodied&mdash;for
+ spirit can assume any embodiment&mdash;on your bookshelves. But in the
+ latter case the friendship is all on one side. For full friendship your
+ friend must love you, and know that you love him. Surely these biographies
+ are not merely spiritual links connecting us in the truest manner with
+ past times and vanished minds, and thus producing strong half friendships.
+ Are they not likewise links connecting us with a future, wherein these
+ souls shall dawn upon ours, rising again from the death of the past into
+ the life of our knowledge and love? Are not these biographies letters of
+ introduction, forwarded, but not yet followed by him whom they introduce,
+ for whose step we listen, and whose voice we long to hear; and whom we
+ shall yet meet somewhere in the Infinite? Shall I not one day, &ldquo;somewhere,
+ somehow,&rdquo; clasp the large hand of Novalis, and, gazing on his face,
+ compare his features with those of Saint John?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The essay on light literature must be left to the spontaneous appreciation
+ of those who are already acquainted with this book, or who may be induced,
+ by the representations here made, to become acquainted with it. Before
+ proceeding to notice the first essay in the little volume, namely, that on
+ Poetry, its subject suggests the fact of the publication of a second
+ edition of the Memorials of Theophilus Trinal, by the same author, a
+ portion of which consists of interspersed poems. These are of true poetic
+ worth; and although in some cases wanting in rhythmic melody, yet in most
+ of these cases they possess a wild and peculiar rhythm of their own. The
+ reviewer knows of some whose hearts this book has made glad, and doubtless
+ there are many such.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The essay on Poetry is itself poetic throughout in its expression. And how
+ else shall Poetry be described than by Poetry? What form shall embrace and
+ define the highest? Must it not be self-descriptive as self-existent? For
+ what man is to this planet, what the eye is to man himself, Poetry is to
+ Literature. Yet one can hardly help wishing that the poetic forms in this
+ Essay were fewer and less minute, and the whole a little more scientific;
+ though it is a question how far we have a right to ask for this. As you
+ open it, however, the pages seem absolutely to sparkle, as if strewn with
+ diamond sparks. It is no dull, metallic, surface lustre, but a shining
+ from within, as well as from the superficies. Still one cannot deny that
+ fancy is too prominent in Mr. Lynch&rsquo;s writings. It is true that his Fancy
+ is the fairy attendant on his Imagination, which latter uses the former
+ for her own higher ends; and that there is little or no <i>mere</i> fancy
+ to be found in his books; for if you look below the surface-form you find
+ a truth. But it were to be desired that the Truth clothed herself always
+ in the living forms of Imagination, and thus walked forth amongst her
+ worshippers, looking on them from living eyes, rather than that she should
+ show herself through the windows of fancy. Sometimes there may be an
+ offence against taste, as in page 20; sometimes an image may be expanded
+ too much, and sometimes the very exuberance of imaginative fancy (if the
+ combination be correct) may lead to an association of images that suggests
+ incongruity. Still the essay is abundantly beautiful and true. The
+ poetical quotations are not isolated, or exposed to view as specimens, but
+ are worked into the web of the prose like the flowers in the damask, and
+ do their part in the evolution of the continuous thought.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;If poetry, as light from the heart of God, is for our heart, that we may
+ brighten and distinguish individual things; if it is to transfigure for us
+ the round, dusk world as by an inner radiance; if it is to present human
+ life and history as Rembrandt pictures, in which darkness serves and
+ glorifies light; if, like light, formless in its essence, all things
+ shapen towards the perfection of their forms under its influence; if,
+ entering as through crevices in single beams, it makes dimmest places
+ cheerful and sacred with its golden touch: then must the heart of the Poet
+ in which this true light shineth be as a hospice on the mountain pathways
+ of the world, and his verse must be the lamp seen from far that burns to
+ tell us where bread and shelter, drink, fire, and companionship, may be
+ found; and he himself should have the mountaineer&rsquo;s hardiness and
+ resolution. From the heart as source, to the heart in influence, Poetry
+ comes. The inward, the upward, and the onward, whether we speak of an
+ individual or a nation, may not be separated in our consideration. Deep
+ and sacred imaginative meditations are needed for the true earthward as
+ well as for the heavenward progress of men and peoples. And Poetry,
+ whether old or new, streaming from the heart moved by the powerful spirit
+ of love, has influence on the heart public and individual, and thence on
+ the manners, laws, and institutions of nations. If Poesy visit the length
+ and breadth of a country after years unfruitfully dull, coming like a
+ showery fertilizing wind after drought, the corners and the valley-hidings
+ are visited too, and these perhaps she now visits first, as these
+ sometimes she has visited only. For miles and for miles, the public corn,
+ the bread of the nation&rsquo;s life, is bettered; and in our own endeared spot,
+ the roses, delight of our individual eye and sense, yield us more
+ prosperingly their colour and their fragrance. For the universal sunshine
+ which brightens a thousand cities, beautifies ten thousand homesteads, and
+ rejoices ten times ten thousand hearts. And as rains in the mid season
+ renew for awhile the faded greenness of spring; and trees in fervent
+ summers, when their foliage has deepened or fully fixed its hue, bedeck
+ themselves through the fervency with bright midsummer shoots; so, by
+ Poetry are the youthful hues of the soul renewed, and truths that have
+ long stood full-foliaged in our minds, are by its fine influences
+ empowered to put forth fresh shoots. Thus age, which is a necessity for
+ the body, may be warded off as a disease from the soul, and we may be like
+ the old man in Chaucer, who had nothing hoary about him but his hairs&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;&lsquo;Though I be hoor I fare as doth a tree
+ That blosmeth er the fruit ywoxen be,
+ The blosmy tree n&rsquo; is neither drie ne ded:
+ I feel me nowhere hoor, but on my head.
+ Min herte and all my limmes ben as grene
+ As laurel through the yere is for to sene.&rsquo;&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Hear our author again as to the calling of the poet:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;To unite earthly love and celestial&mdash;&lsquo;true to the kindred points of
+ heaven and home;&rsquo; to reconcile time and eternity; to draw presage of joy&rsquo;s
+ victory from the delight of the secret honey dropping from the clefts of
+ rocky sorrow; <i>to harmonize our instinctive longings for the definite
+ and the infinite, in the ideal Perfect</i>; to read creation as a human
+ book of the heart, both plain and mystical, and divinely written: such is
+ the office fulfilled by best-loved poets. Their ladder of celestial ascent
+ must be fixed on its base, earth, if its top is to securely rest on
+ heaven.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Beautifully, too, does he describe the birth of Poetry; though one may
+ doubt its correctness, at least if attributed to the highest kind of
+ poetry.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;When words of felt truth were first spoken by the first pair, in love of
+ their garden, their God, and one another, and these words were with joyful
+ surprise felt to be in their form and glow answerable to the happy thought
+ uttered; then Poetry sprang. And when the first Father and first Mother,
+ settling their soul upon its thought, found that thought brighten; and
+ when from it, as thus they mused, like branchlets from a branch, or
+ flowerets from their bud, other thoughts came, ranging themselves by the
+ exerted, yet painlessly exerted, power of the soul, in an order felt to be
+ beautiful, and of a sound pleasant in utterance to ear and soul; being
+ withal, through the sweetness of their impression on the heart, fixed for
+ memory&rsquo;s frequentest recurrence; then was the world&rsquo;s first poem composed,
+ and in the joyful flutter of a heart that had thus become a maker, the
+ maker of a &lsquo;thing of beauty,&rsquo; like in beauty even unto God&rsquo;s heaven, and
+ trees, and flowers, the secret of Poesy shone tremulously forth.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Whether this be so or not, the highest poetic feeling of which we are now
+ conscious springs not from the beholding of perfected beauty, but from the
+ mute sympathy which the creation with all its children manifests with us
+ in the groaning and travailing which looketh for the sonship. Because of
+ our need and aspiration, the snowdrop gives birth in our hearts to a
+ loftier spiritual and poetic feeling, than the rose most complete in form,
+ colour, and odour. The rose is of Paradise&mdash;the snowdrop is of the
+ striving, hoping, longing Earth. Perhaps our highest poetry is the
+ expression of our aspirations in the sympathetic forms of visible nature.
+ Nor is this merely a longing for a restored Paradise; for even in the
+ ordinary history of men, no man or woman that has fallen can be restored
+ to the position formerly occupied. Such must rise to a yet higher place,
+ whence they can behold their former standing far beneath their feet. They
+ must be restored by attaining something better than they ever possessed
+ before, or not at all. If the law be a weariness, we must escape it by
+ being filled with the spirit, for not otherwise can we fulfil the law than
+ by being above the law. There is for us no escape, save as the Poet
+ counsels us:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Is thy strait horizon dreary?
+ Is thy foolish fancy chill?
+ Change the feet that have grown weary,
+ For the wings that never will.
+ Burst the flesh and live the spirit;
+ Haunt the beautiful and far;
+ Thou hast all things to inherit,
+ And a soul for every star.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ But the Reviewer must hasten to take leave, though unwillingly, of this
+ pleasing, earnest, and profitable book. Perhaps it could be wished that
+ the writer helped his readers a little more into the channel of his
+ thought; made it easier for them to see the direction in which he is
+ leading them; called out to them, &ldquo;Come up hither,&rdquo; before he said, &ldquo;I
+ will show you a thing.&rdquo; But the Reviewer says this with deference; and
+ takes his leave with the hope that Mr. Lynch will be listened to for two
+ good reasons: first, that he speaks the truth; last, that he has already
+ suffered for the Truth&rsquo;s sake.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0010" id="link2H_4_0010">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ THE HISTORY AND HEROES OF MEDICINE.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: By J. Rutherfurd Russell, M.D.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In this volume, Dr. Russell has not merely aimed at the production of a
+ book that might be serviceable to the Faculty, by which the history of its
+ own art is not at all sufficiently studied, but has aspired to the far
+ more difficult success of writing a history of medicine which shall be
+ readable to all who care for true history&mdash;that history, namely, in
+ which not merely growth and change are represented, but the secret
+ supplies and influences as well, which minister to the one and occasion
+ the other. If the difficulty has been greater (although with his evidently
+ wide sympathies and keen insight into humanity we doubt if it has), the
+ success is the more honourable; for a success it certainly is. The
+ partially biographical plan on which he has constructed his work has no
+ doubt aided in the accomplishment of this purpose; for it is much easier
+ to present the subject in its human relations, when its history is given
+ in connexion with the lives of those who were most immediately associated
+ with it. But it would be a great mistake to conclude from this, that it is
+ the less a history of the art itself; for no art or science has life in
+ itself, apart from the minds which foresee, discover, and verify it.
+ Whatever point in its progress it may have reached, it will there remain
+ until a new man appears, whose new questions shall illicit new replies
+ from nature&mdash;replies which are the essential food of the science, by
+ which it lives, grows, and makes itself a history.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Nor must our readers suppose that because the book is readable, it is
+ therefore slight, either in material or construction. Much reading and
+ research have provided the material, while real thought and argument have
+ superintended the construction. Nor is it by any means without the
+ adornment that a poetic temperament and a keen sense of humour can supply.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Naturally, the central life in the book is that of Lord Bacon, the man who
+ brought out of his treasures things both new and old. Up to him the story
+ gradually leads from the prehistoric times of Aesculapius, the pathway
+ first becoming plainly visible in the life and labours of Hippocrates. His
+ fine intellect and powers of acute observation afforded the material
+ necessary for the making of a true physician. The Greek mind, partly,
+ perhaps, from its artistic tendencies, seems to have been peculiarly
+ impatient of incomplete forms, and therefore, to have much preferred the
+ construction of a theory from the most shadowy material, to the patient
+ experiment and investigation necessary for the procuring of the real
+ substance; and Hippocrates, not knowing how to advance to a theory by
+ rational experiment, and too honest to invent one, assumes the traditional
+ theories, founded on the vaguest and most obtrusive generalizations. Those
+ which his experience taught him to reject, were adopted and maintained by
+ Galen and all who followed him for centuries, the chief instance of
+ progress being only the substitution by the Arabians of some of the milder
+ medicines now in use, for the terrible and often fatal drugs employed by
+ the Greek and Roman physicians. The fanciful classification of diseases
+ into four kinds&mdash;hot, cold, moist and dry, with the corresponding
+ arbitrary classification of remedies to be administered by contraries,
+ continued to be the only recognized theory of medicine for many centuries
+ after the Christian era.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But Lord Bacon, amongst other branches of knowledge which he considers
+ ill-followed, makes especial mention of medicine, which he would submit to
+ the same rules of observation and experiment laid down by him for the
+ advancement of learning in general. With regard to it, as with regard to
+ the discovery of all the higher laws of nature, he considers &ldquo;that men
+ have made too untimely a departure, and too remote a recess from
+ particulars.&rdquo; Men have hurried to conclusions, and then argued from them
+ as from facts. Therefore let us have no traditional theories, and make
+ none for ourselves but such as are revealed in the form of laws to the
+ patient investigator, who has &ldquo;straightened and held fast Proteus, that he
+ might be compelled to change his shapes,&rdquo; and so reveal his nature. Hence
+ one of the aspects in which Lord Bacon was compelled to appear was that of
+ a destroyer of what preceded. In this he resembled Cardan and Paracelsus
+ who went before him, and who like him pulled down, but could not, like
+ him, build up. He resembled them, however, in the possession of another
+ element of character, namely, that poetic imagination which looks abroad
+ into the regions of possibilities, and foresees or invents. But in the
+ case of the charlatan, the vaguest suggestions of his mind in its
+ favourite mood, is adopted as a theory all but proved, if not as a direct
+ revelation to the favoured individual; while the true thinker seeks but an
+ hypothesis corresponding in some measure to facts already discovered, in
+ order that he may have the suggestion of new experiments and
+ investigations in the course of his attempts to verify or disprove the
+ hypothesis. Lord Bacon considered hypothesis invaluable in the discovery
+ of truth, but he only used it as a board upon which to write his questions
+ to nature; or, to use another figure, hypothesis with him is as the next
+ stepping-stone in the swollen river, which he supposes to be here or
+ there, and so feels for with his staff. But it must be proved before it be
+ regarded as a law, and greatly corroborated before it be even adopted as a
+ theory. Cardan and Paracelsus were destroyers and mystics only; they
+ destroyed on the earth that they might build in the air: Lord Bacon united
+ both characters in the philosopher. He looked abroad into the regions of
+ the unknown, whence all knowledge comes; he called wonder the seed of
+ knowledge; but he would build nowhere but on the earth&mdash;on the firm
+ land of ascertained truth. That which kept him right was his practical
+ humanity. It was for the sake of delivering men from the ills of life, by
+ discovering the laws of the elements amidst which that life must be led,
+ that he laboured and thought. This object kept him true, made him able to
+ discover the very laws of discovery; brought him so far into <i>rapport</i>
+ with the heart of nature herself, that, like a physical prophet, his
+ seeing could outspeed his knowing, and behold a law&mdash;dimly, it is
+ true, but yet behold it&mdash;long before his intellect, which had to
+ build bridges and find straw to make the bricks, could dare to affirm its
+ approach to the same conclusion. Truth to humanity made him true to fact;
+ and truth to fact made him true in theory.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It was in this spirit of devotion to his kind that he said, &ldquo;Therefore
+ here is the deficience which I find, that physicians have not ... set down
+ and delivered over certain experimental medicines for the cure of
+ particular diseases.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Dr. Russell&rsquo;s true insight into the relation of Lord Bacon to the medical
+ as well as to all science, has suggested the above remarks. What our
+ author chiefly desires is, that the same principles which made medicine
+ what it is, should be allowed to carry it yet further, and make it what it
+ ought to be, and must become. As he goes on to show, through succeeding
+ lives and theories, that just in proportion as these principles have been
+ followed&mdash;the principles of careful observation, hypothesis, and
+ experiment&mdash;have men made discoveries that have been helpful to their
+ fellow-men; while, on the other hand, the most elaborate theories of the
+ most popular physicians, which have owed their birth to premature
+ generalization and invention, have passed away, like the crackling of
+ thorns under a pot. Belonging to the latter class of men, we have Stahl,
+ Hoffman, Boerhaave, Cullen, and Brown; while to the former belong Harvey,
+ Sydenham, Jenner, and Hahnemann.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ After the last name, there is no need to say that our author is a
+ homoeopath. Whatever may be our private opinion of the system, justice
+ requires that we should say at least that books such as these are quite as
+ open to refutation as to ridicule; for it is only a good argument that is
+ worth refuting by a better. But we fear there are few books on this
+ subject that treat of it with the calmness and fairness which would
+ incline an honest homoeopath to put them into the hands of one of the
+ opposite party as an exposition of his opinions. There is no excitement in
+ these pages. They are the work of a man of liberal education, of
+ refinement, and of truthfulness, with power to understand, and facility to
+ express; one of whose main objects is to vindicate for homoeopathy, on the
+ most rightful of all grounds&mdash;those on which alone science can stand&mdash;on
+ the ground, that is, of laws discovered by observation and experiment&mdash;the
+ place not only of a fact in the history of medicine, but the right to be
+ considered as one of the greatest advances towards the establishment of a
+ science of curing. Certainly if he and the rest of its advocates should
+ fail utterly in this, the heresy will yet have established for itself a
+ memorial in history, as one of the most powerful illusions that have ever
+ deceived both priests and people. But the chief advantage which the system
+ will derive from Dr. Russell&rsquo;s book will spring, it seems to us, from his
+ attempt&mdash;a successful one it must be confessed&mdash;to prove <i>that
+ homoeopathy is a development, and not a mere reaction</i>; that it has its
+ roots far down in the history of science. The first mention of it in the
+ book, however, is made for the purpose of disavowing the claim, advanced
+ by many homoeopathists, to Hippocrates as one of their order. Not to
+ mention the curious story about Galen and the patient ill from an overdose
+ of theriacum, who was cured by another dose of the same substance, nor the
+ ridicule of the doctrine of contraries by Paracelsus and Van Helmont, nor
+ the fact that the <i>contraries</i> of Boerhaave, by his own explanation,
+ merely signify whatever substances prove their contrariety to the disease
+ by curing it&mdash;to pass by these, we find one of the main objects of
+ homoeopathy, the discovery of specifics, insisted upon by Lord Bacon in
+ his words already quoted. Not that homoeopaths, while they depend upon
+ specifics, believe that there is any such thing as a specific for a
+ disease&mdash;a disease being as various as the individuality of the human
+ beings whom it may attack; but that an approximate specific may be found
+ for every well-defined stage in every individual disease; a disease having
+ its process of change, development, and decline, like a vegetable or
+ animal life. Besides an equally strong desire for specifics, and a
+ determined opposition to compound medicines, Boyle, who was born the year
+ of Bacon&rsquo;s death, and inherited the mantle of the great philosopher,
+ manifests a strong belief in the power of the infinitesimal dose. Neither
+ Bacon nor Boyle, however, were medical men by profession. But Sydenham
+ followed them, according to Dr. Russell, in their tendency towards
+ specifics. It is almost needless to mention Jenner&rsquo;s victory over the
+ small-pox as, in the eyes of the homoeopaths, a grand step in the
+ development of their system. It gives Dr. Russell an opportunity of
+ showing in a strong instance that the best discoveries for delivering
+ mankind from those ills even of which they are most sensible have been
+ received with derision, with more than bare unbelief. This is one of his
+ objects in the book, and while it is no proof whatever of the truth of
+ homoepathy, it shows at least that the opposition manifested to it is no
+ proof of its falsehood. This is enough; for it seeks to be tried on its
+ own merits; and its foes are bound to accord it this when it is advocated
+ in such an honest and dignified manner as in the book before us.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The need of man, in physics as well as in higher things, is the guide to
+ truth. With evils of any sort we need no further acquaintance than may be
+ gained in the endeavour to combat them. The discovery of what will cure
+ diseases seems the only natural mode of rising by generalization to the
+ discovery of the laws of cure and the nature of disease.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Those portions of the volume which discuss the influence of Christianity
+ on the healing art, likewise those relating to the different feelings with
+ which at different times in different countries physicians have been
+ regarded, are especially interesting.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The only portion of the book we should be inclined to find fault with, as
+ to the quality of the thought expended upon it, is the dissertation in the
+ second chapter on the [Greek: psuchae] and [Greek: pneuma]. We doubt
+ likewise whether the author gives the Archaeus of Van Helmont quite fair
+ play; but these are questions so purely theoretical that they scarcely
+ admit of discussion here. We rise from the perusal of the book, whatever
+ may be our feelings with regard to the truth or falsehood of the system it
+ advocates, with increased respect for the profession of medicine, with
+ enlarged hope for its future, and with a strong feeling of the nobility
+ conferred by the art upon every one of its practitioners who is aware of
+ the dignity of his calling.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0011" id="link2H_4_0011">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ WORDSWORTH&rsquo;S POETRY
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: Delivered extempore at Manchester.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The history of the poetry of Wordsworth is a true reflex of the man
+ himself. The life of Wordsworth was not outwardly eventful, but his inner
+ life was full of conflict, discovery, and progress. His outward life seems
+ to have been so ordered by Providence as to favour the development of the
+ poetic life within. Educated in the country, and spending most of his life
+ in the society of nature, he was not subjected to those violent external
+ changes which have been the lot of some poets. Perfectly fitted as he was
+ to cope with the world, and to fight his way to any desired position, he
+ chose to retire from it, and in solitude to work out what appeared to him
+ to be the true destiny of his life.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The very element in which the mind of Wordsworth lived and moved was a
+ Christian pantheism. Allow me to explain the word. The poets of the Old
+ Testament speak of everything as being the work of God&rsquo;s hand:&mdash;We
+ are the &ldquo;work of his hand;&rdquo; &ldquo;The world was made by him.&rdquo; But in the New
+ Testament there is a higher form used to express the relation in which we
+ stand to him&mdash;&ldquo;We are his offspring;&rdquo; not the work of his hand, but
+ the children that came forth from his heart. Our own poet Goldsmith, with
+ the high instinct of genius, speaks of God as having &ldquo;loved us into
+ being.&rdquo; Now I think this is not only true with regard to man, but true
+ likewise with regard to the world in which we live. This world is not
+ merely a thing which God hath made, subjecting it to laws; but it is an
+ expression of the thought, the feeling, the heart of God himself. And so
+ it must be; because, if man be the child of God, would he not feel to be
+ out of his element if he lived in a world which came, not from the heart
+ of God, but only from his hand? This Christian pantheism, this belief that
+ God is in everything, and showing himself in everything, has been much
+ brought to the light by the poets of the past generation, and has its
+ influence still, I hope, upon the poets of the present. We are not
+ satisfied that the world should be a proof and varying indication of the
+ intellect of God. That was how Paley viewed it. He taught us to believe
+ there is a God from the mechanism of the world. But, allowing all the
+ argument to be quite correct, what does it prove? A mechanical God, and
+ nothing more.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us go further; and, looking at beauty, believe that God is the first
+ of artists; that he has put beauty into nature, knowing how it will affect
+ us, and intending that it should so affect us; that he has embodied his
+ own grand thoughts thus that we might see them and be glad. Then, let us
+ go further still, and believe that whatever we feel in the highest moments
+ of truth shining through beauty, whatever comes to our souls as a power of
+ life, is meant to be seen and felt by us, and to be regarded not as the
+ work of his hand, but as the flowing forth of his heart, the flowing forth
+ of his love of us, making us blessed in the union of his heart and ours.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now, Wordsworth is the high priest of nature thus regarded. He saw God
+ present everywhere; not always immediately, in his own form, it is true;
+ but whether he looked upon the awful mountain-peak, sky-encompassed with
+ loveliness, or upon the face of a little child, which is as it were eyes
+ in the face of nature&mdash;in all things he felt the solemn presence of
+ the Divine Spirit. By Keats this presence was recognized only as the
+ spirit of beauty; to Wordsworth, God, as the Spirit of Truth, was
+ manifested through the forms of the external world.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I have said that the life of Wordsworth was so ordered as to bring this
+ out of him, in the forms of <i>his</i> art, to the ears of men. In
+ childhood even his conscience was partly developed through the influences
+ of nature upon him. He thus retrospectively describes this special
+ influence of nature:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ One summer evening (led by her) I found
+ A little boat, tied to a willow tree,
+ Within a rocky cave, its usual home.
+ Straight I unloosed her chain, and stepping in,
+ Pushed from the shore. It was an act of stealth,
+ And troubled pleasure, nor without the voice
+ Of mountain echoes did my boat move on,
+ Leaving behind her still, on either side,
+ Small circles glittering idly in the moon,
+ Until they melted all into one track
+ Of sparkling light. But now, like one who rows
+ Proud of his skill, to reach a chosen point
+ With an unswerving line, I fixed my view
+ Upon the summit of a craggy ridge,
+ The horizon&rsquo;s utmost boundary; far above
+ Was nothing but the stars and the grey sky.
+ She was an elfin pinnace; lustily
+ I dipped my oars into the silent lake,
+ And, as I rose upon the stroke, my boat
+ Went heaving through the water like a swan;
+ When, from behind that craggy steep, till then
+ The horizon&rsquo;s bound, a huge peak, black and huge,
+ As if with voluntary power instinct,
+ Upreared its head. I struck and struck again,
+ And, growing still in stature, the grim shape
+ Towered up between me and the stars, and still
+ For so it seemed, with purpose of its own,
+ And measured motion like a living thing,
+ Strode after me. With trembling oars I turned,
+ And through the silent water stole my way
+ Back to the covert of the willow tree;
+ There in her mooring place I left my bark,
+ And through the meadows homeward went, in grave
+ And serious mood; but after I had seen
+ That spectacle, for many days, my brain
+ Worked with a dim and undetermined sense
+ Of unknown modes of being; o&rsquo;er my thoughts
+ There hung a darkness, call it solitude,
+ Or blank desertion. No familiar shapes
+ Remained, no pleasant images of trees,
+ Of sea, or sky, no colours of green fields;
+ But huge and mighty forms, that do not live
+ Like living men, moved slowly through the mind
+ By day, and were a trouble to my dreams.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Here we see that a fresh impulse was given to his life even in boyhood, by
+ the influence of nature. If we have had any similar experience, we shall
+ be able to enter into this feeling of Wordsworth&rsquo;s; if not, the tale will
+ be almost incredible.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One passage more I would refer to, as showing what Wordsworth felt with
+ regard to nature, in his youth; and the growth that took place in him in
+ consequence. Nature laid up in the storehouse of his mind and heart her
+ most beautiful and grand forms, whence they might be brought, afterwards,
+ to be put to the highest human service. I quote only a few lines from that
+ poem, deservedly a favourite with all the lovers of Wordsworth, &ldquo;Lines
+ written above Tintern Abbey:&rdquo;&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ I cannot paint
+ What then I was. The sounding cataract
+ Haunted me like a passion; the tall rock,
+ The mountain, and the deep and gloomy wood,
+ Their colours and their forms, were then to me
+ An appetite; a feeling and a love,
+ That had no need of a remoter charm
+ By thought supplied, nor any interest
+ Unborrowed from the eye.&mdash;That time is past,
+ And all its aching joys are now no more,
+ And all its dizzy raptures. Not for this
+ Faint I, nor mourn nor murmur; other gifts
+ Have followed; for such loss, I would believe,
+ Abundant recompense. For I have learned
+ To look on nature, not as in the hour
+ Of thoughtless youth; but hearing oftentimes
+ The still, sad music of humanity,
+ Nor harsh, nor grating, though of ample power
+ To chasten and subdue. And I have felt
+ A presence that disturbs me with the joy
+ Of elevated thoughts; a sense sublime
+ Of something far more deeply interfused,
+ Whose dwelling is the light of setting suns,
+ And the round ocean, and the living air
+ And the blue sky, and in the mind of man;
+ A motion and a spirit, that impels
+ All thinking things, all objects of all thought,
+ And rolls through all things.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ In this little passage you see the growth of the influence of nature on
+ the mind of the poet. You observe, too, that nature passes into poetry;
+ that form is sublimed into speech. You see the result of the conjunction
+ of the mind of man, and the mind of God manifested in His works; spirit
+ coming to know the speech of spirit. The outflowing of spirit in nature is
+ received by the poet, and he utters again, in his form, what God has
+ already uttered in His. Wordsworth wished to give to man what he found in
+ nature. It was to him a power of good, a world of teaching, a strength of
+ life. He knew that nature was not his, and that his enjoyment of nature
+ was given to him that he might give it to man. It was the birthright of
+ man.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But what did Wordsworth find in nature? To begin with the lowest; he found
+ amusement in nature. Right amusement is a part of teaching; it is the
+ childish form of teaching, and if we can get this in nature, we get
+ something that lies near the root of good. In proof that Wordsworth found
+ this, I refer to a poem which you probably know well, &ldquo;The Daisy.&rdquo; The
+ poet sits playing with the flower, and listening to the suggestions that
+ come to him of odd resemblances that this flower bears to other things. He
+ likens the daisy to&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ A little cyclops, with one eye
+ Staring to threaten and defy,
+ That thought comes next&mdash;and instantly
+ The freak is over,
+ The shape will vanish&mdash;and behold
+ A silver shield with boss of gold,
+ That spreads itself, some faëry bold
+ In fight to cover!
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Look at the last stanza, too, and you will see how close amusement may lie
+ to deep and earnest thought:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ Bright <i>Flower</i>! for by that name at last
+ When all my reveries are past,
+ I call thee, and to that cleave fast,
+ Sweet silent creature!
+ That breath&rsquo;st with me in sun and air,
+ Do thou, as thou art wont, repair
+ My heart with gladness, and a share
+ Of thy meek nature!
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ But Wordsworth found also joy in nature, which is a better thing than
+ amusement, and consequently easier to be found. We can often have joy
+ where we can have no amusement,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ I wandered lonely as a cloud
+ That floats on high o&rsquo;er vales and hills
+ When all at once I saw a crowd,
+ A host, of golden daffodils;
+ Beside the lake, beneath the trees,
+ Fluttering and dancing in the breeze.
+
+</pre>
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ The waves beside them danced; but they
+ Out-did the sparkling waves in glee:
+ A poet could not but be gay,
+ In such a jocund company:
+ I gazed&mdash;and gazed&mdash;but little thought
+ What Health the show to me had brought.
+
+ &ldquo;For oft, when on my couch I lie
+ In vacant or in pensive mood,
+ They flash upon that inward eye
+ Which is the bliss of solitude;
+ And then my heart with pleasure fills,
+ And dances with the daffodils.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ This is the joy of the eye, as far as that can be separated from the joy
+ of the whole nature; for his whole nature rejoiced in the joy of the eye;
+ but it was simply joy; there was no further teaching, no attempt to go
+ through this beauty and find the truth below it. We are not always to be
+ in that hungry, restless condition, even after truth itself. If we keep
+ our minds quiet and ready to receive truth, and <i>sometimes</i> are
+ hungry for it, that is enough.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Going a step higher, you will find that he sometimes <i>draws</i> a lesson
+ from nature, seeming almost to force a meaning from her. I do not object
+ to this, if he does not make too much of it as <i>existing</i> in nature.
+ It is rather finding a meaning in nature that he brought to it. The
+ meaning exists, if not <i>there</i>. For illustration I refer to another
+ poem. Observe that Wordsworth found the lesson because he looked for it,
+ and <i>would</i> find it.
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ This Lawn, a carpet all alive
+ With shadows flung from leaves&mdash;to strive
+ In dance, amid a press
+ Of sunshine, an apt emblem yields
+ Of Worldlings revelling in the fields
+ Of strenuous idleness.
+
+</pre>
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ Yet, spite of all this eager strife,
+ This ceaseless play, the genuine life
+ That serves the steadfast hours,
+ Is in the grass beneath, that grows
+ Unheeded, and the mute repose
+ Of sweetly-breathing flowers.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Whether he forced this lesson from nature, or not, it is a good lesson,
+ teaching a great many things with regard to life and work.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Again, nature sometimes flashes a lesson on his mind; <i>gives</i> it to
+ him&mdash;and when nature gives, we cannot but receive. As in this sonnet
+ composed during a storm,&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ One who was suffering tumult in his soul
+ Yet failed to seek the sure relief of prayer,
+ Went forth; his course surrendering to the care
+ Of the fierce wind, while mid-day lightnings prowl
+ Insiduously, untimely thunders growl;
+ While trees, dim-seen, in frenzied numbers tear
+ The lingering remnant of their yellow hair,
+ And shivering wolves, surprised with darkness, howl
+ As if the sun were not. He raised his eye
+ Soul-smitten; for, that instant, did appear
+ Large space (mid dreadful clouds) of purest sky,
+ An azure disc&mdash;shield of Tranquillity;
+ Invisible, unlooked-for, minister
+ Of providential goodness ever nigh!
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Observe that he was not looking for this; he had not thought of praying;
+ he was in such distress that it had benumbed the out-goings of his spirit
+ towards the source whence alone sure comfort comes. He went out into the
+ storm; and the uproar in the outer world was in harmony with the tumult
+ within his soul. Suddenly a clear space in the sky makes him feel&mdash;he
+ has no time to think about it&mdash;that there is a shield of tranquillity
+ spread over him. For was it not as it were an opening up into that region
+ where there are no storms; the regions of peace, because the regions of
+ love, and truth, and purity,&mdash;the home of God himself?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ There is yet a higher and more sustained influence exercised by nature,
+ and that takes effect when she puts a man into that mood or condition in
+ which thoughts come of themselves. That is perhaps the best thing that can
+ be done for us, the best at least that nature can do. It is certainly
+ higher than mere intellectual teaching. That nature did this for
+ Wordsworth is very clear; and it is easily intelligible. If the world
+ proceeded from the imagination of God, and man proceeded from the love of
+ God, it is easy to believe that that which proceeded from the imagination
+ of God should rouse the best thoughts in the mind of a being who proceeded
+ from the love of God. This I think is the relation between man and the
+ world. As an instance of what I mean, I refer to one of Wordsworth&rsquo;s
+ finest poems, which he classes under the head of &ldquo;Evening Voluntaries.&rdquo; It
+ was composed upon an evening of extraordinary splendour and beauty:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Had this effulgence disappeared
+ With flying haste, I might have sent,
+ Among the speechless clouds, a look
+ Of blank astonishment;
+ But &lsquo;tis endued with power to stay,
+ And sanctify one closing day,
+ That frail Mortality may see&mdash;
+ What is?&mdash;ah no, but what <i>can</i>, be!
+ Time was when field and watery cove
+ With modulated echoes rang,
+ While choirs of fervent Angels sang
+ Their vespers in the grove;
+ Or, crowning, star-like, each some sovereign height,
+ Warbled, for heaven above and earth below,
+ Strains suitable to both. Such holy rite,
+ Methinks, if audibly repeated now
+ From hill or valley, could not move
+ Sublimer transport, purer love,
+ Than doth this silent spectacle&mdash;the gleam&mdash;
+ The shadow&mdash;and the peace supreme!
+
+ &ldquo;No sound is uttered,&mdash;but a deep
+ And solemn harmony pervades
+ The hollow vale from steep to steep,
+ And penetrates the glades.
+
+</pre>
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Wings at my shoulders seem to play;
+ But, rooted here, I stand and gaze
+ On those bright steps that heaven-ward raise
+ Their practicable way.
+ Come forth, ye drooping old men, look abroad,
+ And see to what fair countries ye are bound!
+
+</pre>
+ <hr />
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Dread Power! whom peace and calmness serve
+ No less than Nature&rsquo;s threatening voice,
+ From THEE, if I would swerve,
+ Oh, let Thy grace remind me of the light
+ Full early lost, and fruitlessly deplored;
+ Which, at this moment, on my waking sight
+ Appears to shine, by miracle restored;
+ My soul, though yet confined to earth,
+ Rejoices in a second birth!&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Picture the scene for yourselves; and observe how it moves in him the
+ sense of responsibility, and the prayer, that if he has in any matter
+ wandered from the right road, if he has forgotten the simplicity of
+ childhood in the toil of life, he may, from this time, remember the vow
+ that he now records&mdash;from this time to press on towards the things
+ that are unseen, but which are manifested through the things that are
+ seen. I refer you likewise to the poem &ldquo;Resolution and Independence,&rdquo;
+ commonly called &ldquo;The Leech Gatherer;&rdquo; also to that grandest ode that has
+ ever been written, the &ldquo;Ode on Immortality.&rdquo; You will find there, whatever
+ you may think of his theory, in the latter, sufficient proof that nature
+ was to him a divine teaching power. Do not suppose that I mean that man
+ can do without more teaching than nature&rsquo;s, or that a man with only
+ nature&rsquo;s teaching would have seen these things in nature. No, the soul
+ must be tuned to such things. Wordsworth could not have found such things,
+ had he not known something that was more definite and helpful to him; but
+ this known, then nature was full of teaching. When we understand the Word
+ of God, then we understand the works of God; when we know the nature of an
+ artist, we know his pictures; when we have known and talked with the poet,
+ we understand his poetry far better. To the man of God, all nature will be
+ but changeful reflections of the face of God.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Loving man as Wordsworth did, he was most anxious to give him this
+ teaching. How was he to do it? By poetry. Nature put into the crucible of
+ a loving heart becomes poetry. We cannot explain poetry scientifically;
+ because poetry is something beyond science. The poet may be man of
+ science, and the man of science may be a poet; but poetry includes
+ science, and the man who will advance science most, is the man who, other
+ qualifications being equal, has most of the poetic faculty in him.
+ Wordsworth defines poetry to be &ldquo;the impassioned expression which is on
+ the face of science.&rdquo; Science has to do with the construction of things.
+ The casting of the granite ribs of the mighty earth, and all the thousand
+ operations that result in the manifestations on its surface, this is the
+ domain of science. But when there come the grass-bearing meadows, the
+ heaven-reared hills, the great streams that go ever downward, the bubbling
+ fountains that ever arise, the wind that wanders amongst the leaves, and
+ the odours that are wafted upon its wings; when we have colour, and shape,
+ and sound, then we have the material with which poetry has to do. Science
+ has to do with the underwork. For what does this great central world
+ exist, with its hidden winds and waters, its upheavings and its
+ downsinkings, its strong frame of rock, and its heart of fire? What do
+ they all exist for? Not for themselves surely, but for the sake of this
+ out-spreading world of beauty, that floats up, as it were, to the surface
+ of the shapeless region of force. Science has to do with the one, and
+ poetry with the other: poetry is &ldquo;the impassioned expression that is on
+ the face of science.&rdquo; To illustrate it still further. You are walking in
+ the woods, and you find the first primrose of the year. You feel almost as
+ if you had found a child. You know in yourself that you have found a new
+ beauty and a new joy, though you have seen it a thousand times before. It
+ is a primrose. A little flower that looks at me, thinks itself into my
+ heart, and gives me a pleasure distinct in itself, and which I feel as if
+ I could not do without. The impassioned expression on the face of this
+ little outspread flower is its childhood; it means trust, consciousness of
+ protection, faith, and hope. Science, in the person of the botanist, comes
+ after you, and pulls it to pieces to see its construction, and delights
+ the intellect; but the science itself is dead, and kills what it touches.
+ The flower exists not for it, but for the expression on its face, which is
+ its poetry,&mdash;that expression which you feel to mean a living thing;
+ that expression which makes you feel that this flower is, as it were, just
+ growing out of the heart of God. The intellect itself is but the
+ scaffolding for the uprearing of the spiritual nature.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It will make all this yet plainer, if you can suppose a human form to be
+ created without a soul in it. Divine science <i>has</i> put it together,
+ but only for the sake of the outshining soul that shall cause it to live,
+ and move, and have a being of its own in God. When you see the face
+ lighted up with soul, when you recognize in it thought and feeling, joy
+ and love, then you know that here is the end for which it was made. Thus
+ you see the relation that poetry has to science; and you find that, to
+ speak in an apparent paradox, the surface is the deepest after all; for,
+ through the surface, for the sake of which all this building went on, we
+ have, as it were, a window into the depths of truth. There is not a form
+ that lives in the world, but is a window cloven through the blank darkness
+ of nothingness, to let us look into the heart, and feeling, and nature of
+ God. So the surface of things is the best and the deepest, provided it is
+ not mere surface, but the impassioned expression, for the sake of which
+ the science of God has thought and laboured.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Satisfied that this was the nature of poetry, and wanting to convey this
+ to the minds of his fellow-men, &ldquo;What vehicle,&rdquo; Wordsworth may be supposed
+ to have asked himself, &ldquo;shall I use? How shall I decide what form of words
+ to employ? Where am I to find the right language for speaking such great
+ things to men?&rdquo; He saw that the poetry of the eighteenth century (he was
+ born in 1770) was not like nature at all, but was an artificial thing,
+ with no more originality in it than there would be in a picture a hundred
+ times copied, the copyists never reverting to the original. You cannot
+ look into this eighteenth century poetry, excepting, of course, a great
+ proportion of the poetry of Cowper and Thompson, without being struck with
+ the sort of agreement that nothing should be said naturally. A certain set
+ form and mode was employed for saying things that ought never to have been
+ said twice in the same way. Wordsworth resolved to go back to the root of
+ the thing, to the natural simplicity of speech; he would have none of
+ these stereotyped forms of expression. &ldquo;Where shall I find,&rdquo; said he, &ldquo;the
+ language that will be simple and powerful?&rdquo; And he came to the conclusion
+ that the language of the common people was the only language suitable for
+ his purpose. Your experience of the everyday language of the common people
+ may be that it is not poetical. True, but not even a poet can speak
+ poetically in his stupid moments. Wordsworth&rsquo;s idea was to take the
+ language of the common people in their uncommon moods, in their high and,
+ consequently, simple moods, when their minds are influenced by grief,
+ hope, reverence, worship, love; for then he believed he could get just the
+ language suitable for the poet. As far as that language will go, I think
+ he was right, if I may venture to give an opinion in support of
+ Wordsworth. Of course, there will occur necessities to the poet which
+ would not be comprehended in the language of a man whose thoughts had
+ never moved in the same directions, but the kind of language will be the
+ right thing, and I have heard such amongst the common people myself&mdash;language
+ which they did not know to be poetic, but which fell upon my ear and heart
+ as profoundly poetic both in its feeling and its form.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In attempting to carry out this theory, I am not prepared to say that
+ Wordsworth never transgressed his own self-imposed laws. But he adhered to
+ his theory to the last. A friend of the poet&rsquo;s told me that Wordsworth had
+ to him expressed his belief that he would be remembered longest, not by
+ his sonnets, as his friend thought, but by his lyrical ballads, those for
+ which he had been reviled and laughed at; the most by critics who could
+ not understand him, and who were unworthy to read what he had written. As
+ a proof of this let me read to you three verses, composing a poem that was
+ especially marked for derision:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ She dwelt among the untrodden ways,
+ Beside the springs of Dove;
+ A maid whom there were none to praise,
+ And very few to love.
+
+ A violet by a mossy stone.
+ Half hidden from the eye;
+ Fair as a star, when only one
+ Is shining in the sky.
+
+ She lived unknown, and few could know
+ When Lucy ceased to be;
+ But she is in her grave, and Oh!
+ The difference to me.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ The last line was especially chosen as the object of ridicule; but I think
+ with most of us the feeling will be, that its very simplicity of
+ expression is overflowing in suggestion, it throws us back upon our own
+ experience; for, instead of trying to utter what he felt, he says in those
+ simple and common words, &ldquo;You who have known anything of the kind, will
+ know what the difference to me is, and only you can know.&rdquo; &ldquo;My intention
+ and desire,&rdquo; he says in one of his essays, &ldquo;are that the interest of the
+ poem shall owe nothing to the circumstances; but that the circumstances
+ shall be made interesting by the thing itself.&rdquo; In most novels, for
+ instance, the attempt is made to interest us in worthless, commonplace
+ people, whom, if we had our choice, we would far rather not meet at all,
+ by surrounding them with peculiar and extraordinary circumstances; but
+ this is a low source of interest. Wordsworth was determined to owe nothing
+ to such an adventitious cause. For illustration allow me to read that
+ well-known little ballad, &ldquo;The Reverie of Poor Susan,&rdquo; and you will see
+ how entirely it bears out what he lays down as his theory. The scene is in
+ London:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ At the corner of Wood-street, when daylight appears,
+ Hangs a Thrush that sings loud, it has sung for three years;
+ Poor Susan has passed by the spot, and has heard,
+ In the silence of morning, the song of the Bird.
+
+ &lsquo;Tis a note of enchantment: what ails her? She sees
+ A mountain ascending, a vision of trees;
+ Bright volumes of vapour through Lothbury glide,
+ And a river flows on through the vale of Cheapside.
+
+ Green pastures she views in the midst of the dale,
+ Down which she so often has tripped with her pail;
+ And a single small cottage, a nest like a dove&rsquo;s,
+ The one only dwelling on earth that she loves.
+
+ She looks, and her heart is in heaven: but they fade,
+ The mist and the river, the hill and the shade:
+ The stream will not flow, and the hill will not rise,
+ And the colours have all passed away from her eyes!
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ Is any of the interest here owing to the circumstances? Is it not a very
+ common incident? But has he not treated it so that it is not <i>commonplace</i>
+ in the least? We recognize in this girl just the feelings we discover in
+ ourselves, and acknowledge almost with tears her sisterhood to us all.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I have tried to make you feel something of what Wordsworth attempts to do,
+ but I have not given you the best of his poems. Allow me to finish by
+ reading the closing portion of the <i>Prelude</i>, the poem that was
+ published after his death. It is addressed to Coleridge:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ Oh! yet a few short years of useful life,
+ And all will be complete, thy race be run,
+ Thy monument of glory will be raised;
+ Then, though (too weak to head the ways of truth)
+ This age fall back to old idolatry,
+ Though men return to servitude as fast
+ As the tide ebbs, to ignominy and shame
+ By nations sink together, we shall still
+ Find solace&mdash;knowing what we have learnt to know&mdash;
+ Rich in true happiness, if allowed to be
+ Faithful alike in forwarding a day
+ Of firmer trust, joint labourers in the work
+ (Should Providence such grace to us vouchsafe)
+ Of their deliverance, surely yet to come.
+ Prophets of Nature, we to them will speak
+ A lasting inspiration, sanctified
+ By reason, blest by faith: what we have loved,
+ Others will love, and we will teach them how;
+ Instruct them how the mind of man becomes
+ A thousand times more beautiful than the earth
+ On which he dwells, above this frame of things
+ (Which, &lsquo;mid all revolution in the hopes
+ And fears of men, doth still remain unchanged)
+ In beauty exalted, as it is itself
+ Of quality and fabric more divine.
+</pre>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0012" id="link2H_4_0012">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ SHELLEY.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ Whatever opinion may be held with regard to the relative position occupied
+ by Shelley as a poet, it will be granted by most of those who have studied
+ his writings, that they are of such an individual and original kind, that
+ he can neither be hidden in the shade, nor lost in the brightness, of any
+ other poet. No idea of his works could be conveyed by instituting a
+ comparison, for he does not sufficiently resemble any other among English
+ writers to make such a comparison possible.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Percy Bysshe Shelley was born at Field Place, near Horsham, in the county
+ of Sussex, on the 4th of August, 1792. He was the son of Timothy Shelley,
+ Esq., and grandson of Sir Bysshe Shelley, the first baronet. His ancestors
+ had long been large landed proprietors in Sussex.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ As a child his habits were noticeable. He was especially fond of rambling
+ by moonlight, of inventing wonderful tales, of occupying himself with
+ strange, and sometimes dangerous, amusements. At the age of thirteen he
+ went to Eton. In this little world, that determined opposition to whatever
+ appeared to him an invasion of human rights and liberty, which was
+ afterwards the animating principle of most of his writings, was first
+ roused in the mind of Shelley. Were we not aware of far keener distress
+ which he afterwards endured from yet greater injustice, we might suppose
+ that the sufferings he had to bear from placing himself in opposition to
+ the custom of the school, by refusing to fag, had made him morbidly
+ sensitive on the point of liberty. At a time, however, when freedom of
+ speech, as indicating freedom of thought, was especially obnoxious to
+ established authorities; when no allowance could be made on the score of
+ youth, still less on that of individual peculiarity, Shelley became a
+ student at Oxford. He was then eighteen. Devoted to metaphysical
+ speculation, and especially fond of logical discussion, he, in his first
+ year, printed and distributed among the authorities and members of his
+ college a pamphlet, if that can be called a pamphlet which consisted only
+ of two pages, in which he opposed the usual arguments for the existence of
+ a Deity; arguments which, perhaps, the most ardent believers have equally
+ considered inconclusive. Whether Shelley wrote this pamphlet as an
+ embodiment of his own opinions, or merely as a logical confutation of
+ certain arguments, the mode of procedure adopted with him was certainly
+ not one which necessarily resulted from the position of those to whose
+ care the education of his opinions was entrusted. Without waiting to be
+ assured that he was the author, and satisfying themselves with his refusal
+ to answer when questioned as to the authorship, they handed him his
+ sentence of expulsion, which had been already drawn up in due form.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ About this time Shelley wrote, or commenced writing, <i>Queen Mab</i>, a
+ poem which he never published, although he distributed copies among his
+ friends. In after years he had such a low opinion of it in every respect,
+ that he regretted having printed it at all; and when an edition of it was
+ published without his consent, he applied to the Court of Chancery for an
+ injunction to suppress it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Shelley&rsquo;s opinions in politics and theology, which he appears to have been
+ far more anxious to maintain than was consistent with the peace of the
+ household, were peculiarly obnoxious to his father, a man as different
+ from his son as it is possible to conceive; and his expulsion from Oxford
+ was soon followed by exile from his home. He went to London, where,
+ through his sisters, who were at school in the neighbourhood, he made the
+ acquaintence of Harriet West brook, whom he eloped with and married, when
+ he was nineteen and she sixteen years of age. It seems doubtful whether
+ the attachment between them was more than the result of the reception
+ accorded by the enthusiasm of the girl to the enthusiasm of the youth,
+ manifesting itself in wild talk about human rights, and equally wild plans
+ for their recovery and security. However this may be, the result was
+ unfortunate. They wandered about England, Scotland, and Ireland, with
+ frequent and sudden change of residence, for rather more than two years.
+ During this time Shelley gained the friendship of some of the most eminent
+ men of the age, of whom the one who exercised the most influence upon his
+ character and future history was William Godwin, whose instructions and
+ expostulations tended to reduce to solidity and form the vague and
+ extravagant opinions and projects of the youthful reformer. Shortly after
+ the commencement of the third year of their married life, an estrangement
+ of feeling, which had been gradually widening between them, resulted in
+ the final separation of the poet and his wife. We are not informed as to
+ the causes of this estrangement, further than that it seems to have been
+ owing, in a considerable degree, to the influence of an elder sister of
+ Mrs. Shelley, who domineered over her, and whose presence became at last
+ absolutely hateful to Shelley. His wife returned to her father&rsquo;s house;
+ where, apparently about three years after, she committed suicide. There
+ seems to have been no immediate connection between this act and any
+ conduct of Shelley. One of his biographers informs us, that while they
+ were living happily together, suicide was with Mrs. Shelley a favourite
+ subject of speculation and conversation.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Shortly after his first wife&rsquo;s death, Shelley married the daughter of
+ William Godwin. He had lived with her almost from the date of the
+ separation, during which time they had twice visited Switzerland. In the
+ following year (1817), it was decreed in Chancery that Shelley was not a
+ proper person to take charge of his two children by his first wife, who
+ had lived with her till her death. The bill was filed in Chancery by their
+ grandfather, Mr. Westbrook. The effects of this proceeding upon Shelley
+ may be easily imagined. Perhaps he never recovered from them, for they
+ were not of a nature to pass away. During this year he resided at Marlow,
+ and wrote <i>The Revolt of Islam</i>, besides portions of other poems; and
+ the next year he left England, not to return. The state of his health, for
+ he had appeared to be in a consumption for some time, and the fear lest
+ his son, by his second wife, should be taken from him, combined to induce
+ him to take refuge in Italy from both impending evils. At Lucca he began
+ his <i>Prometheus</i>, and wrote <i>Julian and Maddalo</i>. He moved from
+ place to place in Italy, as he had done in his own country. Their two
+ children dying, they were for a time left childless; but the loss of these
+ grieved Shelley less than that of his eldest two, who were taken from him
+ by the hand of man. In 1819, Shelley finished his <i>Prometheus Unbound</i>,
+ writing the greater part at Rome, and completing it at Florence. In this
+ year also he wrote his tragedy, <i>The Cenci</i>, which attracted more
+ attention during his lifetime than any other of his works. The <i>Ode to a
+ Skylark</i> was written at Leghorn in the spring of 1820; and in August of
+ the same year, the <i>Witch of Atlas</i> was written, near Pisa. In the
+ following year Shelley and Byron met at Pisa. They were a good deal
+ together; but their friendship, although real, does not appear to have
+ been of a very profound nature; for though unlikeness be one of the
+ necessary elements of friendship, there are kinds of unlikeness which will
+ not harmonize. During all this time, he was not only maligned by unknown
+ enemies, and abused by anonymous writers, but attempts of other kinds are
+ said to have been made to render his life as uncomfortable as possible.
+ There are grounds, however, for doubting whether Shelley was not subject
+ to a kind of monomania upon this and similar points. In 1821, he wrote his
+ <i>Adonais</i>, a monody on the death of Keats. Part of this poem had its
+ origin in the mistaken notion, that the illness and death of Keats were
+ caused by a brutal criticism of his <i>Endymion</i>, which appeared in the
+ <i>Quarterly Review</i>. The last verse of the <i>Adonais</i> seems almost
+ prophetic of his own end. Passionately fond of boating, he and a friend of
+ his, Mr. Williams, united in constructing a boat of a peculiar build, a
+ very fast sailer, but difficult to manage. On the 8th of July, 1822,
+ Shelley and his friend Williams sailed from Leghorn for Lerici, on the Bay
+ of Spezia, near which lay his home for the time. A sudden squall came on,
+ and their boat disappeared. The bodies of the two friends were cast on
+ shore; and, according to quarantine regulations, were burned to ashes.
+ Lord Byron, Leigh Hunt, and Mr. Trelawney were present when the body of
+ Shelley was burned; so that his ashes were saved, and buried in the
+ Protestant burial-ground at Rome, near the grave of Keats, whose body had
+ been laid there in the spring of the preceding year. <i>Cor Cordium</i>
+ were the words inscribed by his widow on the tomb of the poet.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The character of Shelley has been sadly maligned. Whatever faults he may
+ have committed against society, they were not the result of sensuality.
+ One of his biographers, who was his companion at Oxford, and who does not
+ seem inclined to do him <i>more</i> than justice, asserts that while there
+ his conduct was immaculate. The whole picture he gives of the youth, makes
+ it easy to believe this. To discuss the moral question involved in one
+ part of his history would be out of place here; but even on the
+ supposition that a man&rsquo;s conduct is altogether inexcusable in individual
+ instances, there is the more need that nothing but the truth should be
+ said concerning that, and other portions thereof. And whatever society may
+ have thought itself justified in making subject of reprobation, it must be
+ remembered that Shelley was under less obligation to society than most
+ men. Yet his heart seemed full of love to his kind; and the distress which
+ the oppression of others caused him, was the source of much of that wild
+ denunciation which exposed him to the contempt and hatred of those who
+ were rendered uncomfortable by his unsparing and indiscriminate anathemas.
+ In private, he was beloved by all who knew him; a steady, generous,
+ self-denying friend, not only to those who moved in his own circle, but to
+ all who were brought within the reach of any aid he could bestow. To the
+ poor he was a true and laborious benefactor. That man must have been good
+ to whom the heart of his widow returns with such earnest devotion and
+ thankfulness in the recollection of the past, and such fond hope for the
+ future, as are manifested by Mrs. Shelley in those extracts from her
+ private journal given us by Lady Shelley.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ As regards his religious opinions, one of the thoughts which most strongly
+ suggest themselves is,&mdash;how ill he must have been instructed in the
+ principles of Christianity! He says himself in a letter to Godwin, &ldquo;I have
+ known no tutor or adviser (<i>not excepting my father</i>) from whose
+ lessons and suggestions I have not recoiled with disgust.&rdquo; So far is he
+ from being an opponent of Christianity properly so called, that one can
+ hardly help feeling what a Christian he would have been, could he but have
+ seen Christianity in any other way than through the traditional and
+ practical misrepresentations of it which surrounded him. All his attacks
+ on Christianity are, in reality, directed against evils to which the true
+ doctrines of Christianity are more opposed than those of Shelley could
+ possibly be. How far he was excusable in giving the name of Christianity
+ to what he might have seen to be only a miserable perversion of it, is
+ another question, and one which hardly admits of discussion here. It was
+ in the <i>name</i> of Christianity, however, that the worst injuries of
+ which he had to complain were inflicted upon him. Coming out of the
+ cathedral at Pisa one day, [Footnote: From <i>Shelley Memorials</i>,
+ edited by Lady Shelley, which the writer of this paper has principally
+ followed in regard to the external facts of Shelley&rsquo;s history.] Shelley
+ warmly assented to a remark of Leigh Hunt, &ldquo;that a divine religion might
+ be found out, if charity were really made the principle of it instead of
+ faith.&rdquo; Surely the founders of Christianity, even when they magnified
+ faith, intended thereby a spiritual condition, of which the central
+ principle is coincident with charity. Shelley&rsquo;s own feelings towards
+ others, as judged from his poetry, seem to be tinctured with the very
+ essence of Christianity. [Footnote: His <i>Essay on Christianity</i> is
+ full of noble views, some of which are held at the present day by some of
+ the most earnest believers. At what time of his life it was written we are
+ not informed; but it seems such as would insure his acceptance with any
+ company of intelligent and devout Unitarians.] He did not, at one time at
+ least, believe that we could know the source of our being; and seemed to
+ take it as a self-evident truth, that the Creator could not be like the
+ creature. But it is unjust to fix upon any utterance of opinion, and
+ regard it as the religion of a man who died in his thirtieth year, and
+ whose habits of thinking were such, that his opinions must have been in a
+ state of constant change. Coleridge says in a letter: &ldquo;His (Shelley&rsquo;s)
+ discussions, tending towards atheism of a certain sort, would not have
+ scared <i>me;</i> for <i>me</i> it would have been a semitransparent
+ larva, soon to be sloughed, and through which I should have seen the true
+ <i>image</i>&mdash;the final metamorphosis. Besides, I have ever thought
+ that sort of atheism the next best religion to Christianity; nor does the
+ better faith I have learned from Paul and John interfere with the cordial
+ reverence I feel for Benedict Spinoza.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Shelley&rsquo;s favourite study was metaphysics. The more impulse there is in
+ any direction, the more education and experience are necessary to balance
+ that impulse: one cannot help thinking that Shelley&rsquo;s <i>taste</i> for
+ exercises of this kind was developed more rapidly than the corresponding
+ <i>power</i>. His favourite physical studies were chemistry and
+ electricity. With these he occupied himself from his childhood;
+ apparently, however, with more delight in the experiments themselves, than
+ interest in the general conclusions to be arrived at by means of them. In
+ the embodiment of his metaphysical ideas in poetry, the influence of these
+ studies seems to show itself; for he uses forms which appeal more to the
+ outer senses than to the inward eye; and his similes belong to the realm
+ of the fancy, rather than the imagination: they lack <i>vital</i>
+ resemblance. Logic had considerable attractions for him. To geometry and
+ mathematics he was quite indifferent. One of his biographers states that
+ &ldquo;he was neglectful of flowers,&rdquo; because he had no interest in botany; but
+ one who derived such full delight from the contemplation of their external
+ forms, could hardly be expected to feel very strongly the impulse to
+ dissect them. He derived exceeding pleasure from Greek literature,
+ especially from the works of Plato.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Several little peculiarities in Shelley&rsquo;s tastes are worth mentioning,
+ because, although in themselves insignificant, they seem to correspond
+ with the nature of his poetry. Perhaps the most prominent of these was his
+ passion for boat-sailing. He could not pass any piece of water without
+ launching upon it a number of boats, constructed from what paper he could
+ find in his pockets. The fly-leaves of the books he was in the way of
+ carrying with him, for he was constantly reading, often went to this end.
+ He would watch the fate of these boats with the utmost interest, till they
+ sank or reached the opposite side. He was just as fond of real boating,
+ and that frequently of a dangerous kind; but it is characteristic of him,
+ that all the boats he describes in his poems are of a fairy, fantastic
+ sort, barely related to the boats which battle with earthly winds and
+ waves. Pistol-shooting was also a favourite amusement. Fireworks, too,
+ gave him great delight. Some of his habits were likewise peculiar. He was
+ remarkably abstemious, preferring bread and raisins to anything else in
+ the way of eating, and very seldom drinking anything stronger than water.
+ Honey was a favourite luxury with him. While at college, his biographer
+ Hogg says he was in the habit, during the evening, of going to sleep on
+ the rug, close to a blazing fire, heat seeming never to have other than a
+ beneficial effect upon him. After sleeping some hours, he would awake
+ perfectly restored, and continue actively occupied till far into the
+ morning. His whole movements are represented as rapid, hurried, and
+ uncertain. He would appear and disappear suddenly and unexpectedly; forget
+ appointments; burst into wild laughter, heedless of his situation,
+ whenever anything struck him as peculiarly ludicrous. His changes of
+ residence were most numerous, and frequently made with so much haste that
+ whole little libraries were left behind, and often lost. He was very fond
+ of children, and used to make humorous efforts to induce them to disclose
+ to him the still-remembered secrets of their pre-existence. He seemed to
+ have a peculiar attraction towards mystery, and was ready to believe in a
+ hidden secret, where no one else would have thought of one. His room,
+ while he was at college, was in a state of indescribable confusion. Not
+ only were all sorts of personal necessaries mingled with books and
+ philosophical instruments, but things belonging to one department of
+ service were not unfrequently pressed into the slavery of another. He
+ dressed well but carelessly. In person he was tall, slender, and stooping;
+ awkward in gait, but in manners a thorough gentleman. His complexion was
+ delicate; his head, face, and features, remarkably small; the last not
+ very regular, but in expression, both intellectual and moral, wonderfully
+ beautiful. His eyes were deep blue, &ldquo;of a wild, strange beauty;&rdquo; his
+ forehead high and white; his hair dark brown, curling, long, and bushy.
+ His appearance in later life is described as singularly combining the
+ appearances of premature age and prolonged youth.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The only art in which his taste appears to have been developed was poetry.
+ Even in his poetry, taken as a whole, the artistic element is not
+ generally very manifest. His earliest verses (none of which are included
+ in his collected works) can hardly be said to be good in any sense. He
+ seems in these to have chosen poetry as a fitting material for the
+ embodiment of his ardent, hopeful, indignant thoughts and feelings, but,
+ provided he can say what he wants to say, does not seem to care much about
+ <i>how</i> he says it. Indeed, there is too much of this throughout his
+ works; for if the <i>utterance</i>, instead of the <i>conveyance</i> of
+ thought, were the object pursued in art, of course not merely imperfection
+ of language, but absolute external unintelligibility, would be admissible.
+ But his art constantly increases with his sense of its necessity; so that
+ the <i>Cenci</i>, which is the last work of any pretension that he wrote,
+ is decidedly the most artistic of all. There are beautiful passages in <i>Queen
+ Mab</i>, but it is the work of a boy-poet; and as it was all but
+ repudiated by himself, it is not necessary to remark further upon it. <i>The
+ Revolt of Islam</i> is a poem of twelve cantos, in the Spenserian stanza;
+ but in all respects except the arrangement of lines and rimes, his stanza,
+ in common with all other imitations of the Spenserian, has little or
+ nothing of the spirit or individuality of the original. The poem is
+ dedicated to the cause of freedom, and records the efforts, successes,
+ defeats, and final triumphant death of two inspired champions of liberty&mdash;a
+ youth and maiden. The adventures are marvellous, not intended to be within
+ the bounds of probability, scarcely of possibility. There are very noble
+ sentiments and fine passages throughout the poem. Now and then there is
+ grandeur. But the absence of art is too evident in the fact that the
+ meaning is often obscure; an obscurity not unfrequently occasioned by the
+ difficulty of the stanza, which is the most difficult mode of composition
+ in English, except the rigid sonnet. The words and forms he employs to
+ express thought seem sometimes mechanical devices for that purpose, rather
+ than an utterance which suggested itself naturally to a mind where the
+ thought was vitally present. The words are more a <i>clothing</i> for the
+ thought than an <i>embodiment</i> of it. They do not lie near enough to
+ the thing which is intended to be represented by them. It is, however, but
+ just to remark, that some of the obscurity is owing to the fact, that,
+ even with Mrs. Shelley&rsquo;s superintendence, the works have not yet been
+ satisfactorily edited, or at least not conducted through the press with
+ sufficient care. [Footnote: This statement is no longer true.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <i>The Cenci</i> is a very powerful tragedy, but unfitted for public
+ representation by the horrible nature of the historical facts upon which
+ it is founded. In the execution of it, however, Shelley has kept very much
+ nearer to nature than in any other of his works. He has rigidly adhered to
+ his perception of artistic propriety in respect to the dramatic utterance.
+ It may be doubted whether there is sufficient difference between the modes
+ of speech of the different actors in the tragedy, but it is quite possible
+ to individualize speech far too minutely for probable nature; and in this
+ respect, at least, Shelley has not erred. Perhaps the action of the whole
+ is a little hurried, and a central moment of awful repose and fearful
+ anticipation might add to the force of the tragedy. The scenes also might,
+ perhaps, have been constructed so as to suggest more of evolution; but the
+ central point of horror is most powerfully and delicately handled. You see
+ a possible spiritual horror yet behind, more frightful than all that has
+ gone before. The whole drama, indeed, is constructed around, not a
+ prominent point, but a dim, infinitely-withdrawn, underground perspective
+ of dismay and agony. Perhaps it detracts a little from our interest in the
+ Lady Beatrice, that after all she should wish to live, and should seek to
+ preserve her life by a denial of her crime. She, however, evidently
+ justifies the denial to herself on the ground that, the deed being
+ absolutely right, although regarded as most criminal by her judges, the
+ only way to get true justice is to deny the fact, which, there being no
+ guilt, she might consider as only a verbal lie. Her very purity of
+ conscience enables her to utter this with the most absolute innocence of
+ look, and word, and tone. This is probably a historical fact, and Shelley
+ had to make the best of it. In the drama there is great tenderness, as
+ well as terror; but for a full effect, one feels it desirable to be
+ brought better acquainted with the individuals than the drama, from its
+ want of graduation, permits. Shelley, however, was only six-and-twenty
+ when he wrote it. He must have been attracted to the subject by its
+ embodying the concentration of tyranny, lawlessness, and brutality in old
+ Cenci, as opposed to, and exercised upon, an ideal loveliness and
+ nobleness in the person of Beatrice.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But of all Shelley&rsquo;s works, the <i>Prometheus Unbound</i> is that which
+ combines the greatest amount of individual power and peculiarity. There is
+ an airy grandeur about it, reminding one of the vast masses of cloud
+ scattered about in broken, yet magnificently suggestive forms, all over
+ the summer sky, after a thunderstorm. The fundamental ideas are grand; the
+ superstructure, in many parts, so ethereal, that one hardly knows whether
+ he is gazing on towers of solid masonry rendered dim and unsubstantial by
+ intervening vapour, or upon the golden turrets of cloudland, themselves
+ born of the mist which surrounds them with a halo of glory. The beings of
+ Greek, mythology are idealized and etherealized by the new souls which he
+ puts into them, making them think his thoughts and say his words. In
+ reading this, as in reading most of his poetry, we feel that, unable to
+ cope with the evils and wrongs of the world as it and they are, he
+ constructs a new universe, wherein he may rule according to his will; and
+ a good will in the main it is&mdash;good always in intent, good generally
+ in form and utterance. Of the wrongs which Shelley endured from the
+ collision and resulting conflict between his lawless goodness and the
+ lawful wickedness of those in authority, this is one of the greatest,&mdash;that
+ during the right period of pupillage, he was driven from the place of
+ learning, cast on his own mental resources long before those resources
+ were sufficient for his support, and irritated against the purest
+ embodiment of good by the harsh treatment he received under its name. If
+ that reverence which was far from wanting to his nature, had been but
+ presented, in the person of some guide to his spiritual being, with an
+ object worthy of its homage and trust, it is probable that the yet free
+ and noble result of Shelley&rsquo;s individuality would have been presented to
+ the world in a form which, while it attracted still only the few, would
+ not have repelled the many; at least, not by such things as were merely
+ accidental in their association with his earnest desires and efforts for
+ the well-being of humanity.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ That which chiefly distinguishes Shelley from other writers is the
+ unequalled exuberance of his fancy. The reader, say for instance of that
+ fantastically brilliant poem, <i>The Witch of Atlas</i>, the work of three
+ days, is overwhelmed in a storm, as it were, of rainbow snow-flakes and
+ many-coloured lightnings, accompanied ever by &ldquo;a low melodious thunder.&rdquo;
+ The evidences of pure imagination in his writings are unfrequent as
+ compared with those of fancy: there are not half the instances of the
+ direct embodiment of idea in form, that there are of the presentation of
+ strange resemblances between external things.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ One of the finest short specimens of Shelley&rsquo;s peculiar mode is his <i>Ode
+ to the West Wind</i>, full of mysterious melody of thought and sound. But
+ of all his poems, the most popular, and deservedly so, is the <i>Skylark</i>.
+ Perhaps the <i>Cloud</i> may contest it with the <i>Skylark</i> in regard
+ to popular favour; but the <i>Cloud</i>, although full of beautiful words
+ and fantastic cloud-like images, is, after all, principally a work of the
+ fancy; while the <i>Skylark</i>, though even in it fancy predominates over
+ imagination in the visual images, forms, as a whole, a lovely, true,
+ individual work of art; a <i>lyric</i> not unworthy of the <i>lark</i>,
+ which Mason apostrophizes as &ldquo;sweet feathered lyric.&rdquo; The strain of
+ sadness which pervades it is only enough to make the song of the lark
+ human.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In <i>The Sensitive Plant</i>, a poem full of the peculiarities of his
+ genius, tending through a wilderness of fanciful beauties to a thicket of
+ mystical speculation, one curious idiosyncrasy is more prominent than in
+ any other&mdash;curious, as belonging to the poet of beauty and
+ loveliness: it is the tendency to be fascinated by what is ugly and
+ revolting, so that he cannot withdraw his thoughts from it till he has
+ described it in language, powerful, it is true, and poetic, when
+ considered as to its fitness for the desired end, but, in force of these
+ very excellences in the means, nearly as revolting as the objects
+ themselves. Associated with this is the tendency to discover strangely
+ unpleasant likenesses between things; which likenesses he is not content
+ with seeing, but seems compelled, perhaps in order to get rid of them
+ himself, to force upon the observation of his reader. But the admirer of
+ Shelley is not pleased to find that one or two passages of this nature
+ have been omitted in some editions of his works.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Few men have been more misunderstood or misrepresented than Shelley.
+ Doubtless this has in part been his own fault, as Coleridge implies when
+ he writes to this effect of him: that his horror of hypocrisy made him
+ speak in such a wild way, that Southey (who was so much a man of forms and
+ proprieties) was quite misled, not merely in his estimate of his worth,
+ but in his judgment of his character. But setting aside this consideration
+ altogether, and regarding him merely as a poet, Shelley has written verse
+ which will last as long as English literature lasts; valuable not only
+ from its excellence, but from the peculiarity of its excellence. To say
+ nothing of his noble aims and hopes, Shelley will always be admired for
+ his sweet melodies, lovely pictures, and wild prophetic imaginings. His
+ indignant remonstrances, intermingled with grand imprecations, burst in
+ thunder from a heart overcharged with the love of his kind, and roused to
+ a keener sense of all oppression by the wrongs which sought to overwhelm
+ himself. But as he recedes further in time, and men are able to see more
+ truly the proportions of the man, they will judge, that without having
+ gained the rank of a great reformer, Shelley had in him that element of
+ wide sympathy and lofty hope for his kind which is essential both to the
+ <i>birth</i> and the subsequent <i>making</i> of the greatest of poets.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0013" id="link2H_4_0013">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ A SERMON.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: Read in the Unitarian chapel, Essex-street, London, 1879.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ PHILIPPIANS iii. 15, 16.&mdash;Let us therefore, as many as be perfect, be
+ thus minded; and if in anything ye be otherwise minded, God shall reveal
+ even this unto you. Nevertheless, whereto we have already attained, let us
+ walk by that same.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ This is the reading of the oldest manuscripts. The rest of the verse is
+ pretty clearly a not overwise marginal gloss that has crept into the text.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In its origin, opinion is the intellectual body, taken for utterance and
+ presentation by something necessarily larger than any intellect can afford
+ stuff sufficient for the embodiment of. To the man himself, therefore, in
+ whose mind it arose, an opinion will always represent and recall the
+ spirit whose form it is,&mdash;so long, at least, as the man remains true
+ to his better self. Hence, a man&rsquo;s opinion may be for him invaluable, the
+ needle of his moral compass, always pointing to the truth whence it
+ issued, and whose form it is. Nor is the man&rsquo;s opinion of the less value
+ to him that it may change. Nay, to be of true value, it must have in it
+ not only the possibility, but the necessity of change: it must change in
+ every man who is alive with that life which, in the New Testament, is
+ alone treated as life at all. For, if a man&rsquo;s opinion be in no process of
+ change whatever, it must be dead, valueless, hurtful Opinion is the
+ offspring of that which is itself born to grow; which, being imperfect,
+ must grow or die. Where opinion is growing, its imperfections, however
+ many and serious, will do but little hurt; where it is not growing, these
+ imperfections will further the decay and corruption which must already
+ have laid hold of the very heart of the man. But it is plain in the
+ world&rsquo;s history that what, at some given stage of the same, was the
+ embodiment in intellectual form of the highest and deepest of which it was
+ then spiritually capable, has often and speedily become the source of the
+ most frightful outrages upon humanity. How is this? Because it has passed
+ from the mind in which it grew into another in which it did not grow, and
+ has of necessity altered its nature. Itself sprung from that which was
+ deepest in the man, it casts seeds which take root only in the
+ intellectual understanding of his neighbour; and these, springing up,
+ produce flowers indeed which look much the same to the eye, but fruit
+ which is poison and bitterness,&mdash;worst of it all, the false and
+ arrogant notion that it is duty to force the opinion upon the acceptance
+ of others. But it is because such men themselves hold with so poor a grasp
+ the truth underlying their forms that they are, in their self-sufficiency,
+ so ambitious of propagating the forms, making of themselves the worst
+ enemies of the truth of which they fancy themselves the champions. How
+ truly, in the case of all genuine teachers of men, shall a man&rsquo;s foes be
+ they of his own household! For of all the destroyers of the truth which
+ any man has preached, none have done it so effectually or so grievously as
+ his own followers. So many of them have received but the forms, and know
+ nothing of the truth which gave him those forms! They lay hold but of the
+ non-essential, the specially perishing in those forms; and these aspects,
+ doubly false and misleading in their crumbling disjunction, they proceed
+ to force upon the attention and reception of men, calling that the truth
+ which is at best but the draggled and useless fringe of its earth-made
+ garment. Opinions so held belong to the theology of hell,&mdash;not
+ necessarily altogether false in form, but false utterly in heart and
+ spirit. The opinion then that is hurtful is not that which is formed in
+ the depths, and from the honest necessities of a man&rsquo;s own nature, but
+ that which he has taken up at second hand, the study of which has pleased
+ his intellect; has perhaps subdued fears and mollified distresses which
+ ought rather to have grown and increased until they had driven the man to
+ the true physician; has puffed him up with a sense of superiority as false
+ as foolish, and placed in his hand a club with which to subjugate his
+ neighbour to his spiritual dictation. The true man even, who aims at the
+ perpetuation of his opinion, is rather obstructing than aiding the course
+ of that truth for the love of which he holds his opinion; for truth is a
+ living thing, opinion is a dead thing, and transmitted opinion a deadening
+ thing.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us look at St. Paul&rsquo;s feeling in this regard. And, in order that we
+ may deprive it of none of its force, let us note first the nature of the
+ truth which he had just been presenting to his disciples, when he follows
+ it with the words of my text:&mdash;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But what things were gain to me, those I counted loss for Christ.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Yea doubtless, and I count all things but loss for the excellency of the
+ knowledge of Christ Jesus my Lord: for whom I have suffered the loss of
+ all things, and do count them but dung, that I may win Christ,
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And be found in him, not having mine own righteousness, which is of the
+ law, but that which is through the faith of Christ, the righteousness
+ which is of God by faith:
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ That I may know him, and the power of his resurrection, and the fellowship
+ of his sufferings, being made conformable unto his death;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If by any means I might attain unto the resurrection of the dead.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Not as though I had already attained, either were already perfect: but I
+ follow after, if that I may apprehend that for which also I am apprehended
+ of Christ Jesus.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Brethren, I count not myself to have apprehended: but this one thing I do,
+ forgetting those things which are behind, and reaching forth unto those
+ things which are before, I press toward the mark for the prize of the high
+ calling of God in Christ Jesus.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ St. Paul, then, had been declaring to the Philippians the idea upon which,
+ so far as it lay with him, his life was constructed, the thing for which
+ he lived, to which the whole conscious effort of his being was directed,&mdash;namely,
+ to be in his very nature one with Christ, to become righteous as he is
+ righteous; to die into his death, so that he should no more hold the
+ slightest personal relation to evil, but be alive in every fibre to all
+ that is pure, lovely, loving, beautiful, perfect. He had been telling them
+ that he spent himself in continuous effort to lay hold upon that for the
+ sake of which Christ had laid hold on him. This he declares the sole thing
+ worth living for: the hope of this, the hope of becoming one with the
+ living God, is that which keeps a glorious consciousness awake in him,
+ amidst all the unrest of a being not yet at harmony with itself, and a
+ laborious and persecuted life. It cannot therefore be any shadow of
+ indifference to the truth to which he has borne this witness, that causes
+ him to add, &ldquo;If in anything ye be otherwise minded.&rdquo; It is to him even the
+ test of perfection, whether they be thus minded or not; for, although a
+ moment before, he has declared himself short of the desired perfection, he
+ now says, &ldquo;Let as many of us as are perfect be thus minded.&rdquo; There is here
+ no room for that unprofitable thing, bare logic: we must look through the
+ shifting rainbow of his words,&mdash;rather, we must gather all their
+ tints together, then turn our backs upon the rainbow, that we may see the
+ glorious light which is the soul of it. St. Paul is not that which he
+ would be, which he must be; but he, and all they who with him believe that
+ the perfection of Christ is the sole worthy effort of a man&rsquo;s life, are in
+ the region, though not yet at the centre, of perfection. They are, even
+ now, not indeed grasping, but in the grasp of, that perfection. He tells
+ them this is the one thing to mind, the one thing to go on desiring and
+ labouring for, with all the earnestness of a God-born existence; but, if
+ any one be at all otherwise minded,&mdash;that is, of a different opinion,&mdash;what
+ then? That it is of little or no consequence? No, verily; but of such
+ endless consequence that God will himself unveil to them the truth of the
+ matter. This is Paul&rsquo;s faith, not his opinion. Faith is that by which a
+ man lives inwardly, and orders his way outwardly. Faith is the root,
+ belief the tree, and opinion the foliage that falls and is renewed with
+ the seasons. Opinion is, at best, even the opinion of a true man, but the
+ cloak of his belief, which he may indeed cast to his neighbour, but not
+ with the truth inside it: that remains in his own bosom, the oneness
+ between him and his God. St. Paul knows well&mdash;who better?&mdash;that
+ by no argument, the best that logic itself can afford, can a man be set
+ right with the truth; that the spiritual perception which comes of
+ hungering contact with the living truth&mdash;a perception which is in
+ itself a being born again&mdash;can alone be the mediator between a man
+ and the truth. He knows that, even if he could pass his opinion over
+ bodily into the understanding of his neighbour, there would be little or
+ nothing gained thereby, for the man&rsquo;s spiritual condition would be just
+ what it was before. God must reveal, or nothing is known. And this,
+ through thousands of difficulties occasioned by the man himself, God is
+ ever and always doing his mighty best to effect.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ See the grandeur of redeeming liberality in the Apostle. In his heart of
+ hearts he knows that salvation consists in nothing else than being one
+ with Christ; that the only life of every man is hid with Christ in God,
+ and to be found by no search anywhere else. He believes that for this
+ cause was he born into the world,&mdash;that he should give himself, heart
+ and soul, body and spirit, to him who came into the world that he might
+ bear witness to the truth. He believes that for the sake of this, and
+ nothing less,&mdash;anything more there cannot be,&mdash;was the world,
+ with its endless glories, created. Nay, more than all, he believes that
+ for this did the Lord, in whose cross, type and triumph of his
+ self-abnegation, he glories, come into the world, and live and die there.
+ And yet, and yet, he says, and says plainly, that a man thinking
+ differently from all this or at least, quite unprepared to make this
+ whole-hearted profession of faith, is yet his brother in Christ, in whom
+ the knowledge of Christ that he has will work and work, the new leaven
+ casting out the old leaven until he, too, in the revelation of the Father,
+ shall come to the perfect stature of the fulness of Christ. Meantime,
+ Paul, the Apostle, must show due reverence to the halting and dull
+ disciple. He must and will make no demand upon him on the grounds of what
+ he, Paul, believes. He is where he is, and God is his teacher. To his own
+ Master,&mdash;that is, Paul&rsquo;s Master, and not Paul,&mdash;he stands. He
+ leaves him to the company of his Master. &ldquo;Leaves him?&rdquo; No: that he does
+ not; that he will never do, any more than God will leave him. Still and
+ ever will he hold him and help him. But how help him, if he is not to
+ press upon him his own larger and deeper and wiser insights? The answer is
+ ready: he will press, not his opinion, not even the man&rsquo;s opinion, but the
+ man&rsquo;s own faith upon him. &ldquo;O brother, beloved of the Father, walk in the
+ light,&mdash;in the light, that is, which is thine, not which is mine; in
+ the light which is given to thee, not to me: thou canst not walk by my
+ light, I cannot walk by thine: how should either walk except by the light
+ which is in him? O brother, what thou seest, that do; and what thou seest
+ not, that thou shalt see: God himself, the Father of Lights, will show it
+ to you.&rdquo; This, this is the condition of all growth,&mdash;that whereto we
+ have attained, we mind that same; for such, following the manuscripts, at
+ least the oldest, seems to me the Apostle&rsquo;s meaning. Obedience is the one
+ condition of progress, and he entreats them to obey. If a man will but
+ work that which is in him, will but make the power of God his own, then is
+ it well with him for evermore. Like his Master, Paul urges to action, to
+ the highest operation, therefore to the highest condition of humanity. As
+ Christ was the Son of his Father because he did the will of the Father, so
+ the Apostle would have them the sons of the Father by doing the will of
+ the Father. Whereto ye have attained, walk by <i>that</i>.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But there is more involved in this utterance than the words themselves
+ will expressly carry. Next to his love to the Father and the Elder
+ Brother, the passion of Paul&rsquo;s life&mdash;I cannot call it less&mdash;is
+ love to all his brothers and sisters. Everything human is dear to him: he
+ can part with none of it. Division, separation, the breaking of the body
+ of Christ, is that which he cannot endure. The body of his flesh had once
+ been broken, that a grander body might be prepared for him: was it for
+ that body itself to tear itself asunder? With the whole energy of his
+ great heart, Paul clung to unity. He could clasp together with might and
+ main the body of his Master&mdash;the body that Master loved because it
+ was a spiritual body, with the life of his Father in it. And he knew well
+ that only by walking in the truth to which they had attained, could they
+ ever draw near to each other. Whereto we have attained, let us walk by
+ that.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ My honoured friends, if we are not practical, we are nothing. Now, the one
+ main fault in the Christian Church is separation, repulsion, recoil
+ between the component particles of the Lord&rsquo;s body. I will not, I do not
+ care to inquire who is more to blame than another in the evil fact. I only
+ care to insist that it is the duty of every individual man to be innocent
+ of the same. One main cause, perhaps I should say <i>the one</i> cause of
+ this deathly condition, is that whereto we had, we did not, whereto we
+ have attained, we do not walk by that. Ah, friend! do not now think of thy
+ neighbour. Do not applaud my opinion as just from what thou hast seen
+ around thee, but answer it from thy own being, thy own behaviour. Dost
+ thou ever feel thus toward thy neighbour,&mdash;&ldquo;Yes, of course, every man
+ is my brother; but how can I be a brother to him so long as he thinks me
+ wrong in what I believe, and so long as I think he wrongs in his opinions
+ the dignity of the truth?&rdquo; What, I return, has the man no hand to grasp,
+ no eyes into which yours may gaze far deeper than your vaunted intellect
+ can follow? Is there not, I ask, anything in him to love? Who asks you to
+ be of one opinion? It is the Lord who asks you to be of one heart. Does
+ the Lord love the man? Can the Lord love, where there is nothing to love?
+ Are you wiser than he, inasmuch as you perceive impossibility where he has
+ failed to discover it? Or will you say, &ldquo;Let the Lord love where he
+ pleases: I will love where I please&rdquo;? or say, and imagine you yield,
+ &ldquo;Well, I suppose I must, and therefore I will,&mdash;but with certain
+ reservations, politely quiet in my own heart&rdquo;? Or wilt thou say none of
+ all these things, but do them all, one after the other, in the secret
+ chambers of thy proud spirit? If you delight to condemn, you are a
+ wounder, a divider of the oneness of Christ. If you pride yourself on your
+ loftier vision, and are haughty to your neighbour, you are yourself a
+ division and have reason to ask: &ldquo;Am I a particle of the body at all?&rdquo; The
+ Master will deal with thee upon the score. Let it humble thee to know that
+ thy dearest opinion, the one thou dost worship as if it, and not God, were
+ thy Saviour, this very opinion thou art doomed to change, for it cannot
+ possibly be right, if it work in thee for death and not for life.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Friends, you have done me the honour and the kindness to ask me to speak
+ to you. I will speak plainly. I come before you neither hiding anything of
+ my belief, nor foolishly imagining I can transfer my opinions into your
+ bosoms. If there is one rôle I hate, it is that of the proselytizer. But
+ shall I not come to you as a brother to brethren? Shall I not use the
+ privilege of your invitation and of the place in which I stand, nay, must
+ I not myself be obedient to the heavenly vision, in urging you with all
+ the power of my persuasion to set yourselves afresh to <i>walk</i>
+ according to that to which you have attained. So doing, whatever yet there
+ is to learn, you shall learn it. Thus doing, and thus only, can you draw
+ nigh to the centre truth; thus doing, and thus only, shall we draw nigh to
+ each other, and become brothers and sisters in Christ, caring for each
+ other&rsquo;s honour and righteousness and true well-being. It is to them that
+ keep his commandments that he and his Father will come to take up their
+ abode with them. Whether you or I have the larger share of the truth in
+ that which we hold, of this I am sure, that it is to them that keep his
+ commandments that it shall be given to eat of the Tree of Life. I believe
+ that Jesus is the eternal son of the eternal Father; that in him the ideal
+ humanity sat enthroned from all eternity; that as he is the divine man, so
+ is he the human God; that there was no taking of our nature upon himself,
+ but the showing of himself as he really was, and that from evermore: these
+ things, friends, I believe, though never would I be guilty of what in me
+ would be the irreverence of opening my mouth in dispute upon them. Not for
+ a moment would I endeavour by argument to convince another of this, my
+ opinion. If it be true, it is God&rsquo;s work to show it, for logic cannot. But
+ the more, and not the less, do I believe that he, who is no respecter of
+ persons, will, least of all, respect the person of him who thinks to
+ please him by respecting his person, calling him, &ldquo;Lord, Lord,&rdquo; and not
+ doing the things that he tells him. Even if I be right, friend, and thou
+ wrong, to thee who doest his commandments more faithfully than I, will the
+ more abundant entrance be administered. God grant that, when thou art
+ admitted first, I may not be cast out, but admitted to learn of thee that
+ it is truth in the inward parts that he requireth, and they that have that
+ truth, and they alone, shall ever know wisdom. Bear with me, friends, for
+ I love and honour you. I seek but to stir up your hearts, as I would daily
+ stir up my own, to be true to that which is deepest in us,&mdash;the voice
+ and the will of the Father of our spirits.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Friends, I have not said we are not to utter our opinions. I have only
+ said we are not to make those opinions the point of a fresh start, the
+ foundation of a new building, the groundwork of anything. They are not to
+ occupy us in our dealings with our brethren. Opinion is often the very
+ death of love. Love aright, and you will come to think aright; and those
+ who think aright must think the same. In the meantime, it matters nothing.
+ The thing that does matter is, that whereto we have attained, by that we
+ should walk. But, while we are not to insist upon our opinions, which is
+ only one way of insisting upon ourselves, however we may cloak the fact
+ from ourselves in the vain imagination of thereby spreading the truth, we
+ are bound by loftiest duty to spread the truth; for that is the saving of
+ men. Do you ask, How spread it, if we are not to talk about it? Friends, I
+ never said, Do not talk about the truth, although I insist upon a better
+ and the only indispensable way: let your light shine. What I said before,
+ and say again, is, Do not talk about the lantern that holds the lamp, but
+ make haste, uncover the light, and let it shine. Let your light so shine
+ before men that they may see your good works,&mdash;I incline to the
+ Vatican reading of <i>good things</i>,&mdash;and glorify your Father who
+ is in heaven. It is not, Let your good works shine, but, Let your light
+ shine. Let it be the genuine love of your hearts, taking form in true
+ deeds; not the doing of good deeds to prove that your opinions are right.
+ If ye are thus true, your very talk about the truth will be a good work, a
+ shining of the light that is in you. A true smile is a good work, and may
+ do much to reveal the Father who is in heaven; but the smile that is put
+ on for the sake of looking right, or even for the sake of being right,
+ will hardly reveal him, not being like him. Men say that you are cold: if
+ you fear it may be so, do not think to make yourselves warm by putting on
+ the cloak of this or that fresh opinion; draw nearer to the central heat,
+ the living humanity of the Son of Man, that ye may have life in
+ yourselves, so heat in yourselves, so light in yourselves; understand him,
+ obey him, then your light will shine, and your warmth will warm. There is
+ an infection, as in evil, so in good. The better we are, the more will men
+ glorify God. If we trim our lamps so that we have light in our house, that
+ light will shine through our windows, and give light to those that are not
+ in the house. But remember, love of the light alone can trim the lamp. Had
+ Love trimmed Psyche&rsquo;s lamp, it had never dropped the scalding oil that
+ scared him from her.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The man who holds his opinion the most honestly ought to see the most
+ plainly that his opinion must change. It is impossible a man should hold
+ anything aright. How shall the created embrace the self-existent Creator?
+ That Creator, and he alone, is <i>the truth</i>: how, then, shall a man
+ embrace the truth? But to him who will live it,&mdash;to him, that is, who
+ walks by that to which he has attained,&mdash;the truth will reach down a
+ thousand true hands for his to grasp. We would not wish to enclose that
+ which we can do more than enclose,&mdash;live in, namely, as our home,
+ inherit, exult in,&mdash;the presence of the infinitely higher and better,
+ the heart of the living one. And, if we know that God himself is our
+ inheritance, why should we tremble even with hatred at the suggestion that
+ we may, that we must, change our opinions? If we held them aright, we
+ should know that nothing in them that is good can ever be lost; for that
+ is the true, whatever in them may be the false. It is only as they help us
+ toward God, that our opinions are worth a straw; and every necessary
+ change in them must be to more truth, to greater uplifting power. Lord,
+ change me as thou wilt, only do not send me away. That in my opinions for
+ which I really hold them, if I be a true man, will never pass away; that
+ which my evils and imperfections have, in the process of embodying it,
+ associated with the truth, must, thank God, perish and fall. My opinions,
+ as my life, as my love, I leave in the hands of him who is my being. I
+ commend my spirit to him of whom it came. Why, then, that dislike to the
+ very idea of such change, that dread of having to accept the thing offered
+ by those whom we count our opponents, which is such a stumbling-block in
+ the way in which we have to walk, such an obstruction to our yet
+ inevitable growth? It may be objected that no man will hold his opinions
+ with the needful earnestness, who can entertain the idea of having to
+ change them. But the very objection speaks powerfully against such an
+ overvaluing of opinion. For what is it but to say that, in order to be
+ wise, a man must consent to be a fool. Whatever must be, a man must be
+ able to look in the face. It is because we cleave to our opinions rather
+ than to the living God, because self and pride interest themselves for
+ their own vile sakes with that which belongs only to the truth, that we
+ become such fools of logic and temper that we lie in the prison-houses of
+ our own fancies, ideas, and experiences, shut the doors and windows
+ against the entrance of the free spirit, and will not inherit the love of
+ the Father.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Yet, for the help and comfort of even such a refuser as this, I would say:
+ Nothing which you reject can be such as it seems to you. For a thing is
+ either true or untrue: if it be untrue, it looks, so far like itself that
+ you reject it, and with it we have nothing more to do; but, if it be true,
+ the very fact that you reject it shows that to you it has not appeared
+ true,&mdash;has not appeared itself. The truth can never be even beheld
+ but by the man who accepts it: the thing, therefore, which you reject, is
+ not that which it seems to you, but a thing good, and altogether
+ beautiful, altogether fit for your gladsome embrace,&mdash;a thing from
+ which you would not turn away, did you see it as it is, but rush to it, as
+ Dante says, like the wild beast to his den,&mdash;so eager for the refuge
+ of home. No honest man holds a truth for the sake of that because of which
+ another honest man rejects it: how it may be with the dishonest, I have no
+ confidence in my judgment, and hope I am not bound to understand.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Let us then, my friends, beware lest our opinions come between us and our
+ God, between us and our neighbour, between us and our better selves. Let
+ us be jealous that the human shall not obscure the divine. For we are not
+ <i>mere</i> human: we, too, are divine; and there is no such obliterator
+ of the divine as the human that acts undivinely. The one security against
+ our opinions is to walk according to the truth which they contain.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ And if men seem to us unreasonable, opposers of that which to us is
+ plainly true, let us remember that we are not here to convince men, but to
+ let our light shine. Knowledge is not necessarily light; and it is light,
+ not knowledge, that we have to diffuse. The best thing we can do,
+ infinitely the best, indeed the only thing, that men may receive the
+ truth, is to be ourselves true. Beyond all doing of good is the being
+ good; for he that is good not only does good things, but all that he does
+ is good. Above all, let us be humble before the God of truth, faithfully
+ desiring of him that truth in the inward parts which alone can enable us
+ to walk according to that which we have attained. May the God of peace
+ give you his peace; may the love of Christ constrain you; may the gift of
+ the Holy Spirit be yours. Amen.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0014" id="link2H_4_0014">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ TRUE CHRISTIAN MINISTERING.
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ [Footnote: A spoken sermon.]
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ MATT. xx. 25&mdash;28&mdash;But Jesus called them unto him and said, Ye
+ know that the princes of the Gentiles exercise dominion over them, and
+ they that are great exercise authority upon them. But it should not be so
+ among you: but whosoever will be great among you, let him be your
+ minister; and whosoever will be chief among you, let him be your servant:
+ even as the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister,
+ and to give his life a ransom for many.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ How little this is believed! People think, if they think about it at all,
+ that this is very well in the church, but, as things go in the world, it
+ won&rsquo;t do. At least, their actions imply this, for every man is struggling
+ to get above the other. Every man would make his neighbour his footstool
+ that he may climb upon him to some throne of glory which he has in his own
+ mind. There is a continual jostling, and crowding, and buzzing, and
+ striving to get promotion. Of course there are known and noble exceptions;
+ but still, there it is. And yet we call ourselves &ldquo;Christians,&rdquo; and we are
+ Christians, all of us, thus far, that the truth is within reach of us all,
+ that it has come nigh to us, talking to us at our door, and even speaking
+ in our hearts, and yet this is the way in which we go on! The Lord said,
+ &ldquo;It shall not be so among you.&rdquo; Did he mean only his twelve disciples?
+ This was all that he had to say to them, but&mdash;thanks be to him!&mdash;he
+ says the same to every one of us now. &ldquo;It shall not be so among you: that
+ is not the way in my kingdom.&rdquo; The people of the world&mdash;the people
+ who live in the world&mdash;will always think it best to get up, to have
+ less and less of service to do, more and more of service done to them. The
+ notion of rank in the world is like a pyramid; the higher you go up, the
+ fewer are there who have to serve those above them, and who are served
+ more than those underneath them. All who are under serve those who are
+ above, until you come to the apex, and there stands some one who has to do
+ no service, but whom all the others have to serve. Something like that is
+ the notion of position&mdash;of social standing and rank. And if it be so
+ in an intellectual way even&mdash;to say nothing of mere bodily service&mdash;if
+ any man works to a position that others shall all look up to him and that
+ he may have to look up to nobody, he has just put himself precisely into
+ the same condition as the people of whom our Lord speaks&mdash;as those
+ who exercise dominion and authority, and really he thinks it a fine thing
+ to be served.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But it is not so in the kingdom of heaven. The figure there is entirely
+ reversed. As you may see a pyramid reflected in the water, just so, in a
+ reversed way altogether, is the thing to be found in the kingdom of God.
+ It is in this way: the Son of Man lies at the inverted apex of the
+ pyramid; he upholds, and serves, and ministers unto all, and they who
+ would be high in his kingdom must go near to him at the bottom, to uphold
+ and minister to all that they may or can uphold and minister unto. There
+ is no other law of precedence, no other law of rank and position in God&rsquo;s
+ kingdom. And mind, that is <i>the</i> kingdom. The other kingdom passes
+ away&mdash;it is a transitory, ephemeral, passing, bad thing, and away it
+ must go. It is only there on sufferance, because in the mind of God even
+ that which is bad ministers to that which is good; and when the new
+ kingdom is built the old kingdom shall pass away.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the man who seeks this rank of which I have spoken, must be honest to
+ follow it. It will not do to say, &ldquo;I want to be great, and therefore I
+ will serve.&rdquo; A man will not get at it so. He may begin so, but he will
+ soon find that that will not do. He must seek it for the truth&rsquo;s sake, for
+ the love of his fellows, for the worship of God, for the delight in what
+ is good. In the kingdom of heaven people do not think whether I am
+ promoted, or whether you are promoted. They are so absorbed in the delight
+ and glory of the goodness that is round about them, that they learn not to
+ think much about themselves. It is the bad that is in us that makes us
+ think about ourselves. It is necessary for us, because there is bad in us,
+ to think about ourselves, but as we go on we think less and less about
+ ourselves, until at last we are possessed with the spirit of the truth,
+ the spirit of the kingdom, and live in gladness and in peace. We are
+ prouder of our brothers and sisters than of ourselves; we delight to look
+ at them. God looks at us, and makes us what he pleases, and this is what
+ we must come to; there is no escape from it.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But the Lord says, that &ldquo;the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto.&rdquo;
+ Was he not ministered unto then? Ah! he was ministered unto as never man
+ was, but he did not come for that. Even now we bring to him the
+ burnt-offerings of our very spirits, but he did not come for that. It was
+ to help us that he came. We are told, likewise, that he is the express
+ image of the Father. Then what he does, the Father must do; and he says
+ himself, when he is accused of breaking the Sabbath by doing work on it,
+ &ldquo;My Father worketh hitherto, and I work.&rdquo; Then this must be God&rsquo;s way too,
+ or else it could not have been Jesus&rsquo;s way. It is God&rsquo;s way. Oh! do not
+ think that God made us with his hands, and then turned us out to find out
+ our own way. Do not think of him as being always over our heads, merely
+ throwing over us a wide-spread benevolence. You can imagine the tenderness
+ of a mother&rsquo;s heart who takes her child even from its beloved nurse to
+ soothe and to minister to it, and that is like God; that is God. His hand
+ is not only over us, but recollect what David said&mdash;&ldquo;His hand was
+ upon me.&rdquo; I wish we were all as good Christians as David was. &ldquo;Wherever I
+ go,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;God is there&mdash;beneath me, before me, his hand is upon
+ me; if I go to sleep he is there; when I go down to the dead he is there.&rdquo;
+ Everywhere is God. The earth underneath us is his hand upholding us.
+ [Footnote: The waters are in the hollow of it.] Every spring-fountain of
+ gladness about us is his making and his delight. He tends us and cares for
+ us; he is close to us, breathing into our nostrils the breath of life, and
+ breathing into our spirit this thought and that thought to make us look up
+ and recognize the love and the care around us. What a poor thing for the
+ little baby would it be if it were to be constantly tended thus tenderly
+ and preciously by its mother, but if it were never to open its eyes to
+ look up and see her mother&rsquo;s face bending over it. A poor thing all its
+ tending would be without that. It is for that that the other exists; it is
+ by that that the other comes. To recognize and know this loving-kindness,
+ and to stand up in it strong and glad; this is the ministration of God
+ unto us. Do you ever think &ldquo;I could worship God if he was so-and-so?&rdquo; Do
+ you imagine that God is not as good, as perfect, as absolutely all-in-all
+ as your thoughts can imagine? Aye, you cannot come up to it; do what you
+ will you never will come up to it. Use all the symbols that we have in
+ nature, in human relations, in the family&mdash;all our symbols of grace
+ and tenderness, and loving-kindness between man and man, and between man
+ and woman, and between woman and woman, but you can never come up to the
+ thought of what God&rsquo;s ministration is. When our Lord came he just let us
+ see how his Father was doing this always, he &ldquo;came to give his life a
+ ransom for many.&rdquo; It was in giving his life a ransom for us that he died;
+ that was the consummation and crown of it all, but it was his life that he
+ gave for us&mdash;his whole being, his whole strength, his whole energy&mdash;not
+ alone his days of trouble and of toil, but deeper than that, he gave his
+ whole being for us; yea, he even went down to death for us.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But how are we to learn this ministration? I will tell you where it
+ begins. The most of us are forced to work; if you do not see that the
+ commonest things in life belong to the Christian scheme, the plan of God,
+ you have got to learn it. I say this is at the beginning. Most of us have
+ to work, and infinitely better is that for us than if we were not forced
+ to work, but not a very fine thing unless it goes to something farther. We
+ are forced to work; and what is our work? It is doing something for other
+ people always. It is doing; it is ministration in some shape or other. All
+ kind of work is a serving, but it may not be always Christian service. No.
+ Some of us only work for our wages; we must have them. We starve, and
+ deserve to starve, if we do not work to get them. But we must go a little
+ beyond that; yes, a very great way beyond that. There is no honest work
+ that one man does for another which he may not do as unto the Lord and not
+ unto men; in which he cannot do right as he ought to do right. Thus, I say
+ that the man who sees the commonest thing in the world, recognizing it as
+ part of the divine order of things, the law by which the world goes, being
+ the intention of God that one man should be serviceable and useful to
+ another&mdash;the man, I say, who does a thing well because of this, and
+ who tries to do it better, is doing God service.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ We talk of &ldquo;divine service.&rdquo; It is a miserable name for a great thing. It
+ is not service, properly speaking, at all. When a boy comes to his father
+ and says, &ldquo;May I do so and so for you?&rdquo; or, rather, comes and breaks out
+ in some way, showing his love to his father&mdash;says, &ldquo;May I come and
+ sit beside you? May I have some of your books? May I come and be quiet a
+ little in your room?&rdquo; what would you think of that boy if he went and
+ said, &ldquo;I have been doing my father a service.&rdquo; So with praying to and
+ thanking God, do you call that serving God? If it is not serving
+ yourselves it is worth nothing; if it is not the best condition you can
+ find yourselves in, you have to learn what it is yet. Not so; the work you
+ have to do to-morrow in the counting-house, in the shop, or wherever you
+ may be, is that by which you are to serve God. Do it with a high regard,
+ and then there is nothing mean in it; but there is everything mean in it
+ if you are pretending to please people when you only look for your wages.
+ It is mean then; but if you have regard to doing a thing nobly, greatly,
+ and truly, because it is the work that God has given you to do, then you
+ are doing the divine service.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Of course, this goes a great deal farther. We have endless opportunities
+ of showing ourselves neighbours to the man who comes near us. That is the
+ divine service; that is the reality of serving God. The others ought to be
+ your reward, if &ldquo;reward&rdquo; is a word that can be used in such a relation at
+ all. Go home and speak to God; nay, hold your tongue, and quietly go to
+ him in the secret recesses of your own heart, and know that God is there.
+ Say, &ldquo;God has given me this work to do, and I am doing it;&rdquo; and that is
+ your joy, that is your refuge, that is your going to heaven. It is not
+ service. The words &ldquo;divine service,&rdquo; as they are used, always move me to
+ something of indignation. It is perfect paganism; it is looking to please
+ God by gathering together your services,&mdash;something that is supposed
+ to be service to him. He is serving us for ever, and our Lord says, &ldquo;If I
+ have washed your feet, so you ought to wash one another&rsquo;s feet.&rdquo; This will
+ be the way in which to minister for some.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But still, when we are beginning to learn this, some of us are looking
+ about us in a blind kind of way, thinking, &ldquo;I wish I could serve God; I do
+ not know what to do! How is it to be begun? What is it at the root of it?
+ What shall I find out to do? Where is there something to do?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Now, first of all, service is obedience, or it is nothing. This is what I
+ would gladly impress upon you; upon every young man who has come to the
+ point to be able to receive it. There is a tendency in us to think that
+ there is something degrading in obedience, something degrading in service.
+ According to the social judgment there is; according to the judgment of
+ the earth there is. Not so according to the judgment of heaven, for God
+ would only have us do the very thing he is doing himself. You may see the
+ tendency of this nowadays. There is scarcely a young man who will speak of
+ his &ldquo;master.&rdquo; He feels as if there is something that hurts his dignity in
+ doing so. He does just what so many theologians have done about God, who,
+ instead of taking what our Lord has given us, talk about God as &ldquo;the
+ Governor of the Universe.&rdquo; So a young man talks about his master as &ldquo;the
+ governor;&rdquo; nay, he even talks of his own father in that way, and then you
+ come in another region altogether, and a worse one. I take these things as
+ symptoms, mind. I know habits may be picked up, when they get common,
+ without any great corresponding feeling; but a wrong habit tends always to
+ a wrong feeling, and if a man cannot learn to honour his father, so as to
+ be able to call him &ldquo;father,&rdquo; I think one or the other of them is greatly
+ to blame, whether the father or the son I cannot say. I know there are
+ such parents that to tell their children that God is their &ldquo;Father&rdquo; is no
+ help to them, but the contrary. I heard of a lady just the other day to
+ whom, in trying to comfort her, some one said, &ldquo;Remember God is your
+ Father.&rdquo; &ldquo;Do not mention the name &lsquo;father&rsquo; to me,&rdquo; she said. Ah! that kind
+ of fault does not lie in God, but in those who, not being like him, cannot
+ use the names aright which belong to him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But now, as to this service, this obedience. Our Lord came to give his
+ life a ransom for the many, and to minister unto all in obedience to his
+ Father&rsquo;s will. We call him equal with God&mdash;at least, most of us here,
+ I suppose, do; of course we do not pretend to explain; we know that God is
+ greater than he, because he said so; but somehow, we can worship him with
+ our God, and we need not try to distinguish more than is necessary about
+ it. But do you think that he was less divine than the Father when he was
+ obedient? Observe his obedience to the will of his Father. He was not the
+ ruler there. He did not give the commands; he obeyed them. And yet we say
+ He is God! Ah, that is no difficulty to me. Obedience is as divine in its
+ essence as command; nay, it may be more divine in the human being far; it
+ cannot be more divine in God, but obedience is far more divine in its
+ essence with regard to humanity than command is. It is not the ruling
+ being who is most like God; it is the man who ministers to his fellow, who
+ is like God; and the man who will just sternly and rigidly do what his
+ master tells him&mdash;be that master what he may&mdash;who is likest
+ Christ in that one particular matter. Obedience is the grandest thing in
+ the world to begin with. Yes, and we shall end with it too. I do not think
+ the time will ever come when we shall not have something to do, because we
+ are told to do it without knowing why. Those parents act most foolishly
+ who wish to explain everything to their children&mdash;most foolishly. No;
+ teach your child to obey, and you give him the most precious lesson that
+ can be given to a child. Let him come to that before you have had him
+ long, to do what he is told, and you have given him the plainest, first,
+ and best lesson that you can give him. If he never goes to school at all
+ he had better have that lesson than all the schooling in the world. Hence,
+ when some people are accustomed to glorify this age of ours as being so
+ much better in everything than those which went before, I look back to the
+ times of chivalry, which we regard now, almost, as a thing to laugh at, or
+ a merry thing to make jokes about; but I find that the one essential of
+ chivalry was obedience. It is recognized in our army still, but in those
+ times it was carried much farther. When a boy was seven years old he was
+ sent into another family, and put with another boy there to do what? To
+ wait with him upon the master and the mistress of the house, and to be
+ taught, as well, what few things they knew in those times in the way of
+ intellectual cultivation. But he also learned stern, strict obedience,
+ such as it was impossible for him to forget. Then, when he had been there
+ seven years, hard at work, standing behind the chair, and ministering, he
+ was advanced a step; and what was that step? He was made an esquire. He
+ had his armour given him; he had to watch his armour in the chapel all
+ night, laying it on the altar in silent devotion to God. I do not say that
+ all these things were carried out afterwards, but this was the idea of
+ them. He was an esquire, and what was the duty of an esquire? More
+ service; more important service. He still had to attend to his master, the
+ knight. He had to watch him; he had to groom his horse for him; he had to
+ see that his horse was sound; he had to clean his armour for him; to see
+ that every bolt, every rivet, every strap, every buckle was sound, for the
+ life of his master was in his hands. The master, having to fight, must not
+ be troubled with these things, and therefore the squire had to attend to
+ them. Then seven years after that a more solemn ceremony is gone through,
+ and the squire is made a knight; but is he free of service then? No; he
+ makes a solemn oath to help everybody who needs help, especially women and
+ children, and so he rides out into the world to do the work of a true man.
+ There was a grand and essential idea of Christianity in that&mdash;no
+ doubt wonderfully broken and shattered, but not more so than the Christian
+ church has been; wonderfully broken and shattered, but still the essence
+ of obedience; and I say it is recognized in our army still, and in every
+ army; and where it is lost it is a terrible loss, and an army is worth
+ nothing without it. You remember that terrible story from the East, that
+ fearful death-charge, one of the grandest things in our history, although
+ one of the most blundering:&mdash;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Theirs not to make reply,
+ Theirs not to reason why,
+ Theirs but to do and die;
+ Into the valley of death
+ Rode the Six Hundred.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ So with the Christian man; whatever meets him, obedience is the thing. If
+ he is told by his conscience, which is the candle of God within him, that
+ he must do a thing, why he must do it. He may tremble from head to foot at
+ having to do it, but he will tremble more if he turns his back. You
+ recollect how our old poet Spenser shows us the Knight of the Red Cross,
+ who is the knight of holiness, ill in body, diseased in mind, without any
+ of his armour on, attacked by a fearful giant. What does he do? Run away?
+ No, he has but time to catch up his sword, and, trembling in every limb,
+ he goes on to meet the giant; and that is the thing that every Christian
+ man must do. I cannot put it too strongly; it is impossible. There is no
+ escape from it. If death itself lies before us, and we know it, there is
+ nothing to be said; it is all to be done, and then there is no loss;
+ everything else is all lost unto God. Look at our Lord. He gave his life
+ to do the will of his Father, and on he went and did it. Do you think it
+ was easy for him&mdash;easier for him than it would have been for us? Ah!
+ the greater the man the more delicate and tender his nature, and the more
+ he shrinks from the opposition even of his fellowmen, because he loves
+ them. It was a terrible thing for Christ. Even now and then, even in the
+ little touches that come to us in the scanty story (though enough) this
+ breaks out. &ldquo;We are told by John that at the Last Supper He was troubled
+ in spirit, and testified.&rdquo; And then how he tries to comfort himself as
+ soon as Judas has gone out to do the thing which was to finish his great
+ work: &ldquo;Now is the Son of Man glorified, and God is glorified in him. If
+ God be glorified in him, God shall also glorify him in himself.&rdquo; Then he
+ adds,&mdash;just gathering up his strength,&mdash;&ldquo;I shall straightway
+ glorify him.&rdquo; This was said to his disciples, but I seem to see in it that
+ some of it was said for himself. This is the grand obedience! Oh, friends,
+ this is a hard lesson to learn. We find every day that it is a hard thing
+ to teach. We are continually grumbling because we cannot get the people
+ about us, our servants, our tradespeople, or whoever they may be, to do
+ just what we tell them. It makes half the misery in the world because they
+ will have something of their own in it against what they are told. But are
+ we not always doing the same thing? and ought we not to learn something of
+ forgiveness for them, and very much from the fact that we are just in the
+ same position? We only recognize in part that we are put here in this
+ world precisely to learn to be obedient. He who is our Lord and our God
+ went on being obedient all the time, and was obedient always; and I say it
+ is as divine for us to obey as it is for God to rule. As I have said
+ already, God is ministering the whole time. Now, do you want to know how
+ to minister? Begin by obeying. Obey every one who has a right to command
+ you; but above all, look to what our Lord has said, and find out what he
+ wants you to do out of what he left behind, and try whether obedience to
+ that will not give a consciousness of use, of ministering, of being a part
+ of the grand scheme and way of God in this world. In fact, take your place
+ in it as a vital portion of the divine kingdom, or&mdash;to use a better
+ figure than that&mdash;a vital portion of the Godhead. Try it, and see
+ whether obedience is not salvation; whether service is not dignity;
+ whether you will not feel in yourselves that you have begun to be cleansed
+ from your plague when you begin to say, &ldquo;I will seek no more to be above
+ my fellows, but I will seek to minister to them, doing my work in God&rsquo;s
+ name for them.&rdquo;
+ </p>
+<pre xml:space="preserve">
+ &ldquo;Who sweeps a room as for Thy law,
+ Makes that and the action fine.&rdquo;
+ </pre>
+ <p>
+ Both the room and the action are good when done for God&rsquo;s sake. That is
+ dear old George Herbert&rsquo;s way of saying the same truth, for every man has
+ his own way of saying it. The gift of the Spirit of God to make you think
+ as God thinks, feel as God feels, judge as God judges, is just the one
+ thing that is promised. I do not know anything else that is promised
+ positively but that, and who dares pray for anything else with perfect
+ confidence? God will not give us what we pray for except it be good for
+ us, but that is one thing that we must have or perish. Therefore, let us
+ pray for that, and with the name of God dwelling in us&mdash;if this is
+ not true, the whole world is a heap of ruins&mdash;let us go forth and do
+ this service of God in ministering to our fellows, and so helping him in
+ his work of upholding, and glorifying and saving all.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ <a name="link2H_4_0015" id="link2H_4_0015">
+ <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 4em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+ <h2>
+ THE FANTASTIC IMAGINATION
+ </h2>
+ <p>
+ That we have in English no word corresponding to the German <i>Mährchen</i>,
+ drives us to use the word <i>Fairytale</i>, regardless of the fact that
+ the tale may have nothing to do with any sort of fairy. The old use of the
+ word <i>Fairy</i>, by Spenser at least, might, however, well be adduced,
+ were justification or excuse necessary where <i>need must</i>.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Were I asked, what is a fairytale? I should reply, <i>Read Undine: that is
+ a fairytale; then read this and that as well, and you will see what is a
+ fairytale</i>. Were I further begged to describe the <i>fairytale</i>, or
+ define what it is, I would make answer, that I should as soon think of
+ describing the abstract human face, or stating what must go to constitute
+ a human being. A fairytale is just a fairytale, as a face is just a face;
+ and of all fairytales I know, I think <i>Undine</i> the most beautiful.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Many a man, however, who would not attempt to define <i>a man</i>, might
+ venture to say something as to what a man ought to be: even so much I will
+ not in this place venture with regard to the fairytale, for my long past
+ work in that kind might but poorly instance or illustrate my now more
+ matured judgment. I will but say some things helpful to the reading, in
+ right-minded fashion, of such fairytales as I would wish to write, or care
+ to read.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Some thinkers would feel sorely hampered if at liberty to use no forms but
+ such as existed in nature, or to invent nothing save in accordance with
+ the laws of the world of the senses; but it must not therefore be imagined
+ that they desire escape from the region of law. Nothing lawless can show
+ the least reason why it should exist, or could at best have more than an
+ appearance of life.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The natural world has its laws, and no man must interfere with them in the
+ way of presentment any more than in the way of use; but they themselves
+ may suggest laws of other kinds, and man may, if he pleases, invent a
+ little world of his own, with its own laws; for there is that in him which
+ delights in calling up new forms&mdash;which is the nearest, perhaps, he
+ can come to creation. When such forms are new embodiments of old truths,
+ we call them products of the Imagination; when they are mere inventions,
+ however lovely, I should call them the work of the Fancy: in either case,
+ Law has been diligently at work.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ His world once invented, the highest law that comes next into play is,
+ that there shall be harmony between the laws by which the new world has
+ begun to exist; and in the process of his creation, the inventor must hold
+ by those laws. The moment he forgets one of them, he makes the story, by
+ its own postulates, incredible. To be able to live a moment in an imagined
+ world, we must see the laws of its existence obeyed. Those broken, we fall
+ out of it. The imagination in us, whose exercise is essential to the most
+ temporary submission to the imagination of another, immediately, with the
+ disappearance, of Law, ceases to act. Suppose the gracious creatures of
+ some childlike region of Fairyland talking either cockney or Gascon! Would
+ not the tale, however lovelily begun, sink at once to the level of the
+ Burlesque&mdash;of all forms of literature the least worthy? A man&rsquo;s
+ inventions may be stupid or clever, but if he do not hold by the laws of
+ them, or if he make one law jar with another, he contradicts himself as an
+ inventor, he is no artist. He does not rightly consort his instruments, or
+ he tunes them in different keys. The mind of man is the product of live
+ Law; it thinks by law, it dwells in the midst of law, it gathers from law
+ its growth; with law, therefore, can it alone work to any result.
+ Inharmonious, unconsorting ideas will come to a man, but if he try to use
+ one of such, his work will grow dull, and he will drop it from mere lack
+ of interest. Law is the soil in which alone beauty will grow; beauty is
+ the only stuff in which Truth can be clothed; and you may, if you will,
+ call Imagination the tailor that cuts her garments to fit her, and Fancy
+ his journeyman that puts the pieces of them together, or perhaps at most
+ embroiders their button-holes. Obeying law, the maker works like his
+ creator; not obeying law, he is such a fool as heaps a pile of stones and
+ calls it a church.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ In the moral world it is different: there a man may clothe in new forms,
+ and for this employ his imagination freely, but he must invent nothing. He
+ may not, for any purpose, turn its laws upside down. He must not meddle
+ with the relations of live souls. The laws of the spirit of man must hold,
+ alike in this world and in any world he may invent. It were no offence to
+ suppose a world in which everything repelled instead of attracted the
+ things around it; it would be wicked to write a tale representing a man it
+ called good as always doing bad things, or a man it called bad as always
+ doing good things: the notion itself is absolutely lawless. In physical
+ things a man may invent; in moral things he must obey&mdash;and take their
+ laws with him into his invented world as well.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;You write as if a fairytale were a thing of importance: must it have a
+ meaning?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It cannot help having some meaning; if it have proportion and harmony it
+ has vitality, and vitality is truth. The beauty may be plainer in it than
+ the truth, but without the truth the beauty could not be, and the
+ fairytale would give no delight. Everyone, however, who feels the story,
+ will read its meaning after his own nature and development: one man will
+ read one meaning in it, another will read another.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;If so, how am I to assure myself that I am not reading my own meaning
+ into it, but yours out of it?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Why should you be so assured? It may be better that you should read your
+ meaning into it. That may be a higher operation of your intellect than the
+ mere reading of mine out of it: your meaning may be superior to mine.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;Suppose my child ask me what the fairytale means, what am I to say?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If you do not know what it means, what is easier than to say so? If you do
+ see a meaning in it, there it is for you to give him. A genuine work of
+ art must mean many things; the truer its art, the more things it will
+ mean. If my drawing, on the other hand, is so far from being a work of art
+ that it needs THIS IS A HORSE written under it, what can it matter that
+ neither you nor your child should know what it means? It is there not so
+ much to convey a meaning as to wake a meaning. If it do not even wake an
+ interest, throw it aside. A meaning may be there, but it is not for you.
+ If, again, you do not know a horse when you see it, the name written under
+ it will not serve you much. At all events, the business of the painter is
+ not to teach zoology.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ But indeed your children are not likely to trouble you about the meaning.
+ They find what they are capable of finding, and more would be too much.
+ For my part, I do not write for children, but for the childlike, whether
+ of five, or fifty, or seventy-five.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ A fairytale is not an allegory. There may be allegory in it, but it is not
+ an allegory. He must be an artist indeed who can, in any mode, produce a
+ strict allegory that is not a weariness to the spirit. An allegory must be
+ Mastery or Moorditch.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ A fairytale, like a butterfly or a bee, helps itself on all sides, sips at
+ every wholesome flower, and spoils not one. The true fairytale is, to my
+ mind, very like the sonata. We all know that a sonata means something; and
+ where there is the faculty of talking with suitable vagueness, and
+ choosing metaphor sufficiently loose, mind may approach mind, in the
+ interpretation of a sonata, with the result of a more or less contenting
+ consciousness of sympathy. But if two or three men sat down to write each
+ what the sonata meant to him, what approximation to definite idea would be
+ the result? Little enough&mdash;and that little more than needful. We
+ should find it had roused related, if not identical, feelings, but
+ probably not one common thought. Has the sonata therefore failed? Had it
+ undertaken to convey, or ought it to be expected to impart anything
+ defined, anything notionally recognizable?
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But words are not music; words at least are meant and fitted to carry a
+ precise meaning!&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ It is very seldom indeed that they carry the exact meaning of any user of
+ them! And if they can be so used as to convey definite meaning, it does
+ not follow that they ought never to carry anything else. Words are live
+ things that may be variously employed to various ends. They can convey a
+ scientific fact, or throw a shadow of her child&rsquo;s dream on the heart of a
+ mother. They are things to put together like the pieces of a dissected
+ map, or to arrange like the notes on a stave. Is the music in them to go
+ for nothing? It can hardly help the definiteness of a meaning: is it
+ therefore to be disregarded? They have length, and breadth, and outline:
+ have they nothing to do with depth? Have they only to describe, never to
+ impress? Has nothing any claim to their use but the definite? The cause of
+ a child&rsquo;s tears may be altogether undefinable: has the mother therefore no
+ antidote for his vague misery? That may be strong in colour which has no
+ evident outline. A fairytale, a sonata, a gathering storm, a limitless
+ night, seizes you and sweeps you away: do you begin at once to wrestle
+ with it and ask whence its power over you, whither it is carrying you? The
+ law of each is in the mind of its composer; that law makes one man feel
+ this way, another man feel that way. To one the sonata is a world of odour
+ and beauty, to another of soothing only and sweetness. To one, the cloudy
+ rendezvous is a wild dance, with a terror at its heart; to another, a
+ majestic march of heavenly hosts, with Truth in their centre pointing
+ their course, but as yet restraining her voice. The greatest forces lie in
+ the region of the uncomprehended.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I will go farther.&mdash;The best thing you can do for your fellow, next
+ to rousing his conscience, is&mdash;not to give him things to think about,
+ but to wake things up that are in him; or say, to make him think things
+ for himself. The best Nature does for us is to work in us such moods in
+ which thoughts of high import arise. Does any aspect of Nature wake but
+ one thought? Does she ever suggest only one definite thing? Does she make
+ any two men in the same place at the same moment think the same thing? Is
+ she therefore a failure, because she is not definite? Is it nothing that
+ she rouses the something deeper than the understanding&mdash;the power
+ that underlies thoughts? Does she not set feeling, and so thinking at
+ work? Would it be better that she did this after one fashion and not after
+ many fashions? Nature is mood-engendering, thought-provoking: such ought
+ the sonata, such ought the fairytale to be.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But a man may then imagine in your work what he pleases, what you never
+ meant!&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ Not what he pleases, but what he can. If he be not a true man, he will
+ draw evil out of the best; we need not mind how he treats any work of art!
+ If he be a true man, he will imagine true things; what matter whether I
+ meant them or not? They are there none the less that I cannot claim
+ putting them there! One difference between God&rsquo;s work and man&rsquo;s is, that,
+ while God&rsquo;s work cannot mean more than he meant, man&rsquo;s must mean more than
+ he meant. For in everything that God has made, there is layer upon layer
+ of ascending significance; also he expresses the same thought in higher
+ and higher kinds of that thought: it is God&rsquo;s things, his embodied
+ thoughts, which alone a man has to use, modified and adapted to his own
+ purposes, for the expression of his thoughts; therefore he cannot help his
+ words and figures falling into such combinations in the mind of another as
+ he had himself not foreseen, so many are the thoughts allied to every
+ other thought, so many are the relations involved in every figure, so many
+ the facts hinted in every symbol. A man may well himself discover truth in
+ what he wrote; for he was dealing all the time with things that came from
+ thoughts beyond his own.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ &ldquo;But surely you would explain your idea to one who asked you?&rdquo;
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ I say again, if I cannot draw a horse, I will not write THIS IS A HORSE
+ under what I foolishly meant for one. Any key to a work of imagination
+ would be nearly, if not quite, as absurd. The tale is there, not to hide,
+ but to show: if it show nothing at your window, do not open your door to
+ it; leave it out in the cold. To ask me to explain, is to say, &ldquo;Roses!
+ Boil them, or we won&rsquo;t have them!&rdquo; My tales may not be roses, but I will
+ not boil them.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ So long as I think my dog can bark, I will not sit up to bark for him.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If a writer&rsquo;s aim be logical conviction, he must spare no logical pains,
+ not merely to be understood, but to escape being misunderstood; where his
+ object is to move by suggestion, to cause to imagine, then let him assail
+ the soul of his reader as the wind assails an aeolian harp. If there be
+ music in my reader, I would gladly wake it. Let fairytale of mine go for a
+ firefly that now flashes, now is dark, but may flash again. Caught in a
+ hand which does not love its kind, it will turn to an insignificant, ugly
+ thing, that can neither flash nor fly.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ The best way with music, I imagine, is not to bring the forces of our
+ intellect to bear upon it, but to be still and let it work on that part of
+ us for whose sake it exists. We spoil countless precious things by
+ intellectual greed. He who will be a man, and will not be a child, must&mdash;he
+ cannot help himself&mdash;become a little man, that is, a dwarf. He will,
+ however, need no consolation, for he is sure to think himself a very large
+ creature indeed.
+ </p>
+ <p>
+ If any strain of my &ldquo;broken music&rdquo; make a child&rsquo;s eyes flash, or his
+ mother&rsquo;s grow for a moment dim, my labour will not have been in vain.
+ </p>
+ <div style="height: 6em;">
+ <br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br />
+ </div>
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<pre>
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Dish Of Orts, by George MacDonald
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A DISH OF ORTS ***
+
+***** This file should be named 9393-h.htm or 9393-h.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/9/3/9/9393/
+
+
+Text file produced by Jonathan Ingram, Sandra Brown, and Project
+Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
+
+HTML file produced by David Widger
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &ldquo;Project
+Gutenberg&rdquo;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
+ www.gutenberg.org/license.
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. &ldquo;Project Gutenberg&rdquo; is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&ldquo;the Foundation&rdquo;
+ or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase &ldquo;Project Gutenberg&rdquo; appears, or with which the phrase &ldquo;Project
+Gutenberg&rdquo; is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase &ldquo;Project Gutenberg&rdquo; associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+&ldquo;Plain Vanilla ASCII&rdquo; or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original &ldquo;Plain Vanilla ASCII&rdquo; or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, &ldquo;Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.&rdquo;
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+&ldquo;Defects,&rdquo; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &ldquo;Right
+of Replacement or Refund&rdquo; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &lsquo;AS-IS&rsquo;, WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm&rsquo;s
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation&rsquo;s EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state&rsquo;s laws.
+
+The Foundation&rsquo;s principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
+North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
+contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
+Foundation&rsquo;s web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+ </body>
+</html>